This is a modern-English version of History of the Decline and Fall of the Roman Empire — Volume 6, originally written by Gibbon, Edward. It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.

HISTORY OF THE DECLINE AND FALL OF THE ROMAN EMPIRE

Edward Gibbon, Esq.

With notes by the Rev. H. H. Milman

Vol. 6

1782 (Written), 1845 (Revised)


Contents

Chapter LIX: The Crusades.—Part I.

     Preservation Of The Greek Empire.—Numbers, Passage, And
     Event, Of The Second And Third Crusades.—St. Bernard.—
     Reign Of Saladin In Egypt And Syria.—His Conquest Of
     Jerusalem.—Naval Crusades.—Richard The First Of England.—
     Pope Innocent The Third; And The Fourth And Fifth Crusades.—
     The Emperor Frederic The Second.—Louis The Ninth Of
     France; And The Two Last Crusades.—Expulsion Of The Latins
     Or Franks By The Mamelukes.
     Preservation Of The Greek Empire.—Numbers, Passage, And
     Event, Of The Second And Third Crusades.—St. Bernard.—
     Reign Of Saladin In Egypt And Syria.—His Conquest Of
     Jerusalem.—Naval Crusades.—Richard The First Of England.—
     Pope Innocent The Third; And The Fourth And Fifth Crusades.—
     The Emperor Frederic The Second.—Louis The Ninth Of
     France; And The Two Last Crusades.—Expulsion Of The Latins
     Or Franks By The Mamelukes.

In a style less grave than that of history, I should perhaps compare the emperor Alexius 1 to the jackal, who is said to follow the steps, and to devour the leavings, of the lion. Whatever had been his fears and toils in the passage of the first crusade, they were amply recompensed by the subsequent benefits which he derived from the exploits of the Franks. His dexterity and vigilance secured their first conquest of Nice; and from this threatening station the Turks were compelled to evacuate the neighborhood of Constantinople. While the crusaders, with blind valor, advanced into the midland countries of Asia, the crafty Greek improved the favorable occasion when the emirs of the sea-coast were recalled to the standard of the sultan. The Turks were driven from the Isles of Rhodes and Chios: the cities of Ephesus and Smyrna, of Sardes, Philadelphia, and Laodicea, were restored to the empire, which Alexius enlarged from the Hellespont to the banks of the Mæander, and the rocky shores of Pamphylia. The churches resumed their splendor: the towns were rebuilt and fortified; and the desert country was peopled with colonies of Christians, who were gently removed from the more distant and dangerous frontier. In these paternal cares, we may forgive Alexius, if he forgot the deliverance of the holy sepulchre; but, by the Latins, he was stigmatized with the foul reproach of treason and desertion. They had sworn fidelity and obedience to his throne; but he had promised to assist their enterprise in person, or, at least, with his troops and treasures: his base retreat dissolved their obligations; and the sword, which had been the instrument of their victory, was the pledge and title of their just independence. It does not appear that the emperor attempted to revive his obsolete claims over the kingdom of Jerusalem; 2 but the borders of Cilicia and Syria were more recent in his possession, and more accessible to his arms. The great army of the crusaders was annihilated or dispersed; the principality of Antioch was left without a head, by the surprise and captivity of Bohemond; his ransom had oppressed him with a heavy debt; and his Norman followers were insufficient to repel the hostilities of the Greeks and Turks. In this distress, Bohemond embraced a magnanimous resolution, of leaving the defence of Antioch to his kinsman, the faithful Tancred; of arming the West against the Byzantine empire; and of executing the design which he inherited from the lessons and example of his father Guiscard. His embarkation was clandestine: and, if we may credit a tale of the princess Anne, he passed the hostile sea closely secreted in a coffin. 3 But his reception in France was dignified by the public applause, and his marriage with the king’s daughter: his return was glorious, since the bravest spirits of the age enlisted under his veteran command; and he repassed the Adriatic at the head of five thousand horse and forty thousand foot, assembled from the most remote climates of Europe. 4 The strength of Durazzo, and prudence of Alexius, the progress of famine and approach of winter, eluded his ambitious hopes; and the venal confederates were seduced from his standard. A treaty of peace 5 suspended the fears of the Greeks; and they were finally delivered by the death of an adversary, whom neither oaths could bind, nor dangers could appal, nor prosperity could satiate. His children succeeded to the principality of Antioch; but the boundaries were strictly defined, the homage was clearly stipulated, and the cities of Tarsus and Malmistra were restored to the Byzantine emperors. Of the coast of Anatolia, they possessed the entire circuit from Trebizond to the Syrian gates. The Seljukian dynasty of Roum 6 was separated on all sides from the sea and their Mussulman brethren; the power of the sultan was shaken by the victories and even the defeats of the Franks; and after the loss of Nice, they removed their throne to Cogni or Iconium, an obscure and in land town above three hundred miles from Constantinople. 7 Instead of trembling for their capital, the Comnenian princes waged an offensive war against the Turks, and the first crusade prevented the fall of the declining empire.

In a less serious tone than history usually demands, I might compare Emperor Alexius 1 to a jackal, said to follow the footsteps and feast on the leftovers of lions. No matter what fears or struggles he faced during the first crusade, the benefits he gained from the Franks’ adventures more than compensated him. His skill and watchfulness enabled them to conquer Nice, forcing the Turks to abandon the area around Constantinople. While the crusaders charged bravely into the interior of Asia, the cunning Greek seized the opportunity when the coastal emirs were called back to serve the sultan. The Turks were pushed out of the Islands of Rhodes and Chios; cities like Ephesus and Smyrna, as well as Sardes, Philadelphia, and Laodicea, were returned to the empire, which Alexius expanded from the Hellespont to the Mæander River, and the rugged shores of Pamphylia. The churches regained their splendor, towns were rebuilt and fortified, and the once desolate areas were populated with Christian colonies, gently moved from more distant and dangerous frontiers. In these paternal efforts, we can understand if Alexius overlooked the liberation of the holy sepulchre; however, the Latins labeled him with the dishonorable accusation of treachery and abandonment. They had sworn loyalty and obedience to his throne, but he had pledged to support their mission either personally or at least with his troops and treasures: his cowardly retreat nullified their commitments; and the sword, which had been crucial to their victory, became the symbol of their rightful independence. There’s no evidence that the emperor attempted to renew his outdated claims over the kingdom of Jerusalem; 2 but the areas of Cilicia and Syria were more recent conquests for him and easier for him to control. The large army of the crusaders was either annihilated or scattered; the principality of Antioch was leaderless after Bohemond was captured; his ransom burdened him with heavy debt, and his Norman followers were too few to fend off the attacks from the Greeks and Turks. In this dire situation, Bohemond made the noble decision to leave the defense of Antioch to his loyal kinsman, Tancred; to rally the West against the Byzantine empire; and to carry out the plan he inherited from his father Guiscard’s example. His departure was discreet, and if we believe a story from Princess Anne, he crossed the hostile sea secretly hidden in a coffin. 3 But he was welcomed in France with public acclaim and his marriage to the king’s daughter; his return was triumphant, as the bravest warriors of the time joined his experienced command, and he crossed the Adriatic leading five thousand knights and forty thousand infantry from various distant regions of Europe. 4 The strength of Durazzo, Alexius’s caution, the advent of famine, and the approach of winter thwarted his ambitious dreams; and his hired allies were seduced away from him. A peace treaty 5 calmed the Greeks’ fears; and they were ultimately freed by the death of an enemy who could be neither bound by oaths nor deterred by dangers, nor satisfied by success. His children inherited the principality of Antioch; yet the limits were clearly defined, the fealty was established, and the cities of Tarsus and Malmistra were returned to the Byzantine emperors. Along the Anatolian coast, they held full control from Trebizond to the Syrian gates. The Seljuk dynasty of Roum 6 was isolated from both the sea and their Muslim counterparts on all sides; the power of the sultan was weakened by the victories and even the losses of the Franks; and after losing Nice, they moved their throne to Cogni or Iconium, a little-known inland town over three hundred miles from Constantinople. 7 Rather than fearing for their capital, the Comnenian princes conducted an offensive war against the Turks, and the first crusade prevented the collapse of the waning empire.

1 (return)
[ Anna Comnena relates her father’s conquests in Asia Minor Alexiad, l. xi. p. 321—325, l. xiv. p. 419; his Cilician war against Tancred and Bohemond, p. 328—324; the war of Epirus, with tedious prolixity, l. xii. xiii. p. 345—406; the death of Bohemond, l. xiv. p. 419.]

1 (return)
[ Anna Comnena describes her father’s victories in Asia Minor in the Alexiad, ll. xi. pp. 321—325, ll. xiv. pp. 419; his war in Cilicia against Tancred and Bohemond, pp. 328—324; the struggle in Epirus, with excessive detail, ll. xii. xiii. pp. 345—406; and the death of Bohemond, ll. xiv. p. 419.]

2 (return)
[ The kings of Jerusalem submitted, however, to a nominal dependence, and in the dates of their inscriptions, (one is still legible in the church of Bethlem,) they respectfully placed before their own the name of the reigning emperor, (Ducange, Dissertations sur Joinville xxvii. p. 319.)]

2 (return)
[ The kings of Jerusalem, nonetheless, acknowledged a nominal dependence, and in the dates of their inscriptions, (one still visible in the church of Bethlehem,) they respectfully put the name of the reigning emperor before their own, (Ducange, Dissertations sur Joinville xxvii. p. 319.)]

3 (return)
[ Anna Comnena adds, that, to complete the imitation, he was shut up with a dead cock; and condescends to wonder how the Barbarian could endure the confinement and putrefaction. This absurd tale is unknown to the Latins. * Note: The Greek writers, in general, Zonaras, p. 2, 303, and Glycas, p. 334 agree in this story with the princess Anne, except in the absurd addition of the dead cock. Ducange has already quoted some instances where a similar stratagem had been adopted by Norman princes. On this authority Wilken inclines to believe the fact. Appendix to vol. ii. p. 14.—M.]

3 (return)
[ Anna Comnena mentions that, to complete the imitation, he was locked in a room with a dead rooster, and she wonders how the Barbarian could stand the confinement and decay. This ridiculous story is not known to the Latins. * Note: The Greek writers, in general, Zonaras, p. 2, 303, and Glycas, p. 334 agree with Princess Anne on this story, except for the ridiculous detail of the dead rooster. Ducange has already cited a few instances where a similar trick was used by Norman princes. Based on this, Wilken is inclined to believe the fact. Appendix to vol. ii. p. 14.—M.]

4 (return)
[ Ἀπὸ Θύλης, in the Byzantine geography, must mean England; yet we are more credibly informed, that our Henry I. would not suffer him to levy any troops in his kingdom, (Ducange, Not. ad Alexiad. p. 41.)]

4 (return)
[ From Thule, in Byzantine geography, likely refers to England; however, we have more reliable information that our Henry I did not allow him to raise any troops in his kingdom, (Ducange, Not. ad Alexiad. p. 41.)]

5 (return)
[ The copy of the treaty (Alexiad. l. xiii. p. 406—416) is an original and curious piece, which would require, and might afford, a good map of the principality of Antioch.]

5 (return)
[ The copy of the treaty (Alexiad. l. xiii. p. 406—416) is an original and interesting document, which would need, and could provide, an accurate map of the principality of Antioch.]

6 (return)
[ See, in the learned work of M. De Guignes, (tom. ii. part ii.,) the history of the Seljukians of Iconium, Aleppo, and Damascus, as far as it may be collected from the Greeks, Latins, and Arabians. The last are ignorant or regardless of the affairs of Roum.]

6 (return)
[ Check out the scholarly work of M. De Guignes, (vol. ii, part ii,) for the history of the Seljukians of Iconium, Aleppo, and Damascus, as far as it can be gathered from the Greeks, Latins, and Arabs. The latter are either unaware of or indifferent to the events of Roum.]

7 (return)
[ Iconium is mentioned as a station by Xenophon, and by Strabo, with an ambiguous title of Κωμόπολις, (Cellarius, tom. ii. p. 121.) Yet St. Paul found in that place a multitude (πλῆθος) of Jews and Gentiles. under the corrupt name of Kunijah, it is described as a great city, with a river and garden, three leagues from the mountains, and decorated (I know not why) with Plato’s tomb, (Abulfeda, tabul. xvii. p. 303 vers. Reiske; and the Index Geographicus of Schultens from Ibn Said.)]

7 (return)
[ Iconium is referenced as a location by Xenophon and Strabo, with the vague title of Κωμόπολις, (Cellarius, tom. ii. p. 121.) However, St. Paul encountered a large number (πλῆθος) of Jews and Gentiles there. Under the altered name of Kunijah, it is described as a significant city, featuring a river and gardens, located three leagues from the mountains, and strangely adorned with Plato’s tomb, (Abulfeda, tabul. xvii. p. 303 vers. Reiske; and the Index Geographicus of Schultens from Ibn Said.)]

In the twelfth century, three great emigrations marched by land from the West for the relief of Palestine. The soldiers and pilgrims of Lombardy, France, and Germany were excited by the example and success of the first crusade. 8 Forty-eight years after the deliverance of the holy sepulchre, the emperor, and the French king, Conrad the Third and Louis the Seventh, undertook the second crusade to support the falling fortunes of the Latins. 9 A grand division of the third crusade was led by the emperor Frederic Barbarossa, 10 who sympathized with his brothers of France and England in the common loss of Jerusalem. These three expeditions may be compared in their resemblance of the greatness of numbers, their passage through the Greek empire, and the nature and event of their Turkish warfare, and a brief parallel may save the repetition of a tedious narrative. However splendid it may seem, a regular story of the crusades would exhibit the perpetual return of the same causes and effects; and the frequent attempts for the defence or recovery of the Holy Land would appear so many faint and unsuccessful copies of the original.

In the twelfth century, three major migrations traveled over land from the West to help Palestine. The soldiers and pilgrims from Lombardy, France, and Germany were inspired by the example and success of the first crusade. 8 Forty-eight years after the liberation of the holy sepulchre, the emperor Conrad the Third and French king Louis the Seventh launched the second crusade to aid the weakening Latin presence. 9 A significant portion of the third crusade was led by Emperor Frederic Barbarossa, 10 who felt solidarity with his brothers from France and England over the shared loss of Jerusalem. These three expeditions can be compared for their impressive numbers, their passage through the Greek empire, and the nature and outcome of their battles with the Turks, and a brief comparison can avoid the need for a lengthy narrative. As grand as it may seem, a straightforward account of the crusades would show the constant recurrence of the same reasons and results; the repeated efforts to defend or reclaim the Holy Land would appear as many weak and unsuccessful attempts at imitating the original.

8 (return)
[ For this supplement to the first crusade, see Anna Comnena, (Alexias, l. xi. p. 331, &c., and the viiith book of Albert Aquensis.)]

8 (return)
[ For this supplement to the first crusade, see Anna Comnena, (Alexias, l. xi. p. 331, etc., and the eighth book of Albert Aquensis.)]

9 (return)
[ For the second crusade, of Conrad III. and Louis VII., see William of Tyre, (l. xvi. c. 18—19,) Otho of Frisingen, (l. i. c. 34—45 59, 60,) Matthew Paris, (Hist. Major. p. 68,) Struvius, (Corpus Hist Germanicæ, p. 372, 373,) Scriptores Rerum Francicarum à Duchesne tom. iv.: Nicetas, in Vit. Manuel, l. i. c. 4, 5, 6, p. 41—48, Cinnamus l. ii. p. 41—49.]

9 (return)
[ For the Second Crusade, involving Conrad III and Louis VII, see William of Tyre, (l. xvi. c. 18—19,) Otho of Frisingen, (l. i. c. 34—45 59, 60,) Matthew Paris, (Hist. Major. p. 68,) Struvius, (Corpus Hist Germanicæ, p. 372, 373,) Scriptores Rerum Francicarum by Duchesne vol. iv.: Nicetas, in Vit. Manuel, l. i. c. 4, 5, 6, p. 41—48, Cinnamus l. ii. p. 41—49.]

10 (return)
[ For the third crusade, of Frederic Barbarossa, see Nicetas in Isaac Angel. l. ii. c. 3—8, p. 257—266. Struv. (Corpus. Hist. Germ. p. 414,) and two historians, who probably were spectators, Tagino, (in Scriptor. Freher. tom. i. p. 406—416, edit Struv.,) and the Anonymus de Expeditione Asiaticâ Fred. I. (in Canisii Antiq. Lection. tom. iii. p. ii. p. 498—526, edit. Basnage.)]

10 (return)
[ For the Third Crusade involving Frederick Barbarossa, see Nicetas in Isaac Angel, Book II, Chapters 3–8, pages 257–266. Struv. (Corpus. Hist. Germ. page 414,) and two historians, who were likely eyewitnesses, Tagino (in Scriptor. Freher. Volume I, pages 406–416, edited by Struv.) and the Anonymous on the Asian Expedition of Frederick I (in Canisii Ancient Readings, Volume III, pages ii, 498–526, edited by Basnage.)]

I. Of the swarms that so closely trod in the footsteps of the first pilgrims, the chiefs were equal in rank, though unequal in fame and merit, to Godfrey of Bouillon and his fellow-adventurers. At their head were displayed the banners of the dukes of Burgundy, Bavaria, and Aquitain; the first a descendant of Hugh Capet, the second, a father of the Brunswick line: the archbishop of Milan, a temporal prince, transported, for the benefit of the Turks, the treasures and ornaments of his church and palace; and the veteran crusaders, Hugh the Great and Stephen of Chartres, returned to consummate their unfinished vow. The huge and disorderly bodies of their followers moved forward in two columns; and if the first consisted of two hundred and sixty thousand persons, the second might possibly amount to sixty thousand horse and one hundred thousand foot. 11 111 The armies of the second crusade might have claimed the conquest of Asia; the nobles of France and Germany were animated by the presence of their sovereigns; and both the rank and personal character of Conrad and Louis gave a dignity to their cause, and a discipline to their force, which might be vainly expected from the feudatory chiefs. The cavalry of the emperor, and that of the king, was each composed of seventy thousand knights, and their immediate attendants in the field; 12 and if the light-armed troops, the peasant infantry, the women and children, the priests and monks, be rigorously excluded, the full account will scarcely be satisfied with four hundred thousand souls. The West, from Rome to Britain, was called into action; the kings of Poland and Bohemia obeyed the summons of Conrad; and it is affirmed by the Greeks and Latins, that, in the passage of a strait or river, the Byzantine agents, after a tale of nine hundred thousand, desisted from the endless and formidable computation. 13 In the third crusade, as the French and English preferred the navigation of the Mediterranean, the host of Frederic Barbarossa was less numerous. Fifteen thousand knights, and as many squires, were the flower of the German chivalry: sixty thousand horse, and one hundred thousand foot, were mustered by the emperor in the plains of Hungary; and after such repetitions, we shall no longer be startled at the six hundred thousand pilgrims, which credulity has ascribed to this last emigration. 14 Such extravagant reckonings prove only the astonishment of contemporaries; but their astonishment most strongly bears testimony to the existence of an enormous, though indefinite, multitude. The Greeks might applaud their superior knowledge of the arts and stratagems of war, but they confessed the strength and courage of the French cavalry, and the infantry of the Germans; 15 and the strangers are described as an iron race, of gigantic stature, who darted fire from their eyes, and spilt blood like water on the ground. Under the banners of Conrad, a troop of females rode in the attitude and armor of men; and the chief of these Amazons, from her gilt spurs and buskins, obtained the epithet of the Golden-footed Dame.

I. Among the crowds that closely followed the first pilgrims, the leaders were equal in rank, though not in fame or merit, to Godfrey of Bouillon and his fellow adventurers. At the forefront were the banners of the dukes of Burgundy, Bavaria, and Aquitaine; the first was a descendant of Hugh Capet, and the second was an ancestor of the Brunswick line. The archbishop of Milan, a secular prince, transported the treasures and ornaments of his church and palace for the benefit of the Turks; and the veteran crusaders, Hugh the Great and Stephen of Chartres, returned to fulfill their unfinished vow. The massive and disorganized groups of their followers moved forward in two columns; the first consisted of two hundred and sixty thousand people, while the second likely included sixty thousand horsemen and one hundred thousand foot soldiers. 11 111 The armies of the second crusade could have claimed the conquest of Asia; the nobles of France and Germany were energized by the presence of their kings; and both the rank and personal qualities of Conrad and Louis added dignity to their cause and order to their forces, which could hardly be expected from the feudal leaders. The emperor’s cavalry and that of the king each comprised seventy thousand knights and their immediate attendants in the field; 12 and if we strictly exclude the lightly armed troops, peasant infantry, women and children, priests, and monks, the total count would hardly satisfy four hundred thousand souls. The West, from Rome to Britain, was called into action; the kings of Poland and Bohemia answered Conrad's call; and both Greeks and Latins claimed that during the crossing of a strait or river, the Byzantine agents, after estimating nine hundred thousand, gave up on the endless and daunting calculations. 13 In the third crusade, as the French and English favored sailing across the Mediterranean, Frederick Barbarossa's army was smaller. Fifteen thousand knights and just as many squires represented the peak of German chivalry: sixty thousand horse and one hundred thousand foot were assembled by the emperor in the plains of Hungary; and after such repetitions, we won’t be surprised by the six hundred thousand pilgrims that exaggeration has attributed to this last migration. 14 Such extravagant numbers reflect only the amazement of contemporaries; yet their astonishment strongly indicates the presence of an enormous, albeit undefined, multitude. The Greeks may have praised their superior knowledge of the arts and tactics of war, but they acknowledged the strength and bravery of the French cavalry and the German infantry; 15 and these outsiders were described as an iron race of giant stature, who shot fire from their eyes and spilled blood like water on the ground. Under Conrad's banners, a group of women rode in the style and armor of men; and the leader of these Amazons, due to her gilded spurs and boots, earned the nickname the Golden-footed Dame.

11 (return)
[ Anne, who states these later swarms at 40,000 horse and 100,000 foot, calls them Normans, and places at their head two brothers of Flanders. The Greeks were strangely ignorant of the names, families, and possessions of the Latin princes.]

11 (return)
[ Anne, who later reports that there are 40,000 cavalry and 100,000 infantry, refers to them as Normans and puts two brothers from Flanders in charge. The Greeks were surprisingly unaware of the names, families, and lands of the Latin princes.]

111 (return)
[ It was this army of pilgrims, the first body of which was headed by the archbishop of Milan and Count Albert of Blandras, which set forth on the wild, yet, with a more disciplined army, not impolitic, enterprise of striking at the heart of the Mahometan power, by attacking the sultan in Bagdad. For their adventures and fate, see Wilken, vol. ii. p. 120, &c., Michaud, book iv.—M.]

111 (return)
[ This was the group of pilgrims, initially led by the archbishop of Milan and Count Albert of Blandras, who embarked on the bold but strategic mission of challenging the core of the Islamic power by attacking the sultan in Baghdad. For details about their experiences and outcomes, see Wilken, vol. ii. p. 120, &c., Michaud, book iv.—M.]

12 (return)
[ William of Tyre, and Matthew Paris, reckon 70,000 loricati in each of the armies.]

12 (return)
[ William of Tyre and Matthew Paris estimate that there were 70,000 armored soldiers in each of the armies.]

13 (return)
[ The imperfect enumeration is mentioned by Cinnamus, (ennenhkonta muriadeV,) and confirmed by Odo de Diogilo apud Ducange ad Cinnamum, with the more precise sum of 900,556. Why must therefore the version and comment suppose the modest and insufficient reckoning of 90,000? Does not Godfrey of Viterbo (Pantheon, p. xix. in Muratori, tom. vii. p. 462) exclaim? ——Numerum si poscere quæras, Millia millena militis agmen erat.]

13 (return)
[ The inaccurate count is noted by Cinnamus, (ennenhkonta muriadeV,) and confirmed by Odo de Diogilo as referenced by Ducange regarding Cinnamus, with the more exact total of 900,556. Why then should the version and comments rely on the modest and inadequate estimate of 90,000? Doesn't Godfrey of Viterbo (Pantheon, p. xix. in Muratori, tom. vii. p. 462) exclaim? ——If you seek the number, there were thousands upon thousands in the army of knights.]

14 (return)
[ This extravagant account is given by Albert of Stade, (apud Struvium, p. 414;) my calculation is borrowed from Godfrey of Viterbo, Arnold of Lubeck, apud eundem, and Bernard Thesaur. (c. 169, p. 804.) The original writers are silent. The Mahometans gave him 200,000, or 260,000, men, (Bohadin, in Vit. Saladin, p. 110.)]

14 (return)
[ This lavish account is provided by Albert of Stade, (quoted in Struvium, p. 414;) my figures come from Godfrey of Viterbo, Arnold of Lubeck, in the same source, and Bernard Thesaur. (c. 169, p. 804.) The original authors say nothing about it. The Muslims reported 200,000 or 260,000 men, (Bohadin, in Vit. Saladin, p. 110.)]

15 (return)
[ I must observe, that, in the second and third crusades, the subjects of Conrad and Frederic are styled by the Greeks and Orientals Alamanni. The Lechi and Tzechi of Cinnamus are the Poles and Bohemians; and it is for the French that he reserves the ancient appellation of Germans. He likewise names the Brittioi, or Britannoi. * Note: * He names both—Brittioi te kai Britanoi.—M.]

15 (return)
[ I should mention that, during the second and third crusades, the followers of Conrad and Frederic were referred to by the Greeks and Orientals as Alamanni. The Lechi and Tzechi mentioned by Cinnamus are the Poles and Bohemians; and he uses the old term Germans specifically for the French. He also refers to the Brittioi, or Britannoi. * Note: * He refers to both—Brittioi te kai Britanoi.—M.]

II. The number and character of the strangers was an object of terror to the effeminate Greeks, and the sentiment of fear is nearly allied to that of hatred. This aversion was suspended or softened by the apprehension of the Turkish power; and the invectives of the Latins will not bias our more candid belief, that the emperor Alexius dissembled their insolence, eluded their hostilities, counselled their rashness, and opened to their ardor the road of pilgrimage and conquest. But when the Turks had been driven from Nice and the sea-coast, when the Byzantine princes no longer dreaded the distant sultans of Cogni, they felt with purer indignation the free and frequent passage of the western Barbarians, who violated the majesty, and endangered the safety, of the empire. The second and third crusades were undertaken under the reign of Manuel Comnenus and Isaac Angelus. Of the former, the passions were always impetuous, and often malevolent; and the natural union of a cowardly and a mischievous temper was exemplified in the latter, who, without merit or mercy, could punish a tyrant, and occupy his throne. It was secretly, and perhaps tacitly, resolved by the prince and people to destroy, or at least to discourage, the pilgrims, by every species of injury and oppression; and their want of prudence and discipline continually afforded the pretence or the opportunity. The Western monarchs had stipulated a safe passage and fair market in the country of their Christian brethren; the treaty had been ratified by oaths and hostages; and the poorest soldier of Frederic’s army was furnished with three marks of silver to defray his expenses on the road. But every engagement was violated by treachery and injustice; and the complaints of the Latins are attested by the honest confession of a Greek historian, who has dared to prefer truth to his country. 16 Instead of a hospitable reception, the gates of the cities, both in Europe and Asia, were closely barred against the crusaders; and the scanty pittance of food was let down in baskets from the walls. Experience or foresight might excuse this timid jealousy; but the common duties of humanity prohibited the mixture of chalk, or other poisonous ingredients, in the bread; and should Manuel be acquitted of any foul connivance, he is guilty of coining base money for the purpose of trading with the pilgrims. In every step of their march they were stopped or misled: the governors had private orders to fortify the passes and break down the bridges against them: the stragglers were pillaged and murdered: the soldiers and horses were pierced in the woods by arrows from an invisible hand; the sick were burnt in their beds; and the dead bodies were hung on gibbets along the highways. These injuries exasperated the champions of the cross, who were not endowed with evangelical patience; and the Byzantine princes, who had provoked the unequal conflict, promoted the embarkation and march of these formidable guests. On the verge of the Turkish frontier Barbarossa spared the guilty Philadelphia, 17 rewarded the hospitable Laodicea, and deplored the hard necessity that had stained his sword with any drops of Christian blood. In their intercourse with the monarchs of Germany and France, the pride of the Greeks was exposed to an anxious trial. They might boast that on the first interview the seat of Louis was a low stool, beside the throne of Manuel; 18 but no sooner had the French king transported his army beyond the Bosphorus, than he refused the offer of a second conference, unless his brother would meet him on equal terms, either on the sea or land. With Conrad and Frederic, the ceremonial was still nicer and more difficult: like the successors of Constantine, they styled themselves emperors of the Romans; 19 and firmly maintained the purity of their title and dignity. The first of these representatives of Charlemagne would only converse with Manuel on horseback in the open field; the second, by passing the Hellespont rather than the Bosphorus, declined the view of Constantinople and its sovereign. An emperor, who had been crowned at Rome, was reduced in the Greek epistles to the humble appellation of Rex, or prince, of the Alemanni; and the vain and feeble Angelus affected to be ignorant of the name of one of the greatest men and monarchs of the age. While they viewed with hatred and suspicion the Latin pilgrims the Greek emperors maintained a strict, though secret, alliance with the Turks and Saracens. Isaac Angelus complained, that by his friendship for the great Saladin he had incurred the enmity of the Franks; and a mosque was founded at Constantinople for the public exercise of the religion of Mahomet. 20

II. The number and character of the outsiders terrified the effeminate Greeks, and fear is closely linked to hatred. This aversion was lessened by the fear of Turkish power; and despite the harsh words from the Latins, we can still believe, with a more objective view, that Emperor Alexius downplayed their arrogance, avoided their aggression, advised their recklessness, and opened the way for their passion for pilgrimage and conquest. But when the Turks were driven from Nice and the coast, and when the Byzantine rulers no longer feared the distant sultans of Cogni, they felt a purer anger toward the unrestrained and frequent movements of the Western Barbarians, who disrespected the majesty and security of the empire. The second and third crusades took place during the reign of Manuel Comnenus and Isaac Angelus. In the former, passions were often fierce and sometimes malicious, while the latter exemplified the natural combination of cowardice and malice, as he could ruthlessly punish a tyrant and seize his throne without mercy or merit. It was secretly, and perhaps implicitly, decided by both the prince and the people to harm, or at least deter, the pilgrims through various forms of abuse and oppression; their lack of prudence and discipline continuously provided the excuse or opportunity. The Western monarchs had guaranteed safe passage and fair trade in the lands of their Christian brothers; the treaty had been confirmed by oaths and hostages; and even the humblest soldier in Frederick's army received three marks of silver to cover his travel expenses. Yet every agreement was broken by treachery and injustice; the complaints of the Latins are supported by the honest admission of a Greek historian, who chose the truth over his country's interests. 16 Instead of a warm welcome, the gates of cities in both Europe and Asia were shut tightly against the crusaders; food was lowered in baskets from the walls. Experience or caution might justify this fearful jealousy; however, basic human decency should have prevented the addition of chalk or other toxic substances to the bread. Even if Manuel is excused from any terrible collusion, he's still guilty of creating counterfeit money to trade with the pilgrims. Every step of their journey was obstructed or misdirected: local governors received secret orders to secure the passes and destroy the bridges against them; stragglers were robbed and killed; soldiers and horses were attacked in the woods by unseen archers; sick individuals were burned in their beds; and the corpses were displayed on gibbets along the roads. These abuses enraged the champions of the cross, who were not blessed with biblical patience; and the Byzantine princes, who had instigated the uneven conflict, further encouraged these dangerous guests to embark and march. At the edge of the Turkish border, Barbarossa spared the guilty Philadelphia, 17 rewarded the friendly Laodicea, and lamented the unfortunate necessity that had stained his sword with Christian blood. In their dealings with the kings of Germany and France, the pride of the Greeks faced a tough test. They could boast that during their first meeting, Louis sat on a low stool next to Manuel’s throne; 18 but once the French king moved his army across the Bosphorus, he refused a second meeting unless his brother would meet him on equal ground, either at sea or on land. With Conrad and Frederick, the protocol was even more complex and demanding: like the successors of Constantine, they claimed to be emperors of the Romans; 19 steadfastly defending the purity of their titles and honor. The first of these deputies of Charlemagne insisted on speaking with Manuel on horseback in an open field, while the second, by crossing the Hellespont instead of the Bosphorus, avoided seeing Constantinople and its ruler. An emperor crowned in Rome was reduced in the Greek correspondence to the lowly title of Rex, or prince, of the Alemanni; and the vain and ineffectual Angelus pretended not to know the name of one of the greatest leaders and kings of the time. While they viewed the Latin pilgrims with hatred and suspicion, the Greek emperors maintained a careful, albeit secret, alliance with the Turks and Saracens. Isaac Angelus complained that his friendship with the great Saladin had earned him the hatred of the Franks; and a mosque was established in Constantinople for the public practice of the religion of Muhammad. 20

16 (return)
[ Nicetas was a child at the second crusade, but in the third he commanded against the Franks the important post of Philippopolis. Cinnamus is infected with national prejudice and pride.]

16 (return)
[ Nicetas was a kid during the second crusade, but in the third, he held an important position against the Franks at Philippopolis. Cinnamus shows bias and pride for his nation.]

17 (return)
[ The conduct of the Philadelphians is blamed by Nicetas, while the anonymous German accuses the rudeness of his countrymen, (culpâ nostrâ.) History would be pleasant, if we were embarrassed only by such contradictions. It is likewise from Nicetas, that we learn the pious and humane sorrow of Frederic.]

17 (return)
[ Nicetas criticizes the behavior of the people of Philadelphia, while an anonymous German points out the rudeness of his fellow countrymen, (culpâ nostrâ.) History would be enjoyable if we only had to deal with such contradictions. We also learn from Nicetas about Frederic's compassionate and humane sorrow.]

18 (return)
[ Cqamalh edra, which Cinnamus translates into Latin by the word Sellion. Ducange works very hard to save his king and country from such ignominy, (sur Joinville, dissertat. xxvii. p. 317—320.) Louis afterwards insisted on a meeting in mari ex æquo, not ex equo, according to the laughable readings of some MSS.]

18 (return)
[ Cqamalh edra, which Cinnamus translates into Latin as Sellion. Ducange puts in a lot of effort to rescue his king and country from such disgrace, (sur Joinville, dissertat. xxvii. p. 317—320.) Louis later insisted on a meeting on equal terms, not on horse terms, according to the amusing interpretations of some manuscripts.]

19 (return)
[ Ego Romanorum imperator sum, ille Romaniorum, (Anonym Canis. p. 512.) The public and historical style of the Greeks was Ριξ... princeps. Yet Cinnamus owns, that Ἰμπεράτορ is synonymous to Βασιλεὺς.]

19 (return)
[ I am the Emperor of the Romans, that Roman, (Anonym Canis. p. 512.) The public and historical style of the Greeks was Ριξ... princeps. Yet Cinnamus admits that Ἰμπεράτορ is synonymous with Βασιλεὺς.]

20 (return)
[ In the Epistles of Innocent III., (xiii. p. 184,) and the History of Bohadin, (p. 129, 130,) see the views of a pope and a cadhi on this singulartoleration.]

20 (return)
[ In the letters of Innocent III., (xiii. p. 184,) and the History of Bohadin, (p. 129, 130,) check out the perspectives of a pope and a cadhi on this unique tolerance.]

III. The swarms that followed the first crusade were destroyed in Anatolia by famine, pestilence, and the Turkish arrows; and the princes only escaped with some squadrons of horse to accomplish their lamentable pilgrimage. A just opinion may be formed of their knowledge and humanity; of their knowledge, from the design of subduing Persia and Chorasan in their way to Jerusalem; 201 of their humanity, from the massacre of the Christian people, a friendly city, who came out to meet them with palms and crosses in their hands. The arms of Conrad and Louis were less cruel and imprudent; but the event of the second crusade was still more ruinous to Christendom; and the Greek Manuel is accused by his own subjects of giving seasonable intelligence to the sultan, and treacherous guides to the Latin princes. Instead of crushing the common foe, by a double attack at the same time but on different sides, the Germans were urged by emulation, and the French were retarded by jealousy. Louis had scarcely passed the Bosphorus when he was met by the returning emperor, who had lost the greater part of his army in glorious, but unsuccessful, actions on the banks of the Mæander. The contrast of the pomp of his rival hastened the retreat of Conrad: 202 the desertion of his independent vassals reduced him to his hereditary troops; and he borrowed some Greek vessels to execute by sea the pilgrimage of Palestine. Without studying the lessons of experience, or the nature of the war, the king of France advanced through the same country to a similar fate. The vanguard, which bore the royal banner and the oriflamme of St. Denys, 21 had doubled their march with rash and inconsiderate speed; and the rear, which the king commanded in person, no longer found their companions in the evening camp. In darkness and disorder, they were encompassed, assaulted, and overwhelmed, by the innumerable host of Turks, who, in the art of war, were superior to the Christians of the twelfth century. 211 Louis, who climbed a tree in the general discomfiture, was saved by his own valor and the ignorance of his adversaries; and with the dawn of day he escaped alive, but almost alone, to the camp of the vanguard. But instead of pursuing his expedition by land, he was rejoiced to shelter the relics of his army in the friendly seaport of Satalia. From thence he embarked for Antioch; but so penurious was the supply of Greek vessels, that they could only afford room for his knights and nobles; and the plebeian crowd of infantry was left to perish at the foot of the Pamphylian hills. The emperor and the king embraced and wept at Jerusalem; their martial trains, the remnant of mighty armies, were joined to the Christian powers of Syria, and a fruitless siege of Damascus was the final effort of the second crusade. Conrad and Louis embarked for Europe with the personal fame of piety and courage; but the Orientals had braved these potent monarchs of the Franks, with whose names and military forces they had been so often threatened. 22 Perhaps they had still more to fear from the veteran genius of Frederic the First, who in his youth had served in Asia under his uncle Conrad. Forty campaigns in Germany and Italy had taught Barbarossa to command; and his soldiers, even the princes of the empire, were accustomed under his reign to obey. As soon as he lost sight of Philadelphia and Laodicea, the last cities of the Greek frontier, he plunged into the salt and barren desert, a land (says the historian) of horror and tribulation. 23 During twenty days, every step of his fainting and sickly march was besieged by the innumerable hordes of Turkmans, 24 whose numbers and fury seemed after each defeat to multiply and inflame. The emperor continued to struggle and to suffer; and such was the measure of his calamities, that when he reached the gates of Iconium, no more than one thousand knights were able to serve on horseback. By a sudden and resolute assault he defeated the guards, and stormed the capital of the sultan, 25 who humbly sued for pardon and peace. The road was now open, and Frederic advanced in a career of triumph, till he was unfortunately drowned in a petty torrent of Cilicia. 26 The remainder of his Germans was consumed by sickness and desertion: and the emperor’s son expired with the greatest part of his Swabian vassals at the siege of Acre. Among the Latin heroes, Godfrey of Bouillon and Frederic Barbarossa could alone achieve the passage of the Lesser Asia; yet even their success was a warning; and in the last and most experienced age of the crusades, every nation preferred the sea to the toils and perils of an inland expedition. 27

III. The groups that followed the first crusade were devastated in Anatolia by famine, disease, and Turkish arrows; and the princes barely escaped with some cavalry to complete their unfortunate pilgrimage. One can form a fair opinion of their knowledge and humanity; their knowledge is shown by their plan to conquer Persia and Chorasan on their way to Jerusalem; 201 their humanity is illustrated by the massacre of Christian people in a friendly city who came out to greet them with palms and crosses in their hands. The forces of Conrad and Louis were less brutal and reckless; but the outcome of the second crusade was even more disastrous for Christendom; and the Greek Manuel is accused by his own people of giving timely intelligence to the sultan and treacherous guides to the Latin princes. Instead of defeating the common enemy with a simultaneous attack from different sides, the Germans were driven by rivalry, and the French were held back by jealousy. Louis had barely crossed the Bosphorus when he encountered the retreating emperor, who had lost most of his army in glorious but unsuccessful battles on the banks of the Mæander. The contrast of his rival's splendor hastened Conrad's retreat: 202 the desertion of his independent vassals left him with only his hereditary troops; and he borrowed some Greek ships to continue the pilgrimage to Palestine by sea. Without learning from past experiences or understanding the nature of the war, the king of France marched through the same territory to meet a similar fate. The vanguard, carrying the royal banner and the oriflamme of St. Denys, 21 had quickened their pace recklessly; and the rear, which the king commanded personally, could no longer find their companions in the evening camp. In darkness and chaos, they were surrounded, attacked, and overwhelmed by the countless Turkish forces, who were more skilled in warfare than the Christians of the twelfth century. 211 Louis, who climbed a tree amid the overall defeat, was saved by his own bravery and the ignorance of his enemies; and with the dawn, he barely escaped alive, but almost alone, to the vanguard’s camp. But instead of continuing his expedition on land, he was glad to find refuge for what remained of his army in the friendly port of Satalia. From there, he set sail for Antioch; but there was such a shortage of Greek ships that only his knights and nobles could find a place on board, leaving the common foot soldiers to die at the foot of the Pamphylian hills. The emperor and the king embraced and wept in Jerusalem; their remaining forces, what's left of huge armies, joined the Christian powers in Syria, and a futile siege of Damascus was the ultimate effort of the second crusade. Conrad and Louis returned to Europe with reputations for piety and courage; but the Easterners had withstood these powerful kings of the Franks, with whose names and military strength they had often been threatened. 22 Perhaps they feared even more the seasoned skill of Frederick the First, who had served in Asia during his youth under his uncle Conrad. Forty campaigns in Germany and Italy had taught Barbarossa how to lead; and his soldiers, including the princes of the empire, were used to obeying him. As soon as he lost sight of Philadelphia and Laodicea, the last cities on the Greek border, he plunged into the salty and barren desert, a place (according to historians) filled with horror and suffering. 23 For twenty days, every step of his weak and sickly march was besieged by the countless hordes of Turkmans, 24 whose numbers and rage seemed to multiply and intensify after each defeat. The emperor continued to struggle and endure; and his misfortunes were so great that when he reached the gates of Iconium, only about one thousand knights were left to ride on horseback. With a sudden and determined attack, he defeated the guards and stormed the sultan's capital, 25 who humbly asked for mercy and peace. The path was now clear, and Frederick advanced triumphantly, until he tragically drowned in a minor stream in Cilicia. 26 The rest of his German forces were consumed by illness and abandonment: and the emperor’s son died along with most of his Swabian vassals during the siege of Acre. Among the Latin heroes, only Godfrey of Bouillon and Frederick Barbarossa could successfully navigate the passage through Lesser Asia; yet even their victories served as a warning; and in the final, most experienced era of the crusades, every nation preferred the sea to the struggles and dangers of an inland campaign. 27

201 (return)
[ This was the design of the pilgrims under the archbishop of Milan. See note, p. 102.—M.]

201 (return)
[ This was the plan of the pilgrims following the archbishop of Milan. See note, p. 102.—M.]

202 (return)
[ Conrad had advanced with part of his army along a central road, between that on the coast and that which led to Iconium. He had been betrayed by the Greeks, his army destroyed without a battle. Wilken, vol. iii. p. 165. Michaud, vol. ii. p. 156. Conrad advanced again with Louis as far as Ephesus, and from thence, at the invitation of Manuel, returned to Constantinople. It was Louis who, at the passage of the Mæander, was engaged in a “glorious action.” Wilken, vol. iii. p. 179. Michaud vol. ii. p. 160. Gibbon followed Nicetas.—M.]

202 (return)
[ Conrad had moved with part of his army along a central road, situated between the coastal route and the one leading to Iconium. He had been betrayed by the Greeks, resulting in the destruction of his army without any battle. Wilken, vol. iii. p. 165. Michaud, vol. ii. p. 156. Conrad pushed forward again with Louis to Ephesus, and from there, at Manuel's invitation, they returned to Constantinople. It was Louis who, at the crossing of the Mæander, was involved in a "glorious action." Wilken, vol. iii. p. 179. Michaud vol. ii. p. 160. Gibbon followed Nicetas.—M.]

21 (return)
[ As counts of Vexin, the kings of France were the vassals and advocates of the monastery of St. Denys. The saint’s peculiar banner, which they received from the abbot, was of a square form, and a red or flaming color. The oriflamme appeared at the head of the French armies from the xiith to the xvth century, (Ducange sur Joinville, Dissert. xviii. p. 244—253.)]

21 (return)
[ As counts of Vexin, the kings of France were the lords and protectors of the monastery of St. Denys. The saint’s unique banner, which they received from the abbot, was square-shaped and had a red or flaming color. The oriflamme led the French armies from the 12th to the 15th century, (Ducange sur Joinville, Dissert. xviii. p. 244—253.)]

211 (return)
[ They descended the heights to a beautiful valley which by beneath them. The Turks seized the heights which separated the two divisions of the army. The modern historians represent differently the act to which Louis owed his safety, which Gibbon has described by the undignified phrase, “he climbed a tree.” According to Michaud, vol. ii. p. 164, the king got upon a rock, with his back against a tree; according to Wilken, vol. iii., he dragged himself up to the top of the rock by the roots of a tree, and continued to defend himself till nightfall.—M.]

211 (return)
[ They descended from the heights into a beautiful valley below. The Turks took control of the heights that divided the two army divisions. Modern historians have different interpretations of the act that ensured Louis's safety, which Gibbon described in a less dignified manner as “he climbed a tree.” According to Michaud, vol. ii. p. 164, the king stood on a rock, leaning against a tree; while Wilken, vol. iii., says he pulled himself up to the top of the rock using the roots of a tree, continuing to defend himself until nightfall.—M.]

22 (return)
[ The original French histories of the second crusade are the Gesta Ludovici VII. published in the ivth volume of Duchesne’s collection. The same volume contains many original letters of the king, of Suger his minister, &c., the best documents of authentic history.]

22 (return)
[ The original French histories of the Second Crusade are the Gesta Ludovici VII, published in the fourth volume of Duchesne’s collection. This volume also contains many original letters from the king, Suger, his minister, etc., which are the best documents of authentic history.]

23 (return)
[ Terram horroris et salsuginis, terram siccam sterilem, inamnam. Anonym. Canis. p. 517. The emphatic language of a sufferer.]

23 (return)
[ A land of horror and salt, a dry, barren, and inhospitable land. Anonym. Canis. p. 517. The strong words of someone in pain.]

24 (return)
[ Gens innumera, sylvestris, indomita, prædones sine ductore. The sultan of Cogni might sincerely rejoice in their defeat. Anonym. Canis. p. 517, 518.]

24 (return)
[ Countless, wild, untamed, thieves without a leader. The sultan of Cogni could truly celebrate their downfall. Anonym. Canis. p. 517, 518.]

25 (return)
[ See, in the anonymous writer in the Collection of Canisius, Tagino and Bohadin, (Vit. Saladin. p. 119, 120,) the ambiguous conduct of Kilidge Arslan, sultan of Cogni, who hated and feared both Saladin and Frederic.]

25 (return)
[ Check out the anonymous writer in the Collection of Canisius, Tagino, and Bohadin, (Vit. Saladin. p. 119, 120,) discussing the unclear actions of Kilidge Arslan, the sultan of Cogni, who both despised and feared Saladin and Frederic.]

26 (return)
[ The desire of comparing two great men has tempted many writers to drown Frederic in the River Cydnus, in which Alexander so imprudently bathed, (Q. Cœurt. l. iii c. 4, 5.) But, from the march of the emperor, I rather judge, that his Saleph is the Calycadnus, a stream of less fame, but of a longer course. *

26 (return)
[ The urge to compare two great men has led many writers to throw Frederic into the River Cydnus, where Alexander foolishly bathed, (Q. Cœurt. l. iii c. 4, 5.) However, based on the emperor's march, I believe that his Saleph is the Calycadnus, a lesser-known river but one that stretches further. *

Note: * It is now called the Girama: its course is described in M’Donald Kinneir’s Travels.—M.]

Note: * It’s now called the Girama; its course is detailed in M’Donald Kinneir’s Travels.—M.]

27 (return)
[ Marinus Sanutus, A.D. 1321, lays it down as a precept, Quod stolus ecclesiæ per terram nullatenus est ducenda. He resolves, by the divine aid, the objection, or rather exception, of the first crusade, (Secreta Fidelium Crucis, l. ii. pars ii. c. i. p. 37.)]

27 (return)
[ Marinus Sanutus, A.D. 1321, establishes as a rule, that the church's robe should by no means be dragged on the ground. He resolves, with divine help, the objection, or rather exception, from the first crusade, (Secreta Fidelium Crucis, l. ii. pars ii. c. i. p. 37.)]

The enthusiasm of the first crusade is a natural and simple event, while hope was fresh, danger untried, and enterprise congenial to the spirit of the times. But the obstinate perseverance of Europe may indeed excite our pity and admiration; that no instruction should have been drawn from constant and adverse experience; that the same confidence should have repeatedly grown from the same failures; that six succeeding generations should have rushed headlong down the precipice that was open before them; and that men of every condition should have staked their public and private fortunes on the desperate adventure of possessing or recovering a tombstone two thousand miles from their country. In a period of two centuries after the council of Clermont, each spring and summer produced a new emigration of pilgrim warriors for the defence of the Holy Land; but the seven great armaments or crusades were excited by some impending or recent calamity: the nations were moved by the authority of their pontiffs, and the example of their kings: their zeal was kindled, and their reason was silenced, by the voice of their holy orators; and among these, Bernard, 28 the monk, or the saint, may claim the most honorable place. 281 About eight years before the first conquest of Jerusalem, he was born of a noble family in Burgundy; at the age of three-and-twenty he buried himself in the monastery of Citeaux, then in the primitive fervor of the institution; at the end of two years he led forth her third colony, or daughter, to the valley of Clairvaux 29 in Champagne; and was content, till the hour of his death, with the humble station of abbot of his own community. A philosophic age has abolished, with too liberal and indiscriminate disdain, the honors of these spiritual heroes. The meanest among them are distinguished by some energies of the mind; they were at least superior to their votaries and disciples; and, in the race of superstition, they attained the prize for which such numbers contended. In speech, in writing, in action, Bernard stood high above his rivals and contemporaries; his compositions are not devoid of wit and eloquence; and he seems to have preserved as much reason and humanity as may be reconciled with the character of a saint. In a secular life, he would have shared the seventh part of a private inheritance; by a vow of poverty and penance, by closing his eyes against the visible world, 30 by the refusal of all ecclesiastical dignities, the abbot of Clairvaux became the oracle of Europe, and the founder of one hundred and sixty convents. Princes and pontiffs trembled at the freedom of his apostolical censures: France, England, and Milan, consulted and obeyed his judgment in a schism of the church: the debt was repaid by the gratitude of Innocent the Second; and his successor, Eugenius the Third, was the friend and disciple of the holy Bernard. It was in the proclamation of the second crusade that he shone as the missionary and prophet of God, who called the nations to the defence of his holy sepulchre. 31 At the parliament of Vezelay he spoke before the king; and Louis the Seventh, with his nobles, received their crosses from his hand. The abbot of Clairvaux then marched to the less easy conquest of the emperor Conrad: 311 a phlegmatic people, ignorant of his language, was transported by the pathetic vehemence of his tone and gestures; and his progress, from Constance to Cologne, was the triumph of eloquence and zeal. Bernard applauds his own success in the depopulation of Europe; affirms that cities and castles were emptied of their inhabitants; and computes, that only one man was left behind for the consolation of seven widows. 32 The blind fanatics were desirous of electing him for their general; but the example of the hermit Peter was before his eyes; and while he assured the crusaders of the divine favor, he prudently declined a military command, in which failure and victory would have been almost equally disgraceful to his character. 33 Yet, after the calamitous event, the abbot of Clairvaux was loudly accused as a false prophet, the author of the public and private mourning; his enemies exulted, his friends blushed, and his apology was slow and unsatisfactory. He justifies his obedience to the commands of the pope; expatiates on the mysterious ways of Providence; imputes the misfortunes of the pilgrims to their own sins; and modestly insinuates, that his mission had been approved by signs and wonders. 34 Had the fact been certain, the argument would be decisive; and his faithful disciples, who enumerate twenty or thirty miracles in a day, appeal to the public assemblies of France and Germany, in which they were performed. 35 At the present hour, such prodigies will not obtain credit beyond the precincts of Clairvaux; but in the preternatural cures of the blind, the lame, and the sick, who were presented to the man of God, it is impossible for us to ascertain the separate shares of accident, of fancy, of imposture, and of fiction.

The excitement of the first crusade was a spontaneous and straightforward event, fueled by fresh hope, untested danger, and an adventurous spirit that matched the times. However, the stubborn determination of Europe can certainly evoke pity and admiration; that no lessons were learned from ongoing and opposing experiences; that the same confidence repeatedly arose from the same failures; that six successive generations rushed blindly towards the open precipice; and that people from all walks of life staked their public and private fortunes on the desperate quest for a tombstone located two thousand miles away from their homeland. Over the two centuries following the council of Clermont, each spring and summer saw a new wave of warrior pilgrims heading to defend the Holy Land; but the seven major crusades were sparked by some imminent or recent disaster: the nations were stirred by the authority of their popes and the example set by their kings: their zeal was ignited, and their logic silenced, by the call of their holy speakers; among them, Bernard, 28 the monk or saint, deserves the most notable mention. 281 About eight years before the first conquest of Jerusalem, he was born into a noble family in Burgundy; at the age of twenty-three, he secluded himself in the monastery of Citeaux, which was then still vibrant in its early devotion; after two years, he led the monastery's third colony, or daughter community, to the valley of Clairvaux 29 in Champagne; and contentedly held onto the humble role of abbot of his community until his death. A rational age has dismissed, with too much careless disdain, the honors of these spiritual leaders. Even the least distinguished among them had some admirable qualities; they were at least above their followers and disciples; and, in the race for superstition, they achieved the prize for which many competed. In speaking, writing, and actions, Bernard stood out among his competitors and contemporaries; his works are infused with wit and eloquence; and he seems to have retained as much reason and humanity as can be reconciled with being a saint. In a secular life, he could have claimed one-seventh of a personal inheritance; through a vow of poverty and penance, by shutting his eyes to the visible world, 30 and by refusing all ecclesiastical honors, the abbot of Clairvaux became the voice of Europe and the founder of one hundred and sixty convents. Monarchs and popes trembled at the boldness of his apostolic criticism: France, England, and Milan sought his counsel and adhered to his judgment during a church schism: the debt was repaid with the gratitude of Innocent the Second; and his successor, Eugenius the Third, was both a friend and disciple of the holy Bernard. It was during the call for the second crusade that he emerged as the missionary and prophet of God, rallying nations to defend his holy tomb. 31 At the council of Vezelay, he spoke in front of the king; and Louis the Seventh, along with his nobles, received their crosses from him. The abbot of Clairvaux then took on the more difficult task of persuading Emperor Conrad: 311 a stoic people, unfamiliar with his language, were moved by the passionate intensity of his voice and gestures; and his journey from Constance to Cologne was a triumph of eloquence and fervor. Bernard took pride in his success in depopulating Europe; he claimed that cities and castles were stripped of their residents; and estimated that only one man remained behind to comfort seven widows. 32 The blind zealots wanted to make him their general; but he was mindful of the example set by the hermit Peter; and while assuring the crusaders of divine favor, he wisely turned down a military command, as both failure and victory would have harmed his reputation equally. 33 Yet, after the disastrous outcome, the abbot of Clairvaux faced loud accusations as a false prophet, blamed for public and private sorrow; his adversaries rejoiced, his friends felt shame, and his defense was slow and unsatisfactory. He justified his obedience to the pope's commands; elaborated on the mysterious ways of Providence; attributed the misfortunes of the pilgrims to their own sins; and subtly suggested that his mission was validated by signs and wonders. 34 If the fact were certain, the argument would be definitive; and his loyal followers, who claimed to witness twenty or thirty miracles in a day, appealed to public gatherings in France and Germany, where these occurred. 35 In the present day, such miracles may not be believed beyond the boundaries of Clairvaux; but in the extraordinary healings of the blind, lame, and sick who were brought to the man of God, we cannot determine the exact contributions of chance, imagination, deceit, and fiction.

28 (return)
[ The most authentic information of St. Bernard must be drawn from his own writings, published in a correct edition by Père Mabillon, and reprinted at Venice, 1750, in six volumes in folio. Whatever friendship could recollect, or superstition could add, is contained in the two lives, by his disciples, in the vith volume: whatever learning and criticism could ascertain, may be found in the prefaces of the Benedictine editor.]

28 (return)
[ The most reliable information about St. Bernard comes from his own writings, published in a credible edition by Père Mabillon, and reprinted in Venice in 1750, in six folio volumes. Anything that friendship could remember, or superstition could embellish, is included in the two biographies by his disciples found in the sixth volume: whatever knowledge and critique could determine is presented in the introductions by the Benedictine editor.]

281 (return)
[ Gibbon, whose account of the crusades is perhaps the least accurate and satisfactory chapter in his History, has here failed in that lucid arrangement, which in general gives perspicuity to his most condensed and crowded narratives. He has unaccountably, and to the great perplexity of the reader, placed the preaching of St Bernard after the second crusade to which i led.—M.]

281 (return)
[ Gibbon, whose description of the crusades is probably the least accurate and satisfying part of his History, has failed to provide the clear organization that usually makes his most condensed and complex narratives understandable. He inexplicably, and to the significant confusion of the reader, placed the preaching of St. Bernard after the second crusade that I led.—M.]

29 (return)
[ Clairvaux, surnamed the valley of Absynth, is situate among the woods near Bar sur Aube in Champagne. St. Bernard would blush at the pomp of the church and monastery; he would ask for the library, and I know not whether he would be much edified by a tun of 800 muids, (914 1-7 hogsheads,) which almost rivals that of Heidelberg, (Mélanges tirés d’une Grande Bibliothèque, tom. xlvi. p. 15—20.)]

29 (return)
[ Clairvaux, known as the valley of Absynth, is located in the woods near Bar sur Aube in Champagne. St. Bernard would be embarrassed by the grandeur of the church and monastery; he would ask for the library, and I’m not sure if he would find much inspiration in a barrel of 800 muids, (914 1-7 hogsheads,) which nearly competes with that of Heidelberg, (Mélanges tirés d’une Grande Bibliothèque, tom. xlvi. p. 15—20.)]

30 (return)
[ The disciples of the saint (Vit. ima, l. iii. c. 2, p. 1232. Vit. iida, c. 16, No. 45, p. 1383) record a marvellous example of his pious apathy. Juxta lacum etiam Lausannensem totius diei itinere pergens, penitus non attendit aut se videre non vidit. Cum enim vespere facto de eodem lacû socii colloquerentur, interrogabat eos ubi lacus ille esset, et mirati sunt universi. To admire or despise St. Bernard as he ought, the reader, like myself, should have before the windows of his library the beauties of that incomparable landscape.]

30 (return)
[The disciples of the saint (Vit. ima, l. iii. c. 2, p. 1232. Vit. iida, c. 16, No. 45, p. 1383) recount an amazing example of his devout indifference. While traveling all day near Lake Lausanne, he completely ignored it and didn't even notice it. When evening came and his companions discussed the lake, he asked them where it was, and everyone was astonished. To truly appreciate or criticize St. Bernard as he deserves, the reader, like me, should have the beauty of that stunning landscape visible from the windows of their library.]

31 (return)
[ Otho Frising. l. i. c. 4. Bernard. Epist. 363, ad Francos Orientales Opp. tom. i. p. 328. Vit. ima, l. iii. c. 4, tom. vi. p. 1235.]

31 (return)
[ Otho Frising. l. i. c. 4. Bernard. Epist. 363, to the Eastern Franks Opp. vol. i. p. 328. Vit. ima, l. iii. c. 4, vol. vi. p. 1235.]

311 (return)
[ Bernard had a nobler object in his expedition into Germany—to arrest the fierce and merciless persecution of the Jews, which was preparing, under the monk Radulph, to renew the frightful scenes which had preceded the first crusade, in the flourishing cities on the banks of the Rhine. The Jews acknowledge the Christian intervention of St. Bernard. See the curious extract from the History of Joseph ben Meir. Wilken, vol. iii. p. 1. and p. 63.—M.]

311 (return)
[ Bernard had a higher purpose for his journey into Germany—to put a stop to the brutal and relentless persecution of the Jews, which was about to be reignited by the monk Radulph, threatening to bring back the horrific events that had occurred before the first crusade in the thriving cities along the Rhine. The Jews recognize St. Bernard’s Christian intervention. See the interesting excerpt from the History of Joseph ben Meir. Wilken, vol. iii. p. 1. and p. 63.—M.]

32 (return)
[ Mandastis et obedivi.... multiplicati sunt super numerum; vacuantur urbes et castella; et pene jam non inveniunt quem apprehendant septem mulieres unum virum; adeo ubique viduæ vivis remanent viris. Bernard. Epist. p. 247. We must be careful not to construe pene as a substantive.]

32 (return)
[ They spread and multiplied.... the cities and castles are emptied; and almost now seven women can hardly find one man to take hold of; indeed everywhere widows are left with living husbands. Bernard. Epist. p. 247. We must be careful not to interpret almost as a noun.]

33 (return)
[ Quis ego sum ut disponam acies, ut egrediar ante facies armatorum, aut quid tam remotum a professione meâ, si vires, si peritia, &c. Epist. 256, tom. i. p. 259. He speaks with contempt of the hermit Peter, vir quidam, Epist. 363.]

33 (return)
[ Who am I to arrange the battle lines, to step out in front of the armed soldiers, or what is so far removed from my profession, whether strength, skill, etc. Letter 256, vol. i, p. 259. He speaks with disdain of the hermit Peter, a certain man, Letter 363.]

34 (return)
[ Sic dicunt forsitan isti, unde scimus quòd a Domino sermo egressus sit? Quæ signa tu facis ut credamus tibi? Non est quod ad ista ipse respondeam; parcendum verecundiæ meæ, responde tu pro me, et pro te ipso, secundum quæ vidisti et audisti, et secundum quod te inspiraverit Deus. Consolat. l. ii. c. 1. Opp. tom. ii. p. 421—423.]

34 (return)
[ They say, perhaps, how do we know that the word has come from the Lord? What signs are you performing for us to believe in you? I don’t need to answer these myself; please speak for me and for yourself, based on what you have seen and heard, and according to what God has inspired you. Consolat. l. ii. c. 1. Opp. tom. ii. p. 421—423.]

35 (return)
[ See the testimonies in Vita ima, l. iv. c. 5, 6. Opp. tom. vi. p. 1258—1261, l. vi. c. 1—17, p. 1286—1314.]

35 (return)
[ See the testimonies in Vita ima, l. iv. c. 5, 6. Opp. tom. vi. p. 1258—1261, l. vi. c. 1—17, p. 1286—1314.]

Omnipotence itself cannot escape the murmurs of its discordant votaries; since the same dispensation which was applauded as a deliverance in Europe, was deplored, and perhaps arraigned, as a calamity in Asia. After the loss of Jerusalem, the Syrian fugitives diffused their consternation and sorrow; Bagdad mourned in the dust; the cadhi Zeineddin of Damascus tore his beard in the caliph’s presence; and the whole divan shed tears at his melancholy tale. 36 But the commanders of the faithful could only weep; they were themselves captives in the hands of the Turks: some temporal power was restored to the last age of the Abbassides; but their humble ambition was confined to Bagdad and the adjacent province. Their tyrants, the Seljukian sultans, had followed the common law of the Asiatic dynasties, the unceasing round of valor, greatness, discord, degeneracy, and decay; their spirit and power were unequal to the defence of religion; and, in his distant realm of Persia, the Christians were strangers to the name and the arms of Sangiar, the last hero of his race. 37 While the sultans were involved in the silken web of the harem, the pious task was undertaken by their slaves, the Atabeks, 38 a Turkish name, which, like the Byzantine patricians, may be translated by Father of the Prince. Ascansar, a valiant Turk, had been the favorite of Malek Shaw, from whom he received the privilege of standing on the right hand of the throne; but, in the civil wars that ensued on the monarch’s death, he lost his head and the government of Aleppo. His domestic emirs persevered in their attachment to his son Zenghi, who proved his first arms against the Franks in the defeat of Antioch: thirty campaigns in the service of the caliph and sultan established his military fame; and he was invested with the command of Mosul, as the only champion that could avenge the cause of the prophet. The public hope was not disappointed: after a siege of twenty-five days, he stormed the city of Edessa, and recovered from the Franks their conquests beyond the Euphrates: 39 the martial tribes of Cœurdistan were subdued by the independent sovereign of Mosul and Aleppo: his soldiers were taught to behold the camp as their only country; they trusted to his liberality for their rewards; and their absent families were protected by the vigilance of Zenghi. At the head of these veterans, his son Noureddin gradually united the Mahometan powers; 391 added the kingdom of Damascus to that of Aleppo, and waged a long and successful war against the Christians of Syria; he spread his ample reign from the Tigris to the Nile, and the Abbassides rewarded their faithful servant with all the titles and prerogatives of royalty. The Latins themselves were compelled to own the wisdom and courage, and even the justice and piety, of this implacable adversary. 40 In his life and government the holy warrior revived the zeal and simplicity of the first caliphs. Gold and silk were banished from his palace; the use of wine from his dominions; the public revenue was scrupulously applied to the public service; and the frugal household of Noureddin was maintained from his legitimate share of the spoil which he vested in the purchase of a private estate. His favorite sultana sighed for some female object of expense. “Alas,” replied the king, “I fear God, and am no more than the treasurer of the Moslems. Their property I cannot alienate; but I still possess three shops in the city of Hems: these you may take; and these alone can I bestow.” His chamber of justice was the terror of the great and the refuge of the poor. Some years after the sultan’s death, an oppressed subject called aloud in the streets of Damascus, “O Noureddin, Noureddin, where art thou now? Arise, arise, to pity and protect us!” A tumult was apprehended, and a living tyrant blushed or trembled at the name of a departed monarch.

Omnipotence itself can't escape the whispers of its conflicting followers; what was celebrated as a rescue in Europe was mourned and possibly criticized as a disaster in Asia. After the fall of Jerusalem, the Syrian refugees spread their panic and grief; Baghdad wept in despair; the judge Zeineddin of Damascus tore his hair in front of the caliph; and the entire council shed tears at his sorrowful story. 36 But the leaders of the faithful could only cry; they themselves were captives in the hands of the Turks. Some limited power was restored to the final period of the Abbasids, but their modest ambitions were restricted to Baghdad and the surrounding area. Their oppressors, the Seljuk sultans, followed the typical cycle of Asian dynasties: constant valor, greatness, discord, decline, and decay; their spirit and strength were not enough to defend their faith; and in his distant kingdom of Persia, the Christians were unfamiliar with the name and arms of Sangiar, the last hero of his lineage. 37 While the sultans were tangled in the luxuries of the harem, the devout work was taken on by their slaves, the Atabeks, 38 a Turkish term that, like the Byzantine patricians, can be translated as Father of the Prince. Ascansar, a brave Turk, was favored by Malek Shaw, from whom he got the privilege to stand at the right side of the throne; but, during the civil wars that followed the monarch’s death, he lost his head and the rule of Aleppo. His loyal emirs remained devoted to his son Zenghi, who proved himself first against the Franks by defeating them at Antioch: thirty campaigns in service of the caliph and sultan built his military reputation; and he was put in charge of Mosul, recognized as the only champion who could defend the cause of the prophet. Public expectations were met: after a siege of twenty-five days, he stormed the city of Edessa, reclaiming territory from the Franks beyond the Euphrates: 39 the warrior tribes of Kurdistan were conquered by the independent ruler of Mosul and Aleppo: his soldiers were trained to see the camp as their only homeland; they relied on his generosity for their rewards; and their families at home were safeguarded by Zenghi's vigilance. Leading these veterans, his son Noureddin gradually united the Muslim powers; 391 he added the kingdom of Damascus to that of Aleppo and fought a lengthy and successful war against the Christians of Syria; he expanded his vast reign from the Tigris to the Nile, and the Abbasids rewarded their loyal servant with all the titles and privileges of royalty. The Latins themselves were forced to acknowledge the wisdom and bravery, as well as the fairness and piety, of this relentless opponent. 40 In his life and leadership, the holy warrior revived the zeal and simplicity of the first caliphs. Gold and silk were banned from his palace; wine was prohibited in his territories; the public funds were carefully used for public service; and Noureddin’s modest household was supported by his rightful share of the spoils, which he invested in purchasing a private estate. His favorite sultana longed for some luxury for herself. “Alas,” replied the king, “I fear God, and am just the treasurer of the Muslims. I cannot give away their property; but I still have three shops in the city of Hems: you may take those; and those alone can I offer.” His court of justice instilled fear in the powerful and offered refuge to the poor. Years after the sultan’s death, an oppressed subject called out in the streets of Damascus, “O Noureddin, Noureddin, where are you now? Arise, arise, to show compassion and protect us!” A riot was feared, and a living tyrant blushed or trembled at the name of a dead monarch.

36 (return)
[ Abulmahasen apud de Guignes, Hist. des Huns, tom. ii. p. ii. p. 99.]

36 (return)
[ Abulmahasen quoted in de Guignes, History of the Huns, vol. ii. p. ii. p. 99.]

37 (return)
[ See his article in the Bibliothèque Orientale of D’Herbelot, and De Guignes, tom. ii. p. i. p. 230—261. Such was his valor, that he was styled the second Alexander; and such the extravagant love of his subjects, that they prayed for the sultan a year after his decease. Yet Sangiar might have been made prisoner by the Franks, as well as by the Uzes. He reigned near fifty years, (A.D. 1103—1152,) and was a munificent patron of Persian poetry.]

37 (return)
[ Check out his article in the Bibliothèque Orientale of D’Herbelot, and De Guignes, vol. ii, p. i. p. 230—261. His bravery earned him the title of the second Alexander, and his subjects loved him so much that they prayed for the sultan a year after he died. Still, Sangiar could have been captured by the Franks just as easily as by the Uzes. He reigned for nearly fifty years (A.D. 1103—1152) and was a generous supporter of Persian poetry.]

38 (return)
[ See the Chronology of the Atabeks of Irak and Syria, in De Guignes, tom. i. p. 254; and the reigns of Zenghi and Noureddin in the same writer, (tom. ii. p. ii. p. 147—221,) who uses the Arabic text of Benelathir, Ben Schouna and Abulfeda; the Bibliothèque Orientale, under the articles Atabeks and Noureddin, and the Dynasties of Abulpharagius, p. 250—267, vers. Pocock.]

38 (return)
[ See the Chronology of the Atabeks of Iraq and Syria in De Guignes, vol. i, p. 254; and the reigns of Zenghi and Noureddin in the same author, (vol. ii, pp. 147-221), who uses the Arabic texts of Benelathir, Ben Schouna, and Abulfeda; the Bibliothèque Orientale, under the entries Atabeks and Noureddin, and the Dynasties of Abulpharagius, pp. 250-267, vers. Pocock.]

39 (return)
[ William of Tyre (l. xvi. c. 4, 5, 7) describes the loss of Edessa, and the death of Zenghi. The corruption of his name into Sanguin, afforded the Latins a comfortable allusion to his sanguinary character and end, fit sanguine sanguinolentus.]

39 (return)
[ William of Tyre (l. xvi. c. 4, 5, 7) describes the fall of Edessa and Zenghi's death. The alteration of his name into Sanguin gave the Latins a convenient reference to his sanguinary nature and demise, apt sanguine sanguinolentus.]

391 (return)
[ On Noureddin’s conquest of Damascus, see extracts from Arabian writers prefixed to the second part of the third volume of Wilken.—M.]

391 (return)
[ For information on Noureddin's conquest of Damascus, refer to the excerpts from Arabian writers included at the beginning of the second part of the third volume of Wilken.—M.]

40 (return)
[ Noradinus (says William of Tyre, l. xx. 33) maximus nominis et fidei Christianæ persecutor; princeps tamen justus, vafer, providus’ et secundum gentis suæ traditiones religiosus. To this Catholic witness we may add the primate of the Jacobites, (Abulpharag. p. 267,) quo non alter erat inter reges vitæ ratione magis laudabili, aut quæ pluribus justitiæ experimentis abundaret. The true praise of kings is after their death, and from the mouth of their enemies.]

40 (return)
[ Noradinus (according to William of Tyre, l. xx. 33) was a significant persecutor of the Christian name and faith; however, he was a just leader, clever, prudent, and religious according to the traditions of his people. To this Catholic acknowledgment, we can add the primate of the Jacobites, (Abulpharag. p. 267,) who was unmatched among kings in living a more commendable life or in demonstrating justice in numerous ways. The true honor of kings is recognized after their death and often comes from the words of their enemies.]

Chapter LIX: The Crusades.—Part II.

By the arms of the Turks and Franks, the Fatimites had been deprived of Syria. In Egypt the decay of their character and influence was still more essential. Yet they were still revered as the descendants and successors of the prophet; they maintained their invisible state in the palace of Cairo; and their person was seldom violated by the profane eyes of subjects or strangers. The Latin ambassadors 41 have described their own introduction, through a series of gloomy passages, and glittering porticos: the scene was enlivened by the warbling of birds and the murmur of fountains: it was enriched by a display of rich furniture and rare animals; of the Imperial treasures, something was shown, and much was supposed; and the long order of unfolding doors was guarded by black soldiers and domestic eunuchs. The sanctuary of the presence chamber was veiled with a curtain; and the vizier, who conducted the ambassadors, laid aside the cimeter, and prostrated himself three times on the ground; the veil was then removed; and they beheld the commander of the faithful, who signified his pleasure to the first slave of the throne. But this slave was his master: the viziers or sultans had usurped the supreme administration of Egypt; the claims of the rival candidates were decided by arms; and the name of the most worthy, of the strongest, was inserted in the royal patent of command. The factions of Dargham and Shawer alternately expelled each other from the capital and country; and the weaker side implored the dangerous protection of the sultan of Damascus, or the king of Jerusalem, the perpetual enemies of the sect and monarchy of the Fatimites. By his arms and religion the Turk was most formidable; but the Frank, in an easy, direct march, could advance from Gaza to the Nile; while the intermediate situation of his realm compelled the troops of Noureddin to wheel round the skirts of Arabia, a long and painful circuit, which exposed them to thirst, fatigue, and the burning winds of the desert. The secret zeal and ambition of the Turkish prince aspired to reign in Egypt under the name of the Abbassides; but the restoration of the suppliant Shawer was the ostensible motive of the first expedition; and the success was intrusted to the emir Shiracouh, a valiant and veteran commander. Dargham was oppressed and slain; but the ingratitude, the jealousy, the just apprehensions, of his more fortunate rival, soon provoked him to invite the king of Jerusalem to deliver Egypt from his insolent benefactors. To this union the forces of Shiracouh were unequal: he relinquished the premature conquest; and the evacuation of Belbeis or Pelusium was the condition of his safe retreat. As the Turks defiled before the enemy, and their general closed the rear, with a vigilant eye, and a battle axe in his hand, a Frank presumed to ask him if he were not afraid of an attack. “It is doubtless in your power to begin the attack,” replied the intrepid emir; “but rest assured, that not one of my soldiers will go to paradise till he has sent an infidel to hell.” His report of the riches of the land, the effeminacy of the natives, and the disorders of the government, revived the hopes of Noureddin; the caliph of Bagdad applauded the pious design; and Shiracouh descended into Egypt a second time with twelve thousand Turks and eleven thousand Arabs. Yet his forces were still inferior to the confederate armies of the Franks and Saracens; and I can discern an unusual degree of military art, in his passage of the Nile, his retreat into Thebais, his masterly evolutions in the battle of Babain, the surprise of Alexandria, and his marches and countermarches in the flats and valley of Egypt, from the tropic to the sea. His conduct was seconded by the courage of his troops, and on the eve of action a Mamaluke 42 exclaimed, “If we cannot wrest Egypt from the Christian dogs, why do we not renounce the honors and rewards of the sultan, and retire to labor with the peasants, or to spin with the females of the harem?” Yet, after all his efforts in the field, 43 after the obstinate defence of Alexandria 44 by his nephew Saladin, an honorable capitulation and retreat 441 concluded the second enterprise of Shiracouh; and Noureddin reserved his abilities for a third and more propitious occasion. It was soon offered by the ambition and avarice of Amalric or Amaury, king of Jerusalem, who had imbibed the pernicious maxim, that no faith should be kept with the enemies of God. 442 A religious warrior, the great master of the hospital, encouraged him to proceed; the emperor of Constantinople either gave, or promised, a fleet to act with the armies of Syria; and the perfidious Christian, unsatisfied with spoil and subsidy, aspired to the conquest of Egypt. In this emergency, the Moslems turned their eyes towards the sultan of Damascus; the vizier, whom danger encompassed on all sides, yielded to their unanimous wishes, and Noureddin seemed to be tempted by the fair offer of one third of the revenue of the kingdom. The Franks were already at the gates of Cairo; but the suburbs, the old city, were burnt on their approach; they were deceived by an insidious negotiation, and their vessels were unable to surmount the barriers of the Nile. They prudently declined a contest with the Turks in the midst of a hostile country; and Amaury retired into Palestine with the shame and reproach that always adhere to unsuccessful injustice. After this deliverance, Shiracouh was invested with a robe of honor, which he soon stained with the blood of the unfortunate Shawer. For a while, the Turkish emirs condescended to hold the office of vizier; but this foreign conquest precipitated the fall of the Fatimites themselves; and the bloodless change was accomplished by a message and a word. The caliphs had been degraded by their own weakness and the tyranny of the viziers: their subjects blushed, when the descendant and successor of the prophet presented his naked hand to the rude gripe of a Latin ambassador; they wept when he sent the hair of his women, a sad emblem of their grief and terror, to excite the pity of the sultan of Damascus. By the command of Noureddin, and the sentence of the doctors, the holy names of Abubeker, Omar, and Othman, were solemnly restored: the caliph Mosthadi, of Bagdad, was acknowledged in the public prayers as the true commander of the faithful; and the green livery of the sons of Ali was exchanged for the black color of the Abbassides. The last of his race, the caliph Adhed, who survived only ten days, expired in happy ignorance of his fate; his treasures secured the loyalty of the soldiers, and silenced the murmurs of the sectaries; and in all subsequent revolutions, Egypt has never departed from the orthodox tradition of the Moslems. 45

By the hands of the Turks and Franks, the Fatimites lost control of Syria. In Egypt, their influence and character were further deteriorating. Yet, they were still honored as the descendants and successors of the prophet; they kept their invisible reign in the palace of Cairo, and their presence was rarely seen by the eyes of subjects or outsiders. The Latin ambassadors 41 detailed their entrance through a series of dark corridors and shimmering arches: the atmosphere was brightened by the songs of birds and flowing fountains; the surroundings were adorned with lavish furniture and exotic animals; some of the Imperial treasures were displayed, while much was merely assumed; and the long line of opening doors was guarded by black soldiers and domestic eunuchs. The sanctuary of the presence chamber was hidden behind a curtain; and the vizier, who guided the ambassadors, set aside his sword and bowed to the ground three times; then the curtain was drawn back, revealing the commander of the faithful, who signaled his pleasure to the first servant of the throne. But this servant was really his master: the viziers or sultans had seized control of Egypt; the disputes between rival candidates were settled by military force; and the name of the strongest or most deserving was stamped on the royal mandate. The factions of Dargham and Shawer took turns expelling each other from the capital and the country; and the weaker faction sought the perilous protection of the sultan of Damascus or the king of Jerusalem, who were the constant enemies of the Fatimite sect and monarchy. The Turk was most intimidating with his military and faith; however, the Frank could easily march from Gaza to the Nile; while the Turks had to take a long and difficult route around the edges of Arabia, exposing them to thirst, exhaustion, and the scorching desert winds. The secret ambition of the Turkish prince was to rule Egypt under the name of the Abbasids; but the public reason for the first expedition was to restore Shawer, and the task was entrusted to Emir Shiracouh, a brave and experienced commander. Dargham was crushed and killed; but the ingratitude, jealousy, and justified fears of his luckier rival soon led him to call on the king of Jerusalem to free Egypt from its arrogant benefactors. Shiracouh's forces were not a match for this alliance; he gave up the premature conquest; and the condition for his safe withdrawal was the evacuation of Belbeis or Pelusium. As the Turks marched before the enemy, their general took up the rear, keeping a sharp watch with a battle axe in hand, when a Frank had the boldness to ask him if he was afraid of an attack. “It would certainly be in your power to start the fight,” replied the fearless emir; “but trust me, not one of my soldiers will reach paradise until he has sent an infidel to hell.” His reports of the land’s wealth, the weakness of the locals, and the chaos in the government reignited Noureddin’s hopes; the caliph of Baghdad praised the noble cause; and Shiracouh returned to Egypt for a second time with twelve thousand Turks and eleven thousand Arabs. Still, his forces were outmatched by the combined armies of the Franks and Saracens; and I can see a remarkable level of military strategy in his crossing of the Nile, his retreat into Thebais, his skillful maneuvers in the battle of Babain, the surprise attack on Alexandria, and his movements in the plains and valleys of Egypt, from the tropics to the sea. His leadership was supported by the bravery of his troops, and on the brink of battle a Mamaluke 42 declared, “If we cannot take Egypt from the Christian dogs, why don’t we abandon the honors and rewards of the sultan and go back to working with the peasants or spinning with the women of the harem?” Yet, despite all his efforts in the field, 43 after the stubborn defense of Alexandria 44 by his nephew Saladin, a respectable retreat and surrender 441 marked the end of Shiracouh’s second campaign; and Noureddin held his skills for a third and more favorable opportunity. It quickly arose due to the ambition and greed of Amalric or Amaury, king of Jerusalem, who had adopted the harmful belief that no trust should be kept with the enemies of God. 442 A devout warrior, the great master of the hospital, urged him to move forward; the emperor of Constantinople either provided or promised a fleet to support the armies of Syria; and the treacherous Christian, dissatisfied with plunder and aid, aimed for the conquest of Egypt. In this crisis, the Muslims sought help from the sultan of Damascus; the vizier, surrounded by danger on all sides, gave in to their collective desires, and Noureddin appeared tempted by the generous offer of one-third of the kingdom’s revenue. The Franks were already at the gates of Cairo; but the suburbs and the old city were set ablaze as they approached; they were misled by a deceitful negotiation, and their ships could not breach the barriers of the Nile. Wisely, they avoided a clash with the Turks in a hostile territory; and Amaury retreated to Palestine with the shame and disgrace that always accompany failed tyranny. After this rescue, Shiracouh was honored with a robe of distinction, which he soon stained with the blood of the unfortunate Shawer. For a time, the Turkish emirs were willing to serve as viziers; but this foreign rule hastened the downfall of the Fatimites themselves; and the bloodless transition was achieved with a message and a single word. The caliphs had been weakened by their own fragility and the oppression of the viziers: their subjects felt ashamed when the descendant and successor of the prophet extended his bare hand to the harsh grip of a Latin ambassador; they wept when he sent the hair of his women, a sorrowful symbol of their pain and fear, to urge the pity of the sultan of Damascus. By the order of Noureddin, and the ruling of the scholars, the holy names of Abubeker, Omar, and Othman were officially restored: the caliph Mosthadi of Baghdad was recognized in public prayers as the true leader of the faithful; and the green banner of the sons of Ali was replaced with the black of the Abbasids. The last of his line, the caliph Adhed, who lived only ten days more, died blissfully unaware of his fate; his treasures secured the loyalty of the soldiers and quieted the complaints of the sectarians; and in all subsequent upheavals, Egypt never strayed from the orthodox traditions of the Muslims. 45

41 (return)
[ From the ambassador, William of Tyre (l. xix. c. 17, 18,) describes the palace of Cairo. In the caliph’s treasure were found a pearl as large as a pigeon’s egg, a ruby weighing seventeen Egyptian drams, an emerald a palm and a half in length, and many vases of crystal and porcelain of China, (Renaudot, p. 536.)]

41 (return)
[ From the ambassador, William of Tyre (l. xix. c. 17, 18) describes the palace of Cairo. In the caliph’s treasure were found a pearl the size of a pigeon’s egg, a ruby weighing seventeen Egyptian drams, an emerald that was a palm and a half long, and many crystal and porcelain vases from China, (Renaudot, p. 536.)]

42 (return)
[ Mamluc, plur. Mamalic, is defined by Pocock, (Prolegom. ad Abulpharag. p. 7,) and D’Herbelot, (p. 545,) servum emptitium, seu qui pretio numerato in domini possessionem cedit. They frequently occur in the wars of Saladin, (Bohadin, p. 236, &c.;) and it was only the Bahartie Mamalukes that were first introduced into Egypt by his descendants.]

42 (return)
[ Mamluc, plural Mamalic, is described by Pocock, (Prolegom. ad Abulpharag. p. 7,) and D’Herbelot, (p. 545,) as a purchased servant or one who, in exchange for a price, enters into the possession of a master. They often appear in the wars of Saladin, (Bohadin, p. 236, &c.;) and it was only the Bahartie Mamluks that were initially brought into Egypt by his descendants.]

43 (return)
[ Jacobus à Vitriaco (p. 1116) gives the king of Jerusalem no more than 374 knights. Both the Franks and the Moslems report the superior numbers of the enemy; a difference which may be solved by counting or omitting the unwarlike Egyptians.]

43 (return)
[Jacobus à Vitriaco (p. 1116) states that the king of Jerusalem has only 374 knights. Both the Franks and the Muslims mention that the enemy has superior numbers; this discrepancy might be explained by either counting or leaving out the non-combatant Egyptians.]

44 (return)
[ It was the Alexandria of the Arabs, a middle term in extent and riches between the period of the Greeks and Romans, and that of the Turks, (Savary, Lettres sur l’Egypte, tom. i. p. 25, 26.)]

44 (return)
[ It was the Alexandria of the Arabs, a middle ground in size and wealth between the time of the Greeks and Romans, and that of the Turks, (Savary, Lettres sur l’Egypte, tom. i. p. 25, 26.)]

441 (return)
[ The treaty stipulated that both the Christians and the Arabs should withdraw from Egypt. Wilken, vol. iii. part ii. p. 113.—M.]

441 (return)
[ The treaty required that both the Christians and the Arabs pull out of Egypt. Wilken, vol. iii. part ii. p. 113.—M.]

442 (return)
[ The Knights Templars, abhorring the perfidious breach of treaty partly, perhaps, out of jealousy of the Hospitallers, refused to join in this enterprise. Will. Tyre c. xx. p. 5. Wilken, vol. iii. part ii. p. 117.—M.]

442 (return)
[ The Knights Templars, hating the treacherous violation of the treaty and maybe a bit jealous of the Hospitallers, refused to be part of this venture. Will. Tyre c. xx. p. 5. Wilken, vol. iii. part ii. p. 117.—M.]

45 (return)
[ For this great revolution of Egypt, see William of Tyre, (l. xix. 5, 6, 7, 12—31, xx. 5—12,) Bohadin, (in Vit. Saladin, p. 30—39,) Abulfeda, (in Excerpt. Schultens, p. 1—12,) D’Herbelot, (Bibliot. Orient. Adhed, Fathemah, but very incorrect,) Renaudot, (Hist. Patriarch. Alex. p. 522—525, 532—537,) Vertot, (Hist. des Chevaliers de Malthe, tom. i. p. 141—163, in 4to.,) and M. de Guignes, (tom. ii. p. 185—215.)]

45 (return)
[ For this major revolution in Egypt, check out William of Tyre, (l. xix. 5, 6, 7, 12—31, xx. 5—12,) Bohadin, (in Vit. Saladin, p. 30—39,) Abulfeda, (in Excerpt. Schultens, p. 1—12,) D’Herbelot, (Bibliot. Orient. Adhed, Fathemah, but quite inaccurate,) Renaudot, (Hist. Patriarch. Alex. p. 522—525, 532—537,) Vertot, (Hist. des Chevaliers de Malthe, tom. i. p. 141—163, in 4to.,) and M. de Guignes, (tom. ii. p. 185—215.)]

The hilly country beyond the Tigris is occupied by the pastoral tribes of the Cœurds; 46 a people hardy, strong, savage impatient of the yoke, addicted to rapine, and tenacious of the government of their national chiefs. The resemblance of name, situation, and manners, seems to identify them with the Carduchians of the Greeks; 47 and they still defend against the Ottoman Porte the antique freedom which they asserted against the successors of Cyrus. Poverty and ambition prompted them to embrace the profession of mercenary soldiers: the service of his father and uncle prepared the reign of the great Saladin; 48 and the son of Job or Ayud, a simple Cœurd, magnanimously smiled at his pedigree, which flattery deduced from the Arabian caliphs. 49 So unconscious was Noureddin of the impending ruin of his house, that he constrained the reluctant youth to follow his uncle Shiracouh into Egypt: his military character was established by the defence of Alexandria; and, if we may believe the Latins, he solicited and obtained from the Christian general the profanehonors of knighthood. 50 On the death of Shiracouh, the office of grand vizier was bestowed on Saladin, as the youngest and least powerful of the emirs; but with the advice of his father, whom he invited to Cairo, his genius obtained the ascendant over his equals, and attached the army to his person and interest. While Noureddin lived, these ambitious Cœurds were the most humble of his slaves; and the indiscreet murmurs of the divan were silenced by the prudent Ayub, who loudly protested that at the command of the sultan he himself would lead his sons in chains to the foot of the throne. “Such language,” he added in private, “was prudent and proper in an assembly of your rivals; but we are now above fear and obedience; and the threats of Noureddin shall not extort the tribute of a sugar-cane.” His seasonable death relieved them from the odious and doubtful conflict: his son, a minor of eleven years of age, was left for a while to the emirs of Damascus; and the new lord of Egypt was decorated by the caliph with every title 51 that could sanctify his usurpation in the eyes of the people. Nor was Saladin long content with the possession of Egypt; he despoiled the Christians of Jerusalem, and the Atabeks of Damascus, Aleppo, and Diarbekir: Mecca and Medina acknowledged him for their temporal protector: his brother subdued the distant regions of Yemen, or the happy Arabia; and at the hour of his death, his empire was spread from the African Tripoli to the Tigris, and from the Indian Ocean to the mountains of Armenia. In the judgment of his character, the reproaches of treason and ingratitude strike forcibly on our minds, impressed, as they are, with the principle and experience of law and loyalty. But his ambition may in some measure be excused by the revolutions of Asia, 52 which had erased every notion of legitimate succession; by the recent example of the Atabeks themselves; by his reverence to the son of his benefactor; his humane and generous behavior to the collateral branches; by their incapacity and his merit; by the approbation of the caliph, the sole source of all legitimate power; and, above all, by the wishes and interest of the people, whose happiness is the first object of government. In his virtues, and in those of his patron, they admired the singular union of the hero and the saint; for both Noureddin and Saladin are ranked among the Mahometan saints; and the constant meditation of the holy war appears to have shed a serious and sober color over their lives and actions. The youth of the latter 53 was addicted to wine and women: but his aspiring spirit soon renounced the temptations of pleasure for the graver follies of fame and dominion: the garment of Saladin was of coarse woollen; water was his only drink; and, while he emulated the temperance, he surpassed the chastity, of his Arabian prophet. Both in faith and practice he was a rigid Mussulman: he ever deplored that the defence of religion had not allowed him to accomplish the pilgrimage of Mecca; but at the stated hours, five times each day, the sultan devoutly prayed with his brethren: the involuntary omission of fasting was scrupulously repaid; and his perusal of the Koran, on horseback between the approaching armies, may be quoted as a proof, however ostentatious, of piety and courage. 54 The superstitious doctrine of the sect of Shafei was the only study that he deigned to encourage: the poets were safe in his contempt; but all profane science was the object of his aversion; and a philosopher, who had invented some speculative novelties, was seized and strangled by the command of the royal saint. The justice of his divan was accessible to the meanest suppliant against himself and his ministers; and it was only for a kingdom that Saladin would deviate from the rule of equity. While the descendants of Seljuk and Zenghi held his stirrup and smoothed his garments, he was affable and patient with the meanest of his servants. So boundless was his liberality, that he distributed twelve thousand horses at the siege of Acre; and, at the time of his death, no more than forty-seven drams of silver and one piece of gold coin were found in the treasury; yet, in a martial reign, the tributes were diminished, and the wealthy citizens enjoyed, without fear or danger, the fruits of their industry. Egypt, Syria, and Arabia, were adorned by the royal foundations of hospitals, colleges, and mosques; and Cairo was fortified with a wall and citadel; but his works were consecrated to public use: 55 nor did the sultan indulge himself in a garden or palace of private luxury. In a fanatic age, himself a fanatic, the genuine virtues of Saladin commanded the esteem of the Christians; the emperor of Germany gloried in his friendship; 56 the Greek emperor solicited his alliance; 57 and the conquest of Jerusalem diffused, and perhaps magnified, his fame both in the East and West.

The hilly land beyond the Tigris is inhabited by the pastoral tribes of the Kurds; 46 a strong, resilient, and fierce people who resist control, known for plundering, and loyal to their national leaders. The similarity of their name, location, and customs suggests they are linked to the Carduchians of Greek history; 47 and they continue to defend the ancient freedom they claimed against the successors of Cyrus against the Ottoman Empire. Driven by poverty and ambition, they became mercenary soldiers: the service of his father and uncle set the stage for the reign of the great Saladin; 48 and the son of Job or Ayud, a simple Kurd, proudly shrugged off his lineage, which flattery traced back to the Arabian caliphs. 49 So unaware was Noureddin of the coming downfall of his house that he pressured the unwilling young man to accompany his uncle Shiracouh into Egypt: his military reputation was built during the defense of Alexandria; and, if the Latins are to be believed, he asked and received from the Christian general the profane honors of knighthood. 50 After Shiracouh’s death, Saladin, the youngest and least powerful of the emirs, was given the title of grand vizier; but with the counsel of his father, whom he invited to Cairo, his talent gained him favor over his peers and won the loyalty of the army. While Noureddin was alive, these ambitious Kurds were the most submissive of his servants; and the careless murmurs of the council were silenced by the wise Ayub, who loudly declared that at the sultan's command, he would personally lead his sons in chains to the foot of the throne. “Such words,” he privately added, “are wise and fitting in a gathering of your competitors; but we are now beyond fear and subservience; and the threats of Noureddin won’t force us to pay the tax of a mere sugar-cane.” His timely death freed them from the burdensome and uncertain power struggle: his son, just eleven years old, was left in the care of the emirs of Damascus; and the new ruler of Egypt was honored by the caliph with every title 51 that could justify his usurpation in the eyes of the people. Saladin was not content for long with just Egypt; he seized Jerusalem from the Christians and conquered the Atabeks of Damascus, Aleppo, and Diarbekir: Mecca and Medina recognized him as their temporal protector: his brother tamed the far-off lands of Yemen, or happy Arabia; and at the time of his death, his empire stretched from African Tripoli to the Tigris and from the Indian Ocean to the Armenian mountains. In evaluating his character, the accusations of treason and ingratitude hit hard on our minds, shaped as they are by the principles of law and fidelity. However, his ambition can be somewhat excused by the upheavals in Asia, 52 which had wiped out any notion of rightful succession; by the recent actions of the Atabeks; by his respect for the son of his benefactor; his kind and generous treatment of other branches of the family; by their ineptitude and his talent; by the approval of the caliph, the sole source of all legitimate authority; and, most importantly, by the hopes and interests of the people, whose well-being is the primary goal of government. In his virtues, as well as those of his patron, they admired the remarkable combination of a hero and a saint; for both Noureddin and Saladin are considered among the Muslim saints; and the constant focus on the holy war seems to have given a serious and sober tone to their lives and actions. The young Saladin 53 was prone to wine and women, but his ambitious spirit soon turned away from the pleasures of indulgence in favor of the more serious pursuit of fame and power: he wore a plain garment made of coarse wool; water was his only drink; and, while he mirrored the temperance, he surpassed the chastity of his Arabian prophet. In both faith and practice, he was a devout Muslim: he often lamented that his dedication to religion had prevented him from making the pilgrimage to Mecca; but at the designated times, five times a day, the sultan prayed respectfully with his peers: any unintentional failures in fasting were meticulously compensated for; and his reading of the Koran while mounted between rival armies may serve as proof, however showy, of his piety and bravery. 54 The superstitious beliefs of the Shafei sect were the only studies he chose to support; poets were safe in his disregard; but he had a strong aversion to all secular knowledge; and a philosopher who developed some speculative ideas was arrested and executed by the order of the royal saint. The justice of his council was accessible to the most humble supplicant, even against himself and his officials; it was only for a kingdom that Saladin would stray from his principles of fairness. While the descendants of Seljuk and Zenghi held his stirrup and smoothed his garments, he was kind and understanding with even the lowest of his servants. His generosity was so boundless that he distributed twelve thousand horses during the siege of Acre; and at the time of his death, only forty-seven dirhams of silver and one gold coin were found in the treasury; yet, during his military reign, the taxes were reduced, and wealthy citizens enjoyed the fruits of their labor without fear or danger. Egypt, Syria, and Arabia were adorned by royal foundations of hospitals, colleges, and mosques; and Cairo was fortified with walls and a citadel; but his projects were dedicated to public use: 55 nor did the sultan indulge in a private garden or palace. In a fanatical age, he himself being a fanatic, the genuine virtues of Saladin won the respect of Christians; the German emperor took pride in his friendship; 56 the Greek emperor sought his alliance; 57 and the conquest of Jerusalem amplified, and perhaps exaggerated, his reputation in both the East and West.

46 (return)
[ For the Cœurds, see De Guignes, tom. ii. p. 416, 417, the Index Geographicus of Schultens and Tavernier, Voyages, p. i. p. 308, 309. The Ayoubites descended from the tribe of the Rawadiæi, one of the noblest; but as they were infected with the heresy of the Metempsychosis, the orthodox sultans insinuated that their descent was only on the mother’s side, and that their ancestor was a stranger who settled among the Cœurds.]

46 (return)
[ For the Kurds, see De Guignes, vol. ii, pp. 416, 417, the Geographic Index of Schultens, and Tavernier, Travels, pp. i, 308, 309. The Ayoubites trace their roots back to the Rawadiæi tribe, one of the most distinguished; however, since they were associated with the heresy of Metempsychosis, the orthodox sultans suggested that their lineage was solely through the maternal line and that their ancestor was an outsider who settled among the Kurds.]

47 (return)
[ See the ivth book of the Anabasis of Xenophon. The ten thousand suffered more from the arrows of the free Carduchians, than from the splendid weakness of the great king.]

47 (return)
[ See the fourth book of the Anabasis of Xenophon. The ten thousand endured more from the arrows of the free Carduchians than from the impressive weakness of the great king.]

48 (return)
[ We are indebted to the professor Schultens (Lugd. Bat, 1755, in folio) for the richest and most authentic materials, a life of Saladin by his friend and minister the Cadhi Bohadin, and copious extracts from the history of his kinsman the prince Abulfeda of Hamah. To these we may add, the article of Salaheddin in the Bibliothèque Orientale, and all that may be gleaned from the Dynasties of Abulpharagius.]

48 (return)
[ We owe a lot to Professor Schultens (Lugd. Bat, 1755, in folio) for providing the richest and most authentic materials, including a biography of Saladin by his friend and minister, the Kadhi Bohadin, along with extensive excerpts from the history written by his relative, Prince Abulfeda of Hamah. We can also include the article on Salaheddin in the Bibliothèque Orientale, along with everything that can be gathered from the Dynasties of Abulpharagius.]

49 (return)
[ Since Abulfeda was himself an Ayoubite, he may share the praise, for imitating, at least tacitly, the modesty of the founder.]

49 (return)
[Since Abulfeda was an Ayoubite, he might also deserve some credit for, at least indirectly, emulating the founder's humility.]

50 (return)
[ Hist. Hierosol. in the Gesta Dei per Francos, p. 1152. A similar example may be found in Joinville, (p. 42, edition du Louvre;) but the pious St. Louis refused to dignify infidels with the order of Christian knighthood, (Ducange, Observations, p 70.)]

50 (return)
[ Hist. Hierosol. in the Gesta Dei per Francos, p. 1152. A similar example can be found in Joinville, (p. 42, edition du Louvre;) but the devout St. Louis wouldn’t grant infidels the honor of Christian knighthood, (Ducange, Observations, p 70.)]

51 (return)
[ In these Arabic titles, religionis must always be understood; Noureddin, lumen r.; Ezzodin, decus; Amadoddin, columen: our hero’s proper name was Joseph, and he was styled Salahoddin, salus; Al Malichus, Al Nasirus, rex defensor; Abu Modaffer, pater victoriæ, Schultens, Præfat.]

51 (return)
[ In these Arabic titles, religionis should always be understood; Noureddin, light of the faith; Ezzodin, honor; Amadoddin, support: our hero’s real name was Joseph, and he was referred to as Salahoddin, salvation; Al Malichus, Al Nasirus, king defender; Abu Modaffer, father of victory, Schultens, Preface.]

52 (return)
[ Abulfeda, who descended from a brother of Saladin, observes, from many examples, that the founders of dynasties took the guilt for themselves, and left the reward to their innocent collaterals, (Excerpt p. 10.)]

52 (return)
[ Abulfeda, who is a descendant of a brother of Saladin, notes through various examples that the founders of dynasties took on the blame for themselves, while granting the benefits to their innocent relatives, (Excerpt p. 10.)]

53 (return)
[ See his life and character in Renaudot, p. 537—548.]

53 (return)
[ See his life and character in Renaudot, p. 537—548.]

54 (return)
[ His civil and religious virtues are celebrated in the first chapter of Bohadin, (p. 4—30,) himself an eye-witness, and an honest bigot.]

54 (return)
[His civic and religious virtues are praised in the first chapter of Bohadin, (p. 4—30,) who was an eyewitness and a sincere zealot.]

55 (return)
[ In many works, particularly Joseph’s well in the castle of Cairo, the Sultan and the Patriarch have been confounded by the ignorance of natives and travellers.]

55 (return)
[ In many stories, especially Joseph’s well in the castle of Cairo, the Sultan and the Patriarch are baffled by the ignorance of locals and travelers.]

56 (return)
[ Anonym. Canisii, tom. iii. p. ii. p. 504.]

56 (return)
[ Anonym. Canisii, vol. iii, p. ii, p. 504.]

57 (return)
[ Bohadin, p. 129, 130.]

57 (return)
[ Bohadin, p. 129, 130.]

During its short existence, the kingdom of Jerusalem 58 was supported by the discord of the Turks and Saracens; and both the Fatimite caliphs and the sultans of Damascus were tempted to sacrifice the cause of their religion to the meaner considerations of private and present advantage. But the powers of Egypt, Syria, and Arabia, were now united by a hero, whom nature and fortune had armed against the Christians. All without now bore the most threatening aspect; and all was feeble and hollow in the internal state of Jerusalem. After the two first Baldwins, the brother and cousin of Godfrey of Bouillon, the sceptre devolved by female succession to Melisenda, daughter of the second Baldwin, and her husband Fulk, count of Anjou, the father, by a former marriage, of our English Plantagenets. Their two sons, Baldwin the Third, and Amaury, waged a strenuous, and not unsuccessful, war against the infidels; but the son of Amaury, Baldwin the Fourth, was deprived, by the leprosy, a gift of the crusades, of the faculties both of mind and body. His sister Sybilla, the mother of Baldwin the Fifth, was his natural heiress: after the suspicious death of her child, she crowned her second husband, Guy of Lusignan, a prince of a handsome person, but of such base renown, that his own brother Jeffrey was heard to exclaim, “Since they have made him a king, surely they would have made me a god!” The choice was generally blamed; and the most powerful vassal, Raymond count of Tripoli, who had been excluded from the succession and regency, entertained an implacable hatred against the king, and exposed his honor and conscience to the temptations of the sultan. Such were the guardians of the holy city; a leper, a child, a woman, a coward, and a traitor: yet its fate was delayed twelve years by some supplies from Europe, by the valor of the military orders, and by the distant or domestic avocations of their great enemy. At length, on every side, the sinking state was encircled and pressed by a hostile line: and the truce was violated by the Franks, whose existence it protected. A soldier of fortune, Reginald of Chatillon, had seized a fortress on the edge of the desert, from whence he pillaged the caravans, insulted Mahomet, and threatened the cities of Mecca and Medina. Saladin condescended to complain; rejoiced in the denial of justice, and at the head of fourscore thousand horse and foot invaded the Holy Land. The choice of Tiberias for his first siege was suggested by the count of Tripoli, to whom it belonged; and the king of Jerusalem was persuaded to drain his garrison, and to arm his people, for the relief of that important place. 59 By the advice of the perfidious Raymond, the Christians were betrayed into a camp destitute of water: he fled on the first onset, with the curses of both nations: 60 Lusignan was overthrown, with the loss of thirty thousand men; and the wood of the true cross (a dire misfortune!) was left in the power of the infidels. 601 The royal captive was conducted to the tent of Saladin; and as he fainted with thirst and terror, the generous victor presented him with a cup of sherbet, cooled in snow, without suffering his companion, Reginald of Chatillon, to partake of this pledge of hospitality and pardon. “The person and dignity of a king,” said the sultan, “are sacred, but this impious robber must instantly acknowledge the prophet, whom he has blasphemed, or meet the death which he has so often deserved.” On the proud or conscientious refusal of the Christian warrior, Saladin struck him on the head with his cimeter, and Reginald was despatched by the guards. 61 The trembling Lusignan was sent to Damascus, to an honorable prison and speedy ransom; but the victory was stained by the execution of two hundred and thirty knights of the hospital, the intrepid champions and martyrs of their faith. The kingdom was left without a head; and of the two grand masters of the military orders, the one was slain and the other was a prisoner. From all the cities, both of the sea-coast and the inland country, the garrisons had been drawn away for this fatal field: Tyre and Tripoli alone could escape the rapid inroad of Saladin; and three months after the battle of Tiberias, he appeared in arms before the gates of Jerusalem. 62

During its brief existence, the kingdom of Jerusalem 58 took advantage of the conflicts between the Turks and Saracens; both the Fatimite caliphs and the sultans of Damascus were tempted to put aside their religious commitments for personal gain. However, the powers of Egypt, Syria, and Arabia were united under a hero who was naturally and fortuitously equipped to fight against the Christians. The situation outside was increasingly threatening, while the internal state of Jerusalem was weak and unstable. After the first two Baldwins, Godfrey of Bouillon’s brother and cousin, the throne passed to Melisenda, the daughter of the second Baldwin, and her husband Fulk, count of Anjou, who was the father of our English Plantagenets from a previous marriage. Their two sons, Baldwin the Third and Amaury, engaged in a vigorous and somewhat successful war against the infidels; however, Baldwin the Fourth, the son of Amaury, lost both his mental and physical faculties due to leprosy, a gift from the crusades. His sister Sybilla, the mother of Baldwin the Fifth, was his rightful heir: after her child’s suspicious death, she crowned her second husband, Guy of Lusignan, a handsome prince but notorious for his little reputation, leading his brother Jeffrey to quip, “Since they have made him a king, surely they would have made me a god!” This choice was widely criticized; the most powerful vassal, Raymond, count of Tripoli, who had been left out of the succession and regency, harbored a deep-seated hatred towards the king and compromised his honor and principles for the sultan’s temptations. Thus were the guardians of the holy city: a leper, a child, a woman, a coward, and a traitor; yet for twelve years, the city’s fate was postponed due to some aid from Europe, the courage of the military orders, and the various distractions faced by their great enemy. Eventually, the beleaguered state was surrounded and pressured from all sides, and the truce was broken by the Franks, whom it was supposed to protect. A mercenary, Reginald of Chatillon, had captured a fortress on the desert's edge, from which he raided caravans, insulted Mohammed, and threatened the cities of Mecca and Medina. Saladin complained, took pleasure in the denial of justice, and led an army of eighty thousand troops to invade the Holy Land. The count of Tripoli suggested that Tiberias be the site of his first siege; the king of Jerusalem was convinced to deplete his garrison and arm his people to aid that critical location. 59 Following the treacherous advice of Raymond, the Christians were led into a camp without water: he fled at the first attack, cursed by both nations: 60 Lusignan was defeated, suffering the loss of thirty thousand men; and the wood of the true cross (a terrible misfortune!) was left in the hands of the infidels. 601 The captured king was taken to Saladin’s tent, and as he fainted from thirst and fear, the generous victor offered him a cup of sherbet, chilled with snow, refusing to let Reginald of Chatillon share in this act of hospitality and mercy. “The person and dignity of a king,” said the sultan, “are sacred, but this impious robber must immediately acknowledge the prophet he has insulted, or face the death he has repeatedly deserved.” On the proud or principled refusal of the Christian warrior, Saladin struck him with his sword, and Reginald was executed by the guards. 61 The trembling Lusignan was sent to Damascus for honorable imprisonment and a swift ransom; however, the victory was marred by the execution of two hundred thirty knights of the hospital, the fearless champions and martyrs of their faith. The kingdom was left leaderless; of the two grand masters of the military orders, one was killed and the other taken prisoner. All the garrisons had been withdrawn from cities along the coast and in the interior to participate in this disastrous battle: only Tyre and Tripoli managed to escape Saladin’s rapid advance; and three months after the battle of Tiberias, he arrived armed at the gates of Jerusalem. 62

58 (return)
[ For the Latin kingdom of Jerusalem, see William of Tyre, from the ixth to the xxiid book. Jacob a Vitriaco, Hist. Hierosolem l i., and Sanutus Secreta Fidelium Crucis, l. iii. p. vi. vii. viii. ix.]

58 (return)
[ For the Latin kingdom of Jerusalem, see William of Tyre, from the 9th to the 22nd book. Jacob a Vitriaco, Hist. Hierosolem l i., and Sanutus Secreta Fidelium Crucis, l. iii. p. vi. vii. viii. ix.]

59 (return)
[ Templarii ut apes bombabant et Hospitalarii ut venti stridebant, et barones se exitio offerebant, et Turcopuli (the Christian light troops) semet ipsi in ignem injiciebant, (Ispahani de Expugnatione Kudsiticâ, p. 18, apud Schultens;) a specimen of Arabian eloquence, somewhat different from the style of Xenophon!]

59 (return)
[ The Templars buzzed like bees and the Hospitallers howled like the wind, while the barons offered themselves up for destruction, and the Turcopuli (the Christian light troops) threw themselves into the fire, (Ispahani de Expugnatione Kudsiticâ, p. 18, apud Schultens;) a sample of Arabian eloquence, somewhat different from Xenophon's style!]

60 (return)
[ The Latins affirm, the Arabians insinuate, the treason of Raymond; but had he really embraced their religion, he would have been a saint and a hero in the eyes of the latter.]

60 (return)
[ The Latins claim, the Arabians suggest, the betrayal of Raymond; but if he had truly accepted their religion, he would have been a saint and a hero to them.]

601 (return)
[ Raymond’s advice would have prevented the abandonment of a secure camp abounding with water near Sepphoris. The rash and insolent valor of the master of the order of Knights Templars, which had before exposed the Christians to a fatal defeat at the brook Kishon, forced the feeble king to annul the determination of a council of war, and advance to a camp in an enclosed valley among the mountains, near Hittin, without water. Raymond did not fly till the battle was irretrievably lost, and then the Saracens seem to have opened their ranks to allow him free passage. The charge of suggesting the siege of Tiberias appears ungrounded Raymond, no doubt, played a double part: he was a man of strong sagacity, who foresaw the desperate nature of the contest with Saladin, endeavored by every means to maintain the treaty, and, though he joined both his arms and his still more valuable counsels to the Christian army, yet kept up a kind of amicable correspondence with the Mahometans. See Wilken, vol. iii. part ii. p. 276, et seq. Michaud, vol. ii. p. 278, et seq. M. Michaud is still more friendly than Wilken to the memory of Count Raymond, who died suddenly, shortly after the battle of Hittin. He quotes a letter written in the name of Saladin by the caliph Alfdel, to show that Raymond was considered by the Mahometans their most dangerous and detested enemy. “No person of distinction among the Christians escaped, except the count, (of Tripoli) whom God curse. God made him die shortly afterwards, and sent him from the kingdom of death to hell.”—M.]

601 (return)
[ Raymond’s advice could have prevented the abandonment of a secure camp filled with water near Sepphoris. The reckless and arrogant bravery of the master of the Knights Templar, which had previously led to a devastating defeat for the Christians at the brook Kishon, pressured the weak king to cancel the decision of a war council and move to a camp in a closed valley among the mountains near Hittin, where there was no water. Raymond didn’t escape until the battle was hopelessly lost, and then the Saracens seemed to open their ranks to let him pass. The claim that he suggested the siege of Tiberias appears unfounded; Raymond, without a doubt, played both sides: he was a man of great insight who recognized the dire nature of the fight against Saladin, tried by all means to maintain the treaty, and although he joined both his military efforts and his even more valuable advice to the Christian army, he still kept a friendly correspondence with the Muslims. See Wilken, vol. iii. part ii. p. 276, et seq. Michaud, vol. ii. p. 278, et seq. M. Michaud is even more favorable than Wilken to the memory of Count Raymond, who died suddenly shortly after the battle of Hittin. He quotes a letter written on behalf of Saladin by the caliph Alfdel to show that Raymond was seen by the Muslims as their most dangerous and hated enemy. “No notable person among the Christians escaped, except the count (of Tripoli), whom God curse. God caused him to die shortly afterwards and sent him from the kingdom of death to hell.”—M.]

61 (return)
[ Benaud, Reginald, or Arnold de Chatillon, is celebrated by the Latins in his life and death; but the circumstances of the latter are more distinctly related by Bohadin and Abulfeda; and Joinville (Hist. de St. Louis, p. 70) alludes to the practice of Saladin, of never putting to death a prisoner who had tasted his bread and salt. Some of the companions of Arnold had been slaughtered, and almost sacrificed, in a valley of Mecca, ubi sacrificia mactantur, (Abulfeda, p. 32.)]

61 (return)
[ Benaud, Reginald, or Arnold de Chatillon, is well-known among the Latins for both his life and death; however, the details of his death are more clearly described by Bohadin and Abulfeda. Joinville (Hist. de St. Louis, p. 70) refers to Saladin’s practice of never executing a prisoner who had shared his bread and salt. Some of Arnold's companions were killed and nearly sacrificed in a valley of Mecca, where sacrifices are made, (Abulfeda, p. 32.)]

62 (return)
[ Vertot, who well describes the loss of the kingdom and city (Hist. des Chevaliers de Malthe, tom. i. l. ii. p. 226—278,) inserts two original epistles of a Knight Templar.]

62 (return)
[Vertot, who accurately describes the loss of the kingdom and city (Hist. des Chevaliers de Malthe, vol. i. ch. ii. pp. 226–278), includes two original letters from a Knight Templar.]

He might expect that the siege of a city so venerable on earth and in heaven, so interesting to Europe and Asia, would rekindle the last sparks of enthusiasm; and that, of sixty thousand Christians, every man would be a soldier, and every soldier a candidate for martyrdom. But Queen Sybilla trembled for herself and her captive husband; and the barons and knights, who had escaped from the sword and chains of the Turks, displayed the same factious and selfish spirit in the public ruin. The most numerous portion of the inhabitants was composed of the Greek and Oriental Christians, whom experience had taught to prefer the Mahometan before the Latin yoke; 63 and the holy sepulchre attracted a base and needy crowd, without arms or courage, who subsisted only on the charity of the pilgrims. Some feeble and hasty efforts were made for the defence of Jerusalem: but in the space of fourteen days, a victorious army drove back the sallies of the besieged, planted their engines, opened the wall to the breadth of fifteen cubits, applied their scaling-ladders, and erected on the breach twelve banners of the prophet and the sultan. It was in vain that a barefoot procession of the queen, the women, and the monks, implored the Son of God to save his tomb and his inheritance from impious violation. Their sole hope was in the mercy of the conqueror, and to their first suppliant deputation that mercy was sternly denied. “He had sworn to avenge the patience and long-suffering of the Moslems; the hour of forgiveness was elapsed, and the moment was now arrived to expiate, in blood, the innocent blood which had been spilt by Godfrey and the first crusaders.” But a desperate and successful struggle of the Franks admonished the sultan that his triumph was not yet secure; he listened with reverence to a solemn adjuration in the name of the common Father of mankind; and a sentiment of human sympathy mollified the rigor of fanaticism and conquest. He consented to accept the city, and to spare the inhabitants. The Greek and Oriental Christians were permitted to live under his dominion, but it was stipulated, that in forty days all the Franks and Latins should evacuate Jerusalem, and be safely conducted to the seaports of Syria and Egypt; that ten pieces of gold should be paid for each man, five for each woman, and one for every child; and that those who were unable to purchase their freedom should be detained in perpetual slavery. Of some writers it is a favorite and invidious theme to compare the humanity of Saladin with the massacre of the first crusade. The difference would be merely personal; but we should not forget that the Christians had offered to capitulate, and that the Mahometans of Jerusalem sustained the last extremities of an assault and storm. Justice is indeed due to the fidelity with which the Turkish conqueror fulfilled the conditions of the treaty; and he may be deservedly praised for the glance of pity which he cast on the misery of the vanquished. Instead of a rigorous exaction of his debt, he accepted a sum of thirty thousand byzants, for the ransom of seven thousand poor; two or three thousand more were dismissed by his gratuitous clemency; and the number of slaves was reduced to eleven or fourteen thousand persons. In this interview with the queen, his words, and even his tears suggested the kindest consolations; his liberal alms were distributed among those who had been made orphans or widows by the fortune of war; and while the knights of the hospital were in arms against him, he allowed their more pious brethren to continue, during the term of a year, the care and service of the sick. In these acts of mercy the virtue of Saladin deserves our admiration and love: he was above the necessity of dissimulation, and his stern fanaticism would have prompted him to dissemble, rather than to affect, this profane compassion for the enemies of the Koran. After Jerusalem had been delivered from the presence of the strangers, the sultan made his triumphal entry, his banners waving in the wind, and to the harmony of martial music. The great mosque of Omar, which had been converted into a church, was again consecrated to one God and his prophet Mahomet: the walls and pavement were purified with rose-water; and a pulpit, the labor of Noureddin, was erected in the sanctuary. But when the golden cross that glittered on the dome was cast down, and dragged through the streets, the Christians of every sect uttered a lamentable groan, which was answered by the joyful shouts of the Moslems. In four ivory chests the patriarch had collected the crosses, the images, the vases, and the relics of the holy place; they were seized by the conqueror, who was desirous of presenting the caliph with the trophies of Christian idolatry. He was persuaded, however, to intrust them to the patriarch and prince of Antioch; and the pious pledge was redeemed by Richard of England, at the expense of fifty-two thousand byzants of gold. 64

He might think that the siege of a city so historic on earth and in heaven, so important to Europe and Asia, would spark a final wave of enthusiasm; and that, out of sixty thousand Christians, every person would become a soldier, and every soldier would seek martyrdom. But Queen Sybilla was anxious for herself and her captive husband; and the barons and knights, who had escaped the swords and chains of the Turks, showed the same divisive and selfish attitude in the face of public ruin. The majority of the inhabitants were Greek and Oriental Christians, who had learned through experience to prefer the rule of Muslims to the Latin one; 63 and the holy sepulcher attracted a pitiful and desperate crowd, unarmed and lacking courage, who relied solely on the charity of pilgrims. Some weak and hasty attempts were made to defend Jerusalem: but within fourteen days, a victorious army repelled the attacks of the besieged, set up their siege engines, breached the wall to a width of fifteen cubits, used their scaling ladders, and raised twelve banners of the prophet and the sultan at the breach. It was useless for a barefoot procession of the queen, women, and monks to plead with the Son of God to protect his tomb and his legacy from sacrilegious violation. Their only hope was in the mercy of the conqueror, and to their initial request for mercy, that mercy was harshly denied. “He had sworn to avenge the patience and suffering of the Muslims; the time for forgiveness had passed, and now it was time to redress, in blood, the innocent blood that had been shed by Godfrey and the first crusaders.” But a desperate and successful struggle by the Franks reminded the sultan that his victory was not yet assured; he listened respectfully to a solemn appeal in the name of the common Father of mankind; and a sense of human compassion softened the harshness of fanaticism and conquest. He agreed to accept the city and spare the inhabitants. The Greek and Oriental Christians were allowed to live under his rule, but it was agreed that in forty days all the Franks and Latins would leave Jerusalem and be safely taken to the seaports of Syria and Egypt; that ten gold coins would be paid for each man, five for each woman, and one for each child; and that those who couldn’t pay for their freedom would be kept in perpetual slavery. Some authors like to compare Saladin’s mercy to the massacre of the first crusade. The difference would be merely personal; but we shouldn’t forget that the Christians had offered to surrender, and that the Muslims of Jerusalem endured the last stages of an attack. Justice is truly due for the loyalty with which the Turkish conqueror upheld the terms of the treaty; and he deserves praise for the glimpse of pity he showed for the misery of the defeated. Instead of strictly demanding his due, he accepted a payment of thirty thousand byzants for the ransom of seven thousand poor people; two or three thousand more were released out of his generosity; and the number of slaves was reduced to eleven or fourteen thousand people. In his meeting with the queen, his words, and even his tears offered the kindest comfort; his generous donations were shared among those made orphans or widows by the war; and while the knights of the hospital fought against him, he allowed their more pious brothers to continue, for a year, caring for the ill. In these acts of kindness, Saladin's character earns our admiration and affection: he was above the need for pretense, and his fierce fanaticism would have pushed him to disguise rather than to show this uncharacteristic compassion for the enemies of the Koran. After Jerusalem was freed from the foreigners, the sultan made his triumphant entry, his banners fluttering in the wind, accompanied by martial music. The great mosque of Omar, which had been turned into a church, was reconsecrated to one God and his prophet Muhammad: the walls and floor were cleansed with rose-water; and a pulpit, crafted by Noureddin, was installed in the sanctuary. But when the golden cross atop the dome was thrown down and dragged through the streets, Christians of every denomination let out a mournful groan, met by the joyful cheers of the Muslims. In four ivory chests, the patriarch had gathered the crosses, images, vases, and relics of the holy site; they were taken by the conqueror, who wanted to present the caliph with the trophies of Christian idolatry. However, he was persuaded to allow them to be entrusted to the patriarch and the prince of Antioch; and the sacred pledge was bought back by Richard of England for fifty-two thousand gold byzants. 64

63 (return)
[ Renaudot, Hist. Patriarch. Alex. p. 545.]

63 (return)
[ Renaudot, Hist. Patriarch. Alex. p. 545.]

64 (return)
[ For the conquest of Jerusalem, Bohadin (p. 67—75) and Abulfeda (p. 40—43) are our Moslem witnesses. Of the Christian, Bernard Thesaurarius (c. 151—167) is the most copious and authentic; see likewise Matthew Paris, (p. 120—124.)]

64 (return)
[ For the conquest of Jerusalem, Bohadin (p. 67—75) and Abulfeda (p. 40—43) are our Muslim witnesses. Of the Christian sources, Bernard Thesaurarius (c. 151—167) is the most detailed and reliable; see also Matthew Paris, (p. 120—124.)]

The nations might fear and hope the immediate and final expulsion of the Latins from Syria; which was yet delayed above a century after the death of Saladin. 65 In the career of victory, he was first checked by the resistance of Tyre; the troops and garrisons, which had capitulated, were imprudently conducted to the same port: their numbers were adequate to the defence of the place; and the arrival of Conrad of Montferrat inspired the disorderly crowd with confidence and union. His father, a venerable pilgrim, had been made prisoner in the battle of Tiberias; but that disaster was unknown in Italy and Greece, when the son was urged by ambition and piety to visit the inheritance of his royal nephew, the infant Baldwin. The view of the Turkish banners warned him from the hostile coast of Jaffa; and Conrad was unanimously hailed as the prince and champion of Tyre, which was already besieged by the conqueror of Jerusalem. The firmness of his zeal, and perhaps his knowledge of a generous foe, enabled him to brave the threats of the sultan, and to declare, that should his aged parent be exposed before the walls, he himself would discharge the first arrow, and glory in his descent from a Christian martyr. 66 The Egyptian fleet was allowed to enter the harbor of Tyre; but the chain was suddenly drawn, and five galleys were either sunk or taken: a thousand Turks were slain in a sally; and Saladin, after burning his engines, concluded a glorious campaign by a disgraceful retreat to Damascus. He was soon assailed by a more formidable tempest. The pathetic narratives, and even the pictures, that represented in lively colors the servitude and profanation of Jerusalem, awakened the torpid sensibility of Europe: the emperor Frederic Barbarossa, and the kings of France and England, assumed the cross; and the tardy magnitude of their armaments was anticipated by the maritime states of the Mediterranean and the Ocean. The skilful and provident Italians first embarked in the ships of Genoa, Pisa, and Venice. They were speedily followed by the most eager pilgrims of France, Normandy, and the Western Isles. The powerful succor of Flanders, Frise, and Denmark, filled near a hundred vessels: and the Northern warriors were distinguished in the field by a lofty stature and a ponderous battle-axe. 67 Their increasing multitudes could no longer be confined within the walls of Tyre, or remain obedient to the voice of Conrad. They pitied the misfortunes, and revered the dignity, of Lusignan, who was released from prison, perhaps, to divide the army of the Franks. He proposed the recovery of Ptolemais, or Acre, thirty miles to the south of Tyre; and the place was first invested by two thousand horse and thirty thousand foot under his nominal command. I shall not expatiate on the story of this memorable siege; which lasted near two years, and consumed, in a narrow space, the forces of Europe and Asia. Never did the flame of enthusiasm burn with fiercer and more destructive rage; nor could the true believers, a common appellation, who consecrated their own martyrs, refuse some applause to the mistaken zeal and courage of their adversaries. At the sound of the holy trumpet, the Moslems of Egypt, Syria, Arabia, and the Oriental provinces, assembled under the servant of the prophet: 68 his camp was pitched and removed within a few miles of Acre; and he labored, night and day, for the relief of his brethren and the annoyance of the Franks. Nine battles, not unworthy of the name, were fought in the neighborhood of Mount Carmel, with such vicissitude of fortune, that in one attack, the sultan forced his way into the city; that in one sally, the Christians penetrated to the royal tent. By the means of divers and pigeons, a regular correspondence was maintained with the besieged; and, as often as the sea was left open, the exhausted garrison was withdrawn, and a fresh supply was poured into the place. The Latin camp was thinned by famine, the sword and the climate; but the tents of the dead were replenished with new pilgrims, who exaggerated the strength and speed of their approaching countrymen. The vulgar was astonished by the report, that the pope himself, with an innumerable crusade, was advanced as far as Constantinople. The march of the emperor filled the East with more serious alarms: the obstacles which he encountered in Asia, and perhaps in Greece, were raised by the policy of Saladin: his joy on the death of Barbarossa was measured by his esteem; and the Christians were rather dismayed than encouraged at the sight of the duke of Swabia and his way-worn remnant of five thousand Germans. At length, in the spring of the second year, the royal fleets of France and England cast anchor in the Bay of Acre, and the siege was more vigorously prosecuted by the youthful emulation of the two kings, Philip Augustus and Richard Plantagenet. After every resource had been tried, and every hope was exhausted, the defenders of Acre submitted to their fate; a capitulation was granted, but their lives and liberties were taxed at the hard conditions of a ransom of two hundred thousand pieces of gold, the deliverance of one hundred nobles, and fifteen hundred inferior captives, and the restoration of the wood of the holy cross. Some doubts in the agreement, and some delay in the execution, rekindled the fury of the Franks, and three thousand Moslems, almost in the sultan’s view, were beheaded by the command of the sanguinary Richard. 69 By the conquest of Acre, the Latin powers acquired a strong town and a convenient harbor; but the advantage was most dearly purchased. The minister and historian of Saladin computes, from the report of the enemy, that their numbers, at different periods, amounted to five or six hundred thousand; that more than one hundred thousand Christians were slain; that a far greater number was lost by disease or shipwreck; and that a small portion of this mighty host could return in safety to their native countries. 70

The nations feared and hoped for the immediate and final removal of the Latins from Syria, which would not occur until over a century after Saladin's death. 65 In his victorious campaign, he was initially stopped by the resistance of Tyre; the troops and garrisons that had surrendered were foolishly brought to the same port. Their numbers were enough to defend the place, and the arrival of Conrad of Montferrat gave the disorganized crowd confidence and unity. His father, a respected pilgrim, had been captured in the battle of Tiberias; however, that defeat was unknown in Italy and Greece when his son, driven by ambition and piety, decided to visit the inheritance of his royal nephew, the young Baldwin. The sight of the Turkish banners warned him away from the enemy coast of Jaffa, and Conrad was unanimously recognized as the prince and defender of Tyre, which was already under siege by the conqueror of Jerusalem. His strong commitment and perhaps his knowledge of a noble enemy allowed him to withstand the threats of the sultan, declaring that if his elderly father were exposed before the city walls, he would be the first to shoot an arrow and take pride in his heritage as a Christian martyr. 66 The Egyptian fleet was allowed to enter the harbor of Tyre, but suddenly the chain was pulled tight, and five galleys were either sunk or captured; a thousand Turks were killed in a sortie, and Saladin, after burning his siege engines, ended a glorious campaign with a shameful retreat to Damascus. He was soon faced with a more serious challenge. The moving stories, even the images, depicting the suffering and desecration of Jerusalem stirred the dormant feelings of Europe: Emperor Frederick Barbarossa and the kings of France and England took up the cross, and the delayed size of their military forces was eagerly anticipated by the maritime states of the Mediterranean and the Ocean. The skilled and prepared Italians were the first to embark in the ships of Genoa, Pisa, and Venice. They were quickly followed by eager pilgrims from France, Normandy, and the Western Isles. The powerful support from Flanders, Frise, and Denmark outfitted nearly a hundred vessels: and the Northern warriors were recognizable on the battlefield by their tall stature and heavy battle-axes. 67 Their increasing numbers could no longer be contained within the walls of Tyre, nor could they stay obedient to Conrad's orders. They felt compassion for the misfortunes and respected the dignity of Lusignan, who was released from prison, perhaps to share command of the Frankish army. He proposed to retake Ptolemais, or Acre, thirty miles south of Tyre; the place was first attacked by two thousand cavalry and thirty thousand infantry under his nominal leadership. I will not elaborate on the story of this memorable siege, which lasted nearly two years and exhausted the forces of Europe and Asia in a confined area. The flame of enthusiasm never burned with fiercer and more destructive intensity; nor could the true believers— a common term for them, who honored their own martyrs—refuse to acknowledge some admiration for the misguided zeal and courage of their opponents. At the sound of the holy trumpet, Muslims from Egypt, Syria, Arabia, and the Eastern provinces gathered under the servant of the prophet; 68 his camp was set up and moved within a few miles of Acre, and he worked day and night for the relief of his comrades and to trouble the Franks. Nine notable battles were fought near Mount Carmel, with such changing fortunes that in one attack, the sultan managed to break into the city, and in one sortie, the Christians made it to the royal tent. Through various means and carrier pigeons, a consistent communication line was maintained with the besieged; and whenever the sea was open, the weary garrison was withdrawn, and fresh reinforcements were sent in. The Latin camp suffered from hunger, the sword, and the climate; but the tents of the dead were filled with new pilgrims, who exaggerated the strength and speed of their arriving countrymen. The common people were startled by the report that the pope himself, with an innumerable crusade, had made it as far as Constantinople. The emperor's march caused more serious alarm in the East: the obstacles he faced in Asia, and perhaps in Greece, were raised by Saladin's tactics; his joy at Barbarossa's death was proportional to his esteem; and the sight of the Duke of Swabia and his weary remnant of five thousand Germans left the Christians more disheartened than encouraged. Finally, in the spring of the second year, the royal fleets of France and England anchored in the Bay of Acre, and the siege was pursued more vigorously by the youthful rivalry of the two kings, Philip Augustus and Richard Plantagenet. After every option had been exhausted and hope was diminished, the defenders of Acre surrendered to their fate; a capitulation was granted, but their lives and freedoms came at the steep cost of a ransom of two hundred thousand pieces of gold, the release of one hundred nobles, and fifteen hundred lesser captives, along with the return of the wood of the holy cross. Some doubts regarding the agreement and some delays in its execution reignited the anger of the Franks, and three thousand Muslims, almost in the sultan’s sight, were beheaded on the orders of the bloodthirsty Richard. 69 With the conquest of Acre, the Latin powers gained a strong town and a convenient harbor; however, the price paid was very high. Saladin's minister and historian estimates, based on enemy reports, that their numbers at different times totaled between five to six hundred thousand; that over one hundred thousand Christians were killed; that a much greater number perished from disease or shipwreck; and that only a small portion of this vast host was able to return safely to their homelands. 70

65 (return)
[ The sieges of Tyre and Acre are most copiously described by Bernard Thesaurarius, (de Acquisitione Terræ Sanctæ, c. 167—179,) the author of the Historia Hierosolymitana, (p. 1150—1172, in Bongarsius,) Abulfeda, (p. 43—50,) and Bohadin, (p. 75—179.)]

65 (return)
[ The sieges of Tyre and Acre are described in great detail by Bernard Thesaurarius, (de Acquisitione Terræ Sanctæ, c. 167—179,) the author of the Historia Hierosolymitana, (p. 1150—1172, in Bongarsius,) Abulfeda, (p. 43—50,) and Bohadin, (p. 75—179.)]

66 (return)
[ I have followed a moderate and probable representation of the fact; by Vertot, who adopts without reluctance a romantic tale the old marquis is actually exposed to the darts of the besieged.]

66 (return)
[ I've presented a careful and likely account of the situation; by Vertot, who willingly embraces a dramatic story where the old marquis is truly faced with the assaults of those under siege.]

67 (return)
[ Northmanni et Gothi, et cæteri populi insularum quæ inter occidentem et septentrionem sitæ sunt, gentes bellicosæ, corporis proceri mortis intrepidæ, bipennibus armatæ, navibus rotundis, quæ Ysnachiæ dicuntur, advectæ.]

67 (return)
[ The Northmen and the Goths, along with other peoples from the islands located between the west and the north, are warlike nations, tall in stature, fearless in battle, armed with double-headed axes, and brought over by round ships known as Ysnachiæ.]

68 (return)
[ The historian of Jerusalem (p. 1108) adds the nations of the East from the Tigris to India, and the swarthy tribes of Moors and Getulians, so that Asia and Africa fought against Europe.]

68 (return)
[ The historian of Jerusalem (p. 1108) includes the nations of the East from the Tigris to India, along with the darker-skinned tribes of Moors and Getulians, showing that Asia and Africa battled against Europe.]

69 (return)
[ Bohadin, p. 180; and this massacre is neither denied nor blamed by the Christian historians. Alacriter jussa complentes, (the English soldiers,) says Galfridus à Vinesauf, (l. iv. c. 4, p. 346,) who fixes at 2700 the number of victims; who are multiplied to 5000 by Roger Hoveden, (p. 697, 698.) The humanity or avarice of Philip Augustus was persuaded to ransom his prisoners, (Jacob à Vitriaco, l. i. c. 98, p. 1122.)]

69 (return)
[ Bohadin, p. 180; and this massacre is neither denied nor criticized by the Christian historians. "Quickly fulfilling the orders," (the English soldiers,) says Galfridus à Vinesauf, (l. iv. c. 4, p. 346,) who estimates the number of victims at 2,700; Roger Hoveden increases that number to 5,000 (p. 697, 698.) The compassion or greed of Philip Augustus was convinced to ransom his prisoners, (Jacob à Vitriaco, l. i. c. 98, p. 1122.)]

70 (return)
[ Bohadin, p. 14. He quotes the judgment of Balianus, and the prince of Sidon, and adds, ex illo mundo quasi hominum paucissimi redierunt. Among the Christians who died before St. John d’Acre, I find the English names of De Ferrers earl of Derby, (Dugdale, Baronage, part i. p. 260,) Mowbray, (idem, p. 124,) De Mandevil, De Fiennes, St. John, Scrope, Bigot, Talbot, &c.]

70 (return)
[ Bohadin, p. 14. He quotes the judgment of Balianus and the prince of Sidon, and adds, from that world, only a very few men returned. Among the Christians who died before St. John d’Acre, I find the English names of De Ferrers, earl of Derby, (Dugdale, Baronage, part i. p. 260,) Mowbray, (idem, p. 124,) De Mandevil, De Fiennes, St. John, Scrope, Bigot, Talbot, etc.]

Chapter LIX: The Crusades.—Part III.

Philip Augustus, and Richard the First, are the only kings of France and England who have fought under the same banners; but the holy service in which they were enlisted was incessantly disturbed by their national jealousy; and the two factions, which they protected in Palestine, were more averse to each other than to the common enemy. In the eyes of the Orientals; the French monarch was superior in dignity and power; and, in the emperor’s absence, the Latins revered him as their temporal chief. 71 His exploits were not adequate to his fame. Philip was brave, but the statesman predominated in his character; he was soon weary of sacrificing his health and interest on a barren coast: the surrender of Acre became the signal of his departure; nor could he justify this unpopular desertion, by leaving the duke of Burgundy with five hundred knights and ten thousand foot, for the service of the Holy Land. The king of England, though inferior in dignity, surpassed his rival in wealth and military renown; 72 and if heroism be confined to brutal and ferocious valor, Richard Plantagenet will stand high among the heroes of the age. The memory of Cœur de Lion, of the lion-hearted prince, was long dear and glorious to his English subjects; and, at the distance of sixty years, it was celebrated in proverbial sayings by the grandsons of the Turks and Saracens, against whom he had fought: his tremendous name was employed by the Syrian mothers to silence their infants; and if a horse suddenly started from the way, his rider was wont to exclaim, “Dost thou think King Richard is in that bush?” 73 His cruelty to the Mahometans was the effect of temper and zeal; but I cannot believe that a soldier, so free and fearless in the use of his lance, would have descended to whet a dagger against his valiant brother Conrad of Montferrat, who was slain at Tyre by some secret assassins. 74 After the surrender of Acre, and the departure of Philip, the king of England led the crusaders to the recovery of the sea-coast; and the cities of Cæsarea and Jaffa were added to the fragments of the kingdom of Lusignan. A march of one hundred miles from Acre to Ascalon was a great and perpetual battle of eleven days. In the disorder of his troops, Saladin remained on the field with seventeen guards, without lowering his standard, or suspending the sound of his brazen kettle-drum: he again rallied and renewed the charge; and his preachers or heralds called aloud on the unitarians, manfully to stand up against the Christian idolaters. But the progress of these idolaters was irresistible; and it was only by demolishing the walls and buildings of Ascalon, that the sultan could prevent them from occupying an important fortress on the confines of Egypt. During a severe winter, the armies slept; but in the spring, the Franks advanced within a day’s march of Jerusalem, under the leading standard of the English king; and his active spirit intercepted a convoy, or caravan, of seven thousand camels. Saladin 75 had fixed his station in the holy city; but the city was struck with consternation and discord: he fasted; he prayed; he preached; he offered to share the dangers of the siege; but his Mamalukes, who remembered the fate of their companions at Acre, pressed the sultan with loyal or seditious clamors, to reserve his person and their courage for the future defence of the religion and empire. 76 The Moslems were delivered by the sudden, or, as they deemed, the miraculous, retreat of the Christians; 77 and the laurels of Richard were blasted by the prudence, or envy, of his companions. The hero, ascending a hill, and veiling his face, exclaimed with an indignant voice, “Those who are unwilling to rescue, are unworthy to view, the sepulchre of Christ!” After his return to Acre, on the news that Jaffa was surprised by the sultan, he sailed with some merchant vessels, and leaped foremost on the beach: the castle was relieved by his presence; and sixty thousand Turks and Saracens fled before his arms. The discovery of his weakness, provoked them to return in the morning; and they found him carelessly encamped before the gates with only seventeen knights and three hundred archers. Without counting their numbers, he sustained their charge; and we learn from the evidence of his enemies, that the king of England, grasping his lance, rode furiously along their front, from the right to the left wing, without meeting an adversary who dared to encounter his career. 78 Am I writing the history of Orlando or Amadis?

Philip Augustus and Richard the First were the only kings of France and England who fought under the same banners, but their holy mission was constantly disrupted by national jealousy. The two factions they supported in Palestine were more hostile to each other than to the common enemy. To the locals, the French king was seen as more dignified and powerful, and in the absence of the emperor, the Latins regarded him as their temporal leader. 71 His achievements didn’t match his fame. Philip was courageous, but his statesman side was more dominant; he quickly grew tired of sacrificing his health and interests on a barren coast. The surrender of Acre marked the beginning of his departure, and he couldn’t justify this unpopular exit by leaving the duke of Burgundy with five hundred knights and ten thousand foot soldiers for the Holy Land’s defense. The king of England, though less dignified, surpassed his rival in wealth and military fame; 72 and if heroism is limited to brutal and fierce bravery, Richard Plantagenet will rank among the heroes of his time. The memory of Cœur de Lion, the lion-hearted prince, remained cherished and celebrated by his English subjects for a long time; even sixty years later, he was honored in proverbs by the grandsons of the Turks and Saracens he fought against: his fearsome name was used by Syrian mothers to quiet their infants, and if a horse suddenly bolted off the path, the rider would exclaim, “Do you think King Richard is in that bush?” 73 His cruelty towards the Muslims stemmed from his temperament and zeal; but I can’t believe that a soldier so bold with his lance would resort to using a dagger against his brave brother Conrad of Montferrat, who was killed in Tyre by secret assassins. 74 After the surrender of Acre and Philip’s departure, the king of England led the crusaders to reclaim the coastline, adding the cities of Cæsarea and Jaffa to the remnants of the kingdom of Lusignan. A march of one hundred miles from Acre to Ascalon turned into a massive and continuous battle that lasted eleven days. Amidst the disarray, Saladin stayed on the field with seventeen guards, keeping his standard high and the sound of his bronze kettle-drum going; he rallied his troops and renewed the charge, while his preachers called out for the unitarians to bravely resist the Christian idolaters. However, the advance of these idolaters was unstoppable, and the only way the sultan could prevent them from seizing a key fortress on the Egyptian border was by demolishing the walls and buildings of Ascalon. During a harsh winter, the armies rested, but when spring came, the Franks moved within a day’s march of Jerusalem, led by the English king; his vigorous spirit intercepted a convoy of seven thousand camels. Saladin 75 had set up his station in the holy city, but it was filled with fear and discord: he fasted, prayed, preached, and offered to share the dangers of the siege, yet his Mamluks, remembering the fate of their comrades at Acre, urged the sultan with loyalty and dissent to protect his safety and their courage for the future defense of their faith and empire. 76 The Muslims were saved by the sudden, or what they considered miraculous, retreat of the Christians; 77 and Richard's laurels were tarnished by the caution or envy of his fellow leaders. The hero climbed a hill and, covering his face, exclaimed with indignation, “Those who are unwilling to rescue are unworthy to see the sepulcher of Christ!” After returning to Acre, upon hearing that Jaffa was taken by the sultan, he sailed with some merchant ships and was the first to leap onto the beach: his presence relieved the castle, and sixty thousand Turks and Saracens fled before him. When they discovered his vulnerability, they returned the next morning and found him carelessly set up before the gates with only seventeen knights and three hundred archers. Ignoring their numbers, he faced their attack; and according to evidence from his enemies, the king of England, gripping his lance, charged furiously along their front, from the right to the left wing, without facing an opponent brave enough to challenge him. 78 Am I writing the history of Orlando or Amadis?

71 (return)
[ Magnus hic apud eos, interque reges eorum tum virtute tum majestate eminens.... summus rerum arbiter, (Bohadin, p. 159.) He does not seem to have known the names either of Philip or Richard.]

71 (return)
[ Magnus here among them, standing out among their kings both in strength and in greatness.... he was the highest authority in matters, (Bohadin, p. 159.) He doesn’t appear to have known the names of either Philip or Richard.]

72 (return)
[ Rex Angliæ, præstrenuus.... rege Gallorum minor apud eos censebatur ratione regni atque dignitatis; sed tum divitiis florentior, tum bellicâ virtute multo erat celebrior, (Bohadin, p. 161.) A stranger might admire those riches; the national historians will tell with what lawless and wasteful oppression they were collected.]

72 (return)
[ Rex Angliæ, renowned.... he was regarded as less significant than the king of France in terms of kingdom and status; but at that time, he was much wealthier and more famous for his military prowess, (Bohadin, p. 161.) A visitor might be impressed by those riches; the national historians will recount the lawless and wasteful oppression that gathered them.]

73 (return)
[ Joinville, p. 17. Cuides-tu que ce soit le roi Richart?]

73 (return)
[ Joinville, p. 17. Do you think it’s King Richard?]

74 (return)
[ Yet he was guilty in the opinion of the Moslems, who attest the confession of the assassins, that they were sent by the king of England, (Bohadin, p. 225;) and his only defence is an absurd and palpable forgery, (Hist. de l’Académie des Inscriptions, tom. xv. p. 155—163,) a pretended letter from the prince of the assassins, the Sheich, or old man of the mountain, who justified Richard, by assuming to himself the guilt or merit of the murder. *

74 (return)
[ Yet he was considered guilty by the Muslims, who confirm the assassins' confession that they were sent by the king of England, (Bohadin, p. 225); and his only defense is a ridiculous and obvious forgery, (Hist. de l’Académie des Inscriptions, tom. xv. p. 155—163), a fake letter from the prince of the assassins, the Sheik, or old man of the mountain, who exonerated Richard by claiming responsibility for the murder. *

Note: * Von Hammer (Geschichte der Assassinen, p. 202) sums up against Richard, Wilken (vol. iv. p. 485) as strongly for acquittal. Michaud (vol. ii. p. 420) delivers no decided opinion. This crime was also attributed to Saladin, who is said, by an Oriental authority, (the continuator of Tabari,) to have employed the assassins to murder both Conrad and Richard. It is a melancholy admission, but it must be acknowledged, that such an act would be less inconsistent with the character of the Christian than of the Mahometan king.—M.]

Note: * Von Hammer (Geschichte der Assassinen, p. 202) summarizes against Richard, while Wilken (vol. iv. p. 485) argues strongly for his acquittal. Michaud (vol. ii. p. 420) doesn’t take a clear stance. This crime was also linked to Saladin, who, according to an Oriental source (the continuator of Tabari), allegedly hired the assassins to kill both Conrad and Richard. It’s a sad truth, but it has to be acknowledged that such an act would be less out of character for the Christian king than for the Muslim king.—M.]

75 (return)
[ See the distress and pious firmness of Saladin, as they are described by Bohadin, (p. 7—9, 235—237,) who himself harangued the defenders of Jerusalem; their fears were not unknown to the enemy, (Jacob. à Vitriaco, l. i. c. 100, p. 1123. Vinisauf, l. v. c. 50, p. 399.)]

75 (return)
[ See the distress and strong faith of Saladin, as described by Bohadin, (p. 7—9, 235—237,) who also addressed the defenders of Jerusalem; their fears were well known to the enemy, (Jacob. à Vitriaco, l. i. c. 100, p. 1123. Vinisauf, l. v. c. 50, p. 399.)]

76 (return)
[ Yet unless the sultan, or an Ayoubite prince, remained in Jerusalem, nec Cœurdi Turcis, nec Turci essent obtemperaturi Cœurdis, (Bohadin, p. 236.) He draws aside a corner of the political curtain.]

76 (return)
[ But unless the sultan or an Ayoubite prince stayed in Jerusalem, neither the Kurds nor the Turks would comply with the Kurds. (Bohadin, p. 236.) He pulls back a bit of the political curtain.]

77 (return)
[ Bohadin, (p. 237,) and even Jeffrey de Vinisauf, (l. vi. c. 1—8, p. 403—409,) ascribe the retreat to Richard himself; and Jacobus à Vitriaco observes, that in his impatience to depart, in alterum virum mutatus est, (p. 1123.) Yet Joinville, a French knight, accuses the envy of Hugh duke of Burgundy, (p. 116,) without supposing, like Matthew Paris, that he was bribed by Saladin.]

77 (return)
[ Bohadin, (p. 237,) and even Jeffrey de Vinisauf, (l. vi. c. 1—8, p. 403—409,) attribute the retreat to Richard himself; and Jacobus à Vitriaco notes that in his eagerness to leave, he became like another man, (p. 1123.) However, Joinville, a French knight, blames the jealousy of Hugh, duke of Burgundy, (p. 116,) without suggesting, like Matthew Paris, that he was bribed by Saladin.]

78 (return)
[ The expeditions to Ascalon, Jerusalem, and Jaffa, are related by Bohadin (p. 184—249) and Abulfeda, (p. 51, 52.) The author of the Itinerary, or the monk of St. Alban’s, cannot exaggerate the cadhi’s account of the prowess of Richard, (Vinisauf, l. vi. c. 14—24, p. 412—421. Hist. Major, p. 137—143;) and on the whole of this war there is a marvellous agreement between the Christian and Mahometan writers, who mutually praise the virtues of their enemies.]

78 (return)
[ The expeditions to Ascalon, Jerusalem, and Jaffa are described by Bohadin (p. 184–249) and Abulfeda (p. 51, 52). The author of the Itinerary, or the monk of St. Alban’s, cannot overstate the cadhi’s account of Richard’s accomplishments (Vinisauf, l. vi. c. 14–24, p. 412–421. Hist. Major, p. 137–143); overall, there is an impressive alignment between Christian and Muslim writers, who both commend the qualities of their adversaries.]

During these hostilities, a languid and tedious negotiation 79 between the Franks and Moslems was started, and continued, and broken, and again resumed, and again broken. Some acts of royal courtesy, the gift of snow and fruit, the exchange of Norway hawks and Arabian horses, softened the asperity of religious war: from the vicissitude of success, the monarchs might learn to suspect that Heaven was neutral in the quarrel; nor, after the trial of each other, could either hope for a decisive victory. 80 The health both of Richard and Saladin appeared to be in a declining state; and they respectively suffered the evils of distant and domestic warfare: Plantagenet was impatient to punish a perfidious rival who had invaded Normandy in his absence; and the indefatigable sultan was subdued by the cries of the people, who was the victim, and of the soldiers, who were the instruments, of his martial zeal. The first demands of the king of England were the restitution of Jerusalem, Palestine, and the true cross; and he firmly declared, that himself and his brother pilgrims would end their lives in the pious labor, rather than return to Europe with ignominy and remorse. But the conscience of Saladin refused, without some weighty compensation, to restore the idols, or promote the idolatry, of the Christians; he asserted, with equal firmness, his religious and civil claim to the sovereignty of Palestine; descanted on the importance and sanctity of Jerusalem; and rejected all terms of the establishment, or partition of the Latins. The marriage which Richard proposed, of his sister with the sultan’s brother, was defeated by the difference of faith; the princess abhorred the embraces of a Turk; and Adel, or Saphadin, would not easily renounce a plurality of wives. A personal interview was declined by Saladin, who alleged their mutual ignorance of each other’s language; and the negotiation was managed with much art and delay by their interpreters and envoys. The final agreement was equally disapproved by the zealots of both parties, by the Roman pontiff and the caliph of Bagdad. It was stipulated that Jerusalem and the holy sepulchre should be open, without tribute or vexation, to the pilgrimage of the Latin Christians; that, after the demolition of Ascalon, they should inclusively possess the sea-coast from Jaffa to Tyre; that the count of Tripoli and the prince of Antioch should be comprised in the truce; and that, during three years and three months, all hostilities should cease. The principal chiefs of the two armies swore to the observance of the treaty; but the monarchs were satisfied with giving their word and their right hand; and the royal majesty was excused from an oath, which always implies some suspicion of falsehood and dishonor. Richard embarked for Europe, to seek a long captivity and a premature grave; and the space of a few months concluded the life and glories of Saladin. The Orientals describe his edifying death, which happened at Damascus; but they seem ignorant of the equal distribution of his alms among the three religions, 81 or of the display of a shroud, instead of a standard, to admonish the East of the instability of human greatness. The unity of empire was dissolved by his death; his sons were oppressed by the stronger arm of their uncle Saphadin; the hostile interests of the sultans of Egypt, Damascus, and Aleppo, 82 were again revived; and the Franks or Latins stood and breathed, and hoped, in their fortresses along the Syrian coast.

During these conflicts, a slow and tiresome negotiation 79 between the Franks and Muslims was started, continued, broken, resumed, and broken again. Some acts of royal goodwill, like gifts of snow and fruit, and the exchange of Norwegian hawks and Arabian horses, eased the bitterness of religious war: from the ups and downs of their battles, the kings might have come to suspect that Heaven was indifferent in their feud; nor, after testing each other, could either hope for a clear victory. 80 Both Richard and Saladin seemed to be in declining health, suffering from the hardships of distant and local warfare; Plantagenet was eager to deal with a treacherous rival who had invaded Normandy while he was away; and the tireless sultan was worn down by the cries of the people, who were the victims, and the soldiers, who were the instruments, of his martial fervor. The initial demands of the king of England included the restoration of Jerusalem, Palestine, and the true cross; he firmly declared that he and his fellow pilgrims would dedicate their lives to this holy effort rather than return to Europe with shame and regret. However, Saladin's conscience would not allow him to return the holy sites or support what he viewed as Christian idol worship without significant compensation; he firmly asserted his religious and political claim over Palestine, emphasized the importance and sanctity of Jerusalem, and rejected any terms regarding the establishment or division of Latin control. The marriage proposal Richard made, uniting his sister with the sultan’s brother, fell through due to their differing faiths; the princess loathed the thought of being with a Turk, and Adel, or Saphadin, was not keen to give up his multiple wives. Saladin declined to meet in person, citing their mutual lack of understanding of each other’s languages; their negotiation was managed with considerable skill and delays by their interpreters and diplomats. The final agreement was met with disapproval from zealots on both sides, including the Roman pope and the caliph of Baghdad. It was agreed that Jerusalem and the holy sepulchre would be open, without taxes or harassment, to Latin Christian pilgrims; that, following the destruction of Ascalon, they would hold the coastline from Jaffa to Tyre; that the count of Tripoli and the prince of Antioch would be included in the truce; and that all hostilities would cease for three years and three months. The main leaders of the two armies swore to uphold the treaty, but the monarchs were satisfied with just exchanging their word and right hands; royal majesty was exempt from an oath, which always implies some suspicion of dishonesty and disgrace. Richard set sail for Europe, facing a long captivity and an early death; and within a few months, Saladin's life and glories came to an end. The people of the East tell of his dignified death in Damascus; however, they seem unaware of his equal distribution of alms among the three religions, 81 or of the display of a shroud instead of a standard, intended to remind the East of the fleeting nature of human greatness. His death led to the dissolution of the empire; his sons were crushed by the stronger hand of their uncle Saphadin; the conflicting interests of the sultans of Egypt, Damascus, and Aleppo 82 were reignited; and the Franks or Latins stood, breathing and hopeful, in their strongholds along the Syrian coast.

79 (return)
[ See the progress of negotiation and hostility in Bohadin, (p. 207—260,) who was himself an actor in the treaty. Richard declared his intention of returning with new armies to the conquest of the Holy Land; and Saladin answered the menace with a civil compliment, (Vinisauf l. vi. c. 28, p. 423.)]

79 (return)
[ See the developments in negotiation and conflict in Bohadin, (p. 207—260,) who was actively involved in the treaty. Richard announced his plan to come back with new forces to reclaim the Holy Land; and Saladin responded to the threat with a polite remark, (Vinisauf l. vi. c. 28, p. 423.)]

80 (return)
[ The most copious and original account of this holy war is Galfridi à Vinisauf, Itinerarium Regis Anglorum Richardi et aliorum in Terram Hierosolymorum, in six books, published in the iid volume of Gale’s Scriptores Hist. Anglicanæ, (p. 247—429.) Roger Hoveden and Matthew Paris afford likewise many valuable materials; and the former describes, with accuracy, the discipline and navigation of the English fleet.]

80 (return)
[ The most detailed and original account of this holy war is by Galfridi à Vinisauf, Itinerarium Regis Anglorum Richardi et aliorum in Terram Hierosolymorum, in six books, published in the second volume of Gale’s Scriptores Hist. Anglicanæ, (p. 247—429.) Roger Hoveden and Matthew Paris also provide a lot of valuable information; and the former accurately describes the discipline and navigation of the English fleet.]

81 (return)
[ Even Vertot (tom. i. p. 251) adopts the foolish notion of the indifference of Saladin, who professed the Koran with his last breath.]

81 (return)
[ Even Vertot (vol. i, p. 251) accepts the misguided idea of Saladin's indifference, who recited the Koran with his last breath.]

82 (return)
[ See the succession of the Ayoubites, in Abulpharagius, (Dynast. p. 277, &c.,) and the tables of M. De Guignes, l’Art de Vérifier les Dates, and the Bibliothèque Orientale.]

82 (return)
[ Check out the succession of the Ayoubites in Abulpharagius, (Dynast. p. 277, &c.,) and the tables from M. De Guignes, l’Art de Vérifier les Dates, and the Bibliothèque Orientale.]

The noblest monument of a conqueror’s fame, and of the terror which he inspired, is the Saladine tenth, a general tax which was imposed on the laity, and even the clergy, of the Latin church, for the service of the holy war. The practice was too lucrative to expire with the occasion: and this tribute became the foundation of all the tithes and tenths on ecclesiastical benefices, which have been granted by the Roman pontiffs to Catholic sovereigns, or reserved for the immediate use of the apostolic see. 83 This pecuniary emolument must have tended to increase the interest of the popes in the recovery of Palestine: after the death of Saladin, they preached the crusade, by their epistles, their legates, and their missionaries; and the accomplishment of the pious work might have been expected from the zeal and talents of Innocent the Third. 84 Under that young and ambitious priest, the successors of St. Peter attained the full meridian of their greatness: and in a reign of eighteen years, he exercised a despotic command over the emperors and kings, whom he raised and deposed; over the nations, whom an interdict of months or years deprived, for the offence of their rulers, of the exercise of Christian worship. In the council of the Lateran he acted as the ecclesiastical, almost as the temporal, sovereign of the East and West. It was at the feet of his legate that John of England surrendered his crown; and Innocent may boast of the two most signal triumphs over sense and humanity, the establishment of transubstantiation, and the origin of the inquisition. At his voice, two crusades, the fourth and the fifth, were undertaken; but, except a king of Hungary, the princes of the second order were at the head of the pilgrims: the forces were inadequate to the design; nor did the effects correspond with the hopes and wishes of the pope and the people. The fourth crusade was diverted from Syria to Constantinople; and the conquest of the Greek or Roman empire by the Latins will form the proper and important subject of the next chapter. In the fifth, 85 two hundred thousand Franks were landed at the eastern mouth of the Nile. They reasonably hoped that Palestine must be subdued in Egypt, the seat and storehouse of the sultan; and, after a siege of sixteen months, the Moslems deplored the loss of Damietta. But the Christian army was ruined by the pride and insolence of the legate Pelagius, who, in the pope’s name, assumed the character of general: the sickly Franks were encompassed by the waters of the Nile and the Oriental forces; and it was by the evacuation of Damietta that they obtained a safe retreat, some concessions for the pilgrims, and the tardy restitution of the doubtful relic of the true cross. The failure may in some measure be ascribed to the abuse and multiplication of the crusades, which were preached at the same time against the Pagans of Livonia, the Moors of Spain, the Albigeois of France, and the kings of Sicily of the Imperial family. 86 In these meritorious services, the volunteers might acquire at home the same spiritual indulgence, and a larger measure of temporal rewards; and even the popes, in their zeal against a domestic enemy, were sometimes tempted to forget the distress of their Syrian brethren. From the last age of the crusades they derived the occasional command of an army and revenue; and some deep reasoners have suspected that the whole enterprise, from the first synod of Placentia, was contrived and executed by the policy of Rome. The suspicion is not founded, either in nature or in fact. The successors of St. Peter appear to have followed, rather than guided, the impulse of manners and prejudice; without much foresight of the seasons, or cultivation of the soil, they gathered the ripe and spontaneous fruits of the superstition of the times. They gathered these fruits without toil or personal danger: in the council of the Lateran, Innocent the Third declared an ambiguous resolution of animating the crusaders by his example; but the pilot of the sacred vessel could not abandon the helm; nor was Palestine ever blessed with the presence of a Roman pontiff. 87

The greatest monument of a conqueror's fame and the fear he inspired is the Saladin tithe, a general tax placed on both the laity and even the clergy of the Latin church, meant for the holy war. The practice was too profitable to end with the occasion, and this tribute laid the groundwork for all the tithes and tenths on church incomes, which have been granted by the Roman popes to Catholic rulers or reserved for the direct use of the papacy. 83 This financial gain likely increased the popes' interest in reclaiming Palestine: after Saladin's death, they promoted the crusade through their letters, envoys, and missionaries; and the success of this sacred mission might have been expected due to the zeal and skills of Innocent the Third. 84 Under this young and ambitious priest, the successors of St. Peter reached their peak of power: over an eighteen-year reign, he wielded almost complete control over emperors and kings, whom he could both elevate and dethrone; over nations that he punished with years-long interdicts that halted Christian worship due to the actions of their rulers. In the council of the Lateran, he acted as both the church's and, to some extent, the temporal ruler of both the East and the West. It was at the feet of his legate that John of England gave up his crown; and Innocent can claim two of the most notable victories over common sense and humanity: the establishment of transubstantiation and the creation of the inquisition. Under his orders, two crusades, the fourth and the fifth, were launched; however, apart from a king of Hungary, the leaders were lesser princes leading the pilgrims: their forces fell short of the goal, and the outcomes did not meet the pope's and the people's hopes. The fourth crusade was redirected from Syria to Constantinople, and the Latin conquest of the Greek or Roman Empire will be the main focus of the next chapter. In the fifth, 85 two hundred thousand Franks landed at the eastern mouth of the Nile. They reasonably believed that to conquer Palestine, they had to seize Egypt, the center and stronghold of the sultan; after a sixteen-month siege, the Muslims mourned the loss of Damietta. But the Christian army was wrecked by the arrogance and overconfidence of Legate Pelagius, who, acting in the pope’s name, took on the role of general: the ailing Franks were surrounded by the Nile waters and the local forces; and it was through the evacuation of Damietta that they secured a safe retreat, gained some concessions for the pilgrims, and received the delayed return of the contested relic of the true cross. The failure can partly be attributed to the overuse and numerous crusades being called at the same time against the pagans of Livonia, the Moors in Spain, the Albigensians in France, and the kings of Sicily from the Imperial family. 86 In these noble efforts, volunteers could gain the same spiritual indulgences at home, along with greater material rewards; and even the popes, in their fervor against a domestic enemy, were sometimes inclined to overlook the struggles of their Syrian brethren. From the last era of the crusades, they gained occasional control over an army and revenue; and some thoughtful analysts have suspected that the entire undertaking, starting from the first synod of Placentia, was orchestrated by Roman strategy. However, this suspicion isn’t supported by either nature or fact. The successors of St. Peter seem to have followed rather than directed the trends and biases of the time; without much foresight or cultivation of the land, they gathered the ripe and readily available fruits of the prevailing superstitions. They collected these benefits without effort or personal risk: at the Lateran council, Innocent the Third announced a vague plan to motivate the crusaders through his own example; yet, the captain of the sacred vessel couldn’t abandon the helm; nor was Palestine ever graced by the presence of a Roman pope. 87

83 (return)
[ Thomassin (Discipline de l’Eglise, tom. iii. p. 311—374) has copiously treated of the origin, abuses, and restrictions of these tenths. A theory was started, but not pursued, that they were rightfully due to the pope, a tenth of the Levite’s tenth to the high priest, (Selden on Tithes; see his Works, vol. iii. p. ii. p. 1083.)]

83 (return)
[ Thomassin (Discipline de l’Eglise, vol. iii. pp. 311—374) extensively discussed the origins, misuse, and limitations of these tenths. There was a theory proposed but not explored that they were justly owed to the pope, as a tenth of the Levite’s tenth to the high priest, (Selden on Tithes; see his Works, vol. iii. p. ii. p. 1083.)]

84 (return)
[ See the Gesta Innocentii III. in Murat. Script. Rer. Ital., (tom. iii. p. 486—568.)]

84 (return)
[ See the Gesta Innocentii III in Murat. Script. Rer. Ital., (vol. iii. p. 486—568.)]

85 (return)
[ See the vth crusade, and the siege of Damietta, in Jacobus à Vitriaco, (l. iii. p. 1125—1149, in the Gesta Dei of Bongarsius,) an eye-witness, Bernard Thesaurarius, (in Script. Muratori, tom. vii. p. 825—846, c. 190—207,) a contemporary, and Sanutus, (Secreta Fidel Crucis, l. iii. p. xi. c. 4—9,) a diligent compiler; and of the Arabians Abulpharagius, (Dynast. p. 294,) and the Extracts at the end of Joinville, (p. 533, 537, 540, 547, &c.)]

85 (return)
[ See the fifth crusade and the siege of Damietta in Jacobus à Vitriaco, (l. iii. p. 1125—1149, in the Gesta Dei of Bongarsius), an eyewitness, Bernard Thesaurarius, (in Script. Muratori, tom. vii. p. 825—846, c. 190—207), a contemporary, and Sanutus, (Secreta Fidel Crucis, l. iii. p. xi. c. 4—9), a thorough compiler; and from the Arabians Abulpharagius, (Dynast. p. 294), and the Extracts at the end of Joinville, (p. 533, 537, 540, 547, &c.)]

86 (return)
[ To those who took the cross against Mainfroy, the pope (A.D. 1255) granted plenissimam peccatorum remissionem. Fideles mirabantur quòd tantum eis promitteret pro sanguine Christianorum effundendo quantum pro cruore infidelium aliquando, (Matthew Paris p. 785.) A high flight for the reason of the xiiith century.]

86 (return)
[ To those who joined the crusade against Mainfroy, the pope (A.D. 1255) granted complete forgiveness of their sins. The faithful were amazed that he promised them as much for the shedding of Christian blood as he did for the blood of infidels at times, (Matthew Paris p. 785.) A lofty stance for the reasoning of the 13th century.]

87 (return)
[ This simple idea is agreeable to the good sense of Mosheim, (Institut. Hist. Ecclés. p. 332,) and the fine philosophy of Hume, (Hist. of England, vol. i. p. 330.)]

87 (return)
[ This straightforward idea aligns with Mosheim's good reasoning, (Institut. Hist. Ecclés. p. 332,) and Hume's insightful philosophy, (Hist. of England, vol. i. p. 330.)]

The persons, the families, and estates of the pilgrims, were under the immediate protection of the popes; and these spiritual patrons soon claimed the prerogative of directing their operations, and enforcing, by commands and censures, the accomplishment of their vow. Frederic the Second, 88 the grandson of Barbarossa, was successively the pupil, the enemy, and the victim of the church. At the age of twenty-one years, and in obedience to his guardian Innocent the Third, he assumed the cross; the same promise was repeated at his royal and imperial coronations; and his marriage with the heiress of Jerusalem forever bound him to defend the kingdom of his son Conrad. But as Frederic advanced in age and authority, he repented of the rash engagements of his youth: his liberal sense and knowledge taught him to despise the phantoms of superstition and the crowns of Asia: he no longer entertained the same reverence for the successors of Innocent: and his ambition was occupied by the restoration of the Italian monarchy from Sicily to the Alps. But the success of this project would have reduced the popes to their primitive simplicity; and, after the delays and excuses of twelve years, they urged the emperor, with entreaties and threats, to fix the time and place of his departure for Palestine. In the harbors of Sicily and Apulia, he prepared a fleet of one hundred galleys, and of one hundred vessels, that were framed to transport and land two thousand five hundred knights, with their horses and attendants; his vassals of Naples and Germany formed a powerful army; and the number of English crusaders was magnified to sixty thousand by the report of fame. But the inevitable or affected slowness of these mighty preparations consumed the strength and provisions of the more indigent pilgrims: the multitude was thinned by sickness and desertion; and the sultry summer of Calabria anticipated the mischiefs of a Syrian campaign. At length the emperor hoisted sail at Brundusium, with a fleet and army of forty thousand men: but he kept the sea no more than three days; and his hasty retreat, which was ascribed by his friends to a grievous indisposition, was accused by his enemies as a voluntary and obstinate disobedience. For suspending his vow was Frederic excommunicated by Gregory the Ninth; for presuming, the next year, to accomplish his vow, he was again excommunicated by the same pope. 89 While he served under the banner of the cross, a crusade was preached against him in Italy; and after his return he was compelled to ask pardon for the injuries which he had suffered. The clergy and military orders of Palestine were previously instructed to renounce his communion and dispute his commands; and in his own kingdom, the emperor was forced to consent that the orders of the camp should be issued in the name of God and of the Christian republic. Frederic entered Jerusalem in triumph; and with his own hands (for no priest would perform the office) he took the crown from the altar of the holy sepulchre. But the patriarch cast an interdict on the church which his presence had profaned; and the knights of the hospital and temple informed the sultan how easily he might be surprised and slain in his unguarded visit to the River Jordan. In such a state of fanaticism and faction, victory was hopeless, and defence was difficult; but the conclusion of an advantageous peace may be imputed to the discord of the Mahometans, and their personal esteem for the character of Frederic. The enemy of the church is accused of maintaining with the miscreants an intercourse of hospitality and friendship unworthy of a Christian; of despising the barrenness of the land; and of indulging a profane thought, that if Jehovah had seen the kingdom of Naples he never would have selected Palestine for the inheritance of his chosen people. Yet Frederic obtained from the sultan the restitution of Jerusalem, of Bethlem and Nazareth, of Tyre and Sidon; the Latins were allowed to inhabit and fortify the city; an equal code of civil and religious freedom was ratified for the sectaries of Jesus and those of Mahomet; and, while the former worshipped at the holy sepulchre, the latter might pray and preach in the mosque of the temple, 90 from whence the prophet undertook his nocturnal journey to heaven. The clergy deplored this scandalous toleration; and the weaker Moslems were gradually expelled; but every rational object of the crusades was accomplished without bloodshed; the churches were restored, the monasteries were replenished; and, in the space of fifteen years, the Latins of Jerusalem exceeded the number of six thousand. This peace and prosperity, for which they were ungrateful to their benefactor, was terminated by the irruption of the strange and savage hordes of Carizmians. 91 Flying from the arms of the Moguls, those shepherds 911 of the Caspian rolled headlong on Syria; and the union of the Franks with the sultans of Aleppo, Hems, and Damascus, was insufficient to stem the violence of the torrent. Whatever stood against them was cut off by the sword, or dragged into captivity: the military orders were almost exterminated in a single battle; and in the pillage of the city, in the profanation of the holy sepulchre, the Latins confess and regret the modesty and discipline of the Turks and Saracens.

The people, families, and properties of the pilgrims were under the direct protection of the popes; and these spiritual patrons quickly claimed the right to direct their actions and enforce, through commands and punishments, the fulfillment of their vows. Frederick the Second, 88 the grandson of Barbarossa, was at different times a pupil, an enemy, and a victim of the church. At just twenty-one, and following the wishes of his guardian Innocent the Third, he took up the cross; this same promise was repeated during his royal and imperial coronations; and his marriage to the heiress of Jerusalem forever committed him to defending the kingdom of his son Conrad. However, as Frederick grew older and gained more power, he regretted the hasty promises of his youth: his broad outlook and knowledge led him to reject the illusions of superstition and the allure of eastern crowns; he no longer held the same respect for the successors of Innocent; and his ambitions focused on restoring the Italian monarchy from Sicily to the Alps. Yet accomplishing this would have reduced the popes to their original simplicity; and after twelve years of delays and excuses, they pressured the emperor, with pleas and threats, to set the time and place for his departure to Palestine. In the harbors of Sicily and Apulia, he readied a fleet of one hundred galleys and one hundred ships, designed to carry and land two thousand five hundred knights, along with their horses and attendants; his vassals from Naples and Germany formed a powerful army; and the count of English crusaders was exaggerated to sixty thousand by word of mouth. But the unavoidable or feigned slowness of these grand preparations drained the resources of the poorer pilgrims: the crowd dwindled due to illness and desertion; and the sweltering summer in Calabria foreshadowed the troubles of a Syrian campaign. Finally, the emperor set sail from Brundusium with a fleet and an army of forty thousand men: but he remained at sea for only three days; and his hasty retreat, attributed by his friends to serious illness, was accused by his enemies as a deliberate and stubborn disobedience. For delaying his vow, Frederick was excommunicated by Gregory the Ninth; and for daring, the following year, to fulfill his vow, he was again excommunicated by the same pope. 89 While serving under the cross, a crusade was declared against him in Italy; and upon his return, he was forced to seek forgiveness for the wrongs he had endured. The clergy and military orders in Palestine were already instructed to deny his authority and defy his orders; and in his own kingdom, the emperor was compelled to agree that military orders should be issued in the name of God and the Christian republic. Frederick entered Jerusalem in triumph; and with his own hands (since no priest would perform the ceremony), he took the crown from the altar of the holy sepulchre. But the patriarch placed an interdict on the church that his presence had violated; and the knights of the hospital and temple informed the sultan of how easily he could be surprised and killed during his unguarded visit to the River Jordan. In such a climate of fanaticism and faction, victory seemed impossible, and defense was challenging; but the establishment of a favorable peace could be attributed to the disunity among the Muslims and their personal respect for Frederick's character. The enemy of the church was accused of maintaining an unworthy friendship with the infidels, of dismissing the barrenness of the land, and of harboring a disrespectful idea that if Jehovah had seen the kingdom of Naples, He would never have chosen Palestine as the inheritance for His chosen people. Yet Frederick secured the return of Jerusalem, Bethlehem, Nazareth, Tyre, and Sidon from the sultan; the Latins were allowed to inhabit and fortify the city; an equal code of civil and religious freedom was guaranteed for the followers of Jesus and Muhammad; and while the former worshipped at the holy sepulchre, the latter could pray and preach in the temple mosque, 90 from where the prophet began his nocturnal journey to heaven. The clergy lamented this disgraceful tolerance; and the weaker Muslims were gradually driven out; but every rational objective of the crusades was achieved without bloodshed; the churches were restored, the monasteries were replenished; and within fifteen years, the number of Latins in Jerusalem exceeded six thousand. This peace and prosperity, for which they were ungrateful to their benefactor, came to an end with the invasion of the strange and savage hordes of the Carizmians. 91 Escaping the Mongols, these shepherds 911 from the Caspian poured violently into Syria; and the alliance between the Franks and the sultans of Aleppo, Hems, and Damascus proved insufficient to counter the onslaught. Whatever opposed them was cut down by the sword or taken captive: the military orders were nearly wiped out in a single battle; and in the plunder of the city and the desecration of the holy sepulchre, the Latins acknowledged and regretted the modesty and discipline of the Turks and Saracens.

88 (return)
[ The original materials for the crusade of Frederic II. may be drawn from Richard de St. Germano (in Muratori, Script. Rerum Ital. tom. vii. p. 1002—1013) and Matthew Paris, (p. 286, 291, 300, 302, 304.) The most rational moderns are Fleury, (Hist. Ecclés. tom. xvi.,) Vertot, (Chevaliers de Malthe, tom. i. l. iii.,) Giannone, (Istoria Civile di Napoli, tom. ii. l. xvi.,) and Muratori, (Annali d’ Italia, tom. x.)]

88 (return)
[ The original sources for the crusade of Frederic II can be found in the works of Richard de St. Germano (in Muratori, Script. Rerum Ital. vol. vii, pp. 1002—1013) and Matthew Paris (pp. 286, 291, 300, 302, 304). The most sensible modern historians include Fleury (Hist. Ecclés. vol. xvi), Vertot (Chevaliers de Malthe, vol. i, ch. iii), Giannone (Istoria Civile di Napoli, vol. ii, ch. xvi), and Muratori (Annali d’Italia, vol. x).]

89 (return)
[ Poor Muratori knows what to think, but knows not what to say: “Chino qui il capo,” &c. p. 322.]

89 (return)
[ Poor Muratori knows what to think, but doesn't know what to say: “Chino qui il capo,” &c. p. 322.]

90 (return)
[ The clergy artfully confounded the mosque or church of the temple with the holy sepulchre, and their wilful error has deceived both Vertot and Muratori.]

90 (return)
[ The clergy cleverly mixed up the mosque or church of the temple with the holy sepulchre, and their intentional mistake has misled both Vertot and Muratori.]

91 (return)
[ The irruption of the Carizmians, or Corasmins, is related by Matthew Paris, (p. 546, 547,) and by Joinville, Nangis, and the Arabians, (p. 111, 112, 191, 192, 528, 530.)]

91 (return)
[ The invasion of the Carizmians, or Corasmins, is described by Matthew Paris, (p. 546, 547,) and by Joinville, Nangis, and the Arab sources, (p. 111, 112, 191, 192, 528, 530.)]

911 (return)
[ They were in alliance with Eyub, sultan of Syria. Wilken vol. vi. p. 630.—M.]

911 (return)
[ They were allied with Eyub, the sultan of Syria. Wilken vol. vi. p. 630.—M.]

Of the seven crusades, the two last were undertaken by Louis the Ninth, king of France; who lost his liberty in Egypt, and his life on the coast of Africa. Twenty-eight years after his death, he was canonized at Rome; and sixty-five miracles were readily found, and solemnly attested, to justify the claim of the royal saint. 92 The voice of history renders a more honorable testimony, that he united the virtues of a king, a hero, and a man; that his martial spirit was tempered by the love of private and public justice; and that Louis was the father of his people, the friend of his neighbors, and the terror of the infidels. Superstition alone, in all the extent of her baleful influence, 93 corrupted his understanding and his heart: his devotion stooped to admire and imitate the begging friars of Francis and Dominic: he pursued with blind and cruel zeal the enemies of the faith; and the best of kings twice descended from his throne to seek the adventures of a spiritual knight-errant. A monkish historian would have been content to applaud the most despicable part of his character; but the noble and gallant Joinville, 94 who shared the friendship and captivity of Louis, has traced with the pencil of nature the free portrait of his virtues as well as of his failings. From this intimate knowledge we may learn to suspect the political views of depressing their great vassals, which are so often imputed to the royal authors of the crusades. Above all the princes of the middle ages, Louis the Ninth successfully labored to restore the prerogatives of the crown; but it was at home and not in the East, that he acquired for himself and his posterity: his vow was the result of enthusiasm and sickness; and if he were the promoter, he was likewise the victim, of his holy madness. For the invasion of Egypt, France was exhausted of her troops and treasures; he covered the sea of Cyprus with eighteen hundred sails; the most modest enumeration amounts to fifty thousand men; and, if we might trust his own confession, as it is reported by Oriental vanity, he disembarked nine thousand five hundred horse, and one hundred and thirty thousand foot, who performed their pilgrimage under the shadow of his power. 95

Of the seven crusades, the last two were led by Louis IX, the king of France, who lost his freedom in Egypt and his life on the coast of Africa. Twenty-eight years after his death, he was canonized in Rome; and sixty-five miracles were quickly reported and officially confirmed to support the claim of the royal saint. 92 History honors him more by recognizing that he embodied the qualities of a king, a hero, and a man; his warrior spirit was balanced by a commitment to both private and public justice; and Louis was a father to his people, a friend to his neighbors, and a fearsome enemy of the infidels. Only superstition, with all its negative influence, 93 corrupted his mind and heart: his devotion led him to admire and imitate the begging friars of Francis and Dominic; he pursued the enemies of the faith with blind and brutal fervor; and the best of kings twice left his throne to seek the adventures of a spiritual knight-errant. A monkish historian might have been satisfied to praise the worst aspects of his character; but the noble and brave Joinville, 94 who shared in Louis’s friendship and captivity, has skillfully portrayed both his virtues and shortcomings. From this close perspective, we can begin to question the political motives of diminishing their powerful vassals, which are frequently attributed to the royal instigators of the crusades. Among all the princes of the Middle Ages, Louis IX successfully worked to restore the powers of the crown; however, he did so at home and not in the East, where he gained for himself and his descendants. His vow came from a mix of enthusiasm and illness; and though he initiated it, he was also a victim of his own holy obsession. For the invasion of Egypt, France drained its soldiers and resources; he filled the sea around Cyprus with eighteen hundred ships; the most conservative count suggests he had fifty thousand men; and if we believe his own account, as reported by Oriental pride, he landed nine thousand five hundred cavalrymen and one hundred thirty thousand infantry, who undertook their pilgrimage under his command. 95

92 (return)
[ Read, if you can, the Life and Miracles of St. Louis, by the confessor of Queen Margaret, (p. 291—523. Joinville, du Louvre.)]

92 (return)
[ Read, if you can, the Life and Miracles of St. Louis, written by the confessor of Queen Margaret, (p. 291—523. Joinville, du Louvre.)]

93 (return)
[ He believed all that mother church taught, (Joinville, p. 10,) but he cautioned Joinville against disputing with infidels. “L’omme lay (said he in his old language) quand il ot medire de la loi Crestienne, ne doit pas deffendre la loi Crestienne ne mais que de l’espée, dequoi il doit donner parmi le ventre dedens, tant comme elle y peut entrer” (p. 12.)]

93 (return)
[ He believed everything that the church taught, (Joinville, p. 10,) but he warned Joinville against arguing with non-believers. “A man should not defend the Christian faith except with a sword, and he should thrust it into the belly, as far as it can go” (p. 12.)]

94 (return)
[ I have two editions of Joinville, the one (Paris, 1668) most valuable for the observations of Ducange; the other (Paris, au Louvre, 1761) most precious for the pure and authentic text, a MS. of which has been recently discovered. The last edition proves that the history of St. Louis was finished A.D. 1309, without explaining, or even admiring, the age of the author, which must have exceeded ninety years, (Preface, p. x. Observations de Ducange, p. 17.)]

94 (return)
[ I have two editions of Joinville: one (Paris, 1668) is the most valuable for Ducange's observations; the other (Paris, au Louvre, 1761) is the most treasured for its pure and authentic text, a manuscript of which has been recently found. The latest edition shows that the history of St. Louis was completed in A.D. 1309, without explaining or even acknowledging the author’s age, which must have been over ninety years. (Preface, p. x. Observations de Ducange, p. 17.)]

95 (return)
[ Joinville, p. 32. Arabic Extracts, p. 549. *

95 (return)
[ Joinville, p. 32. Arabic Extracts, p. 549. *

Note: * Compare Wilken, vol. vii. p. 94.—M.]

Note: * Compare Wilken, vol. 7, p. 94.—M.]

In complete armor, the oriflamme waving before him, Louis leaped foremost on the beach; and the strong city of Damietta, which had cost his predecessors a siege of sixteen months, was abandoned on the first assault by the trembling Moslems. But Damietta was the first and the last of his conquests; and in the fifth and sixth crusades, the same causes, almost on the same ground, were productive of similar calamities. 96 After a ruinous delay, which introduced into the camp the seeds of an epidemic disease, the Franks advanced from the sea-coast towards the capital of Egypt, and strove to surmount the unseasonable inundation of the Nile, which opposed their progress. Under the eye of their intrepid monarch, the barons and knights of France displayed their invincible contempt of danger and discipline: his brother, the count of Artois, stormed with inconsiderate valor the town of Massoura; and the carrier pigeons announced to the inhabitants of Cairo that all was lost. But a soldier, who afterwards usurped the sceptre, rallied the flying troops: the main body of the Christians was far behind the vanguard; and Artois was overpowered and slain. A shower of Greek fire was incessantly poured on the invaders; the Nile was commanded by the Egyptian galleys, the open country by the Arabs; all provisions were intercepted; each day aggravated the sickness and famine; and about the same time a retreat was found to be necessary and impracticable. The Oriental writers confess, that Louis might have escaped, if he would have deserted his subjects; he was made prisoner, with the greatest part of his nobles; all who could not redeem their lives by service or ransom were inhumanly massacred; and the walls of Cairo were decorated with a circle of Christian heads. 97 The king of France was loaded with chains; but the generous victor, a great-grandson of the brother of Saladin, sent a robe of honor to his royal captive, and his deliverance, with that of his soldiers, was obtained by the restitution of Damietta 98 and the payment of four hundred thousand pieces of gold. In a soft and luxurious climate, the degenerate children of the companions of Noureddin and Saladin were incapable of resisting the flower of European chivalry: they triumphed by the arms of their slaves or Mamalukes, the hardy natives of Tartary, who at a tender age had been purchased of the Syrian merchants, and were educated in the camp and palace of the sultan. But Egypt soon afforded a new example of the danger of prætorian bands; and the rage of these ferocious animals, who had been let loose on the strangers, was provoked to devour their benefactor. In the pride of conquest, Touran Shaw, the last of his race, was murdered by his Mamalukes; and the most daring of the assassins entered the chamber of the captive king, with drawn cimeters, and their hands imbrued in the blood of their sultan. The firmness of Louis commanded their respect; 99 their avarice prevailed over cruelty and zeal; the treaty was accomplished; and the king of France, with the relics of his army, was permitted to embark for Palestine. He wasted four years within the walls of Acre, unable to visit Jerusalem, and unwilling to return without glory to his native country.

In full armor, with the oriflamme waving in front of him, Louis jumped onto the beach first; and the strong city of Damietta, which had taken his predecessors sixteen months to besiege, was given up on the first attack by the frightened Muslims. But Damietta was both his first and last conquest; and in the fifth and sixth crusades, the same factors, almost in the same location, led to similar disasters. 96 After a damaging delay that introduced an epidemic into the camp, the Franks moved from the coast towards the capital of Egypt, attempting to deal with the untimely flooding of the Nile, which hampered their advance. Under the watchful eye of their fearless king, the barons and knights of France showed their unyielding disregard for danger and discipline: his brother, the Count of Artois, recklessly attacked the town of Massoura; and the carrier pigeons informed the people of Cairo that all was lost. But a soldier, who later seized the throne, rallied the fleeing troops: the main body of the Christians lagged far behind the front line; and Artois was overwhelmed and killed. A constant barrage of Greek fire was unleashed on the invaders; the Nile was controlled by Egyptian ships, and the surrounding countryside by the Arabs; all food supplies were cut off; each passing day worsened the sickness and starvation; and about the same time, a retreat became both necessary and impossible. Eastern writers admit that Louis could have escaped if he had abandoned his subjects; he was captured, along with most of his nobles; anyone who couldn't save themselves through service or ransom was brutally slaughtered; and the walls of Cairo were adorned with a ring of Christian heads. 97 The king of France was shackled; but the generous victor, a great-grandson of Saladin's brother, sent a robe of honor to his royal prisoner, and his release, along with that of his soldiers, was secured by the return of Damietta 98 and the payment of four hundred thousand gold pieces. In a warm and lavish climate, the weakened descendants of the companions of Noureddin and Saladin couldn’t withstand the best of European chivalry: they relied on their slaves or Mamluks, the tough natives of Tartary, who had been bought young from Syrian merchants, and were raised in the camp and palace of the sultan. But Egypt soon showed a new example of the risks posed by praetorian bands; and the fury of these wild beasts, once unleashed on the foreigners, turned against their benefactor. In the arrogance of victory, Touran Shaw, the last of his line, was killed by his Mamluks; and the boldest of the assassins entered the captive king’s room with drawn sabers, their hands stained with the blood of their sultan. The resolve of Louis earned their respect; 99 their greed outweighed their cruelty and zeal; the treaty was completed; and the king of France, along with the remnants of his army, was allowed to sail for Palestine. He spent four years within the walls of Acre, unable to visit Jerusalem, and unwilling to return home without glory.

96 (return)
[ The last editors have enriched their Joinville with large and curious extracts from the Arabic historians, Macrizi, Abulfeda, &c. See likewise Abulpharagius, (Dynast. p. 322—325,) who calls him by the corrupt name of Redefrans. Matthew Paris (p. 683, 684) has described the rival folly of the French and English who fought and fell at Massoura.]

96 (return)
[ The recent editors have enhanced their version of Joinville with extensive and interesting excerpts from the Arabic historians, like Macrizi and Abulfeda, etc. Also, see Abulpharagius, (Dynast. p. 322—325,) who refers to him by the incorrect name of Redefrans. Matthew Paris (p. 683, 684) has detailed the competing foolishness of the French and English who battled and perished at Massoura.]

97 (return)
[ Savary, in his agreeable Letters sur L’Egypte, has given a description of Damietta, (tom. i. lettre xxiii. p. 274—290,) and a narrative of the exposition of St. Louis, (xxv. p. 306—350.)]

97 (return)
[ Savary, in his enjoyable Letters on Egypt, describes Damietta (vol. i, letter xxiii, pp. 274–290) and tells the story of the exposition of St. Louis (pp. 306–350).]

98 (return)
[ For the ransom of St. Louis, a million of byzants was asked and granted; but the sultan’s generosity reduced that sum to 800,000 byzants, which are valued by Joinville at 400,000 French livres of his own time, and expressed by Matthew Paris by 100,000 marks of silver, (Ducange, Dissertation xx. sur Joinville.)]

98 (return)
[ For the ransom of St. Louis, a million byzants was requested and agreed upon; however, the sultan's generosity lowered that amount to 800,000 byzants, which Joinville valued at 400,000 French livres of his time, and Matthew Paris described as 100,000 marks of silver, (Ducange, Dissertation xx. sur Joinville.)]

99 (return)
[ The idea of the emirs to choose Louis for their sultan is seriously attested by Joinville, (p. 77, 78,) and does not appear to me so absurd as to M. de Voltaire, (Hist. Générale, tom. ii. p. 386, 387.) The Mamalukes themselves were strangers, rebels, and equals: they had felt his valor, they hoped his conversion; and such a motion, which was not seconded, might be made, perhaps by a secret Christian in their tumultuous assembly. *

99 (return)
[ The idea that the emirs wanted to choose Louis as their sultan is well-documented by Joinville, (p. 77, 78), and I don’t find it as ridiculous as M. de Voltaire does, (Hist. Générale, tom. ii. p. 386, 387.) The Mamalukes themselves were outsiders, rebels, and on equal footing: they had experienced his bravery, and they hoped for his conversion; and such a proposal, which did not gain support, might have come, perhaps, from a secret Christian among their chaotic gathering. *

Note: * Wilken, vol. vii. p. 257, thinks the proposition could not have been made in earnest.—M.]

Note: * Wilken, vol. vii. p. 257, believes the proposition couldn't have been made sincerely.—M.]

The memory of his defeat excited Louis, after sixteen years of wisdom and repose, to undertake the seventh and last of the crusades. His finances were restored, his kingdom was enlarged; a new generation of warriors had arisen, and he advanced with fresh confidence at the head of six thousand horse and thirty thousand foot. The loss of Antioch had provoked the enterprise; a wild hope of baptizing the king of Tunis tempted him to steer for the African coast; and the report of an immense treasure reconciled his troops to the delay of their voyage to the Holy Land. Instead of a proselyte, he found a siege: the French panted and died on the burning sands: St. Louis expired in his tent; and no sooner had he closed his eyes, than his son and successor gave the signal of the retreat. 100 “It is thus,” says a lively writer, “that a Christian king died near the ruins of Carthage, waging war against the sectaries of Mahomet, in a land to which Dido had introduced the deities of Syria.” 101

The memory of his defeat motivated Louis, after sixteen years of wisdom and peace, to launch the seventh and final crusade. His finances were back on track, his kingdom had grown; a new generation of warriors had emerged, and he moved forward with renewed confidence leading six thousand cavalry and thirty thousand infantry. The loss of Antioch had spurred the mission; a wild hope of baptizing the king of Tunis lured him to head for the African coast; and the promise of immense treasure kept his troops motivated despite the delay of their journey to the Holy Land. Instead of converting someone, he encountered a siege: the French struggled and died on the scorching sands: St. Louis passed away in his tent; and no sooner had he closed his eyes than his son and successor signaled the retreat. 100 “It is thus,” says a lively writer, “that a Christian king died near the ruins of Carthage, waging war against the sectarians of Mahomet, in a land to which Dido had introduced the deities of Syria.” 101

100 (return)
[ See the expedition in the annals of St. Louis, by William de Nangis, p. 270—287; and the Arabic extracts, p. 545, 555, of the Louvre edition of Joinville.]

100 (return)
[ Check out the expedition in the records of St. Louis, by William de Nangis, pp. 270–287; and the Arabic excerpts, pp. 545, 555, from the Louvre edition of Joinville.]

101 (return)
[ Voltaire, Hist. Générale, tom. ii. p. 391.]

101 (return)
[ Voltaire, Hist. Générale, vol. 2, p. 391.]

A more unjust and absurd constitution cannot be devised than that which condemns the natives of a country to perpetual servitude, under the arbitrary dominion of strangers and slaves. Yet such has been the state of Egypt above five hundred years. The most illustrious sultans of the Baharite and Borgite dynasties 102 were themselves promoted from the Tartar and Circassian bands; and the four-and-twenty beys, or military chiefs, have ever been succeeded, not by their sons, but by their servants. They produce the great charter of their liberties, the treaty of Selim the First with the republic: 103 and the Othman emperor still accepts from Egypt a slight acknowledgment of tribute and subjection. With some breathing intervals of peace and order, the two dynasties are marked as a period of rapine and bloodshed: 104 but their throne, however shaken, reposed on the two pillars of discipline and valor: their sway extended over Egypt, Nubia, Arabia, and Syria: their Mamalukes were multiplied from eight hundred to twenty-five thousand horse; and their numbers were increased by a provincial militia of one hundred and seven thousand foot, and the occasional aid of sixty-six thousand Arabs. 105 Princes of such power and spirit could not long endure on their coast a hostile and independent nation; and if the ruin of the Franks was postponed about forty years, they were indebted to the cares of an unsettled reign, to the invasion of the Moguls, and to the occasional aid of some warlike pilgrims. Among these, the English reader will observe the name of our first Edward, who assumed the cross in the lifetime of his father Henry. At the head of a thousand soldiers the future conqueror of Wales and Scotland delivered Acre from a siege; marched as far as Nazareth with an army of nine thousand men; emulated the fame of his uncle Richard; extorted, by his valor, a ten years’ truce; 1051 and escaped, with a dangerous wound, from the dagger of a fanatic assassin. 106 1061 Antioch, 107 whose situation had been less exposed to the calamities of the holy war, was finally occupied and ruined by Bondocdar, or Bibars, sultan of Egypt and Syria; the Latin principality was extinguished; and the first seat of the Christian name was dispeopled by the slaughter of seventeen, and the captivity of one hundred, thousand of her inhabitants. The maritime towns of Laodicea, Gabala, Tripoli, Berytus, Sidon, Tyre and Jaffa, and the stronger castles of the Hospitallers and Templars, successively fell; and the whole existence of the Franks was confined to the city and colony of St. John of Acre, which is sometimes described by the more classic title of Ptolemais.

A more unjust and ridiculous constitution cannot be created than one that forces the natives of a country into endless servitude, under the arbitrary rule of outsiders and slaves. Yet, this has been the reality in Egypt for over five hundred years. The most notable sultans from the Baharite and Borgite dynasties 102 came from Tartar and Circassian groups; and the twenty-four beys, or military leaders, were always succeeded, not by their sons, but by their servants. They reference their great charter of liberties, the treaty of Selim the First with the republic: 103 and the Ottoman emperor still accepts a small acknowledgment of tribute and subjection from Egypt. With some brief periods of peace and order, these two dynasties are characterized by a history of plunder and violence: 104 but their throne, despite being shaken, rested on the foundations of discipline and valor: their rule extended over Egypt, Nubia, Arabia, and Syria: their Mamluks grew from eight hundred to twenty-five thousand cavalry; and their forces were bolstered by a provincial militia of one hundred and seven thousand infantry, with the occasional support of sixty-six thousand Arabs. 105 Leaders of such power and resolve could not tolerate a hostile and independent nation near their coast for long; and if the downfall of the Franks was delayed by about forty years, it was due to the troubles of an unstable reign, the invasion of the Mongols, and occasional assistance from some combative pilgrims. Among these, the English reader will notice the name of our first Edward, who took up the cross during his father Henry's lifetime. Leading a thousand soldiers, the future conqueror of Wales and Scotland rescued Acre from a siege; marched as far as Nazareth with an army of nine thousand men; emulated his uncle Richard's fame; secured a ten-year truce through his bravery; 1051 and narrowly escaped a lethal wound from a fanatic's dagger assassin. 106 1061 Antioch, 107 which had been less affected by the hardships of the holy war, was ultimately occupied and destroyed by Bondocdar, or Bibars, sultan of Egypt and Syria; the Latin principality was extinguished; and the first stronghold of the Christian name was depopulated by the massacre of seventeen and the capture of one hundred thousand of its inhabitants. The coastal towns of Laodicea, Gabala, Tripoli, Berytus, Sidon, Tyre, and Jaffa, along with the fortified castles of the Hospitallers and Templars, fell one after another; and the entire presence of the Franks was reduced to the city and colony of St. John of Acre, which is sometimes known by the more classical name of Ptolemais.

102 (return)
[ The chronology of the two dynasties of Mamalukes, the Baharites, Turks or Tartars of Kipzak, and the Borgites, Circassians, is given by Pocock (Prolegom. ad Abulpharag. p. 6—31) and De Guignes (tom. i. p. 264—270;) their history from Abulfeda, Macrizi, &c., to the beginning of the xvth century, by the same M. De Guignes, (tom. iv. p. 110—328.)]

102 (return)
[ The timeline of the two dynasties of Mamluks, the Bahrites, Turks or Tartars of Kipzak, and the Borgites, Circassians, is provided by Pocock (Prolegom. ad Abulpharag. p. 6—31) and De Guignes (vol. i. p. 264—270); their history from Abulfeda, Macrizi, etc., to the start of the 15th century, is also covered by the same M. De Guignes (vol. iv. p. 110—328.)]

103 (return)
[ Savary, Lettres sur l’Egypte, tom. ii. lettre xv. p. 189—208. I much question the authenticity of this copy; yet it is true, that Sultan Selim concluded a treaty with the Circassians or Mamalukes of Egypt, and left them in possession of arms, riches, and power. See a new Abrégé de l’Histoire Ottomane, composed in Egypt, and translated by M. Digeon, (tom. i. p. 55—58, Paris, 1781,) a curious, authentic, and national history.]

103 (return)
[ Savary, Letters on Egypt, vol. ii, letter xv, pp. 189—208. I really doubt the authenticity of this copy; however, it is true that Sultan Selim made a treaty with the Circassians or Mamluks of Egypt and left them with arms, wealth, and power. See a new Summary of Ottoman History, composed in Egypt and translated by M. Digeon, (vol. i, pp. 55—58, Paris, 1781), an interesting, authentic, and national history.]

104 (return)
[ Si totum quo regnum occupârunt tempus respicias, præsertim quod fini propius, reperies illud bellis, pugnis, injuriis, ac rapinis refertum, (Al Jannabi, apud Pocock, p. 31.) The reign of Mohammed (A.D. 1311—1341) affords a happy exception, (De Guignes, tom. iv. p. 208—210.)]

104 (return)
[ If you look back at the entire time the kingdom was occupied, especially towards the end, you'll find it filled with wars, battles, injustices, and plunder, (Al Jannabi, apud Pocock, p. 31.) The reign of Mohammed (A.D. 1311—1341) is a notable exception, (De Guignes, tom. iv. p. 208—210.)]

105 (return)
[ They are now reduced to 8500: but the expense of each Mamaluke may be rated at a hundred louis: and Egypt groans under the avarice and insolence of these strangers, (Voyages de Volney, tom. i. p. 89—187.)]

105 (return)
[ They are now down to 8500: but the cost of each Mamaluke can be estimated at a hundred louis: and Egypt suffers under the greed and arrogance of these outsiders, (Voyages de Volney, tom. i. p. 89—187.)]

1051 (return)
[ Gibbon colors rather highly the success of Edward. Wilken is more accurate vol. vii. p. 593, &c.—M.]

1051 (return)
[ Gibbon portrays Edward's success in a rather exaggerated way. Wilken provides a more accurate account vol. vii. p. 593, &c.—M.]

106 (return)
[ See Carte’s History of England, vol. ii. p. 165—175, and his original authors, Thomas Wikes and Walter Hemingford, (l. iii. c. 34, 35,) in Gale’s Collection, (tom. ii. p. 97, 589—592.) They are both ignorant of the princess Eleanor’s piety in sucking the poisoned wound, and saving her husband at the risk of her own life.]

106 (return)
[ See Carte’s History of England, vol. ii. p. 165—175, and his original sources, Thomas Wikes and Walter Hemingford, (l. iii. c. 34, 35,) in Gale’s Collection, (tom. ii. p. 97, 589—592.) They are both unaware of Princess Eleanor’s devotion in sucking the poisoned wound and saving her husband at the risk of her own life.]

1061 (return)
[ The sultan Bibars was concerned in this attempt at assassination Wilken, vol. vii. p. 602. Ptolemæus Lucensis is the earliest authority for the devotion of Eleanora. Ibid. 605.—M.]

1061 (return)
[ Sultan Bibars was worried about this assassination attempt Wilken, vol. vii. p. 602. Ptolemæus Lucensis is the first source that mentions Eleanora's loyalty. Ibid. 605.—M.]

107 (return)
[ Sanutus, Secret. Fidelium Crucis, 1. iii. p. xii. c. 9, and De Guignes, Hist. des Huns, tom. iv. p. 143, from the Arabic historians.]

107 (return)
[ Sanutus, Secret. Fidelium Crucis, 1. iii. p. xii. c. 9, and De Guignes, Hist. des Huns, vol. iv. p. 143, from the Arabic historians.]

After the loss of Jerusalem, Acre, 108 which is distant about seventy miles, became the metropolis of the Latin Christians, and was adorned with strong and stately buildings, with aqueducts, an artificial port, and a double wall. The population was increased by the incessant streams of pilgrims and fugitives: in the pauses of hostility the trade of the East and West was attracted to this convenient station; and the market could offer the produce of every clime and the interpreters of every tongue. But in this conflux of nations, every vice was propagated and practised: of all the disciples of Jesus and Mahomet, the male and female inhabitants of Acre were esteemed the most corrupt; nor could the abuse of religion be corrected by the discipline of law. The city had many sovereigns, and no government. The kings of Jerusalem and Cyprus, of the house of Lusignan, the princes of Antioch, the counts of Tripoli and Sidon, the great masters of the hospital, the temple, and the Teutonic order, the republics of Venice, Genoa, and Pisa, the pope’s legate, the kings of France and England, assumed an independent command: seventeen tribunals exercised the power of life and death; every criminal was protected in the adjacent quarter; and the perpetual jealousy of the nations often burst forth in acts of violence and blood. Some adventurers, who disgraced the ensign of the cross, compensated their want of pay by the plunder of the Mahometan villages: nineteen Syrian merchants, who traded under the public faith, were despoiled and hanged by the Christians; and the denial of satisfaction justified the arms of the sultan Khalil. He marched against Acre, at the head of sixty thousand horse and one hundred and forty thousand foot: his train of artillery (if I may use the word) was numerous and weighty: the separate timbers of a single engine were transported in one hundred wagons; and the royal historian Abulfeda, who served with the troops of Hamah, was himself a spectator of the holy war. Whatever might be the vices of the Franks, their courage was rekindled by enthusiasm and despair; but they were torn by the discord of seventeen chiefs, and overwhelmed on all sides by the powers of the sultan. After a siege of thirty three days, the double wall was forced by the Moslems; the principal tower yielded to their engines; the Mamalukes made a general assault; the city was stormed; and death or slavery was the lot of sixty thousand Christians. The convent, or rather fortress, of the Templars resisted three days longer; but the great master was pierced with an arrow; and, of five hundred knights, only ten were left alive, less happy than the victims of the sword, if they lived to suffer on a scaffold, in the unjust and cruel proscription of the whole order. The king of Jerusalem, the patriarch and the great master of the hospital, effected their retreat to the shore; but the sea was rough, the vessels were insufficient; and great numbers of the fugitives were drowned before they could reach the Isle of Cyprus, which might comfort Lusignan for the loss of Palestine. By the command of the sultan, the churches and fortifications of the Latin cities were demolished: a motive of avarice or fear still opened the holy sepulchre to some devout and defenceless pilgrims; and a mournful and solitary silence prevailed along the coast which had so long resounded with the world’s debate. 109

After the fall of Jerusalem, Acre, 108 which is about seventy miles away, became the main city for Latin Christians. It was filled with impressive buildings, aqueducts, an artificial port, and a double wall. The population grew due to the steady influx of pilgrims and refugees; during breaks in hostilities, trade between the East and West flourished in this convenient hub, where the market offered goods from everywhere and interpreters for every language. However, this mix of cultures also spread and encouraged every vice: among all the followers of Jesus and Muhammad, the people of Acre were considered the most morally corrupt, and the misuse of religion couldn't be corrected by law. The city had many rulers but no real government. The kings of Jerusalem and Cyprus, from the house of Lusignan, princes of Antioch, counts of Tripoli and Sidon, the grand masters of the hospital, temple, and Teutonic orders, republics of Venice, Genoa, and Pisa, the pope’s legate, and the kings of France and England all exercised their own independent power: seventeen courts held the power over life and death; every criminal found protection in nearby areas; and the constant jealousy among nations often erupted into violence and bloodshed. Some adventurers, who dishonored the cross, made up for their lack of pay by looting Muslim villages: nineteen Syrian merchants, who traded under the public trust, were robbed and hanged by Christians; and their demand for justice justified the actions of Sultan Khalil. He marched against Acre with sixty thousand cavalry and one hundred forty thousand infantry: his artillery was heavy and numerous: the parts of a single siege engine were transported in one hundred wagons; and the royal historian Abulfeda, who served with the troops of Hamah, witnessed the holy war himself. Despite the Franks' vices, their courage was fueled by passion and despair; but they were divided by the discord of seventeen leaders and overwhelmed on all sides by the sultan’s forces. After a thirty-three day siege, the Muslims breached the double wall; the main tower fell to their siege engines; the Mamelukes launched a full assault; the city was stormed; and death or slavery awaited sixty thousand Christians. The convent, or rather fortress, of the Templars held out for three more days; but the grand master was struck by an arrow; and out of five hundred knights, only ten survived, less fortunate than those who died by the sword, if they lived only to face execution in the unjust and cruel persecution of the entire order. The king of Jerusalem, the patriarch, and the grand master of the hospital managed to escape to the shore; but the sea was rough, the ships were inadequate; and many of the fleeing were drowned before reaching the Isle of Cyprus, which might provide some comfort to Lusignan after losing Palestine. Under the sultan's orders, the churches and fortifications of the Latin cities were destroyed: either greed or fear still allowed some devoted and defenseless pilgrims access to the holy sepulchre; and a mournful, lonely silence settled over the coast that had once echoed with the world's disputes. 109

108 (return)
[ The state of Acre is represented in all the chronicles of te times, and most accurately in John Villani, l. vii. c. 144, in Muratori, Scriptores Rerum Italicarum, tom. xiii. 337, 338.]

108 (return)
[ The state of Acre is mentioned in all the historical accounts of the period, most notably in John Villani, book VII, chapter 144, as referenced in Muratori, Scriptores Rerum Italicarum, volume XIII, pages 337 and 338.]

109 (return)
[ See the final expulsion of the Franks, in Sanutus, l. iii. p. xii. c. 11—22; Abulfeda, Macrizi, &c., in De Guignes, tom. iv. p. 162, 164; and Vertot, tom. i. l. iii. p. 307—428. *

109 (return)
[ See the final expulsion of the Franks, in Sanutus, l. iii. p. xii. c. 11—22; Abulfeda, Macrizi, etc., in De Guignes, vol. iv. p. 162, 164; and Vertot, vol. i. l. iii. p. 307—428. *

Note: * After these chapters of Gibbon, the masterly prize composition, “Essai sur ‘Influence des Croisades sur l’Europe,” par A H. L. Heeren: traduit de l’Allemand par Charles Villars, Paris, 1808,’ or the original German, in Heeren’s “Vermischte Schriften,” may be read with great advantage.—M.]

Note: * After these chapters by Gibbon, the excellent prize essay, “Essay on the Influence of the Crusades on Europe,” by A.H.L. Heeren: translated from German by Charles Villars, Paris, 1808, or the original German in Heeren’s “Vermischte Schriften,” can be read with great benefit.—M.]

Chapter LX: The Fourth Crusade.—Part I.

     Schism Of The Greeks And Latins.—State Of Constantinople.—
     Revolt Of The Bulgarians.—Isaac Angelus Dethroned By His
     Brother Alexius.—Origin Of The Fourth Crusade.—Alliance Of
     The French And Venetians With The Son Of Isaac.—Their Naval
     Expedition To Constantinople.—The Two Sieges And Final
     Conquest Of The City By The Latins.
     Schism Of The Greeks And Latins.—State Of Constantinople.—
     Revolt Of The Bulgarians.—Isaac Angelus Dethroned By His
     Brother Alexius.—Origin Of The Fourth Crusade.—Alliance Of
     The French And Venetians With The Son Of Isaac.—Their Naval
     Expedition To Constantinople.—The Two Sieges And Final
     Conquest Of The City By The Latins.

The restoration of the Western empire by Charlemagne was speedily followed by the separation of the Greek and Latin churches. 1 A religious and national animosity still divides the two largest communions of the Christian world; and the schism of Constantinople,

The restoration of the Western empire by Charlemagne was quickly followed by the split between the Greek and Latin churches. 1 A religious and national rivalry still separates the two largest communities in the Christian world; and the schism of Constantinople,

by alienating her most useful allies, and provoking her most dangerous

by distancing herself from her most valuable allies and inciting her biggest threats

enemies, has precipitated the decline and fall of the Roman empire in the East.

enemies, has led to the decline and fall of the Roman Empire in the East.

1 (return)
[ In the successive centuries, from the ixth to the xviiith, Mosheim traces the schism of the Greeks with learning, clearness, and impartiality; the filioque (Institut. Hist. Ecclés. p. 277,) Leo III. p. 303 Photius, p. 307, 308. Michael Cerularius, p. 370, 371, &c.]

1 (return)
[ Over the centuries, from the 9th to the 18th, Mosheim outlines the split between the Greeks with clarity, fairness, and insight; the filioque (Institut. Hist. Ecclés. p. 277,) Leo III. p. 303 Photius, p. 307, 308. Michael Cerularius, p. 370, 371, &c.]

In the course of the present History, the aversion of the Greeks for the Latins has been often visible and conspicuous. It was originally derived from the disdain of servitude, inflamed, after the time of Constantine, by the pride of equality or dominion; and finally exasperated by the preference which their rebellious subjects had given to the alliance of the Franks. In every age the Greeks were proud of their superiority in profane and religious knowledge: they had first received the light of Christianity; they had pronounced the decrees of the seven general councils; they alone possessed the language of Scripture and philosophy; nor should the Barbarians, immersed in the darkness of the West, 2 presume to argue on the high and mysterious questions of theological science. Those Barbarians despised in then turn the restless and subtile levity of the Orientals, the authors of every heresy; and blessed their own simplicity, which was content to hold the tradition of the apostolic church. Yet in the seventh century, the synods of Spain, and afterwards of France, improved or corrupted the Nicene creed, on the mysterious subject of the third person of the Trinity. 3 In the long controversies of the East, the nature and generation of the Christ had been scrupulously defined; and the well-known relation of father and son seemed to convey a faint image to the human mind. The idea of birth was less analogous to the Holy Spirit, who, instead of a divine gift or attribute, was considered by the Catholics as a substance, a person, a god; he was not begotten, but in the orthodox style he proceeded. Did he proceed from the Father alone, perhaps by the Son? or from the Father and the Son? The first of these opinions was asserted by the Greeks, the second by the Latins; and the addition to the Nicene creed of the word filioque, kindled the flame of discord between the Oriental and the Gallic churches. In the origin of the disputes the Roman pontiffs affected a character of neutrality and moderation: 4 they condemned the innovation, but they acquiesced in the sentiment, of their Transalpine brethren: they seemed desirous of casting a veil of silence and charity over the superfluous research; and in the correspondence of Charlemagne and Leo the Third, the pope assumes the liberality of a statesman, and the prince descends to the passions and prejudices of a priest. 5 But the orthodoxy of Rome spontaneously obeyed the impulse of the temporal policy; and the filioque, which Leo wished to erase, was transcribed in the symbol and chanted in the liturgy of the Vatican. The Nicene and Athanasian creeds are held as the Catholic faith, without which none can be saved; and both Papists and Protestants must now sustain and return the anathemas of the Greeks, who deny the procession of the Holy Ghost from the Son, as well as from the Father. Such articles of faith are not susceptible of treaty; but the rules of discipline will vary in remote and independent churches; and the reason, even of divines, might allow, that the difference is inevitable and harmless. The craft or superstition of Rome has imposed on her priests and deacons the rigid obligation of celibacy; among the Greeks it is confined to the bishops; the loss is compensated by dignity or annihilated by age; and the parochial clergy, the papas, enjoy the conjugal society of the wives whom they have married before their entrance into holy orders. A question concerning the Azyms was fiercely debated in the eleventh century, and the essence of the Eucharist was supposed in the East and West to depend on the use of leavened or unleavened bread. Shall I mention in a serious history the furious reproaches that were urged against the Latins, who for a long while remained on the defensive? They neglected to abstain, according to the apostolical decree, from things strangled, and from blood: they fasted (a Jewish observance!) on the Saturday of each week: during the first week of Lent they permitted the use of milk and cheese; 6 their infirm monks were indulged in the taste of flesh; and animal grease was substituted for the want of vegetable oil: the holy chrism or unction in baptism was reserved to the episcopal order: the bishops, as the bridegrooms of their churches, were decorated with rings; their priests shaved their faces, and baptized by a single immersion. Such were the crimes which provoked the zeal of the patriarchs of Constantinople; and which were justified with equal zeal by the doctors of the Latin church. 7

In this history, the Greeks' dislike for the Latins has often been obvious and striking. It originally came from their disdain for servitude, which, after the time of Constantine, was fueled by a desire for equality or dominance, and was finally worsened by the preference shown by their rebellious subjects for an alliance with the Franks. Throughout history, the Greeks took pride in their superiority in both secular and religious knowledge: they were the first to embrace Christianity; they established the decrees of the seven general councils; they alone had the language of Scripture and philosophy; and they believed that the Barbarians, lost in the darkness of the West, shouldn't presume to discuss the profound and complex issues of theology. In return, those Barbarians looked down upon the restless and subtle lightness of the Orientals, who were blamed for every heresy, and valued their own simplicity, content only to uphold the traditions of the apostolic church. However, in the seventh century, the synods in Spain, followed by those in France, altered or corrupted the Nicene creed regarding the intricate topic of the Holy Spirit. During the lengthy debates in the East, the nature and generation of Christ had been carefully defined, and the familiar relationship of father and son seemed to offer a vague image to the human mind. The notion of birth was less fitting for the Holy Spirit, who, rather than being a divine gift or attribute, was viewed by Catholics as a substance, a person, a god; he was not begotten but, according to orthodox language, he proceeded. Did he proceed from the Father alone, perhaps by the Son? Or from both the Father and the Son? The Greeks held the first opinion, while the Latins supported the second; and the addition of the word filioque to the Nicene creed ignited the flames of discord between the Eastern and Gallic churches. Initially, the Roman popes maintained a stance of neutrality and moderation: 4 they condemned the change, but still aligned with the views of their brethren across the Alps; they attempted to cover the unnecessary inquiries with silence and charity, and in the correspondence between Charlemagne and Leo the Third, the pope adopted the outlook of a statesman, while the prince succumbed to the emotions and biases of a priest. 5 However, the orthodoxy of Rome naturally followed the direction of secular policy; and the filioque, which Leo wanted to remove, was still included in the symbol and recited in the Vatican liturgy. The Nicene and Athanasian creeds are recognized as the Catholic faith, without which no one can be saved; and both Catholics and Protestants now must uphold and endure the anathemas of the Greeks, who deny that the Holy Spirit proceeds from the Son as well as from the Father. Such articles of faith cannot be negotiated; however, the rules of discipline may differ among distant and independent churches; and even theologians might agree that the differences are inevitable and harmless. The practices or superstitions of Rome have enforced a strict rule of celibacy on her priests and deacons; among the Greeks, this is only applicable to bishops; any loss is mitigated by dignity or diminished by age; and the parish clergy, or papas, enjoy the company of their wives, whom they married before entering holy orders. A contentious debate over the Azyms raged in the eleventh century, with both East and West believing that the essence of the Eucharist depended on the use of leavened versus unleavened bread. Should I seriously recount the heated accusations aimed at the Latins, who were on the defensive for a long time? They failed to abstain according to the apostolic decree from food that had been strangled and from blood; they fasted (a Jewish practice!) on Saturdays; during the first week of Lent, they allowed milk and cheese; 6 their sick monks were permitted to eat meat; and animal fat was used instead of vegetable oil; the holy chrism or anointing during baptism was reserved for bishops; bishops, as the husbands of their churches, were adorned with rings; their priests shaved their faces and baptized just once. These were the issues that ignited the zeal of the patriarchs of Constantinople, and they were defended just as passionately by the scholars of the Latin church. 7

2 (return)
[ ''AndreV dussebeiV kai apotropaioi, andreV ek sktouV anadunteV, thV gar 'Esperiou moiraV uphrcon gennhmata, (Phot. Epist. p. 47, edit. Montacut.) The Oriental patriarch continues to apply the images of thunder, earthquake, hail, wild boar, precursors of Antichrist, &c., &c.]

2 (return)
[ ''Men who are strong and protective, men rising from the shadows, for they were the offspring of the ‘Western fate,’ (Phot. Epist. p. 47, edit. Montacut.) The Eastern patriarch keeps using symbols like thunder, earthquakes, hail, wild boar, and the harbingers of Antichrist, etc., etc.]

3 (return)
[ The mysterious subject of the procession of the Holy Ghost is discussed in the historical, theological, and controversial sense, or nonsense, by the Jesuit Petavius. (Dogmata Theologica, tom. ii. l. vii. p. 362—440.)]

3 (return)
[ The enigmatic topic of the Holy Ghost's procession is explored in both historical and theological contexts, as well as in a controversial or questionable manner, by Jesuit Petavius. (Dogmata Theologica, vol. ii, book vii, pp. 362—440.)]

4 (return)
[ Before the shrine of St. Peter he placed two shields of the weight of 94 1/2 pounds of pure silver; on which he inscribed the text of both creeds, (utroque symbolo,) pro amore et cautelâ orthodoxæ fidei, (Anastas. in Leon. III. in Muratori, tom. iii. pars. i. p. 208.) His language most clearly proves, that neither the filioque, nor the Athanasian creed were received at Rome about the year 830.]

4 (return)
[ In front of the shrine of St. Peter, he placed two shields weighing 94 1/2 pounds of pure silver; on which he inscribed the text of both creeds, (both symbols,) for the love and caution of the orthodox faith, (Anastas. in Leon. III. in Muratori, tom. iii. pars. i. p. 208.) His words clearly show that neither the filioque nor the Athanasian creed were accepted in Rome around the year 830.]

5 (return)
[ The Missi of Charlemagne pressed him to declare, that all who rejected the filioque, or at least the doctrine, must be damned. All, replies the pope, are not capable of reaching the altiora mysteria qui potuerit, et non voluerit, salvus esse non potest, (Collect. Concil. tom. ix. p. 277—286.) The potuerit would leave a large loophole of salvation!]

5 (return)
[ The envoys of Charlemagne urged him to state that anyone who rejected the filioque, or at least the doctrine, must be condemned. The pope replied that not everyone is able to reach the higher mysteries; whoever can but does not want to, cannot be saved, (Collect. Concil. tom. ix. p. 277—286.) The can would leave a large loophole for salvation!]

6 (return)
[ In France, after some harsher laws, the ecclesiastical discipline is now relaxed: milk, cheese, and butter, are become a perpetual, and eggs an annual, indulgence in Lent, (Vie privée des François, tom. ii. p. 27—38.)]

6 (return)
[ In France, after a few stricter laws, the church rules are now more lenient: milk, cheese, and butter are now allowed all through Lent, and eggs are permitted once a year during that time, (Vie privée des François, tom. ii. p. 27—38.)]

7 (return)
[ The original monuments of the schism, of the charges of the Greeks against the Latins, are deposited in the epistles of Photius, (Epist Encyclica, ii. p. 47—61,) and of Michael Cerularius, (Canisii Antiq. Lectiones, tom. iii. p. i. p. 281—324, edit. Basnage, with the prolix answer of Cardinal Humbert.)]

7 (return)
[ The original records of the division, and the accusations of the Greeks against the Latins, are found in the letters of Photius, (Epist Encyclica, ii. p. 47—61,) and Michael Cerularius, (Canisii Antiq. Lectiones, tom. iii. p. i. p. 281—324, edit. Basnage, along with the lengthy reply of Cardinal Humbert.)]

Bigotry and national aversion are powerful magnifiers of every object of dispute; but the immediate cause of the schism of the Greeks may be traced in the emulation of the leading prelates, who maintained the supremacy of the old metropolis superior to all, and of the reigning capital, inferior to none, in the Christian world. About the middle of the ninth century, Photius, 8 an ambitious layman, the captain of the guards and principal secretary, was promoted by merit and favor to the more desirable office of patriarch of Constantinople. In science, even ecclesiastical science, he surpassed the clergy of the age; and the purity of his morals has never been impeached: but his ordination was hasty, his rise was irregular; and Ignatius, his abdicated predecessor, was yet supported by the public compassion and the obstinacy of his adherents. They appealed to the tribunal of Nicholas the First, one of the proudest and most aspiring of the Roman pontiffs, who embraced the welcome opportunity of judging and condemning his rival of the East. Their quarrel was embittered by a conflict of jurisdiction over the king and nation of the Bulgarians; nor was their recent conversion to Christianity of much avail to either prelate, unless he could number the proselytes among the subjects of his power. With the aid of his court the Greek patriarch was victorious; but in the furious contest he deposed in his turn the successor of St. Peter, and involved the Latin church in the reproach of heresy and schism. Photius sacrificed the peace of the world to a short and precarious reign: he fell with his patron, the Cæsar Bardas; and Basil the Macedonian performed an act of justice in the restoration of Ignatius, whose age and dignity had not been sufficiently respected. From his monastery, or prison, Photius solicited the favor of the emperor by pathetic complaints and artful flattery; and the eyes of his rival were scarcely closed, when he was again restored to the throne of Constantinople. After the death of Basil he experienced the vicissitudes of courts and the ingratitude of a royal pupil: the patriarch was again deposed, and in his last solitary hours he might regret the freedom of a secular and studious life. In each revolution, the breath, the nod, of the sovereign had been accepted by a submissive clergy; and a synod of three hundred bishops was always prepared to hail the triumph, or to stigmatize the fall, of the holy, or the execrable, Photius. 9 By a delusive promise of succor or reward, the popes were tempted to countenance these various proceedings; and the synods of Constantinople were ratified by their epistles or legates. But the court and the people, Ignatius and Photius, were equally adverse to their claims; their ministers were insulted or imprisoned; the procession of the Holy Ghost was forgotten; Bulgaria was forever annexed to the Byzantine throne; and the schism was prolonged by their rigid censure of all the multiplied ordinations of an irregular patriarch. The darkness and corruption of the tenth century suspended the intercourse, without reconciling the minds, of the two nations. But when the Norman sword restored the churches of Apulia to the jurisdiction of Rome, the departing flock was warned, by a petulant epistle of the Greek patriarch, to avoid and abhor the errors of the Latins. The rising majesty of Rome could no longer brook the insolence of a rebel; and Michael Cerularius was excommunicated in the heart of Constantinople by the pope’s legates. Shaking the dust from their feet, they deposited on the altar of St. Sophia a direful anathema, 10 which enumerates the seven mortal heresies of the Greeks, and devotes the guilty teachers, and their unhappy sectaries, to the eternal society of the devil and his angels. According to the emergencies of the church and state, a friendly correspondence was some times resumed; the language of charity and concord was sometimes affected; but the Greeks have never recanted their errors; the popes have never repealed their sentence; and from this thunderbolt we may date the consummation of the schism. It was enlarged by each ambitious step of the Roman pontiffs: the emperors blushed and trembled at the ignominious fate of their royal brethren of Germany; and the people were scandalized by the temporal power and military life of the Latin clergy. 11

Bigotry and national dislike amplify every disagreement; however, the root cause of the split among the Greeks can be traced to the rivalry among the leading bishops, who upheld the supremacy of the old capital above all and the reigning capital as equal to none in the Christian world. Around the middle of the ninth century, Photius, 8, an ambitious layman who was the captain of the guards and the principal secretary, was promoted by merit and favor to the coveted position of patriarch of Constantinople. In knowledge, even ecclesiastical knowledge, he outshone the clergy of his time; and his moral character has never been questioned: but his ordination was rushed, his rise was irregular, and Ignatius, his deposed predecessor, still had public sympathy and the stubbornness of his supporters on his side. They appealed to Nicholas the First, one of the most proud and ambitious of the Roman popes, who eagerly took the opportunity to judge and condemn his rival from the East. Their feud was intensified by disputes over jurisdiction over the king and nation of the Bulgarians; and their recent conversion to Christianity did little for either bishop unless he could count the converts among his subjects. With the support of his court, the Greek patriarch was victorious; however, in this fierce battle, he also deposed the successor of St. Peter, dragging the Latin church into accusations of heresy and schism. Photius sacrificed global peace for a brief and uncertain reign: he fell with his supporter, the Cæsar Bardas; and Basil the Macedonian acted justly by restoring Ignatius, whose age and dignity had not been adequately respected. From his monastery, or prison, Photius sought the emperor's favor with moving complaints and clever flattery; and as soon as his rival's eyes were closed, he was reinstated as the patriarch of Constantinople. After Basil's death, he faced the ups and downs of court life and the ingratitude of a royal pupil: the patriarch was deposed again, and in his last lonely hours, he might have regretted the freedom of a secular and scholarly life. In each change of power, the breath, the nod of the sovereign were accepted by a compliant clergy; and a synod of three hundred bishops was always ready to celebrate the rise or condemn the fall of the holy or the detestable Photius. 9 With misleading promises of help or rewards, the popes were drawn into supporting these various actions; and the synods of Constantinople were confirmed by their letters or representatives. But the court and the people, Ignatius and Photius, were equally opposed to their claims; their ministers faced insults or imprisonment; the procession of the Holy Ghost was forgotten; Bulgaria was forever joined to the Byzantine throne; and the schism continued due to their harsh judgment of all the multiple ordinations by an irregular patriarch. The darkness and corruption of the tenth century halted communication but did not reconcile the two nations. However, when the Norman sword returned the churches of Apulia under Roman authority, a harsh letter from the Greek patriarch warned the departing followers to avoid and detest the errors of the Latins. The rising power of Rome could no longer tolerate the arrogance of a rebel; and Michael Cerularius was excommunicated in the heart of Constantinople by the pope’s representatives. Shaking the dust from their feet, they placed a dire curse on the altar of St. Sophia, 10, which listed the seven deadly heresies of the Greeks and condemned the guilty teachers and their unfortunate followers to eternal companionship with the devil and his angels. Depending on the needs of the church and state, friendly correspondence was sometimes resumed; the language of goodwill and agreement was occasionally adopted; but the Greeks have never acknowledged their mistakes; the popes have never revoked their verdict; and we can trace the root of the schism back to this disastrous event. It was further expanded by each ambitious move of the Roman popes: the emperors felt ashamed and feared the disgraceful fate of their royal counterparts in Germany; and the people were scandalized by the temporal power and military lifestyle of the Latin clergy. 11

8 (return)
[ The xth volume of the Venice edition of the Councils contains all the acts of the synods, and history of Photius: they are abridged, with a faint tinge of prejudice or prudence, by Dupin and Fleury.]

8 (return)
[ The xth volume of the Venice edition of the Councils includes all the records from the synods and the history of Photius. These are summarized, with a slight hint of bias or caution, by Dupin and Fleury.]

9 (return)
[ The synod of Constantinople, held in the year 869, is the viiith of the general councils, the last assembly of the East which is recognized by the Roman church. She rejects the synods of Constantinople of the years 867 and 879, which were, however, equally numerous and noisy; but they were favorable to Photius.]

9 (return)
[ The synod of Constantinople, which took place in 869, is the eighth of the general councils and the last assembly of the East that is acknowledged by the Roman church. It dismisses the synods of Constantinople from 867 and 879, which were also quite numerous and contentious; however, those were supportive of Photius.]

10 (return)
[ See this anathema in the Councils, tom. xi. p. 1457—1460.]

10 (return)
[See this curse in the Councils, vol. xi, pp. 1457–1460.]

11 (return)
[ Anna Comnena (Alexiad, l. i. p. 31—33) represents the abhorrence, not only of the church, but of the palace, for Gregory VII., the popes and the Latin communion. The style of Cinnamus and Nicetas is still more vehement. Yet how calm is the voice of history compared with that of polemics!]

11 (return)
[ Anna Comnena (Alexiad, l. i. p. 31—33) captures the intense dislike, not just from the church, but also from the palace, for Gregory VII, the popes, and the Latin Church. The writing of Cinnamus and Nicetas is even more passionate. Still, the tone of history feels much steadier compared to that of debates!]

The aversion of the Greeks and Latins was nourished and manifested in the three first expeditions to the Holy Land. Alexius Comnenus contrived the absence at least of the formidable pilgrims: his successors, Manuel and Isaac Angelus, conspired with the Moslems for the ruin of the greatest princes of the Franks; and their crooked and malignant policy was seconded by the active and voluntary obedience of every order of their subjects. Of this hostile temper, a large portion may doubtless be ascribed to the difference of language, dress, and manners, which severs and alienates the nations of the globe. The pride, as well as the prudence, of the sovereign was deeply wounded by the intrusion of foreign armies, that claimed a right of traversing his dominions, and passing under the walls of his capital: his subjects were insulted and plundered by the rude strangers of the West: and the hatred of the pusillanimous Greeks was sharpened by secret envy of the bold and pious enterprises of the Franks. But these profane causes of national enmity were fortified and inflamed by the venom of religious zeal. Instead of a kind embrace, a hospitable reception from their Christian brethren of the East, every tongue was taught to repeat the names of schismatic and heretic, more odious to an orthodox ear than those of pagan and infidel: instead of being loved for the general conformity of faith and worship, they were abhorred for some rules of discipline, some questions of theology, in which themselves or their teachers might differ from the Oriental church. In the crusade of Louis the Seventh, the Greek clergy washed and purified the altars which had been defiled by the sacrifice of a French priest. The companions of Frederic Barbarossa deplore the injuries which they endured, both in word and deed, from the peculiar rancor of the bishops and monks. Their prayers and sermons excited the people against the impious Barbarians; and the patriarch is accused of declaring, that the faithful might obtain the redemption of all their sins by the extirpation of the schismatics. 12 An enthusiast, named Dorotheus, alarmed the fears, and restored the confidence, of the emperor, by a prophetic assurance, that the German heretic, after assaulting the gate of Blachernes, would be made a signal example of the divine vengeance. The passage of these mighty armies were rare and perilous events; but the crusades introduced a frequent and familiar intercourse between the two nations, which enlarged their knowledge without abating their prejudices. The wealth and luxury of Constantinople demanded the productions of every climate; these imports were balanced by the art and labor of her numerous inhabitants; her situation invites the commerce of the world; and, in every period of her existence, that commerce has been in the hands of foreigners. After the decline of Amalphi, the Venetians, Pisans, and Genoese, introduced their factories and settlements into the capital of the empire: their services were rewarded with honors and immunities; they acquired the possession of lands and houses; their families were multiplied by marriages with the natives; and, after the toleration of a Mahometan mosque, it was impossible to interdict the churches of the Roman rite. 13 The two wives of Manuel Comnenus 14 were of the race of the Franks: the first, a sister-in-law of the emperor Conrad; the second, a daughter of the prince of Antioch: he obtained for his son Alexius a daughter of Philip Augustus, king of France; and he bestowed his own daughter on a marquis of Montferrat, who was educated and dignified in the palace of Constantinople. The Greek encountered the arms, and aspired to the empire, of the West: he esteemed the valor, and trusted the fidelity, of the Franks; 15 their military talents were unfitly recompensed by the lucrative offices of judges and treasures; the policy of Manuel had solicited the alliance of the pope; and the popular voice accused him of a partial bias to the nation and religion of the Latins. 16 During his reign, and that of his successor Alexius, they were exposed at Constantinople to the reproach of foreigners, heretics, and favorites; and this triple guilt was severely expiated in the tumult, which announced the return and elevation of Andronicus. 17 The people rose in arms: from the Asiatic shore the tyrant despatched his troops and galleys to assist the national revenge; and the hopeless resistance of the strangers served only to justify the rage, and sharpen the daggers, of the assassins. Neither age, nor sex, nor the ties of friendship or kindred, could save the victims of national hatred, and avarice, and religious zeal; the Latins were slaughtered in their houses and in the streets; their quarter was reduced to ashes; the clergy were burnt in their churches, and the sick in their hospitals; and some estimate may be formed of the slain from the clemency which sold above four thousand Christians in perpetual slavery to the Turks. The priests and monks were the loudest and most active in the destruction of the schismatics; and they chanted a thanksgiving to the Lord, when the head of a Roman cardinal, the pope’s legate, was severed from his body, fastened to the tail of a dog, and dragged, with savage mockery, through the city. The more diligent of the strangers had retreated, on the first alarm, to their vessels, and escaped through the Hellespont from the scene of blood. In their flight, they burnt and ravaged two hundred miles of the sea-coast; inflicted a severe revenge on the guiltless subjects of the empire; marked the priests and monks as their peculiar enemies; and compensated, by the accumulation of plunder, the loss of their property and friends. On their return, they exposed to Italy and Europe the wealth and weakness, the perfidy and malice, of the Greeks, whose vices were painted as the genuine characters of heresy and schism. The scruples of the first crusaders had neglected the fairest opportunities of securing, by the possession of Constantinople, the way to the Holy Land: domestic revolution invited, and almost compelled, the French and Venetians to achieve the conquest of the Roman empire of the East.

The dislike of the Greeks and Latins was fueled and displayed during the first three expeditions to the Holy Land. Alexius Comnenus managed to keep the powerful pilgrims away: his successors, Manuel and Isaac Angelus, worked with the Muslims to bring down the greatest princes of the Franks; and their deceitful and malicious plans were supported by the active cooperation of all their subjects. Much of this hostile attitude can be attributed to the differences in language, clothing, and customs that separate and alienate the nations of the world. The pride, as well as the caution, of the sovereign was deeply hurt by the intrusion of foreign armies that claimed the right to pass through his territory and under the walls of his capital: his subjects were insulted and robbed by the rough strangers from the West; and the resentment of the timid Greeks was intensified by a hidden envy of the brave and devout actions of the Franks. But these profane reasons for national hostility were strengthened and inflamed by the poison of religious fervor. Instead of a warm welcome and hospitality from their Christian brethren in the East, everyone was taught to recite the names of schismatics and heretics, more detestable to an orthodox ear than those of pagans and infidels: instead of being admired for their shared faith and worship, they were hated for certain disciplinary rules and theological issues where they or their teachers might differ from the Eastern church. During the crusade of Louis the Seventh, the Greek clergy cleansed and purified the altars that had been desecrated by the sacrifice of a French priest. The companions of Frederic Barbarossa lamented the injuries they suffered, both in word and action, due to the particular rancor of the bishops and monks. Their prayers and sermons stirred the people against the impious Barbarians; and the patriarch was accused of declaring that the faithful could gain forgiveness for all their sins by eliminating the schismatics. 12 An enthusiast named Dorotheus frightened the emperor’s fears and restored his confidence with a prophetic promise that the German heretic, after attacking the gate of Blachernes, would be made a clear example of divine wrath. The passage of these mighty armies was rare and dangerous; however, the crusades introduced frequent and familiar exchanges between the two nations, which expanded their knowledge without lessening their prejudices. The wealth and luxury of Constantinople required products from every climate; these imports were balanced by the art and labor of its many inhabitants; its location invited the commerce of the world; and, throughout its history, that commerce has been dominated by foreigners. After the decline of Amalfi, the Venetians, Pisans, and Genoese established their factories and settlements in the capital of the empire: their contributions were rewarded with honors and privileges; they gained ownership of land and homes; their families multiplied through marriages with the locals; and, after tolerating a Muslim mosque, it became impossible to forbid the churches of the Roman rite. 13 The two wives of Manuel Comnenus 14 were of Frankish descent: the first was a sister-in-law of Emperor Conrad; the second was a daughter of the prince of Antioch: he secured for his son Alexius a daughter of Philip Augustus, king of France; and he gave his own daughter to a marquis of Montferrat, who was raised and honored in the palace of Constantinople. The Greek faced the arms of the West and aspired to their empire: he admired the bravery and trusted the loyalty of the Franks; 15 their military skills were inadequately rewarded with lucrative positions as judges and treasurers; Manuel’s policies sought the pope’s alliance; and popular opinion accused him of favoritism towards the Latins and their religion. 16 During his reign and that of his successor Alexius, they faced reproach from foreigners, heretics, and favorites in Constantinople; and this triple fault was severely punished in the chaos that heralded the return and rise of Andronicus. 17 The people took up arms: from the Asian shore, the tyrant sent his troops and ships to aid the national uprising; and the futile resistance of the foreigners only justified the fury and sharpened the daggers of the assassins. Neither age, sex, nor the bonds of friendship or family could save the victims of national hatred, greed, and religious fervor; the Latins were slaughtered in their homes and in the streets; their district was reduced to ashes; the clergy were burned in their churches, and the sick in their hospitals; and one can gauge the scale of the slaughter from the mercy shown when over four thousand Christians were sold into perpetual slavery to the Turks. The priests and monks were the most vocal and active in the destruction of the schismatics; and they sang thanks to the Lord when the head of a Roman cardinal, the pope’s legate, was severed from his body, attached to the tail of a dog, and dragged through the city with savage mockery. The most cautious of the foreigners had retreated, at the first alarm, to their vessels and escaped through the Hellespont from the bloody scene. In their flight, they burned and looted two hundred miles of coastline; exacted serious revenge on the innocent subjects of the empire; targeted priests and monks as their special enemies; and compensated for the loss of their property and friends through the accumulation of plunder. On their return, they revealed to Italy and Europe the wealth and weakness, the treachery and malice, of the Greeks, whose vices were depicted as the true characteristics of heresy and schism. The hesitations of the first crusaders missed the best chances to secure their way to the Holy Land by taking possession of Constantinople; domestic upheaval invited, and almost forced, the French and Venetians to conquer the Eastern Roman Empire.

12 (return)
[ His anonymous historian (de Expedit. Asiat. Fred. I. in Canisii Lection. Antiq. tom. iii. pars ii. p. 511, edit. Basnage) mentions the sermons of the Greek patriarch, quomodo Græcis injunxerat in remissionem peccatorum peregrinos occidere et delere de terra. Tagino observes, (in Scriptores Freher. tom. i. p. 409, edit. Struv.,) Græci hæreticos nos appellant: clerici et monachi dictis et factis persequuntur. We may add the declaration of the emperor Baldwin fifteen years afterwards: Hæc est (gens) quæ Latinos omnes non hominum nomine, sed canum dignabatur; quorum sanguinem effundere penè inter merita reputabant, (Gesta Innocent. III., c. 92, in Muratori, Script. Rerum Italicarum, tom. iii. pars i. p. 536.) There may be some exaggeration, but it was as effectual for the action and reaction of hatred.]

12 (return)
[ His anonymous historian (de Expedit. Asiat. Fred. I. in Canisii Lection. Antiq. tom. iii. pars ii. p. 511, edit. Basnage) mentions the sermons of the Greek patriarch, how he instructed the Greeks to kill and wipe out pilgrims for the forgiveness of their sins. Tagino notes (in Scriptores Freher. tom. i. p. 409, edit. Struv.) that the Greeks call us heretics: clerics and monks pursue us with both words and actions. We can also include the statement from Emperor Baldwin fifteen years later: This is the (i) race that deemed all Latinos not worthy of the name of men but rather like dogs; whose blood they considered almost a merit to shed (Gesta Innocent. III., c. 92, in Muratori, Script. Rerum Italicarum, tom. iii. pars i. p. 536.) There may be some exaggeration, but it was still effective for the cycle of hatred.]

13 (return)
[ See Anna Comnena, (Alexiad, l. vi. p. 161, 162,) and a remarkable passage of Nicetas, (in Manuel, l. v. c. 9,) who observes of the Venetians, kata smhnh kai jratriaV thn Kwnstantinou polin thV oikeiaV hllaxanto, &c.]

13 (return)
[ See Anna Comnena, (Alexiad, l. vi. p. 161, 162,) and a notable excerpt from Nicetas, (in Manuel, l. v. c. 9,) who remarks about the Venetians, claiming they had a unique and significant connection to the city of Constantinople, etc.]

14 (return)
[ Ducange, Fam. Byzant. p. 186, 187.]

14 (return)
[ Ducange, Fam. Byzant. p. 186, 187.]

15 (return)
[ Nicetas in Manuel. l. vii. c. 2. Regnante enim (Manuele).... apud eum tantam Latinus populus repererat gratiam ut neglectis Græculis suis tanquam viris mollibus et effminatis,.... solis Latinis grandia committeret negotia.... erga eos profusâ liberalitate abundabat.... ex omni orbe ad eum tanquam ad benefactorem nobiles et ignobiles concurrebant. Willelm. Tyr. xxii. c. 10.]

15 (return)
[ Nicetas in Manuel. l. vii. c. 2. During the reign of Manuel.... the Latin people found such favor with him that they disregarded their Greek counterparts as if they were soft and effeminate men,.... and entrusted significant matters solely to the Latins.... he was overflowing with generosity towards them.... people from all around rushed to him as if he were a benefactor, both nobles and commoners. Willelm. Tyr. xxii. c. 10.]

16 (return)
[ The suspicions of the Greeks would have been confirmed, if they had seen the political epistles of Manuel to Pope Alexander III., the enemy of his enemy Frederic I., in which the emperor declares his wish of uniting the Greeks and Latins as one flock under one shepherd, &c (See Fleury, Hist. Ecclés. tom. xv. p. 187, 213, 243.)]

16 (return)
[ The Greeks' suspicions would have been confirmed if they had seen Manuel's political letters to Pope Alexander III, who was against his rival Frederic I. In these letters, the emperor expresses his desire to unite the Greeks and Latins as one group under one leader, etc. (See Fleury, Hist. Ecclés. tom. xv. p. 187, 213, 243.)]

17 (return)
[ See the Greek and Latin narratives in Nicetas (in Alexio Comneno, c. 10) and William of Tyre, (l. xxii. c. 10, 11, 12, 13;) the first soft and concise, the second loud, copious, and tragical.]

17 (return)
[ See the Greek and Latin narratives in Nicetas (in Alexio Comneno, c. 10) and William of Tyre, (l. xxii. c. 10, 11, 12, 13;) the first is gentle and brief, while the second is dramatic, extensive, and tragic.]

In the series of the Byzantine princes, I have exhibited the hypocrisy and ambition, the tyranny and fall, of Andronicus, the last male of the Comnenian family who reigned at Constantinople. The revolution, which cast him headlong from the throne, saved and exalted Isaac Angelus, 18 who descended by the females from the same Imperial dynasty. The successor of a second Nero might have found it an easy task to deserve the esteem and affection of his subjects; they sometimes had reason to regret the administration of Andronicus. The sound and vigorous mind of the tyrant was capable of discerning the connection between his own and the public interest; and while he was feared by all who could inspire him with fear, the unsuspected people, and the remote provinces, might bless the inexorable justice of their master. But his successor was vain and jealous of the supreme power, which he wanted courage and abilities to exercise: his vices were pernicious, his virtues (if he possessed any virtues) were useless, to mankind; and the Greeks, who imputed their calamities to his negligence, denied him the merit of any transient or accidental benefits of the times. Isaac slept on the throne, and was awakened only by the sound of pleasure: his vacant hours were amused by comedians and buffoons, and even to these buffoons the emperor was an object of contempt: his feasts and buildings exceeded the examples of royal luxury: the number of his eunuchs and domestics amounted to twenty thousand; and a daily sum of four thousand pounds of silver would swell to four millions sterling the annual expense of his household and table. His poverty was relieved by oppression; and the public discontent was inflamed by equal abuses in the collection, and the application, of the revenue. While the Greeks numbered the days of their servitude, a flattering prophet, whom he rewarded with the dignity of patriarch, assured him of a long and victorious reign of thirty-two years; during which he should extend his sway to Mount Libanus, and his conquests beyond the Euphrates. But his only step towards the accomplishment of the prediction was a splendid and scandalous embassy to Saladin, 19 to demand the restitution of the holy sepulchre, and to propose an offensive and defensive league with the enemy of the Christian name. In these unworthy hands, of Isaac and his brother, the remains of the Greek empire crumbled into dust. The Island of Cyprus, whose name excites the ideas of elegance and pleasure, was usurped by his namesake, a Comnenian prince; and by a strange concatenation of events, the sword of our English Richard bestowed that kingdom on the house of Lusignan, a rich compensation for the loss of Jerusalem.

In the series about the Byzantine princes, I've showcased the hypocrisy and ambition, the tyranny and downfall, of Andronicus, the last male of the Comnenian family who ruled in Constantinople. The revolution that overthrew him elevated Isaac Angelus, 18, who was part of the same imperial dynasty through his female lineage. A successor to a second Nero might have easily won the respect and affection of his subjects; they often found reasons to long for Andronicus's rule. The tyrant had a keen mind that understood the relationship between his interests and those of the public; while he was feared by those who could instill fear in him, the unsuspecting populace and distant provinces might have appreciated the strict justice of their ruler. But his successor was vain and jealous of the absolute power he lacked the courage and skills to wield: his vices were harmful, and any virtues he may have had were of no use to the people; the Greeks blamed their misfortunes on his negligence and didn’t recognize any temporary or accidental benefits he may have provided. Isaac dozed on the throne, only roused by sounds of pleasure: his free time was occupied by comedians and clowns, who even looked down on him. His feasts and buildings surpassed examples of royal indulgence: he had twenty thousand eunuchs and servants, and his daily expenses amounted to four thousand pounds of silver, totaling four million sterling a year for his household. His poverty was addressed through oppression, and public dissatisfaction grew due to similar abuses in revenue collection and spending. While the Greeks counted the days of their subjugation, a flattering prophet, whom he rewarded with the title of patriarch, promised him a long and victorious reign of thirty-two years, during which he would extend his control to Mount Lebanon and beyond the Euphrates. But his only move towards fulfilling this prophecy was a lavish and scandalous embassy to Saladin, 19, to demand the return of the holy sepulchre and propose a military alliance with the enemy of Christianity. Under Isaac and his brother, the remnants of the Greek empire crumbled to dust. The Island of Cyprus, evoking thoughts of elegance and pleasure, was seized by another Comnenian prince with the same name; and through a bizarre turn of events, the sword of our English Richard granted that kingdom to the house of Lusignan, a rich consolation for the loss of Jerusalem.

18 (return)
[ The history of the reign of Isaac Angelus is composed, in three books, by the senator Nicetas, (p. 228—290;) and his offices of logothete, or principal secretary, and judge of the veil or palace, could not bribe the impartiality of the historian. He wrote, it is true, after the fall and death of his benefactor.]

18 (return)
[ The history of Isaac Angelus's reign is written in three books by the senator Nicetas, (p. 228—290;) and his roles as logothete, or main secretary, and judge of the veil or palace, could not influence the historian's objectivity. It's true that he wrote after the downfall and death of his benefactor.]

19 (return)
[ See Bohadin, Vit. Saladin. p. 129—131, 226, vers. Schultens. The ambassador of Isaac was equally versed in the Greek, French, and Arabic languages; a rare instance in those times. His embassies were received with honor, dismissed without effect, and reported with scandal in the West.]

19 (return)
[ See Bohadin, Vit. Saladin. p. 129—131, 226, vers. Schultens. Isaac's ambassador was skilled in Greek, French, and Arabic—quite uncommon for that era. His missions were welcomed with respect, ended without results, and discussed with controversy in the West.]

The honor of the monarchy and the safety of the capital were deeply wounded by the revolt of the Bulgarians and Walachians. Since the victory of the second Basil, they had supported, above a hundred and seventy years, the loose dominion of the Byzantine princes; but no effectual measures had been adopted to impose the yoke of laws and manners on these savage tribes. By the command of Isaac, their sole means of subsistence, their flocks and herds, were driven away, to contribute towards the pomp of the royal nuptials; and their fierce warriors were exasperated by the denial of equal rank and pay in the military service. Peter and Asan, two powerful chiefs, of the race of the ancient kings, 20 asserted their own rights and the national freedom; their dæmoniac impostors proclaimed to the crowd, that their glorious patron St. Demetrius had forever deserted the cause of the Greeks; and the conflagration spread from the banks of the Danube to the hills of Macedonia and Thrace. After some faint efforts, Isaac Angelus and his brother acquiesced in their independence; and the Imperial troops were soon discouraged by the bones of their fellow-soldiers, that were scattered along the passes of Mount Hæmus. By the arms and policy of John or Joannices, the second kingdom of Bulgaria was firmly established. The subtle Barbarian sent an embassy to Innocent the Third, to acknowledge himself a genuine son of Rome in descent and religion, 21 and humbly received from the pope the license of coining money, the royal title, and a Latin archbishop or patriarch. The Vatican exulted in the spiritual conquest of Bulgaria, the first object of the schism; and if the Greeks could have preserved the prerogatives of the church, they would gladly have resigned the rights of the monarchy.

The honor of the monarchy and the safety of the capital were severely affected by the uprising of the Bulgarians and Walachians. Ever since the victory of the second Basil, they had tolerated, for more than a hundred and seventy years, the loose control of the Byzantine princes; however, no effective measures were taken to enforce laws and customs on these wild tribes. By Isaac's orders, their only means of livelihood, their flocks and herds, were taken away to contribute to the splendor of the royal wedding; and their fierce warriors were angered by being denied equal rank and pay in the military. Peter and Asan, two strong leaders from the lineage of the ancient kings, 20 claimed their own rights and national freedom; their fanatical impostors declared to the masses that their glorious patron St. Demetrius had permanently abandoned the Greek cause, and the revolt spread from the banks of the Danube to the hills of Macedonia and Thrace. After some weak attempts at resistance, Isaac Angelus and his brother accepted their independence; and the Imperial troops quickly lost morale as they stumbled over the remains of their fellow soldiers scattered along the passes of Mount Hæmus. Through the military strength and strategy of John or Joannices, the second Bulgarian kingdom was firmly established. The cunning Barbarian sent a delegation to Innocent the Third, to proclaim himself a true son of Rome by heritage and faith, 21 and humbly received from the pope the right to mint coins, the royal title, and a Latin archbishop or patriarch. The Vatican celebrated the spiritual conquest of Bulgaria, the primary target of the schism; and if the Greeks could have maintained their church privileges, they would have gladly surrendered the rights of the monarchy.

20 (return)
[ Ducange, Familiæ, Dalmaticæ, p. 318, 319, 320. The original correspondence of the Bulgarian king and the Roman pontiff is inscribed in the Gesta Innocent. III. c. 66—82, p. 513—525.]

20 (return)
[ Ducange, Families, Dalmatic, p. 318, 319, 320. The original letters from the Bulgarian king to the Pope are recorded in the Gesta Innocent. III. c. 66—82, p. 513—525.]

21 (return)
[ The pope acknowledges his pedigree, a nobili urbis Romæ prosapiâ genitores tui originem traxerunt. This tradition, and the strong resemblance of the Latin and Walachian idioms, is explained by M. D’Anville, (Etats de l’Europe, p. 258—262.) The Italian colonies of the Dacia of Trajan were swept away by the tide of emigration from the Danube to the Volga, and brought back by another wave from the Volga to the Danube. Possible, but strange!]

21 (return)
[ The pope recognizes his background, your ancestors originated from the noble lineage of Rome. M. D’Anville explains this tradition and the strong similarities between the Latin and Walachian languages (Etats de l’Europe, p. 258—262.) The Italian colonies of Trajan's Dacia were washed away by waves of migration from the Danube to the Volga and later returned by another wave from the Volga back to the Danube. Possible, but strange!]

The Bulgarians were malicious enough to pray for the long life of Isaac Angelus, the surest pledge of their freedom and prosperity. Yet their chiefs could involve in the same indiscriminate contempt the family and nation of the emperor. “In all the Greeks,” said Asan to his troops, “the same climate, and character, and education, will be productive of the same fruits. Behold my lance,” continued the warrior, “and the long streamers that float in the wind. They differ only in color; they are formed of the same silk, and fashioned by the same workman; nor has the stripe that is stained in purple any superior price or value above its fellows.” 22 Several of these candidates for the purple successively rose and fell under the empire of Isaac; a general, who had repelled the fleets of Sicily, was driven to revolt and ruin by the ingratitude of the prince; and his luxurious repose was disturbed by secret conspiracies and popular insurrections. The emperor was saved by accident, or the merit of his servants: he was at length oppressed by an ambitious brother, who, for the hope of a precarious diadem, forgot the obligations of nature, of loyalty, and of friendship. 23 While Isaac in the Thracian valleys pursued the idle and solitary pleasures of the chase, his brother, Alexius Angelus, was invested with the purple, by the unanimous suffrage of the camp; the capital and the clergy subscribed to their choice; and the vanity of the new sovereign rejected the name of his fathers for the lofty and royal appellation of the Comnenian race. On the despicable character of Isaac I have exhausted the language of contempt, and can only add, that, in a reign of eight years, the baser Alexius 24 was supported by the masculine vices of his wife Euphrosyne. The first intelligence of his fall was conveyed to the late emperor by the hostile aspect and pursuit of the guards, no longer his own: he fled before them above fifty miles, as far as Stagyra, in Macedonia; but the fugitive, without an object or a follower, was arrested, brought back to Constantinople, deprived of his eyes, and confined in a lonesome tower, on a scanty allowance of bread and water. At the moment of the revolution, his son Alexius, whom he educated in the hope of empire, was twelve years of age. He was spared by the usurper, and reduced to attend his triumph both in peace and war; but as the army was encamped on the sea-shore, an Italian vessel facilitated the escape of the royal youth; and, in the disguise of a common sailor, he eluded the search of his enemies, passed the Hellespont, and found a secure refuge in the Isle of Sicily. After saluting the threshold of the apostles, and imploring the protection of Pope Innocent the Third, Alexius accepted the kind invitation of his sister Irene, the wife of Philip of Swabia, king of the Romans. But in his passage through Italy, he heard that the flower of Western chivalry was assembled at Venice for the deliverance of the Holy Land; and a ray of hope was kindled in his bosom, that their invincible swords might be employed in his father’s restoration.

The Bulgarians were spiteful enough to pray for the long life of Isaac Angelus, the surest sign of their freedom and prosperity. Yet their leaders could equally show indiscriminate contempt for the emperor's family and nation. “In all the Greeks,” said Asan to his troops, “the same climate, character, and education will produce the same results. Look at my lance,” the warrior continued, “and the long banners that flutter in the wind. They differ only in color; they’re made of the same silk and crafted by the same artisan; nor does the stripe stained in purple carry any greater price or value than its companions.” 22 Several of these contenders for the throne rose and fell during Isaac's reign; a general who had repelled the fleets of Sicily was driven to revolt and ruin by the prince's ingratitude; and his lavish comfort was disrupted by secret plots and popular uprisings. The emperor was saved by chance or the merits of his servants; eventually, he was overwhelmed by an ambitious brother who, in pursuit of a precarious crown, forgot his obligations of family, loyalty, and friendship. 23 While Isaac was in the Thracian valleys indulging in the idle and solitary pleasures of hunting, his brother, Alexius Angelus, was proclaimed emperor by the unanimous vote of the army; the capital and the clergy endorsed their decision; and the vanity of the new ruler led him to reject his family's name in favor of the grand and royal title of the Comnenian line. I have exhausted my disdain for Isaac's despicable character and can only add that during his eight-year reign, the inferior Alexius 24 was supported by the strong-willed traits of his wife Euphrosyne. The first news of his downfall came to the former emperor through the hostile demeanor and pursuit of the guards, no longer loyal to him: he ran more than fifty miles to Stagyra in Macedonia, but as a fugitive lacking purpose or followers, he was captured, brought back to Constantinople, blinded, and imprisoned in a lonely tower, receiving only a meager supply of bread and water. At the time of the coup, his son Alexius, whom he had raised with ambitions for the throne, was twelve years old. He was spared by the usurper and forced to attend his triumphs in both peace and war; however, while the army was camped on the seashore, an Italian ship helped the young prince escape; disguised as a common sailor, he evaded his enemies, crossed the Hellespont, and found safe refuge in Sicily. After visiting the apostles' tomb and seeking protection from Pope Innocent III, Alexius accepted his sister Irene's kind invitation, the wife of Philip of Swabia, king of the Romans. But on his journey through Italy, he learned that the finest Western knights had gathered in Venice to liberate the Holy Land; a spark of hope ignited within him that their unmatched swords might be wielded to restore his father.

22 (return)
[ This parable is in the best savage style; but I wish the Walach had not introduced the classic name of Mysians, the experiment of the magnet or loadstone, and the passage of an old comic poet, (Nicetas in Alex. Comneno, l. i. p. 299, 300.)]

22 (return)
[ This parable is in the best savage style; but I wish the Walach hadn't used the classic name of Mysians, the experiment with the magnet or loadstone, and the reference to an old comic poet, (Nicetas in Alex. Comneno, l. i. p. 299, 300.)]

23 (return)
[ The Latins aggravate the ingratitude of Alexius, by supposing that he had been released by his brother Isaac from Turkish captivity This pathetic tale had doubtless been repeated at Venice and Zara but I do not readily discover its grounds in the Greek historians.]

23 (return)
[ The Latins emphasize Alexius's ingratitude by suggesting that he had been freed from Turkish captivity by his brother Isaac. This sad story had likely been recounted in Venice and Zara, but I can't easily find its basis in Greek historians.]

24 (return)
[ See the reign of Alexius Angelus, or Comnenus, in the three books of Nicetas, p. 291—352.]

24 (return)
[ See the rule of Alexius Angelus, or Comnenus, in the three volumes of Nicetas, pp. 291—352.]

About ten or twelve years after the loss of Jerusalem, the nobles of France were again summoned to the holy war by the voice of a third prophet, less extravagant, perhaps, than Peter the hermit, but far below St. Bernard in the merit of an orator and a statesman. An illiterate priest of the neighborhood of Paris, Fulk of Neuilly, 25 forsook his parochial duty, to assume the more flattering character of a popular and itinerant missionary. The fame of his sanctity and miracles was spread over the land; he declaimed, with severity and vehemence, against the vices of the age; and his sermons, which he preached in the streets of Paris, converted the robbers, the usurers, the prostitutes, and even the doctors and scholars of the university. No sooner did Innocent the Third ascend the chair of St. Peter, than he proclaimed in Italy, Germany, and France, the obligation of a new crusade. 26 The eloquent pontiff described the ruin of Jerusalem, the triumph of the Pagans, and the shame of Christendom; his liberality proposed the redemption of sins, a plenary indulgence to all who should serve in Palestine, either a year in person, or two years by a substitute; 27 and among his legates and orators who blew the sacred trumpet, Fulk of Neuilly was the loudest and most successful. The situation of the principal monarchs was averse to the pious summons. The emperor Frederic the Second was a child; and his kingdom of Germany was disputed by the rival houses of Brunswick and Swabia, the memorable factions of the Guelphs and Ghibelines. Philip Augustus of France had performed, and could not be persuaded to renew, the perilous vow; but as he was not less ambitious of praise than of power, he cheerfully instituted a perpetual fund for the defence of the Holy Land. Richard of England was satiated with the glory and misfortunes of his first adventure; and he presumed to deride the exhortations of Fulk of Neuilly, who was not abashed in the presence of kings. “You advise me,” said Plantagenet, “to dismiss my three daughters, pride, avarice, and incontinence: I bequeath them to the most deserving; my pride to the knights templars, my avarice to the monks of Cisteaux, and my incontinence to the prelates.” But the preacher was heard and obeyed by the great vassals, the princes of the second order; and Theobald, or Thibaut, count of Champagne, was the foremost in the holy race. The valiant youth, at the age of twenty-two years, was encouraged by the domestic examples of his father, who marched in the second crusade, and of his elder brother, who had ended his days in Palestine with the title of King of Jerusalem; two thousand two hundred knights owed service and homage to his peerage; 28 the nobles of Champagne excelled in all the exercises of war; 29 and, by his marriage with the heiress of Navarre, Thibaut could draw a band of hardy Gascons from either side of the Pyrenæan mountains. His companion in arms was Louis, count of Blois and Chartres; like himself of regal lineage, for both the princes were nephews, at the same time, of the kings of France and England. In a crowd of prelates and barons, who imitated their zeal, I distinguish the birth and merit of Matthew of Montmorency; the famous Simon of Montfort, the scourge of the Albigeois; and a valiant noble, Jeffrey of Villehardouin, 30 marshal of Champagne, 31 who has condescended, in the rude idiom of his age and country, 32 to write or dictate 33 an original narrative of the councils and actions in which he bore a memorable part. At the same time, Baldwin, count of Flanders, who had married the sister of Thibaut, assumed the cross at Bruges, with his brother Henry, and the principal knights and citizens of that rich and industrious province. 34 The vow which the chiefs had pronounced in churches, they ratified in tournaments; the operations of the war were debated in full and frequent assemblies; and it was resolved to seek the deliverance of Palestine in Egypt, a country, since Saladin’s death, which was almost ruined by famine and civil war. But the fate of so many royal armies displayed the toils and perils of a land expedition; and if the Flemings dwelt along the ocean, the French barons were destitute of ships and ignorant of navigation. They embraced the wise resolution of choosing six deputies or representatives, of whom Villehardouin was one, with a discretionary trust to direct the motions, and to pledge the faith, of the whole confederacy. The maritime states of Italy were alone possessed of the means of transporting the holy warriors with their arms and horses; and the six deputies proceeded to Venice, to solicit, on motives of piety or interest, the aid of that powerful republic.

About ten or twelve years after the fall of Jerusalem, the nobles of France were once again called to the holy war by the voice of a third prophet, less dramatic than Peter the Hermit but far less skilled as an orator and statesman than St. Bernard. An uneducated priest from the Paris area, Fulk of Neuilly, abandoned his parish duties to take on the more appealing role of a popular traveling preacher. Word of his holiness and miracles spread throughout the land; he spoke bluntly and passionately against the sins of the time, and his sermons in the streets of Paris converted thieves, moneylenders, sex workers, and even doctors and university scholars. As soon as Innocent the Third took the papacy, he proclaimed across Italy, Germany, and France the need for a new crusade. The eloquent pope detailed the destruction of Jerusalem, the victory of the Pagans, and the disgrace of Christendom; his generosity offered the forgiveness of sins, a full indulgence to anyone who would serve in Palestine, either for one year personally or for two years by a substitute; and among his legates and speakers who sounded the sacred call, Fulk of Neuilly was the loudest and most effective. The circumstances of the main monarchs were not favorable to the holy call. Emperor Frederick the Second was a child, and his kingdom of Germany was contested by the rival houses of Brunswick and Swabia, the notable factions of the Guelphs and Ghibelines. Philip Augustus of France had already participated and could not be persuaded to take the dangerous vow again; however, as he desired both praise and power, he willingly established a perpetual fund for the defense of the Holy Land. Richard of England was weary of the glory and misfortunes from his previous campaign; he even dared to mock Fulk of Neuilly’s encouragement, who showed no fear in front of kings. “You suggest,” said Plantagenet, “that I rid myself of my three daughters: pride, greed, and lust; I leave them to the most deserving; my pride to the Knights Templar, my greed to the Cistercians, and my lust to the bishops.” But the preacher was heard and followed by the great vassals, the princes of the second rank, with Theobald, or Thibaut, count of Champagne, leading the holy race. The brave young man, at just twenty-two, was inspired by the examples of his father, who had fought in the second crusade, and his older brother, who had died in Palestine with the title of King of Jerusalem; two thousand two hundred knights owed service and loyalty to his rank; the nobles of Champagne excelled in all martial skills; and through his marriage to the heiress of Navarre, Thibaut could gather a band of tough Gascons from both sides of the Pyrenees mountains. His companion in arms was Louis, count of Blois and Chartres; like him, of royal lineage, as both princes were nephews of the kings of France and England. Among the crowd of bishops and barons, motivated by their zeal, I recognize the esteemed Matthew of Montmorency; the famous Simon of Montfort, the scourge of the Albigensians; and a brave noble, Geoffrey of Villehardouin, marshal of Champagne, who has taken the time in the rough language of his era and homeland to write or dictate an original account of the councils and events in which he played a significant role. At the same time, Baldwin, count of Flanders, who had married Thibaut’s sister, took up the cross in Bruges, along with his brother Henry and the key knights and citizens of that wealthy and industrious region. The vow that the leaders had taken in churches was confirmed in tournaments; the details of the campaign were discussed in numerous and frequent gatherings; and it was decided to seek the rescue of Palestine in Egypt, a land that, since Saladin's death, was almost devastated by famine and civil conflict. But the fate of numerous royal armies showed the challenges and dangers of a land expedition; and while the Flemings lived along the coast, the French barons were lacking in ships and skilled in navigation. They wisely chose six representatives, including Villehardouin, with the authority to manage operations and commit the entire alliance. The maritime states of Italy alone had the resources to transport the holy warriors with their arms and horses; and the six deputies traveled to Venice to seek, on the basis of piety or interest, the support of that powerful republic.

25 (return)
[ See Fleury, Hist. Ecclés. tom. xvi. p. 26, &c., and Villehardouin, No. 1, with the observations of Ducange, which I always mean to quote with the original text.]

25 (return)
[See Fleury, Hist. Ecclés. vol. 16, p. 26, etc., and Villehardouin, No. 1, along with Ducange's observations, which I always intend to reference with the original text.]

26 (return)
[ The contemporary life of Pope Innocent III., published by Baluze and Muratori, (Scriptores Rerum Italicarum, tom. iii. pars i. p. 486—568), is most valuable for the important and original documents which are inserted in the text. The bull of the crusade may be read, c. 84, 85.]

26 (return)
[ The modern account of Pope Innocent III., published by Baluze and Muratori, (Scriptores Rerum Italicarum, vol. iii. part i. p. 486—568), is extremely valuable for the key and original documents included in the text. The crusade bull can be found on pages 84 and 85.]

27 (return)
[ Por-ce que cil pardon, fut issi gran, si s’en esmeurent mult li cuers des genz, et mult s’en croisierent, porce que li pardons ere si gran. Villehardouin, No. 1. Our philosophers may refine on the causes of the crusades, but such were the genuine feelings of a French knight.]

27 (return)
[ Because this forgiveness was so great, many hearts were moved, and many believed, because the forgiveness was so immense. Villehardouin, No. 1. Our philosophers may delve into the reasons behind the crusades, but these were the true feelings of a French knight.]

28 (return)
[ This number of fiefs (of which 1800 owed liege homage) was enrolled in the church of St. Stephen at Troyes, and attested A.D. 1213, by the marshal and butler of Champagne, (Ducange, Observ. p. 254.)]

28 (return)
[ This number of fiefs (of which 1800 owed loyalty) was recorded in the church of St. Stephen at Troyes, and confirmed in A.D. 1213, by the marshal and butler of Champagne, (Ducange, Observ. p. 254.)]

29 (return)
[ Campania.... militiæ privilegio singularius excellit.... in tyrociniis.... prolusione armorum, &c., Duncage, p. 249, from the old Chronicle of Jerusalem, A.D. 1177—1199.]

29 (return)
[ Campania has a unique privilege in military matters. It stands out in training, weapons practice, etc. Duncage, p. 249, from the old Chronicle of Jerusalem, A.D. 1177—1199.]

30 (return)
[ The name of Villehardouin was taken from a village and castle in the diocese of Troyes, near the River Aube, between Bar and Arcis. The family was ancient and noble; the elder branch of our historian existed after the year 1400, the younger, which acquired the principality of Achaia, merged in the house of Savoy, (Ducange, p. 235—245.)]

30 (return)
[ The name Villehardouin comes from a village and castle in the Troyes area, near the River Aube, between Bar and Arcis. The family was old and noble; the older branch of our historian continued to exist after the year 1400, while the younger branch, which gained the principality of Achaia, eventually merged with the house of Savoy, (Ducange, p. 235—245.)]

31 (return)
[ This office was held by his father and his descendants; but Ducange has not hunted it with his usual sagacity. I find that, in the year 1356, it was in the family of Conflans; but these provincial have been long since eclipsed by the national marshals of France.]

31 (return)
[ This office was held by his father and his descendants; but Ducange hasn’t pursued it with his usual insight. I found that, in the year 1356, it was in the Conflans family; however, these provincial figures have long been overshadowed by the national marshals of France.]

32 (return)
[ This language, of which I shall produce some specimens, is explained by Vigenere and Ducange, in a version and glossary. The president Des Brosses (Méchanisme des Langues, tom. ii. p. 83) gives it as the example of a language which has ceased to be French, and is understood only by grammarians.]

32 (return)
[ This language, which I will provide some examples of, is described by Vigenere and Ducange in a version and glossary. The president Des Brosses (Méchanisme des Langues, vol. ii. p. 83) presents it as an example of a language that is no longer French and is only understood by grammarians.]

33 (return)
[ His age, and his own expression, moi qui ceste uvre dicta, (No. 62, &c.,) may justify the suspicion (more probable than Mr. Wood’s on Homer) that he could neither read nor write. Yet Champagne may boast of the two first historians, the noble authors of French prose, Villehardouin and Joinville.]

33 (return)
[ His age and his own expression, I who wrote this work says, (No. 62, &c.,) might support the idea (more likely than Mr. Wood's on Homer) that he could neither read nor write. Yet Champagne can proudly claim the two earliest historians, the esteemed authors of French prose, Villehardouin and Joinville.]

34 (return)
[ The crusade and reigns of the counts of Flanders, Baldwin and his brother Henry, are the subject of a particular history by the Jesuit Doutremens, (Constantinopolis Belgica; Turnaci, 1638, in 4to.,) which I have only seen with the eyes of Ducange.]

34 (return)
[ The crusade and reigns of the counts of Flanders, Baldwin and his brother Henry, are covered in a specific history by the Jesuit Doutremens, (Constantinopolis Belgica; Turnaci, 1638, in 4to.,) which I have only seen through the eyes of Ducange.]

In the invasion of Italy by Attila, I have mentioned 35 the flight of the Venetians from the fallen cities of the continent, and their obscure shelter in the chain of islands that line the extremity of the Adriatic Gulf. In the midst of the waters, free, indigent, laborious, and inaccessible, they gradually coalesced into a republic: the first foundations of Venice were laid in the Island of Rialto; and the annual election of the twelve tribunes was superseded by the permanent office of a duke or doge. On the verge of the two empires, the Venetians exult in the belief of primitive and perpetual independence. 36 Against the Latins, their antique freedom has been asserted by the sword, and may be justified by the pen. Charlemagne himself resigned all claims of sovereignty to the islands of the Adriatic Gulf: his son Pepin was repulsed in the attacks of the lagunas or canals, too deep for the cavalry, and too shallow for the vessels; and in every age, under the German Cæsars, the lands of the republic have been clearly distinguished from the kingdom of Italy. But the inhabitants of Venice were considered by themselves, by strangers, and by their sovereigns, as an inalienable portion of the Greek empire: 37 in the ninth and tenth centuries, the proofs of their subjection are numerous and unquestionable; and the vain titles, the servile honors, of the Byzantine court, so ambitiously solicited by their dukes, would have degraded the magistrates of a free people. But the bands of this dependence, which was never absolute or rigid, were imperceptibly relaxed by the ambition of Venice and the weakness of Constantinople. Obedience was softened into respect, privilege ripened into prerogative, and the freedom of domestic government was fortified by the independence of foreign dominion. The maritime cities of Istria and Dalmatia bowed to the sovereigns of the Adriatic; and when they armed against the Normans in the cause of Alexius, the emperor applied, not to the duty of his subjects, but to the gratitude and generosity of his faithful allies. The sea was their patrimony: 38 the western parts of the Mediterranean, from Tuscany to Gibraltar, were indeed abandoned to their rivals of Pisa and Genoa; but the Venetians acquired an early and lucrative share of the commerce of Greece and Egypt. Their riches increased with the increasing demand of Europe; their manufactures of silk and glass, perhaps the institution of their bank, are of high antiquity; and they enjoyed the fruits of their industry in the magnificence of public and private life. To assert her flag, to avenge her injuries, to protect the freedom of navigation, the republic could launch and man a fleet of a hundred galleys; and the Greeks, the Saracens, and the Normans, were encountered by her naval arms. The Franks of Syria were assisted by the Venetians in the reduction of the sea coast; but their zeal was neither blind nor disinterested; and in the conquest of Tyre, they shared the sovereignty of a city, the first seat of the commerce of the world. The policy of Venice was marked by the avarice of a trading, and the insolence of a maritime, power; yet her ambition was prudent: nor did she often forget that if armed galleys were the effect and safeguard, merchant vessels were the cause and supply, of her greatness. In her religion, she avoided the schisms of the Greeks, without yielding a servile obedience to the Roman pontiff; and a free intercourse with the infidels of every clime appears to have allayed betimes the fever of superstition. Her primitive government was a loose mixture of democracy and monarchy; the doge was elected by the votes of the general assembly; as long as he was popular and successful, he reigned with the pomp and authority of a prince; but in the frequent revolutions of the state, he was deposed, or banished, or slain, by the justice or injustice of the multitude. The twelfth century produced the first rudiments of the wise and jealous aristocracy, which has reduced the doge to a pageant, and the people to a cipher. 39

In the invasion of Italy by Attila, I have mentioned 35 the escape of the Venetians from the fallen cities on the mainland and their hidden refuge in the chain of islands at the edge of the Adriatic Gulf. Amidst the waters, free, poor, hardworking, and difficult to reach, they gradually came together to form a republic: the first foundations of Venice were established on the Island of Rialto; and the yearly election of twelve tribunes was replaced by the permanent position of a duke or doge. Standing at the boundary of two empires, the Venetians pride themselves on a belief in their ancient and lasting independence. 36 Their longstanding freedom has been defended by military means against the Latins, and can be backed up in writing. Charlemagne himself gave up any claims to sovereignty over the islands of the Adriatic Gulf: his son Pepin was turned back in his assaults on the lagunas or canals, which were too deep for cavalry and too shallow for ships; and throughout history, under the German Cæsars, the lands of the republic have been clearly set apart from the kingdom of Italy. However, the people of Venice were seen by themselves, by outsiders, and by their rulers as an inseparable part of the Greek empire: 37 in the ninth and tenth centuries, there are many clear and undeniable signs of their subjugation; and the empty titles, the servile honors, of the Byzantine court, ardently sought by their dukes, would have humbled the leaders of a free nation. Yet, the ties of this dependence, which were never absolute or strict, were gradually loosened by Venice's ambition and Constantinople's weakness. Obedience became respect, privilege evolved into prerogative, and the freedom of local governance was strengthened by independence in foreign affairs. The coastal cities of Istria and Dalmatia submitted to the rulers of the Adriatic; and when they armed against the Normans on behalf of Alexius, the emperor appealed, not to the obligation of his subjects, but to the gratitude and generosity of his loyal allies. The sea was their heritage: 38 the western parts of the Mediterranean, from Tuscany to Gibraltar, were indeed surrendered to their rivals Pisa and Genoa; but the Venetians secured an early and profitable share of trade with Greece and Egypt. Their wealth grew with the rising demand in Europe; their production of silk and glass, alongside perhaps the establishment of their bank, dates back to ancient times; and they enjoyed the rewards of their labor in the splendor of public and private life. To assert their flag, to avenge their wrongs, to safeguard free navigation, the republic could organize and man a fleet of a hundred galleys; and faced with the Greeks, the Saracens, and the Normans, they engaged with naval power. The Franks of Syria were helped by the Venetians in capturing the coastline; however, their enthusiasm was neither blind nor selfless; and in the conquest of Tyre, they shared in the sovereignty of a city that was the first center of global commerce. Venice's politics were characterized by the greed of a trading power and the arrogance of a maritime force; yet their ambition was calculated: they rarely forgot that while armed galleys were both the result and protection of their greatness, merchant vessels were the source and supply. In their religion, they steered clear of the divisions among the Greeks while avoiding a submissive obedience to the Roman pope; and their open trade with infidels from various regions seems to have calmed the fever of superstition early on. Their original government was a loose mix of democracy and monarchy; the doge was elected by the votes of the general assembly; as long as he was popular and successful, he ruled with the grandeur and authority of a prince; but amid the frequent upheavals of the state, he could be deposed, banished, or killed by the will of the people, just or unjust. The twelfth century saw the first signs of the wise and cautious aristocracy, which brought the doge down to a figurehead and rendered the people insignificant. 39

35 (return)
[ History, &c., vol. iii. p. 446, 447.]

35 (return)
[ History, &c., vol. iii. p. 446, 447.]

36 (return)
[ The foundation and independence of Venice, and Pepin’s invasion, are discussed by Pagi (Critica, tom. iii. A.D. 81, No. 4, &c.) and Beretti, (Dissert. Chorograph. Italiæ Medii Ævi, in Muratori, Script. tom. x. p. 153.) The two critics have a slight bias, the Frenchman adverse, the Italian favorable, to the republic.]

36 (return)
[ Pagi (Critica, vol. iii. A.D. 81, No. 4, etc.) and Beretti (Dissert. Chorograph. Italiæ Medii Ævi, in Muratori, Script. vol. x. p. 153) discuss the foundation and independence of Venice, as well as Pepin’s invasion. The two scholars have a slight bias, with the French critic being critical and the Italian one being supportive of the republic.]

37 (return)
[ When the son of Charlemagne asserted his right of sovereignty, he was answered by the loyal Venetians, oti hmeiV douloi Jelomen einai tou 'Rwmaiwn basilewV, (Constantin. Porphyrogenit. de Administrat. Imperii, pars ii. c. 28, p. 85;) and the report of the ixth establishes the fact of the xth century, which is confirmed by the embassy of Liutprand of Cremona. The annual tribute, which the emperor allows them to pay to the king of Italy, alleviates, by doubling, their servitude; but the hateful word douloi must be translated, as in the charter of 827, (Laugier, Hist. de Venice, tom. i. p. 67, &c.,) by the softer appellation of subditi, or fideles.]

37 (return)
[When Charlemagne's son claimed his right to rule, the loyal Venetians responded, "We are servants of the Roman Emperor," (Constantin. Porphyrogenit. de Administrat. Imperii, pars ii. c. 28, p. 85); and the report from the ninth century confirms the situation of the tenth century, supported by the embassy of Liutprand of Cremona. The yearly tribute that the emperor permits them to pay to the king of Italy eases their servitude by doubling it; however, the unpleasant term "servants" should be interpreted, as in the charter of 827, (Laugier, Hist. de Venice, tom. i. p. 67, &c.,) using the more gentle terms subjects or loyal followers.]

38 (return)
[ See the xxvth and xxxth dissertations of the Antiquitates Medii Ævi of Muratori. From Anderson’s History of Commerce, I understand that the Venetians did not trade to England before the year 1323. The most flourishing state of their wealth and commerce, in the beginning of the xvth century, is agreeably described by the Abbé Dubos, (Hist. de la Ligue de Cambray, tom. ii. p. 443—480.)]

38 (return)
[ See the 25th and 30th dissertations of the Antiquitates Medii Ævi by Muratori. According to Anderson’s History of Commerce, the Venetians didn't trade with England before 1323. The peak of their wealth and commerce in the early 15th century is nicely described by Abbé Dubos, (Hist. de la Ligue de Cambray, vol. ii. pp. 443—480.)]

39 (return)
[ The Venetians have been slow in writing and publishing their history. Their most ancient monuments are, 1. The rude Chronicle (perhaps) of John Sagorninus, (Venezia, 1765, in octavo,) which represents the state and manners of Venice in the year 1008. 2. The larger history of the doge, (1342—1354,) Andrew Dandolo, published for the first time in the xiith tom. of Muratori, A.D. 1728. The History of Venice by the Abbé Laugier, (Paris, 1728,) is a work of some merit, which I have chiefly used for the constitutional part. * Note: It is scarcely necessary to mention the valuable work of Count Daru, “History de Venise,” of which I hear that an Italian translation has been published, with notes defensive of the ancient republic. I have not yet seen this work.—M.]

39 (return)
[ The Venetians have been slow to write and publish their history. Their oldest records are, 1. The crude Chronicle (possibly) of John Sagorninus, (Venice, 1765, in octavo,) which depicts the state and customs of Venice in the year 1008. 2. The more extensive history of the doge, (1342—1354,) Andrew Dandolo, published for the first time in the twelfth volume of Muratori, A.D. 1728. The History of Venice by Abbé Laugier, (Paris, 1728,) is a notable work that I have primarily used for the constitutional section. * Note: It is hardly necessary to mention the valuable work of Count Daru, “History of Venice,” which I hear has an Italian translation published, complete with notes defending the ancient republic. I have not yet seen this work.—M.]

Chapter LX: The Fourth Crusade.—Part II.

When the six ambassadors of the French pilgrims arrived at Venice, they were hospitably entertained in the palace of St. Mark, by the reigning duke; his name was Henry Dandolo; 40 and he shone in the last period of human life as one of the most illustrious characters of the times. Under the weight of years, and after the loss of his eyes, 41 Dandolo retained a sound understanding and a manly courage: the spirit of a hero, ambitious to signalize his reign by some memorable exploits; and the wisdom of a patriot, anxious to build his fame on the glory and advantage of his country. He praised the bold enthusiasm and liberal confidence of the barons and their deputies: in such a cause, and with such associates, he should aspire, were he a private man, to terminate his life; but he was the servant of the republic, and some delay was requisite to consult, on this arduous business, the judgment of his colleagues. The proposal of the French was first debated by the six sages who had been recently appointed to control the administration of the doge: it was next disclosed to the forty members of the council of state; and finally communicated to the legislative assembly of four hundred and fifty representatives, who were annually chosen in the six quarters of the city. In peace and war, the doge was still the chief of the republic; his legal authority was supported by the personal reputation of Dandolo: his arguments of public interest were balanced and approved; and he was authorized to inform the ambassadors of the following conditions of the treaty. 42 It was proposed that the crusaders should assemble at Venice, on the feast of St. John of the ensuing year; that flat-bottomed vessels should be prepared for four thousand five hundred horses, and nine thousand squires, with a number of ships sufficient for the embarkation of four thousand five hundred knights, and twenty thousand foot; that during a term of nine months they should be supplied with provisions, and transported to whatsoever coast the service of God and Christendom should require; and that the republic should join the armament with a squadron of fifty galleys. It was required, that the pilgrims should pay, before their departure, a sum of eighty-five thousand marks of silver; and that all conquests, by sea and land, should be equally divided between the confederates. The terms were hard; but the emergency was pressing, and the French barons were not less profuse of money than of blood. A general assembly was convened to ratify the treaty: the stately chapel and place of St. Mark were filled with ten thousand citizens; and the noble deputies were taught a new lesson of humbling themselves before the majesty of the people. “Illustrious Venetians,” said the marshal of Champagne, “we are sent by the greatest and most powerful barons of France to implore the aid of the masters of the sea for the deliverance of Jerusalem. They have enjoined us to fall prostrate at your feet; nor will we rise from the ground till you have promised to avenge with us the injuries of Christ.” The eloquence of their words and tears, 43 their martial aspect, and suppliant attitude, were applauded by a universal shout; as it were, says Jeffrey, by the sound of an earthquake. The venerable doge ascended the pulpit to urge their request by those motives of honor and virtue, which alone can be offered to a popular assembly: the treaty was transcribed on parchment, attested with oaths and seals, mutually accepted by the weeping and joyful representatives of France and Venice; and despatched to Rome for the approbation of Pope Innocent the Third. Two thousand marks were borrowed of the merchants for the first expenses of the armament. Of the six deputies, two repassed the Alps to announce their success, while their four companions made a fruitless trial of the zeal and emulation of the republics of Genoa and Pisa.

When the six ambassadors from the French pilgrims arrived in Venice, they were warmly welcomed in the palace of St. Mark by the ruling duke, Henry Dandolo. He stood out as one of the most notable figures of his time, despite being elderly and blind. Dandolo maintained a sharp mind and strong courage—he had the spirit of a hero eager to mark his reign with remarkable achievements and the wisdom of a patriot intent on building his legacy through the glory and benefit of his country. He admired the bold enthusiasm and open trust of the barons and their representatives, stating that if he were a private citizen, he would wish to end his life serving such a noble cause and alongside such partners; however, as a servant of the republic, he needed to delay and consult his colleagues on this challenging matter. The French proposal was first discussed by the six advisors recently appointed to manage the doge's administration. It was then presented to the forty members of the state council, and ultimately shared with the legislative assembly of four hundred and fifty representatives, elected annually from six city districts. In both peace and war, the doge remained the head of the republic; his legal authority was bolstered by Dandolo's personal reputation, and his points concerning public interest were considered and approved. He was given the green light to inform the ambassadors of the following treaty conditions. The plan suggested that the crusaders would gather in Venice on the feast of St. John the following year, preparing flat-bottomed boats for four thousand five hundred horses and nine thousand squires, along with enough ships for four thousand five hundred knights and twenty thousand foot soldiers. For a duration of nine months, they agreed to be supplied with provisions and transported to any coast that served God's and Christendom's interests. The republic was also to contribute a squadron of fifty galleys to the armada. It was required that the pilgrims pay eighty-five thousand marks of silver before departing, and all conquests, by sea and land, would be shared equally among the allies. The terms were tough, but the situation was urgent, and the French barons were as willing to spend money as they were to shed blood. A general assembly was called to approve the treaty; the grand chapel and square of St. Mark were filled with ten thousand citizens, and the noble delegates were reminded of the importance of humbling themselves before the people's authority. “Illustrious Venetians,” said the marshal of Champagne, “we come on behalf of the greatest and most powerful barons of France to seek your help as masters of the sea for the liberation of Jerusalem. We have been instructed to prostrate ourselves at your feet and won’t rise until you promise to help us avenge the wrongs done to Christ.” Their heartfelt words, tears, martial appearance, and submissive posture were met with an overwhelming shout of approval, as it felt like, according to Jeffrey, the sound of an earthquake. The venerable doge took to the pulpit to advocate for their request based on the principles of honor and virtue suitable for a public assembly. The treaty was written on parchment, confirmed with oaths and seals, mutually accepted by the emotional representatives of both France and Venice, and sent to Rome for approval by Pope Innocent the Third. Two thousand marks were loaned from merchants to cover the initial costs of the armada. Of the six deputies, two returned over the Alps to announce their success, while the other four attempted, without success, to inspire enthusiasm and competition in the republics of Genoa and Pisa.

40 (return)
[ Henry Dandolo was eighty-four at his election, (A.D. 1192,) and ninety-seven at his death, (A.D. 1205.) See the Observations of Ducange sur Villehardouin, No. 204. But this extraordinary longevity is not observed by the original writers, nor does there exist another example of a hero near a hundred years of age. Theophrastus might afford an instance of a writer of ninety-nine; but instead of ennenhkonta, (Prom. ad Character.,)I am much inclined to read ebdomhkonta, with his last editor Fischer, and the first thoughts of Casaubon. It is scarcely possible that the powers of the mind and body should support themselves till such a period of life.]

40 (return)
[ Henry Dandolo was eighty-four when he was elected (A.D. 1192) and ninety-seven at his death (A.D. 1205). See the Observations of Ducange sur Villehardouin, No. 204. However, this extraordinary longevity is not noted by the original authors, nor is there another example of a hero close to a hundred years old. Theophrastus could provide an example of a writer at ninety-nine, but instead of “enenhkonta” (Prom. ad Character.), I am more inclined to read “ebdomhkonta,” following his last editor Fischer and Casaubon's initial thoughts. It's hard to believe that the mental and physical abilities could last until such an advanced age.]

41 (return)
[ The modern Venetians (Laugier, tom. ii. p. 119) accuse the emperor Manuel; but the calumny is refuted by Villehardouin and the older writers, who suppose that Dandolo lost his eyes by a wound, (No. 31, and Ducange.) * Note: The accounts differ, both as to the extent and the cause of his blindness According to Villehardouin and others, the sight was totally lost; according to the Chronicle of Andrew Dandolo. (Murat. tom. xii. p. 322,) he was vise debilis. See Wilken, vol. v. p. 143.—M.]

41 (return)
[ The modern Venetians (Laugier, vol. ii, p. 119) blame Emperor Manuel; however, this accusation is disproven by Villehardouin and earlier writers, who suggest that Dandolo became blind due to an injury (No. 31, and Ducange.) * Note: The accounts vary regarding both the degree and reason for his blindness. According to Villehardouin and others, he completely lost his sight; while the Chronicle of Andrew Dandolo (Murat. vol. xii, p. 322) states he was visually impaired. See Wilken, vol. v, p. 143.—M.]

42 (return)
[ See the original treaty in the Chronicle of Andrew Dandolo, p. 323—326.]

42 (return)
[ See the original treaty in the Chronicle of Andrew Dandolo, p. 323—326.]

43 (return)
[ A reader of Villehardouin must observe the frequent tears of the marshal and his brother knights. Sachiez que la ot mainte lerme plorée de pitié, (No. 17;) mult plorant, (ibid.;) mainte lerme plorée, (No. 34;) si orent mult pitié et plorerent mult durement, (No. 60;) i ot mainte lerme plorée de pitié, (No. 202.) They weep on every occasion of grief, joy, or devotion.]

43 (return)
[ A reader of Villehardouin must notice the frequent tears of the marshal and his fellow knights. Know that there were many tears shed out of compassion, (No. 17;) many cried, (ibid.;) many tears were shed, (No. 34;) they had great pity and cried very hard, (No. 60;) there were many tears shed out of compassion, (No. 202.) They weep on every occasion of grief, joy, or devotion.]

The execution of the treaty was still opposed by unforeseen difficulties and delays. The marshal, on his return to Troyes, was embraced and approved by Thibaut count of Champagne, who had been unanimously chosen general of the confederates. But the health of that valiant youth already declined, and soon became hopeless; and he deplored the untimely fate, which condemned him to expire, not in a field of battle, but on a bed of sickness. To his brave and numerous vassals, the dying prince distributed his treasures: they swore in his presence to accomplish his vow and their own; but some there were, says the marshal, who accepted his gifts and forfeited their words. The more resolute champions of the cross held a parliament at Soissons for the election of a new general; but such was the incapacity, or jealousy, or reluctance, of the princes of France, that none could be found both able and willing to assume the conduct of the enterprise. They acquiesced in the choice of a stranger, of Boniface marquis of Montferrat, descended of a race of heroes, and himself of conspicuous fame in the wars and negotiations of the times; 44 nor could the piety or ambition of the Italian chief decline this honorable invitation. After visiting the French court, where he was received as a friend and kinsman, the marquis, in the church of Soissons, was invested with the cross of a pilgrim and the staff of a general; and immediately repassed the Alps, to prepare for the distant expedition of the East. About the festival of the Pentecost he displayed his banner, and marched towards Venice at the head of the Italians: he was preceded or followed by the counts of Flanders and Blois, and the most respectable barons of France; and their numbers were swelled by the pilgrims of Germany, 45 whose object and motives were similar to their own. The Venetians had fulfilled, and even surpassed, their engagements: stables were constructed for the horses, and barracks for the troops: the magazines were abundantly replenished with forage and provisions; and the fleet of transports, ships, and galleys, was ready to hoist sail as soon as the republic had received the price of the freight and armament. But that price far exceeded the wealth of the crusaders who were assembled at Venice. The Flemings, whose obedience to their count was voluntary and precarious, had embarked in their vessels for the long navigation of the ocean and Mediterranean; and many of the French and Italians had preferred a cheaper and more convenient passage from Marseilles and Apulia to the Holy Land. Each pilgrim might complain, that after he had furnished his own contribution, he was made responsible for the deficiency of his absent brethren: the gold and silver plate of the chiefs, which they freely delivered to the treasury of St. Marks, was a generous but inadequate sacrifice; and after all their efforts, thirty-four thousand marks were still wanting to complete the stipulated sum. The obstacle was removed by the policy and patriotism of the doge, who proposed to the barons, that if they would join their arms in reducing some revolted cities of Dalmatia, he would expose his person in the holy war, and obtain from the republic a long indulgence, till some wealthy conquest should afford the means of satisfying the debt. After much scruple and hesitation, they chose rather to accept the offer than to relinquish the enterprise; and the first hostilities of the fleet and army were directed against Zara, 46 a strong city of the Sclavonian coast, which had renounced its allegiance to Venice, and implored the protection of the king of Hungary. 47 The crusaders burst the chain or boom of the harbor; landed their horses, troops, and military engines; and compelled the inhabitants, after a defence of five days, to surrender at discretion: their lives were spared, but the revolt was punished by the pillage of their houses and the demolition of their walls. The season was far advanced; the French and Venetians resolved to pass the winter in a secure harbor and plentiful country; but their repose was disturbed by national and tumultuous quarrels of the soldiers and mariners. The conquest of Zara had scattered the seeds of discord and scandal: the arms of the allies had been stained in their outset with the blood, not of infidels, but of Christians: the king of Hungary and his new subjects were themselves enlisted under the banner of the cross; and the scruples of the devout were magnified by the fear of lassitude of the reluctant pilgrims. The pope had excommunicated the false crusaders who had pillaged and massacred their brethren, 48 and only the marquis Boniface and Simon of Montfort 481 escaped these spiritual thunders; the one by his absence from the siege, the other by his final departure from the camp. Innocent might absolve the simple and submissive penitents of France; but he was provoked by the stubborn reason of the Venetians, who refused to confess their guilt, to accept their pardon, or to allow, in their temporal concerns, the interposition of a priest.

The implementation of the treaty was still facing unexpected challenges and delays. When the marshal returned to Troyes, he was welcomed and praised by Thibaut, the Count of Champagne, who had been unanimously elected as the general of the confederates. However, the health of that brave young man was already deteriorating and soon became hopeless; he mourned the untimely fate that condemned him to die, not in battle, but in bed. To his loyal and numerous vassals, the dying prince distributed his riches: they swore in his presence to fulfill his vow and their own; but there were some, as the marshal noted, who accepted his gifts and broke their promises. The more determined champions of the cross held a meeting in Soissons to elect a new general; but due to the incompetence, jealousy, or reluctance of the French princes, no one could be found who was both capable and willing to take charge of the mission. They agreed to select a stranger, Boniface, the Marquis of Montferrat, who came from a lineage of heroes and was well-known for his wartime accomplishments and negotiations; 44 nor could the devotion or ambition of the Italian leader turn down this honorable invitation. After visiting the French court, where he was welcomed as a friend and relative, the marquis, in the church of Soissons, was invested with the cross of a pilgrim and the staff of a general; and he promptly crossed the Alps again to prepare for the distant expedition to the East. Around the Pentecost festival, he raised his banner and marched towards Venice at the head of the Italians: he was either ahead of or followed by the Counts of Flanders and Blois, along with the most respected barons of France; their numbers were increased by German pilgrims, 45 whose goals and motivations were similar to their own. The Venetians had fulfilled, and even exceeded, their commitments: stables were built for the horses and barracks for the troops; the stores were fully stocked with forage and supplies; and the fleet of transports, ships, and galleys was ready to set sail as soon as the republic received payment for the cargo and armament. But that payment far surpassed the wealth of the assembled crusaders in Venice. The Flemings, who followed their count voluntarily and with uncertainty, had boarded their ships for the long journey across the ocean and Mediterranean; while many of the French and Italians preferred a cheaper and more convenient route from Marseilles and Apulia to the Holy Land. Each pilgrim complained that after contributing their share, they were made to cover for their absent comrades' shortfalls: the gold and silver items from the leaders, which they generously gave to St. Mark's treasury, were a noble but insufficient sacrifice; and despite all their efforts, thirty-four thousand marks were still needed to meet the agreed amount. The issue was resolved through the doge's policy and patriotism, who proposed to the barons that if they would combine their forces to take back some rebel cities in Dalmatia, he would join the holy war himself and secure from the republic a long deferment until some prosperous conquest could provide the means to settle the debt. After much deliberation and hesitation, they chose to accept the offer rather than abandon the mission; and the first military actions of the fleet and army were aimed at Zara, 46 a strong city on the Sclavonian coast that had renounced its allegiance to Venice and sought the protection of the King of Hungary. 47 The crusaders broke through the harbor chain; unloaded their horses, troops, and military equipment; and forced the inhabitants to surrender after five days of defense: their lives were spared, but the revolt was punished with the looting of their homes and the destruction of their walls. The season was well advanced; the French and Venetians decided to spend the winter in a safe harbor with ample resources; but their peace was disrupted by national and chaotic disputes among soldiers and sailors. The conquest of Zara had sown the seeds of discord and scandal: the allies' efforts were stained not with the blood of infidels, but with that of fellow Christians: the King of Hungary and his new subjects had enlisted under the cross banner; and the concerns of the devout were heightened by fears of the reluctance of the wavering pilgrims. The pope had excommunicated the false crusaders who had looted and slaughtered their brethren, 48 and only Marquis Boniface and Simon of Montfort 481 escaped these spiritual condemnations: one by his absence from the siege, the other by leaving the camp entirely. Innocent might absolve the simple and obedient penitents of France; but he was enraged by the obstinate arguments of the Venetians, who refused to acknowledge their wrongdoing, accept their penance, or allow a priest's intervention in their worldly affairs.

44 (return)
[ By a victory (A.D. 1191) over the citizens of Asti, by a crusade to Palestine, and by an embassy from the pope to the German princes, (Muratori, Annali d’Italia, tom. x. p. 163, 202.)]

44 (return)
[ Following a victory (A.D. 1191) against the people of Asti, a crusade to Palestine, and a mission from the pope to the German princes, (Muratori, Annali d’Italia, tom. x. p. 163, 202.)]

45 (return)
[ See the crusade of the Germans in the Historia C. P. of Gunther, (Canisii Antiq. Lect. tom. iv. p. v.—viii.,) who celebrates the pilgrimage of his abbot Martin, one of the preaching rivals of Fulk of Neuilly. His monastery, of the Cistercian order, was situate in the diocese of Basil.]

45 (return)
[ Check out the German crusade in Gunther's Historia C. P. (Canisii Antiq. Lect. vol. iv. p. v.—viii.), which celebrates the pilgrimage of his abbot Martin, a notable preacher in competition with Fulk of Neuilly. His monastery, part of the Cistercian order, was located in the diocese of Basel.]

46 (return)
[ Jadera, now Zara, was a Roman colony, which acknowledged Augustus for its parent. It is now only two miles round, and contains five or six thousand inhabitants; but the fortifications are strong, and it is joined to the main land by a bridge. See the travels of the two companions, Spon and Wheeler, (Voyage de Dalmatie, de Grèce, &c., tom. i. p. 64—70. Journey into Greece, p. 8—14;) the last of whom, by mistaking Sestertia for Sestertii, values an arch with statues and columns at twelve pounds. If, in his time, there were no trees near Zara, the cherry-trees were not yet planted which produce our incomparable marasquin.]

46 (return)
[ Jadera, now known as Zara, was a Roman colony that recognized Augustus as its founder. It's only about two miles in circumference and has a population of five or six thousand people; however, the fortifications are strong, and it is connected to the mainland by a bridge. Check out the travels of the two companions, Spon and Wheeler, (Voyage de Dalmatie, de Grèce, &c., tom. i. p. 64—70. Journey into Greece, p. 8—14;). The latter mistakenly refers to Sestertia as Sestertii, estimating an arch with statues and columns to be worth twelve pounds. If there were no trees near Zara in his time, the cherry trees that produce our remarkable marasquin had not yet been planted.]

47 (return)
[ Katona (Hist. Critica Reg. Hungariæ, Stirpis Arpad. tom. iv. p. 536—558) collects all the facts and testimonies most adverse to the conquerors of Zara.]

47 (return)
[ Katona (Hist. Critica Reg. Hungariæ, Stirpis Arpad. tom. iv. p. 536—558) gathers all the evidence and testimonies that are most unfavorable to the conquerors of Zara.]

48 (return)
[ See the whole transaction, and the sentiments of the pope, in the Epistles of Innocent III. Gesta, c. 86, 87, 88.]

48 (return)
[ Check out the entire transaction and the pope's thoughts in the Epistles of Innocent III. Gesta, c. 86, 87, 88.]

481 (return)
[ Montfort protested against the siege. Guido, the abbot of Vaux de Sernay, in the name of the pope, interdicted the attack on a Christian city; and the immediate surrender of the town was thus delayed for five days of fruitless resistance. Wilken, vol. v. p. 167. See likewise, at length, the history of the interdict issued by the pope. Ibid.—M.]

481 (return)
[ Montfort protested against the siege. Guido, the abbot of Vaux de Sernay, speaking on behalf of the pope, banned the attack on a Christian city; as a result, the immediate surrender of the town was postponed for five days of pointless resistance. Wilken, vol. v. p. 167. See also the detailed history of the interdict issued by the pope. Ibid.—M.]

The assembly of such formidable powers by sea and land had revived the hopes of young 49 Alexius; and both at Venice and Zara, he solicited the arms of the crusaders, for his own restoration and his father’s 50 deliverance. The royal youth was recommended by Philip king of Germany: his prayers and presence excited the compassion of the camp; and his cause was embraced and pleaded by the marquis of Montferrat and the doge of Venice. A double alliance, and the dignity of Cæsar, had connected with the Imperial family the two elder brothers of Boniface: 51 he expected to derive a kingdom from the important service; and the more generous ambition of Dandolo was eager to secure the inestimable benefits of trade and dominion that might accrue to his country. 52 Their influence procured a favorable audience for the ambassadors of Alexius; and if the magnitude of his offers excited some suspicion, the motives and rewards which he displayed might justify the delay and diversion of those forces which had been consecrated to the deliverance of Jerusalem. He promised in his own and his father’s name, that as soon as they should be seated on the throne of Constantinople, they would terminate the long schism of the Greeks, and submit themselves and their people to the lawful supremacy of the Roman church. He engaged to recompense the labors and merits of the crusaders, by the immediate payment of two hundred thousand marks of silver; to accompany them in person to Egypt; or, if it should be judged more advantageous, to maintain, during a year, ten thousand men, and, during his life, five hundred knights, for the service of the Holy Land. These tempting conditions were accepted by the republic of Venice; and the eloquence of the doge and marquis persuaded the counts of Flanders, Blois, and St. Pol, with eight barons of France, to join in the glorious enterprise. A treaty of offensive and defensive alliance was confirmed by their oaths and seals; and each individual, according to his situation and character, was swayed by the hope of public or private advantage; by the honor of restoring an exiled monarch; or by the sincere and probable opinion, that their efforts in Palestine would be fruitless and unavailing, and that the acquisition of Constantinople must precede and prepare the recovery of Jerusalem. But they were the chiefs or equals of a valiant band of freemen and volunteers, who thought and acted for themselves: the soldiers and clergy were divided; and, if a large majority subscribed to the alliance, the numbers and arguments of the dissidents were strong and respectable. 53 The boldest hearts were appalled by the report of the naval power and impregnable strength of Constantinople; and their apprehensions were disguised to the world, and perhaps to themselves, by the more decent objections of religion and duty. They alleged the sanctity of a vow, which had drawn them from their families and homes to the rescue of the holy sepulchre; nor should the dark and crooked counsels of human policy divert them from a pursuit, the event of which was in the hands of the Almighty. Their first offence, the attack of Zara, had been severely punished by the reproach of their conscience and the censures of the pope; nor would they again imbrue their hands in the blood of their fellow-Christians. The apostle of Rome had pronounced; nor would they usurp the right of avenging with the sword the schism of the Greeks and the doubtful usurpation of the Byzantine monarch. On these principles or pretences, many pilgrims, the most distinguished for their valor and piety, withdrew from the camp; and their retreat was less pernicious than the open or secret opposition of a discontented party, that labored, on every occasion, to separate the army and disappoint the enterprise.

The gathering of such powerful forces at sea and on land had renewed the hopes of young 49 Alexius. In both Venice and Zara, he sought the support of the crusaders to restore himself and save his father 50. The royal youth was backed by Philip, king of Germany: his pleas and presence stirred compassion within the camp, and his cause was championed by the marquis of Montferrat and the doge of Venice. A double alliance, along with the status of Cæsar, had linked the two elder brothers of Boniface to the Imperial family: 51 he hoped to gain a kingdom from this significant effort, while Dandolo’s more noble ambition was to secure the immense benefits of trade and power for his country. 52 Their influence earned Alexius's ambassadors a positive reception; and although the scale of his offers raised some suspicion, the incentives he presented could justify the postponement and diversion of forces meant to liberate Jerusalem. He promised, in his own and his father's name, that once they were on the throne of Constantinople, they would heal the long schism among the Greeks and submit themselves and their people to the rightful authority of the Roman church. He committed to reward the crusaders' efforts with an immediate payment of two hundred thousand marks of silver; to personally accompany them to Egypt; or, if deemed more beneficial, to support ten thousand men for a year and maintain five hundred knights for the Holy Land during his lifetime. These enticing conditions were accepted by the Venetian republic, and the persuasive speeches from the doge and marquis encouraged the counts of Flanders, Blois, and St. Pol, along with eight barons of France, to partake in this noble mission. A treaty for offensive and defensive alliance was solidified with their oaths and seals, and each person, depending on their status and role, was motivated by the potential for public or private gain, by the honor of restoring a displaced monarch, or by the genuine and reasonable belief that their efforts in Palestine might be fruitless and that capturing Constantinople needed to precede and facilitate the recovery of Jerusalem. However, they were leaders or equals among a courageous group of free men and volunteers who thought and acted independently: the soldiers and clergy were divided; and while a large majority supported the alliance, the dissenters had considerable numbers and strong arguments. 53 The boldest among them were unsettled by news of the naval strength and impenetrable defenses of Constantinople; and their fears were masked publicly, and perhaps even to themselves, by more respectable concerns of religion and duty. They pointed to the sanctity of a vow that had taken them from their families and homes to save the holy sepulchre; and they shouldn't allow the dark and twisted schemes of human politics to distract them from a mission whose outcome was in God's hands. Their initial transgression, the attack on Zara, had been harshly punished by the guilt of their conscience and the pope's censure; they would not again stain their hands with the blood of fellow Christians. The apostle of Rome had declared; nor would they assume the right to avenge the schism of the Greeks or the questionable claim of the Byzantine ruler with the sword. On these principles or excuses, many pilgrims, known for their bravery and faith, left the camp; and their exit was less harmful than the overt or covert dissent of a disgruntled faction that consistently sought to divide the army and thwart the mission.

49 (return)
[ A modern reader is surprised to hear of the valet de Constantinople, as applied to young Alexius, on account of his youth, like the infants of Spain, and the nobilissimus puer of the Romans. The pages and valets of the knights were as noble as themselves, (Villehardouin and Ducange, No. 36.)]

49 (return)
[ A modern reader is surprised to hear about the valet de Constantinople, referring to young Alexius, because of his youth, similar to the infants of Spain, and the nobilissimus puer of the Romans. The pages and valets of the knights were just as noble as they were, (Villehardouin and Ducange, No. 36.)]

50 (return)
[ The emperor Isaac is styled by Villehardouin, Sursac, (No. 35, &c.,) which may be derived from the French Sire, or the Greek Kur (kurioV?) melted into his proper name; the further corruptions of Tursac and Conserac will instruct us what license may have been used in the old dynasties of Assyria and Egypt.]

50 (return)
[ The emperor Isaac is referred to by Villehardouin as Sursac, (No. 35, &c.,) which might come from the French Sire, or the Greek Kur (kurioV?) blended into his actual name; the subsequent variations of Tursac and Conserac will show us what kinds of liberties may have been taken in the ancient dynasties of Assyria and Egypt.]

51 (return)
[ Reinier and Conrad: the former married Maria, daughter of the emperor Manuel Comnenus; the latter was the husband of Theodora Angela, sister of the emperors Isaac and Alexius. Conrad abandoned the Greek court and princess for the glory of defending Tyre against Saladin, (Ducange, Fam. Byzant. p. 187, 203.)]

51 (return)
[ Reinier and Conrad: the former was married to Maria, the daughter of Emperor Manuel Comnenus; the latter was married to Theodora Angela, the sister of Emperors Isaac and Alexius. Conrad left the Greek court and the princess behind to defend Tyre against Saladin, (Ducange, Fam. Byzant. p. 187, 203.)]

52 (return)
[ Nicetas (in Alexio Comneno, l. iii. c. 9) accuses the doge and Venetians as the first authors of the war against Constantinople, and considers only as a kuma epi kumati, the arrival and shameful offers of the royal exile. * Note: He admits, however, that the Angeli had committed depredations on the Venetian trade, and the emperor himself had refused the payment of part of the stipulated compensation for the seizure of the Venetian merchandise by the emperor Manuel. Nicetas, in loc.—M.]

52 (return)
[ Nicetas (in Alexio Comneno, l. iii. c. 9) blames the doge and Venetians as the main instigators of the war against Constantinople, viewing the arrival and dishonorable offers of the royal exile as just a minor issue. * Note: He does acknowledge that the Angeli had harmed Venetian trade, and the emperor himself had refused to pay part of the agreed compensation for the seizure of Venetian goods by emperor Manuel. Nicetas, in loc.—M.]

53 (return)
[ Villehardouin and Gunther represent the sentiments of the two parties. The abbot Martin left the army at Zara, proceeded to Palestine, was sent ambassador to Constantinople, and became a reluctant witness of the second siege.]

53 (return)
[ Villehardouin and Gunther reflect the feelings of both sides. Abbot Martin left the army at Zara, traveled to Palestine, was sent as an ambassador to Constantinople, and became an unwilling witness to the second siege.]

Notwithstanding this defection, the departure of the fleet and army was vigorously pressed by the Venetians, whose zeal for the service of the royal youth concealed a just resentment to his nation and family. They were mortified by the recent preference which had been given to Pisa, the rival of their trade; they had a long arrear of debt and injury to liquidate with the Byzantine court; and Dandolo might not discourage the popular tale, that he had been deprived of his eyes by the emperor Manuel, who perfidiously violated the sanctity of an ambassador. A similar armament, for ages, had not rode the Adriatic: it was composed of one hundred and twenty flat-bottomed vessels or palanders for the horses; two hundred and forty transports filled with men and arms; seventy store-ships laden with provisions; and fifty stout galleys, well prepared for the encounter of an enemy. 54 While the wind was favorable, the sky serene, and the water smooth, every eye was fixed with wonder and delight on the scene of military and naval pomp which overspread the sea. 541 The shields of the knights and squires, at once an ornament and a defence, were arranged on either side of the ships; the banners of the nations and families were displayed from the stern; our modern artillery was supplied by three hundred engines for casting stones and darts: the fatigues of the way were cheered with the sound of music; and the spirits of the adventurers were raised by the mutual assurance, that forty thousand Christian heroes were equal to the conquest of the world. 55 In the navigation 56 from Venice and Zara, the fleet was successfully steered by the skill and experience of the Venetian pilots: at Durazzo, the confederates first landed on the territories of the Greek empire: the Isle of Corfu afforded a station and repose; they doubled, without accident, the perilous cape of Malea, the southern point of Peloponnesus or the Morea; made a descent in the islands of Negropont and Andros; and cast anchor at Abydus on the Asiatic side of the Hellespont. These preludes of conquest were easy and bloodless: the Greeks of the provinces, without patriotism or courage, were crushed by an irresistible force: the presence of the lawful heir might justify their obedience; and it was rewarded by the modesty and discipline of the Latins. As they penetrated through the Hellespont, the magnitude of their navy was compressed in a narrow channel, and the face of the waters was darkened with innumerable sails. They again expanded in the basin of the Propontis, and traversed that placid sea, till they approached the European shore, at the abbey of St. Stephen, three leagues to the west of Constantinople. The prudent doge dissuaded them from dispersing themselves in a populous and hostile land; and, as their stock of provisions was reduced, it was resolved, in the season of harvest, to replenish their store-ships in the fertile islands of the Propontis. With this resolution, they directed their course: but a strong gale, and their own impatience, drove them to the eastward; and so near did they run to the shore and the city, that some volleys of stones and darts were exchanged between the ships and the rampart. As they passed along, they gazed with admiration on the capital of the East, or, as it should seem, of the earth; rising from her seven hills, and towering over the continents of Europe and Asia. The swelling domes and lofty spires of five hundred palaces and churches were gilded by the sun and reflected in the waters: the walls were crowded with soldiers and spectators, whose numbers they beheld, of whose temper they were ignorant; and each heart was chilled by the reflection, that, since the beginning of the world, such an enterprise had never been undertaken by such a handful of warriors. But the momentary apprehension was dispelled by hope and valor; and every man, says the marshal of Champagne, glanced his eye on the sword or lance which he must speedily use in the glorious conflict. 57 The Latins cast anchor before Chalcedon; the mariners only were left in the vessels: the soldiers, horses, and arms, were safely landed; and, in the luxury of an Imperial palace, the barons tasted the first fruits of their success. On the third day, the fleet and army moved towards Scutari, the Asiatic suburb of Constantinople: a detachment of five hundred Greek horse was surprised and defeated by fourscore French knights; and in a halt of nine days, the camp was plentifully supplied with forage and provisions.

Despite this setback, the Venetians pushed hard for the departure of the fleet and army, driven by their commitment to the young ruler while also harboring a deep resentment towards his nation and family. They were frustrated by the recent favoritism shown to Pisa, a competitor in trade; they had a long list of debts and grievances to settle with the Byzantine court; and Dandolo might not have discouraged the popular belief that he had been blinded by Emperor Manuel, who had treacherously violated the sanctity of an ambassador. A similar military force hadn’t sailed in the Adriatic for ages: it consisted of one hundred and twenty flat-bottomed boats or palanders for the horses; two hundred and forty transport ships filled with soldiers and weapons; seventy supply ships packed with provisions; and fifty sturdy galleys, well-prepared for battle. 54 With favorable winds, clear skies, and calm waters, everyone watched in awe and delight at the scene of military and naval splendor spread across the sea. 541 The shields of the knights and squires, both decorative and protective, were displayed on either side of the ships; the banners of various nations and families flew from the backs; our modern artillery consisted of three hundred machines for launching stones and darts: the weariness of the journey was lifted by music; and the adventurers' spirits were boosted by the shared belief that forty thousand Christian heroes could conquer the world. 55 While navigating 56 from Venice and Zara, the fleet was skillfully guided by experienced Venetian pilots: they first landed on the shores of the Greek empire at Durazzo. The Isle of Corfu provided a stop for rest; they safely rounded the treacherous Cape of Malea, the southern tip of Peloponnesus or the Morea; made landfall in the islands of Negropont and Andros; and anchored at Abydus on the Asian side of the Hellespont. These initial conquests were easy and bloodless: the Greeks in the provinces, lacking patriotism or courage, were overwhelmed by an unstoppable force. The presence of the rightful heir might justify their submission; and they were rewarded with the modesty and discipline of the Latins. As they moved through the Hellespont, the size of their fleet was compressed in a narrow channel, and the waters were darkened by countless sails. They spread out again in the Propontis and crossed that calm sea until they neared the European shoreline, at the abbey of St. Stephen, three leagues west of Constantinople. The wise doge advised against scattering in a densely populated and hostile area; and as their supplies dwindled, they decided to resupply their ships in the fertile islands of the Propontis during harvest season. With this plan, they set their course; but a strong wind, alongside their own eagerness, pushed them eastward, getting so close to the shore and the city that volleys of stones and darts were exchanged between the ships and the city walls. As they passed by, they admired the capital of the East, or perhaps the world itself; it rose from its seven hills, towering over the continents of Europe and Asia. The gleaming domes and tall spires of five hundred palaces and churches shone in the sun and were mirrored in the waters: the walls were packed with soldiers and spectators, whose numbers were seen but whose intentions were unknown; and each heart sank at the thought that such an undertaking had never been attempted by such a small group of warriors. Yet the momentary fear was overcome by hope and courage; and every man, as the marshal of Champagne noted, glanced at the sword or lance he would soon wield in the glorious battle. 57 The Latins anchored before Chalcedon; only the sailors remained on the ships: the soldiers, horses, and weapons were safely ashore; and in the luxury of a royal palace, the barons enjoyed the initial rewards of their success. On the third day, the fleet and army moved towards Scutari, the Asian suburb of Constantinople: a group of five hundred Greek cavalry was caught off guard and defeated by eighty French knights; and during a nine-day halt, the camp was well supplied with forage and food.

54 (return)
[ The birth and dignity of Andrew Dandolo gave him the motive and the means of searching in the archives of Venice the memorable story of his ancestor. His brevity seems to accuse the copious and more recent narratives of Sanudo, (in Muratori, Script. Rerum Italicarum, tom. xxii.,) Blondus, Sabellicus, and Rhamnusius.]

54 (return)
[ Andrew Dandolo's noble birth and status provided him both the motivation and the resources to explore the archives of Venice for the significant history of his ancestor. His concise account seems to criticize the extensive and more recent stories told by Sanudo, (in Muratori, Script. Rerum Italicarum, tom. xxii.), Blondus, Sabellicus, and Rhamnusius.]

541 (return)
[ This description rather belongs to the first setting sail of the expedition from Venice, before the siege of Zara. The armament did not return to Venice.—M.]

541 (return)
[ This description actually pertains to the initial departure of the expedition from Venice, prior to the siege of Zara. The fleet did not make it back to Venice.—M.]

55 (return)
[ Villehardouin, No. 62. His feelings and expressions are original: he often weeps, but he rejoices in the glories and perils of war with a spirit unknown to a sedentary writer.]

55 (return)
[ Villehardouin, No. 62. His emotions and expressions are unique: he often cries, but he finds joy in the triumphs and dangers of war with a spirit unfamiliar to a writer who stays put.]

56 (return)
[ In this voyage, almost all the geographical names are corrupted by the Latins. The modern appellation of Chalcis, and all Euba, is derived from its Euripus, Evripo, Negri-po, Negropont, which dishonors our maps, (D’Anville, Géographie Ancienne, tom. i. p. 263.)]

56 (return)
[ On this journey, nearly all the place names have been altered by the Latins. The modern name for Chalcis, and all of Euba, comes from its Euripus, Evripo, Negri-po, Negropont, which misrepresents our maps, (D’Anville, Géographie Ancienne, tom. i. p. 263.)]

57 (return)
[ Et sachiez que il ni ot si hardi cui le cuer ne fremist, (c. 66.).. Chascuns regardoit ses armes.... que par tems en arons mestier, (c. 67.) Such is the honesty of courage.]

57 (return)
[ And know that there was no one so bold whose heart did not tremble, (c. 66.).. Everyone looked at their weapons.... which we will need in time, (c. 67.) Such is the integrity of courage.]

In relating the invasion of a great empire, it may seem strange that I have not described the obstacles which should have checked the progress of the strangers. The Greeks, in truth, were an unwarlike people; but they were rich, industrious, and subject to the will of a single man: had that man been capable of fear, when his enemies were at a distance, or of courage, when they approached his person. The first rumor of his nephew’s alliance with the French and Venetians was despised by the usurper Alexius: his flatterers persuaded him, that in this contempt he was bold and sincere; and each evening, in the close of the banquet, he thrice discomfited the Barbarians of the West. These Barbarians had been justly terrified by the report of his naval power; and the sixteen hundred fishing boats of Constantinople 58 could have manned a fleet, to sink them in the Adriatic, or stop their entrance in the mouth of the Hellespont. But all force may be annihilated by the negligence of the prince and the venality of his ministers. The great duke, or admiral, made a scandalous, almost a public, auction of the sails, the masts, and the rigging: the royal forests were reserved for the more important purpose of the chase; and the trees, says Nicetas, were guarded by the eunuchs, like the groves of religious worship. 59 From his dream of pride, Alexius was awakened by the siege of Zara, and the rapid advances of the Latins; as soon as he saw the danger was real, he thought it inevitable, and his vain presumption was lost in abject despondency and despair. He suffered these contemptible Barbarians to pitch their camp in the sight of the palace; and his apprehensions were thinly disguised by the pomp and menace of a suppliant embassy. The sovereign of the Romans was astonished (his ambassadors were instructed to say) at the hostile appearance of the strangers. If these pilgrims were sincere in their vow for the deliverance of Jerusalem, his voice must applaud, and his treasures should assist, their pious design but should they dare to invade the sanctuary of empire, their numbers, were they ten times more considerable, should not protect them from his just resentment. The answer of the doge and barons was simple and magnanimous. “In the cause of honor and justice,” they said, “we despise the usurper of Greece, his threats, and his offers. Our friendship and his allegiance are due to the lawful heir, to the young prince, who is seated among us, and to his father, the emperor Isaac, who has been deprived of his sceptre, his freedom, and his eyes, by the crime of an ungrateful brother. Let that brother confess his guilt, and implore forgiveness, and we ourselves will intercede, that he may be permitted to live in affluence and security. But let him not insult us by a second message; our reply will be made in arms, in the palace of Constantinople.”

In discussing the invasion of a powerful empire, it might seem odd that I haven't mentioned the challenges that should have stopped the outsiders. The Greeks were actually not a warlike people; however, they were wealthy, hardworking, and under the control of one person: had that person been capable of fear when his enemies were far away, or bravery when they got close. The first news of his nephew's alliance with the French and Venetians was dismissed by the usurper Alexius: his flatterers convinced him that this disdain made him bold and sincere; and every evening, at the end of the banquet, he boasted about defeating the Barbarians of the West three times. These Barbarians had justifiably been scared by tales of his naval strength; the sixteen hundred fishing boats from Constantinople 58 could have formed a fleet to destroy them in the Adriatic or block their entry at the Hellespont. But all power can be destroyed by the negligence of a ruler and the corruption of his officials. The great duke or admiral made a scandalous, almost public auction of the sails, masts, and rigging: the royal forests were kept for the more important purpose of hunting; and the trees, says Nicetas, were guarded by eunuchs, like sacred groves. 59 Alexius was jolted from his delusions of grandeur by the siege of Zara and the swift advances of the Latins; when he realized the danger was real, he considered it unavoidable, and his empty arrogance turned into sheer hopelessness and despair. He allowed these disdained Barbarians to set up camp right in front of the palace; and his fears were only thinly veiled by the show and threats of a pleading delegation. The ruler of the Romans was shocked (his ambassadors were told to say) at the aggressive stance of the outsiders. If these pilgrims were genuine in their vow to rescue Jerusalem, his voice would support them, and his wealth should help their noble mission; but if they dared to invade the heart of the empire, even if their numbers were ten times greater, they would not escape his rightful anger. The response from the doge and barons was straightforward and noble. "For the sake of honor and justice," they declared, "we scorn the usurper of Greece, his menaces, and his deals. Our loyalty and his allegiance belong to the rightful heir, the young prince here with us, and to his father, Emperor Isaac, who has been stripped of his power, freedom, and sight by the betrayal of an ungrateful brother. Let that brother admit his wrongdoing and plead for forgiveness, and we will advocate for him to live in comfort and safety. But let him not insult us with a second message; we will respond with force in the palace of Constantinople.”

58 (return)
[ Eandem urbem plus in solis navibus piscatorum abundare, quam illos in toto navigio. Habebat enim mille et sexcentas piscatorias naves..... Bellicas autem sive mercatorias habebant infinitæ multitudinis et portum tutissimum. Gunther, Hist. C. P. c. 8, p. 10.]

58 (return)
[ The same city was more abundant in fishing boats than those on the entire fleet. It had a thousand and six hundred fishing vessels... They had countless military and merchant ships as well and a very safe harbor. Gunther, Hist. C. P. c. 8, p. 10.]

59 (return)
[ Kaqaper iervn alsewn, eipein de kai Jeojuteutwn paradeiswn ejeid?onto toutwni. Nicetas in Alex. Comneno, l. iii. c. 9, p. 348.]

59 (return)
[ Kaqaper iervn alsewn, eipein de kai Jeojuteutwn paradeiswn ejeid?onto toutnh. Nicetas in Alex. Comneno, l. iii. c. 9, p. 348.]

On the tenth day of their encampment at Scutari, the crusaders prepared themselves, as soldiers and as Catholics, for the passage of the Bosphorus. Perilous indeed was the adventure; the stream was broad and rapid: in a calm the current of the Euxine might drive down the liquid and unextinguishable fires of the Greeks; and the opposite shores of Europe were defended by seventy thousand horse and foot in formidable array. On this memorable day, which happened to be bright and pleasant, the Latins were distributed in six battles or divisions; the first, or vanguard, was led by the count of Flanders, one of the most powerful of the Christian princes in the skill and number of his crossbows. The four successive battles of the French were commanded by his brother Henry, the counts of St. Pol and Blois, and Matthew of Montmorency; the last of whom was honored by the voluntary service of the marshal and nobles of Champagne. The sixth division, the rear-guard and reserve of the army, was conducted by the marquis of Montferrat, at the head of the Germans and Lombards. The chargers, saddled, with their long caparisons dragging on the ground, were embarked in the flat palanders; 60 and the knights stood by the side of their horses, in complete armor, their helmets laced, and their lances in their hands. The numerous train of sergeants 61 and archers occupied the transports; and each transport was towed by the strength and swiftness of a galley. The six divisions traversed the Bosphorus, without encountering an enemy or an obstacle: to land the foremost was the wish, to conquer or die was the resolution, of every division and of every soldier. Jealous of the preeminence of danger, the knights in their heavy armor leaped into the sea, when it rose as high as their girdle; the sergeants and archers were animated by their valor; and the squires, letting down the draw-bridges of the palanders, led the horses to the shore. Before their squadrons could mount, and form, and couch their Lances, the seventy thousand Greeks had vanished from their sight: the timid Alexius gave the example to his troops; and it was only by the plunder of his rich pavilions that the Latins were informed that they had fought against an emperor. In the first consternation of the flying enemy, they resolved, by a double attack, to open the entrance of the harbor. The tower of Galata, 62 in the suburb of Pera, was attacked and stormed by the French, while the Venetians assumed the more difficult task of forcing the boom or chain that was stretched from that tower to the Byzantine shore. After some fruitless attempts, their intrepid perseverance prevailed: twenty ships of war, the relics of the Grecian navy, were either sunk or taken: the enormous and massy links of iron were cut asunder by the shears, or broken by the weight, of the galleys; 63 and the Venetian fleet, safe and triumphant, rode at anchor in the port of Constantinople. By these daring achievements, a remnant of twenty thousand Latins solicited the license of besieging a capital which contained above four hundred thousand inhabitants, 64 able, though not willing, to bear arms in defence of their country. Such an account would indeed suppose a population of near two millions; but whatever abatement may be required in the numbers of the Greeks, the belief of those numbers will equally exalt the fearless spirit of their assailants.

On the tenth day of their camp at Scutari, the crusaders prepared themselves, as soldiers and Catholics, for crossing the Bosphorus. The adventure was indeed dangerous; the river was wide and fast: even in a calm, the current of the Euxine could carry down the relentless fires of the Greeks; and the opposite shores of Europe were defended by seventy thousand infantry and cavalry in formidable formation. On this memorable day, which was bright and pleasant, the Latins were divided into six divisions; the first, or vanguard, was led by the count of Flanders, one of the most powerful Christian princes, skilled in and equipped with many crossbows. The four succeeding divisions of the French were led by his brother Henry, the counts of St. Pol and Blois, and Matthew of Montmorency, the last of whom was honored by the voluntary service of the marshal and nobles of Champagne. The sixth division, the rear-guard and reserve of the army, was commanded by the marquis of Montferrat, at the forefront of the Germans and Lombards. The horses, saddled and with their long caparisons trailing on the ground, were loaded onto the flat palanders; 60 and the knights stood beside their horses, fully armored, their helmets laced, and their lances in hand. The numerous train of sergeants 61 and archers occupied the transports; and each transport was towed by the strength and speed of a galley. The six divisions crossed the Bosphorus without encountering an enemy or an obstacle: the foremost wished to land, and every division and soldier was resolved to conquer or die. Eager for the glory of danger, the knights in heavy armor jumped into the water when it rose to their waist; the sergeants and archers were inspired by their bravery; and the squires, lowering the draw-bridges of the palanders, guided the horses to the shore. Before their units could mount, form, and brace their lances, the seventy thousand Greeks had disappeared from view: the timid Alexius led his troops in flight; and it was only by raiding his lavish pavilions that the Latins realized they had fought against an emperor. In the initial panic of the retreating enemy, they decided, by a dual assault, to open the harbor entrance. The tower of Galata, 62 in the suburb of Pera, was attacked and stormed by the French, while the Venetians took on the more challenging task of breaching the chain stretched from that tower to the Byzantine shore. After several unsuccessful attempts, their fearless persistence succeeded: twenty warships, the remnants of the Greek navy, were either sunk or captured; the massive iron links were severed by the cutting tools or broken by the weight of the galleys; 63 and the Venetian fleet, safe and victorious, anchored in the port of Constantinople. Through these bold actions, a remnant of twenty thousand Latins sought permission to besiege a capital with more than four hundred thousand inhabitants, 64 able, though not willing, to defend their country. This account indeed suggests a population nearing two million; but regardless of how much the Greek numbers might be exaggerated, the belief in those numbers would equally enhance the fearless spirit of their attackers.

60 (return)
[ From the version of Vignere I adopt the well-sounding word palander, which is still used, I believe, in the Mediterranean. But had I written in French, I should have preserved the original and expressive denomination of vessiers or huissiers, from the huis or door which was let down as a draw-bridge; but which, at sea, was closed into the side of the ship, (see Ducange au Villehardouin, No. 14, and Joinville. p. 27, 28, edit. du Louvre.)]

60 (return)
[ From the version of Vignere, I choose the catchy term palander, which I believe is still in use in the Mediterranean. However, if I had written in French, I would have kept the original and meaningful terms vessiers or huissiers, from huis or door, which acted like a drawbridge; but when at sea, it was retracted into the side of the ship, (see Ducange au Villehardouin, No. 14, and Joinville. p. 27, 28, edit. du Louvre.)]

61 (return)
[ To avoid the vague expressions of followers, &c., I use, after Villehardouin, the word sergeants for all horsemen who were not knights. There were sergeants at arms, and sergeants at law; and if we visit the parade and Westminster Hall, we may observe the strange result of the distinction, (Ducange, Glossar. Latin, Servientes, &c., tom. vi. p. 226—231.)]

61 (return)
[To avoid the unclear terms used by followers, I refer to all horsemen who weren't knights as sergeants, following Villehardouin. There were sergeants at arms and sergeants at law; if we visit the parade and Westminster Hall, we might notice the unusual outcome of this distinction, (Ducange, Glossar. Latin, Servientes, &c., tom. vi. p. 226—231.)]

62 (return)
[ It is needless to observe, that on the subject of Galata, the chain, &c., Ducange is accurate and full. Consult likewise the proper chapters of the C. P. Christiana of the same author. The inhabitants of Galata were so vain and ignorant, that they applied to themselves St. Paul’s Epistle to the Galatians.]

62 (return)
[It’s unnecessary to mention that when it comes to Galata, the chain, etc., Ducange is thorough and precise. Refer to the relevant chapters of the C. P. Christiana by the same author. The people of Galata were so arrogant and uninformed that they took St. Paul’s Epistle to the Galatians as being addressed to them.]

63 (return)
[ The vessel that broke the chain was named the Eagle, Aquila, (Dandolo, Chronicon, p. 322,) which Blondus (de Gestis Venet.) has changed into Aquilo, the north wind. Ducange (Observations, No. 83) maintains the latter reading; but he had not seen the respectable text of Dandolo, nor did he enough consider the topography of the harbor. The south-east would have been a more effectual wind. (Note to Wilken, vol. v. p. 215.)]

63 (return)
[ The ship that broke the chain was called the Eagle, Aquila, (Dandolo, Chronicon, p. 322,) which Blondus (de Gestis Venet.) changed to Aquilo, meaning the north wind. Ducange (Observations, No. 83) supports the latter version; however, he hadn't seen the reliable text of Dandolo, nor did he fully consider the harbor's geography. A south-east wind would have been more effective. (Note to Wilken, vol. v. p. 215.)]

64 (return)
[ Quatre cens mil homes ou plus, (Villehardouin, No. 134,) must be understood of men of a military age. Le Beau (Hist. du. Bas Empire, tom. xx. p. 417) allows Constantinople a million of inhabitants, of whom 60,000 horse, and an infinite number of foot-soldiers. In its present decay, the capital of the Ottoman empire may contain 400,000 souls, (Bell’s Travels, vol. ii. p. 401, 402;) but as the Turks keep no registers, and as circumstances are fallacious, it is impossible to ascertain (Niebuhr, Voyage en Arabie, tom. i. p. 18, 19) the real populousness of their cities.]

64 (return)
[Four hundred thousand men or more, (Villehardouin, No. 134,) refers to men of military age. Le Beau (Hist. du Bas Empire, tom. xx. p. 417) estimates that Constantinople had a million inhabitants, including 60,000 cavalry and countless infantry. In its current decline, the capital of the Ottoman Empire may hold around 400,000 people, (Bell’s Travels, vol. ii. p. 401, 402;) but since the Turks do not keep records, and due to varying circumstances, it's impossible to determine (Niebuhr, Voyage en Arabie, tom. i. p. 18, 19) the true population of their cities.]

In the choice of the attack, the French and Venetians were divided by their habits of life and warfare. The former affirmed with truth, that Constantinople was most accessible on the side of the sea and the harbor. The latter might assert with honor, that they had long enough trusted their lives and fortunes to a frail bark and a precarious element, and loudly demanded a trial of knighthood, a firm ground, and a close onset, either on foot or on horseback. After a prudent compromise, of employing the two nations by sea and land, in the service best suited to their character, the fleet covering the army, they both proceeded from the entrance to the extremity of the harbor: the stone bridge of the river was hastily repaired; and the six battles of the French formed their encampment against the front of the capital, the basis of the triangle which runs about four miles from the port to the Propontis. 65 On the edge of a broad ditch, at the foot of a lofty rampart, they had leisure to contemplate the difficulties of their enterprise. The gates to the right and left of their narrow camp poured forth frequent sallies of cavalry and light-infantry, which cut off their stragglers, swept the country of provisions, sounded the alarm five or six times in the course of each day, and compelled them to plant a palisade, and sink an intrenchment, for their immediate safety. In the supplies and convoys the Venetians had been too sparing, or the Franks too voracious: the usual complaints of hunger and scarcity were heard, and perhaps felt their stock of flour would be exhausted in three weeks; and their disgust of salt meat tempted them to taste the flesh of their horses. The trembling usurper was supported by Theodore Lascaris, his son-in-law, a valiant youth, who aspired to save and to rule his country; the Greeks, regardless of that country, were awakened to the defence of their religion; but their firmest hope was in the strength and spirit of the Varangian guards, of the Danes and English, as they are named in the writers of the times. 66 After ten days’ incessant labor, the ground was levelled, the ditch filled, the approaches of the besiegers were regularly made, and two hundred and fifty engines of assault exercised their various powers to clear the rampart, to batter the walls, and to sap the foundations. On the first appearance of a breach, the scaling-ladders were applied: the numbers that defended the vantage ground repulsed and oppressed the adventurous Latins; but they admired the resolution of fifteen knights and sergeants, who had gained the ascent, and maintained their perilous station till they were precipitated or made prisoners by the Imperial guards. On the side of the harbor the naval attack was more successfully conducted by the Venetians; and that industrious people employed every resource that was known and practiced before the invention of gunpowder. A double line, three bow-shots in front, was formed by the galleys and ships; and the swift motion of the former was supported by the weight and loftiness of the latter, whose decks, and poops, and turret, were the platforms of military engines, that discharged their shot over the heads of the first line. The soldiers, who leaped from the galleys on shore, immediately planted and ascended their scaling-ladders, while the large ships, advancing more slowly into the intervals, and lowering a draw-bridge, opened a way through the air from their masts to the rampart. In the midst of the conflict, the doge, a venerable and conspicuous form, stood aloft in complete armor on the prow of his galley. The great standard of St. Mark was displayed before him; his threats, promises, and exhortations, urged the diligence of the rowers; his vessel was the first that struck; and Dandolo was the first warrior on the shore. The nations admired the magnanimity of the blind old man, without reflecting that his age and infirmities diminished the price of life, and enhanced the value of immortal glory. On a sudden, by an invisible hand, (for the standard-bearer was probably slain,) the banner of the republic was fixed on the rampart: twenty-five towers were rapidly occupied; and, by the cruel expedient of fire, the Greeks were driven from the adjacent quarter. The doge had despatched the intelligence of his success, when he was checked by the danger of his confederates. Nobly declaring that he would rather die with the pilgrims than gain a victory by their destruction, Dandolo relinquished his advantage, recalled his troops, and hastened to the scene of action. He found the six weary diminutive battles of the French encompassed by sixty squadrons of the Greek cavalry, the least of which was more numerous than the largest of their divisions. Shame and despair had provoked Alexius to the last effort of a general sally; but he was awed by the firm order and manly aspect of the Latins; and, after skirmishing at a distance, withdrew his troops in the close of the evening. The silence or tumult of the night exasperated his fears; and the timid usurper, collecting a treasure of ten thousand pounds of gold, basely deserted his wife, his people, and his fortune; threw himself into a bark; stole through the Bosphorus; and landed in shameful safety in an obscure harbor of Thrace. As soon as they were apprised of his flight, the Greek nobles sought pardon and peace in the dungeon where the blind Isaac expected each hour the visit of the executioner. Again saved and exalted by the vicissitudes of fortune, the captive in his Imperial robes was replaced on the throne, and surrounded with prostrate slaves, whose real terror and affected joy he was incapable of discerning. At the dawn of day, hostilities were suspended, and the Latin chiefs were surprised by a message from the lawful and reigning emperor, who was impatient to embrace his son, and to reward his generous deliverers. 67

In deciding how to attack, the French and Venetians were split because of their different lifestyles and ways of fighting. The French correctly argued that Constantinople was most vulnerable along the sea and harbor. The Venetians, however, could honorably claim that they had put their lives and fortunes at risk too many times in fragile boats and uncertain seas, insisting instead on a trial of knighthood on solid ground, whether on foot or horseback. After a careful compromise that utilized both nations at sea and on land according to their strengths, the fleet supported the army as they moved from the entrance to the far end of the harbor: the stone bridge over the river was quickly repaired, and the French set up their camp in six battalions facing the capital, forming the base of a triangle extending about four miles from the port to the Propontis. 65 At the edge of a wide ditch, at the base of a tall rampart, they had time to reflect on the challenges of their mission. The gates to the right and left of their narrow camp frequently opened for cavalry and light infantry sorties, cutting off stragglers, depleting supplies, sounding the alarm five or six times each day, and forcing them to build a palisade and dig trenches for immediate safety. The Venetians had either been too frugal with supplies or the Franks too greedy: complaints of hunger and scarcity were common, and they feared their stock of flour would run out in three weeks; disgusted with salted meat, they were tempted to eat their horses. The nervous usurper was backed by Theodore Lascaris, his son-in-law, a brave young man who hoped to save and rule his country; the Greeks, indifferent to that country, were stirred to defend their religion; but their strongest hope lay in the strength and spirit of the Varangian guards, known as Danes and English in the writings of the time. 66 After ten days of unremitting effort, the ground was leveled, the ditch filled, the besiegers' approaches well-established, and two hundred and fifty siege engines wielded their various powers to breach the rampart, batter the walls, and undermine the foundations. At the first sign of a breach, scaling ladders were lifted; however, the defenders who held the high ground pushed back the daring Latins. They were impressed by the determination of fifteen knights and sergeants who managed to climb up and held their risky position until they were thrown down or captured by the Imperial guards. On the harbor side, the naval assault was more effectively carried out by the Venetians, who used every known tactic from before gunpowder was invented. They formed a double line three bow shots out with galleys and ships; the swift movement of the galleys was supported by the weight and height of the ships, whose decks, sterns, and turrets served as platforms for military engines that shot projectiles over the heads of the first line. The soldiers who jumped from the galleys onto the shore immediately set up and climbed their ladders, while the larger ships, moving more slowly, lowered drawbridges to create a path from their masts to the rampart. In the middle of the chaos, the doge, a distinguished and venerable figure, stood fully armored at the prow of his galley. The great standard of St. Mark flew before him; his threats, promises, and encouragement urged on the rowers; his vessel was the first to ground; and Dandolo was the first warrior ashore. The nations admired the bravery of the blind old man, not realizing that his age and frailty lessened the value of life and increased the allure of eternal glory. Suddenly, by an unseen hand (likely because the standard-bearer had been slain), the republic's banner was hoisted on the rampart: twenty-five towers were quickly occupied; and through the brutal tactic of fire, the Greeks were driven out of the nearby area. The doge had sent news of his success when he was stopped by the danger faced by his allies. Nobly declaring that he would rather die with the pilgrims than win a victory at their expense, Dandolo abandoned his advantage, called back his troops, and rushed to the scene. He found the six weary diminutive battles of the French surrounded by sixty squadrons of Greek cavalry, each one larger than the biggest of their divisions. Ashamed and desperate, Alexius was driven to make one last push for a general breakout; but he was intimidated by the Latins' firm order and brave appearance, and after skirmishing at a distance, he withdrew his troops at nightfall. The silence or commotion of the night heightened his fears; and the cowardly usurper, gathering a stash of ten thousand pounds of gold, disgracefully abandoned his wife, his people, and his fortune; he jumped into a boat, slipped through the Bosphorus, and landed in shameful safety in a hidden harbor in Thrace. Once they learned of his escape, the Greek nobles sought mercy and peace in the dungeon where the blind Isaac awaited the executioner's arrival. Once again saved and elevated by the twists of fortune, the captive, in his Imperial robes, was restored to the throne, surrounded by prostrate slaves, whose genuine fear and feigned joy he could not perceive. At dawn, fighting was paused, and the Latin leaders were surprised by a message from the rightful and reigning emperor, who was eager to embrace his son and reward his brave rescuers. 67

65 (return)
[ On the most correct plans of Constantinople, I know not how to measure more than 4000 paces. Yet Villehardouin computes the space at three leagues, (No. 86.) If his eye were not deceived, he must reckon by the old Gallic league of 1500 paces, which might still be used in Champagne.]

65 (return)
[ In the most accurate maps of Constantinople, I can’t measure more than 4000 paces. However, Villehardouin estimates the distance at three leagues, (No. 86.) If he isn’t mistaken, he must be using the old Gallic league of 1500 paces, which might still be in use in Champagne.]

66 (return)
[ The guards, the Varangi, are styled by Villehardouin, (No. 89, 95) Englois et Danois avec leurs haches. Whatever had been their origin, a French pilgrim could not be mistaken in the nations of which they were at that time composed.]

66 (return)
[ The guards, the Varangians, are described by Villehardouin, (No. 89, 95) as English and Danes with their axes. Regardless of their origins, a French pilgrim would not be confused about the nationalities that made up their ranks at that time.]

67 (return)
[ For the first siege and conquest of Constantinople, we may read the original letter of the crusaders to Innocent III., Gesta, c. 91, p. 533, 534. Villehardouin, No. 75—99. Nicetas, in Alexio Comnen. l. iii. c. 10, p. 349—352. Dandolo, in Chron. p. 322. Gunther, and his abbot Martin, were not yet returned from their obstinate pilgrim age to Jerusalem, or St. John d’Acre, where the greatest part of the company had died of the plague.]

67 (return)
[ For the first siege and capture of Constantinople, we can refer to the original letter from the crusaders to Innocent III., Gesta, c. 91, p. 533, 534. Villehardouin, No. 75—99. Nicetas, in Alexio Comnen. l. iii. c. 10, p. 349—352. Dandolo, in Chron. p. 322. Gunther and his abbot Martin had not yet returned from their stubborn pilgrimage to Jerusalem or St. John d’Acre, where most of the group had died from the plague.]

Chapter LX: The Fourth Crusade.—Part III.

But these generous deliverers were unwilling to release their hostage, till they had obtained from his father the payment, or at least the promise, of their recompense. They chose four ambassadors, Matthew of Montmorency, our historian the marshal of Champagne, and two Venetians, to congratulate the emperor. The gates were thrown open on their approach, the streets on both sides were lined with the battle axes of the Danish and English guard: the presence-chamber glittered with gold and jewels, the false substitute of virtue and power: by the side of the blind Isaac his wife was seated, the sister of the king of Hungary: and by her appearance, the noble matrons of Greece were drawn from their domestic retirement, and mingled with the circle of senators and soldiers. The Latins, by the mouth of the marshal, spoke like men conscious of their merits, but who respected the work of their own hands; and the emperor clearly understood, that his son’s engagements with Venice and the pilgrims must be ratified without hesitation or delay. Withdrawing into a private chamber with the empress, a chamberlain, an interpreter, and the four ambassadors, the father of young Alexius inquired with some anxiety into the nature of his stipulations. The submission of the Eastern empire to the pope, the succor of the Holy Land, and a present contribution of two hundred thousand marks of silver.—“These conditions are weighty,” was his prudent reply: “they are hard to accept, and difficult to perform. But no conditions can exceed the measure of your services and deserts.” After this satisfactory assurance, the barons mounted on horseback, and introduced the heir of Constantinople to the city and palace: his youth and marvellous adventures engaged every heart in his favor, and Alexius was solemnly crowned with his father in the dome of St. Sophia. In the first days of his reign, the people, already blessed with the restoration of plenty and peace, was delighted by the joyful catastrophe of the tragedy; and the discontent of the nobles, their regret, and their fears, were covered by the polished surface of pleasure and loyalty The mixture of two discordant nations in the same capital might have been pregnant with mischief and danger; and the suburb of Galata, or Pera, was assigned for the quarters of the French and Venetians. But the liberty of trade and familiar intercourse was allowed between the friendly nations: and each day the pilgrims were tempted by devotion or curiosity to visit the churches and palaces of Constantinople. Their rude minds, insensible perhaps of the finer arts, were astonished by the magnificent scenery: and the poverty of their native towns enhanced the populousness and riches of the first metropolis of Christendom. 68 Descending from his state, young Alexius was prompted by interest and gratitude to repeat his frequent and familiar visits to his Latin allies; and in the freedom of the table, the gay petulance of the French sometimes forgot the emperor of the East. 69 In their most serious conferences, it was agreed, that the reunion of the two churches must be the result of patience and time; but avarice was less tractable than zeal; and a larger sum was instantly disbursed to appease the wants, and silence the importunity, of the crusaders. 70 Alexius was alarmed by the approaching hour of their departure: their absence might have relieved him from the engagement which he was yet incapable of performing; but his friends would have left him, naked and alone, to the caprice and prejudice of a perfidious nation. He wished to bribe their stay, the delay of a year, by undertaking to defray their expense, and to satisfy, in their name, the freight of the Venetian vessels. The offer was agitated in the council of the barons; and, after a repetition of their debates and scruples, a majority of votes again acquiesced in the advice of the doge and the prayer of the young emperor. At the price of sixteen hundred pounds of gold, he prevailed on the marquis of Montferrat to lead him with an army round the provinces of Europe; to establish his authority, and pursue his uncle, while Constantinople was awed by the presence of Baldwin and his confederates of France and Flanders. The expedition was successful: the blind emperor exulted in the success of his arms, and listened to the predictions of his flatterers, that the same Providence which had raised him from the dungeon to the throne, would heal his gout, restore his sight, and watch over the long prosperity of his reign. Yet the mind of the suspicious old man was tormented by the rising glories of his son; nor could his pride conceal from his envy, that, while his own name was pronounced in faint and reluctant acclamations, the royal youth was the theme of spontaneous and universal praise. 71

But these generous rescuers were not willing to release their hostage until they received payment, or at least a promise of payment, from his father. They chose four ambassadors: Matthew of Montmorency, our historian who was the marshal of Champagne, and two Venetians, to congratulate the emperor. The gates opened as they approached, and the streets on both sides were lined with the battle axes of the Danish and English guards; the presence chamber glittered with gold and jewels, the false symbols of virtue and power. By the side of the blind Isaac sat his wife, the sister of the king of Hungary. Her presence drew the noble women of Greece from their domestic lives to mingle with the circle of senators and soldiers. The Latins, through the marshal, spoke confidently of their achievements, while respecting their hard work. The emperor clearly understood that his son’s commitments to Venice and the pilgrims needed to be confirmed without hesitation or delay. Withdrew into a private chamber with the empress, a chamberlain, an interpreter, and the four ambassadors, the father of young Alexius nervously inquired about the nature of his agreements: the submission of the Eastern empire to the pope, the aid for the Holy Land, and an immediate contribution of two hundred thousand marks of silver. “These conditions are significant,” was his cautious reply. “They are tough to accept and hard to carry out. But no terms can surpass the extent of your services and merits.” After this reassuring promise, the barons mounted their horses and introduced the heir of Constantinople to the city and palace. His youth and incredible adventures won everyone’s heart, and Alexius was ceremonially crowned alongside his father in the dome of St. Sophia. In the early days of his reign, the people, already blessed with the restoration of abundance and peace, celebrated the joyful conclusion of the troubles; and the nobles' discontent, their regrets, and fears were masked by a polished surface of pleasure and loyalty. The mix of two opposing nations in the same capital could have been full of trouble and danger; so the suburb of Galata, or Pera, was designated for the quarters of the French and Venetians. However, they were allowed the freedom of trade and friendly interaction, and every day, the pilgrims were drawn by either devotion or curiosity to visit the churches and palaces of Constantinople. Their unrefined minds, perhaps unaware of the finer arts, were awed by the stunning scenery; and the poverty of their hometowns made the bustling wealth of the first metropolis of Christendom seem even more impressive. 68 Stepping down from his position, young Alexius was motivated by interest and gratitude to make frequent and friendly visits to his Latin allies; and at the shared table, the lively spirit of the French sometimes overshadowed the emperor of the East. 69 In their most serious discussions, it was agreed that reuniting the two churches would require patience and time; yet greed was less yielding than zeal, and a larger sum was instantly paid out to satisfy the needs and silence the requests of the crusaders. 70 Alexius was anxious about the approaching time of their departure: their absence could have freed him from the obligation he was still unable to fulfill; but his allies would have left him exposed and alone, at the mercy and biases of a treacherous nation. He hoped to persuade them to stay a year longer by offering to cover their costs and, on their behalf, pay for the freight of the Venetian ships. This proposal was discussed in the council of barons; and, after revisiting their debates and concerns, a majority again agreed with the doge’s advice and the young emperor’s request. At the cost of sixteen hundred pounds of gold, he convinced the marquis of Montferrat to lead him with an army through the provinces of Europe; to establish his authority and go after his uncle, while Constantinople was held in check by the presence of Baldwin and his allies from France and Flanders. The expedition was successful: the blind emperor rejoiced in his victorious arms and listened to the flattery of his supporters, who predicted that the same Providence that had raised him from the dungeon to the throne would cure his gout, restore his sight, and ensure his reign’s long success. Yet, the suspicious old man was plagued by his son's rising prominence; he could not hide from his envy that, while his own name was met with faint and reluctant cheers, the young royal was the subject of spontaneous and widespread praise. 71

68 (return)
[ Compare, in the rude energy of Villehardouin, (No. 66, 100,) the inside and outside views of Constantinople, and their impression on the minds of the pilgrims: cette ville (says he) que de toutes les autres ere souveraine. See the parallel passages of Fulcherius Carnotensis, Hist. Hierosol. l. i. c. 4, and Will. Tyr. ii. 3, xx. 26.]

68 (return)
[ Compare, in the raw energy of Villehardouin, (No. 66, 100,) the perspectives from both inside and outside Constantinople, and how they affected the thoughts of the pilgrims: this city (he says) is supreme over all others. See the similar passages of Fulcherius Carnotensis, Hist. Hierosol. l. i. c. 4, and Will. Tyr. ii. 3, xx. 26.]

69 (return)
[ As they played at dice, the Latins took off his diadem, and clapped on his head a woollen or hairy cap, to megaloprepeV kai pagkleiston katerrupainen onoma, (Nicetas, p. 358.) If these merry companions were Venetians, it was the insolence of trade and a commonwealth.]

69 (return)
[ While they were playing dice, the Latins took off his crown and put a woolen or hairy cap on his head, which has a grand and well-known name, (Nicetas, p. 358.) If these playful friends were Venetians, it was the arrogance of commerce and a republic.]

70 (return)
[ Villehardouin, No. 101. Dandolo, p. 322. The doge affirms, that the Venetians were paid more slowly than the French; but he owns, that the histories of the two nations differed on that subject. Had he read Villehardouin? The Greeks complained, however, good totius Græciæ opes transtulisset, (Gunther, Hist. C. P. c 13) See the lamentations and invectives of Nicetas, (p. 355.)]

70 (return)
[ Villehardouin, No. 101. Dandolo, p. 322. The doge claims that the Venetians were paid more slowly than the French, but he admits that the histories of the two nations disagreed on that point. Did he read Villehardouin? The Greeks complained, however, about how he had transferred all the wealth of Greece, (Gunther, Hist. C. P. c 13) See the laments and accusations of Nicetas, (p. 355.)]

71 (return)
[ The reign of Alexius Comnenus occupies three books in Nicetas, p. 291—352. The short restoration of Isaac and his son is despatched in five chapters, p. 352—362.]

71 (return)
[ Alexius Comnenus's rule is covered in three books by Nicetas, p. 291—352. The brief restoration of Isaac and his son is summarized in five chapters, p. 352—362.]

By the recent invasion, the Greeks were awakened from a dream of nine centuries; from the vain presumption that the capital of the Roman empire was impregnable to foreign arms. The strangers of the West had violated the city, and bestowed the sceptre, of Constantine: their Imperial clients soon became as unpopular as themselves: the well-known vices of Isaac were rendered still more contemptible by his infirmities, and the young Alexius was hated as an apostate, who had renounced the manners and religion of his country. His secret covenant with the Latins was divulged or suspected; the people, and especially the clergy, were devoutly attached to their faith and superstition; and every convent, and every shop, resounded with the danger of the church and the tyranny of the pope. 72 An empty treasury could ill supply the demands of regal luxury and foreign extortion: the Greeks refused to avert, by a general tax, the impending evils of servitude and pillage; the oppression of the rich excited a more dangerous and personal resentment; and if the emperor melted the plate, and despoiled the images, of the sanctuary, he seemed to justify the complaints of heresy and sacrilege. During the absence of Marquis Boniface and his Imperial pupil, Constantinople was visited with a calamity which might be justly imputed to the zeal and indiscretion of the Flemish pilgrims. 73 In one of their visits to the city, they were scandalized by the aspect of a mosque or synagogue, in which one God was worshipped, without a partner or a son. Their effectual mode of controversy was to attack the infidels with the sword, and their habitation with fire: but the infidels, and some Christian neighbors, presumed to defend their lives and properties; and the flames which bigotry had kindled, consumed the most orthodox and innocent structures. During eight days and nights, the conflagration spread above a league in front, from the harbor to the Propontis, over the thickest and most populous regions of the city. It is not easy to count the stately churches and palaces that were reduced to a smoking ruin, to value the merchandise that perished in the trading streets, or to number the families that were involved in the common destruction. By this outrage, which the doge and the barons in vain affected to disclaim, the name of the Latins became still more unpopular; and the colony of that nation, above fifteen thousand persons, consulted their safety in a hasty retreat from the city to the protection of their standard in the suburb of Pera. The emperor returned in triumph; but the firmest and most dexterous policy would have been insufficient to steer him through the tempest, which overwhelmed the person and government of that unhappy youth. His own inclination, and his father’s advice, attached him to his benefactors; but Alexius hesitated between gratitude and patriotism, between the fear of his subjects and of his allies. 74 By his feeble and fluctuating conduct he lost the esteem and confidence of both; and, while he invited the marquis of Monferrat to occupy the palace, he suffered the nobles to conspire, and the people to arm, for the deliverance of their country. Regardless of his painful situation, the Latin chiefs repeated their demands, resented his delays, suspected his intentions, and exacted a decisive answer of peace or war. The haughty summons was delivered by three French knights and three Venetian deputies, who girded their swords, mounted their horses, pierced through the angry multitude, and entered, with a fearful countenance, the palace and presence of the Greek emperor. In a peremptory tone, they recapitulated their services and his engagements; and boldly declared, that unless their just claims were fully and immediately satisfied, they should no longer hold him either as a sovereign or a friend. After this defiance, the first that had ever wounded an Imperial ear, they departed without betraying any symptoms of fear; but their escape from a servile palace and a furious city astonished the ambassadors themselves; and their return to the camp was the signal of mutual hostility.

By the recent invasion, the Greeks were jolted awake from a nine-century delusion; from the false belief that the capital of the Roman Empire was invulnerable to foreign attacks. The outsiders from the West had invaded the city and taken control of Constantine's rule; their Imperial allies quickly became just as unpopular. Isaac's well-known faults became even more disgraceful due to his weaknesses, and young Alexius was despised as a traitor who had abandoned the customs and faith of his homeland. His secret deal with the Latins was exposed or suspected; the people, especially the clergy, were deeply committed to their beliefs and traditions, and every monastery and shop echoed with concerns about the church's safety and the pope's oppression. 72 An empty treasury struggled to meet the demands of royal extravagance and foreign exploitation: the Greeks refused to prevent the looming threats of servitude and looting through a general tax; the oppression of the wealthy sparked a more personal and dangerous resentment; and if the emperor melted down church silver and robbed sacred images, it seemed to validate accusations of heresy and sacrilege. While Marquis Boniface and his Imperial student were away, Constantinople faced a disaster that could be justly blamed on the zeal and recklessness of the Flemish pilgrims. 73 During one of their visits to the city, they were appalled by the sight of a mosque or synagogue, where one God was worshipped, without a partner or a son. Their method of debate was to attack the infidels with swords and set their homes on fire: but the infidels, alongside some Christian neighbors, fought back to defend their lives and properties; and the flames ignited by bigotry consumed even the most orthodox and innocent buildings. For eight days and nights, the fire spread over a league, from the harbor to the Propontis, across the densest and most populated areas of the city. It's hard to count the grand churches and palaces that were reduced to smoking ruins, to estimate the goods lost in commercial streets, or to tally the families caught in the widespread destruction. This outrage, which the doge and the barons tried in vain to deny, made the name of the Latins even more hated; and the colony of that nation, over fifteen thousand people, sought refuge in a hasty retreat to their camp in the suburb of Pera. The emperor returned in triumph; however, even the most skilled policy could not navigate the storm that overwhelmed this unfortunate young leader. His own desires and his father's counsel drew him toward his benefactors; but Alexius was torn between gratitude and patriotism, between fearing his subjects and his allies. 74 His weak and wavering decisions made him lose the respect and trust of both sides; and while inviting the Marquis of Monferrat to take over the palace, he allowed the nobles to conspire and the people to arm themselves for their country's liberation. Ignoring his difficult circumstances, the Latin leaders repeated their demands, resented his delays, questioned his motives, and demanded a clear answer of peace or war. The arrogant ultimatum was delivered by three French knights and three Venetian envoys, who strapped on their swords, mounted their horses, pushed through the angry crowds, and entered the palace where the Greek emperor was present, wearing fearful expressions. In a commanding tone, they summarized their services and his commitments; and boldly stated that unless their fair demands were met completely and without delay, they would no longer recognize him as either their ruler or their ally. After this challenge, the first ever to offend an Imperial ear, they left without showing any signs of fear; but their escape from a subjugated palace and an enraged city shocked the ambassadors themselves, and their return to the camp marked the beginning of mutual hostility.

72 (return)
[ When Nicetas reproaches Alexius for his impious league, he bestows the harshest names on the pope’s new religion, meizon kai atopwtaton... parektrophn pistewV... tvn tou Papa pronomiwn kainismon,... metaqesin te kai metapoihsin tvn palaivn 'RwmaioiV?eqvn, (p. 348.) Such was the sincere language of every Greek to the last gasp of the empire.]

72 (return)
[ When Nicetas criticizes Alexius for his sinful alliance, he uses the harshest terms to describe the pope’s new religion, greater and more outlandish... a total betrayal of faith... the innovations of the pope’s governance,... a change and transformation of the old Roman traditions? (p. 348.) Such was the honest expression of every Greek until the very end of the empire.]

73 (return)
[ Nicetas (p. 355) is positive in the charge, and specifies the Flemings, (FlamioneV,) though he is wrong in supposing it an ancient name. Villehardouin (No. 107) exculpates the barons, and is ignorant (perhaps affectedly ignorant) of the names of the guilty.]

73 (return)
[ Nicetas (p. 355) firmly makes the accusation and identifies the Flemings, (FlamioneV), although he's mistaken in thinking it's an ancient name. Villehardouin (No. 107) clears the barons of any blame and seems unaware (maybe pretends to be unaware) of the names of those responsible.]

74 (return)
[ Compare the suspicions and complaints of Nicetas (p. 359—362) with the blunt charges of Baldwin of Flanders, (Gesta Innocent III. c. 92, p. 534,) cum patriarcha et mole nobilium, nobis promises perjurus et mendax.]

74 (return)
[ Compare the doubts and grievances of Nicetas (p. 359—362) with the direct accusations made by Baldwin of Flanders, (Gesta Innocent III. c. 92, p. 534,) along with the patriarch and a group of nobles, who promised us deceitfully and dishonestly.]

Among the Greeks, all authority and wisdom were overborne by the impetuous multitude, who mistook their rage for valor, their numbers for strength, and their fanaticism for the support and inspiration of Heaven. In the eyes of both nations Alexius was false and contemptible; the base and spurious race of the Angeli was rejected with clamorous disdain; and the people of Constantinople encompassed the senate, to demand at their hands a more worthy emperor. To every senator, conspicuous by his birth or dignity, they successively presented the purple: by each senator the deadly garment was repulsed: the contest lasted three days; and we may learn from the historian Nicetas, one of the members of the assembly, that fear and weaknesses were the guardians of their loyalty. A phantom, who vanished in oblivion, was forcibly proclaimed by the crowd: 75 but the author of the tumult, and the leader of the war, was a prince of the house of Ducas; and his common appellation of Alexius must be discriminated by the epithet of Mourzoufle, 76 which in the vulgar idiom expressed the close junction of his black and shaggy eyebrows. At once a patriot and a courtier, the perfidious Mourzoufle, who was not destitute of cunning and courage, opposed the Latins both in speech and action, inflamed the passions and prejudices of the Greeks, and insinuated himself into the favor and confidence of Alexius, who trusted him with the office of great chamberlain, and tinged his buskins with the colors of royalty. At the dead of night, he rushed into the bed-chamber with an affrighted aspect, exclaiming, that the palace was attacked by the people and betrayed by the guards. Starting from his couch, the unsuspecting prince threw himself into the arms of his enemy, who had contrived his escape by a private staircase. But that staircase terminated in a prison: Alexius was seized, stripped, and loaded with chains; and, after tasting some days the bitterness of death, he was poisoned, or strangled, or beaten with clubs, at the command, or in the presence, of the tyrant. The emperor Isaac Angelus soon followed his son to the grave; and Mourzoufle, perhaps, might spare the superfluous crime of hastening the extinction of impotence and blindness.

Among the Greeks, all authority and wisdom were overwhelmed by the angry crowd, who mistook their fury for bravery, their numbers for power, and their fanaticism for divine support and inspiration. Both nations viewed Alexius as deceitful and despicable; the baseless and illegitimate Angeli were rejected with loud disdain; and the people of Constantinople surrounded the senate, demanding a more worthy emperor. To each senator, notable by their heritage or status, they successively presented the royal purple: each senator rejected the deadly garment. The struggle lasted three days, and we learn from the historian Nicetas, one of the assembly members, that fear and weakness were the protectors of their loyalty. A phantom, who vanished into obscurity, was forcefully declared by the crowd: 75 but the instigator of the chaos and the leader of the war was a prince from the Ducas family; his common name Alexius should be distinguished with the title Mourzoufle, 76, which in common language referred to the close connection of his black, bushy eyebrows. At once a patriot and a courtier, the treacherous Mourzoufle, who wasn’t lacking in cunning or courage, opposed the Latins both in words and deeds, stirred the passions and prejudices of the Greeks, and ingratiated himself with Alexius, who trusted him with the role of grand chamberlain and dressed his boots in royal colors. In the dead of night, he burst into the bedroom with a terrified expression, claiming that the palace was under attack by the people and betrayed by the guards. Startled from his bed, the unsuspecting prince fell into the arms of his enemy, who had planned his escape through a secret staircase. But that staircase led to a prison: Alexius was captured, stripped, and shackled; after experiencing a few days of the pain of death, he was poisoned, strangled, or beaten to death by the order or in the presence of the tyrant. Emperor Isaac Angelus soon followed his son to the grave; and perhaps Mourzoufle would spare himself the added crime of hastening the end of the weak and blind.

75 (return)
[ His name was Nicholas Canabus: he deserved the praise of Nicetas and the vengeance of Mourzoufle, (p. 362.)]

75 (return)
[ His name was Nicholas Canabus: he earned the admiration of Nicetas and the wrath of Mourzoufle, (p. 362.)]

76 (return)
[ Villehardouin (No. 116) speaks of him as a favorite, without knowing that he was a prince of the blood, Angelus and Ducas. Ducange, who pries into every corner, believes him to be the son of Isaac Ducas Sebastocrator, and second cousin of young Alexius.]

76 (return)
[ Villehardouin (No. 116) talks about him as a favorite, not realizing that he was a prince of the blood, Angelus and Ducas. Ducange, who investigates every detail, thinks he’s the son of Isaac Ducas Sebastocrator and the second cousin of young Alexius.]

The death of the emperors, and the usurpation of Mourzoufle, had changed the nature of the quarrel. It was no longer the disagreement of allies who overvalued their services, or neglected their obligations: the French and Venetians forgot their complaints against Alexius, dropped a tear on the untimely fate of their companion, and swore revenge against the perfidious nation who had crowned his assassin. Yet the prudent doge was still inclined to negotiate: he asked as a debt, a subsidy, or a fine, fifty thousand pounds of gold, about two millions sterling; nor would the conference have been abruptly broken, if the zeal, or policy, of Mourzoufle had not refused to sacrifice the Greek church to the safety of the state. 77 Amidst the invectives of his foreign and domestic enemies, we may discern, that he was not unworthy of the character which he had assumed, of the public champion: the second siege of Constantinople was far more laborious than the first; the treasury was replenished, and discipline was restored, by a severe inquisition into the abuses of the former reign; and Mourzoufle, an iron mace in his hand, visiting the posts, and affecting the port and aspect of a warrior, was an object of terror to his soldiers, at least, and to his kinsmen. Before and after the death of Alexius, the Greeks made two vigorous and well-conducted attempts to burn the navy in the harbor; but the skill and courage of the Venetians repulsed the fire-ships; and the vagrant flames wasted themselves without injury in the sea. 78 In a nocturnal sally the Greek emperor was vanquished by Henry, brother of the count of Flanders: the advantages of number and surprise aggravated the shame of his defeat: his buckler was found on the field of battle; and the Imperial standard, 79 a divine image of the Virgin, was presented, as a trophy and a relic to the Cistercian monks, the disciples of St. Bernard. Near three months, without excepting the holy season of Lent, were consumed in skirmishes and preparations, before the Latins were ready or resolved for a general assault. The land fortifications had been found impregnable; and the Venetian pilots represented, that, on the shore of the Propontis, the anchorage was unsafe, and the ships must be driven by the current far away to the straits of the Hellespont; a prospect not unpleasing to the reluctant pilgrims, who sought every opportunity of breaking the army. From the harbor, therefore, the assault was determined by the assailants, and expected by the besieged; and the emperor had placed his scarlet pavilions on a neighboring height, to direct and animate the efforts of his troops. A fearless spectator, whose mind could entertain the ideas of pomp and pleasure, might have admired the long array of two embattled armies, which extended above half a league, the one on the ships and galleys, the other on the walls and towers raised above the ordinary level by several stages of wooden turrets. Their first fury was spent in the discharge of darts, stones, and fire, from the engines; but the water was deep; the French were bold; the Venetians were skilful; they approached the walls; and a desperate conflict of swords, spears, and battle-axes, was fought on the trembling bridges that grappled the floating, to the stable, batteries. In more than a hundred places, the assault was urged, and the defence was sustained; till the superiority of ground and numbers finally prevailed, and the Latin trumpets sounded a retreat. On the ensuing days, the attack was renewed with equal vigor, and a similar event; and, in the night, the doge and the barons held a council, apprehensive only for the public danger: not a voice pronounced the words of escape or treaty; and each warrior, according to his temper, embraced the hope of victory, or the assurance of a glorious death. 80 By the experience of the former siege, the Greeks were instructed, but the Latins were animated; and the knowledge that Constantinople might be taken, was of more avail than the local precautions which that knowledge had inspired for its defence. In the third assault, two ships were linked together to double their strength; a strong north wind drove them on the shore; the bishops of Troyes and Soissons led the van; and the auspicious names of the pilgrim and the paradise resounded along the line. 81 The episcopal banners were displayed on the walls; a hundred marks of silver had been promised to the first adventurers; and if their reward was intercepted by death, their names have been immortalized by fame. 811 Four towers were scaled; three gates were burst open; and the French knights, who might tremble on the waves, felt themselves invincible on horseback on the solid ground. Shall I relate that the thousands who guarded the emperor’s person fled on the approach, and before the lance, of a single warrior? Their ignominious flight is attested by their countryman Nicetas: an army of phantoms marched with the French hero, and he was magnified to a giant in the eyes of the Greeks. 82 While the fugitives deserted their posts and cast away their arms, the Latins entered the city under the banners of their leaders: the streets and gates opened for their passage; and either design or accident kindled a third conflagration, which consumed in a few hours the measure of three of the largest cities of France. 83 In the close of evening, the barons checked their troops, and fortified their stations: They were awed by the extent and populousness of the capital, which might yet require the labor of a month, if the churches and palaces were conscious of their internal strength. But in the morning, a suppliant procession, with crosses and images, announced the submission of the Greeks, and deprecated the wrath of the conquerors: the usurper escaped through the golden gate: the palaces of Blachernæ and Boucoleon were occupied by the count of Flanders and the marquis of Montferrat; and the empire, which still bore the name of Constantine, and the title of Roman, was subverted by the arms of the Latin pilgrims. 84

The death of the emperors and Mourzoufle's takeover had changed the nature of the conflict. It was no longer just a disagreement among allies who overestimated their contributions or ignored their responsibilities: the French and Venetians set aside their grievances against Alexius, shed tears for their fallen companion, and vowed revenge against the treacherous nation that had crowned his assassin. Still, the cautious doge was open to negotiations: he demanded as a debt, a subsidy, or a fine, fifty thousand pounds of gold, about two million sterling; the talks might not have ended abruptly if Mourzoufle's fervor or strategy hadn’t refused to sacrifice the Greek church for the state’s safety. 77 Through the criticisms from his foreign and domestic adversaries, we can see that he wasn't unworthy of the role he had taken on as the people's champion: the second siege of Constantinople was far more challenging than the first; the treasury was replenished, and order was restored through a strict investigation into the abuses of the previous reign; and Mourzoufle, brandishing an iron mace, visiting the posts, and taking on the demeanor of a warrior, was a source of fear for his soldiers, at least, and for his relatives. Before and after Alexius’s death, the Greeks made two bold and well-planned attempts to burn the navy in the harbor; however, the skill and bravery of the Venetians drove back the fire ships, and the wandering flames extinguished themselves harmlessly in the sea. 78 In a nighttime raid, the Greek emperor was defeated by Henry, the brother of the count of Flanders: the advantages of numbers and surprise heightened the disgrace of his defeat: his shield was left on the battlefield, and the Imperial standard, 79 a divine image of the Virgin, was presented as a trophy and relic to the Cistercian monks, followers of St. Bernard. They spent nearly three months, including the holy season of Lent, in skirmishes and preparations before the Latins were ready or determined for a full assault. The land fortifications were found to be impenetrable; and the Venetian pilots noted that the anchorage on the Propontis shore was unsafe, requiring the ships to be driven by the current far away to the Hellespont; a scenario not unappealing to the reluctant pilgrims, who looked for any excuse to disperse the army. Thus, from the harbor, the attackers decided to launch their assault, and it was awaited by the besieged; the emperor had set up his scarlet pavilions on a nearby height to direct and inspire his troops’ efforts. A fearless observer, whose imagination could grasp the ideas of spectacle and pleasure, might have admired the long line of two opposing armies, stretched over half a league, one on ships and galleys, the other on the walls and towers raised above the usual level by several stages of wooden turrets. Their initial fury was spent in hurling darts, stones, and fire from the engines; but the water was deep; the French were bold; the Venetians were skilled; they approached the walls; and a fierce battle of swords, spears, and battle-axes unfolded on the shaky bridges connecting the floating to the stable batteries. In more than a hundred places, the attack was pushed forward, and the defense was held up; until the advantage of higher ground and numbers ultimately prevailed, leading the Latin trumpets to sound a retreat. In the following days, the assault was renewed with equal energy and similar outcomes; and at night, the doge and the barons held a council, concerned only about the public danger: not a single voice uttered words of escape or treaty; each warrior, according to his temperament, clung to either the hope of victory or the assurance of a glorious death. 80 From the experience of the previous siege, the Greeks were better prepared, but the Latins were invigorated; and the realization that Constantinople could be captured was more useful than the local precautions that knowledge had instilled for its defense. In the third assault, two ships were tied together to amplify their strength; a strong north wind pushed them to the shore; the bishops of Troyes and Soissons led the charge; and the fortunate names of the pilgrim and paradise echoed along the ranks. 81 The episcopal banners were displayed on the walls; a hundred marks of silver had been promised to the first adventurers; and if their reward was cut short by death, their names would be forever remembered through glory. 811 Four towers were scaled; three gates were smashed open; and the French knights, who might have trembled on the waves, felt invincible on horseback on firm ground. Should I mention that the thousands protecting the emperor fled at the approach of a single warrior? Their dishonorable flight is confirmed by their compatriot Nicetas: an army of phantoms marched alongside the French hero, and he appeared as a giant in the eyes of the Greeks. 82 As the fugitives abandoned their positions and discarded their weapons, the Latins entered the city under the banners of their leaders: the streets and gates opened to let them through; and either design or chance ignited a third fire, which consumed in a few hours the equivalent of three of the largest cities in France. 83 In the evening, the barons held their troops back and fortified their positions: They were struck by the vastness and population of the capital, which might still require a month of labor, if the churches and palaces were aware of their inner strength. But in the morning, a supplicant procession, with crosses and icons, signaled the Greeks’ submission and pleaded for the conquerors’ mercy: the usurper slipped away through the golden gate: the palaces of Blachernæ and Boucoleon were taken over by the count of Flanders and the marquis of Montferrat; and the empire, which still carried the name of Constantine and the title of Roman, was toppled by the forces of the Latin pilgrims. 84

77 (return)
[ This negotiation, probable in itself, and attested by Nicetas, (p 65,) is omitted as scandalous by the delicacy of Dandolo and Villehardouin. * Note: Wilken places it before the death of Alexius, vol. v. p. 276.—M.]

77 (return)
[ This negotiation, likely in and of itself, and confirmed by Nicetas, (p 65,) is left out as scandalous due to the sensitivities of Dandolo and Villehardouin. * Note: Wilken puts it before the death of Alexius, vol. v. p. 276.—M.]

78 (return)
[ Baldwin mentions both attempts to fire the fleet, (Gest. c. 92, p. 534, 535;) Villehardouin, (No. 113—15) only describes the first. It is remarkable that neither of these warriors observe any peculiar properties in the Greek fire.]

78 (return)
[ Baldwin talks about both attempts to use the fleet's cannons, (Gest. c. 92, p. 534, 535;) while Villehardouin, (No. 113—15) only describes the first one. It's noteworthy that neither of these soldiers mentions any unique characteristics of the Greek fire.]

79 (return)
[ Ducange (No. 119) pours forth a torrent of learning on the Gonfanon Imperial. This banner of the Virgin is shown at Venice as a trophy and relic: if it be genuine the pious doge must have cheated the monks of Citeaux.]

79 (return)
[ Ducange (No. 119) shares an abundance of knowledge about the Gonfanon Imperial. This banner of the Virgin is displayed in Venice as a trophy and relic: if it's authentic, the devout doge must have deceived the monks of Citeaux.]

80 (return)
[ Villehardouin (No. 126) confesses, that mult ere grant peril; and Guntherus (Hist. C. P. c. 13) affirms, that nulla spes victoriæ arridere poterat. Yet the knight despises those who thought of flight, and the monk praises his countrymen who were resolved on death.]

80 (return)
[ Villehardouin (No. 126) confesses that there were great dangers; and Guntherus (Hist. C. P. c. 13) states that there was no hope of victory. Yet the knight looks down on those who considered fleeing, while the monk praises his fellow countrymen who were determined to die.]

81 (return)
[ Baldwin, and all the writers, honor the names of these two galleys, felici auspicio.]

81 (return)
[Baldwin and all the writers pay tribute to the names of these two galleys, under fortunate auspices.]

811 (return)
[ Pietro Alberti, a Venetian noble and Andrew d’Amboise a French knight.—M.]

811 (return)
[ Pietro Alberti, a Venetian noble, and Andrew d’Amboise, a French knight.—M.]

82 (return)
[ With an allusion to Homer, Nicetas calls him enneorguioV, nine orgyæ, or eighteen yards high, a stature which would, indeed, have excused the terror of the Greek. On this occasion, the historian seems fonder of the marvellous than of his country, or perhaps of truth. Baldwin exclaims in the words of the psalmist, persequitur unus ex nobis centum alienos.]

82 (return)
[ Referring to Homer, Nicetas describes him as enneorguioV, nine orgyæ, or eighteen yards tall, a height that would definitely justify the fear of the Greek. In this instance, the historian seems more captivated by the extraordinary than by his homeland, or maybe even by the truth. Baldwin exclaims, echoing the psalmist, "one of us pursues a hundred foreigners."]

83 (return)
[ Villehardouin (No. 130) is again ignorant of the authors of this more legitimate fire, which is ascribed by Gunther to a quidam comes Teutonicus, (c. 14.) They seem ashamed, the incendiaries!]

83 (return)
[ Villehardouin (No. 130) is still unaware of who started this more legitimate fire, which Gunther attributes to a certain Teutonic count (c. 14). They seem to be embarrassed, the arsonists!]

84 (return)
[ For the second siege and conquest of Constantinople, see Villehardouin (No. 113—132,) Baldwin’s iid Epistle to Innocent III., (Gesta c. 92, p. 534—537,) with the whole reign of Mourzoufle, in Nicetas, (p 363—375;) and borrowed some hints from Dandolo (Chron. Venet. p. 323—330) and Gunther, (Hist. C. P. c. 14—18,) who added the decorations of prophecy and vision. The former produces an oracle of the Erythræan sibyl, of a great armament on the Adriatic, under a blind chief, against Byzantium, &c. Cœurious enough, were the prediction anterior to the fact.]

84 (return)
[ For the second siege and conquest of Constantinople, see Villehardouin (No. 113–132), Baldwin’s second Epistle to Innocent III. (Gesta c. 92, p. 534–537), along with the entire reign of Mourzoufle in Nicetas (p. 363–375); and I borrowed some ideas from Dandolo (Chron. Venet. p. 323–330) and Gunther (Hist. C. P. c. 14–18), who added elements of prophecy and vision. The former presents an oracle of the Erythræan sibyl about a large armada on the Adriatic, led by a blind chief, attacking Byzantium, etc. It’s curious enough that the prediction came before the actual event.]

Constantinople had been taken by storm; and no restraints, except those of religion and humanity, were imposed on the conquerors by the laws of war. Boniface, marquis of Montferrat, still acted as their general; and the Greeks, who revered his name as that of their future sovereign, were heard to exclaim in a lamentable tone, “Holy marquis-king, have mercy upon us!” His prudence or compassion opened the gates of the city to the fugitives; and he exhorted the soldiers of the cross to spare the lives of their fellow-Christians. The streams of blood that flowed down the pages of Nicetas may be reduced to the slaughter of two thousand of his unresisting countrymen; 85 and the greater part was massacred, not by the strangers, but by the Latins, who had been driven from the city, and who exercised the revenge of a triumphant faction. Yet of these exiles, some were less mindful of injuries than of benefits; and Nicetas himself was indebted for his safety to the generosity of a Venetian merchant. Pope Innocent the Third accuses the pilgrims for respecting, in their lust, neither age nor sex, nor religious profession; and bitterly laments that the deeds of darkness, fornication, adultery, and incest, were perpetrated in open day; and that noble matrons and holy nuns were polluted by the grooms and peasants of the Catholic camp. 86 It is indeed probable that the license of victory prompted and covered a multitude of sins: but it is certain, that the capital of the East contained a stock of venal or willing beauty, sufficient to satiate the desires of twenty thousand pilgrims; and female prisoners were no longer subject to the right or abuse of domestic slavery. The marquis of Montferrat was the patron of discipline and decency; the count of Flanders was the mirror of chastity: they had forbidden, under pain of death, the rape of married women, or virgins, or nuns; and the proclamation was sometimes invoked by the vanquished 87 and respected by the victors. Their cruelty and lust were moderated by the authority of the chiefs, and feelings of the soldiers; for we are no longer describing an irruption of the northern savages; and however ferocious they might still appear, time, policy, and religion had civilized the manners of the French, and still more of the Italians. But a free scope was allowed to their avarice, which was glutted, even in the holy week, by the pillage of Constantinople. The right of victory, unshackled by any promise or treaty, had confiscated the public and private wealth of the Greeks; and every hand, according to its size and strength, might lawfully execute the sentence and seize the forfeiture. A portable and universal standard of exchange was found in the coined and uncoined metals of gold and silver, which each captor, at home or abroad, might convert into the possessions most suitable to his temper and situation. Of the treasures, which trade and luxury had accumulated, the silks, velvets, furs, the gems, spices, and rich movables, were the most precious, as they could not be procured for money in the ruder countries of Europe. An order of rapine was instituted; nor was the share of each individual abandoned to industry or chance. Under the tremendous penalties of perjury, excommunication, and death, the Latins were bound to deliver their plunder into the common stock: three churches were selected for the deposit and distribution of the spoil: a single share was allotted to a foot-soldier; two for a sergeant on horseback; four to a knight; and larger proportions according to the rank and merit of the barons and princes. For violating this sacred engagement, a knight belonging to the count of St. Paul was hanged with his shield and coat of arms round his neck; his example might render similar offenders more artful and discreet; but avarice was more powerful than fear; and it is generally believed that the secret far exceeded the acknowledged plunder. Yet the magnitude of the prize surpassed the largest scale of experience or expectation. 88 After the whole had been equally divided between the French and Venetians, fifty thousand marks were deducted to satisfy the debts of the former and the demands of the latter. The residue of the French amounted to four hundred thousand marks of silver, 89 about eight hundred thousand pounds sterling; nor can I better appreciate the value of that sum in the public and private transactions of the age, than by defining it as seven times the annual revenue of the kingdom of England. 90

Constantinople had been captured by force, and the only limits on the conquerors were those set by religion and humanity, not by the laws of war. Boniface, marquis of Montferrat, continued to act as their leader; and the Greeks, who looked up to him as their future king, were heard crying out in despair, “Holy marquis-king, have mercy on us!” His wisdom or compassion allowed the gates of the city to open for the fleeing people; he urged the soldiers of the cross to save the lives of their fellow Christians. The bloodshed detailed in the pages of Nicetas can be reduced to the killing of two thousand of his helpless countrymen; and most of the casualties were not caused by outsiders but by the Latins, who had been expelled from the city and were seeking revenge as a victorious faction. However, some of these exiles focused more on kindness than on their grievances, and Nicetas himself owed his safety to the generosity of a Venetian merchant. Pope Innocent the Third accused the pilgrims of showing no respect for age, gender, or religion in their lust; he lamented that acts of darkness, fornication, adultery, and incest happened openly, and that noble women and holy nuns were violated by the grooms and peasants of the Catholic camp. It is likely that the freedom brought on by victory encouraged a multitude of sins: but it is certain that the capital of the East had enough willing or purchasable beauty to satisfy the desires of twenty thousand pilgrims; and female captives were no longer subjected to domestic slavery. The marquis of Montferrat championed discipline and decency; the count of Flanders represented chastity; they had prohibited, under the threat of death, the rape of married women, virgins, or nuns; and this order was sometimes upheld by the defeated and respected by the victors. Their cruelty and lust were tempered by the authority of their leaders and the sentiments of the soldiers; we are no longer describing a savage invasion from the north; and despite their ferocity, time, politics, and religion had civilized the behaviors of the French, and even more so of the Italians. However, their greed was allowed to run rampant, even during holy week, through the looting of Constantinople. The right of conquest, free from any promises or treaties, confiscated the public and private wealth of the Greeks; and every individual, according to their strength, could legally execute the sentences and seize the spoils. A universal standard for exchange was found in the gold and silver coins, which each captor could turn into possessions that suited their temperament and situation. Among the treasures accumulated through trade and luxury, silks, velvets, furs, gems, spices, and valuable goods were the most precious, as they could not be purchased with money in the more primitive parts of Europe. A system of plunder was established; and the share of each person was not left to chance or effort. Under severe penalties of perjury, excommunication, and death, the Latins were required to hand over their loot into a communal pool: three churches were chosen for storing and distributing the bounty: one share was given to a foot soldier; two for a sergeant on horseback; four for a knight; and larger shares were given based on the rank and merit of barons and princes. For breaching this important agreement, a knight allied with the count of St. Paul was hanged with his shield and coat of arms around his neck; this served as a warning to others, making them more cautious; but greed was stronger than fear; and it is commonly believed that the hidden spoils far outweighed the officially declared plunder. Yet the sheer amount of the treasure exceeded anyone's wildest expectations. After everything was equally divided between the French and Venetians, fifty thousand marks were deducted to pay off the debts of the former and the demands of the latter. The remaining French share amounted to four hundred thousand marks of silver, about eight hundred thousand pounds sterling; and I can best clarify the worth of that sum in the public and private dealings of the time by saying it was equivalent to seven times the annual revenue of the kingdom of England.

85 (return)
[ Ceciderunt tamen eâ die civium quasi duo millia, &c., (Gunther, c. 18.) Arithmetic is an excellent touchstone to try the amplifications of passion and rhetoric.]

85 (return)
[ On that day, however, almost two thousand citizens fell, etc. (Gunther, c. 18.) Arithmetic is a great way to assess the exaggerations of emotion and rhetoric.]

86 (return)
[ Quidam (says Innocent III., Gesta, c. 94, p. 538) nec religioni, nec ætati, nec sexui pepercerunt: sed fornicationes, adulteria, et incestus in oculis omnium exercentes, non solûm maritatas et viduas, sed et matronas et virgines Deoque dicatas, exposuerunt spurcitiis garcionum. Villehardouin takes no notice of these common incidents.]

86 (return)
[Some people (Innocent III., Gesta, c. 94, p. 538) showed no mercy to religion, age, or gender: they openly committed fornication, adultery, and incest in plain view of everyone, exposing not only married women and widows but also respectable women and virgins dedicated to God, to the filth of young men. Villehardouin does not mention these common events.]

87 (return)
[ Nicetas saved, and afterwards married, a noble virgin, (p. 380,) whom a soldier, eti martusi polloiV onhdon epibrimwmenoV, had almost violated in spite of the entolai, entalmata eu gegonotwn.]

87 (return)
[ Nicetas rescued and later married a noble virgin, (p. 380,) whom a soldier, with overwhelming force, had nearly assaulted despite the orders prohibiting it.]

88 (return)
[ Of the general mass of wealth, Gunther observes, ut de pauperibus et advenis cives ditissimi redderentur, (Hist. C. P. c. 18; (Villehardouin, (No. 132,) that since the creation, ne fu tant gaaignié dans une ville; Baldwin, (Gesta, c. 92,) ut tantum tota non videatur possidere Latinitas.]

88 (return)
[ Regarding the overall wealth distribution, Gunther notes that the richest citizens became rich by exploiting the poor and foreigners, (Hist. C. P. c. 18; (Villehardouin, (No. 132,) claiming that since the beginning, no city had ever gained so much; Baldwin, (Gesta, c. 92,) such that it seems Latin culture doesn’t possess so much.]

89 (return)
[ Villehardouin, No. 133—135. Instead of 400,000, there is a various reading of 500,000. The Venetians had offered to take the whole booty, and to give 400 marks to each knight, 200 to each priest and horseman, and 100 to each foot-soldier: they would have been great losers, (Le Beau, Hist. du. Bas Empire tom. xx. p. 506. I know not from whence.)]

89 (return)
[ Villehardouin, No. 133—135. Instead of 400,000, there’s an alternative reading of 500,000. The Venetians had offered to take all the spoils and give 400 marks to each knight, 200 to each priest and horseman, and 100 to each foot-soldier: they would have suffered significant losses, (Le Beau, Hist. du. Bas Empire tom. xx. p. 506. I don’t know where this comes from.)]

90 (return)
[ At the council of Lyons (A.D. 1245) the English ambassadors stated the revenue of the crown as below that of the foreign clergy, which amounted to 60,000 marks a year, (Matthew Paris, p. 451 Hume’s Hist. of England, vol. ii. p. 170.)]

90 (return)
[ At the council of Lyons (A.D. 1245) the English representatives reported that the crown's income was less than that of the foreign clergy, which was 60,000 marks per year, (Matthew Paris, p. 451 Hume’s Hist. of England, vol. ii. p. 170.)]

In this great revolution we enjoy the singular felicity of comparing the narratives of Villehardouin and Nicetas, the opposite feelings of the marshal of Champagne and the Byzantine senator. 91 At the first view it should seem that the wealth of Constantinople was only transferred from one nation to another; and that the loss and sorrow of the Greeks is exactly balanced by the joy and advantage of the Latins. But in the miserable account of war, the gain is never equivalent to the loss, the pleasure to the pain; the smiles of the Latins were transient and fallacious; the Greeks forever wept over the ruins of their country; and their real calamities were aggravated by sacrilege and mockery. What benefits accrued to the conquerors from the three fires which annihilated so vast a portion of the buildings and riches of the city? What a stock of such things, as could neither be used nor transported, was maliciously or wantonly destroyed! How much treasure was idly wasted in gaming, debauchery, and riot! And what precious objects were bartered for a vile price by the impatience or ignorance of the soldiers, whose reward was stolen by the base industry of the last of the Greeks! These alone, who had nothing to lose, might derive some profit from the revolution; but the misery of the upper ranks of society is strongly painted in the personal adventures of Nicetas himself. His stately palace had been reduced to ashes in the second conflagration; and the senator, with his family and friends, found an obscure shelter in another house which he possessed near the church of St. Sophia. It was the door of this mean habitation that his friend, the Venetian merchant, guarded in the disguise of a soldier, till Nicetas could save, by a precipitate flight, the relics of his fortune and the chastity of his daughter. In a cold, wintry season, these fugitives, nursed in the lap of prosperity, departed on foot; his wife was with child; the desertion of their slaves compelled them to carry their baggage on their own shoulders; and their women, whom they placed in the centre, were exhorted to conceal their beauty with dirt, instead of adorning it with paint and jewels Every step was exposed to insult and danger: the threats of the strangers were less painful than the taunts of the plebeians, with whom they were now levelled; nor did the exiles breathe in safety till their mournful pilgrimage was concluded at Selymbria, above forty miles from the capital. On the way they overtook the patriarch, without attendance and almost without apparel, riding on an ass, and reduced to a state of apostolical poverty, which, had it been voluntary, might perhaps have been meritorious. In the mean while, his desolate churches were profaned by the licentiousness and party zeal of the Latins. After stripping the gems and pearls, they converted the chalices into drinking-cups; their tables, on which they gamed and feasted, were covered with the pictures of Christ and the saints; and they trampled under foot the most venerable objects of the Christian worship. In the cathedral of St. Sophia, the ample veil of the sanctuary was rent asunder for the sake of the golden fringe; and the altar, a monument of art and riches, was broken in pieces and shared among the captors. Their mules and horses were laden with the wrought silver and gilt carvings, which they tore down from the doors and pulpit; and if the beasts stumbled under the burden, they were stabbed by their impatient drivers, and the holy pavement streamed with their impure blood. A prostitute was seated on the throne of the patriarch; and that daughter of Belial, as she is styled, sung and danced in the church, to ridicule the hymns and processions of the Orientals. Nor were the repositories of the royal dead secure from violation: in the church of the Apostles, the tombs of the emperors were rifled; and it is said, that after six centuries the corpse of Justinian was found without any signs of decay or putrefaction. In the streets, the French and Flemings clothed themselves and their horses in painted robes and flowing head-dresses of linen; and the coarse intemperance of their feasts 92 insulted the splendid sobriety of the East. To expose the arms of a people of scribes and scholars, they affected to display a pen, an inkhorn, and a sheet of paper, without discerning that the instruments of science and valor were alike feeble and useless in the hands of the modern Greeks.

In this major turning point, we have the unique opportunity to compare the stories of Villehardouin and Nicetas, the contrasting emotions of the marshal of Champagne and the Byzantine senator. 91 At first glance, it may seem like the wealth of Constantinople simply moved from one nation to another, with the Greeks' loss and sorrow perfectly countered by the Latins' joy and gain. However, in the harsh reality of war, the gain never truly matches the loss, nor the joy the pain; the Latins' smiles were fleeting and deceptive, while the Greeks grieved endlessly over the destruction of their homeland, and their true disasters were made worse by sacrilege and mockery. What real benefits did the conquerors gain from the three fires that destroyed so much of the city's buildings and wealth? What valuable items, which could neither be used nor moved, were maliciously or recklessly destroyed? How much treasure was wasted on gambling, debauchery, and rioting? And what precious possessions were exchanged for a pittance due to the impatience or ignorance of the soldiers, whose rewards were stolen by the vile actions of the last Greeks? Only those with nothing to lose could profit from the revolution; the suffering of the upper class is vividly illustrated by the personal experiences of Nicetas himself. His grand palace had been reduced to ashes in the second fire, and the senator, with his family and friends, found a humble shelter in another house he owned near the church of St. Sophia. It was at the door of this modest dwelling that his friend, the Venetian merchant, stood guard disguised as a soldier until Nicetas could quickly escape with what remained of his fortune and protect his daughter's virtue. In a cold winter, these refugees, who had once lived in comfort, left on foot; his wife was pregnant, and the absence of their slaves forced them to carry their own belongings. They urged the women, whom they placed at the center, to hide their beauty with dirt instead of adorning it with makeup and jewels. Every step was fraught with insult and danger: the threats from strangers were less painful than the jeers of the commoners, with whom they were now on equal footing; they did not feel safe until their sorrowful journey concluded at Selymbria, over forty miles from the capital. Along the way, they came across the patriarch, alone and almost without clothes, riding on a donkey, reduced to a state of apostolic poverty that, if voluntary, might have been commendable. Meanwhile, his abandoned churches were defiled by the brazen behavior and factional fervor of the Latins. After stripping the gems and pearls, they turned the chalices into drinking cups; their tables, where they gambled and feasted, were decorated with images of Christ and the saints, and they trampled on the most revered objects of Christian worship. In the cathedral of St. Sophia, the grand veil of the sanctuary was torn apart for its golden fringe, and the altar, a masterpiece of art and wealth, was shattered into pieces and distributed among the conquerors. Their mules and horses were loaded with finely crafted silver and gilded decorations that they ripped down from doors and pulpits; if the animals stumbled under the load, they were stabbed by their impatient drivers, and the holy ground flowed with their spilled blood. A prostitute took the patriarch's throne; and this daughter of Belial, as she is called, sang and danced in the church, mocking the hymns and processions of the Easterners. The royal tombs were not safe from desecration either: in the church of the Apostles, the graves of the emperors were plundered; and it's said that even after six centuries, the body of Justinian was found without any signs of decay or rot. In the streets, the French and Flemish adorned themselves and their horses in colorful robes and flowing linen headpieces; and the crude excesses of their feasts 92 insulted the dignified restraint of the East. To mock the arms of a people of scribes and scholars, they pretended to showcase a pen, an inkwell, and a sheet of paper, not realizing that the tools of knowledge and courage were equally weak and useless in the hands of the modern Greeks.

91 (return)
[ The disorders of the sack of Constantinople, and his own adventures, are feelingly described by Nicetas, p. 367—369, and in the Status Urb. C. P. p. 375—384. His complaints, even of sacrilege, are justified by Innocent III., (Gesta, c. 92;) but Villehardouin does not betray a symptom of pity or remorse.]

91 (return)
[ The troubles in Constantinople and his personal experiences are described with emotion by Nicetas, p. 367—369, and in the Status Urb. C. P. p. 375—384. His grievances, even regarding sacrilege, are validated by Innocent III., (Gesta, c. 92;) but Villehardouin shows no sign of sympathy or regret.]

92 (return)
[ If I rightly apprehend the Greek of Nicetas’s receipts, their favorite dishes were boiled buttocks of beef, salt pork and peas, and soup made of garlic and sharp or sour herbs, (p. 382.)]

92 (return)
[ If I understand correctly the Greek from Nicetas’s receipts, their favorite dishes were boiled beef buttocks, salt pork with peas, and soup made from garlic and sharp or sour herbs, (p. 382.)]

Their reputation and their language encouraged them, however, to despise the ignorance and to overlook the progress of the Latins. 93 In the love of the arts, the national difference was still more obvious and real; the Greeks preserved with reverence the works of their ancestors, which they could not imitate; and, in the destruction of the statues of Constantinople, we are provoked to join in the complaints and invectives of the Byzantine historian. 94 We have seen how the rising city was adorned by the vanity and despotism of the Imperial founder: in the ruins of paganism, some gods and heroes were saved from the axe of superstition; and the forum and hippodrome were dignified with the relics of a better age. Several of these are described by Nicetas, 95 in a florid and affected style; and from his descriptions I shall select some interesting particulars. 1. The victorious charioteers were cast in bronze, at their own or the public charge, and fitly placed in the hippodrome: they stood aloft in their chariots, wheeling round the goal: the spectators could admire their attitude, and judge of the resemblance; and of these figures, the most perfect might have been transported from the Olympic stadium. 2. The sphinx, river-horse, and crocodile, denote the climate and manufacture of Egypt and the spoils of that ancient province. 3. The she-wolf suckling Romulus and Remus, a subject alike pleasing to the old and the new Romans, but which could really be treated before the decline of the Greek sculpture. 4. An eagle holding and tearing a serpent in his talons, a domestic monument of the Byzantines, which they ascribed, not to a human artist, but to the magic power of the philosopher Apollonius, who, by this talisman, delivered the city from such venomous reptiles. 5. An ass and his driver, which were erected by Augustus in his colony of Nicopolis, to commemorate a verbal omen of the victory of Actium. 6. An equestrian statue which passed, in the vulgar opinion, for Joshua, the Jewish conqueror, stretching out his hand to stop the course of the descending sun. A more classical tradition recognized the figures of Bellerophon and Pegasus; and the free attitude of the steed seemed to mark that he trod on air, rather than on the earth. 7. A square and lofty obelisk of brass; the sides were embossed with a variety of picturesque and rural scenes, birds singing; rustics laboring, or playing on their pipes; sheep bleating; lambs skipping; the sea, and a scene of fish and fishing; little naked cupids laughing, playing, and pelting each other with apples; and, on the summit, a female figure, turning with the slightest breath, and thence denominated the wind’s attendant. 8. The Phrygian shepherd presenting to Venus the prize of beauty, the apple of discord. 9. The incomparable statue of Helen, which is delineated by Nicetas in the words of admiration and love: her well-turned feet, snowy arms, rosy lips, bewitching smiles, swimming eyes, arched eyebrows, the harmony of her shape, the lightness of her drapery, and her flowing locks that waved in the wind; a beauty that might have moved her Barbarian destroyers to pity and remorse. 10. The manly or divine form of Hercules, 96 as he was restored to life by the masterhand of Lysippus; of such magnitude, that his thumb was equal to his waist, his leg to the stature, of a common man: 97 his chest ample, his shoulders broad, his limbs strong and muscular, his hair curled, his aspect commanding. Without his bow, or quiver, or club, his lion’s skin carelessly thrown over him, he was seated on an osier basket, his right leg and arm stretched to the utmost, his left knee bent, and supporting his elbow, his head reclining on his left hand, his countenance indignant and pensive. 11. A colossal statue of Juno, which had once adorned her temple of Samos, the enormous head by four yoke of oxen was laboriously drawn to the palace. 12. Another colossus, of Pallas or Minerva, thirty feet in height, and representing with admirable spirit the attributes and character of the martial maid. Before we accuse the Latins, it is just to remark, that this Pallas was destroyed after the first siege, by the fear and superstition of the Greeks themselves. 98 The other statues of brass which I have enumerated were broken and melted by the unfeeling avarice of the crusaders: the cost and labor were consumed in a moment; the soul of genius evaporated in smoke; and the remnant of base metal was coined into money for the payment of the troops. Bronze is not the most durable of monuments: from the marble forms of Phidias and Praxiteles, the Latins might turn aside with stupid contempt; 99 but unless they were crushed by some accidental injury, those useless stones stood secure on their pedestals. 100 The most enlightened of the strangers, above the gross and sensual pursuits of their countrymen, more piously exercised the right of conquest in the search and seizure of the relics of the saints. 101 Immense was the supply of heads and bones, crosses and images, that were scattered by this revolution over the churches of Europe; and such was the increase of pilgrimage and oblation, that no branch, perhaps, of more lucrative plunder was imported from the East. 102 Of the writings of antiquity, many that still existed in the twelfth century, are now lost. But the pilgrims were not solicitous to save or transport the volumes of an unknown tongue: the perishable substance of paper or parchment can only be preserved by the multiplicity of copies; the literature of the Greeks had almost centred in the metropolis; and, without computing the extent of our loss, we may drop a tear over the libraries that have perished in the triple fire of Constantinople. 103

Their reputation and their language motivated them to look down on the ignorance of others and ignore the progress the Latins were making. 93 In their love for the arts, the cultural differences were even more pronounced and real; the Greeks honored the works of their ancestors, which they struggled to replicate. In the destruction of the statues of Constantinople, we find ourselves echoing the complaints and criticisms of the Byzantine historian. 94 We've seen how the emerging city was embellished by the pride and tyranny of its imperial founder: amid the ruins of paganism, certain gods and heroes were preserved from the axe of superstition, and the forum and hippodrome were adorned with relics from a better era. Several of these are described by Nicetas, 95 in a flowery and pretentious style; from his accounts, I’ll highlight some interesting details. 1. The victorious charioteers were cast in bronze, at their own expense or at public cost, and were fittingly displayed in the hippodrome: they stood tall in their chariots, turning around the track; the spectators admired their poses and judged the likenesses; among these figures, the most perfect could have been taken straight from the Olympic stadium. 2. The sphinx, hippopotamus, and crocodile represent the climate and products of Egypt and the spoils of that ancient region. 3. The she-wolf nursing Romulus and Remus, a subject pleasing to both the old and the new Romans, but which could truly be appreciated before the decline of Greek sculpture. 4. An eagle holding and tearing a serpent with its talons, a local monument of the Byzantines, which they credited, not to a human artist, but to the magical abilities of the philosopher Apollonius, who, through this talisman, freed the city from such poisonous creatures. 5. A donkey and its driver were erected by Augustus in his colony of Nicopolis to commemorate a verbal omen of the victory at Actium. 6. An equestrian statue that common belief identified as Joshua, the Jewish conqueror, reaching out his hand to stop the descending sun. A more classical tradition recognized these figures as Bellerophon and Pegasus; the horse's free stance suggested that it was soaring through the air rather than standing on the ground. 7. A tall square brass obelisk; its sides were decorated with various picturesque and rural scenes, birds singing, peasants working or playing their pipes, sheep bleating, lambs jumping, the sea, and scenes of fishing; little naked cupids laughing, playing, and throwing apples at each other; and at the top, a female figure, turning with the slightest breeze, hence named the wind’s attendant. 8. The Phrygian shepherd presenting the apple of discord to Venus as the prize for beauty. 9. The extraordinary statue of Helen, depicted by Nicetas with admiration and love: her well-formed feet, white arms, rosy lips, enchanting smiles, sparkling eyes, arched eyebrows, the harmony of her figure, the lightness of her drapery, and her flowing hair that waved in the wind; a beauty that could have stirred pity and remorse in her barbarian destroyers. 10. The strong or divine form of Hercules, 96 as he was brought back to life by the masterful hands of Lysippus; so remarkable in size that his thumb was as thick as a typical man's waist, and his leg matched the height of an ordinary man: 97 his chest was broad, his shoulders expansive, his limbs strong and muscular, his hair curly, and his presence imposing. Without his bow, quiver, or club, his lion skin draped casually over him, he sat on a woven basket, his right leg and arm fully extended, his left knee bent, supporting his elbow, his head resting on his left hand, his expression defiant and thoughtful. 11. A colossal statue of Juno, which once adorned her temple in Samos, was pulled to the palace with great effort by four yoke of oxen. 12. Another colossus, representing Pallas or Minerva, stood thirty feet tall, magnificently displaying the attributes and character of the warrior maid. Before we criticize the Latins, it is only fair to note that this Pallas was destroyed after the first siege, due to the Greeks' own fear and superstition. 98 The other brass statues I have mentioned were broken and melted by the unfeeling greed of the crusaders: the investment of time and effort was consumed in an instant; the spirit of creativity vanished into smoke; and the remaining base metal was turned into currency to pay the troops. Bronze is not the most lasting material for monuments: the marble statues of Phidias and Praxiteles might have led the Latins to turn away with foolish disdain; 99 but unless they were damaged by some accident, those worthless stones stood secured on their pedestals. 100 The most enlightened of the foreigners, rising above the crude and sensual pursuits of their fellow countrymen, more devoutly exercised their rights of conquest in the hunt for relics of the saints. 101 The supply of heads, bones, crosses, and images that this upheaval scattered across the churches of Europe was immense; and such was the surge of pilgrimage and offerings that no aspect of plunder was perhaps more profitable than what was brought in from the East. 102 Many of the writings of antiquity that still existed in the twelfth century are now lost. However, the pilgrims were not concerned with saving or transporting volumes in an unfamiliar language: the fragile paper or parchment is only preserved through numerous copies; Greek literature had almost been consolidated in the capital; and without assessing the extent of our loss, we can shed a tear for the libraries that were destroyed in the triple fire of Constantinople. 103

93 (return)
[ Nicetas uses very harsh expressions, par agrammatoiV BarbaroiV, kai teleon analfabhtoiV, (Fragment, apud Fabric. Bibliot. Græc. tom. vi. p. 414.) This reproach, it is true, applies most strongly to their ignorance of Greek and of Homer. In their own language, the Latins of the xiith and xiiith centuries were not destitute of literature. See Harris’s Philological Inquiries, p. iii. c. 9, 10, 11.]

93 (return)
[ Nicetas uses very harsh expressions, referring to them as uneducated barbarians and completely illiterate. (Fragment, apud Fabric. Bibliot. Græc. tom. vi. p. 414.) This criticism particularly points to their lack of knowledge of Greek and of Homer. However, in their own language, the Latins of the 11th and 12th centuries were not without literary achievements. See Harris’s Philological Inquiries, p. iii. c. 9, 10, 11.]

94 (return)
[ Nicetas was of Chonæ in Phrygia, (the old Colossæ of St. Paul:) he raised himself to the honors of senator, judge of the veil, and great logothete; beheld the fall of the empire, retired to Nice, and composed an elaborate history from the death of Alexius Comnenus to the reign of Henry.]

94 (return)
[ Nicetas was from Chonæ in Phrygia, (the old Colossæ of St. Paul:) he achieved the positions of senator, judge of the veil, and great logothete; witnessed the decline of the empire, retired to Nice, and wrote an extensive history covering the period from the death of Alexius Comnenus to the reign of Henry.]

95 (return)
[ A manuscript of Nicetas in the Bodleian library contains this curious fragment on the statues of Constantinople, which fraud, or shame, or rather carelessness, has dropped in the common editions. It is published by Fabricius, (Bibliot. Græc. tom. vi. p. 405—416,) and immoderately praised by the late ingenious Mr. Harris of Salisbury, (Philological Inquiries, p. iii. c. 5, p. 301—312.)]

95 (return)
[ A manuscript of Nicetas in the Bodleian library includes this interesting fragment about the statues of Constantinople, which has been lost in common editions due to fraud, shame, or simply carelessness. It was published by Fabricius, (Bibliot. Græc. vol. vi. pp. 405—416,) and was highly praised by the late clever Mr. Harris of Salisbury, (Philological Inquiries, p. iii. ch. 5, pp. 301—312.)]

96 (return)
[ To illustrate the statue of Hercules, Mr. Harris quotes a Greek epigram, and engraves a beautiful gem, which does not, however, copy the attitude of the statue: in the latter, Hercules had not his club, and his right leg and arm were extended.]

96 (return)
[ To illustrate the statue of Hercules, Mr. Harris quotes a Greek epigram and creates a beautiful gem, which, however, does not replicate the statue's pose: in the latter, Hercules is not holding his club, and his right leg and arm are extended.]

97 (return)
[ I transcribe these proportions, which appear to me inconsistent with each other; and may possibly show, that the boasted taste of Nicetas was no more than affectation and vanity.]

97 (return)
[ I'm writing down these proportions, which seem to contradict each other; and they might suggest that Nicetas' praised taste was nothing more than pretension and vanity.]

98 (return)
[ Nicetas in Isaaco Angelo et Alexio, c. 3, p. 359. The Latin editor very properly observes, that the historian, in his bombast style, produces ex pulice elephantem.]

98 (return)
[Nicetas on Isaac Angelus and Alexius, c. 3, p. 359. The Latin editor rightly notes that the historian, in his grandiloquent style, creates an elephant from a flea.]

99 (return)
[ In two passages of Nicetas (edit. Paris, p. 360. Fabric. p. 408) the Latins are branded with the lively reproach of oi tou kalou anerastoi barbaroi, and their avarice of brass is clearly expressed. Yet the Venetians had the merit of removing four bronze horses from Constantinople to the place of St. Mark, (Sanuto, Vite del Dogi, in Muratori, Script. Rerum Italicarum, tom. xxii. p. 534.)]

99 (return)
[ In two passages of Nicetas (edit. Paris, p. 360. Fabric. p. 408), the Latins are sharply criticized as oi tou kalou anerastoi barbaroi, highlighting their greedy nature. However, the Venetians are credited with moving four bronze horses from Constantinople to St. Mark's place (Sanuto, Vite del Dogi, in Muratori, Script. Rerum Italicarum, tom. xxii. p. 534.)]

100 (return)
[ Winckelman, Hist. de l’Art. tom. iii. p. 269, 270.]

100 (return)
[ Winckelman, Hist. de l’Art. vol. iii. p. 269, 270.]

101 (return)
[ See the pious robbery of the abbot Martin, who transferred a rich cargo to his monastery of Paris, diocese of Basil, (Gunther, Hist. C. P. c. 19, 23, 24.) Yet in secreting this booty, the saint incurred an excommunication, and perhaps broke his oath. (Compare Wilken vol. v. p. 308.—M.)]

101 (return)
[ Check out the holy theft of Abbot Martin, who moved a valuable shipment to his monastery in Paris, in the diocese of Basel, (Gunther, Hist. C. P. c. 19, 23, 24.) However, by hiding this loot, the saint faced excommunication and possibly broke his oath. (See Wilken vol. v. p. 308.—M.)]

102 (return)
[ Fleury, Hist. Eccles tom. xvi. p. 139—145.]

102 (return)
[ Fleury, Hist. Eccles tom. xvi. p. 139—145.]

103 (return)
[ I shall conclude this chapter with the notice of a modern history, which illustrates the taking of Constantinople by the Latins; but which has fallen somewhat late into my hands. Paolo Ramusio, the son of the compiler of Voyages, was directed by the senate of Venice to write the history of the conquest: and this order, which he received in his youth, he executed in a mature age, by an elegant Latin work, de Bello Constantinopolitano et Imperatoribus Comnenis per Gallos et Venetos restitutis, (Venet. 1635, in folio.) Ramusio, or Rhamnusus, transcribes and translates, sequitur ad unguem, a MS. of Villehardouin, which he possessed; but he enriches his narrative with Greek and Latin materials, and we are indebted to him for a correct state of the fleet, the names of the fifty Venetian nobles who commanded the galleys of the republic, and the patriot opposition of Pantaleon Barbus to the choice of the doge for emperor.]

103 (return)
[ I will finish this chapter by mentioning a modern history that tells about the Latins taking Constantinople, which I recently got my hands on. Paolo Ramusio, the son of the compiler of Voyages, was tasked by the Venetian senate to write the history of the conquest. He received this assignment in his youth but completed it in adulthood with a sophisticated Latin work, *de Bello Constantinopolitano et Imperatoribus Comnenis per Gallos et Venetos restitutis* (Venet. 1635, in folio). Ramusio, or Rhamnusus, transcribes and translates precisely from a manuscript of Villehardouin that he had, but he enhances his narrative with Greek and Latin sources. We owe it to him for an accurate account of the fleet, the names of the fifty Venetian nobles who led the republic's galleys, and the patriotic resistance of Pantaleon Barbus against the choice of the doge for emperor.]

Chapter LXI: Partition Of The Empire By The French And Venetians.—Part I.

     Partition Of The Empire By The French And Venetians,—Five
     Latin Emperors Of The Houses Of Flanders And Courtenay.—
     Their Wars Against The Bulgarians And Greeks.—Weakness And
     Poverty Of The Latin Empire.—Recovery Of Constantinople By
     The Greeks.—General Consequences Of The Crusades.
     Partition Of The Empire By The French And Venetians,—Five
     Latin Emperors Of The Houses Of Flanders And Courtenay.—
     Their Wars Against The Bulgarians And Greeks.—Weakness And
     Poverty Of The Latin Empire.—Recovery Of Constantinople By
     The Greeks.—General Consequences Of The Crusades.

After the death of the lawful princes, the French and Venetians, confident of justice and victory, agreed to divide and regulate their future possessions. 1 It was stipulated by treaty, that twelve electors, six of either nation, should be nominated; that a majority should choose the emperor of the East; and that, if the votes were equal, the decision of chance should ascertain the successful candidate. To him, with all the titles and prerogatives of the Byzantine throne, they assigned the two palaces of Boucoleon and Blachernæ, with a fourth part of the Greek monarchy. It was defined that the three remaining portions should be equally shared between the republic of Venice and the barons of France; that each feudatory, with an honorable exception for the doge, should acknowledge and perform the duties of homage and military service to the supreme head of the empire; that the nation which gave an emperor, should resign to their brethren the choice of a patriarch; and that the pilgrims, whatever might be their impatience to visit the Holy Land, should devote another year to the conquest and defence of the Greek provinces. After the conquest of Constantinople by the Latins, the treaty was confirmed and executed; and the first and most important step was the creation of an emperor. The six electors of the French nation were all ecclesiastics, the abbot of Loces, the archbishop elect of Acre in Palestine, and the bishops of Troyes, Soissons, Halberstadt, and Bethlehem, the last of whom exercised in the camp the office of pope’s legate: their profession and knowledge were respectable; and as they could not be the objects, they were best qualified to be the authors of the choice. The six Venetians were the principal servants of the state, and in this list the noble families of Querini and Contarini are still proud to discover their ancestors. The twelve assembled in the chapel of the palace; and after the solemn invocation of the Holy Ghost, they proceeded to deliberate and vote. A just impulse of respect and gratitude prompted them to crown the virtues of the doge; his wisdom had inspired their enterprise; and the most youthful knights might envy and applaud the exploits of blindness and age. But the patriot Dandolo was devoid of all personal ambition, and fully satisfied that he had been judged worthy to reign. His nomination was overruled by the Venetians themselves: his countrymen, and perhaps his friends, 2 represented, with the eloquence of truth, the mischiefs that might arise to national freedom and the common cause, from the union of two incompatible characters, of the first magistrate of a republic and the emperor of the East. The exclusion of the doge left room for the more equal merits of Boniface and Baldwin; and at their names all meaner candidates respectfully withdrew. The marquis of Montferrat was recommended by his mature age and fair reputation, by the choice of the adventurers, and the wishes of the Greeks; nor can I believe that Venice, the mistress of the sea, could be seriously apprehensive of a petty lord at the foot of the Alps. 3 But the count of Flanders was the chief of a wealthy and warlike people: he was valiant, pious, and chaste; in the prime of life, since he was only thirty-two years of age; a descendant of Charlemagne, a cousin of the king of France, and a compeer of the prelates and barons who had yielded with reluctance to the command of a foreigner. Without the chapel, these barons, with the doge and marquis at their head, expected the decision of the twelve electors. It was announced by the bishop of Soissons, in the name of his colleagues: “Ye have sworn to obey the prince whom we should choose: by our unanimous suffrage, Baldwin count of Flanders and Hainault is now your sovereign, and the emperor of the East.” He was saluted with loud applause, and the proclamation was reechoed through the city by the joy of the Latins, and the trembling adulation of the Greeks. Boniface was the first to kiss the hand of his rival, and to raise him on the buckler: and Baldwin was transported to the cathedral, and solemnly invested with the purple buskins. At the end of three weeks he was crowned by the legate, in the vacancy of the patriarch; but the Venetian clergy soon filled the chapter of St. Sophia, seated Thomas Morosini on the ecclesiastical throne, and employed every art to perpetuate in their own nation the honors and benefices of the Greek church. 4 Without delay the successor of Constantine instructed Palestine, France, and Rome, of this memorable revolution. To Palestine he sent, as a trophy, the gates of Constantinople, and the chain of the harbor; 5 and adopted, from the Assise of Jerusalem, the laws or customs best adapted to a French colony and conquest in the East. In his epistles, the natives of France are encouraged to swell that colony, and to secure that conquest, to people a magnificent city and a fertile land, which will reward the labors both of the priest and the soldier. He congratulates the Roman pontiff on the restoration of his authority in the East; invites him to extinguish the Greek schism by his presence in a general council; and implores his blessing and forgiveness for the disobedient pilgrims. Prudence and dignity are blended in the answer of Innocent. 6 In the subversion of the Byzantine empire, he arraigns the vices of man, and adores the providence of God; the conquerors will be absolved or condemned by their future conduct; the validity of their treaty depends on the judgment of St. Peter; but he inculcates their most sacred duty of establishing a just subordination of obedience and tribute, from the Greeks to the Latins, from the magistrate to the clergy, and from the clergy to the pope.

After the death of the rightful princes, the French and Venetians, confident in justice and victory, agreed to divide and organize their future territories. 1 The treaty stipulated that twelve electors, six from each nation, would be appointed; that a majority would select the emperor of the East; and that if the votes were tied, chance would determine the successful candidate. He would receive all the titles and privileges of the Byzantine throne, along with the two palaces of Boucoleon and Blachernæ, and a quarter of the Greek kingdom. It was established that the remaining three portions would be evenly split between the republic of Venice and the barons of France; that each feudal lord, with an honorable exception for the doge, should acknowledge and perform the duties of loyalty and military service to the supreme head of the empire; that the nation that provided an emperor would surrender to their counterparts the choice of a patriarch; and that the pilgrims, regardless of their eagerness to visit the Holy Land, should spend another year conquering and defending the Greek provinces. After the Latins captured Constantinople, the treaty was confirmed and enforced; and the first and most crucial step was the selection of an emperor. The six French electors were all clergy: the abbot of Loces, the archbishop elect of Acre in Palestine, and the bishops of Troyes, Soissons, Halberstadt, and Bethlehem, the latter serving as the pope’s legate in the camp: their profession and knowledge were respected; and since they could not be candidates, they were the best suited to make the selection. The six Venetians were the leading officials of the state, and among them, the noble families of Querini and Contarini are still proud to claim their ancestors. The twelve gathered in the palace chapel; and after a solemn invocation of the Holy Ghost, they proceeded to discuss and vote. A genuine sense of respect and gratitude led them to honor the virtues of the doge; his wisdom had inspired their venture; and the youngest knights could both envy and commend the achievements of blindness and age. However, the patriotic Dandolo had no personal ambitions and was fully satisfied to have been deemed worthy to rule. His nomination was rejected by the Venetians themselves: his fellow countrymen, and perhaps friends, 2 expressed, with the eloquence of truth, the dangers that could arise to national freedom and the common cause from merging the roles of the chief magistrate of a republic and the emperor of the East. Excluding the doge allowed for the more equal qualifications of Boniface and Baldwin; and upon their names, all lesser candidates respectfully withdrew. The marquis of Montferrat was favored for his maturity and good reputation, by the choice of the adventurers, and the wishes of the Greeks; nor can I believe that Venice, the ruler of the sea, could genuinely fear a minor lord at the foot of the Alps. 3 But the count of Flanders led a wealthy and warlike people: he was courageous, religious, and chaste; in the prime of his life at only thirty-two; a descendant of Charlemagne, a cousin of the king of France, and equal to the prelates and barons who reluctantly yielded to the command of a foreigner. Outside the chapel, these barons, with the doge and marquis at their forefront, awaited the decision of the twelve electors. It was announced by the bishop of Soissons, on behalf of his colleagues: “You have sworn to obey the prince we select: by our unanimous vote, Baldwin, count of Flanders and Hainault, is now your sovereign and the emperor of the East.” He was greeted with loud applause, and the proclamation echoed throughout the city, celebrated by the Latins and the trembling adoration of the Greeks. Boniface was the first to kiss the hand of his rival and elevate him on a shield; and Baldwin was taken to the cathedral and ceremoniously dressed in purple buskins. Three weeks later, he was crowned by the legate during the vacancy of the patriarch; but soon, the Venetian clergy filled the chapter of St. Sophia, placed Thomas Morosini on the ecclesiastical throne, and used every tactic to maintain the honors and benefits of the Greek church within their own nation. 4 Without delay, the successor of Constantine informed Palestine, France, and Rome of this significant change. To Palestine, he sent, as a trophy, the gates of Constantinople and the chain from the harbor; 5 and adopted, from the Assise of Jerusalem, the laws or customs most suited for a French colony and conquest in the East. In his letters, the natives of France are encouraged to join this colony and secure the conquest, to populate a magnificent city and fertile land that will reward both the priest and the soldier for their efforts. He congratulates the Roman pontiff on the restoration of his authority in the East; invites him to resolve the Greek schism with his presence at a general council; and seeks his blessing and forgiveness for the disobedient pilgrims. Prudence and dignity are reflected in Innocent's response. 6 In the downfall of the Byzantine empire, he criticizes the vices of humanity and praises the providence of God; the conquerors will either be absolved or condemned by their future actions; the validity of their treaty depends on St. Peter's judgment; but he emphasizes their most sacred duty to establish a just hierarchy of obedience and tribute, from the Greeks to the Latins, from the magistrate to the clergy, and from the clergy to the pope.

1 (return)
[ See the original treaty of partition, in the Venetian Chronicle of Andrew Dandolo, p. 326—330, and the subsequent election in Ville hardouin, No. 136—140, with Ducange in his Observations, and the book of his Histoire de Constantinople sous l’Empire des François.]

1 (return)
[See the original treaty of partition in the Venetian Chronicle of Andrew Dandolo, pp. 326–330, and the following election in Ville Hardouin, Nos. 136–140, along with Ducange's Observations and his book Histoire de Constantinople sous l’Empire des François.]

2 (return)
[ After mentioning the nomination of the doge by a French elector his kinsman Andrew Dandolo approves his exclusion, quidam Venetorum fidelis et nobilis senex, usus oratione satis probabili, &c., which has been embroidered by modern writers from Blondus to Le Beau.]

2 (return)
[ After mentioning the nomination of the doge by a French elector, his relative Andrew Dandolo agrees with his exclusion, a certain faithful and noble old man of Venice, using arguments that are quite reasonable, etc., which have been embellished by modern writers from Blondus to Le Beau.]

3 (return)
[ Nicetas, (p. 384,) with the vain ignorance of a Greek, describes the marquis of Montferrat as a maritime power. Dampardian de oikeisqai paralion. Was he deceived by the Byzantine theme of Lombardy which extended along the coast of Calabria?]

3 (return)
[ Nicetas, (p. 384,) with the misguided confidence of a Greek, describes the marquis of Montferrat as a maritime power. Dampardian de oikeisqai paralion. Was he misled by the Byzantine territory of Lombardy that stretched along the coast of Calabria?]

4 (return)
[ They exacted an oath from Thomas Morosini to appoint no canons of St. Sophia the lawful electors, except Venetians who had lived ten years at Venice, &c. But the foreign clergy was envious, the pope disapproved this national monopoly, and of the six Latin patriarchs of Constantinople, only the first and the last were Venetians.]

4 (return)
[ They required Thomas Morosini to swear that he would only appoint Venetians who had lived in Venice for ten years as the lawful electors for the canons of St. Sophia, among other stipulations. However, the foreign clergy was jealous, the pope did not approve of this national monopoly, and out of the six Latin patriarchs of Constantinople, only the first and the last were Venetians.]

5 (return)
[ Nicetas, p. 383.]

5 (__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__)
[ Nicetas, p. 383.]

6 (return)
[ The Epistles of Innocent III. are a rich fund for the ecclesiastical and civil institution of the Latin empire of Constantinople; and the most important of these epistles (of which the collection in 2 vols. in folio is published by Stephen Baluze) are inserted in his Gesta, in Muratori, Script. Rerum Italicarum, tom. iii. p. l. c. 94—105.]

6 (return)
[ The letters of Innocent III. provide valuable insights into the religious and civil structures of the Latin Empire of Constantinople. The most significant of these letters (which have been compiled in a 2-volume folio edition published by Stephen Baluze) are included in his Gesta, found in Muratori’s Script. Rerum Italicarum, vol. iii, pp. 1, chs. 94—105.]

In the division of the Greek provinces, 7 the share of the Venetians was more ample than that of the Latin emperor. No more than one fourth was appropriated to his domain; a clear moiety of the remainder was reserved for Venice; and the other moiety was distributed among the adventurers of France and Lombardy. The venerable Dandolo was proclaimed despot of Romania, and invested after the Greek fashion with the purple buskins. He ended at Constantinople his long and glorious life; and if the prerogative was personal, the title was used by his successors till the middle of the fourteenth century, with the singular, though true, addition of lords of one fourth and a half of the Roman empire. 8 The doge, a slave of state, was seldom permitted to depart from the helm of the republic; but his place was supplied by the bail, or regent, who exercised a supreme jurisdiction over the colony of Venetians: they possessed three of the eight quarters of the city; and his independent tribunal was composed of six judges, four counsellors, two chamberlains two fiscal advocates, and a constable. Their long experience of the Eastern trade enabled them to select their portion with discernment: they had rashly accepted the dominion and defence of Adrianople; but it was the more reasonable aim of their policy to form a chain of factories, and cities, and islands, along the maritime coast, from the neighborhood of Ragusa to the Hellespont and the Bosphorus. The labor and cost of such extensive conquests exhausted their treasury: they abandoned their maxims of government, adopted a feudal system, and contented themselves with the homage of their nobles, 9 for the possessions which these private vassals undertook to reduce and maintain. And thus it was that the family of Sanut acquired the duchy of Naxos, which involved the greatest part of the archipelago. For the price of ten thousand marks, the republic purchased of the marquis of Montferrat the fertile Island of Crete or Candia, with the ruins of a hundred cities; 10 but its improvement was stinted by the proud and narrow spirit of an aristocracy; 11 and the wisest senators would confess that the sea, not the land, was the treasury of St. Mark. In the moiety of the adventurers the marquis Boniface might claim the most liberal reward; and, besides the Isle of Crete, his exclusion from the throne was compensated by the royal title and the provinces beyond the Hellespont. But he prudently exchanged that distant and difficult conquest for the kingdom of Thessalonica Macedonia, twelve days’ journey from the capital, where he might be supported by the neighboring powers of his brother-in-law the king of Hungary. His progress was hailed by the voluntary or reluctant acclamations of the natives; and Greece, the proper and ancient Greece, again received a Latin conqueror, 12 who trod with indifference that classic ground. He viewed with a careless eye the beauties of the valley of Tempe; traversed with a cautious step the straits of Thermopylæ; occupied the unknown cities of Thebes, Athens, and Argos; and assaulted the fortifications of Corinth and Napoli, 13 which resisted his arms. The lots of the Latin pilgrims were regulated by chance, or choice, or subsequent exchange; and they abused, with intemperate joy, their triumph over the lives and fortunes of a great people. After a minute survey of the provinces, they weighed in the scales of avarice the revenue of each district, the advantage of the situation, and the ample or scanty supplies for the maintenance of soldiers and horses. Their presumption claimed and divided the long-lost dependencies of the Roman sceptre: the Nile and Euphrates rolled through their imaginary realms; and happy was the warrior who drew for his prize the palace of the Turkish sultan of Iconium. 14 I shall not descend to the pedigree of families and the rent-roll of estates, but I wish to specify that the counts of Blois and St. Pol were invested with the duchy of Nice and the lordship of Demotica: 15 the principal fiefs were held by the service of constable, chamberlain, cup-bearer, butler, and chief cook; and our historian, Jeffrey of Villehardouin, obtained a fair establishment on the banks of the Hebrus, and united the double office of marshal of Champagne and Romania. At the head of his knights and archers, each baron mounted on horseback to secure the possession of his share, and their first efforts were generally successful. But the public force was weakened by their dispersion; and a thousand quarrels must arise under a law, and among men, whose sole umpire was the sword. Within three months after the conquest of Constantinople, the emperor and the king of Thessalonica drew their hostile followers into the field; they were reconciled by the authority of the doge, the advice of the marshal, and the firm freedom of their peers. 16

In the division of the Greek provinces, 7 the Venetians got a larger share than the Latin emperor. He only received a quarter of the territory; half of the rest was set aside for Venice, and the other half was given to the adventurers from France and Lombardy. The respected Dandolo was named despot of Romania and, in the Greek tradition, received the purple boots. He ended his long and glorious life in Constantinople; and even if the title was personal, his successors used it until the middle of the fourteenth century, with the unusual, but true, addition of lords of one fourth and a half of the Roman empire. 8 The doge, who was controlled by the state, was rarely allowed to leave his post in the republic; instead, his role was taken on by the bail, or regent, who had supreme authority over the Venetian colony: they occupied three of the eight districts of the city; and his independent court was made up of six judges, four advisors, two chamberlains, two legal advocates, and a constable. Their long experience with Eastern trade allowed them to choose their territories wisely: they had hastily taken on the rule and defense of Adrianople; however, their more sensible strategy was to create a network of trading posts, cities, and islands along the coast, from near Ragusa to the Hellespont and the Bosphorus. The effort and expense of such widespread conquests drained their finances: they dropped their governing principles, adopted a feudal system, and settled for the loyalty of their nobles, 9 in exchange for the lands that these private vassals promised to conquer and defend. This is how the Sanut family acquired the duchy of Naxos, which encompassed much of the archipelago. For ten thousand marks, the republic bought the fertile Island of Crete or Candia from the marquis of Montferrat, along with the ruins of a hundred cities; 10 but its development was hindered by the proud and narrow-minded nature of the aristocracy; 11 and even the wisest senators would admit that the sea, not the land, was St. Mark's treasure. Among the adventurers, the marquis Boniface could claim the biggest reward; in addition to the Isle of Crete, his exclusion from the throne was compensated with the royal title and the regions beyond the Hellespont. However, he wisely swapped that distant and challenging conquest for the kingdom of Thessalonica in Macedonia, twelve days' journey from the capital, where he could rely on the support of neighboring powers, especially his brother-in-law, the king of Hungary. His progress was met with either enthusiastic or reluctant cheers from the locals; and Greece, the true and ancient Greece, received another Latin conqueror, 12 who walked indifferently on storied ground. He carelessly observed the beauty of the Tempe valley; cautiously crossed the Thermopylæ passes; took over the unexplored cities of Thebes, Athens, and Argos; and attacked the fortifications of Corinth and Napoli, 13 which resisted him. The fortunes of the Latin pilgrims were determined by chance, choice, or later exchanges; and they celebrated, with excessive joy, their victory over the lives and properties of a great people. After a detailed assessment of the provinces, they calculated the revenue of each area, the strategic advantages of their locations, and whether they could support soldiers and horses. Their arrogance claimed and divided the long-lost territories once ruled by the Roman empire: the Nile and Euphrates flowed through their imagined dominions; and the fortunate warrior who drew the lot for the Turkish sultan's palace in Iconium felt lucky. 14 I will not delve into the genealogies of families and the property registers, but I want to note that the counts of Blois and St. Pol were granted the duchy of Nice and the lordship of Demotica: 15 the main feudal lands were held by roles like constable, chamberlain, cup-bearer, butler, and chief cook; and our historian, Geoffrey of Villehardouin, received a solid position by the Hebrus River, combining the roles of marshal of Champagne and Romania. Leading their knights and archers, each baron rode out to secure his portion, and their initial attempts were mostly successful. Yet the public force weakened due to their dispersal; and countless disputes arose under law among men whose only arbiter was the sword. Within three months after the conquest of Constantinople, the emperor and the king of Thessalonica gathered their opposing forces in the field; they were reconciled through the authority of the doge, the advice of the marshal, and the firm will of their peers. 16

7 (return)
[ In the treaty of partition, most of the names are corrupted by the scribes: they might be restored, and a good map, suited to the last age of the Byzantine empire, would be an improvement of geography. But, alas D’Anville is no more!]

7 (return)
[ In the partition treaty, most of the names have been messed up by the scribes: they could be fixed, and a good map from the last period of the Byzantine Empire would enhance our understanding of geography. But, unfortunately, D’Anville is gone!]

8 (return)
[ Their style was dominus quartæ partis et dimidiæ imperii Romani, till Giovanni Dolfino, who was elected doge in the year of 1356, (Sanuto, p. 530, 641.) For the government of Constantinople, see Ducange, Histoire de C. P. i. 37.]

8 (return)
[ Their style was lord of a quarter and a half of the Roman Empire, until Giovanni Dolfino was elected doge in 1356 (Sanuto, p. 530, 641.) For the governance of Constantinople, see Ducange, Histoire de C. P. i. 37.]

9 (return)
[ Ducange (Hist. de C. P. ii. 6) has marked the conquests made by the state or nobles of Venice of the Islands of Candia, Corfu, Cephalonia, Zante, Naxos, Paros, Melos, Andros, Mycone, Syro, Cea, and Lemnos.]

9 (return)
[ Ducange (Hist. de C. P. ii. 6) has noted the conquests achieved by the state or nobles of Venice over the Islands of Crete, Corfu, Kefalonia, Zakynthos, Naxos, Paros, Milos, Andros, Mykonos, Syros, Kea, and Lemnos.]

10 (return)
[ Boniface sold the Isle of Candia, August 12, A.D. 1204. See the act in Sanuto, p. 533: but I cannot understand how it could be his mother’s portion, or how she could be the daughter of an emperor Alexius.]

10 (return)
[ Boniface sold the Isle of Candia on August 12, 1204. Refer to the record in Sanuto, p. 533; however, I can’t figure out how this could be his mother’s share, or how she could be the daughter of an Emperor Alexius.]

11 (return)
[ In the year 1212, the doge Peter Zani sent a colony to Candia, drawn from every quarter of Venice. But in their savage manners and frequent rebellions, the Candiots may be compared to the Corsicans under the yoke of Genoa; and when I compare the accounts of Belon and Tournefort, I cannot discern much difference between the Venetian and the Turkish island.]

11 (return)
[ In 1212, Doge Peter Zani sent a group of settlers to Candia, made up of people from all over Venice. However, the Candiots, with their wild behavior and constant uprisings, remind me of the Corsicans under Genoa’s control; and when I look at the reports from Belon and Tournefort, I can't see much of a difference between the Venetian and the Turkish parts of the island.]

12 (return)
[ Villehardouin (No. 159, 160, 173—177) and Nicetas (p. 387—394) describe the expedition into Greece of the marquis Boniface. The Choniate might derive his information from his brother Michael, archbishop of Athens, whom he paints as an orator, a statesman, and a saint. His encomium of Athens, and the description of Tempe, should be published from the Bodleian MS. of Nicetas, (Fabric. Bibliot. Græc. tom. vi. p. 405,) and would have deserved Mr. Harris’s inquiries.]

12 (return)
[ Villehardouin (No. 159, 160, 173—177) and Nicetas (p. 387—394) describe the expedition into Greece of the marquis Boniface. The Choniate may have gotten his information from his brother Michael, the archbishop of Athens, whom he portrays as an orator, a statesman, and a saint. His praise of Athens and the description of Tempe should be published from the Bodleian MS. of Nicetas, (Fabric. Bibliot. Græc. tom. vi. p. 405,) and would have deserved Mr. Harris’s inquiries.]

13 (return)
[ Napoli de Romania, or Nauplia, the ancient seaport of Argos, is still a place of strength and consideration, situate on a rocky peninsula, with a good harbor, (Chandler’s Travels into Greece, p. 227.)]

13 (return)
[ Napoli de Romania, or Nauplia, the historic seaport of Argos, remains a significant and respected location, positioned on a rocky peninsula, featuring a reliable harbor, (Chandler’s Travels into Greece, p. 227.)]

14 (return)
[ I have softened the expression of Nicetas, who strives to expose the presumption of the Franks. See the Rebus post C. P. expugnatam, p. 375—384.]

14 (return)
[ I've toned down Nicetas's remarks, who aims to highlight the arrogance of the Franks. See the Rebus after C. P. conquered, p. 375—384.]

15 (return)
[ A city surrounded by the River Hebrus, and six leagues to the south of Adrianople, received from its double wall the Greek name of Didymoteichos, insensibly corrupted into Demotica and Dimot. I have preferred the more convenient and modern appellation of Demotica. This place was the last Turkish residence of Charles XII.]

15 (return)
A city located by the River Hebrus, about six leagues south of Adrianople, got its Greek name Didymoteichos from its double wall, which later became corrupted into Demotica and Dimot. I have chosen to use the more convenient and modern name Demotica. This was the last Turkish residence of Charles XII.

16 (return)
[ Their quarrel is told by Villehardouin (No. 146—158) with the spirit of freedom. The merit and reputation of the marshal are so acknowledged by the Greek historian (p. 387) mega para touV tvn Dauinwn dunamenou strateumasi: unlike some modern heroes, whose exploits are only visible in their own memoirs. * Note: William de Champlite, brother of the count of Dijon, assumed the title of Prince of Achaia: on the death of his brother, he returned, with regret, to France, to assume his paternal inheritance, and left Villehardouin his “bailli,” on condition that if he did not return within a year Villehardouin was to retain an investiture. Brosset’s Add. to Le Beau, vol. xvii. p. 200. M. Brosset adds, from the Greek chronicler edited by M. Buchon, the somewhat unknightly trick by which Villehardouin disembarrassed himself from the troublesome claim of Robert, the cousin of the count of Dijon. to the succession. He contrived that Robert should arrive just fifteen days too late; and with the general concurrence of the assembled knights was himself invested with the principality. Ibid. p. 283. M.]

16 (return)
[ Their conflict is described by Villehardouin (No. 146—158) with a sense of freedom. The accomplishments and reputation of the marshal are recognized by the Greek historian (p. 387) mega para touV tvn Dauinwn dunamenou strateumasi: unlike some modern heroes, whose deeds are only highlighted in their own writings. * Note: William de Champlite, brother of the count of Dijon, took the title of Prince of Achaia; after his brother's death, he reluctantly returned to France to claim his inheritance, leaving Villehardouin as his “bailli,” on the condition that if he did not return within a year, Villehardouin would retain the title. Brosset’s Add. to Le Beau, vol. xvii. p. 200. M. Brosset adds, from the Greek chronicler edited by M. Buchon, the somewhat dishonorable maneuver by which Villehardouin freed himself from the annoying claim of Robert, the cousin of the count of Dijon, to the succession. He arranged for Robert to arrive just fifteen days too late; and with the agreement of the gathered knights, he was himself granted the principality. Ibid. p. 283. M.]

Two fugitives, who had reigned at Constantinople, still asserted the title of emperor; and the subjects of their fallen throne might be moved to pity by the misfortunes of the elder Alexius, or excited to revenge by the spirit of Mourzoufle. A domestic alliance, a common interest, a similar guilt, and the merit of extinguishing his enemies, a brother and a nephew, induced the more recent usurper to unite with the former the relics of his power. Mourzoufle was received with smiles and honors in the camp of his father Alexius; but the wicked can never love, and should rarely trust, their fellow-criminals; he was seized in the bath, deprived of his eyes, stripped of his troops and treasures, and turned out to wander an object of horror and contempt to those who with more propriety could hate, and with more justice could punish, the assassin of the emperor Isaac and his son. As the tyrant, pursued by fear or remorse, was stealing over to Asia, he was seized by the Latins of Constantinople, and condemned, after an open trial, to an ignominious death. His judges debated the mode of his execution, the axe, the wheel, or the stake; and it was resolved that Mourzoufle 17 should ascend the Theodosian column, a pillar of white marble of one hundred and forty-seven feet in height. 18 From the summit he was cast down headlong, and dashed in pieces on the pavement, in the presence of innumerable spectators, who filled the forum of Taurus, and admired the accomplishment of an old prediction, which was explained by this singular event. 19 The fate of Alexius is less tragical: he was sent by the marquis a captive to Italy, and a gift to the king of the Romans; but he had not much to applaud his fortune, if the sentence of imprisonment and exile were changed from a fortress in the Alps to a monastery in Asia. But his daughter, before the national calamity, had been given in marriage to a young hero who continued the succession, and restored the throne, of the Greek princes. 20 The valor of Theodore Lascaris was signalized in the two sieges of Constantinople. After the flight of Mourzoufle, when the Latins were already in the city, he offered himself as their emperor to the soldiers and people; and his ambition, which might be virtuous, was undoubtedly brave. Could he have infused a soul into the multitude, they might have crushed the strangers under their feet: their abject despair refused his aid; and Theodore retired to breathe the air of freedom in Anatolia, beyond the immediate view and pursuit of the conquerors. Under the title, at first of despot, and afterwards of emperor, he drew to his standard the bolder spirits, who were fortified against slavery by the contempt of life; and as every means was lawful for the public safety implored without scruple the alliance of the Turkish sultan Nice, where Theodore established his residence, Prusa and Philadelphia, Smyrna and Ephesus, opened their gates to their deliverer: he derived strength and reputation from his victories, and even from his defeats; and the successor of Constantine preserved a fragment of the empire from the banks of the Mæander to the suburbs of Nicomedia, and at length of Constantinople. Another portion, distant and obscure, was possessed by the lineal heir of the Comneni, a son of the virtuous Manuel, a grandson of the tyrant Andronicus. His name was Alexius; and the epithet of great 201 was applied perhaps to his stature, rather than to his exploits. By the indulgence of the Angeli, he was appointed governor or duke of Trebizond: 21 211 his birth gave him ambition, the revolution independence; and, without changing his title, he reigned in peace from Sinope to the Phasis, along the coast of the Black Sea. His nameless son and successor 212 is described as the vassal of the sultan, whom he served with two hundred lances: that Comnenian prince was no more than duke of Trebizond, and the title of emperor was first assumed by the pride and envy of the grandson of Alexius. In the West, a third fragment was saved from the common shipwreck by Michael, a bastard of the house of Angeli, who, before the revolution, had been known as a hostage, a soldier, and a rebel. His flight from the camp of the marquis Boniface secured his freedom; by his marriage with the governor’s daughter, he commanded the important place of Durazzo, assumed the title of despot, and founded a strong and conspicuous principality in Epirus, Ætolia, and Thessaly, which have ever been peopled by a warlike race. The Greeks, who had offered their service to their new sovereigns, were excluded by the haughty Latins 22 from all civil and military honors, as a nation born to tremble and obey. Their resentment prompted them to show that they might have been useful friends, since they could be dangerous enemies: their nerves were braced by adversity: whatever was learned or holy, whatever was noble or valiant, rolled away into the independent states of Trebizond, Epirus, and Nice; and a single patrician is marked by the ambiguous praise of attachment and loyalty to the Franks. The vulgar herd of the cities and the country would have gladly submitted to a mild and regular servitude; and the transient disorders of war would have been obliterated by some years of industry and peace. But peace was banished, and industry was crushed, in the disorders of the feudal system. The Roman emperors of Constantinople, if they were endowed with abilities, were armed with power for the protection of their subjects: their laws were wise, and their administration was simple. The Latin throne was filled by a titular prince, the chief, and often the servant, of his licentious confederates; the fiefs of the empire, from a kingdom to a castle, were held and ruled by the sword of the barons; and their discord, poverty, and ignorance, extended the ramifications of tyranny to the most sequestered villages. The Greeks were oppressed by the double weight of the priests, who were invested with temporal power, and of the soldier, who was inflamed by fanatic hatred; and the insuperable bar of religion and language forever separated the stranger and the native. As long as the crusaders were united at Constantinople, the memory of their conquest, and the terror of their arms, imposed silence on the captive land: their dispersion betrayed the smallness of their numbers and the defects of their discipline; and some failures and mischances revealed the secret, that they were not invincible. As the fears of the Greeks abated, their hatred increased. They murdered; they conspired; and before a year of slavery had elapsed, they implored, or accepted, the succor of a Barbarian, whose power they had felt, and whose gratitude they trusted. 23

Two fugitives who had once ruled Constantinople still claimed the title of emperor, and the subjects of their fallen throne might have felt pity for the elder Alexius or been stirred to seek revenge by Mourzoufle’s spirit. A family alliance, shared interests, a similar guilt, and the desire to eliminate his enemies—a brother and a nephew—led the more recent usurper to combine the remnants of his power with that of the former. Mourzoufle was welcomed with smiles and honors in the camp of his father Alexius, but those who are wicked can never truly love or trust their fellow wrongdoers. He was captured in the bath, blinded, stripped of his troops and treasures, and cast out to wander as an object of horror and contempt to those who had more reason to hate and more justification to punish the assassin of Emperor Isaac and his son. As the tyrant, fleeing from fear or guilt, was trying to escape to Asia, he was captured by the Latins of Constantinople and sentenced, after a public trial, to a disgraceful death. His judges deliberated on how to execute him—by axe, wheel, or stake—and it was decided that Mourzoufle 17 would ascend the Theodosian column, a 147-foot high white marble pillar. 18 From the top, he was hurled down, crashing onto the pavement in front of countless spectators who filled the Forum of Taurus and marveled at the fulfillment of an old prophecy, which this unique event illustrated. 19 Alexius faced a less tragic fate: he was taken captive to Italy by the marquis and presented as a gift to the king of the Romans, but his circumstances were not much better if the change from imprisonment in a fortress in the Alps to a monastery in Asia can be considered fortunate. However, his daughter had been married to a young hero before the national calamity, who continued the lineage and restored the throne of the Greek princes. 20 The courage of Theodore Lascaris was proven during the two sieges of Constantinople. After Mourzoufle's flight, when the Latins had already entered the city, he offered himself as their emperor to the soldiers and the people; his ambition, which might have been noble, was certainly brave. If he could have inspired the masses, they might have crushed the outsiders beneath their feet; but their deep despair rejected his help, and Theodore retreated to breathe the air of freedom in Anatolia, away from the immediate view and pursuit of the conquerors. Under the titles of despot and later emperor, he attracted the more courageous spirits who were strengthened against enslavement by their disdain for life. Believing any means justified for public safety, he sought without hesitation the alliance of the Turkish Sultan Nice. From there, Theodore established his base, with Prusa and Philadelphia, Smyrna and Ephesus, opening their gates to him as their liberator. He gained strength and reputation from both his victories and his defeats, preserving a fragment of the empire from the banks of the Mæander to the suburbs of Nicomedia and ultimately to Constantinople. Another part, distant and obscure, was held by the lineal heir of the Comneni, the son of the virtuous Manuel and grandson of the tyrant Andronicus. His name was Alexius, and the title of great 201 was perhaps more about his stature than his accomplishments. By the favor of the Angeli, he was made the governor or duke of Trebizond: 21 211 his lineage fueled his ambition, the upheaval granted him independence, and without changing his title, he ruled peacefully from Sinope to the Phasis along the Black Sea coast. His unnamed son and successor 212 is described as the sultan’s vassal, serving with two hundred lances; that Comnenian prince was merely duke of Trebizond, and the title of emperor was first claimed by the pride and jealousy of the grandson of Alexius. In the West, a third fragment was rescued from the general collapse by Michael, a bastard from the house of Angeli, who had been known as a hostage, soldier, and rebel before the upheaval. His escape from the camp of the Marquis Boniface ensured his freedom; through his marriage to the governor’s daughter, he gained control of the crucial location of Durazzo, took on the title of despot, and established a strong and prominent principality in Epirus, Ætolia, and Thessaly, which have always been inhabited by a warrior race. The Greeks, who had offered their services to their new rulers, were excluded by the arrogant Latins 22 from all civil and military honors, seen as a nation meant to fear and obey. Their anger pushed them to demonstrate that they could have been valuable allies since they could also be dangerous foes; their spirits were strengthened by hardship: whatever was learned or sacred, whatever was noble or brave, flowed into the independent states of Trebizond, Epirus, and Nice; and a single aristocrat is notably recognized for his ambiguous loyalty to the Franks. The common people in the cities and the countryside would have welcomed a mild and orderly servitude; and the temporary turmoil of war could have been erased by years of hard work and peace. But peace was driven away, and work was stifled amid the chaos of the feudal system. The Roman emperors of Constantinople, if they had skills, held power to protect their subjects: their laws were wise, and their administration was straightforward. The Latin throne was occupied by a nominal prince, the leader, and often the pawn, of his licentious allies; the empire’s fiefs, from kingdoms to castles, were held and ruled by the barons' swords; and their discord, poverty, and ignorance spread the roots of tyranny to the most secluded villages. The Greeks were burdened by the combined weight of priests, who wielded temporal power, and soldiers, who were fueled by fanatical hatred; and the insurmountable barriers of religion and language eternally separated the foreigner from the native. While the crusaders remained united in Constantinople, the memory of their conquest and the fear of their might kept the captured territory silent; their fragmentation revealed their small numbers and the flaws in their discipline; and some setbacks disclosed the truth that they were not invincible. As the Greeks' fears faded, their hatred intensified. They murdered; they schemed; and before a year of captivity had passed, they sought or accepted aid from a Barbarian, whose power they had experienced and whose gratitude they hoped to rely on. 23

17 (return)
[ See the fate of Mourzoufle in Nicetas, (p. 393,) Villehardouin, (No. 141—145, 163,) and Guntherus, (c. 20, 21.) Neither the marshal nor the monk afford a grain of pity for a tyrant or rebel, whose punishment, however, was more unexampled than his crime.]

17 (return)
[ Check out what happened to Mourzoufle in Nicetas, (p. 393,) Villehardouin, (No. 141—145, 163,) and Guntherus, (c. 20, 21.) Neither the marshal nor the monk show any sympathy for a tyrant or rebel, whose punishment, however, was more extraordinary than his crime.]

18 (return)
[ The column of Arcadius, which represents in basso relievo his victories, or those of his father Theodosius, is still extant at Constantinople. It is described and measured, Gyllius, (Topograph. iv. 7,) Banduri, (ad l. i. Antiquit. C. P. p. 507, &c.,) and Tournefort, (Voyage du Levant, tom. ii. lettre xii. p. 231.) (Compare Wilken, note, vol. v p. 388.—M.)]

18 (return)
[ The column of Arcadius, which shows in low relief his victories or those of his father Theodosius, still stands in Constantinople. It is described and measured by Gyllius (Topograph. iv. 7), Banduri (ad l. i. Antiquit. C. P. p. 507, &c.), and Tournefort (Voyage du Levant, tom. ii. lettre xii. p. 231). (See Wilken, note, vol. v p. 388.—M.)]

19 (return)
[ The nonsense of Gunther and the modern Greeks concerning this columna fatidica, is unworthy of notice; but it is singular enough, that fifty years before the Latin conquest, the poet Tzetzes, (Chiliad, ix. 277) relates the dream of a matron, who saw an army in the forum, and a man sitting on the column, clapping his hands, and uttering a loud exclamation. * Note: We read in the “Chronicle of the Conquest of Constantinople, and of the Establishment of the French in the Morea,” translated by J A Buchon, Paris, 1825, p. 64 that Leo VI., called the Philosopher, had prophesied that a perfidious emperor should be precipitated from the top of this column. The crusaders considered themselves under an obligation to fulfil this prophecy. Brosset, note on Le Beau, vol. xvii. p. 180. M Brosset announces that a complete edition of this work, of which the original Greek of the first book only has been published by M. Buchon in preparation, to form part of the new series of the Byzantine historian.—M.]

19 (return)
[ The nonsense of Gunther and the modern Greeks about this columna fatidica is not worth paying attention to; however, it is interesting that fifty years before the Latin conquest, the poet Tzetzes (Chiliad, ix. 277) describes a dream of a matron who saw an army in the forum and a man sitting on the column, clapping his hands and shouting loudly. * Note: According to the “Chronicle of the Conquest of Constantinople, and of the Establishment of the French in the Morea,” translated by J A Buchon, Paris, 1825, p. 64, Leo VI., known as the Philosopher, prophesied that a treacherous emperor would be thrown from the top of this column. The crusaders felt obligated to fulfill this prophecy. Brosset, note on Le Beau, vol. xvii. p. 180. M Brosset announces that a complete edition of this work, of which only the original Greek of the first book has been published by M. Buchon, is being prepared to be part of the new series of the Byzantine historian.—M.]

20 (return)
[ The dynasties of Nice, Trebizond, and Epirus (of which Nicetas saw the origin without much pleasure or hope) are learnedly explored, and clearly represented, in the Familiæ Byzantinæ of Ducange.]

20 (return)
[ The dynasties of Nice, Trebizond, and Epirus (which Nicetas witnessed the beginning of with little enjoyment or optimism) are thoroughly examined and clearly depicted in Ducange's Familiæ Byzantinæ.]

201 (return)
[ This was a title, not a personal appellation. Joinville speaks of the “Grant Comnenie, et sire de Traffezzontes.” Fallmerayer, p. 82.—M.]

201 (return)
[ This was a title, not a personal name. Joinville talks about the “Great Comnenus and lord of Traffezzontes.” Fallmerayer, p. 82.—M.]

21 (return)
[ Except some facts in Pachymer and Nicephorus Gregoras, which will hereafter be used, the Byzantine writers disdain to speak of the empire of Trebizond, or principality of the Lazi; and among the Latins, it is conspicuous only in the romancers of the xivth or xvth centuries. Yet the indefatigable Ducange has dug out (Fam. Byz. p. 192) two authentic passages in Vincent of Beauvais (l. xxxi. c. 144) and the prothonotary Ogerius, (apud Wading, A.D. 1279, No. 4.)]

21 (return)
[ Aside from some details in Pachymer and Nicephorus Gregoras, which will be referenced later, Byzantine writers generally avoid discussing the empire of Trebizond or the principality of the Lazi; among the Latins, it only appears in the stories of the 14th or 15th centuries. However, the tireless Ducange has uncovered (Fam. Byz. p. 192) two authentic passages in Vincent of Beauvais (l. xxxi. c. 144) and the prothonotary Ogerius, (apud Wading, A.D. 1279, No. 4.)]

211 (return)
[ On the revolutions of Trebizond under the later empire down to this period, see Fallmerayer, Geschichte des Kaiserthums von Trapezunt, ch. iii. The wife of Manuel fled with her infant sons and her treasure from the relentless enmity of Isaac Angelus. Fallmerayer conjectures that her arrival enabled the Greeks of that region to make head against the formidable Thamar, the Georgian queen of Teflis, p. 42. They gradually formed a dominion on the banks of the Phasis, which the distracted government of the Angeli neglected or were unable to suppress. On the capture of Constantinople by the Latins, Alexius was joined by many noble fugitives from Constantinople. He had always retained the names of Cæsar and BasileuV. He now fixed the seat of his empire at Trebizond; but he had never abandoned his pretensions to the Byzantine throne, ch. iii. Fallmerayer appears to make out a triumphant case as to the assumption of the royal title by Alexius the First. Since the publication of M. Fallmerayer’s work, (München, 1827,) M. Tafel has published, at the end of the opuscula of Eustathius, a curious chronicle of Trebizond by Michael Panaretas, (Frankfort, 1832.) It gives the succession of the emperors, and some other curious circumstances of their wars with the several Mahometan powers.—M.]

211 (return)
[ For information on the revolutions of Trebizond during the later empire up to this time, see Fallmerayer, Geschichte des Kaiserthums von Trapezunt, ch. iii. Manuel's wife escaped with her young sons and her valuables from the relentless hostility of Isaac Angelus. Fallmerayer suggests that her arrival allowed the Greeks in that area to stand against the powerful Thamar, the Georgian queen of Teflis, p. 42. They gradually established a territory along the banks of the Phasis, which the unstable government of the Angeli either neglected or couldn’t suppress. After the Latins captured Constantinople, Alexius was joined by many noble refugees from the city. He had always retained the titles of Cæsar and Basileus. He then established his empire in Trebizond but never gave up his claims to the Byzantine throne, ch. iii. Fallmerayer seems to build a strong case for Alexius the First’s claim to the royal title. Since the release of M. Fallmerayer’s work (München, 1827), M. Tafel has published, at the end of the opuscula of Eustathius, an interesting chronicle of Trebizond by Michael Panaretas (Frankfort, 1832). It outlines the succession of emperors and provides some intriguing details about their wars with various Muslim powers.—M.]

212 (return)
[ The successor of Alexius was his son-in-law Andronicus I., of the Comnenian family, surnamed Gidon. There were five successions between Alexius and John, according to Fallmerayer, p. 103. The troops of Trebizond fought in the army of Dschelaleddin, the Karismian, against Alaleddin, the Seljukian sultan of Roum, but as allies rather than vassals, p. 107. It was after the defeat of Dschelaleddin that they furnished their contingent to Alai-eddin. Fallmerayer struggles in vain to mitigate this mark of the subjection of the Comneni to the sultan. p. 116.—M.]

212 (return)
[ The successor to Alexius was his son-in-law Andronicus I., from the Comnenian family, known as Gidon. According to Fallmerayer, there were five successors between Alexius and John, p. 103. The troops from Trebizond fought alongside Dschelaleddin, the Karismian, against Alaleddin, the Seljuk sultan of Roum, but as allies rather than vassals, p. 107. It was after Dschelaleddin's defeat that they provided their support to Alai-eddin. Fallmerayer struggles unsuccessfully to downplay this indication of the Comneni's submission to the sultan. p. 116.—M.]

22 (return)
[ The portrait of the French Latins is drawn in Nicetas by the hand of prejudice and resentment: ouden tvn allwn eqnvn eiV ''AreoV?rga parasumbeblhsqai sjisin hneiconto all’ oude tiV tvn caritwn h tvn?mousvn para toiV barbaroiV toutoiV epexenizeto, kai para touto oimai thn jusin hsan anhmeroi, kai ton xolon eixon tou logou prstreconta. [P. 791 Ed. Bek.]

22 (return)
[ The depiction of the French Latins in Nicetas is influenced by bias and resentment: there is no evidence of any other people's superiority; instead, those who were fond of the barbarian ways were indulged, and thus I believe that their knowledge was lacking, and the depth of their understanding was shallow. [P. 791 Ed. Bek.]

23 (return)
[ I here begin to use, with freedom and confidence, the eight books of the Histoire de C. P. sous l’Empire des François, which Ducange has given as a supplement to Villehardouin; and which, in a barbarous style, deserves the praise of an original and classic work.]

23 (return)
[I now freely and confidently engage with the eight books of the Histoire de C. P. sous l’Empire des François, which Ducange has provided as a supplement to Villehardouin; and which, despite its rough style, deserves recognition as an original and classic piece of work.]

The Latin conquerors had been saluted with a solemn and early embassy from John, or Joannice, or Calo-John, the revolted chief of the Bulgarians and Walachians. He deemed himself their brother, as the votary of the Roman pontiff, from whom he had received the regal title and a holy banner; and in the subversion of the Greek monarchy, he might aspire to the name of their friend and accomplice. But Calo-John was astonished to find, that the Count of Flanders had assumed the pomp and pride of the successors of Constantine; and his ambassadors were dismissed with a haughty message, that the rebel must deserve a pardon, by touching with his forehead the footstool of the Imperial throne. His resentment 24 would have exhaled in acts of violence and blood: his cooler policy watched the rising discontent of the Greeks; affected a tender concern for their sufferings; and promised, that their first struggles for freedom should be supported by his person and kingdom. The conspiracy was propagated by national hatred, the firmest band of association and secrecy: the Greeks were impatient to sheathe their daggers in the breasts of the victorious strangers; but the execution was prudently delayed, till Henry, the emperor’s brother, had transported the flower of his troops beyond the Hellespont. Most of the towns and villages of Thrace were true to the moment and the signal; and the Latins, without arms or suspicion, were slaughtered by the vile and merciless revenge of their slaves. From Demotica, the first scene of the massacre, the surviving vassals of the count of St. Pol escaped to Adrianople; but the French and Venetians, who occupied that city, were slain or expelled by the furious multitude: the garrisons that could effect their retreat fell back on each other towards the metropolis; and the fortresses, that separately stood against the rebels, were ignorant of each other’s and of their sovereign’s fate. The voice of fame and fear announced the revolt of the Greeks and the rapid approach of their Bulgarian ally; and Calo-John, not depending on the forces of his own kingdom, had drawn from the Scythian wilderness a body of fourteen thousand Comans, who drank, as it was said, the blood of their captives, and sacrificed the Christians on the altars of their gods. 25

The Latin conquerors received a serious and early mission from John, also known as Joannice or Calo-John, the leader of the revolted Bulgarians and Walachians. He considered himself their brother because he was a supporter of the Roman pope, from whom he had received a royal title and a sacred banner. With the downfall of the Greek monarchy, he hoped to be called their friend and ally. However, Calo-John was taken aback to discover that the Count of Flanders had taken on the pride and grandeur of the successors of Constantine; his ambassadors were sent away with a haughty message stating that the rebel must earn forgiveness by bowing his head to the footstool of the Imperial throne. His anger 24 would have erupted into acts of violence and bloodshed, but his more careful approach monitored the growing discontent among the Greeks, feigning deep concern for their suffering and promising that their initial struggles for freedom would be backed by him and his kingdom. The conspiracy grew through national resentment, the strongest bond of unity and secrecy: the Greeks were eager to plunge their daggers into the hearts of the victorious foreigners, but they wisely delayed action until Henry, the emperor’s brother, had moved the elite of his troops across the Hellespont. Most of the towns and villages in Thrace were ready at the right moment to act; and the Latins, caught off guard and without arms, were slaughtered by the vile and merciless revenge of their slaves. From Demotica, the first site of the massacre, the surviving vassals of the count of St. Pol escaped to Adrianople; however, the French and Venetians occupying that city were killed or driven out by the furious crowds. The garrisons that managed to retreat fell back on each other toward the capital, and the fortresses that stood against the rebels were unaware of each other’s situations or their lord’s fate. The rumors of the Greek revolt and the swift approach of their Bulgarian ally spread through fear and fame; and Calo-John, not relying solely on his own kingdom's forces, gathered a troop of fourteen thousand Comans from the Scythian wilderness, who were said to drink the blood of their captives and sacrifice Christians on their gods' altars. 25

24 (return)
[ In Calo-John’s answer to the pope we may find his claims and complaints, (Gesta Innocent III. c. 108, 109:) he was cherished at Rome as the prodigal son.]

24 (return)
[In Calo-John’s reply to the pope, we can see his assertions and grievances (Gesta Innocent III. c. 108, 109:) He was welcomed in Rome like the prodigal son.]

25 (return)
[ The Comans were a Tartar or Turkman horde, which encamped in the xiith and xiiith centuries on the verge of Moldavia. The greater part were pagans, but some were Mahometans, and the whole horde was converted to Christianity (A.D. 1370) by Lewis, king of Hungary.]

25 (return)
[The Comans were a Tartar or Turkman group that settled on the edge of Moldavia in the 12th and 13th centuries. Most of them were pagans, but some were Muslims, and the entire group converted to Christianity in 1370, thanks to Lewis, the king of Hungary.]

Alarmed by this sudden and growing danger, the emperor despatched a swift messenger to recall Count Henry and his troops; and had Baldwin expected the return of his gallant brother, with a supply of twenty thousand Armenians, he might have encountered the invader with equal numbers and a decisive superiority of arms and discipline. But the spirit of chivalry could seldom discriminate caution from cowardice; and the emperor took the field with a hundred and forty knights, and their train of archers and sergeants. The marshal, who dissuaded and obeyed, led the vanguard in their march to Adrianople; the main body was commanded by the count of Blois; the aged doge of Venice followed with the rear; and their scanty numbers were increased from all sides by the fugitive Latins. They undertook to besiege the rebels of Adrianople; and such was the pious tendency of the crusades that they employed the holy week in pillaging the country for their subsistence, and in framing engines for the destruction of their fellow-Christians. But the Latins were soon interrupted and alarmed by the light cavalry of the Comans, who boldly skirmished to the edge of their imperfect lines: and a proclamation was issued by the marshal of Romania, that, on the trumpet’s sound, the cavalry should mount and form; but that none, under pain of death, should abandon themselves to a desultory and dangerous pursuit. This wise injunction was first disobeyed by the count of Blois, who involved the emperor in his rashness and ruin. The Comans, of the Parthian or Tartar school, fled before their first charge; but after a career of two leagues, when the knights and their horses were almost breathless, they suddenly turned, rallied, and encompassed the heavy squadrons of the Franks. The count was slain on the field; the emperor was made prisoner; and if the one disdained to fly, if the other refused to yield, their personal bravery made a poor atonement for their ignorance, or neglect, of the duties of a general. 26

Alarmed by this sudden and growing threat, the emperor sent a fast messenger to recall Count Henry and his troops. If Baldwin had anticipated the return of his brave brother with a reinforcement of twenty thousand Armenians, he might have faced the invader with equal numbers and a clear advantage in weaponry and training. However, the spirit of chivalry rarely made a distinction between caution and cowardice. The emperor took the field with one hundred and forty knights, along with their archers and sergeants. The marshal, who both advised against and obeyed commands, led the vanguard in their march to Adrianople; the main force was commanded by the Count of Blois; the elderly doge of Venice brought up the rear; and their small numbers were bolstered by fleeing Latins. They set out to besiege the rebels of Adrianople, and due to the religious zeal of the crusades, they spent Holy Week looting the countryside for supplies and constructing siege engines to attack their fellow Christians. However, the Latins were soon interrupted and alarmed by the light cavalry of the Comans, who boldly skirmished at the edges of their disorganized lines. A proclamation was issued by the marshal of Romania that upon the sound of the trumpet, the cavalry should mount and form ranks, but that anyone who engaged in reckless and dangerous pursuits would face death. This wise instruction was first ignored by the Count of Blois, whose rash actions led to the emperor's downfall. The Comans, trained in the tactics of the Parthians or Tartars, initially fled from the first charge, but after retreating for about two leagues, when the knights and their horses were nearly exhausted, they suddenly turned, regrouped, and surrounded the heavily armored units of the Franks. The count was killed in the battle, the emperor was captured, and while one refused to flee and the other declined to surrender, their personal bravery did little to compensate for their ignorance or neglect of a general's duties. 26

26 (return)
[ Nicetas, from ignorance or malice, imputes the defeat to the cowardice of Dandolo, (p. 383;) but Villehardouin shares his own glory with his venerable friend, qui viels home ére et gote ne veoit, mais mult ére sages et preus et vigueros, (No. 193.) * Note: Gibbon appears to me to have misapprehended the passage of Nicetas. He says, “that principal and subtlest mischief. that primary cause of all the horrible miseries suffered by the Romans,” i. e. the Byzantines. It is an effusion of malicious triumph against the Venetians, to whom he always ascribes the capture of Constantinople.—M.]

26 (return)
[ Nicetas, either out of ignorance or spite, blames Dandolo's cowardice for the defeat (p. 383;), but Villehardouin shares his own glory with his esteemed friend, who, while old and blind, is still very wise and brave (No. 193.) * Note: I believe Gibbon misinterpreted Nicetas's statement. He claims, “that principal and subtlest mischief, that primary cause of all the horrible miseries suffered by the Romans,” referring to the Byzantines. It's a display of malicious gloating against the Venetians, whom he always holds responsible for the fall of Constantinople.—M.]

Chapter LXI: Partition Of The Empire By The French And Venetians.—Part II.

Proud of his victory and his royal prize, the Bulgarian advanced to relieve Adrianople and achieve the destruction of the Latins. They must inevitably have been destroyed, if the marshal of Romania had not displayed a cool courage and consummate skill; uncommon in all ages, but most uncommon in those times, when war was a passion, rather than a science. His grief and fears were poured into the firm and faithful bosom of the doge; but in the camp he diffused an assurance of safety, which could only be realized by the general belief. All day he maintained his perilous station between the city and the Barbarians: Villehardouin decamped in silence at the dead of night; and his masterly retreat of three days would have deserved the praise of Xenophon and the ten thousand. In the rear, the marshal supported the weight of the pursuit; in the front, he moderated the impatience of the fugitives; and wherever the Comans approached, they were repelled by a line of impenetrable spears. On the third day, the weary troops beheld the sea, the solitary town of Rodosta, 27 and their friends, who had landed from the Asiatic shore. They embraced, they wept; but they united their arms and counsels; and in his brother’s absence, Count Henry assumed the regency of the empire, at once in a state of childhood and caducity. 28 If the Comans withdrew from the summer heats, seven thousand Latins, in the hour of danger, deserted Constantinople, their brethren, and their vows. Some partial success was overbalanced by the loss of one hundred and twenty knights in the field of Rusium; and of the Imperial domain, no more was left than the capital, with two or three adjacent fortresses on the shores of Europe and Asia. The king of Bulgaria was resistless and inexorable; and Calo-John respectfully eluded the demands of the pope, who conjured his new proselyte to restore peace and the emperor to the afflicted Latins. The deliverance of Baldwin was no longer, he said, in the power of man: that prince had died in prison; and the manner of his death is variously related by ignorance and credulity. The lovers of a tragic legend will be pleased to hear, that the royal captive was tempted by the amorous queen of the Bulgarians; that his chaste refusal exposed him to the falsehood of a woman and the jealousy of a savage; that his hands and feet were severed from his body; that his bleeding trunk was cast among the carcasses of dogs and horses; and that he breathed three days, before he was devoured by the birds of prey. 29 About twenty years afterwards, in a wood of the Netherlands, a hermit announced himself as the true Baldwin, the emperor of Constantinople, and lawful sovereign of Flanders. He related the wonders of his escape, his adventures, and his penance, among a people prone to believe and to rebel; and, in the first transport, Flanders acknowledged her long-lost sovereign. A short examination before the French court detected the impostor, who was punished with an ignominious death; but the Flemings still adhered to the pleasing error; and the countess Jane is accused by the gravest historians of sacrificing to her ambition the life of an unfortunate father. 30

Proud of his victory and his royal prize, the Bulgarian moved to relieve Adrianople and annihilate the Latins. They would have surely been destroyed if the Romanian marshal hadn't shown remarkable courage and skill; such qualities are rare at any time, but even more so in those days when war was more of a passion than a science. His grief and fears were shared with the doge, who was steadfast and loyal; yet, in the camp, he projected a sense of safety that could only be sustained by the general belief. All day, he held his dangerous position between the city and the Barbarians: Villehardouin quietly packed up his camp at midnight; and his masterful retreat over three days would have earned praise from Xenophon and the ten thousand. Behind him, the marshal bore the burden of the pursuit; in front, he calmed the anxious fleeing troops; and wherever the Comans approached, they were pushed back by a line of unyielding spears. On the third day, the exhausted troops spotted the sea, the isolated town of Rodosta, 27 and their allies who had landed from the Asian shore. They embraced, they cried; but they combined their arms and strategies; and in his brother's absence, Count Henry took charge of the empire, which was both youthful and frail. 28 If the Comans retreated from the summer heat, seven thousand Latins, in their moment of danger, abandoned Constantinople, their fellow countrymen, and their vows. Some minor successes were overshadowed by the loss of one hundred and twenty knights in the battle of Rusium; and all that remained of the Imperial domain was the capital, with two or three nearby fortresses on the shores of Europe and Asia. The king of Bulgaria was unstoppable and relentless; and Calo-John respectfully ignored the pope's requests, who appealed to his new follower to restore peace and the emperor to the suffering Latins. The rescue of Baldwin was no longer within human reach: that prince had died in prison; and the accounts of his death vary due to ignorance and superstition. Lovers of a tragic tale might enjoy the story that the royal captive was courted by the passionate queen of the Bulgarians; that his honorable refusal led to betrayal by a woman and wrath from a savage; that his hands and feet were cut off; that his bleeding body was thrown among the carcasses of dogs and horses; and that he survived three days before being devoured by vultures. 29 About twenty years later, in a forest in the Netherlands, a hermit proclaimed himself to be the true Baldwin, the emperor of Constantinople and rightful ruler of Flanders. He shared the incredible story of his escape, his adventures, and his penance among a people eager to believe and rebel; and in a moment of excitement, Flanders recognized her long-lost sovereign. A brief investigation by the French court exposed the impostor, who was executed in disgrace; however, the Flemings continued to cling to the delightful illusion; and the countess Jane is accused by serious historians of sacrificing her unfortunate father's life for her ambition. 30

27 (return)
[ The truth of geography, and the original text of Villehardouin, (No. 194,) place Rodosto three days’ journey (trois jornées) from Adrianople: but Vigenere, in his version, has most absurdly substituted trois heures; and this error, which is not corrected by Ducange has entrapped several moderns, whose names I shall spare.]

27 (return)
[ The truth about geography, and the original text of Villehardouin, (No. 194,) place Rodosto three days' journey (trois jornées) from Adrianople: but Vigenere, in his version, has absurdly replaced trois heures; and this mistake, which Ducange does not correct, has misled several modern scholars, whose names I will leave out.]

28 (return)
[ The reign and end of Baldwin are related by Villehardouin and Nicetas, (p. 386—416;) and their omissions are supplied by Ducange in his Observations, and to the end of his first book.]

28 (return)
[ Villehardouin and Nicetas cover the reign and downfall of Baldwin (p. 386—416;), and Ducange fills in their gaps in his Observations and at the end of his first book.]

29 (return)
[ After brushing away all doubtful and improbable circumstances, we may prove the death of Baldwin, 1. By the firm belief of the French barons, (Villehardouin, No. 230.) 2. By the declaration of Calo-John himself, who excuses his not releasing the captive emperor, quia debitum carnis exsolverat cum carcere teneretur, (Gesta Innocent III. c. 109.) * Note: Compare Von Raumer. Geschichte der Hohenstaufen, vol. ii. p. 237. Petitot, in his preface to Villehardouin in the Collection des Mémoires, relatifs a l’Histoire de France, tom. i. p. 85, expresses his belief in the first part of the “tragic legend.”—M.]

29 (return)
[ After dismissing all the uncertain and unlikely circumstances, we can confirm Baldwin's death, 1. By the strong belief of the French barons, (Villehardouin, No. 230.) 2. By the statement from Calo-John himself, who justifies not releasing the captive emperor, because he had fulfilled his bodily obligations while being held in prison, (Gesta Innocent III. c. 109.) * Note: See Von Raumer. History of the Hohenstaufen, vol. ii. p. 237. Petitot, in his introduction to Villehardouin in the Collection des Mémoires, relating to the History of France, tom. i. p. 85, shares his belief in the first part of the “tragic legend.”—M.]

30 (return)
[ See the story of this impostor from the French and Flemish writers in Ducange, Hist. de C. P. iii. 9; and the ridiculous fables that were believed by the monks of St. Alban’s, in Matthew Paris, Hist. Major, p. 271, 272.]

30 (return)
[ Check out the story of this fraud from the French and Flemish authors in Ducange, Hist. de C. P. iii. 9; and the absurd tales that were believed by the monks of St. Alban’s, in Matthew Paris, Hist. Major, p. 271, 272.]

In all civilized hostility, a treaty is established for the exchange or ransom of prisoners; and if their captivity be prolonged, their condition is known, and they are treated according to their rank with humanity or honor. But the savage Bulgarian was a stranger to the laws of war: his prisons were involved in darkness and silence; and above a year elapsed before the Latins could be assured of the death of Baldwin, before his brother, the regent Henry, would consent to assume the title of emperor. His moderation was applauded by the Greeks as an act of rare and inimitable virtue. Their light and perfidious ambition was eager to seize or anticipate the moment of a vacancy, while a law of succession, the guardian both of the prince and people, was gradually defined and confirmed in the hereditary monarchies of Europe. In the support of the Eastern empire, Henry was gradually left without an associate, as the heroes of the crusade retired from the world or from the war. The doge of Venice, the venerable Dandolo, in the fulness of years and glory, sunk into the grave. The marquis of Montferrat was slowly recalled from the Peloponnesian war to the revenge of Baldwin and the defence of Thessalonica. Some nice disputes of feudal homage and service were reconciled in a personal interview between the emperor and the king; they were firmly united by mutual esteem and the common danger; and their alliance was sealed by the nuptials of Henry with the daughter of the Italian prince. He soon deplored the loss of his friend and father. At the persuasion of some faithful Greeks, Boniface made a bold and successful inroad among the hills of Rhodope: the Bulgarians fled on his approach; they assembled to harass his retreat. On the intelligence that his rear was attacked, without waiting for any defensive armor, he leaped on horseback, couched his lance, and drove the enemies before him; but in the rash pursuit he was pierced with a mortal wound; and the head of the king of Thessalonica was presented to Calo-John, who enjoyed the honors, without the merit, of victory. It is here, at this melancholy event, that the pen or the voice of Jeffrey of Villehardouin seems to drop or to expire; 31 and if he still exercised his military office of marshal of Romania, his subsequent exploits are buried in oblivion. 32 The character of Henry was not unequal to his arduous situation: in the siege of Constantinople, and beyond the Hellespont, he had deserved the fame of a valiant knight and a skilful commander; and his courage was tempered with a degree of prudence and mildness unknown to his impetuous brother. In the double war against the Greeks of Asia and the Bulgarians of Europe, he was ever the foremost on shipboard or on horseback; and though he cautiously provided for the success of his arms, the drooping Latins were often roused by his example to save and to second their fearless emperor. But such efforts, and some supplies of men and money from France, were of less avail than the errors, the cruelty, and death, of their most formidable adversary. When the despair of the Greek subjects invited Calo-John as their deliverer, they hoped that he would protect their liberty and adopt their laws: they were soon taught to compare the degrees of national ferocity, and to execrate the savage conqueror, who no longer dissembled his intention of dispeopling Thrace, of demolishing the cities, and of transplanting the inhabitants beyond the Danube. Many towns and villages of Thrace were already evacuated: a heap of ruins marked the place of Philippopolis, and a similar calamity was expected at Demotica and Adrianople, by the first authors of the revolt. They raised a cry of grief and repentance to the throne of Henry; the emperor alone had the magnanimity to forgive and trust them. No more than four hundred knights, with their sergeants and archers, could be assembled under his banner; and with this slender force he fought 321 and repulsed the Bulgarian, who, besides his infantry, was at the head of forty thousand horse. In this expedition, Henry felt the difference between a hostile and a friendly country: the remaining cities were preserved by his arms; and the savage, with shame and loss, was compelled to relinquish his prey. The siege of Thessalonica was the last of the evils which Calo-John inflicted or suffered: he was stabbed in the night in his tent; and the general, perhaps the assassin, who found him weltering in his blood, ascribed the blow, with general applause, to the lance of St. Demetrius. 33 After several victories, the prudence of Henry concluded an honorable peace with the successor of the tyrant, and with the Greek princes of Nice and Epirus. If he ceded some doubtful limits, an ample kingdom was reserved for himself and his feudatories; and his reign, which lasted only ten years, afforded a short interval of prosperity and peace. Far above the narrow policy of Baldwin and Boniface, he freely intrusted to the Greeks the most important offices of the state and army; and this liberality of sentiment and practice was the more seasonable, as the princes of Nice and Epirus had already learned to seduce and employ the mercenary valor of the Latins. It was the aim of Henry to unite and reward his deserving subjects, of every nation and language; but he appeared less solicitous to accomplish the impracticable union of the two churches. Pelagius, the pope’s legate, who acted as the sovereign of Constantinople, had interdicted the worship of the Greeks, and sternly imposed the payment of tithes, the double procession of the Holy Ghost, and a blind obedience to the Roman pontiff. As the weaker party, they pleaded the duties of conscience, and implored the rights of toleration: “Our bodies,” they said, “are Cæsar’s, but our souls belong only to God.” The persecution was checked by the firmness of the emperor: 34 and if we can believe that the same prince was poisoned by the Greeks themselves, we must entertain a contemptible idea of the sense and gratitude of mankind. His valor was a vulgar attribute, which he shared with ten thousand knights; but Henry possessed the superior courage to oppose, in a superstitious age, the pride and avarice of the clergy. In the cathedral of St. Sophia he presumed to place his throne on the right hand of the patriarch; and this presumption excited the sharpest censure of Pope Innocent the Third. By a salutary edict, one of the first examples of the laws of mortmain, he prohibited the alienation of fiefs: many of the Latins, desirous of returning to Europe, resigned their estates to the church for a spiritual or temporal reward; these holy lands were immediately discharged from military service, and a colony of soldiers would have been gradually transformed into a college of priests. 35

In any civilized conflict, a treaty is made for exchanging or ransoming prisoners, and if they are held captive for a long time, their condition is known, and they are treated humanely and with honor according to their rank. But the brutal Bulgarian was unfamiliar with the rules of war: his prisons were dark and silent; it took over a year before the Latins could confirm Baldwin's death, and only then would his brother, the regent Henry, agree to take the title of emperor. His restraint was praised by the Greeks as an act of rare and unmatched virtue. Their cunning and treacherous ambition was eager to take advantage of any vacancy, even as a law of succession was slowly being defined and confirmed in the hereditary monarchies of Europe. In supporting the Eastern empire, Henry gradually found himself without allies, as the heroes of the crusade either passed away or withdrew from the conflict. The venerable Doge of Venice, Dandolo, died after a long life of glory. The Marquis of Montferrat was slowly brought back from the Peloponnesian war to avenge Baldwin and defend Thessalonica. Some petty disputes over feudal homage and service were resolved in a personal meeting between the emperor and the king; they were firmly united by mutual respect and common threats, and their alliance was sealed by Henry's marriage to the daughter of the Italian prince. He soon mourned the loss of his friend and father. Encouraged by some loyal Greeks, Boniface made a daring and successful advance into the hills of Rhodope: the Bulgarians fled at his approach; they regrouped to harass his retreat. When he learned that his rear was under attack, he quickly mounted his horse, aimed his lance, and drove the enemies before him; but in his reckless pursuit, he received a fatal wound, and the head of the king of Thessalonica was presented to Calo-John, who enjoyed the honors of victory without earning them. It is at this tragic point that the writing or voice of Geoffrey of Villehardouin seems to falter or fade; 31 and if he still held the military position of marshal of Romania, his later achievements are lost to history. 32 Henry's character matched the challenges he faced: during the siege of Constantinople and beyond the Hellespont, he earned a reputation as a brave knight and a skilled commander; his courage was balanced with a level of caution and gentleness unknown to his fiery brother. In the double war against the Greeks of Asia and the Bulgarians of Europe, he was always at the forefront, either on deck or on horseback; and though he carefully prepared for his campaigns, the weary Latins were often inspired by his example to rally and support their fearless emperor. However, these efforts, and some reinforcements of troops and funds from France, were less effective than the mistakes, brutality, and death of their most formidable adversary. When the Greek subjects' despair led them to view Calo-John as their savior, they hoped he would protect their freedom and adopt their laws: they were soon forced to compare the levels of national cruelty and to curse the savage conqueror, who no longer hid his plans to depopulate Thrace, destroy the cities, and relocate the inhabitants across the Danube. Many towns and villages in Thrace were already deserted: a pile of ruins marked the site of Philippopolis, and a similar fate was expected for Demotica and Adrianople, as the initial instigators of the revolt. They cried out in sorrow and regret to Henry's throne; he alone had the greatness of spirit to forgive and trust them. No more than four hundred knights, along with their soldiers and archers, could gather under his banner; and with this meager force, he fought 321 and repelled the Bulgarian, who, in addition to his infantry, commanded forty thousand cavalry. In this campaign, Henry experienced the difference between enemy and friendly territory: the remaining cities were saved by his efforts; and the savage, in shame and defeat, was forced to abandon his prey. The siege of Thessalonica was the last of the calamities Calo-John inflicted or endured: he was stabbed in the night in his tent; and the general, possibly the assassin, who discovered him lying in his blood, attributed the blow, to much acclaim, to the lance of St. Demetrius. 33 After several victories, Henry's wisdom achieved an honorable peace with the successor of the tyrant and with the Greek princes of Nice and Epirus. Although he conceded some disputed territories, a vast kingdom was secured for himself and his vassals; and his reign, lasting only ten years, provided a brief period of prosperity and peace. Far above the narrow-minded politics of Baldwin and Boniface, he generously entrusted the most significant roles in the government and military to the Greeks; this act of generosity was timely, as the princes of Nice and Epirus had already learned to entice and utilize the mercenary might of the Latins. Henry aimed to unite and reward his deserving subjects from every nation and language; however, he seemed less concerned about achieving the impossible merger of the two churches. Pelagius, the pope's legate, who acted as the ruler of Constantinople, had banned Greek worship and harshly imposed the payment of tithes, the double procession of the Holy Ghost, and unquestioning obedience to the Roman pope. As the weaker party, the Greeks appealed to their conscience and requested the right to practice their beliefs: “Our bodies,” they said, “belong to Cæsar, but our souls belong only to God.” The persecution was halted by the emperor's resolve: 34 and if we are to believe that this prince was poisoned by the Greeks themselves, we must have a low opinion of human sensibility and gratitude. His bravery was a common trait shared with many knights; but Henry had the extraordinary courage to challenge, in a superstitious time, the pride and greed of the clergy. In the cathedral of St. Sophia, he dared to place his throne at the right hand of the patriarch; this audacity drew sharp criticism from Pope Innocent the Third. Through a beneficial edict, one of the first examples of laws on dead hand, he prohibited the transfer of fiefs: many Latins, wishing to return to Europe, surrendered their properties to the church in exchange for a spiritual or material reward; these holy lands were immediately freed from military obligations, and a group of soldiers would have gradually transformed into a college of priests. 35

31 (return)
[ Villehardouin, No. 257. I quote, with regret, this lamentable conclusion, where we lose at once the original history, and the rich illustrations of Ducange. The last pages may derive some light from Henry’s two epistles to Innocent III., (Gesta, c. 106, 107.)]

31 (return)
[ Villehardouin, No. 257. I regret to quote this unfortunate conclusion, where we simultaneously lose the original history and the valuable insights from Ducange. The last pages might get some clarity from Henry's two letters to Innocent III., (Gesta, c. 106, 107.)]

32 (return)
[ The marshal was alive in 1212, but he probably died soon afterwards, without returning to France, (Ducange, Observations sur Villehardouin, p. 238.) His fief of Messinople, the gift of Boniface, was the ancient Maximianopolis, which flourished in the time of Ammianus Marcellinus, among the cities of Thrace, (No. 141.)]

32 (return)
[ The marshal was alive in 1212, but he likely died soon after without going back to France, (Ducange, Observations sur Villehardouin, p. 238.) His fief of Messinople, a gift from Boniface, was the old Maximianopolis, which thrived during the time of Ammianus Marcellinus among the cities of Thrace, (No. 141.)]

321 (return)
[ There was no battle. On the advance of the Latins, John suddenly broke up his camp and retreated. The Latins considered this unexpected deliverance almost a miracle. Le Beau suggests the probability that the detection of the Comans, who usually quitted the camp during the heats of summer, may have caused the flight of the Bulgarians. Nicetas, c. 8 Villebardouin, c. 225. Le Beau, vol. xvii. p. 242.—M.]

321 (return)
[ There was no battle. When the Latins advanced, John suddenly packed up his camp and retreated. The Latins saw this surprise escape as almost miraculous. Le Beau proposes that the sighting of the Comans, who typically left the camp during the summer heat, might have triggered the Bulgarians' flight. Nicetas, c. 8 Villebardouin, c. 225. Le Beau, vol. xvii. p. 242.—M.]

33 (return)
[ The church of this patron of Thessalonica was served by the canons of the holy sepulchre, and contained a divine ointment which distilled daily and stupendous miracles, (Ducange, Hist. de C. P. ii. 4.)]

33 (return)
[ The church dedicated to this patron of Thessalonica was attended by the canons of the Holy Sepulchre and housed a sacred ointment that dripped daily, producing extraordinary miracles, (Ducange, Hist. de C. P. ii. 4.)]

34 (return)
[ Acropolita (c. 17) observes the persecution of the legate, and the toleration of Henry, ('Erh, * as he calls him) kludwna katestorese. Note: Or rather 'ErrhV.—M.]

34 (return)
[ Acropolita (c. 17) observes the persecution of the legate and the tolerance shown by Henry, ('Erh, * as he refers to him) kludwna katestorese. Note: Or rather 'ErrhV.—M.]

35 (return)
[ See the reign of Henry, in Ducange, (Hist. de C. P. l. i. c. 35—41, l. ii. c. 1—22,) who is much indebted to the Epistles of the Popes. Le Beau (Hist. du Bas Empire, tom. xxi. p. 120—122) has found, perhaps in Doutreman, some laws of Henry, which determined the service of fiefs, and the prerogatives of the emperor.]

35 (return)
[ Check out the reign of Henry in Ducange, (Hist. de C. P. l. i. c. 35—41, l. ii. c. 1—22,) who heavily relies on the letters from the Popes. Le Beau (Hist. du Bas Empire, tom. xxi. p. 120—122) has discovered, possibly in Doutreman, some laws of Henry that defined the duties of fiefs and the rights of the emperor.]

The virtuous Henry died at Thessalonica, in the defence of that kingdom, and of an infant, the son of his friend Boniface. In the two first emperors of Constantinople the male line of the counts of Flanders was extinct. But their sister Yolande was the wife of a French prince, the mother of a numerous progeny; and one of her daughters had married Andrew king of Hungary, a brave and pious champion of the cross. By seating him on the Byzantine throne, the barons of Romania would have acquired the forces of a neighboring and warlike kingdom; but the prudent Andrew revered the laws of succession; and the princess Yolande, with her husband Peter of Courtenay, count of Auxerre, was invited by the Latins to assume the empire of the East. The royal birth of his father, the noble origin of his mother, recommended to the barons of France the first cousin of their king. His reputation was fair, his possessions were ample, and in the bloody crusade against the Albigeois, the soldiers and the priests had been abundantly satisfied of his zeal and valor. Vanity might applaud the elevation of a French emperor of Constantinople; but prudence must pity, rather than envy, his treacherous and imaginary greatness. To assert and adorn his title, he was reduced to sell or mortgage the best of his patrimony. By these expedients, the liberality of his royal kinsman Philip Augustus, and the national spirit of chivalry, he was enabled to pass the Alps at the head of one hundred and forty knights, and five thousand five hundred sergeants and archers. After some hesitation, Pope Honorius the Third was persuaded to crown the successor of Constantine: but he performed the ceremony in a church without the walls, lest he should seem to imply or to bestow any right of sovereignty over the ancient capital of the empire. The Venetians had engaged to transport Peter and his forces beyond the Adriatic, and the empress, with her four children, to the Byzantine palace; but they required, as the price of their service, that he should recover Durazzo from the despot of Epirus. Michael Angelus, or Comnenus, the first of his dynasty, had bequeathed the succession of his power and ambition to Theodore, his legitimate brother, who already threatened and invaded the establishments of the Latins. After discharging his debt by a fruitless assault, the emperor raised the siege to prosecute a long and perilous journey over land from Durazzo to Thessalonica. He was soon lost in the mountains of Epirus: the passes were fortified; his provisions exhausted; he was delayed and deceived by a treacherous negotiation; and, after Peter of Courtenay and the Roman legate had been arrested in a banquet, the French troops, without leaders or hopes, were eager to exchange their arms for the delusive promise of mercy and bread. The Vatican thundered; and the impious Theodore was threatened with the vengeance of earth and heaven; but the captive emperor and his soldiers were forgotten, and the reproaches of the pope are confined to the imprisonment of his legate. No sooner was he satisfied by the deliverance of the priests and a promise of spiritual obedience, than he pardoned and protected the despot of Epirus. His peremptory commands suspended the ardor of the Venetians and the king of Hungary; and it was only by a natural or untimely death 36 that Peter of Courtenay was released from his hopeless captivity. 37

The virtuous Henry died in Thessalonica while defending that kingdom and an infant, the son of his friend Boniface. With the first two emperors of Constantinople, the male line of the counts of Flanders had come to an end. However, their sister Yolande was married to a French prince and had many children; one of her daughters had married Andrew, the king of Hungary, a brave and devout defender of the cross. By placing him on the Byzantine throne, the barons of Romania could have gained the military support of a neighboring and warlike kingdom, but the wise Andrew respected the laws of succession. Princess Yolande, along with her husband Peter of Courtenay, count of Auxerre, was invited by the Latins to take over the eastern empire. The royal lineage of his father and the noble background of his mother made the barons of France favor the first cousin of their king. He had a solid reputation, considerable possessions, and in the bloody crusade against the Albigensians, soldiers and priests were thoroughly convinced of his zeal and bravery. While ambition might celebrate the rise of a French emperor of Constantinople, wise observers must feel pity rather than envy for his dubious and illusory greatness. To claim and embellish his title, he found himself forced to sell or mortgage the best parts of his inheritance. By using these strategies, the generosity of his royal relative Philip Augustus, and the national spirit of chivalry, he managed to cross the Alps leading one hundred and forty knights, along with five thousand five hundred soldiers and archers. After some hesitation, Pope Honorius the Third was persuaded to crown the successor of Constantine, but he performed the ceremony in a church outside the city walls to avoid implying or granting any claim of sovereignty over the ancient capital of the empire. The Venetians had agreed to transport Peter and his forces across the Adriatic, as well as the empress and her four children to the Byzantine palace, but they insisted that he reclaim Durazzo from the despot of Epirus as payment for their service. Michael Angelus, or Comnenus, the first of his dynasty, had passed on his power and ambitions to Theodore, his legitimate brother, who was already threatening and invading Latin territories. After settling his debt with a futile attack, the emperor lifted the siege to embark on a long and dangerous journey over land from Durazzo to Thessalonica. He soon found himself lost in the mountains of Epirus: the passes were fortified, his supplies had run out, he was delayed and misled by a deceitful negotiation, and after Peter of Courtenay and the Roman legate were captured during a banquet, the French troops, without leaders or hope, were eager to trade their weapons for the false promise of mercy and food. The Vatican issued strong condemnations, and the irreverent Theodore was threatened with the wrath of both earth and heaven; but the captive emperor and his soldiers were forgotten, and the pope's complaints focused solely on the imprisonment of his legate. As soon as he was satisfied with the release of the priests and a promise of spiritual obedience, he forgave and supported the despot of Epirus. His firm commands dampened the enthusiasm of the Venetians and the king of Hungary; and it was only through a natural or untimely death 36 that Peter of Courtenay was freed from his despairing captivity. 37

36 (return)
[ Acropolita (c. 14) affirms, that Peter of Courtenay died by the sword, (ergon macairaV genesqai;) but from his dark expressions, I should conclude a previous captivity, wV pantaV ardhn desmwtaV poihsai sun pasi skeuesi. * The Chronicle of Auxerre delays the emperor’s death till the year 1219; and Auxerre is in the neighborhood of Courtenay. Note: Whatever may have been the fact, this can hardly be made out from the expressions of Acropolita.—M.]

36 (return)
[ Acropolita (c. 14) states that Peter of Courtenay died by the sword, but from his vague language, I would assume he had been captured beforehand. The Chronicle of Auxerre postpones the emperor’s death until the year 1219; and Auxerre is near Courtenay. Note: Regardless of the actual circumstances, it's difficult to clarify based on Acropolita’s wording.—M.]

37 (return)
[ See the reign and death of Peter of Courtenay, in Ducange, (Hist. de C. P. l. ii. c. 22—28,) who feebly strives to excuse the neglect of the emperor by Honorius III.]

37 (return)
[ See the reign and death of Peter of Courtenay in Ducange, (Hist. de C. P. l. ii. c. 22—28,) who weakly tries to justify the emperor's neglect by Honorius III.]

The long ignorance of his fate, and the presence of the lawful sovereign, of Yolande, his wife or widow, delayed the proclamation of a new emperor. Before her death, and in the midst of her grief, she was delivered of a son, who was named Baldwin, the last and most unfortunate of the Latin princes of Constantinople. His birth endeared him to the barons of Romania; but his childhood would have prolonged the troubles of a minority, and his claims were superseded by the elder claims of his brethren. The first of these, Philip of Courtenay, who derived from his mother the inheritance of Namur, had the wisdom to prefer the substance of a marquisate to the shadow of an empire; and on his refusal, Robert, the second of the sons of Peter and Yolande, was called to the throne of Constantinople. Warned by his father’s mischance, he pursued his slow and secure journey through Germany and along the Danube: a passage was opened by his sister’s marriage with the king of Hungary; and the emperor Robert was crowned by the patriarch in the cathedral of St. Sophia. But his reign was an æra of calamity and disgrace; and the colony, as it was styled, of New France yielded on all sides to the Greeks of Nice and Epirus. After a victory, which he owed to his perfidy rather than his courage, Theodore Angelus entered the kingdom of Thessalonica, expelled the feeble Demetrius, the son of the marquis Boniface, erected his standard on the walls of Adrianople; and added, by his vanity, a third or a fourth name to the list of rival emperors. The relics of the Asiatic province were swept away by John Vataces, the son-in-law and successor of Theodore Lascaris, and who, in a triumphant reign of thirty-three years, displayed the virtues both of peace and war. Under his discipline, the swords of the French mercenaries were the most effectual instruments of his conquests, and their desertion from the service of their country was at once a symptom and a cause of the rising ascendant of the Greeks. By the construction of a fleet, he obtained the command of the Hellespont, reduced the islands of Lesbos and Rhodes, attacked the Venetians of Candia, and intercepted the rare and parsimonious succors of the West. Once, and once only, the Latin emperor sent an army against Vataces; and in the defeat of that army, the veteran knights, the last of the original conquerors, were left on the field of battle. But the success of a foreign enemy was less painful to the pusillanimous Robert than the insolence of his Latin subjects, who confounded the weakness of the emperor and of the empire. His personal misfortunes will prove the anarchy of the government and the ferociousness of the times. The amorous youth had neglected his Greek bride, the daughter of Vataces, to introduce into the palace a beautiful maid, of a private, though noble family of Artois; and her mother had been tempted by the lustre of the purple to forfeit her engagements with a gentleman of Burgundy. His love was converted into rage; he assembled his friends, forced the palace gates, threw the mother into the sea, and inhumanly cut off the nose and lips of the wife or concubine of the emperor. Instead of punishing the offender, the barons avowed and applauded the savage deed, 38 which, as a prince and as a man, it was impossible that Robert should forgive. He escaped from the guilty city to implore the justice or compassion of the pope: the emperor was coolly exhorted to return to his station; before he could obey, he sunk under the weight of grief, shame, and impotent resentment. 39

The long uncertainty about his fate, along with the presence of the legitimate ruler, Yolande, his wife or widow, delayed the announcement of a new emperor. Before she died, amidst her sorrow, she gave birth to a son named Baldwin, the last and most unfortunate of the Latin princes of Constantinople. His birth made him beloved by the barons of Romania; however, his childhood would have prolonged the difficulties of being a minor, and his claims were overshadowed by the older claims of his siblings. The first of these, Philip of Courtenay, who inherited Namur from his mother, wisely chose the reality of a marquisate over the illusion of an empire; and when he refused, Robert, the second son of Peter and Yolande, was called to the throne of Constantinople. Learning from his father’s misfortune, he took a slow and careful journey through Germany and along the Danube: his sister’s marriage to the king of Hungary opened a path for him; and Emperor Robert was crowned by the patriarch in the cathedral of St. Sophia. But his reign was a period of disaster and disgrace, and the colony, as it was called, of New France fell all around to the Greeks of Nice and Epirus. After a victory he achieved more through treachery than bravery, Theodore Angelus entered Thessalonica, pushed out the weak Demetrius, the son of Marquis Boniface, raised his standard on the walls of Adrianople, and added a third or fourth title to the list of rival emperors due to his vanity. The remnants of the Asian province were taken by John Vataces, the son-in-law and successor of Theodore Lascaris, who, during his triumphant thirty-three-year reign, displayed both peacemaking and warfare skills. Under his leadership, the swords of the French mercenaries became effective tools for his conquests, and their desertion from serving their country was both a sign and a cause of the rising power of the Greeks. By building a fleet, he gained control over the Hellespont, captured the islands of Lesbos and Rhodes, attacked the Venetians in Candia, and cut off the scarce and stingy support from the West. Once, and only once, the Latin emperor sent an army against Vataces; in that army’s defeat, the veteran knights, the last of the original conquerors, were left dead on the battlefield. However, the triumph of a foreign enemy bothered the timid Robert less than the arrogance of his Latin subjects, who mistook the emperor’s and empire’s weakness. His personal misfortunes illustrated the chaos of the government and the brutality of the times. The lovesick youth neglected his Greek bride, the daughter of Vataces, to bring a beautiful maid from a humble but noble family in Artois into the palace; her mother was tempted by the allure of power and broke her engagement with a gentleman from Burgundy. His love turned to fury; he rallied his friends, forced the palace gates, threw the mother into the sea, and brutally cut off the nose and lips of the emperor’s wife or concubine. Instead of punishing the perpetrator, the barons supported and applauded the savage act, 38 which, as a prince and as a man, Robert could not forgive. He fled from the guilty city to seek justice or compassion from the pope: the emperor was coldly advised to return to his post; before he could comply, he succumbed to the burden of grief, shame, and powerless anger. 39

38 (return)
[ Marinus Sanutus (Secreta Fidelium Crucis, l. ii. p. 4, c. 18, p. 73) is so much delighted with this bloody deed, that he has transcribed it in his margin as a bonum exemplum. Yet he acknowledges the damsel for the lawful wife of Robert.]

38 (return)
[ Marinus Sanutus (Secreta Fidelium Crucis, l. ii. p. 4, c. 18, p. 73) is so pleased with this violent act that he has noted it in the margins as a good example. However, he recognizes the woman as Robert's legitimate wife.]

39 (return)
[ See the reign of Robert, in Ducange, (Hist. de C. P. l. ii. c.—12.)]

39 (return)
[ See the reign of Robert in Ducange, (Hist. de C. P. l. ii. c.—12.)]

It was only in the age of chivalry, that valor could ascend from a private station to the thrones of Jerusalem and Constantinople. The titular kingdom of Jerusalem had devolved to Mary, the daughter of Isabella and Conrad of Montferrat, and the granddaughter of Almeric or Amaury. She was given to John of Brienne, of a noble family in Champagne, by the public voice, and the judgment of Philip Augustus, who named him as the most worthy champion of the Holy Land. 40 In the fifth crusade, he led a hundred thousand Latins to the conquest of Egypt: by him the siege of Damietta was achieved; and the subsequent failure was justly ascribed to the pride and avarice of the legate. After the marriage of his daughter with Frederic the Second, 41 he was provoked by the emperor’s ingratitude to accept the command of the army of the church; and though advanced in life, and despoiled of royalty, the sword and spirit of John of Brienne were still ready for the service of Christendom. In the seven years of his brother’s reign, Baldwin of Courtenay had not emerged from a state of childhood, and the barons of Romania felt the strong necessity of placing the sceptre in the hands of a man and a hero. The veteran king of Jerusalem might have disdained the name and office of regent; they agreed to invest him for his life with the title and prerogatives of emperor, on the sole condition that Baldwin should marry his second daughter, and succeed at a mature age to the throne of Constantinople. The expectation, both of the Greeks and Latins, was kindled by the renown, the choice, and the presence of John of Brienne; and they admired his martial aspect, his green and vigorous age of more than fourscore years, and his size and stature, which surpassed the common measure of mankind. 42 But avarice, and the love of ease, appear to have chilled the ardor of enterprise: 421 his troops were disbanded, and two years rolled away without action or honor, till he was awakened by the dangerous alliance of Vataces emperor of Nice, and of Azan king of Bulgaria. They besieged Constantinople by sea and land, with an army of one hundred thousand men, and a fleet of three hundred ships of war; while the entire force of the Latin emperor was reduced to one hundred and sixty knights, and a small addition of sergeants and archers. I tremble to relate, that instead of defending the city, the hero made a sally at the head of his cavalry; and that of forty-eight squadrons of the enemy, no more than three escaped from the edge of his invincible sword. Fired by his example, the infantry and the citizens boarded the vessels that anchored close to the walls; and twenty-five were dragged in triumph into the harbor of Constantinople. At the summons of the emperor, the vassals and allies armed in her defence; broke through every obstacle that opposed their passage; and, in the succeeding year, obtained a second victory over the same enemies. By the rude poets of the age, John of Brienne is compared to Hector, Roland, and Judas Machabæus: 43 but their credit, and his glory, receive some abatement from the silence of the Greeks. The empire was soon deprived of the last of her champions; and the dying monarch was ambitious to enter paradise in the habit of a Franciscan friar. 44

It was only during the age of chivalry that bravery could rise from a common position to the thrones of Jerusalem and Constantinople. The nominal kingdom of Jerusalem had passed to Mary, the daughter of Isabella and Conrad of Montferrat, and the granddaughter of Almeric or Amaury. She was promised to John of Brienne, from a noble family in Champagne, by public consensus and the judgment of Philip Augustus, who deemed him the most deserving champion of the Holy Land. 40 In the fifth crusade, he led a hundred thousand Latins to conquer Egypt: he achieved the siege of Damietta; and the subsequent failure was rightly attributed to the pride and greed of the legate. After his daughter married Frederick the Second, 41 he was driven by the emperor’s ingratitude to take command of the church's army; and although he was advanced in age and stripped of royalty, the sword and spirit of John of Brienne were still prepared for the service of Christendom. During his brother's seven-year reign, Baldwin of Courtenay had not matured beyond childhood, and the barons of Romania felt the strong need to place the scepter in the hands of a man and a hero. The veteran king of Jerusalem might have looked down on the title and role of regent; they agreed to grant him, for his life, the title and powers of emperor, on the sole condition that Baldwin would marry his second daughter and later take the throne of Constantinople at a mature age. The hopes of both the Greeks and Latins were ignited by the fame, choice, and presence of John of Brienne; they admired his warrior appearance, the vigor of his more than eighty years, and his size and stature, which exceeded the average. 42 But greed and a desire for comfort seemed to have cooled his enthusiasm for action: 421 his troops were disbanded, and two years passed without any deeds of action or honor, until he was stirred by the threatening alliance of Vataces, emperor of Nice, and Azan, king of Bulgaria. They besieged Constantinople by land and sea with an army of one hundred thousand and a fleet of three hundred warships; while the Latin emperor’s entire force was reduced to one hundred sixty knights, along with a small number of sergeants and archers. I hesitate to say that instead of defending the city, the hero led a charge at the head of his cavalry; and out of forty-eight enemy squadrons, only three escaped the sharp edge of his remarkable sword. Inspired by his example, the infantry and citizens boarded the ships anchored near the walls; and twenty-five were triumphantly brought into the harbor of Constantinople. At the emperor’s call, the vassals and allies armed themselves for its defense; they broke through every obstacle in their way; and in the following year, they secured a second victory over the same enemies. In the rough poetry of the age, John of Brienne is likened to Hector, Roland, and Judas Maccabeus: 43 but their praise, and his glory, experience some diminishment due to the silence of the Greeks. The empire soon lost its last champion; and the dying king wished to enter paradise dressed as a Franciscan friar. 44

40 (return)
[ Rex igitur Franciæ, deliberatione habitâ, respondit nuntiis, se daturum hominem Syriæ partibus aptum; in armis probum (preux) in bellis securum, in agendis providum, Johannem comitem Brennensem. Sanut. Secret. Fidelium, l. iii. p. xi. c. 4, p. 205 Matthew Paris, p. 159.]

40 (return)
[ Therefore, the King of France, after some discussion, replied to the messengers that he would send a suitable man from Syria; one who was skilled in arms, reliable in battle, and cautious in his actions, Count John of Brennen. Sanut. Secret. Fidelium, l. iii. p. xi. c. 4, p. 205 Matthew Paris, p. 159.]

41 (return)
[ Giannone (Istoria Civile, tom. ii. l. xvi. p. 380—385) discusses the marriage of Frederic II. with the daughter of John of Brienne, and the double union of the crowns of Naples and Jerusalem.]

41 (return)
[ Giannone (Istoria Civile, vol. ii, ch. xvi, pp. 380—385) talks about the marriage of Frederic II. to the daughter of John of Brienne, and the dual union of the crowns of Naples and Jerusalem.]

42 (return)
[ Acropolita, c. 27. The historian was at that time a boy, and educated at Constantinople. In 1233, when he was eleven years old, his father broke the Latin chain, left a splendid fortune, and escaped to the Greek court of Nice, where his son was raised to the highest honors.]

42 (return)
[ Acropolita, c. 27. The historian was a boy back then and was educated in Constantinople. In 1233, when he was eleven, his father cut ties with the Latin community, took his considerable wealth, and fled to the Greek court of Nice, where his son was given the highest honors.]

421 (return)
[ John de Brienne, elected emperor 1229, wasted two years in preparations, and did not arrive at Constantinople till 1231. Two years more glided away in inglorious inaction; he then made some ineffective warlike expeditions. Constantinople was not besieged till 1234.—M.]

421 (return)
[ John de Brienne, who was elected emperor in 1229, spent two years getting ready and didn't reach Constantinople until 1231. Two more years passed without any significant action; then he launched some unsuccessful military campaigns. Constantinople wasn't besieged until 1234.—M.]

43 (return)
[ Philip Mouskes, bishop of Tournay, (A.D. 1274—1282,) has composed a poem, or rather string of verses, in bad old Flemish French, on the Latin emperors of Constantinople, which Ducange has published at the end of Villehardouin; see p. 38, for the prowess of John of Brienne.

43 (return)
Philip Mouskes, the bishop of Tournay, (A.D. 1274—1282,) wrote a poem, or more accurately, a series of verses in poor old Flemish French about the Latin emperors of Constantinople. Ducange published it at the end of Villehardouin; see p. 38, for the achievements of John of Brienne.

                N’Aie, Ector, Roll’ ne Ogiers
                Ne Judas Machabeus li fiers
                Tant ne fit d’armes en estors
                Com fist li Rois Jehans cel jors
                Et il defors et il dedans
                La paru sa force et ses sens
                Et li hardiment qu’il avoit.]
                N’Aie, Ector, Roll’ ne Ogiers
                Nor Judas Maccabeus the fierce
                Never did so many arms in struggle
                As King John did on that day
                And both outside and inside
                His strength and senses appeared
                And the bravery that he had.

44 (return)
[ See the reign of John de Brienne, in Ducange, Hist. de C. P. l. ii. c. 13—26.]

44 (return)
[ See the rule of John de Brienne, in Ducange, Hist. de C. P. l. ii. c. 13—26.]

In the double victory of John of Brienne, I cannot discover the name or exploits of his pupil Baldwin, who had attained the age of military service, and who succeeded to the imperial dignity on the decease of his adoptive father. 45 The royal youth was employed on a commission more suitable to his temper; he was sent to visit the Western courts, of the pope more especially, and of the king of France; to excite their pity by the view of his innocence and distress; and to obtain some supplies of men or money for the relief of the sinking empire. He thrice repeated these mendicant visits, in which he seemed to prolong his stay and postpone his return; of the five-and-twenty years of his reign, a greater number were spent abroad than at home; and in no place did the emperor deem himself less free and secure than in his native country and his capital. On some public occasions, his vanity might be soothed by the title of Augustus, and by the honors of the purple; and at the general council of Lyons, when Frederic the Second was excommunicated and deposed, his Oriental colleague was enthroned on the right hand of the pope. But how often was the exile, the vagrant, the Imperial beggar, humbled with scorn, insulted with pity, and degraded in his own eyes and those of the nations! In his first visit to England, he was stopped at Dover by a severe reprimand, that he should presume, without leave, to enter an independent kingdom. After some delay, Baldwin, however, was permitted to pursue his journey, was entertained with cold civility, and thankfully departed with a present of seven hundred marks. 46 From the avarice of Rome he could only obtain the proclamation of a crusade, and a treasure of indulgences; a coin whose currency was depreciated by too frequent and indiscriminate abuse. His birth and misfortunes recommended him to the generosity of his cousin Louis the Ninth; but the martial zeal of the saint was diverted from Constantinople to Egypt and Palestine; and the public and private poverty of Baldwin was alleviated, for a moment, by the alienation of the marquisate of Namur and the lordship of Courtenay, the last remains of his inheritance. 47 By such shameful or ruinous expedients, he once more returned to Romania, with an army of thirty thousand soldiers, whose numbers were doubled in the apprehension of the Greeks. His first despatches to France and England announced his victories and his hopes: he had reduced the country round the capital to the distance of three days’ journey; and if he succeeded against an important, though nameless, city, (most probably Chiorli,) the frontier would be safe and the passage accessible. But these expectations (if Baldwin was sincere) quickly vanished like a dream: the troops and treasures of France melted away in his unskilful hands; and the throne of the Latin emperor was protected by a dishonorable alliance with the Turks and Comans. To secure the former, he consented to bestow his niece on the unbelieving sultan of Cogni; to please the latter, he complied with their Pagan rites; a dog was sacrificed between the two armies; and the contracting parties tasted each other’s blood, as a pledge of their fidelity. 48 In the palace, or prison, of Constantinople, the successor of Augustus demolished the vacant houses for winter fuel, and stripped the lead from the churches for the daily expense of his family. Some usurious loans were dealt with a scanty hand by the merchants of Italy; and Philip, his son and heir, was pawned at Venice as the security for a debt. 49 Thirst, hunger, and nakedness, are positive evils: but wealth is relative; and a prince who would be rich in a private station, may be exposed by the increase of his wants to all the anxiety and bitterness of poverty.

In John of Brienne's double victory, I can't find the name or accomplishments of his pupil Baldwin, who had reached military age and took over the imperial title after his adoptive father's death. 45 The young royal was assigned to a task that suited him better; he was sent to visit Western courts, especially the pope and the king of France, to evoke their sympathy through his innocence and suffering, and to secure some aid in the form of men or money to help the struggling empire. He made this begging trip three times, seemingly prolonging his stay and delaying his return; of the twenty-five years of his reign, he spent more time abroad than at home; and he felt less free and safe in his own country and capital than anywhere else. On some public occasions, he might have found some comfort in being called Augustus and in wearing the purple robes; at the general council of Lyons, when Frederic the Second was excommunicated and deposed, his Eastern counterpart was placed at the pope's right side. But how often was the exile, the wanderer, the Imperial beggar, met with scorn, insulted with pity, and humiliated in his own eyes and those of others! During his first visit to England, he was halted at Dover with a stern reprimand for assuming he could enter an independent kingdom without permission. After a bit of delay, Baldwin was finally allowed to continue his journey, treated with cold courtesy, and he gratefully left with a gift of seven hundred marks. 46 From Rome's greed, he could only secure the announcement of a crusade and a treasure of indulgences; a currency whose value was undermined by excessive and indiscriminate use. His lineage and hardships won him the support of his cousin Louis the Ninth; but the saint's military passion was redirected from Constantinople to Egypt and Palestine; and Baldwin's public and private poverty was momentarily eased by the transfer of the marquisate of Namur and the lordship of Courtenay, the last remnants of his inheritance. 47 Through such shameful or destructive means, he returned to Romania with an army of thirty thousand soldiers, whose numbers doubled out of fear of the Greeks. His early messages to France and England reported his victories and hopeful prospects: he had brought the areas around the capital under control to a distance of three days' journey; and if he could take a significant but unnamed city, (most likely Chiorli), the borders would be secure and the passage open. But these hopes (if Baldwin was genuine) faded quickly like a dream: the troops and resources of France dwindled in his inept hands; and the throne of the Latin emperor was upheld by a disgraceful alliance with the Turks and Comans. To secure the Turks, he agreed to give his niece to the nonbelieving sultan of Cogni; to please the Comans, he participated in their pagan rituals; a dog was sacrificed between the two armies; and the parties involved tasted each other's blood as a vow of loyalty. 48 In the palace, or prison, of Constantinople, the successor of Augustus tore down empty houses for winter fuel and stripped the lead from churches to cover his family's daily expenses. Some usurious loans were grudgingly extended by Italian merchants; and Philip, his son and heir, was pawned in Venice as collateral for a debt. 49 Thirst, hunger, and lack of clothing are definite hardships: but wealth is relative; and a prince who would be wealthy in a private life might find that increasing demands expose him to all the stress and bitterness of poverty.

45 (return)
[ See the reign of Baldwin II. till his expulsion from Constantinople, in Ducange, Hist. de C. P. l. iv. c. 1—34, the end l. v. c. 1—33.]

45 (return)
[ See the rule of Baldwin II until he was kicked out of Constantinople, in Ducange, Hist. de C. P. l. iv. c. 1—34, the end l. v. c. 1—33.]

46 (return)
[ Matthew Paris relates the two visits of Baldwin II. to the English court, p. 396, 637; his return to Greece armatâ manû, p. 407 his letters of his nomen formidabile, &c., p. 481, (a passage which has escaped Ducange;) his expulsion, p. 850.]

46 (return)
[ Matthew Paris describes the two visits of Baldwin II. to the English court, p. 396, 637; his return to Greece armed, p. 407 his letters of his fearsome name, &c., p. 481, (a passage that Ducange missed); his expulsion, p. 850.]

47 (return)
[ Louis IX. disapproved and stopped the alienation of Courtenay (Ducange, l. iv. c. 23.) It is now annexed to the royal demesne but granted for a term (engagé) to the family of Boulainvilliers. Courtenay, in the election of Nemours in the Isle de France, is a town of 900 inhabitants, with the remains of a castle, (Mélanges tirés d’une Grande Bibliothèque, tom. xlv. p. 74—77.)]

47 (return)
[ Louis IX disapproved and halted the transfer of Courtenay (Ducange, l. iv. c. 23.) It is now part of the royal domain but has been leased for a period (engagé) to the Boulainvilliers family. Courtenay, located in the election district of Nemours in the Île-de-France, is a town with 900 residents and the ruins of a castle, (Mélanges tirés d’une Grande Bibliothèque, tom. xlv. p. 74—77.)]

48 (return)
[ Joinville, p. 104, edit. du Louvre. A Coman prince, who died without baptism, was buried at the gates of Constantinople with a live retinue of slaves and horses.]

48 (return)
[ Joinville, p. 104, edit. du Louvre. A Coman prince, who died without being baptized, was buried at the gates of Constantinople with a living entourage of slaves and horses.]

49 (return)
[ Sanut. Secret. Fidel. Crucis, l. ii. p. iv. c. 18, p. 73.]

49 (return)
[ Sanut. Secret. Fidel. Crucis, l. ii. p. iv. c. 18, p. 73.]

Chapter LXI: Partition Of The Empire By The French And Venetians.—Part III.

But in this abject distress, the emperor and empire were still possessed of an ideal treasure, which drew its fantastic value from the superstition of the Christian world. The merit of the true cross was somewhat impaired by its frequent division; and a long captivity among the infidels might shed some suspicion on the fragments that were produced in the East and West. But another relic of the Passion was preserved in the Imperial chapel of Constantinople; and the crown of thorns which had been placed on the head of Christ was equally precious and authentic. It had formerly been the practice of the Egyptian debtors to deposit, as a security, the mummies of their parents; and both their honor and religion were bound for the redemption of the pledge. In the same manner, and in the absence of the emperor, the barons of Romania borrowed the sum of thirteen thousand one hundred and thirty-four pieces of gold 50 on the credit of the holy crown: they failed in the performance of their contract; and a rich Venetian, Nicholas Querini, undertook to satisfy their impatient creditors, on condition that the relic should be lodged at Venice, to become his absolute property, if it were not redeemed within a short and definite term. The barons apprised their sovereign of the hard treaty and impending loss and as the empire could not afford a ransom of seven thousand pounds sterling, Baldwin was anxious to snatch the prize from the Venetians, and to vest it with more honor and emolument in the hands of the most Christian king. 51 Yet the negotiation was attended with some delicacy. In the purchase of relics, the saint would have started at the guilt of simony; but if the mode of expression were changed, he might lawfully repay the debt, accept the gift, and acknowledge the obligation. His ambassadors, two Dominicans, were despatched to Venice to redeem and receive the holy crown which had escaped the dangers of the sea and the galleys of Vataces. On opening a wooden box, they recognized the seals of the doge and barons, which were applied on a shrine of silver; and within this shrine the monument of the Passion was enclosed in a golden vase. The reluctant Venetians yielded to justice and power: the emperor Frederic granted a free and honorable passage; the court of France advanced as far as Troyes in Champagne, to meet with devotion this inestimable relic: it was borne in triumph through Paris by the king himself, barefoot, and in his shirt; and a free gift of ten thousand marks of silver reconciled Baldwin to his loss. The success of this transaction tempted the Latin emperor to offer with the same generosity the remaining furniture of his chapel; 52 a large and authentic portion of the true cross; the baby-linen of the Son of God, the lance, the sponge, and the chain, of his Passion; the rod of Moses, and part of the skull of St. John the Baptist. For the reception of these spiritual treasures, twenty thousand marks were expended by St. Louis on a stately foundation, the holy chapel of Paris, on which the muse of Boileau has bestowed a comic immortality. The truth of such remote and ancient relics, which cannot be proved by any human testimony, must be admitted by those who believe in the miracles which they have performed. About the middle of the last age, an inveterate ulcer was touched and cured by a holy prickle of the holy crown: 53 the prodigy is attested by the most pious and enlightened Christians of France; nor will the fact be easily disproved, except by those who are armed with a general antidote against religious credulity. 54

But in this dire situation, the emperor and the empire still had a valuable treasure that drew its incredible worth from the beliefs of the Christian world. The significance of the true cross was somewhat diminished due to its frequent fragmentation, and a long captivity among non-Christians raised doubts about the pieces that surfaced in the East and West. However, another relic from the Passion was kept in the Imperial chapel of Constantinople; the crown of thorns that had been placed on Christ's head was equally precious and genuine. In the past, Egyptian debtors used to secure loans by depositing their parents' mummies, which their honor and faith were pledged for in order to redeem. Similarly, in the emperor's absence, the barons of Romania borrowed a sum of thirteen thousand one hundred and thirty-four gold pieces 50 with the holy crown as collateral: they couldn’t fulfill their end of the deal, and a wealthy Venetian, Nicholas Querini, agreed to pay their impatient creditors, on the condition that the relic be kept in Venice and become his outright property if it wasn't redeemed within a short, definite timeframe. The barons informed their sovereign of this harsh agreement and looming loss, and since the empire couldn’t afford a ransom of seven thousand pounds sterling, Baldwin was eager to rescue the prize from the Venetians and honorably place it in the hands of the most Christian king. 51 However, the negotiation was quite delicate. In acquiring relics, the saint could be accused of simony; but with a change in phrasing, he could rightfully repay the debt, accept the gift, and acknowledge the obligation. His ambassadors, two Dominicans, were sent to Venice to redeem and receive the sacred crown, which had survived the dangers of the sea and Vataces' galleys. Upon opening a wooden box, they saw the seals of the doge and barons on a silver shrine; within this shrine, the relic from the Passion was enclosed in a golden vase. The reluctant Venetians yielded to what was just and powerful: Emperor Frederic granted a free and honorable passage; the court of France advanced as far as Troyes in Champagne to honorably receive this invaluable relic; it was triumphantly carried through Paris by the king himself, barefoot and in his shirt; and a generous gift of ten thousand marks of silver reconciled Baldwin with his loss. The success of this deal prompted the Latin emperor to similarly offer the remaining furnishings of his chapel; 52 a large and genuine portion of the true cross, the baby clothes of the Son of God, the lance, the sponge, and the chain from his Passion, the rod of Moses, and part of St. John the Baptist's skull. To house these spiritual treasures, St. Louis spent twenty thousand marks on a grand foundation, the holy chapel of Paris, which the muse of Boileau has granted a comedic immortality. The authenticity of such distant and ancient relics, which cannot be proven by any human evidence, must be accepted by those who believe in the miracles they have performed. Around the middle of the last century, a persistent ulcer was touched and healed by a holy thorn of the holy crown: 53 this miracle is witnessed by the most pious and enlightened Christians in France; and the fact won’t be easily disproved, except by those equipped with a universal antidote against religious credulity. 54

50 (return)
[ Under the words Perparus, Perpera, Hyperperum, Ducange is short and vague: Monetæ genus. From a corrupt passage of Guntherus, (Hist. C. P. c. 8, p. 10,) I guess that the Perpera was the nummus aureus, the fourth part of a mark of silver, or about ten shillings sterling in value. In lead it would be too contemptible.]

50 (return)
[ Beneath the terms Perparus, Perpera, Hyperperum, Ducange is brief and unclear: it refers to a type of currency. From a corrupted passage by Guntherus, (Hist. C. P. c. 8, p. 10,) I speculate that the Perpera was a gold coin, a quarter of a mark of silver, or roughly ten shillings in value. In lead, it would be considered too insignificant.]

51 (return)
[ For the translation of the holy crown, &c., from Constantinople to Paris, see Ducange (Hist. de C. P. l. iv. c. 11—14, 24, 35) and Fleury, (Hist. Ecclés. tom. xvii. p. 201—204.)]

51 (return)
[ For the transfer of the holy crown, etc., from Constantinople to Paris, see Ducange (Hist. de C. P. l. iv. c. 11—14, 24, 35) and Fleury, (Hist. Ecclés. tom. xvii. p. 201—204.)]

52 (return)
[ Mélanges tirés d’une Grande Bibliothèque, tom. xliii. p. 201—205. The Lutrin of Boileau exhibits the inside, the soul and manners of the Sainte Chapelle; and many facts relative to the institution are collected and explained by his commentators, Brosset and De St. Marc.]

52 (return)
[Mixed works from a Great Library, vol. xliii, pp. 201–205. Boileau's *Lutrin* reveals the essence, spirit, and customs of the Sainte Chapelle; and many facts related to the institution are gathered and clarified by his commentators, Brosset and De St. Marc.]

53 (return)
[ It was performed A.D. 1656, March 24, on the niece of Pascal; and that superior genius, with Arnauld, Nicole, &c., were on the spot, to believe and attest a miracle which confounded the Jesuits, and saved Port Royal, (uvres de Racine, tom. vi. p. 176—187, in his eloquent History of Port Royal.)]

53 (return)
[ It took place on March 24, 1656, involving Pascal's niece; and that brilliant mind, along with Arnauld, Nicole, and others, were present to witness and confirm a miracle that stunned the Jesuits and protected Port Royal, (uvres de Racine, tom. vi. p. 176—187, in his eloquent History of Port Royal.)]

54 (return)
[ Voltaire (Siécle de Louis XIV. c. 37, uvres, tom. ix. p. 178, 179) strives to invalidate the fact: but Hume, (Essays, vol. ii. p. 483, 484,) with more skill and success, seizes the battery, and turns the cannon against his enemies.]

54 (return)
[Voltaire (Century of Louis XIV, ch. 37, Works, vol. ix, pp. 178, 179) attempts to disprove the fact, but Hume (Essays, vol. ii, pp. 483, 484) more skillfully and successfully takes control and turns the weapons against his opponents.]

The Latins of Constantinople 55 were on all sides encompassed and pressed; their sole hope, the last delay of their ruin, was in the division of their Greek and Bulgarian enemies; and of this hope they were deprived by the superior arms and policy of Vataces, emperor of Nice. From the Propontis to the rocky coast of Pamphylia, Asia was peaceful and prosperous under his reign; and the events of every campaign extended his influence in Europe. The strong cities of the hills of Macedonia and Thrace were rescued from the Bulgarians; and their kingdom was circumscribed by its present and proper limits, along the southern banks of the Danube. The sole emperor of the Romans could no longer brook that a lord of Epirus, a Comnenian prince of the West, should presume to dispute or share the honors of the purple; and the humble Demetrius changed the color of his buskins, and accepted with gratitude the appellation of despot. His own subjects were exasperated by his baseness and incapacity; they implored the protection of their supreme lord. After some resistance, the kingdom of Thessalonica was united to the empire of Nice; and Vataces reigned without a competitor from the Turkish borders to the Adriatic Gulf. The princes of Europe revered his merit and power; and had he subscribed an orthodox creed, it should seem that the pope would have abandoned without reluctance the Latin throne of Constantinople. But the death of Vataces, the short and busy reign of Theodore his son, and the helpless infancy of his grandson John, suspended the restoration of the Greeks. In the next chapter, I shall explain their domestic revolutions; in this place, it will be sufficient to observe, that the young prince was oppressed by the ambition of his guardian and colleague, Michael Palæologus, who displayed the virtues and vices that belong to the founder of a new dynasty. The emperor Baldwin had flattered himself, that he might recover some provinces or cities by an impotent negotiation. His ambassadors were dismissed from Nice with mockery and contempt. At every place which they named, Palæologus alleged some special reason, which rendered it dear and valuable in his eyes: in the one he was born; in another he had been first promoted to military command; and in a third he had enjoyed, and hoped long to enjoy, the pleasures of the chase. “And what then do you propose to give us?” said the astonished deputies. “Nothing,” replied the Greek, “not a foot of land. If your master be desirous of peace, let him pay me, as an annual tribute, the sum which he receives from the trade and customs of Constantinople. On these terms, I may allow him to reign. If he refuses, it is war. I am not ignorant of the art of war, and I trust the event to God and my sword.” 56 An expedition against the despot of Epirus was the first prelude of his arms. If a victory was followed by a defeat; if the race of the Comneni or Angeli survived in those mountains his efforts and his reign; the captivity of Villehardouin, prince of Achaia, deprived the Latins of the most active and powerful vassal of their expiring monarchy. The republics of Venice and Genoa disputed, in the first of their naval wars, the command of the sea and the commerce of the East. Pride and interest attached the Venetians to the defence of Constantinople; their rivals were tempted to promote the designs of her enemies, and the alliance of the Genoese with the schismatic conqueror provoked the indignation of the Latin church. 57

The Latins of Constantinople 55 were surrounded and under pressure from all sides; their only hope, the last delay before their downfall, rested on the division between their Greek and Bulgarian enemies. This hope was taken away by the superior military strength and strategy of Vataces, emperor of Nice. From the Propontis to the rocky coast of Pamphylia, Asia thrived under his reign; the outcomes of each campaign increased his influence in Europe. The strong cities in the hills of Macedonia and Thrace were freed from the Bulgarians; their kingdom was confined within its current and rightful borders along the southern banks of the Danube. The sole emperor of the Romans could no longer tolerate that a lord of Epirus, a Comnenian prince from the West, should dare to rival or share the honors of the imperial purple. The humble Demetrius changed his buskin color and gratefully accepted the title of despot. His own subjects were outraged by his weakness and incompetence and sought the protection of their supreme lord. After some resistance, the kingdom of Thessalonica was merged into the empire of Nice, and Vataces ruled unopposed from the Turkish borders to the Adriatic Gulf. The princes of Europe respected his merit and power; had he adopted an orthodox faith, it seems the pope would have willingly given up the Latin throne of Constantinople. But the death of Vataces, the brief and busy reign of his son Theodore, and the helpless infancy of his grandson John, delayed the restoration of the Greeks. In the next chapter, I will outline their internal struggles; for now, it suffices to note that the young prince was overwhelmed by the ambition of his guardian and colleague, Michael Palæologus, who exhibited both the strengths and weaknesses typical of a dynasty founder. Emperor Baldwin had fancied he might regain some provinces or cities through a futile negotiation. His ambassadors were sent away from Nice with mockery and disdain. For each place they mentioned, Palæologus cited a specific reason that made it precious to him: he was born in one, had first been promoted to military command in another, and in a third, he had enjoyed, and hoped to long enjoy, the pleasures of hunting. “And what do you propose to give us in return?” asked the astonished envoys. “Nothing,” replied the Greek, “not a single foot of land. If your master wants peace, let him pay me, as an annual tribute, the amount he receives from the trade and customs of Constantinople. Under those terms, I might allow him to rule. If he refuses, then it’s war. I know the art of war, and I trust the outcome to God and my sword.” 56 An expedition against the despot of Epirus was the first act of his military campaign. If a victory was followed by a defeat; if the Comneni or Angeli line still existed in those mountains through his efforts and reign; the capture of Villehardouin, prince of Achaia, left the Latins without the most active and powerful vassal of their declining monarchy. The republics of Venice and Genoa clashed in their initial naval wars, competing for command of the sea and Eastern commerce. Pride and interest bound the Venetians to the defense of Constantinople; their rivals were tempted to support the plans of her enemies, and the alliance of the Genoese with the schismatic conqueror angered the Latin church. 57

55 (return)
[ The gradual losses of the Latins may be traced in the third fourth, and fifth books of the compilation of Ducange: but of the Greek conquests he has dropped many circumstances, which may be recovered from the larger history of George Acropolita, and the three first books of Nicephorus, Gregoras, two writers of the Byzantine series, who have had the good fortune to meet with learned editors Leo Allatius at Rome, and John Boivin in the Academy of Inscriptions of Paris.]

55 (return)
[The gradual losses of the Latins can be traced in the third, fourth, and fifth books of Ducange's compilation. However, he has omitted many details about the Greek conquests, which can be found in the larger history by George Acropolita and the first three books by Nicephorus Gregoras, two authors from the Byzantine series who were fortunate to have learned editors: Leo Allatius in Rome and John Boivin at the Academy of Inscriptions in Paris.]

56 (return)
[ George Acropolita, c. 78, p. 89, 90. edit. Paris.]

56 (return)
[ George Acropolita, c. 78, p. 89, 90. edit. Paris.]

57 (return)
[ The Greeks, ashamed of any foreign aid, disguise the alliance and succor of the Genoese: but the fact is proved by the testimony of J Villani (Chron. l. vi. c. 71, in Muratori, Script. Rerum Italicarum, tom. xiii. p. 202, 203) and William de Nangis, (Annales de St. Louis, p. 248 in the Louvre Joinville,) two impartial foreigners; and Urban IV threatened to deprive Genoa of her archbishop.]

57 (return)
[ The Greeks, embarrassed by any foreign assistance, try to hide their partnership and support from the Genoese: however, this is confirmed by the accounts of J Villani (Chron. l. vi. c. 71, in Muratori, Script. Rerum Italicarum, tom. xiii. p. 202, 203) and William de Nangis (Annales de St. Louis, p. 248 in the Louvre Joinville), both unbiased outsiders; and Urban IV warned that he would strip Genoa of her archbishop.]

Intent on his great object, the emperor Michael visited in person and strengthened the troops and fortifications of Thrace. The remains of the Latins were driven from their last possessions: he assaulted without success the suburb of Galata; and corresponded with a perfidious baron, who proved unwilling, or unable, to open the gates of the metropolis. The next spring, his favorite general, Alexius Strategopulus, whom he had decorated with the title of Cæsar, passed the Hellespont with eight hundred horse and some infantry, 58 on a secret expedition. His instructions enjoined him to approach, to listen, to watch, but not to risk any doubtful or dangerous enterprise against the city. The adjacent territory between the Propontis and the Black Sea was cultivated by a hardy race of peasants and outlaws, exercised in arms, uncertain in their allegiance, but inclined by language, religion, and present advantage, to the party of the Greeks. They were styled the volunteers; 59 and by their free service the army of Alexius, with the regulars of Thrace and the Coman auxiliaries, 60 was augmented to the number of five-and-twenty thousand men. By the ardor of the volunteers, and by his own ambition, the Cæsar was stimulated to disobey the precise orders of his master, in the just confidence that success would plead his pardon and reward. The weakness of Constantinople, and the distress and terror of the Latins, were familiar to the observation of the volunteers; and they represented the present moment as the most propitious to surprise and conquest. A rash youth, the new governor of the Venetian colony, had sailed away with thirty galleys, and the best of the French knights, on a wild expedition to Daphnusia, a town on the Black Sea, at the distance of forty leagues; 601 and the remaining Latins were without strength or suspicion. They were informed that Alexius had passed the Hellespont; but their apprehensions were lulled by the smallness of his original numbers; and their imprudence had not watched the subsequent increase of his army. If he left his main body to second and support his operations, he might advance unperceived in the night with a chosen detachment. While some applied scaling-ladders to the lowest part of the walls, they were secure of an old Greek, who would introduce their companions through a subterraneous passage into his house; they could soon on the inside break an entrance through the golden gate, which had been long obstructed; and the conqueror would be in the heart of the city before the Latins were conscious of their danger. After some debate, the Cæsar resigned himself to the faith of the volunteers; they were trusty, bold, and successful; and in describing the plan, I have already related the execution and success. 61 But no sooner had Alexius passed the threshold of the golden gate, than he trembled at his own rashness; he paused, he deliberated; till the desperate volunteers urged him forwards, by the assurance that in retreat lay the greatest and most inevitable danger. Whilst the Cæsar kept his regulars in firm array, the Comans dispersed themselves on all sides; an alarm was sounded, and the threats of fire and pillage compelled the citizens to a decisive resolution. The Greeks of Constantinople remembered their native sovereigns; the Genoese merchants their recent alliance and Venetian foes; every quarter was in arms; and the air resounded with a general acclamation of “Long life and victory to Michael and John, the august emperors of the Romans!” Their rival, Baldwin, was awakened by the sound; but the most pressing danger could not prompt him to draw his sword in the defence of a city which he deserted, perhaps, with more pleasure than regret: he fled from the palace to the seashore, where he descried the welcome sails of the fleet returning from the vain and fruitless attempt on Daphnusia. Constantinople was irrecoverably lost; but the Latin emperor and the principal families embarked on board the Venetian galleys, and steered for the Isle of Euba, and afterwards for Italy, where the royal fugitive was entertained by the pope and Sicilian king with a mixture of contempt and pity. From the loss of Constantinople to his death, he consumed thirteen years, soliciting the Catholic powers to join in his restoration: the lesson had been familiar to his youth; nor was his last exile more indigent or shameful than his three former pilgrimages to the courts of Europe. His son Philip was the heir of an ideal empire; and the pretensions of his daughter Catherine were transported by her marriage to Charles of Valois, the brother of Philip the Fair, king of France. The house of Courtenay was represented in the female line by successive alliances, till the title of emperor of Constantinople, too bulky and sonorous for a private name, modestly expired in silence and oblivion. 62

Determined to achieve his goal, Emperor Michael personally visited and reinforced the troops and fortifications in Thrace. The remains of the Latins were driven from their last holdings: he unsuccessfully attacked the suburb of Galata and communicated with a treacherous baron who was either unwilling or unable to open the city gates. The following spring, his favored general, Alexius Strategopulus, whom he had given the title of Cæsar, crossed the Hellespont with eight hundred cavalry and some infantry, 58 on a secret mission. His orders instructed him to approach, listen, watch, but not to engage in any uncertain or risky ventures against the city. The surrounding area between the Propontis and the Black Sea was farmed by a tough group of peasants and outlaws, skilled in arms, uncertain in their loyalty, yet leaning towards the Greeks due to language, religion, and immediate benefits. They were called the volunteers; 59 and by their free service, Alexius's army was bolstered by the regular troops from Thrace and the Coman auxiliaries, 60 reaching a total of twenty-five thousand men. Driven by the enthusiasm of the volunteers and his own ambition, the Cæsar chose to disregard his master’s precise orders, believing that success would justify his disobedience. The vulnerability of Constantinople and the fear and distress of the Latins were well-known to the volunteers, who suggested that this moment was perfect for a surprise attack. A reckless young governor of the Venetian colony had set off with thirty galleys and the best French knights on a reckless mission to Daphnusia, a town on the Black Sea about forty leagues away; 601 and the remaining Latins were weak and unsuspecting. They were informed that Alexius had crossed the Hellespont, but their fears were eased by his small initial numbers, and they hadn't noticed the subsequent growth of his forces. If he left his main group to support him, he could silently advance at night with a select crew. While some were scaling the lower parts of the walls, they had the assurance of an old Greek who would guide them through a hidden passage into his home; soon they could break through the long-barred golden gate, allowing the conqueror to enter the city before the Latins even realized they were in danger. After some discussion, the Cæsar decided to trust the volunteers; they were reliable, bold, and successful; and while describing the plan, I have already covered the execution and success. 61 But no sooner had Alexius stepped through the golden gate than he regretted his impulsive decision; he hesitated and deliberated, until the desperate volunteers pushed him onward, assuring him that retreat would present the greatest and most unavoidable danger. While the Cæsar kept his regular troops in formation, the Comans scattered in all directions; an alarm was raised, and the threats of fire and looting forced the citizens into a decisive response. The Greeks of Constantinople remembered their native rulers; the Genoese merchants recalled their recent alliance and Venetian adversaries; every neighborhood took up arms, and cheers rang out in unison for “Long life and victory to Michael and John, the esteemed emperors of the Romans!” Their rival, Baldwin, was roused by the commotion; however, the urgency of the crisis did not compel him to draw his sword in defense of a city he likely left with more ease than regret: he fled from the palace to the shoreline, where he spotted the welcomed sails of the fleet returning from their futile attempt on Daphnusia. Constantinople was irreparably lost; but the Latin emperor and key families boarded the Venetian galleys and set sail for the Isle of Euba, and then to Italy, where the exiled king was met by the pope and Sicilian king with a mix of contempt and pity. From the loss of Constantinople until his death, he spent thirteen years seeking support from Catholic powers for his restoration: the lesson had been ingrained in his youth; nor was his final exile more impoverished or shameful than his previous three pilgrimages to the courts of Europe. His son Philip was the heir to an ideal empire; and his daughter Catherine’s claims were carried through her marriage to Charles of Valois, brother of Philip the Fair, king of France. The house of Courtenay continued through female line alliances until the title of emperor of Constantinople, too burdensome and grand for a private individual, faded into silence and obscurity. 62

58 (return)
[ Some precautions must be used in reconciling the discordant numbers; the 800 soldiers of Nicetas, the 25,000 of Spandugino, (apud Ducange, l. v. c. 24;) the Greeks and Scythians of Acropolita; and the numerous army of Michael, in the Epistles of Pope Urban IV. (i. 129.)]

58 (return)
[ Some precautions need to be taken when reconciling the conflicting numbers; the 800 soldiers of Nicetas, the 25,000 of Spandugino, (as noted by Ducange, l. v. c. 24;) the Greeks and Scythians mentioned by Acropolita; and the large army of Michael, as referenced in the letters of Pope Urban IV. (i. 129.)]

59 (return)
[ Qelhmatarioi. They are described and named by Pachymer, (l. ii. c. 14.)]

59 (return)
[ Qelhmatarioi. They are described and named by Pachymer, (l. ii. c. 14.)]

60 (return)
[ It is needless to seek these Comans in the deserts of Tartary, or even of Moldavia. A part of the horde had submitted to John Vataces, and was probably settled as a nursery of soldiers on some waste lands of Thrace, (Cantacuzen. l. i. c. 2.)]

60 (return)
[ There's no need to search for these Comans in the deserts of Tartary, or even in Moldavia. Some members of the horde had accepted John Vataces and were likely settled as a training ground for soldiers on some unproductive lands in Thrace, (Cantacuzen. l. i. c. 2.)]

601 (return)
[ According to several authorities, particularly Abulfaradj. Chron. Arab. p. 336, this was a stratagem on the part of the Greeks to weaken the garrison of Constantinople. The Greek commander offered to surrender the town on the appearance of the Venetians.—M.]

601 (return)
[ According to several sources, especially Abulfaradj. Chron. Arab. p. 336, this was a tactic by the Greeks to undermine the defense of Constantinople. The Greek commander proposed to surrender the town upon the arrival of the Venetians.—M.]

61 (return)
[ The loss of Constantinople is briefly told by the Latins: the conquest is described with more satisfaction by the Greeks; by Acropolita, (c. 85,) Pachymer, (l. ii. c. 26, 27,) Nicephorus Gregoras, (l. iv. c. 1, 2) See Ducange, Hist. de C. P. l. v. c. 19—27.]

61 (return)
[ The fall of Constantinople is briefly recounted by the Latins: the Greeks describe the conquest with greater satisfaction; by Acropolita, (c. 85,) Pachymer, (l. ii. c. 26, 27,) Nicephorus Gregoras, (l. iv. c. 1, 2) See Ducange, Hist. de C. P. l. v. c. 19—27.]

62 (return)
[ See the three last books (l. v.—viii.) and the genealogical tables of Ducange. In the year 1382, the titular emperor of Constantinople was James de Baux, duke of Andria in the kingdom of Naples, the son of Margaret, daughter of Catherine de Valois, daughter of Catharine, daughter of Philip, son of Baldwin II., (Ducange, l. viii. c. 37, 38.) It is uncertain whether he left any posterity.]

62 (return)
[ See the last three books (l. v.—viii.) and the genealogical tables of Ducange. In 1382, the titular emperor of Constantinople was James de Baux, duke of Andria in the kingdom of Naples, the son of Margaret, daughter of Catherine de Valois, daughter of Catharine, daughter of Philip, son of Baldwin II., (Ducange, l. viii. c. 37, 38.) It’s unclear if he had any descendants.]

After this narrative of the expeditions of the Latins to Palestine and Constantinople, I cannot dismiss the subject without resolving the general consequences on the countries that were the scene, and on the nations that were the actors, of these memorable crusades. 63 As soon as the arms of the Franks were withdrawn, the impression, though not the memory, was erased in the Mahometan realms of Egypt and Syria. The faithful disciples of the prophet were never tempted by a profane desire to study the laws or language of the idolaters; nor did the simplicity of their primitive manners receive the slightest alteration from their intercourse in peace and war with the unknown strangers of the West. The Greeks, who thought themselves proud, but who were only vain, showed a disposition somewhat less inflexible. In the efforts for the recovery of their empire, they emulated the valor, discipline, and tactics of their antagonists. The modern literature of the West they might justly despise; but its free spirit would instruct them in the rights of man; and some institutions of public and private life were adopted from the French. The correspondence of Constantinople and Italy diffused the knowledge of the Latin tongue; and several of the fathers and classics were at length honored with a Greek version. 64 But the national and religious prejudices of the Orientals were inflamed by persecution, and the reign of the Latins confirmed the separation of the two churches.

After this account of the Latin expeditions to Palestine and Constantinople, I can't move on without addressing the overall impact on the countries involved and the nations that took part in these remarkable crusades. 63 Once the Franks pulled out, the impression—though not the memory—faded in the Muslim worlds of Egypt and Syria. The faithful followers of the prophet were never tempted to frivolously explore the laws or language of the idolaters; nor did the simplicity of their traditional ways change at all from their interactions, whether in peace or war, with the unfamiliar strangers from the West. The Greeks, who considered themselves proud but were really just vain, showed a slightly more flexible attitude. In their efforts to reclaim their empire, they admired the courage, discipline, and strategies of their opponents. They might have rightly scorned the modern literature of the West, but its free spirit taught them about human rights; and they adopted some public and private institutions from the French. The communication between Constantinople and Italy spread knowledge of the Latin language, and several of the Church Fathers and classical works were eventually translated into Greek. 64 But the national and religious biases of the Easterners were heightened by persecution, and the Latin rule solidified the divide between the two churches.

63 (return)
[ Abulfeda, who saw the conclusion of the crusades, speaks of the kingdoms of the Franks, and those of the Negroes, as equally unknown, (Prolegom. ad Geograph.) Had he not disdained the Latin language, how easily might the Syrian prince have found books and interpreters!]

63 (return)
[Abulfeda, who witnessed the end of the crusades, describes the kingdoms of the Franks and those of the Negroes as equally unfamiliar (Prolegom. ad Geograph.) If he hadn’t looked down on the Latin language, how easily could the Syrian prince have found books and translators!]

64 (return)
[ A short and superficial account of these versions from Latin into Greek is given by Huet, (de Interpretatione et de claris Interpretibus p. 131—135.) Maximus Planudes, a monk of Constantinople, (A.D. 1327—1353) has translated Cæsar’s Commentaries, the Somnium Scipionis, the Metamorphoses and Heroides of Ovid, &c., (Fabric. Bib. Græc. tom. x. p. 533.)]

64 (return)
[ Huet provides a brief and general overview of these translations from Latin to Greek (de Interpretatione et de claris Interpretibus p. 131—135). Maximus Planudes, a monk from Constantinople (A.D. 1327—1353), translated Caesar’s Commentaries, the Somnium Scipionis, and Ovid’s Metamorphoses and Heroides, among others (Fabric. Bib. Græc. tom. x. p. 533).]

If we compare the æra of the crusades, the Latins of Europe with the Greeks and Arabians, their respective degrees of knowledge, industry, and art, our rude ancestors must be content with the third rank in the scale of nations. Their successive improvement and present superiority may be ascribed to a peculiar energy of character, to an active and imitative spirit, unknown to their more polished rivals, who at that time were in a stationary or retrograde state. With such a disposition, the Latins should have derived the most early and essential benefits from a series of events which opened to their eyes the prospect of the world, and introduced them to a long and frequent intercourse with the more cultivated regions of the East. The first and most obvious progress was in trade and manufactures, in the arts which are strongly prompted by the thirst of wealth, the calls of necessity, and the gratification of the sense or vanity. Among the crowd of unthinking fanatics, a captive or a pilgrim might sometimes observe the superior refinements of Cairo and Constantinople: the first importer of windmills 65 was the benefactor of nations; and if such blessings are enjoyed without any grateful remembrance, history has condescended to notice the more apparent luxuries of silk and sugar, which were transported into Italy from Greece and Egypt. But the intellectual wants of the Latins were more slowly felt and supplied; the ardor of studious curiosity was awakened in Europe by different causes and more recent events; and, in the age of the crusades, they viewed with careless indifference the literature of the Greeks and Arabians. Some rudiments of mathematical and medicinal knowledge might be imparted in practice and in figures; necessity might produce some interpreters for the grosser business of merchants and soldiers; but the commerce of the Orientals had not diffused the study and knowledge of their languages in the schools of Europe. 66 If a similar principle of religion repulsed the idiom of the Koran, it should have excited their patience and curiosity to understand the original text of the gospel; and the same grammar would have unfolded the sense of Plato and the beauties of Homer. Yet in a reign of sixty years, the Latins of Constantinople disdained the speech and learning of their subjects; and the manuscripts were the only treasures which the natives might enjoy without rapine or envy. Aristotle was indeed the oracle of the Western universities, but it was a barbarous Aristotle; and, instead of ascending to the fountain head, his Latin votaries humbly accepted a corrupt and remote version, from the Jews and Moors of Andalusia. The principle of the crusades was a savage fanaticism; and the most important effects were analogous to the cause. Each pilgrim was ambitious to return with his sacred spoils, the relics of Greece and Palestine; 67 and each relic was preceded and followed by a train of miracles and visions. The belief of the Catholics was corrupted by new legends, their practice by new superstitions; and the establishment of the inquisition, the mendicant orders of monks and friars, the last abuse of indulgences, and the final progress of idolatry, flowed from the baleful fountain of the holy war. The active spirit of the Latins preyed on the vitals of their reason and religion; and if the ninth and tenth centuries were the times of darkness, the thirteenth and fourteenth were the age of absurdity and fable.

If we look at the era of the Crusades, comparing the Latin people of Europe with the Greeks and Arabs in terms of knowledge, industry, and art, our rough ancestors must accept the third position on the scale of nations. Their ongoing improvement and current superiority can be attributed to a unique energy of character and a lively, imitative spirit that was absent in their more refined rivals, who were largely stagnant or regressing at that time. With this mindset, the Latins should have gained significant benefits from a series of events that opened their eyes to the world and led to frequent interactions with the more cultured regions of the East. The initial and most noticeable progress was in trade and manufacturing, spurred by the desire for wealth, necessity, and the gratification of senses or vanity. Among the throngs of unthinking fanatics, a captive or pilgrim might catch a glimpse of the finer qualities of Cairo and Constantinople: the first importer of windmills 65 was a benefactor to nations; and if such blessings went unremembered with gratitude, history has at least acknowledged the more obvious luxuries of silk and sugar that were brought into Italy from Greece and Egypt. However, the intellectual needs of the Latins took longer to be recognized and met; the eagerness for knowledge in Europe was ignited by different causes and more recent events; and during the Crusades, they looked at Greek and Arab literature with indifference. Some basics of mathematics and medicine might have been shared in practice and figures; necessity might have produced some interpreters for the more straightforward dealings of merchants and soldiers; but the trade with the East had not spread the study or knowledge of their languages in European schools. 66 If a similar principle of religion pushed away the language of the Koran, it should have stirred their patience and curiosity to understand the original text of the gospel; and the same grammar would have revealed the meanings of Plato and the beauties of Homer. Yet, in a span of sixty years, the Latins in Constantinople disregarded the speech and learning of their subjects; and the manuscripts were the only treasures that the locals could enjoy without theft or jealousy. Aristotle was indeed the oracle of Western universities, but it was a distorted version of Aristotle; and instead of going straight to the source, his Latin followers meekly accepted a corrupted and distant translation from the Jews and Moors of Andalusia. The motive of the Crusades was one of savage fanaticism; and the most significant results mirrored the cause. Each pilgrim was eager to return with sacred spoils, the relics from Greece and Palestine; 67 and each relic was accompanied by a series of miracles and visions. The Catholic faith was tainted by new legends, their practices by new superstitions; and the establishment of the Inquisition, the mendicant orders of monks and friars, the final misuse of indulgences, and the advancement of idolatry all emerged from the harmful source of the holy war. The active spirit of the Latins undermined both their reasoning and religion; and while the ninth and tenth centuries were marked by darkness, the thirteenth and fourteenth became an age of absurdity and fables.

65 (return)
[ Windmills, first invented in the dry country of Asia Minor, were used in Normandy as early as the year 1105, (Vie privée des François, tom. i. p. 42, 43. Ducange, Gloss. Latin. tom. iv. p. 474.)]

65 (return)
[ Windmills, which were first invented in the dry region of Asia Minor, were used in Normandy as early as 1105, (Vie privée des François, tom. i. p. 42, 43. Ducange, Gloss. Latin. tom. iv. p. 474.)]

66 (return)
[ See the complaints of Roger Bacon, (Biographia Britannica, vol. i. p. 418, Kippis’s edition.) If Bacon himself, or Gerbert, understood someGreek, they were prodigies, and owed nothing to the commerce of the East.]

66 (return)
[Check out the complaints of Roger Bacon, (Biographia Britannica, vol. i. p. 418, Kippis’s edition.) If Bacon or Gerbert knew even a little Greek, they were geniuses and didn’t owe anything to trade with the East.]

67 (return)
[ Such was the opinion of the great Leibnitz, (uvres de Fontenelle, tom. v. p. 458,) a master of the history of the middle ages. I shall only instance the pedigree of the Carmelites, and the flight of the house of Loretto, which were both derived from Palestine.]

67 (return)
[ This was the view of the renowned Leibnitz, (uvres de Fontenelle, tom. v. p. 458,) an expert in the history of the Middle Ages. I will only mention the lineage of the Carmelites and the journey of the house of Loretto, both of which originated from Palestine.]

Chapter LXI: Partition Of The Empire By The French And Venetians.—Part IV.

In the profession of Christianity, in the cultivation of a fertile land, the northern conquerors of the Roman empire insensibly mingled with the provincials, and rekindled the embers of the arts of antiquity. Their settlements about the age of Charlemagne had acquired some degree of order and stability, when they were overwhelmed by new swarms of invaders, the Normans, Saracens, 68 and Hungarians, who replunged the western countries of Europe into their former state of anarchy and barbarism. About the eleventh century, the second tempest had subsided by the expulsion or conversion of the enemies of Christendom: the tide of civilization, which had so long ebbed, began to flow with a steady and accelerated course; and a fairer prospect was opened to the hopes and efforts of the rising generations. Great was the increase, and rapid the progress, during the two hundred years of the crusades; and some philosophers have applauded the propitious influence of these holy wars, which appear to me to have checked rather than forwarded the maturity of Europe. 69 The lives and labors of millions, which were buried in the East, would have been more profitably employed in the improvement of their native country: the accumulated stock of industry and wealth would have overflowed in navigation and trade; and the Latins would have been enriched and enlightened by a pure and friendly correspondence with the climates of the East. In one respect I can indeed perceive the accidental operation of the crusades, not so much in producing a benefit as in removing an evil. The larger portion of the inhabitants of Europe was chained to the soil, without freedom, or property, or knowledge; and the two orders of ecclesiastics and nobles, whose numbers were comparatively small, alone deserved the name of citizens and men. This oppressive system was supported by the arts of the clergy and the swords of the barons. The authority of the priests operated in the darker ages as a salutary antidote: they prevented the total extinction of letters, mitigated the fierceness of the times, sheltered the poor and defenceless, and preserved or revived the peace and order of civil society. But the independence, rapine, and discord of the feudal lords were unmixed with any semblance of good; and every hope of industry and improvement was crushed by the iron weight of the martial aristocracy. Among the causes that undermined that Gothic edifice, a conspicuous place must be allowed to the crusades. The estates of the barons were dissipated, and their race was often extinguished, in these costly and perilous expeditions. Their poverty extorted from their pride those charters of freedom which unlocked the fetters of the slave, secured the farm of the peasant and the shop of the artificer, and gradually restored a substance and a soul to the most numerous and useful part of the community. The conflagration which destroyed the tall and barren trees of the forest gave air and scope to the vegetation of the smaller and nutritive plants of the soil. 691

In the practice of Christianity and the cultivation of fertile land, the northern conquerors of the Roman Empire gradually blended with the locals and reignited the embers of ancient arts. By the time of Charlemagne, their settlements had gained some level of order and stability, but they were soon overwhelmed by new waves of invaders—the Normans, Saracens, 68 and Hungarians—who plunged Western Europe back into a state of chaos and barbarism. By the eleventh century, the second storm had calmed with either the expulsion or conversion of the enemies of Christendom, and the tide of civilization, which had receded for so long, began to flow steadily and more quickly; brighter prospects emerged for the hopes and efforts of the new generations. There was significant growth and rapid progress during the two hundred years of the crusades, and some philosophers have praised the beneficial influence of these holy wars, which I believe actually hindered Europe’s development rather than helped it. 69 The lives and efforts of millions spent in the East could have been better used to improve their homeland: the accumulated industry and wealth could have fueled trade and navigation, and the Latins would have become richer and more informed through positive exchanges with Eastern cultures. In one way, I can see the unintended impact of the crusades—not so much in creating a benefit but in alleviating an issue. Most of Europe’s population was tied to the land, lacking freedom, property, or education; only the relatively small groups of clergy and nobles could truly be called citizens and men. This oppressive system was upheld by the clergy’s influence and the barons’ might. The authority of the priests acted as a beneficial force during darker times: they prevented the complete loss of literature, softened the harshness of the period, protected the vulnerable, and maintained or reinstated peace and order in society. However, the independence, plundering, and conflict of the feudal lords offered no semblance of good, and the iron grip of the military aristocracy crushed any hopes of progress and improvement. Among the reasons that undermined this Gothic structure, the crusades must be prominently noted. The barons’ estates were squandered, and their lineage often vanished during these expensive and dangerous campaigns. Their poverty forced them to grant charters of freedom that liberated the bonds of the enslaved, secured the farmer’s land and the craftsman’s workshop, and gradually restored both substance and dignity to the most numerous and valuable members of the community. The fire that consumed the tall and barren trees of the forest opened up space for the growth of smaller, nourishing plants in the soil. 691

68 (return)
[ If I rank the Saracens with the Barbarians, it is only relative to their wars, or rather inroads, in Italy and France, where their sole purpose was to plunder and destroy.]

68 (return)
[If I compare the Saracens to the Barbarians, it’s only in relation to their wars, or more accurately, their invasions in Italy and France, where their only goal was to loot and devastate.]

69 (return)
[ On this interesting subject, the progress of society in Europe, a strong ray of philosophical light has broke from Scotland in our own times; and it is with private, as well as public regard, that I repeat the names of Hume, Robertson, and Adam Smith.]

69 (return)
[ On this fascinating topic, the advancement of society in Europe, a bright spark of philosophical insight has emerged from Scotland in our time; and it is with both personal and public respect that I mention the names of Hume, Robertson, and Adam Smith.]

691 (return)
[ On the consequences of the crusades, compare the valuable Essay of Heeren, that of M. Choiseul d’Aillecourt, and a chapter of Mr. Forster’s “Mahometanism Unveiled.” I may admire this gentleman’s learning and industry, without pledging myself to his wild theory of prophets interpretation.—M.]

691 (return)
[ For insights on the effects of the crusades, check out the insightful essay by Heeren, the work of M. Choiseul d’Aillecourt, and a chapter from Mr. Forster’s “Mahometanism Unveiled.” I can appreciate this gentleman’s knowledge and hard work, without agreeing with his far-fetched theory on the interpretation of prophets.—M.]

Digression On The Family Of Courtenay.

Digression On The Family Of Courtenay.

The purple of three emperors, who have reigned at Constantinople, will authorize or excuse a digression on the origin and singular fortunes of the house of Courtenay, 70 in the three principal branches: I. Of Edessa; II. Of France; and III. Of England; of which the last only has survived the revolutions of eight hundred years.

The purple of three emperors who ruled in Constantinople will allow for a brief digression on the origin and unique fortunes of the Courtenay family, 70 divided into three main branches: I. Of Edessa; II. Of France; and III. Of England; of which only the last has survived the upheavals of eight hundred years.

70 (return)
[ I have applied, but not confined, myself to A genealogical History of the noble and illustrious Family of Courtenay, by Ezra Cleaveland, Tutor to Sir William Courtenay, and Rector of Honiton; Exon. 1735, in folio. The first part is extracted from William of Tyre; the second from Bouchet’s French history; and the third from various memorials, public, provincial, and private, of the Courtenays of Devonshire The rector of Honiton has more gratitude than industry, and more industry than criticism.]

70 (return)
[ I have referenced, but not limited myself to A genealogical History of the noble and illustrious Family of Courtenay, by Ezra Cleaveland, Tutor to Sir William Courtenay, and Rector of Honiton; Exon. 1735, in folio. The first part is taken from William of Tyre; the second from Bouchet’s French history; and the third from various memorials, both public and private, regarding the Courtenays of Devonshire. The rector of Honiton shows more gratitude than effort, and more effort than critique.]

I. Before the introduction of trade, which scatters riches, and of knowledge, which dispels prejudice, the prerogative of birth is most strongly felt and most humbly acknowledged. In every age, the laws and manners of the Germans have discriminated the ranks of society; the dukes and counts, who shared the empire of Charlemagne, converted their office to an inheritance; and to his children, each feudal lord bequeathed his honor and his sword. The proudest families are content to lose, in the darkness of the middle ages, the tree of their pedigree, which, however deep and lofty, must ultimately rise from a plebeian root; and their historians must descend ten centuries below the Christian æra, before they can ascertain any lineal succession by the evidence of surnames, of arms, and of authentic records. With the first rays of light, 71 we discern the nobility and opulence of Atho, a French knight; his nobility, in the rank and title of a nameless father; his opulence, in the foundation of the castle of Courtenay in the district of Gatinois, about fifty-six miles to the south of Paris. From the reign of Robert, the son of Hugh Capet, the barons of Courtenay are conspicuous among the immediate vassals of the crown; and Joscelin, the grandson of Atho and a noble dame, is enrolled among the heroes of the first crusade. A domestic alliance (their mothers were sisters) attached him to the standard of Baldwin of Bruges, the second count of Edessa; a princely fief, which he was worthy to receive, and able to maintain, announces the number of his martial followers; and after the departure of his cousin, Joscelin himself was invested with the county of Edessa on both sides of the Euphrates. By economy in peace, his territories were replenished with Latin and Syrian subjects; his magazines with corn, wine, and oil; his castles with gold and silver, with arms and horses. In a holy warfare of thirty years, he was alternately a conqueror and a captive: but he died like a soldier, in a horse litter at the head of his troops; and his last glance beheld the flight of the Turkish invaders who had presumed on his age and infirmities. His son and successor, of the same name, was less deficient in valor than in vigilance; but he sometimes forgot that dominion is acquired and maintained by the same arms. He challenged the hostility of the Turks, without securing the friendship of the prince of Antioch; and, amidst the peaceful luxury of Turbessel, in Syria, 72 Joscelin neglected the defence of the Christian frontier beyond the Euphrates. In his absence, Zenghi, the first of the Atabeks, besieged and stormed his capital, Edessa, which was feebly defended by a timorous and disloyal crowd of Orientals: the Franks were oppressed in a bold attempt for its recovery, and Courtenay ended his days in the prison of Aleppo. He still left a fair and ample patrimony But the victorious Turks oppressed on all sides the weakness of a widow and orphan; and, for the equivalent of an annual pension, they resigned to the Greek emperor the charge of defending, and the shame of losing, the last relics of the Latin conquest. The countess-dowager of Edessa retired to Jerusalem with her two children; the daughter, Agnes, became the wife and mother of a king; the son, Joscelin the Third, accepted the office of seneschal, the first of the kingdom, and held his new estates in Palestine by the service of fifty knights. His name appears with honor in the transactions of peace and war; but he finally vanishes in the fall of Jerusalem; and the name of Courtenay, in this branch of Edessa, was lost by the marriage of his two daughters with a French and German baron. 73

I. Before trade spread wealth and knowledge broke down biases, the importance of noble birth was keenly felt and modestly accepted. Throughout history, the customs and laws of the Germans have identified social classes; dukes and counts who shared Charlemagne's empire turned their positions into hereditary titles, passing on their honors and swords to their children. The most distinguished families are willing to lose their lineage in the shadows of the Middle Ages, though their ancestry, no matter how grand, ultimately traces back to common roots. Their historians must dig through ten centuries before they can establish any clear lineage through surnames, heraldry, and verified records. With the first light, 71 we see the nobility and wealth of Atho, a French knight; his nobility stemming from a father without a name and his wealth through the castle of Courtenay in the Gatinois region, about fifty-six miles south of Paris. Since the reign of Robert, son of Hugh Capet, the barons of Courtenay have been notable among the crown’s immediate vassals; Joscelin, Atho's grandson and a noble lady’s child, is celebrated as one of the heroes of the First Crusade. A family connection (their mothers were sisters) linked him to Baldwin of Bruges, the second Count of Edessa; a princely fief suitable for him was demonstrated by the number of soldiers he commanded; after his cousin's departure, Joscelin himself took on the county of Edessa on both sides of the Euphrates. Through wise management during peacetime, his lands were filled with both Latin and Syrian inhabitants, his stores with grain, wine, and oil, and his castles with gold, silver, arms, and horses. In thirty years of holy war, he oscillated between being a victor and a prisoner: however, he died like a soldier, in a horse-drawn litter at the front lines, his last sight being the retreat of the Turkish invaders who underestimated his age and frailties. His son and successor, sharing the same name, was perhaps not lacking in bravery but lacked vigilance; he sometimes forgot that power is gained and preserved through the same means. He provoked the Turks’ enmity without securing the alliance of the Prince of Antioch; and, amidst the comfortable luxury of Turbessel in Syria, 72 Joscelin overlooked the defense of the Christian border beyond the Euphrates. In his absence, Zenghi, the first of the Atabeks, laid siege and captured his capital, Edessa, which was poorly defended by a fearful and disloyal group of locals: the Franks faced defeat in a bold attempt to reclaim it, and Courtenay spent his final days imprisoned in Aleppo. He still left behind a substantial estate. Yet, the victorious Turks surrounded a weak widow and orphan from all sides; in exchange for an annual allowance, they handed over to the Greek emperor the task of defending and the disgrace of losing the last remnants of the Latin conquest. The widowed Countess of Edessa moved to Jerusalem with her two children; her daughter, Agnes, became the wife and mother of a king, while her son, Joscelin the Third, took on the role of seneschal, the kingdom's top official, and held his lands in Palestine by providing service from fifty knights. His name is honored in the records of both war and peace; yet, he ultimately fades from history with the fall of Jerusalem, and the Courtenay name, from this branch of Edessa, was lost when his two daughters married a French and a German baron. 73

71 (return)
[ The primitive record of the family is a passage of the continuator of Aimoin, a monk of Fleury, who wrote in the xiith century. See his Chronicle, in the Historians of France, (tom. xi. p. 276.)]

71 (return)
[ The early record of the family comes from a passage by Aimoin's continuator, a monk from Fleury, who wrote in the 12th century. Check his Chronicle in the Historians of France, (vol. xi. p. 276.)]

72 (return)
[ Turbessel, or, as it is now styled, Telbesher, is fixed by D’Anville four-and-twenty miles from the great passage over the Euphrates at Zeugma.]

72 (return)
[Turbessel, now called Telbesher, is located by D’Anville twenty-four miles from the major crossing over the Euphrates at Zeugma.]

73 (return)
[ His possessions are distinguished in the Assises of Jerusalem (c. B26) among the feudal tenures of the kingdom, which must therefore have been collected between the years 1153 and 1187. His pedigree may be found in the Lignages d’Outremer, c. 16.]

73 (return)
[ His belongings are listed in the Assises of Jerusalem (c. B26) among the feudal holdings of the kingdom, which must have been compiled between the years 1153 and 1187. His family tree can be found in the Lignages d’Outremer, c. 16.]

II. While Joscelin reigned beyond the Euphrates, his elder brother Milo, the son of Joscelin, the son of Atho, continued, near the Seine, to possess the castle of their fathers, which was at length inherited by Rainaud, or Reginald, the youngest of his three sons. Examples of genius or virtue must be rare in the annals of the oldest families; and, in a remote age their pride will embrace a deed of rapine and violence; such, however, as could not be perpetrated without some superiority of courage, or, at least, of power. A descendant of Reginald of Courtenay may blush for the public robber, who stripped and imprisoned several merchants, after they had satisfied the king’s duties at Sens and Orleans. He will glory in the offence, since the bold offender could not be compelled to obedience and restitution, till the regent and the count of Champagne prepared to march against him at the head of an army. 74 Reginald bestowed his estates on his eldest daughter, and his daughter on the seventh son of King Louis the Fat; and their marriage was crowned with a numerous offspring. We might expect that a private should have merged in a royal name; and that the descendants of Peter of France and Elizabeth of Courtenay would have enjoyed the titles and honors of princes of the blood. But this legitimate claim was long neglected, and finally denied; and the causes of their disgrace will represent the story of this second branch. 1. Of all the families now extant, the most ancient, doubtless, and the most illustrious, is the house of France, which has occupied the same throne above eight hundred years, and descends, in a clear and lineal series of males, from the middle of the ninth century. 75 In the age of the crusades, it was already revered both in the East and West. But from Hugh Capet to the marriage of Peter, no more than five reigns or generations had elapsed; and so precarious was their title, that the eldest sons, as a necessary precaution, were previously crowned during the lifetime of their fathers. The peers of France have long maintained their precedency before the younger branches of the royal line, nor had the princes of the blood, in the twelfth century, acquired that hereditary lustre which is now diffused over the most remote candidates for the succession. 2. The barons of Courtenay must have stood high in their own estimation, and in that of the world, since they could impose on the son of a king the obligation of adopting for himself and all his descendants the name and arms of their daughter and his wife. In the marriage of an heiress with her inferior or her equal, such exchange was often required and allowed: but as they continued to diverge from the regal stem, the sons of Louis the Fat were insensibly confounded with their maternal ancestors; and the new Courtenays might deserve to forfeit the honors of their birth, which a motive of interest had tempted them to renounce. 3. The shame was far more permanent than the reward, and a momentary blaze was followed by a long darkness. The eldest son of these nuptials, Peter of Courtenay, had married, as I have already mentioned, the sister of the counts of Flanders, the two first emperors of Constantinople: he rashly accepted the invitation of the barons of Romania; his two sons, Robert and Baldwin, successively held and lost the remains of the Latin empire in the East, and the granddaughter of Baldwin the Second again mingled her blood with the blood of France and of Valois. To support the expenses of a troubled and transitory reign, their patrimonial estates were mortgaged or sold: and the last emperors of Constantinople depended on the annual charity of Rome and Naples.

II. While Joscelin ruled beyond the Euphrates, his older brother Milo, the son of Joscelin, the son of Atho, continued to hold their family's castle near the Seine, which was eventually inherited by Rainaud, or Reginald, the youngest of his three sons. Examples of talent or virtue are probably rare in the histories of the oldest families; and, in ancient times, their pride would celebrate acts of robbery and violence—acts that, however, could not be carried out without some level of courage or, at least, power. A descendant of Reginald of Courtenay might feel ashamed of the public robber who stripped and imprisoned several merchants after they had paid their dues to the king in Sens and Orleans. He'll take pride in the offense, since the bold criminal could only be forced to comply and make restitution when the regent and the Count of Champagne prepared to march against him with an army. 74 Reginald gave his estates to his eldest daughter and married her to the seventh son of King Louis the Fat; their marriage produced a large family. We might expect that a private individual would have merged into a royal name, and that the descendants of Peter of France and Elizabeth of Courtenay would have held the titles and honors of princes of the blood. But this rightful claim was long overlooked and ultimately denied; the reasons for their disgrace tell the story of this second branch. 1. Of all the families that exist today, the most ancient and undoubtedly the most distinguished is the house of France, which has sat on the same throne for over eight hundred years and descends, in a clear and direct line of males, from the middle of the ninth century. 75 During the age of the crusades, it was already respected in both the East and West. However, from Hugh Capet to Peter's marriage, only five reigns or generations had passed; and their title was so fragile that the eldest sons, as a precaution, were crowned during their fathers' lifetimes. The peers of France have long held their precedence over the younger branches of the royal line, nor did the princes of the blood in the twelfth century possess the hereditary prestige that is now associated with even the most distant candidates for succession. 2. The barons of Courtenay must have held a high opinion of themselves and their status in the world, as they could impose on the son of a king the obligation to take on the name and arms of their daughter and his wife for himself and all his descendants. In the marriage of an heiress to someone of lower status or equal standing, such exchanges were often required and accepted: but as they continued to diverge from the royal lineage, the sons of Louis the Fat were gradually confused with their maternal ancestors; and the new Courtenays might have deserved to lose the honors of their birth, which financial interests had led them to renounce. 3. The shame proved far more lasting than the reward, and a brief period of glory was followed by a lengthy period of obscurity. The eldest son of this marriage, Peter of Courtenay, as I previously mentioned, married the sister of the Counts of Flanders, the first two emperors of Constantinople. He recklessly accepted an invitation from the barons of Romania; his two sons, Robert and Baldwin, successively held and lost the remnants of the Latin empire in the East, and Baldwin the Second's granddaughter again connected her blood with that of France and the Valois. To cover the costs of a troubled and fleeting reign, their inherited estates were mortgaged or sold: and the last emperors of Constantinople relied on the annual charity of Rome and Naples.

74 (return)
[ The rapine and satisfaction of Reginald de Courtenay, are preposterously arranged in the Epistles of the abbot and regent Suger, (cxiv. cxvi.,) the best memorials of the age, (Duchesne, Scriptores Hist. Franc. tom. iv. p. 530.)]

74 (return)
[The plunder and enjoyment of Reginald de Courtenay are oddly laid out in the letters of Abbot and Regent Suger, (cxiv. cxvi.,) which serve as the best records of the time, (Duchesne, Scriptores Hist. Franc. tom. iv. p. 530.)]

75 (return)
[ In the beginning of the xith century, after naming the father and grandfather of Hugh Capet, the monk Glaber is obliged to add, cujus genus valde in-ante reperitur obscurum. Yet we are assured that the great-grandfather of Hugh Capet was Robert the Strong count of Anjou, (A.D. 863—873,) a noble Frank of Neustria, Neustricus... generosæ stirpis, who was slain in the defence of his country against the Normans, dum patriæ fines tuebatur. Beyond Robert, all is conjecture or fable. It is a probable conjecture, that the third race descended from the second by Childebrand, the brother of Charles Martel. It is an absurd fable that the second was allied to the first by the marriage of Ansbert, a Roman senator and the ancestor of St. Arnoul, with Blitilde, a daughter of Clotaire I. The Saxon origin of the house of France is an ancient but incredible opinion. See a judicious memoir of M. de Foncemagne, (Mémoires de l’Académie des Inscriptions, tom. xx. p. 548—579.) He had promised to declare his own opinion in a second memoir, which has never appeared.]

75 (return)
[ At the start of the 10th century, after mentioning the father and grandfather of Hugh Capet, the monk Glaber has to add, whose lineage is found to be quite obscure. However, we know that Hugh Capet's great-grandfather was Robert the Strong, Count of Anjou (A.D. 863—873), a noble Frank from Neustria... of noble descent, who was killed defending his country against the Normans while protecting the borders of his homeland. Beyond Robert, everything else is speculation or legend. It's a reasonable assumption that the third line came from the second through Childebrand, who was the brother of Charles Martel. It's an absurd tale that the second line was connected to the first through the marriage of Ansbert, a Roman senator and ancestor of St. Arnoul, with Blitilde, a daughter of Clotaire I. The idea that the house of France has Saxon origins is an old but unbelievable notion. See a thoughtful paper by M. de Foncemagne (Mémoires de l’Académie des Inscriptions, tom. xx. p. 548—579.) He had promised to express his opinion in a second paper, which has never been published.]

While the elder brothers dissipated their wealth in romantic adventures, and the castle of Courtenay was profaned by a plebeian owner, the younger branches of that adopted name were propagated and multiplied. But their splendor was clouded by poverty and time: after the decease of Robert, great butler of France, they descended from princes to barons; the next generations were confounded with the simple gentry; the descendants of Hugh Capet could no longer be visible in the rural lords of Tanlay and of Champignelles. The more adventurous embraced without dishonor the profession of a soldier: the least active and opulent might sink, like their cousins of the branch of Dreux, into the condition of peasants. Their royal descent, in a dark period of four hundred years, became each day more obsolete and ambiguous; and their pedigree, instead of being enrolled in the annals of the kingdom, must be painfully searched by the minute diligence of heralds and genealogists. It was not till the end of the sixteenth century, on the accession of a family almost as remote as their own, that the princely spirit of the Courtenays again revived; and the question of the nobility provoked them to ascertain the royalty of their blood. They appealed to the justice and compassion of Henry the Fourth; obtained a favorable opinion from twenty lawyers of Italy and Germany, and modestly compared themselves to the descendants of King David, whose prerogatives were not impaired by the lapse of ages or the trade of a carpenter. 76 But every ear was deaf, and every circumstance was adverse, to their lawful claims. The Bourbon kings were justified by the neglect of the Valois; the princes of the blood, more recent and lofty, disdained the alliance of his humble kindred: the parliament, without denying their proofs, eluded a dangerous precedent by an arbitrary distinction, and established St. Louis as the first father of the royal line. 77 A repetition of complaints and protests was repeatedly disregarded; and the hopeless pursuit was terminated in the present century by the death of the last male of the family. 78 Their painful and anxious situation was alleviated by the pride of conscious virtue: they sternly rejected the temptations of fortune and favor; and a dying Courtenay would have sacrificed his son, if the youth could have renounced, for any temporal interest, the right and title of a legitimate prince of the blood of France. 79

While the older brothers wasted their wealth on romantic escapades, and the Courtenay castle fell into the hands of a common owner, the younger branches of that name flourished and multiplied. However, their splendor was overshadowed by poverty and time: after Robert, the great butler of France, died, they fell from being princes to barons; the subsequent generations blended in with the simple gentry. The descendants of Hugh Capet could no longer be distinguished from the rural lords of Tanlay and Champignelles. The more adventurous among them took up the profession of a soldier without shame, while those less active and wealthy sank into the condition of peasants, like their cousins from the Dreux branch. Their royal lineage became increasingly obscure and uncertain over a dark period of four hundred years; instead of being chronicled in the kingdom's history, their pedigree had to be painstakingly researched by diligent heralds and genealogists. It wasn’t until the end of the sixteenth century, with the rise of a family nearly as distant as their own, that the princely spirit of the Courtenays was revived; they felt compelled to prove the nobility of their blood. They appealed to the justice and compassion of Henry the Fourth, secured a positive opinion from twenty lawyers in Italy and Germany, and modestly likened themselves to the descendants of King David, whose rights weren’t diminished by the passage of time or by being the child of a carpenter. 76 But no one listened, and every circumstance worked against their legitimate claims. The Bourbon kings were validated by the indifference shown by the Valois; the more recent and elevated princes of the blood looked down on connections to their humble kin: the parliament, while not dismissing their evidence, avoided a dangerous precedent by making a dubious distinction and recognized St. Louis as the first father of the royal line. 77 Their repeated grievances and protests were continually ignored; this futile pursuit ended in the current century with the death of the last male of the family. 78 Their painful and anxious circumstances were lightened by the pride of their moral integrity: they firmly turned down the temptations of wealth and favor; a dying Courtenay would have sacrificed his son if the young man could have given up, for any material gain, the rights and title of a legitimate prince of the blood of France. 79

76 (return)
[ Of the various petitions, apologies, &c., published by the princes of Courtenay, I have seen the three following, all in octavo: 1. De Stirpe et Origine Domus de Courtenay: addita sunt Responsa celeberrimorum Europæ Jurisconsultorum; Paris, 1607. 2. Representation du Procedé tenû a l’instance faicte devant le Roi, par Messieurs de Courtenay, pour la conservation de l’Honneur et Dignité de leur Maison, branche de la royalle Maison de France; à Paris, 1613. 3. Representation du subject qui a porté Messieurs de Salles et de Fraville, de la Maison de Courtenay, à se retirer hors du Royaume, 1614. It was a homicide, for which the Courtenays expected to be pardoned, or tried, as princes of the blood.]

76 (return)
[ Among the various petitions, apologies, etc., published by the Courtenay princes, I have seen the following three, all in octavo: 1. De Stirpe et Origine Domus de Courtenay: including Responses from the most renowned European Jurists; Paris, 1607. 2. Representation of the proceedings held at the request made before the King by the Courtenay gentlemen, for the preservation of the Honor and Dignity of their House, a branch of the royal House of France; in Paris, 1613. 3. Representation of the issue that led Messieurs de Salles and de Fraville of the Courtenay House to leave the Kingdom, 1614. It was a homicide for which the Courtenays hoped to be pardoned or tried as princes of the blood.]

77 (return)
[ The sense of the parliaments is thus expressed by Thuanus Principis nomen nusquam in Galliâ tributum, nisi iis qui per mares e regibus nostris originem repetunt; qui nunc tantum a Ludovico none beatæ memoriæ numerantur; nam Cortini et Drocenses, a Ludovico crasso genus ducentes, hodie inter eos minime recensentur. A distinction of expediency rather than justice. The sanctity of Louis IX. could not invest him with any special prerogative, and all the descendants of Hugh Capet must be included in his original compact with the French nation.]

77 (return)
[The view of the parliaments is expressed by Thuanus: the name of the prince is nowhere considered in France as valid unless it’s linked to those who trace their lineage through the males of our kings; they are currently counted only among those connected to Louis, who is fondly remembered; for the Cortini and Drocenses, descending from the coarse Louis, are not counted among them today. It’s more about convenience than fairness. The holiness of Louis IX didn’t give him any special rights, and all the descendants of Hugh Capet should be included in his original agreement with the French nation.]

78 (return)
[ The last male of the Courtenays was Charles Roger, who died in the year 1730, without leaving any sons. The last female was Helene de Courtenay, who married Louis de Beaufremont. Her title of Princesse du Sang Royal de France was suppressed (February 7th, 1737) by an arrêt of the parliament of Paris.]

78 (return)
[ The final male of the Courtenays was Charles Roger, who passed away in 1730 without any sons. The last female was Helene de Courtenay, who married Louis de Beaufremont. Her title of Princess of the Royal Blood of France was revoked (February 7th, 1737) by a ruling from the Paris parliament.]

79 (return)
[ The singular anecdote to which I allude is related in the Recueil des Pieces interessantes et peu connues, (Maestricht, 1786, in 4 vols. 12mo.;) and the unknown editor quotes his author, who had received it from Helene de Courtenay, marquise de Beaufremont.]

79 (return)
[ The unique story I'm referring to is found in the Collection of Interesting and Little-Known Pieces, (Maestricht, 1786, in 4 vols. 12mo.;) and the anonymous editor cites his source, who got it from Helene de Courtenay, Marquise de Beaufremont.]

III. According to the old register of Ford Abbey, the Courtenays of Devonshire are descended from Prince Florus, the second son of Peter, and the grandson of Louis the Fat. 80 This fable of the grateful or venal monks was too respectfully entertained by our antiquaries, Cambden 81 and Dugdale: 82 but it is so clearly repugnant to truth and time, that the rational pride of the family now refuses to accept this imaginary founder. Their most faithful historians believe, that, after giving his daughter to the king’s son, Reginald of Courtenay abandoned his possessions in France, and obtained from the English monarch a second wife and a new inheritance. It is certain, at least, that Henry the Second distinguished in his camps and councils a Reginald, of the name and arms, and, as it may be fairly presumed, of the genuine race, of the Courtenays of France. The right of wardship enabled a feudal lord to reward his vassal with the marriage and estate of a noble heiress; and Reginald of Courtenay acquired a fair establishment in Devonshire, where his posterity has been seated above six hundred years. 83 From a Norman baron, Baldwin de Brioniis, who had been invested by the Conqueror, Hawise, the wife of Reginald, derived the honor of Okehampton, which was held by the service of ninety-three knights; and a female might claim the manly offices of hereditary viscount or sheriff, and of captain of the royal castle of Exeter. Their son Robert married the sister of the earl of Devon: at the end of a century, on the failure of the family of Rivers, 84 his great-grandson, Hugh the Second, succeeded to a title which was still considered as a territorial dignity; and twelve earls of Devonshire, of the name of Courtenay, have flourished in a period of two hundred and twenty years. They were ranked among the chief of the barons of the realm; nor was it till after a strenuous dispute, that they yielded to the fief of Arundel the first place in the parliament of England: their alliances were contracted with the noblest families, the Veres, Despensers, St. Johns, Talbots, Bohuns, and even the Plantagenets themselves; and in a contest with John of Lancaster, a Courtenay, bishop of London, and afterwards archbishop of Canterbury, might be accused of profane confidence in the strength and number of his kindred. In peace, the earls of Devon resided in their numerous castles and manors of the west; their ample revenue was appropriated to devotion and hospitality; and the epitaph of Edward, surnamed from his misfortune, the blind, from his virtues, the good, earl, inculcates with much ingenuity a moral sentence, which may, however, be abused by thoughtless generosity. After a grateful commemoration of the fifty-five years of union and happiness which he enjoyed with Mabe his wife, the good earl thus speaks from the tomb:—

III. According to the old records of Ford Abbey, the Courtenays of Devonshire are descended from Prince Florus, the second son of Peter and the grandson of Louis the Fat. 80 This tale from the grateful or corrupt monks was too respectfully accepted by our antiquarians, Cambden 81 and Dugdale: 82 but it is so clearly false and outdated that the rational pride of the family now refuses to acknowledge this fictional ancestor. Their most trusted historians believe that after marrying his daughter to the king’s son, Reginald of Courtenay gave up his possessions in France and received from the English monarch a second wife and a new inheritance. It is certain, at least, that Henry the Second recognized a Reginald, sharing the name and coat of arms, and presumably of the genuine line of the Courtenays from France, in his camps and councils. The right of wardship allowed a feudal lord to reward his vassal with the marriage and estate of a noble heiress; and Reginald of Courtenay established himself well in Devonshire, where his descendants have been settled for over six hundred years. 83 From a Norman baron, Baldwin de Brioniis, who had been granted lands by the Conqueror, Hawise, Reginald's wife, inherited the title of Okehampton, which was held in exchange for the service of ninety-three knights; and a woman could claim the significant roles of hereditary viscount or sheriff, as well as captain of the royal castle of Exeter. Their son Robert married the sister of the Earl of Devon: at the end of a century, when the Rivers family died out, 84 his great-grandson, Hugh the Second, inherited a title that was still recognized as a territorial honor; and twelve earls of Devonshire with the name Courtenay flourished over a period of two hundred and twenty years. They were ranked among the leading barons of the realm; and it wasn't until after a fierce dispute that they ceded to the fief of Arundel the top position in the Parliament of England: their alliances were with the noblest families, including the Veres, Despensers, St. Johns, Talbots, Bohuns, and even the Plantagenets themselves; and in a conflict with John of Lancaster, a Courtenay, bishop of London, and later archbishop of Canterbury, could be accused of arrogant confidence in the strength and number of his relatives. In peacetime, the earls of Devon lived in their many castles and estates in the west; their considerable wealth was dedicated to charity and hospitality; and the epitaph of Edward, known for his misfortune as the blind and for his virtues as the good earl, cleverly conveys a moral lesson that can, however, be easily misinterpreted by the thoughtless generous. After gratefully commemorating the fifty-five years of union and happiness he shared with his wife Mabe, the good earl speaks from the tomb:—

     “What we gave, we have;
     What we spent, we had;
     What we left, we lost.” 85
     “What we gave, we have;  
     What we spent, we had;  
     What we left, we lost.” 85

But their losses, in this sense, were far superior to their gifts and expenses; and their heirs, not less than the poor, were the objects of their paternal care. The sums which they paid for livery and seizin attest the greatness of their possessions; and several estates have remained in their family since the thirteenth and fourteenth centuries. In war, the Courtenays of England fulfilled the duties, and deserved the honors, of chivalry. They were often intrusted to levy and command the militia of Devonshire and Cornwall; they often attended their supreme lord to the borders of Scotland; and in foreign service, for a stipulated price, they sometimes maintained fourscore men-at-arms and as many archers. By sea and land they fought under the standard of the Edwards and Henries: their names are conspicuous in battles, in tournaments, and in the original list of the Order of the Garter; three brothers shared the Spanish victory of the Black Prince; and in the lapse of six generations, the English Courtenays had learned to despise the nation and country from which they derived their origin. In the quarrel of the two roses, the earls of Devon adhered to the house of Lancaster; and three brothers successively died either in the field or on the scaffold. Their honors and estates were restored by Henry the Seventh; a daughter of Edward the Fourth was not disgraced by the nuptials of a Courtenay; their son, who was created Marquis of Exeter, enjoyed the favor of his cousin Henry the Eighth; and in the camp of Cloth of Gold, he broke a lance against the French monarch. But the favor of Henry was the prelude of disgrace; his disgrace was the signal of death; and of the victims of the jealous tyrant, the marquis of Exeter is one of the most noble and guiltless. His son Edward lived a prisoner in the Tower, and died in exile at Padua; and the secret love of Queen Mary, whom he slighted, perhaps for the princess Elizabeth, has shed a romantic color on the story of this beautiful youth. The relics of his patrimony were conveyed into strange families by the marriages of his four aunts; and his personal honors, as if they had been legally extinct, were revived by the patents of succeeding princes. But there still survived a lineal descendant of Hugh, the first earl of Devon, a younger branch of the Courtenays, who have been seated at Powderham Castle above four hundred years, from the reign of Edward the Third to the present hour. Their estates have been increased by the grant and improvement of lands in Ireland, and they have been recently restored to the honors of the peerage. Yet the Courtenays still retain the plaintive motto, which asserts the innocence, and deplores the fall, of their ancient house. 86 While they sigh for past greatness, they are doubtless sensible of present blessings: in the long series of the Courtenay annals, the most splendid æra is likewise the most unfortunate; nor can an opulent peer of Britain be inclined to envy the emperors of Constantinople, who wandered over Europe to solicit alms for the support of their dignity and the defence of their capital.

But their losses, in this way, were much greater than their gifts and expenses; and their heirs, just like the poor, were the focus of their care. The amounts they paid for official titles and possession confirm the magnitude of their wealth; and several estates have stayed in their family since the 13th and 14th centuries. In battle, the Courtenays of England fulfilled the responsibilities and earned the honors of knighthood. They were often entrusted with raising and commanding the militia of Devonshire and Cornwall; they frequently accompanied their lord to the borders of Scotland; and in foreign service, for a set price, they sometimes provided eighty men-at-arms and the same number of archers. They fought by sea and land under the banners of the Edwards and Henries: their names stand out in battles, tournaments, and in the original list of the Order of the Garter; three brothers shared in the Spanish victory alongside the Black Prince; and over six generations, the English Courtenays had come to disdain the nation and country from which they originated. In the conflict of the two roses, the earls of Devon supported the house of Lancaster; and three brothers died in battle or on the scaffold. Their honors and estates were restored by Henry the Seventh; a daughter of Edward the Fourth was honored by marrying a Courtenay; their son, who was made Marquis of Exeter, enjoyed the favor of his cousin Henry the Eighth; and at the Cloth of Gold camp, he jousted against the French king. But Henry’s favor led to disgrace; his disgrace brought about his death; and among the victims of the jealous tyrant, the marquis of Exeter was one of the most noble and innocent. His son Edward lived as a prisoner in the Tower and died in exile in Padua; and the secret affection of Queen Mary, whom he ignored, perhaps for Princess Elizabeth, adds a romantic twist to the tale of this handsome young man. The remnants of his inheritance were passed into different families through the marriages of his four aunts; and his personal honors, as if they had been officially extinguished, were renewed by the grants of succeeding monarchs. However, there still remains a direct descendant of Hugh, the first earl of Devon, a younger branch of the Courtenays, who have resided at Powderham Castle for over four hundred years, from the reign of Edward the Third to now. Their estates have been expanded by the grant and enhancement of lands in Ireland, and they have recently been restored to the honors of the peerage. Yet the Courtenays still hold on to their mournful motto, which asserts their innocence and laments the downfall of their ancient house. 86 While they long for past greatness, they are undoubtedly aware of present blessings: throughout the long history of the Courtenays, the most glorious era is also the most tragic; nor could a wealthy peer of Britain be inclined to envy the emperors of Constantinople, who wandered through Europe begging for support to uphold their dignity and defend their capital.

80 (return)
[ Dugdale, Monasticon Anglicanum, vol. i. p. 786. Yet this fable must have been invented before the reign of Edward III. The profuse devotion of the three first generations to Ford Abbey was followed by oppression on one side and ingratitude on the other; and in the sixth generation, the monks ceased to register the births, actions, and deaths of their patrons.]

80 (return)
[ Dugdale, Monasticon Anglicanum, vol. i. p. 786. This story must have been made up before the reign of Edward III. The intense devotion of the first three generations to Ford Abbey was met with oppression on one side and ingratitude on the other; by the sixth generation, the monks stopped recording the births, actions, and deaths of their patrons.]

81 (return)
[ In his Britannia, in the list of the earls of Devonshire. His expression, e regio sanguine ortos, credunt, betrays, however, some doubt or suspicion.]

81 (return)
[ In his Britannia, in the list of the earls of Devonshire. His phrase, e regio sanguine ortos, credunt, reveals some doubt or suspicion, though.]

82 (return)
[ In his Baronage, P. i. p. 634, he refers to his own Monasticon. Should he not have corrected the register of Ford Abbey, and annihilated the phantom Florus, by the unquestionable evidence of the French historians?]

82 (return)
[ In his Baronage, P. i. p. 634, he mentions his own Monasticon. Shouldn't he have updated the record of Ford Abbey and eliminated the false figure of Florus with the clear evidence from the French historians?]

83 (return)
[ Besides the third and most valuable book of Cleaveland’s History, I have consulted Dugdale, the father of our genealogical science, (Baronage, P. i. p. 634—643.)]

83 (return)
[ In addition to the third and most important book of Cleaveland’s History, I have referred to Dugdale, the pioneer of our genealogical research, (Baronage, P. i. p. 634—643.)]

84 (return)
[ This great family, de Ripuariis, de Redvers, de Rivers, ended, in Edward the Fifth’s time, in Isabella de Fortibus, a famous and potent dowager, who long survived her brother and husband, (Dugdale, Baronage, P i. p. 254—257.)]

84 (return)
[ This prominent family, de Ripuariis, de Redvers, de Rivers, came to an end during Edward the Fifth’s reign with Isabella de Fortibus, a well-known and powerful widow, who outlived both her brother and her husband, (Dugdale, Baronage, P i. p. 254—257.)]

85 (return)
[ Cleaveland p. 142. By some it is assigned to a Rivers earl of Devon; but the English denotes the xvth, rather than the xiiith century.]

85 (return)
[ Cleaveland p. 142. Some attribute this to an Earl of Devon named Rivers; however, it is more commonly associated with the 15th century than the 13th century.]

86 (return)
[ Ubi lapsus! Quid feci? a motto which was probably adopted by the Powderham branch, after the loss of the earldom of Devonshire, &c. The primitive arms of the Courtenays were, Or, three torteaux, Gules, which seem to denote their affinity with Godfrey of Bouillon, and the ancient counts of Boulogne.]

86 (return)
[ Oh no! What did I do? a saying that was likely taken on by the Powderham branch after losing the earldom of Devonshire, etc. The original coat of arms of the Courtenays was Gold, three red roundels, which seem to indicate their connection to Godfrey of Bouillon and the ancient counts of Boulogne.]

Chapter LXII: Greek Emperors Of Nice And Constantinople.—Part I.

     The Greek Emperors Of Nice And Constantinople.—Elevation
     And Reign Of Michael Palæologus.—His False Union With The
     Pope And The Latin Church.—Hostile Designs Of Charles Of
     Anjou.—Revolt Of Sicily.—War Of The Catalans In Asia And
     Greece.—Revolutions And Present State Of Athens.
     The Greek Emperors of Nice and Constantinople.—The Rise and Reign of Michael Palæologus.—His Fake Alliance with the Pope and the Latin Church.—Hostile Plans of Charles of Anjou.—Sicilian Revolt.—War of the Catalans in Asia and Greece.—Revolutions and Current Situation in Athens.

The loss of Constantinople restored a momentary vigor to the Greeks. From their palaces, the princes and nobles were driven into the field; and the fragments of the falling monarchy were grasped by the hands of the most vigorous or the most skilful candidates. In the long and barren pages of the Byzantine annals, 1 it would not be an easy task to equal the two characters of Theodore Lascaris and John Ducas Vataces, 2 who replanted and upheld the Roman standard at Nice in Bithynia. The difference of their virtues was happily suited to the diversity of their situation. In his first efforts, the fugitive Lascaris commanded only three cities and two thousand soldiers: his reign was the season of generous and active despair: in every military operation he staked his life and crown; and his enemies of the Hellespont and the Mæander, were surprised by his celerity and subdued by his boldness. A victorious reign of eighteen years expanded the principality of Nice to the magnitude of an empire. The throne of his successor and son-in-law Vataces was founded on a more solid basis, a larger scope, and more plentiful resources; and it was the temper, as well as the interest, of Vataces to calculate the risk, to expect the moment, and to insure the success, of his ambitious designs. In the decline of the Latins, I have briefly exposed the progress of the Greeks; the prudent and gradual advances of a conqueror, who, in a reign of thirty-three years, rescued the provinces from national and foreign usurpers, till he pressed on all sides the Imperial city, a leafless and sapless trunk, which must full at the first stroke of the axe. But his interior and peaceful administration is still more deserving of notice and praise. 3 The calamities of the times had wasted the numbers and the substance of the Greeks; the motives and the means of agriculture were extirpated; and the most fertile lands were left without cultivation or inhabitants. A portion of this vacant property was occupied and improved by the command, and for the benefit, of the emperor: a powerful hand and a vigilant eye supplied and surpassed, by a skilful management, the minute diligence of a private farmer: the royal domain became the garden and granary of Asia; and without impoverishing the people, the sovereign acquired a fund of innocent and productive wealth. According to the nature of the soil, his lands were sown with corn or planted with vines; the pastures were filled with horses and oxen, with sheep and hogs; and when Vataces presented to the empress a crown of diamonds and pearls, he informed her, with a smile, that this precious ornament arose from the sale of the eggs of his innumerable poultry. The produce of his domain was applied to the maintenance of his palace and hospitals, the calls of dignity and benevolence: the lesson was still more useful than the revenue: the plough was restored to its ancient security and honor; and the nobles were taught to seek a sure and independent revenue from their estates, instead of adorning their splendid beggary by the oppression of the people, or (what is almost the same) by the favors of the court. The superfluous stock of corn and cattle was eagerly purchased by the Turks, with whom Vataces preserved a strict and sincere alliance; but he discouraged the importation of foreign manufactures, the costly silks of the East, and the curious labors of the Italian looms. “The demands of nature and necessity,” was he accustomed to say, “are indispensable; but the influence of fashion may rise and sink at the breath of a monarch;” and both his precept and example recommended simplicity of manners and the use of domestic industry. The education of youth and the revival of learning were the most serious objects of his care; and, without deciding the precedency, he pronounced with truth, that a prince and a philosopher 4 are the two most eminent characters of human society. His first wife was Irene, the daughter of Theodore Lascaris, a woman more illustrious by her personal merit, the milder virtues of her sex, than by the blood of the Angeli and Comneni that flowed in her veins, and transmitted the inheritance of the empire. After her death he was contracted to Anne, or Constance, a natural daughter of the emperor Frederic 499 the Second; but as the bride had not attained the years of puberty, Vataces placed in his solitary bed an Italian damsel of her train; and his amorous weakness bestowed on the concubine the honors, though not the title, of a lawful empress. His frailty was censured as a flagitious and damnable sin by the monks; and their rude invectives exercised and displayed the patience of the royal lover. A philosophic age may excuse a single vice, which was redeemed by a crowd of virtues; and in the review of his faults, and the more intemperate passions of Lascaris, the judgment of their contemporaries was softened by gratitude to the second founders of the empire. 5 The slaves of the Latins, without law or peace, applauded the happiness of their brethren who had resumed their national freedom; and Vataces employed the laudable policy of convincing the Greeks of every dominion that it was their interest to be enrolled in the number of his subjects.

The fall of Constantinople gave a brief boost to the Greeks. The princes and nobles were forced from their palaces into action, and the remnants of the crumbling monarchy were seized by the most ambitious or skilled contenders. In the long and empty chapters of Byzantine history, 1 it would be challenging to match the two figures of Theodore Lascaris and John Ducas Vataces, 2 who reestablished and upheld the Roman banner at Nice in Bithynia. Their differing virtues were well-suited to the varying circumstances they faced. In his early endeavors, the exiled Lascaris ruled over just three cities and two thousand soldiers: his reign was marked by passionate and proactive despair; in every military campaign, he risked his life and crown, while his enemies at the Hellespont and the Mæander were taken aback by his speed and defeated by his bravery. An 18-year victorious reign expanded the principality of Nice into something akin to an empire. The throne of his successor and son-in-law Vataces was built on a sturdier foundation, broader vision, and more abundant resources; Vataces had both the mindset and the goal to assess risk, anticipate the moment, and ensure the success of his ambitious plans. In the context of the decline of the Latins, I briefly highlighted the progress of the Greeks; the cautious and steady advances of a conqueror who, during his thirty-three-year rule, liberated the provinces from both national and foreign oppressors, until he surrounded the Imperial city, a lifeless and withered trunk, which would fall at the first blow of an axe. But his internal and peaceful governance deserves even more attention and praise. 3 The misfortunes of the times had depleted the Greeks in numbers and resources; the incentives and means for agriculture had been wiped out; and the most fertile lands had been left uncultivated and uninhabited. Some of this vacant land was occupied and improved under the direction and for the benefit of the emperor: a strong hand and a watchful eye, through skilled management, surpassed the painstaking efforts of a private farmer; the royal domain became the garden and granary of Asia; and without impoverishing the people, the sovereign amassed a fund of harmless and productive wealth. Depending on the type of soil, his lands were planted with grains or vineyards; the pastures were filled with horses, oxen, sheep, and pigs; and when Vataces gifted the empress a crown of diamonds and pearls, he smiled and informed her that this precious item came from the sale of the eggs of his countless poultry. The produce from his lands funded the upkeep of his palace and various charities, reflecting both dignity and generosity: the lesson was even more beneficial than the revenue itself: agriculture regained its former prestige and security; and the nobles were encouraged to seek reliable and independent income from their estates, rather than flaunting their extravagant poverty by oppressing the people or, similarly, relying on the favors from the court. The surplus of grains and livestock was eagerly bought by the Turks, with whom Vataces maintained a strict and genuine alliance; however, he discouraged the importation of foreign goods, the expensive silks of the East, and the intricate products of Italian weavers. “The needs of nature and necessity,” he often said, “are essential; but the sway of fashion can rise and fall at the whim of a monarch;” and both his teachings and actions advocated for simple living and the appreciation of domestic production. The education of youth and the revival of learning were the primary concerns of his governance; and without establishing a hierarchy, he rightly stated that a prince and a philosopher 4 represent the two most remarkable roles in human society. His first wife was Irene, the daughter of Theodore Lascaris, a woman more distinguished for her personal virtues and the gentler qualities of her gender than for the blood of the Angeli and Comneni that flowed in her veins, which carried the legacy of the empire. After her death, he became engaged to Anne, or Constance, a legitimate daughter of Emperor Frederic 499 the Second; but since the bride was not yet of age, Vataces took an Italian damsel from her entourage to his lonely bed, bestowing on his mistress the honors, though not the title, of a legal empress. His weakness was condemned as a shameful and terrible sin by the monks; their harsh criticisms tested and showcased the patience of the royal lover. A philosophical era may overlook a single vice if balanced by a multitude of virtues; and when reflecting on his faults and the more excessive passions of Lascaris, the judgment of their contemporaries softened with gratitude for the second founders of the empire. 5 The slaves of the Latins, living without law or peace, celebrated the happiness of their fellow countrymen who had regained their national liberty; and Vataces wisely aimed to persuade the Greeks of all dominions that it was in their best interest to join his subjects.

1 (return)
[ For the reigns of the Nicene emperors, more especially of John Vataces and his son, their minister, George Acropolita, is the only genuine contemporary; but George Pachymer returned to Constantinople with the Greeks at the age of nineteen, (Hanckius de Script. Byzant. c. 33, 34, p. 564—578. Fabric. Bibliot. Græc. tom. vi. p. 448—460.) Yet the history of Nicephorus Gregoras, though of the xivth century, is a valuable narrative from the taking of Constantinople by the Latins.]

1 (return)
[ During the time of the Nicene emperors, especially John Vataces and his son, the only true contemporary source is their minister, George Acropolita. However, George Pachymer returned to Constantinople with the Greeks when he was just nineteen (Hanckius de Script. Byzant. c. 33, 34, p. 564—578. Fabric. Bibliot. Græc. tom. vi. p. 448—460.). Still, the history written by Nicephorus Gregoras, although from the 14th century, provides a valuable account of the capture of Constantinople by the Latins.]

2 (return)
[ Nicephorus Gregoras (l. ii. c. 1) distinguishes between the oxeia ormh of Lascaris, and the eustaqeia of Vataces. The two portraits are in a very good style.]

2 (return)
[Nicephorus Gregoras (l. ii. c. 1) makes a distinction between the bold character of Lascaris and the steadiness of Vataces. The two portrayals are in a very good style.]

3 (return)
[ Pachymer, l. i. c. 23, 24. Nic. Greg. l. ii. c. 6. The reader of the Byzantines must observe how rarely we are indulged with such precious details.]

3 (return)
[Pachymer, l. i. c. 23, 24. Nic. Greg. l. ii. c. 6. Readers of Byzantine history should note how seldom we are treated to such valuable details.]

4 (return)
[ Monoi gar apantwn anqrwpwn onomastotatoi basileuV kai jilosojoV, (Greg. Acropol. c. 32.) The emperor, in a familiar conversation, examined and encouraged the studies of his future logothete.]

4 (return)
[ For among all people, the one known as the wise and learned king (Greg. Acropol. c. 32.) had a casual conversation with the emperor, who discussed and supported the studies of his future logothete.]

499 (return)
[ Sister of Manfred, afterwards king of Naples. Nic. Greg. p. 45.—M.]

499 (return)
[ Sister of Manfred, later king of Naples. Nic. Greg. p. 45.—M.]

5 (return)
[ Compare Acropolita, (c. 18, 52,) and the two first books of Nicephorus Gregoras.]

5 (return)
[ Compare Acropolita, (c. 18, 52,) and the first two books of Nicephorus Gregoras.]

A strong shade of degeneracy is visible between John Vataces and his son Theodore; between the founder who sustained the weight, and the heir who enjoyed the splendor, of the Imperial crown. 6 Yet the character of Theodore was not devoid of energy; he had been educated in the school of his father, in the exercise of war and hunting; Constantinople was yet spared; but in the three years of a short reign, he thrice led his armies into the heart of Bulgaria. His virtues were sullied by a choleric and suspicious temper: the first of these may be ascribed to the ignorance of control; and the second might naturally arise from a dark and imperfect view of the corruption of mankind. On a march in Bulgaria, he consulted on a question of policy his principal ministers; and the Greek logothete, George Acropolita, presumed to offend him by the declaration of a free and honest opinion. The emperor half unsheathed his cimeter; but his more deliberate rage reserved Acropolita for a baser punishment. One of the first officers of the empire was ordered to dismount, stripped of his robes, and extended on the ground in the presence of the prince and army. In this posture he was chastised with so many and such heavy blows from the clubs of two guards or executioners, that when Theodore commanded them to cease, the great logothete was scarcely able to rise and crawl away to his tent. After a seclusion of some days, he was recalled by a peremptory mandate to his seat in council; and so dead were the Greeks to the sense of honor and shame, that it is from the narrative of the sufferer himself that we acquire the knowledge of his disgrace. 7 The cruelty of the emperor was exasperated by the pangs of sickness, the approach of a premature end, and the suspicion of poison and magic. The lives and fortunes, the eyes and limbs, of his kinsmen and nobles, were sacrificed to each sally of passion; and before he died, the son of Vataces might deserve from the people, or at least from the court, the appellation of tyrant. A matron of the family of the Palæologi had provoked his anger by refusing to bestow her beauteous daughter on the vile plebeian who was recommended by his caprice. Without regard to her birth or age, her body, as high as the neck, was enclosed in a sack with several cats, who were pricked with pins to irritate their fury against their unfortunate fellow-captive. In his last hours the emperor testified a wish to forgive and be forgiven, a just anxiety for the fate of John his son and successor, who, at the age of eight years, was condemned to the dangers of a long minority. His last choice intrusted the office of guardian to the sanctity of the patriarch Arsenius, and to the courage of George Muzalon, the great domestic, who was equally distinguished by the royal favor and the public hatred. Since their connection with the Latins, the names and privileges of hereditary rank had insinuated themselves into the Greek monarchy; and the noble families 8 were provoked by the elevation of a worthless favorite, to whose influence they imputed the errors and calamities of the late reign. In the first council, after the emperor’s death, Muzalon, from a lofty throne, pronounced a labored apology of his conduct and intentions: his modesty was subdued by a unanimous assurance of esteem and fidelity; and his most inveterate enemies were the loudest to salute him as the guardian and savior of the Romans. Eight days were sufficient to prepare the execution of the conspiracy. On the ninth, the obsequies of the deceased monarch were solemnized in the cathedral of Magnesia, 9 an Asiatic city, where he expired, on the banks of the Hermus, and at the foot of Mount Sipylus. The holy rites were interrupted by a sedition of the guards; Muzalon, his brothers, and his adherents, were massacred at the foot of the altar; and the absent patriarch was associated with a new colleague, with Michael Palæologus, the most illustrious, in birth and merit, of the Greek nobles. 10

A glaring decline is evident between John Vataces and his son Theodore; between the founder who bore the burden, and the heir who reveled in the luxury of the Imperial crown. 6 Nonetheless, Theodore's character was not lacking in vigor; he had been raised in his father's mold, trained in war and hunting; Constantinople had not yet fallen; but during his brief three-year reign, he led his armies into Bulgaria three times. His strengths were tainted by a hot-headed and distrustful nature: the first might stem from a lack of self-control; the second could naturally come from a grim and incomplete understanding of humanity's corruption. While marching in Bulgaria, he consulted his chief ministers about a policy matter; the Greek logothete, George Acropolita, dared to offend him by expressing a candid opinion. The emperor partially drew his sword; however, his more considered anger reserved Acropolita for a more disgraceful punishment. One of the leading officials of the empire was ordered to dismount, stripped of his robes, and laid on the ground in front of the prince and army. In this position, he was beaten with so many hard blows from the clubs of two guards or executioners that when Theodore finally ordered them to stop, the great logothete could hardly rise and crawl away to his tent. After several days in seclusion, he was summoned back to his council seat; and so numb were the Greeks to notions of honor and shame that we learn of his disgrace only from the narrative of the victim himself. 7 The emperor's cruelty was fueled by the agony of illness, the dread of an early death, and suspicions of poison and sorcery. The lives, fortunes, and even the bodies of his relatives and nobles were sacrificed to his outbursts of emotion; and before he passed away, Vataces' son might rightly earn the title of tyrant from the people, or at least from the court. A matron from the Palæologus family angered him by refusing to give her beautiful daughter to an unworthy plebeian he favored. Without regard for her status or age, her body, up to her neck, was placed in a sack with several cats, who were poked with pins to stir their rage against their unfortunate companion. In his final moments, the emperor expressed a desire to forgive and be forgiven, showing genuine concern for the fate of his eight-year-old son and successor, who faced the perils of an extended minority. His last choice appointed the guard duty to the integrity of the patriarch Arsenius, along with the courage of George Muzalon, the great domestic, who was equally renowned for royal favor and public disdain. Since their ties with the Latins, the names and privileges of inherited rank had infiltrated the Greek monarchy; and the noble families 8 were incensed by the rise of a worthless favorite, to whom they attributed the mistakes and misfortunes of the last reign. In the first council meeting after the emperor's death, Muzalon, from a grand throne, delivered a lengthy justification of his actions and intentions: his humility was overwhelmed by a collective expression of respect and loyalty; and his most persistent adversaries were the loudest to hail him as the guardian and savior of the Romans. Eight days were enough to plan the execution of the conspiracy. On the ninth day, the funeral for the deceased monarch was held in the cathedral of Magnesia, 9 an Asian city where he died, on the banks of the Hermus, at the foot of Mount Sipylus. The sacred rites were interrupted by a riot among the guards; Muzalon, his brothers, and his supporters were slaughtered at the altar’s foot; and the absent patriarch was joined by a new partner, Michael Palæologus, the most distinguished in both birth and merit among the Greek nobility. 10

6 (return)
[ A Persian saying, that Cyrus was the father and Darius the master, of his subjects, was applied to Vataces and his son. But Pachymer (l. i. c. 23) has mistaken the mild Darius for the cruel Cambyses, despot or tyrant of his people. By the institution of taxes, Darius had incurred the less odious, but more contemptible, name of KaphloV, merchant or broker, (Herodotus, iii. 89.)]

6 (return)
[There's a Persian saying that Cyrus was the father and Darius the master of his people, which was also used for Vataces and his son. However, Pachymer (l. i. c. 23) confused the gentle Darius with the harsh Cambyses, a tyrant to his subjects. By introducing taxes, Darius earned the less hateful, but more disrespectful, title of KaphloV, which means merchant or broker (Herodotus, iii. 89).]

7 (return)
[ Acropolita (c. 63) seems to admire his own firmness in sustaining a beating, and not returning to council till he was called. He relates the exploits of Theodore, and his own services, from c. 53 to c. 74 of his history. See the third book of Nicephorus Gregoras.]

7 (return)
[ Acropolita (c. 63) appears to take pride in his ability to endure a beating without going back to the council until summoned. He recounts the achievements of Theodore and his own contributions, from c. 53 to c. 74 of his history. See the third book of Nicephorus Gregoras.]

8 (return)
[ Pachymer (l. i. c. 21) names and discriminates fifteen or twenty Greek families, kai osoi alloi, oiV h megalogenhV seira kai crush sugkekrothto. Does he mean, by this decoration, a figurative or a real golden chain? Perhaps, both.]

8 (return)
[ Pachymer (l. i. c. 21) mentions and distinguishes around fifteen or twenty Greek families, as well as others, in the great lineage and lineage intermingled. Is he referring to a symbolic or a literal golden chain with this decoration? Maybe both.]

9 (return)
[ The old geographers, with Cellarius and D’Anville, and our travellers, particularly Pocock and Chandler, will teach us to distinguish the two Magnesias of Asia Minor, of the Mæander and of Sipylus. The latter, our present object, is still flourishing for a Turkish city, and lies eight hours, or leagues, to the north-east of Smyrna, (Tournefort, Voyage du Levant, tom. iii. lettre xxii. p. 365—370. Chandler’s Travels into Asia Minor, p. 267.)]

9 (return)
[The old geographers, like Cellarius and D’Anville, along with our explorers, especially Pocock and Chandler, will help us differentiate between the two Magnesias in Asia Minor, one by the Mæander River and the other by Sipylus. The latter, which is our focus now, continues to thrive as a Turkish city and is located eight hours, or leagues, northeast of Smyrna, (Tournefort, Voyage du Levant, vol. iii, letter xxii, pp. 365—370. Chandler’s Travels into Asia Minor, p. 267.)]

10 (return)
[ See Acropolita, (c. 75, 76, &c.,) who lived too near the times; Pachymer, (l. i. c. 13—25,) Gregoras, (l. iii. c. 3, 4, 5.)]

10 (return)
[ See Acropolita, (c. 75, 76, &c.,) who lived too close to the events; Pachymer, (l. i. c. 13—25,) Gregoras, (l. iii. c. 3, 4, 5.)]

Of those who are proud of their ancestors, the far greater part must be content with local or domestic renown; and few there are who dare trust the memorials of their family to the public annals of their country. As early as the middle of the eleventh century, the noble race of the Palæologi 11 stands high and conspicuous in the Byzantine history: it was the valiant George Palæologus who placed the father of the Comneni on the throne; and his kinsmen or descendants continue, in each generation, to lead the armies and councils of the state. The purple was not dishonored by their alliance, and had the law of succession, and female succession, been strictly observed, the wife of Theodore Lascaris must have yielded to her elder sister, the mother of Michael Palæologus, who afterwards raised his family to the throne. In his person, the splendor of birth was dignified by the merit of the soldier and statesman: in his early youth he was promoted to the office of constable or commander of the French mercenaries; the private expense of a day never exceeded three pieces of gold; but his ambition was rapacious and profuse; and his gifts were doubled by the graces of his conversation and manners. The love of the soldiers and people excited the jealousy of the court, and Michael thrice escaped from the dangers in which he was involved by his own imprudence or that of his friends. I. Under the reign of Justice and Vataces, a dispute arose 12 between two officers, one of whom accused the other of maintaining the hereditary right of the Palæologi The cause was decided, according to the new jurisprudence of the Latins, by single combat; the defendant was overthrown; but he persisted in declaring that himself alone was guilty; and that he had uttered these rash or treasonable speeches without the approbation or knowledge of his patron. Yet a cloud of suspicion hung over the innocence of the constable; he was still pursued by the whispers of malevolence; and a subtle courtier, the archbishop of Philadelphia, urged him to accept the judgment of God in the fiery proof of the ordeal. 13 Three days before the trial, the patient’s arm was enclosed in a bag, and secured by the royal signet; and it was incumbent on him to bear a red-hot ball of iron three times from the altar to the rails of the sanctuary, without artifice and without injury. Palæologus eluded the dangerous experiment with sense and pleasantry. “I am a soldier,” said he, “and will boldly enter the lists with my accusers; but a layman, a sinner like myself, is not endowed with the gift of miracles. Your piety, most holy prelate, may deserve the interposition of Heaven, and from your hands I will receive the fiery globe, the pledge of my innocence.” The archbishop started; the emperor smiled; and the absolution or pardon of Michael was approved by new rewards and new services. II. In the succeeding reign, as he held the government of Nice, he was secretly informed, that the mind of the absent prince was poisoned with jealousy; and that death, or blindness, would be his final reward. Instead of awaiting the return and sentence of Theodore, the constable, with some followers, escaped from the city and the empire; and though he was plundered by the Turkmans of the desert, he found a hospitable refuge in the court of the sultan. In the ambiguous state of an exile, Michael reconciled the duties of gratitude and loyalty: drawing his sword against the Tartars; admonishing the garrisons of the Roman limit; and promoting, by his influence, the restoration of peace, in which his pardon and recall were honorably included. III. While he guarded the West against the despot of Epirus, Michael was again suspected and condemned in the palace; and such was his loyalty or weakness, that he submitted to be led in chains above six hundred miles from Durazzo to Nice. The civility of the messenger alleviated his disgrace; the emperor’s sickness dispelled his danger; and the last breath of Theodore, which recommended his infant son, at once acknowledged the innocence and the power of Palæologus.

Of those who take pride in their ancestors, most can only feel satisfied with local or family fame; very few trust their family’s legacy to the public records of their country. As early as the mid-eleventh century, the noble line of the Palæologi appears prominently in Byzantine history: the brave George Palæologus was responsible for placing the father of the Comneni on the throne, and his relatives or descendants have led the army and state councils in each generation. Their lineage was not tarnished by their associations, and had the laws of succession, particularly regarding women, been strictly followed, the wife of Theodore Lascaris would have had to yield to her elder sister, the mother of Michael Palæologus, who later elevated his family to the throne. In him, noble birth was enhanced by the abilities of a soldier and statesman: in his youth, he was promoted to the position of constable or commander of the French mercenaries; his daily private expenses never exceeded three gold pieces; however, his ambition was insatiable and extravagant, and his generosity was matched by his charm and manner. The affection of the soldiers and the populace stirred jealousy at court, and Michael managed to escape the perils brought on by his own recklessness or that of his associates three times. I. Under the reign of Justice and Vataces, a disagreement arose 12 between two officers, one accusing the other of supporting the hereditary claim of the Palæologi. The matter was decided, following the new laws inspired by the Latins, through single combat; the defendant was defeated; yet he insisted that he alone was guilty and had made those reckless or traitorous remarks without the approval or knowledge of his benefactor. Still, doubts lingered over the constable’s innocence; he was hounded by rumors; and a cunning courtier, the archbishop of Philadelphia, urged him to submit to a trial by ordeal. 13 Three days before the trial, the accused's arm was placed inside a bag, secured with the royal seal, and he was required to carry a red-hot iron ball three times from the altar to the sanctuary's rail without trickery and without injury. Palæologus cleverly avoided this dangerous trial with wit and reason. “I am a soldier,” he said, “and I will confidently face my accusers; but a layman, a sinner like me, doesn’t have the power for miracles. Your holiness, most reverend prelate, may be worthy of divine intervention, and I will accept the fiery globe, the symbol of my innocence, from your hands.” The archbishop was taken aback; the emperor smiled; and Michael’s absolution was confirmed by new honors and services. II. In the following reign, as he governed Nice, he secretly learned that the absent prince was consumed with jealousy and that death or exile awaited him. Instead of waiting for Theodore’s return and verdict, the constable fled the city and the empire with a few followers; and although he was robbed by the desert Turkmens, he found a warm welcome at the sultan’s court. In the uncertain life of an exile, Michael balanced his duties of gratitude and loyalty: he fought the Tartars, warned the garrisons along the Roman frontiers, and used his influence to help restore peace, which included his pardon and return. III. While he defended the West against the tyrant of Epirus, Michael again faced suspicion and condemnation at court; and despite his loyalty or perhaps weakness, he endured being taken in chains over six hundred miles from Durazzo to Nice. The courtesy of the messenger eased his disgrace; the emperor's illness removed his threat; and Theodore's last breath, which entrusted his infant son to Michael, acknowledged both his innocence and his strength.

11 (return)
[ The pedigree of Palæologus is explained by Ducange, (Famil. Byzant. p. 230, &c.:) the events of his private life are related by Pachymer (l. i. c. 7—12) and Gregoras (l. ii. 8, l. iii. 2, 4, l. iv. 1) with visible favor to the father of the reigning dynasty.]

11 (return)
[ Ducange explains the lineage of Palæologus (Famil. Byzant. p. 230, &c.), while Pachymer (l. i. c. 7—12) and Gregoras (l. ii. 8, l. iii. 2, 4, l. iv. 1) recount the events of his personal life, showing clear support for the father of the current dynasty.]

12 (return)
[ Acropolita (c. 50) relates the circumstances of this curious adventure, which seem to have escaped the more recent writers.]

12 (return)
[ Acropolita (c. 50) relates the details of this interesting adventure, which appear to have been overlooked by more recent authors.]

13 (return)
[ Pachymer, (l. i. c. 12,) who speaks with proper contempt of this barbarous trial, affirms, that he had seen in his youth many person who had sustained, without injury, the fiery ordeal. As a Greek, he is credulous; but the ingenuity of the Greeks might furnish some remedies of art or fraud against their own superstition, or that of their tyrant.]

13 (return)
[ Pachymer, (l. i. c. 12,) who expresses proper disdain for this brutal trial, claims that in his youth he witnessed many people who endured the fiery ordeal without harm. As a Greek, he is somewhat gullible; however, the cleverness of the Greeks could provide some tricks of art or deception to counter their own superstition or that of their tyrant.]

But his innocence had been too unworthily treated, and his power was too strongly felt, to curb an aspiring subject in the fair field that was opened to his ambition. 14 In the council, after the death of Theodore, he was the first to pronounce, and the first to violate, the oath of allegiance to Muzalon; and so dexterous was his conduct, that he reaped the benefit, without incurring the guilt, or at least the reproach, of the subsequent massacre. In the choice of a regent, he balanced the interests and passions of the candidates; turned their envy and hatred from himself against each other, and forced every competitor to own, that after his own claims, those of Palæologus were best entitled to the preference. Under the title of great duke, he accepted or assumed, during a long minority, the active powers of government; the patriarch was a venerable name; and the factious nobles were seduced, or oppressed, by the ascendant of his genius. The fruits of the economy of Vataces were deposited in a strong castle on the banks of the Hermus, in the custody of the faithful Varangians: the constable retained his command or influence over the foreign troops; he employed the guards to possess the treasure, and the treasure to corrupt the guards; and whatsoever might be the abuse of the public money, his character was above the suspicion of private avarice. By himself, or by his emissaries, he strove to persuade every rank of subjects, that their own prosperity would rise in just proportion to the establishment of his authority. The weight of taxes was suspended, the perpetual theme of popular complaint; and he prohibited the trials by the ordeal and judicial combat. These Barbaric institutions were already abolished or undermined in France 15 and England; 16 and the appeal to the sword offended the sense of a civilized, 17 and the temper of an unwarlike, people. For the future maintenance of their wives and children, the veterans were grateful: the priests and the philosophers applauded his ardent zeal for the advancement of religion and learning; and his vague promise of rewarding merit was applied by every candidate to his own hopes. Conscious of the influence of the clergy, Michael successfully labored to secure the suffrage of that powerful order. Their expensive journey from Nice to Magnesia, afforded a decent and ample pretence: the leading prelates were tempted by the liberality of his nocturnal visits; and the incorruptible patriarch was flattered by the homage of his new colleague, who led his mule by the bridle into the town, and removed to a respectful distance the importunity of the crowd. Without renouncing his title by royal descent, Palæologus encouraged a free discussion into the advantages of elective monarchy; and his adherents asked, with the insolence of triumph, what patient would trust his health, or what merchant would abandon his vessel, to the hereditary skill of a physician or a pilot? The youth of the emperor, and the impending dangers of a minority, required the support of a mature and experienced guardian; of an associate raised above the envy of his equals, and invested with the name and prerogatives of royalty. For the interest of the prince and people, without any selfish views for himself or his family, the great duke consented to guard and instruct the son of Theodore; but he sighed for the happy moment when he might restore to his firmer hands the administration of his patrimony, and enjoy the blessings of a private station. He was first invested with the title and prerogatives of despot, which bestowed the purple ornaments and the second place in the Roman monarchy. It was afterwards agreed that John and Michael should be proclaimed as joint emperors, and raised on the buckler, but that the preeminence should be reserved for the birthright of the former. A mutual league of amity was pledged between the royal partners; and in case of a rupture, the subjects were bound, by their oath of allegiance, to declare themselves against the aggressor; an ambiguous name, the seed of discord and civil war. Palæologus was content; but, on the day of the coronation, and in the cathedral of Nice, his zealous adherents most vehemently urged the just priority of his age and merit. The unseasonable dispute was eluded by postponing to a more convenient opportunity the coronation of John Lascaris; and he walked with a slight diadem in the train of his guardian, who alone received the Imperial crown from the hands of the patriarch. It was not without extreme reluctance that Arsenius abandoned the cause of his pupil; out the Varangians brandished their battle-axes; a sign of assent was extorted from the trembling youth; and some voices were heard, that the life of a child should no longer impede the settlement of the nation. A full harvest of honors and employments was distributed among his friends by the grateful Palæologus. In his own family he created a despot and two sebastocrators; Alexius Strategopulus was decorated with the title of Cæsar; and that veteran commander soon repaid the obligation, by restoring Constantinople to the Greek emperor.

But his innocence had been treated too unfairly, and his power was too significant to hold back an ambitious subject in the promising field that lay before him. 14 In the council, after Theodore's death, he was the first to declare, and the first to break, the oath of loyalty to Muzalon; and his skillful actions allowed him to benefit from the situation without bearing the guilt, or at least the blame, of the subsequent massacre. In choosing a regent, he balanced the interests and feelings of the candidates; he redirected their envy and hatred away from himself and toward one another, convincing every contender that after his own claims, Palæologus deserved the most consideration. Under the title of great duke, he accepted or took on the active powers of government during a prolonged minority; the patriarch held a respected position; and the feuding nobles were either lulled, or suppressed, by the strength of his genius. The rewards of Vataces' frugality were secured in a stronghold along the Hermus, protected by the loyal Varangians: the constable maintained his command or influence over the foreign troops; he utilized the guards to take hold of the treasure, and the treasure to corrupt the guards; and whatever misuse of public funds occurred, his character remained above suspicion of personal greed. Through himself or his agents, he worked to convince every rank of subjects that their own well-being would increase in direct proportion to his authority. The burden of taxes was eased, a constant source of public complaint; and he banned trials by ordeal and combat. These barbaric practices had already been abolished or weakened in France 15 and England; 16 and the appeal to arms offended the sensibilities of a civilized, 17 and the temperament of a non-military, populace. The veterans were grateful for their future support for their wives and children: the priests and philosophers praised his passionate commitment to the advancement of religion and education; and his vague promise of rewarding talent was interpreted by every candidate in terms of their own aspirations. Aware of the clergy's influence, Michael worked diligently to secure the support of that powerful group. Their costly journey from Nice to Magnesia provided a legitimate and ample excuse: the leading bishops were enticed by his generous late-night visits; and the incorruptible patriarch was flattered by the respect shown by his new colleague, who led his mule into town, and tactfully kept the crowd at a distance. Without renouncing his royal lineage, Palæologus encouraged an open debate on the benefits of elective monarchy; and his supporters boldly questioned who would trust a physician or a pilot's inherent skill when it came to their health or cargo. The youth of the emperor, combined with the looming dangers of a minority, necessitated the support of a mature and seasoned guardian; someone elevated above the jealousy of his peers and endowed with the title and privileges of royalty. For the sake of the prince and the people, without any selfish aims for himself or his family, the great duke agreed to protect and guide Theodore's son; yet he longed for the day when he could take back the administration of his estate and enjoy the rewards of a private life. He was first granted the title and privileges of despot, which conferred the purple insignia and the second position in the Roman monarchy. It was eventually determined that John and Michael would be proclaimed as joint emperors and raised on the shield, but that priority would be preserved for the birthright of the former. A mutual agreement of friendship was promised between the royal partners; and in the event of a conflict, the subjects were obligated, by their oath of allegiance, to side against the aggressor; an ambiguous term, the root of discord and civil war. Palæologus was satisfied; however, on coronation day, and in the Nice cathedral, his passionate supporters fervently argued for his rightful precedence based on age and merit. The inconvenient dispute was sidestepped by rescheduling John Lascaris's coronation to a more suitable occasion, and he walked behind his guardian wearing a slight diadem, who alone received the Imperial crown from the patriarch's hands. It was not without great reluctance that Arsenius turned his back on his pupil's case; but the Varangians raised their battle-axes; a sign of agreement was wrested from the trembling young man; and voices were raised declaring that a child's life should no longer obstruct the nation's resolution. Palæologus generously distributed a wealth of honors and positions among his supporters. He appointed a despot and two sebastocrators within his family; Alexius Strategopulus was honored with the title of Cæsar; and that seasoned commander soon repaid the favor by restoring Constantinople to the Greek emperor.

14 (return)
[ Without comparing Pachymer to Thucydides or Tacitus, I will praise his narrative, (l. i. c. 13—32, l. ii. c. 1—9,) which pursues the ascent of Palæologus with eloquence, perspicuity, and tolerable freedom. Acropolita is more cautious, and Gregoras more concise.]

14 (return)
[ Without comparing Pachymer to Thucydides or Tacitus, I will commend his narrative, (l. i. c. 13—32, l. ii. c. 1—9,) which follows the rise of Palæologus with eloquence, clarity, and reasonable freedom. Acropolita is more careful, and Gregoras is more concise.]

15 (return)
[ The judicial combat was abolished by St. Louis in his own territories; and his example and authority were at length prevalent in France, (Esprit des Loix, l. xxviii. c. 29.)]

15 (return)
[ St. Louis ended judicial combat in his own lands, and eventually his example and authority spread throughout France, (Esprit des Loix, l. xxviii. c. 29.)]

16 (return)
[ In civil cases Henry II. gave an option to the defendant: Glanville prefers the proof by evidence; and that by judicial combat is reprobated in the Fleta. Yet the trial by battle has never been abrogated in the English law, and it was ordered by the judges as late as the beginning of the last century. * Note : And even demanded in the present.—M.]

16 (return)
[ In civil cases, Henry II allowed the defendant a choice: Glanville favors proving their case with evidence, while Fleta disapproves of trial by combat. However, trial by battle has never been abolished in English law, and judges ordered it as recently as the start of the last century. * Note: It's even been requested in the present.—M.]

17 (return)
[ Yet an ingenious friend has urged to me in mitigation of this practice, 1. That in nations emerging from barbarism, it moderates the license of private war and arbitrary revenge. 2. That it is less absurd than the trials by the ordeal, or boiling water, or the cross, which it has contributed to abolish. 3. That it served at least as a test of personal courage; a quality so seldom united with a base disposition, that the danger of a trial might be some check to a malicious prosecutor, and a useful barrier against injustice supported by power. The gallant and unfortunate earl of Surrey might probably have escaped his unmerited fate, had not his demand of the combat against his accuser been overruled.]

17 (return)
[ Yet a clever friend has pointed out to me that this practice has its benefits: 1. That in societies moving away from savagery, it helps limit the freedom of private warfare and random revenge. 2. That it makes more sense than trials by ordeal, boiling water, or the cross, which it has helped eliminate. 3. That it at least tests personal bravery; a quality rarely found in someone with a malicious nature, which could deter a vindictive prosecutor and provide a useful defense against abuse of power. The brave and unfortunate Earl of Surrey might have avoided his undeserved fate if his request for a duel with his accuser hadn't been denied.]

It was in the second year of his reign, while he resided in the palace and gardens of Nymphæum, 18 near Smyrna, that the first messenger arrived at the dead of night; and the stupendous intelligence was imparted to Michael, after he had been gently waked by the tender precaution of his sister Eulogia. The man was unknown or obscure; he produced no letters from the victorious Cæsar; nor could it easily be credited, after the defeat of Vataces and the recent failure of Palæologus himself, that the capital had been surprised by a detachment of eight hundred soldiers. As a hostage, the doubtful author was confined, with the assurance of death or an ample recompense; and the court was left some hours in the anxiety of hope and fear, till the messengers of Alexius arrived with the authentic intelligence, and displayed the trophies of the conquest, the sword and sceptre, 19 the buskins and bonnet, 20 of the usurper Baldwin, which he had dropped in his precipitate flight. A general assembly of the bishops, senators, and nobles, was immediately convened, and never perhaps was an event received with more heartfelt and universal joy. In a studied oration, the new sovereign of Constantinople congratulated his own and the public fortune. “There was a time,” said he, “a far distant time, when the Roman empire extended to the Adriatic, the Tigris, and the confines of Æthiopia. After the loss of the provinces, our capital itself, in these last and calamitous days, has been wrested from our hands by the Barbarians of the West. From the lowest ebb, the tide of prosperity has again returned in our favor; but our prosperity was that of fugitives and exiles: and when we were asked, which was the country of the Romans, we indicated with a blush the climate of the globe, and the quarter of the heavens. The divine Providence has now restored to our arms the city of Constantine, the sacred seat of religion and empire; and it will depend on our valor and conduct to render this important acquisition the pledge and omen of future victories.” So eager was the impatience of the prince and people, that Michael made his triumphal entry into Constantinople only twenty days after the expulsion of the Latins. The golden gate was thrown open at his approach; the devout conqueror dismounted from his horse; and a miraculous image of Mary the Conductress was borne before him, that the divine Virgin in person might appear to conduct him to the temple of her Son, the cathedral of St. Sophia. But after the first transport of devotion and pride, he sighed at the dreary prospect of solitude and ruin. The palace was defiled with smoke and dirt, and the gross intemperance of the Franks; whole streets had been consumed by fire, or were decayed by the injuries of time; the sacred and profane edifices were stripped of their ornaments: and, as if they were conscious of their approaching exile, the industry of the Latins had been confined to the work of pillage and destruction. Trade had expired under the pressure of anarchy and distress, and the numbers of inhabitants had decreased with the opulence of the city. It was the first care of the Greek monarch to reinstate the nobles in the palaces of their fathers; and the houses or the ground which they occupied were restored to the families that could exhibit a legal right of inheritance. But the far greater part was extinct or lost; the vacant property had devolved to the lord; he repeopled Constantinople by a liberal invitation to the provinces; and the brave volunteers were seated in the capital which had been recovered by their arms. The French barons and the principal families had retired with their emperor; but the patient and humble crowd of Latins was attached to the country, and indifferent to the change of masters. Instead of banishing the factories of the Pisans, Venetians, and Genoese, the prudent conqueror accepted their oaths of allegiance, encouraged their industry, confirmed their privileges, and allowed them to live under the jurisdiction of their proper magistrates. Of these nations, the Pisans and Venetians preserved their respective quarters in the city; but the services and power of the Genoese deserved at the same time the gratitude and the jealousy of the Greeks. Their independent colony was first planted at the seaport town of Heraclea in Thrace. They were speedily recalled, and settled in the exclusive possession of the suburb of Galata, an advantageous post, in which they revived the commerce, and insulted the majesty, of the Byzantine empire. 21

It was in the second year of his reign, while he was living in the palace and gardens of Nymphæum, 18 near Smyrna, that the first messenger arrived at the dead of night; and the astonishing news was shared with Michael after his sister Eulogia gently woke him. The man was unknown or obscure; he had no letters from the victorious Cæsar; nor was it easy to believe that, following the defeat of Vataces and the recent failure of Palæologus himself, the capital had been surprised by a group of eight hundred soldiers. As a hostage, the uncertain messenger was detained, with the threat of death or a generous reward; and the court was left for hours in anxious hope and fear until Alexius's messengers arrived with confirmed news and displayed the trophies of the conquest: the sword and scepter, 19 the boots and hat, 20 of the usurper Baldwin, which he had dropped in his hurried flight. A general assembly of bishops, senators, and nobles was immediately convened, and probably no event was met with more heartfelt and widespread joy. In a carefully prepared speech, the new sovereign of Constantinople congratulated himself and the public on their fortune. “There was once,” he said, “a very long time ago, when the Roman Empire stretched to the Adriatic, the Tigris, and the borders of Ethiopia. After losing the provinces, our capital itself, in these last and disastrous days, has been taken from us by the Barbarians of the West. From our lowest point, the tide of prosperity has returned to us; but our prosperity was that of refugees and exiles: and when we were asked, which was the country of the Romans, we blushed and pointed to the climate of the globe and the sector of the heavens. Divine Providence has now returned to us the city of Constantine, the holy seat of religion and empire; and it will depend on our bravery and leadership to make this significant gain a promise and sign of future victories.” So eager were the prince and people that Michael made his triumphant entry into Constantinople just twenty days after expelling the Latins. The golden gate was opened at his approach; the devout conqueror got off his horse; and a miraculous image of Mary the Conductress was carried before him, so that the divine Virgin herself might guide him to her Son's temple, the cathedral of St. Sophia. But after the initial thrill of devotion and pride, he sighed at the bleak reality of solitude and ruin. The palace was sullied with smoke and dirt, and the gross excesses of the Franks; whole streets had been burned down or decayed with age; the sacred and profane buildings had been stripped of their decorations: and, as if they were aware of their impending exile, the Latins focused only on looting and destruction. Trade had collapsed under the weight of chaos and hardship, and the population had dwindled along with the city’s wealth. The first priority of the Greek king was to restore the nobles to their ancestral homes; and the properties or land they had occupied were returned to families that could prove a legal right of inheritance. However, most were extinct or lost; the vacant properties had reverted to the lord; he repopulated Constantinople through an open invitation to the provinces; and the brave volunteers settled in the capital regained by their arms. The French barons and leading families had withdrawn with their emperor; but the patient and humble crowd of Latins remained loyal to the land, indifferent to the change of rulers. Instead of expelling the establishments of the Pisans, Venetians, and Genoese, the wise conqueror accepted their oaths of loyalty, encouraged their trade, confirmed their rights, and allowed them to live under their own officials. Among these nations, the Pisans and Venetians maintained their respective quarters in the city; but the contributions and power of the Genoese earned both the gratitude and envy of the Greeks. Their independent colony was initially founded in the seaport town of Heraclea in Thrace. They were quickly brought back and established in the exclusive possession of the suburb of Galata, a prime location where they revived commerce and insulted the dignity of the Byzantine Empire. 21

18 (return)
[ The site of Nymphæum is not clearly defined in ancient or modern geography. But from the last hours of Vataces, (Acropolita, c. 52,) it is evident the palace and gardens of his favorite residence were in the neighborhood of Smyrna. Nymphæum might be loosely placed in Lydia, (Gregoras, l. vi. 6.)]

18 (return)
[ The exact location of Nymphæum is not clearly identified in either ancient or modern geography. However, based on the final hours of Vataces, (Acropolita, c. 52,) it is clear that the palace and gardens of his preferred residence were near Smyrna. Nymphæum could be roughly situated in Lydia, (Gregoras, l. vi. 6.)]

19 (return)
[ This sceptre, the emblem of justice and power, was a long staff, such as was used by the heroes in Homer. By the latter Greeks it was named Dicanice, and the Imperial sceptre was distinguished as usual by the red or purple color.]

19 (return)
[ This scepter, representing justice and power, was a long staff, similar to those used by the heroes in Homer's works. Later Greeks referred to it as Dicanice, and the Imperial scepter was typically marked by its red or purple color.]

20 (return)
[ Acropolita affirms (c. 87,) that this “Onnet” was after the French fashion; but from the ruby at the point or summit, Ducange (Hist. de C. P. l. v. c. 28, 29) believes that it was the high-crowned hat of the Greeks. Could Acropolita mistake the dress of his own court?]

20 (return)
[ Acropolita claims (c. 87) that this “Onnet” was in the French style; however, due to the ruby at the tip or top, Ducange (Hist. de C. P. l. v. c. 28, 29) thinks it was the high-crowned hat of the Greeks. Could Acropolita really be confused about the attire of his own court?]

21 (return)
[ See Pachymer, (l. ii. c. 28—33,) Acropolita, (c. 88,) Nicephorus Gregoras, (l. iv. 7,) and for the treatment of the subject Latins, Ducange, (l. v. c. 30, 31.)]

21 (return)
[ See Pachymer, (l. ii. c. 28—33,) Acropolita, (c. 88,) Nicephorus Gregoras, (l. iv. 7,) and for the treatment of the subject Latins, Ducange, (l. v. c. 30, 31.)]

The recovery of Constantinople was celebrated as the æra of a new empire: the conqueror, alone, and by the right of the sword, renewed his coronation in the church of St. Sophia; and the name and honors of John Lascaris, his pupil and lawful sovereign, were insensibly abolished. But his claims still lived in the minds of the people; and the royal youth must speedily attain the years of manhood and ambition. By fear or conscience, Palæologus was restrained from dipping his hands in innocent and royal blood; but the anxiety of a usurper and a parent urged him to secure his throne by one of those imperfect crimes so familiar to the modern Greeks. The loss of sight incapacitated the young prince for the active business of the world; instead of the brutal violence of tearing out his eyes, the visual nerve was destroyed by the intense glare of a red-hot basin, 22 and John Lascaris was removed to a distant castle, where he spent many years in privacy and oblivion. Such cool and deliberate guilt may seem incompatible with remorse; but if Michael could trust the mercy of Heaven, he was not inaccessible to the reproaches and vengeance of mankind, which he had provoked by cruelty and treason. His cruelty imposed on a servile court the duties of applause or silence; but the clergy had a right to speak in the name of their invisible Master; and their holy legions were led by a prelate, whose character was above the temptations of hope or fear. After a short abdication of his dignity, Arsenius 23 had consented to ascend the ecclesiastical throne of Constantinople, and to preside in the restoration of the church. His pious simplicity was long deceived by the arts of Palæologus; and his patience and submission might soothe the usurper, and protect the safety of the young prince. On the news of his inhuman treatment, the patriarch unsheathed the spiritual sword; and superstition, on this occasion, was enlisted in the cause of humanity and justice. In a synod of bishops, who were stimulated by the example of his zeal, the patriarch pronounced a sentence of excommunication; though his prudence still repeated the name of Michael in the public prayers. The Eastern prelates had not adopted the dangerous maxims of ancient Rome; nor did they presume to enforce their censures, by deposing princes, or absolving nations from their oaths of allegiance. But the Christian, who had been separated from God and the church, became an object of horror; and, in a turbulent and fanatic capital, that horror might arm the hand of an assassin, or inflame a sedition of the people. Palæologus felt his danger, confessed his guilt, and deprecated his judge: the act was irretrievable; the prize was obtained; and the most rigorous penance, which he solicited, would have raised the sinner to the reputation of a saint. The unrelenting patriarch refused to announce any means of atonement or any hopes of mercy; and condescended only to pronounce, that for so great a crime, great indeed must be the satisfaction. “Do you require,” said Michael, “that I should abdicate the empire?” and at these words, he offered, or seemed to offer, the sword of state. Arsenius eagerly grasped this pledge of sovereignty; but when he perceived that the emperor was unwilling to purchase absolution at so dear a rate, he indignantly escaped to his cell, and left the royal sinner kneeling and weeping before the door. 24

The recovery of Constantinople was celebrated as the start of a new empire: the conqueror, by himself and through force, renewed his coronation in the church of St. Sophia; and the name and honors of John Lascaris, his pupil and rightful sovereign, were gradually erased. However, his claims still lingered in the minds of the people, and the young royal had to quickly reach adulthood and ambition. Out of fear or conscience, Palæologus was held back from spilling innocent and royal blood; but the anxiety of a usurper and a parent drove him to secure his throne through one of those imperfect crimes all too familiar to modern Greeks. The loss of sight made the young prince unfit for the active affairs of the world; instead of the brutal act of tearing out his eyes, the visual nerve was destroyed by the intense glare of a red-hot basin, 22 and John Lascaris was moved to a distant castle, where he spent many years in privacy and oblivion. Such cold and deliberate guilt may seem incompatible with remorse; but if Michael could trust in the mercy of Heaven, he was not immune to the reproaches and vengeance of mankind, which he had provoked through cruelty and betrayal. His cruelty forced a servile court to either applaud or remain silent; but the clergy had the right to speak on behalf of their invisible Master; and their holy legions were led by a prelate whose character was above the pressures of hope or fear. After a brief period of stepping down from his position, Arsenius 23 agreed to take the ecclesiastical throne of Constantinople and oversee the restoration of the church. His pious simplicity was long misled by the tricks of Palæologus; and his patience and submission might soothe the usurper and protect the safety of the young prince. Upon hearing of his inhumane treatment, the patriarch drew the spiritual sword; and superstition, on this occasion, rose in defense of humanity and justice. In a gathering of bishops, inspired by his example, the patriarch pronounced a sentence of excommunication; though his prudence still included the name of Michael in the public prayers. The Eastern prelates had not adopted the dangerous doctrines of ancient Rome; nor did they presume to enforce their censures by deposing rulers or freeing nations from their oaths of allegiance. But a Christian who had been cut off from God and the church became a source of horror; and in a chaotic and fanatical capital, that horror might arm an assassin or ignite civil unrest. Palæologus sensed his danger, acknowledged his guilt, and begged for mercy: the act was irreversible; the prize was won; and even the strictest penance he requested would elevate the sinner to the status of a saint. The unyielding patriarch refused to indicate any means of atonement or any hopes for mercy; and only condescended to say that for such a grave crime, the satisfaction must be equally great. “Do you require,” said Michael, “that I should abdicate the empire?” and at these words, he offered, or appeared to offer, the sword of state. Arsenius eagerly took this pledge of sovereignty; but when he realized that the emperor was unwilling to pay such a high price for absolution, he angrily retreated to his cell, leaving the royal sinner kneeling and weeping at the door. 24

22 (return)
[ This milder invention for extinguishing the sight was tried by the philosopher Democritus on himself, when he sought to withdraw his mind from the visible world: a foolish story! The word abacinare, in Latin and Italian, has furnished Ducange (Gloss. Lat.) with an opportunity to review the various modes of blinding: the more violent were scooping, burning with an iron, or hot vinegar, and binding the head with a strong cord till the eyes burst from their sockets. Ingenious tyrants!]

22 (return)
[ This gentler method for blinding oneself was tested by the philosopher Democritus on himself when he tried to detach his mind from the visible world: a ridiculous tale! The word abacinare, in Latin and Italian, has given Ducange (Gloss. Lat.) a chance to look over the different ways of causing blindness: the more extreme methods included scooping out the eyes, burning with a hot iron or vinegar, and tightly binding the head with a strong cord until the eyes popped from their sockets. Creative tyrants!]

23 (return)
[ See the first retreat and restoration of Arsenius, in Pachymer (l. ii. c. 15, l. iii. c. 1, 2) and Nicephorus Gregoras, (l. iii. c. 1, l. iv. c. 1.) Posterity justly accused the ajeleia and raqumia of Arsenius the virtues of a hermit, the vices of a minister, (l. xii. c. 2.)]

23 (return)
[ See the first retreat and restoration of Arsenius, in Pachymer (l. ii. c. 15, l. iii. c. 1, 2) and Nicephorus Gregoras, (l. iii. c. 1, l. iv. c. 1.) Later generations rightly criticized the ajeleia and raqumia of Arsenius for having the virtues of a hermit and the vices of a minister, (l. xii. c. 2.)]

24 (return)
[ The crime and excommunication of Michael are fairly told by Pachymer (l. iii. c. 10, 14, 19, &c.) and Gregoras, (l. iv. c. 4.) His confession and penance restored their freedom.]

24 (return)
[ Pachymer (l. iii. c. 10, 14, 19, &c.) and Gregoras (l. iv. c. 4.) provide a clear account of Michael's crime and excommunication. His confession and penance restored their freedom.]

Chapter LXII: Greek Emperors Of Nice And Constantinople.—Part II.

The danger and scandal of this excommunication subsisted above three years, till the popular clamor was assuaged by time and repentance; till the brethren of Arsenius condemned his inflexible spirit, so repugnant to the unbounded forgiveness of the gospel. The emperor had artfully insinuated, that, if he were still rejected at home, he might seek, in the Roman pontiff, a more indulgent judge; but it was far more easy and effectual to find or to place that judge at the head of the Byzantine church. Arsenius was involved in a vague rumor of conspiracy and disaffection; 248 some irregular steps in his ordination and government were liable to censure; a synod deposed him from the episcopal office; and he was transported under a guard of soldiers to a small island of the Propontis. Before his exile, he sullenly requested that a strict account might be taken of the treasures of the church; boasted, that his sole riches, three pieces of gold, had been earned by transcribing the psalms; continued to assert the freedom of his mind; and denied, with his last breath, the pardon which was implored by the royal sinner. 25 After some delay, Gregory, 259 bishop of Adrianople, was translated to the Byzantine throne; but his authority was found insufficient to support the absolution of the emperor; and Joseph, a reverend monk, was substituted to that important function. This edifying scene was represented in the presence of the senate and the people; at the end of six years the humble penitent was restored to the communion of the faithful; and humanity will rejoice, that a milder treatment of the captive Lascaris was stipulated as a proof of his remorse. But the spirit of Arsenius still survived in a powerful faction of the monks and clergy, who persevered about forty-eight years in an obstinate schism. Their scruples were treated with tenderness and respect by Michael and his son; and the reconciliation of the Arsenites was the serious labor of the church and state. In the confidence of fanaticism, they had proposed to try their cause by a miracle; and when the two papers, that contained their own and the adverse cause, were cast into a fiery brazier, they expected that the Catholic verity would be respected by the flames. Alas! the two papers were indiscriminately consumed, and this unforeseen accident produced the union of a day, and renewed the quarrel of an age. 26 The final treaty displayed the victory of the Arsenites: the clergy abstained during forty days from all ecclesiastical functions; a slight penance was imposed on the laity; the body of Arsenius was deposited in the sanctuary; and, in the name of the departed saint, the prince and people were released from the sins of their fathers. 27

The danger and scandal of this excommunication lasted over three years, until the public outcry eased with time and remorse; until Arsenius's associates condemned his stubbornness, which was so contrary to the limitless forgiveness of the gospel. The emperor had cleverly hinted that, if he was still rejected at home, he could look to the Roman pontiff for a more lenient judge; but it was much easier and more effective to place that judge at the head of the Byzantine church. Arsenius became entangled in vague rumors of conspiracy and discontent; some questionable actions in his ordination and leadership were open to criticism; a synod removed him from his office as bishop; and he was taken under guard to a small island in the Propontis. Before his exile, he grimly requested a thorough accounting of the church's treasures; claimed that his only wealth, three pieces of gold, had come from transcribing the psalms; continued to insist on his mental freedom; and, with his last breath, refused to grant the pardon that the royal sinner sought. After some time, Gregory, bishop of Adrianople, was elevated to the Byzantine throne; but his authority proved insufficient to support the emperor's absolution; and Joseph, a respected monk, was chosen for that critical role. This moving scene unfolded in front of the senate and the public; after six years, the humble penitent was welcomed back into communion with the faithful; and humanity rejoiced that a kinder treatment of the imprisoned Lascaris was agreed upon as evidence of his remorse. However, the spirit of Arsenius lived on in a strong faction of monks and clergy, who held onto their stubborn schism for about forty-eight years. Their concerns were handled with care and respect by Michael and his son; and reconciling the Arsenites became a serious effort for the church and the state. In their zealousness, they proposed to prove their case through a miracle; and when the two papers containing their arguments and the opposing view were thrown into a fiery brazier, they hoped that the flames would honor the Catholic truth. Unfortunately, both papers were burned without distinction, and this unexpected outcome created a temporary union, but also reignited a long-standing conflict. The final agreement showed the Arsenites' victory: the clergy refrained from all church functions for forty days; a minor penance was imposed on the laypeople; Arsenius's body was laid to rest in the sanctuary; and, in the name of the departed saint, the prince and people were absolved of their ancestors' sins.

248 (return)
[ Except the omission of a prayer for the emperor, the charges against Arsenius were of different nature: he was accused of having allowed the sultan of Iconium to bathe in vessels signed with the cross, and to have admitted him to the church, though unbaptized, during the service. It was pleaded, in favor of Arsenius, among other proofs of the sultan’s Christianity, that he had offered to eat ham. Pachymer, l. iv. c. 4, p. 265. It was after his exile that he was involved in a charge of conspiracy.—M.]

248 (return)
[ Aside from omitting a prayer for the emperor, the accusations against Arsenius were quite different: he was accused of letting the sultan of Iconium bathe in vessels marked with the cross and allowing him into the church, despite being unbaptized, during the service. In Arsenius's defense, it was argued, among other evidence of the sultan’s Christianity, that he had offered to eat ham. Pachymer, l. iv. c. 4, p. 265. It was after his exile that he faced a conspiracy charge.—M.]

25 (return)
[ Pachymer relates the exile of Arsenius, (l. iv. c. 1—16:) he was one of the commissaries who visited him in the desert island. The last testament of the unforgiving patriarch is still extant, (Dupin, Bibliothèque Ecclésiastique, tom. x. p. 95.)]

25 (return)
[ Pachymer talks about the exile of Arsenius, (l. iv. c. 1—16:) who was one of the officials that visited him on the deserted island. The final testament of the unyielding patriarch still exists, (Dupin, Bibliothèque Ecclésiastique, tom. x. p. 95.)]

259 (return)
[ Pachymer calls him Germanus.—M.]

259 (return)
[ Pachymer names him Germanus.—M.]

26 (return)
[ Pachymer (l. vii. c. 22) relates this miraculous trial like a philosopher, and treats with similar contempt a plot of the Arsenites, to hide a revelation in the coffin of some old saint, (l. vii. c. 13.) He compensates this incredulity by an image that weeps, another that bleeds, (l. vii. c. 30,) and the miraculous cures of a deaf and a mute patient, (l. xi. c. 32.)]

26 (return)
[ Pachymer (l. vii. c. 22) describes this miraculous trial thoughtfully and dismisses a scheme by the Arsenites to conceal a revelation in an old saint's coffin, (l. vii. c. 13.) He offsets this skepticism with an image that weeps, another that bleeds, (l. vii. c. 30,) and the miraculous healings of a deaf and mute person, (l. xi. c. 32.)]

27 (return)
[ The story of the Arsenites is spread through the thirteen books of Pachymer. Their union and triumph are reserved for Nicephorus Gregoras, (l. vii. c. 9,) who neither loves nor esteems these sectaries.]

27 (return)
[ The story of the Arsenites is detailed across the thirteen books of Pachymer. Their unity and success are covered by Nicephorus Gregoras, (l. vii. c. 9,) who neither likes nor respects these sect members.]

The establishment of his family was the motive, or at least the pretence, of the crime of Palæologus; and he was impatient to confirm the succession, by sharing with his eldest son the honors of the purple. Andronicus, afterwards surnamed the Elder, was proclaimed and crowned emperor of the Romans, in the fifteenth year of his age; and, from the first æra of a prolix and inglorious reign, he held that august title nine years as the colleague, and fifty as the successor, of his father. Michael himself, had he died in a private station, would have been thought more worthy of the empire; and the assaults of his temporal and spiritual enemies left him few moments to labor for his own fame or the happiness of his subjects. He wrested from the Franks several of the noblest islands of the Archipelago, Lesbos, Chios, and Rhodes: his brother Constantine was sent to command in Malvasia and Sparta; and the eastern side of the Morea, from Argos and Napoli to Cape Thinners, was repossessed by the Greeks. This effusion of Christian blood was loudly condemned by the patriarch; and the insolent priest presumed to interpose his fears and scruples between the arms of princes. But in the prosecution of these western conquests, the countries beyond the Hellespont were left naked to the Turks; and their depredations verified the prophecy of a dying senator, that the recovery of Constantinople would be the ruin of Asia. The victories of Michael were achieved by his lieutenants; his sword rusted in the palace; and, in the transactions of the emperor with the popes and the king of Naples, his political acts were stained with cruelty and fraud. 28

The establishment of his family was the reason, or at least the excuse, for Palæologus’s crime; and he was eager to secure the succession by sharing the honors of the purple with his eldest son. Andronicus, later known as the Elder, was proclaimed and crowned emperor of the Romans at just fifteen years old; and, from the start of his long and undistinguished reign, he held that prestigious title for nine years as a colleague, and fifty as his father's successor. Michael himself, had he died as a private citizen, would have been seen as more deserving of the empire; and the attacks from his worldly and spiritual enemies left him with little time to pursue his own legacy or the welfare of his subjects. He seized several of the finest islands in the Archipelago from the Franks, including Lesbos, Chios, and Rhodes: his brother Constantine was dispatched to command in Malvasia and Sparta; and the eastern part of the Morea, from Argos and Napoli to Cape Thinners, was reclaimed by the Greeks. This shedding of Christian blood was loudly criticized by the patriarch; and the arrogant priest dared to voice his fears and concerns between the powers of kings. However, in the pursuit of these western conquests, the territories beyond the Hellespont were left vulnerable to the Turks; and their raids confirmed the prediction of a dying senator, that the recovery of Constantinople would bring about Asia's downfall. Michael's victories were achieved by his generals; his sword lay unused in the palace; and his dealings with the popes and the king of Naples were marked by cruelty and deceit. 28

28 (return)
[ Of the xiii books of Pachymer, the first six (as the ivth and vth of Nicephorus Gregoras) contain the reign of Michael, at the time of whose death he was forty years of age. Instead of breaking, like his editor the Père Poussin, his history into two parts, I follow Ducange and Cousin, who number the xiii. books in one series.]

28 (return)
[Of the thirteen books of Pachymer, the first six (like the fourth and fifth of Nicephorus Gregoras) cover the reign of Michael, who was forty years old at the time of his death. Instead of dividing his history into two parts like his editor Père Poussin, I follow Ducange and Cousin, who count the thirteen books as one series.]

I. The Vatican was the most natural refuge of a Latin emperor, who had been driven from his throne; and Pope Urban the Fourth appeared to pity the misfortunes, and vindicate the cause, of the fugitive Baldwin. A crusade, with plenary indulgence, was preached by his command against the schismatic Greeks: he excommunicated their allies and adherents; solicited Louis the Ninth in favor of his kinsman; and demanded a tenth of the ecclesiastical revenues of France and England for the service of the holy war. 29 The subtle Greek, who watched the rising tempest of the West, attempted to suspend or soothe the hostility of the pope, by suppliant embassies and respectful letters; but he insinuated that the establishment of peace must prepare the reconciliation and obedience of the Eastern church. The Roman court could not be deceived by so gross an artifice; and Michael was admonished, that the repentance of the son should precede the forgiveness of the father; and that faith (an ambiguous word) was the only basis of friendship and alliance. After a long and affected delay, the approach of danger, and the importunity of Gregory the Tenth, compelled him to enter on a more serious negotiation: he alleged the example of the great Vataces; and the Greek clergy, who understood the intentions of their prince, were not alarmed by the first steps of reconciliation and respect. But when he pressed the conclusion of the treaty, they strenuously declared, that the Latins, though not in name, were heretics in fact, and that they despised those strangers as the vilest and most despicable portion of the human race. 30 It was the task of the emperor to persuade, to corrupt, to intimidate the most popular ecclesiastics, to gain the vote of each individual, and alternately to urge the arguments of Christian charity and the public welfare. The texts of the fathers and the arms of the Franks were balanced in the theological and political scale; and without approving the addition to the Nicene creed, the most moderate were taught to confess, that the two hostile propositions of proceeding from the Father by the Son, and of proceeding from the Father and the Son, might be reduced to a safe and Catholic sense. 31 The supremacy of the pope was a doctrine more easy to conceive, but more painful to acknowledge: yet Michael represented to his monks and prelates, that they might submit to name the Roman bishop as the first of the patriarchs; and that their distance and discretion would guard the liberties of the Eastern church from the mischievous consequences of the right of appeal. He protested that he would sacrifice his life and empire rather than yield the smallest point of orthodox faith or national independence; and this declaration was sealed and ratified by a golden bull. The patriarch Joseph withdrew to a monastery, to resign or resume his throne, according to the event of the treaty: the letters of union and obedience were subscribed by the emperor, his son Andronicus, and thirty-five archbishops and metropolitans, with their respective synods; and the episcopal list was multiplied by many dioceses which were annihilated under the yoke of the infidels. An embassy was composed of some trusty ministers and prelates: they embarked for Italy, with rich ornaments and rare perfumes for the altar of St. Peter; and their secret orders authorized and recommended a boundless compliance. They were received in the general council of Lyons, by Pope Gregory the Tenth, at the head of five hundred bishops. 32 He embraced with tears his long-lost and repentant children; accepted the oath of the ambassadors, who abjured the schism in the name of the two emperors; adorned the prelates with the ring and mitre; chanted in Greek and Latin the Nicene creed with the addition of filioque; and rejoiced in the union of the East and West, which had been reserved for his reign. To consummate this pious work, the Byzantine deputies were speedily followed by the pope’s nuncios; and their instruction discloses the policy of the Vatican, which could not be satisfied with the vain title of supremacy. After viewing the temper of the prince and people, they were enjoined to absolve the schismatic clergy, who should subscribe and swear their abjuration and obedience; to establish in all the churches the use of the perfect creed; to prepare the entrance of a cardinal legate, with the full powers and dignity of his office; and to instruct the emperor in the advantages which he might derive from the temporal protection of the Roman pontiff. 33

I. The Vatican was the most obvious refuge for a Latin emperor who had been forced from his throne; and Pope Urban IV seemed to sympathize with the misfortunes of the exiled Baldwin. By his command, a crusade was preached with complete indulgence against the schismatic Greeks: he excommunicated their allies and supporters; urged Louis IX to help his relative; and demanded a tenth of the church revenues in France and England for the holy war. 29 The cunning Greek, who observed the growing storm of the West, tried to ease the pope's hostility through humble embassies and respectful letters; however, he implied that establishing peace was necessary for reconciling and gaining the obedience of the Eastern church. The Roman court was not fooled by such a crude trick; and Michael was warned that the son's repentance must come before the father's forgiveness; and that faith (a vague term) was the only foundation for friendship and alliance. After a lengthy and affected delay, the threat of danger and Gregory X's persistence forced him into more serious negotiations: he cited the example of the great Vataces; and the Greek clergy, who understood their leader’s intentions, were not alarmed by the initial steps toward reconciliation and respect. But when he pushed for the finalization of the treaty, they firmly stated that the Latins, although not in name, were heretics in practice, and that they viewed those outsiders as the lowest and most contemptible segment of humanity. 30 It was the emperor's job to persuade, bribe, or intimidate the most influential clergy to support him, and to alternately argue for Christian charity and public welfare. The teachings of the church fathers and the military power of the Franks were weighed in the theological and political balance; and although they did not agree with the addition to the Nicene creed, the moderates were taught to concede that the two conflicting statements of proceeding from the Father through the Son, and of proceeding from the Father and the Son, could be understood in a safe and Catholic way. 31 The pope's supremacy was a concept easier to understand but harder to accept: still, Michael told his monks and bishops that they could agree to refer to the Roman bishop as the first of the patriarchs; and that their distance and discretion would protect the Eastern church's liberties from the harmful implications of the right of appeal. He declared he would rather sacrifice his life and empire than give in on any point of orthodox faith or national independence; and this declaration was formalized with a golden bull. Patriarch Joseph withdrew to a monastery, to either resign or regain his throne depending on the outcome of the treaty: the letters of union and obedience were signed by the emperor, his son Andronicus, and thirty-five archbishops and metropolitans, along with their respective synods; and the list of bishops was expanded to include many dioceses that had been destroyed under the yoke of the infidels. An embassy consisting of some trusted ministers and bishops was formed: they set sail for Italy with valuable gifts and rare perfumes for St. Peter’s altar; and their secret instructions encouraged and authorized complete compliance. They were welcomed at the general council of Lyons by Pope Gregory X, who was at the head of five hundred bishops. 32 He embraced his long-lost and repentant children with tears; accepted the oath of the ambassadors, who renounced the schism in the names of both emperors; adorned the prelates with the ring and mitre; chanted the Nicene creed in Greek and Latin with the addition of filioque; and celebrated the union of the East and West, which had been destined for his reign. To complete this holy task, the Byzantine deputies were soon followed by the pope’s envoys; and their instructions reveal the Vatican's strategy, which could not be satisfied with the mere title of supremacy. After assessing the attitudes of the prince and people, they were instructed to absolve the schismatic clergy who would sign and swear their renunciation and obedience; to implement the use of the complete creed in all churches; to prepare for the arrival of a cardinal legate, with full powers and dignity of his office; and to teach the emperor about the benefits he might gain from the temporal protection of the Roman pontiff. 33

29 (return)
[ Ducange, Hist. de C. P. l. v. c. 33, &c., from the Epistles of Urban IV.]

29 (return)
[ Ducange, Hist. de C. P. l. v. c. 33, &c., from the Letters of Urban IV.]

30 (return)
[ From their mercantile intercourse with the Venetians and Genoese, they branded the Latins as kaphloi and banausoi, (Pachymer, l. v. c. 10.) “Some are heretics in name; others, like the Latins, in fact,” said the learned Veccus, (l. v. c. 12,) who soon afterwards became a convert (c. 15, 16) and a patriarch, (c. 24.)]

30 (return)
[ From their trade interactions with the Venetians and Genoese, they labeled the Latins as kaphloi and banausoi, (Pachymer, l. v. c. 10.) “Some are heretics by name; others, like the Latins, in reality,” said the knowledgeable Veccus, (l. v. c. 12,) who soon after converted (c. 15, 16) and became a patriarch, (c. 24.)]

31 (return)
[ In this class we may place Pachymer himself, whose copious and candid narrative occupies the vth and vith books of his history. Yet the Greek is silent on the council of Lyons, and seems to believe that the popes always resided in Rome and Italy, (l. v. c. 17, 21.)]

31 (return)
[ In this section, we can include Pachymer himself, whose detailed and honest account is found in the fifth and sixth books of his history. However, the Greek stays quiet about the council of Lyons and seems to think that the popes always lived in Rome and Italy, (l. v. c. 17, 21.)]

32 (return)
[ See the acts of the council of Lyons in the year 1274. Fleury, Hist. Ecclésiastique, tom. xviii. p. 181—199. Dupin, Bibliot. Ecclés. tom. x. p. 135.]

32 (return)
[ See the acts of the council of Lyons in 1274. Fleury, Hist. Ecclésiastique, vol. xviii, pp. 181–199. Dupin, Bibliot. Ecclés., vol. x, p. 135.]

33 (return)
[ This curious instruction, which has been drawn with more or less honesty by Wading and Leo Allatius from the archives of the Vatican, is given in an abstract or version by Fleury, (tom. xviii. p. 252—258.)]

33 (return)
[ This interesting instruction, extracted with varying degrees of honesty by Wading and Leo Allatius from the Vatican archives, is presented in a summary or version by Fleury, (tom. xviii. p. 252—258.)]

But they found a country without a friend, a nation in which the names of Rome and Union were pronounced with abhorrence. The patriarch Joseph was indeed removed: his place was filled by Veccus, an ecclesiastic of learning and moderation; and the emperor was still urged by the same motives, to persevere in the same professions. But in his private language Palæologus affected to deplore the pride, and to blame the innovations, of the Latins; and while he debased his character by this double hypocrisy, he justified and punished the opposition of his subjects. By the joint suffrage of the new and the ancient Rome, a sentence of excommunication was pronounced against the obstinate schismatics; the censures of the church were executed by the sword of Michael; on the failure of persuasion, he tried the arguments of prison and exile, of whipping and mutilation; those touchstones, says an historian, of cowards and the brave. Two Greeks still reigned in Ætolia, Epirus, and Thessaly, with the appellation of despots: they had yielded to the sovereign of Constantinople, but they rejected the chains of the Roman pontiff, and supported their refusal by successful arms. Under their protection, the fugitive monks and bishops assembled in hostile synods; and retorted the name of heretic with the galling addition of apostate: the prince of Trebizond was tempted to assume the forfeit title of emperor; 339 and even the Latins of Negropont, Thebes, Athens, and the Morea, forgot the merits of the convert, to join, with open or clandestine aid, the enemies of Palæologus. His favorite generals, of his own blood, and family, successively deserted, or betrayed, the sacrilegious trust. His sister Eulogia, a niece, and two female cousins, conspired against him; another niece, Mary queen of Bulgaria, negotiated his ruin with the sultan of Egypt; and, in the public eye, their treason was consecrated as the most sublime virtue. 34 To the pope’s nuncios, who urged the consummation of the work, Palæologus exposed a naked recital of all that he had done and suffered for their sake. They were assured that the guilty sectaries, of both sexes and every rank, had been deprived of their honors, their fortunes, and their liberty; a spreading list of confiscation and punishment, which involved many persons, the dearest to the emperor, or the best deserving of his favor. They were conducted to the prison, to behold four princes of the royal blood chained in the four corners, and shaking their fetters in an agony of grief and rage. Two of these captives were afterwards released; the one by submission, the other by death: but the obstinacy of their two companions was chastised by the loss of their eyes; and the Greeks, the least adverse to the union, deplored that cruel and inauspicious tragedy. 35 Persecutors must expect the hatred of those whom they oppress; but they commonly find some consolation in the testimony of their conscience, the applause of their party, and, perhaps, the success of their undertaking. But the hypocrisy of Michael, which was prompted only by political motives, must have forced him to hate himself, to despise his followers, and to esteem and envy the rebel champions by whom he was detested and despised. While his violence was abhorred at Constantinople, at Rome his slowness was arraigned, and his sincerity suspected; till at length Pope Martin the Fourth excluded the Greek emperor from the pale of a church, into which he was striving to reduce a schismatic people. No sooner had the tyrant expired, than the union was dissolved, and abjured by unanimous consent; the churches were purified; the penitents were reconciled; and his son Andronicus, after weeping the sins and errors of his youth most piously denied his father the burial of a prince and a Christian. 36

But they discovered a country without a friend, a nation where the names of Rome and Union were spoken with disgust. The patriarch Joseph was indeed replaced; his position was taken by Veccus, an educated and moderate clergyman; and the emperor was still driven by the same reasons to maintain the same claims. Yet in private, Palæologus pretended to lament the pride and criticize the changes of the Latins; and while he diminished his own integrity with this double standard, he justified and punished the defiance of his people. By the combined authority of the new and the old Rome, a sentence of excommunication was declared against the stubborn schismatics; the church’s penalties were enforced by Michael's sword; when persuasion failed, he resorted to imprisonment, exile, whipping, and mutilation—those tests, as one historian puts it, of cowards and the brave. Two Greeks still ruled in Aetolia, Epirus, and Thessaly, calling themselves despots: they had submitted to the ruler of Constantinople but rejected the bonds of the Roman pope, supporting their defiance with military success. Under their protection, fleeing monks and bishops gathered in hostile assemblies and countered the label of heretic with the sting of apostate: the prince of Trebizond was tempted to take the forfeited title of emperor; and even the Latins in Negropont, Thebes, Athens, and the Morea, forgot the merits of the convert to join, openly or secretly, the enemies of Palæologus. His favored generals, kinfolk from his own bloodline, successively deserted or betrayed the sacrilegious trust. His sister Eulogia, a niece, and two female cousins plotted against him; another niece, Mary queen of Bulgaria, negotiated his downfall with the sultan of Egypt; in public view, their treachery was celebrated as the highest virtue. To the pope’s envoys, who pushed for the completion of their mission, Palæologus laid bare all he had done and suffered for their cause. They were told that the guilty sectarians, of all genders and ranks, had been stripped of their honors, wealth, and freedom; a growing list of confiscations and punishments affected many close to the emperor or most deserving of his favor. They were brought to the prison to see four princes of royal blood chained in the corners, shaking their chains in despair and anger. Two of these captives were later released; one by submission, the other by death. Yet the obstinacy of their two companions was punished with the loss of their eyesight; and the Greeks, the least opposed to the union, mourned that cruel and ill-fated tragedy. Persecutors should expect the animosity of those they oppress; but they often find comfort in the validation of their conscience, the praise of their faction, and perhaps the success of their efforts. However, Michael’s hypocrisy, driven solely by political motives, must have forced him to despise himself, look down on his followers, and admire and envy the rebellious champions who he was loathed by. While his brutality was condemned in Constantinople, in Rome, his sluggishness was criticized, and his sincerity questioned; until finally, Pope Martin the Fourth excluded the Greek emperor from the church he was trying to bring a schismatic people back into. As soon as the tyrant died, the union was dissolved and unanimously rejected; the churches were cleansed; the penitents were reconciled; and his son Andronicus, after mourning the sins and mistakes of his youth, devoutly denied his father a proper burial as a prince and a Christian.

339 (return)
[ According to Fallmarayer he had always maintained this title.—M.]

339 (return)
[ Fallmarayer always claimed this title.—M.]

34 (return)
[ This frank and authentic confession of Michael’s distress is exhibited in barbarous Latin by Ogerius, who signs himself Protonotarius Interpretum, and transcribed by Wading from the MSS. of the Vatican, (A.D. 1278, No. 3.) His annals of the Franciscan order, the Fratres Minores, in xvii. volumes in folio, (Rome, 1741,) I have now accidentally seen among the waste paper of a bookseller.]

34 (return)
[This honest and genuine confession of Michael’s distress is presented in harsh Latin by Ogerius, who refers to himself as Protonotarius Interpretum, and copied by Wading from the MSS. of the Vatican, (A.D. 1278, No. 3.) I have now unexpectedly spotted his records of the Franciscan order, the Fratres Minores, in seventeen folio volumes, (Rome, 1741,) among the discarded papers of a bookseller.]

35 (return)
[ See the vith book of Pachymer, particularly the chapters 1, 11, 16, 18, 24—27. He is the more credible, as he speaks of this persecution with less anger than sorrow.]

35 (return)
[ See the fifth book of Pachymer, especially chapters 1, 11, 16, 18, 24—27. He is more trustworthy since he discusses this persecution with more sadness than anger.]

36 (return)
[ Pachymer, l. vii. c. 1—ii. 17. The speech of Andronicus the Elder (lib. xii. c. 2) is a curious record, which proves that if the Greeks were the slaves of the emperor, the emperor was not less the slave of superstition and the clergy.]

36 (return)
[Pachymer, l. vii. c. 1—ii. 17. The speech of Andronicus the Elder (lib. xii. c. 2) is an interesting account that shows that while the Greeks were the subjects of the emperor, the emperor was equally under the control of superstition and the clergy.]

II. In the distress of the Latins, the walls and towers of Constantinople had fallen to decay: they were restored and fortified by the policy of Michael, who deposited a plenteous store of corn and salt provisions, to sustain the siege which he might hourly expect from the resentment of the Western powers. Of these, the sovereign of the Two Sicilies was the most formidable neighbor: but as long as they were possessed by Mainfroy, the bastard of Frederic the Second, his monarchy was the bulwark, rather than the annoyance, of the Eastern empire. The usurper, though a brave and active prince, was sufficiently employed in the defence of his throne: his proscription by successive popes had separated Mainfroy from the common cause of the Latins; and the forces that might have besieged Constantinople were detained in a crusade against the domestic enemy of Rome. The prize of her avenger, the crown of the Two Sicilies, was won and worn by the brother of St Louis, by Charles count of Anjou and Provence, who led the chivalry of France on this holy expedition. 37 The disaffection of his Christian subjects compelled Mainfroy to enlist a colony of Saracens whom his father had planted in Apulia; and this odious succor will explain the defiance of the Catholic hero, who rejected all terms of accommodation. “Bear this message,” said Charles, “to the sultan of Nocera, that God and the sword are umpire between us; and that he shall either send me to paradise, or I will send him to the pit of hell.” The armies met: and though I am ignorant of Mainfroy’s doom in the other world, in this he lost his friends, his kingdom, and his life, in the bloody battle of Benevento. Naples and Sicily were immediately peopled with a warlike race of French nobles; and their aspiring leader embraced the future conquest of Africa, Greece, and Palestine. The most specious reasons might point his first arms against the Byzantine empire; and Palæologus, diffident of his own strength, repeatedly appealed from the ambition of Charles to the humanity of St. Louis, who still preserved a just ascendant over the mind of his ferocious brother. For a while the attention of that brother was confined at home by the invasion of Conradin, the last heir to the imperial house of Swabia; but the hapless boy sunk in the unequal conflict; and his execution on a public scaffold taught the rivals of Charles to tremble for their heads as well as their dominions. A second respite was obtained by the last crusade of St. Louis to the African coast; and the double motive of interest and duty urged the king of Naples to assist, with his powers and his presence, the holy enterprise. The death of St. Louis released him from the importunity of a virtuous censor: the king of Tunis confessed himself the tributary and vassal of the crown of Sicily; and the boldest of the French knights were free to enlist under his banner against the Greek empire. A treaty and a marriage united his interest with the house of Courtenay; his daughter Beatrice was promised to Philip, son and heir of the emperor Baldwin; a pension of six hundred ounces of gold was allowed for his maintenance; and his generous father distributed among his aliens the kingdoms and provinces of the East, reserving only Constantinople, and one day’s journey round the city for the imperial domain. 38 In this perilous moment, Palæologus was the most eager to subscribe the creed, and implore the protection, of the Roman pontiff, who assumed, with propriety and weight, the character of an angel of peace, the common father of the Christians. By his voice, the sword of Charles was chained in the scabbard; and the Greek ambassadors beheld him, in the pope’s antechamber, biting his ivory sceptre in a transport of fury, and deeply resenting the refusal to enfranchise and consecrate his arms. He appears to have respected the disinterested mediation of Gregory the Tenth; but Charles was insensibly disgusted by the pride and partiality of Nicholas the Third; and his attachment to his kindred, the Ursini family, alienated the most strenuous champion from the service of the church. The hostile league against the Greeks, of Philip the Latin emperor, the king of the Two Sicilies, and the republic of Venice, was ripened into execution; and the election of Martin the Fourth, a French pope, gave a sanction to the cause. Of the allies, Philip supplied his name; Martin, a bull of excommunication; the Venetians, a squadron of forty galleys; and the formidable powers of Charles consisted of forty counts, ten thousand men at arms, a numerous body of infantry, and a fleet of more than three hundred ships and transports. A distant day was appointed for assembling this mighty force in the harbor of Brindisi; and a previous attempt was risked with a detachment of three hundred knights, who invaded Albania, and besieged the fortress of Belgrade. Their defeat might amuse with a triumph the vanity of Constantinople; but the more sagacious Michael, despairing of his arms, depended on the effects of a conspiracy; on the secret workings of a rat, who gnawed the bowstring 39 of the Sicilian tyrant.

II. In the hardships faced by the Latins, the walls and towers of Constantinople had fallen into disrepair. They were rebuilt and strengthened by Michael's strategy, who stockpiled a generous supply of grain and salted provisions to withstand a siege that he constantly anticipated from the anger of the Western powers. Among these, the ruler of the Two Sicilies was the most formidable neighbor. However, as long as they were under the control of Mainfroy, the illegitimate son of Frederic the Second, his kingdom served as a defense rather than an annoyance to the Eastern empire. Although he was a brave and active ruler, Mainfroy was preoccupied with defending his throne. His excommunication by successive popes had isolated him from the unified effort of the Latins, and the forces that could have laid siege to Constantinople were diverted to a crusade against Rome’s domestic enemy. The reward for the avenger, the crown of the Two Sicilies, was claimed and worn by the brother of St. Louis, Charles, Count of Anjou and Provence, who led the French knights on this holy expedition. 37 The discontent of his Christian subjects forced Mainfroy to recruit a group of Saracens that his father had settled in Apulia, and this unpleasant support explains the defiance of the Catholic hero, who rejected all offers of peace. “Deliver this message,” Charles said, “to the sultan of Nocera: that God and the sword will decide between us; he will either send me to paradise, or I will send him to hell.” The armies clashed, and while I don't know Mainfroy's fate in the afterlife, in this world, he lost his friends, his kingdom, and his life in the bloody battle of Benevento. Naples and Sicily quickly filled with a warlike force of French nobles, and their ambitious leader aimed for the future conquest of Africa, Greece, and Palestine. There were compelling reasons that could justify his initial military actions against the Byzantine empire, and Palæologus, unsure of his own strength, repeatedly appealed to the humanity of St. Louis, who still held a significant influence over his fierce brother. For a time, that brother was distracted at home by the invasion of Conradin, the last heir of the imperial house of Swabia, but the unfortunate boy fell in the unequal battle; his execution on a public scaffold made Charles's rivals afraid for their lives and territories. A second chance came with St. Louis's last crusade to the African coast, and both interest and duty drove the king of Naples to support the holy mission with his resources and his presence. St. Louis's death freed him from the pressure of a moral conscience; the king of Tunis acknowledged himself as a tributary and vassal of the crown of Sicily, allowing the boldest of the French knights to enlist under his banner against the Greek empire. A treaty and a marriage linked his interests with the house of Courtenay; his daughter Beatrice was promised to Philip, the son and heir of Emperor Baldwin; a pension of six hundred ounces of gold was granted for his support; and his generous father divided the kingdoms and provinces of the East among his followers, reserving only Constantinople and a day’s journey around the city for the imperial domain. 38 In this dangerous moment, Palæologus was the most eager to accept the papal creed and seek the protection of the Roman pontiff, who rightfully took on the role of an angel of peace and the common father of Christians. Through his authority, Charles's sword was kept sheathed, and the Greek ambassadors witnessed him, in the pope’s antechamber, biting his ivory scepter in a rage, deeply resentful of being denied the legitimization of his military actions. He seemed to respect the selfless mediation of Gregory the Tenth, but Charles gradually became disillusioned by the pride and bias of Nicholas the Third, whose favoritism toward his relatives, the Ursini family, distanced the most dedicated champion from serving the church. The hostile alliance formed against the Greeks by Philip the Latin emperor, the king of the Two Sicilies, and the Republic of Venice was set in motion, and the election of Martin the Fourth, a French pope, provided legitimacy to the cause. Among the allies, Philip contributed his name; Martin, a bull of excommunication; the Venetians, a squadron of forty galleys; and Charles's formidable forces included forty counts, ten thousand men-at-arms, a large body of infantry, and a fleet of over three hundred ships and transports. A distant date was set for gathering this massive army in the harbor of Brindisi, and a preliminary attempt was made with a detachment of three hundred knights who invaded Albania and besieged the fortress at Belgrade. Their defeat might have entertained Constantinople, but the more astute Michael, losing hope in his military strength, relied on the effects of a conspiracy; on the secret actions of a rat, who nibbled at the bowstring 39 of the Sicilian tyrant.

37 (return)
[ The best accounts, the nearest the time, the most full and entertaining, of the conquest of Naples by Charles of Anjou, may be found in the Florentine Chronicles of Ricordano Malespina, (c. 175—193,) and Giovanni Villani, (l. vii. c. 1—10, 25—30,) which are published by Muratori in the viiith and xiiith volumes of the Historians of Italy. In his Annals (tom. xi. p. 56—72) he has abridged these great events which are likewise described in the Istoria Civile of Giannone. tom. l. xix. tom. iii. l. xx.]

37 (return)
[ The best accounts, the closest to the time, and the most detailed and entertaining, of the conquest of Naples by Charles of Anjou, can be found in the Florentine Chronicles of Ricordano Malespina (c. 175—193) and Giovanni Villani (l. vii. c. 1—10, 25—30), published by Muratori in the eighth and twelfth volumes of the Historians of Italy. In his Annals (tom. xi. p. 56—72), he has summarized these significant events which are also detailed in the Istoria Civile of Giannone, tom. l. xix. tom. iii. l. xx.]

38 (return)
[ Ducange, Hist. de C. P. l. v. c. 49—56, l. vi. c. 1—13. See Pachymer, l. iv. c. 29, l. v. c. 7—10, 25 l. vi. c. 30, 32, 33, and Nicephorus Gregoras, l. iv. 5, l. v. 1, 6.]

38 (return)
[ Ducange, History of Constantinople, Book V, Chapters 49—56, Book VI, Chapters 1—13. See Pachymer, Book IV, Chapter 29, Book V, Chapters 7—10, 25 Book VI, Chapters 30, 32, 33, and Nicephorus Gregoras, Book IV, 5, Book V, 1, 6.]

39 (return)
[ The reader of Herodotus will recollect how miraculously the Assyrian host of Sennacherib was disarmed and destroyed, (l. ii. c. 141.)]

39 (return)
[ Anyone reading Herodotus will remember how the Assyrian army of Sennacherib was miraculously disarmed and destroyed, (l. ii. c. 141.)]

Among the proscribed adherents of the house of Swabia, John of Procida forfeited a small island of that name in the Bay of Naples. His birth was noble, but his education was learned; and in the poverty of exile, he was relieved by the practice of physic, which he had studied in the school of Salerno. Fortune had left him nothing to lose, except life; and to despise life is the first qualification of a rebel. Procida was endowed with the art of negotiation, to enforce his reasons and disguise his motives; and in his various transactions with nations and men, he could persuade each party that he labored solely for their interest. The new kingdoms of Charles were afflicted by every species of fiscal and military oppression; 40 and the lives and fortunes of his Italian subjects were sacrificed to the greatness of their master and the licentiousness of his followers. The hatred of Naples was repressed by his presence; but the looser government of his vicegerents excited the contempt, as well as the aversion, of the Sicilians: the island was roused to a sense of freedom by the eloquence of Procida; and he displayed to every baron his private interest in the common cause. In the confidence of foreign aid, he successively visited the courts of the Greek emperor, and of Peter king of Arragon, 41 who possessed the maritime countries of Valentia and Catalonia. To the ambitious Peter a crown was presented, which he might justly claim by his marriage with the sister 419 of Mainfroy, and by the dying voice of Conradin, who from the scaffold had cast a ring to his heir and avenger. Palæologus was easily persuaded to divert his enemy from a foreign war by a rebellion at home; and a Greek subsidy of twenty-five thousand ounces of gold was most profitably applied to arm a Catalan fleet, which sailed under a holy banner to the specious attack of the Saracens of Africa. In the disguise of a monk or beggar, the indefatigable missionary of revolt flew from Constantinople to Rome, and from Sicily to Saragossa: the treaty was sealed with the signet of Pope Nicholas himself, the enemy of Charles; and his deed of gift transferred the fiefs of St. Peter from the house of Anjou to that of Arragon. So widely diffused and so freely circulated, the secret was preserved above two years with impenetrable discretion; and each of the conspirators imbibed the maxim of Peter, who declared that he would cut off his left hand if it were conscious of the intentions of his right. The mine was prepared with deep and dangerous artifice; but it may be questioned, whether the instant explosion of Palermo were the effect of accident or design.

Among the banned followers of the house of Swabia, John of Procida lost a small island of the same name in the Bay of Naples. He was born noble but received a learned education. In the hardship of exile, he earned a living practicing medicine, which he had studied at the school of Salerno. Fortune left him with nothing to lose except his life, and disregarding life is the first trait of a rebel. Procida had a talent for negotiation, able to present his arguments persuasively while hiding his true motives; in his dealings with nations and individuals, he could convince each side that he was only working for their benefit. The new kingdoms under Charles suffered from all kinds of financial and military oppression, and the lives and fortunes of his Italian subjects were sacrificed for the power of their ruler and the excesses of his followers. Although the resentment in Naples was kept in check by his presence, the ineffective rule of his representatives ignited both contempt and hatred among the Sicilians. The island began to feel a desire for freedom, inspired by Procida's eloquence. He showed each baron how their personal interests aligned with the common cause. Confident in foreign support, he visited the courts of the Greek emperor and Peter, king of Aragon, 41, who ruled over the coastal regions of Valencia and Catalonia. To the ambitious Peter, a crown was offered that he could legitimately claim through his marriage to Mainfroy's sister and through the dying wish of Conradin, who had thrown a ring to his heir and avenger from the gallows. Palæologus was easily convinced to keep his enemy occupied with a domestic rebellion rather than a foreign war; a Greek subsidy of twenty-five thousand ounces of gold was effectively used to equip a Catalan fleet that set sail under a holy banner to attack the Saracens in Africa. Disguised as a monk or beggar, the tireless advocate for revolt traveled from Constantinople to Rome, and from Sicily to Saragossa. The treaty was confirmed by Pope Nicholas himself, who opposed Charles, transferring the fiefs of St. Peter from the house of Anjou to that of Aragon. The secret was kept under tight wraps for over two years, and each conspirator adopted Peter's principle that he would cut off his left hand if it ever became aware of the intentions of his right. The trap was set with deep and dangerous cunning, but it remains uncertain whether the sudden explosion in Palermo was due to chance or intent.

40 (return)
[ According to Sabas Malaspina, (Hist. Sicula, l. iii. c. 16, in Muratori, tom. viii. p. 832,) a zealous Guelph, the subjects of Charles, who had reviled Mainfroy as a wolf, began to regret him as a lamb; and he justifies their discontent by the oppressions of the French government, (l. vi. c. 2, 7.) See the Sicilian manifesto in Nicholas Specialis, (l. i. c. 11, in Muratori, tom. x. p. 930.)]

40 (return)
[ According to Sabas Malaspina, (Hist. Sicula, l. iii. c. 16, in Muratori, tom. viii. p. 832,) a passionate Guelph, the subjects of Charles, who had called Mainfroy a wolf, started to see him as a lamb; and he explains their dissatisfaction by the oppressions of the French government, (l. vi. c. 2, 7.) See the Sicilian manifesto in Nicholas Specialis, (l. i. c. 11, in Muratori, tom. x. p. 930.)]

41 (return)
[ See the character and counsels of Peter, king of Arragon, in Mariana, (Hist. Hispan. l. xiv. c. 6, tom. ii. p. 133.) The reader for gives the Jesuit’s defects, in favor, always of his style, and often of his sense.]

41 (return)
[ Check out the character and advice of Peter, king of Aragon, in Mariana, (Hist. Hispan. l. xiv. c. 6, tom. ii. p. 133.) The reader typically overlooks the Jesuit's flaws in favor of his style, and sometimes for his ideas.]

419 (return)
[ Daughter. See Hallam’s Middle Ages, vol. i. p. 517.—M.]

419 (return)
[ Daughter. See Hallam’s Middle Ages, vol. i. p. 517.—M.]

On the vigil of Easter, a procession of the disarmed citizens visited a church without the walls; and a noble damsel was rudely insulted by a French soldier. 42 The ravisher was instantly punished with death; and if the people was at first scattered by a military force, their numbers and fury prevailed: the conspirators seized the opportunity; the flame spread over the island; and eight thousand French were exterminated in a promiscuous massacre, which has obtained the name of the Sicilian Vespers. 43 From every city the banners of freedom and the church were displayed: the revolt was inspired by the presence or the soul of Procida and Peter of Arragon, who sailed from the African coast to Palermo, was saluted as the king and savior of the isle. By the rebellion of a people on whom he had so long trampled with impunity, Charles was astonished and confounded; and in the first agony of grief and devotion, he was heard to exclaim, “O God! if thou hast decreed to humble me, grant me at least a gentle and gradual descent from the pinnacle of greatness!” His fleet and army, which already filled the seaports of Italy, were hastily recalled from the service of the Grecian war; and the situation of Messina exposed that town to the first storm of his revenge. Feeble in themselves, and yet hopeless of foreign succor, the citizens would have repented, and submitted on the assurance of full pardon and their ancient privileges. But the pride of the monarch was already rekindled; and the most fervent entreaties of the legate could extort no more than a promise, that he would forgive the remainder, after a chosen list of eight hundred rebels had been yielded to his discretion. The despair of the Messinese renewed their courage: Peter of Arragon approached to their relief; 44 and his rival was driven back by the failure of provision and the terrors of the equinox to the Calabrian shore. At the same moment, the Catalan admiral, the famous Roger de Loria, swept the channel with an invincible squadron: the French fleet, more numerous in transports than in galleys, was either burnt or destroyed; and the same blow assured the independence of Sicily and the safety of the Greek empire. A few days before his death, the emperor Michael rejoiced in the fall of an enemy whom he hated and esteemed; and perhaps he might be content with the popular judgment, that had they not been matched with each other, Constantinople and Italy must speedily have obeyed the same master. 45 From this disastrous moment, the life of Charles was a series of misfortunes: his capital was insulted, his son was made prisoner, and he sunk into the grave without recovering the Isle of Sicily, which, after a war of twenty years, was finally severed from the throne of Naples, and transferred, as an independent kingdom, to a younger branch of the house of Arragon. 46

On the eve of Easter, a procession of disarmed citizens visited a church outside the walls, and a noble young woman was brutally insulted by a French soldier. 42 The attacker was quickly punished with death; and although the military initially scattered the people, their numbers and anger won out: the conspirators took the chance; chaos spread across the island; and eight thousand French were killed in a widespread massacre, which became known as the Sicilian Vespers. 43 Banners of freedom and the church were raised in every city: the revolt was fueled by the presence or spirit of Procida and Peter of Aragon, who sailed from the African coast to Palermo and was welcomed as the king and savior of the island. Charles was astonished and bewildered by the uprising of the people he had long oppressed without consequences; in his first moment of grief and devotion, he was heard to exclaim, “O God! If you have decided to bring me down, at least allow me a gentle and gradual fall from the heights of greatness!” His fleet and army, which had already filled the seaports of Italy, were quickly recalled from the Greek war; and the location of Messina exposed that city to the initial wave of his revenge. Weak on their own and yet hopeless for external help, the citizens would have reconsidered and submitted if promised full pardon and the restoration of their ancient rights. But the king's pride was already flaring up again; and despite the legate’s most earnest pleas, he could only get a promise that the king would forgive the remaining offenders after a chosen list of eight hundred rebels were surrendered to his discretion. The despair of the people of Messina rekindled their courage: Peter of Aragon came to their aid; 44 and his rival was pushed back due to lack of supplies and the dangers of the equinox to the Calabrian shore. At the same time, the Catalan admiral, the renowned Roger de Loria, swept through the channel with an unstoppable fleet: the French fleet, which had more transport ships than galleys, was either burned or destroyed; and this blow secured both the independence of Sicily and the safety of the Greek empire. A few days before his death, Emperor Michael celebrated the downfall of an enemy he both hated and respected; and he might have been happy with the popular belief that if they hadn’t faced each other, Constantinople and Italy would soon have had the same ruler. 45 From that disastrous moment on, Charles's life was filled with misfortunes: his capital was attacked, his son was captured, and he died without reclaiming the Isle of Sicily, which, after twenty years of conflict, was ultimately taken from the throne of Naples and granted, as an independent kingdom, to a younger branch of the House of Aragon. 46

42 (return)
[ After enumerating the sufferings of his country, Nicholas Specialis adds, in the true spirit of Italian jealousy, Quæ omnia et graviora quidem, ut arbitror, patienti animo Siculi tolerassent, nisi (quod primum cunctis dominantibus cavendum est) alienas fminas invasissent, (l. i. c. 2, p. 924.)]

42 (return)
[ After listing the hardships of his country, Nicholas Specialis adds, in the genuine spirit of Italian rivalry, All of which, even worse ones, I believe the Sicilians would have endured with patience, if it weren't for (which all rulers should avoid first and foremost) the invasion of foreign women, (l. i. c. 2, p. 924.)]

43 (return)
[ The French were long taught to remember this bloody lesson: “If I am provoked, (said Henry the Fourth,) I will breakfast at Milan, and dine at Naples.” “Your majesty (replied the Spanish ambassador) may perhaps arrive in Sicily for vespers.”]

43 (return)
[ The French were long taught to remember this brutal lesson: “If you push me too far, (said Henry the Fourth,) I will have breakfast in Milan and dinner in Naples.” “Your majesty (replied the Spanish ambassador) might just arrive in Sicily for evening prayer.”]

44 (return)
[ This revolt, with the subsequent victory, are related by two national writers, Bartholemy à Neocastro (in Muratori, tom. xiii.,) and Nicholas Specialis (in Muratori, tom. x.,) the one a contemporary, the other of the next century. The patriot Specialis disclaims the name of rebellion, and all previous correspondence with Peter of Arragon, (nullo communicato consilio,) who happened to be with a fleet and army on the African coast, (l. i. c. 4, 9.)]

44 (return)
[ This uprising, along with the victory that followed, is documented by two national authors, Bartholemy à Neocastro (in Muratori, vol. xiii.) and Nicholas Specialis (in Muratori, vol. x.), one a contemporary and the other from the next century. The patriot Specialis distances himself from the label of rebellion and any previous communication with Peter of Aragon, (without any shared plans,) who happened to have a fleet and army on the African coast, (l. i. c. 4, 9.)]

45 (return)
[ Nicephorus Gregoras (l. v. c. 6) admires the wisdom of Providence in this equal balance of states and princes. For the honor of Palæologus, I had rather this balance had been observed by an Italian writer.]

45 (return)
[Nicephorus Gregoras (l. v. c. 6) praises the wisdom of Providence in the equal balance of states and rulers. For the sake of Palæologus, I would prefer this balance to have been noted by an Italian writer.]

46 (return)
[ See the Chronicle of Villani, the xith volume of the Annali d’Italia of Muratori, and the xxth and xxist books of the Istoria Civile of Giannone.]

46 (return)
[ See the Chronicle of Villani, the 10th volume of the Annali d’Italia of Muratori, and the 20th and 21st books of the Istoria Civile of Giannone.]

Chapter LXII: Greek Emperors Of Nice And Constantinople.—Part III.

I shall not, I trust, be accused of superstition; but I must remark that, even in this world, the natural order of events will sometimes afford the strong appearances of moral retribution. The first Palæologus had saved his empire by involving the kingdoms of the West in rebellion and blood; and from these scenes of discord uprose a generation of iron men, who assaulted and endangered the empire of his son. In modern times our debts and taxes are the secret poison which still corrodes the bosom of peace: but in the weak and disorderly government of the middle ages, it was agitated by the present evil of the disbanded armies. Too idle to work, too proud to beg, the mercenaries were accustomed to a life of rapine: they could rob with more dignity and effect under a banner and a chief; and the sovereign, to whom their service was useless, and their presence importunate, endeavored to discharge the torrent on some neighboring countries. After the peace of Sicily, many thousands of Genoese, Catalans, 47 &c., who had fought, by sea and land, under the standard of Anjou or Arragon, were blended into one nation by the resemblance of their manners and interest. They heard that the Greek provinces of Asia were invaded by the Turks: they resolved to share the harvest of pay and plunder: and Frederic king of Sicily most liberally contributed the means of their departure. In a warfare of twenty years, a ship, or a camp, was become their country; arms were their sole profession and property; valor was the only virtue which they knew; their women had imbibed the fearless temper of their lovers and husbands: it was reported, that, with a stroke of their broadsword, the Catalans could cleave a horseman and a horse; and the report itself was a powerful weapon. Roger de Flor 477 was the most popular of their chiefs; and his personal merit overshadowed the dignity of his prouder rivals of Arragon. The offspring of a marriage between a German gentleman of the court of Frederic the Second and a damsel of Brindisi, Roger was successively a templar, an apostate, a pirate, and at length the richest and most powerful admiral of the Mediterranean. He sailed from Messina to Constantinople, with eighteen galleys, four great ships, and eight thousand adventurers; 478 and his previous treaty was faithfully accomplished by Andronicus the elder, who accepted with joy and terror this formidable succor. A palace was allotted for his reception, and a niece of the emperor was given in marriage to the valiant stranger, who was immediately created great duke or admiral of Romania. After a decent repose, he transported his troops over the Propontis, and boldly led them against the Turks: in two bloody battles thirty thousand of the Moslems were slain: he raised the siege of Philadelphia, and deserved the name of the deliverer of Asia. But after a short season of prosperity, the cloud of slavery and ruin again burst on that unhappy province. The inhabitants escaped (says a Greek historian) from the smoke into the flames; and the hostility of the Turks was less pernicious than the friendship of the Catalans. 479 The lives and fortunes which they had rescued they considered as their own: the willing or reluctant maid was saved from the race of circumcision for the embraces of a Christian soldier: the exaction of fines and supplies was enforced by licentious rapine and arbitrary executions; and, on the resistance of Magnesia, the great duke besieged a city of the Roman empire. 48 These disorders he excused by the wrongs and passions of a victorious army; nor would his own authority or person have been safe, had he dared to punish his faithful followers, who were defrauded of the just and covenanted price of their services. The threats and complaints of Andronicus disclosed the nakedness of the empire. His golden bull had invited no more than five hundred horse and a thousand foot soldiers; yet the crowds of volunteers, who migrated to the East, had been enlisted and fed by his spontaneous bounty. While his bravest allies were content with three byzants or pieces of gold, for their monthly pay, an ounce, or even two ounces, of gold were assigned to the Catalans, whose annual pension would thus amount to near a hundred pounds sterling: one of their chiefs had modestly rated at three hundred thousand crowns the value of his future merits; and above a million had been issued from the treasury for the maintenance of these costly mercenaries. A cruel tax had been imposed on the corn of the husbandman: one third was retrenched from the salaries of the public officers; and the standard of the coin was so shamefully debased, that of the four-and-twenty parts only five were of pure gold. 49 At the summons of the emperor, Roger evacuated a province which no longer supplied the materials of rapine; 496 but he refused to disperse his troops; and while his style was respectful, his conduct was independent and hostile. He protested, that if the emperor should march against him, he would advance forty paces to kiss the ground before him; but in rising from this prostrate attitude Roger had a life and sword at the service of his friends. The great duke of Romania condescended to accept the title and ornaments of Cæsar; but he rejected the new proposal of the government of Asia with a subsidy of corn and money, 497 on condition that he should reduce his troops to the harmless number of three thousand men. Assassination is the last resource of cowards. The Cæsar was tempted to visit the royal residence of Adrianople; in the apartment, and before the eyes, of the empress he was stabbed by the Alani guards; and though the deed was imputed to their private revenge, 498 his countrymen, who dwelt at Constantinople in the security of peace, were involved in the same proscription by the prince or people. The loss of their leader intimidated the crowd of adventurers, who hoisted the sails of flight, and were soon scattered round the coasts of the Mediterranean. But a veteran band of fifteen hundred Catalans, or French, stood firm in the strong fortress of Gallipoli on the Hellespont, displayed the banners of Arragon, and offered to revenge and justify their chief, by an equal combat of ten or a hundred warriors. Instead of accepting this bold defiance, the emperor Michael, the son and colleague of Andronicus, resolved to oppress them with the weight of multitudes: every nerve was strained to form an army of thirteen thousand horse and thirty thousand foot; and the Propontis was covered with the ships of the Greeks and Genoese. In two battles by sea and land, these mighty forces were encountered and overthrown by the despair and discipline of the Catalans: the young emperor fled to the palace; and an insufficient guard of light-horse was left for the protection of the open country. Victory renewed the hopes and numbers of the adventures: every nation was blended under the name and standard of the great company; and three thousand Turkish proselytes deserted from the Imperial service to join this military association. In the possession of Gallipoli, 509 the Catalans intercepted the trade of Constantinople and the Black Sea, while they spread their devastation on either side of the Hellespont over the confines of Europe and Asia. To prevent their approach, the greatest part of the Byzantine territory was laid waste by the Greeks themselves: the peasants and their cattle retired into the city; and myriads of sheep and oxen, for which neither place nor food could be procured, were unprofitably slaughtered on the same day. Four times the emperor Andronicus sued for peace, and four times he was inflexibly repulsed, till the want of provisions, and the discord of the chiefs, compelled the Catalans to evacuate the banks of the Hellespont and the neighborhood of the capital. After their separation from the Turks, the remains of the great company pursued their march through Macedonia and Thessaly, to seek a new establishment in the heart of Greece. 50

I hope I won't be accused of being superstitious, but I have to point out that sometimes, even in this world, the natural order of events can seem to show that there’s a moral payback. The first Palæologus saved his empire by stirring up rebellion and bloodshed in the Western kingdoms, and from this chaos, a generation of tough fighters emerged, threatening the empire of his son. Nowadays, our debts and taxes are the hidden poison that still eats away at the peace we have, but in the disorganized governments of the Middle Ages, it was fueled by the immediate issue of disbanded armies. Too lazy to work and too proud to beg, these mercenaries were used to a life of plundering; they felt it was more dignified to raid under a banner and a leader. The sovereign, whose own authority was useless to them and whose presence was a nuisance, tried to push them off onto neighboring countries. After the peace in Sicily, many thousands of Genoese, Catalans, 47 &c., who had fought, both by sea and land, under the flags of Anjou or Aragon, formed a single nation due to their similar customs and interests. They learned that the Greek provinces of Asia were being invaded by the Turks and decided to share in the pay and spoils. Frederic, king of Sicily, generously provided the means for their departure. Over twenty years of warfare, either a ship or a camp became their homeland; arms were their only trade and possession; bravery was the only value they recognized; their women absorbed the fearless spirit of their lovers and husbands. It was said that with a single swing of their broadsword, the Catalans could slice through both a horseman and his horse; and just the rumor itself was a formidable weapon. Roger de Flor 477 was their most admired leader, eclipsing the status of his more arrogant rivals from Aragon. Born from a union between a German noble in the court of Frederic the Second and a woman from Brindisi, Roger held various roles: a templar, a renegade, a pirate, and ultimately the richest and most powerful admiral in the Mediterranean. He sailed from Messina to Constantinople with eighteen galleys, four large ships, and eight thousand adventurers; 478 his prior treaty with Andronicus the elder was honored, as he joyfully yet apprehensively welcomed this formidable support. They assigned a palace for his stay, and Roger was given the emperor's niece in marriage; he was instantly named great duke or admiral of Romania. After a brief rest, he transported his troops across the Propontis and boldly led them against the Turks: in two bloody battles, thirty thousand Muslims were killed; he lifted the siege of Philadelphia, earning the title of savior of Asia. But soon after a short period of success, the shadow of slavery and devastation fell over that unfortunate province again. The people, as a Greek historian noted, fled from the smoke into the flames; the Turks were less harmful than the Catalans' friendship. 479 They considered the lives and wealth they had saved as their own: a willing or forced maiden was saved from the fate of circumcision for the embrace of a Christian soldier; they enforced fines and requisitions through rampant pillaging and arbitrary executions; when Magnesia resisted, the great duke besieged a city of the Roman empire. 48 He justified these chaos with the grievances and emotions of a victorious army; nor would his position or safety have been secure had he attempted to punish his loyal followers, who were shortchanged on their agreed wages. The threats and complaints of Andronicus exposed the empire's vulnerabilities. His golden bull had called for no more than five hundred cavalry and a thousand infantry; yet the throngs of volunteers migrating eastward had been recruited and supported by his own generosity. While his bravest allies were satisfied with only three byzants or pieces of gold for their monthly pay, the Catalans were assigned an ounce or even two ounces of gold, meaning their yearly salary would come close to a hundred pounds sterling: one of their leaders modestly valued his future worth at three hundred thousand crowns, and over a million had been drawn from the treasury for the upkeep of these expensive mercenaries. A savage tax had been imposed on farmers' grain: one-third was deducted from public officials' wages; and the value of the currency had been so disgracefully diminished that only five out of twenty-four parts were pure gold. 49 At the emperor’s call, Roger left a region that no longer offered bounty for plunder; 496 however, he refused to disband his forces, and while he was respectful in his words, his actions were independent and defiant. He declared that if the emperor marched against him, he would step forward to kiss the ground before him; yet rising from this position, Roger had a life and sword ready to serve his friends. The great duke of Romania accepted the title and insignia of Cæsar, but he turned down the new proposal from the Asian government for a grain and money subsidy 497 on the condition that he reduce his troops to a harmless number of three thousand. Assassination is the last resort of cowards. The Cæsar was lured to visit the royal residence in Adrianople; there, in the presence of the empress, he was stabbed by the Alani guards. Although the act was said to be motivated by personal vengeance, 498 his fellow countrymen living peacefully in Constantinople were swept up in the same persecution by the rulers or the populace. The loss of their leader frightened the band of adventurers, who raised their sails to flee and quickly dispersed along the Mediterranean coast. However, a seasoned group of fifteen hundred Catalans, or French, stood their ground in the fortified town of Gallipoli on the Hellespont, flew the banners of Aragon, and offered to avenge and honor their leader through a fair fight of ten or a hundred warriors. Instead of taking up this bold challenge, the emperor Michael, son and associate of Andronicus, resolved to crush them with sheer numbers: every effort was made to assemble an army of thirteen thousand cavalry and thirty thousand infantry; the Propontis was filled with ships from the Greeks and Genoese. In two battles, both at sea and on land, these vast forces clashed and were defeated by the desperation and skill of the Catalans: the young emperor fled to the palace, leaving only an inadequate guard of light cavalry to protect the open territory. Victory renewed the hopes and ranks of the adventurers: all nations united under the name and banner of the great company; and three thousand converted Turkish soldiers deserted from the Imperial army to join this military group. In possession of Gallipoli, 509 the Catalans cut off trade to Constantinople and the Black Sea while wreaking havoc to both sides of the Hellespont across the borders of Europe and Asia. To stop their advance, most of the Byzantine territory was ravaged by the Greeks themselves: peasants and their livestock retreated into the city, and countless sheep and cattle, for which neither shelter nor food could be found, were wastefully slaughtered that very day. Four times, Emperor Andronicus sought peace, and four times he was stubbornly rejected, until the lack of supplies and feuds among the leaders forced the Catalans to leave the banks of the Hellespont and the vicinity of the capital. After parting ways with the Turks, the remnants of the great company continued their march through Macedonia and Thessaly, looking for a new settlement in the heart of Greece. 50

47 (return)
[ In this motley multitude, the Catalans and Spaniards, the bravest of the soldiery, were styled by themselves and the Greeks Amogavares. Moncada derives their origin from the Goths, and Pachymer (l. xi. c. 22) from the Arabs; and in spite of national and religious pride, I am afraid the latter is in the right.]

47 (return)
[In this mixed group, the Catalans and Spaniards, the boldest of the soldiers, referred to themselves and the Greeks as Amogavares. Moncada traces their origins to the Goths, while Pachymer (l. xi. c. 22) connects them to the Arabs; and despite all the national and religious pride, I think the latter might be correct.]

477 (return)
[ On Roger de Flor and his companions, see an historical fragment, detailed and interesting, entitled “The Spaniards of the Fourteenth Century,” and inserted in “L’Espagne en 1808,” a work translated from the German, vol. ii. p. 167. This narrative enables us to detect some slight errors which have crept into that of Gibbon.—G.]

477 (return)
[ For information on Roger de Flor and his companions, refer to a historical fragment that is detailed and interesting, called “The Spaniards of the Fourteenth Century,” which is included in “L’Espagne en 1808,” a work translated from German, vol. ii. p. 167. This narrative allows us to identify some minor errors that have made their way into Gibbon's account.—G.]

478 (return)
[ The troops of Roger de Flor, according to his companions Ramon de Montaner, were 1500 men at arms, 4000 Almogavares, and 1040 other foot, besides the sailors and mariners, vol. ii. p. 137.—M.]

478 (return)
[ Roger de Flor's troops, as noted by his companion Ramon de Montaner, consisted of 1500 knights, 4000 Almogavares, and 1040 other infantrymen, plus the sailors and mariners, vol. ii. p. 137.—M.]

479 (return)
[ Ramon de Montaner suppresses the cruelties and oppressions of the Catalans, in which, perhaps, he shared.—M.]

479 (return)
[ Ramon de Montaner conceals the cruelty and oppression faced by the Catalans, in which, perhaps, he was complicit.—M.]

48 (return)
[ Some idea may be formed of the population of these cities, from the 36,000 inhabitants of Tralles, which, in the preceding reign, was rebuilt by the emperor, and ruined by the Turks. (Pachymer, l. vi. c. 20, 21.)]

48 (return)
[ You can get an idea of the population of these cities from the 36,000 residents of Tralles, which was rebuilt by the emperor in the previous reign and later destroyed by the Turks. (Pachymer, l. vi. c. 20, 21.)]

49 (return)
[ I have collected these pecuniary circumstances from Pachymer, (l. xi. c. 21, l. xii. c. 4, 5, 8, 14, 19,) who describes the progressive degradation of the gold coin. Even in the prosperous times of John Ducas Vataces, the byzants were composed in equal proportions of the pure and the baser metal. The poverty of Michael Palæologus compelled him to strike a new coin, with nine parts, or carats, of gold, and fifteen of copper alloy. After his death, the standard rose to ten carats, till in the public distress it was reduced to the moiety. The prince was relieved for a moment, while credit and commerce were forever blasted. In France, the gold coin is of twenty-two carats, (one twelfth alloy,) and the standard of England and Holland is still higher.]

49 (return)
[ I gathered these financial details from Pachymer, (l. xi. c. 21, l. xii. c. 4, 5, 8, 14, 19,) who describes the gradual decline of the gold coin. Even during the prosperous era of John Ducas Vataces, the byzants were made up of equal parts of pure gold and base metal. Michael Palæologus's poverty forced him to introduce a new coin that contained nine parts, or carats, of gold, mixed with fifteen parts of copper. After his death, the standard rose to ten carats, only to drop to half during public distress. The prince experienced a brief relief, while credit and trade suffered irreparably. In France, the gold coin has a standard of twenty-two carats (one twelfth alloy), and the standards in England and Holland are even higher.]

496 (return)
[ Roger de Flor, according to Ramon de Montaner, was recalled from Natolia, on account of the war which had arisen on the death of Asan, king of Bulgaria. Andronicus claimed the kingdom for his nephew, the sons of Asan by his sister. Roger de Flor turned the tide of success in favor of the emperor of Constantinople and made peace.—M.]

496 (return)
[ Roger de Flor, according to Ramon de Montaner, was called back from Anatolia because of the war that broke out after the death of Asan, the king of Bulgaria. Andronicus claimed the throne for his nephew, who was Asan's son through his sister. Roger de Flor shifted the balance of success in favor of the emperor of Constantinople and established peace.—M.]

497 (return)
[ Andronicus paid the Catalans in the debased money, much to their indignation.—M.]

497 (return)
[ Andronicus paid the Catalans with the worthless money, which greatly upset them.—M.]

498 (return)
[ According to Ramon de Montaner, he was murdered by order of Kyr (kurioV) Michael, son of the emperor. p. 170.—M.]

498 (return)
[Ramon de Montaner claims he was killed on the orders of Kyr (kurioV) Michael, the emperor's son. p. 170.—M.]

509 (return)
[ Ramon de Montaner describes his sojourn at Gallipoli: Nous etions si riches, que nous ne semions, ni ne labourions, ni ne faisions enver des vins ni ne cultivions les vignes: et cependant tous les ans nous recucillions tour ce qu’il nous fallait, en vin, froment et avoine. p. 193. This lasted for five merry years. Ramon de Montaner is high authority, for he was “chancelier et maitre rational de l’armée,” (commissary of rations.) He was left governor; all the scribes of the army remained with him, and with their aid he kept the books in which were registered the number of horse and foot employed on each expedition. According to this book the plunder was shared, of which he had a fifth for his trouble. p. 197.—M.]

509 (return)
[ Ramon de Montaner describes his time in Gallipoli: We were so wealthy that we neither sowed nor plowed, did not send for wine, nor cultivated the vineyards; yet every year we gathered everything we needed in wine, wheat, and oats. p. 193. This continued for five joyful years. Ramon de Montaner is a respected authority, as he was “chancellor and master of the army” (commissary of rations). He was appointed governor; all the army's scribes stayed with him, and with their help, he maintained the records that noted the number of cavalry and infantry involved in each expedition. According to this record, the spoils were divided, with him receiving a fifth for his efforts. p. 197.—M.]

50 (return)
[ The Catalan war is most copiously related by Pachymer, in the xith, xiith, and xiiith books, till he breaks off in the year 1308. Nicephorus Gregoras (l. vii. 3—6) is more concise and complete. Ducange, who adopts these adventurers as French, has hunted their footsteps with his usual diligence, (Hist. de C. P. l. vi. c. 22—46.) He quotes an Arragonese history, which I have read with pleasure, and which the Spaniards extol as a model of style and composition, (Expedicion de los Catalanes y Arragoneses contra Turcos y Griegos: Barcelona, 1623 in quarto: Madrid, 1777, in octavo.) Don Francisco de Moncada Conde de Ossona, may imitate Cæsar or Sallust; he may transcribe the Greek or Italian contemporaries: but he never quotes his authorities, and I cannot discern any national records of the exploits of his countrymen. * Note: Ramon de Montaner, one of the Catalans, who accompanied Roger de Flor, and who was governor of Gallipoli, has written, in Spanish, the history of this band of adventurers, to which he belonged, and from which he separated when it left the Thracian Chersonese to penetrate into Macedonia and Greece.—G.——The autobiography of Ramon de Montaner has been published in French by M. Buchon, in the great collection of Mémoires relatifs à l’Histoire de France. I quote this edition.—M.]

50 (return)
[ The Catalan war is extensively covered by Pachymer in his 10th, 11th, and 12th books, until he stops in the year 1308. Nicephorus Gregoras (l. vii. 3—6) is more concise and complete. Ducange, who considers these adventurers to be French, has followed their trail with his usual thoroughness (Hist. de C. P. l. vi. c. 22—46). He references an Aragonese history that I found enjoyable to read and which the Spaniards praise as a standard of style and composition (Expedicion de los Catalanes y Arragoneses contra Turcos y Griegos: Barcelona, 1623 in quarto: Madrid, 1777, in octavo). Don Francisco de Moncada Conde de Ossona may emulate Caesar or Sallust; he may copy his Greek or Italian contemporaries, but he never cites his sources, and I cannot find any national records detailing the achievements of his fellow countrymen. * Note: Ramon de Montaner, one of the Catalans who accompanied Roger de Flor and served as governor of Gallipoli, wrote in Spanish the history of this group of adventurers to which he belonged, and from which he left when it moved from the Thracian Chersonese to advance into Macedonia and Greece.—G.—The autobiography of Ramon de Montaner has been published in French by M. Buchon in the great collection of Mémoires relatifs à l’Histoire de France. I quote this edition.—M.]

After some ages of oblivion, Greece was awakened to new misfortunes by the arms of the Latins. In the two hundred and fifty years between the first and the last conquest of Constantinople, that venerable land was disputed by a multitude of petty tyrants; without the comforts of freedom and genius, her ancient cities were again plunged in foreign and intestine war; and, if servitude be preferable to anarchy, they might repose with joy under the Turkish yoke. I shall not pursue the obscure and various dynasties, that rose and fell on the continent or in the isles; but our silence on the fate of Athens 51 would argue a strange ingratitude to the first and purest school of liberal science and amusement. In the partition of the empire, the principality of Athens and Thebes was assigned to Otho de la Roche, a noble warrior of Burgundy, 52 with the title of great duke, 53 which the Latins understood in their own sense, and the Greeks more foolishly derived from the age of Constantine. 54 Otho followed the standard of the marquis of Montferrat: the ample state which he acquired by a miracle of conduct or fortune, 55 was peaceably inherited by his son and two grandsons, till the family, though not the nation, was changed, by the marriage of an heiress into the elder branch of the house of Brienne. The son of that marriage, Walter de Brienne, succeeded to the duchy of Athens; and, with the aid of some Catalan mercenaries, whom he invested with fiefs, reduced above thirty castles of the vassal or neighboring lords. But when he was informed of the approach and ambition of the great company, he collected a force of seven hundred knights, six thousand four hundred horse, and eight thousand foot, and boldly met them on the banks of the River Cephisus in Bœotia. The Catalans amounted to no more than three thousand five hundred horse, and four thousand foot; but the deficiency of numbers was compensated by stratagem and order. They formed round their camp an artificial inundation; the duke and his knights advanced without fear or precaution on the verdant meadow; their horses plunged into the bog; and he was cut in pieces, with the greatest part of the French cavalry. His family and nation were expelled; and his son Walter de Brienne, the titular duke of Athens, the tyrant of Florence, and the constable of France, lost his life in the field of Poitiers Attica and Bœotia were the rewards of the victorious Catalans; they married the widows and daughters of the slain; and during fourteen years, the great company was the terror of the Grecian states. Their factions drove them to acknowledge the sovereignty of the house of Arragon; and during the remainder of the fourteenth century, Athens, as a government or an appanage, was successively bestowed by the kings of Sicily. After the French and Catalans, the third dynasty was that of the Accaioli, a family, plebeian at Florence, potent at Naples, and sovereign in Greece. Athens, which they embellished with new buildings, became the capital of a state, that extended over Thebes, Argos, Corinth, Delphi, and a part of Thessaly; and their reign was finally determined by Mahomet the Second, who strangled the last duke, and educated his sons in the discipline and religion of the seraglio.

After a long period of being forgotten, Greece faced new troubles at the hands of the Latins. In the two hundred and fifty years between the first and last conquests of Constantinople, that ancient land was fought over by countless petty rulers; deprived of the joys of freedom and creativity, its historic cities were once again engulfed in foreign and civil wars. If being enslaved is better than chaos, they might have found some comfort under Turkish rule. I won’t dive into the obscure and varied dynasties that rose and fell on the mainland or the islands; however, ignoring the fate of Athens 51 would show a strange ingratitude to the original and finest school of liberal arts and enjoyment. When the empire was divided, the principality of Athens and Thebes was given to Otho de la Roche, a noble warrior from Burgundy, 52 who held the title of great duke, 53 which the Latins understood in their own way, while the Greeks foolishly traced it back to the time of Constantine. 54 Otho followed the banner of the Marquis of Montferrat; the vast territory he gained through either skill or good luck, 55 was peacefully inherited by his son and two grandsons, until the family, though not the nation, was changed when an heiress married into the older branch of the house of Brienne. The son from that marriage, Walter de Brienne, inherited the duchy of Athens; and with the help of some Catalan mercenaries, whom he granted fiefs, he took over more than thirty castles of the vassal or nearby lords. But when he learned of the approaching threat from the great company, he gathered a force of seven hundred knights, six thousand four hundred cavalry, and eight thousand infantry, and bravely confronted them on the banks of the River Cephisus in Boeotia. The Catalans numbered only around three thousand five hundred cavalry and four thousand infantry; but their smaller numbers were offset by strategy and organization. They created an artificial flood around their camp; the duke and his knights advanced carelessly onto the lush meadow; their horses sank into the swamp; and he was killed, along with most of the French cavalry. His family and nation were expelled; and his son, Walter de Brienne, the nominal duke of Athens, the tyrant of Florence, and the constable of France, lost his life on the battlefield at Poitiers. Attica and Boeotia became the prizes of the victorious Catalans; they married the widows and daughters of the slain; and for fourteen years, the great company instilled fear in the Greek states. Their internal disputes led them to acknowledge the sovereignty of the house of Aragon; and for the rest of the fourteenth century, Athens, as a government or a fief, was granted successively by the kings of Sicily. After the French and Catalans, the third dynasty was that of the Accaioli, a family from the lower class in Florence, powerful in Naples, and sovereign in Greece. Athens, which they adorned with new structures, became the capital of a territory that spread over Thebes, Argos, Corinth, Delphi, and part of Thessaly; and their reign ultimately ended with Mahomet II, who strangled the last duke and raised his sons in the teachings and faith of the palace.

51 (return)
[ See the laborious history of Ducange, whose accurate table of the French dynasties recapitulates the thirty-five passages, in which he mentions the dukes of Athens.]

51 (return)
[ Check out the detailed history of Ducange, whose precise summary of the French dynasties reviews the thirty-five instances where he mentions the dukes of Athens.]

52 (return)
[ He is twice mentioned by Villehardouin with honor, (No. 151, 235;) and under the first passage, Ducange observes all that can be known of his person and family.]

52 (return)
[ He is respectfully mentioned twice by Villehardouin, (No. 151, 235;) and in the first reference, Ducange notes everything that is known about his life and family.]

53 (return)
[ From these Latin princes of the xivth century, Boccace, Chaucer. and Shakspeare, have borrowed their Theseus duke of Athens. An ignorant age transfers its own language and manners to the most distant times.]

53 (return)
[ From these Latin princes of the 14th century, Boccaccio, Chaucer, and Shakespeare have taken their Theseus duke of Athens. An uninformed era projects its own language and customs onto the most distant times.]

54 (return)
[ The same Constantine gave to Sicily a king, to Russia the magnus dapifer of the empire, to Thebes the primicerius; and these absurd fables are properly lashed by Ducange, (ad Nicephor. Greg. l. vii. c. 5.) By the Latins, the lord of Thebes was styled, by corruption, the Megas Kurios, or Grand Sire!]

54 (return)
[ The same Constantine appointed a king for Sicily, the magnus dapifer for Russia, and the primicerius for Thebes; these ridiculous stories are rightly criticized by Ducange, (ad Nicephor. Greg. l. vii. c. 5.) The Latins referred to the lord of Thebes, through a corruption of language, as the Megas Kurios, or Grand Sire!]

55 (return)
[ Quodam miraculo, says Alberic. He was probably received by Michael Choniates, the archbishop who had defended Athens against the tyrant Leo Sgurus, (Nicetas urbs capta, p. 805, ed. Bek.) Michael was the brother of the historian Nicetas; and his encomium of Athens is still extant in MS. in the Bodleian library, (Fabric. Bibliot. Græc tom. vi. p. 405.) * Note: Nicetas says expressly that Michael surrendered the Acropolis to the marquis.—M.]

55 (return)
[ By a certain miracle, says Alberic. He was likely welcomed by Michael Choniates, the archbishop who had defended Athens against the tyrant Leo Sgurus, (Nicetas urbs capta, p. 805, ed. Bek.) Michael was the brother of the historian Nicetas; and his praise of Athens still exists in manuscript in the Bodleian library, (Fabric. Bibliot. Græc tom. vi. p. 405.) * Note: Nicetas clearly states that Michael surrendered the Acropolis to the marquis.—M.]

Athens, 56 though no more than the shadow of her former self, still contains about eight or ten thousand inhabitants; of these, three fourths are Greeks in religion and language; and the Turks, who compose the remainder, have relaxed, in their intercourse with the citizens, somewhat of the pride and gravity of their national character. The olive-tree, the gift of Minerva, flourishes in Attica; nor has the honey of Mount Hymettus lost any part of its exquisite flavor: 57 but the languid trade is monopolized by strangers, and the agriculture of a barren land is abandoned to the vagrant Walachians. The Athenians are still distinguished by the subtlety and acuteness of their understandings; but these qualities, unless ennobled by freedom, and enlightened by study, will degenerate into a low and selfish cunning: and it is a proverbial saying of the country, “From the Jews of Thessalonica, the Turks of Negropont, and the Greeks of Athens, good Lord deliver us!” This artful people has eluded the tyranny of the Turkish bashaws, by an expedient which alleviates their servitude and aggravates their shame. About the middle of the last century, the Athenians chose for their protector the Kislar Aga, or chief black eunuch of the seraglio. This Æthiopian slave, who possesses the sultan’s ear, condescends to accept the tribute of thirty thousand crowns: his lieutenant, the Waywode, whom he annually confirms, may reserve for his own about five or six thousand more; and such is the policy of the citizens, that they seldom fail to remove and punish an oppressive governor. Their private differences are decided by the archbishop, one of the richest prelates of the Greek church, since he possesses a revenue of one thousand pounds sterling; and by a tribunal of the eight geronti or elders, chosen in the eight quarters of the city: the noble families cannot trace their pedigree above three hundred years; but their principal members are distinguished by a grave demeanor, a fur cap, and the lofty appellation of archon. By some, who delight in the contrast, the modern language of Athens is represented as the most corrupt and barbarous of the seventy dialects of the vulgar Greek: 58 this picture is too darkly colored: but it would not be easy, in the country of Plato and Demosthenes, to find a reader or a copy of their works. The Athenians walk with supine indifference among the glorious ruins of antiquity; and such is the debasement of their character, that they are incapable of admiring the genius of their predecessors. 59

Athens, 56 while it is just a shadow of its former self, still has about eight to ten thousand people living there; among them, three-fourths are Greeks by religion and language, while the Turks make up the rest, having softened some of their national pride and seriousness in their interactions with the locals. The olive tree, a gift from Minerva, still thrives in Attica, and the honey from Mount Hymettus hasn’t lost its wonderful flavor: 57 but the sluggish trade is controlled by outsiders, and the farming of this poor land is left to wandering Walachians. The Athenians are still known for their sharp intelligence and cleverness; however, unless these traits are uplifted by freedom and enriched through education, they may decay into a low and selfish cunning. There is a common saying in the region: “From the Jews of Thessalonica, the Turks of Negropont, and the Greeks of Athens, good Lord deliver us!” This clever population has escaped the oppression of the Turkish bashaws by a method that lessens their bondage but increases their shame. Around the middle of the last century, the Athenians chose the Kislar Aga, the chief black eunuch of the seraglio, as their protector. This Ethiopian slave, who has the sultan’s ear, agrees to accept a tribute of thirty thousand crowns; his deputy, the Waywode, whom he confirms each year, is allowed to keep about five or six thousand more for himself. The citizens are so strategic that they rarely fail to remove and punish any harsh governor. Their personal disputes are settled by the archbishop, one of the wealthiest bishop in the Greek church, with an income of one thousand pounds sterling; and by a tribunal of eight geronti or elders, chosen from the eight districts of the city. The noble families can trace their lineage back only three hundred years, but their key figures are marked by serious behavior, a fur cap, and the esteemed title of archon. Some people, who enjoy the contrast, claim that the modern language of Athens is the most corrupted and barbaric of the seventy dialects of colloquial Greek: 58 this description is overly harsh; however, it wouldn’t be easy in the land of Plato and Demosthenes to find a reader or a copy of their works. The Athenians stroll through the magnificent ruins of ancient times with a careless indifference, and their character has declined to the point where they can no longer appreciate the brilliance of their ancestors. 59

56 (return)
[ The modern account of Athens, and the Athenians, is extracted from Spon, (Voyage en Grece, tom. ii. p. 79—199,) and Wheeler, (Travels into Greece, p. 337—414,) Stuart, (Antiquities of Athens, passim,) and Chandler, (Travels into Greece, p. 23—172.) The first of these travellers visited Greece in the year 1676; the last, 1765; and ninety years had not produced much difference in the tranquil scene.]

56 (return)
[ The current description of Athens and its people is taken from Spon, (Voyage en Grece, tom. ii. p. 79—199), Wheeler, (Travels into Greece, p. 337—414), Stuart, (Antiquities of Athens, passim), and Chandler, (Travels into Greece, p. 23—172). The first of these travelers visited Greece in 1676; the last in 1765; and in ninety years, not much had changed in the peaceful landscape.]

57 (return)
[ The ancients, or at least the Athenians, believed that all the bees in the world had been propagated from Mount Hymettus. They taught, that health might be preserved, and life prolonged, by the external use of oil, and the internal use of honey, (Geoponica, l. xv. c 7, p. 1089—1094, edit. Niclas.)]

57 (return)
[The ancients, or at least the Athenians, believed that all the bees in the world originated from Mount Hymettus. They taught that using oil on the outside and honey on the inside could help maintain health and extend life, (Geoponica, l. xv. c 7, p. 1089—1094, edit. Niclas.)]

58 (return)
[ Ducange, Glossar. Græc. Præfat. p. 8, who quotes for his author Theodosius Zygomalas, a modern grammarian. Yet Spon (tom. ii. p. 194) and Wheeler, (p. 355,) no incompetent judges, entertain a more favorable opinion of the Attic dialect.]

58 (return)
[ Ducange, Glossar. Græc. Præfat. p. 8, who cites Theodosius Zygomalas, a contemporary grammarian, as his source. However, Spon (tom. ii. p. 194) and Wheeler (p. 355), both reputable scholars, have a more positive view of the Attic dialect.]

59 (return)
[ Yet we must not accuse them of corrupting the name of Athens, which they still call Athini. From the eiV thn 'Aqhnhn, we have formed our own barbarism of Setines. * Note: Gibbon did not foresee a Bavarian prince on the throne of Greece, with Athens as his capital.—M.]

59 (return)
[ But we shouldn’t blame them for tarnishing the name of Athens, which they still call Athini. From the eiV thn 'Aqhnhn, we’ve created our own version of barbarism with Setines. * Note: Gibbon did not anticipate a Bavarian prince on the throne of Greece, with Athens as his capital.—M.]

Chapter LXIII: Civil Wars And The Ruin Of The Greek Empire.—Part I.

     Civil Wars, And Ruin Of The Greek Empire.—Reigns Of
     Andronicus, The Elder And Younger, And John Palæologus.—
     Regency, Revolt, Reign, And Abdication Of John Cantacuzene.—
     Establishment Of A Genoese Colony At Pera Or Galata.—Their
     Wars With The Empire And City Of Constantinople.
     Civil Wars and the Ruin of the Greek Empire. — Reigns of Andronicus the Elder and Younger, and John Palæologus. — Regency, Revolt, Reign, and Abdication of John Cantacuzene. — Establishment of a Genoese Colony at Pera or Galata. — Their Wars with the Empire and City of Constantinople.

The long reign of Andronicus 1 the elder is chiefly memorable by the disputes of the Greek church, the invasion of the Catalans, and the rise of the Ottoman power. He is celebrated as the most learned and virtuous prince of the age; but such virtue, and such learning, contributed neither to the perfection of the individual, nor to the happiness of society. A slave of the most abject superstition, he was surrounded on all sides by visible and invisible enemies; nor were the flames of hell less dreadful to his fancy, than those of a Catalan or Turkish war. Under the reign of the Palæologi, the choice of the patriarch was the most important business of the state; the heads of the Greek church were ambitious and fanatic monks; and their vices or virtues, their learning or ignorance, were equally mischievous or contemptible. By his intemperate discipline, the patriarch Athanasius 2 excited the hatred of the clergy and people: he was heard to declare, that the sinner should swallow the last dregs of the cup of penance; and the foolish tale was propagated of his punishing a sacrilegious ass that had tasted the lettuce of a convent garden. Driven from the throne by the universal clamor, Athanasius composed before his retreat two papers of a very opposite cast. His public testament was in the tone of charity and resignation; the private codicil breathed the direst anathemas against the authors of his disgrace, whom he excluded forever from the communion of the holy trinity, the angels, and the saints. This last paper he enclosed in an earthen pot, which was placed, by his order, on the top of one of the pillars, in the dome of St. Sophia, in the distant hope of discovery and revenge. At the end of four years, some youths, climbing

The long reign of Andronicus 1 the elder is mainly notable for the conflicts within the Greek church, the invasion by the Catalans, and the rise of Ottoman power. He is remembered as the most educated and virtuous ruler of his time; however, that virtue and knowledge did nothing for the improvement of individuals or the happiness of society. A slave to extreme superstition, he was surrounded by both visible and invisible enemies; the threat of hellfire seemed just as terrifying to him as any Catalan or Turkish conflict. During the Palæologi rule, selecting the patriarch was the state's most crucial task; the leaders of the Greek church were ambitious and fanatical monks, and their flaws or strengths, knowledge or ignorance, were equally harmful or despicable. The patriarch Athanasius 2 stirred up resentment among the clergy and the public with his harsh policies: he was heard saying that sinners should endure the very last drops of penance; and the silly story spread about how he punished a blasphemous donkey that had eaten from a convent garden. Driven from the throne by public outcry, Athanasius wrote two very different statements before his exile. His public testament was filled with a spirit of charity and acceptance; the private codicil, however, unleashed severe curses on those responsible for his downfall, excluding them forever from the communion of the holy trinity, the angels, and the saints. He sealed this last document in a clay pot, which he ordered to be placed atop one of the pillars in the dome of St. Sophia, holding out hope for it to be discovered and for revenge. Four years later, some youths, climbing

by a ladder in search of pigeons’ nests, detected the fatal secret; and,

by a ladder looking for pigeon nests, discovered the deadly secret; and,

as Andronicus felt himself touched and bound by the excommunication, he trembled on the brink of the abyss which had been so treacherously dug under his feet. A synod of bishops was instantly convened to debate this important question: the rashness of these clandestine anathemas was generally condemned; but as the knot could be untied only by the same hand, as that hand was now deprived of the crosier, it appeared that this posthumous decree was irrevocable by any earthly power. Some faint testimonies of repentance and pardon were extorted from the author of the mischief; but the conscience of the emperor was still wounded, and he desired, with no less ardor than Athanasius himself, the restoration of a patriarch, by whom alone he could be healed. At the dead of night, a monk rudely knocked at the door of the royal bed-chamber, announcing a revelation of plague and famine, of inundations and earthquakes. Andronicus started from his bed, and spent the night in prayer, till he felt, or thought that he felt, a slight motion of the earth. The emperor on foot led the bishops and monks to the cell of Athanasius; and, after a proper resistance, the saint, from whom this message had been sent, consented to absolve the prince, and govern the church of Constantinople. Untamed by disgrace, and hardened by solitude, the shepherd was again odious to the flock, and his enemies contrived a singular, and as it proved, a successful, mode of revenge. In the night, they stole away the footstool or foot-cloth of his throne, which they secretly replaced with the decoration of a satirical picture. The emperor was painted with a bridle in his mouth, and Athanasius leading the tractable beast to the feet of Christ. The authors of the libel were detected and punished; but as their lives had been spared, the Christian priest in sullen indignation retired to his cell; and the eyes of Andronicus, which had been opened for a moment, were again closed by his successor.

As Andronicus felt the weight of his excommunication, he trembled on the edge of the abyss that had been treacherously dug beneath him. A meeting of bishops was quickly called to discuss this critical issue: the reckless nature of these secretive condemnations was largely condemned; but since the knot could only be untied by the same hand that tied it, and that hand was now stripped of the crosier, it seemed that this posthumous decree was beyond the reach of any earthly power. Some weak signs of regret and forgiveness were extorted from the one who had caused the trouble, but the emperor's conscience remained wounded, and he longed, just as passionately as Athanasius himself, for the restoration of a patriarch who could heal him. In the dead of night, a monk banged on the door of the royal bedroom, revealing a vision of plague and famine, floods and earthquakes. Andronicus jumped out of bed and spent the night praying until he felt, or thought he felt, a slight tremor in the earth. The emperor, on foot, led the bishops and monks to Athanasius's cell; after some initial resistance, the saint, from whom this message had come, agreed to absolve the prince and oversee the church of Constantinople. Undeterred by disgrace and hardened by isolation, the shepherd was once again disliked by the flock, and his enemies devised a particularly clever, and as it turned out, effective way of revenge. In the night, they stole the footstool or foot-cloth from his throne and secretly replaced it with a satirical decoration. The emperor was depicted with a bridle in his mouth, being led by Athanasius, the compliant beast, to the feet of Christ. The creators of the parody were caught and punished; however, since their lives were spared, the Christian priest, filled with quiet indignation, retreated to his cell, and Andronicus’s eyes, which had briefly been opened, were closed again by his successor.

1 (return)
[ Andronicus himself will justify our freedom in the invective, (Nicephorus Gregoras, l. i. c. i.,) which he pronounced against historic falsehood. It is true, that his censure is more pointedly urged against calumny than against adulation.]

1 (return)
[ Andronicus himself will defend our freedom in the speech he gave against historical falsehoods (Nicephorus Gregoras, l. i. c. i.). It's true that his criticism is directed more sharply at slander than at flattery.]

2 (return)
[ For the anathema in the pigeon’s nest, see Pachymer, (l. ix. c. 24,) who relates the general history of Athanasius, (l. viii. c. 13—16, 20, 24, l. x. c. 27—29, 31—36, l. xi. c. 1—3, 5, 6, l. xiii. c. 8, 10, 23, 35,) and is followed by Nicephorus Gregoras, (l. vi. c. 5, 7, l. vii. c. 1, 9,) who includes the second retreat of this second Chrysostom.]

2 (return)
[ For the curse in the pigeon’s nest, see Pachymer, (l. ix. c. 24,) who shares the overall history of Athanasius, (l. viii. c. 13—16, 20, 24, l. x. c. 27—29, 31—36, l. xi. c. 1—3, 5, 6, l. xiii. c. 8, 10, 23, 35,) and is referenced by Nicephorus Gregoras, (l. vi. c. 5, 7, l. vii. c. 1, 9,) who includes the second retreat of this second Chrysostom.]

If this transaction be one of the most curious and important of a reign of fifty years, I cannot at least accuse the brevity of my materials, since I reduce into some few pages the enormous folios of Pachymer, 3 Cantacuzene, 4 and Nicephorus Gregoras, 5 who have composed the prolix and languid story of the times. The name and situation of the emperor John Cantacuzene might inspire the most lively curiosity. His memorials of forty years extend from the revolt of the younger Andronicus to his own abdication of the empire; and it is observed, that, like Moses and Cæsar, he was the principal actor in the scenes which he describes. But in this eloquent work we should vainly seek the sincerity of a hero or a penitent. Retired in a cloister from the vices and passions of the world, he presents not a confession, but an apology, of the life of an ambitious statesman. Instead of unfolding the true counsels and characters of men, he displays the smooth and specious surface of events, highly varnished with his own praises and those of his friends. Their motives are always pure; their ends always legitimate: they conspire and rebel without any views of interest; and the violence which they inflict or suffer is celebrated as the spontaneous effect of reason and virtue.

If this transaction is one of the most intriguing and significant of a fifty-year reign, I can't blame the shortness of my sources, since I condense the massive volumes of Pachymer, 3 Cantacuzene, 4 and Nicephorus Gregoras, 5 who have written the long and tedious story of those times into a few pages. The name and position of Emperor John Cantacuzene could spark the greatest curiosity. His records of forty years cover everything from the rebellion of the younger Andronicus to his own abdication from the empire; it's noted that, like Moses and Caesar, he was the main actor in the events he describes. However, in this eloquent work, we would search in vain for the honesty of a hero or a penitent. Isolated in a monastery from the vices and passions of the world, he offers not a confession, but an apology for the life of an ambitious statesman. Rather than revealing the true intentions and personalities of people, he showcases a polished and deceptive portrayal of events, heavily glossed with his own praises and those of his friends. Their motives are always pure; their goals always legitimate: they plot and rebel without any self-interest, and the violence they inflict or endure is celebrated as the natural result of reason and virtue.

3 (return)
[ Pachymer, in seven books, 377 folio pages, describes the first twenty-six years of Andronicus the Elder; and marks the date of his composition by the current news or lie of the day, (A.D. 1308.) Either death or disgust prevented him from resuming the pen.]

3 (return)
[ Pachymer, in seven books, 377 folio pages, details the first twenty-six years of Andronicus the Elder; and notes the date of his writing based on the news or rumors of the time, (A.D. 1308.) Either death or dissatisfaction stopped him from picking up the pen again.]

4 (return)
[ After an interval of twelve years, from the conclusion of Pachymer, Cantacuzenus takes up the pen; and his first book (c. 1—59, p. 9—150) relates the civil war, and the eight last years of the elder Andronicus. The ingenious comparison with Moses and Cæsar is fancied by his French translator, the president Cousin.]

4 (return)
[ After a gap of twelve years since Pachymer's conclusion, Cantacuzenus picks up the pen again; his first book (c. 1—59, p. 9—150) discusses the civil war and the last eight years of the elder Andronicus. The clever comparison to Moses and Caesar is attributed to his French translator, President Cousin.]

5 (return)
[ Nicephorus Gregoras more briefly includes the entire life and reign of Andronicus the elder, (l. vi. c. 1, p. 96—291.) This is the part of which Cantacuzene complains as a false and malicious representation of his conduct.]

5 (return)
[Nicephorus Gregoras briefly covers the whole life and reign of Andronicus the Elder, (l. vi. c. 1, p. 96—291.) This is the section that Cantacuzene criticizes as a false and spiteful depiction of his actions.]

After the example of the first of the Palæologi, the elder Andronicus associated his son Michael to the honors of the purple; and from the age of eighteen to his premature death, that prince was acknowledged, above twenty-five years, as the second emperor of the Greeks. 6 At the head of an army, he excited neither the fears of the enemy, nor the jealousy of the court; his modesty and patience were never tempted to compute the years of his father; nor was that father compelled to repent of his liberality either by the virtues or vices of his son. The son of Michael was named Andronicus from his grandfather, to whose early favor he was introduced by that nominal resemblance. The blossoms of wit and beauty increased the fondness of the elder Andronicus; and, with the common vanity of age, he expected to realize in the second, the hope which had been disappointed in the first, generation. The boy was educated in the palace as an heir and a favorite; and in the oaths and acclamations of the people, the august triad was formed by the names of the father, the son, and the grandson. But the younger Andronicus was speedily corrupted by his infant greatness, while he beheld with puerile impatience the double obstacle that hung, and might long hang, over his rising ambition. It was not to acquire fame, or to diffuse happiness, that he so eagerly aspired: wealth and impunity were in his eyes the most precious attributes of a monarch; and his first indiscreet demand was the sovereignty of some rich and fertile island, where he might lead a life of independence and pleasure. The emperor was offended by the loud and frequent intemperance which disturbed his capital; the sums which his parsimony denied were supplied by the Genoese usurers of Pera; and the oppressive debt, which consolidated the interest of a faction, could be discharged only by a revolution. A beautiful female, a matron in rank, a prostitute in manners, had instructed the younger Andronicus in the rudiments of love; but he had reason to suspect the nocturnal visits of a rival; and a stranger passing through the street was pierced by the arrows of his guards, who were placed in ambush at her door. That stranger was his brother, Prince Manuel, who languished and died of his wound; and the emperor Michael, their common father, whose health was in a declining state, expired on the eighth day, lamenting the loss of both his children. 7 However guiltless in his intention, the younger Andronicus might impute a brother’s and a father’s death to the consequence of his own vices; and deep was the sigh of thinking and feeling men, when they perceived, instead of sorrow and repentance, his ill-dissembled joy on the removal of two odious competitors. By these melancholy events, and the increase of his disorders, the mind of the elder emperor was gradually alienated; and, after many fruitless reproofs, he transferred on another grandson 8 his hopes and affection. The change was announced by the new oath of allegiance to the reigning sovereign, and the person whom he should appoint for his successor; and the acknowledged heir, after a repetition of insults and complaints, was exposed to the indignity of a public trial. Before the sentence, which would probably have condemned him to a dungeon or a cell, the emperor was informed that the palace courts were filled with the armed followers of his grandson; the judgment was softened to a treaty of reconciliation; and the triumphant escape of the prince encouraged the ardor of the younger faction.

After the example set by the first of the Palæologi, the elder Andronicus included his son Michael in the honors of the imperial purple; and from the age of eighteen until his untimely death, that prince was recognized, for over twenty-five years, as the second emperor of the Greeks. 6 At the head of an army, he neither instilled fear in the enemy nor jealousy in the court; his modesty and patience were never tempted to compare his age with that of his father, nor was that father regretting his generosity because of his son’s virtues or vices. Michael’s son was named Andronicus after his grandfather, thanks to the early favor he received due to that name. The charm and beauty of the boy only increased the affection of the elder Andronicus; and, like many older people do, he expected to fulfill through the second what had been a disappointment with the first generation. The boy was raised in the palace as an heir and a favorite; and in the oaths and praises of the people, the august triad was formed by the names of the father, son, and grandson. However, the younger Andronicus quickly fell victim to his early greatness as he impatiently saw the obstacles in his way to rising ambition. He was not eager to gain fame or spread happiness; instead, he saw wealth and unaccountability as the most desirable traits of a monarch, and his first rash request was to rule over some rich and fertile island where he could live independently and enjoy life. The emperor was disturbed by the loud and frequent debauchery that disrupted his capital; the funds denied by his frugality were borrowed from the Genoese moneylenders of Pera; and the heavy debt, which strengthened a faction’s interests, could only be resolved through a revolution. A beautiful woman, a lady by status but a prostitute by nature, had taught the younger Andronicus about love’s basics; but he grew suspicious of a rival’s nighttime visits. A stranger passing by was shot by the arrows of his guards, who were lying in wait at her door. That stranger was his brother, Prince Manuel, who suffered and died from his injury; and Emperor Michael, their common father, whose health was declining, passed away on the eighth day, mourning the loss of both his children. 7 Although innocent in his intentions, the younger Andronicus might blame the deaths of a brother and father on his own vices; and there was a deep sigh from thoughtful and feeling individuals when they noticed, instead of sorrow and remorse, his poorly hidden joy at the removal of two detested rivals. Due to these tragic events and the worsening of his own issues, the elder emperor became increasingly estranged; and after many futile reprimands, he shifted his hopes and affections to another grandson 8. This change was marked by a new oath of loyalty to the reigning monarch and the person he would select as his successor; and the acknowledged heir, after facing repeated insults and grievances, was subjected to the humiliation of a public trial. Before the verdict, which would likely have sentenced him to a dungeon or a cell, the emperor learned that the palace courts were filled with the armed followers of his grandson; the sentence was softened into a reconciliation treaty; and the prince’s triumphant escape fueled the enthusiasm of the younger faction.

6 (return)
[ He was crowned May 21st, 1295, and died October 12th, 1320, (Ducange, Fam. Byz. p. 239.) His brother Theodore, by a second marriage, inherited the marquisate of Montferrat, apostatized to the religion and manners of the Latins, (oti kai gnwmh kai pistei kai schkati, kai geneiwn koura kai pasin eqesin DatinoV hn akraijnhV. Nic. Greg. l. ix. c. 1,) and founded a dynasty of Italian princes, which was extinguished A.D. 1533, (Ducange, Fam. Byz. p. 249—253.)]

6 (return)
[ He was crowned on May 21, 1295, and died on October 12, 1320, (Ducange, Fam. Byz. p. 239.) His brother Theodore, from a second marriage, took over the marquisate of Montferrat, converted to the religion and customs of the Latins, (oti kai gnwmh kai pistei kai schkati, kai geneiwn koura kai pasin eqesin DatinoV hn akraijnhV. Nic. Greg. l. ix. c. 1,) and established a line of Italian princes that ended in 1533, (Ducange, Fam. Byz. p. 249—253.)]

7 (return)
[ We are indebted to Nicephorus Gregoras (l. viii. c. 1) for the knowledge of this tragic adventure; while Cantacuzene more discreetly conceals the vices of Andronicus the Younger, of which he was the witness and perhaps the associate, (l. i. c. 1, &c.)]

7 (return)
[ We owe our understanding of this tragic event to Nicephorus Gregoras (l. viii. c. 1); meanwhile, Cantacuzene more cautiously hides the flaws of Andronicus the Younger, of whom he was a witness and possibly an accomplice, (l. i. c. 1, &c.)]

8 (return)
[ His destined heir was Michael Catharus, the bastard of Constantine his second son. In this project of excluding his grandson Andronicus, Nicephorus Gregoras (l. viii. c. 3) agrees with Cantacuzene, (l. i. c. 1, 2.)]

8 (return)
[ His intended heir was Michael Catharus, the illegitimate son of Constantine, his second son. In this plan to exclude his grandson Andronicus, Nicephorus Gregoras (l. viii. c. 3) aligns with Cantacuzene (l. i. c. 1, 2.)]

Yet the capital, the clergy, and the senate, adhered to the person, or at least to the government, of the old emperor; and it was only in the provinces, by flight, and revolt, and foreign succor, that the malecontents could hope to vindicate their cause and subvert his throne. The soul of the enterprise was the great domestic John Cantacuzene; the sally from Constantinople is the first date of his actions and memorials; and if his own pen be most descriptive of his patriotism, an unfriendly historian has not refused to celebrate the zeal and ability which he displayed in the service of the young emperor. 89 That prince escaped from the capital under the pretence of hunting; erected his standard at Adrianople; and, in a few days, assembled fifty thousand horse and foot, whom neither honor nor duty could have armed against the Barbarians. Such a force might have saved or commanded the empire; but their counsels were discordant, their motions were slow and doubtful, and their progress was checked by intrigue and negotiation. The quarrel of the two Andronici was protracted, and suspended, and renewed, during a ruinous period of seven years. In the first treaty, the relics of the Greek empire were divided: Constantinople, Thessalonica, and the islands, were left to the elder, while the younger acquired the sovereignty of the greatest part of Thrace, from Philippi to the Byzantine limit. By the second treaty, he stipulated the payment of his troops, his immediate coronation, and an adequate share of the power and revenue of the state. The third civil war was terminated by the surprise of Constantinople, the final retreat of the old emperor, and the sole reign of his victorious grandson. The reasons of this delay may be found in the characters of the men and of the times. When the heir of the monarchy first pleaded his wrongs and his apprehensions, he was heard with pity and applause: and his adherents repeated on all sides the inconsistent promise, that he would increase the pay of the soldiers and alleviate the burdens of the people. The grievances of forty years were mingled in his revolt; and the rising generation was fatigued by the endless prospect of a reign, whose favorites and maxims were of other times. The youth of Andronicus had been without spirit, his age was without reverence: his taxes produced an unusual revenue of five hundred thousand pounds; yet the richest of the sovereigns of Christendom was incapable of maintaining three thousand horse and twenty galleys, to resist the destructive progress of the Turks. 9 “How different,” said the younger Andronicus, “is my situation from that of the son of Philip! Alexander might complain, that his father would leave him nothing to conquer: alas! my grandsire will leave me nothing to lose.” But the Greeks were soon admonished, that the public disorders could not be healed by a civil war; and that their young favorite was not destined to be the savior of a falling empire. On the first repulse, his party was broken by his own levity, their intestine discord, and the intrigues of the ancient court, which tempted each malecontent to desert or betray the cause of the rebellion. Andronicus the younger was touched with remorse, or fatigued with business, or deceived by negotiation: pleasure rather than power was his aim; and the license of maintaining a thousand hounds, a thousand hawks, and a thousand huntsmen, was sufficient to sully his fame and disarm his ambition.

Yet the city, the clergy, and the senate remained loyal to the person, or at least the rule, of the old emperor; and it was only in the provinces, through fleeing, uprising, and foreign support, that the discontented could hope to fight for their cause and overthrow his throne. The driving force behind the effort was the notable local figure, John Cantacuzene; the attack from Constantinople marks the beginning of his actions and records; and while his own writings best capture his patriotism, a less friendly historian has acknowledged the enthusiasm and skill he showed in the service of the young emperor. 89 That prince escaped from the city under the guise of going hunting; raised his banner at Adrianople; and within a few days gathered together fifty thousand soldiers, whom neither honor nor duty could have rallied against the Barbarians. Such a force could have saved or commanded the empire; but their strategies were chaotic, their actions were slow and uncertain, and their progress was stalled by intrigue and negotiation. The conflict between the two Andronici dragged on, paused, and reignited over a destructive period of seven years. In the first treaty, the remnants of the Greek empire were divided: Constantinople, Thessalonica, and the islands were assigned to the older brother, while the younger secured control over most of Thrace, from Philippi to the Byzantine border. In the second treaty, he demanded payment for his troops, his immediate coronation, and a fair share of the power and revenue of the state. The third civil war concluded with the surprise capture of Constantinople, the final retreat of the old emperor, and the sole rule of his victorious grandson. The reasons for this delay can be found in the personalities of the individuals and the circumstances of the time. When the heir to the throne first voiced his grievances and fears, he was met with sympathy and cheers: his supporters echoed the inconsistent promise that he would raise the soldiers' pay and ease the burdens on the people. The complaints from forty years were intertwined in his rebellion; and the younger generation was weary of the endless prospect of a reign led by favorites and principles of days gone by. Andronicus' youth lacked spirit, and his older age lacked respect: his taxes yielded an extraordinary revenue of five hundred thousand pounds; yet the wealthiest of the Christian monarchs could not maintain three thousand cavalry and twenty galleys to resist the devastating advance of the Turks. 9 “How different,” said the younger Andronicus, “is my situation compared to that of the son of Philip! Alexander might grumble that his father would leave him nothing to conquer: alas! my grandfather will leave me nothing to lose.” But the Greeks were soon reminded that public chaos could not be resolved by civil war; and that their young favorite was not meant to be the savior of a collapsing empire. At the first setback, his faction was shattered by his own irresponsibility, their internal strife, and the maneuvers of the older court, which tempted each discontented person to abandon or betray the rebellion's cause. The younger Andronicus was either filled with regret, exhausted by his duties, or misled by negotiations: pleasure rather than power was his goal; and the freedom to keep a thousand hounds, a thousand hawks, and a thousand hunters was enough to tarnish his reputation and dull his ambition.

89 (return)
[ The conduct of Cantacuzene, by his own showing, was inexplicable. He was unwilling to dethrone the old emperor, and dissuaded the immediate march on Constantinople. The young Andronicus, he says, entered into his views, and wrote to warn the emperor of his danger when the march was determined. Cantacuzenus, in Nov. Byz. Hist. Collect. vol. i. p. 104, &c.—M.]

89 (return)
[ Cantacuzene's behavior, by his own account, was confusing. He was reluctant to remove the old emperor from power and discouraged an immediate advance on Constantinople. The young Andronicus, he claims, supported his perspective and wrote to inform the emperor of his peril when the march was planned. Cantacuzenus, in Nov. Byz. Hist. Collect. vol. i. p. 104, &c.—M.]

9 (return)
[ See Nicephorus Gregoras, l. viii. c. 6. The younger Andronicus complained, that in four years and four months a sum of 350,000 byzants of gold was due to him for the expenses of his household, (Cantacuzen l. i. c. 48.) Yet he would have remitted the debt, if he might have been allowed to squeeze the farmers of the revenue.]

9 (return)
[ See Nicephorus Gregoras, l. viii. c. 6. The younger Andronicus complained that over four years and four months, he was owed 350,000 byzants of gold for his household expenses, (Cantacuzen l. i. c. 48.) Still, he would have forgiven the debt if he could have been allowed to tax the revenue farmers.]

Let us now survey the catastrophe of this busy plot, and the final situation of the principal actors. 10 The age of Andronicus was consumed in civil discord; and, amidst the events of war and treaty, his power and reputation continually decayed, till the fatal night in which the gates of the city and palace were opened without resistance to his grandson. His principal commander scorned the repeated warnings of danger; and retiring to rest in the vain security of ignorance, abandoned the feeble monarch, with some priests and pages, to the terrors of a sleepless night. These terrors were quickly realized by the hostile shouts, which proclaimed the titles and victory of Andronicus the younger; and the aged emperor, falling prostrate before an image of the Virgin, despatched a suppliant message to resign the sceptre, and to obtain his life at the hands of the conqueror. The answer of his grandson was decent and pious; at the prayer of his friends, the younger Andronicus assumed the sole administration; but the elder still enjoyed the name and preeminence of the first emperor, the use of the great palace, and a pension of twenty-four thousand pieces of gold, one half of which was assigned on the royal treasury, and the other on the fishery of Constantinople. But his impotence was soon exposed to contempt and oblivion; the vast silence of the palace was disturbed only by the cattle and poultry of the neighborhood, 101 which roved with impunity through the solitary courts; and a reduced allowance of ten thousand pieces of gold 11 was all that he could ask, and more than he could hope. His calamities were imbittered by the gradual extinction of sight; his confinement was rendered each day more rigorous; and during the absence and sickness of his grandson, his inhuman keepers, by the threats of instant death, compelled him to exchange the purple for the monastic habit and profession. The monk Antony had renounced the pomp of the world; yet he had occasion for a coarse fur in the winter season, and as wine was forbidden by his confessor, and water by his physician, the sherbet of Egypt was his common drink. It was not without difficulty that the late emperor could procure three or four pieces to satisfy these simple wants; and if he bestowed the gold to relieve the more painful distress of a friend, the sacrifice is of some weight in the scale of humanity and religion. Four years after his abdication, Andronicus or Antony expired in a cell, in the seventy-fourth year of his age: and the last strain of adulation could only promise a more splendid crown of glory in heaven than he had enjoyed upon earth. 12 121

Let’s now look at the disaster of this busy story and the final situation of the main characters. 10 The age of Andronicus was consumed by civil conflict; and amid the events of war and treaties, his power and reputation steadily declined until the fateful night when the city and palace gates were opened without resistance to his grandson. His chief commander ignored repeated warnings of danger and, feeling falsely secure in his ignorance, went to sleep, leaving the weak monarch with a few priests and attendants to face a night filled with terror. These fears quickly materialized with the hostile shouts that announced the titles and victory of Andronicus the Younger. The aged emperor fell prostrate before an image of the Virgin and sent a plea to resign the crown and secure his life at the hands of the conqueror. His grandson's response was respectful and devout; at the urging of his friends, the younger Andronicus took over the administration, but the elder still retained the title and status of the first emperor, access to the grand palace, and a pension of twenty-four thousand gold pieces, half of which came from the royal treasury and the other half from the fishery of Constantinople. However, his helplessness was soon reduced to ridicule and obscurity; the great silence of the palace was broken only by the cattle and poultry from the neighborhood, 101 which wandered freely through the empty courtyards, and a diminished allowance of ten thousand gold pieces 11 was all he could ask for, and more than he could hope. His suffering was worsened by the gradual loss of sight; his confinement became increasingly harsh, and during the absence and illness of his grandson, his cruel jailers forced him, under the threat of immediate death, to trade his royal robes for a monk's habit and life. The monk Antony had renounced the extravagance of the world; still, he needed a rough fur during the winter, and since wine was forbidden by his spiritual advisor and water by his doctor, the sherbet from Egypt was his usual drink. The former emperor struggled to gather three or four gold pieces to meet these basic needs, and if he spent his gold to relieve a friend’s greater misfortune, that act weighed significantly in the balance of humanity and faith. Four years after his abdication, Andronicus, or Antony, died in a cell at the age of seventy-four, and the last words of praise could only promise a more glorious crown in heaven than he had enjoyed on earth. 12 121

10 (return)
[ I follow the chronology of Nicephorus Gregoras, who is remarkably exact. It is proved that Cantacuzene has mistaken the dates of his own actions, or rather that his text has been corrupted by ignorant transcribers.]

10 (return)
[ I follow the timeline of Nicephorus Gregoras, who is impressively precise. It's clear that Cantacuzene has gotten the dates of his own actions wrong, or rather that his text has been altered by unaware copyists.]

101 (return)
[ And the washerwomen, according to Nic. Gregoras, p. 431.—M.]

101 (return)
[And the washerwomen, according to Nic. Gregoras, p. 431.—M.]

11 (return)
[ I have endeavored to reconcile the 24,000 pieces of Cantacuzene (l. ii. c. 1) with the 10,000 of Nicephorus Gregoras, (l. ix. c. 2;) the one of whom wished to soften, the other to magnify, the hardships of the old emperor.]

11 (return)
[ I have tried to reconcile the 24,000 accounts from Cantacuzene (l. ii. c. 1) with the 10,000 from Nicephorus Gregoras (l. ix. c. 2); one aimed to soften the reality, while the other intended to exaggerate the struggles of the old emperor.]

12 (return)
[ See Nicephorus Gregoras, (l. ix. 6, 7, 8, 10, 14, l. x. c. 1.) The historian had tasted of the prosperity, and shared the retreat, of his benefactor; and that friendship which “waits or to the scaffold or the cell,” should not lightly be accused as “a hireling, a prostitute to praise.” * Note: But it may be accused of unparalleled absurdity. He compares the extinction of the feeble old man to that of the sun: his coffin is to be floated like Noah’s ark by a deluge of tears.—M.]

12 (return)
[ See Nicephorus Gregoras, (l. ix. 6, 7, 8, 10, 14, l. x. c. 1.) The historian experienced the success and shared the retreat of his benefactor; and that friendship which “waits for either the scaffold or the cell” shouldn’t be easily dismissed as “a hireling, a prostitute to praise.” * Note: However, it can be criticized for being utterly ridiculous. He likens the end of the frail old man to that of the sun: his coffin is to be carried like Noah’s ark by a flood of tears.—M.]

121 (return)
[ Prodigies (according to Nic. Gregoras, p. 460) announced the departure of the old and imbecile Imperial Monk from his earthly prison.—M.]

121 (return)
[ Signs (according to Nic. Gregoras, p. 460) indicated the exit of the elderly and feeble Imperial Monk from his earthly confinement.—M.]

Nor was the reign of the younger, more glorious or fortunate than that of the elder, Andronicus. 13 He gathered the fruits of ambition; but the taste was transient and bitter: in the supreme station he lost the remains of his early popularity; and the defects of his character became still more conspicuous to the world. The public reproach urged him to march in person against the Turks; nor did his courage fail in the hour of trial; but a defeat and a wound were the only trophies of his expedition in Asia, which confirmed the establishment of the Ottoman monarchy. The abuses of the civil government attained their full maturity and perfection: his neglect of forms, and the confusion of national dresses, are deplored by the Greeks as the fatal symptoms of the decay of the empire. Andronicus was old before his time; the intemperance of youth had accelerated the infirmities of age; and after being rescued from a dangerous malady by nature, or physic, or the Virgin, he was snatched away before he had accomplished his forty-fifth year. He was twice married; and, as the progress of the Latins in arms and arts had softened the prejudices of the Byzantine court, his two wives were chosen in the princely houses of Germany and Italy. The first, Agnes at home, Irene in Greece, was daughter of the duke of Brunswick. Her father 14 was a petty lord 15 in the poor and savage regions of the north of Germany: 16 yet he derived some revenue from his silver mines; 17 and his family is celebrated by the Greeks as the most ancient and noble of the Teutonic name. 18 After the death of this childish princess, Andronicus sought in marriage Jane, the sister of the count of Savoy; 19 and his suit was preferred to that of the French king. 20 The count respected in his sister the superior majesty of a Roman empress: her retinue was composed of knights and ladies; she was regenerated and crowned in St. Sophia, under the more orthodox appellation of Anne; and, at the nuptial feast, the Greeks and Italians vied with each other in the martial exercises of tilts and tournaments.

Nor was the reign of the younger Andronicus more glorious or fortunate than that of the elder. 13 He achieved the fruits of ambition, but they were fleeting and bitter; in his high position, he lost the remnants of his early popularity, and his character flaws became even more apparent to the public. The public shame pushed him to personally lead the fight against the Turks; he didn’t lack bravery during this challenging time, but he returned from his campaign in Asia with only defeat and injury, which only solidified the rise of the Ottoman Empire. The problems with the civil government had reached their peak; his disregard for traditions and the mix-up of national attire are mourned by the Greeks as signs of the empire's decline. Andronicus was old before his time; the excesses of youth had hastened the frailties of old age, and after being saved from a serious illness by nature, medicine, or the Virgin, he was taken before reaching his forty-fifth year. He was married twice, and as the influence of the Latins in warfare and culture softened the biases of the Byzantine court, both of his wives came from royal families in Germany and Italy. The first, Agnes at home, Irene in Greece, was the daughter of the Duke of Brunswick. Her father 14 was a minor lord 15 in the poor and harsh regions of northern Germany: 16 yet he earned some income from his silver mines; 17 and his family is celebrated by the Greeks as the most ancient and noble of the Teutonic lineage. 18 After the death of this naive princess, Andronicus sought to marry Jane, the sister of the Count of Savoy; 19 and his proposal was favored over that of the French king. 20 The count honored his sister's higher status as a Roman empress: her entourage included knights and ladies; she was baptized and crowned in St. Sophia, under the more orthodox name of Anne; and, at the wedding feast, the Greeks and Italians competed with each other in martial events of jousting and tournaments.

13 (return)
[ The sole reign of Andronicus the younger is described by Cantacuzene (l. ii. c. 1—40, p. 191—339) and Nicephorus Gregoras, (l. ix c. 7—l. xi. c. 11, p. 262—361.)]

13 (return)
[ The complete rule of Andronicus the Younger is detailed by Cantacuzene (l. ii. c. 1—40, p. 191—339) and Nicephorus Gregoras, (l. ix c. 7—l. xi. c. 11, p. 262—361.)]

14 (return)
[ Agnes, or Irene, was the daughter of Duke Henry the Wonderful, the chief of the house of Brunswick, and the fourth in descent from the famous Henry the Lion, duke of Saxony and Bavaria, and conqueror of the Sclavi on the Baltic coast. Her brother Henry was surnamed the Greek, from his two journeys into the East: but these journeys were subsequent to his sister’s marriage; and I am ignorant how Agnes was discovered in the heart of Germany, and recommended to the Byzantine court. (Rimius, Memoirs of the House of Brunswick, p. 126—137.]

14 (return)
[ Agnes, also known as Irene, was the daughter of Duke Henry the Wonderful, the leader of the Brunswick family, and the fourth generation from the notable Henry the Lion, who was Duke of Saxony and Bavaria, and defeated the Slavs along the Baltic coast. Her brother Henry was called the Greek because of his two trips to the East; however, these trips took place after his sister’s marriage. I'm not sure how Agnes was found in central Germany and brought to the attention of the Byzantine court. (Rimius, Memoirs of the House of Brunswick, p. 126—137.]

15 (return)
[ Henry the Wonderful was the founder of the branch of Grubenhagen, extinct in the year 1596, (Rimius, p. 287.) He resided in the castle of Wolfenbuttel, and possessed no more than a sixth part of the allodial estates of Brunswick and Luneburgh, which the Guelph family had saved from the confiscation of their great fiefs. The frequent partitions among brothers had almost ruined the princely houses of Germany, till that just, but pernicious, law was slowly superseded by the right of primogeniture. The principality of Grubenhagen, one of the last remains of the Hercynian forest, is a woody, mountainous, and barren tract, (Busching’s Geography, vol. vi. p. 270—286, English translation.)]

15 (return)
[ Henry the Wonderful was the founder of the Grubenhagen branch, which became extinct in 1596 (Rimius, p. 287). He lived in the castle of Wolfenbüttel and owned only a sixth of the allodial estates of Brunswick and Luneburg, which the Guelph family had managed to keep from the confiscation of their large fiefs. The frequent divisions among brothers had nearly destroyed the princely houses of Germany until that fair, yet harmful, law was gradually replaced by the right of primogeniture. The principality of Grubenhagen, one of the last remnants of the Hercynian forest, is a wooded, mountainous, and barren area (Busching’s Geography, vol. vi. p. 270–286, English translation.)]

16 (return)
[ The royal author of the Memoirs of Brandenburgh will teach us, how justly, in a much later period, the north of Germany deserved the epithets of poor and barbarous. (Essai sur les Murs, &c.) In the year 1306, in the woods of Luneburgh, some wild people of the Vened race were allowed to bury alive their infirm and useless parents. (Rimius, p. 136.)]

16 (return)
[ The royal author of the Memoirs of Brandenburgh will show us how rightly, much later on, northern Germany earned the labels of poor and barbaric. (Essai sur les Murs, &c.) In the year 1306, in the woods of Luneburgh, some wild people from the Vened race were permitted to bury their sick and useless parents alive. (Rimius, p. 136.)]

17 (return)
[ The assertion of Tacitus, that Germany was destitute of the precious metals, must be taken, even in his own time, with some limitation, (Germania, c. 5. Annal. xi. 20.) According to Spener, (Hist. Germaniæ Pragmatica, tom. i. p. 351,) Argentifodin in Hercyniis montibus, imperante Othone magno (A.D. 968) primum apertæ, largam etiam opes augendi dederunt copiam: but Rimius (p. 258, 259) defers till the year 1016 the discovery of the silver mines of Grubenhagen, or the Upper Hartz, which were productive in the beginning of the xivth century, and which still yield a considerable revenue to the house of Brunswick.]

17 (return)
[ Tacitus's claim that Germany lacked precious metals should be viewed with some caution, even in his own era (Germania, c. 5. Annal. xi. 20). According to Spener (Hist. Germaniæ Pragmatica, tom. i. p. 351), Argentifodin in the Hercynian mountains, during the reign of Otto the Great (A.D. 968), was first opened and provided a significant opportunity for wealth expansion. However, Rimius (p. 258, 259) states that the discovery of the silver mines in Grubenhagen, or the Upper Hartz, did not occur until 1016, which began to produce results in the early 14th century, and continues to generate a considerable income for the house of Brunswick.]

18 (return)
[ Cantacuzene has given a most honorable testimony, hn d’ ek Germanvn auth Jugathr doukoV nti Mprouzouhk, (the modern Greeks employ the nt for the d, and the mp for the b, and the whole will read in the Italian idiom di Brunzuic,) tou par autoiV epijanestatou, kai?iamprothti pantaV touV omojulouV uperballontoV. The praise is just in itself, and pleasing to an English ear.]

18 (return)
[ Cantacuzene has provided a highly respectable account, hn d’ ek Germanvn auth Jugathr doukoV nti Mprouzouhk, (the modern Greeks use nt for the d, and mp for the b, so in Italian it would read di Brunzuic,) tou par autoiV epijanestatou, kai?iamprothti pantaV touV omojulouV uperballontoV. The praise stands on its own merit and is pleasing to an English ear.]

19 (return)
[ Anne, or Jane, was one of the four daughters of Amedée the Great, by a second marriage, and half-sister of his successor Edward count of Savoy. (Anderson’s Tables, p. 650. See Cantacuzene, l. i. c. 40—42.)]

19 (return)
[ Anne, or Jane, was one of the four daughters of Amedée the Great from his second marriage, and she was the half-sister of his successor, Edward, Count of Savoy. (Anderson’s Tables, p. 650. See Cantacuzene, l. i. c. 40—42.)]

20 (return)
[ That king, if the fact be true, must have been Charles the Fair who in five years (1321—1326) was married to three wives, (Anderson, p. 628.) Anne of Savoy arrived at Constantinople in February, 1326.]

20 (return)
[If the story is accurate, that king must have been Charles the Fair, who during five years (1321—1326) had three wives. (Anderson, p. 628.) Anne of Savoy reached Constantinople in February 1326.]

The empress Anne of Savoy survived her husband: their son, John Palæologus, was left an orphan and an emperor in the ninth year of his age; and his weakness was protected by the first and most deserving of the Greeks. The long and cordial friendship of his father for John Cantacuzene is alike honorable to the prince and the subject. It had been formed amidst the pleasures of their youth: their families were almost equally noble; 21 and the recent lustre of the purple was amply compensated by the energy of a private education. We have seen that the young emperor was saved by Cantacuzene from the power of his grandfather; and, after six years of civil war, the same favorite brought him back in triumph to the palace of Constantinople. Under the reign of Andronicus the younger, the great domestic ruled the emperor and the empire; and it was by his valor and conduct that the Isle of Lesbos and the principality of Ætolia were restored to their ancient allegiance. His enemies confess, that, among the public robbers, Cantacuzene alone was moderate and abstemious; and the free and voluntary account which he produces of his own wealth 22 may sustain the presumption that he was devolved by inheritance, and not accumulated by rapine. He does not indeed specify the value of his money, plate, and jewels; yet, after a voluntary gift of two hundred vases of silver, after much had been secreted by his friends and plundered by his foes, his forfeit treasures were sufficient for the equipment of a fleet of seventy galleys. He does not measure the size and number of his estates; but his granaries were heaped with an incredible store of wheat and barley; and the labor of a thousand yoke of oxen might cultivate, according to the practice of antiquity, about sixty-two thousand five hundred acres of arable land. 23 His pastures were stocked with two thousand five hundred brood mares, two hundred camels, three hundred mules, five hundred asses, five thousand horned cattle, fifty thousand hogs, and seventy thousand sheep: 24 a precious record of rural opulence, in the last period of the empire, and in a land, most probably in Thrace, so repeatedly wasted by foreign and domestic hostility. The favor of Cantacuzene was above his fortune. In the moments of familiarity, in the hour of sickness, the emperor was desirous to level the distance between them and pressed his friend to accept the diadem and purple. The virtue of the great domestic, which is attested by his own pen, resisted the dangerous proposal; but the last testament of Andronicus the younger named him the guardian of his son, and the regent of the empire.

The empress Anne of Savoy outlived her husband: their son, John Palæologus, became an orphan and an emperor at just nine years old; his vulnerability was shielded by the most capable Greek, John Cantacuzene. The long and close friendship between John Cantacuzene and his father is commendable for both the prince and his subject. This bond formed during their youth, as their families were nearly equally noble; the recent prestige of royalty was more than matched by the strength of a private upbringing. We know that Cantacuzene saved the young emperor from his grandfather's power, and after six years of civil war, he led him back in triumph to the palace of Constantinople. During the reign of Andronicus the younger, the great domestic not only guided the emperor but also the empire; it was through his bravery and skill that the Isle of Lesbos and the principality of Ætolia were restored to their former loyalty. His opponents admitted that, among those who looted the public, Cantacuzene was the only one who was moderate and self-disciplined; his honest account of his own wealth suggests that his riches came from inheritance rather than from plunder. While he doesn't specify the exact worth of his money, silver, and jewels, after voluntarily donating two hundred silver vases, and after much of his property was hidden by friends and stolen by enemies, his remaining treasures were enough to equip a fleet of seventy galleys. He doesn’t detail the extent of his lands, but his granaries overflowed with an astonishing amount of wheat and barley, and the labor of a thousand oxen could cultivate about sixty-two thousand five hundred acres of arable land. His pastures were home to two thousand five hundred mares, two hundred camels, three hundred mules, five hundred donkeys, five thousand cattle, fifty thousand pigs, and seventy thousand sheep: a remarkable record of rural wealth in the final days of the empire, in a region, most likely Thrace, that had been ravaged by both foreign and domestic conflicts. Cantacuzene's favor surpassed his fortune. In moments of closeness, especially during times of illness, the emperor wanted to reduce the social distance between them and urged his friend to accept the crown and royal robes. The integrity of the great domestic, which he documented himself, resisted this risky suggestion; however, Andronicus the younger's final will named him as the guardian of his son and the regent of the empire.

21 (return)
[ The noble race of the Cantacuzeni (illustrious from the xith century in the Byzantine annals) was drawn from the Paladins of France, the heroes of those romances which, in the xiiith century, were translated and read by the Greeks, (Ducange, Fam. Byzant. p. 258.)]

21 (return)
[ The noble lineage of the Cantacuzeni (notable since the 11th century in Byzantine history) originated from the Paladins of France, the heroes of those romances which, in the 13th century, were translated and read by the Greeks, (Ducange, Fam. Byzant. p. 258.)]

22 (return)
[ See Cantacuzene, (l. iii. c. 24, 30, 36.)]

22 (return)
[ See Cantacuzene, (l. iii. c. 24, 30, 36.)]

23 (return)
[ Saserna, in Gaul, and Columella, in Italy or Spain, allow two yoke of oxen, two drivers, and six laborers, for two hundred jugera (125 English acres) of arable land, and three more men must be added if there be much underwood, (Columella de Re Rustica, l. ii. c. 13, p 441, edit. Gesner.)]

23 (return)
[Saserna, in Gaul, and Columella, in Italy or Spain, allow for two yoke of oxen, two drivers, and six laborers for two hundred jugera (125 English acres) of arable land, and an additional three men must be added if there is a lot of underbrush. (Columella de Re Rustica, l. ii. c. 13, p 441, edit. Gesner.)]

24 (return)
[ In this enumeration (l. iii. c. 30) the French translation of the president Cousin is blotted with three palpable and essential errors. 1. He omits the 1000 yoke of working oxen. 2. He interprets the pentakosiai proV diaciliaiV, by the number of fifteen hundred. * 3. He confounds myriads with chiliads, and gives Cantacuzene no more than 5000 hogs. Put not your trust in translations! Note: * There seems to be another reading, ciliaiV. Niebuhr’s edit. in loc.—M.]

24 (return)
[In this list (l. iii. c. 30), the French translation by President Cousin has three obvious and significant mistakes. 1. He leaves out the 1000 yoke of working oxen. 2. He translates pentakosiai proV diaciliaiV as the number fifteen hundred. * 3. He confuses myriads with chiliads, giving Cantacuzene only 5000 hogs. Don’t rely on translations! Note: * There appears to be another version, ciliaiV. Niebuhr’s edit. in loc.—M.]

Had the regent found a suitable return of obedience and gratitude, perhaps he would have acted with pure and zealous fidelity in the service of his pupil. 25 A guard of five hundred soldiers watched over his person and the palace; the funeral of the late emperor was decently performed; the capital was silent and submissive; and five hundred letters, which Cantacuzene despatched in the first month, informed the provinces of their loss and their duty. The prospect of a tranquil minority was blasted by the great duke or admiral Apocaucus, and to exaggerate his perfidy, the Imperial historian is pleased to magnify his own imprudence, in raising him to that office against the advice of his more sagacious sovereign. Bold and subtle, rapacious and profuse, the avarice and ambition of Apocaucus were by turns subservient to each other; and his talents were applied to the ruin of his country. His arrogance was heightened by the command of a naval force and an impregnable castle, and under the mask of oaths and flattery he secretly conspired against his benefactor. The female court of the empress was bribed and directed; he encouraged Anne of Savoy to assert, by the law of nature, the tutelage of her son; the love of power was disguised by the anxiety of maternal tenderness: and the founder of the Palæologi had instructed his posterity to dread the example of a perfidious guardian. The patriarch John of Apri was a proud and feeble old man, encompassed by a numerous and hungry kindred. He produced an obsolete epistle of Andronicus, which bequeathed the prince and people to his pious care: the fate of his predecessor Arsenius prompted him to prevent, rather than punish, the crimes of a usurper; and Apocaucus smiled at the success of his own flattery, when he beheld the Byzantine priest assuming the state and temporal claims of the Roman pontiff. 26 Between three persons so different in their situation and character, a private league was concluded: a shadow of authority was restored to the senate; and the people was tempted by the name of freedom. By this powerful confederacy, the great domestic was assaulted at first with clandestine, at length with open, arms. His prerogatives were disputed; his opinions slighted; his friends persecuted; and his safety was threatened both in the camp and city. In his absence on the public service, he was accused of treason; proscribed as an enemy of the church and state; and delivered with all his adherents to the sword of justice, the vengeance of the people, and the power of the devil; his fortunes were confiscated; his aged mother was cast into prison; 261 all his past services were buried in oblivion; and he was driven by injustice to perpetrate the crime of which he was accused. 27 From the review of his preceding conduct, Cantacuzene appears to have been guiltless of any treasonable designs; and the only suspicion of his innocence must arise from the vehemence of his protestations, and the sublime purity which he ascribes to his own virtue. While the empress and the patriarch still affected the appearances of harmony, he repeatedly solicited the permission of retiring to a private, and even a monastic, life. After he had been declared a public enemy, it was his fervent wish to throw himself at the feet of the young emperor, and to receive without a murmur the stroke of the executioner: it was not without reluctance that he listened to the voice of reason, which inculcated the sacred duty of saving his family and friends, and proved that he could only save them by drawing the sword and assuming the Imperial title.

Had the regent found an appropriate show of obedience and gratitude, he might have acted with genuine loyalty and dedication in the service of his pupil. 25 A guard of five hundred soldiers watched over him and the palace; the funeral of the late emperor was performed with dignity; the capital was quiet and submissive; and five hundred letters, which Cantacuzene sent out in the first month, informed the provinces of their loss and their duty. The hope for a calm minority was shattered by the great duke or admiral Apocaucus, and to emphasize his treachery, the Imperial historian is pleased to inflate his own foolishness in promoting him to that position against the advice of his wiser sovereign. Bold and cunning, greedy and extravagant, Apocaucus's greed and ambition alternated in serving one another, and his skills were used to the detriment of his country. His arrogance was boosted by his command of a naval force and an impregnable castle, and under the guise of oaths and flattery, he secretly plotted against his benefactor. The female court of the empress was bribed and controlled; he encouraged Anne of Savoy to claim, by the law of nature, the guardianship of her son; the desire for power was masked by the concern of maternal love: and the founder of the Palæologi had taught his descendants to fear the example of a treacherous guardian. The patriarch John of Apri was a proud and weak old man, surrounded by a numerous and greedy family. He produced an outdated letter from Andronicus, which entrusted the prince and people to his pious care: the fate of his predecessor Arsenius motivated him to prevent, rather than punish, the crimes of a usurper; and Apocaucus smirked at the success of his own flattery when he saw the Byzantine priest assuming the spiritual and temporal authority of the Roman pontiff. 26 A secret alliance was formed between three people so different in their situation and character: a semblance of authority was restored to the senate; and the people were lured by the promise of freedom. Through this powerful coalition, the great domestic was first attacked with secret, and then with open, aggression. His rights were challenged; his views disregarded; his friends persecuted; and his safety was threatened in both the camp and the city. While he was away on public service, he was accused of treason; branded as an enemy of the church and state; and delivered along with all his supporters to the sword of justice, the people's wrath, and the powers of evil; his wealth was confiscated; his elderly mother was imprisoned; 261 all his past services were forgotten; and he was driven by injustice to commit the very crime he was accused of. 27 From reviewing his previous actions, Cantacuzene appears to have been innocent of any treasonous intentions; and the only doubt regarding his innocence might come from the intensity of his protestations and the lofty purity he attributes to his own virtue. While the empress and the patriarch still pretended to maintain a façade of harmony, he repeatedly sought permission to withdraw into a private, and even monastic, life. After being declared a public enemy, he ardently wished to throw himself at the feet of the young emperor and accept the executioner’s blow without complaint: he listened reluctantly to the voice of reason, which stressed the sacred duty of saving his family and friends, proving that he could only protect them by taking up arms and claiming the Imperial title.

25 (return)
[ See the regency and reign of John Cantacuzenus, and the whole progress of the civil war, in his own history, (l. iii. c. 1—100, p. 348—700,) and in that of Nicephorus Gregoras, (l. xii. c. 1—l. xv. c. 9, p. 353—492.)]

25 (return)
[ For information on the regency and reign of John Cantacuzenus, as well as the entire course of the civil war, see his own history, (l. iii. c. 1—100, p. 348—700,) and that of Nicephorus Gregoras, (l. xii. c. 1—l. xv. c. 9, p. 353—492.)]

26 (return)
[ He assumes the royal privilege of red shoes or buskins; placed on his head a mitre of silk and gold; subscribed his epistles with hyacinth or green ink, and claimed for the new, whatever Constantine had given to the ancient, Rome, (Cantacuzen. l. iii. c. 36. Nic. Gregoras, l. xiv. c. 3.)]

26 (return)
[ He took on the royal privilege of wearing red shoes or fancy boots; put a silk and gold mitre on his head; signed his letters with hyacinth or green ink, and claimed for the new whatever Constantine had granted to the old Rome, (Cantacuzen. l. iii. c. 36. Nic. Gregoras, l. xiv. c. 3.)]

261 (return)
[ She died there through persecution and neglect.—M.]

261 (return)
[ She died there due to mistreatment and abandonment.—M.]

27 (return)
[ Nic. Gregoras (l. xii. c. 5) confesses the innocence and virtues of Cantacuzenus, the guilt and flagitious vices of Apocaucus; nor does he dissemble the motive of his personal and religious enmity to the former; nun de dia kakian allwn, aitioV o praotatoV thV tvn olwn edoxaV? eioai jqoraV. Note: The alloi were the religious enemies and persecutors of Nicephorus.—M.]

27 (return)
[ Nic. Gregoras (l. xii. c. 5) acknowledges the innocence and virtues of Cantacuzenus, while condemning the guilt and outrageous vices of Apocaucus; he does not hide the reason for his personal and religious hostility towards the former; nun de dia kakian allwn, aitioV o praotatoV thV tvn olwn edoxaV? eioai jqoraV. Note: The alloi were the religious enemies and persecutors of Nicephorus.—M.]

Chapter LXIII: Civil Wars And The Ruin Of The Greek Empire.—Part II.

In the strong city of Demotica, his peculiar domain, the emperor John Cantacuzenus was invested with the purple buskins: his right leg was clothed by his noble kinsmen, the left by the Latin chiefs, on whom he conferred the order of knighthood. But even in this act of revolt, he was still studious of loyalty; and the titles of John Palæologus and Anne of Savoy were proclaimed before his own name and that of his wife Irene. Such vain ceremony is a thin disguise of rebellion, nor are there perhaps any personal wrongs that can authorize a subject to take arms against his sovereign: but the want of preparation and success may confirm the assurance of the usurper, that this decisive step was the effect of necessity rather than of choice. Constantinople adhered to the young emperor; the king of Bulgaria was invited to the relief of Adrianople: the principal cities of Thrace and Macedonia, after some hesitation, renounced their obedience to the great domestic; and the leaders of the troops and provinces were induced, by their private interest, to prefer the loose dominion of a woman and a priest. 271 The army of Cantacuzene, in sixteen divisions, was stationed on the banks of the Melas to tempt or to intimidate the capital: it was dispersed by treachery or fear; and the officers, more especially the mercenary Latins, accepted the bribes, and embraced the service, of the Byzantine court. After this loss, the rebel emperor (he fluctuated between the two characters) took the road of Thessalonica with a chosen remnant; but he failed in his enterprise on that important place; and he was closely pursued by the great duke, his enemy Apocaucus, at the head of a superior power by sea and land. Driven from the coast, in his march, or rather flight, into the mountains of Servia, Cantacuzene assembled his troops to scrutinize those who were worthy and willing to accompany his broken fortunes. A base majority bowed and retired; and his trusty band was diminished to two thousand, and at last to five hundred, volunteers. The cral, 28 or despot of the Servians received him with general hospitality; but the ally was insensibly degraded to a suppliant, a hostage, a captive; and in this miserable dependence, he waited at the door of the Barbarian, who could dispose of the life and liberty of a Roman emperor. The most tempting offers could not persuade the cral to violate his trust; but he soon inclined to the stronger side; and his friend was dismissed without injury to a new vicissitude of hopes and perils. Near six years the flame of discord burnt with various success and unabated rage: the cities were distracted by the faction of the nobles and the plebeians; the Cantacuzeni and Palæologi: and the Bulgarians, the Servians, and the Turks, were invoked on both sides as the instruments of private ambition and the common ruin. The regent deplored the calamities, of which he was the author and victim: and his own experience might dictate a just and lively remark on the different nature of foreign and civil war. “The former,” said he, “is the external warmth of summer, always tolerable, and often beneficial; the latter is the deadly heat of a fever, which consumes without a remedy the vitals of the constitution.” 29

In the strong city of Demotica, his unusual domain, Emperor John Cantacuzenus was dressed in the purple buskins: his noble relatives clothed his right leg, while the Latin leaders dressed his left, to whom he granted knighthood. But even in this act of rebellion, he was still mindful of loyalty; the titles of John Palæologus and Anne of Savoy were proclaimed before his own name and that of his wife Irene. Such empty ceremony is a flimsy cover for rebellion, and perhaps no personal grievances can justify a subject taking up arms against their sovereign. However, the lack of preparation and success might confirm the usurper’s belief that this bold move was out of necessity rather than choice. Constantinople supported the young emperor; the king of Bulgaria was invited to help Adrianople; the major cities of Thrace and Macedonia, after some hesitation, rejected their loyalty to the powerful official; and the leaders of the troops and provinces were swayed by their own interests to prefer the loose rule of a woman and a priest. 271 Cantacuzene's army, divided into sixteen groups, was positioned along the banks of the Melas to tempt or intimidate the capital: it was scattered by treachery or fear, and the officers, especially the mercenary Latins, accepted bribes and joined the Byzantine court. After this defeat, the rebel emperor (who wavered between both roles) headed towards Thessalonica with a select few; but he failed in his attempt to capture that important place and was closely pursued by his enemy Apocaucus, the grand duke, leading a superior force by land and sea. Forced from the coast during his march, or rather retreat, into the mountains of Servia, Cantacuzene gathered his troops to evaluate those willing to share in his diminished fortunes. A cowardly majority bowed out, shrinking his loyal band to two thousand, and finally to five hundred volunteers. The cral, 28 or despot of the Servians, welcomed him generously; but his ally gradually became a supplicant, a hostage, a captive; and in this miserable position, he waited at the door of the Barbarian, who could control the life and freedom of a Roman emperor. Not even the most tempting offers could convince the cral to betray his trust; however, he soon leaned towards the more powerful side, and his friend was released without harm to face a new cycle of hopes and dangers. For nearly six years, the flames of discord burned with varying success and unyielding fury: the cities were torn apart by the conflict between the nobles and the common people; the Cantacuzeni and Palæologi; and the Bulgarians, Servians, and Turks were called upon by both sides as tools for personal ambitions and shared ruin. The regent lamented the disasters of which he was both the author and victim; and his own experiences could inspire a fitting and vivid observation on the differences between foreign and civil war. “The former,” he said, “is the external warmth of summer, always bearable and often beneficial; the latter is the deadly heat of a fever, which consumes the very essence of the body without remedy.” 29

271 (return)
[ Cantacuzene asserts, that in all the cities, the populace were on the side of the emperor, the aristocracy on his. The populace took the opportunity of rising and plundering the wealthy as Cantacuzenites, vol. iii. c. 29 Ages of common oppression and ruin had not extinguished these republican factions.—M.]

271 (return)
[ Cantacuzene claims that in all the cities, the common people supported the emperor, while the aristocrats were on his side too. The common people seized the chance to rise up and loot the wealthy as Cantacuzenites, vol. iii. c. 29. Years of shared oppression and destruction had not wiped out these republican groups.—M.]

28 (return)
[ The princes of Servia (Ducange, Famil. Dalmaticæ, &c., c. 2, 3, 4, 9) were styled Despots in Greek, and Cral in their native idiom, (Ducange, Gloss. Græc. p. 751.) That title, the equivalent of king, appears to be of Sclavonic origin, from whence it has been borrowed by the Hungarians, the modern Greeks, and even by the Turks, (Leunclavius, Pandect. Turc. p. 422,) who reserve the name of Padishah for the emperor. To obtain the latter instead of the former is the ambition of the French at Constantinople, (Aversissement à l’Histoire de Timur Bec, p. 39.)]

28 (return)
[ The princes of Servia (Ducange, Famil. Dalmaticæ, &c., c. 2, 3, 4, 9) were called Despots in Greek, and Cral in their own language, (Ducange, Gloss. Græc. p. 751.) That title, which is equivalent to king, seems to have Slavic roots, from which it has been adopted by the Hungarians, modern Greeks, and even the Turks, (Leunclavius, Pandect. Turc. p. 422,) who use the name Padishah for the emperor. Achieving the latter instead of the former is the goal of the French in Constantinople, (Aversissement à l’Histoire de Timur Bec, p. 39.)]

29 (return)
[ Nic. Gregoras, l. xii. c. 14. It is surprising that Cantacuzene has not inserted this just and lively image in his own writings.]

29 (return)
[ Nic. Gregoras, l. xii. c. 14. It’s surprising that Cantacuzene didn’t include this accurate and vivid description in his own works.]

The introduction of barbarians and savages into the contests of civilized nations, is a measure pregnant with shame and mischief; which the interest of the moment may compel, but which is reprobated by the best principles of humanity and reason. It is the practice of both sides to accuse their enemies of the guilt of the first alliances; and those who fail in their negotiations are loudest in their censure of the example which they envy and would gladly imitate. The Turks of Asia were less barbarous perhaps than the shepherds of Bulgaria and Servia; but their religion rendered them implacable foes of Rome and Christianity. To acquire the friendship of their emirs, the two factions vied with each other in baseness and profusion: the dexterity of Cantacuzene obtained the preference: but the succor and victory were dearly purchased by the marriage of his daughter with an infidel, the captivity of many thousand Christians, and the passage of the Ottomans into Europe, the last and fatal stroke in the fall of the Roman empire. The inclining scale was decided in his favor by the death of Apocaucus, the just though singular retribution of his crimes. A crowd of nobles or plebeians, whom he feared or hated, had been seized by his orders in the capital and the provinces; and the old palace of Constantine was assigned as the place of their confinement. Some alterations in raising the walls, and narrowing the cells, had been ingeniously contrived to prevent their escape, and aggravate their misery; and the work was incessantly pressed by the daily visits of the tyrant. His guards watched at the gate, and as he stood in the inner court to overlook the architects, without fear or suspicion, he was assaulted and laid breathless on the ground, by two 291 resolute prisoners of the Palæologian race, 30 who were armed with sticks, and animated by despair. On the rumor of revenge and liberty, the captive multitude broke their fetters, fortified their prison, and exposed from the battlements the tyrant’s head, presuming on the favor of the people and the clemency of the empress. Anne of Savoy might rejoice in the fall of a haughty and ambitious minister, but while she delayed to resolve or to act, the populace, more especially the mariners, were excited by the widow of the great duke to a sedition, an assault, and a massacre. The prisoners (of whom the far greater part were guiltless or inglorious of the deed) escaped to a neighboring church: they were slaughtered at the foot of the altar; and in his death the monster was not less bloody and venomous than in his life. Yet his talents alone upheld the cause of the young emperor; and his surviving associates, suspicious of each other, abandoned the conduct of the war, and rejected the fairest terms of accommodation. In the beginning of the dispute, the empress felt, and complained, that she was deceived by the enemies of Cantacuzene: the patriarch was employed to preach against the forgiveness of injuries; and her promise of immortal hatred was sealed by an oath, under the penalty of excommunication. 31 But Anne soon learned to hate without a teacher: she beheld the misfortunes of the empire with the indifference of a stranger: her jealousy was exasperated by the competition of a rival empress; and on the first symptoms of a more yielding temper, she threatened the patriarch to convene a synod, and degrade him from his office. Their incapacity and discord would have afforded the most decisive advantage; but the civil war was protracted by the weakness of both parties; and the moderation of Cantacuzene has not escaped the reproach of timidity and indolence. He successively recovered the provinces and cities; and the realm of his pupil was measured by the walls of Constantinople; but the metropolis alone counterbalanced the rest of the empire; nor could he attempt that important conquest till he had secured in his favor the public voice and a private correspondence. An Italian, of the name of Facciolati, 32 had succeeded to the office of great duke: the ships, the guards, and the golden gate, were subject to his command; but his humble ambition was bribed to become the instrument of treachery; and the revolution was accomplished without danger or bloodshed. Destitute of the powers of resistance, or the hope of relief, the inflexible Anne would have still defended the palace, and have smiled to behold the capital in flames, rather than in the possession of a rival. She yielded to the prayers of her friends and enemies; and the treaty was dictated by the conqueror, who professed a loyal and zealous attachment to the son of his benefactor. The marriage of his daughter with John Palæologus was at length consummated: the hereditary right of the pupil was acknowledged; but the sole administration during ten years was vested in the guardian. Two emperors and three empresses were seated on the Byzantine throne; and a general amnesty quieted the apprehensions, and confirmed the property, of the most guilty subjects. The festival of the coronation and nuptials was celebrated with the appearances of concord and magnificence, and both were equally fallacious. During the late troubles, the treasures of the state, and even the furniture of the palace, had been alienated or embezzled; the royal banquet was served in pewter or earthenware; and such was the proud poverty of the times, that the absence of gold and jewels was supplied by the paltry artifices of glass and gilt-leather. 33

The introduction of outsiders and uncivilized people into the conflicts of civilized nations is a shameful and harmful action; one that may be driven by immediate interests but is condemned by the fundamental principles of humanity and reason. Both sides typically accuse their opponents of being the first to form these alliances, and those who fail in their negotiations are often the loudest critics of the example they secretly envy and wish to imitate. The Turks in Asia were perhaps less savage than the herders of Bulgaria and Serbia, but their religion made them relentless enemies of Rome and Christianity. To win the support of their leaders, both factions tried to outdo each other in dishonor and extravagance: Cantacuzene's cleverness won him favor, but this assistance and triumph came at a high cost, including his daughter marrying a non-believer, the enslavement of thousands of Christians, and the entry of the Ottomans into Europe, which was the final blow to the Roman Empire. The tipping point was his advantage gained from the death of Apocaucus, a just but rare punishment for his crimes. A group of nobles and commoners, whom he feared or despised, had been captured under his orders in the capital and provinces; and the old palace of Constantine was designated as their prison. Some modifications were cleverly made to the walls and cells to prevent escapes and increase their suffering; and the work was constantly monitored by the tyrant's daily visits. His guards stood at the gate, and as he observed the builders in the inner courtyard without fear, he was attacked and left breathless on the ground by two determined prisoners of the Palæologian lineage, who were armed with sticks and driven by desperation. With news of revenge and freedom, the captive crowd broke their chains, fortified their prison, and displayed the tyrant’s head from the battlements, relying on the people’s support and the empress’s mercy. Anne of Savoy might have been pleased with the fall of a proud and ambitious minister, but while she hesitated to decide or act, the common people, especially the sailors, were stirred to revolt, attack, and massacre by the widow of the great duke. The prisoners, most of whom were innocent of the crimes, fled to a nearby church: they were slaughtered at the altar's base; and in his death, the monster was as bloody and toxic as he was in life. Still, his talents alone upheld the young emperor's cause; and his remaining supporters, suspicious of one another, relinquished the conduct of the war and ignored the best terms for peace. At the start of the conflict, the empress felt deceived by the enemies of Cantacuzene and complained about it: the patriarch was called upon to preach against forgiving injuries; and her vow of eternal hatred was cemented with an oath, punishable by excommunication. But Anne quickly learned to hate without needing a teacher: she viewed the empire's misfortunes with the indifference of a stranger; her jealousy was fueled by competition with a rival empress; and at the first signs of a softer attitude, she threatened the patriarch with a synod to remove him from his position. Their incapacity and discord should have given decisive advantages; however, the civil war dragged on due to the weakness of both sides, and Cantacuzene's moderation was criticized as cowardice and laziness. He gradually regained provinces and cities; and the realm of his pupil was confined to the walls of Constantinople; but he could only attempt that crucial conquest after winning the public's support and establishing private contacts. An Italian named Facciolati had taken over as the great duke: he commanded the ships, guards, and the golden gate; but his modest ambition was bribed to become a tool of betrayal, and the revolution was carried out without danger or bloodshed. Lacking the means to resist or hope for relief, the unyielding Anne would still defend the palace and prefer to see the capital in flames than let a rival take control. She ultimately submitted to the pleas of her allies and adversaries; and the treaty was imposed by the conqueror, who professed loyalty and zeal for the son of his benefactor. The marriage between his daughter and John Palæologus was finally completed: the hereditary claim of the pupil was acknowledged; but the sole control for ten years was held by the guardian. Two emperors and three empresses occupied the Byzantine throne; and a general amnesty silenced concerns and secured the property of the most culpable subjects. The celebration of the coronation and wedding was marked by appearances of unity and grandeur, which were equally deceptive. During the recent troubles, the state's treasures and even the palace furnishings had been sold off or misappropriated; the royal banquet was served in pewter or earthenware; and such was the proud poverty of the times that the lack of gold and jewels was masked by cheap glass and gilt-leather.

291 (return)
[ Nicephorus says four, p.734.]

291 (return)
[ Nicephorus mentions four, p.734.]

30 (return)
[ The two avengers were both Palæologi, who might resent, with royal indignation, the shame of their chains. The tragedy of Apocaucus may deserve a peculiar reference to Cantacuzene (l. iii. c. 86) and Nic. Gregoras, (l. xiv. c. 10.)]

30 (return)
[ The two avengers were both Palæologi, who might feel royal anger at the disgrace of their chains. The tragedy of Apocaucus may deserve a specific mention in reference to Cantacuzene (l. iii. c. 86) and Nic. Gregoras, (l. xiv. c. 10.)]

31 (return)
[ Cantacuzene accuses the patriarch, and spares the empress, the mother of his sovereign, (l. iii. 33, 34,) against whom Nic. Gregoras expresses a particular animosity, (l. xiv. 10, 11, xv. 5.) It is true that they do not speak exactly of the same time.]

31 (return)
[ Cantacuzene blames the patriarch and avoids criticizing the empress, who is the mother of his ruler, (l. iii. 33, 34,) while Nic. Gregoras shows clear hostility towards her, (l. xiv. 10, 11, xv. 5.) It's true that they aren't talking about the exact same period.]

32 (return)
[ The traitor and treason are revealed by Nic. Gregoras, (l. xv. c. 8;) but the name is more discreetly suppressed by his great accomplice, (Cantacuzen. l. iii. c. 99.)]

32 (return)
[ Nic. Gregoras uncovers the traitor and treason (l. xv. c. 8); however, his major accomplice keeps the name more discreetly hidden (Cantacuzen. l. iii. c. 99.)]

33 (return)
[ Nic. Greg. l. xv. 11. There were, however, some true pearls, but very thinly sprinkled. The rest of the stones had only pantodaphn croian proV to diaugeV.]

33 (return)
[ Nic. Greg. l. xv. 11. There were, however, a few genuine pearls, but they were very sparsely scattered. The other stones only had superficial qualities.]

I hasten to conclude the personal history of John Cantacuzene. 34 He triumphed and reigned; but his reign and triumph were clouded by the discontent of his own and the adverse faction. His followers might style the general amnesty an act of pardon for his enemies, and of oblivion for his friends: 35 in his cause their estates had been forfeited or plundered; and as they wandered naked and hungry through the streets, they cursed the selfish generosity of a leader, who, on the throne of the empire, might relinquish without merit his private inheritance. The adherents of the empress blushed to hold their lives and fortunes by the precarious favor of a usurper; and the thirst of revenge was concealed by a tender concern for the succession, and even the safety, of her son. They were justly alarmed by a petition of the friends of Cantacuzene, that they might be released from their oath of allegiance to the Palæologi, and intrusted with the defence of some cautionary towns; a measure supported with argument and eloquence; and which was rejected (says the Imperial historian) “by my sublime, and almost incredible virtue.” His repose was disturbed by the sound of plots and seditions; and he trembled lest the lawful prince should be stolen away by some foreign or domestic enemy, who would inscribe his name and his wrongs in the banners of rebellion. As the son of Andronicus advanced in the years of manhood, he began to feel and to act for himself; and his rising ambition was rather stimulated than checked by the imitation of his father’s vices. If we may trust his own professions, Cantacuzene labored with honest industry to correct these sordid and sensual appetites, and to raise the mind of the young prince to a level with his fortune. In the Servian expedition, the two emperors showed themselves in cordial harmony to the troops and provinces; and the younger colleague was initiated by the elder in the mysteries of war and government. After the conclusion of the peace, Palæologus was left at Thessalonica, a royal residence, and a frontier station, to secure by his absence the peace of Constantinople, and to withdraw his youth from the temptations of a luxurious capital. But the distance weakened the powers of control, and the son of Andronicus was surrounded with artful or unthinking companions, who taught him to hate his guardian, to deplore his exile, and to vindicate his rights. A private treaty with the cral or despot of Servia was soon followed by an open revolt; and Cantacuzene, on the throne of the elder Andronicus, defended the cause of age and prerogative, which in his youth he had so vigorously attacked. At his request the empress-mother undertook the voyage of Thessalonica, and the office of mediation: she returned without success; and unless Anne of Savoy was instructed by adversity, we may doubt the sincerity, or at least the fervor, of her zeal. While the regent grasped the sceptre with a firm and vigorous hand, she had been instructed to declare, that the ten years of his legal administration would soon elapse; and that, after a full trial of the vanity of the world, the emperor Cantacuzene sighed for the repose of a cloister, and was ambitious only of a heavenly crown. Had these sentiments been genuine, his voluntary abdication would have restored the peace of the empire, and his conscience would have been relieved by an act of justice. Palæologus alone was responsible for his future government; and whatever might be his vices, they were surely less formidable than the calamities of a civil war, in which the Barbarians and infidels were again invited to assist the Greeks in their mutual destruction. By the arms of the Turks, who now struck a deep and everlasting root in Europe, Cantacuzene prevailed in the third contest in which he had been involved; and the young emperor, driven from the sea and land, was compelled to take shelter among the Latins of the Isle of Tenedos. His insolence and obstinacy provoked the victor to a step which must render the quarrel irreconcilable; and the association of his son Matthew, whom he invested with the purple, established the succession in the family of the Cantacuzeni. But Constantinople was still attached to the blood of her ancient princes; and this last injury accelerated the restoration of the rightful heir. A noble Genoese espoused the cause of Palæologus, obtained a promise of his sister, and achieved the revolution with two galleys and two thousand five hundred auxiliaries. Under the pretence of distress, they were admitted into the lesser port; a gate was opened, and the Latin shout of, “Long life and victory to the emperor, John Palæologus!” was answered by a general rising in his favor. A numerous and loyal party yet adhered to the standard of Cantacuzene: but he asserts in his history (does he hope for belief?) that his tender conscience rejected the assurance of conquest; that, in free obedience to the voice of religion and philosophy, he descended from the throne and embraced with pleasure the monastic habit and profession. 36 So soon as he ceased to be a prince, his successor was not unwilling that he should be a saint: the remainder of his life was devoted to piety and learning; in the cells of Constantinople and Mount Athos, the monk Joasaph was respected as the temporal and spiritual father of the emperor; and if he issued from his retreat, it was as the minister of peace, to subdue the obstinacy, and solicit the pardon, of his rebellious son. 37

I quickly wrap up the personal story of John Cantacuzene. 34 He succeeded and ruled; however, his reign and success were overshadowed by the dissatisfaction of his own supporters and the opposing faction. His followers might refer to the general amnesty as a pardon for his enemies and a memory wipe for his friends: 35 because in his cause their estates had been lost or looted; and as they wandered naked and hungry through the streets, they cursed the self-serving generosity of a leader who, on the empire's throne, could give up his private inheritance without any merit. The supporters of the empress felt ashamed to rely on the unstable favor of a usurper for their lives and fortunes; their desire for revenge was hidden behind a caring concern for her son's succession and safety. They were rightly troubled by a request from Cantacuzene's allies to be released from their oath of loyalty to the Palæologi and to be entrusted with the protection of some strategic towns; a proposal backed by solid arguments and eloquence; which was turned down (as the Imperial historian states) “by my sublime, and almost unbelievable virtue.” His peace was disturbed by rumors of plots and uprisings; and he feared that the rightful prince could be taken away by some foreign or domestic foe, who would mark his name and grievances on the banners of rebellion. As the son of Andronicus matured into manhood, he began to think and act for himself; and rather than being restrained, his growing ambition was fueled by copying his father’s vices. If we can believe his own claims, Cantacuzene worked diligently to correct these base and indulgent desires and to elevate the young prince’s mind to match his status. During the Servian campaign, the two emperors appeared united before the troops and provinces; and the younger emperor was initiated into the complexities of war and governance by the elder. After peace was reached, Palæologus was stationed in Thessalonica, a royal residence and a military outpost, to maintain peace in Constantinople by his absence and to keep his youth away from the temptations of a lavish capital. But being distant weakened his control, and the son of Andronicus was surrounded by cunning or thoughtless companions who encouraged him to resent his guardian, lament his exile, and assert his rights. A private agreement with the ruler of Servia quickly led to an open rebellion; and Cantacuzene, on the throne of the elder Andronicus, defended the cause of age and authority, which he had fiercely challenged in his youth. At his request, the empress-mother undertook the journey to Thessalonica to mediate: she returned without success; and unless Anne of Savoy learned from hardship, we may question the sincerity, or at least the intensity, of her commitment. While the regent held the scepter firmly and vigorously, she had been instructed to state that his ten years of legal rule would soon come to an end; and that, after fully experiencing the futility of the world, Emperor Cantacuzene longed for the peace of a monastery and sought only a heavenly crown. Had these feelings been genuine, his voluntary abdication would have restored peace to the empire, and he would have felt relieved of his conscience through an act of justice. Palæologus alone would bear the responsibility for his future rule; and whatever his flaws, they were surely less dangerous than the disasters of a civil war, in which Barbarians and infidels would again be invited to help the Greeks in their mutual destruction. Through the force of the Turks, who were now establishing a deep and enduring presence in Europe, Cantacuzene prevailed in the third conflict he faced; and the young emperor, driven from both land and sea, found refuge among the Latins of the Isle of Tenedos. His arrogance and stubbornness pushed the victor to take a step that would make reconciliation impossible; and the association of his son Matthew, whom he crowned with the purple, ensured the family succession of the Cantacuzeni. However, Constantinople remained loyal to the lineage of her ancient rulers; and this final insult hastened the restoration of the rightful heir. A noble Genoese supported Palæologus’s cause, secured a promise of his sister's hand, and carried out the revolution with two galleys and two thousand five hundred reinforcements. Under the pretense of distress, they were allowed into the smaller port; a gate was opened, and the Latin cry of, “Long life and victory to the emperor, John Palæologus!” was met with a widespread uprising in his favor. A large and loyal faction still adhered to Cantacuzene's banner: yet he claims in his history (does he seek belief?) that his sensitive conscience rejected the promise of conquest; that, in obedient compliance with the call of religion and philosophy, he stepped down from the throne and willingly adopted the monastic habit and lifestyle. 36 As soon as he stopped being a prince, his successor was more than happy for him to be a saint: the rest of his life was dedicated to piety and learning; in the cells of Constantinople and Mount Athos, the monk Joasaph was respected as the temporal and spiritual father of the emperor; and whenever he emerged from his retreat, it was as a peacemaker, to reconcile with and seek forgiveness from his rebellious son. 37

34 (return)
[ From his return to Constantinople, Cantacuzene continues his history and that of the empire, one year beyond the abdication of his son Matthew, A.D. 1357, (l. iv. c. l—50, p. 705—911.) Nicephorus Gregoras ends with the synod of Constantinople, in the year 1351, (l. xxii. c. 3, p. 660; the rest, to the conclusion of the xxivth book, p. 717, is all controversy;) and his fourteen last books are still MSS. in the king of France’s library.]

34 (return)
[ After returning to Constantinople, Cantacuzene continues his history and that of the empire, one year after his son Matthew stepped down, A.D. 1357, (l. iv. c. l—50, p. 705—911.) Nicephorus Gregoras concludes with the synod of Constantinople in the year 1351, (l. xxii. c. 3, p. 660; the remainder, up to the end of the xxivth book, p. 717, is all about controversies;) and his last fourteen books are still manuscripts in the king of France’s library.]

35 (return)
[ The emperor (Cantacuzen. l. iv. c. 1) represents his own virtues, and Nic. Gregoras (l. xv. c. 11) the complaints of his friends, who suffered by its effects. I have lent them the words of our poor cavaliers after the Restoration.]

35 (return)
[ The emperor (Cantacuzen. l. iv. c. 1) highlights his own virtues, while Nic. Gregoras (l. xv. c. 11) shares the complaints of his friends who were affected by them. I've borrowed the words of our unfortunate knights after the Restoration.]

36 (return)
[ The awkward apology of Cantacuzene, (l. iv. c. 39—42,) who relates, with visible confusion, his own downfall, may be supplied by the less accurate, but more honest, narratives of Matthew Villani (l. iv. c. 46, in the Script. Rerum Ital. tom. xiv. p. 268) and Ducas, (c 10, 11.)]

36 (return)
[ The awkward apology of Cantacuzene, (l. iv. c. 39—42,) who shares, with clear embarrassment, his own downfall, can be complemented by the less precise, but more genuine, accounts of Matthew Villani (l. iv. c. 46, in the Script. Rerum Ital. tom. xiv. p. 268) and Ducas, (c 10, 11.)]

37 (return)
[ Cantacuzene, in the year 1375, was honored with a letter from the pope, (Fleury, Hist. Ecclés. tom. xx. p. 250.) His death is placed by a respectable authority on the 20th of November, 1411, (Ducange, Fam. Byzant. p. 260.) But if he were of the age of his companion Andronicus the Younger, he must have lived 116 years; a rare instance of longevity, which in so illustrious a person would have attracted universal notice.]

37 (return)
[ Cantacuzene, in 1375, received a letter from the pope, (Fleury, Hist. Ecclés. tom. xx. p. 250.) His death is recorded by a credible source on November 20, 1411, (Ducange, Fam. Byzant. p. 260.) However, if he was the same age as his companion Andronicus the Younger, he would have lived to be 116 years old; an extraordinary case of longevity that would have caught widespread attention for such a notable figure.]

Yet in the cloister, the mind of Cantacuzene was still exercised by theological war. He sharpened a controversial pen against the Jews and Mahometans; 38 and in every state he defended with equal zeal the divine light of Mount Thabor, a memorable question which consummates the religious follies of the Greeks. The fakirs of India, 39 and the monks of the Oriental church, were alike persuaded, that in the total abstraction of the faculties of the mind and body, the purer spirit may ascend to the enjoyment and vision of the Deity. The opinion and practice of the monasteries of Mount Athos 40 will be best represented in the words of an abbot, who flourished in the eleventh century. “When thou art alone in thy cell,” says the ascetic teacher, “shut thy door, and seat thyself in a corner: raise thy mind above all things vain and transitory; recline thy beard and chin on thy breast; turn thy eyes and thy thoughts toward the middle of thy belly, the region of the navel; and search the place of the heart, the seat of the soul. At first, all will be dark and comfortless; but if you persevere day and night, you will feel an ineffable joy; and no sooner has the soul discovered the place of the heart, than it is involved in a mystic and ethereal light.” This light, the production of a distempered fancy, the creature of an empty stomach and an empty brain, was adored by the Quietists as the pure and perfect essence of God himself; and as long as the folly was confined to Mount Athos, the simple solitaries were not inquisitive how the divine essence could be a material substance, or how an immaterial substance could be perceived by the eyes of the body. But in the reign of the younger Andronicus, these monasteries were visited by Barlaam, 41 a Calabrian monk, who was equally skilled in philosophy and theology; who possessed the language of the Greeks and Latins; and whose versatile genius could maintain their opposite creeds, according to the interest of the moment. The indiscretion of an ascetic revealed to the curious traveller the secrets of mental prayer and Barlaam embraced the opportunity of ridiculing the Quietists, who placed the soul in the navel; of accusing the monks of Mount Athos of heresy and blasphemy. His attack compelled the more learned to renounce or dissemble the simple devotion of their brethren; and Gregory Palamas introduced a scholastic distinction between the essence and operation of God. His inaccessible essence dwells in the midst of an uncreated and eternal light; and this beatific vision of the saints had been manifested to the disciples on Mount Thabor, in the transfiguration of Christ. Yet this distinction could not escape the reproach of polytheism; the eternity of the light of Thabor was fiercely denied; and Barlaam still charged the Palamites with holding two eternal substances, a visible and an invisible God. From the rage of the monks of Mount Athos, who threatened his life, the Calabrian retired to Constantinople, where his smooth and specious manners introduced him to the favor of the great domestic and the emperor. The court and the city were involved in this theological dispute, which flamed amidst the civil war; but the doctrine of Barlaam was disgraced by his flight and apostasy: the Palamites triumphed; and their adversary, the patriarch John of Apri, was deposed by the consent of the adverse factions of the state. In the character of emperor and theologian, Cantacuzene presided in the synod of the Greek church, which established, as an article of faith, the uncreated light of Mount Thabor; and, after so many insults, the reason of mankind was slightly wounded by the addition of a single absurdity. Many rolls of paper or parchment have been blotted; and the impenitent sectaries, who refused to subscribe the orthodox creed, were deprived of the honors of Christian burial; but in the next age the question was forgotten; nor can I learn that the axe or the fagot were employed for the extirpation of the Barlaamite heresy. 42

Yet in the cloister, Cantacuzene's mind was still preoccupied with theological debate. He sharpened his pen for controversies against Jews and Muslims; 38 and in every argument, he defended with equal passion the divine light of Mount Thabor, a notable issue that highlights the religious absurdities of the Greeks. The holy men of India, 39 and the monks of the Eastern church, all believed that by completely shutting out the mind and body, the pure spirit could rise to experience and see the Deity. The beliefs and practices of the monasteries on Mount Athos 40 are best summarized in the words of an abbot from the eleventh century: “When you are alone in your cell,” says the ascetic teacher, “close your door, and sit in a corner: lift your mind beyond all the trivial and fleeting things; rest your beard and chin on your chest; direct your eyes and thoughts toward your navel; and search the area of the heart, which is the seat of the soul. At first, everything will seem dark and bleak; but if you keep at it day and night, you will feel an indescribable joy; and once the soul finds the heart's location, it will be engulfed in a mystical and ethereal light.” This light, a product of an unbalanced imagination, a result of an empty stomach and an empty mind, was worshiped by the Quietists as the pure essence of God himself; and as long as the foolishness remained confined to Mount Athos, the naive hermits weren't curious about how the divine essence could be a material substance, or how an immaterial substance could be perceived by human eyes. But during the reign of the younger Andronicus, Barlaam, 41 a Calabrian monk skilled in philosophy and theology, visited these monasteries; he was fluent in Greek and Latin, and his versatile intellect was able to defend their opposing ideologies as the situation required. An indiscreet ascetic shared the secrets of mental prayer with the inquisitive traveler, and Barlaam seized the chance to mock the Quietists, who placed the soul in the navel; he accused the monks of Mount Athos of heresy and blasphemy. His attacks forced the more educated monks to renounce or hide their simple faith. Gregory Palamas introduced a scholarly distinction between the essence and actions of God. His inaccessible essence resides in an uncreated and eternal light; and this blessed vision of the saints had been shown to the disciples on Mount Thabor during Christ's transfiguration. Still, this distinction faced accusations of polytheism; the eternity of the light of Thabor was vehemently denied; and Barlaam continued to accuse the Palamites of holding two eternal substances, a visible and an invisible God. Fearing for his life from the angry monks of Mount Athos, Barlaam fled to Constantinople, where his smooth and convincing demeanor gained him favor with the high domestic official and the emperor. The court and the city were entangled in this theological controversy, which raged amid the civil war; but Barlaam's teachings lost credibility with his flight and defection: the Palamites emerged victorious; and their opponent, patriarch John of Apri, was deposed with the agreement of the opposing state factions. As both emperor and theologian, Cantacuzene presided over the synod of the Greek church, which asserted, as a matter of faith, the uncreated light of Mount Thabor; and despite the many insults, human reasoning was only slightly harmed by the addition of one more absurdity. Many sheets of paper or parchment have been marked; and the unrepentant sectarians, who refused to sign the orthodox creed, were denied the honors of Christian burial; but in the following age, the issue was forgotten; nor can I find evidence that the axe or the stake were used to eradicate the Barlaamite heresy. 42

38 (return)
[ His four discourses, or books, were printed at Basil, 1543, (Fabric Bibliot. Græc. tom. vi. p. 473.) He composed them to satisfy a proselyte who was assaulted with letters from his friends of Ispahan. Cantacuzene had read the Koran; but I understand from Maracci that he adopts the vulgar prejudices and fables against Mahomet and his religion.]

38 (return)
[ His four essays, or books, were published in Basel in 1543 (Fabric Bibliot. Græc. tom. vi. p. 473). He wrote them to address a convert who was faced with letters from his friends in Ispahan. Cantacuzene had read the Quran; however, I gather from Maracci that he embraces the common biases and myths against Muhammad and his faith.]

39 (return)
[ See the Voyage de Bernier, tom. i. p. 127.]

39 (return)
[ See the Voyage de Bernier, vol. 1, p. 127.]

40 (return)
[ Mosheim, Institut. Hist. Ecclés. p. 522, 523. Fleury, Hist. Ecclés. tom. xx. p. 22, 24, 107—114, &c. The former unfolds the causes with the judgment of a philosopher, the latter transcribes and transcribes and translates with the prejudices of a Catholic priest.]

40 (return)
[ Mosheim, Institut. Hist. Ecclés. p. 522, 523. Fleury, Hist. Ecclés. tom. xx. p. 22, 24, 107—114, &c. The former explains the reasons with the insight of a philosopher, while the latter copies and translates with the biases of a Catholic priest.]

41 (return)
[ Basnage (in Canisii Antiq. Lectiones, tom. iv. p. 363—368) has investigated the character and story of Barlaam. The duplicity of his opinions had inspired some doubts of the identity of his person. See likewise Fabricius, (Bibliot. Græc. tom. x. p. 427—432.)]

41 (return)
[ Basnage (in Canisii Antiq. Lectiones, vol. iv, pp. 363–368) looked into the character and story of Barlaam. His contradictory views raised some questions about his identity. Also see Fabricius, (Bibliot. Græc. vol. x, pp. 427–432.)]

42 (return)
[ See Cantacuzene (l. ii. c. 39, 40, l. iv. c. 3, 23, 24, 25) and Nic. Gregoras, (l. xi. c. 10, l. xv. 3, 7, &c.,) whose last books, from the xixth to xxivth, are almost confined to a subject so interesting to the authors. Boivin, (in Vit. Nic. Gregoræ,) from the unpublished books, and Fabricius, (Bibliot. Græc. tom. x. p. 462—473,) or rather Montfaucon, from the MSS. of the Coislin library, have added some facts and documents.]

42 (return)
[ See Cantacuzene (l. ii. c. 39, 40, l. iv. c. 3, 23, 24, 25) and Nic. Gregoras, (l. xi. c. 10, l. xv. 3, 7, &c.,) whose last books, from the 19th to 24th, focus mainly on a topic that piqued the authors' interest. Boivin, (in Vit. Nic. Gregoræ,) based on unpublished works, and Fabricius, (Bibliot. Græc. tom. x. p. 462—473,) or rather Montfaucon, from the manuscripts of the Coislin library, have contributed additional facts and documents.]

For the conclusion of this chapter, I have reserved the Genoese war, which shook the throne of Cantacuzene, and betrayed the debility of the Greek empire. The Genoese, who, after the recovery of Constantinople, were seated in the suburb of Pera or Galata, received that honorable fief from the bounty of the emperor. They were indulged in the use of their laws and magistrates; but they submitted to the duties of vassals and subjects; the forcible word of liegemen43 was borrowed from the Latin jurisprudence; and their podesta, or chief, before he entered on his office, saluted the emperor with loyal acclamations and vows of fidelity. Genoa sealed a firm alliance with the Greeks; and, in case of a defensive war, a supply of fifty empty galleys and a succor of fifty galleys, completely armed and manned, was promised by the republic to the empire. In the revival of a naval force, it was the aim of Michael Palæologus to deliver himself from a foreign aid; and his vigorous government contained the Genoese of Galata within those limits which the insolence of wealth and freedom provoked them to exceed. A sailor threatened that they should soon be masters of Constantinople, and slew the Greek who resented this national affront; and an armed vessel, after refusing to salute the palace, was guilty of some acts of piracy in the Black Sea. Their countrymen threatened to support their cause; but the long and open village of Galata was instantly surrounded by the Imperial troops; till, in the moment of the assault, the prostrate Genoese implored the clemency of their sovereign. The defenceless situation which secured their obedience exposed them to the attack of their Venetian rivals, who, in the reign of the elder Andronicus, presumed to violate the majesty of the throne. On the approach of their fleets, the Genoese, with their families and effects, retired into the city: their empty habitations were reduced to ashes; and the feeble prince, who had viewed the destruction of his suburb, expressed his resentment, not by arms, but by ambassadors. This misfortune, however, was advantageous to the Genoese, who obtained, and imperceptibly abused, the dangerous license of surrounding Galata with a strong wall; of introducing into the ditch the waters of the sea; of erecting lofty turrets; and of mounting a train of military engines on the rampart. The narrow bounds in which they had been circumscribed were insufficient for the growing colony; each day they acquired some addition of landed property; and the adjacent hills were covered with their villas and castles, which they joined and protected by new fortifications. 44 The navigation and trade of the Euxine was the patrimony of the Greek emperors, who commanded the narrow entrance, the gates, as it were, of that inland sea. In the reign of Michael Palæologus, their prerogative was acknowledged by the sultan of Egypt, who solicited and obtained the liberty of sending an annual ship for the purchase of slaves in Circassia and the Lesser Tartary: a liberty pregnant with mischief to the Christian cause; since these youths were transformed by education and discipline into the formidable Mamalukes. 45 From the colony of Pera, the Genoese engaged with superior advantage in the lucrative trade of the Black Sea; and their industry supplied the Greeks with fish and corn; two articles of food almost equally important to a superstitious people. The spontaneous bounty of nature appears to have bestowed the harvests of Ukraine, the produce of a rude and savage husbandry; and the endless exportation of salt fish and caviare is annually renewed by the enormous sturgeons that are caught at the mouth of the Don or Tanais, in their last station of the rich mud and shallow water of the Mæotis. 46 The waters of the Oxus, the Caspian, the Volga, and the Don, opened a rare and laborious passage for the gems and spices of India; and after three months’ march the caravans of Carizme met the Italian vessels in the harbors of Crimæa. 47 These various branches of trade were monopolized by the diligence and power of the Genoese. Their rivals of Venice and Pisa were forcibly expelled; the natives were awed by the castles and cities, which arose on the foundations of their humble factories; and their principal establishment of Caffa 48 was besieged without effect by the Tartar powers. Destitute of a navy, the Greeks were oppressed by these haughty merchants, who fed, or famished, Constantinople, according to their interest. They proceeded to usurp the customs, the fishery, and even the toll, of the Bosphorus; and while they derived from these objects a revenue of two hundred thousand pieces of gold, a remnant of thirty thousand was reluctantly allowed to the emperor. 49 The colony of Pera or Galata acted, in peace and war, as an independent state; and, as it will happen in distant settlements, the Genoese podesta too often forgot that he was the servant of his own masters.

For the end of this chapter, I want to discuss the Genoese war, which shook Cantacuzene's throne and exposed the weakness of the Greek empire. The Genoese, who settled in the suburb of Pera or Galata after recapturing Constantinople, received that prestigious fief from the emperor's favor. They were allowed to use their own laws and magistrates, but they still had to fulfill their duties as vassals and subjects; the term liegemen was borrowed from Latin law. Their podesta, or chief, would salute the emperor with expressions of loyalty and oaths of fidelity before taking office. Genoa forged a strong alliance with the Greeks, promising to supply fifty empty galleys and fifty fully armed and manned galleys in case of war. Michael Palæologus aimed to build a navy to free himself from foreign dependence, and he kept the Genoese of Galata in check, limiting their wealth and freedom that could lead to overreach. A sailor boasted they would soon control Constantinople, killing a Greek who took offense, while an armed vessel committed piracy in the Black Sea after refusing to acknowledge the palace. Their fellow countrymen threatened to back them, but the long and exposed village of Galata was quickly surrounded by Imperial troops; at the moment of assault, the desperate Genoese pleaded for the mercy of their sovereign. Their defenseless situation made them vulnerable to attack from their Venetian rivals, who took the opportunity to challenge the throne during the reign of the elder Andronicus. With their fleets approaching, the Genoese retreated with their families and belongings into the city; their abandoned homes were burned to the ground, and the helpless prince, witnessing the destruction of his suburb, responded not with force, but by sending ambassadors. This misfortune ultimately benefited the Genoese, who gained, and then quietly abused, the dangerous privilege of surrounding Galata with a strong wall, channeling sea water into a moat, building tall towers, and setting up military engines on the ramparts. The limited space they were confined to became inadequate for their growing colony; they acquired more land every day, and the nearby hills became dotted with their villas and castles, all connected and fortified with new defenses. 44 The navigation and trade of the Black Sea was a legacy of the Greek emperors, who controlled the narrow entrance—essentially the gates—of that inland sea. During the reign of Michael Palæologus, their authority was recognized by the sultan of Egypt, who sought and received permission to send an annual ship for slave trading in Circassia and Lesser Tartary—a permission that brought harm to the Christian cause, as these young men were trained and turned into the formidable Mamluks. 45 From their colony in Pera, the Genoese participated advantageously in the lucrative trade of the Black Sea; their enterprise supplied the Greeks with fish and grain, two key food sources for a superstitious people. Nature seemed to generously provide harvests from Ukraine, produced by rudimentary and harsh farming methods; the ongoing export of salted fish and caviar was ensured by the massive sturgeons caught at the mouth of the Don or Tanais, in the fertile mud and shallow waters of the Sea of Azov. 46 The waterways of the Oxus, Caspian, Volga, and Don provided a rare and arduous route for Indian gems and spices; after three months of travel, the caravans from Carizme would meet Italian ships in the Crimean harbors. 47 These various trade routes were dominated by the diligence and strength of the Genoese. Their competitors, the Venetians and Pisans, were forcibly driven out; the locals were intimidated by the castles and cities that sprang up where their simple trading posts once stood; and their main settlement in Caffa 48 was unsuccessfully besieged by Tatar forces. Lacking a navy, the Greeks found themselves at the mercy of these arrogant merchants, who could either feed or starve Constantinople, depending on their interests. They began to seize control of customs, fisheries, and even tolls on the Bosphorus, deriving a hefty revenue of two hundred thousand gold coins from these sources, while reluctantly allowing the emperor only thirty thousand. 49 The colony of Pera or Galata operated as an independent state in both peace and war; as often happens in distant settlements, the Genoese podesta frequently forgot that he was supposed to be serving his own masters.

43 (return)
[ Pachymer (l. v. c. 10) very properly explains liziouV (ligios) by?lidiouV. The use of these words in the Greek and Latin of the feudal times may be amply understood from the Glossaries of Ducange, (Græc. p. 811, 812. Latin. tom. iv. p. 109—111.)]

43 (return)
[ Pachymer (l. v. c. 10) very aptly explains liziouV (ligios) as ?lidiouV. The usage of these terms in the Greek and Latin of the feudal era can be clearly understood from Ducange's Glossaries, (Græc. p. 811, 812. Latin. tom. iv. p. 109—111.)]

44 (return)
[ The establishment and progress of the Genoese at Pera, or Galata, is described by Ducange (C. P. Christiana, l. i. p. 68, 69) from the Byzantine historians, Pachymer, (l. ii. c. 35, l. v. 10, 30, l. ix. 15 l. xii. 6, 9,) Nicephorus Gregoras, (l. v. c. 4, l. vi. c. 11, l. ix. c. 5, l. ix. c. 1, l. xv. c. 1, 6,) and Cantacuzene, (l. i. c. 12, l. ii. c. 29, &c.)]

44 (return)
[ Ducange describes the foundation and development of the Genoese at Pera, or Galata, based on Byzantine historians such as Pachymer (Book II, Chapter 35, Book V, Chapters 10, 30, Book IX, Chapter 15, Book XII, Chapters 6, 9), Nicephorus Gregoras (Book V, Chapter 4, Book VI, Chapter 11, Book IX, Chapters 5, 1, Book XV, Chapters 1, 6), and Cantacuzene (Book I, Chapter 12, Book II, Chapter 29, etc.)]

45 (return)
[ Both Pachymer (l. iii. c. 3, 4, 5) and Nic. Greg. (l. iv. c. 7) understand and deplore the effects of this dangerous indulgence. Bibars, sultan of Egypt, himself a Tartar, but a devout Mussulman, obtained from the children of Zingis the permission to build a stately mosque in the capital of Crimea, (De Guignes, Hist. des Huns, tom. iii. p. 343.)]

45 (return)
[Both Pachymer (book III, chapters 3, 4, 5) and Nic. Greg. (book IV, chapter 7) recognize and lament the consequences of this harmful indulgence. Bibars, the sultan of Egypt, who was a Tartar but a devoted Muslim, received permission from the descendants of Genghis Khan to construct an impressive mosque in the capital of Crimea. (De Guignes, History of the Huns, vol. III, p. 343.)]

46 (return)
[ Chardin (Voyages en Perse, tom. i. p. 48) was assured at Caffa, that these fishes were sometimes twenty-four or twenty-six feet long, weighed eight or nine hundred pounds, and yielded three or four quintals of caviare. The corn of the Bosphorus had supplied the Athenians in the time of Demosthenes.]

46 (return)
[ Chardin (Voyages en Perse, vol. i, p. 48) was told in Caffa that these fish could sometimes reach lengths of twenty-four or twenty-six feet, weigh eight or nine hundred pounds, and produce three or four quintals of caviar. The grain from the Bosphorus had fed the Athenians during the time of Demosthenes.]

47 (return)
[ De Guignes, Hist. des Huns, tom. iii. p. 343, 344. Viaggi di Ramusio, tom. i. fol. 400. But this land or water carriage could only be practicable when Tartary was united under a wise and powerful monarch.]

47 (return)
[ De Guignes, Hist. des Huns, tom. iii. p. 343, 344. Viaggi di Ramusio, tom. i. fol. 400. But this land or water transport could only work when Tartary was united under a wise and strong leader.]

48 (return)
[ Nic. Gregoras (l. xiii. c. 12) is judicious and well informed on the trade and colonies of the Black Sea. Chardin describes the present ruins of Caffa, where, in forty days, he saw above 400 sail employed in the corn and fish trade, (Voyages en Perse, tom. i. p. 46—48.)]

48 (return)
[ Nic. Gregoras (l. xiii. c. 12) provides insightful and well-informed details about the trade and colonies of the Black Sea. Chardin describes the current ruins of Caffa, where, over forty days, he observed more than 400 ships involved in the grain and fish trade, (Voyages en Perse, tom. i. p. 46—48.)]

49 (return)
[ See Nic. Gregoras, l. xvii. c. 1.]

49 (return)
[ See Nic. Gregoras, l. xvii. c. 1.]

These usurpations were encouraged by the weakness of the elder Andronicus, and by the civil wars that afflicted his age and the minority of his grandson. The talents of Cantacuzene were employed to the ruin, rather than the restoration, of the empire; and after his domestic victory, he was condemned to an ignominious trial, whether the Greeks or the Genoese should reign in Constantinople. The merchants of Pera were offended by his refusal of some contiguous land, some commanding heights, which they proposed to cover with new fortifications; and in the absence of the emperor, who was detained at Demotica by sickness, they ventured to brave the debility of a female reign. A Byzantine vessel, which had presumed to fish at the mouth of the harbor, was sunk by these audacious strangers; the fishermen were murdered. Instead of suing for pardon, the Genoese demanded satisfaction; required, in a haughty strain, that the Greeks should renounce the exercise of navigation; and encountered with regular arms the first sallies of the popular indignation. They instantly occupied the debatable land; and by the labor of a whole people, of either sex and of every age, the wall was raised, and the ditch was sunk, with incredible speed. At the same time, they attacked and burnt two Byzantine galleys; while the three others, the remainder of the Imperial navy, escaped from their hands: the habitations without the gates, or along the shore, were pillaged and destroyed; and the care of the regent, of the empress Irene, was confined to the preservation of the city. The return of Cantacuzene dispelled the public consternation: the emperor inclined to peaceful counsels; but he yielded to the obstinacy of his enemies, who rejected all reasonable terms, and to the ardor of his subjects, who threatened, in the style of Scripture, to break them in pieces like a potter’s vessel. Yet they reluctantly paid the taxes, that he imposed for the construction of ships, and the expenses of the war; and as the two nations were masters, the one of the land, the other of the sea, Constantinople and Pera were pressed by the evils of a mutual siege. The merchants of the colony, who had believed that a few days would terminate the war, already murmured at their losses: the succors from their mother-country were delayed by the factions of Genoa; and the most cautious embraced the opportunity of a Rhodian vessel to remove their families and effects from the scene of hostility. In the spring, the Byzantine fleet, seven galleys and a train of smaller vessels, issued from the mouth of the harbor, and steered in a single line along the shore of Pera; unskilfully presenting their sides to the beaks of the adverse squadron. The crews were composed of peasants and mechanics; nor was their ignorance compensated by the native courage of Barbarians: the wind was strong, the waves were rough; and no sooner did the Greeks perceive a distant and inactive enemy, than they leaped headlong into the sea, from a doubtful, to an inevitable peril. The troops that marched to the attack of the lines of Pera were struck at the same moment with a similar panic; and the Genoese were astonished, and almost ashamed, at their double victory. Their triumphant vessels, crowned with flowers, and dragging after them the captive galleys, repeatedly passed and repassed before the palace: the only virtue of the emperor was patience; and the hope of revenge his sole consolation. Yet the distress of both parties interposed a temporary agreement; and the shame of the empire was disguised by a thin veil of dignity and power. Summoning the chiefs of the colony, Cantacuzene affected to despise the trivial object of the debate; and, after a mild reproof, most liberally granted the lands, which had been previously resigned to the seeming custody of his officers. 50

These takeovers were fueled by the weakness of the elder Andronicus and the civil wars that plagued his time and the early years of his grandson. Cantacuzene's skills were used for the empire's downfall rather than its recovery; and after his domestic victory, he faced a disgraceful trial over whether the Greeks or the Genoese should rule in Constantinople. The merchants in Pera were upset by his refusal to grant them some nearby land and strategic heights they wanted to fortify; and with the emperor sidelined by illness in Demotica, they dared to challenge the weakness of a female-led reign. A Byzantine ship that had dared to fish at the harbor's mouth was sunk by these bold outsiders, and the fishermen were killed. Instead of asking for forgiveness, the Genoese demanded reparation and arrogantly insisted that the Greeks give up their right to navigate; they confronted the initial outbursts of public outrage with organized force. They quickly took control of the disputed land; and with the efforts of a whole population, of all ages and genders, the wall was built and the ditch was dug at an incredible pace. Simultaneously, they attacked and burned two Byzantine galleys while the three remaining ships of the Imperial navy managed to escape; homes outside the gates and along the shore were looted and destroyed, while the regent, empress Irene, focused solely on protecting the city. Cantacuzene’s return eased the public panic: the emperor favored peaceful negotiations, but he succumbed to the stubbornness of his enemies, who rejected all reasonable offers, and to the fervor of his subjects, who threatened to destroy them like a potter’s vessel, as the Scripture said. Yet they hesitantly paid the taxes he imposed for building ships and for war expenses; and with one side controlling the land and the other the sea, both Constantinople and Pera faced the hardships of a mutual siege. The merchants from the colony, believing the war would end quickly, were already grumbling about their losses: help from their home country was delayed by the factions in Genoa, and the more cautious chose to send their families and belongings away on a Rhodian vessel to escape the conflict. In the spring, the Byzantine fleet, consisting of seven galleys and a number of smaller boats, emerged from the harbor and sailed in a single line along the Pera shoreline, poorly presenting their flanks to the enemy ships. The crews were made up of peasants and workers; their lack of skill was not offset by the natural bravery of the Barbarians: the wind was strong and the waves were rough; and as soon as the Greeks spotted a distant, unresponsive enemy, they jumped into the sea, moving from uncertainty to certain danger. The troops advancing to attack Pera’s defenses experienced a similar panic at the same moment; and the Genoese were shocked, even embarrassed, by their unexpected double victory. Their victorious ships, adorned with flowers and towing the captured galleys, repeatedly sailed back and forth in front of the palace: the emperor’s only virtue was his patience, and his only comfort was the hope for revenge. Yet the hardship faced by both sides led to a temporary truce; and the shame of the empire was partially hidden by a thin layer of dignity and power. Calling together the leaders of the colony, Cantacuzene pretended to dismiss the minor issue at hand; and after giving a gentle reprimand, he generously granted the lands that had earlier been seemingly given over to his officers. 50

50 (return)
[ The events of this war are related by Cantacuzene (l. iv. c. 11 with obscurity and confusion, and by Nic. Gregoras l. xvii. c. 1—7) in a clear and honest narrative. The priest was less responsible than the prince for the defeat of the fleet.]

50 (return)
[ The events of this war are described by Cantacuzene (l. iv. c. 11) with some unclear and confusing details, and by Nic. Gregoras (l. xvii. c. 1—7) in a straightforward and honest account. The priest bore less responsibility than the prince for the fleet's defeat.]

But the emperor was soon solicited to violate the treaty, and to join his arms with the Venetians, the perpetual enemies of Genoa and her colonies. While he compared the reasons of peace and war, his moderation was provoked by a wanton insult of the inhabitants of Pera, who discharged from their rampart a large stone that fell in the midst of Constantinople. On his just complaint, they coldly blamed the imprudence of their engineer; but the next day the insult was repeated; and they exulted in a second proof that the royal city was not beyond the reach of their artillery. Cantacuzene instantly signed his treaty with the Venetians; but the weight of the Roman empire was scarcely felt in the balance of these opulent and powerful republics. 51 From the Straits of Gibraltar to the mouth of the Tanais, their fleets encountered each other with various success; and a memorable battle was fought in the narrow sea, under the walls of Constantinople. It would not be an easy task to reconcile the accounts of the Greeks, the Venetians, and the Genoese; 52 and while I depend on the narrative of an impartial historian, 53 I shall borrow from each nation the facts that redound to their own disgrace, and the honor of their foes. The Venetians, with their allies the Catalans, had the advantage of number; and their fleet, with the poor addition of eight Byzantine galleys, amounted to seventy-five sail: the Genoese did not exceed sixty-four; but in those times their ships of war were distinguished by the superiority of their size and strength. The names and families of their naval commanders, Pisani and Doria, are illustrious in the annals of their country; but the personal merit of the former was eclipsed by the fame and abilities of his rival. They engaged in tempestuous weather; and the tumultuary conflict was continued from the dawn to the extinction of light. The enemies of the Genoese applaud their prowess; the friends of the Venetians are dissatisfied with their behavior; but all parties agree in praising the skill and boldness of the Catalans, 531 who, with many wounds, sustained the brunt of the action. On the separation of the fleets, the event might appear doubtful; but the thirteen Genoese galleys, that had been sunk or taken, were compensated by a double loss of the allies; of fourteen Venetians, ten Catalans, and two Greeks; 532 and even the grief of the conquerors expressed the assurance and habit of more decisive victories. Pisani confessed his defeat, by retiring into a fortified harbor, from whence, under the pretext of the orders of the senate, he steered with a broken and flying squadron for the Isle of Candia, and abandoned to his rivals the sovereignty of the sea. In a public epistle, 54 addressed to the doge and senate, Petrarch employs his eloquence to reconcile the maritime powers, the two luminaries of Italy. The orator celebrates the valor and victory of the Genoese, the first of men in the exercise of naval war: he drops a tear on the misfortunes of their Venetian brethren; but he exhorts them to pursue with fire and sword the base and perfidious Greeks; to purge the metropolis of the East from the heresy with which it was infected. Deserted by their friends, the Greeks were incapable of resistance; and three months after the battle, the emperor Cantacuzene solicited and subscribed a treaty, which forever banished the Venetians and Catalans, and granted to the Genoese a monopoly of trade, and almost a right of dominion. The Roman empire (I smile in transcribing the name) might soon have sunk into a province of Genoa, if the ambition of the republic had not been checked by the ruin of her freedom and naval power. A long contest of one hundred and thirty years was determined by the triumph of Venice; and the factions of the Genoese compelled them to seek for domestic peace under the protection of a foreign lord, the duke of Milan, or the French king. Yet the spirit of commerce survived that of conquest; and the colony of Pera still awed the capital and navigated the Euxine, till it was involved by the Turks in the final servitude of Constantinople itself.

But the emperor was soon urged to break the treaty and join forces with the Venetians, the longtime enemies of Genoa and its colonies. As he weighed the reasons for peace against those for war, his restraint was tested by a thoughtless insult from the people of Pera, who hurled a large stone from their ramparts that landed in the heart of Constantinople. When he justly complained, they simply blamed their engineer's carelessness; but the next day, they insulted him again, boasting that their artillery could reach the royal city. Cantacuzene quickly signed his treaty with the Venetians; however, the power of the Roman empire hardly influenced the balance between these wealthy and strong republics. 51 From the Straits of Gibraltar to the mouth of the Tanais, their fleets clashed with varying degrees of success, culminating in a notable battle in the narrow sea near the walls of Constantinople. Reconciling the accounts from the Greeks, Venetians, and Genoese would be challenging; 52 relying on the account of an impartial historian, 53 I will highlight from each nation those facts that reflect poorly on them and favor their enemies. The Venetians, with their allies the Catalans, had a numerical advantage; their fleet, along with the addition of eight Byzantine galleys, totaled seventy-five ships. The Genoese had no more than sixty-four, but their warships were known for their larger size and strength. The names and families of their naval commanders, Pisani and Doria, are famous in their country's history, yet the personal accomplishments of the former were overshadowed by the renown and skills of his rival. They fought in stormy weather, and the chaotic battle persisted from dawn until darkness fell. The enemies of the Genoese praise their bravery; the friends of the Venetians are displeased with their performance; yet all sides agree in admiring the skill and courage of the Catalans, 531 who, despite many injuries, faced the brunt of the fight. When the fleets separated, the outcome seemed uncertain; however, the thirteen Genoese galleys that were sunk or captured were outweighed by a loss of double the allies: among fourteen Venetians, ten Catalans, and two Greeks; 532 even the victors expressed grief, indicating their familiarity with achieving more decisive victories. Pisani acknowledged his defeat by retreating to a fortified harbor, where, under the pretense of orders from the senate, he led a battered and fleeing fleet toward the Isle of Candia, surrendering maritime control to his rivals. In a public letter, 54 addressed to the doge and senate, Petrarch used his eloquence to reconcile the maritime powers, the two shining lights of Italy. The speaker celebrated the bravery and victory of the Genoese, the champions of naval warfare, shedding a tear for the misfortunes of their Venetian counterparts; yet he urged them to pursue the deceitful Greeks with fire and sword to cleanse the eastern metropolis of the heresy that plagued it. Abandoned by their allies, the Greeks could not resist; and three months after the battle, Emperor Cantacuzene sought and signed a treaty that banished the Venetians and Catalans for good and granted the Genoese a trade monopoly and near dominion rights. The Roman empire (I chuckle as I write the name) might have soon become a province of Genoa if the republic’s ambitions hadn’t been curbed by the collapse of its own freedom and naval power. A lengthy conflict lasting one hundred and thirty years ended in Venice's triumph; the Genoese factions were forced to find internal peace under the protection of a foreign lord, either the duke of Milan or the French king. Yet the spirit of commerce outlasted that of conquest, and the colony of Pera continued to dominate the capital and navigate the Euxine until it was caught up in the final enslavement of Constantinople by the Turks.

51 (return)
[ The second war is darkly told by Cantacuzene, (l. iv. c. 18, p. 24, 25, 28—32,) who wishes to disguise what he dares not deny. I regret this part of Nic. Gregoras, which is still in MS. at Paris. * Note: This part of Nicephorus Gregoras has not been printed in the new edition of the Byzantine Historians. The editor expresses a hope that it may be undertaken by Hase. I should join in the regret of Gibbon, if these books contain any historical information: if they are but a continuation of the controversies which fill the last books in our present copies, they may as well sleep their eternal sleep in MS. as in print.—M.]

51 (return)
[ The second war is darkly described by Cantacuzene, (l. iv. c. 18, p. 24, 25, 28—32,) who tries to cover up what he can’t deny. I regret this part of Nic. Gregoras, which is still in manuscript at Paris. * Note: This part of Nicephorus Gregoras has not been published in the new edition of the Byzantine Historians. The editor hopes that it may be taken on by Hase. I would share Gibbon’s regret if these books contain any historical information: if they are just a continuation of the disputes that fill the last books in our current copies, they may as well remain in manuscript rather than be published.—M.]

52 (return)
[ Muratori (Annali d’ Italia, tom. xii. p. 144) refers to the most ancient Chronicles of Venice (Caresinus, the continuator of Andrew Dandulus, tom. xii. p. 421, 422) and Genoa, (George Stella Annales Genuenses, tom. xvii. p. 1091, 1092;) both which I have diligently consulted in his great Collection of the Historians of Italy.]

52 (return)
[ Muratori (Annali d’ Italia, vol. xii, p. 144) mentions the oldest Chronicles of Venice (Caresinus, the continuator of Andrew Dandulus, vol. xii, p. 421, 422) and Genoa (George Stella Annales Genuenses, vol. xvii, p. 1091, 1092); both of which I have carefully reviewed in his extensive Collection of the Historians of Italy.]

53 (return)
[ See the Chronicle of Matteo Villani of Florence, l. ii. c. 59, p. 145—147, c. 74, 75, p. 156, 157, in Muratori’s Collection, tom. xiv.]

53 (return)
[ See the Chronicle of Matteo Villani of Florence, vol. II, ch. 59, pp. 145–147, ch. 74, 75, pp. 156, 157, in Muratori’s Collection, vol. XIV.]

531 (return)
[ Cantacuzene praises their bravery, but imputes their losses to their ignorance of the seas: they suffered more by the breakers than by the enemy, vol. iii. p. 224.—M.]

531 (return)
[ Cantacuzene admires their courage but blames their losses on their lack of knowledge about the seas: they were more affected by the waves than by the enemy, vol. iii. p. 224.—M.]

532 (return)
[ Cantacuzene says that the Genoese lost twenty-eight ships with their crews, autandroi; the Venetians and Catalans sixteen, the Imperials, none Cantacuzene accuses Pisani of cowardice, in not following up the victory, and destroying the Genoese. But Pisani’s conduct, and indeed Cantacuzene’s account of the battle, betray the superiority of the Genoese.—M.]

532 (return)
[ Cantacuzene claims that the Genoese lost twenty-eight ships along with their crews, the Venetians and Catalans lost sixteen, and the Imperials lost none. Cantacuzene criticizes Pisani for being cowardly by not taking advantage of their victory and eliminating the Genoese. However, Pisani's actions, along with Cantacuzene's description of the battle, reveal the dominance of the Genoese.—M.]

54 (return)
[ The Abbé de Sade (Mémoires sur la Vie de Petrarque, tom. iii. p. 257—263) translates this letter, which he copied from a MS. in the king of France’s library. Though a servant of the duke of Milan, Petrarch pours forth his astonishment and grief at the defeat and despair of the Genoese in the following year, (p. 323—332.)]

54 (return)
[ The Abbé de Sade (Memoirs on the Life of Petrarch, vol. iii, pp. 257—263) translates this letter, which he copied from a manuscript in the king of France’s library. Although a servant of the duke of Milan, Petrarch expresses his shock and sorrow over the Genoese's defeat and despair in the following year, (pp. 323—332.)]

Chapter LXIV: Moguls, Ottoman Turks.—Part I.

     Conquests Of Zingis Khan And The Moguls From China To
     Poland.—Escape Of Constantinople And The Greeks.—Origin Of
     The Ottoman Turks In Bithynia.—Reigns And Victories Of
     Othman, Orchan, Amurath The First, And Bajazet The First.—
     Foundation And Progress Of The Turkish Monarchy In Asia And
     Europe.—Danger Of Constantinople And The Greek Empire.
     Conquests of Genghis Khan and the Mongols from China to Poland.—The Escape of Constantinople and the Greeks.—The Origin of the Ottoman Turks in Bithynia.—The Reigns and Victories of Othman, Orchan, Murad I, and Bayezid I.—The Foundation and Growth of the Turkish Empire in Asia and Europe.—The Threat to Constantinople and the Greek Empire.

From the petty quarrels of a city and her suburbs, from the cowardice and discord of the falling Greeks, I shall now ascend to the victorious Turks; whose domestic slavery was ennobled by martial discipline, religious enthusiasm, and the energy of the national character. The rise and progress of the Ottomans, the present sovereigns of Constantinople, are connected with the most important scenes of modern history; but they are founded on a previous knowledge of the great eruption of the Moguls 100 and Tartars; whose rapid conquests may be compared with the primitive convulsions of nature, which have agitated and altered the surface of the globe. I have long since asserted my claim to introduce the nations, the immediate or remote authors of the fall of the Roman empire; nor can I refuse myself to those events, which, from their uncommon magnitude, will interest a philosophic mind in the history of blood. 1

From the petty conflicts of a city and its suburbs, from the cowardice and strife of the weakening Greeks, I will now move on to the victorious Turks; whose internal struggles were elevated by military discipline, religious fervor, and the strength of their national character. The rise and expansion of the Ottomans, the current rulers of Constantinople, are linked to some of the most significant events in modern history; but they are based on an earlier understanding of the massive invasions by the Mongols and Tartars; whose swift conquests can be compared to the original upheavals of nature that have shaken and changed the surface of the Earth. I have long claimed the right to introduce the nations, the direct or indirect contributors to the fall of the Roman Empire; nor can I turn away from those events which, due to their extraordinary scale, will capture the interest of a philosophical mind in the history of violence.

100 (return)
[ Mongol seems to approach the nearest to the proper name of this race. The Chinese call them Mong-kou; the Mondchoux, their neighbors, Monggo or Monggou. They called themselves also Beda. This fact seems to have been proved by M. Schmidt against the French Orientalists. See De Brosset. Note on Le Beau, tom. xxii p. 402.]

100 (return)
[ Mongol seems to be the closest to the actual name of this group. The Chinese refer to them as Mong-kou; their neighbors, the Mondchoux, call them Monggo or Monggou. They also referred to themselves as Beda. This has been supported by M. Schmidt in opposition to the French Orientalists. See De Brosset. Note on Le Beau, tom. xxii p. 402.]

1 (return)
[ The reader is invited to review chapters xxii. to xxvi., and xxiii. to xxxviii., the manners of pastoral nations, the conquests of Attila and the Huns, which were composed at a time when I entertained the wish, rather than the hope, of concluding my history.]

1 (return)
[ The reader is invited to review chapters xxii. to xxvi., and xxiii. to xxxviii., detailing the customs of pastoral nations, the conquests of Attila and the Huns, which were written when I had the desire, rather than the expectation, of completing my history.]

From the spacious highlands between China, Siberia, and the Caspian Sea, the tide of emigration and war has repeatedly been poured. These ancient seats of the Huns and Turks were occupied in the twelfth century by many pastoral tribes, of the same descent and similar manners, which were united and led to conquest by the formidable Zingis. 101 In his ascent to greatness, that Barbarian (whose private appellation was Temugin) had trampled on the necks of his equals. His birth was noble; but it was the pride of victory, that the prince or people deduced his seventh ancestor from the immaculate conception of a virgin. His father had reigned over thirteen hordes, which composed about thirty or forty thousand families: above two thirds refused to pay tithes or obedience to his infant son; and at the age of thirteen, Temugin fought a battle against his rebellious subjects. The future conqueror of Asia was reduced to fly and to obey; but he rose superior to his fortune, and in his fortieth year he had established his fame and dominion over the circumjacent tribes. In a state of society, in which policy is rude and valor is universal, the ascendant of one man must be founded on his power and resolution to punish his enemies and recompense his friends. His first military league was ratified by the simple rites of sacrificing a horse and tasting of a running stream: Temugin pledged himself to divide with his followers the sweets and the bitters of life; and when he had shared among them his horses and apparel, he was rich in their gratitude and his own hopes. After his first victory, he placed seventy caldrons on the fire, and seventy of the most guilty rebels were cast headlong into the boiling water. The sphere of his attraction was continually enlarged by the ruin of the proud and the submission of the prudent; and the boldest chieftains might tremble, when they beheld, enchased in silver, the skull of the khan of Keraites; 2 who, under the name of Prester John, had corresponded with the Roman pontiff and the princes of Europe. The ambition of Temugin condescended to employ the arts of superstition; and it was from a naked prophet, who could ascend to heaven on a white horse, that he accepted the title of Zingis, 3 the most great; and a divine right to the conquest and dominion of the earth. In a general couroultai, or diet, he was seated on a felt, which was long afterwards revered as a relic, and solemnly proclaimed great khan, or emperor of the Moguls 4 and Tartars. 5 Of these kindred, though rival, names, the former had given birth to the imperial race; and the latter has been extended by accident or error over the spacious wilderness of the north.

From the wide highlands between China, Siberia, and the Caspian Sea, waves of migration and conflict have repeatedly emerged. These ancient territories of the Huns and Turks were occupied in the twelfth century by many pastoral tribes of the same heritage and similar lifestyles, united and led into conquest by the powerful Zingis. 101 In his rise to power, this barbarian (whose real name was Temugin) trampled on the throats of his equals. He was of noble birth; however, it was the pride of victory that allowed the prince or people to trace his lineage back seven generations to the miraculous conception of a virgin. His father ruled over thirteen hordes, which included about thirty or forty thousand families: more than two-thirds refused to pay tribute or show loyalty to his young son, and at thirteen, Temugin fought a battle against his rebellious subjects. The future conqueror of Asia was forced to flee and submit, but he rose above his circumstances, and by the age of forty, he had established his fame and control over the surrounding tribes. In a society where strategy was primitive and bravery was common, one man's rise depended on his ability to punish his enemies and reward his allies. His first military alliance was formed through the simple acts of sacrificing a horse and tasting from a flowing stream: Temugin promised to share the highs and lows of life with his followers; and after distributing his horses and clothes among them, he gained their gratitude and hope. After his first victory, he set seventy cauldrons on the fire and tossed seventy of the most guilty rebels into the boiling water. His sphere of influence continually expanded through the downfall of the proud and the submission of the wise; even the boldest chieftains quaked when they saw, sheathed in silver, the skull of the khan of the Keraites; 2 who, under the name of Prester John, had communicated with the Roman pope and the princes of Europe. Temugin's ambition stooped to using superstitious tactics; it was from a naked prophet, who could ascend to heaven on a white horse, that he accepted the title of Zingis, 3 the most great; and a divine right to conquer and rule the earth. In a general couroultai, or assembly, he was seated on a felt, which was revered later as a relic, and formally declared great khan, or emperor of the Mongols 4 and Tartars. 5 Of these related, though rival, names, the former has produced the imperial lineage; and the latter has been mistakenly or accidentally applied to the vast northern wilderness.

101 (return)
[ On the traditions of the early life of Zingis, see D’Ohson, Hist des Mongols; Histoire des Mongols, Paris, 1824. Schmidt, Geschichte des Ost-Mongolen, p. 66, &c., and Notes.—M.]

101 (return)
[ For information on the traditions of Zingis's early life, refer to D’Ohson, Hist des Mongols; Histoire des Mongols, Paris, 1824. Schmidt, Geschichte des Ost-Mongolen, p. 66, and Notes.—M.]

2 (return)
[ The khans of the Keraites were most probably incapable of reading the pompous epistles composed in their name by the Nestorian missionaries, who endowed them with the fabulous wonders of an Indian kingdom. Perhaps these Tartars (the Presbyter or Priest John) had submitted to the rites of baptism and ordination, (Asseman, Bibliot Orient tom. iii. p. ii. p. 487—503.)]

2 (return)
[ The khans of the Keraites probably couldn't read the grand letters written on their behalf by the Nestorian missionaries, who filled them with tales of the amazing wonders of an Indian kingdom. Maybe these Tartars (the Presbyter or Priest John) had accepted the rituals of baptism and ordination, (Asseman, Bibliot Orient tom. iii. p. ii. p. 487—503.)]

3 (return)
[ Since the history and tragedy of Voltaire, Gengis, at least in French, seems to be the more fashionable spelling; but Abulghazi Khan must have known the true name of his ancestor. His etymology appears just: Zin, in the Mogul tongue, signifies great, and gis is the superlative termination, (Hist. Généalogique des Tatars, part iii. p. 194, 195.) From the same idea of magnitude, the appellation of Zingis is bestowed on the ocean.]

3 (return)
[ Since the history and tragedy of Voltaire, Genghis, at least in French, seems to be the more popular spelling; but Abulghazi Khan must have known the true name of his ancestor. His etymology appears accurate: Zin, in the Mogul language, means great, and gis is the superlative ending, (Hist. Généalogique des Tatars, part iii. p. 194, 195.) From the same idea of size, the term Zingis is used for the ocean.]

4 (return)
[ The name of Moguls has prevailed among the Orientals, and still adheres to the titular sovereign, the Great Mogul of Hindastan. * Note: M. Remusat (sur les Langues Tartares, p. 233) justly observes, that Timour was a Turk, not a Mogul, and, p. 242, that probably there was not Mogul in the army of Baber, who established the Indian throne of the “Great Mogul.”—M.]

4 (return)
[ The name of Moguls has continued to be used among the people of the East, and it still applies to the reigning leader, the Great Mogul of Hindustan. * Note: M. Remusat (on the Tartar Languages, p. 233) rightly points out that Timour was a Turk, not a Mogul, and, p. 242, that it’s likely there were no Moguls in Baber’s army, who established the Indian throne of the “Great Mogul.”—M.]

5 (return)
[ The Tartars (more properly Tatars) were descended from Tatar Khan, the brother of Mogul Khan, (see Abulghazi, part i. and ii.,) and once formed a horde of 70,000 families on the borders of Kitay, (p. 103—112.) In the great invasion of Europe (A.D. 1238) they seem to have led the vanguard; and the similitude of the name of Tartarei, recommended that of Tartars to the Latins, (Matt. Paris, p. 398, &c.) * Note: This relationship, according to M. Klaproth, is fabulous, and invented by the Mahometan writers, who, from religious zeal, endeavored to connect the traditions of the nomads of Central Asia with those of the Old Testament, as preserved in the Koran. There is no trace of it in the Chinese writers. Tabl. de l’Asie, p. 156.—M.]

5 (return)
[ The Tartars (more accurately Tatars) descended from Tatar Khan, the brother of Mogul Khan, (see Abulghazi, parts i. and ii.) and once made up a group of 70,000 families on the borders of Kitay, (p. 103—112.) During the major invasion of Europe (A.D. 1238), they appear to have taken the lead; and the similarity of the name Tartarei made the term Tartars appealing to the Latins, (Matt. Paris, p. 398, &c.) * Note: This connection, according to M. Klaproth, is fictional and was created by Muslim writers who, out of religious fervor, tried to link the traditions of the nomads in Central Asia with those of the Old Testament as found in the Koran. There is no evidence of this in Chinese writings. Tabl. de l’Asie, p. 156.—M.]

The code of laws which Zingis dictated to his subjects was adapted to the preservation of a domestic peace, and the exercise of foreign hostility. The punishment of death was inflicted on the crimes of adultery, murder, perjury, and the capital thefts of a horse or ox; and the fiercest of men were mild and just in their intercourse with each other. The future election of the great khan was vested in the princes of his family and the heads of the tribes; and the regulations of the chase were essential to the pleasures and plenty of a Tartar camp. The victorious nation was held sacred from all servile labors, which were abandoned to slaves and strangers; and every labor was servile except the profession of arms. The service and discipline of the troops, who were armed with bows, cimeters, and iron maces, and divided by hundreds, thousands, and ten thousands, were the institutions of a veteran commander. Each officer and soldier was made responsible, under pain of death, for the safety and honor of his companions; and the spirit of conquest breathed in the law, that peace should never be granted unless to a vanquished and suppliant enemy. But it is the religion of Zingis that best deserves our wonder and applause. 501 The Catholic inquisitors of Europe, who defended nonsense by cruelty, might have been confounded by the example of a Barbarian, who anticipated the lessons of philosophy, 6 and established by his laws a system of pure theism and perfect toleration. His first and only article of faith was the existence of one God, the Author of all good; who fills by his presence the heavens and earth, which he has created by his power. The Tartars and Moguls were addicted to the idols of their peculiar tribes; and many of them had been converted by the foreign missionaries to the religions of Moses, of Mahomet, and of Christ. These various systems in freedom and concord were taught and practised within the precincts of the same camp; and the Bonze, the Imam, the Rabbi, the Nestorian, and the Latin priest, enjoyed the same honorable exemption from service and tribute: in the mosque of Bochara, the insolent victor might trample the Koran under his horse’s feet, but the calm legislator respected the prophets and pontiffs of the most hostile sects. The reason of Zingis was not informed by books: the khan could neither read nor write; and, except the tribe of the Igours, the greatest part of the Moguls and Tartars were as illiterate as their sovereign. 601 The memory of their exploits was preserved by tradition: sixty-eight years after the death of Zingis, these traditions were collected and transcribed; 7 the brevity of their domestic annals may be supplied by the Chinese, 8 Persians, 9 Armenians, 10 Syrians, 11 Arabians, 12 Greeks, 13 Russians, 14 Poles, 15 Hungarians, 16 and Latins; 17 and each nation will deserve credit in the relation of their own disasters and defeats. 18

The laws that Zingis imposed on his subjects were designed to maintain peace at home and enable warfare outside. Death was the punishment for serious crimes like adultery, murder, perjury, and the major theft of a horse or ox; even the most ruthless individuals were fair and just with one another. The future selection of the great khan was entrusted to the princes of his family and the leaders of the tribes; hunting regulations were crucial for the enjoyment and abundance of a Tartar camp. The victorious nation was considered sacred and exempt from all menial work, which was left to slaves and outsiders; all labor was deemed menial except for military service. The organization and training of the troops, who were equipped with bows, curved swords, and iron maces, and grouped into hundreds, thousands, and tens of thousands, were the responsibility of an experienced commander. Every officer and soldier was held accountable, under threat of death, for the safety and honor of their fellow troops; and the spirit of conquest was reflected in the law, stating that peace would never be offered unless to a defeated and submissive enemy. However, it is Zingis's religion that truly deserves our admiration. 501 The Catholic inquisitors of Europe, who justified absurdity through cruelty, could have been challenged by the example of a Barbarian who foresaw the teachings of philosophy, 6 and established a legal framework based on pure theism and complete tolerance. His sole article of faith was the belief in one God, the Creator of all good; who fills the heavens and earth with his presence, which he created by his power. The Tartars and Moguls were inclined towards the idols of their specific tribes; and many had been converted by foreign missionaries to the faiths of Moses, Mohammed, and Christ. These diverse beliefs coexisted in peace and harmony within the same camp; and the Bonze, the Imam, the Rabbi, the Nestorian, and the Latin priest were all granted the same honorable exemption from service and taxes: in the mosque of Bochara, the arrogant victor might trample the Koran under his horse's hooves, yet the composed legislator respected the prophets and leaders of the most opposing sects. Zingis's understanding was not derived from books: the khan could neither read nor write; and except for the Igours, most of the Moguls and Tartars were as uneducated as their leader. 601 Their heroic deeds were passed down through oral tradition: sixty-eight years after the death of Zingis, these traditions were gathered and written down; 7 the brevity of their domestic history can be supplemented by the accounts of the Chinese, 8 Persians, 9 Armenians, 10 Syrians, 11 Arabians, 12 Greeks, 13 Russians, 14 Poles, 15 Hungarians, 16 and Latins; 17 and each nation will deserve credit in recounting their own misfortunes and defeats. 18

501 (return)
[ Before his armies entered Thibet, he sent an embassy to Bogdosottnam-Dsimmo, a Lama high priest, with a letter to this effect: “I have chosen thee as high priest for myself and my empire. Repair then to me, and promote the present and future happiness of man: I will be thy supporter and protector: let us establish a system of religion, and unite it with the monarchy,” &c. The high priest accepted the invitation; and the Mongol history literally terms this step the period of the first respect for religion; because the monarch, by his public profession, made it the religion of the state. Klaproth. “Travels in Caucasus,” ch. 7, Eng. Trans. p. 92. Neither Dshingis nor his son and successor Oegodah had, on account of their continual wars, much leisure for the propagation of the religion of the Lama. By religion they understand a distinct, independent, sacred moral code, which has but one origin, one source, and one object. This notion they universally propagate, and even believe that the brutes, and all created beings, have a religion adapted to their sphere of action. The different forms of the various religions they ascribe to the difference of individuals, nations, and legislators. Never do you hear of their inveighing against any creed, even against the obviously absurd Schaman paganism, or of their persecuting others on that account. They themselves, on the other hand, endure every hardship, and even persecutions, with perfect resignation, and indulgently excuse the follies of others, nay, consider them as a motive for increased ardor in prayer, ch. ix. p. 109.—M.]

501 (return)
Before his armies entered Tibet, he sent a message to Bogdosottnam-Dsimmo, a high priest Lama, with a letter saying: “I have chosen you as the high priest for myself and my empire. Come to me and promote the happiness of humanity now and in the future: I will support and protect you: let’s establish a system of religion and unite it with the monarchy,” etc. The high priest accepted the invitation; and the Mongolian history refers to this event as the beginning of the first respect for religion; because the monarch, by his public declaration, made it the state religion. Klaproth. “Travels in Caucasus,” ch. 7, Eng. Trans. p. 92. Neither Genghis nor his son and successor Ögedei had much time to promote the Lama's religion due to their constant warfare. By religion, they understand a distinct, independent, sacred moral code, which has only one origin, one source, and one purpose. They promote this idea universally and even believe that animals and all created beings have a religion suited to their role. They attribute the different forms of various religions to the differences among individuals, nations, and lawmakers. You never hear them condemning any belief, even the obviously silly Shamanist paganism, or persecuting others for it. They themselves endure all hardships, even persecution, with complete resignation, and generously excuse the shortcomings of others, even seeing them as a reason for increased fervor in prayer, ch. ix. p. 109.—M.]

6 (return)
[ A singular conformity may be found between the religious laws of Zingis Khan and of Mr. Locke, (Constitutions of Carolina, in his works, vol. iv. p. 535, 4to. edition, 1777.)]

6 (return)
[ There is a unique similarity between the religious laws of Genghis Khan and those of Mr. Locke, (Constitutions of Carolina, in his works, vol. iv. p. 535, 4to. edition, 1777.)]

601 (return)
[ See the notice on Tha-tha-toung-o, the Ouogour minister of Tchingis, in Abel Remusat’s 2d series of Recherch. Asiat. vol. ii. p. 61. He taught the son of Tchingis to write: “He was the instructor of the Moguls in writing, of which they were before ignorant;” and hence the application of the Ouigour characters to the Mogul language cannot be placed earlier than the year 1204 or 1205, nor so late as the time of Pà-sse-pa, who lived under Khubilai. A new alphabet, approaching to that of Thibet, was introduced under Khubilai.—M.]

601 (return)
[ See the notice on Tha-tha-toung-o, the Ouogour minister of Tchingis, in Abel Remusat’s 2nd series of Recherch. Asiat. vol. ii. p. 61. He taught Tchingis's son to write: “He was the teacher of the Moguls in writing, which they were previously unaware of;” and therefore, the use of the Ouigour characters in the Mogul language cannot be dated earlier than 1204 or 1205, nor later than the time of Pà-sse-pa, who lived during Khubilai’s reign. A new alphabet, similar to that of Tibet, was introduced during Khubilai.—M.]

7 (return)
[ In the year 1294, by the command of Cazan, khan of Persia, the fourth in descent from Zingis. From these traditions, his vizier Fadlallah composed a Mogul history in the Persian language, which has been used by Petit de la Croix, (Hist. de Genghizcan, p. 537—539.) The Histoire Généalogique des Tatars (à Leyde, 1726, in 12mo., 2 tomes) was translated by the Swedish prisoners in Siberia from the Mogul MS. of Abulgasi Bahadur Khan, a descendant of Zingis, who reigned over the Usbeks of Charasm, or Carizme, (A.D. 1644—1663.) He is of most value and credit for the names, pedigrees, and manners of his nation. Of his nine parts, the ist descends from Adam to Mogul Khan; the iid, from Mogul to Zingis; the iiid is the life of Zingis; the ivth, vth, vith, and viith, the general history of his four sons and their posterity; the viiith and ixth, the particular history of the descendants of Sheibani Khan, who reigned in Maurenahar and Charasm.]

7 (return)
In 1294, under the orders of Cazan, the khan of Persia and the fourth descendant of Genghis Khan, his vizier Fadlallah wrote a history of the Mongols in Persian. This work has been referenced by Petit de la Croix in his *History of Genghis Khan* (p. 537–539). The *Histoire Généalogique des Tatars* (Leiden, 1726, in 12mo, 2 volumes) was translated by Swedish prisoners in Siberia from a Mongol manuscript by Abulgasi Bahadur Khan, a descendant of Genghis Khan, who ruled the Uzbeks of Khwarezm from 1644 to 1663. This work is highly regarded for its names, genealogies, and customs of his people. It comprises nine sections: the first traces lineage from Adam to Mongol Khan; the second from Mongol to Genghis; the third is about the life of Genghis; the fourth, fifth, sixth, and seventh cover the general history of his four sons and their descendants; the eighth and ninth detail the specific history of the descendants of Sheibani Khan, who ruled in Transoxiana and Khwarezm.

8 (return)
[ Histoire de Gentchiscan, et de toute la Dinastie des Mongous ses Successeurs, Conquerans de la Chine; tirée de l’Histoire de la Chine par le R. P. Gaubil, de la Société de Jesus, Missionaire à Peking; à Paris, 1739, in 4to. This translation is stamped with the Chinese character of domestic accuracy and foreign ignorance.]

8 (return)
[History of Genghis Khan and the entire Dynasty of his Successors, the Mongols, who conquered China; taken from the History of China by Father Gaubil of the Society of Jesus, Missionary in Peking; published in Paris, 1739, in 4to. This translation reflects a blend of local accuracy and foreign misunderstanding.]

9 (return)
[ See the Histoire du Grand Genghizcan, premier Empereur des Moguls et Tartares, par M. Petit de la Croix, à Paris, 1710, in 12mo.; a work of ten years’ labor, chiefly drawn from the Persian writers, among whom Nisavi, the secretary of Sultan Gelaleddin, has the merit and prejudices of a contemporary. A slight air of romance is the fault of the originals, or the compiler. See likewise the articles of Genghizcan, Mohammed, Gelaleddin, &c., in the Bibliothèque Orientale of D’Herbelot. * Note: The preface to the Hist. des Mongols, (Paris, 1824) gives a catalogue of the Arabic and Persian authorities.—M.]

9 (return)
[ Check out the Histoire du Grand Genghizcan, the first Emperor of the Mongols and Tartars, by M. Petit de la Croix, published in Paris, 1710, in 12mo. It was a decade-long project mainly based on Persian sources, including Nisavi, who was Sultan Gelaleddin's secretary and had the insights and biases of a contemporary. A bit of a romantic touch is a flaw of either the original sources or the compiler. Also, see the articles on Genghizcan, Mohammed, Gelaleddin, etc., in the Bibliothèque Orientale by D’Herbelot. * Note: The preface to the Hist. des Mongols (Paris, 1824) includes a list of Arabic and Persian sources.—M.]

10 (return)
[ Haithonus, or Aithonus, an Armenian prince, and afterwards a monk of Premontré, (Fabric, Bibliot. Lat. Medii Ævi, tom. i. p. 34,) dictated in the French language, his book de Tartaris, his old fellow-soldiers. It was immediately translated into Latin, and is inserted in the Novus Orbis of Simon Grynæus, (Basil, 1555, in folio.) * Note: A précis at the end of the new edition of Le Beau, Hist. des Empereurs, vol. xvii., by M. Brosset, gives large extracts from the accounts of the Armenian historians relating to the Mogul conquests.—M.]

10 (return)
[ Haithonus, or Aithonus, an Armenian prince who later became a monk of Premontré, (Fabric, Bibliot. Lat. Medii Ævi, tom. i. p. 34,) wrote a book called de Tartaris in French for his old fellow-soldiers. It was quickly translated into Latin and included in the Novus Orbis by Simon Grynæus, (Basil, 1555, in folio.) * Note: A summary at the end of the new edition of Le Beau, Hist. des Empereurs, vol. xvii., by M. Brosset, provides extensive excerpts from the accounts of Armenian historians regarding the Mongol conquests.—M.]

11 (return)
[ Zingis Khan, and his first successors, occupy the conclusion of the ixth Dynasty of Abulpharagius, (vers. Pocock, Oxon. 1663, in 4to.;) and his xth Dynasty is that of the Moguls of Persia. Assemannus (Bibliot. Orient. tom. ii.) has extracted some facts from his Syriac writings, and the lives of the Jacobite maphrians, or primates of the East.]

11 (return)
[ Genghis Khan and his first successors mark the end of the 9th Dynasty of Abulpharagius (according to Pocock, Oxon. 1663, in 4to.); his 10th Dynasty corresponds to the Mongols of Persia. Assemannus (Bibliot. Orient. vol. ii.) has gathered some information from his Syriac writings and the lives of the Jacobite maphrians, or primates of the East.]

12 (return)
[ Among the Arabians, in language and religion, we may distinguish Abulfeda, sultan of Hamah in Syria, who fought in person, under the Mamaluke standard, against the Moguls.]

12 (return)
[ Among the Arabs, in terms of language and religion, we can highlight Abulfeda, the sultan of Hamah in Syria, who personally fought under the Mamaluke banner against the Mongols.]

13 (return)
[ Nicephorus Gregoras (l. ii. c. 5, 6) has felt the necessity of connecting the Scythian and Byzantine histories. He describes with truth and elegance the settlement and manners of the Moguls of Persia, but he is ignorant of their origin, and corrupts the names of Zingis and his sons.]

13 (return)
[Nicephorus Gregoras (l. ii. c. 5, 6) recognized the need to link the histories of the Scythians and Byzantines. He accurately and beautifully describes the settlement and customs of the Moguls in Persia, but he lacks knowledge about their origins and mispronounces the names of Zingis and his sons.]

14 (return)
[ M. Levesque (Histoire de Russie, tom. ii.) has described the conquest of Russia by the Tartars, from the patriarch Nicon, and the old chronicles.]

14 (return)
[ M. Levesque (History of Russia, vol. ii.) has described the conquest of Russia by the Tartars, from Patriarch Nicon, and the old chronicles.]

15 (return)
[ For Poland, I am content with the Sarmatia Asiatica et Europæa of Matthew à Michou, or De Michoviâ, a canon and physician of Cracow, (A.D. 1506,) inserted in the Novus Orbis of Grynæus. Fabric Bibliot. Latin. Mediæ et Infimæ Ætatis, tom. v. p. 56.]

15 (return)
[ For Poland, I'm satisfied with the Sarmatia Asiatica et Europæa by Matthew à Michou, or De Michoviâ, a canon and physician from Cracow, (A.D. 1506,) included in the Novus Orbis by Grynæus. Fabric Bibliot. Latin. Mediæ et Infimæ Ætatis, tom. v. p. 56.]

16 (return)
[ I should quote Thuroczius, the oldest general historian (pars ii. c. 74, p. 150) in the 1st volume of the Scriptores Rerum Hungaricarum, did not the same volume contain the original narrative of a contemporary, an eye-witness, and a sufferer, (M. Rogerii, Hungari, Varadiensis Capituli Canonici, Carmen miserabile, seu Historia super Destructione Regni Hungariæ Temporibus Belæ IV. Regis per Tartaros facta, p. 292—321;) the best picture that I have ever seen of all the circumstances of a Barbaric invasion.]

16 (return)
[ I should quote Thuroczius, the earliest general historian (pars ii. c. 74, p. 150) in the 1st volume of the Scriptores Rerum Hungaricarum, which also contains the original account of a contemporary, an eyewitness, and a victim, (M. Rogerii, Hungari, Varadiensis Capituli Canonici, Carmen miserabile, seu Historia super Destructione Regni Hungariæ Temporibus Belæ IV. Regis per Tartaros facta, p. 292—321); the best depiction I have ever encountered of all the details surrounding a barbaric invasion.]

17 (return)
[ Matthew Paris has represented, from authentic documents, the danger and distress of Europe, (consult the word Tartari in his copious Index.) From motives of zeal and curiosity, the court of the great khan in the xiiith century was visited by two friars, John de Plano Carpini, and William Rubruquis, and by Marco Polo, a Venetian gentleman. The Latin relations of the two former are inserted in the 1st volume of Hackluyt; the Italian original or version of the third (Fabric. Bibliot. Latin. Medii Ævi, tom. ii. p. 198, tom. v. p. 25) may be found in the second tome of Ramusio.]

17 (return)
[ Matthew Paris has documented the dangers and struggles of Europe based on reliable sources, (see the term Tartari in his extensive Index.) Driven by enthusiasm and curiosity, the court of the great khan in the 13th century was visited by two friars, John de Plano Carpini and William Rubruquis, along with Marco Polo, a Venetian man. The Latin accounts of the first two are included in the first volume of Hackluyt; the original or translated Italian version of the third (Fabric. Bibliot. Latin. Medii Ævi, tom. ii. p. 198, tom. v. p. 25) can be found in the second volume of Ramusio.]

18 (return)
[ In his great History of the Huns, M. de Guignes has most amply treated of Zingis Khan and his successors. See tom. iii. l. xv.—xix., and in the collateral articles of the Seljukians of Roum, tom. ii. l. xi., the Carizmians, l. xiv., and the Mamalukes, tom. iv. l. xxi.; consult likewise the tables of the 1st volume. He is ever learned and accurate; yet I am only indebted to him for a general view, and some passages of Abulfeda, which are still latent in the Arabic text. * Note: To this catalogue of the historians of the Moguls may be added D’Ohson, Histoire des Mongols; Histoire des Mongols, (from Arabic and Persian authorities,) Paris, 1824. Schmidt, Geschichte der Ost Mongolen, St. Petersburgh, 1829. This curious work, by Ssanang Ssetsen Chungtaidschi, published in the original Mongol, was written after the conversion of the nation to Buddhism: it is enriched with very valuable notes by the editor and translator; but, unfortunately, is very barren of information about the European and even the western Asiatic conquests of the Mongols.—M.]

18 (return)
[ In his extensive History of the Huns, M. de Guignes thoroughly discusses Genghis Khan and his successors. See vol. iii, chapters xv—xix, and in the related articles on the Seljuks of Rum, vol. ii, chapter xi, the Khwarazmians, chapter xiv, and the Mamluks, vol. iv, chapter xxi; also refer to the tables in the first volume. He is always knowledgeable and precise; however, I have only benefited from him for a general overview and some excerpts from Abulfeda, which are still hidden in the Arabic text. * Note: To this list of historians of the Mongols, we can add D’Ohson's Histoire des Mongols; Histoire des Mongols (based on Arabic and Persian sources), Paris, 1824. Schmidt’s Geschichte der Ost Mongolen, St. Petersburg, 1829. This interesting work by Ssanang Ssetsen Chungtaidschi, published in the original Mongolian, was written after the nation converted to Buddhism: it includes very valuable notes by the editor and translator; but, unfortunately, it lacks much information regarding the European and even western Asian conquests of the Mongols.—M.]

Chapter LXIV: Moguls, Ottoman Turks.—Part II.

The arms of Zingis and his lieutenants successively reduced the hordes of the desert, who pitched their tents between the wall of China and the Volga; and the Mogul emperor became the monarch of the pastoral world, the lord of many millions of shepherds and soldiers, who felt their united strength, and were impatient to rush on the mild and wealthy climates of the south. His ancestors had been the tributaries of the Chinese emperors; and Temugin himself had been disgraced by a title of honor and servitude. The court of Pekin was astonished by an embassy from its former vassal, who, in the tone of the king of nations, exacted the tribute and obedience which he had paid, and who affected to treat the son of heaven as the most contemptible of mankind. A haughty answer disguised their secret apprehensions; and their fears were soon justified by the march of innumerable squadrons, who pierced on all sides the feeble rampart of the great wall. Ninety cities were stormed, or starved, by the Moguls; ten only escaped; and Zingis, from a knowledge of the filial piety of the Chinese, covered his vanguard with their captive parents; an unworthy, and by degrees a fruitless, abuse of the virtue of his enemies. His invasion was supported by the revolt of a hundred thousand Khitans, who guarded the frontier: yet he listened to a treaty; and a princess of China, three thousand horses, five hundred youths, and as many virgins, and a tribute of gold and silk, were the price of his retreat. In his second expedition, he compelled the Chinese emperor to retire beyond the yellow river to a more southern residence. The siege of Pekin 19 was long and laborious: the inhabitants were reduced by famine to decimate and devour their fellow-citizens; when their ammunition was spent, they discharged ingots of gold and silver from their engines; but the Moguls introduced a mine to the centre of the capital; and the conflagration of the palace burnt above thirty days. China was desolated by Tartar war and domestic faction; and the five northern provinces were added to the empire of Zingis.

The forces of Zingis and his commanders gradually defeated the desert tribes, who set up their camps between the Great Wall of China and the Volga River; and the Mongol emperor became the ruler of the pastoral world, the leader of millions of shepherds and soldiers who recognized their combined power and were eager to invade the lush and prosperous southern lands. His ancestors had been subjects of the Chinese emperors; and Temugin himself had been humiliated by being given a title that signified honor but also servitude. The court in Beijing was shocked by a delegation from its former vassal, who, speaking like a king among kings, demanded the tribute and loyalty that had once been paid, treating the son of heaven as if he were the lowest of men. A proud reply masked their hidden fears; and these fears were soon confirmed when countless troops breached the fragile defenses of the Great Wall from all directions. Ninety cities were either attacked or starved out by the Mongols; only ten managed to escape; and Zingis, aware of the filial loyalty of the Chinese, used their captured parents as shields for his frontline—a dishonorable and increasingly ineffective exploitation of his enemies' virtue. His invasion was bolstered by the revolt of a hundred thousand Khitans guarding the border, yet he entertained a peace treaty; a Chinese princess, three thousand horses, five hundred young men, and as many young women, along with a tribute of gold and silk, were the price for his withdrawal. In his second campaign, he forced the Chinese emperor to retreat beyond the Yellow River to a more southern capital. The siege of Beijing 19 was long and grueling: the people were brought to the point of famine, resorting to cannibalism; when they ran out of ammunition, they fired ingots of gold and silver from their artillery; but the Mongols dug a tunnel to the heart of the capital, and the palace burned for over thirty days. China was ravaged by Mongol warfare and internal strife, and the five northern provinces were incorporated into Zingis's empire.

19 (return)
[ More properly Yen-king, an ancient city, whose ruins still appear some furlongs to the south-east of the modern Pekin, which was built by Cublai Khan, (Gaubel, p. 146.) Pe-king and Nan-king are vague titles, the courts of the north and of the south. The identity and change of names perplex the most skilful readers of the Chinese geography, (p. 177.) * Note: And likewise in Chinese history—see Abel Remusat, Mel. Asiat. 2d tom. ii. p. 5.—M.]

19 (return)
[ More accurately Yen-king, an ancient city, whose ruins are still visible a few miles southeast of modern Pekin, which was established by Cublai Khan, (Gaubel, p. 146.) Pe-king and Nan-king are ambiguous names, representing the courts of the north and south. The overlapping identities and name changes confuse even the most skilled readers of Chinese geography, (p. 177.) * Note: This is also true in Chinese history—see Abel Remusat, Mel. Asiat. 2nd vol. ii. p. 5.—M.]

In the West, he touched the dominions of Mohammed, sultan of Carizme, who reigned from the Persian Gulf to the borders of India and Turkestan; and who, in the proud imitation of Alexander the Great, forgot the servitude and ingratitude of his fathers to the house of Seljuk. It was the wish of Zingis to establish a friendly and commercial intercourse with the most powerful of the Moslem princes: nor could he be tempted by the secret solicitations of the caliph of Bagdad, who sacrificed to his personal wrongs the safety of the church and state. A rash and inhuman deed provoked and justified the Tartar arms in the invasion of the southern Asia. 191 A caravan of three ambassadors and one hundred and fifty merchants were arrested and murdered at Otrar, by the command of Mohammed; nor was it till after a demand and denial of justice, till he had prayed and fasted three nights on a mountain, that the Mogul emperor appealed to the judgment of God and his sword. Our European battles, says a philosophic writer, 20 are petty skirmishes, if compared to the numbers that have fought and fallen in the fields of Asia. Seven hundred thousand Moguls and Tartars are said to have marched under the standard of Zingis and his four sons. In the vast plains that extend to the north of the Sihon or Jaxartes, they were encountered by four hundred thousand soldiers of the sultan; and in the first battle, which was suspended by the night, one hundred and sixty thousand Carizmians were slain. Mohammed was astonished by the multitude and valor of his enemies: he withdrew from the scene of danger, and distributed his troops in the frontier towns; trusting that the Barbarians, invincible in the field, would be repulsed by the length and difficulty of so many regular sieges. But the prudence of Zingis had formed a body of Chinese engineers, skilled in the mechanic arts; informed perhaps of the secret of gunpowder, and capable, under his discipline, of attacking a foreign country with more vigor and success than they had defended their own. The Persian historians will relate the sieges and reduction of Otrar, Cogende, Bochara, Samarcand, Carizme, Herat, Merou, Nisabour, Balch, and Candahar; and the conquest of the rich and populous countries of Transoxiana, Carizme, and Chorazan. 204 The destructive hostilities of Attila and the Huns have long since been elucidated by the example of Zingis and the Moguls; and in this more proper place I shall be content to observe, that, from the Caspian to the Indus, they ruined a tract of many hundred miles, which was adorned with the habitations and labors of mankind, and that five centuries have not been sufficient to repair the ravages of four years. The Mogul emperor encouraged or indulged the fury of his troops: the hope of future possession was lost in the ardor of rapine and slaughter; and the cause of the war exasperated their native fierceness by the pretence of justice and revenge. The downfall and death of the sultan Mohammed, who expired, unpitied and alone, in a desert island of the Caspian Sea, is a poor atonement for the calamities of which he was the author. Could the Carizmian empire have been saved by a single hero, it would have been saved by his son Gelaleddin, whose active valor repeatedly checked the Moguls in the career of victory. Retreating, as he fought, to the banks of the Indus, he was oppressed by their innumerable host, till, in the last moment of despair, Gelaleddin spurred his horse into the waves, swam one of the broadest and most rapid rivers of Asia, and extorted the admiration and applause of Zingis himself. It was in this camp that the Mogul conqueror yielded with reluctance to the murmurs of his weary and wealthy troops, who sighed for the enjoyment of their native land. Eucumbered with the spoils of Asia, he slowly measured back his footsteps, betrayed some pity for the misery of the vanquished, and declared his intention of rebuilding the cities which had been swept away by the tempest of his arms. After he had repassed the Oxus and Jaxartes, he was joined by two generals, whom he had detached with thirty thousand horse, to subdue the western provinces of Persia. They had trampled on the nations which opposed their passage, penetrated through the gates of Derbent, traversed the Volga and the desert, and accomplished the circuit of the Caspian Sea, by an expedition which had never been attempted, and has never been repeated. The return of Zingis was signalized by the overthrow of the rebellious or independent kingdoms of Tartary; and he died in the fulness of years and glory, with his last breath exhorting and instructing his sons to achieve the conquest of the Chinese empire. 205

In the West, he reached the territories of Mohammed, the sultan of Carizme, who ruled from the Persian Gulf to the borders of India and Turkestan. Imitating Alexander the Great, he ignored the servitude and ingratitude of his ancestors towards the house of Seljuk. Zingis wanted to establish friendly and commercial relations with the most powerful of the Muslim princes, and he couldn't be swayed by the secret entreaties of the caliph of Baghdad, who sacrificed the safety of the church and state for his personal grievances. A reckless and brutal act prompted and justified the Tartar invasion of southern Asia. A caravan consisting of three ambassadors and one hundred and fifty merchants was captured and killed at Otrar, on Mohammed's orders. Only after demanding justice and being denied, and praying and fasting for three nights on a mountain, did the Mogul emperor seek the judgment of God and his sword. A philosophical writer says that our European battles are minor skirmishes compared to the vast numbers that have fought and died in Asia. It's said that seven hundred thousand Moguls and Tartars marched under Zingis and his four sons. In the wide plains north of the Sihon or Jaxartes, they met four hundred thousand soldiers of the sultan; and in the first battle, suspended by nightfall, one hundred sixty thousand Carizmians were killed. Mohammed was stunned by the sheer number and bravery of his enemies; he withdrew from the battlefield and stationed his troops in the border towns, hoping that the invincible Barbarians would be repelled by the length and challenge of so many regular sieges. But Zingis had wisely brought together a team of Chinese engineers skilled in mechanical arts, likely aware of the secret of gunpowder, capable of launching an attack on a foreign country with more effectiveness than they had in defending their own. Persian historians will recount the sieges and fall of Otrar, Cogende, Bochara, Samarcand, Carizme, Herat, Merou, Nisabour, Balch, and Candahar, as well as the conquest of the rich and populous regions of Transoxiana, Carizme, and Chorazan. The destructive conflicts of Attila and the Huns have been long illuminated by the example of Zingis and the Moguls; in this context, I will merely note that from the Caspian to the Indus, they devastated a stretch of land hundreds of miles long that was filled with the homes and efforts of mankind, and it has taken five centuries to recover from the devastation of just four years. The Mogul emperor either encouraged or turned a blind eye to the fury of his troops; the hope of future land was lost in the frenzy of plunder and slaughter, and the cause of the war intensified their natural ferocity under the guise of justice and revenge. The downfall and death of Sultan Mohammed, who died, uncared for and alone, on a remote island in the Caspian Sea, is a poor compensation for the disasters he caused. If the Carizmian empire could have been saved by a single hero, it would have been by his son Gelaleddin, whose active bravery repeatedly held off the Moguls during their victorious campaign. As he retreated, while fighting, to the banks of the Indus, he was overwhelmed by their countless army, until, in a moment of despair, Gelaleddin urged his horse into the waters, swam across one of Asia's widest and swiftest rivers, and earned the admiration and respect of Zingis himself. It was in this camp that the Mogul conqueror reluctantly yielded to the pleas of his overwhelmed and wealthy troops, who longed for the pleasures of their homeland. Weighed down by the riches of Asia, he slowly retraced his steps, showing some compassion for the plight of the vanquished, and announced his plan to rebuild the cities that had been destroyed by the storm of his forces. Once he had crossed back over the Oxus and Jaxartes, he was joined by two generals whom he had sent out with thirty thousand cavalry to subdue the western provinces of Persia. They had trampled over the nations that opposed them, crossed through the gates of Derbent, traversed the Volga and the desert, and successfully circled the Caspian Sea, in an expedition that had never been attempted before and hasn't been repeated since. Zingis' return was marked by the overthrow of the rebellious or independent kingdoms of Tartary, and he died at an old age, full of glory, with his last breath urging and instructing his sons to conquer the Chinese empire.

191 (return)
[ See the particular account of this transaction, from the Kholauesut el Akbaur, in Price, vol. ii. p. 402.—M.]

191 (return)
[ See the specific account of this transaction from the Kholauesut el Akbaur in Price, vol. ii. p. 402.—M.]

20 (return)
[ M. de Voltaire, Essai sur l’Histoire Générale, tom. iii. c. 60, p. 8. His account of Zingis and the Moguls contains, as usual, much general sense and truth, with some particular errors.]

20 (return)
[M. de Voltaire, Essay on General History, vol. iii, ch. 60, p. 8. His description of Zingis and the Mongols includes, as usual, a lot of general wisdom and truth, alongside some specific mistakes.]

204 (return)
[ Every where they massacred all classes, except the artisans, whom they made slaves. Hist. des Mongols.—M.]

204 (return)
[ They killed everyone in every group except the craftsmen, who they enslaved. Hist. des Mongols.—M.]

205 (return)
[ Their first duty, which he bequeathed to them, was to massacre the king of Tangcoute and all the inhabitants of Ninhia, the surrender of the city being already agreed upon, Hist. des Mongols. vol. i. p. 286.—M.]

205 (return)
[ Their first task, which he gave to them, was to kill the king of Tangcoute and all the people of Ninhia, as the city's surrender had already been arranged, Hist. des Mongols. vol. i. p. 286.—M.]

The harem of Zingis was composed of five hundred wives and concubines; and of his numerous progeny, four sons, illustrious by their birth and merit, exercised under their father the principal offices of peace and war. Toushi was his great huntsman, Zagatai 21 his judge, Octai his minister, and Tuli his general; and their names and actions are often conspicuous in the history of his conquests. Firmly united for their own and the public interest, the three brothers and their families were content with dependent sceptres; and Octai, by general consent, was proclaimed great khan, or emperor of the Moguls and Tartars. He was succeeded by his son Gayuk, after whose death the empire devolved to his cousins Mangou and Cublai, the sons of Tuli, and the grandsons of Zingis. In the sixty-eight years of his four first successors, the Mogul subdued almost all Asia, and a large portion of Europe. Without confining myself to the order of time, without expatiating on the detail of events, I shall present a general picture of the progress of their arms; I. In the East; II. In the South; III. In the West; and IV. In the North.

The harem of Zingis had five hundred wives and concubines, and among his many children, four sons, distinguished by their birth and talent, held key positions in peace and war under their father. Toushi was his chief huntsman, Zagatai 21 was his judge, Octai served as his minister, and Tuli was his general; their names and deeds frequently appear in the history of his conquests. United for both their own benefit and the public good, the three brothers and their families were satisfied with subordinate power; and Octai was widely recognized as the great khan, or emperor of the Moguls and Tartars. He was followed by his son Gayuk, and after his death, the empire passed to his cousins Mangou and Cublai, the sons of Tuli and grandsons of Zingis. Over the sixty-eight years of his first four successors, the Mogul empire conquered nearly all of Asia and a significant part of Europe. Without sticking to a strict timeline or going into extensive details about events, I will provide an overview of their military advances: I. In the East; II. In the South; III. In the West; and IV. In the North.

21 (return)
[ Zagatai gave his name to his dominions of Maurenahar, or Transoxiana; and the Moguls of Hindostan, who emigrated from that country, are styled Zagatais by the Persians. This certain etymology, and the similar example of Uzbek, Nogai, &c., may warn us not absolutely to reject the derivations of a national, from a personal, name. * Note: See a curious anecdote of Tschagatai. Hist. des Mongols, p. 370.—M.]

21 (return)
[ Zagatai named his territories of Maurenahar, or Transoxiana; and the Moguls of Hindostan, who migrated from that area, are referred to as Zagatais by the Persians. This clear etymology, along with the similar case of Uzbek, Nogai, etc., suggests we should be cautious about completely dismissing the connections between a national name and a personal name. * Note: See an interesting story about Tschagatai. Hist. des Mongols, p. 370.—M.]

I. Before the invasion of Zingis, China was divided into two empires or dynasties of the North and South; 22 and the difference of origin and interest was smoothed by a general conformity of laws, language, and national manners. The Northern empire, which had been dismembered by Zingis, was finally subdued seven years after his death. After the loss of Pekin, the emperor had fixed his residence at Kaifong, a city many leagues in circumference, and which contained, according to the Chinese annals, fourteen hundred thousand families of inhabitants and fugitives. He escaped from thence with only seven horsemen, and made his last stand in a third capital, till at length the hopeless monarch, protesting his innocence and accusing his fortune, ascended a funeral pile, and gave orders, that, as soon as he had stabbed himself, the fire should be kindled by his attendants. The dynasty of the Song, the native and ancient sovereigns of the whole empire, survived about forty-five years the fall of the Northern usurpers; and the perfect conquest was reserved for the arms of Cublai. During this interval, the Moguls were often diverted by foreign wars; and, if the Chinese seldom dared to meet their victors in the field, their passive courage presented and endless succession of cities to storm and of millions to slaughter. In the attack and defence of places, the engines of antiquity and the Greek fire were alternately employed: the use of gunpowder in cannon and bombs appears as a familiar practice; 23 and the sieges were conducted by the Mahometans and Franks, who had been liberally invited into the service of Cublai. After passing the great river, the troops and artillery were conveyed along a series of canals, till they invested the royal residence of Hamcheu, or Quinsay, in the country of silk, the most delicious climate of China. The emperor, a defenceless youth, surrendered his person and sceptre; and before he was sent in exile into Tartary, he struck nine times the ground with his forehead, to adore in prayer or thanksgiving the mercy of the great khan. Yet the war (it was now styled a rebellion) was still maintained in the southern provinces from Hamcheu to Canton; and the obstinate remnant of independence and hostility was transported from the land to the sea. But when the fleet of the Song was surrounded and oppressed by a superior armament, their last champion leaped into the waves with his infant emperor in his arms. “It is more glorious,” he cried, “to die a prince, than to live a slave.” A hundred thousand Chinese imitated his example; and the whole empire, from Tonkin to the great wall, submitted to the dominion of Cublai. His boundless ambition aspired to the conquest of Japan: his fleet was twice shipwrecked; and the lives of a hundred thousand Moguls and Chinese were sacrificed in the fruitless expedition. But the circumjacent kingdoms, Corea, Tonkin, Cochinchina, Pegu, Bengal, and Thibet, were reduced in different degrees of tribute and obedience by the effort or terror of his arms. He explored the Indian Ocean with a fleet of a thousand ships: they sailed in sixty-eight days, most probably to the Isle of Borneo, under the equinoctial line; and though they returned not without spoil or glory, the emperor was dissatisfied that the savage king had escaped from their hands.

I. Before Zingis invaded, China was split into two empires or dynasties: the North and the South. The differences in origin and interests were leveled out by a general agreement on laws, language, and national customs. The Northern empire, which Zingis had fragmented, was finally conquered seven years after his death. After losing Pekin, the emperor settled in Kaifong, a city several leagues wide, which, according to Chinese records, housed about fourteen hundred thousand families and refugees. He managed to escape with only seven horsemen, making his final stand in another capital, until he, the hopeless monarch, who claimed innocence and blamed his fate, ascended a funeral pyre and instructed that once he had stabbed himself, his attendants should set the fire ablaze. The dynasty of the Song, the native and ancient rulers of the whole empire, lasted roughly forty-five years after the Northern usurpers fell; the complete conquest was left to Cublai's forces. During this time, the Moguls were often sidetracked by foreign wars, and while the Chinese rarely dared to confront their conquerors in battle, their passive bravery led to an endless stream of cities to attack and millions to kill. In the siege and defense of locations, ancient siege engines and Greek fire were used alternately: the employment of gunpowder in cannons and bombs became common practice; 23 and the sieges were conducted by Muslims and Franks, who were generously invited into Cublai's service. After crossing the great river, the troops and artillery were moved along a network of canals until they surrounded the royal residence of Hamcheu, or Quinsay, in the land of silk, the most delightful region of China. The emperor, a defenseless young man, surrendered himself and his scepter; before being exiled to Tartary, he prostrated himself and hit his forehead against the ground nine times in prayer or thanks for the mercy of the great khan. Still, the war (now called a rebellion) persisted in the southern provinces from Hamcheu to Canton; the remaining spirit of independence and resistance was transferred from land to sea. But when the fleet of the Song was encircled and overpowered by a stronger force, their last hero jumped into the water with his infant emperor in his arms. “It's more glorious,” he shouted, “to die a prince than to live as a slave.” A hundred thousand Chinese followed his lead, and the entire empire, from Tonkin to the Great Wall, fell under Cublai's control. His limitless ambition sought the conquest of Japan: his fleet was wrecked twice, and the lives of a hundred thousand Moguls and Chinese were lost in the futile campaign. Nevertheless, the surrounding kingdoms—Corea, Tonkin, Cochinchina, Pegu, Bengal, and Thibet—were brought under varying degrees of tribute and obedience due to the impact or intimidation of his forces. He explored the Indian Ocean with a fleet of a thousand ships: they sailed for sixty-eight days, most likely to the Isle of Borneo near the equator; although they returned with spoils and some glory, the emperor was unhappy that the savage king had evaded capture.

22 (return)
[ In Marco Polo, and the Oriental geographers, the names of Cathay and Mangi distinguish the northern and southern empires, which, from A.D. 1234 to 1279, were those of the great khan, and of the Chinese. The search of Cathay, after China had been found, excited and misled our navigators of the sixteenth century, in their attempts to discover the north-east passage.]

22 (return)
[ In Marco Polo and the Oriental geographers, the names Cathay and Mangi refer to the northern and southern empires that, from A.D. 1234 to 1279, belonged to the great khan and the Chinese. The quest for Cathay, after discovering China, misled and intrigued our 16th-century navigators in their efforts to find the northeast passage.]

23 (return)
[ I depend on the knowledge and fidelity of the Père Gaubil, who translates the Chinese text of the annals of the Moguls or Yuen, (p. 71, 93, 153;) but I am ignorant at what time these annals were composed and published. The two uncles of Marco Polo, who served as engineers at the siege of Siengyangfou, * (l. ii. 61, in Ramusio, tom. ii. See Gaubil, p. 155, 157) must have felt and related the effects of this destructive powder, and their silence is a weighty, and almost decisive objection. I entertain a suspicion, that their recent discovery was carried from Europe to China by the caravans of the xvth century and falsely adopted as an old national discovery before the arrival of the Portuguese and Jesuits in the xvith. Yet the Père Gaubil affirms, that the use of gunpowder has been known to the Chinese above 1600 years. ** Note: * Sou-houng-kian-lou. Abel Remusat.—M. Note: ** La poudre à canon et d’autres compositions inflammantes, dont ils se servent pour construire des pièces d’artifice d’un effet suprenant, leur étaient connues depuis très long-temps, et l’on croit que des bombardes et des pierriers, dont ils avaient enseigné l’usage aux Tartares, ont pu donner en Europe l’idée d’artillerie, quoique la forme des fusils et des canons dont ils se servent actuellement, leur ait été apportée par les Francs, ainsi que l’attestent les noms mêmes qu’ils donnent à ces sortes d’armes. Abel Remusat, Mélanges Asiat. 2d ser. tom. i. p. 23.—M.]

23 (return)
[ I rely on the knowledge and reliability of Père Gaubil, who translates the Chinese text of the annals of the Mongols or Yuan (p. 71, 93, 153); however, I am unsure when these annals were created and published. Marco Polo's two uncles, who worked as engineers during the siege of Siengyangfou, * (l. ii. 61, in Ramusio, tom. ii. See Gaubil, p. 155, 157) must have experienced and reported the effects of this destructive powder, and their silence is a significant and almost conclusive objection. I suspect that this recent discovery was brought from Europe to China by caravans in the 15th century and wrongly claimed as an ancient national invention before the arrival of the Portuguese and Jesuits in the 16th. Yet, Père Gaubil states that the Chinese have known about gunpowder for over 1600 years. ** Note: * Sou-houng-kian-lou. Abel Remusat.—M. Note: ** Gunpowder and other combustible mixtures, which they use to create fireworks with surprising effects, have been known to them for a very long time, and it is believed that the bombards and springalds, whose use they taught to the Tartars, may have inspired the idea of artillery in Europe, although the design of the guns and cannons they currently use was brought to them by the French, as confirmed by the very names they give to these types of weapons. Abel Remusat, Mélanges Asiat. 2d ser. tom. i. p. 23.—M.]

II. The conquest of Hindostan by the Moguls was reserved in a later period for the house of Timour; but that of Iran, or Persia, was achieved by Holagou Khan, 231 the grandson of Zingis, the brother and lieutenant of the two successive emperors, Mangou and Cublai. I shall not enumerate the crowd of sultans, emirs, and atabeks, whom he trampled into dust; but the extirpation of the Assassins, or Ismaelians 24 of Persia, may be considered as a service to mankind. Among the hills to the south of the Caspian, these odious sectaries had reigned with impunity above a hundred and sixty years; and their prince, or Imam, established his lieutenant to lead and govern the colony of Mount Libanus, so famous and formidable in the history of the crusades. 25 With the fanaticism of the Koran the Ismaelians had blended the Indian transmigration, and the visions of their own prophets; and it was their first duty to devote their souls and bodies in blind obedience to the vicar of God. The daggers of his missionaries were felt both in the East and West: the Christians and the Moslems enumerate, and persons multiply, the illustrious victims that were sacrificed to the zeal, avarice, or resentment of the old man (as he was corruptly styled) of the mountain. But these daggers, his only arms, were broken by the sword of Holagou, and not a vestige is left of the enemies of mankind, except the word assassin, which, in the most odious sense, has been adopted in the languages of Europe. The extinction of the Abbassides cannot be indifferent to the spectators of their greatness and decline. Since the fall of their Seljukian tyrants the caliphs had recovered their lawful dominion of Bagdad and the Arabian Irak; but the city was distracted by theological factions, and the commander of the faithful was lost in a harem of seven hundred concubines. The invasion of the Moguls he encountered with feeble arms and haughty embassies. “On the divine decree,” said the caliph Mostasem, “is founded the throne of the sons of Abbas: and their foes shall surely be destroyed in this world and in the next. Who is this Holagou that dares to rise against them? If he be desirous of peace, let him instantly depart from the sacred territory; and perhaps he may obtain from our clemency the pardon of his fault.” This presumption was cherished by a perfidious vizier, who assured his master, that, even if the Barbarians had entered the city, the women and children, from the terraces, would be sufficient to overwhelm them with stones. But when Holagou touched the phantom, it instantly vanished into smoke. After a siege of two months, Bagdad was stormed and sacked by the Moguls; 251 and their savage commander pronounced the death of the caliph Mostasem, the last of the temporal successors of Mahomet; whose noble kinsmen, of the race of Abbas, had reigned in Asia above five hundred years. Whatever might be the designs of the conqueror, the holy cities of Mecca and Medina 26 were protected by the Arabian desert; but the Moguls spread beyond the Tigris and Euphrates, pillaged Aleppo and Damascus, and threatened to join the Franks in the deliverance of Jerusalem. Egypt was lost, had she been defended only by her feeble offspring; but the Mamalukes had breathed in their infancy the keenness of a Scythian air: equal in valor, superior in discipline, they met the Moguls in many a well-fought field; and drove back the stream of hostility to the eastward of the Euphrates. 261 But it overflowed with resistless violence the kingdoms of Armenia 262 and Anatolia, of which the former was possessed by the Christians, and the latter by the Turks. The sultans of Iconium opposed some resistance to the Mogul arms, till Azzadin sought a refuge among the Greeks of Constantinople, and his feeble successors, the last of the Seljukian dynasty, were finally extirpated by the khans of Persia. 263

II. The conquest of Hindostan by the Moguls was later undertaken by the house of Timour; however, the conquest of Iran, or Persia, was accomplished by Holagou Khan, 231 the grandson of Genghis, the brother and lieutenant of the two successive emperors, Mangou and Cublai. I won’t list the many sultans, emirs, and atabeks he crushed; however, the eradication of the Assassins, or Ismaelians 24 of Persia, can be seen as a benefit to humanity. Among the hills south of the Caspian, these notorious sectarians had reigned without hindrance for over a hundred and sixty years; their prince, or Imam, installed his lieutenant to lead and govern the colony on Mount Lebanon, so famous and fearsome in the history of the crusades. 25 The Ismaelians combined the fanaticism of the Koran with Indian beliefs in reincarnation and visions of their own prophets; and it was their primary duty to dedicate their souls and bodies in blind obedience to the vicar of God. The daggers of his missionaries were felt both in the East and West: Christians and Muslims counted, and people multiplied, the notable victims who were sacrificed to the zeal, greed, or resentment of the old man (as he was corruptly called) of the mountain. But these daggers, his only weapons, were shattered by Holagou's sword, and no trace remains of the enemies of humanity, except the word assassin, which has been adopted in Europe in the most disdainful sense. The end of the Abbasids cannot be overlooked by observers of their rise and fall. Since the fall of their Seljukian oppressors, the caliphs had regained their rightful dominion of Baghdad and Arabian Iraq; but the city was torn apart by theological factions, and the commander of the faithful was lost in a harem of seven hundred concubines. The invasion of the Moguls was met with weak defenses and arrogant embassies. “The throne of the sons of Abbas rests on the divine decree,” said the caliph Mostasem, “and their enemies will undoubtedly be destroyed in this life and the next. Who is this Holagou that dares to rise against them? If he desires peace, let him immediately leave the sacred territory; and perhaps he may receive from our mercy the forgiveness of his wrongdoing.” This arrogance was fueled by a treacherous vizier, who assured his master that, even if the Barbarians entered the city, the women and children from the rooftops would be enough to crush them with stones. But when Holagou approached the illusion, it instantly vanished into air. After a two-month siege, Baghdad was stormed and looted by the Moguls; 251 and their brutal leader declared the death of caliph Mostasem, the last of the temporal successors of Muhammad; his noble relatives, of the Abbas lineage, had ruled in Asia for over five hundred years. Whatever the conqueror's intentions might be, the holy cities of Mecca and Medina 26 were safeguarded by the Arabian desert; but the Moguls advanced beyond the Tigris and Euphrates, plundered Aleppo and Damascus, and threatened to ally with the Franks to liberate Jerusalem. Egypt was at risk of falling, had it been defended only by its weak descendants; but the Mamluks had inhaled the fierce air of the Scythians in their youth: equal in bravery, superior in discipline, they met the Moguls in several fierce battles; and pushed back the tide of hostility to east of the Euphrates. 261 But it inundated the kingdoms of Armenia 262 and Anatolia, of which the former was held by Christians, and the latter by Turks. The sultans of Iconium offered some resistance to the Mogul forces until Azzadin sought refuge among the Greeks of Constantinople, and his weak successors, the last of the Seljukian dynasty, were ultimately eradicated by the khans of Persia. 263

231 (return)
[ See the curious account of the expedition of Holagou, translated from the Chinese, by M. Abel Remusat, Mélanges Asiat. 2d ser. tom. i. p. 171.—M.]

231 (return)
[ Check out the interesting story of Holagou's expedition, translated from Chinese by M. Abel Remusat, Mélanges Asiat. 2nd series, volume i, page 171.—M.]

24 (return)
[ All that can be known of the Assassins of Persia and Syria is poured from the copious, and even profuse, erudition of M. Falconet, in two Mémoires read before the Academy of Inscriptions, (tom. xvii. p. 127—170.) * Note: Von Hammer’s History of the Assassins has now thrown Falconet’s Dissertation into the shade.—M.]

24 (return)
[ Everything we know about the Assassins of Persia and Syria comes from the extensive and even overwhelming research of M. Falconet, presented in two Mémoires delivered before the Academy of Inscriptions, (tom. xvii. p. 127—170.) * Note: Von Hammer’s History of the Assassins has now overshadowed Falconet’s Dissertation.—M.]

25 (return)
[ The Ismaelians of Syria, 40,000 Assassins, had acquired or founded ten castles in the hills above Tortosa. About the year 1280, they were extirpated by the Mamalukes.]

25 (return)
[ The Ismaelians of Syria, 40,000 Assassins, had taken control of or built ten castles in the hills above Tortosa. Around the year 1280, they were wiped out by the Mamalukes.]

251 (return)
[ Compare Von Hammer, Geschichte der Assassinen, p. 283, 307. Wilken, Geschichte der Kreuzzüge, vol. vii. p. 406. Price, Chronological Retrospect, vol. ii. p. 217—223.—M.]

251 (return)
[ Compare Von Hammer, History of the Assassins, p. 283, 307. Wilken, History of the Crusades, vol. vii. p. 406. Price, Chronological Retrospect, vol. ii. p. 217—223.—M.]

26 (return)
[ As a proof of the ignorance of the Chinese in foreign transactions, I must observe, that some of their historians extend the conquest of Zingis himself to Medina, the country of Mahomet, (Gaubil p. 42.)]

26 (return)
[ To demonstrate the ignorance of the Chinese regarding foreign affairs, I should point out that some of their historians even claim that Zingis's conquests reached Medina, the homeland of Mahomet, (Gaubil p. 42.)]

261 (return)
[ Compare Wilken, vol. vii. p. 410.—M.]

261 (return)
[ Compare Wilken, vol. vii. p. 410.—M.]

262 (return)
[ On the friendly relations of the Armenians with the Mongols see Wilken, Geschichte der Kreuzzüge, vol. vii. p. 402. They eagerly desired an alliance against the Mahometan powers.—M.]

262 (return)
[ For details on the friendly relations between the Armenians and the Mongols, see Wilken, Geschichte der Kreuzzüge, vol. vii. p. 402. They were eager to form an alliance against the Muslim powers.—M.]

263 (return)
[ Trebizond escaped, apparently by the dexterous politics of the sovereign, but it acknowledged the Mogul supremacy. Falmerayer, p. 172.—M.]

263 (return)
[ Trebizond managed to escape, likely due to the clever political maneuvers of the ruler, but it admitted the Mogul's dominance. Falmerayer, p. 172.—M.]

III. No sooner had Octai subverted the northern empire of China, than he resolved to visit with his arms the most remote countries of the West. Fifteen hundred thousand Moguls and Tartars were inscribed on the military roll: of these the great khan selected a third, which he intrusted to the command of his nephew Batou, the son of Tuli; who reigned over his father’s conquests to the north of the Caspian Sea. 264 After a festival of forty days, Batou set forwards on this great expedition; and such was the speed and ardor of his innumerable squadrons, than in less than six years they had measured a line of ninety degrees of longitude, a fourth part of the circumference of the globe. The great rivers of Asia and Europe, the Volga and Kama, the Don and Borysthenes, the Vistula and Danube, they either swam with their horses or passed on the ice, or traversed in leathern boats, which followed the camp, and transported their wagons and artillery. By the first victories of Batou, the remains of national freedom were eradicated in the immense plains of Turkestan and Kipzak. 27 In his rapid progress, he overran the kingdoms, as they are now styled, of Astracan and Cazan; and the troops which he detached towards Mount Caucasus explored the most secret recesses of Georgia and Circassia. The civil discord of the great dukes, or princes, of Russia, betrayed their country to the Tartars. They spread from Livonia to the Black Sea, and both Moscow and Kiow, the modern and the ancient capitals, were reduced to ashes; a temporary ruin, less fatal than the deep, and perhaps indelible, mark, which a servitude of two hundred years has imprinted on the character of the Russians. The Tartars ravaged with equal fury the countries which they hoped to possess, and those which they were hastening to leave. From the permanent conquest of Russia they made a deadly, though transient, inroad into the heart of Poland, and as far as the borders of Germany. The cities of Lublin and Cracow were obliterated: 271 they approached the shores of the Baltic; and in the battle of Lignitz they defeated the dukes of Silesia, the Polish palatines, and the great master of the Teutonic order, and filled nine sacks with the right ears of the slain. From Lignitz, the extreme point of their western march, they turned aside to the invasion of Hungary; and the presence or spirit of Batou inspired the host of five hundred thousand men: the Carpathian hills could not be long impervious to their divided columns; and their approach had been fondly disbelieved till it was irresistibly felt. The king, Bela the Fourth, assembled the military force of his counts and bishops; but he had alienated the nation by adopting a vagrant horde of forty thousand families of Comans, and these savage guests were provoked to revolt by the suspicion of treachery and the murder of their prince. The whole country north of the Danube was lost in a day, and depopulated in a summer; and the ruins of cities and churches were overspread with the bones of the natives, who expiated the sins of their Turkish ancestors. An ecclesiastic, who fled from the sack of Waradin, describes the calamities which he had seen, or suffered; and the sanguinary rage of sieges and battles is far less atrocious than the treatment of the fugitives, who had been allured from the woods under a promise of peace and pardon and who were coolly slaughtered as soon as they had performed the labors of the harvest and vintage. In the winter the Tartars passed the Danube on the ice, and advanced to Gran or Strigonium, a German colony, and the metropolis of the kingdom. Thirty engines were planted against the walls; the ditches were filled with sacks of earth and dead bodies; and after a promiscuous massacre, three hundred noble matrons were slain in the presence of the khan. Of all the cities and fortresses of Hungary, three alone survived the Tartar invasion, and the unfortunate Bata hid his head among the islands of the Adriatic.

III. As soon as Octai took control of northern China, he decided to lead his army into the farthest western countries. One and a half million Moguls and Tartars were registered on the military roster; from this, the great khan chose a third to be led by his nephew Batou, the son of Tuli, who governed his father's conquests north of the Caspian Sea. 264 After a forty-day celebration, Batou set out on this grand expedition, and his countless troops moved with such speed and eagerness that in less than six years, they covered a distance of ninety degrees of longitude, a quarter of the Earth's circumference. They crossed major rivers in Asia and Europe, like the Volga and Kama, the Don and Borysthenes, the Vistula, and Danube, either swimming with their horses, walking on ice, or using leather boats that traveled with the camp, carrying their wagons and artillery. With Batou's early victories, the remnants of national freedom disappeared from the vast plains of Turkestan and Kipzak. 27 As he advanced rapidly, he conquered the regions now known as Astracan and Cazan; meanwhile, the troops he sent toward Mount Caucasus explored the hidden corners of Georgia and Circassia. The internal conflicts among the powerful dukes of Russia allowed the Tartars to invade. They spread from Livonia to the Black Sea, and both Moscow and Kiow, the modern and ancient capitals, were left in ruins; a temporary destruction that proved less damaging than the deep and perhaps permanent mark left by two centuries of servitude on the Russian character. The Tartars ravaged both the lands they intended to capture and those they were leaving. From their permanent conquest of Russia, they made a deadly but brief incursion into the heart of Poland, reaching the borders of Germany. The cities of Lublin and Cracow were destroyed: 271 they came to the shores of the Baltic; and in the battle of Lignitz, they defeated the dukes of Silesia, the Polish palatines, and the grand master of the Teutonic order, collecting nine bags filled with the right ears of the fallen. After Lignitz, the farthest point of their westward advance, they shifted their focus to invade Hungary; and Batou's presence or spirit inspired an army of five hundred thousand men: the Carpathian hills couldn't hold back their advancing columns for long, despite their approach being doubted until it was too late to resist. King Bela the Fourth gathered the military forces of his nobles and bishops; however, he had alienated the people by taking in a wandering group of forty thousand Comans, and these savage newcomers turned against him due to suspicions of betrayal and the murder of their leader. In a single day, the entire territory north of the Danube was lost, and by the end of summer, it was depopulated; the ruins of cities and churches became scattered with the bones of the native people, who paid the price for their Turkish ancestors' sins. An ecclesiastic who fled from the destruction of Waradin recounted the disasters he experienced, and the bloody violence of the sieges and battles was less horrific than the treatment of the refugees, who had been lured from the forests with false promises of peace and forgiveness before being brutally slaughtered after they finished harvesting crops. In the winter, the Tartars crossed the Danube on the ice and moved toward Gran or Strigonium, a German settlement and the capital of the kingdom. Thirty siege engines were placed against the city walls; the ditches were filled with dirt and corpses; and after a random massacre, three hundred noble women were killed before the khan. Of all the cities and strongholds in Hungary, only three survived the Tartar invasion, and the unfortunate Bata hid away among the islands of the Adriatic.

264 (return)
[ See the curious extracts from the Mahometan writers, Hist. des Mongols, p. 707.—M.]

264 (return)
[ Check out the interesting excerpts from the Muslim writers, Hist. des Mongols, p. 707.—M.]

27 (return)
[ The Dashté Kipzak, or plain of Kipzak, extends on either side of the Volga, in a boundless space towards the Jaik and Borysthenes, and is supposed to contain the primitive name and nation of the Cossacks.]

27 (return)
[ The Dashté Kipzak, or Kipzak steppe, stretches on both sides of the Volga, in an endless expanse toward the Jaik and Borysthenes, and is believed to hold the original name and heritage of the Cossacks.]

271 (return)
[ Olmutz was gallantly and successfully defended by Stenberg, Hist. des Mongols, p. 396.—M.]

271 (return)
[ Olmutz was bravely and effectively defended by Stenberg, Hist. des Mongols, p. 396.—M.]

The Latin world was darkened by this cloud of savage hostility: a Russian fugitive carried the alarm to Sweden; and the remote nations of the Baltic and the ocean trembled at the approach of the Tartars, 28 whom their fear and ignorance were inclined to separate from the human species. Since the invasion of the Arabs in the eighth century, Europe had never been exposed to a similar calamity: and if the disciples of Mahomet would have oppressed her religion and liberty, it might be apprehended that the shepherds of Scythia would extinguish her cities, her arts, and all the institutions of civil society. The Roman pontiff attempted to appease and convert these invincible Pagans by a mission of Franciscan and Dominican friars; but he was astonished by the reply of the khan, that the sons of God and of Zingis were invested with a divine power to subdue or extirpate the nations; and that the pope would be involved in the universal destruction, unless he visited in person, and as a suppliant, the royal horde. The emperor Frederic the Second embraced a more generous mode of defence; and his letters to the kings of France and England, and the princes of Germany, represented the common danger, and urged them to arm their vassals in this just and rational crusade. 29 The Tartars themselves were awed by the fame and valor of the Franks; the town of Newstadt in Austria was bravely defended against them by fifty knights and twenty crossbows; and they raised the siege on the appearance of a German army. After wasting the adjacent kingdoms of Servia, Bosnia, and Bulgaria, Batou slowly retreated from the Danube to the Volga to enjoyed the rewards of victory in the city and palace of Serai, which started at his command from the midst of the desert. 291

The Latin world was overshadowed by a wave of brutal hostility: a Russian escapee spread the alarm to Sweden, and distant nations of the Baltic and the ocean were shaken by the approach of the Tartars, 28 whom their fear and ignorance led them to consider as inhuman. Since the Arab invasion in the eighth century, Europe had never faced such a disaster: and while the followers of Mahomet might have threatened her faith and freedom, it was feared that the Scythian warriors would obliterate her cities, her culture, and all the structures of civil society. The Roman pope tried to pacify and convert these unstoppable Pagans by sending Franciscan and Dominican friars; however, he was taken aback by the khan's response, that the sons of God and Zingis carried a divine authority to conquer or eradicate nations, and that the pope would face universal devastation unless he personally came as a suppliant to the royal horde. Emperor Frederic the Second took a more noble approach to defense; his letters to the kings of France and England, as well as the princes of Germany, highlighted the common threat and called on them to rally their vassals for this just and rational crusade. 29 The Tartars themselves were intimidated by the reputation and bravery of the Franks; the town of Newstadt in Austria was valiantly defended against them by fifty knights and twenty crossbowmen; and they lifted the siege upon the arrival of a German army. After ravaging the nearby kingdoms of Servia, Bosnia, and Bulgaria, Batou slowly retreated from the Danube to the Volga to enjoy the fruits of victory in the city and palace of Serai, which he initiated at his command from the heart of the desert. 291

28 (return)
[ In the year 1238, the inhabitants of Gothia (Sweden) and Frise were prevented, by their fear of the Tartars, from sending, as usual, their ships to the herring fishery on the coast of England; and as there was no exportation, forty or fifty of these fish were sold for a shilling, (Matthew Paris, p. 396.) It is whimsical enough, that the orders of a Mogul khan, who reigned on the borders of China, should have lowered the price of herrings in the English market.]

28 (return)
[ In 1238, the people of Gothia (Sweden) and Frise were too scared of the Tartars to send their ships for the usual herring fishing off the coast of England; since there was no catch to sell, forty or fifty of these fish went for a shilling, (Matthew Paris, p. 396.) It's quite amusing that orders from a Mongol khan, who ruled near China, ended up lowering the price of herrings in the English market.]

29 (return)
[ I shall copy his characteristic or flattering epithets of the different countries of Europe: Furens ac fervens ad arma Germania, strenuæ militiæ genitrix et alumna Francia, bellicosa et audax Hispania, virtuosa viris et classe munita fertilis Anglia, impetuosis bellatoribus referta Alemannia, navalis Dacia, indomita Italia, pacis ignara Burgundia, inquieta Apulia, cum maris Græci, Adriatici et Tyrrheni insulis pyraticis et invictis, Cretâ, Cypro, Siciliâ, cum Oceano conterterminis insulis, et regionibus, cruenta Hybernia, cum agili Wallia palustris Scotia, glacialis Norwegia, suam electam militiam sub vexillo Crucis destinabunt, &c. (Matthew Paris, p. 498.)]

29 (return)
[ I will list his characteristic or flattering names for the different countries of Europe: Fierce and passionate for arms Germany, the strong mother and nurturer of soldiers France, warlike and bold Spain, virtuous with men and fortified by its fleet fertile England, teeming with fierce warriors Germany, naval Dacia, untamed Italy, unaware of peace Burgundy, restless Apulia, with the Greek, Adriatic, and Tyrrhenian seas filled with pirate islands, Crete, Cyprus, Sicily, along with the Ocean's neighboring islands and regions, bloody Ireland, with agile Wales, marshy Scotland, icy Norway, will dedicate their chosen warriors under the banner of the Cross, etc. (Matthew Paris, p. 498.)]

291 (return)
[ He was recalled by the death of Octai.—M.]

291 (return)
[ He remembered the death of Octai.—M.]

IV. Even the poor and frozen regions of the north attracted the arms of the Moguls: Sheibani khan, the brother of the great Batou, led a horde of fifteen thousand families into the wilds of Siberia; and his descendants reigned at Tobolskoi above three centuries, till the Russian conquest. The spirit of enterprise which pursued the course of the Oby and Yenisei must have led to the discovery of the icy sea. After brushing away the monstrous fables, of men with dogs’ heads and cloven feet, we shall find, that, fifteen years after the death of Zingis, the Moguls were informed of the name and manners of the Samoyedes in the neighborhood of the polar circle, who dwelt in subterraneous huts, and derived their furs and their food from the sole occupation of hunting. 30

IV. Even the cold and remote areas of the north caught the attention of the Moguls: Sheibani Khan, the brother of the great Batou, led a group of fifteen thousand families into the wilderness of Siberia; and his descendants ruled in Tobolskoi for over three centuries, until the Russian conquest. The adventurous spirit that followed the path of the Oby and Yenisei likely contributed to the discovery of the icy sea. After setting aside the outrageous myths about men with dogs' heads and split feet, we find that, fifteen years after Zingis' death, the Moguls learned about the Samoyedes near the polar circle, who lived in underground huts and got their furs and food solely from hunting. 30

30 (return)
[ See Carpin’s relation in Hackluyt, vol. i. p. 30. The pedigree of the khans of Siberia is given by Abulghazi, (part viii. p. 485—495.) Have the Russians found no Tartar chronicles at Tobolskoi? * Note: * See the account of the Mongol library in Bergman, Nomadische Streifereyen, vol. iii. p. 185, 205, and Remusat, Hist. des Langues Tartares, p. 327, and preface to Schmidt, Geschichte der Ost-Mongolen.—M.]

30 (return)
[ See Carpin’s account in Hackluyt, vol. i. p. 30. The family tree of the khans of Siberia is presented by Abulghazi, (part viii. p. 485—495.) Have the Russians discovered any Tartar records at Tobolskoi? * Note: * Refer to the description of the Mongol library in Bergman, Nomadische Streifereyen, vol. iii. p. 185, 205, and Remusat, Hist. des Langues Tartares, p. 327, along with the preface to Schmidt, Geschichte der Ost-Mongolen.—M.]

While China, Syria, and Poland, were invaded at the same time by the Moguls and Tartars, the authors of the mighty mischief were content with the knowledge and declaration, that their word was the sword of death. Like the first caliphs, the first successors of Zingis seldom appeared in person at the head of their victorious armies. On the banks of the Onon and Selinga, the royal or golden horde exhibited the contrast of simplicity and greatness; of the roasted sheep and mare’s milk which composed their banquets; and of a distribution in one day of five hundred wagons of gold and silver. The ambassadors and princes of Europe and Asia were compelled to undertake this distant and laborious pilgrimage; and the life and reign of the great dukes of Russia, the kings of Georgia and Armenia, the sultans of Iconium, and the emirs of Persia, were decided by the frown or smile of the great khan. The sons and grandsons of Zingis had been accustomed to the pastoral life; but the village of Caracorum 31 was gradually ennobled by their election and residence. A change of manners is implied in the removal of Octai and Mangou from a tent to a house; and their example was imitated by the princes of their family and the great officers of the empire. Instead of the boundless forest, the enclosure of a park afforded the more indolent pleasures of the chase; their new habitations were decorated with painting and sculpture; their superfluous treasures were cast in fountains, and basins, and statues of massy silver; and the artists of China and Paris vied with each other in the service of the great khan. 32 Caracorum contained two streets, the one of Chinese mechanics, the other of Mahometan traders; and the places of religious worship, one Nestorian church, two mosques, and twelve temples of various idols, may represent in some degree the number and division of inhabitants. Yet a French missionary declares, that the town of St. Denys, near Paris, was more considerable than the Tartar capital; and that the whole palace of Mangou was scarcely equal to a tenth part of that Benedictine abbey. The conquests of Russia and Syria might amuse the vanity of the great khans; but they were seated on the borders of China; the acquisition of that empire was the nearest and most interesting object; and they might learn from their pastoral economy, that it is for the advantage of the shepherd to protect and propagate his flock. I have already celebrated the wisdom and virtue of a Mandarin who prevented the desolation of five populous and cultivated provinces. In a spotless administration of thirty years, this friend of his country and of mankind continually labored to mitigate, or suspend, the havoc of war; to save the monuments, and to rekindle the flame, of science; to restrain the military commander by the restoration of civil magistrates; and to instil the love of peace and justice into the minds of the Moguls. He struggled with the barbarism of the first conquerors; but his salutary lessons produced a rich harvest in the second generation. 321 The northern, and by degrees the southern, empire acquiesced in the government of Cublai, the lieutenant, and afterwards the successor, of Mangou; and the nation was loyal to a prince who had been educated in the manners of China. He restored the forms of her venerable constitution; and the victors submitted to the laws, the fashions, and even the prejudices, of the vanquished people. This peaceful triumph, which has been more than once repeated, may be ascribed, in a great measure, to the numbers and servitude of the Chinese. The Mogul army was dissolved in a vast and populous country; and their emperors adopted with pleasure a political system, which gives to the prince the solid substance of despotism, and leaves to the subject the empty names of philosophy, freedom, and filial obedience. 322 Under the reign of Cublai, letters and commerce, peace and justice, were restored; the great canal, of five hundred miles, was opened from Nankin to the capital: he fixed his residence at Pekin; and displayed in his court the magnificence of the greatest monarch of Asia. Yet this learned prince declined from the pure and simple religion of his great ancestor: he sacrificed to the idol Fo; and his blind attachment to the lamas of Thibet and the bonzes of China 33 provoked the censure of the disciples of Confucius. His successors polluted the palace with a crowd of eunuchs, physicians, and astrologers, while thirteen millions of their subjects were consumed in the provinces by famine. One hundred and forty years after the death of Zingis, his degenerate race, the dynasty of the Yuen, was expelled by a revolt of the native Chinese; and the Mogul emperors were lost in the oblivion of the desert. Before this revolution, they had forfeited their supremacy over the dependent branches of their house, the khans of Kipzak and Russia, the khans of Zagatai, or Transoxiana, and the khans of Iran or Persia. By their distance and power, these royal lieutenants had soon been released from the duties of obedience; and after the death of Cublai, they scorned to accept a sceptre or a title from his unworthy successors. According to their respective situations, they maintained the simplicity of the pastoral life, or assumed the luxury of the cities of Asia; but the princes and their hordes were alike disposed for the reception of a foreign worship. After some hesitation between the Gospel and the Koran, they conformed to the religion of Mahomet; and while they adopted for their brethren the Arabs and Persians, they renounced all intercourse with the ancient Moguls, the idolaters of China.

While China, Syria, and Poland were invaded at the same time by the Mongols and Tartars, the masterminds behind this destruction were satisfied knowing and declaring that their command was a lethal weapon. Much like the first caliphs, the early successors of Genghis rarely appeared in person leading their victorious armies. By the banks of the Onon and Selinga rivers, the royal or golden horde showcased a mix of simplicity and greatness, from banquets of roasted sheep and mare’s milk to a single day's distribution of five hundred wagons filled with gold and silver. Ambassadors and princes from Europe and Asia had no choice but to embark on this long and exhausting journey; the fates of the great dukes of Russia, the kings of Georgia and Armenia, the sultans of Iconium, and the emirs of Persia were determined by the frown or smile of the great khan. The sons and grandsons of Genghis were used to a pastoral lifestyle, but the village of Karakorum 31 slowly gained prominence through their election and residence. The shift in lifestyle is reflected in the move of Ögedei and Mongke from tents to houses; their example was followed by their family princes and the high officials of the empire. Instead of roaming endlessly through forests, a landscaped park offered a more leisurely hunting experience; their new homes were adorned with paintings and sculptures; their excess riches were transformed into fountains, basins, and statues made of heavy silver; and artists from China and Paris competed for the favor of the great khan. 32 Karakorum had two streets, one for Chinese artisans and the other for Muslim traders; and the religious sites included one Nestorian church, two mosques, and twelve temples of various idols, reflecting the number and diversity of its inhabitants. However, a French missionary claimed that the town of St. Denis, near Paris, was more significant than the Tartar capital, and that Mongke's entire palace was hardly a tenth the size of that Benedictine abbey. The victories over Russia and Syria might have pleased the great khans, but they were situated on the edges of China; capturing that empire was the closest and most intriguing goal, and they could learn from their pastoral culture that it is beneficial for a shepherd to protect and nurture his flock. I've previously praised the wisdom and virtue of a Mandarin who prevented the devastation of five populous and cultivated provinces. Over a flawless thirty-year administration, this friend to his country and humanity consistently worked to lessen or halt the destruction of war, to preserve monuments, and to revive the pursuit of knowledge; he sought to rein in military leaders by restoring civil officials; and to instill a love of peace and justice in the minds of the Mongols. He wrestled against the barbarism of the first invaders, but his beneficial teachings bore fruit in the next generation. 321 The northern, and gradually the southern, empire accepted the governance of Kublai, who was the deputy and later the successor of Mongke; and the nation remained loyal to a ruler who had been raised in Chinese customs. He reinstituted the structures of the ancient constitution; and the conquerors adhered to the laws, customs, and even the biases of the conquered people. This peaceful victory, which has occurred more than once, can largely be attributed to the numbers and subservience of the Chinese. The Mongol army dissolved in a vast and populous region; and their emperors readily embraced a political system that grants the prince the real power of despotism while leaving the subjects with mere titles of philosophy, freedom, and filial piety. 322 Under Kublai’s rule, literacy and trade, peace and justice, were reestablished; the grand canal, spanning five hundred miles, was opened from Nanjing to the capital: he established his residence in Beijing; and showcased the splendor of Asia's greatest monarchs in his court. Yet this educated ruler strayed from the pure and simple religion of his great ancestor: he offered sacrifices to the idol Buddha; and his blind loyalty to the lamas of Tibet and the monks of China 33 drew criticism from the followers of Confucius. His successors polluted the palace with a throng of eunuchs, doctors, and astrologers while thirteen million of their subjects perished from famine in the provinces. A hundred and forty years after Genghis’ death, his weakened lineage, the Yuan dynasty, was overthrown by a rebellion of the native Chinese; and the Mongol emperors faded into obscurity. Before this uprising, they had lost their supremacy over the dependent branches of their dynasty, the khans of Kipchak and Russia, the khans of Chagatai, or Transoxiana, and the khans of Iran or Persia. Due to their distance and strength, these royal deputies soon disregarded their obligations of loyalty; and after Kublai's death, they refused to accept a scepter or title from his unworthy heirs. Depending on their circumstances, they either maintained the simplicity of pastoral life or embraced the luxuries of Asia's cities; but both the princes and their followers were inclined to accept a foreign religion. After some indecision between Christianity and Islam, they ultimately converted to Islam, and while they adopted the religion of the Arabs and Persians for their kin, they severed all ties with the ancient Mongols, the idol-worshippers of China.

31 (return)
[ The Map of D’Anville and the Chinese Itineraries (De Guignes, tom. i. part ii. p. 57) seem to mark the position of Holin, or Caracorum, about six hundred miles to the north-west of Pekin. The distance between Selinginsky and Pekin is near 2000 Russian versts, between 1300 and 1400 English miles, (Bell’s Travels, vol. ii. p. 67.)]

31 (return)
[ The Map of D’Anville and the Chinese Itineraries (De Guignes, vol. 1, part 2, p. 57) appear to indicate that Holin, or Caracorum, is located roughly six hundred miles northwest of Beijing. The distance from Selinginsky to Beijing is about 2000 Russian versts, which is between 1300 and 1400 English miles (Bell’s Travels, vol. 2, p. 67.)]

32 (return)
[ Rubruquis found at Caracorum his countryman Guillaume Boucher, orfevre de Paris, who had executed for the khan a silver tree supported by four lions, and ejecting four different liquors. Abulghazi (part iv. p. 366) mentions the painters of Kitay or China.]

32 (return)
[ Rubruquis found at Caracorum his fellow countryman Guillaume Boucher, a goldsmith from Paris, who had created for the khan a silver tree held up by four lions, which poured out four different liquids. Abulghazi (part iv. p. 366) mentions the painters from Kitay or China.]

321 (return)
[ See the interesting sketch of the life of this minister (Yelin-Thsouthsai) in the second volume of the second series of Recherches Asiatiques, par A Remusat, p. 64.—M.]

321 (return)
[ Check out the fascinating sketch of this minister's life (Yelin-Thsouthsai) in the second volume of the second series of Recherches Asiatiques, by A Remusat, p. 64.—M.]

322 (return)
[ Compare Hist. des Mongols, p. 616.—M.]

322 (return)
[ See History of the Mongols, p. 616.—M.]

33 (return)
[ The attachment of the khans, and the hatred of the mandarins, to the bonzes and lamas (Duhalde, Hist. de la Chine, tom. i. p. 502, 503) seems to represent them as the priests of the same god, of the Indian Fo, whose worship prevails among the sects of Hindostan Siam, Thibet, China, and Japan. But this mysterious subject is still lost in a cloud, which the researchers of our Asiatic Society may gradually dispel.]

33 (return)
[ The allegiance of the khans and the animosity of the mandarins toward the bonzes and lamas (Duhalde, Hist. de la Chine, tom. i. p. 502, 503) seems to portray them as priests of the same deity, the Indian Fo, whose worship is prevalent among the sects in Hindostan, Siam, Tibet, China, and Japan. However, this enigmatic topic remains shrouded in uncertainty, which the researchers of our Asiatic Society may gradually clarify.]

Chapter LXIV: Moguls, Ottoman Turks.—Part III.

In this shipwreck of nations, some surprise may be excited by the escape of the Roman empire, whose relics, at the time of the Mogul invasion, were dismembered by the Greeks and Latins. Less potent than Alexander, they were pressed, like the Macedonian, both in Europe and Asia, by the shepherds of Scythia; and had the Tartars undertaken the siege, Constantinople must have yielded to the fate of Pekin, Samarcand, and Bagdad. The glorious and voluntary retreat of Batou from the Danube was insulted by the vain triumph of the Franks and Greeks; 34 and in a second expedition death surprised him in full march to attack the capital of the Cæsars. His brother Borga carried the Tartar arms into Bulgaria and Thrace; but he was diverted from the Byzantine war by a visit to Novogorod, in the fifty-seventh degree of latitude, where he numbered the inhabitants and regulated the tributes of Russia. The Mogul khan formed an alliance with the Mamalukes against his brethren of Persia: three hundred thousand horse penetrated through the gates of Derbend; and the Greeks might rejoice in the first example of domestic war. After the recovery of Constantinople, Michael Palæologus, 35 at a distance from his court and army, was surprised and surrounded in a Thracian castle, by twenty thousand Tartars. But the object of their march was a private interest: they came to the deliverance of Azzadin, the Turkish sultan; and were content with his person and the treasure of the emperor. Their general Noga, whose name is perpetuated in the hordes of Astracan, raised a formidable rebellion against Mengo Timour, the third of the khans of Kipzak; obtained in marriage Maria, the natural daughter of Palæologus; and guarded the dominions of his friend and father. The subsequent invasions of a Scythian cast were those of outlaws and fugitives: and some thousands of Alani and Comans, who had been driven from their native seats, were reclaimed from a vagrant life, and enlisted in the service of the empire. Such was the influence in Europe of the invasion of the Moguls. The first terror of their arms secured, rather than disturbed, the peace of the Roman Asia. The sultan of Iconium solicited a personal interview with John Vataces; and his artful policy encouraged the Turks to defend their barrier against the common enemy. 36 That barrier indeed was soon overthrown; and the servitude and ruin of the Seljukians exposed the nakedness of the Greeks. The formidable Holagou threatened to march to Constantinople at the head of four hundred thousand men; and the groundless panic of the citizens of Nice will present an image of the terror which he had inspired. The accident of a procession, and the sound of a doleful litany, “From the fury of the Tartars, good Lord, deliver us,” had scattered the hasty report of an assault and massacre. In the blind credulity of fear, the streets of Nice were crowded with thousands of both sexes, who knew not from what or to whom they fled; and some hours elapsed before the firmness of the military officers could relieve the city from this imaginary foe. But the ambition of Holagou and his successors was fortunately diverted by the conquest of Bagdad, and a long vicissitude of Syrian wars; their hostility to the Moslems inclined them to unite with the Greeks and Franks; 37 and their generosity or contempt had offered the kingdom of Anatolia as the reward of an Armenian vassal. The fragments of the Seljukian monarchy were disputed by the emirs who had occupied the cities or the mountains; but they all confessed the supremacy of the khans of Persia; and he often interposed his authority, and sometimes his arms, to check their depredations, and to preserve the peace and balance of his Turkish frontier. The death of Cazan, 38 one of the greatest and most accomplished princes of the house of Zingis, removed this salutary control; and the decline of the Moguls gave a free scope to the rise and progress of the Ottoman Empire. 39

In this shipwreck of nations, it's surprising that the Roman Empire managed to survive, even though its remnants were being torn apart by the Greeks and Latins during the Mogul invasion. Less powerful than Alexander, they were pushed, just like the Macedonians, both in Europe and Asia, by the Scythian shepherds; and if the Tartars had laid siege, Constantinople would have succumbed to the same fate as Pekin, Samarcand, and Bagdad. The glorious and voluntary retreat of Batou from the Danube was mocked by the empty triumph of the Franks and Greeks; 34 and on his second expedition, he died while advancing to attack the capital of the Cæsars. His brother Borga took the Tartar forces into Bulgaria and Thrace but was diverted from the Byzantine conflict by a trip to Novogorod, at the fifty-seventh degree of latitude, where he counted the population and regulated Russia's tributes. The Mogul khan allied with the Mamalukes against his Persian brethren: three hundred thousand horsemen breached the gates of Derbend; and the Greeks had the first example of civil war to celebrate. After Constantinople was reclaimed, Michael Palæologus, 35 away from his court and army, was ambushed and surrounded in a Thracian castle by twenty thousand Tartars. However, their mission had a personal agenda: they were there to rescue Azzadin, the Turkish sultan, and were satisfied with capturing him and taking the emperor's treasure. Their leader Noga, whose name lives on in the Astracan hordes, sparked a major rebellion against Mengo Timour, the third khan of Kipzak; he married Maria, the illegitimate daughter of Palæologus; and oversaw the domains of his friend and father. The later invasions from a Scythian background were carried out by outlaws and refugees: some thousands of Alani and Comans, who had been forced from their homelands, were reclaimed from their aimless lives and enlisted in the service of the empire. That was the extent of the Moguls' influence in Europe. The initial fear they instilled secured, rather than disrupted, the peace of Roman Asia. The sultan of Iconium asked for a personal meeting with John Vataces; and his cunning strategy encouraged the Turks to defend their barrier against the common enemy. 36 Yet that barrier was soon toppled; and the enslavement and ruin of the Seljukians laid bare the vulnerabilities of the Greeks. The formidable Holagou threatened to march on Constantinople at the head of four hundred thousand men; and the unfounded panic among the citizens of Nice illustrated the terror he inspired. An incident during a procession, along with the sound of a mournful litany, “From the fury of the Tartars, good Lord, deliver us,” spread the hurried rumor of an assault and massacre. In the blind gullibility of fear, the streets of Nice were filled with thousands of people, both men and women, who had no idea what or who they were fleeing from; and it took several hours for the composure of the military officers to free the city from this imagined enemy. Luckily, Holagou and his successors were distracted by the conquest of Bagdad and a protracted series of wars in Syria; their enmity towards the Moslems made them lean towards alliances with the Greeks and Franks; 37 and their disdain or generosity offered the kingdom of Anatolia as a reward to an Armenian vassal. The remnants of the Seljukian kingdom were contested by the emirs who occupied the cities or mountains; yet all acknowledged the supremacy of the Persian khans; he often intervened with his authority, and sometimes with his military, to restrain their pillaging and maintain peace and balance on his Turkish frontier. The death of Cazan, 38 one of the most remarkable and skilled princes of the Zingis dynasty, removed this beneficial control; and the decline of the Moguls allowed for the emergence and growth of the Ottoman Empire. 39

34 (return)
[ Some repulse of the Moguls in Hungary (Matthew Paris, p. 545, 546) might propagate and color the report of the union and victory of the kings of the Franks on the confines of Bulgaria. Abulpharagius (Dynast. p. 310) after forty years, beyond the Tigris, might be easily deceived.]

34 (return)
[Some setbacks of the Mongols in Hungary (Matthew Paris, p. 545, 546) could spread and influence the narrative of the alliance and success of the Frankish kings near the border of Bulgaria. Abulpharagius (Dynast. p. 310) after forty years, across the Tigris, might be easily misled.]

35 (return)
[ See Pachymer, l. iii. c. 25, and l. ix. c. 26, 27; and the false alarm at Nice, l. iii. c. 27. Nicephorus Gregoras, l. iv. c. 6.]

35 (return)
[ See Pachymer, l. iii. c. 25, and l. ix. c. 26, 27; and the false alarm at Nice, l. iii. c. 27. Nicephorus Gregoras, l. iv. c. 6.]

36 (return)
[ G. Acropolita, p. 36, 37. Nic. Greg. l. ii. c. 6, l. iv. c. 5.]

36 (return)
[ G. Acropolita, p. 36, 37. Nic. Greg. l. ii. c. 6, l. iv. c. 5.]

37 (return)
[ Abulpharagius, who wrote in the year 1284, declares that the Moguls, since the fabulous defeat of Batou, had not attacked either the Franks or Greeks; and of this he is a competent witness. Hayton likewise, the Armenian prince, celebrates their friendship for himself and his nation.]

37 (return)
[Abulpharagius, who wrote in 1284, states that the Mongols, since their legendary defeat by Batou, had not attacked either the Franks or the Greeks; and he is a reliable witness to this. Hayton, the Armenian prince, also praises their friendship towards him and his people.]

38 (return)
[ Pachymer gives a splendid character of Cazan Khan, the rival of Cyrus and Alexander, (l. xii. c. 1.) In the conclusion of his history (l. xiii. c. 36) he hopes much from the arrival of 30,000 Tochars, or Tartars, who were ordered by the successor of Cazan to restrain the Turks of Bithynia, A.D. 1308.]

38 (return)
[ Pachymer describes Cazan Khan, the competitor of Cyrus and Alexander, in an impressive way (l. xii. c. 1.) At the end of his history (l. xiii. c. 36) he hopes for significant things from the arrival of 30,000 Tochars, or Tartars, who were sent by Cazan's successor to control the Turks of Bithynia, A.D. 1308.]

39 (return)
[ The origin of the Ottoman dynasty is illustrated by the critical learning of Mm. De Guignes (Hist. des Huns, tom. iv. p. 329—337) and D’Anville, (Empire Turc, p. 14—22,) two inhabitants of Paris, from whom the Orientals may learn the history and geography of their own country. * Note: They may be still more enlightened by the Geschichte des Osman Reiches, by M. von Hammer Purgstall of Vienna.—M.]

39 (return)
[ The origin of the Ottoman dynasty is explained through the important research of Mm. De Guignes (Hist. des Huns, tom. iv. p. 329—337) and D’Anville, (Empire Turc, p. 14—22), two residents of Paris, from whom people from the East can learn the history and geography of their own country. * Note: They might gain even more insight from the Geschichte des Osman Reiches, by M. von Hammer Purgstall of Vienna.—M.]

After the retreat of Zingis, the sultan Gelaleddin of Carizme had returned from India to the possession and defence of his Persian kingdoms. In the space of eleven years, that hero fought in person fourteen battles; and such was his activity, that he led his cavalry in seventeen days from Teflis to Kerman, a march of a thousand miles. Yet he was oppressed by the jealousy of the Moslem princes, and the innumerable armies of the Moguls; and after his last defeat, Gelaleddin perished ignobly in the mountains of Cœurdistan. His death dissolved a veteran and adventurous army, which included under the name of Carizmians or Corasmins many Turkman hordes, that had attached themselves to the sultan’s fortune. The bolder and more powerful chiefs invaded Syria, and violated the holy sepulchre of Jerusalem: the more humble engaged in the service of Aladin, sultan of Iconium; and among these were the obscure fathers of the Ottoman line. They had formerly pitched their tents near the southern banks of the Oxus, in the plains of Mahan and Nesa; and it is somewhat remarkable, that the same spot should have produced the first authors of the Parthian and Turkish empires. At the head, or in the rear, of a Carizmian army, Soliman Shah was drowned in the passage of the Euphrates: his son Orthogrul became the soldier and subject of Aladin, and established at Surgut, on the banks of the Sangar, a camp of four hundred families or tents, whom he governed fifty-two years both in peace and war. He was the father of Thaman, or Athman, whose Turkish name has been melted into the appellation of the caliph Othman; and if we describe that pastoral chief as a shepherd and a robber, we must separate from those characters all idea of ignominy and baseness. Othman possessed, and perhaps surpassed, the ordinary virtues of a soldier; and the circumstances of time and place were propitious to his independence and success. The Seljukian dynasty was no more; and the distance and decline of the Mogul khans soon enfranchised him from the control of a superior. He was situate on the verge of the Greek empire: the Koran sanctified his gazi, or holy war, against the infidels; and their political errors unlocked the passes of Mount Olympus, and invited him to descend into the plains of Bithynia. Till the reign of Palæologus, these passes had been vigilantly guarded by the militia of the country, who were repaid by their own safety and an exemption from taxes. The emperor abolished their privilege and assumed their office; but the tribute was rigorously collected, the custody of the passes was neglected, and the hardy mountaineers degenerated into a trembling crowd of peasants without spirit or discipline. It was on the twenty-seventh of July, in the year twelve hundred and ninety-nine of the Christian æra, that Othman first invaded the territory of Nicomedia; 40 and the singular accuracy of the date seems to disclose some foresight of the rapid and destructive growth of the monster. The annals of the twenty-seven years of his reign would exhibit a repetition of the same inroads; and his hereditary troops were multiplied in each campaign by the accession of captives and volunteers. Instead of retreating to the hills, he maintained the most useful and defensive posts; fortified the towns and castles which he had first pillaged; and renounced the pastoral life for the baths and palaces of his infant capitals. But it was not till Othman was oppressed by age and infirmities, that he received the welcome news of the conquest of Prusa, which had been surrendered by famine or treachery to the arms of his son Orchan. The glory of Othman is chiefly founded on that of his descendants; but the Turks have transcribed or composed a royal testament of his last counsels of justice and moderation. 41

After Zingis retreated, Sultan Gelaleddin of Carizme returned from India to restore and protect his Persian kingdoms. In eleven years, this hero personally fought in fourteen battles; his determination was such that he led his cavalry a thousand miles from Teflis to Kerman in just seventeen days. Yet, he faced the jealousy of Muslim princes and the countless armies of the Moguls. After his last defeat, Gelaleddin met an undignified end in the mountains of Cûrdistan. His death caused the collapse of a seasoned and daring army, which included many Turkman tribes known as Carizmians or Corasmins who had aligned themselves with the sultan's cause. The bolder, more powerful leaders invaded Syria and desecrated the holy sepulchre in Jerusalem, while the lesser ones joined Aladin, the Sultan of Iconium; among these were the humble ancestors of the Ottoman dynasty. They had once set up their tents near the southern banks of the Oxus, in the plains of Mahan and Nesa; remarkably, the same area had also produced the founders of both the Parthian and Turkish empires. Soliman Shah, at the forefront or rear of a Carizmian army, drowned while crossing the Euphrates; his son Orthogrul became a soldier and subject of Aladin and established a camp of four hundred families or tents at Surgut, on the banks of the Sangar, which he led for fifty-two years through both peace and war. He was the father of Thaman, or Athman, whose Turkish name eventually became the title of the caliph Othman. While we might describe that pastoral leader as both a shepherd and a robber, we must detach those traits from any sense of shame or dishonor. Othman embodied, and perhaps even exceeded, the typical virtues of a soldier, and the circumstances of his time and place fostered his independence and success. The Seljukian dynasty had fallen, and the distance and decline of the Mogul khans soon freed him from outside control. He was positioned at the edge of the Greek empire; the Koran blessed his gazi, or holy war, against the infidels, and their political blunders opened the passes of Mount Olympus, inviting him into the plains of Bithynia. Until the reign of Palæologus, these passes had been closely guarded by local militias, who were compensated with their own safety and tax exemptions. The emperor removed their privileges and took over their roles; however, taxes were strictly enforced, the passes were poorly secured, and the once hardy mountaineers became a fearful mass of peasants lacking spirit or training. On July 27, 1299, Othman first invaded the territory of Nicomedia; 40 and the remarkable precision of this date suggests some foresight regarding the swift and devastating rise of his power. The records from the twenty-seven years of his reign reveal similar invasions; and his regular troops grew with every campaign as they acquired captives and volunteers. Instead of retreating to the hills, he held onto crucial defensive positions; fortified the towns and castles he had initially looted; and traded his pastoral lifestyle for the baths and palaces of his emerging capitals. It wasn’t until Othman was burdened by age and illness that he received the happy news of the conquest of Prusa, which had fallen to the forces of his son Orchan due to famine or betrayal. Othman's glory primarily rests on that of his descendants, but Turks have recorded or created a royal testament of his final advice on justice and moderation. 41

40 (return)
[ See Pachymer, l. x. c. 25, 26, l. xiii. c. 33, 34, 36; and concerning the guard of the mountains, l. i. c. 3—6: Nicephorus Gregoras, l. vii. c. l., and the first book of Laonicus Chalcondyles, the Athenian.]

40 (return)
[ See Pachymer, l. x. c. 25, 26, l. xiii. c. 33, 34, 36; and regarding the mountain guard, l. i. c. 3—6: Nicephorus Gregoras, l. vii. c. l., and the first book of Laonicus Chalcondyles, the Athenian.]

41 (return)
[ I am ignorant whether the Turks have any writers older than Mahomet II., * nor can I reach beyond a meagre chronicle (Annales Turcici ad Annum 1550) translated by John Gaudier, and published by Leunclavius, (ad calcem Laonic. Chalcond. p. 311—350,) with copious pandects, or commentaries. The history of the Growth and Decay (A.D. 1300—1683) of the Othman empire was translated into English from the Latin MS. of Demetrius Cantemir, prince of Moldavia, (London, 1734, in folio.) The author is guilty of strange blunders in Oriental history; but he was conversant with the language, the annals, and institutions of the Turks. Cantemir partly draws his materials from the Synopsis of Saadi Effendi of Larissa, dedicated in the year 1696 to Sultan Mustapha, and a valuable abridgment of the original historians. In one of the Ramblers, Dr. Johnson praises Knolles (a General History of the Turks to the present Year. London, 1603) as the first of historians, unhappy only in the choice of his subject. Yet I much doubt whether a partial and verbose compilation from Latin writers, thirteen hundred folio pages of speeches and battles, can either instruct or amuse an enlightened age, which requires from the historian some tincture of philosophy and criticism. Note: * We could have wished that M. von Hammer had given a more clear and distinct reply to this question of Gibbon. In a note, vol. i. p. 630. M. von Hammer shows that they had not only sheiks (religious writers) and learned lawyers, but poets and authors on medicine. But the inquiry of Gibbon obviously refers to historians. The oldest of their historical works, of which V. Hammer makes use, is the “Tarichi Aaschik Paschasade,” i. e. the History of the Great Grandson of Aaschik Pasha, who was a dervis and celebrated ascetic poet in the reign of Murad (Amurath) I. Ahmed, the author of the work, lived during the reign of Bajazet II., but, he says, derived much information from the book of Scheik Jachshi, the son of Elias, who was Imaum to Sultan Orchan, (the second Ottoman king) and who related, from the lips of his father, the circumstances of the earliest Ottoman history. This book (having searched for it in vain for five-and-twenty years) our author found at length in the Vatican. All the other Turkish histories on his list, as indeed this, were written during the reign of Mahomet II. It does not appear whether any of the rest cite earlier authorities of equal value with that claimed by the “Tarichi Aaschik Paschasade.”—M. (in Quarterly Review, vol. xlix. p. 292.)]

41 (return)
[ I have no idea if the Turks have any writers older than Mahomet II., * nor can I go beyond a sparse chronicle (Annales Turcici ad Annum 1550) translated by John Gaudier and published by Leunclavius, (at the end of Laonic. Chalcond. p. 311—350,) with extensive commentaries. The history of the Growth and Decay (A.D. 1300—1683) of the Ottoman Empire was translated into English from the Latin manuscript of Demetrius Cantemir, prince of Moldavia, (London, 1734, in folio.) The author makes some unusual mistakes in Oriental history; however, he was familiar with the language, the records, and the institutions of the Turks. Cantemir partly draws his sources from the Synopsis of Saadi Effendi of Larissa, dedicated in 1696 to Sultan Mustapha, and a valuable summary of the original historians. In one of the Ramblers, Dr. Johnson praises Knolles (A General History of the Turks to the Present Year. London, 1603) as the best of historians, though unfortunate in his choice of subject. Yet, I seriously doubt whether a biased and lengthy compilation from Latin writers, thirteen hundred folio pages of speeches and battles, can either enlighten or entertain a thoughtful age, which expects some degree of philosophy and criticism from historians. Note: * We could have hoped that M. von Hammer had provided a clearer response to Gibbon's question. In a note, vol. i. p. 630. M. von Hammer shows that they had not only sheiks (religious writers) and learned lawyers, but also poets and authors on medicine. However, Gibbon's inquiry clearly refers to historians. The oldest of their historical works that V. Hammer references is the “Tarichi Aaschik Paschasade,” meaning the History of the Great Grandson of Aaschik Pasha, who was a dervish and a noted ascetic poet during the reign of Murad (Amurath) I. Ahmed, the author of the work, lived during the reign of Bajazet II., but he mentions that he gathered much information from the book of Scheik Jachshi, the son of Elias, who was Imaum to Sultan Orchan (the second Ottoman king) and who recounted, from his father's accounts, the details of the earliest Ottoman history. This book (which I searched for in vain for twenty-five years) the author finally found in the Vatican. All the other Turkish histories on his list, as indeed this one, were written during the reign of Mahomet II. It is unclear whether any of the others cite earlier sources of equal significance to that claimed by the “Tarichi Aaschik Paschasade.”—M. (in Quarterly Review, vol. xlix. p. 292.)]

From the conquest of Prusa, we may date the true æra of the Ottoman empire. The lives and possessions of the Christian subjects were redeemed by a tribute or ransom of thirty thousand crowns of gold; and the city, by the labors of Orchan, assumed the aspect of a Mahometan capital; Prusa was decorated with a mosque, a college, and a hospital, of royal foundation; the Seljukian coin was changed for the name and impression of the new dynasty: and the most skilful professors, of human and divine knowledge, attracted the Persian and Arabian students from the ancient schools of Oriental learning. The office of vizier was instituted for Aladin, the brother of Orchan; 411 and a different habit distinguished the citizens from the peasants, the Moslems from the infidels. All the troops of Othman had consisted of loose squadrons of Turkman cavalry; who served without pay and fought without discipline: but a regular body of infantry was first established and trained by the prudence of his son. A great number of volunteers was enrolled with a small stipend, but with the permission of living at home, unless they were summoned to the field: their rude manners, and seditious temper, disposed Orchan to educate his young captives as his soldiers and those of the prophet; but the Turkish peasants were still allowed to mount on horseback, and follow his standard, with the appellation and the hopes of freebooters. 412 By these arts he formed an army of twenty-five thousand Moslems: a train of battering engines was framed for the use of sieges; and the first successful experiment was made on the cities of Nice and Nicomedia. Orchan granted a safe-conduct to all who were desirous of departing with their families and effects; but the widows of the slain were given in marriage to the conquerors; and the sacrilegious plunder, the books, the vases, and the images, were sold or ransomed at Constantinople. The emperor Andronicus the Younger was vanquished and wounded by the son of Othman: 42 421 he subdued the whole province or kingdom of Bithynia, as far as the shores of the Bosphorus and Hellespont; and the Christians confessed the justice and clemency of a reign which claimed the voluntary attachment of the Turks of Asia. Yet Orchan was content with the modest title of emir; and in the list of his compeers, the princes of Roum or Anatolia, 43 his military forces were surpassed by the emirs of Ghermian and Caramania, each of whom could bring into the field an army of forty thousand men. Their domains were situate in the heart of the Seljukian kingdom; but the holy warriors, though of inferior note, who formed new principalities on the Greek empire, are more conspicuous in the light of history. The maritime country from the Propontis to the Mæander and the Isle of Rhodes, so long threatened and so often pillaged, was finally lost about the thirteenth year of Andronicus the Elder. 44 Two Turkish chieftains, Sarukhan and Aidin, left their names to their conquests, and their conquests to their posterity. The captivity or ruin of the seven churches of Asia was consummated; and the barbarous lords of Ionia and Lydia still trample on the monuments of classic and Christian antiquity. In the loss of Ephesus, the Christians deplored the fall of the first angel, the extinction of the first candlestick, of the Revelations; 45 the desolation is complete; and the temple of Diana, or the church of Mary, will equally elude the search of the curious traveller. The circus and three stately theatres of Laodicea are now peopled with wolves and foxes; Sardes is reduced to a miserable village; the God of Mahomet, without a rival or a son, is invoked in the mosques of Thyatira and Pergamus; and the populousness of Smyrna is supported by the foreign trade of the Franks and Armenians. Philadelphia alone has been saved by prophecy, or courage. At a distance from the sea, forgotten by the emperors, encompassed on all sides by the Turks, her valiant citizens defended their religion and freedom above fourscore years; and at length capitulated with the proudest of the Ottomans. Among the Greek colonies and churches of Asia, Philadelphia is still erect; a column in a scene of ruins; a pleasing example, that the paths of honor and safety may sometimes be the same. The servitude of Rhodes was delayed about two centuries by the establishment of the knights of St. John of Jerusalem: 46 under the discipline of the order, that island emerged into fame and opulence; the noble and warlike monks were renowned by land and sea: and the bulwark of Christendom provoked, and repelled, the arms of the Turks and Saracens.

From the conquest of Prusa, we can trace the true beginning of the Ottoman empire. The lives and properties of the Christian subjects were saved by a tribute or ransom of thirty thousand gold crowns; and the city, thanks to the efforts of Orchan, took on the appearance of a Muslim capital. Prusa was adorned with a mosque, a college, and a hospital, all founded by the royal family; the Seljukian coinage was replaced by the name and symbol of the new dynasty; and the most skilled scholars in both secular and religious studies attracted Persian and Arabian students from the ancient centers of Eastern learning. The position of vizier was created for Aladin, Orchan's brother; 411 and a different dress set the citizens apart from the peasants, and the Muslims from the non-believers. All the troops of Othman had previously been loose groups of Turkman cavalry, who served without payment and fought without organization: but a structured infantry unit was first established and trained by his son. A large number of volunteers were enlisted with a small stipend, but with the freedom to live at home unless they were called to battle; their rough manners and rebellious attitudes led Orchan to train his young captives as soldiers, alongside those of the prophet; however, the Turkish peasants were still allowed to ride horses and follow his banner, with the title and hopes of freebooters. 412 Using these methods, he created an army of twenty-five thousand Muslims: a range of siege engines was devised for military use; and the first successful test was conducted on the cities of Nice and Nicomedia. Orchan allowed safe passage to anyone who wanted to leave with their families and belongings; however, the widows of those killed were given in marriage to the conquerors; and the sacrilegious loot, including books, vases, and images, was sold or ransomed in Constantinople. The emperor Andronicus the Younger was defeated and wounded by Othman's son: 42 421 he conquered the entire province or kingdom of Bithynia, extending to the shores of the Bosphorus and Hellespont; and the Christians acknowledged the fairness and mercy of a reign that garnered the voluntary loyalty of the Turks of Asia. Still, Orchan was satisfied with the humble title of emir; and among his peers, the princes of Roum or Anatolia, 43 his military forces were overshadowed by the emirs of Ghermian and Caramania, each of whom could field an army of forty thousand men. Their territories were located in the heart of the Seljukian kingdom; but the holy warriors, though less renowned, who formed new principalities in the Greek empire, are more prominent in the historical record. The coastal region from the Propontis to the Mæander and the Isle of Rhodes, long threatened and frequently pillaged, was ultimately lost around the thirteenth year of Andronicus the Elder. 44 Two Turkish chieftains, Sarukhan and Aidin, bequeathed their names to their conquests, and their conquests to their future generations. The capture or destruction of the seven churches of Asia was completed; and the barbaric lords of Ionia and Lydia continue to tread on the relics of classical and Christian antiquity. In losing Ephesus, the Christians mourned the fall of the first angel, the extinguishing of the first lampstand mentioned in the Revelations; 45 the devastation is total; and the temple of Diana, or the church of Mary, will equally evade the curiosity of today’s traveler. The circus and three grand theaters of Laodicea are now inhabited by wolves and foxes; Sardes has been reduced to a wretched village; the God of Muhammad, without competition or a son, is worshipped in the mosques of Thyatira and Pergamus; and the population of Smyrna is sustained by the foreign trade of the Franks and Armenians. Philadelphia alone has survived through prophecy or bravery. Far from the sea, forgotten by the emperors, surrounded on all sides by Turks, its brave citizens defended their faith and freedom for over eighty years; and eventually surrendered to the proudest of the Ottomans. Among the Greek colonies and churches of Asia, Philadelphia still stands; a pillar in a scene of ruins; a pleasing example that the paths of honor and safety can sometimes be the same. The subjugation of Rhodes was postponed for about two centuries due to the establishment of the Knights of St. John of Jerusalem: 46 under the order's discipline, that island rose to fame and prosperity; the noble and warrior-like monks were famous both on land and sea: and the stronghold of Christendom challenged and repelled the armies of the Turks and Saracens.

411 (return)
[ Von Hammer, Osm. Geschichte, vol. i. p. 82.—M.]

411 (return)
[ Von Hammer, Osm. Geschichte, vol. i. p. 82.—M.]

412 (return)
[ Ibid. p. 91.—M.]

412 (__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__)
[Same source, p. 91.—M.]

42 (return)
[ Cantacuzene, though he relates the battle and heroic flight of the younger Andronicus, (l. ii. c. 6, 7, 8,) dissembles by his silence the loss of Prusa, Nice, and Nicomedia, which are fairly confessed by Nicephorus Gregoras, (l. viii. 15, ix. 9, 13, xi. 6.) It appears that Nice was taken by Orchan in 1330, and Nicomedia in 1339, which are somewhat different from the Turkish dates.]

42 (return)
[ Cantacuzene, while he recounts the battle and heroic escape of the younger Andronicus, (l. ii. c. 6, 7, 8,) hides the loss of Prusa, Nice, and Nicomedia by not mentioning them, which Nicephorus Gregoras openly acknowledges (l. viii. 15, ix. 9, 13, xi. 6.) It seems Nice was captured by Orchan in 1330, and Nicomedia in 1339, which doesn’t quite match the Turkish dates.]

421 (return)
[ For the conquests of Orchan over the ten pachaliks, or kingdoms of the Seljukians, in Asia Minor. see V. Hammer, vol. i. p. 112.—M.]

421 (return)
[ For Orchan's victories over the ten provinces, or kingdoms of the Seljukians, in Asia Minor, see V. Hammer, vol. i. p. 112.—M.]

43 (return)
[ The partition of the Turkish emirs is extracted from two contemporaries, the Greek Nicephorus Gregoras (l. vii. 1) and the Arabian Marakeschi, (De Guignes, tom. ii. P. ii. p. 76, 77.) See likewise the first book of Laonicus Chalcondyles.]

43 (return)
[The division of the Turkish emirs comes from two contemporaries, the Greek Nicephorus Gregoras (l. vii. 1) and the Arabian Marakeschi, (De Guignes, tom. ii. P. ii. p. 76, 77.) Also, refer to the first book of Laonicus Chalcondyles.]

44 (return)
[ Pachymer, l. xiii. c. 13.]

44 (return)
[ Pachymer, l. xiii. c. 13.]

45 (return)
[ See the Travels of Wheeler and Spon, of Pocock and Chandler, and more particularly Smith’s Survey of the Seven Churches of Asia, p. 205—276. The more pious antiquaries labor to reconcile the promises and threats of the author of the Revelations with the present state of the seven cities. Perhaps it would be more prudent to confine his predictions to the characters and events of his own times.]

45 (return)
[ Check out the Travels of Wheeler and Spon, Pocock and Chandler, and especially Smith’s Survey of the Seven Churches of Asia, pp. 205–276. The more devout scholars try to align the promises and warnings of the author of Revelation with the current state of the seven cities. Maybe it would be wiser to limit his predictions to the people and events of his own time.]

46 (return)
[ Consult the ivth book of the Histoire de l’Ordre de Malthe, par l’Abbé de Vertot. That pleasing writer betrays his ignorance, in supposing that Othman, a freebooter of the Bithynian hills, could besiege Rhodes by sea and land.]

46 (return)
[ Check the fourth book of the Histoire de l’Ordre de Malthe, by the Abbé de Vertot. That enjoyable writer shows his lack of knowledge by suggesting that Othman, a raider from the Bithynian hills, could besiege Rhodes by both land and sea.]

The Greeks, by their intestine divisions, were the authors of their final ruin. During the civil wars of the elder and younger Andronicus, the son of Othman achieved, almost without resistance, the conquest of Bithynia; and the same disorders encouraged the Turkish emirs of Lydia and Ionia to build a fleet, and to pillage the adjacent islands and the sea-coast of Europe. In the defence of his life and honor, Cantacuzene was tempted to prevent, or imitate, his adversaries, by calling to his aid the public enemies of his religion and country. Amir, the son of Aidin, concealed under a Turkish garb the humanity and politeness of a Greek; he was united with the great domestic by mutual esteem and reciprocal services; and their friendship is compared, in the vain rhetoric of the times, to the perfect union of Orestes and Pylades. 47 On the report of the danger of his friend, who was persecuted by an ungrateful court, the prince of Ionia assembled at Smyrna a fleet of three hundred vessels, with an army of twenty-nine thousand men; sailed in the depth of winter, and cast anchor at the mouth of the Hebrus. From thence, with a chosen band of two thousand Turks, he marched along the banks of the river, and rescued the empress, who was besieged in Demotica by the wild Bulgarians. At that disastrous moment, the life or death of his beloved Cantacuzene was concealed by his flight into Servia: but the grateful Irene, impatient to behold her deliverer, invited him to enter the city, and accompanied her message with a present of rich apparel and a hundred horses. By a peculiar strain of delicacy, the Gentle Barbarian refused, in the absence of an unfortunate friend, to visit his wife, or to taste the luxuries of the palace; sustained in his tent the rigor of the winter; and rejected the hospitable gift, that he might share the hardships of two thousand companions, all as deserving as himself of that honor and distinction. Necessity and revenge might justify his predatory excursions by sea and land: he left nine thousand five hundred men for the guard of his fleet; and persevered in the fruitless search of Cantacuzene, till his embarkation was hastened by a fictitious letter, the severity of the season, the clamors of his independent troops, and the weight of his spoil and captives. In the prosecution of the civil war, the prince of Ionia twice returned to Europe; joined his arms with those of the emperor; besieged Thessalonica, and threatened Constantinople. Calumny might affix some reproach on his imperfect aid, his hasty departure, and a bribe of ten thousand crowns, which he accepted from the Byzantine court; but his friend was satisfied; and the conduct of Amir is excused by the more sacred duty of defending against the Latins his hereditary dominions. The maritime power of the Turks had united the pope, the king of Cyprus, the republic of Venice, and the order of St. John, in a laudable crusade; their galleys invaded the coast of Ionia; and Amir was slain with an arrow, in the attempt to wrest from the Rhodian knights the citadel of Smyrna. 48 Before his death, he generously recommended another ally of his own nation; not more sincere or zealous than himself, but more able to afford a prompt and powerful succor, by his situation along the Propontis and in the front of Constantinople. By the prospect of a more advantageous treaty, the Turkish prince of Bithynia was detached from his engagements with Anne of Savoy; and the pride of Orchan dictated the most solemn protestations, that if he could obtain the daughter of Cantacuzene, he would invariably fulfil the duties of a subject and a son. Parental tenderness was silenced by the voice of ambition: the Greek clergy connived at the marriage of a Christian princess with a sectary of Mahomet; and the father of Theodora describes, with shameful satisfaction, the dishonor of the purple. 49 A body of Turkish cavalry attended the ambassadors, who disembarked from thirty vessels, before his camp of Selybria. A stately pavilion was erected, in which the empress Irene passed the night with her daughters. In the morning, Theodora ascended a throne, which was surrounded with curtains of silk and gold: the troops were under arms; but the emperor alone was on horseback. At a signal the curtains were suddenly withdrawn to disclose the bride, or the victim, encircled by kneeling eunuchs and hymeneal torches: the sound of flutes and trumpets proclaimed the joyful event; and her pretended happiness was the theme of the nuptial song, which was chanted by such poets as the age could produce. Without the rites of the church, Theodora was delivered to her barbarous lord: but it had been stipulated, that she should preserve her religion in the harem of Bursa; and her father celebrates her charity and devotion in this ambiguous situation. After his peaceful establishment on the throne of Constantinople, the Greek emperor visited his Turkish ally, who with four sons, by various wives, expected him at Scutari, on the Asiatic shore. The two princes partook, with seeming cordiality, of the pleasures of the banquet and the chase; and Theodora was permitted to repass the Bosphorus, and to enjoy some days in the society of her mother. But the friendship of Orchan was subservient to his religion and interest; and in the Genoese war he joined without a blush the enemies of Cantacuzene.

The Greeks, due to their internal divisions, brought about their own downfall. During the civil wars between the elder and younger Andronicus, Othman's son managed to conquer Bithynia with little resistance. These same troubles motivated the Turkish leaders from Lydia and Ionia to build a fleet and raid the nearby islands and the European coastline. In defending his life and honor, Cantacuzene was tempted to prevent or imitate his rivals by seeking the help of the public enemies of his faith and homeland. Amir, the son of Aidin, disguised his Greek kindness and politeness under a Turkish facade; he was bonded with the great domestic by mutual respect and shared support, leading their friendship to be compared, in the lofty rhetoric of the era, to the perfect bond between Orestes and Pylades. 47 Upon hearing of the danger faced by his friend, who was being persecuted by an ungrateful court, the prince of Ionia brought together a fleet of three hundred ships and an army of twenty-nine thousand men in Smyrna; he sailed in the dead of winter and anchored at the mouth of the Hebrus. From there, with a chosen group of two thousand Turks, he marched along the riverbanks and rescued the empress, who was besieged in Demotica by the savage Bulgarians. At that unfortunate moment, the fate of his dear Cantacuzene was unknown as he had fled to Servia; nonetheless, the grateful Irene, eager to see her rescuer, invited him to enter the city, sending along her message a gift of fine clothing and a hundred horses. In a rare display of sensitivity, the Gentle Barbarian refused to visit his wife or indulge in the luxuries of the palace during the absence of his unfortunate friend; he endured the harsh winter in his tent and declined the generous gift so he could share the challenges faced by his two thousand companions, who were just as deserving of that honor. His dire need and thirst for revenge might justify his plundering raids by sea and land: he left nine thousand five hundred men to guard his fleet and continued the pointless search for Cantacuzene until he was forced to embark due to a fake letter, the severity of the season, the complaints of his independent troops, and the weight of his spoils and captives. Throughout the civil war, the prince of Ionia returned to Europe twice; he allied his forces with the emperor, besieged Thessalonica, and threatened Constantinople. While some might accuse him of inadequate support, hurried departures, and accepting a bribe of ten thousand crowns from the Byzantine court, his friend held no grudge, and Amir's actions were justified by his sacred duty to defend his ancestral lands against the Latins. The naval strength of the Turks united the pope, the king of Cyprus, the republic of Venice, and the order of St. John in a noble crusade; their ships invaded the coast of Ionia, and Amir was killed by an arrow while attempting to seize the citadel of Smyrna from the Knights of Rhodes. 48 Before his death, he nobly recommended another ally from his nation; although not more sincere or passionate than himself, he was better positioned to offer immediate and strong support due to his location by the Propontis and near Constantinople. With the promise of a more favorable treaty, the Turkish prince of Bithynia was pulled away from his commitments to Anne of Savoy; and Orchan, driven by ambition, made solemn promises that if he could marry Cantacuzene's daughter, he would fulfill his roles as a loyal subject and son. Parental affection was overshadowed by ambition: the Greek clergy overlooked the marriage of a Christian princess to a follower of Mahomet; and Theodora's father shamefully took pride in the disgraceful alliance. 49 A group of Turkish cavalry accompanied the ambassadors, who arrived from thirty ships at his camp in Selybria. A grand pavilion was set up, where Empress Irene spent the night with her daughters. In the morning, Theodora ascended a throne surrounded by silk and gold curtains: the troops were ready, but only the emperor was on horseback. At a signal, the curtains were drawn back to reveal the bride, or the victim, surrounded by kneeling eunuchs and wedding torches: the sound of flutes and trumpets announced the joyful occasion; and her supposed happiness was the topic of the wedding song, which was performed by the best poets of the time. Without the church's blessings, Theodora was handed over to her barbaric husband: however, it had been agreed that she would keep her faith in the harem of Bursa; and her father praised her kindness and devotion in this ambiguous situation. After establishing himself peacefully on the throne of Constantinople, the Greek emperor visited his Turkish ally, who awaited him with four sons from various wives at Scutari on the Asian shore. The two princes appeared to share the pleasures of feasting and hunting amicably; and Theodora was allowed to cross back over the Bosphorus to spend a few days with her mother. But Orchan's loyalty was ultimately dictated by his religion and interests; during the Genoese war, he shamelessly sided with Cantacuzene's enemies.

47 (return)
[ Nicephorus Gregoras has expatiated with pleasure on this amiable character, (l. xii. 7, xiii. 4, 10, xiv. 1, 9, xvi. 6.) Cantacuzene speaks with honor and esteem of his ally, (l. iii. c. 56, 57, 63, 64, 66, 67, 68, 86, 89, 95, 96;) but he seems ignorant of his own sentimental passion for the Turks, and indirectly denies the possibility of such unnatural friendship, (l. iv. c. 40.)]

47 (return)
[Nicephorus Gregoras writes warmly about this likable character, (l. xii. 7, xiii. 4, 10, xiv. 1, 9, xvi. 6.) Cantacuzene speaks highly and respectfully of his ally, (l. iii. c. 56, 57, 63, 64, 66, 67, 68, 86, 89, 95, 96;) but he seems unaware of his own emotional attachment to the Turks, and indirectly questions the possibility of such an unusual friendship, (l. iv. c. 40.)]

48 (return)
[ After the conquest of Smyrna by the Latins, the defence of this fortress was imposed by Pope Gregory XI. on the knights of Rhodes, (see Vertot, l. v.)]

48 (return)
[ After the Latins took over Smyrna, Pope Gregory XI assigned the defense of this fortress to the knights of Rhodes, (see Vertot, l. v.)]

49 (return)
[ See Cantacuzenus, l. iii. c. 95. Nicephorus Gregoras, who, for the light of Mount Thabor, brands the emperor with the names of tyrant and Herod, excuses, rather than blames, this Turkish marriage, and alleges the passion and power of Orchan, eggutatoV, kai th dunamo? touV kat’ auton hdh PersikouV (Turkish) uperairwn SatrapaV, (l. xv. 5.) He afterwards celebrates his kingdom and armies. See his reign in Cantemir, p. 24—30.]

49 (return)
[ See Cantacuzenus, l. iii. c. 95. Nicephorus Gregoras, who, because of the brightness of Mount Thabor, labels the emperor as a tyrant and Herod, defends this Turkish marriage rather than condemning it, citing the passion and power of Orchan, as well as the influence of the Turkish satraps already in control of the Persian territories (l. xv. 5.) He later praises his kingdom and armies. See his reign in Cantemir, p. 24—30.]

In the treaty with the empress Anne, the Ottoman prince had inserted a singular condition, that it should be lawful for him to sell his prisoners at Constantinople, or transport them into Asia. A naked crowd of Christians of both sexes and every age, of priests and monks, of matrons and virgins, was exposed in the public market; the whip was frequently used to quicken the charity of redemption; and the indigent Greeks deplored the fate of their brethren, who were led away to the worst evils of temporal and spiritual bondage 50 Cantacuzene was reduced to subscribe the same terms; and their execution must have been still more pernicious to the empire: a body of ten thousand Turks had been detached to the assistance of the empress Anne; but the entire forces of Orchan were exerted in the service of his father. Yet these calamities were of a transient nature; as soon as the storm had passed away, the fugitives might return to their habitations; and at the conclusion of the civil and foreign wars, Europe was completely evacuated by the Moslems of Asia. It was in his last quarrel with his pupil that Cantacuzene inflicted the deep and deadly wound, which could never be healed by his successors, and which is poorly expiated by his theological dialogues against the prophet Mahomet. Ignorant of their own history, the modern Turks confound their first and their final passage of the Hellespont, 51 and describe the son of Orchan as a nocturnal robber, who, with eighty companions, explores by stratagem a hostile and unknown shore. Soliman, at the head of ten thousand horse, was transported in the vessels, and entertained as the friend, of the Greek emperor. In the civil wars of Romania, he performed some service and perpetrated more mischief; but the Chersonesus was insensibly filled with a Turkish colony; and the Byzantine court solicited in vain the restitution of the fortresses of Thrace. After some artful delays between the Ottoman prince and his son, their ransom was valued at sixty thousand crowns, and the first payment had been made when an earthquake shook the walls and cities of the provinces; the dismantled places were occupied by the Turks; and Gallipoli, the key of the Hellespont, was rebuilt and repeopled by the policy of Soliman. The abdication of Cantacuzene dissolved the feeble bands of domestic alliance; and his last advice admonished his countrymen to decline a rash contest, and to compare their own weakness with the numbers and valor, the discipline and enthusiasm, of the Moslems. His prudent counsels were despised by the headstrong vanity of youth, and soon justified by the victories of the Ottomans. But as he practised in the field the exercise of the jerid, Soliman was killed by a fall from his horse; and the aged Orchan wept and expired on the tomb of his valiant son. 511

In the treaty with Empress Anne, the Ottoman prince included a unique condition that allowed him to sell his prisoners in Constantinople or transport them to Asia. A bare crowd of Christians, including people of all ages, priests, monks, married women, and virgins, was displayed in the public market; the whip was often used to encourage generosity for their redemption; and the poor Greeks mourned the fate of their fellow countrymen, who were taken away to suffer the worst forms of physical and spiritual oppression. Cantacuzene was forced to agree to similar terms, and their implementation must have been even more damaging to the empire: a group of ten thousand Turks had been sent to assist Empress Anne; however, all of Orchan's forces were focused on helping his father. Yet, these disasters were temporary; once the chaos subsided, the refugees could return to their homes; and once the civil and foreign wars ended, Europe was fully cleared of the Muslims from Asia. In his final conflict with his pupil, Cantacuzene dealt a deep and fatal blow that could never be healed by his successors, which was inadequately atoned for by his theological arguments against the prophet Muhammad. Unaware of their own history, modern Turks confuse their first and final crossings of the Hellespont and portray Orchan’s son as a night-time robber who, along with eighty companions, cleverly explores a hostile and unknown coastline. Soliman, leading ten thousand cavalry, was transported on ships and welcomed as a friend by the Greek emperor. During the civil wars of Romania, he accomplished some good but caused more trouble; however, the Chersonesus gradually became populated with a Turkish colony, and the Byzantine court sought in vain for the return of the fortresses in Thrace. After some crafty delays between the Ottoman prince and his son, their ransom was set at sixty thousand crowns, and the first payment was made when an earthquake struck the walls and cities of the provinces; the destroyed places were occupied by the Turks; and Gallipoli, the gateway to the Hellespont, was rebuilt and repopulated under Soliman’s direction. Cantacuzene's resignation dissolved the weak ties of domestic alliances; and his final advice warned his countrymen against engaging in a reckless conflict, urging them to weigh their own weaknesses against the numbers, courage, discipline, and enthusiasm of the Muslims. His wise advice was disregarded by the reckless pride of youth and was soon validated by the Ottomans' victories. However, while practicing the game of the jerid, Soliman was killed in a fall from his horse; and the elderly Orchan wept and died at the grave of his brave son.

50 (return)
[ The most lively and concise picture of this captivity may be found in the history of Ducas, (c. 8,) who fairly describes what Cantacuzene confesses with a guilty blush!]

50 (return)
[ The most vivid and clear account of this captivity is in the history of Ducas, (c. 8,) who accurately describes what Cantacuzene admits with a guilty blush!]

51 (return)
[ In this passage, and the first conquests in Europe, Cantemir (p. 27, &c.) gives a miserable idea of his Turkish guides; nor am I much better satisfied with Chalcondyles, (l. i. p. 12, &c.) They forget to consult the most authentic record, the ivth book of Cantacuzene. I likewise regret the last books, which are still manuscript, of Nicephorus Gregoras. * Note: Von Hammer excuses the silence with which the Turkish historians pass over the earlier intercourse of the Ottomans with the European continent, of which he enumerates sixteen different occasions, as if they disdained those peaceful incursions by which they gained no conquest, and established no permanent footing on the Byzantine territory. Of the romantic account of Soliman’s first expedition, he says, “As yet the prose of history had not asserted its right over the poetry of tradition.” This defence would scarcely be accepted as satisfactory by the historian of the Decline and Fall.—M. (in Quarterly Review, vol. xlix. p. 293.)]

51 (return)
[ In this passage, and the initial conquests in Europe, Cantemir (p. 27, &c.) presents a bleak view of his Turkish guides; I'm not much more pleased with Chalcondyles (l. i. p. 12, &c.). They neglect to reference the most reliable source, the fourth book of Cantacuzene. I also lament the last books, which remain unpublished, of Nicephorus Gregoras. * Note: Von Hammer justifies the lack of coverage by Turkish historians regarding the earlier interactions of the Ottomans with the European continent, which he lists as sixteen different instances, as if they looked down on those peaceful incursions that led to no conquests and established no lasting presence on Byzantine soil. About the romantic narrative of Soliman’s first campaign, he states, “At that time, the prose of history had not yet claimed its dominance over the poetry of tradition.” This explanation would hardly be accepted as adequate by the historian of the Decline and Fall.—M. (in Quarterly Review, vol. xlix. p. 293.)]

511 (return)
[ In the 75th year of his age, the 35th of his reign. V. Hammer. M.]

511 (return)
[ In his 75th year, the 35th of his reign. V. Hammer. M.]

Chapter LXIV: Moguls, Ottoman Turks.—Part IV.

But the Greeks had not time to rejoice in the death of their enemies; and the Turkish cimeter was wielded with the same spirit by Amurath the First, the son of Orchan, and the brother of Soliman. By the pale and fainting light of the Byzantine annals, 52 we can discern, that he subdued without resistance the whole province of Romania or Thrace, from the Hellespont to Mount Hæmus, and the verge of the capital; and that Adrianople was chosen for the royal seat of his government and religion in Europe. Constantinople, whose decline is almost coeval with her foundation, had often, in the lapse of a thousand years, been assaulted by the Barbarians of the East and West; but never till this fatal hour had the Greeks been surrounded, both in Asia and Europe, by the arms of the same hostile monarchy. Yet the prudence or generosity of Amurath postponed for a while this easy conquest; and his pride was satisfied with the frequent and humble attendance of the emperor John Palæologus and his four sons, who followed at his summons the court and camp of the Ottoman prince. He marched against the Sclavonian nations between the Danube and the Adriatic, the Bulgarians, Servians, Bosnians, and Albanians; and these warlike tribes, who had so often insulted the majesty of the empire, were repeatedly broken by his destructive inroads. Their countries did not abound either in gold or silver; nor were their rustic hamlets and townships enriched by commerce or decorated by the arts of luxury. But the natives of the soil have been distinguished in every age by their hardiness of mind and body; and they were converted by a prudent institution into the firmest and most faithful supporters of the Ottoman greatness. 53 The vizier of Amurath reminded his sovereign that, according to the Mahometan law, he was entitled to a fifth part of the spoil and captives; and that the duty might easily be levied, if vigilant officers were stationed in Gallipoli, to watch the passage, and to select for his use the stoutest and most beautiful of the Christian youth. The advice was followed: the edict was proclaimed; many thousands of the European captives were educated in religion and arms; and the new militia was consecrated and named by a celebrated dervis. Standing in the front of their ranks, he stretched the sleeve of his gown over the head of the foremost soldier, and his blessing was delivered in these words: “Let them be called Janizaries, (Yengi cheri, or new soldiers;) may their countenance be ever bright! their hand victorious! their sword keen! may their spear always hang over the heads of their enemies! and wheresoever they go, may they return with a white face!54 541 Such was the origin of these haughty troops, the terror of the nations, and sometimes of the sultans themselves. Their valor has declined, their discipline is relaxed, and their tumultuary array is incapable of contending with the order and weapons of modern tactics; but at the time of their institution, they possessed a decisive superiority in war; since a regular body of infantry, in constant exercise and pay, was not maintained by any of the princes of Christendom. The Janizaries fought with the zeal of proselytes against their idolatrous countrymen; and in the battle of Cossova, the league and independence of the Sclavonian tribes was finally crushed. As the conqueror walked over the field, he observed that the greatest part of the slain consisted of beardless youths; and listened to the flattering reply of his vizier, that age and wisdom would have taught them not to oppose his irresistible arms. But the sword of his Janizaries could not defend him from the dagger of despair; a Servian soldier started from the crowd of dead bodies, and Amurath was pierced in the belly with a mortal wound. 542 The grandson of Othman was mild in his temper, modest in his apparel, and a lover of learning and virtue; but the Moslems were scandalized at his absence from public worship; and he was corrected by the firmness of the mufti, who dared to reject his testimony in a civil cause: a mixture of servitude and freedom not unfrequent in Oriental history. 55

But the Greeks didn’t have time to celebrate the death of their enemies; the Turkish sword was wielded with equal fervor by Amurath the First, the son of Orchan and the brother of Soliman. In the dim and fading light of Byzantine records, 52 we can see that he conquered the entire province of Romania or Thrace without resistance, from the Hellespont to Mount Hæmus, and the outskirts of the capital. Adrianople was selected as the royal seat for his government and religion in Europe. Constantinople, whose decline almost began with its foundation, had often been attacked by the Barbarians of both the East and West over the course of a thousand years; but never until this tragic moment had the Greeks been completely surrounded in both Asia and Europe by the forces of the same hostile monarchy. Yet, Amurath’s wisdom or generosity delayed this easy conquest for a time, and he was content with the frequent and humble submission of Emperor John Palæologus and his four sons, who followed him to the court and camp of the Ottoman prince at his request. He marched against the Slavic nations between the Danube and the Adriatic—Bulgarians, Serbians, Bosnians, and Albanians—and these warlike tribes, who had often disrespected the majesty of the empire, were repeatedly defeated by his fierce campaigns. Their lands were not rich in gold or silver, nor were their rural villages and towns filled with trade or adorned with luxury. But the locals have always been known for their toughness in both mind and body; and they were wisely forged into the most steadfast and loyal supporters of Ottoman greatness. 53 Amurath’s vizier reminded him that, according to Islamic law, he was entitled to a fifth of the spoils and captives; and that this duty could be easily enforced if vigilant officers were stationed in Gallipoli to monitor the passage and select the strongest and most attractive of the Christian youth for his use. The advice was heeded: the mandate was announced; many thousands of European captives were trained in faith and warfare; and the new military unit was consecrated and named by a well-known dervish. Standing at the front of their ranks, he spread the sleeve of his robe over the head of the first soldier, and delivered his blessing with these words: “Let them be called Janizaries, (Yengi cheri, or new soldiers); may their faces always be cheerful! their hands victorious! their swords sharp! may their spears always hover over the heads of their enemies! and wherever they go, may they return with a white face!54 541 Thus began the rise of these proud troops, a terror to nations, and sometimes to the sultans themselves. Their courage has faded, their discipline has slackened, and their chaotic formations cannot compete with the strategy and arms of modern warfare; but at their inception, they had a significant advantage in battle, since no Christian prince maintained a regular army of infantry on constant exercise and pay. The Janizaries fought with the fervor of converts against their idolatrous countrymen; and in the battle of Cossova, the alliance and independence of the Slavic tribes was ultimately shattered. As the victor surveyed the battlefield, he noticed that most of the dead were young, beardless boys, and he heard the flattering response of his vizier, who suggested that age and wisdom would have advised them against opposing his unstoppable forces. But even the sword of his Janizaries could not protect him from the dagger of despair; a Serbian soldier jumped from the mass of corpses and fatally wounded Amurath in the belly. 542 The grandson of Othman was gentle in temperament, modest in dress, and a lover of knowledge and virtue; but the Muslims were scandalized by his absence from communal worship, and the mufti bravely held him accountable, daring to dismiss his testimony in a civil case: a mix of servitude and freedom not uncommon in Eastern history. 55

52 (return)
[ After the conclusion of Cantacuzene and Gregoras, there follows a dark interval of a hundred years. George Phranza, Michael Ducas, and Laonicus Chalcondyles, all three wrote after the taking of Constantinople.]

52 (return)
[ After the end of Cantacuzene and Gregoras, there’s a dark period of a hundred years. George Phranza, Michael Ducas, and Laonicus Chalcondyles all wrote after Constantinople was taken.]

53 (return)
[ See Cantemir, p. 37—41, with his own large and curious annotations.]

53 (return)
[ See Cantemir, p. 37—41, with his own extensive and interesting notes.]

54 (return)
[ White and black face are common and proverbial expressions of praise and reproach in the Turkish language. Hic niger est, hunc tu Romane caveto, was likewise a Latin sentence.]

54 (return)
[ White and black face are common phrases used for praise and criticism in Turkish. Hic niger est, hunc tu Romane caveto, was also a Latin saying.]

541 (return)
[ According to Von Hammer. vol. i. p. 90, Gibbon and the European writers assign too late a date to this enrolment of the Janizaries. It took place not in the reign of Amurath, but in that of his predecessor Orchan.—M.]

541 (return)
[ According to Von Hammer, vol. i. p. 90, Gibbon and the European writers set the date for the Janizaries' enrollment too late. It actually happened during the reign of Orchan, not Amurath.—M.]

542 (return)
[ Ducas has related this as a deliberate act of self-devotion on the part of a Servian noble who pretended to desert, and stabbed Amurath during a conference which he had requested. The Italian translator of Ducas, published by Bekker in the new edition of the Byzantines, has still further heightened the romance. See likewise in Von Hammer (Osmanische Geschichte, vol. i. p. 138) the popular Servian account, which resembles that of Ducas, and may have been the source of that of his Italian translator. The Turkish account agrees more nearly with Gibbon; but the Servian, (Milosch Kohilovisch) while he lay among the heap of the dead, pretended to have some secret to impart to Amurath, and stabbed him while he leaned over to listen.—M.]

542 (return)
[ Ducas described this as a deliberate act of self-sacrifice by a Serbian noble who feigned defection and stabbed Amurath during a conference he had requested. The Italian translator of Ducas, published by Bekker in the new edition of the Byzantines, further romanticized the story. Also, see Von Hammer (Osmanische Geschichte, vol. i. p. 138) for the popular Serbian account, which is similar to Ducas's version and may have influenced his Italian translator. The Turkish account is more aligned with Gibbon's; however, the Serbian version (Milosch Kohilovisch) states that while he lay among the dead, he pretended to have a secret to share with Amurath and stabbed him while leaning over to listen.—M.]

55 (return)
[ See the life and death of Morad, or Amurath I., in Cantemir, (p 33—45,) the first book of Chalcondyles, and the Annales Turcici of Leunclavius. According to another story, the sultan was stabbed by a Croat in his tent; and this accident was alleged to Busbequius (Epist i. p. 98) as an excuse for the unworthy precaution of pinioning, as if were, between two attendants, an ambassador’s arms, when he is introduced to the royal presence.]

55 (return)
[ See the life and death of Morad, or Amurath I., in Cantemir, (p 33—45,) the first book of Chalcondyles, and the Annales Turcici of Leunclavius. According to another account, the sultan was stabbed by a Croat in his tent; this incident was mentioned to Busbequius (Epist i. p. 98) as an excuse for the inappropriate measure of binding an ambassador's arms, as if he were, between two attendants, when he was introduced to the royal presence.]

The character of Bajazet, the son and successor of Amurath, is strongly expressed in his surname of Ilderim, or the lightning; and he might glory in an epithet, which was drawn from the fiery energy of his soul and the rapidity of his destructive march. In the fourteen years of his reign, 56 he incessantly moved at the head of his armies, from Boursa to Adrianople, from the Danube to the Euphrates; and, though he strenuously labored for the propagation of the law, he invaded, with impartial ambition, the Christian and Mahometan princes of Europe and Asia. From Angora to Amasia and Erzeroum, the northern regions of Anatolia were reduced to his obedience: he stripped of their hereditary possessions his brother emirs of Ghermian and Caramania, of Aidin and Sarukhan; and after the conquest of Iconium the ancient kingdom of the Seljukians again revived in the Ottoman dynasty. Nor were the conquests of Bajazet less rapid or important in Europe. No sooner had he imposed a regular form of servitude on the Servians and Bulgarians, than he passed the Danube to seek new enemies and new subjects in the heart of Moldavia. 57 Whatever yet adhered to the Greek empire in Thrace, Macedonia, and Thessaly, acknowledged a Turkish master: an obsequious bishop led him through the gates of Thermopylæ into Greece; and we may observe, as a singular fact, that the widow of a Spanish chief, who possessed the ancient seat of the oracle of Delphi, deserved his favor by the sacrifice of a beauteous daughter. The Turkish communication between Europe and Asia had been dangerous and doubtful, till he stationed at Gallipoli a fleet of galleys, to command the Hellespont and intercept the Latin succors of Constantinople. While the monarch indulged his passions in a boundless range of injustice and cruelty, he imposed on his soldiers the most rigid laws of modesty and abstinence; and the harvest was peaceably reaped and sold within the precincts of his camp. Provoked by the loose and corrupt administration of justice, he collected in a house the judges and lawyers of his dominions, who expected that in a few moments the fire would be kindled to reduce them to ashes. His ministers trembled in silence: but an Æthiopian buffoon presumed to insinuate the true cause of the evil; and future venality was left without excuse, by annexing an adequate salary to the office of cadhi. 58 The humble title of emir was no longer suitable to the Ottoman greatness; and Bajazet condescended to accept a patent of sultan from the caliphs who served in Egypt under the yoke of the Mamalukes: 59 a last and frivolous homage that was yielded by force to opinion; by the Turkish conquerors to the house of Abbas and the successors of the Arabian prophet. The ambition of the sultan was inflamed by the obligation of deserving this august title; and he turned his arms against the kingdom of Hungary, the perpetual theatre of the Turkish victories and defeats. Sigismond, the Hungarian king, was the son and brother of the emperors of the West: his cause was that of Europe and the church; and, on the report of his danger, the bravest knights of France and Germany were eager to march under his standard and that of the cross. In the battle of Nicopolis, Bajazet defeated a confederate army of a hundred thousand Christians, who had proudly boasted, that if the sky should fall, they could uphold it on their lances. The far greater part were slain or driven into the Danube; and Sigismond, escaping to Constantinople by the river and the Black Sea, returned after a long circuit to his exhausted kingdom. 60 In the pride of victory, Bajazet threatened that he would besiege Buda; that he would subdue the adjacent countries of Germany and Italy, and that he would feed his horse with a bushel of oats on the altar of St. Peter at Rome. His progress was checked, not by the miraculous interposition of the apostle, not by a crusade of the Christian powers, but by a long and painful fit of the gout. The disorders of the moral, are sometimes corrected by those of the physical, world; and an acrimonious humor falling on a single fibre of one man, may prevent or suspend the misery of nations.

The character of Bajazet, the son and successor of Amurath, is clearly shown in his nickname Ilderim, meaning lightning; he could take pride in a title that reflected the fiery energy of his spirit and the speed of his destructive campaign. During his fourteen-year reign, 56 he constantly led his armies from Bursa to Adrianople, and from the Danube to the Euphrates; and while he worked hard to spread the law, he invaded the Christian and Muslim rulers of Europe and Asia with equal ambition. From Angora to Amasia and Erzeroum, he subdued the northern parts of Anatolia to his rule: he seized the hereditary lands of his brother emirs in Ghermian and Caramania, Aidin and Sarukhan; and after conquering Iconium, the ancient kingdom of the Seljukians was revived under the Ottoman dynasty. Bajazet's conquests in Europe were equally rapid and significant. No sooner had he established a formal rule over the Serbians and Bulgarians, than he crossed the Danube to find new enemies and subjects in the heart of Moldavia. 57 Everything that remained of the Greek empire in Thrace, Macedonia, and Thessaly recognized him as their Turkish master: a compliant bishop led him through the gates of Thermopylæ into Greece; and notably, a Spanish chief's widow, who owned the ancient site of the oracle of Delphi, won his favor by sacrificing her beautiful daughter. The Turkish link between Europe and Asia had previously been dangerous and uncertain, until he stationed a fleet of galleys at Gallipoli to control the Hellespont and cut off Latin support to Constantinople. While the king indulged his desires through immense injustice and cruelty, he enforced strict laws of modesty and self-restraint on his soldiers, allowing for the peaceful harvesting and selling of crops within his camp. Infuriated by the lax and corrupt judicial system, he gathered the judges and lawyers of his realm in one house, where they feared they would be burned to ashes in moments. His ministers were silent with fear; but an Ethiopian jester dared to suggest the true root of the problems, and to address future corruption, a proper salary was attached to the position of cadhi. 58 The humble title of emir was no longer fitting for Ottoman greatness; and Bajazet accepted a sultanate from the caliphs serving in Egypt under the Mamluks: 59 a last trivial acknowledgment that was forced by perception; by the Turkish conquerors to the Abbasid dynasty and the successors of the Arabian prophet. The sultan's ambition was heightened by the need to earn this elevated title; he then turned his attention to the Kingdom of Hungary, the battleground for Turkish victories and defeats. Sigismund, the Hungarian king, was related to the emperors of the West: his cause represented Europe and the church; and upon hearing of his peril, the bravest knights from France and Germany rushed to fight under his banner and that of the cross. In the battle of Nicopolis, Bajazet defeated a united army of a hundred thousand Christians, who had arrogantly claimed that they could hold up the sky on their lances if it fell. Most of them were killed or forced into the Danube; and Sigismund, fleeing to Constantinople via the river and the Black Sea, returned to his depleted kingdom after a long detour. 60 In his victory's arrogance, Bajazet threatened to besiege Buda; that he would conquer the neighboring territories of Germany and Italy, and that he would feed his horse with a bushel of oats on the altar of St. Peter in Rome. His advance was halted, not by a miraculous intervention from the apostle, nor by a crusade from Christian powers, but by a long and painful bout of gout. Sometimes, the issues of morality are corrected by those of the physical world; and a painful condition affecting just one person can prevent or delay the suffering of nations.

56 (return)
[ The reign of Bajazet I., or Ilderim Bayazid, is contained in Cantemir, (p. 46,) the iid book of Chalcondyles, and the Annales Turcici. The surname of Ilderim, or lightning, is an example, that the conquerors and poets of every age have felt the truth of a system which derives the sublime from the principle of terror.]

56 (return)
[ The reign of Bajazet I, or Ilderim Bayazid, is discussed in Cantemir, (p. 46), the second book of Chalcondyles, and the Annales Turcici. The nickname Ilderim, meaning lightning, illustrates how conquerors and poets throughout history have recognized the truth of a system that connects greatness with the principle of fear.]

57 (return)
[ Cantemir, who celebrates the victories of the great Stephen over the Turks, (p. 47,) had composed the ancient and modern state of his principality of Moldavia, which has been long promised, and is still unpublished.]

57 (return)
[ Cantemir, who celebrates the victories of the great Stephen against the Turks, (p. 47,) had created a work detailing both the ancient and modern state of his principality of Moldavia, which has been long promised and is still unpublished.]

58 (return)
[ Leunclav. Annal. Turcici, p. 318, 319. The venality of the cadhis has long been an object of scandal and satire; and if we distrust the observations of our travellers, we may consult the feeling of the Turks themselves, (D’Herbelot, Bibliot. Orientale, p. 216, 217, 229, 230.)]

58 (return)
[ Leunclav. Annal. Turcici, p. 318, 319. The corruption of the cadhis has been a source of controversy and criticism for a long time; and if we doubt the accounts of our travelers, we can look to the sentiments of the Turks themselves, (D’Herbelot, Bibliot. Orientale, p. 216, 217, 229, 230.)]

59 (return)
[ The fact, which is attested by the Arabic history of Ben Schounah, a contemporary Syrian, (De Guignes Hist. des Huns. tom. iv. p. 336.) destroys the testimony of Saad Effendi and Cantemir, (p. 14, 15,) of the election of Othman to the dignity of sultan.]

59 (return)
[ The fact, which is confirmed by the Arabic history of Ben Schounah, a contemporary Syrian, (De Guignes Hist. des Huns. tom. iv. p. 336.) undermines the accounts of Saad Effendi and Cantemir, (p. 14, 15), regarding the election of Othman to the position of sultan.]

60 (return)
[ See the Decades Rerum Hungaricarum (Dec. iii. l. ii. p. 379) of Bonfinius, an Italian, who, in the xvth century, was invited into Hungary to compose an eloquent history of that kingdom. Yet, if it be extant and accessible, I should give the preference to some homely chronicle of the time and country.]

60 (return)
[ Check out the Decades Rerum Hungaricarum (Dec. iii. l. ii. p. 379) by Bonfinius, an Italian who was invited to Hungary in the 15th century to write a detailed history of the kingdom. However, if it's available and easy to find, I would prefer to use a simpler chronicle from that time and place.]

Such is the general idea of the Hungarian war; but the disastrous adventure of the French has procured us some memorials which illustrate the victory and character of Bajazet. 61 The duke of Burgundy, sovereign of Flanders, and uncle of Charles the Sixth, yielded to the ardor of his son, John count of Nevers; and the fearless youth was accompanied by four princes, his cousins, and those of the French monarch. Their inexperience was guided by the Sire de Coucy, one of the best and oldest captain of Christendom; 62 but the constable, admiral, and marshal of France 63 commanded an army which did not exceed the number of a thousand knights and squires. 631 These splendid names were the source of presumption and the bane of discipline. So many might aspire to command, that none were willing to obey; their national spirit despised both their enemies and their allies; and in the persuasion that Bajazet would fly, or must fall, they began to compute how soon they should visit Constantinople and deliver the holy sepulchre. When their scouts announced the approach of the Turks, the gay and thoughtless youths were at table, already heated with wine; they instantly clasped their armor, mounted their horses, rode full speed to the vanguard, and resented as an affront the advice of Sigismond, which would have deprived them of the right and honor of the foremost attack. The battle of Nicopolis would not have been lost, if the French would have obeyed the prudence of the Hungarians; but it might have been gloriously won, had the Hungarians imitated the valor of the French. They dispersed the first line, consisting of the troops of Asia; forced a rampart of stakes, which had been planted against the cavalry; broke, after a bloody conflict, the Janizaries themselves; and were at length overwhelmed by the numerous squadrons that issued from the woods, and charged on all sides this handful of intrepid warriors. In the speed and secrecy of his march, in the order and evolutions of the battle, his enemies felt and admired the military talents of Bajazet. They accuse his cruelty in the use of victory. After reserving the count of Nevers, and four-and-twenty lords, 632 whose birth and riches were attested by his Latin interpreters, the remainder of the French captives, who had survived the slaughter of the day, were led before his throne; and, as they refused to abjure their faith, were successively beheaded in his presence. The sultan was exasperated by the loss of his bravest Janizaries; and if it be true, that, on the eve of the engagement, the French had massacred their Turkish prisoners, 64 they might impute to themselves the consequences of a just retaliation. 641 A knight, whose life had been spared, was permitted to return to Paris, that he might relate the deplorable tale, and solicit the ransom of the noble captives. In the mean while, the count of Nevers, with the princes and barons of France, were dragged along in the marches of the Turkish camp, exposed as a grateful trophy to the Moslems of Europe and Asia, and strictly confined at Boursa, as often as Bajazet resided in his capital. The sultan was pressed each day to expiate with their blood the blood of his martyrs; but he had pronounced that they should live, and either for mercy or destruction his word was irrevocable. He was assured of their value and importance by the return of the messenger, and the gifts and intercessions of the kings of France and of Cyprus. Lusignan presented him with a gold saltcellar of curious workmanship, and of the price of ten thousand ducats; and Charles the Sixth despatched by the way of Hungary a cast of Norwegian hawks, and six horse-loads of scarlet cloth, of fine linen of Rheims, and of Arras tapestry, representing the battles of the great Alexander. After much delay, the effect of distance rather than of art, Bajazet agreed to accept a ransom of two hundred thousand ducats for the count of Nevers and the surviving princes and barons: the marshal Boucicault, a famous warrior, was of the number of the fortunate; but the admiral of France had been slain in battle; and the constable, with the Sire de Coucy, died in the prison of Boursa. This heavy demand, which was doubled by incidental costs, fell chiefly on the duke of Burgundy, or rather on his Flemish subjects, who were bound by the feudal laws to contribute for the knighthood and captivity of the eldest son of their lord. For the faithful discharge of the debt, some merchants of Genoa gave security to the amount of five times the sum; a lesson to those warlike times, that commerce and credit are the links of the society of nations. It had been stipulated in the treaty, that the French captives should swear never to bear arms against the person of their conqueror; but the ungenerous restraint was abolished by Bajazet himself. “I despise,” said he to the heir of Burgundy, “thy oaths and thy arms. Thou art young, and mayest be ambitious of effacing the disgrace or misfortune of thy first chivalry. Assemble thy powers, proclaim thy design, and be assured that Bajazet will rejoice to meet thee a second time in a field of battle.” Before their departure, they were indulged in the freedom and hospitality of the court of Boursa. The French princes admired the magnificence of the Ottoman, whose hunting and hawking equipage was composed of seven thousand huntsmen and seven thousand falconers. 65 In their presence, and at his command, the belly of one of his chamberlains was cut open, on a complaint against him for drinking the goat’s milk of a poor woman. The strangers were astonished by this act of justice; but it was the justice of a sultan who disdains to balance the weight of evidence, or to measure the degrees of guilt.

Such is the general idea of the Hungarian war; but the disastrous adventure of the French has given us some records that illustrate the victory and character of Bajazet. 61 The Duke of Burgundy, ruler of Flanders and uncle to Charles the Sixth, was swayed by the enthusiasm of his son, John, Count of Nevers; and the fearless young man was joined by four princes, his cousins, and those of the French king. Their lack of experience was overseen by Sire de Coucy, one of the most skilled and seasoned commanders in Christendom; 62 but the constable, admiral, and marshal of France 63 commanded an army that barely totaled a thousand knights and squires. 631 These prestigious titles led to arrogance and hurt their discipline. Too many people wanted to lead, so no one wanted to follow; their national pride looked down on both their enemies and their allies; and convinced that Bajazet would flee or must fall, they started planning when they would reach Constantinople and reclaim the holy sepulcher. When their scouts reported the Turks were approaching, the carefree young men were at a feast, already intoxicated; they quickly strapped on their armor, hopped on their horses, raced to the front lines, and took offense at Sigismond's suggestion which would have denied them the honor of the first attack. The battle of Nicopolis could have been avoided if the French had followed the sensible advice of the Hungarians; yet it might have been triumphantly won had the Hungarians adopted the French's courage. They broke through the first line, which was made up of Asian troops; forced through a barricade of stakes set up against the cavalry; defeated the Janizaries after a bloody fight; and were eventually overwhelmed by the large squads coming from the woods, attacking this small group of brave warriors from all sides. In the speed and stealth of his march, in the order and maneuvers of the battle, Bajazet's enemies admired his military skill. They criticized his cruelty in victory. After taking the Count of Nevers and twenty-four lords, 632 whose high birth and wealth were confirmed by his Latin interpreters, the rest of the surviving French captives were brought before his throne; and, as they refused to renounce their faith, were beheaded one by one in his presence. The sultan was enraged by the loss of his best Janizaries; and if it's true that the French had massacred their Turkish prisoners the night before the battle, 64 they could blame themselves for the consequences of just retaliation. 641 A knight, whose life had been spared, was allowed to return to Paris to share the tragic story and seek ransom for the noble captives. Meanwhile, the Count of Nevers, along with the princes and barons of France, were paraded through the Turkish camp, showcased as a trophy to the Muslims of Europe and Asia, and kept under strict confinement in Boursa whenever Bajazet was in his capital. The sultan was urged every day to pay back the blood of his fallen soldiers with theirs; but he stated they should live, and for better or worse, his word was final. He recognized their value and significance from the messenger’s return, as well as the gifts and appeals from the kings of France and Cyprus. Lusignan presented him with a gold saltcellar of intricate design, valued at ten thousand ducats; and Charles the Sixth sent, via Hungary, a shipment of Norwegian hawks, and six loads of scarlet fabric, fine linen from Rheims, and Arras tapestries depicting the battles of the great Alexander. After considerable delay, due to distance rather than negotiation, Bajazet agreed to accept a ransom of two hundred thousand ducats for the Count of Nevers and the surviving princes and barons: the marshal Boucicault, a renowned warrior, was among the fortunate; but the admiral of France had been killed in battle, and both the constable and Sire de Coucy died in the prison of Boursa. This hefty demand, which was doubled by extra expenses, primarily fell on the Duke of Burgundy, or rather on his Flemish subjects, who were obligated by feudal laws to contribute to the knighthood and captivity of their lord’s eldest son. To ensure the debt was paid, some Genoese merchants offered security worth five times the amount; a lesson for those martial times that trade and credit are the bonds of national relations. It had been agreed in the treaty that the French captives would swear never to fight against their conqueror; but Bajazet himself lifted this ungracious restriction. “I disregard,” he told the heir of Burgundy, “your oaths and your weapons. You are young, and may feel the urge to erase the disgrace or misfortune of your first chivalric venture. Gather your forces, announce your plans, and rest assured that Bajazet will be pleased to encounter you again in battle.” Before their departure, they were granted freedom and hospitality at the court in Boursa. The French princes were impressed by the splendor of the Ottomans, whose hunting and falconry entourage included seven thousand hunters and seven thousand falconers. 65 In their sight, and at his command, one of his chamberlains had his belly cut open for drinking a poor woman’s goat’s milk. The foreigners were shocked by this act of justice; but it was the justice of a sultan who wouldn't bother to weigh evidence or gauge the degrees of guilt.

61 (return)
[ I should not complain of the labor of this work, if my materials were always derived from such books as the chronicle of honest Froissard, (vol. iv. c. 67, 72, 74, 79—83, 85, 87, 89,) who read little, inquired much, and believed all. The original Mémoires of the Maréchal de Boucicault (Partie i. c. 22—28) add some facts, but they are dry and deficient, if compared with the pleasant garrulity of Froissard.]

61 (return)
[ I shouldn't complain about the work involved if my sources were always from straightforward books like the chronicle of honest Froissart, (vol. iv. c. 67, 72, 74, 79—83, 85, 87, 89), who read little, asked a lot of questions, and believed everything. The original Mémoires of Maréchal de Boucicault (Partie i. c. 22—28) add some facts, but they feel dry and lacking compared to the enjoyable chatter of Froissart.]

62 (return)
[ An accurate Memoir on the Life of Enguerrand VII., Sire de Coucy, has been given by the Baron de Zurlauben, (Hist. de l’Académie des Inscriptions, tom. xxv.) His rank and possessions were equally considerable in France and England; and, in 1375, he led an army of adventurers into Switzerland, to recover a large patrimony which he claimed in right of his grandmother, the daughter of the emperor Albert I. of Austria, (Sinner, Voyage dans la Suisse Occidentale, tom. i. p. 118—124.)]

62 (return)
[ An accurate memoir of the life of Enguerrand VII, Lord of Coucy, has been provided by Baron de Zurlauben (Hist. de l’Académie des Inscriptions, vol. xxv). His status and wealth were significant in both France and England; in 1375, he led a group of adventurers into Switzerland to reclaim a large inheritance he claimed through his grandmother, the daughter of Emperor Albert I of Austria (Sinner, Voyage dans la Suisse Occidentale, vol. i, pp. 118—124.)]

63 (return)
[ That military office, so respectable at present, was still more conspicuous when it was divided between two persons, (Daniel, Hist. de la Milice Françoise, tom. ii. p. 5.) One of these, the marshal of the crusade, was the famous Boucicault, who afterwards defended Constantinople, governed Genoa, invaded the coast of Asia, and died in the field of Azincour.]

63 (return)
[ That military position, which is quite respected today, was even more notable when it was held by two people, (Daniel, Hist. de la Milice Françoise, tom. ii. p. 5.) One of these was the crusade marshal, the well-known Boucicault, who later defended Constantinople, led Genoa, invaded the Asian coast, and died on the battlefield at Azincourt.]

631 (return)
[ Daru, Hist. de Venice, vol. ii. p. 104, makes the whole French army amount to 10,000 men, of whom 1000 were knights. The curious volume of Schiltberger, a German of Munich, who was taken prisoner in the battle, (edit. Munich, 1813,) and which V. Hammer receives as authentic, gives the whole number at 6000. See Schiltberger. Reise in dem Orient. and V. Hammer, note, p. 610.—M.]

631 (return)
[Daru, Hist. de Venice, vol. ii. p. 104, states that the entire French army consisted of 10,000 men, including 1,000 knights. The interesting book by Schiltberger, a German from Munich who was captured during the battle, (edit. Munich, 1813,) which V. Hammer considers reliable, reports the total number as 6,000. See Schiltberger. Reise in dem Orient. and V. Hammer, note, p. 610.—M.]

632 (return)
[ According to Schiltberger there were only twelve French lords granted to the prayer of the “duke of Burgundy,” and “Herr Stephan Synther, and Johann von Bodem.” Schiltberger, p. 13.—M.]

632 (return)
[ According to Schiltberger, only twelve French lords were granted to the request of the “Duke of Burgundy,” along with “Herr Stephan Synther and Johann von Bodem.” Schiltberger, p. 13.—M.]

64 (return)
[ For this odious fact, the Abbé de Vertot quotes the Hist. Anonyme de St. Denys, l. xvi. c. 10, 11. (Ordre de Malthe, tom. ii. p. 310.)]

64 (return)
[ For this terrible fact, the Abbé de Vertot cites the Hist. Anonyme de St. Denys, l. xvi. c. 10, 11. (Ordre de Malthe, tom. ii. p. 310.)]

641 (return)
[ See Schiltberger’s very graphic account of the massacre. He was led out to be slaughtered in cold blood with the rest f the Christian prisoners, amounting to 10,000. He was spared at the intercession of the son of Bajazet, with a few others, on account of their extreme youth. No one under 20 years of age was put to death. The “duke of Burgundy” was obliged to be a spectator of this butchery which lasted from early in the morning till four o’clock, P. M. It ceased only at the supplication of the leaders of Bajazet’s army. Schiltberger, p. 14.—M.]

641 (return)
[ See Schiltberger’s very vivid account of the massacre. He was taken out to be killed in cold blood along with the other Christian prisoners, totaling 10,000. He was spared thanks to the intervention of Bajazet’s son, along with a few others, due to their very young age. No one under 20 years old was executed. The “duke of Burgundy” had to watch this slaughter that continued from early morning until four o’clock in the afternoon. It finally stopped only at the request of Bajazet’s army leaders. Schiltberger, p. 14.—M.]

65 (return)
[ Sherefeddin Ali (Hist. de Timour Bec, l. v. c. 13) allows Bajazet a round number of 12,000 officers and servants of the chase. A part of his spoils was afterwards displayed in a hunting-match of Timour, l. hounds with satin housings; 2. leopards with collars set with jewels; 3. Grecian greyhounds; and 4, dogs from Europe, as strong as African lions, (idem, l. vi. c. 15.) Bajazet was particularly fond of flying his hawks at cranes, (Chalcondyles, l. ii. p. 85.)]

65 (return)
[ Sherefeddin Ali (Hist. de Timour Bec, l. v. c. 13) gives Bajazet a total of 12,000 officers and hunting staff. Some of his trophies were later showcased during a hunting event of Timour, including: 1. hounds dressed in satin; 2. leopards with jeweled collars; 3. Grecian greyhounds; and 4. dogs from Europe, as strong as African lions, (idem, l. vi. c. 15.) Bajazet had a particular passion for flying his hawks at cranes, (Chalcondyles, l. ii. p. 85.)]

After his enfranchisement from an oppressive guardian, John Palæologus remained thirty-six years, the helpless, and, as it should seem, the careless spectator of the public ruin. 66 Love, or rather lust, was his only vigorous passion; and in the embraces of the wives and virgins of the city, the Turkish slave forgot the dishonor of the emperor of the Romans Andronicus, his eldest son, had formed, at Adrianople, an intimate and guilty friendship with Sauzes, the son of Amurath; and the two youths conspired against the authority and lives of their parents. The presence of Amurath in Europe soon discovered and dissipated their rash counsels; and, after depriving Sauzes of his sight, the Ottoman threatened his vassal with the treatment of an accomplice and an enemy, unless he inflicted a similar punishment on his own son. Palæologus trembled and obeyed; and a cruel precaution involved in the same sentence the childhood and innocence of John, the son of the criminal. But the operation was so mildly, or so unskilfully, performed, that the one retained the sight of an eye, and the other was afflicted only with the infirmity of squinting. Thus excluded from the succession, the two princes were confined in the tower of Anema; and the piety of Manuel, the second son of the reigning monarch, was rewarded with the gift of the Imperial crown. But at the end of two years, the turbulence of the Latins and the levity of the Greeks, produced a revolution; 661 and the two emperors were buried in the tower from whence the two prisoners were exalted to the throne. Another period of two years afforded Palæologus and Manuel the means of escape: it was contrived by the magic or subtlety of a monk, who was alternately named the angel or the devil: they fled to Scutari; their adherents armed in their cause; and the two Byzantine factions displayed the ambition and animosity with which Cæsar and Pompey had disputed the empire of the world. The Roman world was now contracted to a corner of Thrace, between the Propontis and the Black Sea, about fifty miles in length and thirty in breadth; a space of ground not more extensive than the lesser principalities of Germany or Italy, if the remains of Constantinople had not still represented the wealth and populousness of a kingdom. To restore the public peace, it was found necessary to divide this fragment of the empire; and while Palæologus and Manuel were left in possession of the capital, almost all that lay without the walls was ceded to the blind princes, who fixed their residence at Rhodosto and Selybria. In the tranquil slumber of royalty, the passions of John Palæologus survived his reason and his strength: he deprived his favorite and heir of a blooming princess of Trebizond; and while the feeble emperor labored to consummate his nuptials, Manuel, with a hundred of the noblest Greeks, was sent on a peremptory summons to the Ottoman porte. They served with honor in the wars of Bajazet; but a plan of fortifying Constantinople excited his jealousy: he threatened their lives; the new works were instantly demolished; and we shall bestow a praise, perhaps above the merit of Palæologus, if we impute this last humiliation as the cause of his death.

After being freed from an oppressive guardian, John Palæologus spent thirty-six years being a helpless and seemingly careless bystander to the public downfall. 66 Love, or more accurately lust, was his only strong desire; and during his encounters with the wives and virgins of the city, the Turkish slave forgot the shame of the emperor of the Romans. Andronicus, his eldest son, established a close and questionable friendship with Sauzes, the son of Amurath, in Adrianople, and the two young men plotted against their parents' authority and lives. The arrival of Amurath in Europe quickly exposed and dismantled their reckless plans; after blinding Sauzes, the Ottoman threatened his vassal with the fate of an accomplice and an enemy unless he inflicted the same punishment on his own son. Palæologus trembled and complied; and a cruel precaution included in the same decree affected the childhood and innocence of John, the son of the wrongdoer. However, the operation was performed so gently, or perhaps so ineptly, that one retained the sight of one eye, while the other suffered only from the flaw of squinting. Thus excluded from the line of succession, the two princes were locked up in the tower of Anema, and the piety of Manuel, the second son of the ruling monarch, was rewarded with the Imperial crown. But after two years, the disorder among the Latins and the fickleness of the Greeks led to a revolution; 661 and the two emperors found themselves imprisoned in the tower from where the two prisoners had been elevated to the throne. Another two years passed, providing Palæologus and Manuel the opportunity to escape: it was orchestrated by the cunning or craftiness of a monk, who was alternately called the angel or the devil: they fled to Scutari; their supporters armed themselves in their cause; and the two Byzantine factions displayed the ambition and resentment reminiscent of Cæsar and Pompey battling for the world's empire. The Roman world had now shrunk to a corner of Thrace, between the Sea of Marmara and the Black Sea, about fifty miles long and thirty miles wide; an area no larger than the smaller principalities of Germany or Italy, if the remnants of Constantinople hadn't still symbolized the wealth and population of a kingdom. To restore public peace, it became necessary to split this fragment of the empire; while Palæologus and Manuel kept hold of the capital, almost everything outside the walls was given to the blind princes, who made their home in Rhodosto and Selybria. In the tranquil slumber of royalty, John Palæologus's passions outlived his reason and strength: he deprived his favorite and heir of a beautiful princess from Trebizond; and while the frail emperor struggled to finalize his marriage, Manuel, along with a hundred of the noblest Greeks, was summoned urgently to the Ottoman porte. They served honorably in the wars of Bajazet; but a plan to reinforce Constantinople stirred his jealousy: he threatened their lives; the new constructions were immediately torn down; and we might credit Palæologus with a praise, possibly exceeding his true merit, if we say that this last humiliation drove him to his death.

66 (return)
[ For the reigns of John Palæologus and his son Manuel, from 1354 to 1402, see Ducas, c. 9—15, Phranza, l. i. c. 16—21, and the ist and iid books of Chalcondyles, whose proper subject is drowned in a sea of episode.]

66 (return)
[ For the reigns of John Palæologus and his son Manuel, from 1354 to 1402, see Ducas, c. 9—15, Phranza, l. i. c. 16—21, and the 1st and 2nd books of Chalcondyles, whose main topic is lost in a flood of stories.]

661 (return)
[ According to Von Hammer it was the power of Bajazet, vol. i. p. 218.]

661 (return)
[ According to Von Hammer, it was the strength of Bajazet, vol. i. p. 218.]

The earliest intelligence of that event was communicated to Manuel, who escaped with speed and secrecy from the palace of Boursa to the Byzantine throne. Bajazet affected a proud indifference at the loss of this valuable pledge; and while he pursued his conquests in Europe and Asia, he left the emperor to struggle with his blind cousin John of Selybria, who, in eight years of civil war, asserted his right of primogeniture. At length, the ambition of the victorious sultan pointed to the conquest of Constantinople; but he listened to the advice of his vizier, who represented that such an enterprise might unite the powers of Christendom in a second and more formidable crusade. His epistle to the emperor was conceived in these words: “By the divine clemency, our invincible cimeter has reduced to our obedience almost all Asia, with many and large countries in Europe, excepting only the city of Constantinople; for beyond the walls thou hast nothing left. Resign that city; stipulate thy reward; or tremble, for thyself and thy unhappy people, at the consequences of a rash refusal.” But his ambassadors were instructed to soften their tone, and to propose a treaty, which was subscribed with submission and gratitude. A truce of ten years was purchased by an annual tribute of thirty thousand crowns of gold; the Greeks deplored the public toleration of the law of Mahomet, and Bajazet enjoyed the glory of establishing a Turkish cadhi, and founding a royal mosque in the metropolis of the Eastern church. 67 Yet this truce was soon violated by the restless sultan: in the cause of the prince of Selybria, the lawful emperor, an army of Ottomans again threatened Constantinople; and the distress of Manuel implored the protection of the king of France. His plaintive embassy obtained much pity and some relief; and the conduct of the succor was intrusted to the marshal Boucicault, 68 whose religious chivalry was inflamed by the desire of revenging his captivity on the infidels. He sailed with four ships of war, from Aiguesmortes to the Hellespont; forced the passage, which was guarded by seventeen Turkish galleys; landed at Constantinople a supply of six hundred men-at-arms and sixteen hundred archers; and reviewed them in the adjacent plain, without condescending to number or array the multitude of Greeks. By his presence, the blockade was raised both by sea and land; the flying squadrons of Bajazet were driven to a more respectful distance; and several castles in Europe and Asia were stormed by the emperor and the marshal, who fought with equal valor by each other’s side. But the Ottomans soon returned with an increase of numbers; and the intrepid Boucicault, after a year’s struggle, resolved to evacuate a country which could no longer afford either pay or provisions for his soldiers. The marshal offered to conduct Manuel to the French court, where he might solicit in person a supply of men and money; and advised, in the mean while, that, to extinguish all domestic discord, he should leave his blind competitor on the throne. The proposal was embraced: the prince of Selybria was introduced to the capital; and such was the public misery, that the lot of the exile seemed more fortunate than that of the sovereign. Instead of applauding the success of his vassal, the Turkish sultan claimed the city as his own; and on the refusal of the emperor John, Constantinople was more closely pressed by the calamities of war and famine. Against such an enemy prayers and resistance were alike unavailing; and the savage would have devoured his prey, if, in the fatal moment, he had not been overthrown by another savage stronger than himself. By the victory of Timour or Tamerlane, the fall of Constantinople was delayed about fifty years; and this important, though accidental, service may justly introduce the life and character of the Mogul conqueror.

The first news of that event was communicated to Manuel, who quickly and secretly escaped from the palace of Boursa to the Byzantine throne. Bajazet pretended to be indifferent about losing this valuable asset; and while he continued his conquests in Europe and Asia, he left the emperor to deal with his blind cousin John of Selybria, who, in eight years of civil war, claimed his right of primogeniture. Eventually, the ambition of the victorious sultan aimed at the conquest of Constantinople; but he heeded the advice of his vizier, who pointed out that such an endeavor might unite the Christian powers in a second, more formidable crusade. His message to the emperor was written in these words: “By divine grace, our unbeatable sword has brought under our control almost all of Asia, along with many large territories in Europe, except for the city of Constantinople; beyond its walls, you have nothing left. Give up that city; negotiate your reward; or fear, for yourself and your unfortunate people, the consequences of a rash refusal.” But his ambassadors were instructed to soften their tone and propose a treaty, which was accepted with submission and gratitude. A ten-year truce was bought with an annual tribute of thirty thousand gold crowns; the Greeks lamented the public tolerance of the law of Muhammad, and Bajazet enjoyed the glory of establishing a Turkish cadhi and founding a royal mosque in the heart of the Eastern church. 67 However, this truce was soon broken by the restless sultan: in support of the prince of Selybria, the rightful emperor, an army of Ottomans again threatened Constantinople; and Manuel's distress prompted him to seek protection from the king of France. His sorrowful mission gained much sympathy and some aid; and the responsibility for the assistance was entrusted to Marshal Boucicault, 68 whose religious chivalry was fueled by the desire to avenge his capture on the infidels. He sailed with four warships from Aiguesmortes to the Hellespont; forced the passage, which was guarded by seventeen Turkish galleys; landed at Constantinople with a supply of six hundred armored men and sixteen hundred archers; and reviewed them in the nearby plain, not bothering to count or organize the crowd of Greeks. His presence lifted the blockade both by sea and land; Bajazet's fleeing forces were pushed back to a more respectful distance; and several castles in Europe and Asia were captured by the emperor and the marshal, who fought bravely side by side. But the Ottomans soon returned in greater numbers; and after a year of struggle, the fearless Boucicault decided to evacuate a country that could no longer provide pay or supplies for his soldiers. The marshal offered to take Manuel to the French court, where he could personally seek more men and money; and advised that, to eliminate all domestic discord, he should leave his blind rival on the throne. The proposal was accepted: the prince of Selybria was brought to the capital; and such was the public suffering that the exile's situation seemed better than that of the sovereign. Instead of praising his vassal's success, the Turkish sultan claimed the city as his own; and upon the emperor John's refusal, Constantinople faced even harsher war and famine. Against such an enemy, both prayers and resistance were equally useless; and the savage would have devoured his prey if, in that dire moment, he hadn't been defeated by another savage stronger than he. Thanks to the victory of Timour or Tamerlane, the fall of Constantinople was delayed by about fifty years; and this significant, though accidental, service rightly introduces the life and character of the Mogul conqueror.

67 (return)
[ Cantemir, p. 50—53. Of the Greeks, Ducas alone (c. 13, 15) acknowledges the Turkish cadhi at Constantinople. Yet even Ducas dissembles the mosque.]

67 (return)
[ Cantemir, p. 50—53. Of the Greeks, Ducas alone (c. 13, 15) recognizes the Turkish cadhi in Constantinople. Yet even Ducas downplays the mosque.]

68 (return)
[ Mémoires du bon Messire Jean le Maingre, dit Boucicault, Maréchal de France, partie ire c. 30, 35.]

68 (return)
[ Memoirs of the good Sir Jean le Maingre, known as Boucicault, Marshal of France, part ir c. 30, 35.]

Chapter LXV: Elevation Of Timour Or Tamerlane, And His Death.—Part I.

     Elevation Of Timour Or Tamerlane To The Throne Of
     Samarcand.—His Conquests In Persia, Georgia, Tartary
     Russia, India, Syria, And Anatolia.—His Turkish War.—
     Defeat And Captivity Of Bajazet.—Death Of Timour.—Civil
     War Of The Sons Of Bajazet.—Restoration Of The Turkish
     Monarchy By Mahomet The First.—Siege Of Constantinople By
     Amurath The Second.
     Elevation of Timour or Tamerlane to the Throne of
     Samarcand.—His Conquests in Persia, Georgia, Tartary,
     Russia, India, Syria, and Anatolia.—His Turkish War.—
     Defeat and Capture of Bajazet.—Death of Timour.—Civil
     War of the Sons of Bajazet.—Restoration of the Turkish
     Monarchy by Mahomet the First.—Siege of Constantinople by
     Amurath the Second.

The conquest and monarchy of the world was the first object of the ambition of Timour. To live in the memory and esteem of future ages was the second wish of his magnanimous spirit. All the civil and military transactions of his reign were diligently recorded in the journals of his secretaries: 1 the authentic narrative was revised by the persons best informed of each particular transaction; and it is believed in the empire and family of Timour, that the monarch himself composed the commentaries 2 of his life, and the institutions 3 of his government. 4 But these cares were ineffectual for the preservation of his fame, and these precious memorials in the Mogul or Persian language were concealed from the world, or, at least, from the knowledge of Europe. The nations which he vanquished exercised a base and impotent revenge; and ignorance has long repeated the tale of calumny, 5 which had disfigured the birth and character, the person, and even the name, of Tamerlane. 6 Yet his real merit would be enhanced, rather than debased, by the elevation of a peasant to the throne of Asia; nor can his lameness be a theme of reproach, unless he had the weakness to blush at a natural, or perhaps an honorable, infirmity. 606

The conquest and reign over the world was the primary goal of Timour's ambition. His second wish was to be remembered and respected by future generations. All the civil and military events of his rule were carefully recorded in the journals kept by his secretaries: 1 the authentic account was reviewed by those most knowledgeable about each specific event; and it is believed in the empire and family of Timour that the king himself wrote the commentaries 2 of his life and the institutions 3 of his government. 4 However, these efforts were ineffective in preserving his legacy, and these valuable records in the Mogul or Persian language were hidden from the world, or at least from European knowledge. The nations he defeated took a petty and powerless revenge, and ignorance has long repeated a slanderous tale 5 that distorted the origins and character, the appearance, and even the name of Tamerlane. 6 Yet his true greatness would be enhanced rather than diminished by the rise of a peasant to the throne of Asia; nor can his lameness be a subject of shame, unless he had the weakness to feel embarrassed about a natural or possibly honorable disability. 606

1 (return)
[ These journals were communicated to Sherefeddin, or Cherefeddin Ali, a native of Yezd, who composed in the Persian language a history of Timour Beg, which has been translated into French by M. Petit de la Croix, (Paris, 1722, in 4 vols. 12 mo.,) and has always been my faithful guide. His geography and chronology are wonderfully accurate; and he may be trusted for public facts, though he servilely praises the virtue and fortune of the hero. Timour’s attention to procure intelligence from his own and foreign countries may be seen in the Institutions, p. 215, 217, 349, 351.]

1 (return)
[ These journals were shared with Sherefeddin, or Cherefeddin Ali, a native of Yezd, who wrote a history of Timour Beg in Persian. This work has been translated into French by M. Petit de la Croix (Paris, 1722, in 4 volumes, 12 mo.) and has always served as my reliable guide. His geography and timeline are impressively accurate, and he can be trusted for public information, even though he excessively praises the hero’s virtue and luck. Timour's efforts to gather intelligence from both his own and other countries can be seen in the Institutions, p. 215, 217, 349, 351.]

2 (return)
[ These Commentaries are yet unknown in Europe: but Mr. White gives some hope that they may be imported and translated by his friend Major Davy, who had read in the East this “minute and faithful narrative of an interesting and eventful period.” * Note: The manuscript of Major Davy has been translated by Major Stewart, and published by the Oriental Translation Committee of London. It contains the life of Timour, from his birth to his forty-first year; but the last thirty years of western war and conquest are wanting. Major Stewart intimates that two manuscripts exist in this country containing the whole work, but excuses himself, on account of his age, from undertaking the laborious task of completing the translation. It is to be hoped that the European public will be soon enabled to judge of the value and authenticity of the Commentaries of the Cæsar of the East. Major Stewart’s work commences with the Book of Dreams and Omens—a wild, but characteristic, chronicle of Visions and Sortes Koranicæ. Strange that a life of Timour should awaken a reminiscence of the diary of Archbishop Laud! The early dawn and the gradual expression of his not less splendid but more real visions of ambition are touched with the simplicity of truth and nature. But we long to escape from the petty feuds of the pastoral chieftain, to the triumphs and the legislation of the conqueror of the world.—M.]

2 (return)
[ These commentaries are still unknown in Europe, but Mr. White gives some hope that they may be brought in and translated by his friend Major Davy, who read this “detailed and accurate account of an interesting and significant period” in the East. * Note: Major Davy's manuscript has been translated by Major Stewart and published by the Oriental Translation Committee of London. It covers Timour's life from his birth to his forty-first year, but the last thirty years of western war and conquest are missing. Major Stewart indicates that there are two manuscripts in this country containing the complete work but declines to take on the laborious task of finishing the translation due to his age. It is to be hoped that the European public will soon be able to evaluate the value and authenticity of the Commentaries of the Cæsar of the East. Major Stewart’s work begins with the Book of Dreams and Omens—a fascinating, yet characteristic, account of visions and Koranic sortes. It's odd that a biography of Timour should remind one of Archbishop Laud's diary! The early dawn and the gradual development of his ambitions are captured with an honest simplicity. However, we yearn to move beyond the petty conflicts of the pastoral chief to the victories and legislation of the world's conqueror.—M.]

3 (return)
[ I am ignorant whether the original institution, in the Turki or Mogul language, be still extant. The Persic version, with an English translation, and most valuable index, was published (Oxford, 1783, in 4to.) by the joint labors of Major Davy and Mr. White, the Arabic professor. This work has been since translated from the Persic into French, (Paris, 1787,) by M. Langlès, a learned Orientalist, who has added the life of Timour, and many curious notes.]

3 (return)
[ I’m not sure if the original institution, in the Turki or Mogul language, still exists. The Persian version, along with an English translation and a very helpful index, was published (Oxford, 1783, in 4to.) through the combined efforts of Major Davy and Mr. White, the Arabic professor. This work was later translated from Persian into French (Paris, 1787) by M. Langlès, a knowledgeable Orientalist, who included the life of Timour and many interesting notes.]

4 (return)
[ Shaw Allum, the present Mogul, reads, values, but cannot imitate, the institutions of his great ancestor. The English translator relies on their internal evidence; but if any suspicions should arise of fraud and fiction, they will not be dispelled by Major Davy’s letter. The Orientals have never cultivated the art of criticism; the patronage of a prince, less honorable, perhaps, is not less lucrative than that of a bookseller; nor can it be deemed incredible that a Persian, the real author, should renounce the credit, to raise the value and price, of the work.]

4 (return)
[Shaw Allum, the current Mogul, appreciates and values the institutions of his great ancestor but cannot replicate them. The English translator depends on their internal evidence; however, if any doubts about fraud and deception arise, they won’t be cleared up by Major Davy’s letter. People in the East have never developed the art of criticism; the support of a prince, though perhaps less honorable, is just as profitable as that of a bookseller. It’s also not unbelievable that a Persian, the real author, might forgo credit to increase the value and price of the work.]

5 (return)
[ The original of the tale is found in the following work, which is much esteemed for its florid elegance of style: Ahmedis Arabsiad (Ahmed Ebn Arabshah) Vitæ et Rerum gestarum Timuri. Arabice et Latine. Edidit Samuel Henricus Manger. Franequer, 1767, 2 tom. in 4to. This Syrian author is ever a malicious, and often an ignorant enemy: the very titles of his chapters are injurious; as how the wicked, as how the impious, as how the viper, &c. The copious article of Timur, in Bibliothèque Orientale, is of a mixed nature, as D’Herbelot indifferently draws his materials (p. 877—888) from Khondemir Ebn Schounah, and the Lebtarikh.]

5 (return)
[ The original tale can be found in a well-regarded work known for its ornate style: Ahmedis Arabsiad (Ahmed Ebn Arabshah) Vitæ et Rerum gestarum Timuri. Arabice et Latine. Edidit Samuel Henricus Manger. Franequer, 1767, 2 tom. in 4to. This Syrian author is often a spiteful and sometimes an uninformed opponent: even the titles of his chapters are derogatory, like how the wicked, how the impious, how the viper, etc. The extensive article on Timur in Bibliothèque Orientale has a mixed nature, as D’Herbelot pulls together his material from Khondemir Ebn Schounah and the Lebtarikh (p. 877—888).]

6 (return)
[ Demir or Timour signifies in the Turkish language, Iron; and it is the appellation of a lord or prince. By the change of a letter or accent, it is changed into Lenc, or Lame; and a European corruption confounds the two words in the name of Tamerlane. * Note: According to the memoirs he was so called by a Shaikh, who, when visited by his mother on his birth, was reading the verse of the Koran, “Are you sure that he who dwelleth in heaven will not cause the earth to swallow you up, and behold it shall shake, Tamûrn.” The Shaikh then stopped and said, “We have named your son Timûr,” p. 21.—M.]

6 (return)
[ Demir or Timour means Iron in Turkish and is a title for a lord or prince. With a slight change in a letter or accent, it becomes Lenc, or Lame; and a misinterpretation in Europe mixes the two words into the name Tamerlane. * Note: According to the memoirs, he was given this name by a Shaikh, who, when visited by his mother at his birth, was reading the verse from the Koran, “Are you sure that he who dwells in heaven will not cause the earth to swallow you up, and behold it shall shake, Tamûrn.” The Shaikh then paused and said, “We have named your son Timûr,” p. 21.—M.]

606 (return)
[ He was lamed by a wound at the siege of the capital of Sistan. Sherefeddin, lib. iii. c. 17. p. 136. See Von Hammer, vol. i. p. 260.—M.]

606 (return)
[ He was left with a limp from an injury sustained during the siege of the capital of Sistan. Sherefeddin, lib. iii. c. 17. p. 136. See Von Hammer, vol. i. p. 260.—M.]

In the eyes of the Moguls, who held the indefeasible succession of the house of Zingis, he was doubtless a rebel subject; yet he sprang from the noble tribe of Berlass: his fifth ancestor, Carashar Nevian, had been the vizier 607 of Zagatai, in his new realm of Transoxiana; and in the ascent of some generations, the branch of Timour is confounded, at least by the females, 7 with the Imperial stem. 8 He was born forty miles to the south of Samarcand in the village of Sebzar, in the fruitful territory of Cash, of which his fathers were the hereditary chiefs, as well as of a toman of ten thousand horse. 9 His birth 10 was cast on one of those periods of anarchy, which announce the fall of the Asiatic dynasties, and open a new field to adventurous ambition. The khans of Zagatai were extinct; the emirs aspired to independence; and their domestic feuds could only be suspended by the conquest and tyranny of the khans of Kashgar, who, with an army of Getes or Calmucks, 11 invaded the Transoxian kingdom. From the twelfth year of his age, Timour had entered the field of action; in the twenty-fifth 111 he stood forth as the deliverer of his country; and the eyes and wishes of the people were turned towards a hero who suffered in their cause. The chiefs of the law and of the army had pledged their salvation to support him with their lives and fortunes; but in the hour of danger they were silent and afraid; and, after waiting seven days on the hills of Samarcand, he retreated to the desert with only sixty horsemen. The fugitives were overtaken by a thousand Getes, whom he repulsed with incredible slaughter, and his enemies were forced to exclaim, “Timour is a wonderful man: fortune and the divine favor are with him.” But in this bloody action his own followers were reduced to ten, a number which was soon diminished by the desertion of three Carizmians. 112 He wandered in the desert with his wife, seven companions, and four horses; and sixty-two days was he plunged in a loathsome dungeon, from whence he escaped by his own courage and the remorse of the oppressor. After swimming the broad and rapid steam of the Jihoon, or Oxus, he led, during some months, the life of a vagrant and outlaw, on the borders of the adjacent states. But his fame shone brighter in adversity; he learned to distinguish the friends of his person, the associates of his fortune, and to apply the various characters of men for their advantage, and, above all, for his own. On his return to his native country, Timour was successively joined by the parties of his confederates, who anxiously sought him in the desert; nor can I refuse to describe, in his pathetic simplicity, one of their fortunate encounters. He presented himself as a guide to three chiefs, who were at the head of seventy horse. “When their eyes fell upon me,” says Timour, “they were overwhelmed with joy; and they alighted from their horses; and they came and kneeled; and they kissed my stirrup. I also came down from my horse, and took each of them in my arms. And I put my turban on the head of the first chief; and my girdle, rich in jewels and wrought with gold, I bound on the loins of the second; and the third I clothed in my own coat. And they wept, and I wept also; and the hour of prayer was arrived, and we prayed. And we mounted our horses, and came to my dwelling; and I collected my people, and made a feast.” His trusty bands were soon increased by the bravest of the tribes; he led them against a superior foe; and, after some vicissitudes of war the Getes were finally driven from the kingdom of Transoxiana. He had done much for his own glory; but much remained to be done, much art to be exerted, and some blood to be spilt, before he could teach his equals to obey him as their master. The birth and power of emir Houssein compelled him to accept a vicious and unworthy colleague, whose sister was the best beloved of his wives. Their union was short and jealous; but the policy of Timour, in their frequent quarrels, exposed his rival to the reproach of injustice and perfidy; and, after a final defeat, Houssein was slain by some sagacious friends, who presumed, for the last time, to disobey the commands of their lord. 113 At the age of thirty-four, 12 and in a general diet or couroultai, he was invested with Imperial command, but he affected to revere the house of Zingis; and while the emir Timour reigned over Zagatai and the East, a nominal khan served as a private officer in the armies of his servant. A fertile kingdom, five hundred miles in length and in breadth, might have satisfied the ambition of a subject; but Timour aspired to the dominion of the world; and before his death, the crown of Zagatai was one of the twenty-seven crowns which he had placed on his head. Without expatiating on the victories of thirty-five campaigns; without describing the lines of march, which he repeatedly traced over the continent of Asia; I shall briefly represent his conquests in, I. Persia, II. Tartary, and, III. India, 13 and from thence proceed to the more interesting narrative of his Ottoman war.

In the eyes of the Mughals, who maintained the unbreakable line of the house of Genghis, he was undoubtedly seen as a rebellious subject; yet he came from the noble Berlass tribe: his fifth ancestor, Carashar Nevian, had been the vizier 607 of Zagatai in the newly formed realm of Transoxiana; and over some generations, the lineage of Timur gets mixed up, at least through the females, 7 with the Imperial lineage. 8 He was born forty miles south of Samarkand in the village of Sebzar, in the fertile territory of Kash, of which his ancestors were the hereditary leaders, as well as of a battalion of ten thousand horse. 9 His birth 10 occurred during one of those times of chaos that foreshadow the collapse of Asian dynasties, creating a new arena for ambitious adventurers. The khans of Zagatai were gone; the emirs sought independence; and their internal strife could only be put on hold by the conquest and oppression of the khans of Kashgar, who invaded the Transoxian kingdom with an army of Getes or Calmucks. 11 From the age of twelve, Timur stepped into action; by the age of twenty-five, 111 he emerged as the savior of his homeland; and the hopes of the people turned to a hero who was suffering for their cause. The leaders of the law and military pledged their lives and resources to support him; but in the moment of peril, they were silent and fearful; and after waiting seven days on the hills of Samarkand, he retreated to the desert with only sixty horsemen. The fleeing group was caught by a thousand Getes, whom he repelled with incredible losses; and his enemies were forced to say, “Timur is a remarkable man: fortune and divine favor are on his side.” However, in this bloody clash, his followers dwindled to ten, a number which soon decreased further with the departure of three Carizmians. 112 He wandered in the desert with his wife, seven companions, and four horses; he spent sixty-two days imprisoned in a filthy dungeon, from which he escaped through his own bravery and the guilt of his captor. After swimming across the wide and swift Jihoon, or Oxus River, he lived for several months as a vagrant and outlaw on the edges of neighboring states. But his reputation flourished amid hardship; he learned to recognize his true friends, the allies of his fortune, and to utilize the diverse characters of people for their benefit and, most importantly, for his own. Upon returning to his homeland, Timur was joined by groups of his supporters who were eagerly searching for him in the wilderness; I cannot resist describing, in his heartfelt simplicity, one of their fortunate reunions. He presented himself as a guide to three chiefs who led seventy horsemen. “When they saw me,” Timur recounts, “they were filled with joy; they got off their horses; they approached and knelt down; they kissed my stirrup. I also dismounted and embraced each of them. I placed my turban on the first chief's head; I bound my jewel-encrusted, gold-embroidered girdle around the waist of the second; and I dressed the third in my own coat. They cried, and I cried too; then the hour for prayer came, and we prayed. We mounted our horses and returned to my home; I gathered my people and threw a feast.” His loyal followers quickly grew with the bravest from the tribes; he led them against a stronger foe; and after a series of military ups and downs, the Getes were eventually expelled from the kingdom of Transoxiana. He had achieved much for his own glory, but a lot still needed to be done, much strategy to employ, and some blood to shed before he could command his equals to obey him as their master. The rise and power of Emir Houssein forced him to accept a corrupt and undeserving ally, whose sister was the most cherished of his wives. Their partnership was brief and filled with jealousy; however, Timur's tactics during their frequent disputes exposed his rival to accusations of unfairness and treachery; and after a final defeat, Houssein was killed by some clever friends who dared to disobey their lord's orders one last time. 113 At thirty-four years old, 12 during a general assembly known as couroultai, he received Imperial command, but he pretended to respect the house of Genghis; while Emir Timur ruled over Zagatai and the East, a nominal khan served in his army as a subordinate. A rich kingdom, five hundred miles long and wide, could have satisfied the ambitions of a subject; yet Timur sought world domination, and before his death, the crown of Zagatai was one of the twenty-seven crowns he placed upon his head. Without dwelling on the victories from thirty-five campaigns or detailing the routes he repeatedly took across the Asian continent, I will briefly summarize his conquests in I. Persia, II. Tartary, and, III. India, 13 and then move on to the more intriguing account of his war against the Ottomans.

607 (return)
[ In the memoirs, the title Gurgân is in one place (p. 23) interpreted the son-in-law; in another (p. 28) as Kurkan, great prince, generalissimo, and prime minister of Jagtai.—M.]

607 (return)
[ In the memoirs, the title Gurgân is interpreted in one place (p. 23) as son-in-law; in another (p. 28) as Kurkan, great prince, general, and prime minister of Jagtai.—M.]

7 (return)
[ After relating some false and foolish tales of Timour Lenc, Arabshah is compelled to speak truth, and to own him for a kinsman of Zingis, per mulieres, (as he peevishly adds,) laqueos Satanæ, (pars i. c. i. p. 25.) The testimony of Abulghazi Khan (P. ii. c. 5, P. v. c. 4) is clear, unquestionable, and decisive.]

7 (return)
[ After sharing some ridiculous and false stories about Timour Lenc, Arabshah has to come clean and acknowledge him as a relative of Zingis, through women, (as he irritably adds,) the snares of Satan, (part i. c. i. p. 25.) The evidence from Abulghazi Khan (P. ii. c. 5, P. v. c. 4) is clear, undeniable, and definitive.]

8 (return)
[ According to one of the pedigrees, the fourth ancestor of Zingis, and the ninth of Timour, were brothers; and they agreed, that the posterity of the elder should succeed to the dignity of khan, and that the descendants of the younger should fill the office of their minister and general. This tradition was at least convenient to justify the first steps of Timour’s ambition, (Institutions, p. 24, 25, from the MS. fragments of Timour’s History.)]

8 (return)
[ According to one of the family trees, Zingis's fourth ancestor and Timour's ninth ancestor were brothers. They agreed that the descendants of the older brother would inherit the title of khan, while the descendants of the younger brother would serve as their minister and general. This tradition was at least useful to justify the initial steps of Timour’s ambitions, (Institutions, p. 24, 25, from the MS. fragments of Timour’s History.)]

9 (return)
[ See the preface of Sherefeddin, and Abulfeda’s Geography, (Chorasmiæ, &c., Descriptio, p. 60, 61,) in the iiid volume of Hudson’s Minor Greek Geographers.]

9 (return)
[Refer to the preface of Sherefeddin and Abulfeda’s Geography, (Chorasmiæ, etc., Description, p. 60, 61,) in the third volume of Hudson’s Minor Greek Geographers.]

10 (return)
[ See his nativity in Dr. Hyde, (Syntagma Dissertat. tom. ii. p. 466,) as it was cast by the astrologers of his grandson Ulugh Beg. He was born, A.D. 1336, April 9, 11º 57'. p. m., lat. 36. I know not whether they can prove the great conjunction of the planets from whence, like other conquerors and prophets, Timour derived the surname of Saheb Keran, or master of the conjunctions, (Bibliot. Orient. p. 878.)]

10 (return)
[ Check out his birth details in Dr. Hyde, (Syntagma Dissertat. vol. ii. p. 466,) as noted by the astrologers of his grandson Ulugh Beg. He was born on April 9, 1336, at 11:57 p.m., latitude 36. I'm not sure if they can confirm the significant planetary alignment from which, like other conquerors and prophets, Timour got the title of Saheb Keran, or master of the conjunctions, (Bibliot. Orient. p. 878.)]

11 (return)
[ In the Institutions of Timour, these subjects of the khan of Kashgar are most improperly styled Ouzbegs, or Usbeks, a name which belongs to another branch and country of Tartars, (Abulghazi, P. v. c. v. P. vii. c. 5.) Could I be sure that this word is in the Turkish original, I would boldly pronounce, that the Institutions were framed a century after the death of Timour, since the establishment of the Usbeks in Transoxiana. * Note: Col. Stewart observes, that the Persian translator has sometimes made use of the name Uzbek by anticipation. He observes, likewise, that these Jits (Getes) are not to be confounded with the ancient Getæ: they were unconverted Turks. Col. Tod (History of Rajasthan, vol. i. p. 166) would identify the Jits with the ancient race.—M.]

11 (return)
[ In the Institutions of Timour, the people who are subjects of the khan of Kashgar are incorrectly referred to as Ouzbegs or Usbeks, a name that actually belongs to a different branch and region of Tartars, (Abulghazi, P. v. c. v. P. vii. c. 5.) If I could be certain that this word appears in the original Turkish text, I would confidently claim that the Institutions were written a century after Timour's death, following the arrival of the Usbeks in Transoxiana. * Note: Col. Stewart points out that the Persian translator has occasionally used the name Uzbek prematurely. He also notes that these Jits (Getes) should not be confused with the ancient Getæ: they were unconverted Turks. Col. Tod (History of Rajasthan, vol. i. p. 166) would link the Jits to the ancient race.—M.]

111 (return)
[ He was twenty-seven before he served his first wars under the emir Houssein, who ruled over Khorasan and Mawerainnehr. Von Hammer, vol. i. p. 262. Neither of these statements agrees with the Memoirs. At twelve he was a boy. “I fancied that I perceived in myself all the signs of greatness and wisdom, and whoever came to visit me, I received with great hauteur and dignity.” At seventeen he undertook the management of the flocks and herds of the family, (p. 24.) At nineteen he became religious, and “left off playing chess,” made a kind of Budhist vow never to injure living thing and felt his foot paralyzed from having accidentally trod upon an ant, (p. 30.) At twenty, thoughts of rebellion and greatness rose in his mind; at twenty-one, he seems to have performed his first feat of arms. He was a practised warrior when he served, in his twenty-seventh year, under Emir Houssein.]

111 (return)
[ He was twenty-seven when he fought in his first wars under Emir Houssein, who ruled over Khorasan and Mawerainnehr. Von Hammer, vol. i. p. 262. Neither of these statements aligns with the Memoirs. At twelve, he was still a boy. “I thought I noticed all the signs of greatness and wisdom in myself, and when anyone came to visit me, I welcomed them with great arrogance and dignity.” By seventeen, he had taken on the responsibility of managing the family’s flocks and herds, (p. 24.) At nineteen, he became religious and “stopped playing chess,” took a sort of Buddhist vow to never harm any living thing, and felt paralyzed in his foot after accidentally stepping on an ant, (p. 30.) At twenty, thoughts of rebellion and greatness began to fill his mind; by twenty-one, he seems to have completed his first military feat. He was an experienced warrior by the time he served under Emir Houssein at the age of twenty-seven.]

112 (return)
[ Compare Memoirs, page 61. The imprisonment is there stated at fifty-three days. “At this time I made a vow to God that I would never keep any person, whether guilty or innocent, for any length of time, in prison or in chains.” p. 63.—M.]

112 (return)
[ Compare Memoirs, page 61. The imprisonment is noted to be fifty-three days. “At that time, I made a vow to God that I would never keep anyone, guilty or innocent, in prison or in chains for any length of time.” p. 63.—M.]

113 (return)
[ Timour, on one occasion, sent him this message: “He who wishes to embrace the bride of royalty must kiss her across the edge of the sharp sword,” p. 83. The scene of the trial of Houssein, the resistance of Timour gradually becoming more feeble, the vengeance of the chiefs becoming proportionably more determined, is strikingly portrayed. Mem. p 130.—M.]

113 (return)
[ Timour, on one occasion, sent him this message: “Anyone who wants to marry into royalty must kiss her over the sharp edge of a sword,” p. 83. The scene of Houssein's trial, with Timour's resistance gradually weakening and the chiefs’ desire for revenge becoming correspondingly stronger, is vividly depicted. Mem. p 130.—M.]

12 (return)
[ The ist book of Sherefeddin is employed on the private life of the hero: and he himself, or his secretary, (Institutions, p. 3—77,) enlarges with pleasure on the thirteen designs and enterprises which most truly constitute his personal merit. It even shines through the dark coloring of Arabshah, (P. i. c. 1—12.)]

12 (return)
[ The first book of Sherefeddin focuses on the hero's private life. He, or his secretary, (Institutions, p. 3—77,) happily elaborates on the thirteen plans and endeavors that genuinely define his personal merit. It even stands out amid the negative portrayal by Arabshah, (P. i. c. 1—12.)]

13 (return)
[ The conquests of Persia, Tartary, and India, are represented in the iid and iiid books of Sherefeddin, and by Arabshah, (c. 13—55.) Consult the excellent Indexes to the Institutions. * Note: Compare the seventh book of Von Hammer, Geschichte des Osmanischen Reiches.—M.]

13 (return)
[ The conquests of Persia, Tartary, and India are covered in the second and third books of Sherefeddin and by Arabshah, (c. 13—55.) Check the excellent indexes related to the Institutions. * Note: See the seventh book of Von Hammer, Geschichte des Osmanischen Reiches.—M.]

I. For every war, a motive of safety or revenge, of honor or zeal, of right or convenience, may be readily found in the jurisprudence of conquerors. No sooner had Timour reunited to the patrimony of Zagatai the dependent countries of Carizme and Candahar, than he turned his eyes towards the kingdoms of Iran or Persia. From the Oxus to the Tigris, that extensive country was left without a lawful sovereign since the death of Abousaid, the last of the descendants of the great Holacou. Peace and justice had been banished from the land above forty years; and the Mogul invader might seem to listen to the cries of an oppressed people. Their petty tyrants might have opposed him with confederate arms: they separately stood, and successively fell; and the difference of their fate was only marked by the promptitude of submission or the obstinacy of resistance. Ibrahim, prince of Shirwan, or Albania, kissed the footstool of the Imperial throne. His peace-offerings of silks, horses, and jewels, were composed, according to the Tartar fashion, each article of nine pieces; but a critical spectator observed, that there were only eight slaves. “I myself am the ninth,” replied Ibrahim, who was prepared for the remark; and his flattery was rewarded by the smile of Timour. 14 Shah Mansour, prince of Fars, or the proper Persia, was one of the least powerful, but most dangerous, of his enemies. In a battle under the walls of Shiraz, he broke, with three or four thousand soldiers, the coul or main body of thirty thousand horse, where the emperor fought in person. No more than fourteen or fifteen guards remained near the standard of Timour: he stood firm as a rock, and received on his helmet two weighty strokes of a cimeter: 15 the Moguls rallied; the head of Mansour was thrown at his feet; and he declared his esteem of the valor of a foe, by extirpating all the males of so intrepid a race. From Shiraz, his troops advanced to the Persian Gulf; and the richness and weakness of Ormuz 16 were displayed in an annual tribute of six hundred thousand dinars of gold. Bagdad was no longer the city of peace, the seat of the caliphs; but the noblest conquest of Holacou could not be overlooked by his ambitious successor. The whole course of the Tigris and Euphrates, from the mouth to the sources of those rivers, was reduced to his obedience: he entered Edessa; and the Turkmans of the black sheep were chastised for the sacrilegious pillage of a caravan of Mecca. In the mountains of Georgia, the native Christians still braved the law and the sword of Mahomet, by three expeditions he obtained the merit of the gazie, or holy war; and the prince of Teflis became his proselyte and friend.

I. For every war, there’s a reason tied to safety or revenge, honor or passion, right or convenience, which conquerors easily justify. As soon as Timour restored the territories of Carizme and Candahar to the legacy of Zagatai, he set his sights on the kingdoms of Iran or Persia. From the Oxus to the Tigris, that vast region had been without a rightful ruler since the death of Abousaid, the last descendant of the great Holacou. Peace and justice had been absent for over forty years, and the Mogul invader might have seemed to heed the cries of an oppressed populace. Their minor tyrants may have united against him, but they were defeated one by one; the only difference in their fates was the speed of their surrender or the stubbornness of their resistance. Ibrahim, prince of Shirwan, or Albania, bowed before the Imperial throne. His peace offerings of silks, horses, and gems were arranged, following the Tartar custom, with each item in sets of nine; however, a keen observer noted there were only eight slaves. “I am the ninth,” Ibrahim cleverly responded, anticipating the comment, and his flattery earned him Timour's smile. 14 Shah Mansour, prince of Fars, or proper Persia, was one of the weakest yet most threatening foes. In a battle near Shiraz, with just three or four thousand troops, he managed to break through the main force of thirty thousand horsemen where the emperor fought personally. Only about fourteen or fifteen guards remained beside Timour's standard; he stood firm as a rock, with two heavy blows from a cimeter landing on his helmet: 15 the Moguls regrouped; Mansour’s head was placed at his feet, and Timour showed his respect for his enemy's bravery by exterminating all the males of that fearless lineage. From Shiraz, his troops moved toward the Persian Gulf, showcasing the wealth and vulnerability of Ormuz 16 through an annual tribute of six hundred thousand dinars in gold. Bagdad was no longer a city of peace, the seat of the caliphs; yet the most notable conquest of Holacou couldn't be ignored by his ambitious successor. The entire stretch of the Tigris and Euphrates, from their mouths to their sources, fell under his rule: he entered Edessa, and the Turkmans of the black sheep were punished for the sacrilegious looting of a caravan from Mecca. In the mountains of Georgia, the local Christians still defied the law and sword of Mahomet; through three campaigns, he gained the honor of the gazie, or holy war; and the prince of Teflis became his follower and ally.

14 (return)
[ The reverence of the Tartars for the mysterious number of nine is declared by Abulghazi Khan, who, for that reason, divides his Genealogical History into nine parts.]

14 (return)
[Abulghazi Khan mentions the Tartars' deep respect for the mysterious number nine, which is why he splits his Genealogical History into nine sections.]

15 (return)
[ According to Arabshah, (P. i. c. 28, p. 183,) the coward Timour ran away to his tent, and hid himself from the pursuit of Shah Mansour under the women’s garments. Perhaps Sherefeddin (l. iii. c. 25) has magnified his courage.]

15 (return)
[ According to Arabshah, (P. i. c. 28, p. 183,) the coward Timour fled to his tent and concealed himself from Shah Mansour's pursuit under women's clothing. Maybe Sherefeddin (l. iii. c. 25) has exaggerated his bravery.]

16 (return)
[ The history of Ormuz is not unlike that of Tyre. The old city, on the continent, was destroyed by the Tartars, and renewed in a neighboring island, without fresh water or vegetation. The kings of Ormuz, rich in the Indian trade and the pearl fishery, possessed large territories both in Persia and Arabia; but they were at first the tributaries of the sultans of Kerman, and at last were delivered (A.D. 1505) by the Portuguese tyrants from the tyranny of their own viziers, (Marco Polo, l. i. c. 15, 16, fol. 7, 8. Abulfeda, Geograph. tabul. xi. p. 261, 262, an original Chronicle of Ormuz, in Texeira, or Stevens’s History of Persia, p. 376—416, and the Itineraries inserted in the ist volume of Ramusio, of Ludovico Barthema, (1503,) fol. 167, of Andrea Corsali, (1517) fol. 202, 203, and of Odoardo Barbessa, (in 1516,) fol. 313—318.)]

16 (return)
[ The history of Ormuz is similar to that of Tyre. The ancient city on the mainland was destroyed by the Tartars and rebuilt on a nearby island that lacked fresh water and vegetation. The kings of Ormuz, wealthy from Indian trade and pearl fishing, held extensive lands in both Persia and Arabia; however, they initially paid tribute to the sultans of Kerman and were eventually freed (A.D. 1505) by the Portuguese rulers from the oppression of their own viziers, (Marco Polo, l. i. c. 15, 16, fol. 7, 8. Abulfeda, Geograph. tabul. xi. p. 261, 262, an original Chronicle of Ormuz, in Texeira, or Stevens’s History of Persia, p. 376—416, and the Itineraries inserted in the 1st volume of Ramusio, of Ludovico Barthema, (1503,) fol. 167, of Andrea Corsali, (1517) fol. 202, 203, and of Odoardo Barbessa, (in 1516,) fol. 313—318.)]

II. A just retaliation might be urged for the invasion of Turkestan, or the Eastern Tartary. The dignity of Timour could not endure the impunity of the Getes: he passed the Sihoon, subdued the kingdom of Kashgar, and marched seven times into the heart of their country. His most distant camp was two months’ journey, or four hundred and eighty leagues to the north-east of Samarcand; and his emirs, who traversed the River Irtish, engraved in the forests of Siberia a rude memorial of their exploits. The conquest of Kipzak, or the Western Tartary, 17 was founded on the double motive of aiding the distressed, and chastising the ungrateful. Toctamish, a fugitive prince, was entertained and protected in his court: the ambassadors of Auruss Khan were dismissed with a haughty denial, and followed on the same day by the armies of Zagatai; and their success established Toctamish in the Mogul empire of the North. But, after a reign of ten years, the new khan forgot the merits and the strength of his benefactor; the base usurper, as he deemed him, of the sacred rights of the house of Zingis. Through the gates of Derbend, he entered Persia at the head of ninety thousand horse: with the innumerable forces of Kipzak, Bulgaria, Circassia, and Russia, he passed the Sihoon, burnt the palaces of Timour, and compelled him, amidst the winter snows, to contend for Samarcand and his life. After a mild expostulation, and a glorious victory, the emperor resolved on revenge; and by the east, and the west, of the Caspian, and the Volga, he twice invaded Kipzak with such mighty powers, that thirteen miles were measured from his right to his left wing. In a march of five months, they rarely beheld the footsteps of man; and their daily subsistence was often trusted to the fortune of the chase. At length the armies encountered each other; but the treachery of the standard-bearer, who, in the heat of action, reversed the Imperial standard of Kipzak, determined the victory of the Zagatais; and Toctamish (I speak the language of the Institutions) gave the tribe of Toushi to the wind of desolation. 18 He fled to the Christian duke of Lithuania; again returned to the banks of the Volga; and, after fifteen battles with a domestic rival, at last perished in the wilds of Siberia. The pursuit of a flying enemy carried Timour into the tributary provinces of Russia: a duke of the reigning family was made prisoner amidst the ruins of his capital; and Yeletz, by the pride and ignorance of the Orientals, might easily be confounded with the genuine metropolis of the nation. Moscow trembled at the approach of the Tartar, and the resistance would have been feeble, since the hopes of the Russians were placed in a miraculous image of the Virgin, to whose protection they ascribed the casual and voluntary retreat of the conqueror. Ambition and prudence recalled him to the South, the desolate country was exhausted, and the Mogul soldiers were enriched with an immense spoil of precious furs, of linen of Antioch, 19 and of ingots of gold and silver. 20 On the banks of the Don, or Tanais, he received an humble deputation from the consuls and merchants of Egypt, 21 Venice, Genoa, Catalonia, and Biscay, who occupied the commerce and city of Tana, or Azoph, at the mouth of the river. They offered their gifts, admired his magnificence, and trusted his royal word. But the peaceful visit of an emir, who explored the state of the magazines and harbor, was speedily followed by the destructive presence of the Tartars. The city was reduced to ashes; the Moslems were pillaged and dismissed; but all the Christians, who had not fled to their ships, were condemned either to death or slavery. 22 Revenge prompted him to burn the cities of Serai and Astrachan, the monuments of rising civilization; and his vanity proclaimed, that he had penetrated to the region of perpetual daylight, a strange phenomenon, which authorized his Mahometan doctors to dispense with the obligation of evening prayer. 23

II. A fair retaliation could be argued for the invasion of Turkestan or Eastern Tartary. The honor of Timour couldn't tolerate the unchecked actions of the Getes: he crossed the Sihoon, conquered the kingdom of Kashgar, and invaded their territory seven times. His farthest camp was two months’ journey, or four hundred and eighty leagues northeast of Samarcand; and his emirs, who crossed the River Irtish, carved a rough memorial of their achievements in the forests of Siberia. The conquest of Kipzak, or Western Tartary, 17 was based on two reasons: helping those in distress and punishing the ungrateful. Toctamish, a prince in exile, was welcomed and protected in Timour's court. The ambassadors of Auruss Khan were dismissed with a proud refusal and were soon followed by the armies of Zagatai; their success helped establish Toctamish in the Mongol empire of the North. However, after ruling for ten years, the new khan forgot the merits and strength of his benefactor, whom he regarded as a lowly usurper of the sacred rights of the Zingis dynasty. Through the gates of Derbend, he invaded Persia with ninety thousand cavalry: with the countless forces of Kipzak, Bulgaria, Circassia, and Russia, he crossed the Sihoon, burned the palaces of Timour, and forced him, amidst the winter snow, to fight for Samarcand and his life. After a measured protest and a glorious victory, the emperor decided to take revenge; he invaded Kipzak twice from the east and west of the Caspian and the Volga with such immense forces that the space between his right and left wing was measured at thirteen miles. During a five-month march, they rarely saw traces of people, and their daily food often depended on the luck of the hunt. Eventually, the two armies met; however, the betrayal of the standard-bearer, who in the heat of battle reversed the Imperial standard of Kipzak, secured the victory for the Zagatais; and Toctamish (to speak in institutional terms) led the tribe of Toushi to destruction. 18 He sought refuge with the Christian duke of Lithuania; returned again to the banks of the Volga; and after fighting fifteen times with a local rival, ultimately perished in the Siberian wilderness. The pursuit of a fleeing enemy led Timour into the tributary regions of Russia: a duke from the ruling family was captured amid the ruins of his capital; and Yeletz, due to the arrogance and ignorance of the Orientals, could easily be mistaken for the true capital of the nation. Moscow quaked at the approach of the Tartar, and any resistance would have been weak, as the Russians relied on a miraculous image of the Virgin for protection, attributing the unexpected retreat of the conqueror to her intervention. Ambition and caution drew him back South; the desolate lands were depleted, and the Mongol soldiers returned rich with vast spoils of precious furs, linen from Antioch, 19 and ingots of gold and silver. 20 By the banks of the Don, or Tanais, he received a humble delegation from the consuls and merchants of Egypt, 21 Venice, Genoa, Catalonia, and Biscay, who controlled the trade and city of Tana, or Azoph, at the river's mouth. They presented their gifts, admired his splendor, and relied on his royal word. Yet, the peaceful visit of an emir, who assessed the state of the storages and harbor, was quickly followed by the destructive arrival of the Tartars. The city was set ablaze; the Muslims were plundered and sent away; but all Christians who hadn’t escaped to their ships faced either death or enslavement. 22 Driven by revenge, he burned the cities of Serai and Astrachan, symbols of burgeoning civilization; and his vanity claimed he had reached the land of perpetual daylight, a strange phenomenon that allowed his Muslim scholars to excuse the obligation of evening prayers. 23

17 (return)
[ Arabshah had travelled into Kipzak, and acquired a singular knowledge of the geography, cities, and revolutions, of that northern region, (P. i. c. 45—49.)]

17 (return)
[ Arabshah traveled into Kipzak and gained unique insight into the geography, cities, and changes of that northern area, (P. i. c. 45—49.)]

18 (return)
[ Institutions of Timour, p. 123, 125. Mr. White, the editor, bestows some animadversion on the superficial account of Sherefeddin, (l. iii. c. 12, 13, 14,) who was ignorant of the designs of Timour, and the true springs of action.]

18 (return)
[Institutions of Timour, p. 123, 125. Mr. White, the editor, comments on the lack of depth in Sherefeddin's account, (l. iii. c. 12, 13, 14,) who was unaware of Timour's intentions and the real motivations behind his actions.]

19 (return)
[ The furs of Russia are more credible than the ingots. But the linen of Antioch has never been famous: and Antioch was in ruins. I suspect that it was some manufacture of Europe, which the Hanse merchants had imported by the way of Novogorod.]

19 (return)
[The furs from Russia are more reliable than the gold bars. But the linen from Antioch has never been well-known: and Antioch was in ruins. I suspect that it was some product from Europe that the Hanse merchants brought in through Novgorod.]

20 (return)
[ M. Levesque (Hist. de Russie, tom. ii. p. 247. Vie de Timour, p. 64—67, before the French version of the Institutes) has corrected the error of Sherefeddin, and marked the true limit of Timour’s conquests. His arguments are superfluous; and a simple appeal to the Russian annals is sufficient to prove that Moscow, which six years before had been taken by Toctamish, escaped the arms of a more formidable invader.]

20 (return)
[ M. Levesque (History of Russia, vol. ii, p. 247. Life of Timur, pp. 64–67, prior to the French version of the Institutes) has corrected Sherefeddin's mistake and identified the actual extent of Timur’s conquests. His arguments are unnecessary; merely referencing the Russian chronicles is enough to show that Moscow, which had been captured by Toctamish six years earlier, avoided the attacks of a more powerful invader.]

21 (return)
[ An Egyptian consul from Grand Cairo is mentioned in Barbaro’s voyage to Tana in 1436, after the city had been rebuilt, (Ramusio, tom. ii. fol. 92.)]

21 (return)
[ An Egyptian consul from Grand Cairo is mentioned in Barbaro’s journey to Tana in 1436, after the city was rebuilt, (Ramusio, tom. ii. fol. 92.)]

22 (return)
[ The sack of Azoph is described by Sherefeddin, (l. iii. c. 55,) and much more particularly by the author of an Italian chronicle, (Andreas de Redusiis de Quero, in Chron. Tarvisiano, in Muratori, Script. Rerum Italicarum, tom. xix. p. 802—805.) He had conversed with the Mianis, two Venetian brothers, one of whom had been sent a deputy to the camp of Timour, and the other had lost at Azoph three sons and 12,000 ducats.]

22 (return)
[ The sack of Azoph is detailed by Sherefeddin, (l. iii. c. 55,) and in even greater detail by the author of an Italian chronicle, (Andreas de Redusiis de Quero, in Chron. Tarvisiano, in Muratori, Script. Rerum Italicarum, tom. xix. p. 802—805.) He spoke with the Mianis, two Venetian brothers, one of whom had been sent as a representative to Timour's camp, and the other had lost three sons and 12,000 ducats at Azoph.]

23 (return)
[ Sherefeddin only says (l. iii. c. 13) that the rays of the setting, and those of the rising sun, were scarcely separated by any interval; a problem which may be solved in the latitude of Moscow, (the 56th degree,) with the aid of the Aurora Borealis, and a long summer twilight. But a day of forty days (Khondemir apud D’Herbelot, p. 880) would rigorously confine us within the polar circle.]

23 (return)
[ Sherefeddin mentions (l. iii. c. 13) that the light from the setting sun and that from the rising sun were hardly separated by any time gap; a situation that can be explained in the latitude of Moscow, (the 56th degree,) with the help of the Aurora Borealis and an extended summer twilight. However, a day lasting forty days (Khondemir apud D’Herbelot, p. 880) would strictly limit us to the polar circle.]

III. When Timour first proposed to his princes and emirs the invasion of India or Hindostan, 24 he was answered by a murmur of discontent: “The rivers! and the mountains and deserts! and the soldiers clad in armor! and the elephants, destroyers of men!” But the displeasure of the emperor was more dreadful than all these terrors; and his superior reason was convinced, that an enterprise of such tremendous aspect was safe and easy in the execution. He was informed by his spies of the weakness and anarchy of Hindostan: the soubahs of the provinces had erected the standard of rebellion; and the perpetual infancy of Sultan Mahmoud was despised even in the harem of Delhi. The Mogul army moved in three great divisions; and Timour observes with pleasure, that the ninety-two squadrons of a thousand horse most fortunately corresponded with the ninety-two names or epithets of the prophet Mahomet. 241 Between the Jihoon and the Indus they crossed one of the ridges of mountains, which are styled by the Arabian geographers The Stony Girdles of the Earth. The highland robbers were subdued or extirpated; but great numbers of men and horses perished in the snow; the emperor himself was let down a precipice on a portable scaffold—the ropes were one hundred and fifty cubits in length; and before he could reach the bottom, this dangerous operation was five times repeated. Timour crossed the Indus at the ordinary passage of Attok; and successively traversed, in the footsteps of Alexander, the Punjab, or five rivers, 25 that fall into the master stream. From Attok to Delhi, the high road measures no more than six hundred miles; but the two conquerors deviated to the south-east; and the motive of Timour was to join his grandson, who had achieved by his command the conquest of Moultan. On the eastern bank of the Hyphasis, on the edge of the desert, the Macedonian hero halted and wept: the Mogul entered the desert, reduced the fortress of Batmir, and stood in arms before the gates of Delhi, a great and flourishing city, which had subsisted three centuries under the dominion of the Mahometan kings. 251 The siege, more especially of the castle, might have been a work of time; but he tempted, by the appearance of weakness, the sultan Mahmoud and his vizier to descend into the plain, with ten thousand cuirassiers, forty thousand of his foot-guards, and one hundred and twenty elephants, whose tusks are said to have been armed with sharp and poisoned daggers. Against these monsters, or rather against the imagination of his troops, he condescended to use some extraordinary precautions of fire and a ditch, of iron spikes and a rampart of bucklers; but the event taught the Moguls to smile at their own fears; and as soon as these unwieldy animals were routed, the inferior species (the men of India) disappeared from the field. Timour made his triumphal entry into the capital of Hindostan; and admired, with a view to imitate, the architecture of the stately mosque; but the order or license of a general pillage and massacre polluted the festival of his victory. He resolved to purify his soldiers in the blood of the idolaters, or Gentoos, who still surpass, in the proportion of ten to one, the numbers of the Moslems. 252 In this pious design, he advanced one hundred miles to the north-east of Delhi, passed the Ganges, fought several battles by land and water, and penetrated to the famous rock of Coupele, the statue of the cow, 253 that seems to discharge the mighty river, whose source is far distant among the mountains of Thibet. 26 His return was along the skirts of the northern hills; nor could this rapid campaign of one year justify the strange foresight of his emirs, that their children in a warm climate would degenerate into a race of Hindoos.

III. When Timour first proposed to his princes and emirs the invasion of India or Hindostan, 24 he was met with a murmur of discontent: “The rivers! The mountains and deserts! The soldiers in armor! The elephants, destroyers of men!” But the emperor’s displeasure was more fearsome than all these threats; and he was convinced by his superior reasoning that an undertaking of such daunting proportions was safe and easy to execute. His spies had informed him of the weakness and chaos in Hindostan: the provincial governors had raised the flag of rebellion; and the constant immaturity of Sultan Mahmoud was disdained even within the harem of Delhi. The Mogul army moved in three large divisions; and Timour took pleasure in noting that the ninety-two squadrons of a thousand horsemen corresponded perfectly with the ninety-two names or titles of the prophet Mahomet. 241 They crossed one of the mountain ridges, referred to by Arabian geographers as The Stony Girdles of the Earth, between the Jihoon and the Indus. The highland bandits were subdued or eliminated; but many men and horses perished in the snow; the emperor himself was lowered down a cliff on a portable scaffold—the ropes were one hundred and fifty cubits long; and before he reached the bottom, this dangerous maneuver was repeated five times. Timour crossed the Indus at the usual crossing at Attok; and followed in Alexander's footsteps through the Punjab, or the five rivers, 25 that flow into the main river. From Attok to Delhi, the main road is only six hundred miles long; but the two conquerors took a southeast detour; and Timour’s reason for this was to meet his grandson, who had conquered Moultan by his command. On the eastern bank of the Hyphasis, at the edge of the desert, the Macedonian hero stopped and wept: the Mogul entered the desert, captured the fortress of Batmir, and stood armed before the gates of Delhi, a great and thriving city that had been under the rule of the Mahometan kings for three centuries. 251 The siege, especially of the castle, could have taken time; but he lured Sultan Mahmoud and his vizier into the plain by feigning weakness, with ten thousand cuirassiers, forty thousand foot soldiers, and one hundred and twenty elephants, whose tusks were said to be fitted with sharp, poisoned daggers. To combat these beasts, or rather to counter the fears of his troops, he took some unusual precautions with fire and a ditch, iron spikes, and a wall of shields; but the outcome taught the Moguls to laugh at their own fears; and as soon as these unwieldy creatures were routed, the lesser beings (the people of India) disappeared from the battlefield. Timour made his triumphant entrance into the capital of Hindostan; and admired, wanting to imitate, the architecture of the grand mosque; but the order for general looting and slaughter tainted the celebration of his victory. He decided to purify his soldiers with the blood of the idolaters, or Gentoos, who still outnumbered the Moslems by ten to one. 252 In this holy mission, he advanced one hundred miles northeast of Delhi, crossed the Ganges, fought several battles both on land and water, and reached the famous Coupele rock, the statue of the cow, 253 that seems to discharge the mighty river, whose source is far away among the mountains of Thibet. 26 He returned along the foothills of the northern mountains; and this swift campaign of one year could not justify the strange fears of his emirs, that their children in a warm climate would turn into a race of Hindoos.

24 (return)
[ For the Indian war, see the Institutions, (p. 129—139,) the fourth book of Sherefeddin, and the history of Ferishta, (in Dow, vol. ii. p. 1—20,) which throws a general light on the affairs of Hindostan.]

24 (return)
[ For the Indian war, see the Institutions, (p. 129—139), the fourth book of Sherefeddin, and the history of Ferishta, (in Dow, vol. ii. p. 1—20), which provides a general overview of the events in Hindostan.]

241 (return)
[ Gibbon (observes M. von Hammer) is mistaken in the correspondence of the ninety-two squadrons of his army with the ninety-two names of God: the names of God are ninety-nine. and Allah is the hundredth, p. 286, note. But Gibbon speaks of the names or epithets of Mahomet, not of God.—M.]

241 (return)
[ Gibbon (points out M. von Hammer) is wrong in linking the ninety-two squadrons of his army to the ninety-two names of God: there are actually ninety-nine names of God, and Allah is the hundredth, p. 286, note. However, Gibbon refers to the names or titles of Muhammad, not of God.—M.]

25 (return)
[ The rivers of the Punjab, the five eastern branches of the Indus, have been laid down for the first time with truth and accuracy in Major Rennel’s incomparable map of Hindostan. In this Critical Memoir he illustrates with judgment and learning the marches of Alexander and Timour. * Note See vol. i. ch. ii. note 1.—M.]

25 (return)
[ The rivers of Punjab, the five eastern branches of the Indus, have been accurately represented for the first time in Major Rennel’s unmatched map of Hindostan. In this Critical Memoir, he skillfully and knowledgeably illustrates the journeys of Alexander and Timour. * Note See vol. i. ch. ii. note 1.—M.]

251 (return)
[ They took, on their march, 100,000 slaves, Guebers they were all murdered. V. Hammer, vol. i. p. 286. They are called idolaters. Briggs’s Ferishta, vol. i. p. 491.—M.]

251 (return)
[ They took 100,000 slaves on their march, and all of them, the Guebers, were killed. V. Hammer, vol. i. p. 286. They are referred to as idolaters. Briggs’s Ferishta, vol. i. p. 491.—M.]

252 (return)
[ See a curious passage on the destruction of the Hindoo idols, Memoirs, p. 15.—M.]

252 (return)
[ Check out an interesting section about the destruction of Hindu idols, Memoirs, p. 15.—M.]

253 (return)
[ Consult the very striking description of the Cow’s Mouth by Captain Hodgson, Asiat. Res. vol. xiv. p. 117. “A most wonderful scene. The B’hagiratha or Ganges issues from under a very low arch at the foot of the grand snow bed. My guide, an illiterate mountaineer compared the pendent icicles to Mahodeva’s hair.” (Compare Poems, Quarterly Rev. vol. xiv. p. 37, and at the end of my translation of Nala.) “Hindoos of research may formerly have been here; and if so, I cannot think of any place to which they might more aptly give the name of a cow’s mouth than to this extraordinary debouche.”—M.]

253 (return)
[ Check out the striking description of the Cow’s Mouth by Captain Hodgson, Asiat. Res. vol. xiv. p. 117. “A truly amazing scene. The B’hagiratha or Ganges flows out from under a very low arch at the base of the grand snow bed. My guide, an uneducated mountaineer, compared the hanging icicles to Mahodeva’s hair.” (See Poems, Quarterly Rev. vol. xiv. p. 37, and at the end of my translation of Nala.) “Hindus who studied this area may have been here in the past; and if so, I can’t think of a place that they could more fittingly name a cow’s mouth than this incredible opening.”—M.]

26 (return)
[ The two great rivers, the Ganges and Burrampooter, rise in Thibet, from the opposite ridges of the same hills, separate from each other to the distance of 1200 miles, and, after a winding course of 2000 miles, again meet in one point near the Gulf of Bengal. Yet so capricious is Fame, that the Burrampooter is a late discovery, while his brother Ganges has been the theme of ancient and modern story Coupele, the scene of Timour’s last victory, must be situate near Loldong, 1100 miles from Calcutta; and in 1774, a British camp! (Rennel’s Memoir, p. 7, 59, 90, 91, 99.)]

26 (return)
[ The two great rivers, the Ganges and the Brahmaputra, originate in Tibet, from the opposite slopes of the same mountains, separating from each other by a distance of 1200 miles. After winding over a course of 2000 miles, they converge again at a single point near the Gulf of Bengal. Yet Fame is so fickle that the Brahmaputra is a recent discovery, while its counterpart, the Ganges, has been the subject of ancient and modern tales. Coupele, the site of Timur’s last victory, is believed to be located near Loldong, 1100 miles from Calcutta; and in 1774, a British camp! (Rennel’s Memoir, p. 7, 59, 90, 91, 99.)]

It was on the banks of the Ganges that Timour was informed, by his speedy messengers, of the disturbances which had arisen on the confines of Georgia and Anatolia, of the revolt of the Christians, and the ambitious designs of the sultan Bajazet. His vigor of mind and body was not impaired by sixty-three years, and innumerable fatigues; and, after enjoying some tranquil months in the palace of Samarcand, he proclaimed a new expedition of seven years into the western countries of Asia. 27 To the soldiers who had served in the Indian war he granted the choice of remaining at home, or following their prince; but the troops of all the provinces and kingdoms of Persia were commanded to assemble at Ispahan, and wait the arrival of the Imperial standard. It was first directed against the Christians of Georgia, who were strong only in their rocks, their castles, and the winter season; but these obstacles were overcome by the zeal and perseverance of Timour: the rebels submitted to the tribute or the Koran; and if both religions boasted of their martyrs, that name is more justly due to the Christian prisoners, who were offered the choice of abjuration or death. On his descent from the hills, the emperor gave audience to the first ambassadors of Bajazet, and opened the hostile correspondence of complaints and menaces, which fermented two years before the final explosion. Between two jealous and haughty neighbors, the motives of quarrel will seldom be wanting. The Mogul and Ottoman conquests now touched each other in the neighborhood of Erzeroum, and the Euphrates; nor had the doubtful limit been ascertained by time and treaty. Each of these ambitious monarchs might accuse his rival of violating his territory, of threatening his vassals, and protecting his rebels; and, by the name of rebels, each understood the fugitive princes, whose kingdoms he had usurped, and whose life or liberty he implacably pursued. The resemblance of character was still more dangerous than the opposition of interest; and in their victorious career, Timour was impatient of an equal, and Bajazet was ignorant of a superior. The first epistle 28 of the Mogul emperor must have provoked, instead of reconciling, the Turkish sultan, whose family and nation he affected to despise. 29 “Dost thou not know, that the greatest part of Asia is subject to our arms and our laws? that our invincible forces extend from one sea to the other? that the potentates of the earth form a line before our gate? and that we have compelled Fortune herself to watch over the prosperity of our empire. What is the foundation of thy insolence and folly? Thou hast fought some battles in the woods of Anatolia; contemptible trophies! Thou hast obtained some victories over the Christians of Europe; thy sword was blessed by the apostle of God; and thy obedience to the precept of the Koran, in waging war against the infidels, is the sole consideration that prevents us from destroying thy country, the frontier and bulwark of the Moslem world. Be wise in time; reflect; repent; and avert the thunder of our vengeance, which is yet suspended over thy head. Thou art no more than a pismire; why wilt thou seek to provoke the elephants? Alas! they will trample thee under their feet.” In his replies, Bajazet poured forth the indignation of a soul which was deeply stung by such unusual contempt. After retorting the basest reproaches on the thief and rebel of the desert, the Ottoman recapitulates his boasted victories in Iran, Touran, and the Indies; and labors to prove, that Timour had never triumphed unless by his own perfidy and the vices of his foes. “Thy armies are innumerable: be they so; but what are the arrows of the flying Tartar against the cimeters and battle-axes of my firm and invincible Janizaries? I will guard the princes who have implored my protection: seek them in my tents. The cities of Arzingan and Erzeroum are mine; and unless the tribute be duly paid, I will demand the arrears under the walls of Tauris and Sultania.” The ungovernable rage of the sultan at length betrayed him to an insult of a more domestic kind. “If I fly from thy arms,” said he, “may my wives be thrice divorced from my bed: but if thou hast not courage to meet me in the field, mayest thou again receive thy wives after they have thrice endured the embraces of a stranger.” 30 Any violation by word or deed of the secrecy of the harem is an unpardonable offence among the Turkish nations; 31 and the political quarrel of the two monarchs was imbittered by private and personal resentment. Yet in his first expedition, Timour was satisfied with the siege and destruction of Siwas or Sebaste, a strong city on the borders of Anatolia; and he revenged the indiscretion of the Ottoman, on a garrison of four thousand Armenians, who were buried alive for the brave and faithful discharge of their duty. 311 As a Mussulman, he seemed to respect the pious occupation of Bajazet, who was still engaged in the blockade of Constantinople; and after this salutary lesson, the Mogul conqueror checked his pursuit, and turned aside to the invasion of Syria and Egypt. In these transactions, the Ottoman prince, by the Orientals, and even by Timour, is styled the Kaissar of Roum, the Cæsar of the Romans; a title which, by a small anticipation, might be given to a monarch who possessed the provinces, and threatened the city, of the successors of Constantine. 32

It was on the banks of the Ganges that Timour learned from his swift messengers about the troubles that had erupted on the borders of Georgia and Anatolia, the revolt of the Christians, and the ambitious plans of Sultan Bajazet. His mental and physical strength remained undiminished by sixty-three years and countless hardships; after enjoying a peaceful few months in the palace of Samarcand, he announced a new seven-year campaign into the western regions of Asia. 27 To the soldiers who had fought in the Indian war, he offered the choice of staying home or following their prince; however, troops from all the provinces and kingdoms of Persia were ordered to gather at Ispahan and await the arrival of the Imperial standard. The initial target was the Christians of Georgia, who were fortified only by their rocky terrain, castles, and winter season; but these challenges were overcome by Timour's enthusiasm and determination: the rebels surrendered to either tribute or the Koran; and although both religions claimed martyrs, that title is more justly given to the Christian prisoners who were forced to choose between renouncing their faith or death. As he descended from the hills, the emperor received the first ambassadors from Bajazet and launched a hostile exchange of grievances and threats that simmered for two years before erupting. In the rivalry between two jealous and proud neighbors, reasons for conflict were never in short supply. The Mogul and Ottoman empires now bordered each other near Erzeroum and the Euphrates; and the uncertain boundary had not been established by time or treaty. Each ambitious monarch could accuse the other of invading his territory, threatening his vassals, and harboring his rebels; and each referred to those rebels as the displaced princes whose kingdoms he had seized and whose lives or freedom he relentlessly pursued. Their similar characters posed a greater danger than any conflicting interests; in their victorious paths, Timour was intolerant of equals, and Bajazet knew no one greater than himself. The first letter 28 from the Mogul emperor likely infuriated rather than reconciled the Turkish sultan, whose family and nation he pretended to scorn. 29 “Don’t you know that most of Asia is under our control and our laws? That our unbeatable forces stretch from one sea to another? That the rulers of the earth line up at our gate? And that we have made Fortune herself watch over the success of our empire? What is the basis of your arrogance and foolishness? You have fought a few battles in the woods of Anatolia; trivial victories! You have won some defeats against the Christians of Europe; your sword was blessed by God’s apostle; and your compliance with the Koran’s command to wage war against the infidels is the only reason we don’t lay waste to your land, the frontier and bulwark of the Muslim world. Be wise; think it over, repent, and avoid the thunder of our vengeance that hangs over your head. You are nothing more than an ant; why do you seek to provoke elephants? Alas! They will crush you underfoot.” In his replies, Bajazet expressed the fury of a soul deeply wounded by such unprecedented disdain. After throwing back the basest accusations at the thief and rebel of the desert, the Ottoman recounted his celebrated victories in Iran, Touran, and the Indies; and worked to prove that Timour had never succeeded except through his own treachery and the failings of his enemies. “Your armies are countless: so what? What are the arrows of the flying Tartar against the scimitars and battle-axes of my firm and unbeatable Janizaries? I will protect the princes who have sought my help; come find them in my tents. The cities of Arzingan and Erzeroum belong to me; and if the tribute is not paid, I will demand the back payments outside the gates of Tauris and Sultania.” In a fit of uncontrollable rage, the sultan eventually let slip a more personal insult. “If I flee from your arms,” he said, “may my wives be thrice divorced from my bed: but if you lack the courage to meet me in battle, may you take back your wives only after they have thrice been embraced by another man.” 30 Any breach of the privacy of the harem is an unforgivable offense among the Turkish people; 31 and the political conflict between the two monarchs was further soured by personal grudges. Yet during his first campaign, Timour was satisfied with the siege and destruction of Siwas or Sebaste, a strong city on the borders of Anatolia; he avenged the indiscretion of the Ottoman on a garrison of four thousand Armenians, who were buried alive for their brave and loyal service. 311 As a Muslim, he seemed to respect Bajazet’s pious effort, who was still engaged in the siege of Constantinople; and after this harsh lesson, the Mogul conqueror halted his pursuit and turned toward invading Syria and Egypt. In these events, the Ottoman prince is referred to by the Orientals and even by Timour as the Kaissar of Roum, the Caesar of the Romans; a title that, with a slight anticipation, could have been applied to a monarch who controlled the provinces and threatened the city of the successors of Constantine. 32

27 (return)
[ See the Institutions, p. 141, to the end of the 1st book, and Sherefeddin, (l. v. c. 1—16,) to the entrance of Timour into Syria.]

27 (return)
[ See the Institutions, p. 141, to the end of the 1st book, and Sherefeddin, (l. v. c. 1—16,) to the entrance of Timour into Syria.]

28 (return)
[ We have three copies of these hostile epistles in the Institutions, (p. 147,) in Sherefeddin, (l. v. c. 14,) and in Arabshah, (tom. ii. c. 19 p. 183—201;) which agree with each other in the spirit and substance rather than in the style. It is probable, that they have been translated, with various latitude, from the Turkish original into the Arabic and Persian tongues. * Note: Von Hammer considers the letter which Gibbon inserted in the text to be spurious. On the various copies of these letters, see his note, p 116.—M.]

28 (return)
[ We have three copies of these hostile letters in the Institutions, (p. 147,) in Sherefeddin, (l. v. c. 14,) and in Arabshah, (tom. ii. c. 19 p. 183—201;) which are similar in meaning and intent, though not in wording. It's likely that they have been translated from the original Turkish into Arabic and Persian with some variations. * Note: Von Hammer believes the letter that Gibbon included in the text is not genuine. For more on the different versions of these letters, see his note, p 116.—M.]

29 (return)
[ The Mogul emir distinguishes himself and his countrymen by the name of Turks, and stigmatizes the race and nation of Bajazet with the less honorable epithet of Turkmans. Yet I do not understand how the Ottomans could be descended from a Turkman sailor; those inland shepherds were so remote from the sea, and all maritime affairs. * Note: Price translated the word pilot or boatman.—M.]

29 (return)
[ The Mogul emir identifies himself and his people as Turks, while he labels Bajazet's race and nation with the less favorable term Turkmans. However, I don't see how the Ottomans could be descendants of a Turkman sailor; those inland shepherds were so far removed from the sea and anything related to maritime activities. * Note: Price translated the word pilot or boatman.—M.]

30 (return)
[ According to the Koran, (c. ii. p. 27, and Sale’s Discourses, p. 134,) Mussulman who had thrice divorced his wife, (who had thrice repeated the words of a divorce,) could not take her again, till after she had been married to, and repudiated by, another husband; an ignominious transaction, which it is needless to aggravate, by supposing that the first husband must see her enjoyed by a second before his face, (Rycaut’s State of the Ottoman Empire, l. ii. c. 21.)]

30 (return)
[ According to the Quran, (c. ii. p. 27, and Sale’s Discourses, p. 134,) a Muslim who has divorced his wife three times (and she has repeated the words of divorce three times) cannot take her back until she has been married to and then divorced by another husband. This is a humiliating situation that doesn’t need to be made worse by imagining that the first husband must witness her being with another man, (Rycaut’s State of the Ottoman Empire, l. ii. c. 21.)]

31 (return)
[ The common delicacy of the Orientals, in never speaking of their women, is ascribed in a much higher degree by Arabshah to the Turkish nations; and it is remarkable enough, that Chalcondyles (l. ii. p. 55) had some knowledge of the prejudice and the insult. * Note: See Von Hammer, p. 308, and note, p. 621.—M.]

31 (return)
[ It's commonly noted that people from the East rarely talk about their women, but Arabshah attributes this trait even more to the Turkish nations. Interestingly, Chalcondyles (l. ii. p. 55) was aware of this bias and the associated insult. * Note: See Von Hammer, p. 308, and note, p. 621.—M.]

311 (return)
[ Still worse barbarities were perpetrated on these brave men. Von Hammer, vol. i. p. 295.—M.]

311 (return)
[ Even more horrific acts were inflicted on these brave men. Von Hammer, vol. i. p. 295.—M.]

32 (return)
[ For the style of the Moguls, see the Institutions, (p. 131, 147,) and for the Persians, the Bibliothèque Orientale, (p. 882;) but I do not find that the title of Cæsar has been applied by the Arabians, or assumed by the Ottomans themselves.]

32 (return)
[ For the style of the Moguls, see the Institutions, (p. 131, 147,) and for the Persians, the Bibliothèque Orientale, (p. 882;) but I do not find that the title of Caesar has been used by the Arabs or taken on by the Ottomans themselves.]

Chapter LXV: Elevation Of Timour Or Tamerlane, And His Death.—Part II.

The military republic of the Mamalukes still reigned in Egypt and Syria: but the dynasty of the Turks was overthrown by that of the Circassians; 33 and their favorite Barkok, from a slave and a prisoner, was raised and restored to the throne. In the midst of rebellion and discord, he braved the menaces, corresponded with the enemies, and detained the ambassadors, of the Mogul, who patiently expected his decease, to revenge the crimes of the father on the feeble reign of his son Farage. The Syrian emirs 34 were assembled at Aleppo to repel the invasion: they confided in the fame and discipline of the Mamalukes, in the temper of their swords and lances of the purest steel of Damascus, in the strength of their walled cities, and in the populousness of sixty thousand villages; and instead of sustaining a siege, they threw open their gates, and arrayed their forces in the plain. But these forces were not cemented by virtue and union; and some powerful emirs had been seduced to desert or betray their more loyal companions. Timour’s front was covered with a line of Indian elephants, whose turrets were filled with archers and Greek fire: the rapid evolutions of his cavalry completed the dismay and disorder; the Syrian crowds fell back on each other: many thousands were stifled or slaughtered in the entrance of the great street; the Moguls entered with the fugitives; and after a short defence, the citadel, the impregnable citadel of Aleppo, was surrendered by cowardice or treachery. Among the suppliants and captives, Timour distinguished the doctors of the law, whom he invited to the dangerous honor of a personal conference. 35 The Mogul prince was a zealous Mussulman; but his Persian schools had taught him to revere the memory of Ali and Hosein; and he had imbibed a deep prejudice against the Syrians, as the enemies of the son of the daughter of the apostle of God. To these doctors he proposed a captious question, which the casuists of Bochara, Samarcand, and Herat, were incapable of resolving. “Who are the true martyrs, of those who are slain on my side, or on that of my enemies?” But he was silenced, or satisfied, by the dexterity of one of the cadhis of Aleppo, who replied in the words of Mahomet himself, that the motive, not the ensign, constitutes the martyr; and that the Moslems of either party, who fight only for the glory of God, may deserve that sacred appellation. The true succession of the caliphs was a controversy of a still more delicate nature; and the frankness of a doctor, too honest for his situation, provoked the emperor to exclaim, “Ye are as false as those of Damascus: Moawiyah was a usurper, Yezid a tyrant, and Ali alone is the lawful successor of the prophet.” A prudent explanation restored his tranquillity; and he passed to a more familiar topic of conversation. “What is your age?” said he to the cadhi. “Fifty years.”—“It would be the age of my eldest son: you see me here (continued Timour) a poor lame, decrepit mortal. Yet by my arm has the Almighty been pleased to subdue the kingdoms of Iran, Touran, and the Indies. I am not a man of blood; and God is my witness, that in all my wars I have never been the aggressor, and that my enemies have always been the authors of their own calamity.” During this peaceful conversation the streets of Aleppo streamed with blood, and reechoed with the cries of mothers and children, with the shrieks of violated virgins. The rich plunder that was abandoned to his soldiers might stimulate their avarice; but their cruelty was enforced by the peremptory command of producing an adequate number of heads, which, according to his custom, were curiously piled in columns and pyramids: the Moguls celebrated the feast of victory, while the surviving Moslems passed the night in tears and in chains. I shall not dwell on the march of the destroyer from Aleppo to Damascus, where he was rudely encountered, and almost overthrown, by the armies of Egypt. A retrograde motion was imputed to his distress and despair: one of his nephews deserted to the enemy; and Syria rejoiced in the tale of his defeat, when the sultan was driven by the revolt of the Mamalukes to escape with precipitation and shame to his palace of Cairo. Abandoned by their prince, the inhabitants of Damascus still defended their walls; and Timour consented to raise the siege, if they would adorn his retreat with a gift or ransom; each article of nine pieces. But no sooner had he introduced himself into the city, under color of a truce, than he perfidiously violated the treaty; imposed a contribution of ten millions of gold; and animated his troops to chastise the posterity of those Syrians who had executed, or approved, the murder of the grandson of Mahomet. A family which had given honorable burial to the head of Hosein, and a colony of artificers, whom he sent to labor at Samarcand, were alone reserved in the general massacre, and after a period of seven centuries, Damascus was reduced to ashes, because a Tartar was moved by religious zeal to avenge the blood of an Arab. The losses and fatigues of the campaign obliged Timour to renounce the conquest of Palestine and Egypt; but in his return to the Euphrates he delivered Aleppo to the flames; and justified his pious motive by the pardon and reward of two thousand sectaries of Ali, who were desirous to visit the tomb of his son. I have expatiated on the personal anecdotes which mark the character of the Mogul hero; but I shall briefly mention, 36 that he erected on the ruins of Bagdad a pyramid of ninety thousand heads; again visited Georgia; encamped on the banks of Araxes; and proclaimed his resolution of marching against the Ottoman emperor. Conscious of the importance of the war, he collected his forces from every province: eight hundred thousand men were enrolled on his military list; 37 but the splendid commands of five, and ten, thousand horse, may be rather expressive of the rank and pension of the chiefs, than of the genuine number of effective soldiers. 38 In the pillage of Syria, the Moguls had acquired immense riches: but the delivery of their pay and arrears for seven years more firmly attached them to the Imperial standard.

The military republic of the Mamalukes still ruled in Egypt and Syria: but the Turk dynasty was overthrown by the Circassians; 33 and their favorite Barkok, who was once a slave and a prisoner, was elevated and restored to the throne. In the midst of rebellion and chaos, he faced threats, communicated with enemies, and held the ambassadors of the Mogul, who patiently awaited his death, to take revenge for his father's crimes on the weak rule of his son Farage. The Syrian emirs 34 gathered in Aleppo to fend off the invasion: they relied on the reputation and discipline of the Mamalukes, the sharpness of their swords and lances made from the finest Damascus steel, the fortifications of their cities, and the population of sixty thousand villages; instead of holding out against a siege, they opened their gates and gathered their forces in the plain. But these forces weren't united by loyalty and strength; some powerful emirs had been tempted to abandon or betray their more loyal partners. Timour’s army was led by a line of Indian elephants, whose towers were filled with archers and Greek fire: the swift movements of his cavalry added to the chaos and panic; the Syrian crowds pushed back against one another: thousands were crushed or killed at the entrance of the main street; the Moguls surged in with the fleeing crowd; and after a brief defense, the citadel, the seemingly impregnable citadel of Aleppo, was surrendered due to cowardice or treachery. Among the supplicants and captives, Timour singled out the law doctors, inviting them to a risky personal meeting. 35 The Mogul prince was a devout Muslim; but his Persian education taught him to honor the memory of Ali and Hosein, and he had developed a strong bias against the Syrians, viewing them as enemies of the Prophet's family. He posed a tricky question to these doctors, one that the legal scholars of Bochara, Samarcand, and Herat couldn't answer: “Who are the true martyrs, those killed on my side or on my enemies'?” But he was either silenced or satisfied by the clever reply of one of the cadhis of Aleppo, who quoted Mahomet, stating that the intention, not the banner, defines a martyr; and that Muslims from either side, who fight only for the glory of God, could earn that revered title. The succession of the caliphs was an even more sensitive topic; the outspokenness of a doctor, too honest for his position, prompted the emperor to exclaim, “You are as deceitful as those from Damascus: Moawiyah was a usurper, Yezid a tyrant, and Ali is the rightful successor to the prophet.” A careful explanation calmed him down, and he shifted to a more casual topic. “How old are you?” he asked the cadhi. “Fifty years.”—“That’s the age of my oldest son: here I am (continued Timour) a poor, lame, decrepit being. Yet by my hand, the Almighty has chosen to conquer the kingdoms of Iran, Touran, and the Indies. I am not a man of blood; and God is my witness, that in all my wars I have never instigated conflict, and that my enemies have always brought their own disasters upon themselves.” During this calm conversation, the streets of Aleppo flowed with blood, echoing with the screams of mothers and children, and the cries of assaulted women. The wealth left unclaimed by his soldiers might have fueled their greed; but their brutality was enforced by a strict order to present a sufficient number of heads, which, as per his usual practice, were meticulously piled into columns and pyramids: the Moguls celebrated their victory while the surviving Muslims spent the night in tears and captivity. I will not dwell on the path of destruction from Aleppo to Damascus, where he faced a harsh confrontation and was nearly defeated by the armies of Egypt. His retrograde movement was blamed on distress and despair: one of his nephews defected to the enemy; and Syria reveled in reports of his defeat, as the sultan was forced to flee in shame and haste to his palace in Cairo. Abandoned by their leader, the people of Damascus continued to defend their walls; and Timour agreed to lift the siege if they would make his retreat worthwhile with a gift or ransom; each item to be nine pieces. But no sooner had he entered the city under the guise of a truce, than he treacherously broke the agreement; imposed a demand for ten million gold coins; and urged his troops to punish the descendants of those Syrians who had carried out or sanctioned the murder of the grandson of Mahomet. A family that had given a proper burial to the head of Hosein, and a group of craftsmen he sent to work in Samarcand, were the only ones spared in the general slaughter, and after seven centuries, Damascus was set ablaze, because a Tartar was moved by religious fervor to avenge the blood of an Arab. The losses and exhaustion of the campaign forced Timour to give up on conquering Palestine and Egypt; but on his way back to the Euphrates, he burned Aleppo to the ground; and justified his pious motives by granting forgiveness and rewards to two thousand followers of Ali, who wished to pay their respects at the tomb of his son. I have elaborated on the personal anecdotes that illustrate the character of the Mogul hero; but I will briefly mention, 36 that he built a pyramid of ninety thousand heads on the ruins of Bagdad; returned to Georgia; camped along the banks of Araxes; and declared his intent to march against the Ottoman emperor. Aware of the significance of the war, he gathered forces from every region: eight hundred thousand men were listed on his military roster; 37 but the grand titles of five and ten thousand horsemen may reflect more of the rank and pension of the leaders than the actual number of effective soldiers. 38 In the plundering of Syria, the Moguls amassed great wealth: but the payment of their wages and back pay for seven years further solidified their loyalty to the Imperial standard.

33 (return)
[ See the reigns of Barkok and Pharadge, in M. De Guignes, (tom. iv. l. xxii.,) who, from the Arabic texts of Aboulmahasen, Ebn (Schounah, and Aintabi, has added some facts to our common stock of materials.)]

33 (return)
[ See the reigns of Barkok and Pharadge in M. De Guignes, (vol. iv, ch. xxii,) who has added some facts to our common knowledge base from the Arabic texts of Aboulmahasen, Ebn (Schounah), and Aintabi.]

34 (return)
[ For these recent and domestic transactions, Arabshah, though a partial, is a credible, witness, (tom. i. c. 64—68, tom. ii. c. 1—14.) Timour must have been odious to a Syrian; but the notoriety of facts would have obliged him, in some measure, to respect his enemy and himself. His bitters may correct the luscious sweets of Sherefeddin, (l. v. c. 17—29.)]

34 (return)
[ For these recent domestic transactions, Arabshah, while not completely unbiased, is a credible witness, (vol. i, ch. 64–68; vol. ii, ch. 1–14.) Timour must have been detestable to a Syrian; however, the well-known facts would have compelled him to respect both his enemy and himself to some extent. His criticisms may balance out the overly sweet praise of Sherefeddin, (l. v, ch. 17–29.)]

35 (return)
[ These interesting conversations appear to have been copied by Arabshah (tom. i. c. 68, p. 625—645) from the cadhi and historian Ebn Schounah, a principal actor. Yet how could he be alive seventy-five years afterwards? (D’Herbelot, p. 792.)]

35 (return)
[ These intriguing conversations seem to have been taken by Arabshah (vol. i, ch. 68, pp. 625—645) from the cadhi and historian Ebn Schounah, a key participant. But how could he still be alive seventy-five years later? (D’Herbelot, p. 792.)]

36 (return)
[ The marches and occupations of Timour between the Syrian and Ottoman wars are represented by Sherefeddin (l. v. c. 29—43) and Arabshah, (tom. ii. c. 15—18.)]

36 (return)
[ The marches and occupations of Timour between the Syrian and Ottoman wars are described by Sherefeddin (l. v. c. 29—43) and Arabshah, (tom. ii. c. 15—18.)]

37 (return)
[ This number of 800,000 was extracted by Arabshah, or rather by Ebn Schounah, ex rationario Timuri, on the faith of a Carizmian officer, (tom. i. c. 68, p. 617;) and it is remarkable enough, that a Greek historian (Phranza, l. i. c. 29) adds no more than 20,000 men. Poggius reckons 1,000,000; another Latin contemporary (Chron. Tarvisianum, apud Muratori, tom. xix. p. 800) 1,100,000; and the enormous sum of 1,600,000 is attested by a German soldier, who was present at the battle of Angora, (Leunclav. ad Chalcondyl. l. iii. p. 82.) Timour, in his Institutions, has not deigned to calculate his troops, his subjects, or his revenues.]

37 (return)
[ This number of 800,000 was reported by Arabshah, or more accurately by Ebn Schounah, based on the account of a Carizmian officer (tom. i. c. 68, p. 617); and it’s quite notable that a Greek historian (Phranza, l. i. c. 29) mentions only 20,000 men. Poggius estimates it at 1,000,000; another Latin contemporary (Chron. Tarvisianum, apud Muratori, tom. xix. p. 800) claims 1,100,000; and a staggering total of 1,600,000 is cited by a German soldier who witnessed the battle of Angora (Leunclav. ad Chalcondyl. l. iii. p. 82). Timour, in his Institutions, didn't bother to count his troops, his subjects, or his income.]

38 (return)
[ A wide latitude of non-effectives was allowed by the Great Mogul for his own pride and the benefit of his officers. Bernier’s patron was Penge-Hazari, commander of 5000 horse; of which he maintained no more than 500, (Voyages, tom. i. p. 288, 289.)]

38 (return)
[ The Great Mogul allowed a wide range of non-effective positions for his own pride and to benefit his officers. Bernier’s patron was Penge-Hazari, who commanded 5,000 horsemen but only maintained about 500 of them. (Voyages, tom. i. p. 288, 289.)]

During this diversion of the Mogul arms, Bajazet had two years to collect his forces for a more serious encounter. They consisted of four hundred thousand horse and foot, 39 whose merit and fidelity were of an unequal complexion. We may discriminate the Janizaries, who have been gradually raised to an establishment of forty thousand men; a national cavalry, the Spahis of modern times; twenty thousand cuirassiers of Europe, clad in black and impenetrable armor; the troops of Anatolia, whose princes had taken refuge in the camp of Timour, and a colony of Tartars, whom he had driven from Kipzak, and to whom Bajazet had assigned a settlement in the plains of Adrianople. The fearless confidence of the sultan urged him to meet his antagonist; and, as if he had chosen that spot for revenge, he displayed his banner near the ruins of the unfortunate Suvas. In the mean while, Timour moved from the Araxes through the countries of Armenia and Anatolia: his boldness was secured by the wisest precautions; his speed was guided by order and discipline; and the woods, the mountains, and the rivers, were diligently explored by the flying squadrons, who marked his road and preceded his standard. Firm in his plan of fighting in the heart of the Ottoman kingdom, he avoided their camp; dexterously inclined to the left; occupied Cæsarea; traversed the salt desert and the River Halys; and invested Angora: while the sultan, immovable and ignorant in his post, compared the Tartar swiftness to the crawling of a snail; 40 he returned on the wings of indignation to the relief of Angora: and as both generals were alike impatient for action, the plains round that city were the scene of a memorable battle, which has immortalized the glory of Timour and the shame of Bajazet. For this signal victory the Mogul emperor was indebted to himself, to the genius of the moment, and the discipline of thirty years. He had improved the tactics, without violating the manners, of his nation, 41 whose force still consisted in the missile weapons, and rapid evolutions, of a numerous cavalry. From a single troop to a great army, the mode of attack was the same: a foremost line first advanced to the charge, and was supported in a just order by the squadrons of the great vanguard. The general’s eye watched over the field, and at his command the front and rear of the right and left wings successively moved forwards in their several divisions, and in a direct or oblique line: the enemy was pressed by eighteen or twenty attacks; and each attack afforded a chance of victory. If they all proved fruitless or unsuccessful, the occasion was worthy of the emperor himself, who gave the signal of advancing to the standard and main body, which he led in person. 42 But in the battle of Angora, the main body itself was supported, on the flanks and in the rear, by the bravest squadrons of the reserve, commanded by the sons and grandsons of Timour. The conqueror of Hindostan ostentatiously showed a line of elephants, the trophies, rather than the instruments, of victory; the use of the Greek fire was familiar to the Moguls and Ottomans; but had they borrowed from Europe the recent invention of gunpowder and cannon, the artificial thunder, in the hands of either nation, must have turned the fortune of the day. 43 In that day Bajazet displayed the qualities of a soldier and a chief: but his genius sunk under a stronger ascendant; and, from various motives, the greatest part of his troops failed him in the decisive moment. His rigor and avarice 431 had provoked a mutiny among the Turks; and even his son Soliman too hastily withdrew from the field. The forces of Anatolia, loyal in their revolt, were drawn away to the banners of their lawful princes. His Tartar allies had been tempted by the letters and emissaries of Timour; 44 who reproached their ignoble servitude under the slaves of their fathers; and offered to their hopes the dominion of their new, or the liberty of their ancient, country. In the right wing of Bajazet the cuirassiers of Europe charged, with faithful hearts and irresistible arms: but these men of iron were soon broken by an artful flight and headlong pursuit; and the Janizaries, alone, without cavalry or missile weapons, were encompassed by the circle of the Mogul hunters. Their valor was at length oppressed by heat, thirst, and the weight of numbers; and the unfortunate sultan, afflicted with the gout in his hands and feet, was transported from the field on the fleetest of his horses. He was pursued and taken by the titular khan of Zagatai; and, after his capture, and the defeat of the Ottoman powers, the kingdom of Anatolia submitted to the conqueror, who planted his standard at Kiotahia, and dispersed on all sides the ministers of rapine and destruction. Mirza Mehemmed Sultan, the eldest and best beloved of his grandsons, was despatched to Boursa, with thirty thousand horse; and such was his youthful ardor, that he arrived with only four thousand at the gates of the capital, after performing in five days a march of two hundred and thirty miles. Yet fear is still more rapid in its course; and Soliman, the son of Bajazet, had already passed over to Europe with the royal treasure. The spoil, however, of the palace and city was immense: the inhabitants had escaped; but the buildings, for the most part of wood, were reduced to ashes. From Boursa, the grandson of Timour advanced to Nice, ever yet a fair and flourishing city; and the Mogul squadrons were only stopped by the waves of the Propontis. The same success attended the other mirzas and emirs in their excursions; and Smyrna, defended by the zeal and courage of the Rhodian knights, alone deserved the presence of the emperor himself. After an obstinate defence, the place was taken by storm: all that breathed was put to the sword; and the heads of the Christian heroes were launched from the engines, on board of two carracks, or great ships of Europe, that rode at anchor in the harbor. The Moslems of Asia rejoiced in their deliverance from a dangerous and domestic foe; and a parallel was drawn between the two rivals, by observing that Timour, in fourteen days, had reduced a fortress which had sustained seven years the siege, or at least the blockade, of Bajazet. 45

During the distraction caused by the Mogul forces, Bajazet had two years to gather his troops for a more serious confrontation. His army included four hundred thousand soldiers, 39 whose loyalty and skill varied greatly. Among them were the Janizaries, who had built up to an establishment of forty thousand men; a national cavalry known as the Spahis; twenty thousand European cuirassiers, clad in black and impenetrable armor; troops from Anatolia, whose princes had sought refuge in Timour's camp; and a group of Tartars, displaced from Kipzak, to whom Bajazet had granted land in the plains of Adrianople. Confident in his strength, the sultan aimed to face his opponent head-on, and seemingly chose that location for revenge, setting up his banner near the ruins of the unfortunate Suvas. Meanwhile, Timour advanced from the Araxes through Armenia and Anatolia: his bold approach was backed by careful strategy; his swift movements were organized and disciplined; and his scouting units thoroughly explored the terrain, marking his path and preceding his standard. Committed to fighting in the heart of the Ottoman territory, he chose to bypass their camp, cleverly veering to the left, capturing Cæsarea, crossing the salt desert and the River Halys, and laying siege to Angora. Meanwhile, the sultan, remaining stationary and unaware in his position, compared the speed of the Tartars to that of a snail; 40 and he rushed back in anger to aid Angora: as both commanders were equally eager for battle, the open fields around the city became the site of a significant confrontation that would forever commemorate Timour's glory and Bajazet's disgrace. For this remarkable victory, the Mogul emperor owed it to himself, the circumstances of the moment, and the thirty years of discipline he had enforced. He refined the tactics while respecting the traditions of his people, 41 who continued to rely on missile weapons and fast maneuvers from their numerous cavalry. The method of attack remained consistent whether fighting a small unit or a large army: an initial line would charge forward, supported properly by the squadrons of the main vanguard. The general's watchful eye kept track of the battlefield, and upon his orders, the front and rear of the left and right wings advanced in their respective divisions, either in a straight or diagonal line: the enemy faced eighteen or twenty waves of attacks; and each wave offered a chance for victory. If they all failed, the situation was still significant enough for the emperor, who would signal the advancement of the standard and the core troops, which he led himself. 42 However, during the battle of Angora, the main force was backed on the flanks and in the rear by the bravest reserve squadrons, led by Timour's sons and grandsons. The conqueror of Hindostan prominently displayed a line of elephants, symbols of victory rather than tools for battle; the Mongols and Ottomans were familiar with Greek fire; but had they adopted the recent European invention of gunpowder and cannon, the man-made thunder in either nation's hands might have changed the day's outcome. 43 That day, Bajazet showcased the qualities of a soldier and a leader: but his capabilities were overshadowed by a more powerful presence; and for various reasons, a large portion of his troops abandoned him at the crucial moment. His harshness and greed 431 stirred rebellion among the Turks; even his son Soliman hastily retreated from the battlefield. The Anatolian forces, loyal in their defection, rallied to the banners of their rightful princes. His Tartar allies had been swayed by Timour’s letters and envoys; 44 they were reminded of their lowly servitude under the conquerors of their ancestors and were offered the promise of ruling their new land or regaining the freedom of their old country. In Bajazet's right wing, the European cuirassiers charged forth, with loyal hearts and unstoppable arms: however, these iron-clad troops were soon broken by a clever retreat and reckless pursuit; and the Janizaries, left alone without cavalry or missile weapons, found themselves surrounded by the Mogul adversaries. Their courage eventually gave way to exhaustion, thirst, and overwhelming numbers; the unfortunate sultan, suffering from gout in his hands and feet, was carried from the field on the fastest of his horses. He was pursued and captured by the titular khan of Zagatai; and following his capture and the defeat of the Ottoman forces, the kingdom of Anatolia submitted to the conqueror, who set his standard at Kiotahia and dispatched many agents of plunder and destruction throughout the land. Mirza Mehemmed Sultan, the eldest and most cherished of his grandsons, was sent to Boursa with thirty thousand cavalry; such was his youthful enthusiasm that he arrived at the city gates with only four thousand after completing a two hundred and thirty-mile journey in five days. Yet fear is even faster; and Soliman, Bajazet's son, had already fled to Europe with the royal treasury. Nonetheless, the loot from the palace and city was enormous: the residents had escaped, but most of the wooden buildings were burned to the ground. From Boursa, Timour's grandson moved on to Nice, still a beautiful and thriving city; and the Mongol cavalry was only halted by the waves of the Propontis. The same success followed the other mirzas and emirs in their campaigns; and Smyrna, defended by the zeal and bravery of the Rhodian knights, was the only place worthy of the emperor’s personal attention. After a fierce defense, the city was stormed: everyone who lived there was slaughtered; and the heads of the Christian knights were launched from engines onto two large ships from Europe anchored in the harbor. The Muslims of Asia celebrated their liberation from a dangerous domestic enemy; and a comparison was made between the two rivals, noting that Timour had taken a fortress in fourteen days that had withstood Bajazet's siege, or at least blockade, for seven years. 45

39 (return)
[ Timour himself fixes at 400,000 men the Ottoman army, (Institutions, p. 153,) which is reduced to 150,000 by Phranza, (l. i. c. 29,) and swelled by the German soldier to 1,400,000. It is evident that the Moguls were the more numerous.]

39 (return)
[ Timour estimates the Ottoman army at 400,000 men, (Institutions, p. 153,) but Phranza reduces that number to 150,000, (l. i. c. 29,) while the German soldiers boost it up to 1,400,000. It's clear that the Moguls had the larger numbers.]

40 (return)
[ It may not be useless to mark the distances between Angora and the neighboring cities, by the journeys of the caravans, each of twenty or twenty-five miles; to Smyrna xx., to Kiotahia x., to Boursa x., to Cæsarea, viii., to Sinope x., to Nicomedia ix., to Constantinople xii. or xiii., (see Tournefort, Voyage au Levant, tom. ii. lettre xxi.)]

40 (return)
[It might be helpful to note the distances between Angora and the nearby cities based on the journeys of the caravans, which travel around twenty to twenty-five miles; to Smyrna xx., to Kiotahia x., to Boursa x., to Cæsarea viii., to Sinope x., to Nicomedia ix., to Constantinople xii. or xiii., (see Tournefort, Voyage au Levant, tom. ii. lettre xxi.)]

41 (return)
[ See the Systems of Tactics in the Institutions, which the English editors have illustrated with elaborate plans, (p. 373—407.)]

41 (return)
[ Check out the Systems of Tactics in the Institutions, which the English editors have detailed with comprehensive plans, (p. 373—407.)]

42 (return)
[ The sultan himself (says Timour) must then put the foot of courage into the stirrup of patience. A Tartar metaphor, which is lost in the English, but preserved in the French, version of the Institutes, (p. 156, 157.)]

42 (return)
[ The sultan himself (Timour says) must then step into the stirrup of patience with the foot of courage. It's a Tartar metaphor that gets lost in the English version, but is preserved in the French version of the Institutes, (p. 156, 157.)]

43 (return)
[ The Greek fire, on Timour’s side, is attested by Sherefeddin, (l. v. c. 47;) but Voltaire’s strange suspicion, that some cannon, inscribed with strange characters, must have been sent by that monarch to Delhi, is refuted by the universal silence of contemporaries.]

43 (return)
[ The Greek fire, on Timour’s side, is confirmed by Sherefeddin, (l. v. c. 47;) but Voltaire’s bizarre theory, that some cannons marked with unusual symbols must have been sent by that ruler to Delhi, is disproved by the total silence of those at the time.]

431 (return)
[ See V. Hammer, vol. i. p. 310, for the singular hints which were conveyed to him of the wisdom of unlocking his hoarded treasures.—M.]

431 (return)
[ See V. Hammer, vol. i. p. 310, for the unique insights he received about the importance of sharing his hidden treasures.—M.]

44 (return)
[ Timour has dissembled this secret and important negotiation with the Tartars, which is indisputably proved by the joint evidence of the Arabian, (tom. i. c. 47, p. 391,) Turkish, (Annal. Leunclav. p. 321,) and Persian historians, (Khondemir, apud d’Herbelot, p. 882.)]

44 (return)
[ Timour has hidden this crucial negotiation with the Tartars, which is clearly supported by the combined accounts of the Arabian, (tom. i. c. 47, p. 391,) Turkish, (Annal. Leunclav. p. 321,) and Persian historians, (Khondemir, apud d’Herbelot, p. 882.)]

45 (return)
[ For the war of Anatolia or Roum, I add some hints in the Institutions, to the copious narratives of Sherefeddin (l. v. c. 44—65) and Arabshah, (tom. ii. c. 20—35.) On this part only of Timour’s history it is lawful to quote the Turks, (Cantemir, p. 53—55, Annal. Leunclav. p. 320—322,) and the Greeks, (Phranza, l. i. c. 59, Ducas, c. 15—17, Chalcondyles, l. iii.)]

45 (return)
[ For the war in Anatolia or Roum, I add some insights in the Institutions, alongside the detailed accounts of Sherefeddin (l. v. c. 44—65) and Arabshah (tom. ii. c. 20—35). Regarding this part of Timour’s history, it’s appropriate to reference the Turks (Cantemir, p. 53—55, Annal. Leunclav. p. 320—322) and the Greeks (Phranza, l. i. c. 59, Ducas, c. 15—17, Chalcondyles, l. iii.)]

The iron cage in which Bajazet was imprisoned by Tamerlane, so long and so often repeated as a moral lesson, is now rejected as a fable by the modern writers, who smile at the vulgar credulity. 46 They appeal with confidence to the Persian history of Sherefeddin Ali, which has been given to our curiosity in a French version, and from which I shall collect and abridge a more specious narrative of this memorable transaction. No sooner was Timour informed that the captive Ottoman was at the door of his tent, than he graciously stepped forwards to receive him, seated him by his side, and mingled with just reproaches a soothing pity for his rank and misfortune. “Alas!” said the emperor, “the decree of fate is now accomplished by your own fault; it is the web which you have woven, the thorns of the tree which yourself have planted. I wished to spare, and even to assist, the champion of the Moslems; you braved our threats; you despised our friendship; you forced us to enter your kingdom with our invincible armies. Behold the event. Had you vanquished, I am not ignorant of the fate which you reserved for myself and my troops. But I disdain to retaliate: your life and honor are secure; and I shall express my gratitude to God by my clemency to man.” The royal captive showed some signs of repentance, accepted the humiliation of a robe of honor, and embraced with tears his son Mousa, who, at his request, was sought and found among the captives of the field. The Ottoman princes were lodged in a splendid pavilion; and the respect of the guards could be surpassed only by their vigilance. On the arrival of the harem from Boursa, Timour restored the queen Despina and her daughter to their father and husband; but he piously required, that the Servian princess, who had hitherto been indulged in the profession of Christianity, should embrace without delay the religion of the prophet. In the feast of victory, to which Bajazet was invited, the Mogul emperor placed a crown on his head and a sceptre in his hand, with a solemn assurance of restoring him with an increase of glory to the throne of his ancestors. But the effect of his promise was disappointed by the sultan’s untimely death: amidst the care of the most skilful physicians, he expired of an apoplexy at Akshehr, the Antioch of Pisidia, about nine months after his defeat. The victor dropped a tear over his grave: his body, with royal pomp, was conveyed to the mausoleum which he had erected at Boursa; and his son Mousa, after receiving a rich present of gold and jewels, of horses and arms, was invested by a patent in red ink with the kingdom of Anatolia.

The iron cage in which Bajazet was held captive by Tamerlane, often repeated as a moral lesson, is now dismissed as a myth by modern writers, who find it hard to believe. 46 They confidently refer to the Persian history of Sherefeddin Ali, available to us in a French translation, from which I'll gather and shorten a more convincing version of this notable event. As soon as Timour learned that the captive Ottoman was at the entrance of his tent, he graciously went out to welcome him, seated him next to him, and combined his resentments with a compassionate understanding of Bajazet’s status and misfortunes. “Alas!” said the emperor, “the decree of fate has now come to pass through your own actions; it’s the web you’ve woven, the thorns of the tree you’ve planted. I intended to spare, and even support, the champion of the Moslems; you dared our threats; you turned away our friendship; you compelled us to invade your kingdom with our unbeatable armies. Look at the outcome. Had you won, I know well the fate you had planned for me and my troops. But I refuse to seek revenge: your life and honor are safe; and I will show my gratitude to God through my mercy toward you.” The royal captive exhibited signs of remorse, accepted the humiliation of an honorable robe, and wept as he embraced his son Mousa, who, at his request, was found among the captured men. The Ottoman princes were housed in a lavish pavilion, with the guards’ respect only matched by their vigilance. When the harem arrived from Boursa, Timour returned Queen Despina and her daughter to their father and husband; however, he insisted that the Serbian princess, who had previously been allowed to practice Christianity, must promptly convert to the religion of the prophet. During the victory feast to which Bajazet was invited, the Mongol emperor placed a crown on his head and a scepter in his hand, assuring him he would be restored with greater glory to the throne of his ancestors. Unfortunately, this promise was cut short by the sultan’s premature death: despite the care of the most skilled physicians, he died from a stroke in Akshehr, the Antioch of Pisidia, about nine months after his defeat. The victor shed a tear at his grave; his body was taken with royal honors to the mausoleum he had built in Boursa, and his son Mousa, after receiving a generous gift of gold, jewels, horses, and arms, was officially granted the kingdom of Anatolia with a patent in red ink.

46 (return)
[ The scepticism of Voltaire (Essai sur l’Histoire Générale, c. 88) is ready on this, as on every occasion, to reject a popular tale, and to diminish the magnitude of vice and virtue; and on most occasions his incredulity is reasonable.]

46 (return)
[Voltaire's skepticism (Essai sur l’Histoire Générale, c. 88) is always ready to dismiss a popular story and to downplay the importance of good and evil; and in many cases, his doubt is justified.]

Such is the portrait of a generous conqueror, which has been extracted from his own memorials, and dedicated to his son and grandson, nineteen years after his decease; 47 and, at a time when the truth was remembered by thousands, a manifest falsehood would have implied a satire on his real conduct. Weighty indeed is this evidence, adopted by all the Persian histories; 48 yet flattery, more especially in the East, is base and audacious; and the harsh and ignominious treatment of Bajazet is attested by a chain of witnesses, some of whom shall be produced in the order of their time and country. 1. The reader has not forgot the garrison of French, whom the marshal Boucicault left behind him for the defence of Constantinople. They were on the spot to receive the earliest and most faithful intelligence of the overthrow of their great adversary; and it is more than probable, that some of them accompanied the Greek embassy to the camp of Tamerlane. From their account, the hardships of the prison and death of Bajazet are affirmed by the marshal’s servant and historian, within the distance of seven years. 49 2. The name of Poggius the Italian 50 is deservedly famous among the revivers of learning in the fifteenth century. His elegant dialogue on the vicissitudes of fortune 51 was composed in his fiftieth year, twenty-eight years after the Turkish victory of Tamerlane; 52 whom he celebrates as not inferior to the illustrious Barbarians of antiquity. Of his exploits and discipline Poggius was informed by several ocular witnesses; nor does he forget an example so apposite to his theme as the Ottoman monarch, whom the Scythian confined like a wild beast in an iron cage, and exhibited a spectacle to Asia. I might add the authority of two Italian chronicles, perhaps of an earlier date, which would prove at least that the same story, whether false or true, was imported into Europe with the first tidings of the revolution. 53 3. At the time when Poggius flourished at Rome, Ahmed Ebn Arabshah composed at Damascus the florid and malevolent history of Timour, for which he had collected materials in his journeys over Turkey and Tartary. 54 Without any possible correspondence between the Latin and the Arabian writer, they agree in the fact of the iron cage; and their agreement is a striking proof of their common veracity. Ahmed Arabshah likewise relates another outrage, which Bajazet endured, of a more domestic and tender nature. His indiscreet mention of women and divorces was deeply resented by the jealous Tartar: in the feast of victory the wine was served by female cupbearers, and the sultan beheld his own concubines and wives confounded among the slaves, and exposed without a veil to the eyes of intemperance. To escape a similar indignity, it is said that his successors, except in a single instance, have abstained from legitimate nuptials; and the Ottoman practice and belief, at least in the sixteenth century, is asserted by the observing Busbequius, 55 ambassador from the court of Vienna to the great Soliman. 4. Such is the separation of language, that the testimony of a Greek is not less independent than that of a Latin or an Arab. I suppress the names of Chalcondyles and Ducas, who flourished in the latter period, and who speak in a less positive tone; but more attention is due to George Phranza, 56 protovestiare of the last emperors, and who was born a year before the battle of Angora. Twenty-two years after that event, he was sent ambassador to Amurath the Second; and the historian might converse with some veteran Janizaries, who had been made prisoners with the sultan, and had themselves seen him in his iron cage. 5. The last evidence, in every sense, is that of the Turkish annals, which have been consulted or transcribed by Leunclavius, Pocock, and Cantemir. 57 They unanimously deplore the captivity of the iron cage; and some credit may be allowed to national historians, who cannot stigmatize the Tartar without uncovering the shame of their king and country.

Here's the updated text: This is the image of a generous conqueror, taken from his own writings and dedicated to his son and grandson, nineteen years after his death; 47 and at a time when the truth was known by thousands, an obvious lie would have been a mockery of his actual conduct. This evidence is indeed significant and accepted by all Persian histories; 48 yet flattery, especially in the East, is low and brazen; and the harsh and humiliating treatment of Bajazet is confirmed by a series of witnesses, some of whom will be presented in the order of their time and place. 1. The reader is likely aware of the French garrison that Marshal Boucicault left behind for the defense of Constantinople. They were there to receive the earliest and most reliable news of their great adversary's downfall; and it's very likely that some of them went with the Greek embassy to Tamerlane's camp. According to their accounts, the hardships faced by Bajazet in prison and his death are confirmed by the marshal’s servant and historian within seven years' time. 49 2. The name of Poggius the Italian 50 is rightly renowned among the revivers of learning in the fifteenth century. His elegant dialogue on the ups and downs of fortune 51 was written when he turned fifty, twenty-eight years after Tamerlane's Turkish victory; 52 whom he praises as being equal to the famous Barbarians of ancient times. Poggius learned of his exploits and discipline from several eyewitnesses; he also highlights an example closely related to his theme—the Ottoman monarch, who was kept like a wild animal in an iron cage for all of Asia to see. I could mention two Italian chronicles, possibly from an earlier time, that would at least show that the same story, whether true or false, made its way into Europe with the first reports of the upheaval. 53 3. While Poggius thrived in Rome, Ahmed Ebn Arabshah wrote a detailed and critical history of Timour in Damascus, having gathered materials during his travels through Turkey and Tartary. 54 Despite there being no possible connection between the Latin and Arabian writers, they both agree on the fact of the iron cage; and their concurrence is a clear indication of their shared truthfulness. Ahmed Arabshah also recounts another offense that Bajazet faced, of a more personal and sensitive nature. His indiscreet comments about women and divorces angered the jealous Tartar: during the victory feast, wine was served by female cupbearers, and the sultan saw his own concubines and wives mixed in with the slaves, exposed without veils to the gaze of drunkenness. To avoid a similar humiliation, it’s said that his successors, with one exception, have refrained from legal marriages; and this practice and belief among the Ottomans, at least in the sixteenth century, is confirmed by the observant Busbequius, 55 ambassador from the court of Vienna to the great Soliman. 4. The difference in languages means that the testimony from a Greek is just as credible as that from a Latin or an Arab. I omit the names of Chalcondyles and Ducas, who wrote later and with less certainty; but more attention should be given to George Phranza, 56 protovestiare of the last emperors, who was born a year before the battle of Angora. Twenty-two years after that event, he was sent as an ambassador to Amurath the Second; and the historian likely spoke with some veteran Janizaries who had been prisoners with the sultan and had seen him in his iron cage. 5. The final evidence comes from Turkish chronicles, which have been referenced or transcribed by Leunclavius, Pocock, and Cantemir. 57 They all mourn the captivity in the iron cage; and we can give some credence to national historians, who cannot criticize the Tartar without revealing the shame of their own king and country.

47 (return)
[ See the History of Sherefeddin, (l. v. c. 49, 52, 53, 59, 60.) This work was finished at Shiraz, in the year 1424, and dedicated to Sultan Ibrahim, the son of Sharokh, the son of Timour, who reigned in Farsistan in his father’s lifetime.]

47 (return)
[ See the History of Sherefeddin, (l. v. c. 49, 52, 53, 59, 60.) This work was completed in Shiraz in 1424 and dedicated to Sultan Ibrahim, the son of Sharokh, the son of Timour, who ruled Farsistan during his father's lifetime.]

48 (return)
[ After the perusal of Khondemir, Ebn Schounah, &c., the learned D’Herbelot (Bibliot. Orientale, p. 882) may affirm, that this fable is not mentioned in the most authentic histories; but his denial of the visible testimony of Arabshah leaves some room to suspect his accuracy.]

48 (return)
[ After reviewing Khondemir, Ebn Schounah, etc., the knowledgeable D’Herbelot (Bibliot. Orientale, p. 882) may state that this fable is not mentioned in the most reliable histories; however, his rejection of Arabshah's clear evidence raises some doubt about his accuracy.]

49 (return)
[ Et fut lui-même (Bajazet) pris, et mené en prison, en laquelle mourut de dure mort! Mémoires de Boucicault, P. i. c. 37. These Memoirs were composed while the marshal was still governor of Genoa, from whence he was expelled in the year 1409, by a popular insurrection, (Muratori, Annali d’Italia, tom. xii. p. 473, 474.)]

49 (return)
[ And he himself (Bajazet) was captured and taken to prison, where he died a hard death! Memoirs of Boucicault, P. i. c. 37. These Memoirs were written while the marshal was still the governor of Genoa, from which he was expelled in the year 1409, due to a popular uprising, (Muratori, Annali d’Italia, tom. xii. p. 473, 474.)]

50 (return)
[ The reader will find a satisfactory account of the life and writings of Poggius in the Poggiana, an entertaining work of M. Lenfant, and in the Bibliotheca Latina Mediæ et Infimæ Ætatis of Fabricius, (tom. v. p. 305—308.) Poggius was born in the year 1380, and died in 1459.]

50 (return)
[ The reader will find a detailed account of Poggius's life and writings in the Poggiana, an engaging work by M. Lenfant, and in the Bibliotheca Latina Mediæ et Infimæ Ætatis by Fabricius, (vol. v, pp. 305—308.) Poggius was born in 1380 and passed away in 1459.]

51 (return)
[ The dialogue de Varietate Fortunæ, (of which a complete and elegant edition has been published at Paris in 1723, in 4to.,) was composed a short time before the death of Pope Martin V., (p. 5,) and consequently about the end of the year 1430.]

51 (return)
[ The dialogue on the Variety of Fortune, (which a complete and well-designed edition was published in Paris in 1723, in 4to.,) was written shortly before the death of Pope Martin V., (p. 5,) and thus around the end of the year 1430.]

52 (return)
[ See a splendid and eloquent encomium of Tamerlane, p. 36—39 ipse enim novi (says Poggius) qui fuere in ejus castris.... Regem vivum cepit, caveâque in modum feræ inclusum per omnem Asian circumtulit egregium admirandumque spectaculum fortunæ.]

52 (return)
[ See a magnificent and expressive tribute to Tamerlane, p. 36–39 for I myself knew (says Poggius) who were in his camps.... He captured a living king and carried him around all of Asia in a cage like a wild animal, an extraordinary and awe-inspiring spectacle of fortune.]

53 (return)
[ The Chronicon Tarvisianum, (in Muratori, Script. Rerum Italicarum tom. xix. p. 800,) and the Annales Estenses, (tom. xviii. p. 974.) The two authors, Andrea de Redusiis de Quero, and James de Delayto, were both contemporaries, and both chancellors, the one of Trevigi, the other of Ferrara. The evidence of the former is the most positive.]

53 (return)
[ The Chronicon Tarvisianum, (in Muratori, Script. Rerum Italicarum vol. xix, p. 800,) and the Annales Estenses, (vol. xviii, p. 974.) The two authors, Andrea de Redusiis de Quero and James de Delayto, were contemporaries and both served as chancellors, one in Treviso and the other in Ferrara. The evidence from the former is the strongest.]

54 (return)
[ See Arabshah, tom. ii. c. 28, 34. He travelled in regiones Rumæas, A. H. 839, (A.D. 1435, July 27,) tom. i. c. 2, p. 13.]

54 (return)
[ See Arabshah, vol. ii. c. 28, 34. He traveled in the regions of Rumæas in A.H. 839 (A.D. 1435, July 27), vol. i. c. 2, p. 13.]

55 (return)
[ Busbequius in Legatione Turcicâ, epist. i. p. 52. Yet his respectable authority is somewhat shaken by the subsequent marriages of Amurath II. with a Servian, and of Mahomet II. with an Asiatic, princess, (Cantemir, p. 83, 93.)]

55 (return)
[Busbequius in his Embassy to Turkey, letter i. p. 52. However, his credible account is somewhat undermined by the later marriages of Amurath II to a Serbian and Mahomet II to an Asian princess, (Cantemir, p. 83, 93.)]

56 (return)
[ See the testimony of George Phranza, (l. i. c. 29,) and his life in Hanckius (de Script. Byzant. P. i. c. 40.) Chalcondyles and Ducas speak in general terms of Bajazet’s chains.]

56 (return)
[ Check out the account of George Phranza, (l. i. c. 29,) and his biography in Hanckius (de Script. Byzant. P. i. c. 40.) Chalcondyles and Ducas mention Bajazet’s chains in general terms.]

57 (return)
[ Annales Leunclav. p. 321. Pocock, Prolegomen. ad Abulpharag Dynast. Cantemir, p. 55. * Note: Von Hammer, p. 318, cites several authorities unknown to Gibbon.—M.]

57 (return)
[ Annales Leunclav. p. 321. Pocock, Prolegomen. ad Abulpharag Dynast. Cantemir, p. 55. * Note: Von Hammer, p. 318, cites several authorities unknown to Gibbon.—M.]

From these opposite premises, a fair and moderate conclusion may be deduced. I am satisfied that Sherefeddin Ali has faithfully described the first ostentatious interview, in which the conqueror, whose spirits were harmonized by success, affected the character of generosity. But his mind was insensibly alienated by the unseasonable arrogance of Bajazet; the complaints of his enemies, the Anatolian princes, were just and vehement; and Timour betrayed a design of leading his royal captive in triumph to Samarcand. An attempt to facilitate his escape, by digging a mine under the tent, provoked the Mogul emperor to impose a harsher restraint; and in his perpetual marches, an iron cage on a wagon might be invented, not as a wanton insult, but as a rigorous precaution. Timour had read in some fabulous history a similar treatment of one of his predecessors, a king of Persia; and Bajazet was condemned to represent the person, and expiate the guilt, of the Roman Cæsar 58 581 But the strength of his mind and body fainted under the trial, and his premature death might, without injustice, be ascribed to the severity of Timour. He warred not with the dead: a tear and a sepulchre were all that he could bestow on a captive who was delivered from his power; and if Mousa, the son of Bajazet, was permitted to reign over the ruins of Boursa, the greatest part of the province of Anatolia had been restored by the conqueror to their lawful sovereigns.

From these opposing viewpoints, a fair and reasonable conclusion can be drawn. I believe that Sherefeddin Ali has accurately portrayed the initial grand meeting, where the conqueror, buoyed by his success, played the part of a generous ruler. However, his attitude was subtly influenced by Bajazet's untimely arrogance; the complaints from his enemies, the Anatolian princes, were valid and intense, and Timour showed intentions of leading his royal captive in triumph to Samarcand. An effort to help him escape by digging a tunnel under the tent angered the Mogul emperor, prompting him to impose stricter confinement. During his constant movements, an iron cage on a wagon might have been devised, not out of unnecessary cruelty, but as a strict measure. Timour had come across a similar story in some legendary history about one of his predecessors, a king of Persia; thus, Bajazet was condemned to embody that figure and pay the price for the wrongs of Roman Cæsar 58 581. Yet, the strain took a toll on both his mind and body, and his untimely death could, fairly, be attributed to Timour's harshness. He did not fight against the deceased: a single tear and a burial were all he could offer a captive who had been freed from his control; and although Mousa, Bajazet's son, was allowed to rule over the remnants of Boursa, most of Anatolia had been returned by the conqueror to their rightful rulers.

58 (return)
[ Sapor, king of Persia, had been made prisoner, and enclosed in the figure of a cow’s hide by Maximian or Galerius Cæsar. Such is the fable related by Eutychius, (Annal. tom. i. p. 421, vers. Pocock). The recollection of the true history (Decline and Fall, &c., vol. ii. p 140—152) will teach us to appreciate the knowledge of the Orientals of the ages which precede the Hegira.]

58 (return)
[ Sapor, the king of Persia, was captured and wrapped in a cowhide by Maximian or Galerius Caesar. This is the story told by Eutychius, (Annal. tom. i. p. 421, vers. Pocock). Remembering the true history (Decline and Fall, &c., vol. ii. p 140—152) will help us value the knowledge of the Eastern cultures from the periods before the Hegira.]

581 (return)
[ Von Hammer’s explanation of this contested point is both simple and satisfactory. It originates in a mistake in the meaning of the Turkish word kafe, which means a covered litter or palanquin drawn by two horses, and is generally used to convey the harem of an Eastern monarch. In such a litter, with the lattice-work made of iron, Bajazet either chose or was constrained to travel. This was either mistaken for, or transformed by, ignorant relaters into a cage. The European Schiltberger, the two oldest of the Turkish historians, and the most valuable of the later compilers, Seadeddin, describe this litter. Seadeddin discusses the question with some degree of historical criticism, and ascribes the choice of such a vehicle to the indignant state of Bajazet’s mind, which would not brook the sight of his Tartar conquerors. Von Hammer, p. 320.—M.]

581 (return)
[ Von Hammer’s explanation of this debated point is both clear and satisfactory. It comes from a misunderstanding of the Turkish word kafe, which refers to a covered litter or palanquin pulled by two horses, typically used to transport the harem of an Eastern ruler. Bajazet traveled in this type of litter, with iron lattice-work, either by choice or necessity. This was either misinterpreted as, or incorrectly transformed into, a cage by uninformed storytellers. The European Schiltberger, the two earliest Turkish historians, and the most significant of the later writers, Seadeddin, describe this litter. Seadeddin examines the issue with some historical insight and attributes the choice of such a vehicle to Bajazet’s agitated state of mind, which couldn't tolerate the sight of his Tartar conquerors. Von Hammer, p. 320.—M.]

From the Irtish and Volga to the Persian Gulf, and from the Ganges to Damascus and the Archipelago, Asia was in the hand of Timour: his armies were invincible, his ambition was boundless, and his zeal might aspire to conquer and convert the Christian kingdoms of the West, which already trembled at his name. He touched the utmost verge of the land; but an insuperable, though narrow, sea rolled between the two continents of Europe and Asia; 59 and the lord of so many tomans, or myriads, of horse, was not master of a single galley. The two passages of the Bosphorus and Hellespont, of Constantinople and Gallipoli, were possessed, the one by the Christians, the other by the Turks. On this great occasion, they forgot the difference of religion, to act with union and firmness in the common cause: the double straits were guarded with ships and fortifications; and they separately withheld the transports which Timour demanded of either nation, under the pretence of attacking their enemy. At the same time, they soothed his pride with tributary gifts and suppliant embassies, and prudently tempted him to retreat with the honors of victory. Soliman, the son of Bajazet, implored his clemency for his father and himself; accepted, by a red patent, the investiture of the kingdom of Romania, which he already held by the sword; and reiterated his ardent wish, of casting himself in person at the feet of the king of the world. The Greek emperor 60 (either John or Manuel) submitted to pay the same tribute which he had stipulated with the Turkish sultan, and ratified the treaty by an oath of allegiance, from which he could absolve his conscience so soon as the Mogul arms had retired from Anatolia. But the fears and fancy of nations ascribed to the ambitious Tamerlane a new design of vast and romantic compass; a design of subduing Egypt and Africa, marching from the Nile to the Atlantic Ocean, entering Europe by the Straits of Gibraltar, and, after imposing his yoke on the kingdoms of Christendom, of returning home by the deserts of Russia and Tartary. This remote, and perhaps imaginary, danger was averted by the submission of the sultan of Egypt: the honors of the prayer and the coin attested at Cairo the supremacy of Timour; and a rare gift of a giraffe, or camelopard, and nine ostriches, represented at Samarcand the tribute of the African world. Our imagination is not less astonished by the portrait of a Mogul, who, in his camp before Smyrna, meditates, and almost accomplishes, the invasion of the Chinese empire. 61 Timour was urged to this enterprise by national honor and religious zeal. The torrents which he had shed of Mussulman blood could be expiated only by an equal destruction of the infidels; and as he now stood at the gates of paradise, he might best secure his glorious entrance by demolishing the idols of China, founding mosques in every city, and establishing the profession of faith in one God, and his prophet Mahomet. The recent expulsion of the house of Zingis was an insult on the Mogul name; and the disorders of the empire afforded the fairest opportunity for revenge. The illustrious Hongvou, founder of the dynasty of Ming, died four years before the battle of Angora; and his grandson, a weak and unfortunate youth, was burnt in his palace, after a million of Chinese had perished in the civil war. 62 Before he evacuated Anatolia, Timour despatched beyond the Sihoon a numerous army, or rather colony, of his old and new subjects, to open the road, to subdue the Pagan Calmucks and Mungals, and to found cities and magazines in the desert; and, by the diligence of his lieutenant, he soon received a perfect map and description of the unknown regions, from the source of the Irtish to the wall of China. During these preparations, the emperor achieved the final conquest of Georgia; passed the winter on the banks of the Araxes; appeased the troubles of Persia; and slowly returned to his capital, after a campaign of four years and nine months.

From the Irtysh and Volga to the Persian Gulf, and from the Ganges to Damascus and the Archipelago, Asia was in the hands of Timur: his armies were unbeatable, his ambition was limitless, and his zeal aimed to conquer and convert the Christian kingdoms of the West, which already feared his name. He reached the farthest edge of the land; but an insurmountable, though narrow, sea lay between the two continents of Europe and Asia; 59 and the lord of so many tomans, or thousands, of horses was not the master of a single ship. The two passages of the Bosphorus and Hellespont, of Constantinople and Gallipoli, were held, one by the Christians and the other by the Turks. On this significant occasion, they set aside their religious differences to unite and act with strength for the common cause: the twin straits were guarded with ships and fortifications; and they separately denied Timur the supplies he requested from either side, under the pretense of attacking their enemy. At the same time, they flattered his pride with tribute and humble envoys, wisely encouraging him to retreat with the spoils of victory. Soliman, the son of Bajazet, pleaded for mercy for himself and his father; he accepted, by a red patent, the title of the kingdom of Romania, which he already held by force; and he passionately expressed his desire to personally throw himself at the king of the world's feet. The Greek emperor 60 (either John or Manuel) agreed to pay the same tribute he had negotiated with the Turkish sultan and confirmed the treaty with an oath of allegiance, from which he would feel free to absolve his conscience as soon as the Mogul forces withdrew from Anatolia. However, the fears and imaginations of nations attributed to the ambitious Tamerlane a new grand and romantic plan; a plan to conquer Egypt and Africa, marching from the Nile to the Atlantic Ocean, entering Europe through the Straits of Gibraltar, and, after dominating the kingdoms of Christendom, returning home through the deserts of Russia and Tartary. This distant, and possibly imaginary, threat was averted by the submission of the sultan of Egypt: the rituals of prayer and the coins in Cairo confirmed Timur's supremacy; and a rare gift of a giraffe, or camelopard, along with nine ostriches, represented the tribute from the African world at Samarkand. Our imagination is no less astonished by the image of a Mogul, who, in his camp before Smyrna, reflects on and nearly achieves the invasion of the Chinese empire. 61 Timur was motivated for this venture by national pride and religious fervor. The rivers of Muslim blood he had shed could only be atoned for by inflicting equal destruction on the infidels; and as he now stood at the gates of paradise, he could best secure his glorious entrance by tearing down the idols of China, building mosques in every city, and establishing the faith in one God and his prophet Muhammad. The recent expulsion of the house of Zingis was an affront to the Mogul name; and the turmoil within the empire offered the best opportunity for revenge. The distinguished Hongwu, founder of the Ming dynasty, died four years before the battle of Angora; and his grandson, a weak and unfortunate young man, was burned in his palace after a million Chinese had perished in the civil war. 62 Before he left Anatolia, Timur sent a large army, or rather a colony, of his old and new subjects across the Sihoon to open the way, conquer the pagan Kalmyks and Mongols, and establish cities and warehouses in the desert; and thanks to his lieutenant's efforts, he soon received a complete map and description of the unknown regions, from the source of the Irtysh to the Great Wall of China. During these preparations, the emperor completed the final conquest of Georgia; spent the winter on the banks of the Araxes; settled the troubles in Persia; and slowly returned to his capital after a campaign lasting four years and nine months.

59 (return)
[ Arabshah (tom. ii. c. 25) describes, like a curious traveller, the Straits of Gallipoli and Constantinople. To acquire a just idea of these events, I have compared the narratives and prejudices of the Moguls, Turks, Greeks, and Arabians. The Spanish ambassador mentions this hostile union of the Christians and Ottomans, (Vie de Timour, p. 96.)]

59 (return)
[ Arabshah (vol. ii, c. 25) describes, like an inquisitive traveler, the Straits of Gallipoli and Constantinople. To get an accurate understanding of these events, I compared the stories and biases of the Moguls, Turks, Greeks, and Arabs. The Spanish ambassador refers to this hostile alliance between the Christians and Ottomans, (Vie de Timour, p. 96.)]

60 (return)
[ Since the name of Cæsar had been transferred to the sultans of Roum, the Greek princes of Constantinople (Sherefeddin, l. v. c. 54) were confounded with the Christian lords of Gallipoli, Thessalonica, &c. under the title of Tekkur, which is derived by corruption from the genitive tou kuriou, (Cantemir, p. 51.)]

60 (return)
[ Since the name of Caesar had been passed on to the sultans of Roum, the Greek princes of Constantinople (Sherefeddin, l. v. c. 54) were confused with the Christian lords of Gallipoli, Thessalonica, etc. under the title of Tekkur, which comes from a corrupted version of the genitive tou kuriou, (Cantemir, p. 51.)]

61 (return)
[ See Sherefeddin, l. v. c. 4, who marks, in a just itinerary, the road to China, which Arabshah (tom. ii. c. 33) paints in vague and rhetorical colors.]

61 (return)
[See Sherefeddin, l. v. c. 4, who accurately outlines the route to China, which Arabshah (tom. ii. c. 33) describes in vague and dramatic terms.]

62 (return)
[ Synopsis Hist. Sinicæ, p. 74—76, (in the ivth part of the Relations de Thevenot,) Duhalde, Hist. de la Chine, (tom. i. p. 507, 508, folio edition;) and for the Chronology of the Chinese emperors, De Guignes, Hist. des Huns, (tom. i. p. 71, 72.)]

62 (return)
[ Synopsis Hist. Sinicæ, pp. 74-76 (in the fourth part of the Relations de Thevenot), Duhalde, Hist. de la Chine, (vol. 1, pp. 507, 508, folio edition); and for the chronology of the Chinese emperors, De Guignes, Hist. des Huns, (vol. 1, pp. 71, 72.)]

Chapter LXV: Elevation Of Timour Or Tamerlane, And His Death.—Part III.

On the throne of Samarcand, 63 he displayed, in a short repose, his magnificence and power; listened to the complaints of the people; distributed a just measure of rewards and punishments; employed his riches in the architecture of palaces and temples; and gave audience to the ambassadors of Egypt, Arabia, India, Tartary, Russia, and Spain, the last of whom presented a suit of tapestry which eclipsed the pencil of the Oriental artists. The marriage of six of the emperor’s grandsons was esteemed an act of religion as well as of paternal tenderness; and the pomp of the ancient caliphs was revived in their nuptials. They were celebrated in the gardens of Canighul, decorated with innumerable tents and pavilions, which displayed the luxury of a great city and the spoils of a victorious camp. Whole forests were cut down to supply fuel for the kitchens; the plain was spread with pyramids of meat, and vases of every liquor, to which thousands of guests were courteously invited: the orders of the state, and the nations of the earth, were marshalled at the royal banquet; nor were the ambassadors of Europe (says the haughty Persian) excluded from the feast; since even the casses, the smallest of fish, find their place in the ocean. 64 The public joy was testified by illuminations and masquerades; the trades of Samarcand passed in review; and every trade was emulous to execute some quaint device, some marvellous pageant, with the materials of their peculiar art. After the marriage contracts had been ratified by the cadhis, the bride-grooms and their brides retired to the nuptial chambers: nine times, according to the Asiatic fashion, they were dressed and undressed; and at each change of apparel, pearls and rubies were showered on their heads, and contemptuously abandoned to their attendants. A general indulgence was proclaimed: every law was relaxed, every pleasure was allowed; the people was free, the sovereign was idle; and the historian of Timour may remark, that, after devoting fifty years to the attainment of empire, the only happy period of his life were the two months in which he ceased to exercise his power. But he was soon awakened to the cares of government and war. The standard was unfurled for the invasion of China: the emirs made their report of two hundred thousand, the select and veteran soldiers of Iran and Touran: their baggage and provisions were transported by five hundred great wagons, and an immense train of horses and camels; and the troops might prepare for a long absence, since more than six months were employed in the tranquil journey of a caravan from Samarcand to Pekin. Neither age, nor the severity of the winter, could retard the impatience of Timour; he mounted on horseback, passed the Sihoon on the ice, marched seventy-six parasangs, three hundred miles, from his capital, and pitched his last camp in the neighborhood of Otrar, where he was expected by the angel of death. Fatigue, and the indiscreet use of iced water, accelerated the progress of his fever; and the conqueror of Asia expired in the seventieth year of his age, thirty-five years after he had ascended the throne of Zagatai. His designs were lost; his armies were disbanded; China was saved; and fourteen years after his decease, the most powerful of his children sent an embassy of friendship and commerce to the court of Pekin. 65

On the throne of Samarcand, 63 he showcased, in a brief pause, his splendor and authority; listened to the people's grievances; delivered a fair balance of rewards and punishments; invested his wealth in building palaces and temples; and welcomed ambassadors from Egypt, Arabia, India, Tartary, Russia, and Spain, the last of whom presented a tapestry that overshadowed the work of Eastern artists. The marriage of six of the emperor’s grandsons was seen as both a religious affair and a display of paternal love; and the grandeur of the ancient caliphs was revived during their weddings. They took place in the gardens of Canighul, adorned with countless tents and pavilions, reflecting the luxury of a major city and the spoils of a triumphant army. Entire forests were cleared to provide firewood for the kitchens; the plain was laid out with towering piles of meat and vessels filled with all kinds of drinks, to which thousands of guests were graciously invited: the dignitaries of the state and nations around the world were present at the royal feast; and even the ambassadors from Europe (says the proud Persian) were included in the banquet; for even the casses, the tiniest of fish, find a spot in the ocean. 64 The public celebration was marked by lights and masquerades; the trades of Samarcand put on display; and each trade tried to showcase some unique creation, some extraordinary spectacle, using materials from their specific craft. After the marriage agreements had been confirmed by the cadhis, the grooms and their brides retreated to the wedding chambers: nine times, in true Asian fashion, they were dressed and undressed; and at each change of clothing, pearls and rubies were showered upon them, only to be tossed aside for their attendants. A general celebration was declared: all laws were relaxed, all pleasures were permitted; the people were free, the ruler was inactive; and the historian of Timour might note that, after spending fifty years in pursuit of empire, the only truly happy time of his life was the two months he paused from wielding his power. But soon he was brought back to the responsibilities of government and war. The banner was raised for an invasion of China: the emirs reported two hundred thousand, the elite and seasoned soldiers of Iran and Touran: their supplies and equipment were carried by five hundred large wagons, along with a massive convoy of horses and camels; and the troops prepared for a lengthy absence, as it took more than six months for a caravan to travel peacefully from Samarcand to Pekin. Neither his age nor the harshness of winter could slow Timour’s eagerness; he mounted his horse, crossed the Sihoon on the ice, marched seventy-six parasangs, three hundred miles, from his capital, and set up his final camp near Otrar, where death was waiting for him. Exhaustion and the reckless consumption of iced water sped up his fever; and the conqueror of Asia died in his seventieth year, thirty-five years after he took the throne of Zagatai. His plans collapsed; his armies were disbanded; China was saved; and fourteen years after his death, the most powerful of his children sent a mission of goodwill and trade to the court of Pekin. 65

63 (return)
[ For the return, triumph, and death of Timour, see Sherefeddin (l. vi. c. 1—30) and Arabshah, (tom. ii. c. 36—47.)]

63 (return)
[ For the return, triumph, and death of Timour, see Sherefeddin (l. vi. c. 1—30) and Arabshah, (tom. ii. c. 36—47.)]

64 (return)
[ Sherefeddin (l. vi. c. 24) mentions the ambassadors of one of the most potent sovereigns of Europe. We know that it was Henry III. king of Castile; and the curious relation of his two embassies is still extant, (Mariana, Hist. Hispan. l. xix. c. 11, tom. ii. p. 329, 330. Avertissement à l’Hist. de Timur Bec, p. 28—33.) There appears likewise to have been some correspondence between the Mogul emperor and the court of Charles VII. king of France, (Histoire de France, par Velly et Villaret, tom. xii. p. 336.)]

64 (return)
[ Sherefeddin (l. vi. c. 24) talks about the ambassadors from one of the most powerful rulers in Europe. We know that it was Henry III, king of Castile; and the interesting details of his two missions are still available, (Mariana, Hist. Hispan. l. xix. c. 11, tom. ii. p. 329, 330. Avertissement à l’Hist. de Timur Bec, p. 28—33.) There also seems to have been some communication between the Mogul emperor and the court of Charles VII, king of France, (Histoire de France, par Velly et Villaret, tom. xii. p. 336.)]

65 (return)
[ See the translation of the Persian account of their embassy, a curious and original piece, (in the ivth part of the Relations de Thevenot.) They presented the emperor of China with an old horse which Timour had formerly rode. It was in the year 1419 that they departed from the court of Herat, to which place they returned in 1422 from Pekin.]

65 (return)
[ See the translation of the Persian account of their embassy, an interesting and unique piece, (in the fourth part of the Relations de Thevenot.) They gave the emperor of China an old horse that Timour had once ridden. They left the court of Herat in 1419 and returned there in 1422 from Beijing.]

The fame of Timour has pervaded the East and West: his posterity is still invested with the Imperial title; and the admiration of his subjects, who revered him almost as a deity, may be justified in some degree by the praise or confession of his bitterest enemies. 66 Although he was lame of a hand and foot, his form and stature were not unworthy of his rank; and his vigorous health, so essential to himself and to the world, was corroborated by temperance and exercise. In his familiar discourse he was grave and modest, and if he was ignorant of the Arabic language, he spoke with fluency and elegance the Persian and Turkish idioms. It was his delight to converse with the learned on topics of history and science; and the amusement of his leisure hours was the game of chess, which he improved or corrupted with new refinements. 67 In his religion he was a zealous, though not perhaps an orthodox, Mussulman; 68 but his sound understanding may tempt us to believe, that a superstitious reverence for omens and prophecies, for saints and astrologers, was only affected as an instrument of policy. In the government of a vast empire, he stood alone and absolute, without a rebel to oppose his power, a favorite to seduce his affections, or a minister to mislead his judgment. It was his firmest maxim, that whatever might be the consequence, the word of the prince should never be disputed or recalled; but his foes have maliciously observed, that the commands of anger and destruction were more strictly executed than those of beneficence and favor. His sons and grandsons, of whom Timour left six-and-thirty at his decease, were his first and most submissive subjects; and whenever they deviated from their duty, they were corrected, according to the laws of Zingis, with the bastinade, and afterwards restored to honor and command. Perhaps his heart was not devoid of the social virtues; perhaps he was not incapable of loving his friends and pardoning his enemies; but the rules of morality are founded on the public interest; and it may be sufficient to applaud the wisdom of a monarch, for the liberality by which he is not impoverished, and for the justice by which he is strengthened and enriched. To maintain the harmony of authority and obedience, to chastise the proud, to protect the weak, to reward the deserving, to banish vice and idleness from his dominions, to secure the traveller and merchant, to restrain the depredations of the soldier, to cherish the labors of the husbandman, to encourage industry and learning, and, by an equal and moderate assessment, to increase the revenue, without increasing the taxes, are indeed the duties of a prince; but, in the discharge of these duties, he finds an ample and immediate recompense. Timour might boast, that, at his accession to the throne, Asia was the prey of anarchy and rapine, whilst under his prosperous monarchy a child, fearless and unhurt, might carry a purse of gold from the East to the West. Such was his confidence of merit, that from this reformation he derived an excuse for his victories, and a title to universal dominion. The four following observations will serve to appreciate his claim to the public gratitude; and perhaps we shall conclude, that the Mogul emperor was rather the scourge than the benefactor of mankind. 1. If some partial disorders, some local oppressions, were healed by the sword of Timour, the remedy was far more pernicious than the disease. By their rapine, cruelty, and discord, the petty tyrants of Persia might afflict their subjects; but whole nations were crushed under the footsteps of the reformer. The ground which had been occupied by flourishing cities was often marked by his abominable trophies, by columns, or pyramids, of human heads. Astracan, Carizme, Delhi, Ispahan, Bagdad, Aleppo, Damascus, Boursa, Smyrna, and a thousand others, were sacked, or burnt, or utterly destroyed, in his presence, and by his troops: and perhaps his conscience would have been startled, if a priest or philosopher had dared to number the millions of victims whom he had sacrificed to the establishment of peace and order. 69 2. His most destructive wars were rather inroads than conquests. He invaded Turkestan, Kipzak, Russia, Hindostan, Syria, Anatolia, Armenia, and Georgia, without a hope or a desire of preserving those distant provinces. From thence he departed laden with spoil; but he left behind him neither troops to awe the contumacious, nor magistrates to protect the obedient, natives. When he had broken the fabric of their ancient government, he abandoned them to the evils which his invasion had aggravated or caused; nor were these evils compensated by any present or possible benefits. 3. The kingdoms of Transoxiana and Persia were the proper field which he labored to cultivate and adorn, as the perpetual inheritance of his family. But his peaceful labors were often interrupted, and sometimes blasted, by the absence of the conqueror. While he triumphed on the Volga or the Ganges, his servants, and even his sons, forgot their master and their duty. The public and private injuries were poorly redressed by the tardy rigor of inquiry and punishment; and we must be content to praise the Institutions of Timour, as the specious idea of a perfect monarchy. 4. Whatsoever might be the blessings of his administration, they evaporated with his life. To reign, rather than to govern, was the ambition of his children and grandchildren; 70 the enemies of each other and of the people. A fragment of the empire was upheld with some glory by Sharokh, his youngest son; but after his decease, the scene was again involved in darkness and blood; and before the end of a century, Transoxiana and Persia were trampled by the Uzbeks from the north, and the Turkmans of the black and white sheep. The race of Timour would have been extinct, if a hero, his descendant in the fifth degree, had not fled before the Uzbek arms to the conquest of Hindostan. His successors (the great Moguls 71) extended their sway from the mountains of Cashmir to Cape Comorin, and from Candahar to the Gulf of Bengal. Since the reign of Aurungzebe, their empire had been dissolved; their treasures of Delhi have been rifled by a Persian robber; and the richest of their kingdoms is now possessed by a company of Christian merchants, of a remote island in the Northern Ocean.

The fame of Timur has spread across both the East and West: his descendants still hold the Imperial title; and the admiration of his subjects, who regarded him almost as a god, is somewhat justified by the praise or acknowledgment of his fiercest enemies. 66 Although he was lame in a hand and a foot, his physique and height were not unworthy of his status; and his robust health, which was crucial for himself and for the world, was supported by moderation and exercise. In his everyday conversations, he was serious and humble, and although he didn’t know Arabic, he spoke Persian and Turkish with fluency and elegance. He enjoyed discussing history and science with learned individuals, and in his free time, he played chess, which he refined or corrupted with new strategies. 67 In his faith, he was a passionate, though perhaps not an orthodox, Muslim; 68 but his keen mind might lead us to believe that his superstitious respect for omens, prophecies, saints, and astrologers was merely a tactic of political maneuvering. In the governance of a vast empire, he stood alone and in complete control, with no rebels to challenge his power, no favorites to mislead him, and no advisors to sway his decisions. His strongest belief was that, regardless of the outcome, the word of the prince should never be questioned or rescinded; however, his adversaries have spitefully noted that commands given in anger and destruction were enforced more strictly than those meant for goodwill and favor. His sons and grandsons, of whom Timur left thirty-six at his death, were his first and most obedient subjects; and whenever they strayed from their responsibilities, they were punished according to the laws of Genghis, with a beating, and then restored to their positions of honor and authority. Perhaps he had some social virtues; perhaps he was capable of loving his friends and forgiving his enemies; but the principles of morality are based on public interest; and it may be enough to commend the wisdom of a monarch for his generosity that doesn’t impoverish him, and for the justice that strengthens and enriches him. Upholding the balance of authority and obedience, punishing the proud, protecting the weak, rewarding the deserving, eliminating vice and laziness from his realm, ensuring safety for travelers and merchants, controlling soldier depredations, nurturing the farmer's efforts, promoting hard work and education, and increasing revenue through a fair and moderate tax system are indeed the duties of a prince; and in fulfilling these responsibilities, he finds ample and immediate rewards. Timur could claim that, upon his rise to the throne, Asia was engulfed in chaos and plunder while under his thriving reign, a child could safely carry a purse of gold from East to West. He was so confident in his worth that from this reformation he justified his victories and claimed a right to universal rule. The four following points will help assess his claim to public gratitude; and we might conclude that the Mughal emperor was more a scourge than a benefactor to humanity. 1. If some localized disturbances and oppressions were resolved by Timur's sword, the cure was far worse than the ailment. The petty tyrants of Persia could harm their subjects through their greed, cruelty, and discord; but entire nations were crushed under the footsteps of the reformer. The land that was once home to thriving cities was often marked by his horrific trophies, by columns or pyramids of human heads. Astrakhan, Khwarezm, Delhi, Isfahan, Baghdad, Aleppo, Damascus, Bursa, Smyrna, and countless others were ransacked, burned, or completely destroyed in his presence and by his forces: and perhaps his conscience would have been troubled if a priest or philosopher had dared to count the millions of victims he sacrificed to establish peace and order. 69 2. His most devastating wars were more like invasions than real conquests. He attacked Turkestan, Kipchak, Russia, Hindustan, Syria, Anatolia, Armenia, and Georgia without any hope or intention of maintaining control over those distant provinces. He left loaded with treasures from those places, but did not establish any troops to keep the defiant in check, nor did he appoint magistrates to protect the loyal natives. After dismantling their old government, he abandoned them to the issues that his invasion had either worsened or created; and these problems were not offset by any immediate or potential benefits. 3. The regions of Transoxiana and Persia were the primary lands he aimed to cultivate and beautify as the lasting heritage of his family. But his peaceful efforts were frequently interrupted and sometimes ruined by the conqueror’s absence. While he celebrated victories on the Volga or the Ganges, his servants, and even his sons, neglected their master and their duties. Public and private grievances were poorly addressed by the slow and harsh processes of inquiry and punishment; and we must settle for praising the Institutions of Timur as an appealing concept of a perfect monarchy. 4. Whatever blessings his reign might have brought, they faded with his life. To rule rather than to govern was the ambition of his children and grandchildren; 70 who were enemies of one another and of the people. A fragment of the empire was maintained with some glory by Sharokh, his youngest son; but after his death, the situation again descended into darkness and bloodshed; and before the end of a century, Transoxiana and Persia were overrun by the Uzbeks from the north and the Turkmens of the white and black sheep. The lineage of Timur would have perished if a hero, his fifth-degree descendant, had not fled from the Uzbek forces to conquer Hindustan. His successors (the great Mughals 71) expanded their rule from the mountains of Kashmir to Cape Comorin, and from Kandahar to the Gulf of Bengal. Since the reign of Aurangzeb, their empire has dissolved; their treasures in Delhi have been looted by a Persian thief; and the richest of their kingdoms is now held by a company of Christian merchants from a distant island in the Northern Ocean.

66 (return)
[ From Arabshah, tom. ii. c. 96. The bright or softer colors are borrowed from Sherefeddin, D’Herbelot, and the Institutions.]

66 (return)
[ From Arabshah, vol. ii. c. 96. The brighter or lighter colors are taken from Sherefeddin, D’Herbelot, and the Institutions.]

67 (return)
[ His new system was multiplied from 32 pieces and 64 squares to 56 pieces and 110 or 130 squares; but, except in his court, the old game has been thought sufficiently elaborate. The Mogul emperor was rather pleased than hurt with the victory of a subject: a chess player will feel the value of this encomium!]

67 (return)
[ His new system expanded from 32 pieces and 64 squares to 56 pieces and 110 or 130 squares; however, outside of his court, the traditional game is considered complex enough. The Mogul emperor was more pleased than upset by a subject's victory: a chess player will appreciate the importance of this praise!]

68 (return)
[ See Sherefeddin, (l. v. c. 15, 25. Arabshah tom. ii. c. 96, p. 801, 803) approves the impiety of Timour and the Moguls, who almost preferred to the Koran the Yacsa, or Law of Zingis, (cui Deus maledicat;) nor will he believe that Sharokh had abolished the use and authority of that Pagan code.]

68 (return)
[ See Sherefeddin, (l. v. c. 15, 25. Arabshah tom. ii. c. 96, p. 801, 803) agrees with the irreverence of Timour and the Mongols, who nearly favored the Yacsa, or Law of Zingis, (may God curse it;) and he does not believe that Sharokh eliminated the use and power of that pagan code.]

69 (return)
[ Besides the bloody passages of this narrative, I must refer to an anticipation in the third volume of the Decline and Fall, which in a single note (p. 234, note 25) accumulates nearly 300,000 heads of the monuments of his cruelty. Except in Rowe’s play on the fifth of November, I did not expect to hear of Timour’s amiable moderation (White’s preface, p. 7.) Yet I can excuse a generous enthusiasm in the reader, and still more in the editor, of the Institutions.]

69 (return)
[ Besides the violent parts of this story, I should mention a reference in the third volume of the Decline and Fall, which in a single note (p. 234, note 25) lists nearly 300,000 examples of his cruelty. Apart from Rowe’s play about the fifth of November, I didn't expect to hear about Timour's supposed kindness (White’s preface, p. 7). However, I can understand a genuine enthusiasm from both the reader and the editor of the Institutions.]

70 (return)
[ Consult the last chapters of Sherefeddin and Arabshah, and M. De Guignes, (Hist. des Huns, tom. iv. l. xx.) Fraser’s History of Nadir Shah, (p. 1—62.) The story of Timour’s descendants is imperfectly told; and the second and third parts of Sherefeddin are unknown.]

70 (return)
[ Check the final chapters of Sherefeddin and Arabshah, and M. De Guignes, (Hist. des Huns, vol. iv. ch. xx.) Fraser’s History of Nadir Shah, (pp. 1—62.) The account of Timour’s descendants is not fully detailed; and the second and third parts of Sherefeddin are not available.]

71 (return)
[ Shah Allum, the present Mogul, is in the fourteenth degree from Timour, by Miran Shah, his third son. See the second volume of Dow’s History of Hindostan.]

71 (return)
[Shah Allum, the current Mogul, is the fourteenth descendant of Timour, through Miran Shah, his third son. Refer to the second volume of Dow’s History of Hindostan.]

Far different was the fate of the Ottoman monarchy. The massy trunk was bent to the ground, but no sooner did the hurricane pass away, than it again rose with fresh vigor and more lively vegetation. When Timour, in every sense, had evacuated Anatolia, he left the cities without a palace, a treasure, or a king. The open country was overspread with hordes of shepherds and robbers of Tartar or Turkman origin; the recent conquests of Bajazet were restored to the emirs, one of whom, in base revenge, demolished his sepulchre; and his five sons were eager, by civil discord, to consume the remnant of their patrimony. I shall enumerate their names in the order of their age and actions. 72 1. It is doubtful, whether I relate the story of the true Mustapha, or of an impostor who personated that lost prince. He fought by his father’s side in the battle of Angora: but when the captive sultan was permitted to inquire for his children, Mousa alone could be found; and the Turkish historians, the slaves of the triumphant faction, are persuaded that his brother was confounded among the slain. If Mustapha escaped from that disastrous field, he was concealed twelve years from his friends and enemies; till he emerged in Thessaly, and was hailed by a numerous party, as the son and successor of Bajazet. His first defeat would have been his last, had not the true, or false, Mustapha been saved by the Greeks, and restored, after the decease of his brother Mahomet, to liberty and empire. A degenerate mind seemed to argue his spurious birth; and if, on the throne of Adrianople, he was adored as the Ottoman sultan, his flight, his fetters, and an ignominious gibbet, delivered the impostor to popular contempt. A similar character and claim was asserted by several rival pretenders: thirty persons are said to have suffered under the name of Mustapha; and these frequent executions may perhaps insinuate, that the Turkish court was not perfectly secure of the death of the lawful prince. 2. After his father’s captivity, Isa 73 reigned for some time in the neighborhood of Angora, Sinope, and the Black Sea; and his ambassadors were dismissed from the presence of Timour with fair promises and honorable gifts. But their master was soon deprived of his province and life, by a jealous brother, the sovereign of Amasia; and the final event suggested a pious allusion, that the law of Moses and Jesus, of Isa and Mousa, had been abrogated by the greater Mahomet. 3. Soliman is not numbered in the list of the Turkish emperors: yet he checked the victorious progress of the Moguls; and after their departure, united for a while the thrones of Adrianople and Boursa. In war he was brave, active, and fortunate; his courage was softened by clemency; but it was likewise inflamed by presumption, and corrupted by intemperance and idleness. He relaxed the nerves of discipline, in a government where either the subject or the sovereign must continually tremble: his vices alienated the chiefs of the army and the law; and his daily drunkenness, so contemptible in a prince and a man, was doubly odious in a disciple of the prophet. In the slumber of intoxication he was surprised by his brother Mousa; and as he fled from Adrianople towards the Byzantine capital, Soliman was overtaken and slain in a bath, 731 after a reign of seven years and ten months. 4. The investiture of Mousa degraded him as the slave of the Moguls: his tributary kingdom of Anatolia was confined within a narrow limit, nor could his broken militia and empty treasury contend with the hardy and veteran bands of the sovereign of Romania. Mousa fled in disguise from the palace of Boursa; traversed the Propontis in an open boat; wandered over the Walachian and Servian hills; and after some vain attempts, ascended the throne of Adrianople, so recently stained with the blood of Soliman. In a reign of three years and a half, his troops were victorious against the Christians of Hungary and the Morea; but Mousa was ruined by his timorous disposition and unseasonable clemency. After resigning the sovereignty of Anatolia, he fell a victim to the perfidy of his ministers, and the superior ascendant of his brother Mahomet. 5.The final victory of Mahomet was the just recompense of his prudence and moderation. Before his father’s captivity, the royal youth had been intrusted with the government of Amasia, thirty days’ journey from Constantinople, and the Turkish frontier against the Christians of Trebizond and Georgia. The castle, in Asiatic warfare, was esteemed impregnable; and the city of Amasia, 74 which is equally divided by the River Iris, rises on either side in the form of an amphitheatre, and represents on a smaller scale the image of Bagdad. In his rapid career, Timour appears to have overlooked this obscure and contumacious angle of Anatolia; and Mahomet, without provoking the conqueror, maintained his silent independence, and chased from the province the last stragglers of the Tartar host. 741 He relieved himself from the dangerous neighborhood of Isa; but in the contests of their more powerful brethren his firm neutrality was respected; till, after the triumph of Mousa, he stood forth the heir and avenger of the unfortunate Soliman. Mahomet obtained Anatolia by treaty, and Romania by arms; and the soldier who presented him with the head of Mousa was rewarded as the benefactor of his king and country. The eight years of his sole and peaceful reign were usefully employed in banishing the vices of civil discord, and restoring on a firmer basis the fabric of the Ottoman monarchy. His last care was the choice of two viziers, Bajazet and Ibrahim, 75 who might guide the youth of his son Amurath; and such was their union and prudence, that they concealed above forty days the emperor’s death, till the arrival of his successor in the palace of Boursa. A new war was kindled in Europe by the prince, or impostor, Mustapha; the first vizier lost his army and his head; but the more fortunate Ibrahim, whose name and family are still revered, extinguished the last pretender to the throne of Bajazet, and closed the scene of domestic hostility.

Completely different was the fate of the Ottoman monarchy. The massive trunk was brought to the ground, but as soon as the storm passed, it rose again with renewed energy and more vibrant growth. When Timur left Anatolia, he had left the cities without a palace, treasure, or king. The open countryside was filled with bands of shepherds and robbers of Tartar or Turkman descent; the recent conquests of Bayezid were returned to the emirs, one of whom, in a base act of revenge, destroyed his tomb; and his five sons were eager to consume the remnants of their heritage through civil strife. I will list their names in order of age and actions. 72 1. It is uncertain whether I am recounting the story of the real Mustafa, or an impostor who pretended to be that lost prince. He fought alongside his father in the battle of Ankara: but when the captured sultan was allowed to ask for his children, only Musa could be found; and the Turkish historians, loyal to the victorious faction, believe that his brother was lost among the dead. If Mustafa survived that disastrous battle, he was hidden for twelve years from both friends and foes; until he emerged in Thessaly, and was hailed by a large group as the son and successor of Bayezid. His first defeat could have been his last, had the true, or false, Mustafa not been rescued by the Greeks and returned, after his brother Muhammad's death, to freedom and power. His degenerate mind seemed to suggest he was of illegitimate birth; and even if he was revered on the throne of Adrianople as the Ottoman sultan, his flight, his chains, and an ignominious execution delivered the impostor to public scorn. Several rival claimants made similar assertions: it is said that thirty people suffered under the name of Mustafa; and these frequent executions may hint that the Turkish court was not entirely sure of the lawful prince's death. 2. After his father's capture, Isa 73 ruled for some time near Ankara, Sinope, and the Black Sea; and his ambassadors were sent away from Timur’s presence with sweet promises and honorable gifts. But soon enough, his jealous brother, the ruler of Amasya, stripped him of his territory and life; and the final outcome suggested a pious reference, that the law of Moses and Jesus, of Isa and Musa, had been overturned by the greater Muhammad. 3. Soliman is not listed among the sultans of Turkey: yet he halted the victorious advance of the Mongols; and after their departure, he briefly united the thrones of Adrianople and Bursa. In battle, he was brave, active, and fortunate; his courage was softened by mercy; but it was also fueled by arrogance and corrupted by excess and laziness. He weakened the discipline that should govern a realm where either the subjects or the sovereign must always live in fear: his vices alienated the leaders of both the army and the law; and his constant drunkenness, which is shameful in both a prince and a man, was doubly detestable in a follower of the prophet. While he was in a drunken stupor, he was ambushed by his brother Musa; and as he fled from Adrianople toward the Byzantine capital, Soliman was caught and killed in a bath, 731 after a reign of seven years and ten months. 4. Musa’s rule only served to humiliate him as a slave of the Mongols: his tributary kingdom of Anatolia was reduced to a small area, nor could his weakened army and empty treasury compete with the seasoned and fierce troops of the ruler of Romania. Musa fled in disguise from the palace of Bursa; crossed the Sea of Marmara in an open boat; roamed across the hills of Wallachia and Serbia; and after some futile attempts, ascended the throne of Adrianople, freshly stained with Soliman’s blood. In a reign lasting three and a half years, his troops were victorious against the Christians of Hungary and the Morea; but Musa was ultimately defeated by his fearful nature and ill-timed compassion. After giving up control of Anatolia, he fell victim to the treachery of his ministers and the superior influence of his brother Muhammad. 5. Muhammad's ultimate victory was the rightful reward for his wisdom and restraint. Before his father was captured, the young royal had been given charge of the governance of Amasya, a thirty-day journey from Constantinople, positioned on the Turkish frontier against the Christians of Trebizond and Georgia. The fortress was considered impregnable in Asian warfare; and the city of Amasya, 74 which is split by the River Iris, rises on both sides like an amphitheater, resembling a smaller version of Baghdad. In his rapid campaign, Timur seemed to overlook this remote and rebellious corner of Anatolia; and Muhammad, without provoking the conqueror, maintained his silent independence and drove away the last remnants of the Tartar army from the province. 741 He freed himself from the dangerous proximity of Isa; but in the struggles of their more powerful brothers, his strong neutrality was respected; until, after Musa’s victory, he emerged as the heir and avenger of the unfortunate Soliman. Muhammad obtained Anatolia by treaty and Romania through force; and the soldier who brought him the head of Musa was celebrated as a hero of his king and country. The eight years of his peaceful reign were effectively spent eliminating the vices of civil strife and fortifying the structure of the Ottoman monarchy. His last concern was selecting two viziers, Bayezid and Ibrahim, 75 who could guide the youth of his son Amurath; and they were so united and prudent, they concealed the emperor's death for more than forty days, until the arrival of his successor in Bursa. A new war ignited in Europe due to the prince, or impostor, Mustafa; the first vizier lost his army and his life; but the more fortunate Ibrahim, whose name and family are still honored, extinguished the last claim to the throne of Bayezid and ended the period of domestic conflict.

72 (return)
[ The civil wars, from the death of Bajazet to that of Mustapha, are related, according to the Turks, by Demetrius Cantemir, (p. 58—82.) Of the Greeks, Chalcondyles, (l. iv. and v.,) Phranza, (l. i. c. 30—32,) and Ducas, (c. 18—27,) the last is the most copious and best informed.]

72 (return)
[ The civil wars, from the death of Bajazet to that of Mustapha, are described, according to the Turks, by Demetrius Cantemir, (p. 58—82.) Among the Greeks, Chalcondyles, (l. iv. and v.,) Phranza, (l. i. c. 30—32,) and Ducas, (c. 18—27,) with Ducas being the most detailed and well-informed.]

73 (return)
[ Arabshah, (tom. ii. c. 26,) whose testimony on this occasion is weighty and valuable. The existence of Isa (unknown to the Turks) is likewise confirmed by Sherefeddin, (l. v. c. 57.)]

73 (return)
[ Arabshah, (vol. ii. ch. 26,) whose testimony in this case is significant and important. The presence of Isa (unfamiliar to the Turks) is also validated by Sherefeddin, (book v. ch. 57.)]

731 (return)
[ He escaped from the bath, and fled towards Constantinople. Five mothers from a village, Dugundschi, whose inhabitants had suffered severely from the exactions of his officers, recognized and followed him. Soliman shot two of them, the others discharged their arrows in their turn the sultan fell and his head was cut off. V. Hammer, vol. i. p. 349.—M.]

731 (return)
[ He got away from the bath and ran towards Constantinople. Five mothers from a village called Dugundschi, whose people had endured a lot due to the demands of his officers, recognized him and pursued him. Soliman shot two of them, while the others fired their arrows back at him, causing the sultan to fall, and his head was cut off. V. Hammer, vol. i. p. 349.—M.]

74 (return)
[ Arabshah, loc. citat. Abulfeda, Geograph. tab. xvii. p. 302. Busbequius, epist. i. p. 96, 97, in Itinere C. P. et Amasiano.]

74 (return)
[ Arabshah, same source. Abulfeda, Geography, table xvii, p. 302. Busbequius, letter i, p. 96, 97, in the Journey to Constantinople and Amasya.]

741 (return)
[ See his nine battles. V. Hammer, p. 339.—M.]

741 (return)
[ Check out his nine battles. V. Hammer, p. 339.—M.]

75 (return)
[ The virtues of Ibrahim are praised by a contemporary Greek, (Ducas, c. 25.) His descendants are the sole nobles in Turkey: they content themselves with the administration of his pious foundations, are excused from public offices, and receive two annual visits from the sultan, (Cantemir, p. 76.)]

75 (return)
[ The virtues of Ibrahim are celebrated by a contemporary Greek, (Ducas, c. 25.) His descendants are the only nobility in Turkey; they manage his charitable foundations, are exempt from public positions, and receive two annual visits from the sultan, (Cantemir, p. 76.)]

In these conflicts, the wisest Turks, and indeed the body of the nation, were strongly attached to the unity of the empire; and Romania and Anatolia, so often torn asunder by private ambition, were animated by a strong and invincible tendency of cohesion. Their efforts might have instructed the Christian powers; and had they occupied, with a confederate fleet, the Straits of Gallipoli, the Ottomans, at least in Europe, must have been speedily annihilated. But the schism of the West, and the factions and wars of France and England, diverted the Latins from this generous enterprise: they enjoyed the present respite, without a thought of futurity; and were often tempted by a momentary interest to serve the common enemy of their religion. A colony of Genoese, 76 which had been planted at Phocæa 77 on the Ionian coast, was enriched by the lucrative monopoly of alum; 78 and their tranquillity, under the Turkish empire, was secured by the annual payment of tribute. In the last civil war of the Ottomans, the Genoese governor, Adorno, a bold and ambitious youth, embraced the party of Amurath; and undertook, with seven stout galleys, to transport him from Asia to Europe. The sultan and five hundred guards embarked on board the admiral’s ship; which was manned by eight hundred of the bravest Franks. His life and liberty were in their hands; nor can we, without reluctance, applaud the fidelity of Adorno, who, in the midst of the passage, knelt before him, and gratefully accepted a discharge of his arrears of tribute. They landed in sight of Mustapha and Gallipoli; two thousand Italians, armed with lances and battle-axes, attended Amurath to the conquest of Adrianople; and this venal service was soon repaid by the ruin of the commerce and colony of Phocæa.

In these conflicts, the wisest Turks, and really the whole nation, were deeply committed to the unity of the empire; Romania and Anatolia, often pulled apart by personal ambition, were driven by a strong and unbreakable desire for cohesion. Their efforts could have taught the Christian powers a lesson; had they used a united fleet to occupy the Straits of Gallipoli, the Ottomans would have quickly been defeated in Europe. However, the division in the West, along with the factions and wars between France and England, distracted the Latins from this noble endeavor: they enjoyed the temporary peace without considering the future; and often, their momentary interests led them to support the common enemy of their religion. A colony of Genoese, 76 that had been established at Phocæa 77 on the Ionian coast, profited from the lucrative monopoly of alum; 78 and their safety under the Turkish empire was secured by paying annual tribute. During the last civil war of the Ottomans, the Genoese governor, Adorno, a bold and ambitious young man, sided with Amurath; and he undertook to transport him from Asia to Europe with seven sturdy galleys. The sultan and five hundred guards boarded the admiral’s ship, which was crewed by eight hundred of the bravest Franks. His life and liberty depended on them; and we can hardly commend Adorno’s loyalty, who, in the middle of the journey, knelt before him and gratefully accepted the cancellation of his unpaid tribute. They landed in sight of Mustapha and Gallipoli; two thousand Italians, armed with lances and battle-axes, followed Amurath to conquer Adrianople; and this mercenary service was soon paid back with the downfall of the commerce and colony of Phocæa.

76 (return)
[ See Pachymer, (l. v. c. 29,) Nicephorus Gregoras, (l. ii. c. 1,) Sherefeddin, (l. v. c. 57,) and Ducas, (c. 25.) The last of these, a curious and careful observer, is entitled, from his birth and station, to particular credit in all that concerns Ionia and the islands. Among the nations that resorted to New Phocæa, he mentions the English; ('Igglhnoi;) an early evidence of Mediterranean trade.]

76 (return)
[ See Pachymer, (l. v. c. 29,) Nicephorus Gregoras, (l. ii. c. 1,) Sherefeddin, (l. v. c. 57,) and Ducas, (c. 25.) The last of these, a curious and careful observer, is deserving of particular recognition in everything related to Ionia and the islands due to his background and status. Among the nations that came to New Phocæa, he mentions the English; ('Igglhnoi;') an early indication of Mediterranean trade.]

77 (return)
[ For the spirit of navigation, and freedom of ancient Phocæa, or rather the Phocæans, consult the first book of Herodotus, and the Geographical Index of his last and learned French translator, M. Larcher (tom. vii. p. 299.)]

77 (return)
[ For the spirit of navigation and the freedom of ancient Phocæa, or rather the Phocæans, refer to the first book of Herodotus and the Geographical Index of his most recent and knowledgeable French translator, M. Larcher (tom. vii. p. 299.)]

78 (return)
[ Phocæa is not enumerated by Pliny (Hist. Nat. xxxv. 52) among the places productive of alum: he reckons Egypt as the first, and for the second the Isle of Melos, whose alum mines are described by Tournefort, (tom. i. lettre iv.,) a traveller and a naturalist. After the loss of Phocæa, the Genoese, in 1459, found that useful mineral in the Isle of Ischia, (Ismael. Bouillaud, ad Ducam, c. 25.)]

78 (return)
[ Pliny (Hist. Nat. xxxv. 52) does not list Phocæa among the places that produce alum; he mentions Egypt as the first source and the Isle of Melos as the second, where Tournefort, a traveler and naturalist, describes the alum mines (tom. i. lettre iv.). After Phocæa was lost, the Genoese discovered this valuable mineral on the Isle of Ischia in 1459 (Ismael. Bouillaud, ad Ducam, c. 25.)]

If Timour had generously marched at the request, and to the relief, of the Greek emperor, he might be entitled to the praise and gratitude of the Christians. 79 But a Mussulman, who carried into Georgia the sword of persecution, and respected the holy warfare of Bajazet, was not disposed to pity or succor the idolaters of Europe. The Tartar followed the impulse of ambition; and the deliverance of Constantinople was the accidental consequence. When Manuel abdicated the government, it was his prayer, rather than his hope, that the ruin of the church and state might be delayed beyond his unhappy days; and after his return from a western pilgrimage, he expected every hour the news of the sad catastrophe. On a sudden, he was astonished and rejoiced by the intelligence of the retreat, the overthrow, and the captivity of the Ottoman. Manuel 80 immediately sailed from Modon in the Morea; ascended the throne of Constantinople, and dismissed his blind competitor to an easy exile in the Isle of Lesbos. The ambassadors of the son of Bajazet were soon introduced to his presence; but their pride was fallen, their tone was modest: they were awed by the just apprehension, lest the Greeks should open to the Moguls the gates of Europe. Soliman saluted the emperor by the name of father; solicited at his hands the government or gift of Romania; and promised to deserve his favor by inviolable friendship, and the restitution of Thessalonica, with the most important places along the Strymon, the Propontis, and the Black Sea. The alliance of Soliman exposed the emperor to the enmity and revenge of Mousa: the Turks appeared in arms before the gates of Constantinople; but they were repulsed by sea and land; and unless the city was guarded by some foreign mercenaries, the Greeks must have wondered at their own triumph. But, instead of prolonging the division of the Ottoman powers, the policy or passion of Manuel was tempted to assist the most formidable of the sons of Bajazet. He concluded a treaty with Mahomet, whose progress was checked by the insuperable barrier of Gallipoli: the sultan and his troops were transported over the Bosphorus; he was hospitably entertained in the capital; and his successful sally was the first step to the conquest of Romania. The ruin was suspended by the prudence and moderation of the conqueror: he faithfully discharged his own obligations and those of Soliman, respected the laws of gratitude and peace; and left the emperor guardian of his two younger sons, in the vain hope of saving them from the jealous cruelty of their brother Amurath. But the execution of his last testament would have offended the national honor and religion; and the divan unanimously pronounced, that the royal youths should never be abandoned to the custody and education of a Christian dog. On this refusal, the Byzantine councils were divided; but the age and caution of Manuel yielded to the presumption of his son John; and they unsheathed a dangerous weapon of revenge, by dismissing the true or false Mustapha, who had long been detained as a captive and hostage, and for whose maintenance they received an annual pension of three hundred thousand aspers. 81 At the door of his prison, Mustapha subscribed to every proposal; and the keys of Gallipoli, or rather of Europe, were stipulated as the price of his deliverance. But no sooner was he seated on the throne of Romania, than he dismissed the Greek ambassadors with a smile of contempt, declaring, in a pious tone, that, at the day of judgment, he would rather answer for the violation of an oath, than for the surrender of a Mussulman city into the hands of the infidels. The emperor was at once the enemy of the two rivals; from whom he had sustained, and to whom he had offered, an injury; and the victory of Amurath was followed, in the ensuing spring, by the siege of Constantinople. 82

If Timour had generously marched at the request and for the relief of the Greek emperor, he might have earned the praise and gratitude of the Christians. 79 But a Muslim, who brought the sword of persecution into Georgia and honored Bajazet's holy war, was not inclined to show mercy or help the idolaters of Europe. The Tartar was driven by ambition, and the liberation of Constantinople was just an accidental result. When Manuel gave up the government, he hoped—more than he truly believed—that the downfall of the church and state could be postponed beyond his unfortunate days; and after returning from a pilgrimage in the West, he anxiously awaited the news of the tragic disaster. Suddenly, he was shocked and overjoyed by news of the Ottoman's retreat, defeat, and captivity. Manuel 80 immediately set sail from Modon in the Morea; took the throne of Constantinople, and sent his blind rival into a comfortable exile on the Isle of Lesbos. The ambassadors of Bajazet's son soon came before him; their pride was diminished, and their tone was humble: they were intimidated by the looming fear that the Greeks might open the gates of Europe to the Mongols. Soliman greeted the emperor as "father," asked him to govern or grant Romania, and promised to earn his favor through unwavering friendship, along with the return of Thessalonica and significant locations along the Strymon, the Propontis, and the Black Sea. Soliman's alliance put the emperor at risk of Mousa's anger and revenge: the Turks appeared armed before the gates of Constantinople; but they were repelled by both sea and land; and without some foreign mercenaries guarding the city, the Greeks would have been astonished by their own victory. However, instead of extending the division among the Ottoman powers, Manuel’s strategy or passion tempted him to support the most formidable of Bajazet's sons. He made a treaty with Mahomet, whose advance was halted by the unbeatable barrier of Gallipoli: the sultan and his troops crossed over the Bosphorus; he was warmly welcomed in the capital; and his successful raid became the first step towards conquering Romania. The disaster was averted by the conqueror's wisdom and restraint: he upheld his own obligations and those of Soliman, respected the laws of gratitude and peace, and left the emperor as guardian of his two younger sons, in the futile hope of protecting them from the jealous cruelty of their brother Amurath. But carrying out his final wishes would have insulted national honor and religion; and the divan unanimously declared that the royal boys should never be left in the care and upbringing of a Christian dog. In light of this denial, the Byzantine council was split; but the age and caution of Manuel succumbed to the boldness of his son John; they drew a risky plan for revenge by releasing the true or false Mustapha, who had long been held captive and hostage, for whom they received an annual stipend of three hundred thousand aspers. 81 At the entrance to his prison, Mustapha agreed to every proposal; and the keys to Gallipoli, or rather to Europe, were set as the price for his release. However, as soon as he was seated on the Romanian throne, he dismissed the Greek ambassadors with a scornful smile, stating, in a devout manner, that on Judgment Day, he would rather be held accountable for breaking an oath than for surrendering a Muslim city into the hands of infidels. The emperor found himself simultaneously at odds with both rivals, having suffered from and inflicted harm upon them; and Amurath's victory was soon followed in the spring by the siege of Constantinople. 82

79 (return)
[ The writer who has the most abused this fabulous generosity, is our ingenious Sir William Temple, (his Works, vol. iii. p. 349, 350, octavo edition,) that lover of exotic virtue. After the conquest of Russia, &c., and the passage of the Danube, his Tartar hero relieves, visits, admires, and refuses the city of Constantine. His flattering pencil deviates in every line from the truth of history; yet his pleasing fictions are more excusable than the gross errors of Cantemir.]

79 (return)
[ The writer who has most misused this incredible generosity is our clever Sir William Temple, (his Works, vol. iii. p. 349, 350, octavo edition), that admirer of exotic virtue. After the conquest of Russia, etc., and the crossing of the Danube, his Tartar hero helps, visits, admires, and then rejects the city of Constantine. His flattering descriptions stray from the truth of history in every detail; yet his enjoyable fictions are more forgivable than the blatant mistakes of Cantemir.]

80 (return)
[ For the reigns of Manuel and John, of Mahomet I. and Amurath II., see the Othman history of Cantemir, (p. 70—95,) and the three Greeks, Chalcondyles, Phranza, and Ducas, who is still superior to his rivals.]

80 (return)
[ For the rule of Manuel and John, as well as Mahomet I. and Amurath II., check out the Othman history by Cantemir, (p. 70—95,) and the three Greek historians, Chalcondyles, Phranza, and Ducas, who stands out among his peers.]

81 (return)
[ The Turkish asper (from the Greek asproV) is, or was, a piece of white or silver money, at present much debased, but which was formerly equivalent to the 54th part, at least, of a Venetian ducat or sequin; and the 300,000 aspers, a princely allowance or royal tribute, may be computed at 2500l. sterling, (Leunclav. Pandect. Turc. p. 406—408.) * Note: According to Von Hammer, this calculation is much too low. The asper was a century before the time of which writes, the tenth part of a ducat; for the same tribute which the Byzantine writers state at 300,000 aspers the Ottomans state at 30,000 ducats, about 15000l Note, vol. p. 636.—M.]

81 (return)
[ The Turkish asper (from the Greek asproV) is, or was, a piece of white or silver currency, now greatly devalued, but which used to be worth at least the 54th part of a Venetian ducat or sequin; the 300,000 aspers, a princely allowance or royal tribute, can be estimated at 2500 l sterling, (Leunclav. Pandect. Turc. p. 406—408.) * Note: According to Von Hammer, this estimation is much too low. The asper was, a century before the time he writes about, worth a tenth of a ducat; for the same tribute which the Byzantine writers state at 300,000 aspers, the Ottomans state at 30,000 ducats, around 15,000l Note, vol. p. 636.—M.]

82 (return)
[ For the siege of Constantinople in 1422, see the particular and contemporary narrative of John Cananus, published by Leo Allatius, at the end of his edition of Acropolita, (p. 188—199.)]

82 (return)
[ For the siege of Constantinople in 1422, check out the specific and contemporary account by John Cananus, published by Leo Allatius, at the end of his edition of Acropolita, (p. 188—199.)]

The religious merit of subduing the city of the Cæsars attracted from Asia a crowd of volunteers, who aspired to the crown of martyrdom: their military ardor was inflamed by the promise of rich spoils and beautiful females; and the sultan’s ambition was consecrated by the presence and prediction of Seid Bechar, a descendant of the prophet, 83 who arrived in the camp, on a mule, with a venerable train of five hundred disciples. But he might blush, if a fanatic could blush, at the failure of his assurances. The strength of the walls resisted an army of two hundred thousand Turks; their assaults were repelled by the sallies of the Greeks and their foreign mercenaries; the old resources of defence were opposed to the new engines of attack; and the enthusiasm of the dervis, who was snatched to heaven in visionary converse with Mahomet, was answered by the credulity of the Christians, who beheld the Virgin Mary, in a violet garment, walking on the rampart and animating their courage. 84 After a siege of two months, Amurath was recalled to Boursa by a domestic revolt, which had been kindled by Greek treachery, and was soon extinguished by the death of a guiltless brother. While he led his Janizaries to new conquests in Europe and Asia, the Byzantine empire was indulged in a servile and precarious respite of thirty years. Manuel sank into the grave; and John Palæologus was permitted to reign, for an annual tribute of three hundred thousand aspers, and the dereliction of almost all that he held beyond the suburbs of Constantinople.

The religious significance of taking the city of the Cæsars attracted a crowd of volunteers from Asia who sought the glory of martyrdom. Their military enthusiasm was fueled by the promise of rich spoils and beautiful women, and the sultan’s ambition was boosted by the arrival and prophecies of Seid Bechar, a descendant of the prophet, 83 who came into the camp on a mule, accompanied by a venerable group of five hundred followers. But he might feel shame, if a fanatic could feel shame, about the failure of his promises. The strength of the walls held firm against an army of two hundred thousand Turks; their attacks were countered by the courageous sorties of the Greeks and their foreign mercenaries; the old methods of defense faced off against the new siege technologies; and the zeal of the dervis, who was taken to heaven in a visionary conversation with Muhammad, was met by the credulity of the Christians, who saw the Virgin Mary, dressed in a violet robe, walking the ramparts and inspiring their bravery. 84 After a siege lasting two months, Amurath was called back to Boursa due to a domestic revolt sparked by Greek treachery, which was quickly extinguished by the death of an innocent brother. While he led his Janizaries into new conquests in Europe and Asia, the Byzantine Empire enjoyed a submissive and unstable break of thirty years. Manuel passed away, and John Palæologus was allowed to reign in exchange for an annual tribute of three hundred thousand aspers, and the loss of nearly all his territory beyond the outskirts of Constantinople.

83 (return)
[ Cantemir, p. 80. Cananus, who describes Seid Bechar, without naming him, supposes that the friend of Mahomet assumed in his amours the privilege of a prophet, and that the fairest of the Greek nuns were promised to the saint and his disciples.]

83 (return)
[ Cantemir, p. 80. Cananus, who talks about Seid Bechar without naming him, suggests that Mahomet's friend took on the privileges of a prophet when it came to his romantic affairs, and that the most beautiful of the Greek nuns were promised to the saint and his followers.]

84 (return)
[ For this miraculous apparition, Cananus appeals to the Mussulman saint; but who will bear testimony for Seid Bechar?]

84 (return)
[ For this miraculous appearance, Cananus turns to the Muslim saint; but who will vouch for Seid Bechar?]

In the establishment and restoration of the Turkish empire, the first merit must doubtless be assigned to the personal qualities of the sultans; since, in human life, the most important scenes will depend on the character of a single actor. By some shades of wisdom and virtue, they may be discriminated from each other; but, except in a single instance, a period of nine reigns, and two hundred and sixty-five years, is occupied, from the elevation of Othman to the death of Soliman, by a rare series of warlike and active princes, who impressed their subjects with obedience and their enemies with terror. Instead of the slothful luxury of the seraglio, the heirs of royalty were educated in the council and the field: from early youth they were intrusted by their fathers with the command of provinces and armies; and this manly institution, which was often productive of civil war, must have essentially contributed to the discipline and vigor of the monarchy. The Ottomans cannot style themselves, like the Arabian caliphs, the descendants or successors of the apostle of God; and the kindred which they claim with the Tartar khans of the house of Zingis appears to be founded in flattery rather than in truth. 85 Their origin is obscure; but their sacred and indefeasible right, which no time can erase, and no violence can infringe, was soon and unalterably implanted in the minds of their subjects. A weak or vicious sultan may be deposed and strangled; but his inheritance devolves to an infant or an idiot: nor has the most daring rebel presumed to ascend the throne of his lawful sovereign. 86

In the rise and revival of the Turkish empire, the primary credit must definitely go to the personal qualities of the sultans; after all, in human life, the most significant events often depend on the character of a single individual. They can be distinguished from one another by different degrees of wisdom and virtue, but, except for one notable case, a span of nine reigns and two hundred sixty-five years is filled with a remarkable series of warlike and active leaders, who instilled obedience in their subjects and instilled fear in their enemies. Rather than indulging in the lazy luxury of the palace, royal heirs were trained in governance and in battle: from a young age, they were given authority over provinces and armies by their fathers; this robust training, which sometimes led to civil strife, must have significantly contributed to the discipline and strength of the monarchy. The Ottomans cannot claim, like the Arabian caliphs, to be the descendants or successors of the messenger of God; the connection they assert with the Tartar khans of the house of Genghis seems more based on flattery than on reality. 85 Their origins are unclear; however, their sacred and undeniable right, which no passage of time can erase and no force can violate, was quickly and permanently ingrained in the minds of their subjects. A weak or corrupt sultan may be overthrown and killed; but his heirs descend to a child or a fool: no bold rebel has dared to take the throne of his rightful ruler. 86

85 (return)
[ See Ricaut, (l. i. c. 13.) The Turkish sultans assume the title of khan. Yet Abulghazi is ignorant of his Ottoman cousins.]

85 (return)
[ See Ricaut, (l. i. c. 13.) The Turkish sultans take on the title of khan. However, Abulghazi is unaware of his Ottoman relatives.]

86 (return)
[ The third grand vizier of the name of Kiuperli, who was slain at the battle of Salankanen in 1691, (Cantemir, p. 382,) presumed to say that all the successors of Soliman had been fools or tyrants, and that it was time to abolish the race, (Marsigli Stato Militaire, &c., p. 28.) This political heretic was a good Whig, and justified against the French ambassador the revolution of England, (Mignot, Hist. des Ottomans, tom. iii. p. 434.) His presumption condemns the singular exception of continuing offices in the same family.]

86 (return)
[ The third grand vizier named Kiuperli, who was killed at the battle of Salankanen in 1691, (Cantemir, p. 382,) claimed that all the successors of Soliman had been either fools or tyrants, and that it was time to put an end to that lineage, (Marsigli Stato Militare, &c., p. 28.) This political heretic was a staunch Whig, and defended the revolution in England against the French ambassador, (Mignot, Hist. des Ottomans, tom. iii. p. 434.) His boldness contradicts the unusual exception of keeping positions within the same family.]

While the transient dynasties of Asia have been continually subverted by a crafty vizier in the palace, or a victorious general in the camp, the Ottoman succession has been confirmed by the practice of five centuries, and is now incorporated with the vital principle of the Turkish nation.

While the short-lived dynasties of Asia have often been undermined by a clever advisor in the palace or a triumphant general in the field, the Ottoman succession has been established by five centuries of tradition and is now intertwined with the core identity of the Turkish nation.

To the spirit and constitution of that nation, a strong and singular influence may, however, be ascribed. The primitive subjects of Othman were the four hundred families of wandering Turkmans, who had followed his ancestors from the Oxus to the Sangar; and the plains of Anatolia are still covered with the white and black tents of their rustic brethren. But this original drop was dissolved in the mass of voluntary and vanquished subjects, who, under the name of Turks, are united by the common ties of religion, language, and manners. In the cities, from Erzeroum to Belgrade, that national appellation is common to all the Moslems, the first and most honorable inhabitants; but they have abandoned, at least in Romania, the villages, and the cultivation of the land, to the Christian peasants. In the vigorous age of the Ottoman government, the Turks were themselves excluded from all civil and military honors; and a servile class, an artificial people, was raised by the discipline of education to obey, to conquer, and to command. 87 From the time of Orchan and the first Amurath, the sultans were persuaded that a government of the sword must be renewed in each generation with new soldiers; and that such soldiers must be sought, not in effeminate Asia, but among the hardy and warlike natives of Europe. The provinces of Thrace, Macedonia, Albania, Bulgaria, and Servia, became the perpetual seminary of the Turkish army; and when the royal fifth of the captives was diminished by conquest, an inhuman tax of the fifth child, or of every fifth year, was rigorously levied on the Christian families. At the age of twelve or fourteen years, the most robust youths were torn from their parents; their names were enrolled in a book; and from that moment they were clothed, taught, and maintained, for the public service. According to the promise of their appearance, they were selected for the royal schools of Boursa, Pera, and Adrianople, intrusted to the care of the bashaws, or dispersed in the houses of the Anatolian peasantry. It was the first care of their masters to instruct them in the Turkish language: their bodies were exercised by every labor that could fortify their strength; they learned to wrestle, to leap, to run, to shoot with the bow, and afterwards with the musket; till they were drafted into the chambers and companies of the Janizaries, and severely trained in the military or monastic discipline of the order. The youths most conspicuous for birth, talents, and beauty, were admitted into the inferior class of Agiamoglans, or the more liberal rank of Ichoglans, of whom the former were attached to the palace, and the latter to the person, of the prince. In four successive schools, under the rod of the white eunuchs, the arts of horsemanship and of darting the javelin were their daily exercise, while those of a more studious cast applied themselves to the study of the Koran, and the knowledge of the Arabic and Persian tongues. As they advanced in seniority and merit, they were gradually dismissed to military, civil, and even ecclesiastical employments: the longer their stay, the higher was their expectation; till, at a mature period, they were admitted into the number of the forty agas, who stood before the sultan, and were promoted by his choice to the government of provinces and the first honors of the empire. 88 Such a mode of institution was admirably adapted to the form and spirit of a despotic monarchy. The ministers and generals were, in the strictest sense, the slaves of the emperor, to whose bounty they were indebted for their instruction and support. When they left the seraglio, and suffered their beards to grow as the symbol of enfranchisement, they found themselves in an important office, without faction or friendship, without parents and without heirs, dependent on the hand which had raised them from the dust, and which, on the slightest displeasure, could break in pieces these statues of glass, as they were aptly termed by the Turkish proverb. 89 In the slow and painful steps of education, their characters and talents were unfolded to a discerning eye: the man, naked and alone, was reduced to the standard of his personal merit; and, if the sovereign had wisdom to choose, he possessed a pure and boundless liberty of choice. The Ottoman candidates were trained by the virtues of abstinence to those of action; by the habits of submission to those of command. A similar spirit was diffused among the troops; and their silence and sobriety, their patience and modesty, have extorted the reluctant praise of their Christian enemies. 90 Nor can the victory appear doubtful, if we compare the discipline and exercise of the Janizaries with the pride of birth, the independence of chivalry, the ignorance of the new levies, the mutinous temper of the veterans, and the vices of intemperance and disorder, which so long contaminated the armies of Europe.

To the spirit and makeup of that nation, a strong and unique influence can be attributed. The original subjects of Othman were the four hundred families of wandering Turkmans who had followed his ancestors from the Oxus to the Sangar; today, the plains of Anatolia are still dotted with the white and black tents of their rustic relatives. However, this initial group was blended into a larger mass of willing and conquered subjects, who, under the name of Turks, are brought together by shared religion, language, and customs. In cities stretching from Erzeroum to Belgrade, that national identity is common among all Muslims, the original and most esteemed inhabitants; but they have largely left, at least in Romania, the villages and farming to the Christian peasants. During the strong period of the Ottoman government, Turks were excluded from all civil and military honors; a subservient class, an artificial people, was created through education to obey, conquer, and command. 87 From the time of Orchan and the first Amurath, sultans believed that a military government needed to be constantly refreshed with new soldiers; and that recruits should be found not in soft Asia but among the tough, warlike natives of Europe. The provinces of Thrace, Macedonia, Albania, Bulgaria, and Serbia became the ongoing training ground for the Turkish army; and when the royal share of prisoners was reduced through conquest, an inhumane tax of the fifth child, or one every five years, was strictly enforced on Christian families. At ages twelve or fourteen, the strongest youths were taken from their parents; their names were logged in a book; and from that moment, they were clothed, educated, and supported for the public service. Based on their potential, they were selected for royal schools in Boursa, Pera, and Adrianople, entrusted to the care of the bashaws, or placed in the homes of Anatolian peasants. Their masters’ first priority was to teach them the Turkish language: their bodies were strengthened through various physical labors; they learned to wrestle, jump, run, and shoot with the bow, and later with the musket, until they were drafted into the ranks of the Janizaries and rigorously trained in the military or monastic discipline of the order. The youths who stood out for their birth, skill, and beauty were admitted to the lower class of Agiamoglans, or the more privileged class of Ichoglans, the former serving in the palace and the latter in the prince’s personal service. In four successive schools, under the guidance of the white eunuchs, they practiced horsemanship and javelin throwing daily, while those with a more scholarly inclination studied the Koran and learned Arabic and Persian. As they progressed in age and merit, they were gradually released to military, civil, and even religious roles: the longer their training, the higher their prospects; until, at a mature age, they were included among the forty agas who stood before the sultan and were promoted by his choice to govern provinces and hold the empire's highest honors. 88 This method of training suited the nature and spirit of a despotic monarchy perfectly. Ministers and generals were, in the strictest sense, the emperor's servants, dependent on his generosity for their education and support. Once they left the seraglio and allowed their beards to grow as a symbol of freedom, they found themselves in significant positions, free from factions and friendships, without parents or heirs, reliant on the hand that had raised them from obscurity, which, at the slightest displeasure, could shatter these fragile statues, as the Turkish proverb aptly described them. 89 Through the slow and demanding process of education, their characters and talents were revealed to a discerning eye: the man, bare and alone, was measured by his individual merit; and, if the sovereign had the wisdom to choose, he had complete and unrestricted freedom of choice. The Ottoman candidates were trained through virtues of self-restraint for action; by habits of submission for leadership. A similar spirit was cultivated among the troops; their quietness and restraint, their patience and humility, earned them the reluctant admiration of their Christian enemies. 90 The victory seems assured when we compare the discipline and training of the Janizaries with the pride of lineage, the independence of chivalry, the ignorance of new recruits, the rebellious nature of the veterans, and the vices of excess and disorder that plagued the armies of Europe for so long.

87 (return)
[ Chalcondyles (l. v.) and Ducas (c. 23) exhibit the rude lineament of the Ottoman policy, and the transmutation of Christian children into Turkish soldiers.]

87 (return)
[ Chalcondyles (l. v.) and Ducas (c. 23) show the harsh characteristics of Ottoman policy and the transformation of Christian children into Turkish soldiers.]

88 (return)
[ This sketch of the Turkish education and discipline is chiefly borrowed from Ricaut’s State of the Ottoman Empire, the Stato Militaire del’ Imperio Ottomano of Count Marsigli, (in Haya, 1732, in folio,) and a description of the Seraglio, approved by Mr. Greaves himself, a curious traveller, and inserted in the second volume of his works.]

88 (return)
[ This overview of Turkish education and discipline is mainly taken from Ricaut’s State of the Ottoman Empire, Count Marsigli's Stato Militaire dell'Impero Ottomano (in Haya, 1732, in folio), and a description of the Seraglio, which was approved by Mr. Greaves, an inquisitive traveler, and included in the second volume of his works.]

89 (return)
[ From the series of cxv. viziers, till the siege of Vienna, (Marsigli, p. 13,) their place may be valued at three years and a half purchase.]

89 (return)
[From the series of cxv. viziers, until the siege of Vienna, (Marsigli, p. 13,) their value may be estimated at three and a half years' worth of purchases.]

90 (return)
[ See the entertaining and judicious letters of Busbequius.]

90 (return)
[ Check out the entertaining and insightful letters of Busbequius.]

The only hope of salvation for the Greek empire, and the adjacent kingdoms, would have been some more powerful weapon, some discovery in the art of war, that would give them a decisive superiority over their Turkish foes. Such a weapon was in their hands; such a discovery had been made in the critical moment of their fate. The chemists of China or Europe had found, by casual or elaborate experiments, that a mixture of saltpetre, sulphur, and charcoal, produces, with a spark of fire, a tremendous explosion. It was soon observed, that if the expansive force were compressed in a strong tube, a ball of stone or iron might be expelled with irresistible and destructive velocity. The precise æra of the invention and application of gunpowder 91 is involved in doubtful traditions and equivocal language; yet we may clearly discern, that it was known before the middle of the fourteenth century; and that before the end of the same, the use of artillery in battles and sieges, by sea and land, was familiar to the states of Germany, Italy, Spain, France, and England. 92 The priority of nations is of small account; none could derive any exclusive benefit from their previous or superior knowledge; and in the common improvement, they stood on the same level of relative power and military science. Nor was it possible to circumscribe the secret within the pale of the church; it was disclosed to the Turks by the treachery of apostates and the selfish policy of rivals; and the sultans had sense to adopt, and wealth to reward, the talents of a Christian engineer. The Genoese, who transported Amurath into Europe, must be accused as his preceptors; and it was probably by their hands that his cannon was cast and directed at the siege of Constantinople. 93 The first attempt was indeed unsuccessful; but in the general warfare of the age, the advantage was on their side, who were most commonly the assailants: for a while the proportion of the attack and defence was suspended; and this thundering artillery was pointed against the walls and towers which had been erected only to resist the less potent engines of antiquity. By the Venetians, the use of gunpowder was communicated without reproach to the sultans of Egypt and Persia, their allies against the Ottoman power; the secret was soon propagated to the extremities of Asia; and the advantage of the European was confined to his easy victories over the savages of the new world. If we contrast the rapid progress of this mischievous discovery with the slow and laborious advances of reason, science, and the arts of peace, a philosopher, according to his temper, will laugh or weep at the folly of mankind.

The only chance for the Greek empire and the nearby kingdoms to survive would have been a more powerful weapon or a breakthrough in military strategy that could give them a significant edge over their Turkish enemies. They had such a weapon at hand; they had just discovered it at a critical moment in their history. Chemists from China or Europe had discovered, through various experiments, that a mix of saltpeter, sulfur, and charcoal creates a massive explosion when ignited. It was soon noticed that if this explosive force was contained within a strong tube, a stone or iron ball could be launched with tremendous and destructive speed. The exact time when gunpowder was invented and first used 91 is shrouded in uncertain stories and vague references; however, it's clear that it was known before the mid-fourteenth century, and by the end of that century, the use of artillery in battles and sieges, both on land and at sea, was common among the states of Germany, Italy, Spain, France, and England. 92 The priority of nations doesn’t matter much; none could gain exclusive benefits from their earlier or better knowledge; they all stood at the same level in terms of military power and skill. It was also impossible to keep this secret limited to the church; it was revealed to the Turks through the betrayal of defectors and the self-serving actions of rivals. The sultans smartly adopted and rewarded the expertise of a Christian engineer. The Genoese, who brought Amurath into Europe, should be considered his teachers; it’s likely they helped cast and direct his cannons during the siege of Constantinople. 93 The first attempt was unsuccessful, but in the broader conflicts of the time, the advantage lay with those who were usually the attackers: for a time, the balance of offense and defense was disrupted, and this thunderous artillery was aimed at walls and towers that had only been constructed to withstand the less powerful weapons of earlier times. The Venetians shared the use of gunpowder without blame to the sultans of Egypt and Persia, their allies against the Ottoman Empire; soon, the knowledge spread to the farthest reaches of Asia, and the European’s advantage was limited to easy victories over the indigenous people of the new world. When we compare the rapid spread of this destructive invention to the slow and difficult progress of reason, science, and peaceful arts, a philosopher, depending on their perspective, may either laugh or weep at human folly.

91 (return)
[ The first and second volumes of Dr. Watson’s Chemical Essays contain two valuable discourses on the discovery and composition of gunpowder.]

91 (return)
[ The first and second volumes of Dr. Watson’s Chemical Essays include two important discussions on the discovery and makeup of gunpowder.]

92 (return)
[ On this subject modern testimonies cannot be trusted. The original passages are collected by Ducange, (Gloss. Latin. tom. i. p. 675, Bombarda.) But in the early doubtful twilight, the name, sound, fire, and effect, that seem to express our artillery, may be fairly interpreted of the old engines and the Greek fire. For the English cannon at Crecy, the authority of John Villani (Chron. l. xii. c. 65) must be weighed against the silence of Froissard. Yet Muratori (Antiquit. Italiæ Medii Ævi, tom. ii. Dissert. xxvi. p. 514, 515) has produced a decisive passage from Petrarch, (De Remediis utriusque Fortunæ Dialog.,) who, before the year 1344, execrates this terrestrial thunder, nuper rara, nunc communis. * Note: Mr. Hallam makes the following observation on the objection thrown our by Gibbon: “The positive testimony of Villani, who died within two years afterwards, and had manifestly obtained much information as to the great events passing in France, cannot be rejected. He ascribes a material effect to the cannon of Edward, Colpi delle bombarde, which I suspect, from his strong expressions, had not been employed before, except against stone walls. It seems, he says, as if God thundered con grande uccisione di genti e efondamento di cavalli.” Middle Ages, vol. i. p. 510.—M.]

92 (return)
[ On this topic, modern evidence can't be relied upon. The original texts are compiled by Ducange, (Gloss. Latin. vol. i. p. 675, Bombarda.) However, in the early uncertain period, the terms, sound, fire, and effects that seem to describe our artillery could also reasonably refer to the ancient weapons and Greek fire. For the English cannon at Crecy, we must consider the authority of John Villani (Chron. vol. xii. c. 65) against the silence of Froissart. Yet Muratori (Antiquit. Italiæ Medii Ævi, vol. ii. Dissert. xxvi. p. 514, 515) has presented a definitive passage from Petrarch, (De Remediis utriusque Fortunæ Dialog,) who, before 1344, condemns this earthly thunder, nuper rare, nunc common. * Note: Mr. Hallam makes the following remark on the objection raised by Gibbon: “The strong evidence from Villani, who died just two years later and had clearly gathered substantial knowledge about the major events in France, cannot be dismissed. He attributes significant impact to the cannon of Edward, Colpi delle bombarde, which I suspect, based on his intense language, had not been used before, except against stone walls. It seems, he states, as though God thundered with great slaughter of people and the spilling of horses.” Middle Ages, vol. i. p. 510.—M.]

93 (return)
[ The Turkish cannon, which Ducas (c. 30) first introduces before Belgrade, (A.D. 1436,) is mentioned by Chalcondyles (l. v. p. 123) in 1422, at the siege of Constantinople.]

93 (return)
[The Turkish cannon, which Ducas (around 30 years old) first mentions before Belgrade (A.D. 1436), is referred to by Chalcondyles (l. v. p. 123) in 1422 during the siege of Constantinople.]

Chapter LXVI: Union Of The Greek And Latin Churches.—Part I.

     Applications Of The Eastern Emperors To The Popes.—Visits
     To The West, Of John The First, Manuel, And John The Second,
     Palæologus.—Union Of The Greek And Latin Churches, Promoted
     By The Council Of Basil, And Concluded At Ferrara And
     Florence.—State Of Literature At Constantinople.—Its
     Revival In Italy By The Greek Fugitives.—Cœuriosity And
     Emulation Of The Latins.
     Applications Of The Eastern Emperors To The Popes.—Visits
     To The West, Of John The First, Manuel, And John The Second,
     Palæologus.—Union Of The Greek And Latin Churches, Promoted
     By The Council Of Basil, And Concluded At Ferrara And
     Florence.—State Of Literature At Constantinople.—Its
     Revival In Italy By The Greek Fugitives.—Cœuriosity And
     Emulation Of The Latins.

In the four last centuries of the Greek emperors, their friendly or hostile aspect towards the pope and the Latins may be observed as the thermometer of their prosperity or distress; as the scale of the rise and fall of the Barbarian dynasties. When the Turks of the house of Seljuk pervaded Asia, and threatened Constantinople, we have seen, at the council of Placentia, the suppliant ambassadors of Alexius imploring the protection of the common father of the Christians. No sooner had the arms of the French pilgrims removed the sultan from Nice to Iconium, than the Greek princes resumed, or avowed, their genuine hatred and contempt for the schismatics of the West, which precipitated the first downfall of their empire. The date of the Mogul invasion is marked in the soft and charitable language of John Vataces. After the recovery of Constantinople, the throne of the first Palæologus was encompassed by foreign and domestic enemies; as long as the sword of Charles was suspended over his head, he basely courted the favor of the Roman pontiff; and sacrificed to the present danger his faith, his virtue, and the affection of his subjects. On the decease of Michael, the prince and people asserted the independence of their church, and the purity of their creed: the elder Andronicus neither feared nor loved the Latins; in his last distress, pride was the safeguard of superstition; nor could he decently retract in his age the firm and orthodox declarations of his youth. His grandson, the younger Andronicus, was less a slave in his temper and situation; and the conquest of Bithynia by the Turks admonished him to seek a temporal and spiritual alliance with the Western princes. After a separation and silence of fifty years, a secret agent, the monk Barlaam, was despatched to Pope Benedict the Twelfth; and his artful instructions appear to have been drawn by the master-hand of the great domestic. 1 “Most holy father,” was he commissioned to say, “the emperor is not less desirous than yourself of a union between the two churches: but in this delicate transaction, he is obliged to respect his own dignity and the prejudices of his subjects. The ways of union are twofold; force and persuasion. Of force, the inefficacy has been already tried; since the Latins have subdued the empire, without subduing the minds, of the Greeks. The method of persuasion, though slow, is sure and permanent. A deputation of thirty or forty of our doctors would probably agree with those of the Vatican, in the love of truth and the unity of belief; but on their return, what would be the use, the recompense, of such an agreement? the scorn of their brethren, and the reproaches of a blind and obstinate nation. Yet that nation is accustomed to reverence the general councils, which have fixed the articles of our faith; and if they reprobate the decrees of Lyons, it is because the Eastern churches were neither heard nor represented in that arbitrary meeting. For this salutary end, it will be expedient, and even necessary, that a well-chosen legate should be sent into Greece, to convene the patriarchs of Constantinople, Alexandria, Antioch, and Jerusalem; and, with their aid, to prepare a free and universal synod. But at this moment,” continued the subtle agent, “the empire is assaulted and endangered by the Turks, who have occupied four of the greatest cities of Anatolia. The Christian inhabitants have expressed a wish of returning to their allegiance and religion; but the forces and revenues of the emperor are insufficient for their deliverance: and the Roman legate must be accompanied, or preceded, by an army of Franks, to expel the infidels, and open a way to the holy sepulchre.” If the suspicious Latins should require some pledge, some previous effect of the sincerity of the Greeks, the answers of Barlaam were perspicuous and rational. “1. A general synod can alone consummate the union of the churches; nor can such a synod be held till the three Oriental patriarchs, and a great number of bishops, are enfranchised from the Mahometan yoke. 2. The Greeks are alienated by a long series of oppression and injury: they must be reconciled by some act of brotherly love, some effectual succor, which may fortify the authority and arguments of the emperor, and the friends of the union. 3. If some difference of faith or ceremonies should be found incurable, the Greeks, however, are the disciples of Christ; and the Turks are the common enemies of the Christian name. The Armenians, Cyprians, and Rhodians, are equally attacked; and it will become the piety of the French princes to draw their swords in the general defence of religion. 4. Should the subjects of Andronicus be treated as the worst of schismatics, of heretics, of pagans, a judicious policy may yet instruct the powers of the West to embrace a useful ally, to uphold a sinking empire, to guard the confines of Europe; and rather to join the Greeks against the Turks, than to expect the union of the Turkish arms with the troops and treasures of captive Greece.” The reasons, the offers, and the demands, of Andronicus were eluded with cold and stately indifference. The kings of France and Naples declined the dangers and glory of a crusade; the pope refused to call a new synod to determine old articles of faith; and his regard for the obsolete claims of the Latin emperor and clergy engaged him to use an offensive superscription,—“To the moderator 2 of the Greeks, and the persons who style themselves the patriarchs of the Eastern churches.” For such an embassy, a time and character less propitious could not easily have been found. Benedict the Twelfth 3 was a dull peasant, perplexed with scruples, and immersed in sloth and wine: his pride might enrich with a third crown the papal tiara, but he was alike unfit for the regal and the pastoral office.

In the last four centuries of the Greek emperors, their friendly or hostile relationship with the pope and the Latins can be seen as a thermometer for their prosperity or distress, reflecting the rise and fall of the Barbarian dynasties. When the Seljuk Turks invaded Asia and threatened Constantinople, we saw the desperate ambassadors of Alexius at the council of Placentia begging for the protection of the common father of Christians. As soon as the French pilgrims pushed the sultan from Nice to Iconium, the Greek princes renewed their genuine hatred and contempt for the schismatics of the West, which led to the first downfall of their empire. The date of the Mongol invasion is marked by the soft and charitable words of John Vataces. After Constantinople was reclaimed, the throne of the first Palæologus was surrounded by both foreign and domestic enemies; as long as Charles's sword hung over him, he shamefully sought the favor of the Roman pontiff and sacrificed his faith, virtue, and the loyalty of his subjects to address the immediate danger. After Michael's death, both prince and people asserted the independence of their church and the purity of their beliefs: the older Andronicus neither feared nor respected the Latins; in his final troubles, pride protected his superstition, and he could not gracefully retract the strong orthodox statements of his youth. His grandson, the younger Andronicus, was less submissive in his demeanor and situation; the conquest of Bithynia by the Turks urged him to pursue a political and spiritual alliance with the Western princes. After fifty years of separation and silence, a secret envoy, the monk Barlaam, was sent to Pope Benedict the Twelfth; his clever instructions seemed crafted by a master strategist. 1 “Most holy father,” he was ordered to say, “the emperor desires a union between our two churches just as much as you do: but in this sensitive matter, he must consider his own dignity and the biases of his subjects. There are two ways to achieve union: force and persuasion. The failure of force has already been made clear; since the Latins have conquered the empire without winning the hearts of the Greeks. Persuasion, while slow, is certain and lasting. A delegation of thirty or forty of our scholars could probably agree with those at the Vatican on the love of truth and shared beliefs; but on their return, what would be the worth or reward of such an agreement? The scorn of their peers and the reproaches of a blind and stubborn nation. However, that nation respects the general councils that have defined our faith; and if they reject the decrees of Lyons, it is because the Eastern churches were neither heard nor represented at that arbitrary meeting. To remedy this, it will be advisable, even necessary, to send a well-chosen envoy to Greece to gather the patriarchs of Constantinople, Alexandria, Antioch, and Jerusalem; and, with their support, to prepare a free and universal synod. But right now,” the crafty agent continued, “the empire is under attack from the Turks, who have taken four major cities in Anatolia. The Christian inhabitants want to return to their loyalty and faith; but the emperor's forces and resources are too weak for their rescue: the Roman envoy must be accompanied, or preceded, by an army of Franks to drive out the infidels and clear a path to the holy sepulcher.” If the wary Latins required some assurance or proof of the Greeks' sincerity, Barlaam’s responses were clear and sensible. “1. Only a general synod can finalize the union of the churches; and such a synod cannot be held until the three Eastern patriarchs and a significant number of bishops are freed from the Muslim yoke. 2. The Greeks have been estranged by a long history of oppression and harm: they must be reconciled through acts of brotherly love, and effective support, which can strengthen the authority and arguments of the emperor and the union's advocates. 3. Even if some differences in faith or customs cannot be resolved, the Greeks are still followers of Christ; and the Turks are the common enemies of the Christian faith. The Armenians, Cypriots, and Rhodians are also under attack; and it would be fitting for the French princes to unite in defense of religion. 4. Even if the subjects of Andronicus are treated as the worst of schismatics, heretics, or pagans, wise policy may teach the powers of the West to embrace a valuable ally to uphold a declining empire and protect Europe's borders; it would be better to join forces with the Greeks against the Turks than to hope for the alliance of Turkish forces with the troops and treasures of conquered Greece.” The reasons, offers, and demands from Andronicus were met with cold and lofty indifference. The kings of France and Naples shunned the risks and honors of a crusade; the pope refused to convene a new synod to address old articles of faith and maintained an offensive address—“To the moderator 2 of the Greeks and those who call themselves the patriarchs of the Eastern churches.” For such an embassy, it would be hard to find a time and character less advantageous. Benedict the Twelfth 3 was a dull peasant, tangled in scruples and indulging in sloth and wine: his pride might add another crown to the papal tiara, but he was equally unqualified for both the royal and pastoral roles.

1 (return)
[ This curious instruction was transcribed (I believe) from the Vatican archives, by Odoricus Raynaldus, in his Continuation of the Annals of Baronius, (Romæ, 1646—1677, in x. volumes in folio.) I have contented myself with the Abbé Fleury, (Hist. Ecclésiastique. tom. xx. p. 1—8,) whose abstracts I have always found to be clear, accurate, and impartial.]

1 (return)
[ I think this interesting instruction was copied from the Vatican archives by Odoricus Raynaldus in his Continuation of the Annals of Baronius, (Rome, 1646—1677, in ten volumes in folio). I've chosen to rely on Abbé Fleury, (Hist. Ecclésiastique. vol. xx. pp. 1—8), whose summaries I’ve always found to be clear, precise, and fair.]

2 (return)
[ The ambiguity of this title is happy or ingenious; and moderator, as synonymous to rector, gubernator, is a word of classical, and even Ciceronian, Latinity, which may be found, not in the Glossary of Ducange, but in the Thesaurus of Robert Stephens.]

2 (return)
[ The unclear meaning of this title is either fortunate or clever; and moderator, which is similar to rector, gubernator, is a term from classical, even Ciceronian, Latin, that can be found not in Ducange's Glossary, but in Robert Stephens' Thesaurus.]

3 (return)
[ The first epistle (sine titulo) of Petrarch exposes the danger of the bark, and the incapacity of the pilot. Hæc inter, vino madidus, ævo gravis, ac soporifero rore perfusus, jamjam nutitat, dormitat, jam somno præceps, atque (utinam solus) ruit..... Heu quanto felicius patrio terram sulcasset aratro, quam scalmum piscatorium ascendisset! This satire engages his biographer to weigh the virtues and vices of Benedict XII. which have been exaggerated by Guelphs and Ghibe lines, by Papists and Protestants, (see Mémoires sur la Vie de Pétrarque, tom. i. p. 259, ii. not. xv. p. 13—16.) He gave occasion to the saying, Bibamus papaliter.]

3 (return)
[ The first letter (untitled) from Petrarch highlights the dangers of the ship and the incompetence of the captain. Meanwhile, drenched in wine, weighed down by age, and soaked in sleep-inducing dew, he is already swaying, dozing off, about to fall into a deep sleep, and (would that he were alone) he is crashing down... Oh, how much happier he would have been plowing his homeland than climbing aboard a fishing boat! This satire prompts his biographer to evaluate the strengths and weaknesses of Benedict XII, which have been exaggerated by Guelphs and Ghibellines, Catholics and Protestants (see Mémoires sur la Vie de Pétrarque, tom. i. p. 259, ii. not. xv. p. 13—16.) He gave rise to the saying, Let's drink papally.]

After the decease of Andronicus, while the Greeks were distracted by intestine war, they could not presume to agitate a general union of the Christians. But as soon as Cantacuzene had subdued and pardoned his enemies, he was anxious to justify, or at least to extenuate, the introduction of the Turks into Europe, and the nuptials of his daughter with a Mussulman prince. Two officers of state, with a Latin interpreter, were sent in his name to the Roman court, which was transplanted to Avignon, on the banks of the Rhône, during a period of seventy years: they represented the hard necessity which had urged him to embrace the alliance of the miscreants, and pronounced by his command the specious and edifying sounds of union and crusade. Pope Clement the Sixth, 4 the successor of Benedict, received them with hospitality and honor, acknowledged the innocence of their sovereign, excused his distress, applauded his magnanimity, and displayed a clear knowledge of the state and revolutions of the Greek empire, which he had imbibed from the honest accounts of a Savoyard lady, an attendant of the empress Anne. 5 If Clement was ill endowed with the virtues of a priest, he possessed, however, the spirit and magnificence of a prince, whose liberal hand distributed benefices and kingdoms with equal facility. Under his reign Avignon was the seat of pomp and pleasure: in his youth he had surpassed the licentiousness of a baron; and the palace, nay, the bed-chamber of the pope, was adorned, or polluted, by the visits of his female favorites. The wars of France and England were adverse to the holy enterprise; but his vanity was amused by the splendid idea; and the Greek ambassadors returned with two Latin bishops, the ministers of the pontiff. On their arrival at Constantinople, the emperor and the nuncios admired each other’s piety and eloquence; and their frequent conferences were filled with mutual praises and promises, by which both parties were amused, and neither could be deceived. “I am delighted,” said the devout Cantacuzene, “with the project of our holy war, which must redound to my personal glory, as well as to the public benefit of Christendom. My dominions will give a free passage to the armies of France: my troops, my galleys, my treasures, shall be consecrated to the common cause; and happy would be my fate, could I deserve and obtain the crown of martyrdom. Words are insufficient to express the ardor with which I sigh for the reunion of the scattered members of Christ. If my death could avail, I would gladly present my sword and my neck: if the spiritual phœnix could arise from my ashes, I would erect the pile, and kindle the flame with my own hands.” Yet the Greek emperor presumed to observe, that the articles of faith which divided the two churches had been introduced by the pride and precipitation of the Latins: he disclaimed the servile and arbitrary steps of the first Palæologus; and firmly declared, that he would never submit his conscience unless to the decrees of a free and universal synod. “The situation of the times,” continued he, “will not allow the pope and myself to meet either at Rome or Constantinople; but some maritime city may be chosen on the verge of the two empires, to unite the bishops, and to instruct the faithful, of the East and West.” The nuncios seemed content with the proposition; and Cantacuzene affects to deplore the failure of his hopes, which were soon overthrown by the death of Clement, and the different temper of his successor. His own life was prolonged, but it was prolonged in a cloister; and, except by his prayers, the humble monk was incapable of directing the counsels of his pupil or the state. 6

After Andronicus died and the Greeks were caught up in civil war, they couldn't push for a united front among Christians. But once Cantacuzene defeated his enemies and forgave them, he felt the need to justify, or at least justify his reasoning, for allowing the Turks into Europe and marrying his daughter to a Muslim prince. He sent two state officials, along with a Latin interpreter, to the Roman court, which had been moved to Avignon along the Rhône for seventy years. They conveyed the harsh circumstances that forced him into an alliance with the infidels and spoke, on his orders, about the noble ideas of unity and crusade. Pope Clement VI, the successor of Benedict, welcomed them warmly, recognized their sovereign's innocence, sympathized with his plight, praised his bravery, and showed a clear understanding of the Greek empire's situation and changes, knowledge he got from an honest Savoyard lady who served Empress Anne. If Clement wasn't particularly virtuous as a priest, he still had the spirit and grandeur of a prince, easily distributing benefices and kingdoms. During his reign, Avignon was a hub of luxury and entertainment; in his youth, he had exceeded even the excesses of a baron, and the pope's palace, even his private chambers, were frequented by his female favorites. The wars between France and England were obstacles to the holy mission, but he found pleasure in the grand idea, and the Greek ambassadors returned with two Latin bishops, the pope's representatives. Upon arriving in Constantinople, the emperor and the nuncios admired each other’s devotion and eloquence; their frequent meetings were filled with mutual praises and promises that entertained both sides, though neither was misled. “I’m thrilled,” said the devout Cantacuzene, “about our holy war, which will bring glory to me personally and benefit Christendom as a whole. My lands will allow free passage for the armies of France: my troops, my ships, my wealth will serve the common cause; and I'd be blessed if I could earn and receive the crown of martyrdom. I can’t express how much I long for the reunion of the scattered members of Christ. If my death could help, I would gladly offer my sword and my neck: if the spiritual phoenix could rise from my ashes, I would build the pyre and ignite the fire myself.” Still, the Greek emperor dared to point out that the divisions between the two churches came from the pride and haste of the Latins: he rejected the subservient and arbitrary actions of the first Palæologus and declared firmly that he would never submit his conscience except to the rulings of a free and universal synod. “Given the current situation,” he continued, “neither the pope nor I can meet in Rome or Constantinople; but we can select a coastal city near both empires to gather the bishops and instruct the believers from the East and West.” The nuncios appeared satisfied with this suggestion, and Cantacuzene pretended to mourn the collapse of his hopes, soon dashed by Clement's death and the different temperament of his successor. His life extended, but it was only in a cloister; and apart from his prayers, the humble monk was unable to guide the decisions of his pupil or the state.

4 (return)
[ See the original Lives of Clement VI. in Muratori, (Script. Rerum Italicarum, tom. iii. P. ii. p. 550—589;) Matteo Villani, (Chron. l. iii. c. 43, in Muratori, tom. xiv. p. 186,) who styles him, molto cavallaresco, poco religioso; Fleury, (Hist. Ecclés. tom. xx. p. 126;) and the Vie de Pétrarque, (tom. ii. p. 42—45.) The abbé de Sade treats him with the most indulgence; but he is a gentleman as well as a priest.]

4 (return)
[ See the original Lives of Clement VI in Muratori, (Script. Rerum Italicarum, vol. iii. pt. ii. p. 550—589;) Matteo Villani, (Chron. vol. iii. ch. 43, in Muratori, vol. xiv. p. 186,) who describes him as very chivalrous but not very religious; Fleury, (Hist. Ecclés. vol. xx. p. 126;) and the Vie de Pétrarque, (vol. ii. p. 42—45.) The abbé de Sade treats him with the most leniency; but he is a gentleman as well as a priest.]

5 (return)
[ Her name (most probably corrupted) was Zampea. She had accompanied, and alone remained with her mistress at Constantinople, where her prudence, erudition, and politeness deserved the praises of the Greeks themselves, (Cantacuzen. l. i. c. 42.)]

5 (return)
[ Her name (most likely corrupted) was Zampea. She had accompanied and stayed with her mistress in Constantinople, where her wisdom, knowledge, and courtesy earned the praise of the Greeks themselves, (Cantacuzen. l. i. c. 42.)]

6 (return)
[ See this whole negotiation in Cantacuzene, (l. iv. c. 9,) who, amidst the praises and virtues which he bestows on himself, reveals the uneasiness of a guilty conscience.]

6 (return)
[ Check out the entire negotiation in Cantacuzene, (l. iv. c. 9,) who, while extolling his own praises and virtues, reveals the discomfort of a guilty conscience.]

Yet of all the Byzantine princes, that pupil, John Palæologus, was the best disposed to embrace, to believe, and to obey, the shepherd of the West. His mother, Anne of Savoy, was baptized in the bosom of the Latin church: her marriage with Andronicus imposed a change of name, of apparel, and of worship, but her heart was still faithful to her country and religion: she had formed the infancy of her son, and she governed the emperor, after his mind, or at least his stature, was enlarged to the size of man. In the first year of his deliverance and restoration, the Turks were still masters of the Hellespont; the son of Cantacuzene was in arms at Adrianople; and Palæologus could depend neither on himself nor on his people. By his mother’s advice, and in the hope of foreign aid, he abjured the rights both of the church and state; and the act of slavery, 7 subscribed in purple ink, and sealed with the golden bull, was privately intrusted to an Italian agent. The first article of the treaty is an oath of fidelity and obedience to Innocent the Sixth and his successors, the supreme pontiffs of the Roman and Catholic church. The emperor promises to entertain with due reverence their legates and nuncios; to assign a palace for their residence, and a temple for their worship; and to deliver his second son Manuel as the hostage of his faith. For these condescensions he requires a prompt succor of fifteen galleys, with five hundred men at arms, and a thousand archers, to serve against his Christian and Mussulman enemies. Palæologus engages to impose on his clergy and people the same spiritual yoke; but as the resistance of the Greeks might be justly foreseen, he adopts the two effectual methods of corruption and education. The legate was empowered to distribute the vacant benefices among the ecclesiastics who should subscribe the creed of the Vatican: three schools were instituted to instruct the youth of Constantinople in the language and doctrine of the Latins; and the name of Andronicus, the heir of the empire, was enrolled as the first student. Should he fail in the measures of persuasion or force, Palæologus declares himself unworthy to reign; transferred to the pope all regal and paternal authority; and invests Innocent with full power to regulate the family, the government, and the marriage, of his son and successor. But this treaty was neither executed nor published: the Roman galleys were as vain and imaginary as the submission of the Greeks; and it was only by the secrecy that their sovereign escaped the dishonor of this fruitless humiliation.

Yet among all the Byzantine princes, John Palæologus was the most inclined to accept, believe in, and be loyal to the leader of the West. His mother, Anne of Savoy, had been baptized within the Latin church; her marriage to Andronicus required a change of name, clothing, and worship, but her heart remained true to her homeland and faith. She had shaped her son's early years and continued to influence the emperor even after he grew to adulthood. In the first year after his release and restoration, the Turks still controlled the Hellespont; the son of Cantacuzene was armed and preparing for conflict at Adrianople; and Palæologus couldn't rely on himself or his people. Following his mother's advice, and in hopes of outside assistance, he renounced the rights of both the church and state; the act of submission, 7 signed in purple ink and sealed with the golden bull, was privately entrusted to an Italian agent. The first item in the treaty was an oath of loyalty and obedience to Innocent the Sixth and his successors, the supreme pontiffs of the Roman Catholic Church. The emperor promised to treat their legates and envoys with respect, provide them a palace for living and a church for worship, and deliver his second son Manuel as a hostage for his loyalty. In return for these concessions, he requested immediate support of fifteen galleys, along with five hundred men-at-arms and a thousand archers, to fight against both his Christian and Muslim enemies. Palæologus agreed to impose the same spiritual burdens on his clergy and people, but anticipating resistance from the Greeks, he chose two effective strategies: corruption and education. The legate was authorized to distribute any vacant church positions to those church officials who would accept the Vatican's creed; three schools were established to teach the youth of Constantinople the language and teachings of the Latins, and the name of Andronicus, the heir to the empire, was listed as the first student. If he were to fail in persuasion or force, Palæologus declared himself unworthy to rule; he transferred all royal and paternal authority to the pope, empowering Innocent to oversee his family, government, and the marriage of his son and successor. However, this treaty was neither implemented nor made public: the Roman galleys were just as unrealistic as the Greeks' submission, and it was only through secrecy that their sovereign avoided the disgrace of this futile humiliation.

7 (return)
[ See this ignominious treaty in Fleury, (Hist. Ecclés. p. 151—154,) from Raynaldus, who drew it from the Vatican archives. It was not worth the trouble of a pious forgery.]

7 (return)
[ Check out this disgraceful treaty in Fleury, (Hist. Ecclés. p. 151—154,) from Raynaldus, who retrieved it from the Vatican archives. It wasn't worth the effort of a devout forgery.]

The tempest of the Turkish arms soon burst on his head; and after the loss of Adrianople and Romania, he was enclosed in his capital, the vassal of the haughty Amurath, with the miserable hope of being the last devoured by the savage. In this abject state, Palæologus embraced the resolution of embarking for Venice, and casting himself at the feet of the pope: he was the first of the Byzantine princes who had ever visited the unknown regions of the West, yet in them alone he could seek consolation or relief; and with less violation of his dignity he might appear in the sacred college than at the Ottoman Porte. After a long absence, the Roman pontiffs were returning from Avignon to the banks of the Tyber: Urban the Fifth, 8 of a mild and virtuous character, encouraged or allowed the pilgrimage of the Greek prince; and, within the same year, enjoyed the glory of receiving in the Vatican the two Imperial shadows who represented the majesty of Constantine and Charlemagne. In this suppliant visit, the emperor of Constantinople, whose vanity was lost in his distress, gave more than could be expected of empty sounds and formal submissions. A previous trial was imposed; and, in the presence of four cardinals, he acknowledged, as a true Catholic, the supremacy of the pope, and the double procession of the Holy Ghost. After this purification, he was introduced to a public audience in the church of St. Peter: Urban, in the midst of the cardinals, was seated on his throne; the Greek monarch, after three genuflections, devoutly kissed the feet, the hands, and at length the mouth, of the holy father, who celebrated high mass in his presence, allowed him to lead the bridle of his mule, and treated him with a sumptuous banquet in the Vatican. The entertainment of Palæologus was friendly and honorable; yet some difference was observed between the emperors of the East and West; 9 nor could the former be entitled to the rare privilege of chanting the gospel in the rank of a deacon. 10 In favor of his proselyte, Urban strove to rekindle the zeal of the French king and the other powers of the West; but he found them cold in the general cause, and active only in their domestic quarrels. The last hope of the emperor was in an English mercenary, John Hawkwood, 11 or Acuto, who, with a band of adventurers, the white brotherhood, had ravaged Italy from the Alps to Calabria; sold his services to the hostile states; and incurred a just excommunication by shooting his arrows against the papal residence. A special license was granted to negotiate with the outlaw, but the forces, or the spirit, of Hawkwood, were unequal to the enterprise: and it was for the advantage, perhaps, of Palæologus to be disappointed of succor, that must have been costly, that could not be effectual, and which might have been dangerous. 12 The disconsolate Greek 13 prepared for his return, but even his return was impeded by a most ignominious obstacle. On his arrival at Venice, he had borrowed large sums at exorbitant usury; but his coffers were empty, his creditors were impatient, and his person was detained as the best security for the payment. His eldest son, Andronicus, the regent of Constantinople, was repeatedly urged to exhaust every resource; and even by stripping the churches, to extricate his father from captivity and disgrace. But the unnatural youth was insensible of the disgrace, and secretly pleased with the captivity of the emperor: the state was poor, the clergy were obstinate; nor could some religious scruple be wanting to excuse the guilt of his indifference and delay. Such undutiful neglect was severely reproved by the piety of his brother Manuel, who instantly sold or mortgaged all that he possessed, embarked for Venice, relieved his father, and pledged his own freedom to be responsible for the debt. On his return to Constantinople, the parent and king distinguished his two sons with suitable rewards; but the faith and manners of the slothful Palæologus had not been improved by his Roman pilgrimage; and his apostasy or conversion, devoid of any spiritual or temporal effects, was speedily forgotten by the Greeks and Latins. 14

The storm of Turkish attacks soon fell upon him; and after the loss of Adrianople and Romania, he found himself trapped in his capital, a vassal to the proud Amurath, with the desperate hope of being the last to be consumed by the beast. In this low state, Palæologus decided to sail to Venice and throw himself at the feet of the pope: he was the first of the Byzantine princes to ever visit the uncharted West, where he could seek solace or aid; and he could appear before the sacred college with less damage to his dignity than at the Ottoman Porte. After a long absence, the Roman pontiffs were returning from Avignon to the banks of the Tiber: Urban the Fifth, 8 of a gentle and virtuous nature, encouraged or permitted the Greek prince's pilgrimage; and, within the same year, took pride in receiving in the Vatican the two Imperial figures who represented the majesty of Constantine and Charlemagne. In this humble visit, the emperor of Constantinople, whose pride was swallowed by his suffering, offered more than could be expected of mere empty words and formal gestures. A prior test was imposed; and in the presence of four cardinals, he acknowledged, as a true Catholic, the pope's supremacy, and the double procession of the Holy Ghost. After this purification, he was brought before a public audience in the church of St. Peter: Urban, among the cardinals, was sitting on his throne; the Greek monarch, after three bows, devoutly kissed the feet, hands, and finally the mouth of the holy father, who celebrated high mass in his presence, allowed him to lead the reins of his mule, and treated him to a lavish banquet in the Vatican. The reception of Palæologus was friendly and honorable; yet some differences were noted between the Eastern and Western emperors; 9 nor could the former have the rare privilege of chanting the gospel in the rank of a deacon. 10 To support his follower, Urban tried to rekindle the interest of the French king and other Western powers; but he found them unresponsive to the common cause and active only in their domestic disputes. The emperor's last hope rested on an English mercenary, John Hawkwood, 11 or Acuto, who, with a group of adventurers known as the white brotherhood, had ravaged Italy from the Alps to Calabria; sold his services to the enemy states; and incurred rightful excommunication by launching arrows at the papal residence. Special permission was granted to negotiate with the outlaw, but Hawkwood's forces, or spirit, were inadequate for the task: and it might have been for Palæologus's benefit to be disappointed in seeking help that would have been costly, ineffective, and potentially dangerous. 12 The despondent Greek 13 prepared for his return, but even that was hindered by a shameful obstacle. Upon his arrival in Venice, he had taken large sums on steep interest; but his pockets were empty, his creditors were impatient, and his person was held as the best guarantee for the payment. His eldest son, Andronicus, the regent of Constantinople, was repeatedly urged to use every resource; and even to strip the churches, to free his father from captivity and shame. But the ungrateful young man was indifferent to the disgrace and secretly pleased with his father’s captivity: the state was poor, the clergy were stubborn; nor could some religious scruple be lacking to excuse the guilt of his indifference and delay. Such undutiful neglect was harshly criticized by the piety of his brother Manuel, who immediately sold or mortgaged all he had, set sail for Venice, rescued his father, and pledged his own freedom as security for the debt. On his return to Constantinople, the father and king granted both sons appropriate rewards; but the faith and character of the negligent Palæologus had not improved from his Roman pilgrimage; and his apostasy or conversion, lacking any spiritual or temporal effects, was quickly forgotten by the Greeks and Latins. 14

8 (return)
[ See the two first original Lives of Urban V., (in Muratori, Script. Rerum Italicarum, tom. iii. P. ii. p. 623, 635,) and the Ecclesiastical Annals of Spondanus, (tom. i. p. 573, A.D. 1369, No. 7,) and Raynaldus, (Fleury, Hist. Ecclés. tom. xx. p. 223, 224.) Yet, from some variations, I suspect the papal writers of slightly magnifying the genuflections of Palæologus.]

8 (return)
[ Check out the first two original Lives of Urban V. (in Muratori, Script. Rerum Italicarum, vol. iii. pt. ii. p. 623, 635) and the Ecclesiastical Annals of Spondanus (vol. i. p. 573, A.D. 1369, No. 7) and Raynaldus (Fleury, Hist. Ecclés. vol. xx. p. 223, 224.) However, due to some differences, I suspect that the papal writers may have slightly exaggerated the genuflections of Palæologus.]

9 (return)
[ Paullo minus quam si fuisset Imperator Romanorum. Yet his title of Imperator Græcorum was no longer disputed, (Vit. Urban V. p. 623.)]

9 (return)
[ Paullo less than if he had been the Roman Emperor. Yet his title of Emperor of the Greeks was no longer contested, (Vit. Urban V. p. 623.)]

10 (return)
[ It was confined to the successors of Charlemagne, and to them only on Christmas-day. On all other festivals these Imperial deacons were content to serve the pope, as he said mass, with the book and the corporale. Yet the abbé de Sade generously thinks that the merits of Charles IV. might have entitled him, though not on the proper day, (A.D. 1368, November 1,) to the whole privilege. He seems to affix a just value on the privilege and the man, (Vie de Petrarque, tom. iii. p. 735.)]

10 (return)
[ It was limited to Charlemagne’s successors, and only on Christmas Day. On all other holidays, these Imperial deacons were satisfied to assist the pope as he celebrated mass, handling the book and the corporale. However, Abbé de Sade believes that Charles IV. might have deserved the full privilege, even if not on the correct day (A.D. 1368, November 1). He seems to recognize the true worth of both the privilege and the individual, (Vie de Petrarque, tom. iii. p. 735.)]

11 (return)
[ Through some Italian corruptions, the etymology of Falcone in bosco, (Matteo Villani, l. xi. c. 79, in Muratori, tom. xv. p. 746,) suggests the English word Hawkwood, the true name of our adventurous countryman, (Thomas Walsingham, Hist. Anglican. inter Scriptores Camdeni, p. 184.) After two-and-twenty victories, and one defeat, he died, in 1394, general of the Florentines, and was buried with such honors as the republic has not paid to Dante or Petrarch, (Muratori, Annali d’Italia, tom. xii. p. 212—371.)]

11 (return)
[ Due to some Italian variations, the origin of Falcone in bosco, (Matteo Villani, l. xi. c. 79, in Muratori, tom. xv. p. 746,) hints at the English word Hawkwood, which is the actual name of our daring countryman, (Thomas Walsingham, Hist. Anglican. inter Scriptores Camdeni, p. 184.) After winning twenty-two battles and suffering one defeat, he passed away in 1394 as the general of the Florentines and was laid to rest with honors that the republic has not given to Dante or Petrarch, (Muratori, Annali d’Italia, tom. xii. p. 212—371.)]

12 (return)
[ This torrent of English (by birth or service) overflowed from France into Italy after the peace of Bretigny in 1630. Yet the exclamation of Muratori (Annali, tom. xii. p. 197) is rather true than civil. “Ci mancava ancor questo, che dopo essere calpestrata l’Italia da tanti masnadieri Tedeschi ed Ungheri, venissero fin dall’ Inghliterra nuovi cani a finire di divorarla.”]

12 (return)
[ This flood of English (by birth or service) swept from France into Italy after the peace of Bretigny in 1630. Yet Muratori's exclamation (Annali, tom. xii. p. 197) is more accurate than polite. “This was still missing, that after Italy was trampled by so many German and Hungarian bandits, new dogs from England came to finish devouring it.”]

13 (return)
[ Chalcondyles, l. i. p. 25, 26. The Greek supposes his journey to the king of France, which is sufficiently refuted by the silence of the national historians. Nor am I much more inclined to believe, that Palæologus departed from Italy, valde bene consolatus et contentus, (Vit. Urban V. p. 623.)]

13 (return)
[Chalcondyles, l. i. p. 25, 26. The Greek believes his trip to the king of France, but this is strongly challenged by the lack of mention in national historians. I'm also not very convinced that Palæologus left Italy feeling very well consoled and satisfied, (Vit. Urban V. p. 623.)]

14 (return)
[ His return in 1370, and the coronation of Manuel, Sept. 25, 1373, (Ducange, Fam. Byzant. p. 241,) leaves some intermediate æra for the conspiracy and punishment of Andronicus.]

14 (return)
[ His return in 1370 and the coronation of Manuel on September 25, 1373, (Ducange, Fam. Byzant. p. 241,) creates a gap in time for the conspiracy and punishment of Andronicus.]

Thirty years after the return of Palæologus, his son and successor, Manuel, from a similar motive, but on a larger scale, again visited the countries of the West. In a preceding chapter I have related his treaty with Bajazet, the violation of that treaty, the siege or blockade of Constantinople, and the French succor under the command of the gallant Boucicault. 15 By his ambassadors, Manuel had solicited the Latin powers; but it was thought that the presence of a distressed monarch would draw tears and supplies from the hardest Barbarians; 16 and the marshal who advised the journey prepared the reception of the Byzantine prince. The land was occupied by the Turks; but the navigation of Venice was safe and open: Italy received him as the first, or, at least, as the second, of the Christian princes; Manuel was pitied as the champion and confessor of the faith; and the dignity of his behavior prevented that pity from sinking into contempt. From Venice he proceeded to Padua and Pavia; and even the duke of Milan, a secret ally of Bajazet, gave him safe and honorable conduct to the verge of his dominions. 17 On the confines of France 18 the royal officers undertook the care of his person, journey, and expenses; and two thousand of the richest citizens, in arms and on horseback, came forth to meet him as far as Charenton, in the neighborhood of the capital. At the gates of Paris, he was saluted by the chancellor and the parliament; and Charles the Sixth, attended by his princes and nobles, welcomed his brother with a cordial embrace. The successor of Constantine was clothed in a robe of white silk, and mounted on a milk-white steed, a circumstance, in the French ceremonial, of singular importance: the white color is considered as the symbol of sovereignty; and, in a late visit, the German emperor, after a haughty demand and a peevish refusal, had been reduced to content himself with a black courser. Manuel was lodged in the Louvre; a succession of feasts and balls, the pleasures of the banquet and the chase, were ingeniously varied by the politeness of the French, to display their magnificence, and amuse his grief: he was indulged in the liberty of his chapel; and the doctors of the Sorbonne were astonished, and possibly scandalized, by the language, the rites, and the vestments, of his Greek clergy. But the slightest glance on the state of the kingdom must teach him to despair of any effectual assistance. The unfortunate Charles, though he enjoyed some lucid intervals, continually relapsed into furious or stupid insanity: the reins of government were alternately seized by his brother and uncle, the dukes of Orleans and Burgundy, whose factious competition prepared the miseries of civil war. The former was a gay youth, dissolved in luxury and love: the latter was the father of John count of Nevers, who had so lately been ransomed from Turkish captivity; and, if the fearless son was ardent to revenge his defeat, the more prudent Burgundy was content with the cost and peril of the first experiment. When Manuel had satiated the curiosity, and perhaps fatigued the patience, of the French, he resolved on a visit to the adjacent island. In his progress from Dover, he was entertained at Canterbury with due reverence by the prior and monks of St. Austin; and, on Blackheath, King Henry the Fourth, with the English court, saluted the Greek hero, (I copy our old historian,) who, during many days, was lodged and treated in London as emperor of the East. 19 But the state of England was still more adverse to the design of the holy war. In the same year, the hereditary sovereign had been deposed and murdered: the reigning prince was a successful usurper, whose ambition was punished by jealousy and remorse: nor could Henry of Lancaster withdraw his person or forces from the defence of a throne incessantly shaken by conspiracy and rebellion. He pitied, he praised, he feasted, the emperor of Constantinople; but if the English monarch assumed the cross, it was only to appease his people, and perhaps his conscience, by the merit or semblance of his pious intention. 20 Satisfied, however, with gifts and honors, Manuel returned to Paris; and, after a residence of two years in the West, shaped his course through Germany and Italy, embarked at Venice, and patiently expected, in the Morea, the moment of his ruin or deliverance. Yet he had escaped the ignominious necessity of offering his religion to public or private sale. The Latin church was distracted by the great schism; the kings, the nations, the universities, of Europe were divided in their obedience between the popes of Rome and Avignon; and the emperor, anxious to conciliate the friendship of both parties, abstained from any correspondence with the indigent and unpopular rivals. His journey coincided with the year of the jubilee; but he passed through Italy without desiring, or deserving, the plenary indulgence which abolished the guilt or penance of the sins of the faithful. The Roman pope was offended by this neglect; accused him of irreverence to an image of Christ; and exhorted the princes of Italy to reject and abandon the obstinate schismatic. 21

Thirty years after Palæologus returned, his son and successor, Manuel, motivated by similar reasons but on a larger scale, visited the western countries again. In a previous chapter, I described his treaty with Bajazet, the violation of that treaty, the siege or blockade of Constantinople, and the French aid led by the brave Boucicault. 15 Through his ambassadors, Manuel had called on the Latin powers; it was believed that the presence of a distressed king would evoke sympathy and resources even from the toughest Barbarians; 16 and the marshal who suggested the journey made preparations for the reception of the Byzantine prince. The Turks occupied the land, but Venetian navigation was safe and open: Italy welcomed him as either the foremost or at least the second of the Christian princes; Manuel was regarded with pity as the defender and martyr of the faith; and his dignified behavior ensured that pity did not turn into disdain. From Venice, he traveled to Padua and Pavia; even the duke of Milan, a secret ally of Bajazet, provided him safe and honorable passage to the border of his realm. 17 Near France, 18 the royal officials took care of his journey and expenses; and two thousand wealthy citizens, armed and on horseback, went out to meet him as far as Charenton, close to the capital. At the gates of Paris, he was welcomed by the chancellor and the parliament; and Charles the Sixth, accompanied by his princes and nobles, embraced his brother warmly. The successor of Constantine was dressed in a white silk robe and rode a pure white horse, a detail of particular significance in French ceremonial: white symbolizes sovereignty; and during a recent visit, the German emperor, after being arrogantly denied, had to settle for a black horse. Manuel was housed in the Louvre; a series of feasts and balls, the joys of banquets and hunting, were creatively arranged by the French to showcase their grandeur and entertain him during his sorrow: he was allowed the freedom of his chapel; and the doctors of the Sorbonne were amazed, and perhaps scandalized, by the language, rites, and garments of his Greek clergy. Yet, a mere glance at the state of the kingdom would teach him to despair of any reliable help. The unfortunate Charles, although he had occasional moments of clarity, repeatedly fell back into fits of furious or foolish insanity: the reins of power were alternately in the hands of his brother and uncle, the dukes of Orleans and Burgundy, whose rivalries set the stage for civil war. The former was a carefree young man, lost in luxury and romance: the latter was the father of John, count of Nevers, who had recently been ransomed from Turkish captivity; and while the fearless son was eager to avenge his defeat, the more cautious Burgundy was content with the cost and risk of the initial attempt. After Manuel had satisfied the curiosity, and perhaps exhausted the patience, of the French, he decided to visit the nearby island. On his journey from Dover, he was properly honored at Canterbury by the prior and monks of St. Austin; and on Blackheath, King Henry the Fourth, along with the English court, greeted the Greek hero, (I quote our old historian,) who was hosted and treated in London for many days as the emperor of the East. 19 However, the situation in England was even less favorable for the holy war. In that same year, the hereditary king had been deposed and murdered: the current monarch was a successful usurper, whose ambition was met with jealousy and regret: nor could Henry of Lancaster remove himself or his forces from defending a throne constantly threatened by conspiracy and rebellion. He felt pity for, praised, and feasted the emperor of Constantinople; but if the English king took on the cross, it was merely to appease his subjects, and perhaps his own conscience, with the merit or appearance of a pious intention. 20 However, satisfied with gifts and honors, Manuel returned to Paris; and after spending two years in the West, he directed his path through Germany and Italy, boarded a ship in Venice, and patiently awaited, in the Morea, the moment of his downfall or salvation. Yet he had avoided the humiliating necessity of offering his faith for public or private sale. The Latin church was troubled by a significant schism; the kings, nations, and universities of Europe were divided in their allegiance between the Popes of Rome and Avignon; and the emperor, eager to win the favor of both factions, refrained from any communication with the needy and unpopular rivals. His journey coincided with the year of the jubilee; but he went through Italy without seeking, or deserving, the plenary indulgence that would erase the guilt or penance of the faithful's sins. The Roman pope was offended by this oversight; accused him of disrespecting an image of Christ; and urged the princes of Italy to reject and abandon the stubborn schismatic. 21

15 (return)
[ Mémoires de Boucicault, P. i. c. 35, 36.]

15 (return)
[Memoirs of Boucicault, P. i. c. 35, 36.]

16 (return)
[ His journey into the west of Europe is slightly, and I believe reluctantly, noticed by Chalcondyles (l. ii. c. 44—50) and Ducas, (c. 14.)]

16 (return)
[ His trip to western Europe is briefly, and I think somewhat unwillingly, mentioned by Chalcondyles (l. ii. c. 44—50) and Ducas, (c. 14.)]

17 (return)
[ Muratori, Annali d’Italia, tom. xii. p. 406. John Galeazzo was the first and most powerful duke of Milan. His connection with Bajazet is attested by Froissard; and he contributed to save and deliver the French captives of Nicopolis.]

17 (return)
[Muratori, Annali d’Italia, tom. xii. p. 406. John Galeazzo was the first and most influential duke of Milan. His relationship with Bajazet is confirmed by Froissard; and he helped rescue and free the French captives of Nicopolis.]

18 (return)
[ For the reception of Manuel at Paris, see Spondanus, (Annal. Ecclés. tom. i. p. 676, 677, A.D. 1400, No. 5,) who quotes Juvenal des Ursins and the monk of St. Denys; and Villaret, (Hist. de France, tom. xii. p. 331—334,) who quotes nobody according to the last fashion of the French writers.]

18 (return)
[ For the reception of Manuel in Paris, see Spondanus, (Annal. Ecclés. vol. i, pp. 676, 677, A.D. 1400, No. 5,) who cites Juvenal des Ursins and the monk of St. Denys; and Villaret, (Hist. de France, vol. xii, pp. 331—334,) who doesn't reference anyone by the current trend of French authors.]

19 (return)
[ A short note of Manuel in England is extracted by Dr. Hody from a MS. at Lambeth, (de Græcis illustribus, p. 14,) C. P. Imperator, diu variisque et horrendis Paganorum insultibus coarctatus, ut pro eisdem resistentiam triumphalem perquireret, Anglorum Regem visitare decrevit, &c. Rex (says Walsingham, p. 364) nobili apparatû... suscepit (ut decuit) tantum Heroa, duxitque Londonias, et per multos dies exhibuit gloriose, pro expensis hospitii sui solvens, et eum respiciens tanto fastigio donativis. He repeats the same in his Upodigma Neustriæ, (p. 556.)]

19 (return)
[ A brief note about Manuel in England is taken by Dr. Hody from a manuscript at Lambeth, (de Græcis illustribus, p. 14.) The Emperor, after being pressured for a long time by various and horrific assaults from the Pagans, decided to visit the King of England to seek a triumphant resistance against them. The King (as Walsingham states, p. 364) received the noble hero with grand preparations... and led him to London, where he hosted him splendidly for many days, covering the expenses of his hospitality and honoring him with generous gifts. He mentions the same in his Upodigma Neustriæ, (p. 556.)]

20 (return)
[ Shakspeare begins and ends the play of Henry IV. with that prince’s vow of a crusade, and his belief that he should die in Jerusalem.]

20 (return)
[Shakespeare starts and finishes the play of Henry IV. with the prince’s promise of a crusade and his conviction that he will die in Jerusalem.]

21 (return)
[ This fact is preserved in the Historia Politica, A.D. 1391—1478, published by Martin Crusius, (Turco Græcia, p. 1—43.) The image of Christ, which the Greek emperor refused to worship, was probably a work of sculpture.]

21 (return)
[ This fact is recorded in the Historia Politica, A.D. 1391—1478, published by Martin Crusius, (Turco Græcia, p. 1—43.) The image of Christ, which the Greek emperor declined to worship, was likely a sculpture.]

Chapter LXVI: Union Of The Greek And Latin Churches.—Part II.

During the period of the crusades, the Greeks beheld with astonishment and terror the perpetual stream of emigration that flowed, and continued to flow, from the unknown climates of their West. The visits of their last emperors removed the veil of separation, and they disclosed to their eyes the powerful nations of Europe, whom they no longer presumed to brand with the name of Barbarians. The observations of Manuel, and his more inquisitive followers, have been preserved by a Byzantine historian of the times: 22 his scattered ideas I shall collect and abridge; and it may be amusing enough, perhaps instructive, to contemplate the rude pictures of Germany, France, and England, whose ancient and modern state are so familiar to our minds. I. Germany (says the Greek Chalcondyles) is of ample latitude from Vienna to the ocean; and it stretches (a strange geography) from Prague in Bohemia to the River Tartessus, and the Pyrenæan Mountains. 23 The soil, except in figs and olives, is sufficiently fruitful; the air is salubrious; the bodies of the natives are robust and healthy; and these cold regions are seldom visited with the calamities of pestilence, or earthquakes. After the Scythians or Tartars, the Germans are the most numerous of nations: they are brave and patient; and were they united under a single head, their force would be irresistible. By the gift of the pope, they have acquired the privilege of choosing the Roman emperor; 24 nor is any people more devoutly attached to the faith and obedience of the Latin patriarch. The greatest part of the country is divided among the princes and prelates; but Strasburg, Cologne, Hamburgh, and more than two hundred free cities, are governed by sage and equal laws, according to the will, and for the advantage, of the whole community. The use of duels, or single combats on foot, prevails among them in peace and war: their industry excels in all the mechanic arts; and the Germans may boast of the invention of gunpowder and cannon, which is now diffused over the greatest part of the world. II. The kingdom of France is spread above fifteen or twenty days’ journey from Germany to Spain, and from the Alps to the British Ocean; containing many flourishing cities, and among these Paris, the seat of the king, which surpasses the rest in riches and luxury. Many princes and lords alternately wait in his palace, and acknowledge him as their sovereign: the most powerful are the dukes of Bretagne and Burgundy; of whom the latter possesses the wealthy province of Flanders, whose harbors are frequented by the ships and merchants of our own, and the more remote, seas. The French are an ancient and opulent people; and their language and manners, though somewhat different, are not dissimilar from those of the Italians. Vain of the Imperial dignity of Charlemagne, of their victories over the Saracens, and of the exploits of their heroes, Oliver and Rowland, 25 they esteem themselves the first of the western nations; but this foolish arrogance has been recently humbled by the unfortunate events of their wars against the English, the inhabitants of the British island. III. Britain, in the ocean, and opposite to the shores of Flanders, may be considered either as one, or as three islands; but the whole is united by a common interest, by the same manners, and by a similar government. The measure of its circumference is five thousand stadia: the land is overspread with towns and villages: though destitute of wine, and not abounding in fruit-trees, it is fertile in wheat and barley; in honey and wool; and much cloth is manufactured by the inhabitants. In populousness and power, in richness and luxury, London, 26 the metropolis of the isle, may claim a preeminence over all the cities of the West. It is situate on the Thames, a broad and rapid river, which at the distance of thirty miles falls into the Gallic Sea; and the daily flow and ebb of the tide affords a safe entrance and departure to the vessels of commerce. The king is head of a powerful and turbulent aristocracy: his principal vassals hold their estates by a free and unalterable tenure; and the laws define the limits of his authority and their obedience. The kingdom has been often afflicted by foreign conquest and domestic sedition: but the natives are bold and hardy, renowned in arms and victorious in war. The form of their shields or targets is derived from the Italians, that of their swords from the Greeks; the use of the long bow is the peculiar and decisive advantage of the English. Their language bears no affinity to the idioms of the Continent: in the habits of domestic life, they are not easily distinguished from their neighbors of France: but the most singular circumstance of their manners is their disregard of conjugal honor and of female chastity. In their mutual visits, as the first act of hospitality, the guest is welcomed in the embraces of their wives and daughters: among friends they are lent and borrowed without shame; nor are the islanders offended at this strange commerce, and its inevitable consequences. 27 Informed as we are of the customs of Old England and assured of the virtue of our mothers, we may smile at the credulity, or resent the injustice, of the Greek, who must have confounded a modest salute 28 with a criminal embrace. But his credulity and injustice may teach an important lesson; to distrust the accounts of foreign and remote nations, and to suspend our belief of every tale that deviates from the laws of nature and the character of man. 29

During the time of the Crusades, the Greeks watched in shock and fear as a constant wave of migration flowed from the unknown lands to their west. The visits of their last emperors lifted the curtain of separation, revealing to them the powerful nations of Europe, which they no longer dared to label as Barbarians. The observations of Manuel and his more curious followers have been recorded by a Byzantine historian from that era: 22 I will gather and summarize his scattered thoughts; it might be interesting, perhaps even enlightening, to look at the rough portrayals of Germany, France, and England, whose ancient and modern states are so familiar to us. I. Germany (says the Greek Chalcondyles) stretches broadly from Vienna to the ocean; and its geography is strangely defined from Prague in Bohemia to the River Tartessus and the Pyrenees Mountains. 23 The land, apart from figs and olives, is quite fertile; the air is healthy; the people are strong and healthy; and these colder regions are rarely afflicted by plagues or earthquakes. After the Scythians or Tartars, the Germans are the most populous nation: they are brave and resilient; and if they were united under one ruler, their power would be unstoppable. By the pope’s decree, they have gained the right to choose the Roman emperor; 24 nor is there any group more devoted to the faith and loyalty of the Latin patriarch. Most of the country is divided among princes and church leaders; but Strasbourg, Cologne, Hamburg, and more than two hundred free cities are governed by wise and fair laws, according to the will and benefit of the entire community. The practice of dueling, or one-on-one combat on foot, is common among them in both peace and war: their craftsmanship excels in all the mechanical arts; and the Germans can take pride in being the inventors of gunpowder and cannons, which are now widespread throughout most of the world. II. The kingdom of France spans fifteen or twenty days’ journey from Germany to Spain, and from the Alps to the British Ocean; it contains many thriving cities, including Paris, the king’s capital, which stands out in wealth and luxury. Many princes and lords take turns waiting in his palace, recognizing him as their sovereign: the most powerful among them are the dukes of Brittany and Burgundy; the latter holds the rich province of Flanders, whose ports are frequented by ships and merchants from our lands and from farther seas. The French are an ancient and wealthy people; their language and customs, while somewhat different, are not too unlike those of the Italians. Proud of the imperial legacy of Charlemagne, their victories over the Saracens, and the feats of their heroes, Oliver and Roland, 25 they consider themselves the foremost of the western nations; however, this misguided arrogance has recently been humbled by the unfortunate outcomes of their wars against the English, who inhabit the British Isles. III. Britain, located in the ocean opposite the shores of Flanders, can be viewed as either one single island or three separate ones; but the whole is connected by shared interests, similar customs, and a common government. Its total perimeter is five thousand stadia: the land is filled with towns and villages; although lacking in wine and not rich in fruit trees, it is fertile in wheat and barley, honey and wool; and much cloth is produced by its people. In terms of population and power, wealth and luxury, London, 26 the capital of the island, takes precedence over all the cities in the West. It sits on the Thames, a wide and fast-flowing river, which, thirty miles away, empties into the Gallic Sea; and the regular ebb and flow of the tides provides a safe entrance and exit for trading vessels. The king is the head of a powerful and unruly aristocracy: his main vassals hold their land under a secure and unchangeable tenure; and the laws set clear boundaries on his authority and their loyalty. The kingdom has often suffered due to foreign invasions and internal conflict; but the people are courageous and tough, renowned as warriors and successful in battle. The design of their shields or targets comes from the Italians, while their swords are of Greek origin; the longbow is a unique and crucial advantage for the English. Their language has no connection to the languages of the mainland: in their daily life, they are not easily distinguishable from their French neighbors; but the most notable aspect of their customs is their disregard for marital honor and female chastity. During social visits, the first act of hospitality is to welcome guests with open embraces from their wives and daughters: among friends, they are shared without any shame; and the islanders are not offended by this unusual practice or its inevitable outcomes. 27 Given our awareness of the customs of Old England and the virtue of our mothers, we can either smile at the Greek's gullibility or resent his unfairness, as he must have mistaken a simple greeting 28 for a criminal embrace. Yet, his gullibility and unfairness may serve as a critical lesson: to be wary of the accounts of distant and foreign nations, and to question every story that goes against the natural laws and the nature of humanity. 29

22 (return)
[ The Greek and Turkish history of Laonicus Chalcondyles ends with the winter of 1463; and the abrupt conclusion seems to mark, that he laid down his pen in the same year. We know that he was an Athenian, and that some contemporaries of the same name contributed to the revival of the Greek language in Italy. But in his numerous digressions, the modest historian has never introduced himself; and his editor Leunclavius, as well as Fabricius, (Bibliot. Græc. tom. vi. p. 474,) seems ignorant of his life and character. For his descriptions of Germany, France, and England, see l. ii. p. 36, 37, 44—50.]

22 (return)
[ The Greek and Turkish history of Laonicus Chalcondyles wraps up in the winter of 1463; and the sudden ending suggests that he stopped writing that same year. We know he was from Athens, and that some contemporaries with the same name helped revive the Greek language in Italy. However, in his many digressions, the humble historian never mentions himself; and both his editor Leunclavius and Fabricius (Bibliot. Græc. tom. vi. p. 474) seem to be unaware of his life and character. For his descriptions of Germany, France, and England, see l. ii. p. 36, 37, 44—50.]

23 (return)
[ I shall not animadvert on the geographical errors of Chalcondyles. In this instance, he perhaps followed, and mistook, Herodotus, (l. ii. c. 33,) whose text may be explained, (Herodote de Larcher, tom. ii. p. 219, 220,) or whose ignorance may be excused. Had these modern Greeks never read Strabo, or any of their lesser geographers?]

23 (return)
[ I won't criticize the geographical mistakes of Chalcondyles. In this case, he may have followed and misunderstood Herodotus (l. ii. c. 33), whose text can be clarified (Herodote de Larcher, tom. ii. p. 219, 220), or whose lack of knowledge can be forgiven. Have these modern Greeks never read Strabo or any of their other less prominent geographers?]

24 (return)
[ A citizen of new Rome, while new Rome survived, would have scorned to dignify the German 'Rhx with titles of BasileuV or Autokratwr 'Rwmaiwn: but all pride was extinct in the bosom of Chalcondyles; and he describes the Byzantine prince, and his subject, by the proper, though humble, names of ''EllhneV and BasileuV 'Ellhnwn.]

24 (return)
[ A citizen of New Rome, while it was still thriving, would have looked down on calling the German 'Rhx with titles like Basileus or Autokrator of Romans: but all pride had faded in Chalcondyles; and he refers to the Byzantine prince and his subjects with the simple, yet respectful, titles of Ellines and Basileus Ellhnwn.]

25 (return)
[ Most of the old romances were translated in the xivth century into French prose, and soon became the favorite amusement of the knights and ladies in the court of Charles VI. If a Greek believed in the exploits of Rowland and Oliver, he may surely be excused, since the monks of St. Denys, the national historians, have inserted the fables of Archbishop Turpin in their Chronicles of France.]

25 (return)
[ Most of the old romances were translated into French prose in the 14th century and quickly became a popular pastime for the knights and ladies at the court of Charles VI. If a Greek believed in the adventures of Rowland and Oliver, he can certainly be forgiven, since the monks of St. Denys, the national historians, included the tales of Archbishop Turpin in their Chronicles of France.]

26 (return)
[ Londinh.... de te poliV dunamei te proecousa tvn en th nhsw tauth pasvn polewn, olbw te kai th allh eudaimonia oudemiaV tvn peoV esperan leipomenh. Even since the time of Fitzstephen, (the xiith century,) London appears to have maintained this preeminence of wealth and magnitude; and her gradual increase has, at least, kept pace with the general improvement of Europe.]

26 (return)
[ London has always been a hub of power among the cities on this island, both in prosperity and overall well-being, seemingly without exception. Since the time of Fitzstephen in the 12th century, London has held onto its status of wealth and significance, and its steady growth has, at the very least, kept up with Europe’s overall progress.]

27 (return)
[ If the double sense of the verb Kuw (osculor, and in utero gero) be equivocal, the context and pious horror of Chalcondyles can leave no doubt of his meaning and mistake, (p. 49.) * Note: I can discover no “pious horror” in the plain manner in which Chalcondyles relates this strange usage. He says, oude aiscunun tovto feoei eautoiV kuesqai taV te gunaikaV autvn kai taV qugateraV, yet these are expression beyond what would be used, if the ambiguous word kuesqai were taken in its more innocent sense. Nor can the phrase parecontai taV eautvn gunaikaV en toiV epithdeioiV well bear a less coarse interpretation. Gibbon is possibly right as to the origin of this extraordinary mistake.—M.]

27 (return)
[ If the double meaning of the verb Kuw (osculor, and in utero gero) is unclear, the context and the shocked reaction of Chalcondyles make his intention and error very clear, (p. 49.) * Note: I can't find any "shocked reaction" in the straightforward way Chalcondyles describes this strange usage. He states, oude aiscunun tovto feoei eautoiV kuesqai taV te gunaikaV autvn kai taV qugateraV, yet these expressions go beyond what would be used if the ambiguous word kuesqai were taken in its more innocent meaning. Nor can the phrase parecontai taV eautvn gunaikaV en toiV epithdeioiV be understood in a less crude way. Gibbon might be correct about the source of this unusual mistake.—M.]

28 (return)
[ Erasmus (Epist. Fausto Andrelino) has a pretty passage on the English fashion of kissing strangers on their arrival and departure, from whence, however, he draws no scandalous inferences.]

28 (return)
[ Erasmus (Epist. Fausto Andrelino) mentions an interesting point about the English custom of kissing strangers when they arrive and leave, but he doesn't draw any scandalous conclusions from it.]

29 (return)
[ Perhaps we may apply this remark to the community of wives among the old Britons, as it is supposed by Cæsar and Dion, (Dion Cassius, l. lxii. tom. ii. p. 1007,) with Reimar’s judicious annotation. The Arreoy of Otaheite, so certain at first, is become less visible and scandalous, in proportion as we have studied the manners of that gentle and amorous people.]

29 (return)
[ Perhaps we can relate this observation to the group of wives among the ancient Britons, as suggested by Cæsar and Dion, (Dion Cassius, l. lxii. tom. ii. p. 1007,) along with Reimar’s insightful notes. The Arreoy of Tahiti, which once seemed so obvious, has become less prominent and shocking as we've learned more about the customs of that gentle and loving culture.]

After his return, and the victory of Timour, Manuel reigned many years in prosperity and peace. As long as the sons of Bajazet solicited his friendship and spared his dominions, he was satisfied with the national religion; and his leisure was employed in composing twenty theological dialogues for its defence. The appearance of the Byzantine ambassadors at the council of Constance, 30 announces the restoration of the Turkish power, as well as of the Latin church: the conquest of the sultans, Mahomet and Amurath, reconciled the emperor to the Vatican; and the siege of Constantinople almost tempted him to acquiesce in the double procession of the Holy Ghost. When Martin the Fifth ascended without a rival the chair of St. Peter, a friendly intercourse of letters and embassies was revived between the East and West. Ambition on one side, and distress on the other, dictated the same decent language of charity and peace: the artful Greek expressed a desire of marrying his six sons to Italian princesses; and the Roman, not less artful, despatched the daughter of the marquis of Montferrat, with a company of noble virgins, to soften, by their charms, the obstinacy of the schismatics. Yet under this mask of zeal, a discerning eye will perceive that all was hollow and insincere in the court and church of Constantinople. According to the vicissitudes of danger and repose, the emperor advanced or retreated; alternately instructed and disavowed his ministers; and escaped from the importunate pressure by urging the duty of inquiry, the obligation of collecting the sense of his patriarchs and bishops, and the impossibility of convening them at a time when the Turkish arms were at the gates of his capital. From a review of the public transactions it will appear that the Greeks insisted on three successive measures, a succor, a council, and a final reunion, while the Latins eluded the second, and only promised the first, as a consequential and voluntary reward of the third. But we have an opportunity of unfolding the most secret intentions of Manuel, as he explained them in a private conversation without artifice or disguise. In his declining age, the emperor had associated John Palæologus, the second of the name, and the eldest of his sons, on whom he devolved the greatest part of the authority and weight of government. One day, in the presence only of the historian Phranza, 31 his favorite chamberlain, he opened to his colleague and successor the true principle of his negotiations with the pope. 32 “Our last resource,” said Manuel, against the Turks, “is their fear of our union with the Latins, of the warlike nations of the West, who may arm for our relief and for their destruction. As often as you are threatened by the miscreants, present this danger before their eyes. Propose a council; consult on the means; but ever delay and avoid the convocation of an assembly, which cannot tend either to our spiritual or temporal emolument. The Latins are proud; the Greeks are obstinate; neither party will recede or retract; and the attempt of a perfect union will confirm the schism, alienate the churches, and leave us, without hope or defence, at the mercy of the Barbarians.” Impatient of this salutary lesson, the royal youth arose from his seat, and departed in silence; and the wise monarch (continued Phranza) casting his eyes on me, thus resumed his discourse: “My son deems himself a great and heroic prince; but, alas! our miserable age does not afford scope for heroism or greatness. His daring spirit might have suited the happier times of our ancestors; but the present state requires not an emperor, but a cautious steward of the last relics of our fortunes. Well do I remember the lofty expectations which he built on our alliance with Mustapha; and much do I fear, that this rash courage will urge the ruin of our house, and that even religion may precipitate our downfall.” Yet the experience and authority of Manuel preserved the peace, and eluded the council; till, in the seventy-eighth year of his age, and in the habit of a monk, he terminated his career, dividing his precious movables among his children and the poor, his physicians and his favorite servants. Of his six sons, 33 Andronicus the Second was invested with the principality of Thessalonica, and died of a leprosy soon after the sale of that city to the Venetians and its final conquest by the Turks. Some fortunate incidents had restored Peloponnesus, or the Morea, to the empire; and in his more prosperous days, Manuel had fortified the narrow isthmus of six miles 34 with a stone wall and one hundred and fifty-three towers. The wall was overthrown by the first blast of the Ottomans; the fertile peninsula might have been sufficient for the four younger brothers, Theodore and Constantine, Demetrius and Thomas; but they wasted in domestic contests the remains of their strength; and the least successful of the rivals were reduced to a life of dependence in the Byzantine palace.

After his return and Timour's victory, Manuel ruled for many years in prosperity and peace. As long as Bajazet's sons sought his friendship and spared his territories, he was content with the national religion; his free time was spent writing twenty theological dialogues to defend it. The appearance of the Byzantine ambassadors at the council of Constance, 30 signaled the revival of Turkish power as well as that of the Latin church: the conquests of the sultans Mahomet and Amurath reconciled the emperor with the Vatican; and the siege of Constantinople nearly tempted him to accept the idea of the Holy Ghost's double procession. When Martin the Fifth became the undisputed pope, a friendly exchange of letters and envoys resumed between the East and West. Ambition on one side and desperation on the other produced a shared rhetoric of charity and peace: the crafty Greek expressed a desire to marry his six sons to Italian princesses; the equally shrewd Roman sent the marquis of Montferrat's daughter, along with a group of noble maidens, to charm the schismatics and soften their stubbornness. Yet beneath this facade of devotion, a discerning eye would spot the emptiness and insincerity in the court and church of Constantinople. Depending on the fluctuations of danger and safety, the emperor either advanced or retreated; he alternated between supporting and disavowing his ministers and escaped from their constant pressure by emphasizing the need for inquiry, the obligation to gather the opinions of his patriarchs and bishops, and the impossibility of convening them when Turkish forces were at the gates of his capital. A review of public affairs shows that the Greeks insisted on three successive actions: aid, a council, and a final reunion, while the Latins avoided the second and only promised the first as a contingent and voluntary reward for the third. But we have the chance to reveal Manuel's innermost intentions, as he shared them in a private conversation without any pretense. In his later years, the emperor partnered with John Palæologus, the second of his name and his eldest son, who took on much of the authority and weight of governance. One day, only historian Phranza and his favorite chamberlain were present when he confided to his colleague and successor the true basis of his negotiations with the pope. 32 “Our last resort,” said Manuel, against the Turks, “is their fear of our union with the Latins, with the aggressive nations of the West, who might arm for our rescue and their destruction. Whenever you are threatened by the infidels, show them this danger. Propose a council; deliberate on the means; but always postpone and avoid the gathering of an assembly that would not benefit us spiritually or temporally. The Latins are proud; the Greeks are stubborn; neither side will back down; and trying for a complete union will solidify the schism, alienate the churches, and leave us without hope or defense at the mercy of the Barbarians.” Frustrated with this wise counsel, the young royal stood up silently and left; and the wise monarch (Phranza continued) looked at me and resumed speaking: “My son thinks of himself as a great and heroic prince; but, sadly, our unfortunate era does not allow for heroism or greatness. His bold spirit might have suited the more fortunate times of our ancestors; but the current situation calls for not an emperor, but a careful steward of the last remnants of our fortunes. I clearly remember his lofty hopes based on our alliance with Mustapha; and I greatly fear that this reckless courage will lead to our family's downfall, and that even religion may hasten our demise.” Nonetheless, Manuel's experience and authority maintained peace and avoided the council until, at seventy-eight years of age and dressed as a monk, he ended his life, distributing his valuable possessions among his children, the poor, his doctors, and favorite servants. Of his six sons, 33 Andronicus the Second was given the principality of Thessalonica and soon died of leprosy after the city was sold to the Venetians and then conquered by the Turks. Some fortunate events had returned Peloponnesus, or the Morea, to the empire; and during his more prosperous times, Manuel had fortified the narrow six-mile isthmus 34 with a stone wall and one hundred and fifty-three towers. The wall was torn down by the first strike of the Ottomans; the fertile peninsula could have been sufficient for his four younger brothers, Theodore and Constantine, Demetrius and Thomas; but they lost their remaining strength in domestic conflicts, and the least successful of the rivals were reduced to a life of dependence in the Byzantine palace.

30 (return)
[ See Lenfant, Hist. du Concile de Constance, tom. ii. p. 576; and or the ecclesiastical history of the times, the Annals of Spondanus the Bibliothèque of Dupin, tom. xii., and xxist and xxiid volumes of the History, or rather the Continuation, of Fleury.]

30 (return)
[See Lenfant, History of the Council of Constance, vol. ii, p. 576; and for the ecclesiastical history of the times, the Annals of Spondanus, the Library of Dupin, vol. xii, and the 21st and 22nd volumes of the History, or rather the Continuation, of Fleury.]

31 (return)
[ From his early youth, George Phranza, or Phranzes, was employed in the service of the state and palace; and Hanckius (de Script. Byzant. P. i. c. 40) has collected his life from his own writings. He was no more than four-and-twenty years of age at the death of Manuel, who recommended him in the strongest terms to his successor: Imprimis vero hunc Phranzen tibi commendo, qui ministravit mihi fideliter et diligenter (Phranzes, l. ii. c. i.) Yet the emperor John was cold, and he preferred the service of the despots of Peloponnesus.]

31 (return)
[ From a young age, George Phranza, or Phranzes, worked for the state and the palace; Hanckius (de Script. Byzant. P. i. c. 40) has gathered his life story from his own writings. He was only twenty-four years old when Manuel died, and Manuel strongly recommended him to his successor: "First of all, I commend this Phranzes to you, who served me faithfully and diligently" (Phranzes, l. ii. c. i.) However, Emperor John was indifferent and preferred the service of the despots of Peloponnesus.]

32 (return)
[ See Phranzes, l. ii. c. 13. While so many manuscripts of the Greek original are extant in the libraries of Rome, Milan, the Escurial, &c., it is a matter of shame and reproach, that we should be reduced to the Latin version, or abstract, of James Pontanus, (ad calcem Theophylact, Simocattæ: Ingolstadt, 1604,) so deficient in accuracy and elegance, (Fabric. Bibliot. Græc. tom. vi. p. 615—620.) * Note: The Greek text of Phranzes was edited by F. C. Alter Vindobonæ, 1796. It has been re-edited by Bekker for the new edition of the Byzantines, Bonn, 1838.—M.]

32 (return)
[See Phranzes, l. ii. c. 13. Given that so many manuscripts of the original Greek exist in libraries in Rome, Milan, the Escurial, etc., it’s a disgrace that we have to rely on the Latin version or summary by James Pontanus (at the end of Theophylact, Simocattæ: Ingolstadt, 1604), which is so lacking in accuracy and elegance (Fabric. Bibliot. Græc. tom. vi. p. 615—620.) *Note: The Greek text of Phranzes was edited by F. C. Alter in Vienna, 1796. It was re-edited by Bekker for the new edition of the Byzantine texts, Bonn, 1838.—M.]

33 (return)
[ See Ducange, Fam. Byzant. p. 243—248.]

33 (return)
[See Ducange, Fam. Byzant. p. 243—248.]

34 (return)
[ The exact measure of the Hexamilion, from sea to sea, was 3800 orgyiæ, or toises, of six Greek feet, (Phranzes, l. i. c. 38,) which would produce a Greek mile, still smaller than that of 660 French toises, which is assigned by D’Anville, as still in use in Turkey. Five miles are commonly reckoned for the breadth of the isthmus. See the Travels of Spon, Wheeler and Chandler.]

34 (return)
[The exact length of the Hexamilion, from one sea to the other, was 3800 orgyiæ, or toises, each consisting of six Greek feet, (Phranzes, l. i. c. 38,) which equals a Greek mile that is still smaller than the 660 French toises cited by D’Anville, which are still used in Turkey. Five miles are typically regarded as the width of the isthmus. See the Travels of Spon, Wheeler, and Chandler.]

The eldest of the sons of Manuel, John Palæologus the Second, was acknowledged, after his father’s death, as the sole emperor of the Greeks. He immediately proceeded to repudiate his wife, and to contract a new marriage with the princess of Trebizond: beauty was in his eyes the first qualification of an empress; and the clergy had yielded to his firm assurance, that unless he might be indulged in a divorce, he would retire to a cloister, and leave the throne to his brother Constantine. The first, and in truth the only, victory of Palæologus, was over a Jew, 35 whom, after a long and learned dispute, he converted to the Christian faith; and this momentous conquest is carefully recorded in the history of the times. But he soon resumed the design of uniting the East and West; and, regardless of his father’s advice, listened, as it should seem with sincerity, to the proposal of meeting the pope in a general council beyond the Adriatic. This dangerous project was encouraged by Martin the Fifth, and coldly entertained by his successor Eugenius, till, after a tedious negotiation, the emperor received a summons from the Latin assembly of a new character, the independent prelates of Basil, who styled themselves the representatives and judges of the Catholic church.

The oldest son of Manuel, John Palæologus II, was recognized as the sole emperor of the Greeks after his father's death. He quickly decided to divorce his wife and marry the princess of Trebizond instead; he believed that beauty was the most important quality for an empress. The clergy agreed to his demands, convinced by his strong claim that if he couldn't get a divorce, he would withdraw to a monastery and let his brother Constantine take the throne. Palæologus's first, and really his only, victory was over a Jew, 35, whom he converted to Christianity after a lengthy and intellectual debate; this significant win was noted in the historical accounts of the time. However, he soon returned to his goal of uniting the East and West and, disregarding his father's advice, genuinely considered the idea of meeting the pope at a general council across the Adriatic. This risky plan was supported by Martin V and politely acknowledged by his successor Eugenius, until, after a long negotiation, the emperor received an invitation from the Latin assembly, a new group of independent bishops in Basel, who called themselves representatives and judges of the Catholic Church.

35 (return)
[ The first objection of the Jews is on the death of Christ: if it were voluntary, Christ was a suicide; which the emperor parries with a mystery. They then dispute on the conception of the Virgin, the sense of the prophecies, &c., (Phranzes, l. ii. c. 12, a whole chapter.)]

35 (return)
[ The first objection from the Jews is about Christ's death: if it was voluntary, then Christ was a suicide; to which the emperor responds with a mystery. Then they debate the Virgin's conception, the meaning of the prophecies, etc., (Phranzes, l. ii. c. 12, an entire chapter.)]

The Roman pontiff had fought and conquered in the cause of ecclesiastical freedom; but the victorious clergy were soon exposed to the tyranny of their deliverer; and his sacred character was invulnerable to those arms which they found so keen and effectual against the civil magistrate. Their great charter, the right of election, was annihilated by appeals, evaded by trusts or commendams, disappointed by reversionary grants, and superseded by previous and arbitrary reservations. 36 A public auction was instituted in the court of Rome: the cardinals and favorites were enriched with the spoils of nations; and every country might complain that the most important and valuable benefices were accumulated on the heads of aliens and absentees. During their residence at Avignon, the ambition of the popes subsided in the meaner passions of avarice 37 and luxury: they rigorously imposed on the clergy the tributes of first-fruits and tenths; but they freely tolerated the impunity of vice, disorder, and corruption. These manifold scandals were aggravated by the great schism of the West, which continued above fifty years. In the furious conflicts of Rome and Avignon, the vices of the rivals were mutually exposed; and their precarious situation degraded their authority, relaxed their discipline, and multiplied their wants and exactions. To heal the wounds, and restore the monarchy, of the church, the synods of Pisa and Constance 38 were successively convened; but these great assemblies, conscious of their strength, resolved to vindicate the privileges of the Christian aristocracy. From a personal sentence against two pontiffs, whom they rejected, and a third, their acknowledged sovereign, whom they deposed, the fathers of Constance proceeded to examine the nature and limits of the Roman supremacy; nor did they separate till they had established the authority, above the pope, of a general council. It was enacted, that, for the government and reformation of the church, such assemblies should be held at regular intervals; and that each synod, before its dissolution, should appoint the time and place of the subsequent meeting. By the influence of the court of Rome, the next convocation at Sienna was easily eluded; but the bold and vigorous proceedings of the council of Basil 39 had almost been fatal to the reigning pontiff, Eugenius the Fourth. A just suspicion of his design prompted the fathers to hasten the promulgation of their first decree, that the representatives of the church-militant on earth were invested with a divine and spiritual jurisdiction over all Christians, without excepting the pope; and that a general council could not be dissolved, prorogued, or transferred, unless by their free deliberation and consent. On the notice that Eugenius had fulminated a bull for that purpose, they ventured to summon, to admonish, to threaten, to censure the contumacious successor of St. Peter. After many delays, to allow time for repentance, they finally declared, that, unless he submitted within the term of sixty days, he was suspended from the exercise of all temporal and ecclesiastical authority. And to mark their jurisdiction over the prince as well as the priest, they assumed the government of Avignon, annulled the alienation of the sacred patrimony, and protected Rome from the imposition of new taxes. Their boldness was justified, not only by the general opinion of the clergy, but by the support and power of the first monarchs of Christendom: the emperor Sigismond declared himself the servant and protector of the synod; Germany and France adhered to their cause; the duke of Milan was the enemy of Eugenius; and he was driven from the Vatican by an insurrection of the Roman people. Rejected at the same time by temporal and spiritual subjects, submission was his only choice: by a most humiliating bull, the pope repealed his own acts, and ratified those of the council; incorporated his legates and cardinals with that venerable body; and seemed to resign himself to the decrees of the supreme legislature. Their fame pervaded the countries of the East: and it was in their presence that Sigismond received the ambassadors of the Turkish sultan, 40 who laid at his feet twelve large vases, filled with robes of silk and pieces of gold. The fathers of Basil aspired to the glory of reducing the Greeks, as well as the Bohemians, within the pale of the church; and their deputies invited the emperor and patriarch of Constantinople to unite with an assembly which possessed the confidence of the Western nations. Palæologus was not averse to the proposal; and his ambassadors were introduced with due honors into the Catholic senate. But the choice of the place appeared to be an insuperable obstacle, since he refused to pass the Alps, or the sea of Sicily, and positively required that the synod should be adjourned to some convenient city in Italy, or at least on the Danube. The other articles of this treaty were more readily stipulated: it was agreed to defray the travelling expenses of the emperor, with a train of seven hundred persons, 41 to remit an immediate sum of eight thousand ducats 42 for the accommodation of the Greek clergy; and in his absence to grant a supply of ten thousand ducats, with three hundred archers and some galleys, for the protection of Constantinople. The city of Avignon advanced the funds for the preliminary expenses; and the embarkation was prepared at Marseilles with some difficulty and delay.

The Pope had fought and won for the freedom of the church; however, the victorious clergy soon faced tyranny from their liberator, who was immune to the attacks that had worked so effectively against the civil authority. Their main right, the right to elect, was destroyed by appeals, evaded through trusts or commendams, blocked by future grants, and rendered irrelevant by arbitrary prior reservations. 36 A public auction was set up in the court of Rome: cardinals and favorites grew rich from the spoils of nations, and every country had the right to complain that the most important benefices were hoarded by foreigners and absentees. While in Avignon, the popes' ambition turned to greed 37 and luxury, as they heavily taxed the clergy with first-fruits and tenths, yet turned a blind eye to vice, chaos, and corruption. These numerous scandals were worsened by the Great Western Schism, which lasted over fifty years. In the heated struggles between Rome and Avignon, the vices of the rival factions were revealed, and their unstable situations weakened their authority, loosened their control, and increased their demands and abuses. To heal the church's wounds and restore its monarchy, the synods of Pisa and Constance 38 were convened; but these significant gatherings, aware of their power, aimed to reclaim the privileges of the Christian elite. Starting with a personal sentence against two popes they rejected and a third, their recognized sovereign, whom they deposed, the council at Constance examined the nature and boundaries of Roman supremacy; they did not leave until they had established that the authority of a general council superseded that of the pope. They ruled that, to govern and reform the church, these assemblies should be held regularly and that each synod, before ending, should set the time and place for the next meeting. With the influence of the Roman court, the next gathering in Sienna was easily avoided; however, the bold actions of the council of Basil 39 almost proved disastrous for the reigning pope, Eugenius IV. A just suspicion of his intentions led the council to quickly announce their first decree, stating that the representatives of the church on earth held a divine and spiritual authority over all Christians, including the pope; and that a general council could not be dismissed, postponed, or moved without their agreement and consent. Upon hearing that Eugenius had issued a bull for that purpose, they boldly summoned, warned, threatened, and reprimanded the defiant successor of St. Peter. After several delays, allowing time for repentance, they finally declared that if he did not submit within sixty days, he would be suspended from all temporal and ecclesiastical authority. To assert their jurisdiction over both the prince and the priest, they took control of Avignon, canceled the alienation of sacred property, and shielded Rome from new taxes. Their boldness was backed not only by the general opinion of the clergy but also by the support and power of the foremost monarchs of Christendom: Emperor Sigismund declared himself the servant and defender of the synod; Germany and France pledged their support; the Duke of Milan opposed Eugenius; and he was expelled from the Vatican by an uprising of the Roman people. Rejected by both civil and spiritual subjects, submission was his only option: through a humiliating bull, the pope revoked his own decisions and approved those of the council; he integrated his legates and cardinals into that revered assembly; and appeared to accept the decrees of the supreme legislature. Their reputation spread across the Eastern countries: it was in their presence that Sigismund received the ambassadors of the Turkish sultan, 40 who presented him with twelve large vases filled with silks and gold. The members of Basil aimed for the glory of bringing the Greeks, along with the Bohemians, back into the church's fold; and their delegates invited the emperor and patriarch of Constantinople to join an assembly that had the confidence of the Western nations. Palæologus was not opposed to the idea; his ambassadors were honored in the Catholic senate. However, the choice of location proved impossible, as he refused to cross the Alps or the Sicilian sea, insisting that the synod should be moved to a suitable city in Italy, or somewhere along the Danube. The other terms of this agreement were more easily settled: it was agreed to cover the travel expenses of the emperor and his entourage of seven hundred people, 41 to pay an immediate sum of eight thousand ducats 42 to accommodate the Greek clergy; and to provide an additional ten thousand ducats, along with three hundred archers and some ships, for the defense of Constantinople. The city of Avignon funded the initial costs; and preparations for the departure were made at Marseilles, albeit with some difficulty and delays.

36 (return)
[ In the treatise delle Materie Beneficiarie of Fra Paolo, (in the ivth volume of the last, and best, edition of his works,) the papal system is deeply studied and freely described. Should Rome and her religion be annihilated, this golden volume may still survive, a philosophical history, and a salutary warning.]

36 (return)
[ In the book "Delle Materie Beneficiarie" by Fra Paolo (found in the fourth volume of the latest and best edition of his works), the papal system is thoroughly examined and openly described. Even if Rome and its religion were to be destroyed, this valuable volume could still endure as a philosophical history and an important cautionary tale.]

37 (return)
[ Pope John XXII. (in 1334) left behind him, at Avignon, eighteen millions of gold florins, and the value of seven millions more in plate and jewels. See the Chronicle of John Villani, (l. xi. c. 20, in Muratori’s Collection, tom. xiii. p. 765,) whose brother received the account from the papal treasurers. A treasure of six or eight millions sterling in the xivth century is enormous, and almost incredible.]

37 (return)
[Pope John XXII. (in 1334) left behind eighteen million gold florins and an additional seven million in silver and jewels in Avignon. See the Chronicle of John Villani, (l. xi. c. 20, in Muratori’s Collection, tom. xiii. p. 765,) whose brother got the details from the papal treasurers. A treasure of six or eight million pounds in the 14th century is enormous and almost unbelievable.]

38 (return)
[ A learned and liberal Protestant, M. Lenfant, has given a fair history of the councils of Pisa, Constance, and Basil, in six volumes in quarto; but the last part is the most hasty and imperfect, except in the account of the troubles of Bohemia.]

38 (return)
[ A knowledgeable and open-minded Protestant, M. Lenfant, has provided a thorough history of the councils of Pisa, Constance, and Basil in six volumes; however, the final part is the most rushed and incomplete, except for the section on the troubles in Bohemia.]

39 (return)
[ The original acts or minutes of the council of Basil are preserved in the public library, in twelve volumes in folio. Basil was a free city, conveniently situate on the Rhine, and guarded by the arms of the neighboring and confederate Swiss. In 1459, the university was founded by Pope Pius II., (Æneas Sylvius,) who had been secretary to the council. But what is a council, or a university, to the presses o Froben and the studies of Erasmus?]

39 (return)
[ The original documents or minutes from the council of Basel are kept in the public library, in twelve folio volumes. Basel was a free city, conveniently located on the Rhine, and protected by the forces of the nearby Swiss confederates. In 1459, Pope Pius II (Æneas Sylvius), who had served as secretary to the council, founded the university. But what do a council or a university mean to the printing presses of Froben and the studies of Erasmus?]

40 (return)
[ This Turkish embassy, attested only by Crantzius, is related with some doubt by the annalist Spondanus, A.D. 1433, No. 25, tom. i. p. 824.]

40 (return)
[ This Turkish embassy, verified only by Crantzius, is recounted with some uncertainty by the historian Spondanus, A.D. 1433, No. 25, vol. i. p. 824.]

41 (return)
[ Syropulus, p. 19. In this list, the Greeks appear to have exceeded the real numbers of the clergy and laity which afterwards attended the emperor and patriarch, but which are not clearly specified by the great ecclesiarch. The 75,000 florins which they asked in this negotiation of the pope, (p. 9,) were more than they could hope or want.]

41 (return)
[ Syropulus, p. 19. In this list, the Greeks seem to have overstated the actual numbers of clergy and laity that later accompanied the emperor and patriarch, although these figures are not clearly detailed by the great ecclesiarch. The 75,000 florins they requested in this negotiation with the pope (p. 9) were more than they could realistically expect or desire.]

42 (return)
[ I use indifferently the words ducat and florin, which derive their names, the former from the dukes of Milan, the latter from the republic of Florence. These gold pieces, the first that were coined in Italy, perhaps in the Latin world, may be compared in weight and value to one third of the English guinea.]

42 (return)
[ I use the terms ducat and florin interchangeably, as they are named after the dukes of Milan and the republic of Florence, respectively. These gold coins, the first minted in Italy and possibly in the Latin world, can be compared in weight and value to about one-third of an English guinea.]

In his distress, the friendship of Palæologus was disputed by the ecclesiastical powers of the West; but the dexterous activity of a monarch prevailed over the slow debates and inflexible temper of a republic. The decrees of Basil continually tended to circumscribe the despotism of the pope, and to erect a supreme and perpetual tribunal in the church. Eugenius was impatient of the yoke; and the union of the Greeks might afford a decent pretence for translating a rebellious synod from the Rhine to the Po. The independence of the fathers was lost if they passed the Alps: Savoy or Avignon, to which they acceded with reluctance, were described at Constantinople as situate far beyond the pillars of Hercules; 43 the emperor and his clergy were apprehensive of the dangers of a long navigation; they were offended by a haughty declaration, that after suppressing the new heresy of the Bohemians, the council would soon eradicate the old heresy of the Greeks. 44 On the side of Eugenius, all was smooth, and yielding, and respectful; and he invited the Byzantine monarch to heal by his presence the schism of the Latin, as well as of the Eastern, church. Ferrara, near the coast of the Adriatic, was proposed for their amicable interview; and with some indulgence of forgery and theft, a surreptitious decree was procured, which transferred the synod, with its own consent, to that Italian city. Nine galleys were equipped for the service at Venice, and in the Isle of Candia; their diligence anticipated the slower vessels of Basil: the Roman admiral was commissioned to burn, sink, and destroy; 45 and these priestly squadrons might have encountered each other in the same seas where Athens and Sparta had formerly contended for the preeminence of glory. Assaulted by the importunity of the factions, who were ready to fight for the possession of his person, Palæologus hesitated before he left his palace and country on a perilous experiment. His father’s advice still dwelt on his memory; and reason must suggest, that since the Latins were divided among themselves, they could never unite in a foreign cause. Sigismond dissuaded the unreasonable adventure; his advice was impartial, since he adhered to the council; and it was enforced by the strange belief, that the German Cæsar would nominate a Greek his heir and successor in the empire of the West. 46 Even the Turkish sultan was a counsellor whom it might be unsafe to trust, but whom it was dangerous to offend. Amurath was unskilled in the disputes, but he was apprehensive of the union, of the Christians. From his own treasures, he offered to relieve the wants of the Byzantine court; yet he declared with seeming magnanimity, that Constantinople should be secure and inviolate, in the absence of her sovereign. 47 The resolution of Palæologus was decided by the most splendid gifts and the most specious promises: he wished to escape for a while from a scene of danger and distress and after dismissing with an ambiguous answer the messengers of the council, he declared his intention of embarking in the Roman galleys. The age of the patriarch Joseph was more susceptible of fear than of hope; he trembled at the perils of the sea, and expressed his apprehension, that his feeble voice, with thirty perhaps of his orthodox brethren, would be oppressed in a foreign land by the power and numbers of a Latin synod. He yielded to the royal mandate, to the flattering assurance, that he would be heard as the oracle of nations, and to the secret wish of learning from his brother of the West, to deliver the church from the yoke of kings. 48 The five cross-bearers, or dignitaries, of St. Sophia, were bound to attend his person; and one of these, the great ecclesiarch or preacher, Sylvester Syropulus, 49 has composed a free and curious history 50 of the false union. 51 Of the clergy that reluctantly obeyed the summons of the emperor and the patriarch, submission was the first duty, and patience the most useful virtue. In a chosen list of twenty bishops, we discover the metropolitan titles of Heracleæ and Cyzicus, Nice and Nicomedia, Ephesus and Trebizond, and the personal merit of Mark and Bessarion who, in the confidence of their learning and eloquence, were promoted to the episcopal rank. Some monks and philosophers were named to display the science and sanctity of the Greek church; and the service of the choir was performed by a select band of singers and musicians. The patriarchs of Alexandria, Antioch, and Jerusalem, appeared by their genuine or fictitious deputies; the primate of Russia represented a national church, and the Greeks might contend with the Latins in the extent of their spiritual empire. The precious vases of St. Sophia were exposed to the winds and waves, that the patriarch might officiate with becoming splendor: whatever gold the emperor could procure, was expended in the massy ornaments of his bed and chariot; 52 and while they affected to maintain the prosperity of their ancient fortune, they quarrelled for the division of fifteen thousand ducats, the first alms of the Roman pontiff. After the necessary preparations, John Palæologus, with a numerous train, accompanied by his brother Demetrius, and the most respectable persons of the church and state, embarked in eight vessels with sails and oars which steered through the Turkish Straits of Gallipoli to the Archipelago, the Morea, and the Adriatic Gulf. 53

In his distress, Palæologus's friendship was challenged by the church powers of the West; however, the clever actions of a king triumphed over the slow discussions and stubborn nature of a republic. The decisions of Basil aimed to limit the pope's authority and to establish a permanent supreme court within the church. Eugenius was frustrated by this dominance; and uniting the Greeks might provide a reasonable excuse to move a rebellious council from the Rhine to the Po. The independence of the church fathers would be lost if they crossed the Alps: Savoy or Avignon, which they reluctantly agreed to, were referred to in Constantinople as being far beyond the pillars of Hercules; 43 the emperor and his clergy were concerned about the risks of a long sea journey; they were offended by a bold statement that after dealing with the new heresy of the Bohemians, the council would soon eliminate the old heresy of the Greeks. 44 On Eugenius's side, everything was smooth, accommodating, and respectful; he invited the Byzantine king to help mend the schism of both the Latin and Eastern churches through his presence. Ferrara, near the Adriatic coast, was suggested as the site for their friendly meeting; and through some questionable methods, a secret decree was obtained that moved the council, with its own consent, to that Italian city. Nine galleys were prepared for the task in Venice and the Isle of Crete; their urgency outpaced Basil's slower ships: the Roman admiral was ordered to burn, sink, and destroy; 45 and these priestly fleets could have faced each other in the same waters where Athens and Sparta once fought for glory. Pressured by factions eager to possess him, Palæologus hesitated before risking the safety of his palace and country. His father's advice rang in his ears; it was logical to consider that since the Latins were divided among themselves, they could never unite for a foreign cause. Sigismond discouraged the unwise venture; his advice was objective, as he was aligned with the council; and it was backed by the peculiar belief that the German Cæsar would choose a Greek as his heir in the Western empire. 46 Even the Turkish sultan was a counselor whom it might be risky to trust but dangerous to upset. Amurath lacked knowledge about the disputes but feared the unity of the Christians. He offered to help alleviate the Byzantine court's struggles from his own wealth; yet he claimed with apparent nobility that Constantinople would remain safe and untouched in the absence of its ruler. 47 Palæologus's decision was swayed by extravagant gifts and enticing promises: he wanted to escape for a while from the danger and distress and, after giving a vague response to the council's messengers, announced his plan to sail on the Roman galleys. The patriarch Joseph was more inclined to fear than to hope; he was anxious about the dangers of the sea and worried that his weak voice, along with perhaps thirty of his orthodox brethren, would be drowned out in a foreign land by the strength and numbers of a Latin council. He conceded to the royal command, comforted by the assurance that he would be heard as the voice of nations, and secretly wished to learn from his Western counterpart how to free the church from the kings' control. 48 The five cross-bearers, or dignitaries, of St. Sophia were required to accompany him; one of them, the chief ecclesiarch or preacher, Sylvester Syropulus, 49 wrote a fascinating and detailed history 50 of the false union. 51 Of the clergy who reluctantly heeded the emperor and patriarch's call, submission was their primary duty, and patience was the most valuable virtue. Among a chosen group of twenty bishops, we recognize the metropolitan titles of Heracleæ and Cyzicus, Nice and Nicomedia, Ephesus and Trebizond, along with the personal merits of Mark and Bessarion, who, confident in their knowledge and eloquence, were elevated to the rank of bishop. Some monks and philosophers were included to showcase the knowledge and holiness of the Greek church; and the choir's service was conducted by a select group of singers and musicians. The patriarchs of Alexandria, Antioch, and Jerusalem appeared through their genuine or pretend deputies; the primate of Russia represented a national church, and the Greeks could rival the Latins in the vastness of their spiritual domain. The precious vases of St. Sophia were exposed to the winds and waves so that the patriarch could conduct services with appropriate grandeur: whatever gold the emperor could gather was spent on the heavy decorations of his bed and chariot; 52 and while they pretended to uphold the prosperity of their ancient fortune, they argued over the division of fifteen thousand ducats, the first donations from the Roman pontiff. After making necessary arrangements, John Palæologus, accompanied by a large entourage, his brother Demetrius, and the most distinguished individuals from church and state, set sail in eight vessels with sails and oars through the Turkish Straits of Gallipoli to the Archipelago, the Morea, and the Adriatic Gulf. 53

43 (return)
[ At the end of the Latin version of Phranzes, we read a long Greek epistle or declamation of George of Trebizond, who advises the emperor to prefer Eugenius and Italy. He treats with contempt the schismatic assembly of Basil, the Barbarians of Gaul and Germany, who had conspired to transport the chair of St. Peter beyond the Alps; oi aqlioi (says he) se kai thn meta sou sunodon exw tvn 'Hrakleiwn sthlwn kai pera Gadhrwn exaxousi. Was Constantinople unprovided with a map?]

43 (return)
[At the end of the Latin version of Phranzes, we read a lengthy Greek letter or speech by George of Trebizond, who advises the emperor to favor Eugenius and Italy. He openly mocks the schismatic assembly of Basel and the Barbarians from Gaul and Germany, who planned to move the chair of St. Peter beyond the Alps; oi aqlioi (he says) se kai thn meta sou sunodon exw tvn 'Hrakleiwn sthlwn kai pera Gadhrwn exaxousi. Was Constantinople lacking a map?]

44 (return)
[ Syropulus (p. 26—31) attests his own indignation, and that of his countrymen; and the Basil deputies, who excused the rash declaration, could neither deny nor alter an act of the council.]

44 (return)
[ Syropulus (p. 26—31) attests to his own outrage, as well as that of his fellow countrymen; and the Basil representatives, who justified the hasty statement, could neither deny nor change an action of the council.]

45 (return)
[ Condolmieri, the pope’s nephew and admiral, expressly declared, oti orismon eceipara tou Papa ina polemhsh opou an eurh ta katerga thV Sunodou, kai ei dunhqh, katadush, kai ajanish. The naval orders of the synod were less peremptory, and, till the hostile squadrons appeared, both parties tried to conceal their quarrel from the Greeks.]

45 (return)
[ Condolmieri, the pope's nephew and admiral, specifically stated that he was accepting the pope's order to fight wherever he found the decrees of the Synod and, if possible, to crush and pursue. The naval orders of the synod were less forceful, and, until the enemy fleets showed up, both sides attempted to hide their conflict from the Greeks.]

46 (return)
[ Syropulus mentions the hopes of Palæologus, (p. 36,) and the last advice of Sigismond,(p. 57.) At Corfu, the Greek emperor was informed of his friend’s death; had he known it sooner, he would have returned home,(p. 79.)]

46 (return)
[ Syropulus talks about the hopes of Palæologus, (p. 36,) and the final advice from Sigismond,(p. 57.) While in Corfu, the Greek emperor learned about his friend's death; if he had known earlier, he would have gone back home,(p. 79.)]

47 (return)
[ Phranzes himself, though from different motives, was of the advice of Amurath, (l. ii. c. 13.) Utinam ne synodus ista unquam fuisset, si tantes offensiones et detrimenta paritura erat. This Turkish embassy is likewise mentioned by Syropulus, (p. 58;) and Amurath kept his word. He might threaten, (p. 125, 219,) but he never attacked, the city.]

47 (return)
[ Phranzes himself, though for different reasons, agreed with Amurath's advice, (l. ii. c. 13.) If only this council had never happened, if it was going to bring so many grievances and losses. This Turkish embassy is also noted by Syropulus, (p. 58;) and Amurath kept his promise. He might have made threats, (p. 125, 219,) but he never attacked the city.]

48 (return)
[ The reader will smile at the simplicity with which he imparted these hopes to his favorites: toiauthn plhrojorian schsein hlpize kai dia tou Papa eqarrei eleuqervdai thn ekklhsian apo thV apoteqeishV autou douleiaV para tou basilewV, (p. 92.) Yet it would have been difficult for him to have practised the lessons of Gregory VII.]

48 (return)
[ The reader will smile at the straightforward way he shared these hopes with his favorites: toiauthn plhrojorian schsein hlpize kai dia tou Papa eqarrei eleuqervdai thn ekklhsian apo thV apoteqeishV autou douleiaV para tou basilewV, (p. 92.) Yet it would have been hard for him to apply the lessons of Gregory VII.]

49 (return)
[ The Christian name of Sylvester is borrowed from the Latin calendar. In modern Greek, pouloV, as a diminutive, is added to the end of words: nor can any reasoning of Creyghton, the editor, excuse his changing into Sguropulus, (Sguros, fuscus,) the Syropulus of his own manuscript, whose name is subscribed with his own hand in the acts of the council of Florence. Why might not the author be of Syrian extraction?]

49 (return)
[ The Christian name Sylvester comes from the Latin calendar. In modern Greek, the suffix pouloV is added to the end of words as a diminutive. No amount of reasoning from Creyghton, the editor, justifies his change to Sguropulus, (Sguros, fuscus,) instead of the Syropulus found in his own manuscript, which he signed himself in the records of the council of Florence. Why couldn't the author have Syrian roots?]

50 (return)
[ From the conclusion of the history, I should fix the date to the year 1444, four years after the synod, when great ecclesiarch had abdicated his office, (section xii. p. 330—350.) His passions were cooled by time and retirement; and, although Syropulus is often partial, he is never intemperate.]

50 (return)
[Based on the conclusion of the history, I would set the date to 1444, four years after the synod, when the prominent ecclesiarch stepped down from his position, (section xii. p. 330—350.) His emotions were settled by time and seclusion; and, even though Syropulus is frequently biased, he is never excessive.]

51 (return)
[ Vera historia unionis non ver inter Græcos et Latinos, (Haga Comitis, 1660, in folio,) was first published with a loose and florid version, by Robert Creyghton, chaplain to Charles II. in his exile. The zeal of the editor has prefixed a polemic title, for the beginning of the original is wanting. Syropulus may be ranked with the best of the Byzantine writers for the merit of his narration, and even of his style; but he is excluded from the orthodox collections of the councils.]

51 (return)
[ Vera historia unionis non ver inter Græcos et Latinos, (Haga Comitis, 1660, in folio,) was first released with a loose and elaborate version by Robert Creyghton, chaplain to Charles II during his exile. The editor's enthusiasm has added a polemic title since the beginning of the original text is missing. Syropulus can be considered one of the top Byzantine writers for the quality of his storytelling and even his writing style; however, he is left out of the accepted collections of the councils.]

52 (return)
[ Syropulus (p. 63) simply expresses his intention in’ outw pompawn en’ 'ItaloiV megaV basileuV par ekeinvn nomizoito; and the Latin of Creyghton may afford a specimen of his florid paraphrase. Ut pompâ circumductus noster Imperator Italiæ populis aliquis deauratus Jupiter crederetur, aut Crsus ex opulenta Lydia.]

52 (return)
[ Syropulus (p. 63) simply states his intention in 'outw pompawn en' 'ItaloiV megaV basileuV par ekeinvn nomizoito; and the Latin of Creyghton may provide an example of his elaborate paraphrase. As if our Emperor was surrounded with pomp, he would be believed to be some golden Jupiter for the peoples of Italy, or like Croesus from wealthy Lydia.]

53 (return)
[ Although I cannot stop to quote Syropulus for every fact, I will observe that the navigation of the Greeks from Constantinople to Venice and Ferrara is contained in the ivth section, (p. 67—100,) and that the historian has the uncommon talent of placing each scene before the reader’s eye.]

53 (return)
[ While I can’t stop to quote Syropulus for every detail, I’ll point out that the Greeks' journey from Constantinople to Venice and Ferrara is covered in the fourth section, (p. 67—100,) and the historian has the rare skill of bringing each scene to life for the reader.]

Chapter LXVI: Union Of The Greek And Latin Churches.—Part III.

After a tedious and troublesome navigation of seventy-seven days, this religious squadron cast anchor before Venice; and their reception proclaimed the joy and magnificence of that powerful republic. In the command of the world, the modest Augustus had never claimed such honors from his subjects as were paid to his feeble successor by an independent state. Seated on the poop on a lofty throne, he received the visit, or, in the Greek style, the adoration of the doge and senators. 54 They sailed in the Bucentaur, which was accompanied by twelve stately galleys: the sea was overspread with innumerable gondolas of pomp and pleasure; the air resounded with music and acclamations; the mariners, and even the vessels, were dressed in silk and gold; and in all the emblems and pageants, the Roman eagles were blended with the lions of St. Mark. The triumphal procession, ascending the great canal, passed under the bridge of the Rialto; and the Eastern strangers gazed with admiration on the palaces, the churches, and the populousness of a city, that seems to float on the bosom of the waves. 55 They sighed to behold the spoils and trophies with which it had been decorated after the sack of Constantinople. After a hospitable entertainment of fifteen days, Palæologus pursued his journey by land and water from Venice to Ferrara; and on this occasion the pride of the Vatican was tempered by policy to indulge the ancient dignity of the emperor of the East. He made his entry on a black horse; but a milk-white steed, whose trappings were embroidered with golden eagles, was led before him; and the canopy was borne over his head by the princes of Este, the sons or kinsmen of Nicholas, marquis of the city, and a sovereign more powerful than himself. 56 Palæologus did not alight till he reached the bottom of the staircase: the pope advanced to the door of the apartment; refused his proffered genuflection; and, after a paternal embrace, conducted the emperor to a seat on his left hand. Nor would the patriarch descend from his galley, till a ceremony almost equal, had been stipulated between the bishops of Rome and Constantinople. The latter was saluted by his brother with a kiss of union and charity; nor would any of the Greek ecclesiastics submit to kiss the feet of the Western primate. On the opening of the synod, the place of honor in the centre was claimed by the temporal and ecclesiastical chiefs; and it was only by alleging that his predecessors had not assisted in person at Nice or Chalcedon, that Eugenius could evade the ancient precedents of Constantine and Marcian. After much debate, it was agreed that the right and left sides of the church should be occupied by the two nations; that the solitary chair of St. Peter should be raised the first of the Latin line; and that the throne of the Greek emperor, at the head of his clergy, should be equal and opposite to the second place, the vacant seat of the emperor of the West. 57

After a long and difficult journey of seventy-seven days, this religious fleet dropped anchor in Venice, and their welcome showcased the joy and grandeur of that powerful republic. In his time, the modest Augustus never sought such honors from his subjects as were given to his weak successor by an independent state. Sitting on the stern on a grand throne, he received the visit, or in the Greek way, the adoration of the doge and senators. 54 They sailed in the Bucentaur, accompanied by twelve impressive galleys; the sea was filled with countless gondolas of celebration and luxury; the air was alive with music and cheers; the sailors, and even the ships, were dressed in silk and gold; and in all the symbols and festivities, the Roman eagles were mixed with the lions of St. Mark. The triumphal parade, moving up the grand canal, went under the Rialto bridge, and the Eastern visitors looked on in awe at the palaces, the churches, and the bustling life of a city that seems to float on the water. 55 They sighed at the sight of the spoils and trophies that adorned the city after the fall of Constantinople. After a warm hospitality of fifteen days, Palæologus continued his journey by land and water from Venice to Ferrara; during this time, the pride of the Vatican was softened by strategy to honor the ancient dignity of the emperor of the East. He entered on a black horse, but a pure white horse, decorated with golden eagles, was led in front of him; and a canopy was held over his head by the princes of Este, sons or relatives of Nicholas, the marquis of the city, who was a ruler even more powerful than him. 56 Palæologus did not dismount until he reached the bottom of the stairs: the pope came to the door of the room; declined his offered bow; and, after a fatherly embrace, led the emperor to a seat on his left. Nor would the patriarch get off his galley until a ceremony nearly as significant had been agreed upon between the bishops of Rome and Constantinople. The latter was greeted by his brother with a kiss of unity and goodwill; nor would any of the Greek church leaders kneel to kiss the feet of the Western primate. When the synod opened, the center honor was claimed by the temporal and ecclesiastical leaders; and Eugenius could only escape the ancient traditions of Constantine and Marcian by arguing that his predecessors had not personally participated at Nice or Chalcedon. After much discussion, it was decided that the right and left sides of the church should be occupied by the two nations; that the solitary chair of St. Peter should be the first of the Latin line; and that the throne of the Greek emperor, at the head of his clergy, should be equal and opposite to the second position, the vacant seat of the emperor of the West. 57

54 (return)
[ At the time of the synod, Phranzes was in Peloponnesus: but he received from the despot Demetrius a faithful account of the honorable reception of the emperor and patriarch both at Venice and Ferrara, (Dux.... sedentem Imperatorem adorat,) which are more slightly mentioned by the Latins, (l. ii. c. 14, 15, 16.)]

54 (return)
[ During the synod, Phranzes was in Peloponnesus, but he received a reliable report from the despot Demetrius about the warm welcome given to the emperor and patriarch in both Venice and Ferrara, (Dux.... sedentem Imperatorem adorat,) which is only briefly referenced by the Latins, (l. ii. c. 14, 15, 16.)]

55 (return)
[ The astonishment of a Greek prince and a French ambassador (Mémoires de Philippe de Comines, l. vii. c. 18,) at the sight of Venice, abundantly proves that in the xvth century it was the first and most splendid of the Christian cities. For the spoils of Constantinople at Venice, see Syropulus, (p. 87.)]

55 (return)
[ The amazement of a Greek prince and a French ambassador (Memoirs of Philippe de Comines, book vii, chapter 18) at the sight of Venice clearly shows that in the 15th century it was the leading and most magnificent of the Christian cities. For the treasures of Constantinople in Venice, see Syropulus (p. 87).]

56 (return)
[ Nicholas III. of Este reigned forty-eight years, (A.D. 1393—1441,) and was lord of Ferrara, Modena, Reggio, Parma, Rovigo, and Commachio. See his Life in Muratori, (Antichità Estense, tom. ii. p. 159—201.)]

56 (return)
[Nicholas III of Este ruled for forty-eight years (A.D. 1393—1441) and was the lord of Ferrara, Modena, Reggio, Parma, Rovigo, and Comacchio. See his life in Muratori, (Antichità Estense, vol. ii, pp. 159—201.)]

57 (return)
[ The Latin vulgar was provoked to laughter at the strange dresses of the Greeks, and especially the length of their garments, their sleeves, and their beards; nor was the emperor distinguished, except by the purple color, and his diadem or tiara, with a jewel on the top, (Hody de Græcis Illustribus, p. 31.) Yet another spectator confesses that the Greek fashion was piu grave e piu degna than the Italian. (Vespasiano in Vit. Eugen. IV. in Muratori, tom. xxv. p. 261.)]

57 (return)
[ The common people laughed at the strange clothing of the Greeks, especially the length of their robes, their sleeves, and their beards. The emperor stood out only because of his purple garments and his crown or tiara, which had a jewel on top, (Hody de Græcis Illustribus, p. 31.) However, another observer admits that the Greek style was more serious and dignified than the Italian. (Vespasiano in Vit. Eugen. IV. in Muratori, tom. xxv. p. 261.)]

But as soon as festivity and form had given place to a more serious treaty, the Greeks were dissatisfied with their journey, with themselves, and with the pope. The artful pencil of his emissaries had painted him in a prosperous state; at the head of the princes and prelates of Europe, obedient at his voice, to believe and to arm. The thin appearance of the universal synod of Ferrara betrayed his weakness: and the Latins opened the first session with only five archbishops, eighteen bishops, and ten abbots, the greatest part of whom were the subjects or countrymen of the Italian pontiff. Except the duke of Burgundy, none of the potentates of the West condescended to appear in person, or by their ambassadors; nor was it possible to suppress the judicial acts of Basil against the dignity and person of Eugenius, which were finally concluded by a new election. Under these circumstances, a truce or delay was asked and granted, till Palæologus could expect from the consent of the Latins some temporal reward for an unpopular union; and after the first session, the public proceedings were adjourned above six months. The emperor, with a chosen band of his favorites and Janizaries, fixed his summer residence at a pleasant, spacious monastery, six miles from Ferrara; forgot, in the pleasures of the chase, the distress of the church and state; and persisted in destroying the game, without listening to the just complaints of the marquis or the husbandman. 58 In the mean while, his unfortunate Greeks were exposed to all the miseries of exile and poverty; for the support of each stranger, a monthly allowance was assigned of three or four gold florins; and although the entire sum did not amount to seven hundred florins, a long arrear was repeatedly incurred by the indigence or policy of the Roman court. 59 They sighed for a speedy deliverance, but their escape was prevented by a triple chain: a passport from their superiors was required at the gates of Ferrara; the government of Venice had engaged to arrest and send back the fugitives; and inevitable punishment awaited them at Constantinople; excommunication, fines, and a sentence, which did not respect the sacerdotal dignity, that they should be stripped naked and publicly whipped. 60 It was only by the alternative of hunger or dispute that the Greeks could be persuaded to open the first conference; and they yielded with extreme reluctance to attend from Ferrara to Florence the rear of a flying synod. This new translation was urged by inevitable necessity: the city was visited by the plague; the fidelity of the marquis might be suspected; the mercenary troops of the duke of Milan were at the gates; and as they occupied Romagna, it was not without difficulty and danger that the pope, the emperor, and the bishops, explored their way through the unfrequented paths of the Apennine. 61

But as soon as the celebrations and formalities gave way to a more serious agreement, the Greeks felt dissatisfied with their journey, themselves, and the pope. The clever messaging from his envoys had portrayed him as powerful, at the forefront of Europe’s princes and bishops, able to command belief and support. The weak turnout at the universal synod of Ferrara revealed his vulnerability: the Latins began the first session with just five archbishops, eighteen bishops, and ten abbots, most of whom were subjects or fellow countrymen of the Italian pope. Except for the duke of Burgundy, none of the powerful leaders from the West bothered to show up in person or send their ambassadors; nor could the judicial actions from Basel against Eugenius' dignity and position be ignored, which eventually led to a new election. Given these circumstances, a truce or delay was requested and granted until Palæologus could hope for some material benefit from the Latins for an unpopular union; after the first session, the public proceedings were postponed for more than six months. The emperor, along with a selected group of his favorites and Janizaries, set up his summer residence in a pleasant, spacious monastery six miles from Ferrara; he indulged in the pleasures of hunting, forgetting the struggles of the church and state, and continued to hunt without heeding the rightful complaints from the marquis or the farmers. 58 Meanwhile, his unfortunate Greeks faced all the hardships of exile and poverty; each stranger was assigned a monthly allowance of three or four gold florins, and although the total amount didn’t reach seven hundred florins, there were repeated delays in payment due to the Roman court's poverty or political motives. 59 They longed for a swift rescue, but their escape was hindered by three obstacles: they needed a passport from their superiors at the gates of Ferrara; the Venetian government had promised to capture and send back any escapees; and inevitable punishment awaited them in Constantinople—excommunication, fines, and a sentence that disregarded their clerical status, including being stripped naked and publicly whipped. 60 The Greeks could only be convinced to start the first conference through the threat of hunger or conflict; they reluctantly agreed to travel from Ferrara to Florence to follow a fleeing synod. This relocation was caused by unavoidable necessity: the city was struck by plague; the marquis's loyalty was questionable; the mercenary troops of the duke of Milan were at the gates; and as they occupied Romagna, navigating through the rarely traveled paths of the Apennine proved difficult and dangerous for the pope, the emperor, and the bishops. 61

58 (return)
[ For the emperor’s hunting, see Syropulus, (p. 143, 144, 191.) The pope had sent him eleven miserable hacks; but he bought a strong and swift horse that came from Russia. The name of Janizaries may surprise; but the name, rather than the institution, had passed from the Ottoman, to the Byzantine, court, and is often used in the last age of the empire.]

58 (return)
[For the emperor’s hunting, see Syropulus, (p. 143, 144, 191.) The pope sent him eleven lousy horses, but he bought a strong and fast horse from Russia. The term Janizaries might be surprising; however, the name, more than the actual institution, was transferred from the Ottoman to the Byzantine court, and is frequently used in the final period of the empire.]

59 (return)
[ The Greeks obtained, with much difficulty, that instead of provisions, money should be distributed, four florins per month to the persons of honorable rank, and three florins to their servants, with an addition of thirty more to the emperor, twenty-five to the patriarch, and twenty to the prince, or despot, Demetrius. The payment of the first month amounted to 691 florins, a sum which will not allow us to reckon above 200 Greeks of every condition. (Syropulus, p. 104, 105.) On the 20th October, 1438, there was an arrear of four months; in April, 1439, of three; and of five and a half in July, at the time of the union, (p. 172, 225, 271.)]

59 (return)
[ The Greeks managed, with a lot of effort, to secure that instead of food, money would be distributed—four florins per month to people of noble status, and three florins to their servants, plus an extra thirty for the emperor, twenty-five for the patriarch, and twenty for the prince, or despot, Demetrius. The payment for the first month totaled 691 florins, which means we can't assume there were more than 200 Greeks of all ranks. (Syropulus, p. 104, 105.) On October 20, 1438, there was a backlog of four months; in April 1439, it was three months; and in July, during the union, it was five and a half months. (p. 172, 225, 271.)]

60 (return)
[ Syropulus (p. 141, 142, 204, 221) deplores the imprisonment of the Greeks, and the tyranny of the emperor and patriarch.]

60 (return)
[ Syropulus (p. 141, 142, 204, 221) laments the imprisonment of the Greeks, as well as the oppression by the emperor and patriarch.]

61 (return)
[ The wars of Italy are most clearly represented in the xiiith vol. of the Annals of Muratori. The schismatic Greek, Syropulus, (p. 145,) appears to have exaggerated the fear and disorder of the pope in his retreat from Ferrara to Florence, which is proved by the acts to have been somewhat more decent and deliberate.]

61 (return)
[ The wars in Italy are best illustrated in the 13th volume of Muratori's Annals. The schismatic Greek, Syropulus, (p. 145,) seems to have blown the fear and chaos of the pope's retreat from Ferrara to Florence out of proportion, as the records show that it was actually more orderly and intentional.]

Yet all these obstacles were surmounted by time and policy. The violence of the fathers of Basil rather promoted than injured the cause of Eugenius; the nations of Europe abhorred the schism, and disowned the election, of Felix the Fifth, who was successively a duke of Savoy, a hermit, and a pope; and the great princes were gradually reclaimed by his competitor to a favorable neutrality and a firm attachment. The legates, with some respectable members, deserted to the Roman army, which insensibly rose in numbers and reputation; the council of Basil was reduced to thirty-nine bishops, and three hundred of the inferior clergy; 62 while the Latins of Florence could produce the subscriptions of the pope himself, eight cardinals, two patriarchs, eight archbishops, fifty two bishops, and forty-five abbots, or chiefs of religious orders. After the labor of nine months, and the debates of twenty-five sessions, they attained the advantage and glory of the reunion of the Greeks. Four principal questions had been agitated between the two churches; 1. The use of unleavened bread in the communion of Christ’s body. 2. The nature of purgatory. 3. The supremacy of the pope. And, 4. The single or double procession of the Holy Ghost. The cause of either nation was managed by ten theological champions: the Latins were supported by the inexhaustible eloquence of Cardinal Julian; and Mark of Ephesus and Bessarion of Nice were the bold and able leaders of the Greek forces. We may bestow some praise on the progress of human reason, by observing that the first of these questions was now treated as an immaterial rite, which might innocently vary with the fashion of the age and country. With regard to the second, both parties were agreed in the belief of an intermediate state of purgation for the venial sins of the faithful; and whether their souls were purified by elemental fire was a doubtful point, which in a few years might be conveniently settled on the spot by the disputants. The claims of supremacy appeared of a more weighty and substantial kind; yet by the Orientals the Roman bishop had ever been respected as the first of the five patriarchs; nor did they scruple to admit, that his jurisdiction should be exercised agreeably to the holy canons; a vague allowance, which might be defined or eluded by occasional convenience. The procession of the Holy Ghost from the Father alone, or from the Father and the Son, was an article of faith which had sunk much deeper into the minds of men; and in the sessions of Ferrara and Florence, the Latin addition of filioque was subdivided into two questions, whether it were legal, and whether it were orthodox. Perhaps it may not be necessary to boast on this subject of my own impartial indifference; but I must think that the Greeks were strongly supported by the prohibition of the council of Chalcedon, against adding any article whatsoever to the creed of Nice, or rather of Constantinople. 63 In earthly affairs, it is not easy to conceive how an assembly equal of legislators can bind their successors invested with powers equal to their own. But the dictates of inspiration must be true and unchangeable; nor should a private bishop, or a provincial synod, have presumed to innovate against the judgment of the Catholic church. On the substance of the doctrine, the controversy was equal and endless: reason is confounded by the procession of a deity: the gospel, which lay on the altar, was silent; the various texts of the fathers might be corrupted by fraud or entangled by sophistry; and the Greeks were ignorant of the characters and writings of the Latin saints. 64 Of this at least we may be sure, that neither side could be convinced by the arguments of their opponents. Prejudice may be enlightened by reason, and a superficial glance may be rectified by a clear and more perfect view of an object adapted to our faculties. But the bishops and monks had been taught from their infancy to repeat a form of mysterious words: their national and personal honor depended on the repetition of the same sounds; and their narrow minds were hardened and inflamed by the acrimony of a public dispute.

Yet all these obstacles were overcome by time and strategy. The actions of the fathers of Basil actually helped Eugenius's cause rather than hurt it; the nations of Europe despised the schism and rejected the election of Felix the Fifth, who was a duke of Savoy, a hermit, and a pope in succession; and the major princes gradually returned to a favorable neutrality and strong loyalty to his competitor. The legates, along with some respectable members, switched sides to the Roman army, which gradually grew in both numbers and reputation; the council of Basil was reduced to thirty-nine bishops and three hundred lower clergy; 62 while the Latins of Florence could present the endorsements of the pope himself, eight cardinals, two patriarchs, eight archbishops, fifty-two bishops, and forty-five abbots or leaders of religious orders. After nine months of work and twenty-five sessions of debates, they achieved the success and glory of reuniting with the Greeks. Four main issues had been discussed between the two churches; 1. The use of unleavened bread in the communion of Christ’s body. 2. The nature of purgatory. 3. The supremacy of the pope. And, 4. The single or double procession of the Holy Ghost. Each nation was defended by ten theological champions: the Latins were backed by the endless eloquence of Cardinal Julian; and Mark of Ephesus and Bessarion of Nice were the brave and capable leaders of the Greek forces. We can acknowledge some progress in human reason by noting that the first question was now seen as an insignificant ritual, which could innocently change with the trends of the era and location. Regarding the second, both sides agreed on the belief in an intermediate state of purgation for the minor sins of the faithful; whether their souls were cleansed by elemental fire was a questionable topic, which in a few years could conveniently be resolved by the disputants. The claims of supremacy seemed more significant and substantial; yet the Orientals had always respected the Roman bishop as the foremost of the five patriarchs; and they did not hesitate to accept that his authority should be exercised in accordance with the holy canons; a vague permission, which could be clarified or avoided depending on convenience. The belief in the Holy Ghost's procession from the Father alone, or from the Father and the Son, was a matter of faith that had a deeper hold on people's minds; and in the sessions of Ferrara and Florence, the Latin addition of filioque was split into two questions, whether it was legal and whether it was orthodox. I may not need to claim my own impartial indifference on this issue; however, I believe the Greeks were strongly supported by the council of Chalcedon's prohibition against adding any article to the creed of Nice, or rather Constantinople. 63 In worldly matters, it is hard to imagine how a body of lawmakers can bind their successors who hold equal power. But the truths dictated by inspiration must be true and unchangeable; nor should a private bishop or a local synod have dared to innovate against the judgment of the Catholic Church. On the substance of the doctrine, the dispute was equal and endless: reason is baffled by the procession of a deity: the gospel, which lay on the altar, was silent; various texts from the fathers might have been corrupted by deceit or tangled in sophistry; and the Greeks were unaware of the characters and writings of the Latin saints. 64 We can be sure that neither side could be swayed by their opponents' arguments. Prejudice may be illuminated by reason, and a quick look may be corrected by a clearer and more perfect view of something suited to our understanding. But the bishops and monks had been raised from childhood to recite a set of mysterious words: their national and personal pride relied on repeating the same phrases; and their narrow minds were hardened and inflamed by the bitterness of a public argument.

62 (return)
[ Syropulus is pleased to reckon seven hundred prelates in the council of Basil. The error is manifest, and perhaps voluntary. That extravagant number could not be supplied by all the ecclesiastics of every degree who were present at the council, nor by all the absent bishops of the West, who, expressly or tacitly, might adhere to its decrees.]

62 (return)
[ Syropulus claims that there were seven hundred church leaders at the council of Basil. This is clearly incorrect, and possibly intentional. That exaggerated number couldn't possibly have come from all the clergy of every rank who were actually at the council, nor from all the absent bishops in the West, who might have agreed with its decisions, either openly or silently.]

63 (return)
[ The Greeks, who disliked the union, were unwilling to sally from this strong fortress, (p. 178, 193, 195, 202, of Syropulus.) The shame of the Latins was aggravated by their producing an old MS. of the second council of Nice, with filioque in the Nicene creed. A palpable forgery! (p. 173.)]

63 (return)
[ The Greeks, who opposed the union, were not ready to leave this strong fortress, (p. 178, 193, 195, 202, of Syropulus.) The Latins' embarrassment increased when they presented an old manuscript of the second council of Nice, which included filioque in the Nicene creed. A clear forgery! (p. 173.)]

64 (return)
[ 'WV egw (said an eminent Greek) otan eiV naon eiselqw Datinwn ou proskunv tina tvn ekeise agiwn, epei oude gnwrizw tina, (Syropulus, p. 109.) See the perplexity of the Greeks, (p. 217, 218, 252, 253, 273.)]

64 (return)
[ 'As a notable Greek once said, when I enter the temple of the gods there, I do not worship any of those saints, since I do not recognize any of them, (Syropulus, p. 109.) See the confusion of the Greeks, (p. 217, 218, 252, 253, 273.)]

While they were most in a cloud of dust and darkness, the Pope and emperor were desirous of a seeming union, which could alone accomplish the purposes of their interview; and the obstinacy of public dispute was softened by the arts of private and personal negotiation. The patriarch Joseph had sunk under the weight of age and infirmities; his dying voice breathed the counsels of charity and concord, and his vacant benefice might tempt the hopes of the ambitious clergy. The ready and active obedience of the archbishops of Russia and Nice, of Isidore and Bessarion, was prompted and recompensed by their speedy promotion to the dignity of cardinals. Bessarion, in the first debates, had stood forth the most strenuous and eloquent champion of the Greek church; and if the apostate, the bastard, was reprobated by his country, 65 he appears in ecclesiastical story a rare example of a patriot who was recommended to court favor by loud opposition and well-timed compliance. With the aid of his two spiritual coadjutors, the emperor applied his arguments to the general situation and personal characters of the bishops, and each was successively moved by authority and example. Their revenues were in the hands of the Turks, their persons in those of the Latins: an episcopal treasure, three robes and forty ducats, was soon exhausted: 66 the hopes of their return still depended on the ships of Venice and the alms of Rome; and such was their indigence, that their arrears, the payment of a debt, would be accepted as a favor, and might operate as a bribe. 67 The danger and relief of Constantinople might excuse some prudent and pious dissimulation; and it was insinuated, that the obstinate heretics who should resist the consent of the East and West would be abandoned in a hostile land to the revenge or justice of the Roman pontiff. 68 In the first private assembly of the Greeks, the formulary of union was approved by twenty-four, and rejected by twelve, members; but the five cross-bearers of St. Sophia, who aspired to represent the patriarch, were disqualified by ancient discipline; and their right of voting was transferred to the obsequious train of monks, grammarians, and profane laymen. The will of the monarch produced a false and servile unanimity, and no more than two patriots had courage to speak their own sentiments and those of their country. Demetrius, the emperor’s brother, retired to Venice, that he might not be witness of the union; and Mark of Ephesus, mistaking perhaps his pride for his conscience, disclaimed all communion with the Latin heretics, and avowed himself the champion and confessor of the orthodox creed. 69 In the treaty between the two nations, several forms of consent were proposed, such as might satisfy the Latins, without dishonoring the Greeks; and they weighed the scruples of words and syllables, till the theological balance trembled with a slight preponderance in favor of the Vatican. It was agreed (I must entreat the attention of the reader) that the Holy Ghost proceeds from the Father and the Son, as from one principle and one substance; that he proceeds by the Son, being of the same nature and substance, and that he proceeds from the Father and the Son, by one spiration and production. It is less difficult to understand the articles of the preliminary treaty; that the pope should defray all the expenses of the Greeks in their return home; that he should annually maintain two galleys and three hundred soldiers for the defence of Constantinople: that all the ships which transported pilgrims to Jerusalem should be obliged to touch at that port; that as often as they were required, the pope should furnish ten galleys for a year, or twenty for six months; and that he should powerfully solicit the princes of Europe, if the emperor had occasion for land forces.

While they were surrounded by dust and darkness, the Pope and emperor wanted a fake unity that could fulfill the purpose of their meeting; and the stubbornness of public arguments was eased by private and personal negotiations. Patriarch Joseph, weakened by age and illness, spoke his final words of love and harmony, while his vacant position might spark the ambition of the clergy. The quick and eager compliance of the archbishops of Russia and Nice, Isidore and Bessarion, was encouraged and rewarded with their fast-track promotion to cardinal. Bessarion, in the initial discussions, had been a strong and eloquent advocate for the Greek church; and although he was rejected by his homeland as a traitor and illegitimate, he stands out in church history as a rare patriot who gained favor through vocal opposition and careful compliance. With the help of his two spiritual associates, the emperor tailored his arguments to fit the bishops’ overall situation and individual characters, swaying each one through authority and example. Their revenues were controlled by the Turks, and their lives by the Latins: an episcopal treasure of three robes and forty ducats was quickly depleted; their hopes of returning relied on Venetian ships and Roman charity; and they were so impoverished that paying off debts would be seen as a favor, possibly serving as a bribe. The peril and potential aid for Constantinople might justify some cautious and pious deception; it was suggested that the stubborn heretics who resisted the union of East and West would be left to face the wrath or justice of the Roman pontiff in enemy territory. In the first private meeting of the Greeks, twenty-four members approved the union proposal while twelve rejected it; however, the five cross-bearers of St. Sophia, who aimed to represent the patriarch, were disqualified by longstanding rules, transferring their voting rights to a compliant group of monks, scholars, and laypeople. The monarch's will created a forced and servile unanimity, and only two patriots had the courage to express their true feelings and those of their nation. Demetrius, the emperor’s brother, withdrew to Venice to avoid witnessing the union, and Mark of Ephesus, perhaps confusing his pride for his conscience, disavowed any connection with the Latin heretics, declaring himself a champion and defender of orthodox beliefs. In the treaty between the two nations, various forms of consent were suggested that might please the Latins without humiliating the Greeks; they debated the nuances of words and phrases until the theological balance slightly tilted in favor of the Vatican. It was agreed (I urge the reader's attention) that the Holy Spirit proceeds from the Father and the Son, like one principle and one substance; that he proceeds by the Son, sharing the same nature and essence, and that he proceeds from the Father and the Son, through one spiration and production. The preliminary treaty items were easier to understand: the Pope would cover all the expenses for the Greeks' return home; he would maintain two galleys and three hundred soldiers each year for the defense of Constantinople; all ships transporting pilgrims to Jerusalem would be required to stop at that port; if needed, the Pope would provide ten galleys for a year or twenty for six months; and he would actively appeal to the princes of Europe if the emperor needed land troops.

65 (return)
[ See the polite altercation of Marc and Bessarion in Syropulus, (p. 257,) who never dissembles the vices of his own party, and fairly praises the virtues of the Latins.]

65 (return)
[ Check out the respectful disagreement between Marc and Bessarion in Syropulus, (p. 257,) who never hides the faults of his own side and honestly acknowledges the strengths of the Latins.]

66 (return)
[ For the poverty of the Greek bishops, see a remarkable passage of Ducas, (c. 31.) One had possessed, for his whole property, three old gowns, &c. By teaching one-and-twenty years in his monastery, Bessarion himself had collected forty gold florins; but of these, the archbishop had expended twenty-eight in his voyage from Peloponnesus, and the remainder at Constantinople, (Syropulus, p. 127.)]

66 (return)
[ For the poverty of the Greek bishops, see a striking passage from Ducas, (c. 31.) One bishop owned nothing but three old gowns, etc. After teaching for twenty-one years in his monastery, Bessarion himself had saved up forty gold florins; however, the archbishop spent twenty-eight of those on his journey from Peloponnesus and the rest in Constantinople, (Syropulus, p. 127.)]

67 (return)
[ Syropulus denies that the Greeks received any money before they had subscribed the art of union, (p. 283:) yet he relates some suspicious circumstances; and their bribery and corruption are positively affirmed by the historian Ducas.]

67 (return)
[ Syropulus claims that the Greeks didn’t get any money before they agreed to the union, (p. 283:) but he mentions some questionable details; and the historian Ducas definitely states that bribery and corruption took place.]

68 (return)
[ The Greeks most piteously express their own fears of exile and perpetual slavery, (Syropul. p. 196;) and they were strongly moved by the emperor’s threats, (p. 260.)]

68 (return)
[ The Greeks express their fears of being exiled and enslaved in a very sad way, (Syropul. p. 196;) and they were deeply affected by the emperor’s threats, (p. 260.)]

69 (return)
[ I had forgot another popular and orthodox protester: a favorite bound, who usually lay quiet on the foot-cloth of the emperor’s throne but who barked most furiously while the act of union was reading without being silenced by the soothing or the lashes of the royal attendants, (Syropul. p. 265, 266.)]

69 (return)
[ I had forgotten another well-known and traditional protester: a favorite hound, who typically lay quietly on the floor at the emperor’s throne but would bark wildly while the act of union was being read, unaffected by the calming efforts or the whips of the royal attendants, (Syropul. p. 265, 266.)]

The same year, and almost the same day, were marked by the deposition of Eugenius at Basil; and, at Florence, by his reunion of the Greeks and Latins. In the former synod, (which he styled indeed an assembly of dæmons,) the pope was branded with the guilt of simony, perjury, tyranny, heresy, and schism; 70 and declared to be incorrigible in his vices, unworthy of any title, and incapable of holding any ecclesiastical office. In the latter, he was revered as the true and holy vicar of Christ, who, after a separation of six hundred years, had reconciled the Catholics of the East and West in one fold, and under one shepherd. The act of union was subscribed by the pope, the emperor, and the principal members of both churches; even by those who, like Syropulus, 71 had been deprived of the right of voting. Two copies might have sufficed for the East and West; but Eugenius was not satisfied, unless four authentic and similar transcripts were signed and attested as the monuments of his victory. 72 On a memorable day, the sixth of July, the successors of St. Peter and Constantine ascended their thrones the two nations assembled in the cathedral of Florence; their representatives, Cardinal Julian and Bessarion archbishop of Nice, appeared in the pulpit, and, after reading in their respective tongues the act of union, they mutually embraced, in the name and the presence of their applauding brethren. The pope and his ministers then officiated according to the Roman liturgy; the creed was chanted with the addition of filioque; the acquiescence of the Greeks was poorly excused by their ignorance of the harmonious, but inarticulate sounds; 73 and the more scrupulous Latins refused any public celebration of the Byzantine rite. Yet the emperor and his clergy were not totally unmindful of national honor. The treaty was ratified by their consent: it was tacitly agreed that no innovation should be attempted in their creed or ceremonies: they spared, and secretly respected, the generous firmness of Mark of Ephesus; and, on the decease of the patriarch, they refused to elect his successor, except in the cathedral of St. Sophia. In the distribution of public and private rewards, the liberal pontiff exceeded their hopes and his promises: the Greeks, with less pomp and pride, returned by the same road of Ferrara and Venice; and their reception at Constantinople was such as will be described in the following chapter. 74 The success of the first trial encouraged Eugenius to repeat the same edifying scenes; and the deputies of the Armenians, the Maronites, the Jacobites of Syria and Egypt, the Nestorians and the Æthiopians, were successively introduced, to kiss the feet of the Roman pontiff, and to announce the obedience and the orthodoxy of the East. These Oriental embassies, unknown in the countries which they presumed to represent, 75 diffused over the West the fame of Eugenius; and a clamor was artfully propagated against the remnant of a schism in Switzerland and Savoy, which alone impeded the harmony of the Christian world. The vigor of opposition was succeeded by the lassitude of despair: the council of Basil was silently dissolved; and Felix, renouncing the tiara, again withdrew to the devout or delicious hermitage of Ripaille. 76 A general peace was secured by mutual acts of oblivion and indemnity: all ideas of reformation subsided; the popes continued to exercise and abuse their ecclesiastical despotism; nor has Rome been since disturbed by the mischiefs of a contested election. 77

The same year, and almost the same day, saw the removal of Eugenius at Basel; and in Florence, the reunion of the Greeks and Latins. In the former meeting, which he referred to as an assembly of demons, the pope was accused of simony, perjury, tyranny, heresy, and schism; 70 and was declared incorrigible in his vices, unworthy of any title, and incapable of holding any church office. In the latter, he was honored as the true and holy vicar of Christ, who, after a split of six hundred years, had reunited the Catholics of the East and West under one fold and one shepherd. The act of union was signed by the pope, the emperor, and the main leaders of both churches; even by those like Syropulus, 71 who had lost their voting rights. Two copies could have sufficed for the East and West; but Eugenius insisted on having four authentic and identical transcripts signed and validated as evidence of his victory. 72 On a memorable day, July 6th, the successors of St. Peter and Constantine took their places as the two nations gathered in the cathedral of Florence; their representatives, Cardinal Julian and Bessarion, the archbishop of Nice, appeared in the pulpit and, after reading the act of union in their respective languages, embraced each other in front of their applauding peers. The pope and his ministers then officiated according to the Roman liturgy; the creed was chanted with the addition of filioque; the Greeks' acceptance was poorly justified by their unfamiliarity with the harmonious, yet indecipherable sounds; 73 and the more meticulous Latins refused to publicly celebrate the Byzantine rite. However, the emperor and his clergy were not entirely oblivious to national pride. The treaty was ratified with their consent: it was quietly agreed that no changes would be made to their creed or rituals: they honored, and secretly respected, the steadfastness of Mark of Ephesus; and, upon the death of the patriarch, they refused to elect his successor anywhere but in the cathedral of St. Sophia. In the distribution of public and private rewards, the generous pope exceeded their expectations and promises: the Greeks, with less pomp and pride, returned by the same route through Ferrara and Venice; and their reception in Constantinople was as will be described in the next chapter. 74 The success of the initial trial motivated Eugenius to recreate the same inspiring scenes; and the representatives of the Armenians, the Maronites, the Jacobites of Syria and Egypt, the Nestorians, and the Ethiopians were successively presented to kiss the feet of the Roman pontiff, announcing the obedience and orthodoxy of the East. These Eastern delegations, unfamiliar in the regions they claimed to represent, 75 spread the fame of Eugenius throughout the West; and a stir was cleverly raised against the remnants of a schism in Switzerland and Savoy, which alone obstructed the harmony of the Christian world. The strength of opposition gave way to the weariness of defeat: the council of Basel was quietly dissolved; and Felix, giving up the tiara, retreated once more to the devout or delightful hermitage of Ripaille. 76 A general peace was achieved through mutual acts of forgetting and compensation: all thoughts of reform faded away; the popes continued to wield and misuse their ecclesiastical authority; and since then, Rome has not been disturbed by the troubles of a disputed election. 77

70 (return)
[ From the original Lives of the Popes, in Muratori’s Collection, (tom. iii. p. ii. tom. xxv.,) the manners of Eugenius IV. appear to have been decent, and even exemplary. His situation, exposed to the world and to his enemies, was a restraint, and is a pledge.]

70 (return)
[ From the original Lives of the Popes, in Muratori’s Collection, (vol. iii, p. ii, vol. xxv,) Eugenius IV. seems to have behaved decently and even set a good example. His position, open to public scrutiny and his rivals, served as a form of restraint and a guarantee.]

71 (return)
[ Syropulus, rather than subscribe, would have assisted, as the least evil, at the ceremony of the union. He was compelled to do both; and the great ecclesiarch poorly excuses his submission to the emperor, (p. 290—292.)]

71 (return)
[ Syropulus, instead of agreeing, would have preferred to help at the ceremony of the union, seeing it as the lesser evil. He ended up doing both, and the high ecclesiarch barely justifies his obedience to the emperor, (p. 290—292.)]

72 (return)
[ None of these original acts of union can at present be produced. Of the ten MSS. that are preserved, (five at Rome, and the remainder at Florence, Bologna, Venice, Paris, and London,) nine have been examined by an accurate critic, (M. de Brequigny,) who condemns them for the variety and imperfections of the Greek signatures. Yet several of these may be esteemed as authentic copies, which were subscribed at Florence, before (26th of August, 1439) the final separation of the pope and emperor, (Mémoires de l’Académie des Inscriptions, tom. xliii. p. 287—311.)]

72 (return)
[ None of these original acts of union can currently be presented. Of the ten manuscripts that exist, five are in Rome and the others are in Florence, Bologna, Venice, Paris, and London. Nine of these have been reviewed by a meticulous critic, M. de Brequigny, who critiques them for the inconsistencies and flaws in the Greek signatures. However, several of these can be regarded as authentic copies, which were signed in Florence before the final separation of the pope and emperor on August 26, 1439. (Mémoires de l’Académie des Inscriptions, tom. xliii. p. 287—311.)]

73 (return)
[ Hmin de wV ashmoi edokoun jwnai, (Syropul. p. 297.)]

73 (return)
[ Hmin de wV ashmoi edokoun jwnai, (Syropul. p. 297.)]

74 (return)
[ In their return, the Greeks conversed at Bologna with the ambassadors of England: and after some questions and answers, these impartial strangers laughed at the pretended union of Florence, (Syropul. p. 307.)]

74 (return)
[ On their way back, the Greeks talked in Bologna with the English ambassadors: and after some questions and answers, these unbiased outsiders laughed at the supposed unity of Florence, (Syropul. p. 307.)]

75 (return)
[ So nugatory, or rather so fabulous, are these reunions of the Nestorians, Jacobites, &c., that I have turned over, without success, the Bibliotheca Orientalis of Assemannus, a faithful slave of the Vatican.]

75 (return)
[ These gatherings of the Nestorians, Jacobites, etc., are so insignificant, or more like so incredible, that I’ve searched in vain through the Bibliotheca Orientalis by Assemannus, a loyal servant of the Vatican.]

76 (return)
[ Ripaille is situate near Thonon in Savoy, on the southern side of the Lake of Geneva. It is now a Carthusian abbey; and Mr. Addison (Travels into Italy, vol. ii. p. 147, 148, of Baskerville’s edition of his works) has celebrated the place and the founder. Æneas Sylvius, and the fathers of Basil, applaud the austere life of the ducal hermit; but the French and Italian proverbs most unluckily attest the popular opinion of his luxury.]

76 (return)
[Ripaille is located near Thonon in Savoy, on the southern shore of Lake Geneva. It is now a Carthusian abbey; Mr. Addison (Travels into Italy, vol. ii. p. 147, 148, of Baskerville’s edition of his works) has praised the place and its founder. Æneas Sylvius and the fathers of Basil commend the strict life of the ducal hermit; however, French and Italian proverbs unfortunately reflect the common view of his indulgence.]

77 (return)
[ In this account of the councils of Basil, Ferrara, and Florence, I have consulted the original acts, which fill the xviith and xviiith tome of the edition of Venice, and are closed by the perspicuous, though partial, history of Augustin Patricius, an Italian of the xvth century. They are digested and abridged by Dupin, (Bibliothèque Ecclés. tom. xii.,) and the continuator of Fleury, (tom. xxii.;) and the respect of the Gallican church for the adverse parties confines their members to an awkward moderation.]

77 (return)
[ In this account of the councils of Basil, Ferrara, and Florence, I have referenced the original documents, which are included in the 17th and 18th volumes of the Venice edition. They are concluded by the clear, though biased, history of Augustin Patricius, an Italian from the 15th century. They have been summarized and condensed by Dupin (Bibliothèque Ecclés. vol. 12) and the continuator of Fleury (vol. 22), and the Gallican church's respect for opposing parties leads their members to a somewhat awkward moderation.]

The journeys of three emperors were unavailing for their temporal, or perhaps their spiritual, salvation; but they were productive of a beneficial consequence—the revival of the Greek learning in Italy, from whence it was propagated to the last nations of the West and North. In their lowest servitude and depression, the subjects of the Byzantine throne were still possessed of a golden key that could unlock the treasures of antiquity; of a musical and prolific language, that gives a soul to the objects of sense, and a body to the abstractions of philosophy. Since the barriers of the monarchy, and even of the capital, had been trampled under foot, the various Barbarians had doubtless corrupted the form and substance of the national dialect; and ample glossaries have been composed, to interpret a multitude of words, of Arabic, Turkish, Sclavonian, Latin, or French origin. 78 But a purer idiom was spoken in the court and taught in the college; and the flourishing state of the language is described, and perhaps embellished, by a learned Italian, 79 who, by a long residence and noble marriage, 80 was naturalized at Constantinople about thirty years before the Turkish conquest. “The vulgar speech,” says Philelphus, 81 “has been depraved by the people, and infected by the multitude of strangers and merchants, who every day flock to the city and mingle with the inhabitants. It is from the disciples of such a school that the Latin language received the versions of Aristotle and Plato; so obscure in sense, and in spirit so poor. But the Greeks who have escaped the contagion, are those whom we follow; and they alone are worthy of our imitation. In familiar discourse, they still speak the tongue of Aristophanes and Euripides, of the historians and philosophers of Athens; and the style of their writings is still more elaborate and correct. The persons who, by their birth and offices, are attached to the Byzantine court, are those who maintain, with the least alloy, the ancient standard of elegance and purity; and the native graces of language most conspicuously shine among the noble matrons, who are excluded from all intercourse with foreigners. With foreigners do I say? They live retired and sequestered from the eyes of their fellow-citizens. Seldom are they seen in the streets; and when they leave their houses, it is in the dusk of evening, on visits to the churches and their nearest kindred. On these occasions, they are on horseback, covered with a veil, and encompassed by their parents, their husbands, or their servants.” 82

The journeys of three emperors were fruitless in terms of their worldly or perhaps spiritual salvation; however, they led to a positive outcome—the revival of Greek learning in Italy, from which it spread to the last nations of the West and North. Even in their lowest state of servitude and despair, the subjects of the Byzantine throne still possessed a golden key that could unlock the treasures of the past; a rich and expressive language that gives life to sensory objects and structure to philosophical ideas. Although the barriers of the monarchy and even of the capital had been trampled, various Barbarians had certainly corrupted the form and essence of the national dialect; extensive glossaries have been created to interpret a multitude of words from Arabic, Turkish, Slavic, Latin, or French origins. 78 But a purer version of the language was spoken at court and taught in schools; the thriving state of the language is described, and perhaps enhanced, by a learned Italian, 79, who became a citizen of Constantinople about thirty years before the Turkish conquest through a long stay and a noble marriage. “The common speech,” says Philelphus, 81 “has been degraded by the people and tainted by the influx of strangers and merchants, who come to the city every day and blend with the locals. It is from the followers of such a school that the Latin language received the versions of Aristotle and Plato; so obscure in meaning and so lacking in spirit. But the Greeks who have avoided this contamination are the ones we emulate; they alone deserve our imitation. In everyday conversation, they still speak the language of Aristophanes and Euripides, of the historians and philosophers of Athens; and their writing style is even more polished and precise. Those who, by birth and their roles, are connected to the Byzantine court are the ones who maintain the traditional standard of elegance and purity; and the inherent beauty of the language shines most brightly among the noble women, who are kept away from any interaction with outsiders. Did I say outsiders? They live in seclusion, removed from the eyes of their fellow citizens. They are rarely seen in the streets; when they do leave their homes, it’s in the evening twilight, visiting churches and their closest relatives. On these occasions, they ride horseback, covered by a veil, surrounded by their parents, husbands, or servants.” 82

78 (return)
[ In the first attempt, Meursius collected 3600 Græco-barbarous words, to which, in a second edition, he subjoined 1800 more; yet what plenteous gleanings did he leave to Portius, Ducange, Fabrotti, the Bollandists, &c.! (Fabric. Bibliot. Græc. tom. x. p. 101, &c.) Some Persic words may be found in Xenophon, and some Latin ones in Plutarch; and such is the inevitable effect of war and commerce; but the form and substance of the language were not affected by this slight alloy.]

78 (return)
[ In his first effort, Meursius gathered 3,600 Greco-barbarous words, to which he added 1,800 more in a later edition; yet he left a wealth of words for Portius, Ducange, Fabrotti, the Bollandists, etc.! (Fabric. Bibliot. Græc. tom. x. p. 101, etc.) Some Persian words can be found in Xenophon, and some Latin ones in Plutarch; and such is the unavoidable result of war and trade; however, the essence and structure of the language were not really impacted by this minor mixture.]

79 (return)
[ The life of Francis Philelphus, a sophist, proud, restless, and rapacious, has been diligently composed by Lancelot (Mémoires de l’Académie des Inscriptions, tom. x. p. 691—751) (Istoria della Letteratura Italiana, tom. vii. p. 282—294,) for the most part from his own letters. His elaborate writings, and those of his contemporaries, are forgotten; but their familiar epistles still describe the men and the times.]

79 (return)
[ The life of Francis Philelphus, a sophist who was proud, restless, and greedy, has been carefully put together by Lancelot (Mémoires de l’Académie des Inscriptions, tom. x. p. 691—751) (Istoria della Letteratura Italiana, tom. vii. p. 282—294,) mostly from his own letters. His detailed writings, along with those of his contemporaries, are forgotten; but their casual letters still depict the people and the times.]

80 (return)
[ He married, and had perhaps debauched, the daughter of John, and the granddaughter of Manuel Chrysoloras. She was young, beautiful, and wealthy; and her noble family was allied to the Dorias of Genoa and the emperors of Constantinople.]

80 (return)
[ He got married, potentially led a wild lifestyle, to the daughter of John, who was the granddaughter of Manuel Chrysoloras. She was young, beautiful, and wealthy; her noble family was connected to the Dorias of Genoa and the emperors of Constantinople.]

81 (return)
[ Græci quibus lingua depravata non sit.... ita loquuntur vulgo hâc etiam tempestate ut Aristophanes comicus, aut Euripides tragicus, ut oratores omnes, ut historiographi, ut philosophi.... litterati autem homines et doctius et emendatius.... Nam viri aulici veterem sermonis dignitatem atque elegantiam retinebant in primisque ipsæ nobiles mulieres; quibus cum nullum esset omnino cum viris peregrinis commercium, merus ille ac purus Græcorum sermo servabatur intactus, (Philelph. Epist. ad ann. 1451, apud Hodium, p. 188, 189.) He observes in another passage, uxor illa mea Theodora locutione erat admodum moderatâ et suavi et maxime Atticâ.]

81 (return)
[ Greeks who have not corrupted their language... still speak today much like Aristophanes the comedian or Euripides the tragedian, like all orators, historians, and philosophers... educated people, however, are more refined and precise... For courtly men retained the dignity and elegance of the old speech, especially the noble women themselves; since they had no contact at all with foreign men, the pure and untouched Greek language was preserved, (Philelph. Epist. ad ann. 1451, apud Hodium, p. 188, 189.) He notes in another passage, my wife Theodora spoke in a very moderate, pleasant, and especially Attic manner.]

82 (return)
[ Philelphus, absurdly enough, derives this Greek or Oriental jealousy from the manners of ancient Rome.]

82 (return)
[Philelphus, rather absurdly, attributes this Greek or Eastern jealousy to the customs of ancient Rome.]

Among the Greeks a numerous and opulent clergy was dedicated to the service of religion: their monks and bishops have ever been distinguished by the gravity and austerity of their manners; nor were they diverted, like the Latin priests, by the pursuits and pleasures of a secular, and even military, life. After a large deduction for the time and talent that were lost in the devotion, the laziness, and the discord, of the church and cloister, the more inquisitive and ambitious minds would explore the sacred and profane erudition of their native language. The ecclesiastics presided over the education of youth; the schools of philosophy and eloquence were perpetuated till the fall of the empire; and it may be affirmed, that more books and more knowledge were included within the walls of Constantinople, than could be dispersed over the extensive countries of the West. 83 But an important distinction has been already noticed: the Greeks were stationary or retrograde, while the Latins were advancing with a rapid and progressive motion. The nations were excited by the spirit of independence and emulation; and even the little world of the Italian states contained more people and industry than the decreasing circle of the Byzantine empire. In Europe, the lower ranks of society were relieved from the yoke of feudal servitude; and freedom is the first step to curiosity and knowledge. The use, however rude and corrupt, of the Latin tongue had been preserved by superstition; the universities, from Bologna to Oxford, 84 were peopled with thousands of scholars; and their misguided ardor might be directed to more liberal and manly studies. In the resurrection of science, Italy was the first that cast away her shroud; and the eloquent Petrarch, by his lessons and his example, may justly be applauded as the first harbinger of day. A purer style of composition, a more generous and rational strain of sentiment, flowed from the study and imitation of the writers of ancient Rome; and the disciples of Cicero and Virgil approached, with reverence and love, the sanctuary of their Grecian masters. In the sack of Constantinople, the French, and even the Venetians, had despised and destroyed the works of Lysippus and Homer: the monuments of art may be annihilated by a single blow; but the immortal mind is renewed and multiplied by the copies of the pen; and such copies it was the ambition of Petrarch and his friends to possess and understand. The arms of the Turks undoubtedly pressed the flight of the Muses; yet we may tremble at the thought, that Greece might have been overwhelmed, with her schools and libraries, before Europe had emerged from the deluge of barbarism; that the seeds of science might have been scattered by the winds, before the Italian soil was prepared for their cultivation.

Among the Greeks, a large and wealthy clergy dedicated themselves to religious service: their monks and bishops have always been recognized for their seriousness and strictness. Unlike Latin priests, they weren't distracted by the pursuits and pleasures of a secular or even military life. After accounting for the time and talent wasted in the devotion, idleness, and conflicts of the church and cloister, the more curious and ambitious individuals explored both the sacred and secular knowledge in their native language. The church leaders oversaw the education of the youth; schools of philosophy and rhetoric continued until the fall of the empire. It can be said that more books and more knowledge were contained within the walls of Constantinople than could be spread across the vast territories of the West. 83 However, an important distinction has already been noted: the Greeks were stationary or falling behind, while the Latins were advancing with rapid growth. The nations were inspired by a spirit of independence and rivalry; even the smaller Italian states had more people and industry than the shrinking Byzantine empire. In Europe, the lower social classes were freed from the burdens of feudal servitude; freedom is the first step towards curiosity and knowledge. The rough and corrupted use of the Latin language had been preserved out of superstition; universities, from Bologna to Oxford, 84 were full of thousands of scholars, and their misguided enthusiasm could be directed towards broader and more robust studies. In the revival of science, Italy was the first to emerge from its shroud; and the eloquent Petrarch, through his teachings and example, may rightly be celebrated as the first herald of enlightenment. A purer style of writing and a more noble and rational tone of sentiment emerged from studying and imitating the works of ancient Rome; the followers of Cicero and Virgil approached the sanctuary of their Greek masters with respect and admiration. During the sack of Constantinople, the French, and even the Venetians, disdained and destroyed the works of Lysippus and Homer: while the monuments of art can be destroyed in an instant, the immortal mind is renewed and multiplied through the written word; and it was the ambition of Petrarch and his friends to possess and comprehend such copies. The advancing arms of the Turks undoubtedly hindered the pursuits of the Muses; yet we shudder at the thought that Greece could have been overwhelmed, along with her schools and libraries, before Europe emerged from the flood of barbarism; that the seeds of knowledge might have been scattered by the winds before the Italian soil was ready for their growth.

83 (return)
[ See the state of learning in the xiiith and xivth centuries, in the learned and judicious Mosheim, (Instit. Hist. Ecclés. p. 434—440, 490—494.)]

83 (return)
[ Check out the state of learning in the 13th and 14th centuries, in the knowledgeable and thoughtful Mosheim, (Instit. Hist. Ecclés. p. 434—440, 490—494.)]

84 (return)
[ At the end of the xvth century, there existed in Europe about fifty universities, and of these the foundation of ten or twelve is prior to the year 1300. They were crowded in proportion to their scarcity. Bologna contained 10,000 students, chiefly of the civil law. In the year 1357 the number at Oxford had decreased from 30,000 to 6000 scholars, (Henry’s History of Great Britain, vol. iv. p. 478.) Yet even this decrease is much superior to the present list of the members of the university.]

84 (return)
[ At the end of the 15th century, there were about fifty universities in Europe, with the foundations of ten or twelve established before the year 1300. They were crowded due to their scarcity. Bologna had 10,000 students, mainly studying civil law. In 1357, the number at Oxford had dropped from 30,000 to 6,000 scholars (Henry’s History of Great Britain, vol. iv. p. 478). Even this decrease is significantly higher than the current number of university members.]

Chapter LXVI: Union Of The Greek And Latin Churches.—Part IV.

The most learned Italians of the fifteenth century have confessed and applauded the restoration of Greek literature, after a long oblivion of many hundred years. 85 Yet in that country, and beyond the Alps, some names are quoted; some profound scholars, who in the darker ages were honorably distinguished by their knowledge of the Greek tongue; and national vanity has been loud in the praise of such rare examples of erudition. Without scrutinizing the merit of individuals, truth must observe, that their science is without a cause, and without an effect; that it was easy for them to satisfy themselves and their more ignorant contemporaries; and that the idiom, which they had so marvellously acquired was transcribed in few manuscripts, and was not taught in any university of the West. In a corner of Italy, it faintly existed as the popular, or at least as the ecclesiastical dialect. 86 The first impression of the Doric and Ionic colonies has never been completely erased: the Calabrian churches were long attached to the throne of Constantinople: and the monks of St. Basil pursued their studies in Mount Athos and the schools of the East. Calabria was the native country of Barlaam, who has already appeared as a sectary and an ambassador; and Barlaam was the first who revived, beyond the Alps, the memory, or at least the writings, of Homer. 87 He is described, by Petrarch and Boccace, 88 as a man of diminutive stature, though truly great in the measure of learning and genius; of a piercing discernment, though of a slow and painful elocution. For many ages (as they affirm) Greece had not produced his equal in the knowledge of history, grammar, and philosophy; and his merit was celebrated in the attestations of the princes and doctors of Constantinople. One of these attestations is still extant; and the emperor Cantacuzene, the protector of his adversaries, is forced to allow, that Euclid, Aristotle, and Plato, were familiar to that profound and subtle logician. 89 In the court of Avignon, he formed an intimate connection with Petrarch, 90 the first of the Latin scholars; and the desire of mutual instruction was the principle of their literary commerce. The Tuscan applied himself with eager curiosity and assiduous diligence to the study of the Greek language; and in a laborious struggle with the dryness and difficulty of the first rudiments, he began to reach the sense, and to feel the spirit, of poets and philosophers, whose minds were congenial to his own. But he was soon deprived of the society and lessons of this useful assistant: Barlaam relinquished his fruitless embassy; and, on his return to Greece, he rashly provoked the swarms of fanatic monks, by attempting to substitute the light of reason to that of their navel. After a separation of three years, the two friends again met in the court of Naples: but the generous pupil renounced the fairest occasion of improvement; and by his recommendation Barlaam was finally settled in a small bishopric of his native Calabria. 91 The manifold avocations of Petrarch, love and friendship, his various correspondence and frequent journeys, the Roman laurel, and his elaborate compositions in prose and verse, in Latin and Italian, diverted him from a foreign idiom; and as he advanced in life, the attainment of the Greek language was the object of his wishes rather than of his hopes. When he was about fifty years of age, a Byzantine ambassador, his friend, and a master of both tongues, presented him with a copy of Homer; and the answer of Petrarch is at one expressive of his eloquence, gratitude, and regret. After celebrating the generosity of the donor, and the value of a gift more precious in his estimation than gold or rubies, he thus proceeds: “Your present of the genuine and original text of the divine poet, the fountain of all inventions, is worthy of yourself and of me: you have fulfilled your promise, and satisfied my desires. Yet your liberality is still imperfect: with Homer you should have given me yourself; a guide, who could lead me into the fields of light, and disclose to my wondering eyes the spacious miracles of the Iliad and Odyssey. But, alas! Homer is dumb, or I am deaf; nor is it in my power to enjoy the beauty which I possess. I have seated him by the side of Plato, the prince of poets near the prince of philosophers; and I glory in the sight of my illustrious guests. Of their immortal writings, whatever had been translated into the Latin idiom, I had already acquired; but, if there be no profit, there is some pleasure, in beholding these venerable Greeks in their proper and national habit. I am delighted with the aspect of Homer; and as often as I embrace the silent volume, I exclaim with a sigh, Illustrious bard! with what pleasure should I listen to thy song, if my sense of hearing were not obstructed and lost by the death of one friend, and in the much-lamented absence of another. Nor do I yet despair; and the example of Cato suggests some comfort and hope, since it was in the last period of age that he attained the knowledge of the Greek letters.” 92

The most educated Italians of the fifteenth century have acknowledged and celebrated the revival of Greek literature, which had been forgotten for many hundreds of years. 85 Nonetheless, in that country and across the Alps, some names stand out; some deep thinkers who during the darker times were rightly renowned for their knowledge of the Greek language; and national pride has loudly praised such rare examples of scholarship. Without evaluating the worth of individuals, it must be noted that their knowledge lacks purpose and impact; that it was easy for them to impress themselves and their less informed contemporaries; and that the language they had so wonderfully mastered was documented in only a few manuscripts and wasn’t taught at any university in the West. In a small part of Italy, it faintly survived as a popular, or at least an ecclesiastical dialect. 86 The initial influence of the Doric and Ionic colonies has never been entirely erased: the churches in Calabria long remained tied to the throne of Constantinople; and the monks of St. Basil studied on Mount Athos and in the schools of the East. Calabria was the birthplace of Barlaam, who has already been mentioned as a sect leader and ambassador; and Barlaam was the first to revive, beyond the Alps, the memory, or at least the writings, of Homer. 87 He is depicted by Petrarch and Boccaccio 88 as a short man, but truly great in terms of learning and genius; with sharp insight, yet slow and labored in speech. For many ages (as they say), Greece hadn’t produced anyone of his caliber in the knowledge of history, grammar, and philosophy; and his accomplishments were acknowledged in the endorsements from the princes and scholars of Constantinople. One of these endorsements still exists; and the emperor Cantacuzene, the supporter of his opponents, is compelled to admit that Euclid, Aristotle, and Plato were familiar to that profound and subtle logician. 89 In the court of Avignon, he developed a close connection with Petrarch, 90 the foremost of the Latin scholars; and the desire for mutual teaching was the foundation of their literary collaboration. The Tuscan enthusiastically and diligently engaged in studying the Greek language; and through a challenging struggle with the dryness and difficulty of the basics, he began to grasp the meaning and feel the essence of poets and philosophers whose thoughts resonated with his own. However, he soon lost the companionship and teachings of this valuable mentor: Barlaam ended his unsuccessful mission; and upon returning to Greece, he foolishly angered the groups of fanatic monks by trying to replace their blind traditions with reason. After three years apart, the two friends met again in the court of Naples: but the generous student turned down a great opportunity for improvement; and through his recommendation, Barlaam was finally appointed to a small bishopric in his native Calabria. 91 The many distractions of Petrarch—love and friendship, his various correspondences and frequent travels, the Roman laurel, and his detailed works in prose and verse, in Latin and Italian—pulled him away from a foreign language; and as he grew older, mastering Greek became more of a wish than a real hope. When he was around fifty, a Byzantine ambassador, who was his friend and fluent in both languages, gave him a copy of Homer; and Petrarch’s response reflects his eloquence, gratitude, and sorrow. After praising the generosity of the giver and the value of a gift more precious to him than gold or rubies, he continues: “Your present of the authentic and original text of the divine poet, the source of all inspiration, is worthy of both you and me: you have kept your promise and fulfilled my desires. Yet your generosity is still incomplete: with Homer, you should have also given me yourself; a guide who could lead me into the fields of light and reveal to my amazed eyes the vast wonders of the Iliad and Odyssey. But, alas! Homer is silent, or I am deaf; and it is beyond my ability to appreciate the beauty that I do have. I have placed him next to Plato, the prince of poets beside the prince of philosophers; and I take pride in the presence of my illustrious guests. Of their immortal writings, whatever has been translated into Latin, I had already acquired; but, while there may be no benefit, there is some joy in seeing these ancient Greeks in their own traditional form. I am delighted by Homer’s presence; and each time I hold the silent volume, I sigh and exclaim, Illustrious bard! how I would love to hear your song if my hearing wasn’t obstructed and lost by the death of one friend and the lamented absence of another. Yet I still do not despair; and the example of Cato gives me some comfort and hope, since he learned Greek letters in the later years of his life.” 92

85 (return)
[ Of those writers who professedly treat of the restoration of the Greek learning in Italy, the two principal are Hodius, Dr. Humphrey Hody, (de Græcis Illustribus, Linguæ Græcæ Literarumque humaniorum Instauratoribus; Londini, 1742, in large octavo,) and Tiraboschi, (Istoria della Letteratura Italiana, tom. v. p. 364—377, tom. vii. p. 112—143.) The Oxford professor is a laborious scholar, but the librarian of Modena enjoys the superiority of a modern and national historian.]

85 (return)
[ Among the writers who focus on the revival of Greek learning in Italy, the two main ones are Hodius, Dr. Humphrey Hody, (de Græcis Illustribus, Linguæ Græcæ Literarumque humaniorum Instauratoribus; London, 1742, in large octavo,) and Tiraboschi, (Istoria della Letteratura Italiana, vol. v. pp. 364—377, vol. vii. pp. 112—143.) The Oxford professor is a dedicated scholar, but the librarian from Modena has the advantage of being a modern, national historian.]

86 (return)
[ In Calabria quæ olim magna Græcia dicebatur, coloniis Græcis repleta, remansit quædam linguæ veteris, cognitio, (Hodius, p. 2.) If it were eradicated by the Romans, it was revived and perpetuated by the monks of St. Basil, who possessed seven convents at Rossano alone, (Giannone, Istoria di Napoli, tom. i. p. 520.)]

86 (return)
[ In Calabria, which was once known as Great Greece and filled with Greek colonies, there remained a certain understanding of the ancient language (Hodius, p. 2.). If it was wiped out by the Romans, it was revived and preserved by the monks of St. Basil, who had seven convents in Rossano alone (Giannone, Istoria di Napoli, tom. i. p. 520.)]

87 (return)
[ Ii Barbari (says Petrarch, the French and Germans) vix, non dicam libros sed nomen Homeri audiverunt. Perhaps, in that respect, the xiiith century was less happy than the age of Charlemagne.]

87 (return)
[The barbarians (as Petrarch calls the French and Germans) could hardly be said to have heard even the name of Homer, let alone his books. In that sense, the 13th century might have been less fortunate than the time of Charlemagne.]

88 (return)
[ See the character of Barlaam, in Boccace de Genealog. Deorum, l. xv. c. 6.]

88 (return)
[ Check out the character of Barlaam in Boccaccio's Genealogy of the Gods, book 15, chapter 6.]

89 (return)
[ Cantacuzen. l. ii. c. 36.]

89 (return)
[ Cantacuzen. l. ii. c. 36.]

90 (return)
[ For the connection of Petrarch and Barlaam, and the two interviews at Avignon in 1339, and at Naples in 1342, see the excellent Mémoires sur la Vie de Pétrarque, tom. i. p. 406—410, tom. ii. p. 74—77.]

90 (return)
[ For the connection of Petrarch and Barlaam, and the two meetings in Avignon in 1339, and in Naples in 1342, see the excellent Memoirs on the Life of Petrarch, vol. i. p. 406—410, vol. ii. p. 74—77.]

91 (return)
[ The bishopric to which Barlaam retired, was the old Locri, in the middle ages. Scta. Cyriaca, and by corruption Hieracium, Gerace, (Dissert. Chorographica Italiæ Medii Ævi, p. 312.) The dives opum of the Norman times soon lapsed into poverty, since even the church was poor: yet the town still contains 3000 inhabitants, (Swinburne, p. 340.)]

91 (return)
[The bishopric that Barlaam retired to was the old Locri during the Middle Ages. Scta. Cyriaca, and through corruption, Hieracium, Gerace, (Dissert. Chorographica Italiæ Medii Ævi, p. 312.) The wealth of the Norman era quickly fell into poverty, as even the church was poor; however, the town still has 3,000 inhabitants, (Swinburne, p. 340.)]

92 (return)
[ I will transcribe a passage from this epistle of Petrarch, (Famil. ix. 2;) Donasti Homerum non in alienum sermonem violento alveâ?? derivatum, sed ex ipsis Græci eloquii scatebris, et qualis divino illi profluxit ingenio.... Sine tuâ voce Homerus tuus apud me mutus, immo vero ego apud illum surdus sum. Gaudeo tamen vel adspectû solo, ac sæpe illum amplexus atque suspirans dico, O magne vir, &c.]

92 (return)
[ I'll share a passage from this letter by Petrarch, (Famil. ix. 2;) You didn't make Homer speak in someone else's language in a forced way, but drew from the true essence of Greek eloquence and what flowed naturally from his divine genius.... Without your voice, your Homer is silent to me; in fact, I'm the one who is deaf to him. Still, I’m happy just to see him, and often holding him close and sighing, I say, O great man, etc.]

The prize which eluded the efforts of Petrarch, was obtained by the fortune and industry of his friend Boccace, 93 the father of the Tuscan prose. That popular writer, who derives his reputation from the Decameron, a hundred novels of pleasantry and love, may aspire to the more serious praise of restoring in Italy the study of the Greek language. In the year one thousand three hundred and sixty, a disciple of Barlaam, whose name was Leo, or Leontius Pilatus, was detained in his way to Avignon by the advice and hospitality of Boccace, who lodged the stranger in his house, prevailed on the republic of Florence to allow him an annual stipend, and devoted his leisure to the first Greek professor, who taught that language in the Western countries of Europe. The appearance of Leo might disgust the most eager disciple, he was clothed in the mantle of a philosopher, or a mendicant; his countenance was hideous; his face was overshadowed with black hair; his beard long and uncombed; his deportment rustic; his temper gloomy and inconstant; nor could he grace his discourse with the ornaments, or even the perspicuity, of Latin elocution. But his mind was stored with a treasure of Greek learning: history and fable, philosophy and grammar, were alike at his command; and he read the poems of Homer in the schools of Florence. It was from his explanation that Boccace composed 931 and transcribed a literal prose version of the Iliad and Odyssey, which satisfied the thirst of his friend Petrarch, and which, perhaps, in the succeeding century, was clandestinely used by Laurentius Valla, the Latin interpreter. It was from his narratives that the same Boccace collected the materials for his treatise on the genealogy of the heathen gods, a work, in that age, of stupendous erudition, and which he ostentatiously sprinkled with Greek characters and passages, to excite the wonder and applause of his more ignorant readers. 94 The first steps of learning are slow and laborious; no more than ten votaries of Homer could be enumerated in all Italy; and neither Rome, nor Venice, nor Naples, could add a single name to this studious catalogue. But their numbers would have multiplied, their progress would have been accelerated, if the inconstant Leo, at the end of three years, had not relinquished an honorable and beneficial station. In his passage, Petrarch entertained him at Padua a short time: he enjoyed the scholar, but was justly offended with the gloomy and unsocial temper of the man. Discontented with the world and with himself, Leo depreciated his present enjoyments, while absent persons and objects were dear to his imagination. In Italy he was a Thessalian, in Greece a native of Calabria: in the company of the Latins he disdained their language, religion, and manners: no sooner was he landed at Constantinople, than he again sighed for the wealth of Venice and the elegance of Florence. His Italian friends were deaf to his importunity: he depended on their curiosity and indulgence, and embarked on a second voyage; but on his entrance into the Adriatic, the ship was assailed by a tempest, and the unfortunate teacher, who like Ulysses had fastened himself to the mast, was struck dead by a flash of lightning. The humane Petrarch dropped a tear on his disaster; but he was most anxious to learn whether some copy of Euripides or Sophocles might not be saved from the hands of the mariners. 95

The prize that eluded Petrarch’s efforts was achieved by his friend Boccaccio, 93 the father of Tuscan prose. That popular writer, known for the Decameron—a collection of a hundred funny and romantic tales—can also take credit for reviving the study of Greek in Italy. In 1360, a student of Barlaam named Leo, or Leontius Pilatus, was delayed on his way to Avignon thanks to Boccaccio’s hospitality. Boccaccio took Leo into his home, convinced the republic of Florence to give him a yearly stipend, and dedicated his free time to this first Greek professor who taught the language in Western Europe. Leo's appearance might have turned off even the most eager student; he wore a philosopher's or beggar’s cloak, had a frightening face overshadowed by black hair, a long and unkempt beard, rustic behavior, a moody and unpredictable temperament, and could not embellish his speech with the elegance or clarity of Latin. But his mind was a treasure trove of Greek knowledge: he had command of history and fables, philosophy and grammar; he even taught Homer’s poems in the schools of Florence. Boccaccio composed 931 and created a literal prose version of the Iliad and Odyssey based on Leo’s explanations, which satisfied Petrarch’s thirst for knowledge and may have secretly influenced Laurentius Valla, the Latin interpreter, in the following century. Boccaccio also gathered materials for his work on the genealogy of the pagan gods from Leo’s narratives, a work of immense scholarship for that time, embellished with Greek characters and passages to impress his less informed readers. 94 The early steps in learning were slow and painstaking; only about ten admirers of Homer could be found in all of Italy, and neither Rome, Venice, nor Naples could contribute a single name to this scholarly list. Their numbers could have grown, and their learning could have progressed faster, if the unpredictable Leo hadn’t given up an esteemed and profitable position after three years. When Leo briefly stopped in Padua, Petrarch hosted him; he appreciated the scholar but was justly bothered by the man’s moody and antisocial demeanor. Dissatisfied with both the world and himself, Leo belittled his current enjoyments while longing for absent people and places. In Italy, he felt like a Thessalian; in Greece, a native of Calabria. Among Latin speakers, he scorned their language, religion, and customs. But as soon as he arrived in Constantinople, he yearned again for the wealth of Venice and the style of Florence. His Italian friends ignored his pleas; depending on their curiosity and willingness to help, he set off on a second voyage. However, as he entered the Adriatic, a storm hit the ship, and the unfortunate teacher, who had tied himself to the mast like Ulysses, was struck dead by lightning. Kind-hearted Petrarch shed a tear for his misfortune but was more anxious to find out if some copy of Euripides or Sophocles could be salvaged from the sailors. 95

93 (return)
[ For the life and writings of Boccace, who was born in 1313, and died in 1375, Fabricius (Bibliot. Latin. Medii Ævi, tom. i. p. 248, &c.) and Tiraboschi (tom. v. p. 83, 439—451) may be consulted. The editions, versions, imitations of his novels, are innumerable. Yet he was ashamed to communicate that trifling, and perhaps scandalous, work to Petrarch, his respectable friend, in whose letters and memoirs he conspicuously appears.]

93 (return)
[For the life and writings of Boccaccio, who was born in 1313 and died in 1375, you can refer to Fabricius (Bibliot. Latin. Medii Ævi, tom. i. p. 248, &c.) and Tiraboschi (tom. v. p. 83, 439—451). The editions, translations, and adaptations of his novels are countless. Still, he felt embarrassed to share that trivial and possibly scandalous work with Petrarch, his esteemed friend, in whose letters and memoirs he is prominently mentioned.]

931 (return)
[ This translation of Homer was by Pilatus, not by Boccacio. See Hallam, Hist. of Lit. vol. i. p. 132.—M.]

931 (return)
[ This translation of Homer was done by Pilatus, not by Boccaccio. See Hallam, Hist. of Lit. vol. i. p. 132.—M.]

94 (return)
[ Boccace indulges an honest vanity: Ostentationis causâ Græca carmina adscripsi.... jure utor meo; meum est hoc decus, mea gloria scilicet inter Etruscos Græcis uti carminibus. Nonne ego fui qui Leontium Pilatum, &c., (de Genealogia Deorum, l. xv. c. 7, a work which, though now forgotten, has run through thirteen or fourteen editions.)]

94 (return)
[ Boccaccio shows a bit of honest pride: For the sake of showing off, I’ve added Greek poems.... I have the right to do so; this honor is mine, my glory, of course, to use Greek poems among the Etruscans. Am I not the one who discussed Leontius Pilatus, etc., (on the Genealogy of the Gods, l. xv. c. 7, a work that, although now forgotten, has gone through thirteen or fourteen editions.)]

95 (return)
[ Leontius, or Leo Pilatus, is sufficiently made known by Hody, (p. 2—11,) and the abbé de Sade, (Vie de Pétrarque, tom. iii. p. 625—634, 670—673,) who has very happily caught the lively and dramatic manner of his original.]

95 (return)
[Leontius, or Leo Pilatus, is well-documented by Hody (pp. 2-11) and Abbé de Sade (Vie de Pétrarque, vol. iii, pp. 625-634, 670-673), who has effectively captured the vibrant and dramatic style of the original.]

But the faint rudiments of Greek learning, which Petrarch had encouraged and Boccace had planted, soon withered and expired. The succeeding generation was content for a while with the improvement of Latin eloquence; nor was it before the end of the fourteenth century that a new and perpetual flame was rekindled in Italy. 96 Previous to his own journey the emperor Manuel despatched his envoys and orators to implore the compassion of the Western princes. Of these envoys, the most conspicuous, or the most learned, was Manuel Chrysoloras, 97 of noble birth, and whose Roman ancestors are supposed to have migrated with the great Constantine. After visiting the courts of France and England, where he obtained some contributions and more promises, the envoy was invited to assume the office of a professor; and Florence had again the honor of this second invitation. By his knowledge, not only of the Greek, but of the Latin tongue, Chrysoloras deserved the stipend, and surpassed the expectation, of the republic. His school was frequented by a crowd of disciples of every rank and age; and one of these, in a general history, has described his motives and his success. “At that time,” says Leonard Aretin, 98 “I was a student of the civil law; but my soul was inflamed with the love of letters; and I bestowed some application on the sciences of logic and rhetoric. On the arrival of Manuel, I hesitated whether I should desert my legal studies, or relinquish this golden opportunity; and thus, in the ardor of youth, I communed with my own mind—Wilt thou be wanting to thyself and thy fortune? Wilt thou refuse to be introduced to a familiar converse with Homer, Plato, and Demosthenes; with those poets, philosophers, and orators, of whom such wonders are related, and who are celebrated by every age as the great masters of human science? Of professors and scholars in civil law, a sufficient supply will always be found in our universities; but a teacher, and such a teacher, of the Greek language, if he once be suffered to escape, may never afterwards be retrieved. Convinced by these reasons, I gave myself to Chrysoloras; and so strong was my passion, that the lessons which I had imbibed in the day were the constant object of my nightly dreams.” 99 At the same time and place, the Latin classics were explained by John of Ravenna, the domestic pupil of Petrarch; 100 the Italians, who illustrated their age and country, were formed in this double school; and Florence became the fruitful seminary of Greek and Roman erudition. 101 The presence of the emperor recalled Chrysoloras from the college to the court; but he afterwards taught at Pavia and Rome with equal industry and applause. The remainder of his life, about fifteen years, was divided between Italy and Constantinople, between embassies and lessons. In the noble office of enlightening a foreign nation, the grammarian was not unmindful of a more sacred duty to his prince and country; and Emanuel Chrysoloras died at Constance on a public mission from the emperor to the council.

But the faint beginnings of Greek learning, which Petrarch had encouraged and Boccaccio had established, soon faded away. The following generation was content for a while with improving Latin eloquence; it wasn't until the end of the fourteenth century that a new and lasting flame was reignited in Italy. 96 Before his own journey, Emperor Manuel sent his envoys and scholars to plead for the compassion of the Western princes. Among these envoys, the most prominent or learned was Manuel Chrysoloras, 97 born into a noble family, whose Roman ancestors are thought to have migrated with the great Constantine. After visiting the courts of France and England, where he secured some donations and more promises, he was invited to take on the role of a professor; and Florence had the honor of extending this second invitation. Through his knowledge of both Greek and Latin, Chrysoloras earned his salary and exceeded the expectations of the republic. His school attracted a diverse crowd of students of all ages and ranks; one of them, in a general history, described his motivations and success. “At that time,” says Leonard Aretin, 98 “I was studying civil law; but my passion for learning was ignited; I dedicated myself to the studies of logic and rhetoric. When Manuel arrived, I was torn between abandoning my legal studies or letting this golden opportunity slip away; and so, in the eagerness of youth, I reflected—Will you hold back from your own potential and fortune? Will you refuse to engage in a meaningful conversation with Homer, Plato, and Demosthenes; with those poets, philosophers, and orators, about whom such amazing stories are told, and who are celebrated by every generation as the great masters of human knowledge? There will always be enough professors and scholars in civil law at our universities; but a teacher, and such a teacher, of the Greek language, once lost, may never be found again. Convinced by these arguments, I committed myself to Chrysoloras; and my passion was so intense that the lessons I learned during the day constantly filled my dreams at night.” 99 At the same time and place, the Latin classics were taught by John of Ravenna, a personal student of Petrarch; 100 the Italians, who defined their era and homeland, were shaped in this dual school; and Florence became a thriving center of Greek and Roman scholarship. 101 The presence of the emperor called Chrysoloras back from the academy to the court; but he later taught in Pavia and Rome with equal dedication and acclaim. The remaining fifteen years of his life were split between Italy and Constantinople, between diplomatic missions and teaching. While he worked to enlighten a foreign nation, the grammarian did not forget a more sacred duty to his prince and homeland; Emanuel Chrysoloras died at Constance while on a public mission from the emperor to the council.

96 (return)
[ Dr. Hody (p. 54) is angry with Leonard Aretin, Guarinus, Paulus Jovius, &c., for affirming, that the Greek letters were restored in Italy post septingentos annos; as if, says he, they had flourished till the end of the viith century. These writers most probably reckoned from the last period of the exarchate; and the presence of the Greek magistrates and troops at Ravenna and Rome must have preserved, in some degree, the use of their native tongue.]

96 (return)
[ Dr. Hody (p. 54) is upset with Leonard Aretin, Guarinus, Paulus Jovius, etc., for claiming that the Greek letters were revived in Italy over seven hundred years later; as if, he argues, they had thrived until the end of the seventh century. These writers likely counted from the last period of the exarchate; and the presence of Greek officials and troops in Ravenna and Rome must have kept the use of their native language alive to some extent.]

97 (return)
[ See the article of Emanuel, or Manuel Chrysoloras, in Hody (p 12—54) and Tiraboschi, (tom. vii. p. 113—118.) The precise date of his arrival floats between the years 1390 and 1400, and is only confined by the reign of Boniface IX.]

97 (return)
[Check out the article on Emanuel, or Manuel Chrysoloras, in Hody (p 12—54) and Tiraboschi, (vol. VII, p. 113—118.) The exact date of his arrival ranges between 1390 and 1400 and is only limited by the reign of Boniface IX.]

98 (return)
[ The name of Aretinus has been assumed by five or six natives of Arezzo in Tuscany, of whom the most famous and the most worthless lived in the xvith century. Leonardus Brunus Aretinus, the disciple of Chrysoloras, was a linguist, an orator, and an historian, the secretary of four successive popes, and the chancellor of the republic of Florence, where he died A.D. 1444, at the age of seventy-five, (Fabric. Bibliot. Medii Ævi, tom. i. p. 190 &c. Tiraboschi, tom. vii. p. 33—38.)]

98 (return)
[ The name Aretinus has been taken on by five or six people from Arezzo in Tuscany, among whom the most renowned and the least admirable lived in the 16th century. Leonardus Brunus Aretinus, a student of Chrysoloras, was a linguist, an orator, and a historian. He served as the secretary to four consecutive popes and was the chancellor of the Republic of Florence, where he passed away in 1444 at the age of seventy-five. (Fabric. Bibliot. Medii Ævi, tom. i. p. 190 & c. Tiraboschi, tom. vii. p. 33—38.)]

99 (return)
[ See the passage in Aretin. Commentario Rerum suo Tempore in Italia gestarum, apud Hodium, p. 28—30.]

99 (return)
[See the passage in Aretin. Commentary on Events that Happened in Italy at His Time, published by Hodium, p. 28—30.]

100 (return)
[ In this domestic discipline, Petrarch, who loved the youth, often complains of the eager curiosity, restless temper, and proud feelings, which announce the genius and glory of a riper age, (Mémoires sur Pétrarque, tom. iii. p. 700—709.)]

100 (return)
[ In this home environment, Petrarch, who loved the young man, frequently expresses his frustrations with the intense curiosity, restless nature, and high pride that signal the talent and greatness of a more mature age, (Mémoires sur Pétrarque, tom. iii. p. 700—709.)]

101 (return)
[ Hinc Græcæ Latinæque scholæ exortæ sunt, Guarino Philelpho, Leonardo Aretino, Caroloque, ac plerisque aliis tanquam ex equo Trojano prodeuntibus, quorum emulatione multa ingenia deinceps ad laudem excitata sunt, (Platina in Bonifacio IX.) Another Italian writer adds the names of Paulus Petrus Vergerius, Omnibonus Vincentius, Poggius, Franciscus Barbarus, &c. But I question whether a rigid chronology would allow Chrysoloras all these eminent scholars, (Hodius, p. 25—27, &c.)]

101 (return)
[ From these arose the Greek and Latin schools, led by Guarino Philelpho, Leonardo Aretino, Charles, and many others who emerged like a Trojan horse, inspiring a great many talents to strive for recognition afterward, (Platina in Boniface IX.) Another Italian writer includes the names of Paulus Petrus Vergerius, Omnibonus Vincentius, Poggius, Franciscus Barbarus, etc. However, I wonder if a strict timeline would allow for Chrysoloras to include all these distinguished scholars, (Hodius, p. 25—27, etc.)]

After his example, the restoration of the Greek letters in Italy was prosecuted by a series of emigrants, who were destitute of fortune, and endowed with learning, or at least with language. From the terror or oppression of the Turkish arms, the natives of Thessalonica and Constantinople escaped to a land of freedom, curiosity, and wealth. The synod introduced into Florence the lights of the Greek church, and the oracles of the Platonic philosophy; and the fugitives who adhered to the union, had the double merit of renouncing their country, not only for the Christian, but for the catholic cause. A patriot, who sacrifices his party and conscience to the allurements of favor, may be possessed, however, of the private and social virtues: he no longer hears the reproachful epithets of slave and apostate; and the consideration which he acquires among his new associates will restore in his own eyes the dignity of his character. The prudent conformity of Bessarion was rewarded with the Roman purple: he fixed his residence in Italy; and the Greek cardinal, the titular patriarch of Constantinople, was respected as the chief and protector of his nation: 102 his abilities were exercised in the legations of Bologna, Venice, Germany, and France; and his election to the chair of St. Peter floated for a moment on the uncertain breath of a conclave. 103 His ecclesiastical honors diffused a splendor and preeminence over his literary merit and service: his palace was a school; as often as the cardinal visited the Vatican, he was attended by a learned train of both nations; 104 of men applauded by themselves and the public; and whose writings, now overspread with dust, were popular and useful in their own times. I shall not attempt to enumerate the restorers of Grecian literature in the fifteenth century; and it may be sufficient to mention with gratitude the names of Theodore Gaza, of George of Trebizond, of John Argyropulus, and Demetrius Chalcocondyles, who taught their native language in the schools of Florence and Rome. Their labors were not inferior to those of Bessarion, whose purple they revered, and whose fortune was the secret object of their envy. But the lives of these grammarians were humble and obscure: they had declined the lucrative paths of the church; their dress and manners secluded them from the commerce of the world; and since they were confined to the merit, they might be content with the rewards, of learning. From this character, Janus Lascaris 105 will deserve an exception. His eloquence, politeness, and Imperial descent, recommended him to the French monarch; and in the same cities he was alternately employed to teach and to negotiate. Duty and interest prompted them to cultivate the study of the Latin language; and the most successful attained the faculty of writing and speaking with fluency and elegance in a foreign idiom. But they ever retained the inveterate vanity of their country: their praise, or at least their esteem, was reserved for the national writers, to whom they owed their fame and subsistence; and they sometimes betrayed their contempt in licentious criticism or satire on Virgil’s poetry, and the oratory of Tully. 106 The superiority of these masters arose from the familiar use of a living language; and their first disciples were incapable of discerning how far they had degenerated from the knowledge, and even the practice of their ancestors. A vicious pronunciation, 107 which they introduced, was banished from the schools by the reason of the succeeding age. Of the power of the Greek accents they were ignorant; and those musical notes, which, from an Attic tongue, and to an Attic ear, must have been the secret soul of harmony, were to their eyes, as to our own, no more than minute and unmeaning marks, in prose superfluous and troublesome in verse. The art of grammar they truly possessed; the valuable fragments of Apollonius and Herodian were transfused into their lessons; and their treatises of syntax and etymology, though devoid of philosophic spirit, are still useful to the Greek student. In the shipwreck of the Byzantine libraries, each fugitive seized a fragment of treasure, a copy of some author, who without his industry might have perished: the transcripts were multiplied by an assiduous, and sometimes an elegant pen; and the text was corrected and explained by their own comments, or those of the elder scholiasts. The sense, though not the spirit, of the Greek classics, was interpreted to the Latin world: the beauties of style evaporate in a version; but the judgment of Theodore Gaza selected the more solid works of Aristotle and Theophrastus, and their natural histories of animals and plants opened a rich fund of genuine and experimental science.

After his example, the revival of Greek letters in Italy was carried out by a group of emigrants who were lacking in wealth but had knowledge, or at least language skills. Fleeing the terror and oppression of the Turkish forces, the people from Thessalonica and Constantinople sought refuge in a land of freedom, curiosity, and wealth. The synod brought the teachings of the Greek church and the ideas of Platonic philosophy to Florence; the refugees who embraced this union not only left their country for the Christian cause, but also for the Catholic cause. A patriot who sacrifices his political party and conscience for the allure of favor might still possess individual and social virtues: he no longer hears the harsh labels of slave and apostate, and the respect he earns among his new peers helps restore his sense of dignity. Bessarion's wise adaptability earned him the rank of a Roman cardinal; he settled in Italy, and the Greek cardinal, the titular patriarch of Constantinople, was admired as the leader and protector of his people: 102 he utilized his skills in diplomatic missions in Bologna, Venice, Germany, and France; and his candidacy for the chair of St. Peter briefly lingered in the uncertain debates of a conclave. 103 His ecclesiastical honors added prestige to his literary contributions and achievements: his palace was a hub of learning; whenever the cardinal visited the Vatican, he was accompanied by a knowledgeable group from both nations; 104 of individuals praised by themselves and the public, whose writings, now gathering dust, were popular and valuable in their time. I won't attempt to list all the restorers of Greek literature in the fifteenth century; it suffices to mention with gratitude the names of Theodore Gaza, George of Trebizond, John Argyropulus, and Demetrius Chalcocondyles, who taught their native language in the schools of Florence and Rome. Their efforts were just as significant as those of Bessarion, whom they respected and whose fortune they secretly envied. However, the lives of these grammarians were humble and low-profile: they avoided the lucrative paths of the church; their clothing and manners distanced them from worldly dealings; and since they were dedicated to their craft, they were satisfied with the rewards of learning. In this context, Janus Lascaris 105 deserves special mention. His eloquence, charm, and imperial heritage made him appealing to the French king; he was employed to teach and negotiate in the same cities. Duty and personal gain led them to pursue the study of Latin; the most successful among them became fluent and eloquent in this foreign language. Yet they maintained the deep-seated pride of their homeland: their praise, or at least their admiration, was reserved for national authors, from whom they derived their status and livelihood; and they sometimes expressed disdain through harsh criticism or satire of Virgil’s poetry and Cicero’s oratory. 106 The superiority of these masters stemmed from their intuitive use of a living language; their first students were unable to recognize how far they had fallen from the knowledge and even practices of their ancestors. A flawed pronunciation 107 that they introduced was later rejected in the schools of subsequent generations. They were ignorant of the Greek accents' power; those musical notes, which must have been the secret soul of harmony for an Attic tongue and ear, appeared to them, as to us, as mere tiny marks—unnecessary in prose and cumbersome in verse. They genuinely understood the art of grammar; the valuable works of Apollonius and Herodian were incorporated into their lessons; and their treatises on syntax and etymology, though lacking in philosophical insight, remain useful to Greek students. Amid the destruction of Byzantine libraries, each refugee grabbed a fragment of treasure, a copy of some author who, without their efforts, might have been lost: the copies were multiplied by diligent, and sometimes elegant, scripts; and the text was revised and clarified with their own notes or the comments of earlier scholars. The meaning, though not the essence, of the Greek classics was translated for the Latin world: the subtleties of style can fade in translation; however, Theodore Gaza’s judgment highlighted the more substantial works of Aristotle and Theophrastus, and their natural histories of animals and plants revealed a rich source of genuine and experimental science.

102 (return)
[ See in Hody the article of Bessarion, (p. 136—177.) Theodore Gaza, George of Trebizond, and the rest of the Greeks whom I have named or omitted, are inserted in their proper chapters of his learned work. See likewise Tiraboschi, in the 1st and 2d parts of the vith tome.]

102 (return)
[ See in Hody the article on Bessarion, (p. 136—177.) Theodore Gaza, George of Trebizond, and the other Greeks I’ve mentioned or missed are included in the appropriate chapters of his scholarly work. Also, check out Tiraboschi in the 1st and 2nd parts of the 6th volume.]

103 (return)
[ The cardinals knocked at his door, but his conclavist refused to interrupt the studies of Bessarion: “Nicholas,” said he, “thy respect has cost thee a hat, and me the tiara.” * Note: Roscoe (Life of Lorenzo de Medici, vol. i. p. 75) considers that Hody has refuted this “idle tale.”—M.]

103 (return)
[ The cardinals knocked on his door, but his assistant refused to interrupt Bessarion's studies: “Nicholas,” he said, “your respect has cost you a hat, and me the tiara.” * Note: Roscoe (Life of Lorenzo de Medici, vol. i. p. 75) believes that Hody has debunked this “idle tale.”—M.]

104 (return)
[ Such as George of Trebizond, Theodore Gaza, Argyropulus, Andronicus of Thessalonica, Philelphus, Poggius, Blondus, Nicholas Perrot, Valla, Campanus, Platina, &c. Viri (says Hody, with the pious zeal of a scholar) (nullo ævo perituri, p. 156.)]

104 (return)
[ Such as George of Trebizond, Theodore Gaza, Argyropulus, Andronicus of Thessalonica, Philelphus, Poggius, Blondus, Nicholas Perrot, Valla, Campanus, Platina, etc. Men (Hody says, with the devoted enthusiasm of a scholar) (perishing in none of their times, p. 156.)]

105 (return)
[ He was born before the taking of Constantinople, but his honorable life was stretched far into the xvith century, (A.D. 1535.) Leo X. and Francis I. were his noblest patrons, under whose auspices he founded the Greek colleges of Rome and Paris, (Hody, p. 247—275.) He left posterity in France; but the counts de Vintimille, and their numerous branches, derive the name of Lascaris from a doubtful marriage in the xiiith century with the daughter of a Greek emperor (Ducange, Fam. Byzant. p. 224—230.)]

105 (return)
[ He was born before the fall of Constantinople, but he lived a distinguished life well into the 16th century (A.D. 1535). Leo X and Francis I were his greatest supporters, under whom he established the Greek colleges in Rome and Paris (Hody, p. 247—275). He left a legacy in France; however, the counts de Vintimille and their many branches take the name Lascaris from a questionable marriage in the 13th century with the daughter of a Greek emperor (Ducange, Fam. Byzant. p. 224—230.)]

106 (return)
[ Two of his epigrams against Virgil, and three against Tully, are preserved and refuted by Franciscus Floridus, who can find no better names than Græculus ineptus et impudens, (Hody, p. 274.) In our own times, an English critic has accused the Æneid of containing multa languida, nugatoria, spiritû et majestate carminis heroici defecta; many such verses as he, the said Jeremiah Markland, would have been ashamed of owning, (præfat. ad Statii Sylvas, p. 21, 22.)]

106 (return)
[ Two of his epigrams against Virgil and three against Tully have been preserved and challenged by Franciscus Floridus, who couldn't find better terms than "inept and shameless Greek." (Hody, p. 274.) In modern times, an English critic accused the Æneid of containing many weak, trivial verses lacking the spirit and grandeur typical of heroic poetry; many lines that Jeremiah Markland himself would have been embarrassed to claim. (præfat. ad Statii Sylvas, p. 21, 22.)]

107 (return)
[ Emanuel Chrysoloras, and his colleagues, are accused of ignorance, envy, or avarice, (Sylloge, &c., tom. ii. p. 235.) The modern Greeks pronounce the b as a V consonant, and confound three vowels, (h i u,) and several diphthongs. Such was the vulgar pronunciation which the stern Gardiner maintained by penal statutes in the university of Cambridge: but the monosyllable bh represented to an Attic ear the bleating of sheep, and a bellwether is better evidence than a bishop or a chancellor. The treatises of those scholars, particularly Erasmus, who asserted a more classical pronunciation, are collected in the Sylloge of Havercamp, (2 vols. in octavo, Lugd. Bat. 1736, 1740:) but it is difficult to paint sounds by words: and in their reference to modern use, they can be understood only by their respective countrymen. We may observe, that our peculiar pronunciation of the O, th, is approved by Erasmus, (tom. ii. p. 130.)]

107 (return)
[Emanuel Chrysoloras and his colleagues are accused of being ignorant, envious, or greedy (Sylloge, &c., tom. ii. p. 235). Modern Greeks pronounce the b like a V and mix up three vowels (h, i, u) and several diphthongs. This was the common pronunciation that the strict Gardiner enforced through laws at the University of Cambridge: however, the monosyllable bh would sound to an Attic audience like the bleating of sheep, and a bellwether is a better authority than a bishop or a chancellor. The works of those scholars, especially Erasmus, who claimed a more classical pronunciation are compiled in the Sylloge of Havercamp (2 vols. in octavo, Lugd. Bat. 1736, 1740), but it’s challenging to describe sounds with words; in relation to modern use, they can only be properly understood by their own countrymen. Notably, our unique pronunciation of O and th is endorsed by Erasmus (tom. ii. p. 130).]

Yet the fleeting shadows of metaphysics were pursued with more curiosity and ardor. After a long oblivion, Plato was revived in Italy by a venerable Greek, 108 who taught in the house of Cosmo of Medicis. While the synod of Florence was involved in theological debate, some beneficial consequences might flow from the study of his elegant philosophy: his style is the purest standard of the Attic dialect, and his sublime thoughts are sometimes adapted to familiar conversation, and sometimes adorned with the richest colors of poetry and eloquence. The dialogues of Plato are a dramatic picture of the life and death of a sage; and, as often as he descends from the clouds, his moral system inculcates the love of truth, of our country, and of mankind. The precept and example of Socrates recommended a modest doubt and liberal inquiry; and if the Platonists, with blind devotion, adored the visions and errors of their divine master, their enthusiasm might correct the dry, dogmatic method of the Peripatetic school. So equal, yet so opposite, are the merits of Plato and Aristotle, that they may be balanced in endless controversy; but some spark of freedom may be produced by the collision of adverse servitude. The modern Greeks were divided between the two sects: with more fury than skill they fought under the banner of their leaders; and the field of battle was removed in their flight from Constantinople to Rome. But this philosophical debate soon degenerated into an angry and personal quarrel of grammarians; and Bessarion, though an advocate for Plato, protected the national honor, by interposing the advice and authority of a mediator. In the gardens of the Medici, the academical doctrine was enjoyed by the polite and learned: but their philosophic society was quickly dissolved; and if the writings of the Attic sage were perused in the closet, the more powerful Stagyrite continued to reign, the oracle of the church and school. 109

Yet the fleeting shadows of metaphysics were pursued with more curiosity and enthusiasm. After a long silence, Plato was revived in Italy by a respected Greek, 108, who taught in the home of Cosmo de’ Medici. While the synod of Florence engaged in theological debate, some positive outcomes could arise from studying his elegant philosophy: his style is the purest example of the Attic dialect, and his profound ideas are sometimes made relatable for everyday conversation and at other times enhanced with the richest elements of poetry and eloquence. Plato's dialogues provide a dramatic portrayal of the life and death of a wise person; and whenever he comes down from lofty ideas, his moral system promotes the love of truth, our country, and humanity. Socrates' teachings and example fostered a spirit of healthy skepticism and open inquiry; and while the Platonists, in their blind loyalty, worshipped the visions and mistakes of their divine master, their passion might balance the dry, dogmatic approach of the Peripatetic school. The merits of Plato and Aristotle are so equal yet so contrasting that they can be endlessly debated; however, some spark of freedom may emerge from the clash of opposing constraints. The modern Greeks were split between the two schools: with more passion than skill, they fought under the banners of their leaders, and the battlefield shifted as they fled from Constantinople to Rome. But this intellectual debate quickly turned into a heated and personal dispute among grammarians; and Bessarion, although a supporter of Plato, defended national honor by stepping in as a mediator. In the gardens of the Medici, the academic teachings were appreciated by the cultured and learned; but their philosophical community quickly fell apart; and although the writings of the Attic sage were read privately, the more influential Stagyrite continued to prevail as the authority of the church and academia. 109

108 (return)
[ George Gemistus Pletho, a various and voluminous writer, the master of Bessarion, and all the Platonists of the times. He visited Italy in his old age, and soon returned to end his days in Peloponnesus. See the curious Diatribe of Leo Allatius de Georgiis, in Fabricius. (Bibliot. Græc. tom. x. p. 739—756.)]

108 (return)
[ George Gemistus Pletho was a prolific writer, the teacher of Bessarion, and influential among the Platonists of his era. He traveled to Italy in his later years but soon went back to spend his final days in Peloponnesus. Check out the interesting Diatribe by Leo Allatius on Georgius, in Fabricius. (Bibliot. Græc. tom. x. p. 739—756.)]

109 (return)
[ The state of the Platonic philosophy in Italy is illustrated by Boivin, (Mém. de l’Acad. des Inscriptions, tom. ii. p. 715—729,) and Tiraboschi, (tom. vi. P. i. p. 259—288.)]

109 (return)
[ The condition of Platonic philosophy in Italy is shown by Boivin, (Mém. de l’Acad. des Inscriptions, vol. ii, pp. 715—729,) and Tiraboschi, (vol. vi, part i, pp. 259—288.)]

I have fairly represented the literary merits of the Greeks; yet it must be confessed, that they were seconded and surpassed by the ardor of the Latins. Italy was divided into many independent states; and at that time it was the ambition of princes and republics to vie with each other in the encouragement and reward of literature. The fame of Nicholas the Fifth 110 has not been adequate to his merits. From a plebeian origin he raised himself by his virtue and learning: the character of the man prevailed over the interest of the pope; and he sharpened those weapons which were soon pointed against the Roman church. 111 He had been the friend of the most eminent scholars of the age: he became their patron; and such was the humility of his manners, that the change was scarcely discernible either to them or to himself. If he pressed the acceptance of a liberal gift, it was not as the measure of desert, but as the proof of benevolence; and when modest merit declined his bounty, “Accept it,” would he say, with a consciousness of his own worth: “ye will not always have a Nicholas among you.” The influence of the holy see pervaded Christendom; and he exerted that influence in the search, not of benefices, but of books. From the ruins of the Byzantine libraries, from the darkest monasteries of Germany and Britain, he collected the dusty manuscripts of the writers of antiquity; and wherever the original could not be removed, a faithful copy was transcribed and transmitted for his use. The Vatican, the old repository for bulls and legends, for superstition and forgery, was daily replenished with more precious furniture; and such was the industry of Nicholas, that in a reign of eight years he formed a library of five thousand volumes. To his munificence the Latin world was indebted for the versions of Xenophon, Diodorus, Polybius, Thucydides, Herodotus, and Appian; of Strabo’s Geography, of the Iliad, of the most valuable works of Plato and Aristotle, of Ptolemy and Theophrastus, and of the fathers of the Greek church. The example of the Roman pontiff was preceded or imitated by a Florentine merchant, who governed the republic without arms and without a title. Cosmo of Medicis 112 was the father of a line of princes, whose name and age are almost synonymous with the restoration of learning: his credit was ennobled into fame; his riches were dedicated to the service of mankind; he corresponded at once with Cairo and London: and a cargo of Indian spices and Greek books was often imported in the same vessel. The genius and education of his grandson Lorenzo rendered him not only a patron, but a judge and candidate, in the literary race. In his palace, distress was entitled to relief, and merit to reward: his leisure hours were delightfully spent in the Platonic academy; he encouraged the emulation of Demetrius Chalcocondyles and Angelo Politian; and his active missionary Janus Lascaris returned from the East with a treasure of two hundred manuscripts, fourscore of which were as yet unknown in the libraries of Europe. 113 The rest of Italy was animated by a similar spirit, and the progress of the nation repaid the liberality of their princes. The Latins held the exclusive property of their own literature; and these disciples of Greece were soon capable of transmitting and improving the lessons which they had imbibed. After a short succession of foreign teachers, the tide of emigration subsided; but the language of Constantinople was spread beyond the Alps and the natives of France, Germany, and England, 114 imparted to their country the sacred fire which they had kindled in the schools of Florence and Rome. 115 In the productions of the mind, as in those of the soil, the gifts of nature are excelled by industry and skill: the Greek authors, forgotten on the banks of the Ilissus, have been illustrated on those of the Elbe and the Thames: and Bessarion or Gaza might have envied the superior science of the Barbarians; the accuracy of Budæus, the taste of Erasmus, the copiousness of Stephens, the erudition of Scaliger, the discernment of Reiske, or of Bentley. On the side of the Latins, the discovery of printing was a casual advantage: but this useful art has been applied by Aldus, and his innumerable successors, to perpetuate and multiply the works of antiquity. 116 A single manuscript imported from Greece is revived in ten thousand copies; and each copy is fairer than the original. In this form, Homer and Plato would peruse with more satisfaction their own writings; and their scholiasts must resign the prize to the labors of our Western editors.

I’ve accurately represented the literary achievements of the Greeks; however, it must be acknowledged that they were supported and even outdone by the enthusiasm of the Latins. Italy was made up of numerous independent states, and during that time, it was the goal of princes and republics to compete with one another in promoting and rewarding literature. The reputation of Nicholas the Fifth 110 hasn’t matched his contributions. Rising from a common background through his virtue and scholarship, the character of the man overshadowed the interests of the pope, and he sharpened the tools that were soon used against the Roman church. 111 He was friends with the most prominent scholars of his time, became their supporter, and his humility made the change almost unnoticeable to them and to himself. If he offered a generous gift, it wasn’t a measure of their worth, but a demonstration of kindness; and when humble talent turned down his generosity, he would say, aware of his own value: “Accept it; you won’t always have a Nicholas among you.” The influence of the holy see extended throughout Christendom, and he used that influence not to seek positions but to search for books. From the ruins of Byzantine libraries and the most obscure monasteries in Germany and Britain, he gathered dusty manuscripts from ancient writers; and whenever the original couldn’t be secured, a faithful copy was made for his use. The Vatican, the old storage for papal decrees and legends, superstitions and forgeries, was daily stocked with more valuable items; and Nicholas’s diligence was such that in eight years he built a library of five thousand volumes. The Latin world owed thanks to his generosity for translations of Xenophon, Diodorus, Polybius, Thucydides, Herodotus, and Appian; Strabo’s Geography, the Iliad, the most important works of Plato and Aristotle, Ptolemy and Theophrastus, and the fathers of the Greek church. The example set by the pope was followed or imitated by a Florentine merchant who led the republic without weapons or formal title. Cosmo de’ Medici 112 was the founding father of a line of princes whose name and era are nearly synonymous with the revival of learning: his reputation grew into fame; his wealth was dedicated to the service of humanity; he corresponded with both Cairo and London, and often a shipment of Indian spices and Greek books would arrive on the same ship. His grandson Lorenzo’s talent and education made him not only a supporter but also a judge and competitor in the literary world. In his palace, those in need were assured assistance, and those deserving were rewarded: he spent his leisure time joyfully in the Platonic academy, encouraged the efforts of Demetrius Chalcocondyles and Angelo Politian, and his active envoy Janus Lascaris returned from the East with a treasure of two hundred manuscripts, eighty of which were unknown in Europe's libraries. 113 The rest of Italy was energized by a similar spirit, and the nation’s progress justified the generosity of their princes. The Latins maintained exclusive rights to their own literature; and these followers of Greece soon became capable of passing on and enhancing the lessons they had learned. After a brief period of foreign teachers, the wave of emigration diminished; but the language of Constantinople spread beyond the Alps, and the natives of France, Germany, and England, 114 brought back to their homeland the sacred fire they had ignited in the schools of Florence and Rome. 115 In intellectual productions, just like in agriculture, natural gifts are often surpassed by hard work and skill: the Greek authors, once forgotten by the Ilissus, have been celebrated along the Elbe and Thames; and Bessarion or Gaza might have envied the greater knowledge of the Barbarians, the precision of Budæus, the elegance of Erasmus, the breadth of Stephens, the scholarship of Scaliger, the insight of Reiske, or Bentley. On the Latin side, the invention of printing was a fortunate opportunity: but this valuable craft has been utilized by Aldus and his countless successors to preserve and multiply the works of antiquity. 116 A single manuscript brought from Greece is reproduced in ten thousand copies, and each copy is more attractive than the original. In this form, Homer and Plato would read their own writings with greater satisfaction, and their commentators would have to concede victory to the efforts of our Western editors.

110 (return)
[ See the Life of Nicholas V. by two contemporary authors, Janottus Manettus, (tom. iii. P. ii. p. 905—962,) and Vespasian of Florence, (tom. xxv. p. 267—290,) in the collection of Muratori; and consult Tiraboschi, (tom. vi. P. i. p. 46—52, 109,) and Hody in the articles of Theodore Gaza, George of Trebizond, &c.]

110 (return)
[ See the Life of Nicholas V. by two contemporary authors, Janottus Manettus, (vol. iii. p. 905—962,) and Vespasian of Florence, (vol. xxv. p. 267—290,) in the collection of Muratori; and check Tiraboschi, (vol. vi. p. i. p. 46—52, 109,) and Hody in the articles of Theodore Gaza, George of Trebizond, etc.]

111 (return)
[ Lord Bolingbroke observes, with truth and spirit, that the popes in this instance, were worse politicians than the muftis, and that the charm which had bound mankind for so many ages was broken by the magicians themselves, (Letters on the Study of History, l. vi. p. 165, 166, octavo edition, 1779.)]

111 (return)
[ Lord Bolingbroke points out, with honesty and insight, that in this case, the popes were poorer politicians than the muftis, and that the enchantment that had captivated humanity for so long was shattered by the magicians themselves, (Letters on the Study of History, l. vi. p. 165, 166, octavo edition, 1779.)]

112 (return)
[ See the literary history of Cosmo and Lorenzo of Medicis, in Tiraboschi, (tom. vi. P. i. l. i. c. 2,) who bestows a due measure of praise on Alphonso of Arragon, king of Naples, the dukes of Milan, Ferrara Urbino, &c. The republic of Venice has deserved the least from the gratitude of scholars.]

112 (return)
[Check out the literary history of Cosmo and Lorenzo de' Medici, in Tiraboschi, (vol. vi. p. i. l. i. c. 2,) who gives proper recognition to Alfonso of Aragon, king of Naples, and the dukes of Milan, Ferrara, Urbino, etc. The republic of Venice has received the least gratitude from scholars.]

113 (return)
[ Tiraboschi, (tom. vi. P. i. p. 104,) from the preface of Janus Lascaris to the Greek Anthology, printed at Florence, 1494. Latebant (says Aldus in his preface to the Greek orators, apud Hodium, p. 249) in Atho Thraciæ monte. Eas Lascaris.... in Italiam reportavit. Miserat enim ipsum Laurentius ille Medices in Græciam ad inquirendos simul, et quantovis emendos pretio bonos libros. It is remarkable enough, that the research was facilitated by Sultan Bajazet II.]

113 (return)
[ Tiraboschi, (vol. vi. P. i. p. 104,) from the preface of Janus Lascaris to the Greek Anthology, printed in Florence, 1494. They were hidden (says Aldus in his preface to the Greek orators, apud Hodium, p. 249) in Mount Athos in Thrace. Lascaris... brought them back to Italy. For Laurentius de’ Medici had sent him to Greece to look for and, if possible, to buy valuable books. It's quite noteworthy that the search was aided by Sultan Bajazet II.]

114 (return)
[ The Greek language was introduced into the university of Oxford in the last years of the xvth century, by Grocyn, Linacer, and Latimer, who had all studied at Florence under Demetrius Chalcocondyles. See Dr. Knight’s curious Life of Erasmus. Although a stout academical patriot, he is forced to acknowledge that Erasmus learned Greek at Oxford, and taught it at Cambridge.]

114 (return)
[ The Greek language was introduced at the University of Oxford in the late 15th century by Grocyn, Linacer, and Latimer, who all studied in Florence under Demetrius Chalcocondyles. See Dr. Knight’s interesting Life of Erasmus. Even though he is a strong supporter of academia, he has to admit that Erasmus learned Greek at Oxford and taught it at Cambridge.]

115 (return)
[ The jealous Italians were desirous of keeping a monopoly of Greek learning. When Aldus was about to publish the Greek scholiasts on Sophocles and Euripides, Cave, (said they,) cave hoc facias, ne Barbari istis adjuti domi maneant, et pauciores in Italiam ventitent, (Dr. Knight, in his Life of Erasmus, p. 365, from Beatus Rhemanus.)]

115 (return)
[ The envious Italians wanted to maintain control over Greek knowledge. When Aldus was about to publish the Greek commentaries on Sophocles and Euripides, they warned, "Beware of doing this, so that the Barbarians don’t stay at home with help from these works, and fewer of them come to Italy," (Dr. Knight, in his Life of Erasmus, p. 365, from Beatus Rhemanus.)]

116 (return)
[ The press of Aldus Manutius, a Roman, was established at Venice about the year 1494: he printed above sixty considerable works of Greek literature, almost all for the first time; several containing different treatises and authors, and of several authors, two, three, or four editions, (Fabric. Bibliot. Græc. tom. xiii. p. 605, &c.) Yet his glory must not tempt us to forget, that the first Greek book, the Grammar of Constantine Lascaris, was printed at Milan in 1476; and that the Florence Homer of 1488 displays all the luxury of the typographical art. See the Annales Typographical of Mattaire, and the Bibliographie Instructive of De Bure, a knowing bookseller of Paris.]

116 (return)
[ The Aldus Manutius Press, a Roman establishment, was founded in Venice around 1494. They printed over sixty significant works of Greek literature, almost all for the first time; many included various treatises and authors, with several works having two, three, or four editions (Fabric. Bibliot. Græc. tom. xiii. p. 605, &c.). However, we shouldn't forget that the first Greek book, the Grammar of Constantine Lascaris, was printed in Milan in 1476, and that the Florence Homer from 1488 showcases the pinnacle of typographic art. Refer to Mattaire's Annales Typographical and De Bure's Bibliographie Instructive, a knowledgeable bookseller from Paris.]

Before the revival of classic literature, the Barbarians in Europe were immersed in ignorance; and their vulgar tongues were marked with the rudeness and poverty of their manners. The students of the more perfect idioms of Rome and Greece were introduced to a new world of light and science; to the society of the free and polished nations of antiquity; and to a familiar converse with those immortal men who spoke the sublime language of eloquence and reason. Such an intercourse must tend to refine the taste, and to elevate the genius, of the moderns; and yet, from the first experiments, it might appear that the study of the ancients had given fetters, rather than wings, to the human mind. However laudable, the spirit of imitation is of a servile cast; and the first disciples of the Greeks and Romans were a colony of strangers in the midst of their age and country. The minute and laborious diligence which explored the antiquities of remote times might have improved or adorned the present state of society, the critic and metaphysician were the slaves of Aristotle; the poets, historians, and orators, were proud to repeat the thoughts and words of the Augustan age: the works of nature were observed with the eyes of Pliny and Theophrastus; and some Pagan votaries professed a secret devotion to the gods of Homer and Plato. 117 The Italians were oppressed by the strength and number of their ancient auxiliaries: the century after the deaths of Petrarch and Boccace was filled with a crowd of Latin imitators, who decently repose on our shelves; but in that æra of learning it will not be easy to discern a real discovery of science, a work of invention or eloquence, in the popular language of the country. 118 But as soon as it had been deeply saturated with the celestial dew, the soil was quickened into vegetation and life; the modern idioms were refined; the classics of Athens and Rome inspired a pure taste and a generous emulation; and in Italy, as afterwards in France and England, the pleasing reign of poetry and fiction was succeeded by the light of speculative and experimental philosophy. Genius may anticipate the season of maturity; but in the education of a people, as in that of an individual, memory must be exercised, before the powers of reason and fancy can be expanded: nor may the artist hope to equal or surpass, till he has learned to imitate, the works of his predecessors.

Before the revival of classic literature, the Barbarians in Europe were caught up in ignorance, and their rough languages reflected the lack of refinement in their culture. Students of the more advanced languages of Rome and Greece were introduced to a new world of knowledge and enlightenment; they became part of the society of the free and cultured nations of the past and engaged in discussions with those remarkable figures who spoke the elegant language of rhetoric and reason. Such interactions were bound to refine modern taste and elevate its creativity; however, from the outset, it seemed that studying the ancients placed restrictions, rather than offering freedom, to human thought. While the desire to imitate is admirable, it tends to be servile, and the first students of the Greeks and Romans were outsiders in their own time and culture. The meticulous and painstaking efforts to explore the antiquities of distant times could have improved or beautified contemporary society, yet critics and philosophers were merely followers of Aristotle; poets, historians, and orators proudly echoed the thoughts and words of the Augustan age. The works of nature were examined through the perspectives of Pliny and Theophrastus, and some Pagan followers secretly worshipped the gods of Homer and Plato. 117 The Italians were burdened by the strength and numbers of their ancient influences: the century following the deaths of Petrarch and Boccaccio was filled with a plethora of Latin imitators, who now reside modestly on our bookshelves; however, in that era of learning, it is hard to find any genuine scientific discovery or an original work of creativity or eloquence in the popular language of the country. 118 But as soon as it became thoroughly infused with inspiration, the culture blossomed into vitality and life; modern languages evolved; the classics of Athens and Rome fostered a refined taste and a noble spirit of competition; and in Italy, as later in France and England, the enjoyable era of poetry and storytelling was followed by the emergence of speculative and experimental philosophy. Genius can sometimes precede maturity, but in the education of a community, just as in that of an individual, memory must be engaged before the abilities of reason and imagination can unfold; nor can an artist expect to match or surpass their predecessors' works until they have first learned to imitate them.

117 (return)
[ I will select three singular examples of this classic enthusiasm. I. At the synod of Florence, Gemistus Pletho said, in familiar conversation to George of Trebizond, that in a short time mankind would unanimously renounce the Gospel and the Koran, for a religion similar to that of the Gentiles, (Leo Allatius, apud Fabricium, tom. x. p. 751.) 2. Paul II. persecuted the Roman academy, which had been founded by Pomponius Lætus; and the principal members were accused of heresy, impiety, and paganism, (Tiraboschi, tom. vi. P. i. p. 81, 82.) 3. In the next century, some scholars and poets in France celebrated the success of Jodelle’s tragedy of Cleopatra, by a festival of Bacchus, and, as it is said, by the sacrifice of a goat, (Bayle, Dictionnaire, Jodelle. Fontenelle, tom. iii. p. 56—61.) Yet the spirit of bigotry might often discern a serious impiety in the sportive play of fancy and learning.]

117 (return)
[ I will choose three distinct examples of this classic enthusiasm. 1. At the synod of Florence, Gemistus Pletho casually told George of Trebizond that soon humanity would unanimously abandon the Gospel and the Koran for a religion similar to that of the Gentiles, (Leo Allatius, apud Fabricium, tom. x. p. 751.) 2. Paul II persecuted the Roman academy, which had been established by Pomponius Lætus; the main members were accused of heresy, impiety, and paganism, (Tiraboschi, tom. vi. P. i. p. 81, 82.) 3. In the next century, some scholars and poets in France celebrated the success of Jodelle’s tragedy of Cleopatra with a Bacchus festival, and reportedly with the sacrifice of a goat, (Bayle, Dictionnaire, Jodelle. Fontenelle, tom. iii. p. 56—61.) Yet the spirit of bigotry often found genuine impiety in the playful expressions of creativity and learning.]

118 (return)
[ The survivor Boccace died in the year 1375; and we cannot place before 1480 the composition of the Morgante Maggiore of Pulci and the Orlando Innamorato of Boyardo, (Tiraboschi, tom. vi. P. ii. p. 174—177.)]

118 (return)
[ The survivor Boccace died in 1375; and we can't place the writing of Morgante Maggiore by Pulci and Orlando Innamorato by Boyardo before 1480, (Tiraboschi, tom. vi. P. ii. p. 174—177.)]

Chapter LXVII: Schism Of The Greeks And Latins.—Part I.

     Schism Of The Greeks And Latins.—Reign And Character Of
     Amurath The Second.—Crusade Of Ladislaus, King Of Hungary.—
     His Defeat And Death.—John Huniades.—Scanderbeg.—
     Constantine Palæologus, Last Emperor Of The East.
     Schism of the Greeks and Latins.—Reign and Character of
     Amurath the Second.—Crusade of Ladislaus, King of Hungary.—
     His Defeat and Death.—John Huniades.—Scanderbeg.—
     Constantine Palæologus, Last Emperor of the East.

The respective merits of Rome and Constantinople are compared and celebrated by an eloquent Greek, the father of the Italian schools. 1 The view of the ancient capital, the seat of his ancestors, surpassed the most sanguine expectations of Emanuel Chrysoloras; and he no longer blamed the exclamation of an old sophist, that Rome was the habitation, not of men, but of gods. Those gods, and those men, had long since vanished; but to the eye of liberal enthusiasm, the majesty of ruin restored the image of her ancient prosperity. The monuments of the consuls and Cæsars, of the martyrs and apostles, engaged on all sides the curiosity of the philosopher and the Christian; and he confessed that in every age the arms and the religion of Rome were destined to reign over the earth. While Chrysoloras admired the venerable beauties of the mother, he was not forgetful of his native country, her fairest daughter, her Imperial colony; and the Byzantine patriot expatiates with zeal and truth on the eternal advantages of nature, and the more transitory glories of art and dominion, which adorned, or had adorned, the city of Constantine. Yet the perfection of the copy still redounds (as he modestly observes) to the honor of the original, and parents are delighted to be renewed, and even excelled, by the superior merit of their children. “Constantinople,” says the orator, “is situate on a commanding point, between Europe and Asia, between the Archipelago and the Euxine. By her interposition, the two seas, and the two continents, are united for the common benefit of nations; and the gates of commerce may be shut or opened at her command. The harbor, encompassed on all sides by the sea, and the continent, is the most secure and capacious in the world. The walls and gates of Constantinople may be compared with those of Babylon: the towers many; each tower is a solid and lofty structure; and the second wall, the outer fortification, would be sufficient for the defence and dignity of an ordinary capital. A broad and rapid stream may be introduced into the ditches and the artificial island may be encompassed, like Athens, 2 by land or water.” Two strong and natural causes are alleged for the perfection of the model of new Rome. The royal founder reigned over the most illustrious nations of the globe; and in the accomplishment of his designs, the power of the Romans was combined with the art and science of the Greeks. Other cities have been reared to maturity by accident and time: their beauties are mingled with disorder and deformity; and the inhabitants, unwilling to remove from their natal spot, are incapable of correcting the errors of their ancestors, and the original vices of situation or climate. But the free idea of Constantinople was formed and executed by a single mind; and the primitive model was improved by the obedient zeal of the subjects and successors of the first monarch. The adjacent isles were stored with an inexhaustible supply of marble; but the various materials were transported from the most remote shores of Europe and Asia; and the public and private buildings, the palaces, churches, aqueducts, cisterns, porticos, columns, baths, and hippodromes, were adapted to the greatness of the capital of the East. The superfluity of wealth was spread along the shores of Europe and Asia; and the Byzantine territory, as far as the Euxine, the Hellespont, and the long wall, might be considered as a populous suburb and a perpetual garden. In this flattering picture, the past and the present, the times of prosperity and decay, are artfully confounded; but a sigh and a confession escape, from the orator, that his wretched country was the shadow and sepulchre of its former self. The works of ancient sculpture had been defaced by Christian zeal or Barbaric violence; the fairest structures were demolished; and the marbles of Paros or Numidia were burnt for lime, or applied to the meanest uses. Of many a statue, the place was marked by an empty pedestal; of many a column, the size was determined by a broken capital; the tombs of the emperors were scattered on the ground; the stroke of time was accelerated by storms and earthquakes; and the vacant space was adorned, by vulgar tradition, with fabulous monuments of gold and silver. From these wonders, which lived only in memory or belief, he distinguishes, however, the porphyry pillar, the column and colossus of Justinian, 3 and the church, more especially the dome, of St. Sophia; the best conclusion, since it could not be described according to its merits, and after it no other object could deserve to be mentioned. But he forgets that, a century before, the trembling fabrics of the colossus and the church had been saved and supported by the timely care of Andronicus the Elder. Thirty years after the emperor had fortified St. Sophia with two new buttresses or pyramids, the eastern hemisphere suddenly gave way: and the images, the altars, and the sanctuary, were crushed by the falling ruin. The mischief indeed was speedily repaired; the rubbish was cleared by the incessant labor of every rank and age; and the poor remains of riches and industry were consecrated by the Greeks to the most stately and venerable temple of the East. 4

The respective strengths of Rome and Constantinople are compared and praised by an articulate Greek, the founder of the Italian schools. 1 The sight of the ancient capital, the home of his ancestors, exceeded the highest hopes of Emanuel Chrysoloras; and he no longer criticized the old sophist's claim that Rome was the residence, not of humans, but of gods. Those gods, and those people, had long disappeared; but to someone filled with enthusiasm, the grandeur of the ruins brought back the image of its former wealth. The monuments of the consuls and Caesars, of the martyrs and apostles, sparked the interest of both the philosopher and the Christian; and he admitted that throughout history, the military and the faith of Rome were meant to rule over the world. While Chrysoloras admired the noble beauty of the mother city, he did not forget his homeland, her most beautiful daughter, her Imperial colony; and the Byzantine patriot passionately discusses the enduring benefits of nature and the more fleeting glories of art and power that embellished, or once adorned, the city of Constantine. Still, the perfection of the copy reflects (as he humbly notes) on the honor of the original, and parents are pleased to see themselves renewed and even surpassed by the excellence of their children. “Constantinople,” says the speaker, “is located at a strategic point, between Europe and Asia, between the Aegean and the Black Sea. Through her, the two seas and two continents come together for the common benefit of nations; and the doors of commerce can be closed or opened at her command. The harbor, surrounded on all sides by the sea and land, is the safest and largest in the world. The walls and gates of Constantinople can be compared to those of Babylon: there are many towers; each tower is a solid and tall structure; and the second wall, the outer fortification, would be enough for the defense and dignity of an ordinary capital. A wide and swift river could be channeled into the ditches, and like Athens, 2 could be surrounded by land or water.” Two strong and natural reasons are given for the perfection of the new Rome's design. The royal founder ruled over the most renowned nations on earth; and in realizing his vision, the might of the Romans was combined with the art and science of the Greeks. Other cities have matured through chance and time: their beauty mixed with disorder and ugliness; and their inhabitants, unwilling to leave their birthplace, are unable to correct the mistakes of their ancestors, or the original flaws of their location or climate. But the clear concept of Constantinople was created and executed by one mind; and the original design was enhanced by the devoted energy of the subjects and successors of the first ruler. The nearby islands were filled with an endless supply of marble; but materials were brought from the farthest shores of Europe and Asia; and the public and private buildings, the palaces, churches, aqueducts, cisterns, porticos, columns, baths, and hippodromes, were built to match the greatness of the Eastern capital. The abundance of wealth flowed along the coasts of Europe and Asia; and the Byzantine territory, extending to the Black Sea, the Dardanelles, and the long wall, could be seen as a bustling suburb and a perpetual garden. In this flattering image, past and present, times of prosperity and decline, are skillfully blended; but a sigh and a confession escape from the speaker, stating that his unfortunate country is now just a shadow and a tomb of its former glory. The works of ancient sculpture were damaged by Christian fervor or barbaric violence; the most beautiful structures were destroyed; and the marbles from Paros or Numidia were burned for lime or used for the most trivial purposes. Many statues left only empty pedestals; many columns stood lessened by broken capitals; the tombs of the emperors lay scattered on the ground; the passage of time was hastened by storms and earthquakes; and the empty spaces were, by common belief, adorned with mythical monuments of gold and silver. From these wonders, which existed only in memory or belief, he still highlights the porphyry column, the column and statue of Justinian, 3 and the church, particularly the dome, of St. Sophia; which is best described as it couldn't fully encapsulate its worth, and after it, nothing else could truly be worth mentioning. But he forgets that, a century prior, the shaky structures of the colossus and the church had been saved and supported by the timely efforts of Andronicus the Elder. Thirty years after the emperor had reinforced St. Sophia with two new buttresses or pyramids, the eastern hemisphere suddenly collapsed: and the images, altars, and sanctuary were crushed by the falling debris. The damage was quickly fixed; the debris was cleared away by the constant labor of all ages and ranks; and the scant remains of wealth and craftsmanship were dedicated by the Greeks to the most magnificent and revered temple of the East. 4

1 (return)
[ The epistle of Emanuel Chrysoloras to the emperor John Palæologus will not offend the eye or ear of a classical student, (ad calcem Codini de Antiquitatibus C. P. p. 107—126.) The superscription suggests a chronological remark, that John Palæologus II. was associated in the empire before the year 1414, the date of Chrysoloras’s death. A still earlier date, at least 1408, is deduced from the age of his youngest sons, Demetrius and Thomas, who were both Porphyrogeniti (Ducange, Fam. Byzant. p. 244, 247.)]

1 (return)
[ The letter from Emanuel Chrysoloras to Emperor John Palæologus will not be off-putting to anyone studying classical literature, (see Codini’s work on the Antiquities of Constantinople, pp. 107—126.) The title indicates a chronological point, noting that John Palæologus II. was part of the empire before the year 1414, when Chrysoloras died. An even earlier date, around 1408, can be inferred from the ages of his youngest sons, Demetrius and Thomas, who were both Porphyrogeniti (Ducange, Fam. Byzant. pp. 244, 247.)]

2 (return)
[ Somebody observed that the city of Athens might be circumnavigated, (tiV eipen tin polin tvn Aqhnaiwn dunasqai kai paraplein kai periplein.) But what may be true in a rhetorical sense of Constantinople, cannot be applied to the situation of Athens, five miles from the sea, and not intersected or surrounded by any navigable streams.]

2 (return)
[ Someone pointed out that the city of Athens could be circled, (tiV eipen tin polin tvn Aqhnaiwn dunasqai kai paraplein kai periplein.) But what might be true in a rhetorical way for Constantinople doesn't apply to Athens, which is five miles from the sea and doesn't have any navigable rivers intersecting or surrounding it.]

3 (return)
[ Nicephorus Gregoras has described the Colossus of Justinian, (l. vii. 12:) but his measures are false and inconsistent. The editor Boivin consulted his friend Girardon; and the sculptor gave him the true proportions of an equestrian statue. That of Justinian was still visible to Peter Gyllius, not on the column, but in the outward court of the seraglio; and he was at Constantinople when it was melted down, and cast into a brass cannon, (de Topograph. C. P. l. ii. c. 17.)]

3 (return)
[Nicephorus Gregoras described the Colossus of Justinian (l. vii. 12), but his measurements are inaccurate and inconsistent. The editor Boivin consulted his friend Girardon, who provided the correct proportions for an equestrian statue. The statue of Justinian was still visible to Peter Gyllius, not on the column, but in the outer courtyard of the palace; he was in Constantinople when it was melted down and turned into a brass cannon (de Topograph. C. P. l. ii. c. 17.)]

4 (return)
[ See the decay and repairs of St. Sophia, in Nicephorus Gregoras (l. vii. 12, l. xv. 2.) The building was propped by Andronicus in 1317, the eastern hemisphere fell in 1345. The Greeks, in their pompous rhetoric, exalt the beauty and holiness of the church, an earthly heaven the abode of angels, and of God himself, &c.]

4 (return)
[ Look at the damage and repairs of St. Sophia, in Nicephorus Gregoras (l. vii. 12, l. xv. 2.) The building was supported by Andronicus in 1317, and the eastern dome collapsed in 1345. The Greeks, in their ornate rhetoric, praise the beauty and sanctity of the church, describing it as an earthly paradise, the home of angels and of God himself, etc.]

The last hope of the falling city and empire was placed in the harmony of the mother and daughter, in the maternal tenderness of Rome, and the filial obedience of Constantinople. In the synod of Florence, the Greeks and Latins had embraced, and subscribed, and promised; but these signs of friendship were perfidious or fruitless; 5 and the baseless fabric of the union vanished like a dream. 6 The emperor and his prelates returned home in the Venetian galleys; but as they touched at the Morea and the Isles of Corfu and Lesbos, the subjects of the Latins complained that the pretended union would be an instrument of oppression. No sooner did they land on the Byzantine shore, than they were saluted, or rather assailed, with a general murmur of zeal and discontent. During their absence, above two years, the capital had been deprived of its civil and ecclesiastical rulers; fanaticism fermented in anarchy; the most furious monks reigned over the conscience of women and bigots; and the hatred of the Latin name was the first principle of nature and religion. Before his departure for Italy, the emperor had flattered the city with the assurance of a prompt relief and a powerful succor; and the clergy, confident in their orthodoxy and science, had promised themselves and their flocks an easy victory over the blind shepherds of the West. The double disappointment exasperated the Greeks; the conscience of the subscribing prelates was awakened; the hour of temptation was past; and they had more to dread from the public resentment, than they could hope from the favor of the emperor or the pope. Instead of justifying their conduct, they deplored their weakness, professed their contrition, and cast themselves on the mercy of God and of their brethren. To the reproachful question, what had been the event or the use of their Italian synod? they answered with sighs and tears, “Alas! we have made a new faith; we have exchanged piety for impiety; we have betrayed the immaculate sacrifice; and we are become Azymites.” (The Azymites were those who celebrated the communion with unleavened bread; and I must retract or qualify the praise which I have bestowed on the growing philosophy of the times.) “Alas! we have been seduced by distress, by fraud, and by the hopes and fears of a transitory life. The hand that has signed the union should be cut off; and the tongue that has pronounced the Latin creed deserves to be torn from the root.” The best proof of their repentance was an increase of zeal for the most trivial rites and the most incomprehensible doctrines; and an absolute separation from all, without excepting their prince, who preserved some regard for honor and consistency. After the decease of the patriarch Joseph, the archbishops of Heraclea and Trebizond had courage to refuse the vacant office; and Cardinal Bessarion preferred the warm and comfortable shelter of the Vatican. The choice of the emperor and his clergy was confined to Metrophanes of Cyzicus: he was consecrated in St. Sophia, but the temple was vacant. The cross-bearers abdicated their service; the infection spread from the city to the villages; and Metrophanes discharged, without effect, some ecclesiastical thunders against a nation of schismatics. The eyes of the Greeks were directed to Mark of Ephesus, the champion of his country; and the sufferings of the holy confessor were repaid with a tribute of admiration and applause. His example and writings propagated the flame of religious discord; age and infirmity soon removed him from the world; but the gospel of Mark was not a law of forgiveness; and he requested with his dying breath, that none of the adherents of Rome might attend his obsequies or pray for his soul.

The last hope for the crumbling city and empire rested on the bond between mother and daughter, the nurturing spirit of Rome, and the loyalty of Constantinople. At the synod of Florence, the Greeks and Latins had embraced each other, signed agreements, and made promises; but these gestures of friendship turned out to be deceitful or meaningless; 5 and the fragile foundation of their union disappeared like a dream. 6 The emperor and his clergy returned home on Venetian galleys; however, as they stopped in Morea and the Islands of Corfu and Lesbos, the Latin subjects complained that the supposed union would be a tool of oppression. As soon as they landed on Byzantine soil, they were met, or rather attacked, by a widespread murmur of fervor and discontent. During their absence of over two years, the capital had lost its civil and religious leaders; fanaticism brewed in chaos; the most zealous monks dominated the minds of women and zealots; and hatred for the Latin name became the core of nature and religion. Before his departure for Italy, the emperor had assured the city of quick relief and strong support; and the clergy, confident in their orthodoxy and knowledge, expected an easy victory over the ignorant shepherds of the West. This double disappointment angered the Greeks; the conscience of the subscribing prelates was stirred; the moment of temptation had passed; and they had more to fear from public outrage than they could hope for from the emperor or the pope's favor. Instead of justifying their actions, they regretted their weakness, expressed their remorse, and relied on the mercy of God and their fellow believers. When faced with the painful question of what the outcome or usefulness of their Italian synod had been, they sighed and wept, saying, “Alas! we have created a new faith; we have traded piety for impiety; we have betrayed the pure sacrifice; and we have become Azymites.” (The Azymites were those who took communion with unleavened bread; and I take back or adjust the praise I once gave to the evolving philosophy of the times.) “Alas! we have been misled by hardship, by deceit, and by the hopes and fears of this fleeting life. The hand that signed the union should be severed; and the tongue that spoke the Latin creed deserves to be ripped out from its roots.” The clearest sign of their repentance was their newfound zeal for the most trivial rituals and the most incomprehensible doctrines; and they completely separated from everyone, even their prince, who still held some regard for honor and consistency. After the death of Patriarch Joseph, the archbishops of Heraclea and Trebizond had the courage to decline the vacant position; and Cardinal Bessarion chose the warm and comfortable refuge of the Vatican. The emperor and his clergy could only choose Metrophanes of Cyzicus: he was consecrated in St. Sophia, but the temple was empty. The cross-bearers gave up their duties; the unrest spread from the city to the villages; and Metrophanes unsuccessfully unleashed some ecclesiastical condemnations against a nation of schismatics. The Greeks looked to Mark of Ephesus, the defender of his country; and the trials of the holy confessor earned him admiration and applause. His example and writings fueled the fire of religious discord; age and illness soon took him from this world; yet the gospel of Mark did not preach forgiveness; and with his dying wish, he requested that no followers of Rome should attend his funeral or pray for his soul.

5 (return)
[ The genuine and original narrative of Syropulus (p. 312—351) opens the schism from the first office of the Greeks at Venice to the general opposition at Constantinople, of the clergy and people.]

5 (return)
[ The true and original story of Syropulus (p. 312—351) starts the divide from the initial office of the Greeks in Venice to the widespread resistance in Constantinople, from the clergy and the public.]

6 (return)
[ On the schism of Constantinople, see Phranza, (l. ii. c. 17,) Laonicus Chalcondyles, (l. vi. p. 155, 156,) and Ducas, (c. 31;) the last of whom writes with truth and freedom. Among the moderns we may distinguish the continuator of Fleury, (tom. xxii. p. 338, &c., 401, 420, &c.,) and Spondanus, (A.D. 1440—50.) The sense of the latter is drowned in prejudice and passion, as soon as Rome and religion are concerned.]

6 (return)
[ For information on the split of Constantinople, refer to Phranza, (l. ii. c. 17,) Laonicus Chalcondyles, (l. vi. p. 155, 156,) and Ducas, (c. 31;) the last of whom writes with honesty and clarity. Among the modern historians, we can highlight the continuator of Fleury, (tom. xxii. p. 338, &c., 401, 420, &c.,) and Spondanus, (A.D. 1440—50.) The views of the latter are clouded by bias and strong emotions whenever Rome and religion are involved.]

The schism was not confined to the narrow limits of the Byzantine empire. Secure under the Mamaluke sceptre, the three patriarchs of Alexandria, Antioch, and Jerusalem, assembled a numerous synod; disowned their representatives at Ferrara and Florence; condemned the creed and council of the Latins; and threatened the emperor of Constantinople with the censures of the Eastern church. Of the sectaries of the Greek communion, the Russians were the most powerful, ignorant, and superstitious. Their primate, the cardinal Isidore, hastened from Florence to Moscow, 7 to reduce the independent nation under the Roman yoke. But the Russian bishops had been educated at Mount Athos; and the prince and people embraced the theology of their priests. They were scandalized by the title, the pomp, the Latin cross of the legate, the friend of those impious men who shaved their beards, and performed the divine office with gloves on their hands and rings on their fingers: Isidore was condemned by a synod; his person was imprisoned in a monastery; and it was with extreme difficulty that the cardinal could escape from the hands of a fierce and fanatic people. 8 The Russians refused a passage to the missionaries of Rome who aspired to convert the Pagans beyond the Tanais; 9 and their refusal was justified by the maxim, that the guilt of idolatry is less damnable than that of schism. The errors of the Bohemians were excused by their abhorrence for the pope; and a deputation of the Greek clergy solicited the friendship of those sanguinary enthusiasts. 10 While Eugenius triumphed in the union and orthodoxy of the Greeks, his party was contracted to the walls, or rather to the palace of Constantinople. The zeal of Palæologus had been excited by interest; it was soon cooled by opposition: an attempt to violate the national belief might endanger his life and crown; not could the pious rebels be destitute of foreign and domestic aid. The sword of his brother Demetrius, who in Italy had maintained a prudent and popular silence, was half unsheathed in the cause of religion; and Amurath, the Turkish sultan, was displeased and alarmed by the seeming friendship of the Greeks and Latins.

The division wasn’t limited to just the Byzantine Empire. Protected under the Mamluk rule, the three patriarchs of Alexandria, Antioch, and Jerusalem gathered a large synod; rejected their representatives at Ferrara and Florence; condemned the Latin creed and council; and warned the emperor of Constantinople of the Eastern Church's censure. Among the followers of the Greek communion, the Russians were the most powerful, ignorant, and superstitious. Their primate, Cardinal Isidore, hurried from Florence to Moscow, 7 aiming to bring the independent nation under Roman control. However, the Russian bishops had been educated at Mount Athos, and both the prince and the people adopted the theology of their priests. They were outraged by the title, the grandeur, and the Latin cross of the legate, an ally of those unholy men who shaved their beards and conducted divine services while wearing gloves and rings: Isidore was denounced by a synod; he was imprisoned in a monastery; and it was extremely difficult for the cardinal to escape from the furious and fanatical populace. 8 The Russians denied passage to Roman missionaries trying to convert the Pagans beyond the Tanais; 9 and their refusal was backed by the belief that the sin of idol worship is less condemnable than that of schism. The mistakes of the Bohemians were excused because of their hatred for the pope; and a delegation from the Greek clergy sought friendship with those bloodthirsty extremists. 10 While Eugenius celebrated the unity and orthodoxy of the Greeks, his support was limited to the walls, or rather the palace, of Constantinople. Palæologus's enthusiasm was sparked by self-interest; it quickly cooled with opposition: an attempt to undermine the national faith could threaten his life and crown; nor could the devout rebels lack both foreign and domestic support. The sword of his brother Demetrius, who had maintained a strategic and popular silence in Italy, was half drawn in defense of religion; and Amurath, the Turkish sultan, was displeased and alarmed by the apparent alliance between the Greeks and Latins.

7 (return)
[ Isidore was metropolitan of Kiow, but the Greeks subject to Poland have removed that see from the ruins of Kiow to Lemberg, or Leopold, (Herbestein, in Ramusio, tom. ii. p. 127.) On the other hand, the Russians transferred their spiritual obedience to the archbishop, who became, in 1588, the patriarch, of Moscow, (Levesque Hist. de Russie, tom. iii. p. 188, 190, from a Greek MS. at Turin, Iter et labores Archiepiscopi Arsenii.)]

7 (return)
[Isidore was the metropolitan of Kyiv, but the Greeks under Polish rule moved that see from the ruins of Kyiv to Lviv, or Leopold, (Herbestein, in Ramusio, vol. ii. p. 127.) Meanwhile, the Russians shifted their spiritual allegiance to the archbishop, who became the patriarch of Moscow in 1588, (Levesque Hist. de Russie, vol. iii. p. 188, 190, from a Greek manuscript in Turin, Iter et labores Archiepiscopi Arsenii.)]

8 (return)
[ The curious narrative of Levesque (Hist. de Russie, tom. ii. p. 242—247) is extracted from the patriarchal archives. The scenes of Ferrara and Florence are described by ignorance and passion; but the Russians are credible in the account of their own prejudices.]

8 (return)
[ The intriguing story from Levesque (Hist. de Russie, tom. ii. p. 242—247) comes from the patriarchal archives. The events in Ferrara and Florence are depicted through ignorance and passion; however, the Russians provide a believable perspective on their own biases.]

9 (return)
[ The Shamanism, the ancient religion of the Samanæans and Gymnosophists, has been driven by the more popular Bramins from India into the northern deserts: the naked philosophers were compelled to wrap themselves in fur; but they insensibly sunk into wizards and physicians. The Mordvans and Tcheremisses in the European Russia adhere to this religion, which is formed on the earthly model of one king or God, his ministers or angels, and the rebellious spirits who oppose his government. As these tribes of the Volga have no images, they might more justly retort on the Latin missionaries the name of idolaters, (Levesque, Hist. des Peuples soumis à la Domination des Russes, tom. i. p. 194—237, 423—460.)]

9 (return)
[ Shamanism, the ancient religion of the Samanæans and Gymnosophists, has been pushed by the more popular Brahmins from India into the northern deserts: the bare philosophers were forced to wrap themselves in fur; however, they gradually became wizards and healers. The Mordvans and Tcheremisses in European Russia follow this religion, which is based on the earthly model of one king or God, his ministers or angels, and the rebellious spirits who oppose his rule. Since these tribes along the Volga have no images, they could more accurately accuse the Latin missionaries of being idolaters, (Levesque, Hist. des Peuples soumis à la Domination des Russes, tom. i. p. 194—237, 423—460.)]

10 (return)
[ Spondanus, Annal. Eccles. tom ii. A.D. 1451, No. 13. The epistle of the Greeks with a Latin version, is extant in the college library at Prague.]

10 (return)
[ Spondanus, Annal. Eccles. vol. II, A.D. 1451, No. 13. The letter from the Greeks with a Latin translation is available in the college library in Prague.]

“Sultan Murad, or Amurath, lived forty-nine, and reigned thirty years, six months, and eight days. He was a just and valiant prince, of a great soul, patient of labors, learned, merciful, religious, charitable; a lover and encourager of the studious, and of all who excelled in any art or science; a good emperor and a great general. No man obtained more or greater victories than Amurath; Belgrade alone withstood his attacks. 101 Under his reign, the soldier was ever victorious, the citizen rich and secure. If he subdued any country, his first care was to build mosques and caravansaras, hospitals, and colleges. Every year he gave a thousand pieces of gold to the sons of the Prophet; and sent two thousand five hundred to the religious persons of Mecca, Medina, and Jerusalem.” 11 This portrait is transcribed from the historian of the Othman empire: but the applause of a servile and superstitious people has been lavished on the worst of tyrants; and the virtues of a sultan are often the vices most useful to himself, or most agreeable to his subjects. A nation ignorant of the equal benefits of liberty and law, must be awed by the flashes of arbitrary power: the cruelty of a despot will assume the character of justice; his profusion, of liberality; his obstinacy, of firmness. If the most reasonable excuse be rejected, few acts of obedience will be found impossible; and guilt must tremble, where innocence cannot always be secure. The tranquillity of the people, and the discipline of the troops, were best maintained by perpetual action in the field; war was the trade of the Janizaries; and those who survived the peril, and divided the spoil, applauded the generous ambition of their sovereign. To propagate the true religion, was the duty of a faithful Mussulman: the unbelievers were his enemies, and those of the Prophet; and, in the hands of the Turks, the cimeter was the only instrument of conversion. Under these circumstances, however, the justice and moderation of Amurath are attested by his conduct, and acknowledged by the Christians themselves; who consider a prosperous reign and a peaceful death as the reward of his singular merits. In the vigor of his age and military power, he seldom engaged in war till he was justified by a previous and adequate provocation: the victorious sultan was disarmed by submission; and in the observance of treaties, his word was inviolate and sacred. 12 The Hungarians were commonly the aggressors; he was provoked by the revolt of Scanderbeg; and the perfidious Caramanian was twice vanquished, and twice pardoned, by the Ottoman monarch. Before he invaded the Morea, Thebes had been surprised by the despot: in the conquest of Thessalonica, the grandson of Bajazet might dispute the recent purchase of the Venetians; and after the first siege of Constantinople, the sultan was never tempted, by the distress, the absence, or the injuries of Palæologus, to extinguish the dying light of the Byzantine empire.

“Sultan Murad, or Amurath, lived for forty-nine years and ruled for thirty years, six months, and eight days. He was a just and brave prince, noble in spirit, hard-working, educated, merciful, religious, and charitable; a patron of learning and all who excelled in any art or science; a good emperor and a great general. No one achieved more or greater victories than Amurath; only Belgrade withstood his assaults. 101 Under his reign, soldiers were always victorious, and citizens were wealthy and secure. If he conquered any territory, his first priority was to build mosques, caravanserais, hospitals, and colleges. Every year, he gave a thousand pieces of gold to the sons of the Prophet and sent two thousand five hundred to the religious leaders of Mecca, Medina, and Jerusalem.” 11 This description is taken from the historian of the Ottoman Empire: yet the praise of a servile and superstitious populace has often been lavished on the worst of tyrants; and the virtues of a sultan are frequently the vices that benefit him the most or are most pleasing to his subjects. A nation unaware of the equal advantages of liberty and law must be intimidated by the flashes of arbitrary power: the cruelty of a despot will wear the guise of justice; his extravagance will appear as generosity; his stubbornness will be seen as firmness. If the most reasonable excuse is dismissed, few acts of obedience will seem impossible; and guilt must tremble, where innocence cannot always feel secure. The peace of the people and the discipline of the troops were best upheld by constant action on the battlefield; war was the vocation of the Janizaries; and those who survived the danger and shared the spoils praised their sovereign's noble ambition. Propagating the true religion was the duty of a faithful Muslim: the unbelievers were his enemies and those of the Prophet; and, in the hands of the Turks, the sword was the only tool for conversion. Under these circumstances, however, Amurath’s justice and moderation are evidenced by his actions, acknowledged even by the Christians, who view a prosperous reign and a peaceful death as the reward for his exceptional merits. In the prime of his age and military strength, he rarely engaged in war unless provoked by a sufficient and meaningful challenge: the victorious sultan was disarmed by submission; and in upholding treaties, his word was sacred and untouchable. 12 The Hungarians were usually the attackers; he was provoked by the rebellion of Scanderbeg; and the treacherous Caramanian was defeated twice, and pardoned twice, by the Ottoman ruler. Before he invaded the Morea, the despot had surprised Thebes; in taking Thessalonica, Bajazet’s grandson might contest the recent acquisition of the Venetians; and after the first siege of Constantinople, the sultan was never tempted, by the distress, absence, or injuries of Palæologus, to extinguish the dying light of the Byzantine Empire.

101 (return)
[ See the siege and massacre at Thessalonica. Von Hammer vol. i p. 433.—M.]

101 (return)
[ See the siege and massacre at Thessalonica. Von Hammer vol. i p. 433.—M.]

11 (return)
[ See Cantemir, History of the Othman Empire, p. 94. Murad, or Morad, may be more correct: but I have preferred the popular name to that obscure diligence which is rarely successful in translating an Oriental, into the Roman, alphabet.]

11 (return)
[See Cantemir, History of the Othman Empire, p. 94. Murad, or Morad, might be more accurate, but I've chosen the common name over the obscure effort that often fails to translate an Eastern name into the Roman alphabet.]

12 (return)
[ See Chalcondyles, (l. vii. p. 186, 198,) Ducas, (c. 33,) and Marinus Barletius, (in Vit. Scanderbeg, p. 145, 146.) In his good faith towards the garrison of Sfetigrade, he was a lesson and example to his son Mahomet.]

12 (return)
[ See Chalcondyles, (l. vii. p. 186, 198), Ducas, (c. 33), and Marinus Barletius, (in Vit. Scanderbeg, p. 145, 146.) His integrity toward the garrison of Sfetigrade served as a lesson and model for his son Mahomet.]

But the most striking feature in the life and character of Amurath is the double abdication of the Turkish throne; and, were not his motives debased by an alloy of superstition, we must praise the royal philosopher, 13 who at the age of forty could discern the vanity of human greatness. Resigning the sceptre to his son, he retired to the pleasant residence of Magnesia; but he retired to the society of saints and hermits. It was not till the fourth century of the Hegira, that the religion of Mahomet had been corrupted by an institution so adverse to his genius; but in the age of the crusades, the various orders of Dervises were multiplied by the example of the Christian, and even the Latin, monks. 14 The lord of nations submitted to fast, and pray, and turn round 141 in endless rotation with the fanatics, who mistook the giddiness of the head for the illumination of the spirit. 15 But he was soon awakened from his dreams of enthusiasm by the Hungarian invasion; and his obedient son was the foremost to urge the public danger and the wishes of the people. Under the banner of their veteran leader, the Janizaries fought and conquered but he withdrew from the field of Varna, again to pray, to fast, and to turn round with his Magnesian brethren. These pious occupations were again interrupted by the danger of the state. A victorious army disdained the inexperience of their youthful ruler: the city of Adrianople was abandoned to rapine and slaughter; and the unanimous divan implored his presence to appease the tumult, and prevent the rebellion, of the Janizaries. At the well-known voice of their master, they trembled and obeyed; and the reluctant sultan was compelled to support his splendid servitude, till at the end of four years, he was relieved by the angel of death. Age or disease, misfortune or caprice, have tempted several princes to descend from the throne; and they have had leisure to repent of their irretrievable step. But Amurath alone, in the full liberty of choice, after the trial of empire and solitude, has repeated his preference of a private life.

But the most impressive aspect of Amurath's life and character is his double abdication of the Turkish throne; and if his motives weren't tainted by a mix of superstition, we would truly admire the royal philosopher, 13, who, at the age of forty, could see the emptiness of human glory. He handed the crown over to his son and retired to the beautiful home in Magnesia; however, he chose to live among saints and hermits. It wasn’t until the fourth century of the Hegira that Muhammad’s religion started to be distorted by an institution that was so contrary to his ideals; during the time of the crusades, the various orders of Dervishes multiplied by the influence of Christian and even Latin monks. 14 The ruler of the nations chose to fast, pray, and spin around 141 in endless circles with the zealots, who confused the dizziness of spinning with spiritual enlightenment. 15 But he was quickly brought back from his dreams of enthusiasm by the Hungarian invasion; and his compliant son was the first to highlight the public danger and the people’s desires. Under their experienced leader's banner, the Janizaries fought and won, but he stepped back from the battlefield at Varna, once again to pray, fast, and spin around with his Magnesian companions. These devout activities were once more interrupted by the state's peril. A victorious army showed no respect for their young ruler's inexperience: the city of Adrianople was left to looting and massacre; and the united council pleaded for his presence to calm the unrest and prevent rebellion among the Janizaries. At the well-known call of their master, they trembled and obeyed; and the reluctant sultan was forced to endure his lavish servitude until, four years later, he was freed by the angel of death. Age, illness, misfortune, or whim have driven several princes to leave the throne; and they’ve had the chance to regret their irreversible decision. But Amurath alone, with complete freedom of choice, after experiencing both empire and solitude, has repeated his desire for a private life.

13 (return)
[ Voltaire (Essai sur l’Histoire Générale, c. 89, p. 283, 284) admires le Philosophe Turc: would he have bestowed the same praise on a Christian prince for retiring to a monastery? In his way, Voltaire was a bigot, an intolerant bigot.]

13 (return)
[ Voltaire (Essay on General History, c. 89, p. 283, 284) admires the Turkish Philosopher: would he have given the same praise to a Christian prince for entering a monastery? In his own way, Voltaire was a bigot, an intolerant bigot.]

14 (return)
[ See the articles Dervische, Fakir, Nasser, Rohbaniat, in D’Herbelot’s Bibliothèque Orientale. Yet the subject is superficially treated from the Persian and Arabian writers. It is among the Turks that these orders have principally flourished.]

14 (return)
[ See the articles Dervish, Fakir, Nasser, Rohbaniat, in D’Herbelot’s Bibliothèque Orientale. However, the topic is only lightly covered by Persian and Arabian writers. These orders have primarily thrived among the Turks.]

141 (return)
[ Gibbon has fallen into a remarkable error. The unmonastic retreat of Amurath was that of an epicurean rather than of a dervis; more like that of Sardanapalus than of Charles the Fifth. Profane, not divine, love was its chief occupation: the only dance, that described by Horace as belonging to the country, motus doceri gaudet Ionicos. See Von Hammer note, p. 652.—M.]

141 (return)
[ Gibbon made a notable mistake. Amurath's unmonastic retreat was more about living indulgently than about being ascetic; it resembled Sardanapalus more than Charles the Fifth. Its main focus was on worldly, not spiritual, love: the only dance referenced was the one Horace associated with the region, motus doceri gaudet Ionicos. See Von Hammer note, p. 652.—M.]

15 (return)
[ Ricaut (in the Present State of the Ottoman Empire, p. 242—268) affords much information, which he drew from his personal conversation with the heads of the dervises, most of whom ascribed their origin to the time of Orchan. He does not mention the Zichid of Chalcondyles, (l. vii. p. 286,) among whom Amurath retired: the Seids of that author are the descendants of Mahomet.]

15 (return)
[ Ricaut (in the Present State of the Ottoman Empire, p. 242–268) provides a lot of information based on his personal conversations with the leaders of the dervishes, most of whom claimed their origins date back to the time of Orchan. He does not mention the Zichid of Chalcondyles (l. vii. p. 286), among whom Amurath took refuge: the Seids referenced by that author are the descendants of Muhammad.]

After the departure of his Greek brethren, Eugenius had not been unmindful of their temporal interest; and his tender regard for the Byzantine empire was animated by a just apprehension of the Turks, who approached, and might soon invade, the borders of Italy. But the spirit of the crusades had expired; and the coldness of the Franks was not less unreasonable than their headlong passion. In the eleventh century, a fanatic monk could precipitate Europe on Asia for the recovery of the holy sepulchre; but in the fifteenth, the most pressing motives of religion and policy were insufficient to unite the Latins in the defence of Christendom. Germany was an inexhaustible storehouse of men and arms: 16 but that complex and languid body required the impulse of a vigorous hand; and Frederic the Third was alike impotent in his personal character and his Imperial dignity. A long war had impaired the strength, without satiating the animosity, of France and England: 17 but Philip duke of Burgundy was a vain and magnificent prince; and he enjoyed, without danger or expense, the adventurous piety of his subjects, who sailed, in a gallant fleet, from the coast of Flanders to the Hellespont. The maritime republics of Venice and Genoa were less remote from the scene of action; and their hostile fleets were associated under the standard of St. Peter. The kingdoms of Hungary and Poland, which covered as it were the interior pale of the Latin church, were the most nearly concerned to oppose the progress of the Turks. Arms were the patrimony of the Scythians and Sarmatians; and these nations might appear equal to the contest, could they point, against the common foe, those swords that were so wantonly drawn in bloody and domestic quarrels. But the same spirit was adverse to concord and obedience: a poor country and a limited monarch are incapable of maintaining a standing force; and the loose bodies of Polish and Hungarian horse were not armed with the sentiments and weapons which, on some occasions, have given irresistible weight to the French chivalry. Yet, on this side, the designs of the Roman pontiff, and the eloquence of Cardinal Julian, his legate, were promoted by the circumstances of the times: 18 by the union of the two crowns on the head of Ladislaus, 19 a young and ambitious soldier; by the valor of a hero, whose name, the name of John Huniades, was already popular among the Christians, and formidable to the Turks. An endless treasure of pardons and indulgences was scattered by the legate; many private warriors of France and Germany enlisted under the holy banner; and the crusade derived some strength, or at least some reputation, from the new allies both of Europe and Asia. A fugitive despot of Servia exaggerated the distress and ardor of the Christians beyond the Danube, who would unanimously rise to vindicate their religion and liberty. The Greek emperor, 20 with a spirit unknown to his fathers, engaged to guard the Bosphorus, and to sally from Constantinople at the head of his national and mercenary troops. The sultan of Caramania 21 announced the retreat of Amurath, and a powerful diversion in the heart of Anatolia; and if the fleets of the West could occupy at the same moment the Straits of the Hellespont, the Ottoman monarchy would be dissevered and destroyed. Heaven and earth must rejoice in the perdition of the miscreants; and the legate, with prudent ambiguity, instilled the opinion of the invisible, perhaps the visible, aid of the Son of God, and his divine mother.

After the Greek brothers left, Eugenius remained aware of their worldly concerns; his deep care for the Byzantine Empire was fueled by a real fear of the Turks, who were nearing and could soon invade Italy's borders. However, the spirit of the crusades had faded; the indifference of the Franks was as unreasonable as their earlier reckless enthusiasm. In the eleventh century, a fanatic monk could launch Europe into Asia to reclaim the holy sepulchre, but by the fifteenth, even the strongest religious and political motivations weren't enough to unite the Latins to defend Christendom. Germany was a vast source of men and weapons: 16 but that complex and sluggish entity needed a strong leader to give it momentum; and Frederic the Third was weak both personally and in his Imperial role. A long war had drained the strength, without quenching the hatred, of France and England: 17 but Philip, duke of Burgundy, was a vain and ostentatious prince; he enjoyed the daring piety of his subjects without any risk or cost, as they sailed in a brave fleet from the Flanders coast to the Hellespont. The maritime republics of Venice and Genoa were closer to the action; their rival fleets came together under the banner of St. Peter. The kingdoms of Hungary and Poland, protecting the heart of the Latin church, were particularly motivated to resist the Turkish advance. The Scythians and Sarmatians had a long history of warfare; these nations could be a formidable force if they could unite their swords, typically drawn in bloodshed and internal strife, against a common enemy. Yet the same spirit was also a barrier to unity and loyalty: a poor nation and a weak monarch can't sustain a standing army; and the loose groups of Polish and Hungarian cavalry were not armed with the unity and weapons that at times have lent the French chivalry such incredible strength. Still, the plans of the Roman pontiff and the eloquence of Cardinal Julian, his envoy, gained traction from the circumstances of the time: 18 from the joining of the two crowns on the head of Ladislaus, 19 a young and ambitious warrior; from the bravery of a hero, John Huniades, whose name was already well-known among Christians and feared by the Turks. The legate distributed an endless treasure of pardons and indulgences; many individual fighters from France and Germany signed up under the holy banner; and the crusade gained some strength, or at least some prestige, from its new allies in Europe and Asia. A fleeing despot from Serbia exaggerated the plight and enthusiasm of the Christians beyond the Danube, claiming they would rise together to defend their faith and freedom. The Greek emperor, 20 with a spirit not seen in his ancestors, pledged to protect the Bosphorus and to lead his national and mercenary troops out of Constantinople. The Sultan of Caramania 21 announced the retreat of Amurath, providing a strong distraction in the heart of Anatolia; and if the fleets from the West could simultaneously control the Hellespont Strait, the Ottoman Empire would be divided and destroyed. Heaven and earth must rejoice at the downfall of the infidels; and the legate, with careful ambiguity, suggested the idea of the invisible, perhaps even visible, help of the Son of God and his divine mother.

16 (return)
[ In the year 1431, Germany raised 40,000 horse, men-at-arms, against the Hussites of Bohemia, (Lenfant, Hist. du Concile de Basle, tom. i. p. 318.) At the siege of Nuys, on the Rhine, in 1474, the princes, prelates, and cities, sent their respective quotas; and the bishop of Munster (qui n’est pas des plus grands) furnished 1400 horse, 6000 foot, all in green, with 1200 wagons. The united armies of the king of England and the duke of Burgundy scarcely equalled one third of this German host, (Mémoires de Philippe de Comines, l. iv. c. 2.) At present, six or seven hundred thousand men are maintained in constant pay and admirable discipline by the powers of Germany.]

16 (return)
[ In 1431, Germany raised 40,000 cavalry and armored soldiers to fight against the Hussites in Bohemia, (Lenfant, Hist. du Concile de Basle, tom. i. p. 318.) During the siege of Nuys on the Rhine in 1474, the princes, bishops, and cities sent their shares; the bishop of Munster (who isn't one of the most significant) provided 1,400 cavalry, 6,000 infantry, all dressed in green, along with 1,200 wagons. The combined armies of the king of England and the duke of Burgundy barely matched one-third of this German force, (Mémoires de Philippe de Comines, l. iv. c. 2.) Today, six to seven hundred thousand soldiers are kept on constant pay and disciplined training by the powers of Germany.]

17 (return)
[ It was not till the year 1444, that France and England could agree on a truce of some months. (See Rymer’s Fdera, and the chronicles of both nations.)]

17 (return)
[It wasn't until 1444 that France and England were able to come to an agreement on a truce for a few months. (See Rymer’s Fdera, and the chronicles of both nations.)]

18 (return)
[ In the Hungarian crusade, Spondanus (Annal. Ecclés. A.D. 1443, 1444) has been my leading guide. He has diligently read, and critically compared, the Greek and Turkish materials, the historians of Hungary, Poland, and the West. His narrative is perspicuous and where he can be free from a religious bias, the judgment of Spondanus is not contemptible.]

18 (return)
[ In the Hungarian crusade, Spondanus (Annal. Ecclés. A.D. 1443, 1444) has been my primary source. He has thoroughly examined and thoughtfully compared the Greek and Turkish resources, as well as the historians from Hungary, Poland, and the West. His account is clear, and when he is able to remain unbiased religiously, Spondanus's judgment is quite respectable.]

19 (return)
[ I have curtailed the harsh letter (Wladislaus) which most writers affix to his name, either in compliance with the Polish pronunciation, or to distinguish him from his rival the infant Ladislaus of Austria. Their competition for the crown of Hungary is described by Callimachus, (l. i. ii. p. 447—486,) Bonfinius, (Decad. iii. l. iv.,) Spondanus, and Lenfant.]

19 (return)
[ I have shortened the harsh letter (Wladislaus) that most writers attach to his name, either to match the Polish pronunciation or to differentiate him from his rival, the young Ladislaus of Austria. Their struggle for the crown of Hungary is depicted by Callimachus, (l. i. ii. p. 447—486,) Bonfinius, (Decad. iii. l. iv.,) Spondanus, and Lenfant.]

20 (return)
[ The Greek historians, Phranza, Chalcondyles, and Ducas, do not ascribe to their prince a very active part in this crusade, which he seems to have promoted by his wishes, and injured by his fears.]

20 (return)
[ The Greek historians, Phranza, Chalcondyles, and Ducas, don't give their prince much credit for actively participating in this crusade. It seems he pushed for it with his desires but hindered it with his fears.]

21 (return)
[ Cantemir (p. 88) ascribes to his policy the original plan, and transcribes his animating epistle to the king of Hungary. But the Mahometan powers are seldom it formed of the state of Christendom and the situation and correspondence of the knights of Rhodes must connect them with the sultan of Caramania.]

21 (return)
[ Cantemir (p. 88) attributes his policy to the original plan and copies his inspiring letter to the king of Hungary. However, the Muslim powers are rarely informed about the state of Christendom, and the situation and communication of the knights of Rhodes must link them to the sultan of Caramania.]

Of the Polish and Hungarian diets, a religious war was the unanimous cry; and Ladislaus, after passing the Danube, led an army of his confederate subjects as far as Sophia, the capital of the Bulgarian kingdom. In this expedition they obtained two signal victories, which were justly ascribed to the valor and conduct of Huniades. In the first, with a vanguard of ten thousand men, he surprised the Turkish camp; in the second, he vanquished and made prisoner the most renowned of their generals, who possessed the double advantage of ground and numbers. The approach of winter, and the natural and artificial obstacles of Mount Hæmus, arrested the progress of the hero, who measured a narrow interval of six days’ march from the foot of the mountains to the hostile towers of Adrianople, and the friendly capital of the Greek empire. The retreat was undisturbed; and the entrance into Buda was at once a military and religious triumph. An ecclesiastical procession was followed by the king and his warriors on foot: he nicely balanced the merits and rewards of the two nations; and the pride of conquest was blended with the humble temper of Christianity. Thirteen bashaws, nine standards, and four thousand captives, were unquestionable trophies; and as all were willing to believe, and none were present to contradict, the crusaders multiplied, with unblushing confidence, the myriads of Turks whom they had left on the field of battle. 22 The most solid proof, and the most salutary consequence, of victory, was a deputation from the divan to solicit peace, to restore Servia, to ransom the prisoners, and to evacuate the Hungarian frontier. By this treaty, the rational objects of the war were obtained: the king, the despot, and Huniades himself, in the diet of Segedin, were satisfied with public and private emolument; a truce of ten years was concluded; and the followers of Jesus and Mahomet, who swore on the Gospel and the Koran, attested the word of God as the guardian of truth and the avenger of perfidy. In the place of the Gospel, the Turkish ministers had proposed to substitute the Eucharist, the real presence of the Catholic deity; but the Christians refused to profane their holy mysteries; and a superstitious conscience is less forcibly bound by the spiritual energy, than by the outward and visible symbols of an oath. 23

Of the Polish and Hungarian diets, a religious war was everyone's rallying cry; and Ladislaus, after crossing the Danube, led an army of his supporting subjects all the way to Sofia, the capital of the Bulgarian kingdom. In this campaign, they achieved two significant victories, which were rightly credited to the bravery and strategy of Huniades. In the first battle, with a leading force of ten thousand men, he caught the Turkish camp off guard; in the second, he defeated and captured their most famous general, who had the advantage of both terrain and troop numbers. The arrival of winter and the natural and man-made challenges posed by Mount Hæmus halted the hero's advance, as he had covered just a narrow strip of six days' march from the base of the mountains to the enemy fortifications of Adrianople and the welcoming capital of the Greek empire. The retreat was unchallenged; and entering Buda was both a military and religious victory. An ecclesiastical procession was followed by the king and his warriors on foot: he carefully balanced the merits and rewards of the two nations; and the pride of victory was mixed with the humble spirit of Christianity. Thirteen bashaws, nine banners, and four thousand captives were undeniable trophies; and since everyone was eager to believe, and no one was there to dispute it, the crusaders confidently exaggerated the countless Turks they had left behind on the battlefield. 22 The most concrete proof, and the most beneficial outcome, of victory was a delegation from the divan seeking peace, restoring Servia, ransoming the prisoners, and clearing the Hungarian border. This treaty achieved the logical goals of the war: the king, the despot, and Huniades himself, at the diet of Segedin, were pleased with both public and personal rewards; a ten-year truce was established; and the followers of Jesus and Mahomet, who swore on the Gospel and the Koran, affirmed the word of God as the protector of truth and the punishers of betrayal. Instead of the Gospel, the Turkish ministers had suggested substituting the Eucharist, the real presence of the Catholic deity; but the Christians refused to desecrate their sacred mysteries; and a superstitious conscience is more strongly held by the physical and visible symbols of an oath than by its spiritual power. 23

22 (return)
[ In their letters to the emperor Frederic III. the Hungarians slay 80,000 Turks in one battle; but the modest Julian reduces the slaughter to 6000 or even 2000 infidels, (Æneas Sylvius in Europ. c. 5, and epist. 44, 81, apud Spondanum.)]

22 (return)
[ In their letters to Emperor Frederic III, the Hungarians claim to have killed 80,000 Turks in one battle; however, the modest Julian lowers the number to either 6,000 or even 2,000 non-believers, (Æneas Sylvius in Europ. c. 5, and epist. 44, 81, apud Spondanum.)]

23 (return)
[ See the origin of the Turkish war, and the first expedition of Ladislaus, in the vth and vith books of the iiid decad of Bonfinius, who, in his division and style, copies Livy with tolerable success Callimachus (l. ii p. 487—496) is still more pure and authentic.]

23 (return)
[ Check out the beginnings of the Turkish war and Ladislaus's first campaign in the 5th and 6th books of the 3rd decade of Bonfinius, who, in his division and style, mimics Livy with reasonable skill. Callimachus (l. ii p. 487—496) is even more accurate and genuine.]

During the whole transaction, the cardinal legate had observed a sullen silence, unwilling to approve, and unable to oppose, the consent of the king and people. But the diet was not dissolved before Julian was fortified by the welcome intelligence, that Anatolia was invaded by the Caramanian, and Thrace by the Greek emperor; that the fleets of Genoa, Venice, and Burgundy, were masters of the Hellespont; and that the allies, informed of the victory, and ignorant of the treaty, of Ladislaus, impatiently waited for the return of his victorious army. “And is it thus,” exclaimed the cardinal, 24 “that you will desert their expectations and your own fortune? It is to them, to your God, and your fellow-Christians, that you have pledged your faith; and that prior obligation annihilates a rash and sacrilegious oath to the enemies of Christ. His vicar on earth is the Roman pontiff; without whose sanction you can neither promise nor perform. In his name I absolve your perjury and sanctify your arms: follow my footsteps in the paths of glory and salvation; and if still ye have scruples, devolve on my head the punishment and the sin.” This mischievous casuistry was seconded by his respectable character, and the levity of popular assemblies: war was resolved, on the same spot where peace had so lately been sworn; and, in the execution of the treaty, the Turks were assaulted by the Christians; to whom, with some reason, they might apply the epithet of Infidels. The falsehood of Ladislaus to his word and oath was palliated by the religion of the times: the most perfect, or at least the most popular, excuse would have been the success of his arms and the deliverance of the Eastern church. But the same treaty which should have bound his conscience had diminished his strength. On the proclamation of the peace, the French and German volunteers departed with indignant murmurs: the Poles were exhausted by distant warfare, and perhaps disgusted with foreign command; and their palatines accepted the first license, and hastily retired to their provinces and castles. Even Hungary was divided by faction, or restrained by a laudable scruple; and the relics of the crusade that marched in the second expedition were reduced to an inadequate force of twenty thousand men. A Walachian chief, who joined the royal standard with his vassals, presumed to remark that their numbers did not exceed the hunting retinue that sometimes attended the sultan; and the gift of two horses of matchless speed might admonish Ladislaus of his secret foresight of the event. But the despot of Servia, after the restoration of his country and children, was tempted by the promise of new realms; and the inexperience of the king, the enthusiasm of the legate, and the martial presumption of Huniades himself, were persuaded that every obstacle must yield to the invincible virtue of the sword and the cross. After the passage of the Danube, two roads might lead to Constantinople and the Hellespont: the one direct, abrupt, and difficult through the mountains of Hæmus; the other more tedious and secure, over a level country, and along the shores of the Euxine; in which their flanks, according to the Scythian discipline, might always be covered by a movable fortification of wagons. The latter was judiciously preferred: the Catholics marched through the plains of Bulgaria, burning, with wanton cruelty, the churches and villages of the Christian natives; and their last station was at Warna, near the sea-shore; on which the defeat and death of Ladislaus have bestowed a memorable name. 25

During the entire process, the cardinal legate had kept a gloomy silence, neither willing to support nor able to oppose the agreement of the king and the people. However, the assembly wasn’t concluded before Julian received encouraging news: Anatolia was under attack from the Caramanian, and Thrace from the Greek emperor; the fleets of Genoa, Venice, and Burgundy controlled the Hellespont; and the allies, aware of the victory but unaware of Ladislaus's treaty, eagerly awaited the return of his triumphant army. “And is this how,” exclaimed the cardinal, 24 “you will betray their hopes and your own fortune? You have pledged your loyalty to them, to your God, and your fellow Christians; that prior commitment overrides a foolish and sacrilegious promise to the enemies of Christ. His representative on earth is the Roman pontiff; without his approval, you cannot vow or act. In his name, I absolve your betrayal and bless your efforts: follow my lead towards glory and salvation; and if you still have doubts, let the punishment and sin fall on me.” This cunning reasoning was backed by his respected reputation and the carefree nature of public assemblies: war was agreed upon in the same place where peace had recently been sworn; and during the execution of the treaty, the Turks were attacked by the Christians; to whom, with some justification, the term Infidels might be applied. Ladislaus’s betrayal of his word and oath was excused by the religious standards of the time: the most acceptable, or at least the most widely accepted, justification would have been the success of his military efforts and the rescue of the Eastern church. However, the same treaty that should have bound his conscience had weakened his power. When the peace was announced, the French and German volunteers left with angry murmurs, the Poles were worn out from far-off battles, and perhaps fed up with foreign leadership; their regional leaders quickly took leave and hurried back to their provinces and castles. Even Hungary was split by internal conflict or held back by a commendable hesitation; the remnants of the crusade that marched in the second expedition were reduced to an inadequate force of twenty thousand men. A Walachian chief, who joined the royal banner with his followers, dared to comment that their numbers were not greater than the hunting party that sometimes accompanied the sultan; and the gift of two remarkably fast horses might serve as a warning to Ladislaus of the looming outcome. Yet the ruler of Servia, after securing his country and family, was tempted by the promise of new lands; and the king’s inexperience, the legate’s zeal, and Huniades’s boldness led them to believe that every barrier would fall to the unbeatable power of the sword and the cross. After crossing the Danube, there were two routes to Constantinople and the Hellespont: one was direct, steep, and challenging through the Hæmus mountains; the other was longer but safer, over flat terrain, and along the coast of the Euxine, where their sides could always be protected by a mobile fortress of wagons, following Scythian tactics. The latter was wisely chosen: the Catholics marched through the plains of Bulgaria, cruelly destroying the churches and villages of the Christian locals; their final position was at Warna, near the coast, which has since been marked by the defeat and death of Ladislaus. 25

24 (return)
[ I do not pretend to warrant the literal accuracy of Julian’s speech, which is variously worded by Callimachus, (l. iii. p. 505—507,) Bonfinius, (dec. iii. l. vi. p. 457, 458,) and other historians, who might indulge their own eloquence, while they represent one of the orators of the age. But they all agree in the advice and arguments for perjury, which in the field of controversy are fiercely attacked by the Protestants, and feebly defended by the Catholics. The latter are discouraged by the misfortune of Warna.]

24 (return)
[ I don’t claim to guarantee the exact wording of Julian’s speech, as it is phrased differently by Callimachus, (l. iii. p. 505—507,) Bonfinius, (dec. iii. l. vi. p. 457, 458,) and other historians, who may have added their own flair while depicting one of the orators of the time. However, they all agree on the advice and arguments for perjury, which are strongly criticized by the Protestants and poorly defended by the Catholics. The latter are disheartened by the setback at Warna.]

25 (return)
[ Warna, under the Grecian name of Odessus, was a colony of the Milesians, which they denominated from the hero Ulysses, (Cellarius, tom. i. p. 374. D’Anville, tom. i. p. 312.) According to Arrian’s Periplus of the Euxine, (p. 24, 25, in the first volume of Hudson’s Geographers,) it was situate 1740 stadia, or furlongs, from the mouth of the Danube, 2140 from Byzantium, and 360 to the north of a ridge of promontory of Mount Hæmus, which advances into the sea.]

25 (return)
Warna, known by the Grecian name of Odessus, was a colony of the Milesians, named after the hero Ulysses, (Cellarius, tom. i. p. 374. D’Anville, tom. i. p. 312.) According to Arrian’s Periplus of the Euxine, (p. 24, 25, in the first volume of Hudson’s Geographers,) it was located 1740 stadia, or furlongs, from the mouth of the Danube, 2140 from Byzantium, and 360 to the north of a ridge of promontory of Mount Hæmus, which juts into the sea.

Chapter LXVII: Schism Of The Greeks And Latins.—Part II.

It was on this fatal spot, that, instead of finding a confederate fleet to second their operations, they were alarmed by the approach of Amurath himself, who had issued from his Magnesian solitude, and transported the forces of Asia to the defence of Europe. According to some writers, the Greek emperor had been awed, or seduced, to grant the passage of the Bosphorus; and an indelible stain of corruption is fixed on the Genoese, or the pope’s nephew, the Catholic admiral, whose mercenary connivance betrayed the guard of the Hellespont. From Adrianople, the sultan advanced by hasty marches, at the head of sixty thousand men; and when the cardinal, and Huniades, had taken a nearer survey of the numbers and order of the Turks, these ardent warriors proposed the tardy and impracticable measure of a retreat. The king alone was resolved to conquer or die; and his resolution had almost been crowned with a glorious and salutary victory. The princes were opposite to each other in the centre; and the Beglerbegs, or generals of Anatolia and Romania, commanded on the right and left, against the adverse divisions of the despot and Huniades. The Turkish wings were broken on the first onset: but the advantage was fatal; and the rash victors, in the heat of the pursuit, were carried away far from the annoyance of the enemy, or the support of their friends. When Amurath beheld the flight of his squadrons, he despaired of his fortune and that of the empire: a veteran Janizary seized his horse’s bridle; and he had magnanimity to pardon and reward the soldier who dared to perceive the terror, and arrest the flight, of his sovereign. A copy of the treaty, the monument of Christian perfidy, had been displayed in the front of battle; and it is said, that the sultan in his distress, lifting his eyes and his hands to heaven, implored the protection of the God of truth; and called on the prophet Jesus himself to avenge the impious mockery of his name and religion. 26 With inferior numbers and disordered ranks, the king of Hungary rushed forward in the confidence of victory, till his career was stopped by the impenetrable phalanx of the Janizaries. If we may credit the Ottoman annals, his horse was pierced by the javelin of Amurath; 27 he fell among the spears of the infantry; and a Turkish soldier proclaimed with a loud voice, “Hungarians, behold the head of your king!” The death of Ladislaus was the signal of their defeat. On his return from an intemperate pursuit, Huniades deplored his error, and the public loss; he strove to rescue the royal body, till he was overwhelmed by the tumultuous crowd of the victors and vanquished; and the last efforts of his courage and conduct were exerted to save the remnant of his Walachian cavalry. Ten thousand Christians were slain in the disastrous battle of Warna: the loss of the Turks, more considerable in numbers, bore a smaller proportion to their total strength; yet the philosophic sultan was not ashamed to confess, that his ruin must be the consequence of a second and similar victory. 271 At his command a column was erected on the spot where Ladislaus had fallen; but the modest inscription, instead of accusing the rashness, recorded the valor, and bewailed the misfortune, of the Hungarian youth. 28

It was at this fateful location that, instead of finding a supporting fleet to assist their efforts, they were startled by the arrival of Amurath himself, who had emerged from his quiet retreat in Magnesia and brought the forces of Asia to defend Europe. According to some accounts, the Greek emperor had been intimidated or bribed into allowing passage across the Bosphorus; and an undeniable mark of corruption is attached to the Genoese or to the pope’s nephew, the Catholic admiral, whose selfish complicity undermined the defense of the Hellespont. From Adrianople, the sultan advanced rapidly, leading sixty thousand men; and when the cardinal and Huniades assessed the numbers and formation of the Turks more closely, these eager warriors suggested the slow and impractical idea of retreating. Only the king was determined to conquer or die; and his decision almost led to a glorious and beneficial victory. The princes faced each other in the center; and the Beglerbegs, or generals of Anatolia and Romania, commanded on the right and left against the opposing forces of the despot and Huniades. The Turkish flanks were broken in the first assault: but the advantage turned deadly, and the overzealous victors, caught up in the heat of the chase, strayed far from both the threat of the enemy and the support of their allies. When Amurath saw his troops retreating, he lost hope for his fortune and that of the empire: a veteran Janizary grabbed his horse’s bridle; and he had the bravery to forgive and reward the soldier who dared to acknowledge the terror and stop the retreat of his sovereign. A copy of the treaty, the mark of Christian treachery, had been displayed at the front of the battle; and it is said that the sultan, in his distress, raised his eyes and hands to heaven, asking for the protection of the God of truth; and called on the prophet Jesus himself to avenge the impious mockery of his name and faith. 26 With fewer numbers and disordered ranks, the king of Hungary charged forward in the confidence of victory, until his advance was halted by the impenetrable formation of the Janizaries. If we can trust the Ottoman records, his horse was struck by Amurath’s javelin; 27 he fell among the spear-wielding infantry; and a Turkish soldier shouted, “Hungarians, behold the head of your king!” The death of Ladislaus marked the beginning of their defeat. On his way back from a reckless chase, Huniades regretted his mistake and the public loss; he tried to recover the royal body until he was overwhelmed by the chaotic crowd of victors and the defeated; and he put forth his last efforts in courage and strategy to save the remainder of his Walachian cavalry. Ten thousand Christians were killed in the disastrous battle of Warna: the Turkish losses, larger in numbers, were a smaller percentage of their total strength; yet the philosophical sultan was not ashamed to admit that his ruin would result from a second and similar victory. 271 At his command, a monument was erected at the site where Ladislaus had fallen; but the humble inscription, instead of blaming the recklessness, honored the bravery and mourned the misfortune of the Hungarian youth. 28

26 (return)
[ Some Christian writers affirm, that he drew from his bosom the host or wafer on which the treaty had not been sworn. The Moslems suppose, with more simplicity, an appeal to God and his prophet Jesus, which is likewise insinuated by Callimachus, (l. iii. p. 516. Spondan. A.D. 1444, No. 8.)]

26 (return)
[Some Christian writers claim that he took out the host or wafer on which the agreement had not been sworn. The Muslims, with more straightforwardness, believe there was an appeal to God and his prophet Jesus, a notion that is also hinted at by Callimachus, (l. iii. p. 516. Spondan. A.D. 1444, No. 8.)]

27 (return)
[ A critic will always distrust these spolia opima of a victorious general, so difficult for valor to obtain, so easy for flattery to invent, (Cantemir, p. 90, 91.) Callimachus (l. iii. p. 517) more simply and probably affirms, supervenitibus Janizaris, telorum multitudine, non jam confossus est, quam obrutus.]

27 (return)
[ A critic will always doubt these spolia opima of a victorious general—hard to win through bravery, but so easy for flattery to make up. (Cantemir, p. 90, 91.) Callimachus (l. iii. p. 517) states more simply and likely that with the Janissaries arriving, he was not so much pierced by their weapons as overwhelmed.]

271 (return)
[ Compare Von Hammer, p. 463.—M.]

271 (return)
[ Compare Von Hammer, p. 463.—M.]

28 (return)
[ Besides some valuable hints from Æneas Sylvius, which are diligently collected by Spondanus, our best authorities are three historians of the xvth century, Philippus Callimachus, (de Rebus a Vladislao Polonorum atque Hungarorum Rege gestis, libri iii. in Bel. Script. Rerum Hungaricarum, tom. i. p. 433—518,) Bonfinius, (decad. iii. l. v. p. 460—467,) and Chalcondyles, (l. vii. p. 165—179.) The two first were Italians, but they passed their lives in Poland and Hungary, (Fabric. Bibliot. Latin. Med. et Infimæ Ætatis, tom. i. p. 324. Vossius, de Hist. Latin. l. iii. c. 8, 11. Bayle, Dictionnaire, Bonfinius.) A small tract of Fælix Petancius, chancellor of Segnia, (ad calcem Cuspinian. de Cæsaribus, p. 716—722,) represents the theatre of the war in the xvth century.]

28 (return)
[ In addition to some valuable insights from Æneas Sylvius, which Spondanus has carefully compiled, our top sources are three historians from the 15th century: Philippus Callimachus, (on the events involving King Vladislaus of Poland and Hungary, books iii. in Bel. Script. Rerum Hungaricarum, vol. i. pp. 433—518,) Bonfinius, (decad. iii. l. v. pp. 460—467,) and Chalcondyles, (l. vii. pp. 165—179.) The first two were Italians, but they spent their lives in Poland and Hungary, (Fabric. Bibliot. Latin. Med. et Infimæ Ætatis, vol. i. p. 324. Vossius, de Hist. Latin. l. iii. c. 8, 11. Bayle, Dictionnaire, Bonfinius.) A short piece by Fælix Petancius, chancellor of Segnia, (at the end of Cuspinian. de Cæsaribus, pp. 716—722,) reflects the battlefield during the 15th century.]

Before I lose sight of the field of Warna, I am tempted to pause on the character and story of two principal actors, the cardinal Julian and John Huniades. Julian 29 Cæsarini was born of a noble family of Rome: his studies had embraced both the Latin and Greek learning, both the sciences of divinity and law; and his versatile genius was equally adapted to the schools, the camp, and the court. No sooner had he been invested with the Roman purple, than he was sent into Germany to arm the empire against the rebels and heretics of Bohemia. The spirit of persecution is unworthy of a Christian; the military profession ill becomes a priest; but the former is excused by the times; and the latter was ennobled by the courage of Julian, who stood dauntless and alone in the disgraceful flight of the German host. As the pope’s legate, he opened the council of Basil; but the president soon appeared the most strenuous champion of ecclesiastical freedom; and an opposition of seven years was conducted by his ability and zeal. After promoting the strongest measures against the authority and person of Eugenius, some secret motive of interest or conscience engaged him to desert on a sudden the popular party. The cardinal withdrew himself from Basil to Ferrara; and, in the debates of the Greeks and Latins, the two nations admired the dexterity of his arguments and the depth of his theological erudition. 30 In his Hungarian embassy, we have already seen the mischievous effects of his sophistry and eloquence, of which Julian himself was the first victim. The cardinal, who performed the duties of a priest and a soldier, was lost in the defeat of Warna. The circumstances of his death are variously related; but it is believed, that a weighty encumbrance of gold impeded his flight, and tempted the cruel avarice of some Christian fugitives.

Before I lose sight of the battlefield at Warna, I want to take a moment to focus on the characters and stories of two main figures: Cardinal Julian and John Huniades. Julian 29 Cæsarini was born into a noble family in Rome. He studied both Latin and Greek, along with theology and law, and his adaptable mind was suited for academia, warfare, and diplomacy. As soon as he was given the title of cardinal, he was sent to Germany to prepare the empire against the rebels and heretics from Bohemia. The spirit of persecution is unbecoming of a Christian, and a military career is not fitting for a priest; however, the former can be excused by the historical context, while the latter was elevated by Julian's bravery as he stood firm and alone during the disgraceful retreat of the German army. As the pope's legate, he opened the Council of Basel, but the president quickly emerged as the strongest advocate for ecclesiastical freedom, leading to a seven-year opposition driven by Julian's skill and dedication. After pushing for significant actions against the authority of Eugenius, he suddenly abandoned the popular party for some hidden motive of personal interest or conscience. The cardinal moved from Basel to Ferrara, where both the Greeks and Latins admired his skillful arguments and profound theological knowledge during their debates. 30 In his mission to Hungary, we have already seen the harmful impact of his clever reasoning and persuasive speaking, of which Julian himself was the first victim. The cardinal, who fulfilled the roles of both priest and soldier, was lost in the defeat at Warna. The details of his death vary, but it is believed that a heavy burden of gold hindered his escape and lured in the cruel greed of some Christian fugitives.

29 (return)
[ M. Lenfant has described the origin (Hist. du Concile de Basle, tom. i. p. 247, &c.) and Bohemian campaign (p. 315, &c.) of Cardinal Julian. His services at Basil and Ferrara, and his unfortunate end, are occasionally related by Spondanus, and the continuator of Fleury.]

29 (return)
[M. Lenfant has detailed the background (Hist. du Concile de Basle, tom. i. p. 247, &c.) and the Bohemian campaign (p. 315, &c.) of Cardinal Julian. His contributions at Basel and Ferrara, along with his tragic conclusion, are sometimes recounted by Spondanus and the continuator of Fleury.]

30 (return)
[ Syropulus honorably praises the talent of an enemy, (p. 117:) toiauta tina eipen o IoulianoV peplatusmenwV agan kai logikwV, kai met episthmhV kai deinothtoV 'RhtprikhV.]

30 (return)
[ Syropulus respectfully acknowledges the skill of an opponent, (p. 117:) he mentioned certain things about Julian being extremely gifted and reasonable, along with knowledge and expertise 'Rhetorically.']

From an humble, or at least a doubtful origin, the merit of John Huniades promoted him to the command of the Hungarian armies. His father was a Walachian, his mother a Greek: her unknown race might possibly ascend to the emperors of Constantinople; and the claims of the Walachians, with the surname of Corvinus, from the place of his nativity, might suggest a thin pretence for mingling his blood with the patricians of ancient Rome. 31 In his youth he served in the wars of Italy, and was retained, with twelve horsemen, by the bishop of Zagrab: the valor of the white knight 32 was soon conspicuous; he increased his fortunes by a noble and wealthy marriage; and in the defence of the Hungarian borders he won in the same year three battles against the Turks. By his influence, Ladislaus of Poland obtained the crown of Hungary; and the important service was rewarded by the title and office of Waivod of Transylvania. The first of Julian’s crusades added two Turkish laurels on his brow; and in the public distress the fatal errors of Warna were forgotten. During the absence and minority of Ladislaus of Austria, the titular king, Huniades was elected supreme captain and governor of Hungary; and if envy at first was silenced by terror, a reign of twelve years supposes the arts of policy as well as of war. Yet the idea of a consummate general is not delineated in his campaigns; the white knight fought with the hand rather than the head, as the chief of desultory Barbarians, who attack without fear and fly without shame; and his military life is composed of a romantic alternative of victories and escapes. By the Turks, who employed his name to frighten their perverse children, he was corruptly denominated Jancus Lain, or the Wicked: their hatred is the proof of their esteem; the kingdom which he guarded was inaccessible to their arms; and they felt him most daring and formidable, when they fondly believed the captain and his country irrecoverably lost. Instead of confining himself to a defensive war, four years after the defeat of Warna he again penetrated into the heart of Bulgaria, and in the plain of Cossova, sustained, till the third day, the shock of the Ottoman army, four times more numerous than his own. As he fled alone through the woods of Walachia, the hero was surprised by two robbers; but while they disputed a gold chain that hung at his neck, he recovered his sword, slew the one, terrified the other, and, after new perils of captivity or death, consoled by his presence an afflicted kingdom. But the last and most glorious action of his life was the defence of Belgrade against the powers of Mahomet the Second in person. After a siege of forty days, the Turks, who had already entered the town, were compelled to retreat; and the joyful nations celebrated Huniades and Belgrade as the bulwarks of Christendom. 33 About a month after this great deliverance, the champion expired; and his most splendid epitaph is the regret of the Ottoman prince, who sighed that he could no longer hope for revenge against the single antagonist who had triumphed over his arms. On the first vacancy of the throne, Matthias Corvinus, a youth of eighteen years of age, was elected and crowned by the grateful Hungarians. His reign was prosperous and long: Matthias aspired to the glory of a conqueror and a saint: but his purest merit is the encouragement of learning; and the Latin orators and historians, who were invited from Italy by the son, have shed the lustre of their eloquence on the father’s character. 34

From a humble, or at least uncertain, background, John Huniades earned his way to command the Hungarian armies. His father was a Walachian, and his mother was Greek: her unknown lineage might trace back to the emperors of Constantinople, and the Walachians, with the surname Corvinus from his birthplace, might suggest a weak claim to nobility linked to the patricians of ancient Rome. 31 In his youth, he fought in the wars in Italy and was retained by the bishop of Zagrab along with twelve horsemen: the bravery of the white knight 32 quickly became apparent; he enhanced his fortune through a noble and wealthy marriage, and in defending the Hungarian borders, he achieved three victories against the Turks in the same year. Through his influence, Ladislaus of Poland gained the crown of Hungary, a crucial service that earned Huniades the title and role of Waivod of Transylvania. The first of Julian’s crusades added two Turkish laurels to his achievements; and in the wake of public distress, the disastrous mistakes of Warna were forgotten. During the absence and minority of Ladislaus of Austria, the titular king, Huniades was elected as the supreme captain and governor of Hungary; and although envy was initially silenced by fear, his twelve-year reign required both political skill and military prowess. However, the concept of a perfect general is not reflected in his campaigns; the white knight fought more with brute force than strategy, much like the leader of unruly Barbarians who attack fearlessly and retreat shamefully; his military career was a dramatic mix of victories and escapes. The Turks, who used his name to frighten their disobedient children, referred to him in a corrupt manner as Jancus Lain, or the Wicked: their hatred proves their respect; the kingdom he defended was impervious to their might; and they regarded him as most daring and formidable when they foolishly thought the captain and his land were lost for good. Rather than stick to a defensive strategy, four years after the defeat at Warna, he ventured deep into Bulgaria again, and at the plain of Cossova, he faced the Ottoman army, which was four times larger than his own, for three days. While escaping through the woods of Walachia alone, the hero was ambushed by two robbers; but while they argued over a gold chain he wore around his neck, he managed to grab his sword, killed one of them, scared off the other, and after facing more dangers of captivity or death, reassured a distressed kingdom with his presence. Yet the final and most notable act of his life was defending Belgrade against the forces of Mahomet the Second himself. After a forty-day siege, the Turks, who had already entered the city, were forced to pull back; and the joyful nations hailed Huniades and Belgrade as the protectors of Christendom. 33 About a month after this significant victory, the champion passed away; and his most glorious tribute is the sorrow of the Ottoman prince, who lamented that he could no longer anticipate revenge against the one adversary who had conquered his forces. Upon the first vacancy of the throne, Matthias Corvinus, an eighteen-year-old, was elected and crowned by the grateful Hungarians. His reign was prosperous and lengthy: Matthias sought the honor of a conqueror and a saint; but his greatest contribution was promoting education, and the Latin orators and historians, invited from Italy by the son, illuminated the father’s character with their eloquence. 34

31 (return)
[ See Bonfinius, decad. iii. l. iv. p. 423. Could the Italian historian pronounce, or the king of Hungary hear, without a blush, the absurd flattery which confounded the name of a Walachian village with the casual, though glorious, epithet of a single branch of the Valerian family at Rome?]

31 (return)
[ See Bonfinius, decad. iii. l. iv. p. 423. Could the Italian historian say, or the king of Hungary hear, without feeling embarrassed, the ridiculous flattery that mixed up the name of a Wallachian village with the random, yet impressive, title of a single branch of the Valerian family in Rome?]

32 (return)
[ Philip de Comines, (Mémoires, l. vi. c. 13,) from the tradition of the times, mentions him with high encomiums, but under the whimsical name of the Chevalier Blanc de Valaigne, (Valachia.) The Greek Chalcondyles, and the Turkish annals of Leunclavius, presume to accuse his fidelity or valor.]

32 (return)
[ Philip de Comines, (Mémoires, l. vi. c. 13,) from the customs of the time, speaks highly of him but refers to him with the quirky title of the White Knight of Valaigne (Valachia). The Greek Chalcondyles and the Turkish records of Leunclavius, however, dare to question his loyalty or bravery.]

33 (return)
[ See Bonfinius (decad. iii. l. viii. p. 492) and Spondanus, (A.D. 456, No. 1—7.) Huniades shared the glory of the defence of Belgrade with Capistran, a Franciscan friar; and in their respective narratives, neither the saint nor the hero condescend to take notice of his rival’s merit.]

33 (return)
[ See Bonfinius (decad. iii. l. viii. p. 492) and Spondanus, (A.D. 456, No. 1—7.) Huniades shared the honor of defending Belgrade with Capistran, a Franciscan friar; and in their respective accounts, neither the saint nor the hero acknowledges the other's achievements.]

34 (return)
[ See Bonfinius, decad. iii. l. viii.—decad. iv. l. viii. The observations of Spondanus on the life and character of Matthias Corvinus are curious and critical, (A.D. 1464, No. 1, 1475, No. 6, 1476, No. 14—16, 1490, No. 4, 5.) Italian fame was the object of his vanity. His actions are celebrated in the Epitome Rerum Hungaricarum (p. 322—412) of Peter Ranzanus, a Sicilian. His wise and facetious sayings are registered by Galestus Martius of Narni, (528—568,) and we have a particular narrative of his wedding and coronation. These three tracts are all contained in the first vol. of Bel’s Scriptores Rerum Hungaricarum.]

34 (return)
[ See Bonfinius, decad. iii. l. viii.—decad. iv. l. viii. Spondanus’s observations on the life and character of Matthias Corvinus are interesting and insightful, (A.D. 1464, No. 1, 1475, No. 6, 1476, No. 14—16, 1490, No. 4, 5.) His vanity was centered around his Italian reputation. His deeds are highlighted in the Epitome Rerum Hungaricarum (p. 322—412) by Peter Ranzanus, a Sicilian. His wise and witty sayings are recorded by Galestus Martius of Narni, (528—568,) and we have a detailed account of his wedding and coronation. All three of these texts are included in the first volume of Bel’s Scriptores Rerum Hungaricarum.]

In the list of heroes, John Huniades and Scanderbeg are commonly associated; 35 and they are both entitled to our notice, since their occupation of the Ottoman arms delayed the ruin of the Greek empire. John Castriot, the father of Scanderbeg, 36 was the hereditary prince of a small district of Epirus or Albania, between the mountains and the Adriatic Sea. Unable to contend with the sultan’s power, Castriot submitted to the hard conditions of peace and tribute: he delivered his four sons as the pledges of his fidelity; and the Christian youths, after receiving the mark of circumcision, were instructed in the Mahometan religion, and trained in the arms and arts of Turkish policy. 37 The three elder brothers were confounded in the crowd of slaves; and the poison to which their deaths are ascribed cannot be verified or disproved by any positive evidence. Yet the suspicion is in a great measure removed by the kind and paternal treatment of George Castriot, the fourth brother, who, from his tender youth, displayed the strength and spirit of a soldier. The successive overthrow of a Tartar and two Persians, who carried a proud defiance to the Turkish court, recommended him to the favor of Amurath, and his Turkish appellation of Scanderbeg, (Iskender beg,) or the lord Alexander, is an indelible memorial of his glory and servitude. His father’s principality was reduced into a province; but the loss was compensated by the rank and title of Sanjiak, a command of five thousand horse, and the prospect of the first dignities of the empire. He served with honor in the wars of Europe and Asia; and we may smile at the art or credulity of the historian, who supposes, that in every encounter he spared the Christians, while he fell with a thundering arm on his Mussulman foes. The glory of Huniades is without reproach: he fought in the defence of his religion and country; but the enemies who applaud the patriot, have branded his rival with the name of traitor and apostate. In the eyes of the Christian, the rebellion of Scanderbeg is justified by his father’s wrongs, the ambiguous death of his three brothers, his own degradation, and the slavery of his country; and they adore the generous, though tardy, zeal, with which he asserted the faith and independence of his ancestors. But he had imbibed from his ninth year the doctrines of the Koran; he was ignorant of the Gospel; the religion of a soldier is determined by authority and habit; nor is it easy to conceive what new illumination at the age of forty 38 could be poured into his soul. His motives would be less exposed to the suspicion of interest or revenge, had he broken his chain from the moment that he was sensible of its weight: but a long oblivion had surely impaired his original right; and every year of obedience and reward had cemented the mutual bond of the sultan and his subject. If Scanderbeg had long harbored the belief of Christianity and the intention of revolt, a worthy mind must condemn the base dissimulation, that could serve only to betray, that could promise only to be forsworn, that could actively join in the temporal and spiritual perdition of so many thousands of his unhappy brethren. Shall we praise a secret correspondence with Huniades, while he commanded the vanguard of the Turkish army? shall we excuse the desertion of his standard, a treacherous desertion which abandoned the victory to the enemies of his benefactor? In the confusion of a defeat, the eye of Scanderbeg was fixed on the Reis Effendi or principal secretary: with the dagger at his breast, he extorted a firman or patent for the government of Albania; and the murder of the guiltless scribe and his train prevented the consequences of an immediate discovery. With some bold companions, to whom he had revealed his design he escaped in the night, by rapid marches, from the field or battle to his paternal mountains. The gates of Croya were opened to the royal mandate; and no sooner did he command the fortress, than George Castriot dropped the mask of dissimulation; abjured the prophet and the sultan, and proclaimed himself the avenger of his family and country. The names of religion and liberty provoked a general revolt: the Albanians, a martial race, were unanimous to live and die with their hereditary prince; and the Ottoman garrisons were indulged in the choice of martyrdom or baptism. In the assembly of the states of Epirus, Scanderbeg was elected general of the Turkish war; and each of the allies engaged to furnish his respective proportion of men and money. From these contributions, from his patrimonial estate, and from the valuable salt-pits of Selina, he drew an annual revenue of two hundred thousand ducats; 39 and the entire sum, exempt from the demands of luxury, was strictly appropriated to the public use. His manners were popular; but his discipline was severe; and every superfluous vice was banished from his camp: his example strengthened his command; and under his conduct, the Albanians were invincible in their own opinion and that of their enemies. The bravest adventurers of France and Germany were allured by his fame and retained in his service: his standing militia consisted of eight thousand horse and seven thousand foot; the horses were small, the men were active; but he viewed with a discerning eye the difficulties and resources of the mountains; and, at the blaze of the beacons, the whole nation was distributed in the strongest posts. With such unequal arms Scanderbeg resisted twenty-three years the powers of the Ottoman empire; and two conquerors, Amurath the Second, and his greater son, were repeatedly baffled by a rebel, whom they pursued with seeming contempt and implacable resentment. At the head of sixty thousand horse and forty thousand Janizaries, Amurath entered Albania: he might ravage the open country, occupy the defenceless towns, convert the churches into mosques, circumcise the Christian youths, and punish with death his adult and obstinate captives: but the conquests of the sultan were confined to the petty fortress of Sfetigrade; and the garrison, invincible to his arms, was oppressed by a paltry artifice and a superstitious scruple. 40 Amurath retired with shame and loss from the walls of Croya, the castle and residence of the Castriots; the march, the siege, the retreat, were harassed by a vexatious, and almost invisible, adversary; 41 and the disappointment might tend to imbitter, perhaps to shorten, the last days of the sultan. 42 In the fulness of conquest, Mahomet the Second still felt at his bosom this domestic thorn: his lieutenants were permitted to negotiate a truce; and the Albanian prince may justly be praised as a firm and able champion of his national independence. The enthusiasm of chivalry and religion has ranked him with the names of Alexander and Pyrrhus; nor would they blush to acknowledge their intrepid countryman: but his narrow dominion, and slender powers, must leave him at an humble distance below the heroes of antiquity, who triumphed over the East and the Roman legions. His splendid achievements, the bashaws whom he encountered, the armies that he discomfited, and the three thousand Turks who were slain by his single hand, must be weighed in the scales of suspicious criticism. Against an illiterate enemy, and in the dark solitude of Epirus, his partial biographers may safely indulge the latitude of romance: but their fictions are exposed by the light of Italian history; and they afford a strong presumption against their own truth, by a fabulous tale of his exploits, when he passed the Adriatic with eight hundred horse to the succor of the king of Naples. 43 Without disparagement to his fame, they might have owned, that he was finally oppressed by the Ottoman powers: in his extreme danger he applied to Pope Pius the Second for a refuge in the ecclesiastical state; and his resources were almost exhausted, since Scanderbeg died a fugitive at Lissus, on the Venetian territory. 44 His sepulchre was soon violated by the Turkish conquerors; but the Janizaries, who wore his bones enchased in a bracelet, declared by this superstitious amulet their involuntary reverence for his valor. The instant ruin of his country may redound to the hero’s glory; yet, had he balanced the consequences of submission and resistance, a patriot perhaps would have declined the unequal contest which must depend on the life and genius of one man. Scanderbeg might indeed be supported by the rational, though fallacious, hope, that the pope, the king of Naples, and the Venetian republic, would join in the defence of a free and Christian people, who guarded the sea-coast of the Adriatic, and the narrow passage from Greece to Italy. His infant son was saved from the national shipwreck; the Castriots 45 were invested with a Neapolitan dukedom, and their blood continues to flow in the noblest families of the realm. A colony of Albanian fugitives obtained a settlement in Calabria, and they preserve at this day the language and manners of their ancestors. 46

In the list of heroes, John Huniades and Scanderbeg are often mentioned together; 35 and they both deserve our attention, as their opposition to the Ottoman forces delayed the downfall of the Greek empire. John Castriot, Scanderbeg's father, 36 was the hereditary prince of a small region in Epirus or Albania, situated between the mountains and the Adriatic Sea. Unable to stand up to the sultan’s power, Castriot agreed to harsh terms of peace and tribute: he gave up his four sons as guarantees of his loyalty; and the Christian youths, after undergoing circumcision, were educated in the Islamic faith and trained in Turkish military tactics. 37 The three older brothers were lost among the crowd of slaves; and the poison associated with their deaths cannot be confirmed or denied by any definitive evidence. However, much of the doubt is alleviated by the kind and paternal treatment of George Castriot, the fourth brother, who, from a young age, showed the strength and spirit of a soldier. His victories over a Tartar and two Persians, who openly defied the Turkish court, earned him the favor of Amurath, and his Turkish name, Scanderbeg, (Iskender beg), or lord Alexander, is an unforgettable reminder of his glory and servitude. His father's principality was transformed into a province; however, this loss was compensated by the rank and title of Sanjiak, a command of five thousand cavalry, along with the prospect of obtaining the highest honors of the empire. He served with honor in wars across Europe and Asia; and we can chuckle at the historian's belief that in every battle, he spared the Christians while fiercely attacking his Muslim enemies. Huniades’ glory is without blemish: he fought to defend his religion and homeland; but the enemies who praise the patriot have labeled his rival a traitor and apostate. To Christians, Scanderbeg’s rebellion is justified by his father's injustices, the ambiguous deaths of his three brothers, his own humiliation, and the subjugation of his homeland; and they admire the noble, though delayed, passion with which he upheld the faith and independence of his ancestors. But he had absorbed the teachings of the Koran from the age of nine; he was unfamiliar with the Gospel; a soldier’s religion is determined by authority and tradition; and it’s difficult to imagine what new enlightenment might have come to him at the age of forty 38. His motives might be viewed as less suspect regarding self-interest or revenge had he broken his chains the moment he felt their weight: but a long period of forgetfulness surely diminished his original claim; and each year of obedience and reward only solidified the bond between the sultan and his subject. If Scanderbeg had long held the belief in Christianity and the intention to revolt, an honorable mind must condemn the dishonesty that could only betray, that could promise only to be broken, that could actively join in the temporal and spiritual downfall of so many thousands of his unfortunate fellow countrymen. Should we praise a secret collaboration with Huniades while he led the vanguard of the Turkish army? Should we excuse his betrayal of his own banner, a treacherous abandonment that gave victory to the enemies of his benefactor? In the chaos of defeat, Scanderbeg focused on the Reis Effendi or principal secretary: with a dagger at his chest, he extracted a firman or patent for the governance of Albania; and the murder of the innocent scribe and his party prevented immediate consequences of discovery. With a few bold companions, whom he revealed his plan to, he escaped during the night, marching quickly from the battlefield to his ancestral mountains. The gates of Croya opened to the royal orders; and as soon as he took command of the fortress, George Castriot dropped the pretense of deceit; renounced the prophet and the sultan, and declared himself the avenger of his family and homeland. The calls for religion and freedom incited a widespread revolt: the Albanians, a warrior race, united to live and die alongside their hereditary prince; and the Ottoman garrisons faced the choice of martyrdom or baptism. In a gathering of the states of Epirus, Scanderbeg was elected commander of the Turkish war; and each ally committed to contribute their share of men and funds. From these contributions, from his family estate, and from the valuable salt mines of Selina, he generated an annual income of two hundred thousand ducats; 39 and the total amount, free from luxury demands, was strictly dedicated to public use. His demeanor was likable, but his discipline was strict; and any unnecessary vice was expelled from his camp: his example reinforced his command; and under his leadership, the Albanians believed themselves invincible, as did their adversaries. The bravest adventurers from France and Germany were drawn by his reputation and joined his service: his standing army consisted of eight thousand horsemen and seven thousand foot soldiers; the horses were small, and the men were agile; but he keenly observed the challenges and resources of the mountains; and with the signal fires lit, the entire nation was positioned in the strongest locations. With such unmatched forces, Scanderbeg resisted the might of the Ottoman Empire for twenty-three years; and the two conquerors, Amurath the Second, and his more prominent son, were repeatedly thwarted by a rebel they pursued with apparent disdain and relentless anger. At the helm of sixty thousand cavalry and forty thousand Janizaries, Amurath invaded Albania: he could ravage the open fields, seize undefended towns, turn churches into mosques, circumcise Christian youths, and execute his defiant captives: but the sultan’s gains were limited to the minor fortress of Sfetigrade; and the garrison, invulnerable to his force, was defeated by a trivial trick and a superstitious belief. 40 Amurath retreated in shame and loss from the fortifications of Croya, the castle and home of the Castriots; the march, the siege, the retreat were plagued by an annoying, and almost invisible, foe; 41 and the disappointment may have contributed to darkening, perhaps hastening, the final days of the sultan. 42 In the midst of conquest, Mahomet the Second still felt this internal thorn: his officers were allowed to negotiate a truce; and the Albanian prince rightly deserves praise as a strong and capable defender of his national independence. The fervor of chivalry and religion has placed him alongside the likes of Alexander and Pyrrhus; and they would not shy from acknowledging their fearless countryman: but his small territory, and limited power, must keep him at a modest distance from the heroes of history who triumphed over the East and the Roman legions. His remarkable feats, the bashaws he faced, the armies he defeated, and the three thousand Turks killed by his own hand, must be assessed with a critical eye. Against an unlettered enemy, and in the secluded shadows of Epirus, his partial biographers may indulge in the freedom of storytelling: but their tales fall under scrutiny from Italian history; and they cast strong doubt on their own truth by the fantastical account of his exploits when he crossed the Adriatic with eight hundred cavalry to assist the king of Naples. 43 Without diminishing his legacy, they could acknowledge that he was ultimately overcome by the Ottoman forces: in his dire straits, he sought refuge from Pope Pius the Second within the ecclesiastical state; and his resources were nearly depleted, as Scanderbeg died a fugitive at Lissus, in Venetian territory. 44 His grave was soon disturbed by the Turkish invaders; but the Janizaries, who wore his bones encased in a bracelet, showed their involuntary respect for his bravery through this superstitious token. The swift destruction of his country may enhance the hero's glory; yet, had he weighed the consequences of submission and resistance, a true patriot might have avoided the uneven struggle that depended on the life and genius of a single man. Scanderbeg might indeed have nurtured the reasonable, though misleading, hope that the pope, the king of Naples, and the Venetian republic would unite in defense of a free and Christian people, who protected the Adriatic coastline, and the narrow route from Greece to Italy. His young son was saved from the national disaster; the Castriots 45 were granted a dukedom in Naples, and their lineage continues in the most noble families of the realm. A group of Albanian exiles settled in Calabria, and they still maintain the language and customs of their ancestors today. 46

35 (return)
[ They are ranked by Sir William Temple, in his pleasing Essay on Heroic Virtue, (Works, vol. iii. p. 385,) among the seven chiefs who have deserved without wearing, a royal crown; Belisarius, Narses, Gonsalvo of Cordova, William first prince of Orange, Alexander duke of Parma, John Huniades, and George Castriot, or Scanderbeg.]

35 (return)
[ Sir William Temple ranks them in his enjoyable Essay on Heroic Virtue (Works, vol. iii. p. 385) among the seven leaders who deserve a royal crown without actually wearing one: Belisarius, Narses, Gonsalvo of Cordova, William the first Prince of Orange, Alexander Duke of Parma, John Huniades, and George Castriot, also known as Scanderbeg.]

36 (return)
[ I could wish for some simple authentic memoirs of a friend of Scanderbeg, which would introduce me to the man, the time, and the place. In the old and national history of Marinus Barletius, a priest of Scodra, (de Vita. Moribus, et Rebus gestis Georgii Castrioti, &c. libri xiii. p. 367. Argentorat. 1537, in fol.,) his gaudy and cumbersome robes are stuck with many false jewels. See likewise Chalcondyles, l vii. p. 185, l. viii. p. 229.]

36 (return)
[ I wish there were some simple, genuine memoirs by a friend of Scanderbeg that would help me understand the man, his time, and his place. In the old national history written by Marinus Barletius, a priest from Scodra, (de Vita. Moribus, et Rebus gestis Georgii Castrioti, &c. libri xiii. p. 367. Argentorat. 1537, in fol.,) his flashy and heavy robes are adorned with many fake jewels. Also, check out Chalcondyles, l vii. p. 185, l. viii. p. 229.]

37 (return)
[ His circumcision, education, &c., are marked by Marinus with brevity and reluctance, (l. i. p. 6, 7.)]

37 (return)
[ Marinus mentions his circumcision, education, etc., briefly and with hesitation, (l. i. p. 6, 7.)]

38 (return)
[ Since Scanderbeg died A.D. 1466, in the lxiiid year of his age, (Marinus, l. xiii. p. 370,) he was born in 1403; since he was torn from his parents by the Turks, when he was novennis, (Marinus, l. i. p. 1, 6,) that event must have happened in 1412, nine years before the accession of Amurath II., who must have inherited, not acquired the Albanian slave. Spondanus has remarked this inconsistency, A.D. 1431, No. 31, 1443, No. 14.]

38 (return)
[ Since Scanderbeg died in 1466, at the age of 63, (Marinus, l. xiii. p. 370,) he was born in 1403. He was taken from his parents by the Turks when he was nine years old, (Marinus, l. i. p. 1, 6,) which means that event must have happened in 1412, nine years before Amurath II. took power. He must have inherited the Albanian slave rather than acquired him. Spondanus pointed out this inconsistency in 1431, No. 31, 1443, No. 14.]

39 (return)
[ His revenue and forces are luckily given by Marinus, (l. ii. p. 44.)]

39 (return)
[ Marinus conveniently provides details about his income and troops, (l. ii. p. 44.)]

40 (return)
[ There were two Dibras, the upper and lower, the Bulgarian and Albanian: the former, 70 miles from Croya, (l. i. p. 17,) was contiguous to the fortress of Sfetigrade, whose inhabitants refused to drink from a well into which a dead dog had traitorously been cast, (l. v. p. 139, 140.) We want a good map of Epirus.]

40 (return)
[ There were two Dibras, the upper and lower, the Bulgarian and Albanian: the former, 70 miles from Croya, (l. i. p. 17,) was next to the fortress of Sfetigrade, whose people refused to drink from a well where a dead dog had been thrown in, (l. v. p. 139, 140.) We need a good map of Epirus.]

41 (return)
[ Compare the Turkish narrative of Cantemir (p. 92) with the pompous and prolix declamation in the ivth, vth, and vith books of the Albanian priest, who has been copied by the tribe of strangers and moderns.]

41 (return)
[ Compare the Turkish story by Cantemir (p. 92) with the pompous and lengthy speeches in the fourth, fifth, and sixth books of the Albanian priest, who has been imitated by outsiders and moderns.]

42 (return)
[ In honor of his hero, Barletius (l. vi. p. 188—192) kills the sultan by disease indeed, under the walls of Croya. But this audacious fiction is disproved by the Greeks and Turks, who agree in the time and manner of Amurath’s death at Adrianople.]

42 (return)
[ To honor his hero, Barletius (l. vi. p. 188—192) indeed causes the sultan to die from illness under the walls of Croya. However, this bold story is disproven by both the Greeks and Turks, who concur on the time and manner of Amurath’s death at Adrianople.]

43 (return)
[ See the marvels of his Calabrian expedition in the ixth and xth books of Marinus Barletius, which may be rectified by the testimony or silence of Muratori, (Annali d’Italia, tom. xiii. p. 291,) and his original authors, (Joh. Simonetta de Rebus Francisci Sfortiæ, in Muratori, Script. Rerum Ital. tom. xxi. p. 728, et alios.) The Albanian cavalry, under the name of Stradiots, soon became famous in the wars of Italy, (Mémoires de Comines, l. viii. c. 5.)]

43 (return)
[ Check out the wonders of his Calabrian expedition in the 9th and 10th books of Marinus Barletius, which can be confirmed or challenged by Muratori's accounts, (Annali d’Italia, vol. xiii, p. 291,) and his original sources, (Joh. Simonetta de Rebus Francisci Sfortiæ, in Muratori, Script. Rerum Ital. vol. xxi, p. 728, and others.) The Albanian cavalry, known as Stradiots, quickly gained fame in the wars of Italy, (Mémoires de Comines, l. viii. c. 5.)]

44 (return)
[ Spondanus, from the best evidence, and the most rational criticism, has reduced the giant Scanderbeg to the human size, (A.D. 1461, No. 20, 1463, No. 9, 1465, No. 12, 13, 1467, No. 1.) His own letter to the pope, and the testimony of Phranza, (l. iii. c. 28,) a refugee in the neighboring isle of Corfu, demonstrate his last distress, which is awkwardly concealed by Marinus Barletius, (l. x.)]

44 (return)
[ Spondanus, based on the best evidence and the most logical analysis, has brought the giant Scanderbeg down to a human scale, (A.D. 1461, No. 20, 1463, No. 9, 1465, No. 12, 13, 1467, No. 1.) His own letter to the pope, along with the account by Phranza, (l. iii. c. 28,) a refugee from the nearby island of Corfu, reveal his final struggles, which are clumsily hidden by Marinus Barletius, (l. x.)]

45 (return)
[ See the family of the Castriots, in Ducange, (Fam. Dalmaticæ, &c, xviii. p. 348—350.)]

45 (return)
[ See the family of the Castriots in Ducange, (Fam. Dalmaticæ, &c, xviii. p. 348—350.)]

46 (return)
[ This colony of Albanese is mentioned by Mr. Swinburne, (Travels into the Two Sicilies, vol. i. p. 350—354.)]

46 (return)
[ This Albanese colony is referenced by Mr. Swinburne, (Travels into the Two Sicilies, vol. i. p. 350—354.)]

In the long career of the decline and fall of the Roman empire, I have reached at length the last reign of the princes of Constantinople, who so feebly sustained the name and majesty of the Cæsars. On the decease of John Palæologus, who survived about four years the Hungarian crusade, 47 the royal family, by the death of Andronicus and the monastic profession of Isidore, was reduced to three princes, Constantine, Demetrius, and Thomas, the surviving sons of the emperor Manuel. Of these the first and the last were far distant in the Morea; but Demetrius, who possessed the domain of Selybria, was in the suburbs, at the head of a party: his ambition was not chilled by the public distress; and his conspiracy with the Turks and the schismatics had already disturbed the peace of his country. The funeral of the late emperor was accelerated with singular and even suspicious haste: the claim of Demetrius to the vacant throne was justified by a trite and flimsy sophism, that he was born in the purple, the eldest son of his father’s reign. But the empress-mother, the senate and soldiers, the clergy and people, were unanimous in the cause of the lawful successor: and the despot Thomas, who, ignorant of the change, accidentally returned to the capital, asserted with becoming zeal the interest of his absent brother. An ambassador, the historian Phranza, was immediately despatched to the court of Adrianople. Amurath received him with honor and dismissed him with gifts; but the gracious approbation of the Turkish sultan announced his supremacy, and the approaching downfall of the Eastern empire. By the hands of two illustrious deputies, the Imperial crown was placed at Sparta on the head of Constantine. In the spring he sailed from the Morea, escaped the encounter of a Turkish squadron, enjoyed the acclamations of his subjects, celebrated the festival of a new reign, and exhausted by his donatives the treasure, or rather the indigence, of the state. The emperor immediately resigned to his brothers the possession of the Morea; and the brittle friendship of the two princes, Demetrius and Thomas, was confirmed in their mother’s presence by the frail security of oaths and embraces. His next occupation was the choice of a consort. A daughter of the doge of Venice had been proposed; but the Byzantine nobles objected the distance between an hereditary monarch and an elective magistrate; and in their subsequent distress, the chief of that powerful republic was not unmindful of the affront. Constantine afterwards hesitated between the royal families of Trebizond and Georgia; and the embassy of Phranza represents in his public and private life the last days of the Byzantine empire. 48

In the long history of the decline and fall of the Roman Empire, I've finally reached the last reign of the princes of Constantinople, who weakly upheld the name and authority of the Cæsars. After the death of John Palæologus, who lived about four years after the Hungarian crusade, 47 the royal family was left with just three princes: Constantine, Demetrius, and Thomas, the surviving sons of Emperor Manuel, after the deaths of Andronicus and the monastic commitment of Isidore. The first and the last were far away in the Morea, but Demetrius, who controlled the land of Selybria, was in the suburbs leading a faction. His ambition wasn't dampened by the public suffering; his conspiracy with the Turks and the schismatics had already disrupted the peace of his country. The funeral of the late emperor was hastened in a strange and even suspicious way: Demetrius's claim to the vacant throne was based on a tired and weak argument that he was born in the purple, the eldest son of his father's reign. However, the empress-mother, the Senate and soldiers, the clergy, and the people were united behind the legitimate successor. The despot Thomas, unaware of the change, accidentally returned to the capital and passionately defended the interests of his absent brother. An ambassador, the historian Phranza, was quickly sent to the court of Adrianople. Amurath received him with honor and sent him off with gifts, but the sultan's gracious approval indicated his dominance and the impending collapse of the Eastern Empire. Two distinguished deputies carried the Imperial crown to Sparta and placed it on Constantine's head. In the spring, he sailed from the Morea, avoided an encounter with a Turkish squadron, received cheers from his subjects, celebrated the festival of a new reign, and drained the state’s finances with his donations, or rather the state's poverty. The emperor promptly handed over the Morea to his brothers, and the fragile bond between the two princes, Demetrius and Thomas, was strengthened in their mother’s presence through the shaky assurances of oaths and embraces. His next task was to choose a consort. A daughter of the doge of Venice had been suggested, but the Byzantine nobles objected to the distance between an hereditary monarch and an elected official; in their subsequent distress, the leader of that powerful republic didn't forget the indignity. Constantine later wavered between the royal families of Trebizond and Georgia, and Phranza's embassy captures both his public and private life during the final days of the Byzantine Empire. 48

47 (return)
[ The Chronology of Phranza is clear and authentic; but instead of four years and seven months, Spondanus (A.D. 1445, No. 7,) assigns seven or eight years to the reign of the last Constantine which he deduces from a spurious epistle of Eugenius IV. to the king of Æthiopia.]

47 (return)
[ The timeline of Phranza is clear and accurate; however, instead of four years and seven months, Spondanus (A.D. 1445, No. 7) attributes seven or eight years to the reign of the last Constantine, which he infers from a false letter from Eugenius IV to the king of Ethiopia.]

48 (return)
[ Phranza (l. iii. c. 1—6) deserves credit and esteem.]

48 (return)
[ Phranza (l. iii. c. 1—6) deserves recognition and respect.]

The protovestiare, or great chamberlain, Phranza sailed from Constantinople as the minister of a bridegroom; and the relics of wealth and luxury were applied to his pompous appearance. His numerous retinue consisted of nobles and guards, of physicians and monks: he was attended by a band of music; and the term of his costly embassy was protracted above two years. On his arrival in Georgia or Iberia, the natives from the towns and villages flocked around the strangers; and such was their simplicity, that they were delighted with the effects, without understanding the cause, of musical harmony. Among the crowd was an old man, above a hundred years of age, who had formerly been carried away a captive by the Barbarians, 49 and who amused his hearers with a tale of the wonders of India, 50 from whence he had returned to Portugal by an unknown sea. 51 From this hospitable land, Phranza proceeded to the court of Trebizond, where he was informed by the Greek prince of the recent decease of Amurath. Instead of rejoicing in the deliverance, the experienced statesman expressed his apprehension, that an ambitious youth would not long adhere to the sage and pacific system of his father. After the sultan’s decease, his Christian wife, Maria, 52 the daughter of the Servian despot, had been honorably restored to her parents; on the fame of her beauty and merit, she was recommended by the ambassador as the most worthy object of the royal choice; and Phranza recapitulates and refutes the specious objections that might be raised against the proposal. The majesty of the purple would ennoble an unequal alliance; the bar of affinity might be removed by liberal alms and the dispensation of the church; the disgrace of Turkish nuptials had been repeatedly overlooked; and, though the fair Maria was nearly fifty years of age, she might yet hope to give an heir to the empire. Constantine listened to the advice, which was transmitted in the first ship that sailed from Trebizond; but the factions of the court opposed his marriage; and it was finally prevented by the pious vow of the sultana, who ended her days in the monastic profession. Reduced to the first alternative, the choice of Phranza was decided in favor of a Georgian princess; and the vanity of her father was dazzled by the glorious alliance. Instead of demanding, according to the primitive and national custom, a price for his daughter, 53 he offered a portion of fifty-six thousand, with an annual pension of five thousand, ducats; and the services of the ambassador were repaid by an assurance, that, as his son had been adopted in baptism by the emperor, the establishment of his daughter should be the peculiar care of the empress of Constantinople. On the return of Phranza, the treaty was ratified by the Greek monarch, who with his own hand impressed three vermilion crosses on the golden bull, and assured the Georgian envoy that in the spring his galleys should conduct the bride to her Imperial palace. But Constantine embraced his faithful servant, not with the cold approbation of a sovereign, but with the warm confidence of a friend, who, after a long absence, is impatient to pour his secrets into the bosom of his friend. “Since the death of my mother and of Cantacuzene, who alone advised me without interest or passion, 54 I am surrounded,” said the emperor, “by men whom I can neither love nor trust, nor esteem. You are not a stranger to Lucas Notaras, the great admiral; obstinately attached to his own sentiments, he declares, both in private and public, that his sentiments are the absolute measure of my thoughts and actions. The rest of the courtiers are swayed by their personal or factious views; and how can I consult the monks on questions of policy and marriage? I have yet much employment for your diligence and fidelity. In the spring you shall engage one of my brothers to solicit the succor of the Western powers; from the Morea you shall sail to Cyprus on a particular commission; and from thence proceed to Georgia to receive and conduct the future empress.”—“Your commands,” replied Phranza, “are irresistible; but deign, great sir,” he added, with a serious smile, “to consider, that if I am thus perpetually absent from my family, my wife may be tempted either to seek another husband, or to throw herself into a monastery.” After laughing at his apprehensions, the emperor more gravely consoled him by the pleasing assurance that this should be his last service abroad, and that he destined for his son a wealthy and noble heiress; for himself, the important office of great logothete, or principal minister of state. The marriage was immediately stipulated: but the office, however incompatible with his own, had been usurped by the ambition of the admiral. Some delay was requisite to negotiate a consent and an equivalent; and the nomination of Phranza was half declared, and half suppressed, lest it might be displeasing to an insolent and powerful favorite. The winter was spent in the preparations of his embassy; and Phranza had resolved, that the youth his son should embrace this opportunity of foreign travel, and be left, on the appearance of danger, with his maternal kindred of the Morea. Such were the private and public designs, which were interrupted by a Turkish war, and finally buried in the ruins of the empire.

The protovestiare, or grand chamberlain, Phranza set sail from Constantinople as the minister for a groom, surrounded by displays of wealth and luxury to enhance his grand appearance. His large entourage included nobles, guards, physicians, and monks; he was accompanied by a band of musicians, and his lavish mission extended over two years. Upon arriving in Georgia, or Iberia, the locals from towns and villages gathered around the newcomers; their simplicity led them to be thrilled by musical harmony, even without understanding its source. Among the crowd was an elderly man, over a hundred years old, who had once been taken captive by the Barbarians, 49 and entertained listeners with stories about the wonders of India, 50 from where he returned to Portugal via an unknown sea. 51 From this welcoming land, Phranza moved on to the court of Trebizond, where the Greek prince informed him of the recent death of Amurath. Rather than celebrating the liberation, the seasoned statesman expressed concern that an ambitious young man would not maintain the wise and peaceful policies of his father. After the sultan’s death, his Christian wife, Maria, 52 the daughter of the Serbian despot, had been honorably returned to her family; due to her beauty and merits, the ambassador recommended her as the best choice for royal marriage, and Phranza presented and countered the seemingly compelling objections against this proposal. The prestige of royal status would enhance an unequal marriage; barriers of kinship could be bypassed with generous gifts and church dispensations; the stigma of Turkish marriages had often been overlooked; and although Maria was nearly fifty years old, she could still hope to produce an heir for the empire. Constantine considered this advice, which was sent on the first ship from Trebizond; however, court factions opposed his marriage, ultimately halted by the devout vow of the sultana, who spent her final days in a monastery. Faced with this situation, Phranza chose a Georgian princess; her father's pride was captivated by the prestigious alliance. Instead of asking for a bride price, following the traditional and national custom, 53 he offered a dowry of fifty-six thousand ducats, along with an annual pension of five thousand ducats; in return, the ambassador was assured that, since his son had been adopted in baptism by the emperor, his daughter's future would be the personal responsibility of the empress of Constantinople. Upon Phranza's return, the Greek monarch ratified the treaty, personally applying three red crosses to the golden bull and promised the Georgian envoy that his ships would bring the bride to the Imperial palace in spring. But Constantine welcomed his loyal servant not with the cold approval of a ruler but with the warm familiarity of a friend eager to share secrets after a long absence. "Since the deaths of my mother and Cantacuzene, who was my only unselfish adviser," 54 the emperor said, "I find myself surrounded by people I cannot love, trust, or respect. You know Lucas Notaras, the great admiral; stubbornly clinging to his own opinions, he insists, both in private and public, that his views should dictate my thoughts and actions. The other courtiers are driven by personal or factional interests; how can I consult monks on matters of policy and marriage? I still require your diligence and loyalty. In spring, you must persuade one of my brothers to reach out for support from the Western powers; from the Morea, you will travel to Cyprus on a specific mission; and from there, proceed to Georgia to receive and escort the future empress."—"Your orders," replied Phranza, "are compelling; but please, great sir," he added with a serious smile, "consider that if I am constantly away from my family, my wife may be tempted either to find another husband or to enter a monastery." After laughing at his concerns, the emperor reassured him more solemnly that this would be his last assignment abroad, and that he had in mind a rich and noble heiress for his son; and for himself, the important role of grand logothete, or principal minister of state. The marriage arrangements were made right away; however, the role, although not fitting for him, had been claimed by the admiral's ambitions. Negotiations for consent and an equivalent were necessary, and Phranza's appointment was partially revealed and partially concealed to avoid antagonizing an arrogant and powerful favorite. The winter was spent preparing for his mission; Phranza planned for his son to seize this chance for international travel and to stay with his maternal relatives in the Morea in case of danger. Such were the private and public plans that were interrupted by a Turkish war and ultimately lost in the empire's downfall.

49 (return)
[ Suppose him to have been captured in 1394, in Timour’s first war in Georgia, (Sherefeddin, l. iii. c. 50;) he might follow his Tartar master into Hindostan in 1398, and from thence sail to the spice islands.]

49 (return)
[ Suppose he was captured in 1394 during Timour’s first war in Georgia (Sherefeddin, l. iii. c. 50); he could have followed his Tartar master into Hindostan in 1398, and then from there sailed to the spice islands.]

50 (return)
[ The happy and pious Indians lived a hundred and fifty years, and enjoyed the most perfect productions of the vegetable and mineral kingdoms. The animals were on a large scale: dragons seventy cubits, ants (the formica Indica) nine inches long, sheep like elephants, elephants like sheep. Quidlibet audendi, &c.]

50 (return)
[ The joyful and devout Indians lived for one hundred and fifty years and enjoyed the finest offerings from both plant and mineral worlds. The animals were enormous: dragons measuring seventy cubits, ants (the formica Indica) nine inches long, sheep as large as elephants, and elephants as small as sheep. Quidlibet audendi, &c.]

51 (return)
[ He sailed in a country vessel from the spice islands to one of the ports of the exterior India; invenitque navem grandem Ibericam quâ in Portugalliam est delatus. This passage, composed in 1477, (Phranza, l. iii. c. 30,) twenty years before the discovery of the Cape of Good Hope, is spurious or wonderful. But this new geography is sullied by the old and incompatible error which places the source of the Nile in India.]

51 (return)
[ He traveled in a local ship from the spice islands to one of the ports of outer India; and he found a large Iberian ship that took him to Portugal. This passage, written in 1477, (Phranza, l. iii. c. 30,) twenty years before the discovery of the Cape of Good Hope, is either false or incredible. However, this updated geography is tainted by the old and conflicting mistake that claims the source of the Nile is in India.]

52 (return)
[ Cantemir, (p. 83,) who styles her the daughter of Lazarus Ogli, and the Helen of the Servians, places her marriage with Amurath in the year 1424. It will not easily be believed, that in six-and-twenty years’ cohabitation, the sultan corpus ejus non tetigit. After the taking of Constantinople, she fled to Mahomet II., (Phranza, l. iii. c. 22.)]

52 (return)
[ Cantemir, (p. 83,) who refers to her as the daughter of Lazarus Ogli and the Helen of the Serbians, states that she married Amurath in 1424. It’s hard to believe that in twenty-six years of living together, the sultan never touched her. After the fall of Constantinople, she escaped to Mahomet II., (Phranza, l. iii. c. 22.)]

53 (return)
[ The classical reader will recollect the offers of Agamemnon, (Iliad, c. v. 144,) and the general practice of antiquity.]

53 (return)
[ The classic reader will remember Agamemnon's offers, (Iliad, c. v. 144,) and the common practices of ancient times.]

54 (return)
[ Cantacuzene (I am ignorant of his relation to the emperor of that name) was great domestic, a firm assertor of the Greek creed, and a brother of the queen of Servia, whom he visited with the character of ambassador, (Syropulus, p. 37, 38, 45.)]

54 (return)
[ Cantacuzene (I don’t know his connection to the emperor of that name) was a prominent domestic figure, a strong defender of the Greek faith, and the brother of the queen of Serbia, whom he visited in the role of ambassador, (Syropulus, p. 37, 38, 45.)]

Chapter LXVIII: Reign Of Mahomet The Second, Extinction Of Eastern Empire.—Part I.

     Reign And Character Of Mahomet The Second.—Siege, Assault,
     And Final Conquest, Of Constantinople By The Turks.—Death
     Of Constantine Palæologus.—Servitude Of The Greeks.—
     Extinction Of The Roman Empire In The East.—Consternation
     Of Europe.—Conquests And Death Of Mahomet The Second.
     Reign and Character of Mahomet II.—Siege, Attack, and Final Takeover of Constantinople by the Turks.—Death of Constantine Palæologus.—Servitude of the Greeks.—End of the Roman Empire in the East.—Shockwaves Across Europe.—Conquests and Death of Mahomet II.

The siege of Constantinople by the Turks attracts our first attention to the person and character of the great destroyer. Mahomet the Second 1 was the son of the second Amurath; and though his mother has been decorated with the titles of Christian and princess, she is more probably confounded with the numerous concubines who peopled from every climate the harem of the sultan. His first education and sentiments were those of a devout Mussulman; and as often as he conversed with an infidel, he purified his hands and face by the legal rites of ablution. Age and empire appear to have relaxed this narrow bigotry: his aspiring genius disdained to acknowledge a power above his own; and in his looser hours he presumed (it is said) to brand the prophet of Mecca as a robber and impostor. Yet the sultan persevered in a decent reverence for the doctrine and discipline of the Koran: 2 his private indiscretion must have been sacred from the vulgar ear; and we should suspect the credulity of strangers and sectaries, so prone to believe that a mind which is hardened against truth must be armed with superior contempt for absurdity and error. Under the tuition of the most skilful masters, Mahomet advanced with an early and rapid progress in the paths of knowledge; and besides his native tongue it is affirmed that he spoke or understood five languages, 3 the Arabic, the Persian, the Chaldæan or Hebrew, the Latin, and the Greek. The Persian might indeed contribute to his amusement, and the Arabic to his edification; and such studies are familiar to the Oriental youth. In the intercourse of the Greeks and Turks, a conqueror might wish to converse with the people over which he was ambitious to reign: his own praises in Latin poetry 4 or prose 5 might find a passage to the royal ear; but what use or merit could recommend to the statesman or the scholar the uncouth dialect of his Hebrew slaves? The history and geography of the world were familiar to his memory: the lives of the heroes of the East, perhaps of the West, 6 excited his emulation: his skill in astrology is excused by the folly of the times, and supposes some rudiments of mathematical science; and a profane taste for the arts is betrayed in his liberal invitation and reward of the painters of Italy. 7 But the influence of religion and learning were employed without effect on his savage and licentious nature. I will not transcribe, nor do I firmly believe, the stories of his fourteen pages, whose bellies were ripped open in search of a stolen melon; or of the beauteous slave, whose head he severed from her body, to convince the Janizaries that their master was not the votary of love. 701 His sobriety is attested by the silence of the Turkish annals, which accuse three, and three only, of the Ottoman line of the vice of drunkenness. 8 But it cannot be denied that his passions were at once furious and inexorable; that in the palace, as in the field, a torrent of blood was spilt on the slightest provocation; and that the noblest of the captive youth were often dishonored by his unnatural lust. In the Albanian war he studied the lessons, and soon surpassed the example, of his father; and the conquest of two empires, twelve kingdoms, and two hundred cities, a vain and flattering account, is ascribed to his invincible sword. He was doubtless a soldier, and possibly a general; Constantinople has sealed his glory; but if we compare the means, the obstacles, and the achievements, Mahomet the Second must blush to sustain a parallel with Alexander or Timour. Under his command, the Ottoman forces were always more numerous than their enemies; yet their progress was bounded by the Euphrates and the Adriatic; and his arms were checked by Huniades and Scanderbeg, by the Rhodian knights and by the Persian king.

The siege of Constantinople by the Turks brings our attention to the great destroyer himself. Mahomet II was the son of the second Amurath, and although his mother was given the titles of Christian and princess, she was likely just one of the many concubines who filled the sultan's harem from various places. His early education and beliefs were those of a devout Muslim; every time he spoke with a non-believer, he would purify his hands and face with the required ablutions. However, as he grew older and gained power, he seemed to move away from this strict mindset: his ambitious nature refused to recognize any authority above his own, and it is said that during his more relaxed moments, he dared to call the prophet of Mecca a thief and an impostor. Nonetheless, the sultan continued to show a respectable adherence to the teachings and practices of the Koran; his personal indiscretions were likely kept secret from the public. We should be cautious, as outsiders and followers are often quick to assume that those who reject the truth must have a special disdain for error and absurdity. Under the guidance of skilled teachers, Mahomet made significant progress in learning at an early age, and besides his native language, it is said he spoke or understood five other languages: Arabic, Persian, Chaldæan or Hebrew, Latin, and Greek. The Persian could serve as entertainment, and the Arabic could be beneficial for his learning, as these subjects are common among young people in the East. In his interactions with the Greeks and Turks, a conqueror might want to communicate with the people he aimed to rule: Latin poetry or prose about his own achievements could possibly reach noble ears, but what use would the awkward dialect of his Hebrew slaves have for a statesman or scholar? He was well-versed in the history and geography of the world, inspired by the lives of Eastern heroes and perhaps even those from the West. His interest in astrology, a reflection of the ignorance of his time, suggests some basic understanding of mathematics, and his appreciation for the arts is evident in his generous support of Italian painters. However, the influences of religion and education had little impact on his brutal and immoral nature. I won't recount, nor do I truly believe, the tales of his fourteen pages whose stomachs were cut open in search of a stolen melon, or of the beautiful slave whose head he cut off to show the Janizaries that he was not a slave to love. His modesty is claimed by the silence of Turkish history, which only accuses three individuals from the Ottoman lineage of being drunkards. Yet, it cannot be denied that his passion was both fierce and relentless; in the palace and on the battlefield, a flood of blood flowed at the slightest provocation, and many of the young captives were dishonored by his unnatural desires. During the Albanian War, he learned from, and soon surpassed, his father's example; the conquest of two empires, twelve kingdoms, and two hundred cities—a likely exaggerated account—is attributed to his unstoppable sword. He was undoubtedly a soldier and perhaps even a general; Constantinople has solidified his legacy. But when we compare the resources, challenges, and accomplishments, Mahomet II should feel ashamed to be compared to Alexander or Timour. Under his command, the Ottoman forces were always larger than those of their enemies; however, their advancement was limited by the Euphrates and the Adriatic, and his campaigns were halted by Huniades and Scanderbeg, the knights of Rhodes, and the Persian king.

1 (return)
[ For the character of Mahomet II. it is dangerous to trust either the Turks or the Christians. The most moderate picture appears to be drawn by Phranza, (l. i. c. 33,) whose resentment had cooled in age and solitude; see likewise Spondanus, (A.D. 1451, No. 11,) and the continuator of Fleury, (tom. xxii. p. 552,) the Elogia of Paulus Jovius, (l. iii. p. 164—166,) and the Dictionnaire de Bayle, (tom. iii. p. 273—279.)]

1 (return)
[ When it comes to the character of Mahomet II, it's risky to rely on either the Turks or the Christians. The most balanced portrayal seems to come from Phranza, (l. i. c. 33,) whose anger had faded with age and solitude; also see Spondanus, (A.D. 1451, No. 11,) and the continuator of Fleury, (tom. xxii. p. 552,) the Elogia of Paulus Jovius, (l. iii. p. 164—166,) and the Dictionnaire de Bayle, (tom. iii. p. 273—279.)]

2 (return)
[ Cantemir, (p. 115.) and the mosques which he founded, attest his public regard for religion. Mahomet freely disputed with the Gennadius on the two religions, (Spond. A.D. 1453, No. 22.)]

2 (return)
[ Cantemir, (p. 115.) and the mosques he established show his respect for religion. Mahomet openly debated with Gennadius about the two religions, (Spond. A.D. 1453, No. 22.)]

3 (return)
[ Quinque linguas præter suam noverat, Græcam, Latinam, Chaldaicam, Persicam. The Latin translator of Phranza has dropped the Arabic, which the Koran must recommend to every Mussulman. * Note: It appears in the original Greek text, p. 95, edit. Bonn.—M.]

3 (return)
[ He knew five languages besides his own: Greek, Latin, Chaldean, and Persian. The Latin translator of Phranza left out Arabic, which the Koran must suggest to every Muslim. * Note: It appears in the original Greek text, p. 95, edit. Bonn.—M.]

4 (return)
[ Philelphus, by a Latin ode, requested and obtained the liberty of his wife’s mother and sisters from the conqueror of Constantinople. It was delivered into the sultan’s hands by the envoys of the duke of Milan. Philelphus himself was suspected of a design of retiring to Constantinople; yet the orator often sounded the trumpet of holy war, (see his Life by M. Lancelot, in the Mémoires de l’Académie des Inscriptions, tom. x. p. 718, 724, &c.)]

4 (return)
[ Philelphus, through a Latin poem, asked for and received the freedom of his wife’s mother and sisters from the conqueror of Constantinople. The request was delivered to the sultan by representatives of the duke of Milan. Philelphus himself was suspected of planning to move to Constantinople; however, the orator frequently called for a holy war, (see his Life by M. Lancelot, in the Mémoires de l’Académie des Inscriptions, tom. x. p. 718, 724, &c.)]

5 (return)
[ Robert Valturio published at Verona, in 1483, his xii. books de Re Militari, in which he first mentions the use of bombs. By his patron Sigismund Malatesta, prince of Rimini, it had been addressed with a Latin epistle to Mahomet II.]

5 (return)
[ Robert Valturio published in Verona in 1483 his twelve books on Military Matters, where he first talks about the use of bombs. It was addressed with a Latin letter to Mahomet II by his patron Sigismund Malatesta, the prince of Rimini.]

6 (return)
[ According to Phranza, he assiduously studied the lives and actions of Alexander, Augustus, Constantine, and Theodosius. I have read somewhere, that Plutarch’s Lives were translated by his orders into the Turkish language. If the sultan himself understood Greek, it must have been for the benefit of his subjects. Yet these lives are a school of freedom as well as of valor. * Note: Von Hammer disdainfully rejects this fable of Mahomet’s knowledge of languages. Knolles adds, that he delighted in reading the history of Alexander the Great, and of Julius Cæsar. The former, no doubt, was the Persian legend, which, it is remarkable, came back to Europe, and was popular throughout the middle ages as the “Romaunt of Alexander.” The founder of the Imperial dynasty of Rome, according to M. Von Hammer, is altogether unknown in the East. Mahomet was a great patron of Turkish literature: the romantic poems of Persia were translated, or imitated, under his patronage. Von Hammer vol ii. p. 268.—M.]

6 (return)
[ According to Phranza, he diligently studied the lives and actions of Alexander, Augustus, Constantine, and Theodosius. I read somewhere that Plutarch's Lives were translated by his orders into Turkish. If the sultan himself understood Greek, it must have been for the sake of his subjects. Still, these lives are lessons in freedom as well as courage. * Note: Von Hammer dismissively rejects the idea that Mahomet knew multiple languages. Knolles adds that he enjoyed reading the history of Alexander the Great and Julius Caesar. The former was likely the Persian legend, which, interestingly, returned to Europe and was popular throughout the Middle Ages as the “Romaunt of Alexander.” The founder of the Imperial dynasty of Rome, according to M. Von Hammer, is completely unknown in the East. Mahomet was a big supporter of Turkish literature: the romantic poems of Persia were translated or imitated under his patronage. Von Hammer vol ii. p. 268.—M.]

7 (return)
[ The famous Gentile Bellino, whom he had invited from Venice, was dismissed with a chain and collar of gold, and a purse of 3000 ducats. With Voltaire I laugh at the foolish story of a slave purposely beheaded to instruct the painter in the action of the muscles.]

7 (return)
[ The renowned Gentile Bellino, whom he had invited from Venice, was sent off with a gold chain and collar, along with a purse containing 3000 ducats. Along with Voltaire, I find it amusing to hear the absurd tale of a slave who was deliberately beheaded to teach the painter about muscle movements.]

701 (return)
[ This story, the subject of Johnson’s Irene, is rejected by M. Von Hammer, vol. ii. p. 208. The German historian’s general estimate of Mahomet’s character agrees in its more marked features with Gibbon’s.—M.]

701 (return)
[ This story, which is the subject of Johnson’s Irene, is rejected by M. Von Hammer, vol. ii. p. 208. The German historian’s overall view of Mahomet’s character aligns in significant ways with Gibbon’s.—M.]

8 (return)
[ These Imperial drunkards were Soliman I., Selim II., and Amurath IV., (Cantemir, p. 61.) The sophis of Persia can produce a more regular succession; and in the last age, our European travellers were the witnesses and companions of their revels.]

8 (return)
[ These imperial drunkards were Suleiman I, Selim II, and Ahmed IV. (Cantemir, p. 61.) The Safavids of Persia have a more consistent line of succession, and in recent times, our European travelers have witnessed and participated in their celebrations.]

In the reign of Amurath, he twice tasted of royalty, and twice descended from the throne: his tender age was incapable of opposing his father’s restoration, but never could he forgive the viziers who had recommended that salutary measure. His nuptials were celebrated with the daughter of a Turkman emir; and, after a festival of two months, he departed from Adrianople with his bride, to reside in the government of Magnesia. Before the end of six weeks, he was recalled by a sudden message from the divan, which announced the decease of Amurath, and the mutinous spirit of the Janizaries. His speed and vigor commanded their obedience: he passed the Hellespont with a chosen guard: and at the distance of a mile from Adrianople, the viziers and emirs, the imams and cadhis, the soldiers and the people, fell prostrate before the new sultan. They affected to weep, they affected to rejoice: he ascended the throne at the age of twenty-one years, and removed the cause of sedition by the death, the inevitable death, of his infant brothers. 9 901 The ambassadors of Europe and Asia soon appeared to congratulate his accession and solicit his friendship; and to all he spoke the language of moderation and peace. The confidence of the Greek emperor was revived by the solemn oaths and fair assurances with which he sealed the ratification of the treaty: and a rich domain on the banks of the Strymon was assigned for the annual payment of three hundred thousand aspers, the pension of an Ottoman prince, who was detained at his request in the Byzantine court. Yet the neighbors of Mahomet might tremble at the severity with which a youthful monarch reformed the pomp of his father’s household: the expenses of luxury were applied to those of ambition, and a useless train of seven thousand falconers was either dismissed from his service, or enlisted in his troops. 902 In the first summer of his reign, he visited with an army the Asiatic provinces; but after humbling the pride, Mahomet accepted the submission, of the Caramanian, that he might not be diverted by the smallest obstacle from the execution of his great design. 10

During Amurath's reign, he experienced royalty twice and stepped down from the throne both times. Due to his young age, he couldn't oppose his father's return to power, but he could never forgive the viziers who suggested that necessary move. He married the daughter of a Turkman emir, and after a two-month celebration, he left Adrianople with his bride to live in the province of Magnesia. Just six weeks later, he received a sudden message from the divan, informing him of Amurath's death and the rebellious attitude of the Janizaries. His speed and determination ensured their obedience: he crossed the Hellespont with an elite guard, and a mile from Adrianople, the viziers, emirs, imams, cadhis, soldiers, and people all bowed down to the new sultan. They pretended to cry and rejoice as he took the throne at twenty-one years old, eliminating the cause of unrest by ordering the death of his infant brothers. 9 901 Soon, ambassadors from Europe and Asia came to congratulate him on his ascension and seek his friendship, and he spoke to all of them with words of moderation and peace. The Greek emperor felt reassured by the solemn oaths and nice promises with which he confirmed the treaty, and a valuable territory along the Strymon River was designated for an annual payment of three hundred thousand aspers, the pension of an Ottoman prince who was kept at his request in the Byzantine court. However, Mahomet’s neighbors might have feared the strictness with which this young ruler reshaped his father's lavish court: funds previously spent on luxury were redirected towards ambition, and a large entourage of seven thousand falconers was either let go or incorporated into his military. 902 In the first summer of his reign, he led an army to the Asian provinces; but after bringing down the pride, Mahomet accepted the submission of the Caramanian so that he wouldn't be sidetracked by the slightest obstacle to carry out his grand plans. 10

9 (return)
[ Calapin, one of these royal infants, was saved from his cruel brother, and baptized at Rome under the name of Callistus Othomannus. The emperor Frederic III. presented him with an estate in Austria, where he ended his life; and Cuspinian, who in his youth conversed with the aged prince at Vienna, applauds his piety and wisdom, (de Cæsaribus, p. 672, 673.)]

9 (return)
[ Calapin, one of these royal kids, was rescued from his cruel brother and baptized in Rome as Callistus Othomannus. Emperor Frederic III. gave him a property in Austria, where he spent the rest of his life. Cuspinian, who spoke with the old prince in Vienna when he was young, praises his piety and wisdom, (de Cæsaribus, p. 672, 673.)]

901 (return)
[ Ahmed, the son of a Greek princess, was the object of his especial jealousy. Von Hammer, p. 501.—M.]

901 (return)
[ Ahmed, the son of a Greek princess, was the focus of his intense jealousy. Von Hammer, p. 501.—M.]

902 (return)
[ The Janizaries obtained, for the first time, a gift on the accession of a new sovereign, p. 504.—M.]

902 (return)
[ The Janizaries received a gift for the first time when a new ruler came to power, p. 504.—M.]

10 (return)
[ See the accession of Mahomet II. in Ducas, (c. 33,) Phranza, (l. i. c. 33, l. iii. c. 2,) Chalcondyles, (l. vii. p. 199,) and Cantemir, (p. 96.)]

10 (return)
[See the rise of Mahomet II in Ducas, (c. 33), Phranza, (l. i. c. 33, l. iii. c. 2), Chalcondyles, (l. vii. p. 199), and Cantemir, (p. 96.)]

The Mahometan, and more especially the Turkish casuists, have pronounced that no promise can bind the faithful against the interest and duty of their religion; and that the sultan may abrogate his own treaties and those of his predecessors. The justice and magnanimity of Amurath had scorned this immoral privilege; but his son, though the proudest of men, could stoop from ambition to the basest arts of dissimulation and deceit. Peace was on his lips, while war was in his heart: he incessantly sighed for the possession of Constantinople; and the Greeks, by their own indiscretion, afforded the first pretence of the fatal rupture. 11 Instead of laboring to be forgotten, their ambassadors pursued his camp, to demand the payment, and even the increase, of their annual stipend: the divan was importuned by their complaints, and the vizier, a secret friend of the Christians, was constrained to deliver the sense of his brethren. “Ye foolish and miserable Romans,” said Calil, “we know your devices, and ye are ignorant of your own danger! The scrupulous Amurath is no more; his throne is occupied by a young conqueror, whom no laws can bind, and no obstacles can resist: and if you escape from his hands, give praise to the divine clemency, which yet delays the chastisement of your sins. Why do ye seek to affright us by vain and indirect menaces? Release the fugitive Orchan, crown him sultan of Romania; call the Hungarians from beyond the Danube; arm against us the nations of the West; and be assured, that you will only provoke and precipitate your ruin.” But if the fears of the ambassadors were alarmed by the stern language of the vizier, they were soothed by the courteous audience and friendly speeches of the Ottoman prince; and Mahomet assured them that on his return to Adrianople he would redress the grievances, and consult the true interests, of the Greeks. No sooner had he repassed the Hellespont, than he issued a mandate to suppress their pension, and to expel their officers from the banks of the Strymon: in this measure he betrayed a hostile mind; and the second order announced, and in some degree commenced, the siege of Constantinople. In the narrow pass of the Bosphorus, an Asiatic fortress had formerly been raised by his grandfather; in the opposite situation, on the European side, he resolved to erect a more formidable castle; and a thousand masons were commanded to assemble in the spring on a spot named Asomaton, about five miles from the Greek metropolis. 12 Persuasion is the resource of the feeble; and the feeble can seldom persuade: the ambassadors of the emperor attempted, without success, to divert Mahomet from the execution of his design. They represented, that his grandfather had solicited the permission of Manuel to build a castle on his own territories; but that this double fortification, which would command the strait, could only tend to violate the alliance of the nations; to intercept the Latins who traded in the Black Sea, and perhaps to annihilate the subsistence of the city. “I form no enterprise,” replied the perfidious sultan, “against the city; but the empire of Constantinople is measured by her walls. Have you forgot the distress to which my father was reduced when you formed a league with the Hungarians; when they invaded our country by land, and the Hellespont was occupied by the French galleys? Amurath was compelled to force the passage of the Bosphorus; and your strength was not equal to your malevolence. I was then a child at Adrianople; the Moslems trembled; and, for a while, the Gabours 13 insulted our disgrace. But when my father had triumphed in the field of Warna, he vowed to erect a fort on the western shore, and that vow it is my duty to accomplish. Have ye the right, have ye the power, to control my actions on my own ground? For that ground is my own: as far as the shores of the Bosphorus, Asia is inhabited by the Turks, and Europe is deserted by the Romans. Return, and inform your king, that the present Ottoman is far different from his predecessors; that his resolutions surpass their wishes; and that he performs more than they could resolve. Return in safety—but the next who delivers a similar message may expect to be flayed alive.” After this declaration, Constantine, the first of the Greeks in spirit as in rank, 14 had determined to unsheathe the sword, and to resist the approach and establishment of the Turks on the Bosphorus. He was disarmed by the advice of his civil and ecclesiastical ministers, who recommended a system less generous, and even less prudent, than his own, to approve their patience and long-suffering, to brand the Ottoman with the name and guilt of an aggressor, and to depend on chance and time for their own safety, and the destruction of a fort which could not long be maintained in the neighborhood of a great and populous city. Amidst hope and fear, the fears of the wise, and the hopes of the credulous, the winter rolled away; the proper business of each man, and each hour, was postponed; and the Greeks shut their eyes against the impending danger, till the arrival of the spring and the sultan decide the assurance of their ruin.

The Muslims, particularly the Turkish legal scholars, have said that no promise can hold the faithful back when it conflicts with their religious duties; that the sultan can dismiss his own treaties and those made by his predecessors. Amurath, who was just and noble, rejected this immoral privilege; however, his son, who was the proudest of men, stooped to the lowest tricks of deception and deceit out of ambition. He talked about peace, but in his heart, he desired war; he yearned to possess Constantinople, and the Greeks, through their own foolishness, provided the first excuse for the disastrous conflict. Instead of trying to be forgotten, their ambassadors followed him to his camp, demanding the payment and even an increase of their annual stipend. The divan was pressured by their complaints, and the vizier, who secretly supported the Christians, was forced to express the thoughts of his colleagues. “You foolish and miserable Romans,” Calil said, “we know your schemes, while you are unaware of your own peril! The cautious Amurath is gone; his throne is held by a young conqueror, who is bound by no laws and cannot be stopped by any barriers: and if you manage to escape him, thank divine mercy for delaying the punishment of your sins. Why do you seek to intimidate us with empty threats? Release the runaway Orchan, crown him sultan of Romania; call the Hungarians from beyond the Danube; rally the nations of the West against us; and be assured, you will only provoke and hasten your own downfall.” While the ambassadors were alarmed by the harsh words of the vizier, they were comforted by the polite reception and friendly remarks of the Ottoman prince; Mahomet assured them that upon his return to Adrianople, he would address their grievances and consider the true interests of the Greeks. As soon as he crossed back over the Hellespont, he ordered the cancellation of their pension and the expulsion of their officers from the banks of the Strymon: this action revealed his hostile intentions; the second order indicated, and partially initiated, the siege of Constantinople. In the narrow passage of the Bosphorus, an Asian fortress had previously been built by his grandfather; on the European side, he decided to build a more powerful fortress; and he commanded a thousand masons to gather in the spring at a location called Asomaton, about five miles from the Greek capital. Persuasion is the tool of the weak; and the weak can rarely persuade: the emperor’s ambassadors tried unsuccessfully to dissuade Mahomet from carrying out his plans. They explained that his grandfather had sought permission from Manuel to build a fortress on his own lands; but this additional fortification, which would command the strait, would only violate the alliance between nations, disrupt Latin trade in the Black Sea, and possibly starve the city. “I have no intention,” replied the deceitful sultan, “of waging war against the city; but the empire of Constantinople is defined by its walls. Have you forgotten the crisis my father faced when you allied yourselves with the Hungarians; when they invaded our land, and the Hellespont was occupied by French galleys? Amurath had to force his way across the Bosphorus; your strength could not match your malice. I was just a child in Adrianople; the Muslims were in fear; and for a time, the Gabours mocked our disgrace. But when my father triumphed at the battle of Warna, he vowed to build a fort on the western shore, and it is my duty to fulfill that vow. Do you have the right, do you have the power, to control my actions in my own territory? That land is mine: as far as the shores of the Bosphorus, Asia is populated by Turks, and Europe is abandoned by Romans. Return and inform your king that the present Ottoman is very different from his predecessors; that his decisions surpass their desires; and that he accomplishes more than they could even imagine. Return safely—but the next person who brings a similar message may expect a gruesome fate.” After this declaration, Constantine, the foremost Greek in both spirit and rank, decided to draw his sword and resist the Turks' advance and establishment on the Bosphorus. He was dissuaded by the advice of his civil and religious advisors, who suggested a strategy that was less noble, and even less wise, than his own: to show patience and endurance, to label the Ottoman as an aggressor, and to rely on fate and time for their survival, and the downfall of a fort that couldn’t last long near a large and populous city. Amid hopes and fears, the worries of the wise, and the hopes of the naive, winter went by; each person’s proper tasks were postponed; and the Greeks ignored the approaching danger until the arrival of spring and the sultan confirmed their doom.

11 (return)
[ Before I enter on the siege of Constantinople, I shall observe, that except the short hints of Cantemir and Leunclavius, I have not been able to obtain any Turkish account of this conquest; such an account as we possess of the siege of Rhodes by Soliman II., (Mémoires de l’Académie des Inscriptions, tom. xxvi. p. 723—769.) I must therefore depend on the Greeks, whose prejudices, in some degree, are subdued by their distress. Our standard texts ar those of Ducas, (c. 34—42,) Phranza, (l. iii. c. 7—20,) Chalcondyles, (l. viii. p. 201—214,) and Leonardus Chiensis, (Historia C. P. a Turco expugnatæ. Norimberghæ, 1544, in 4to., 20 leaves.) The last of these narratives is the earliest in date, since it was composed in the Isle of Chios, the 16th of August, 1453, only seventy-nine days after the loss of the city, and in the first confusion of ideas and passions. Some hints may be added from an epistle of Cardinal Isidore (in Farragine Rerum Turcicarum, ad calcem Chalcondyl. Clauseri, Basil, 1556) to Pope Nicholas V., and a tract of Theodosius Zygomala, which he addressed in the year 1581 to Martin Crucius, (Turco-Græcia, l. i. p. 74—98, Basil, 1584.) The various facts and materials are briefly, though critically, reviewed by Spondanus, (A.D. 1453, No. 1—27.) The hearsay relations of Monstrelet and the distant Latins I shall take leave to disregard. * Note: M. Von Hammer has added little new information on the siege of Constantinople, and, by his general agreement, has borne an honorable testimony to the truth, and by his close imitation to the graphic spirit and boldness, of Gibbon.—M.]

11 (return)
[ Before I dive into the siege of Constantinople, I want to mention that aside from some brief remarks by Cantemir and Leunclavius, I haven't been able to find any Turkish account of this conquest. I’m missing the kind of detailed information we have about the siege of Rhodes by Soliman II. (Mémoires de l’Académie des Inscriptions, tom. xxvi. p. 723—769.) So, I have to rely on the Greeks, whose biases are somewhat lessened due to their suffering. Our main sources are Ducas (c. 34—42), Phranza (l. iii. c. 7—20), Chalcondyles (l. viii. p. 201—214), and Leonardus Chiensis (Historia C. P. a Turco expugnatæ. Norimberghæ, 1544, in 4to., 20 leaves.) The last of these accounts is the earliest because it was written on the Isle of Chios on August 16, 1453, just seventy-nine days after the city fell, amidst the initial chaos of thoughts and emotions. Additional insights can be found in a letter from Cardinal Isidore (in Farragine Rerum Turcicarum, at the end of Chalcondyl. Clauseri, Basil, 1556) to Pope Nicholas V., and a piece by Theodosius Zygomala, which he wrote in 1581 to Martin Crucius (Turco-Græcia, l. i. p. 74—98, Basil, 1584.) The various facts and sources are briefly, albeit critically, summarized by Spondanus (A.D. 1453, No. 1—27.) I’ll disregard the hearsay accounts from Monstrelet and the distant Latins. * Note: M. Von Hammer has added little new information on the siege of Constantinople and, by his overall agreement, has provided a commendable testimony to the truth while closely imitating the vivid style and boldness of Gibbon.—M.]

12 (return)
[ The situation of the fortress, and the topography of the Bosphorus, are best learned from Peter Gyllius, (de Bosphoro Thracio, l. ii. c. 13,) Leunclavius, (Pandect. p. 445,) and Tournefort, (Voyage dans le Levant, tom. ii. lettre xv. p. 443, 444;) but I must regret the map or plan which Tournefort sent to the French minister of the marine. The reader may turn back to chap. xvii. of this History.]

12 (return)
[ To understand the layout of the fortress and the geography of the Bosphorus, it's best to consult Peter Gyllius (de Bosphoro Thracio, l. ii. c. 13), Leunclavius (Pandect. p. 445), and Tournefort (Voyage dans le Levant, tom. ii. lettre xv. p. 443, 444); however, I regret the absence of the map or plan that Tournefort sent to the French minister of the navy. Readers can refer back to chapter xvii of this History.]

13 (return)
[ The opprobrious name which the Turks bestow on the infidels, is expressed Kabour by Ducas, and Giaour by Leunclavius and the moderns. The former term is derived by Ducange (Gloss. Græc tom. i. p. 530) from Kabouron, in vulgar Greek, a tortoise, as denoting a retrograde motion from the faith. But alas! Gabour is no more than Gheber, which was transferred from the Persian to the Turkish language, from the worshippers of fire to those of the crucifix, (D’Herbelot, Bibliot. Orient. p. 375.)]

13 (return)
[ The derogatory name that the Turks give to non-believers is referred to as Kabour by Ducas and Giaour by Leunclavius and others. Ducange (Gloss. Græc tom. i. p. 530) traces the former term back to Kabouron in common Greek, which means a tortoise, symbolizing a backward movement from faith. However, Gabour is just another form of Gheber, which moved from Persian to Turkish, illustrating the transition from fire worshippers to those who follow the crucifix (D’Herbelot, Bibliot. Orient. p. 375.)]

14 (return)
[ Phranza does justice to his master’s sense and courage. Calliditatem hominis non ignorans Imperator prior arma movere constituit, and stigmatizes the folly of the cum sacri tum profani proceres, which he had heard, amentes spe vanâ pasci. Ducas was not a privy-counsellor.]

14 (return)
[Phranza accurately reflects his master’s wisdom and bravery. Noting the cleverness of the man, the Emperor first decided to take up arms, calling out the foolishness of both religious and secular leaders, who he had heard were foolishly sustained by empty hope. Ducas was not a member of the council.]

Of a master who never forgives, the orders are seldom disobeyed. On the twenty-sixth of March, the appointed spot of Asomaton was covered with an active swarm of Turkish artificers; and the materials by sea and land were diligently transported from Europe and Asia. 15 The lime had been burnt in Cataphrygia; the timber was cut down in the woods of Heraclea and Nicomedia; and the stones were dug from the Anatolian quarries. Each of the thousand masons was assisted by two workmen; and a measure of two cubits was marked for their daily task. The fortress 16 was built in a triangular form; each angle was flanked by a strong and massy tower; one on the declivity of the hill, two along the sea-shore: a thickness of twenty-two feet was assigned for the walls, thirty for the towers; and the whole building was covered with a solid platform of lead. Mahomet himself pressed and directed the work with indefatigable ardor: his three viziers claimed the honor of finishing their respective towers; the zeal of the cadhis emulated that of the Janizaries; the meanest labor was ennobled by the service of God and the sultan; and the diligence of the multitude was quickened by the eye of a despot, whose smile was the hope of fortune, and whose frown was the messenger of death. The Greek emperor beheld with terror the irresistible progress of the work; and vainly strove, by flattery and gifts, to assuage an implacable foe, who sought, and secretly fomented, the slightest occasion of a quarrel. Such occasions must soon and inevitably be found. The ruins of stately churches, and even the marble columns which had been consecrated to Saint Michael the archangel, were employed without scruple by the profane and rapacious Moslems; and some Christians, who presumed to oppose the removal, received from their hands the crown of martyrdom. Constantine had solicited a Turkish guard to protect the fields and harvests of his subjects: the guard was fixed; but their first order was to allow free pasture to the mules and horses of the camp, and to defend their brethren if they should be molested by the natives. The retinue of an Ottoman chief had left their horses to pass the night among the ripe corn; the damage was felt; the insult was resented; and several of both nations were slain in a tumultuous conflict. Mahomet listened with joy to the complaint; and a detachment was commanded to exterminate the guilty village: the guilty had fled; but forty innocent and unsuspecting reapers were massacred by the soldiers. Till this provocation, Constantinople had been opened to the visits of commerce and curiosity: on the first alarm, the gates were shut; but the emperor, still anxious for peace, released on the third day his Turkish captives; 17 and expressed, in a last message, the firm resignation of a Christian and a soldier. “Since neither oaths, nor treaty, nor submission, can secure peace, pursue,” said he to Mahomet, “your impious warfare. My trust is in God alone; if it should please him to mollify your heart, I shall rejoice in the happy change; if he delivers the city into your hands, I submit without a murmur to his holy will. But until the Judge of the earth shall pronounce between us, it is my duty to live and die in the defence of my people.” The sultan’s answer was hostile and decisive: his fortifications were completed; and before his departure for Adrianople, he stationed a vigilant Aga and four hundred Janizaries, to levy a tribute on the ships of every nation that should pass within the reach of their cannon. A Venetian vessel, refusing obedience to the new lords of the Bosphorus, was sunk with a single bullet. 171 The master and thirty sailors escaped in the boat; but they were dragged in chains to the Porte: the chief was impaled; his companions were beheaded; and the historian Ducas 18 beheld, at Demotica, their bodies exposed to the wild beasts. The siege of Constantinople was deferred till the ensuing spring; but an Ottoman army marched into the Morea to divert the force of the brothers of Constantine. At this æra of calamity, one of these princes, the despot Thomas, was blessed or afflicted with the birth of a son; “the last heir,” says the plaintive Phranza, “of the last spark of the Roman empire.” 19

Of a master who never forgives, orders are rarely disobeyed. On March 26th, the designated site of Asomaton was bustling with a hive of Turkish craftsmen; materials were diligently transported by land and sea from Europe and Asia. 15 The lime had been burned in Cataphrygia; the timber was cut down in the forests of Heraclea and Nicomedia; and stones were extracted from the Anatolian quarries. Each of the thousand masons had two assistants, and a measurement of two cubits was set for their daily tasks. The fortress 16 was constructed in a triangular shape, with each corner supported by a strong, massive tower: one on the slope of the hill and two along the shoreline. The walls were assigned a thickness of twenty-two feet, while the towers were thirty feet thick, and the entire structure was topped with a solid lead platform. Mahomet himself pressed on and directed the work with tireless enthusiasm: his three viziers took pride in completing their respective towers; the zeal of the cadhis matched that of the Janizaries; even the humblest labor was elevated by the service of God and the sultan; and the diligence of the masses was quickened by the watchful eye of a despot whose smile was a promise of fortune and whose frown meant death. The Greek emperor watched in fear the unstoppable progress of the work and vainly tried, through flattery and gifts, to appease a relentless enemy who sought and secretly instigated even the slightest reason for conflict. Such reasons would soon and inevitably be found. The ruins of grand churches, and even the marble columns dedicated to Saint Michael the Archangel, were used without hesitation by the profane and greedy Muslims; and some Christians who dared to resist their removal were rewarded with martyrdom. Constantine had requested a Turkish guard to protect the fields and harvests of his people: the guard was established, but their first duty was to allow the mules and horses of the camp to graze freely and to defend their fellow Muslims if they were disturbed by locals. The entourage of an Ottoman chief had left their horses to spend the night among the ripe grain; the damage was felt; the insult was avenged; and several men from both sides were killed in a chaotic fight. Mahomet listened with pleasure to the complaint, and ordered a detachment to destroy the offending village: the guilty had fled, but forty innocent and unsuspecting harvesters were slaughtered by the soldiers. Until this provocation, Constantinople had been open to trade and visits out of curiosity: at the first alarm, the gates were shut; but the emperor, still eager for peace, released his Turkish captives on the third day; 17 and expressed, in a final message, the firm resignation of a Christian and a soldier. “Since neither oaths, nor treaties, nor submission can guarantee peace, continue,” he said to Mahomet, “your wicked warfare. My trust is in God alone; if it pleases Him to soften your heart, I will rejoice in the happy change; if He hands the city over to you, I submit without complaint to His holy will. But until the Judge of the earth decides between us, it is my duty to live and die defending my people.” The sultan’s response was hostile and definitive: his fortifications were finished; and before he left for Adrianople, he stationed a vigilant Aga and four hundred Janizaries to collect a toll from ships of every nation that sailed within their cannon’s range. A Venetian ship, refusing to comply with the new rulers of the Bosphorus, was sunk with a single shot. 171 The captain and thirty sailors escaped in a small boat; but they were taken in chains to the Porte: the captain was impaled; his companions were beheaded; and the historian Ducas 18 witnessed their bodies displayed for wild animals at Demotica. The siege of Constantinople was postponed until the following spring; however, an Ottoman army marched into the Morea to distract the forces of Constantine’s brothers. During this time of misfortune, one of these princes, the despot Thomas, was either blessed or cursed with the birth of a son; “the last heir,” laments the sorrowful Phranza, “of the last spark of the Roman empire.” 19

15 (return)
[ Instead of this clear and consistent account, the Turkish Annals (Cantemir, p. 97) revived the foolish tale of the ox’s hide, and Dido’s stratagem in the foundation of Carthage. These annals (unless we are swayed by an anti-Christian prejudice) are far less valuable than the Greek historians.]

15 (return)
[ Instead of this clear and consistent account, the Turkish Annals (Cantemir, p. 97) brought back the silly story of the ox’s hide and Dido’s trick in founding Carthage. These annals (unless we let anti-Christian bias affect us) are far less valuable than the Greek historians.]

16 (return)
[ In the dimensions of this fortress, the old castle of Europe, Phranza does not exactly agree with Chalcondyles, whose description has been verified on the spot by his editor Leunclavius.]

16 (return)
[When it comes to the measurements of this fortress, the ancient castle of Europe, Phranza doesn’t completely align with Chalcondyles, whose description has been confirmed firsthand by his editor Leunclavius.]

17 (return)
[ Among these were some pages of Mahomet, so conscious of his inexorable rigor, that they begged to lose their heads in the city unless they could return before sunset.]

17 (return)
[ Among these were some pages of Muhammad, so aware of his unyielding authority, that they pleaded to lose their heads in the city unless they could return before sunset.]

171 (return)
[ This was from a model cannon cast by Urban the Hungarian. See p. 291. Von Hammer. p. 510.—M.]

171 (return)
[ This was from a model cannon made by Urban the Hungarian. See p. 291. Von Hammer. p. 510.—M.]

18 (return)
[ Ducas, c. 35. Phranza, (l. iii. c. 3,) who had sailed in his vessel, commemorates the Venetian pilot as a martyr.]

18 (return)
[ Ducas, c. 35. Phranza, (l. iii. c. 3,) who had sailed in his ship, remembers the Venetian pilot as a martyr.]

19 (return)
[ Auctum est Palæologorum genus, et Imperii successor, parvæque Romanorum scintillæ hæres natus, Andreas, &c., (Phranza, l. iii. c. 7.) The strong expression was inspired by his feelings.]

19 (return)
[ The Palaiologos family rose to power, and the heir to the empire, born of a small spark of the Romans, Andreas, etc., (Phranza, l. iii. c. 7.) The intense wording came from his emotions.]

The Greeks and the Turks passed an anxious and sleepless winter: the former were kept awake by their fears, the latter by their hopes; both by the preparations of defence and attack; and the two emperors, who had the most to lose or to gain, were the most deeply affected by the national sentiment. In Mahomet, that sentiment was inflamed by the ardor of his youth and temper: he amused his leisure with building at Adrianople 20 the lofty palace of Jehan Numa, (the watchtower of the world;) but his serious thoughts were irrevocably bent on the conquest of the city of Cæsar. At the dead of night, about the second watch, he started from his bed, and commanded the instant attendance of his prime vizier. The message, the hour, the prince, and his own situation, alarmed the guilty conscience of Calil Basha; who had possessed the confidence, and advised the restoration, of Amurath. On the accession of the son, the vizier was confirmed in his office and the appearances of favor; but the veteran statesman was not insensible that he trod on a thin and slippery ice, which might break under his footsteps, and plunge him in the abyss. His friendship for the Christians, which might be innocent under the late reign, had stigmatized him with the name of Gabour Ortachi, or foster-brother of the infidels; 21 and his avarice entertained a venal and treasonable correspondence, which was detected and punished after the conclusion of the war. On receiving the royal mandate, he embraced, perhaps for the last time, his wife and children; filled a cup with pieces of gold, hastened to the palace, adored the sultan, and offered, according to the Oriental custom, the slight tribute of his duty and gratitude. 22 “It is not my wish,” said Mahomet, “to resume my gifts, but rather to heap and multiply them on thy head. In my turn, I ask a present far more valuable and important;—Constantinople.” As soon as the vizier had recovered from his surprise, “The same God,” said he, “who has already given thee so large a portion of the Roman empire, will not deny the remnant, and the capital. His providence, and thy power, assure thy success; and myself, with the rest of thy faithful slaves, will sacrifice our lives and fortunes.”—“Lala,” 23 (or preceptor,) continued the sultan, “do you see this pillow? All the night, in my agitation, I have pulled it on one side and the other; I have risen from my bed, again have I lain down; yet sleep has not visited these weary eyes. Beware of the gold and silver of the Romans: in arms we are superior; and with the aid of God, and the prayers of the prophet, we shall speedily become masters of Constantinople.” To sound the disposition of his soldiers, he often wandered through the streets alone, and in disguise; and it was fatal to discover the sultan, when he wished to escape from the vulgar eye. His hours were spent in delineating the plan of the hostile city; in debating with his generals and engineers, on what spot he should erect his batteries; on which side he should assault the walls; where he should spring his mines; to what place he should apply his scaling-ladders: and the exercises of the day repeated and proved the lucubrations of the night.

The Greeks and the Turks spent a restless winter: the Greeks were kept awake by their fears, while the Turks were driven by their hopes; both were anxious about their preparations for defense and attack. The two emperors, who had the most to lose or gain, were deeply affected by national sentiment. In Mahomet, this sentiment was intensified by the passion of his youth and temperament: he occupied his free time by building at Adrianople the grand palace of Jehan Numa (the watchtower of the world); but his serious thoughts were solely focused on conquering the city of Cæsar. In the dead of night, around the second watch, he jumped out of bed and called for his prime vizier immediately. The message, the hour, the prince, and his own situation alarmed the guilty conscience of Calil Basha, who had gained the emperor's trust and advised the restoration of Amurath. When the son came to power, the vizier was confirmed in his position and the semblance of favor; but the experienced statesman was acutely aware that he was walking on thin ice, which could easily break and plunge him into disaster. His friendships with Christians, which might have been harmless in the previous reign, had earned him the reputation of Gabour Ortachi, or foster-brother of the infidels; and his greed led him to engage in corrupt and treasonous dealings that were discovered and punished after the war ended. Upon receiving the royal order, he embraced, perhaps for the last time, his wife and children; filled a cup with gold coins, rushed to the palace, bowed before the sultan, and offered, as was custom in the East, a small token of his duty and gratitude. “I don’t want to take back my gifts,” said Mahomet, “but to shower even more upon you. In return, I ask for a gift far more valuable and crucial: Constantinople.” Once the vizier recovered from his shock, he replied, “The same God who has already granted you such a large part of the Roman empire won’t deny you the rest and the capital. His providence and your power guarantee your success; and I, along with the rest of your loyal servants, will sacrifice our lives and fortunes for you.” “Lala,” (or preceptor), continued the sultan, “do you see this pillow? All night long, in my anxiety, I have tossed it back and forth; I’ve gotten out of bed and then gone back to it; yet sleep has eluded these tired eyes. Be wary of the gold and silver of the Romans: in warfare, we are superior; and with God’s help and the prophet’s prayers, we will soon take Constantinople.” To gauge his soldiers’ morale, he often roamed the streets alone and in disguise; it was dangerous to be recognized as the sultan when he wished to avoid public attention. His days were spent planning the siege of the enemy city; debating with his generals and engineers about where to set up his artillery; deciding from which side to attack the walls; where to place his mines; and where to put his scaling ladders: and the day’s exercises confirmed and tested the strategies he developed by night.

20 (return)
[ Cantemir, p. 97, 98. The sultan was either doubtful of his conquest, or ignorant of the superior merits of Constantinople. A city or a kingdom may sometimes be ruined by the Imperial fortune of their sovereign.]

20 (return)
[ Cantemir, p. 97, 98. The sultan was either unsure of his victory or unaware of the advantages of Constantinople. A city or a kingdom can sometimes be destroyed by the luck of their ruler.]

21 (return)
[ SuntrojoV, by the president Cousin, is translated père nourricier, most correctly indeed from the Latin version; but in his haste he has overlooked the note by which Ishmael Boillaud (ad Ducam, c. 35) acknowledges and rectifies his own error.]

21 (return)
[ SuntrojoV, by President Cousin, is translated père nourricier, which is actually the correct rendering from the Latin version; however, in his rush, he missed the note where Ishmael Boillaud (ad Ducam, c. 35) admits and corrects his own mistake.]

22 (return)
[ The Oriental custom of never appearing without gifts before a sovereign or a superior is of high antiquity, and seems analogous with the idea of sacrifice, still more ancient and universal. See the examples of such Persian gifts, Ælian, Hist. Var. l. i. c. 31, 32, 33.]

22 (return)
[ The Eastern tradition of never showing up without gifts for a ruler or a superior dates back a long time and is similar to the concept of sacrifice, which is even older and more widespread. Check out the examples of Persian gifts in Ælian, Hist. Var. l. i. c. 31, 32, 33.]

23 (return)
[ The Lala of the Turks (Cantemir, p. 34) and the Tata of the Greeks (Ducas, c. 35) are derived from the natural language of children; and it may be observed, that all such primitive words which denote their parents, are the simple repetition of one syllable, composed of a labial or a dental consonant and an open vowel, (Des Brosses, Méchanisme des Langues, tom. i. p. 231—247.)]

23 (return)
[ The Lala of the Turks (Cantemir, p. 34) and the Tata of the Greeks (Ducas, c. 35) come from how children naturally speak; it's worth noting that all such basic words for parents are just the simple repetition of one syllable, made up of a labial or dental consonant and an open vowel, (Des Brosses, Méchanisme des Langues, tom. i. p. 231—247.)]

Chapter LXVIII: Reign Of Mahomet The Second, Extinction Of Eastern Empire.—Part II.

Among the implements of destruction, he studied with peculiar care the recent and tremendous discovery of the Latins; and his artillery surpassed whatever had yet appeared in the world. A founder of cannon, a Dane 231 or Hungarian, who had been almost starved in the Greek service, deserted to the Moslems, and was liberally entertained by the Turkish sultan. Mahomet was satisfied with the answer to his first question, which he eagerly pressed on the artist. “Am I able to cast a cannon capable of throwing a ball or stone of sufficient size to batter the walls of Constantinople? I am not ignorant of their strength; but were they more solid than those of Babylon, I could oppose an engine of superior power: the position and management of that engine must be left to your engineers.” On this assurance, a foundry was established at Adrianople: the metal was prepared; and at the end of three months, Urban produced a piece of brass ordnance of stupendous, and almost incredible magnitude; a measure of twelve palms is assigned to the bore; and the stone bullet weighed above six hundred pounds. 24 241 A vacant place before the new palace was chosen for the first experiment; but to prevent the sudden and mischievous effects of astonishment and fear, a proclamation was issued, that the cannon would be discharged the ensuing day. The explosion was felt or heard in a circuit of a hundred furlongs: the ball, by the force of gunpowder, was driven above a mile; and on the spot where it fell, it buried itself a fathom deep in the ground. For the conveyance of this destructive engine, a frame or carriage of thirty wagons was linked together and drawn along by a team of sixty oxen: two hundred men on both sides were stationed, to poise and support the rolling weight; two hundred and fifty workmen marched before to smooth the way and repair the bridges; and near two months were employed in a laborious journey of one hundred and fifty miles. A lively philosopher 25 derides on this occasion the credulity of the Greeks, and observes, with much reason, that we should always distrust the exaggerations of a vanquished people. He calculates, that a ball, even of two hundred pounds, would require a charge of one hundred and fifty pounds of powder; and that the stroke would be feeble and impotent, since not a fifteenth part of the mass could be inflamed at the same moment. A stranger as I am to the art of destruction, I can discern that the modern improvements of artillery prefer the number of pieces to the weight of metal; the quickness of the fire to the sound, or even the consequence, of a single explosion. Yet I dare not reject the positive and unanimous evidence of contemporary writers; nor can it seem improbable, that the first artists, in their rude and ambitious efforts, should have transgressed the standard of moderation. A Turkish cannon, more enormous than that of Mahomet, still guards the entrance of the Dardanelles; and if the use be inconvenient, it has been found on a late trial that the effect was far from contemptible. A stone bullet of eleven hundred pounds’ weight was once discharged with three hundred and thirty pounds of powder: at the distance of six hundred yards it shivered into three rocky fragments; traversed the strait; and leaving the waters in a foam, again rose and bounded against the opposite hill. 26

Among the tools of destruction, he examined with particular attention the recent and remarkable discovery of the Latins; and his artillery was more advanced than anything that had been seen in the world up to that point. A cannon maker, a Dane or Hungarian, who had nearly starved while serving the Greeks, defected to the Moslems and was generously hosted by the Turkish sultan. Mahomet was pleased with the answer to his initial question, which he eagerly pressed the artist for. “Can I cast a cannon that can launch a ball or stone big enough to batter the walls of Constantinople? I know how strong they are; but even if they were stronger than those of Babylon, I could provide a weapon of greater power: the placement and operation of that weapon must be managed by your engineers.” Based on this assurance, a foundry was set up in Adrianople: the metal was prepared; and after three months, Urban produced a piece of brass ordnance of astonishing, almost unbelievable size; it had a bore measuring twelve palms, and the stone bullet weighed over six hundred pounds. A location in front of the new palace was selected for the first test; however, to avoid the shock and panic of surprise, a notice was issued that the cannon would be fired the next day. The explosion was felt or heard across a hundred furlongs: propelled by gunpowder, the ball flew over a mile; and where it landed, it embedded itself a fathom deep in the ground. To transport this massive weapon, a frame or carriage made up of thirty wagons was connected and pulled by a team of sixty oxen: two hundred men were stationed on either side to stabilize and support the heavy load; two hundred and fifty workers went ahead to smooth the path and repair bridges; and nearly two months were spent on a strenuous journey of one hundred and fifty miles. A witty philosopher mocks the gullibility of the Greeks and points out, quite reasonably, that we should always be skeptical of the claims made by a defeated people. He calculates that even a ball weighing two hundred pounds would need one hundred and fifty pounds of powder; and that the impact would be weak and ineffective, as not even a fifteenth of the mass could be ignited all at once. As someone unfamiliar with the art of destruction, I can see that modern advancements in artillery favor the quantity of cannons over the weight of metal; the speed of fire over the noise, or even the impact, of a single explosion. Yet, I cannot dismiss the strong and consistent testimonies of contemporary writers; nor does it seem unlikely that the earliest craftsmen, in their rough and ambitious efforts, may have exceeded the bounds of reason. A Turkish cannon, even larger than Mahomet's, still stands at the entrance of the Dardanelles; and although it might be impractical, a recent test showed that its impact was far from negligible. A stone bullet weighing eleven hundred pounds was once fired using three hundred and thirty pounds of powder: at a distance of six hundred yards, it shattered into three rocky pieces; crossed the strait; and leaving the waters churning, it rose again and struck the opposite hill.

231 (return)
[ Gibbon has written Dane by mistake for Dace, or Dacian. Lax ti kinoV?. Chalcondyles, Von Hammer, p. 510.—M.]

231 (return)
[ Gibbon mistakenly wrote Dane instead of Dace or Dacian. Lax ti kinoV?. Chalcondyles, Von Hammer, p. 510.—M.]

24 (return)
[ The Attic talent weighed about sixty minæ, or avoirdupois pounds (see Hooper on Ancient Weights, Measures, &c.;) but among the modern Greeks, that classic appellation was extended to a weight of one hundred, or one hundred and twenty-five pounds, (Ducange, talanton.) Leonardus Chiensis measured the ball or stone of the second cannon Lapidem, qui palmis undecim ex meis ambibat in gyro.]

24 (return)
[ The Attic talent weighed about sixty minæ, or pounds, (see Hooper on Ancient Weights, Measures, &c.;) but among modern Greeks, that classic term was used for a weight of one hundred or one hundred and twenty-five pounds, (Ducange, talanton.) Leonardus Chiensis measured the ball or stone of the second cannon Lapidem, which surrounded my hands eleven times in a circle.]

241 (return)
[ 1200, according to Leonardus Chiensis. Von Hammer states that he had himself seen the great cannon of the Dardanelles, in which a tailor who had run away from his creditors, had concealed himself several days Von Hammer had measured balls twelve spans round. Note. p. 666.—M.]

241 (return)
[ 1200, according to Leonardus Chiensis. Von Hammer mentions that he actually saw the massive cannon of the Dardanelles, where a tailor who had fled from his debts hid for several days. Von Hammer measured the cannonballs to be twelve spans in diameter. Note. p. 666.—M.]

25 (return)
[ See Voltaire, (Hist. Générale, c. xci. p. 294, 295.) He was ambitious of universal monarchy; and the poet frequently aspires to the name and style of an astronomer, a chemist, &c.]

25 (return)
[ See Voltaire, (Hist. Générale, c. xci. p. 294, 295.) He wanted to rule the world; and the poet often strives for the title and recognition of an astronomer, a chemist, etc.]

26 (return)
[ The Baron de Tott, (tom. iii. p. 85—89,) who fortified the Dardanelles against the Russians, describes in a lively, and even comic, strain his own prowess, and the consternation of the Turks. But that adventurous traveller does not possess the art of gaining our confidence.]

26 (return)
[ The Baron de Tott, (vol. iii, pp. 85–89,) who strengthened the Dardanelles against the Russians, vividly and even humorously recounts his own skills and the panic of the Turks. However, that daring traveler lacks the ability to earn our trust.]

While Mahomet threatened the capital of the East, the Greek emperor implored with fervent prayers the assistance of earth and heaven. But the invisible powers were deaf to his supplications; and Christendom beheld with indifference the fall of Constantinople, while she derived at least some promise of supply from the jealous and temporal policy of the sultan of Egypt. Some states were too weak, and others too remote; by some the danger was considered as imaginary by others as inevitable: the Western princes were involved in their endless and domestic quarrels; and the Roman pontiff was exasperated by the falsehood or obstinacy of the Greeks. Instead of employing in their favor the arms and treasures of Italy, Nicholas the Fifth had foretold their approaching ruin; and his honor was engaged in the accomplishment of his prophecy. 261 Perhaps he was softened by the last extremity of their distress; but his compassion was tardy; his efforts were faint and unavailing; and Constantinople had fallen, before the squadrons of Genoa and Venice could sail from their harbors. 27 Even the princes of the Morea and of the Greek islands affected a cold neutrality: the Genoese colony of Galata negotiated a private treaty; and the sultan indulged them in the delusive hope, that by his clemency they might survive the ruin of the empire. A plebeian crowd, and some Byzantine nobles basely withdrew from the danger of their country; and the avarice of the rich denied the emperor, and reserved for the Turks, the secret treasures which might have raised in their defence whole armies of mercenaries. 28 The indigent and solitary prince prepared, however, to sustain his formidable adversary; but if his courage were equal to the peril, his strength was inadequate to the contest. In the beginning of the spring, the Turkish vanguard swept the towns and villages as far as the gates of Constantinople: submission was spared and protected; whatever presumed to resist was exterminated with fire and sword. The Greek places on the Black Sea, Mesembria, Acheloum, and Bizon, surrendered on the first summons; Selybria alone deserved the honors of a siege or blockade; and the bold inhabitants, while they were invested by land, launched their boats, pillaged the opposite coast of Cyzicus, and sold their captives in the public market. But on the approach of Mahomet himself all was silent and prostrate: he first halted at the distance of five miles; and from thence advancing in battle array, planted before the gates of St. Romanus the Imperial standard; and on the sixth day of April formed the memorable siege of Constantinople.

While Muhammad threatened the capital of the East, the Greek emperor fervently prayed for help from both earth and heaven. But the invisible forces ignored his pleas, and Christendom watched indifferently as Constantinople fell, while at least some hope for aid came from the jealous and political strategies of the sultan of Egypt. Some states were too weak, and others too far away; some considered the danger imaginary, while others saw it as unavoidable. The Western princes were caught up in their endless domestic disputes, and the Roman pontiff was frustrated by the dishonesty or stubbornness of the Greeks. Instead of using Italy's resources to help them, Nicholas the Fifth predicted their impending doom, and his reputation depended on the accuracy of his prophecy. 261 Perhaps he was softened by the extreme desperation of their situation, but his compassion was slow; his efforts were weak and ineffective, and Constantinople had fallen before the fleets of Genoa and Venice could leave their ports. 27 Even the princes of the Morea and the Greek islands maintained a neutral stance: the Genoese colony of Galata made a secret deal, and the sultan allowed them to hold onto the false hope that his mercy would let them survive the empire's collapse. A common crowd and some Byzantine nobles shamefully turned their backs on their country's danger, and the greed of the wealthy denied the emperor the hidden treasures that could have raised entire armies of mercenaries for defense. 28 The impoverished and isolated prince, however, prepared to face his powerful enemy; but while his courage matched the peril, his strength was insufficient for the fight. At the start of spring, the Turkish vanguard swept through the towns and villages up to the gates of Constantinople: they spared those who submitted and destroyed anyone who resisted with fire and sword. The Greek towns along the Black Sea, Mesembria, Acheloum, and Bizon surrendered at the first call; only Selybria held out long enough to deserve a siege or blockade. The brave inhabitants, while surrounded by land forces, launched their boats, raided the opposite coast of Cyzicus, and sold their captives in the public market. But as Muhammad approached, everything became silent and submissive: he first stopped five miles away; then advancing in battle formation, he planted the Imperial standard before the gates of St. Romanus and began the historic siege of Constantinople on April sixth.

261 (return)
[ See the curious Christian and Mahometan predictions of the fall of Constantinople, Von Hammer, p. 518.—M.]

261 (return)
[ Check out the interesting Christian and Muslim predictions about the fall of Constantinople, Von Hammer, p. 518.—M.]

27 (return)
[ Non audivit, indignum ducens, says the honest Antoninus; but as the Roman court was afterwards grieved and ashamed, we find the more courtly expression of Platina, in animo fuisse pontifici juvare Græcos, and the positive assertion of Æneas Sylvius, structam classem &c. (Spond. A.D. 1453, No. 3.)]

27 (return)
[ He didn't hear it, feeling it was beneath him, says the honest Antoninus; but since the Roman court was later upset and embarrassed, we see the more refined wording of Platina, in animo fuisse pontifici juvare Græcos, and the clear statement of Æneas Sylvius, structam classem &c. (Spond. A.D. 1453, No. 3.)]

28 (return)
[ Antonin. in Proem.—Epist. Cardinal. Isidor. apud Spondanum and Dr. Johnson, in the tragedy of Irene, has happily seized this characteristic circumstance:—

28 (return)
[ Antonin. in Proem.—Epist. Cardinal. Isidor. in Spondanus and Dr. Johnson's tragedy of Irene, has effectively highlighted this distinctive element:—

               The groaning Greeks dig up the golden caverns.
               The accumulated wealth of hoarding ages;
               That wealth which, granted to their weeping prince,
               Had ranged embattled nations at their gates.
               The complaining Greeks excavate the golden caves.  
               The amassed riches of greedy times;  
               That wealth which, given to their sorrowful prince,  
               Had brought warring nations to their doorsteps.  

]

]

The troops of Asia and Europe extended on the right and left from the Propontis to the harbor; the Janizaries in the front were stationed before the sultan’s tent; the Ottoman line was covered by a deep intrenchment; and a subordinate army enclosed the suburb of Galata, and watched the doubtful faith of the Genoese. The inquisitive Philelphus, who resided in Greece about thirty years before the siege, is confident, that all the Turkish forces of any name or value could not exceed the number of sixty thousand horse and twenty thousand foot; and he upbraids the pusillanimity of the nations, who had tamely yielded to a handful of Barbarians. Such indeed might be the regular establishment of the Capiculi, 29 the troops of the Porte who marched with the prince, and were paid from his royal treasury. But the bashaws, in their respective governments, maintained or levied a provincial militia; many lands were held by a military tenure; many volunteers were attracted by the hope of spoil and the sound of the holy trumpet invited a swarm of hungry and fearless fanatics, who might contribute at least to multiply the terrors, and in a first attack to blunt the swords, of the Christians. The whole mass of the Turkish powers is magnified by Ducas, Chalcondyles, and Leonard of Chios, to the amount of three or four hundred thousand men; but Phranza was a less remote and more accurate judge; and his precise definition of two hundred and fifty-eight thousand does not exceed the measure of experience and probability. 30 The navy of the besiegers was less formidable: the Propontis was overspread with three hundred and twenty sail; but of these no more than eighteen could be rated as galleys of war; and the far greater part must be degraded to the condition of store-ships and transports, which poured into the camp fresh supplies of men, ammunition, and provisions. In her last decay, Constantinople was still peopled with more than a hundred thousand inhabitants; but these numbers are found in the accounts, not of war, but of captivity; and they mostly consisted of mechanics, of priests, of women, and of men devoid of that spirit which even women have sometimes exerted for the common safety. I can suppose, I could almost excuse, the reluctance of subjects to serve on a distant frontier, at the will of a tyrant; but the man who dares not expose his life in the defence of his children and his property, has lost in society the first and most active energies of nature. By the emperor’s command, a particular inquiry had been made through the streets and houses, how many of the citizens, or even of the monks, were able and willing to bear arms for their country. The lists were intrusted to Phranza; 31 and, after a diligent addition, he informed his master, with grief and surprise, that the national defence was reduced to four thousand nine hundred and seventy Romans. Between Constantine and his faithful minister this comfortless secret was preserved; and a sufficient proportion of shields, cross-bows, and muskets, were distributed from the arsenal to the city bands. They derived some accession from a body of two thousand strangers, under the command of John Justiniani, a noble Genoese; a liberal donative was advanced to these auxiliaries; and a princely recompense, the Isle of Lemnos, was promised to the valor and victory of their chief. A strong chain was drawn across the mouth of the harbor: it was supported by some Greek and Italian vessels of war and merchandise; and the ships of every Christian nation, that successively arrived from Candia and the Black Sea, were detained for the public service. Against the powers of the Ottoman empire, a city of the extent of thirteen, perhaps of sixteen, miles was defended by a scanty garrison of seven or eight thousand soldiers. Europe and Asia were open to the besiegers; but the strength and provisions of the Greeks must sustain a daily decrease; nor could they indulge the expectation of any foreign succor or supply.

The troops from Asia and Europe spread out on the right and left from the Propontis to the harbor; the Janizaries at the front were stationed in front of the sultan’s tent; the Ottoman line was protected by a deep trench; and a supporting army surrounded the suburb of Galata, keeping an eye on the uncertain loyalty of the Genoese. The curious Philelphus, who lived in Greece about thirty years before the siege, confidently states that all the Turkish forces of any significance could not have exceeded sixty thousand cavalry and twenty thousand infantry; he criticizes the cowardice of the nations that surrendered to a small group of Barbarians without a fight. This might indeed reflect the regular contingent of the Capiculi, 29, the troops of the Porte who marched with the prince and were paid with funds from his royal treasury. However, the bashaws, in their respective regions, maintained or recruited provincial militias; many lands were held by military tenure; many volunteers were drawn in by the promise of loot, and the sound of the holy trumpet invited a swarm of eager and fearless zealots, who could at least contribute to increasing the dread and, during the initial strike, dulling the swords of the Christians. The total strength of the Turkish forces is exaggerated by Ducas, Chalcondyles, and Leonard of Chios to be three or four hundred thousand men; but Phranza was a closer and more accurate judge, and his specific figure of two hundred and fifty-eight thousand aligns with experience and probability. 30 The besiegers' navy was less intimidating: the Propontis was filled with three hundred and twenty ships; however, only eighteen could be classified as war galleys, while most were reduced to the status of supply ships and transports, which brought fresh supplies of men, ammunition, and food to the camp. Even in its final decline, Constantinople had a population of over one hundred thousand residents, but these figures came from accounts of captivity, mostly comprising craftsmen, priests, women, and men lacking the spirit that even women sometimes showed for their common safety. I can imagine—almost excuse—the hesitation of subjects to serve on a distant front at the whim of a tyrant; but someone who is too afraid to risk their life for their children and property has lost the most fundamental and active energies of human nature. By the emperor’s order, a specific inquiry was conducted throughout the streets and homes to find out how many citizens—or even monks—were able and willing to take up arms for their country. The lists were entrusted to Phranza; 31 and, after careful tallying, he sadly informed his master that the national defense had dwindled to four thousand nine hundred seventy Romans. Between Constantine and his loyal minister, this disheartening secret was kept; and a sufficient amount of shields, crossbows, and muskets was distributed from the arsenal to the city forces. They gained some reinforcement from a group of two thousand foreigners led by John Justiniani, a noble Genoese; a generous reward was offered to these auxiliaries, and a royal prize, the Isle of Lemnos, was promised for the bravery and success of their leader. A strong chain was drawn across the mouth of the harbor; it was supported by several Greek and Italian warships and merchant vessels; and the ships of every Christian nation that arrived from Candia and the Black Sea were held back for public use. Against the might of the Ottoman Empire, a city stretching maybe thirteen or even sixteen miles was defended by a scant garrison of seven or eight thousand soldiers. Europe and Asia lay open to the besiegers; but the resources and strength of the Greeks faced daily decline; they could not allow themselves to hope for any foreign assistance or supplies.

29 (return)
[ The palatine troops are styled Capiculi, the provincials, Seratculi; and most of the names and institutions of the Turkish militia existed before the Canon Nameh of Soliman II, from which, and his own experience, Count Marsigli has composed his military state of the Ottoman empire.]

29 (return)
[ The palatine troops are called Capiculi, the provincial troops are referred to as Seratculi; and many of the names and structures of the Turkish military were in place before the Canon Nameh of Soliman II, which Count Marsigli used along with his own experiences to create his military overview of the Ottoman empire.]

30 (return)
[ The observation of Philelphus is approved by Cuspinian in the year 1508, (de Cæsaribus, in Epilog. de Militiâ Turcicâ, p. 697.) Marsigli proves, that the effective armies of the Turks are much less numerous than they appear. In the army that besieged Constantinople Leonardus Chiensis reckons no more than 15,000 Janizaries.]

30 (return)
[ Cuspinian supports Philelphus's observation in 1508 (de Cæsaribus, in Epilog. de Militiâ Turcicâ, p. 697). Marsigli shows that the actual number of Turkish troops is significantly lower than it seems. In the army that laid siege to Constantinople, Leonardus Chiensis counts only 15,000 Janizaries.]

31 (return)
[ Ego, eidem (Imp.) tabellas extribui non absque dolore et mstitia, mansitque apud nos duos aliis occultus numerus, (Phranza, l. iii. c. 8.) With some indulgence for national prejudices, we cannot desire a more authentic witness, not only of public facts, but of private counsels.]

31 (return)
[ I, for the same reasons (Imp.) can’t deny that the records were handed over with pain and resentment, and there remained among us two others with an undisclosed amount (Phranza, l. iii. c. 8.) With a bit of understanding for national biases, we can’t ask for a more credible account, not just of public events, but of private discussions.]

The primitive Romans would have drawn their swords in the resolution of death or conquest. The primitive Christians might have embraced each other, and awaited in patience and charity the stroke of martyrdom. But the Greeks of Constantinople were animated only by the spirit of religion, and that spirit was productive only of animosity and discord. Before his death, the emperor John Palæologus had renounced the unpopular measure of a union with the Latins; nor was the idea revived, till the distress of his brother Constantine imposed a last trial of flattery and dissimulation. 32 With the demand of temporal aid, his ambassadors were instructed to mingle the assurance of spiritual obedience: his neglect of the church was excused by the urgent cares of the state; and his orthodox wishes solicited the presence of a Roman legate. The Vatican had been too often deluded; yet the signs of repentance could not decently be overlooked; a legate was more easily granted than an army; and about six months before the final destruction, the cardinal Isidore of Russia appeared in that character with a retinue of priests and soldiers. The emperor saluted him as a friend and father; respectfully listened to his public and private sermons; and with the most obsequious of the clergy and laymen subscribed the act of union, as it had been ratified in the council of Florence. On the twelfth of December, the two nations, in the church of St. Sophia, joined in the communion of sacrifice and prayer; and the names of the two pontiffs were solemnly commemorated; the names of Nicholas the Fifth, the vicar of Christ, and of the patriarch Gregory, who had been driven into exile by a rebellious people.

The early Romans would have drawn their swords for death or victory. The early Christians might have embraced each other and patiently awaited their martyrdom with love and compassion. But the Greeks of Constantinople were fueled only by religious fervor, which produced nothing but hostility and conflict. Before he died, Emperor John Palæologus had given up the unpopular idea of uniting with the Latins; the thought didn’t come up again until his brother Constantine faced desperate circumstances that forced him into a final act of flattery and deceit. 32 To secure military aid, his ambassadors were told to assure spiritual loyalty: they justified his lack of church involvement by citing the pressing issues of the state, and he sought the presence of a Roman envoy out of his orthodox desires. The Vatican had been tricked too many times, yet the signs of repentance couldn’t be ignored; it was easier to grant a legate than an army. About six months before the city’s final fall, Cardinal Isidore of Russia arrived with a group of priests and soldiers. The emperor welcomed him as a friend and father, listened respectfully to his public and private sermons, and, along with the most servile clergy and laypeople, signed the act of union as it had been approved in the Council of Florence. On December 12th, the two nations united in the Church of St. Sophia for the communion of sacrifice and prayer, commemorating the names of the two pontiffs: Nicholas the Fifth, the vicar of Christ, and Patriarch Gregory, who had been exiled by a rebellious mob.

32 (return)
[ In Spondanus, the narrative of the union is not only partial, but imperfect. The bishop of Pamiers died in 1642, and the history of Ducas, which represents these scenes (c. 36, 37) with such truth and spirit, was not printed till the year 1649.]

32 (return)
[ In Spondanus, the story of the union is not just biased, but incomplete. The bishop of Pamiers passed away in 1642, and Ducas's account, which depicts these events (c. 36, 37) with such accuracy and passion, wasn't published until 1649.]

But the dress and language of the Latin priest who officiated at the altar were an object of scandal; and it was observed with horror, that he consecrated a cake or wafer of unleavened bread, and poured cold water into the cup of the sacrament. A national historian acknowledges with a blush, that none of his countrymen, not the emperor himself, were sincere in this occasional conformity. 33 Their hasty and unconditional submission was palliated by a promise of future revisal; but the best, or the worst, of their excuses was the confession of their own perjury. When they were pressed by the reproaches of their honest brethren, “Have patience,” they whispered, “have patience till God shall have delivered the city from the great dragon who seeks to devour us. You shall then perceive whether we are truly reconciled with the Azymites.” But patience is not the attribute of zeal; nor can the arts of a court be adapted to the freedom and violence of popular enthusiasm. From the dome of St. Sophia the inhabitants of either sex, and of every degree, rushed in crowds to the cell of the monk Gennadius, 34 to consult the oracle of the church. The holy man was invisible; entranced, as it should seem, in deep meditation, or divine rapture: but he had exposed on the door of his cell a speaking tablet; and they successively withdrew, after reading those tremendous words: “O miserable Romans, why will ye abandon the truth? and why, instead of confiding in God, will ye put your trust in the Italians? In losing your faith you will lose your city. Have mercy on me, O Lord! I protest in thy presence that I am innocent of the crime. O miserable Romans, consider, pause, and repent. At the same moment that you renounce the religion of your fathers, by embracing impiety, you submit to a foreign servitude.” According to the advice of Gennadius, the religious virgins, as pure as angels, and as proud as dæmons, rejected the act of union, and abjured all communion with the present and future associates of the Latins; and their example was applauded and imitated by the greatest part of the clergy and people. From the monastery, the devout Greeks dispersed themselves in the taverns; drank confusion to the slaves of the pope; emptied their glasses in honor of the image of the holy Virgin; and besought her to defend against Mahomet the city which she had formerly saved from Chosroes and the Chagan. In the double intoxication of zeal and wine, they valiantly exclaimed, “What occasion have we for succor, or union, or Latins? Far from us be the worship of the Azymites!” During the winter that preceded the Turkish conquest, the nation was distracted by this epidemical frenzy; and the season of Lent, the approach of Easter, instead of breathing charity and love, served only to fortify the obstinacy and influence of the zealots. The confessors scrutinized and alarmed the conscience of their votaries, and a rigorous penance was imposed on those who had received the communion from a priest who had given an express or tacit consent to the union. His service at the altar propagated the infection to the mute and simple spectators of the ceremony: they forfeited, by the impure spectacle, the virtue of the sacerdotal character; nor was it lawful, even in danger of sudden death, to invoke the assistance of their prayers or absolution. No sooner had the church of St. Sophia been polluted by the Latin sacrifice, than it was deserted as a Jewish synagogue, or a heathen temple, by the clergy and people; and a vast and gloomy silence prevailed in that venerable dome, which had so often smoked with a cloud of incense, blazed with innumerable lights, and resounded with the voice of prayer and thanksgiving. The Latins were the most odious of heretics and infidels; and the first minister of the empire, the great duke, was heard to declare, that he had rather behold in Constantinople the turban of Mahomet, than the pope’s tiara or a cardinal’s hat. 35 A sentiment so unworthy of Christians and patriots was familiar and fatal to the Greeks: the emperor was deprived of the affection and support of his subjects; and their native cowardice was sanctified by resignation to the divine decree, or the visionary hope of a miraculous deliverance.

But the dress and speech of the Latin priest who led the service at the altar caused a scandal; people were horrified to see him consecrate a wafer of unleavened bread and pour cold water into the cup of the sacrament. A national historian admits with embarrassment that none of his countrymen, not even the emperor, genuinely conformed to this arrangement. 33 Their quick and unconditional submission was excused by a promise to revisit the issue later; but the best, or worst, of their excuses was their admission of their own betrayal. When they were confronted by the anger of their honest fellow believers, they whispered, “Be patient, wait until God delivers the city from the great dragon that seeks to devour us. You will then see whether we are truly reconciled with the Azymites.” But patience is not a virtue of zeal; nor can the ways of a court fit the freedom and intensity of popular enthusiasm. From the dome of St. Sophia, people of all genders and ranks rushed to the cell of the monk Gennadius, 34 to seek the church's guidance. The holy man was nowhere to be seen; he seemed lost in deep meditation or divine ecstasy, but he had placed a message board on the door of his cell, and they left one by one after reading those powerful words: “O wretched Romans, why will you abandon the truth? And why, instead of trusting in God, will you put your faith in the Italians? In losing your faith, you will lose your city. Have mercy on me, O Lord! I swear before you that I am innocent of this sin. O wretched Romans, think, pause, and repent. By renouncing the religion of your ancestors for this impiety, you submit to foreign servitude.” Following Gennadius’s advice, the religious virgins, as innocent as angels and as proud as demons, rejected the act of union and renounced all association with the current and future partners of the Latins; their stance was praised and followed by most of the clergy and the people. From the monastery, the devoted Greeks dispersed to the taverns; they toasted to the downfall of the pope's followers, raised their glasses in honor of the image of the holy Virgin, and begged her to protect the city against Mahomet, which she had once saved from Chosroes and the Chagan. In their drunken fervor of zeal and wine, they boldly proclaimed, “What need do we have for help, for unity, or for Latins? Away with the worship of the Azymites!” During the winter leading up to the Turkish conquest, the nation was caught up in this widespread frenzy; and the Lenten season, as Easter approached, instead of promoting charity and love, only strengthened the obstinacy and influence of the zealots. The confessors pried into the consciences of their followers, imposing strict penance on anyone who had taken communion from a priest who had agreed, openly or quietly, to the union. His service at the altar spread the stain to the silent, simple onlookers at the ceremony: they lost, through this impure show, the virtue of the priestly role; it was even forbidden, even in the face of imminent death, to seek their prayers or absolution. Once the church of St. Sophia was tainted by the Latin sacrifice, it was abandoned like a Jewish synagogue or a pagan temple by the clergy and the laity; a vast, heavy silence fell over that once-venerable dome, which had often been filled with incense, lit with countless candles, and echoed with prayers and thanksgivings. The Latins were the most detestable of heretics and infidels; and the empire’s top official, the grand duke, was heard to say that he would rather see the turban of Mahomet in Constantinople than the pope’s tiara or a cardinal’s hat. 35 A feeling so unworthy of Christians and patriots was all too common and destructive among the Greeks: the emperor lost the love and support of his people; and their inherent cowardice was justified by submission to divine will, or the unrealistic hope of a miraculous rescue.

33 (return)
[ Phranza, one of the conforming Greeks, acknowledges that the measure was adopted only propter spem auxilii; he affirms with pleasure, that those who refused to perform their devotions in St. Sophia, extra culpam et in pace essent, (l. iii. c. 20.)]

33 (return)
[ Phranza, one of the compliant Greeks, admits that the measure was taken solely out of hope for assistance; he happily confirms that those who chose not to worship at St. Sophia were without fault and at peace, (l. iii. c. 20.)]

34 (return)
[ His primitive and secular name was George Scholarius, which he changed for that of Gennadius, either when he became a monk or a patriarch. His defence, at Florence, of the same union, which he so furiously attacked at Constantinople, has tempted Leo Allatius (Diatrib. de Georgiis, in Fabric. Bibliot. Græc. tom. x. p. 760—786) to divide him into two men; but Renaudot (p. 343—383) has restored the identity of his person and the duplicity of his character.]

34 (return)
[ His original and secular name was George Scholarius, which he changed to Gennadius, either when he became a monk or when he became a patriarch. His defense of the same union in Florence, which he strongly criticized in Constantinople, has led Leo Allatius (Diatrib. de Georgiis, in Fabric. Bibliot. Græc. tom. x. p. 760—786) to consider him as two separate people; however, Renaudot (p. 343—383) has restored the understanding of his identity and the duality of his character.]

35 (return)
[ Fakiolion, kaluptra, may be fairly translated a cardinal’s hat. The difference of the Greek and Latin habits imbittered the schism.]

35 (return)
[ Fakiolion, kaluptra, may be reasonably translated as a cardinal's hat. The difference between Greek and Latin practices deepened the divide.]

Of the triangle which composes the figure of Constantinople, the two sides along the sea were made inaccessible to an enemy; the Propontis by nature, and the harbor by art. Between the two waters, the basis of the triangle, the land side was protected by a double wall, and a deep ditch of the depth of one hundred feet. Against this line of fortification, which Phranza, an eye-witness, prolongs to the measure of six miles, 36 the Ottomans directed their principal attack; and the emperor, after distributing the service and command of the most perilous stations, undertook the defence of the external wall. In the first days of the siege the Greek soldiers descended into the ditch, or sallied into the field; but they soon discovered, that, in the proportion of their numbers, one Christian was of more value than twenty Turks: and, after these bold preludes, they were prudently content to maintain the rampart with their missile weapons. Nor should this prudence be accused of pusillanimity. The nation was indeed pusillanimous and base; but the last Constantine deserves the name of a hero: his noble band of volunteers was inspired with Roman virtue; and the foreign auxiliaries supported the honor of the Western chivalry. The incessant volleys of lances and arrows were accompanied with the smoke, the sound, and the fire, of their musketry and cannon. Their small arms discharged at the same time either five, or even ten, balls of lead, of the size of a walnut; and, according to the closeness of the ranks and the force of the powder, several breastplates and bodies were transpierced by the same shot. But the Turkish approaches were soon sunk in trenches, or covered with ruins. Each day added to the science of the Christians; but their inadequate stock of gunpowder was wasted in the operations of each day. Their ordnance was not powerful, either in size or number; and if they possessed some heavy cannon, they feared to plant them on the walls, lest the aged structure should be shaken and overthrown by the explosion. 37 The same destructive secret had been revealed to the Moslems; by whom it was employed with the superior energy of zeal, riches, and despotism. The great cannon of Mahomet has been separately noticed; an important and visible object in the history of the times: but that enormous engine was flanked by two fellows almost of equal magnitude: 38 the long order of the Turkish artillery was pointed against the walls; fourteen batteries thundered at once on the most accessible places; and of one of these it is ambiguously expressed, that it was mounted with one hundred and thirty guns, or that it discharged one hundred and thirty bullets. Yet in the power and activity of the sultan, we may discern the infancy of the new science. Under a master who counted the moments, the great cannon could be loaded and fired no more than seven times in one day. 39 The heated metal unfortunately burst; several workmen were destroyed; and the skill of an artist 391 was admired who bethought himself of preventing the danger and the accident, by pouring oil, after each explosion, into the mouth of the cannon.

Of the triangle that makes up the shape of Constantinople, the two sides along the sea were made inaccessible to any enemy; the Propontis was protected by nature, and the harbor by human engineering. Between the two bodies of water, making up the base of the triangle, the land side was defended by a double wall and a deep ditch that was a hundred feet deep. The Ottomans focused their main attack on this line of fortification, which Phranza, who witnessed it all, extends to six miles long. The emperor, after assigning duties and command to those in the most dangerous positions, took charge of defending the outer wall. In the early days of the siege, the Greek soldiers would enter the ditch or charge into the field; but they soon realized that, based on their numbers, one Christian was worth twenty Turks: and after these brave attempts, they wisely chose to hold the rampart with their projectile weapons. This caution shouldn't be criticized as cowardice. The nation might have been timid and base; but the last Constantine deserves the title of hero: his noble group of volunteers were filled with Roman virtue; and the foreign allies upheld the honor of Western chivalry. The constant barrage of lances and arrows was accompanied by the smoke, noise, and fire of their muskets and cannons. Their small arms fired at the same time either five or even ten lead balls, the size of walnuts; and, depending on how close the ranks were and the power of the gunpowder, several breastplates and bodies were pierced by a single shot. But the Turkish advances were soon buried in trenches or covered with debris. Each day improved the Christians' tactics; however, their limited supply of gunpowder was depleted each day. Their artillery was neither powerful in size nor number; and although they had some heavy cannons, they were afraid to set them on the walls, fearing the old structure would shake and collapse from the blast. The same devastating secret had been revealed to the Muslims, who used it with greater energy fueled by zeal, wealth, and tyranny. The massive cannon of Mahomet has been mentioned separately; it was a significant and visible part of history during that time: but that enormous weapon was flanked by two similarly large ones; the lengthy array of the Turkish artillery was aimed at the walls; fourteen batteries fired simultaneously at the most vulnerable points; and for one of these, it's not clear whether it was equipped with one hundred and thirty guns, or if it simply fired one hundred and thirty projectiles. Yet, in the power and activity of the sultan, we can recognize the early stage of the new science. Under a leader who counted the seconds, the great cannon could be loaded and fired no more than seven times in a single day. Unfortunately, the heated metal exploded; several workers were killed; and the skill of an artist was admired who thought to prevent the danger and mishap by pouring oil into the cannon's mouth after each shot.

36 (return)
[ We are obliged to reduce the Greek miles to the smallest measure which is preserved in the wersts of Russia, of 547 French toises, and of 104 2/5 to a degree. The six miles of Phranza do not exceed four English miles, (D’Anville, Mesures Itineraires, p. 61, 123, &c.)]

36 (return)
[ We are required to convert the Greek miles to the smallest measurement found in the Russian wersts, which is 547 French toises, and 104 2/5 to a degree. The six miles of Phranza do not go beyond four English miles, (D’Anville, Mesures Itineraires, p. 61, 123, &c.)]

37 (return)
[ At indies doctiores nostri facti paravere contra hostes machinamenta, quæ tamen avare dabantur. Pulvis erat nitri modica exigua; tela modica; bombardæ, si aderant incommoditate loci primum hostes offendere, maceriebus alveisque tectos, non poterant. Nam si quæ magnæ erant, ne murus concuteretur noster, quiescebant. This passage of Leonardus Chiensis is curious and important.]

37 (return)
[Our skilled experts prepared defenses against enemies, but they were given sparingly. There was a small amount of gunpowder; minimal weaponry; the cannons, if present, couldn’t effectively target the enemy due to the positioning, shielded by walls and embankments. For if there were larger ones, to avoid shaking our walls, they remained silent. This passage from Leonardus Chiensis is interesting and significant.]

38 (return)
[ According to Chalcondyles and Phranza, the great cannon burst; an incident which, according to Ducas, was prevented by the artist’s skill. It is evident that they do not speak of the same gun. * Note: They speak, one of a Byzantine, one of a Turkish, gun. Von Hammer note, p. 669.]

38 (return)
[ According to Chalcondyles and Phranza, the great cannon exploded; an event that Ducas claims was avoided thanks to the skill of the artist. It's clear that they are referring to different cannons. * Note: One speaks of a Byzantine cannon, while the other refers to a Turkish one. Von Hammer note, p. 669.]

39 (return)
[ Near a hundred years after the siege of Constantinople, the French and English fleets in the Channel were proud of firing 300 shot in an engagement of two hours, (Mémoires de Martin du Bellay, l. x., in the Collection Générale, tom. xxi. p. 239.)]

39 (return)
[ Almost a hundred years after the siege of Constantinople, the French and English fleets in the Channel were proud of firing 300 shots in a two-hour engagement, (Mémoires de Martin du Bellay, l. x., in the Collection Générale, tom. xxi. p. 239.)]

391 (return)
[ The founder of the gun. Von Hammer, p. 526.]

391 (return)
[ The creator of the gun. Von Hammer, p. 526.]

The first random shots were productive of more sound than effect; and it was by the advice of a Christian, that the engineers were taught to level their aim against the two opposite sides of the salient angles of a bastion. However imperfect, the weight and repetition of the fire made some impression on the walls; and the Turks, pushing their approaches to the edge of the ditch, attempted to fill the enormous chasm, and to build a road to the assault. 40 Innumerable fascines, and hogsheads, and trunks of trees, were heaped on each other; and such was the impetuosity of the throng, that the foremost and the weakest were pushed headlong down the precipice, and instantly buried under the accumulated mass. To fill the ditch was the toil of the besiegers; to clear away the rubbish was the safety of the besieged; and after a long and bloody conflict, the web that had been woven in the day was still unravelled in the night. The next resource of Mahomet was the practice of mines; but the soil was rocky; in every attempt he was stopped and undermined by the Christian engineers; nor had the art been yet invented of replenishing those subterraneous passages with gunpowder, and blowing whole towers and cities into the air. 41 A circumstance that distinguishes the siege of Constantinople is the reunion of the ancient and modern artillery. The cannon were intermingled with the mechanical engines for casting stones and darts; the bullet and the battering-ram 411 were directed against the same walls: nor had the discovery of gunpowder superseded the use of the liquid and unextinguishable fire. A wooden turret of the largest size was advanced on rollers; this portable magazine of ammunition and fascines was protected by a threefold covering of bulls’ hides: incessant volleys were securely discharged from the loop-holes; in the front, three doors were contrived for the alternate sally and retreat of the soldiers and workmen. They ascended by a staircase to the upper platform, and, as high as the level of that platform, a scaling-ladder could be raised by pulleys to form a bridge, and grapple with the adverse rampart. By these various arts of annoyance, some as new as they were pernicious to the Greeks, the tower of St. Romanus was at length overturned: after a severe struggle, the Turks were repulsed from the breach, and interrupted by darkness; but they trusted that with the return of light they should renew the attack with fresh vigor and decisive success. Of this pause of action, this interval of hope, each moment was improved, by the activity of the emperor and Justiniani, who passed the night on the spot, and urged the labors which involved the safety of the church and city. At the dawn of day, the impatient sultan perceived, with astonishment and grief, that his wooden turret had been reduced to ashes: the ditch was cleared and restored; and the tower of St. Romanus was again strong and entire. He deplored the failure of his design; and uttered a profane exclamation, that the word of the thirty-seven thousand prophets should not have compelled him to believe that such a work, in so short a time, could have been accomplished by the infidels.

The initial random shots caused more noise than damage; it was thanks to the advice of a Christian that the engineers were taught to aim at the two opposite sides of the salient angles of a bastion. Though not perfect, the weight and repetition of the fire made some impact on the walls; and the Turks, moving closer to the edge of the ditch, tried to fill the massive gap and build a path for the assault. 40 Countless fascines, barrels, and tree trunks were piled on top of each other, and the rush of people was so fierce that the first and weakest ones were pushed over the edge and quickly buried under the heap. Filling the ditch was the besiegers' hard work; clearing away the debris was the besieged's safety; and after a long, bloody fight, the entanglement created during the day was still being unraveled at night. Mahomet's next strategy was to dig mines, but the ground was rocky; each attempt was thwarted by the Christian engineers; and the method of filling those underground tunnels with gunpowder to blow up entire towers and cities had not yet been invented. 41 What sets the siege of Constantinople apart is the combination of ancient and modern artillery. Cannons were mixed in with mechanical devices for launching stones and darts; bullets and battering rams 411 were aimed at the same walls, and the discovery of gunpowder did not replace the use of liquid, inextinguishable fire. A large wooden turret was brought forward on rollers; this portable supply of ammunition and fascines was shielded by a triple layer of bull hides. Constant volleys were safely fired from the loopholes; at the front, three doors were designed for the soldiers and workers to rush out and retreat. They climbed a staircase to the upper platform, and from that level, a scaling-ladder could be hoisted by pulleys to create a bridge and grab onto the enemy rampart. Using these various methods of attack, some as new as they were harmful to the Greeks, the tower of St. Romanus was finally toppled. After a fierce struggle, the Turks were driven back from the breach, interrupted by darkness; yet they believed that with the return of daylight, they would launch their attack again with renewed strength and assured success. During this pause in fighting, this time of hope, every moment was utilized by the emperor and Justiniani, who stayed on the scene throughout the night, pushing for the efforts that determined the safety of the church and city. At dawn, the impatient sultan was shocked and dismayed to see that his wooden turret had turned to ash: the ditch was cleared and reinstated; and the tower of St. Romanus was once again strong and intact. He lamented the failure of his plan and uttered a blasphemous remark that the words of the thirty-seven thousand prophets shouldn’t have made him believe that such a feat could be accomplished by the infidels in such a short time.

40 (return)
[ I have selected some curious facts, without striving to emulate the bloody and obstinate eloquence of the abbé de Vertot, in his prolix descriptions of the sieges of Rhodes, Malta, &c. But that agreeable historian had a turn for romance; and as he wrote to please the order he had adopted the same spirit of enthusiasm and chivalry.]

40 (return)
[ I have gathered some interesting facts, not trying to match the intense and stubborn style of Abbé de Vertot in his lengthy accounts of the sieges of Rhodes, Malta, etc. But that engaging historian had a flair for storytelling; and since he wrote to appeal to the order, he embraced the same spirit of enthusiasm and chivalry.]

41 (return)
[ The first theory of mines with gunpowder appears in 1480 in a MS. of George of Sienna, (Tiraboschi, tom. vi. P. i. p. 324.) They were first practised by Sarzanella, in 1487; but the honor and improvement in 1503 is ascribed to Peter of Navarre, who used them with success in the wars of Italy, (Hist. de la Ligue de Cambray, tom. ii. p. 93—97.)]

41 (return)
[ The first theory of mines using gunpowder appears in 1480 in a manuscript by George of Sienna, (Tiraboschi, vol. vi. Part i. p. 324.) They were first used by Sarzanella in 1487; however, the credit for their advancement in 1503 goes to Peter of Navarre, who successfully employed them in the wars of Italy, (Hist. de la Ligue de Cambray, vol. ii. p. 93—97.)]

411 (return)
[ The battering-ram according to Von Hammer, (p. 670,) was not used.—M.]

411 (return)
[According to Von Hammer (p. 670), the battering ram wasn't used.—M.]

Chapter LXVIII: Reign Of Mahomet The Second, Extinction Of Eastern Empire.—Part III.

The generosity of the Christian princes was cold and tardy; but in the first apprehension of a siege, Constantine had negotiated, in the isles of the Archipelago, the Morea, and Sicily, the most indispensable supplies. As early as the beginning of April, five 42 great ships, equipped for merchandise and war, would have sailed from the harbor of Chios, had not the wind blown obstinately from the north. 43 One of these ships bore the Imperial flag; the remaining four belonged to the Genoese; and they were laden with wheat and barley, with wine, oil, and vegetables, and, above all, with soldiers and mariners for the service of the capital. After a tedious delay, a gentle breeze, and, on the second day, a strong gale from the south, carried them through the Hellespont and the Propontis: but the city was already invested by sea and land; and the Turkish fleet, at the entrance of the Bosphorus, was stretched from shore to shore, in the form of a crescent, to intercept, or at least to repel, these bold auxiliaries. The reader who has present to his mind the geographical picture of Constantinople, will conceive and admire the greatness of the spectacle. The five Christian ships continued to advance with joyful shouts, and a full press both of sails and oars, against a hostile fleet of three hundred vessels; and the rampart, the camp, the coasts of Europe and Asia, were lined with innumerable spectators, who anxiously awaited the event of this momentous succor. At the first view that event could not appear doubtful; the superiority of the Moslems was beyond all measure or account: and, in a calm, their numbers and valor must inevitably have prevailed. But their hasty and imperfect navy had been created, not by the genius of the people, but by the will of the sultan: in the height of their prosperity, the Turks have acknowledged, that if God had given them the earth, he had left the sea to the infidels; 44 and a series of defeats, a rapid progress of decay, has established the truth of their modest confession. Except eighteen galleys of some force, the rest of their fleet consisted of open boats, rudely constructed and awkwardly managed, crowded with troops, and destitute of cannon; and since courage arises in a great measure from the consciousness of strength, the bravest of the Janizaries might tremble on a new element. In the Christian squadron, five stout and lofty ships were guided by skilful pilots, and manned with the veterans of Italy and Greece, long practised in the arts and perils of the sea. Their weight was directed to sink or scatter the weak obstacles that impeded their passage: their artillery swept the waters: their liquid fire was poured on the heads of the adversaries, who, with the design of boarding, presumed to approach them; and the winds and waves are always on the side of the ablest navigators. In this conflict, the Imperial vessel, which had been almost overpowered, was rescued by the Genoese; but the Turks, in a distant and closer attack, were twice repulsed with considerable loss. Mahomet himself sat on horseback on the beach to encourage their valor by his voice and presence, by the promise of reward, and by fear more potent than the fear of the enemy. The passions of his soul, and even the gestures of his body, 45 seemed to imitate the actions of the combatants; and, as if he had been the lord of nature, he spurred his horse with a fearless and impotent effort into the sea. His loud reproaches, and the clamors of the camp, urged the Ottomans to a third attack, more fatal and bloody than the two former; and I must repeat, though I cannot credit, the evidence of Phranza, who affirms, from their own mouth, that they lost above twelve thousand men in the slaughter of the day. They fled in disorder to the shores of Europe and Asia, while the Christian squadron, triumphant and unhurt, steered along the Bosphorus, and securely anchored within the chain of the harbor. In the confidence of victory, they boasted that the whole Turkish power must have yielded to their arms; but the admiral, or captain bashaw, found some consolation for a painful wound in his eye, by representing that accident as the cause of his defeat. Balthi Ogli was a renegade of the race of the Bulgarian princes: his military character was tainted with the unpopular vice of avarice; and under the despotism of the prince or people, misfortune is a sufficient evidence of guilt. 451 His rank and services were annihilated by the displeasure of Mahomet. In the royal presence, the captain bashaw was extended on the ground by four slaves, and received one hundred strokes with a golden rod: 46 his death had been pronounced; and he adored the clemency of the sultan, who was satisfied with the milder punishment of confiscation and exile. The introduction of this supply revived the hopes of the Greeks, and accused the supineness of their Western allies. Amidst the deserts of Anatolia and the rocks of Palestine, the millions of the crusades had buried themselves in a voluntary and inevitable grave; but the situation of the Imperial city was strong against her enemies, and accessible to her friends; and a rational and moderate armament of the marine states might have saved the relics of the Roman name, and maintained a Christian fortress in the heart of the Ottoman empire. Yet this was the sole and feeble attempt for the deliverance of Constantinople: the more distant powers were insensible of its danger; and the ambassador of Hungary, or at least of Huniades, resided in the Turkish camp, to remove the fears, and to direct the operations, of the sultan. 47

The generosity of the Christian princes was slow and uninspiring; however, at the first hint of a siege, Constantine had arranged for the essential supplies from the islands of the Archipelago, Morea, and Sicily. By early April, five 42 large ships, equipped for trade and combat, were ready to set sail from the harbor of Chios, but the wind stubbornly blew from the north. 43 One of these ships bore the Imperial flag, while the other four belonged to the Genoese. They were loaded with wheat and barley, wine, oil, and vegetables, and, most importantly, soldiers and sailors for the defense of the capital. After a frustrating delay, a gentle breeze and then, on the second day, a strong south wind, pushed them through the Hellespont and the Propontis. However, the city was already surrounded by both land and sea, and the Turkish fleet, forming a crescent shape from shore to shore at the entrance of the Bosphorus, was poised to intercept, or at least deter, these brave reinforcements. Anyone familiar with the geographical layout of Constantinople would marvel at the scale of the scene. The five Christian ships forged ahead with cheers, full sails, and vigorous rowing against a hostile fleet of three hundred vessels; and the ramparts, encampments, and coasts of Europe and Asia were lined with countless spectators, eagerly anticipating the outcome of this critical support. At first glance, the outcome seemed clear; the strength of the Muslims was overwhelming. In calm conditions, their numbers and bravery would surely prevail. But their hurried and poorly organized navy had been formed not from the skill of the people, but from the sultan’s command. At the height of their power, the Turks admitted that while God had given them the land, He had left the sea to the infidels; 44 and a series of defeats and a swift decline proved the truth of their humble admission. Besides eighteen formidable galleys, the rest of their fleet consisted mostly of makeshift boats, poorly built and clumsily handled, overcrowded with soldiers and lacking cannons; and since confidence often stems from a sense of strength, the bravest Janizaries might well falter on unfamiliar waters. In contrast, the Christian squadron, comprised of five sturdy and tall ships, was captained by skilled pilots and crewed by seasoned sailors from Italy and Greece, well-versed in the challenges of the open sea. They maneuvered their ships to crush or disperse the weak barriers in their path, their cannons cleared the waters, and their flaming projectiles rained down on the enemy, who had dared to approach for boarding. The winds and waves always favor the most capable navigators. In this battle, the Imperial ship, which had nearly been overwhelmed, was saved by the Genoese; yet the Turks, in both long-range and closer attacks, were pushed back twice with significant losses. Mahomet himself rode on the beach, rallying their courage with his voice, presence, promises of rewards, and fears more powerful than the enemy’s. His intense emotions, even his gestures, 45 appeared to mimic the actions of the fighters; and, as if he were master of nature, he rode his horse with reckless determination into the sea. His loud insults and the uproar from the camp drove the Ottomans to a third assault, which was even more deadly and brutal than the previous two. I must repeat, although I find it hard to believe, the claim made by Phranza, who asserts from their own accounts that they lost over twelve thousand men in that day's slaughter. They fled disorderly back to the shores of Europe and Asia, while the Christian squadron, victorious and undamaged, sailed along the Bosphorus and securely anchored within the harbor chain. In their victory, they boasted that the entire Turkish force must have been defeated by their might; but the admiral, or captain bashaw, found some solace for the painful injury to his eye by arguing that misfortune was to blame for his defeat. Balthi Ogli was a renegade of Bulgarian royal descent; his military reputation was marred by the unpopular fault of greed, and under the tyranny of either a prince or the people, misfortune is often seen as a sign of guilt. 451 His rank and status were destroyed by Mahomet’s displeasure. Before the sultan, the captain bashaw was thrown to the ground by four slaves and received one hundred blows with a golden rod: 46 his death was deemed certain; yet he praised the sultan’s mercy, who opted for the softer punishment of confiscation and exile. The arrival of this supply rekindled the Greeks’ hopes and highlighted the laziness of their Western allies. Amid the wastelands of Anatolia and the cliffs of Palestine, the millions from the crusades had buried themselves in a self-imposed and unavoidable grave; but the position of the Imperial city was strong against its foes and open to its allies; a sensible and moderate naval force from the marine states could have saved the remains of the Roman name and preserved a Christian stronghold in the heart of the Ottoman empire. Yet this was the only feeble effort to save Constantinople: the more distant powers were unaware of its peril; and the ambassador from Hungary, or at least from Huniades, was in the Turkish camp, aiming to ease the sultan's fears and direct his actions. 47

42 (return)
[ It is singular that the Greeks should not agree in the number of these illustrious vessels; the five of Ducas, the fourof Phranza and Leonardus, and the two of Chalcondyles, must be extended to the smaller, or confined to the larger, size. Voltaire, in giving one of these ships to Frederic III., confounds the emperors of the East and West.]

42 (return)
[It's strange that the Greeks can't agree on the number of these famous ships; Ducas says five, Phranza and Leonardus say four, and Chalcondyles says two. We have to either include the smaller ones or limit it to just the larger ones. Voltaire, by attributing one of these ships to Frederic III., mixes up the emperors of the East and West.]

43 (return)
[ In bold defiance, or rather in gross ignorance, of language and geography, the president Cousin detains them in Chios with a south, and wafts them to Constantinople with a north, wind.]

43 (return)
[In bold defiance, or rather in complete ignorance, of language and geography, President Cousin holds them in Chios with a southern wind and carries them to Constantinople with a northern wind.]

44 (return)
[ The perpetual decay and weakness of the Turkish navy may be observed in Ricaut, (State of the Ottoman Empire, p. 372—378,) Thevenot, (Voyages, P. i. p. 229—242, and Tott), (Mémoires, tom. iii;) the last of whom is always solicitous to amuse and amaze his reader.]

44 (return)
[ You can see the continuous decline and fragility of the Turkish navy in Ricaut (State of the Ottoman Empire, pp. 372–378), Thevenot (Voyages, pp. i. 229–242), and Tott (Mémoires, vol. iii), the last of whom is always eager to entertain and astonish his readers.]

45 (return)
[ I must confess that I have before my eyes the living picture which Thucydides (l. vii. c. 71) has drawn of the passions and gestures of the Athenians in a naval engagement in the great harbor of Syracuse.]

45 (return)
[ I have to admit that I can clearly see the vivid image that Thucydides (l. vii. c. 71) painted of the emotions and actions of the Athenians during a naval battle in the harbor of Syracuse.]

451 (return)
[ According to Ducas, one of the Afabi beat out his eye with a stone Compare Von Hammer.—M.]

451 (return)
[ According to Ducas, one of the Afabi gouged out his eye with a stone. Compare Von Hammer.—M.]

46 (return)
[ According to the exaggeration or corrupt text of Ducas, (c. 38,) this golden bar was of the enormous or incredible weight of 500 libræ, or pounds. Bouillaud’s reading of 500 drachms, or five pounds, is sufficient to exercise the arm of Mahomet, and bruise the back of his admiral.]

46 (return)
[ According to the exaggerated or corrupt text of Ducas, (c. 38,) this gold bar weighed an incredible 500 pounds. Bouillaud’s version of 500 drachms, or five pounds, is enough to test Mahomet's strength and wear out his admiral.]

47 (return)
[ Ducas, who confesses himself ill informed of the affairs of Hungary assigns a motive of superstition, a fatal belief that Constantinople would be the term of the Turkish conquests. See Phranza (l. iii. c. 20) and Spondanus.]

47 (return)
[ Ducas, who admits he doesn't know much about what's going on in Hungary, suggests that the motive for this is superstition, a misguided belief that Constantinople would be the final stop for the Turkish conquests. See Phranza (l. iii. c. 20) and Spondanus.]

It was difficult for the Greeks to penetrate the secret of the divan; yet the Greeks are persuaded, that a resistance so obstinate and surprising, had fatigued the perseverance of Mahomet. He began to meditate a retreat; and the siege would have been speedily raised, if the ambition and jealousy of the second vizier had not opposed the perfidious advice of Calil Bashaw, who still maintained a secret correspondence with the Byzantine court. The reduction of the city appeared to be hopeless, unless a double attack could be made from the harbor as well as from the land; but the harbor was inaccessible: an impenetrable chain was now defended by eight large ships, more than twenty of a smaller size, with several galleys and sloops; and, instead of forcing this barrier, the Turks might apprehend a naval sally, and a second encounter in the open sea. In this perplexity, the genius of Mahomet conceived and executed a plan of a bold and marvellous cast, of transporting by land his lighter vessels and military stores from the Bosphorus into the higher part of the harbor. The distance is about ten 471 miles; the ground is uneven, and was overspread with thickets; and, as the road must be opened behind the suburb of Galata, their free passage or total destruction must depend on the option of the Genoese. But these selfish merchants were ambitious of the favor of being the last devoured; and the deficiency of art was supplied by the strength of obedient myriads. A level way was covered with a broad platform of strong and solid planks; and to render them more slippery and smooth, they were anointed with the fat of sheep and oxen. Fourscore light galleys and brigantines, of fifty and thirty oars, were disembarked on the Bosphorus shore; arranged successively on rollers; and drawn forwards by the power of men and pulleys. Two guides or pilots were stationed at the helm, and the prow, of each vessel: the sails were unfurled to the winds; and the labor was cheered by song and acclamation. In the course of a single night, this Turkish fleet painfully climbed the hill, steered over the plain, and was launched from the declivity into the shallow waters of the harbor, far above the molestation of the deeper vessels of the Greeks. The real importance of this operation was magnified by the consternation and confidence which it inspired: but the notorious, unquestionable fact was displayed before the eyes, and is recorded by the pens, of the two nations. 48 A similar stratagem had been repeatedly practised by the ancients; 49 the Ottoman galleys (I must again repeat) should be considered as large boats; and, if we compare the magnitude and the distance, the obstacles and the means, the boasted miracle 50 has perhaps been equalled by the industry of our own times. 51 As soon as Mahomet had occupied the upper harbor with a fleet and army, he constructed, in the narrowest part, a bridge, or rather mole, of fifty cubits in breadth, and one hundred in length: it was formed of casks and hogsheads; joined with rafters, linked with iron, and covered with a solid floor. On this floating battery he planted one of his largest cannon, while the fourscore galleys, with troops and scaling ladders, approached the most accessible side, which had formerly been stormed by the Latin conquerors. The indolence of the Christians has been accused for not destroying these unfinished works; 511 but their fire, by a superior fire, was controlled and silenced; nor were they wanting in a nocturnal attempt to burn the vessels as well as the bridge of the sultan. His vigilance prevented their approach; their foremost galiots were sunk or taken; forty youths, the bravest of Italy and Greece, were inhumanly massacred at his command; nor could the emperor’s grief be assuaged by the just though cruel retaliation, of exposing from the walls the heads of two hundred and sixty Mussulman captives. After a siege of forty days, the fate of Constantinople could no longer be averted. The diminutive garrison was exhausted by a double attack: the fortifications, which had stood for ages against hostile violence, were dismantled on all sides by the Ottoman cannon: many breaches were opened; and near the gate of St. Romanus, four towers had been levelled with the ground. For the payment of his feeble and mutinous troops, Constantine was compelled to despoil the churches with the promise of a fourfold restitution; and his sacrilege offered a new reproach to the enemies of the union. A spirit of discord impaired the remnant of the Christian strength; the Genoese and Venetian auxiliaries asserted the preeminence of their respective service; and Justiniani and the great duke, whose ambition was not extinguished by the common danger, accused each other of treachery and cowardice.

It was tough for the Greeks to uncover the secret of the divan; however, they believed that such stubborn and surprising resistance had worn down Mahomet's determination. He began to think about retreating, and the siege would have ended quickly if the ambition and jealousy of the second vizier hadn’t thwarted the treacherous advice of Calil Bashaw, who still kept in secret contact with the Byzantine court. Reducing the city seemed hopeless unless a dual assault could be launched from both the harbor and the land; but the harbor was blocked: an impenetrable chain was now guarded by eight large ships, over twenty smaller ones, along with several galleys and sloops; and instead of breaking through this barrier, the Turks might face a naval attack and a second confrontation in open water. In this predicament, Mahomet came up with and executed a bold and remarkable plan to transport his lighter vessels and military supplies over land from the Bosphorus to the upper part of the harbor. The distance is about ten 471 miles; the terrain is uneven and covered in thickets; and since the road had to be cleared behind the suburb of Galata, their safe passage or complete destruction depended on the Genoese's decision. But these self-serving merchants were eager to be the last to be consumed; and the lack of skill was compensated by the strength of obedient multitudes. A flat path was laid out with a broad surface of strong, solid planks; and to make them more slippery and smooth, they were greased with sheep and ox fat. Eighty light galleys and brigantines, with fifty and thirty oars, were unloaded on the Bosphorus shore; lined up on rollers; and pulled forward by the strength of men and pulleys. Two guides or pilots were positioned at the helm and the bow of each vessel: the sails were unfurled to the wind; and the work was motivated with song and cheers. In just one night, this Turkish fleet struggled up the hill, crossed the plain, and was launched from the slope into the shallow waters of the harbor, far from the reach of the deeper Greek ships. The real significance of this operation was amplified by the fear and confidence it inspired; but the undeniable, clear fact was visible before the eyes and is recorded by the accounts of both nations. 48 A similar tactic had been used repeatedly by the ancients; 49 the Ottoman galleys (I must emphasize again) should be seen as large boats; and if we compare the size and distance, the obstacles and the means, the claimed miracle 50 has perhaps been matched by the efforts of our own times. 51 Once Mahomet had taken control of the upper harbor with a fleet and army, he built a bridge, or rather a causeway, in the narrowest part, fifty cubits wide and one hundred cubits long: it was made of barrels and hogsheads; connected with beams, linked with iron, and covered with a solid floor. On this floating platform, he placed one of his largest cannons, while the eighty galleys, carrying troops and scaling ladders, approached the most accessible side, which had previously been attacked by the Latin conquerors. The negligence of the Christians has been criticized for not destroying these unfinished works; 511 but their fire was overshadowed and silenced by a stronger fire; nor did they lack an overnight attempt to burn the vessels and the sultan’s bridge. His vigilance prevented their approach; their leading galleys were sunk or captured; forty young men, the bravest from Italy and Greece, were brutally killed on his orders; nor could the emperor’s sorrow be eased by the just but cruel vengeance of exposing the heads of two hundred sixty Muslim captives from the walls. After a siege of forty days, the fate of Constantinople could no longer be avoided. The small garrison was worn out from simultaneous assaults: the fortifications, which had withstood hostile attacks for ages, were being battered on all sides by Ottoman cannons: many breaches were opened; and near the gate of St. Romanus, four towers had been leveled to the ground. To pay his weak and rebellious troops, Constantine was forced to plunder the churches with a promise of fourfold restitution; and his sacrilege added a new stigma to the enemies of the union. A spirit of discord weakened the remaining Christian power; the Genoese and Venetian allies claimed the superiority of their respective services; and Justiniani and the great duke, whose ambition was not dampened by the common threat, accused each other of betrayal and cowardice.

471 (return)
[ Six miles. Von Hammer.—M.]?

471 (__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__)
[Six miles. Von Hammer.—M.]?

48 (return)
[ The unanimous testimony of the four Greeks is confirmed by Cantemir (p. 96) from the Turkish annals; but I could wish to contract the distance of ten * miles, and to prolong the term of one night. Note: Six miles. Von Hammer.—M.]

48 (return)
[The agreement of the four Greeks is backed up by Cantemir (p. 96) from the Turkish history; however, I would prefer to shorten the distance to ten * miles and extend the duration to one night. Note: Six miles. Von Hammer.—M.]

49 (return)
[ Phranza relates two examples of a similar transportation over the six miles of the Isthmus of Corinth; the one fabulous, of Augustus after the battle of Actium; the other true, of Nicetas, a Greek general in the xth century. To these he might have added a bold enterprise of Hannibal, to introduce his vessels into the harbor of Tarentum, (Polybius, l. viii. p. 749, edit. Gronov. * Note: Von Hammer gives a longer list of such transportations, p. 533. Dion Cassius distinctly relates the occurrence treated as fabulous by Gibbon.—M.]

49 (return)
[ Phranza shares two examples of similar transportation across the six miles of the Isthmus of Corinth; one is legendary, involving Augustus after the battle of Actium, and the other is factual, concerning Nicetas, a Greek general in the 10th century. He could have also mentioned a daring attempt by Hannibal to bring his ships into the harbor of Tarentum, (Polybius, l. viii. p. 749, edit. Gronov. * Note: Von Hammer provides a longer list of such transportations, p. 533. Dion Cassius clearly recounts the event that Gibbon considered legendary.—M.]

50 (return)
[ A Greek of Candia, who had served the Venetians in a similar undertaking, (Spond. A.D. 1438, No. 37,) might possibly be the adviser and agent of Mahomet.]

50 (return)
[ A Greek from Candia, who had worked with the Venetians on a similar mission, (Spond. A.D. 1438, No. 37,) could have been the advisor and agent of Mahomet.]

51 (return)
[ I particularly allude to our own embarkations on the lakes of Canada in the years 1776 and 1777, so great in the labor, so fruitless in the event.]

51 (return)
[ I specifically refer to our own journeys on the lakes of Canada in the years 1776 and 1777, which required a lot of effort but ended up being unproductive.]

511 (return)
[ They were betrayed, according to some accounts, by the Genoese of Galata. Von Hammer, p. 536.—M.]

511 (return)
[ They were betrayed, according to some accounts, by the Genoese of Galata. Von Hammer, p. 536.—M.]

During the siege of Constantinople, the words of peace and capitulation had been sometimes pronounced; and several embassies had passed between the camp and the city. 52 The Greek emperor was humbled by adversity; and would have yielded to any terms compatible with religion and royalty. The Turkish sultan was desirous of sparing the blood of his soldiers; still more desirous of securing for his own use the Byzantine treasures: and he accomplished a sacred duty in presenting to the Gabours the choice of circumcision, of tribute, or of death. The avarice of Mahomet might have been satisfied with an annual sum of one hundred thousand ducats; but his ambition grasped the capital of the East: to the prince he offered a rich equivalent, to the people a free toleration, or a safe departure: but after some fruitless treaty, he declared his resolution of finding either a throne, or a grave, under the walls of Constantinople. A sense of honor, and the fear of universal reproach, forbade Palæologus to resign the city into the hands of the Ottomans; and he determined to abide the last extremities of war. Several days were employed by the sultan in the preparations of the assault; and a respite was granted by his favorite science of astrology, which had fixed on the twenty-ninth of May, as the fortunate and fatal hour. On the evening of the twenty-seventh, he issued his final orders; assembled in his presence the military chiefs, and dispersed his heralds through the camp to proclaim the duty, and the motives, of the perilous enterprise. Fear is the first principle of a despotic government; and his menaces were expressed in the Oriental style, that the fugitives and deserters, had they the wings of a bird, 53 should not escape from his inexorable justice. The greatest part of his bashaws and Janizaries were the offspring of Christian parents: but the glories of the Turkish name were perpetuated by successive adoption; and in the gradual change of individuals, the spirit of a legion, a regiment, or an oda, is kept alive by imitation and discipline. In this holy warfare, the Moslems were exhorted to purify their minds with prayer, their bodies with seven ablutions; and to abstain from food till the close of the ensuing day. A crowd of dervises visited the tents, to instil the desire of martyrdom, and the assurance of spending an immortal youth amidst the rivers and gardens of paradise, and in the embraces of the black-eyed virgins. Yet Mahomet principally trusted to the efficacy of temporal and visible rewards. A double pay was promised to the victorious troops: “The city and the buildings,” said Mahomet, “are mine; but I resign to your valor the captives and the spoil, the treasures of gold and beauty; be rich and be happy. Many are the provinces of my empire: the intrepid soldier who first ascends the walls of Constantinople shall be rewarded with the government of the fairest and most wealthy; and my gratitude shall accumulate his honors and fortunes above the measure of his own hopes.” Such various and potent motives diffused among the Turks a general ardor, regardless of life and impatient for action: the camp reechoed with the Moslem shouts of “God is God: there is but one God, and Mahomet is the apostle of God;” 54 and the sea and land, from Galata to the seven towers, were illuminated by the blaze of their nocturnal fires. 541

During the siege of Constantinople, talks of peace and surrender occasionally occurred, and several diplomatic missions traveled between the camp and the city. 52 The Greek emperor was brought low by misfortune and was willing to accept any conditions that aligned with his faith and royal dignity. The Turkish sultan wanted to minimize the loss of his soldiers' lives and, even more, to acquire the Byzantine wealth for himself. He saw it as his righteous duty to offer the Gabours the choice of circumcision, tribute, or death. Mahomet’s greed might have been appeased by an annual payment of one hundred thousand ducats, but his ambition aimed for the capital of the East: to the prince, he offered a generous alternative; to the people, he promised religious freedom or a safe escape. After a series of unsuccessful negotiations, he declared his intent to either find a throne or a grave beneath the walls of Constantinople. Palæologus felt a sense of honor and feared universal condemnation, so he refused to hand the city over to the Ottomans and resolved to endure the war's ultimate hardships. The sultan spent several days preparing for the assault and was given a brief delay by his favorite astrological prediction, which designated the twenty-ninth of May as the fateful hour. On the evening of the twenty-seventh, he issued his final orders, gathered his military leaders, and sent his heralds throughout the camp to declare the duties and reasons for this dangerous mission. Fear is foundational in a tyrannical regime; his threats were delivered in an Oriental manner, indicating that even if fugitives and deserters had wings, 53 they could not escape his relentless justice. Most of his bashaws and Janizaries had Christian roots, yet the prestige of the Turkish name continued through successive adoptions; the essence of a legion, a regiment, or an oda is maintained through mimicry and discipline as individuals changed. In this holy crusade, the Muslims were urged to cleanse their spirits with prayers and their bodies with seven washings and to refrain from food until the next day ended. A group of dervishes visited the tents to inspire a longing for martyrdom and the promise of eternal youth in the rivers and gardens of paradise, and in the arms of beautiful virgins. Yet Mahomet primarily relied on the effectiveness of immediate and tangible rewards. He promised double pay to the victorious soldiers: “The city and the structures are mine,” Mahomet declared, “but I entrust the captives and the spoils, the treasures of gold and beauty, to your bravery; be rich and happy. My empire has many provinces: the fearless soldier who first climbs the walls of Constantinople will be appointed the governor of the most beautiful and wealthy region, and I will multiply his honors and fortunes beyond what he can even hope for.” Such diverse and powerful incentives ignited in the Turks a shared eagerness, undeterred by the thought of death and eager for action: the camp echoed with the Muslim cries of “God is God: there is only one God, and Mahomet is the messenger of God;” 54 and the sea and land, from Galata to the seven towers, glowed with the light of their night fires. 541

52 (return)
[ Chalcondyles and Ducas differ in the time and circumstances of the negotiation; and as it was neither glorious nor salutary, the faithful Phranza spares his prince even the thought of a surrender.]

52 (return)
[Chalcondyles and Ducas have different accounts of when and how the negotiation took place; and since it wasn't honorable or beneficial, the loyal Phranza protects his prince from even considering the idea of surrender.]

53 (return)
[ These wings (Chalcondyles, l. viii. p. 208) are no more than an Oriental figure: but in the tragedy of Irene, Mahomet’s passion soars above sense and reason:—

53 (return)
[ These wings (Chalcondyles, l. viii. p. 208) are just an Eastern symbol: but in the tragedy of Irene, Mahomet’s emotion rises above logic and reason:—

               Should the fierce North, upon his frozen wings.
               Bear him aloft above the wondering clouds,
               And seat him in the Pleiads’ golden chariot—
               Then should my fury drag him down to tortures.
               Should the fierce North, upon his frozen wings.  
               Carry him high above the amazed clouds,  
               And place him in the Pleiads' golden chariot—  
               Then my rage should pull him down to torment.  

Besides the extravagance of the rant, I must observe, 1. That the operation of the winds must be confined to the lower region of the air. 2. That the name, etymology, and fable of the Pleiads are purely Greek, (Scholiast ad Homer, S. 686. Eudocia in Ioniâ, p. 399. Apollodor. l. iii. c. 10. Heyne, p. 229, Not. 682,) and had no affinity with the astronomy of the East, (Hyde ad Ulugbeg, Tabul. in Syntagma Dissert. tom. i. p. 40, 42. Goguet, Origine des Arts, &c., tom. vi. p. 73—78. Gebelin, Hist. du Calendrier, p. 73,) which Mahomet had studied. 3. The golden chariot does not exist either in science or fiction; but I much fear Dr. Johnson has confounded the Pleiads with the great bear or wagon, the zodiac with a northern constellation:—

Besides the dramatic nature of the rant, I must point out, 1. That the movement of the winds must be limited to the lower part of the atmosphere. 2. That the name, origin, and story of the Pleiads are entirely Greek, (Scholiast ad Homer, S. 686. Eudocia in Ioniâ, p. 399. Apollodor. l. iii. c. 10. Heyne, p. 229, Not. 682,) and have no connection with Eastern astronomy, (Hyde ad Ulugbeg, Tabul. in Syntagma Dissert. tom. i. p. 40, 42. Goguet, Origine des Arts, &c., tom. vi. p. 73—78. Gebelin, Hist. du Calendrier, p. 73,) which Muhammad studied. 3. The golden chariot doesn’t exist in either science or fiction; but I fear Dr. Johnson has mixed up the Pleiads with the Great Bear or Big Dipper, and the zodiac with a northern constellation:—

     ''Ark-on q' hn kai amaxan epiklhsin kaleouein. Il. S. 487.]
''Ark-on q' hn kai amaxan epiklhsin kaleouein. Il. S. 487.]

54 (return)
[ Phranza quarrels with these Moslem acclamations, not for the name of God, but for that of the prophet: the pious zeal of Voltaire is excessive, and even ridiculous.]

54 (return)
[ Phranza argues with these Muslim praises, not for the name of God, but for that of the prophet: Voltaire's fervent devotion is excessive and even absurd.]

541 (return)
[ The picture is heightened by the addition of the wailing cries of Kyris, which were heard from the dark interior of the city. Von Hammer p. 539.—M.]

541 (return)
[ The scene is intensified by the haunting cries of Kyris, echoing from the shadowy depths of the city. Von Hammer p. 539.—M.]

Far different was the state of the Christians; who, with loud and impotent complaints, deplored the guilt, or the punishment, of their sins. The celestial image of the Virgin had been exposed in solemn procession; but their divine patroness was deaf to their entreaties: they accused the obstinacy of the emperor for refusing a timely surrender; anticipated the horrors of their fate; and sighed for the repose and security of Turkish servitude. The noblest of the Greeks, and the bravest of the allies, were summoned to the palace, to prepare them, on the evening of the twenty-eighth, for the duties and dangers of the general assault. The last speech of Palæologus was the funeral oration of the Roman empire: 55 he promised, he conjured, and he vainly attempted to infuse the hope which was extinguished in his own mind. In this world all was comfortless and gloomy; and neither the gospel nor the church have proposed any conspicuous recompense to the heroes who fall in the service of their country. But the example of their prince, and the confinement of a siege, had armed these warriors with the courage of despair, and the pathetic scene is described by the feelings of the historian Phranza, who was himself present at this mournful assembly. They wept, they embraced; regardless of their families and fortunes, they devoted their lives; and each commander, departing to his station, maintained all night a vigilant and anxious watch on the rampart. The emperor, and some faithful companions, entered the dome of St. Sophia, which in a few hours was to be converted into a mosque; and devoutly received, with tears and prayers, the sacrament of the holy communion. He reposed some moments in the palace, which resounded with cries and lamentations; solicited the pardon of all whom he might have injured; 56 and mounted on horseback to visit the guards, and explore the motions of the enemy. The distress and fall of the last Constantine are more glorious than the long prosperity of the Byzantine Cæsars. 561

The state of the Christians was completely different; they expressed loud and helpless complaints about their sins and the punishment that followed. The sacred image of the Virgin was paraded in a solemn procession, but their divine protector seemed deaf to their pleas. They blamed the emperor's stubbornness for not surrendering in time, feared the horrors awaiting them, and yearned for the comfort and safety of Turkish rule. The noblest Greeks and the bravest allies were called to the palace to prepare for the duties and dangers of the general assault on the evening of the twenty-eighth. Palæologus's final speech served as the eulogy for the Roman Empire: he promised, pleaded, and tried in vain to instill some hope that had already vanished from his own mind. Everything in this world felt bleak and dismal; neither the gospel nor the church offered any significant reward for the heroes who sacrificed for their country. However, inspired by their prince’s example and motivated by the dire circumstances of the siege, these warriors found courage in despair. The emotional scene is captured by the historian Phranza, who witnessed this sorrowful gathering. They wept and embraced each other, disregarding their families and fortunes, dedicating their lives to the cause. Each commander, heading to his post, kept a vigilant and anxious watch throughout the night on the ramparts. The emperor and a few loyal companions entered the dome of St. Sophia, which was about to be turned into a mosque within hours, and they received the sacrament of holy communion with tears and prayers. He rested for a while in the palace, which was filled with cries and lamentations, sought forgiveness from anyone he might have wronged; and then mounted his horse to check on the guards and observe the enemy’s movements. The distress and downfall of the last Constantine are more glorious than the long reigns of the Byzantine emperors.

55 (return)
[ I am afraid that this discourse was composed by Phranza himself; and it smells so grossly of the sermon and the convent, that I almost doubt whether it was pronounced by Constantine. Leonardus assigns him another speech, in which he addresses himself more respectfully to the Latin auxiliaries.]

55 (return)
[ I'm concerned that this discourse was written by Phranza himself; it reeks so heavily of sermons and the monastery that I almost question whether it was actually delivered by Constantine. Leonardus attributes a different speech to him, where he speaks more respectfully to the Latin auxiliaries.]

56 (return)
[ This abasement, which devotion has sometimes extorted from dying princes, is an improvement of the gospel doctrine of the forgiveness of injuries: it is more easy to forgive 490 times, than once to ask pardon of an inferior.]

56 (return)
[ This humbling moment, which devotion has occasionally forced from dying rulers, is an enhancement of the gospel teaching on forgiveness: it’s much easier to forgive 490 times than to ask for forgiveness even once from someone perceived as lesser.]

561 (return)
[ Compare the very curious Armenian elegy on the fall of Constantinople, translated by M. Boré, in the Journal Asiatique for March, 1835; and by M. Brosset, in the new edition of Le Beau, (tom. xxi. p. 308.) The author thus ends his poem: “I, Abraham, loaded with sins, have composed this elegy with the most lively sorrow; for I have seen Constantinople in the days of its glory.”—M.]

561 (return)
[ Check out the fascinating Armenian elegy about the fall of Constantinople, translated by M. Boré in the Journal Asiatique for March 1835, and by M. Brosset in the new edition of Le Beau, (vol. xxi, p. 308.) The author concludes his poem with: “I, Abraham, burdened with sins, have written this elegy with the deepest sorrow; for I have witnessed Constantinople in its days of glory.”—M.]

In the confusion of darkness, an assailant may sometimes succeed; but in this great and general attack, the military judgment and astrological knowledge of Mahomet advised him to expect the morning, the memorable twenty-ninth of May, in the fourteen hundred and fifty-third year of the Christian æra. The preceding night had been strenuously employed: the troops, the cannons, and the fascines, were advanced to the edge of the ditch, which in many parts presented a smooth and level passage to the breach; and his fourscore galleys almost touched, with the prows and their scaling-ladders, the less defensible walls of the harbor. Under pain of death, silence was enjoined: but the physical laws of motion and sound are not obedient to discipline or fear; each individual might suppress his voice and measure his footsteps; but the march and labor of thousands must inevitably produce a strange confusion of dissonant clamors, which reached the ears of the watchmen of the towers. At daybreak, without the customary signal of the morning gun, the Turks assaulted the city by sea and land; and the similitude of a twined or twisted thread has been applied to the closeness and continuity of their line of attack. 57 The foremost ranks consisted of the refuse of the host, a voluntary crowd who fought without order or command; of the feebleness of age or childhood, of peasants and vagrants, and of all who had joined the camp in the blind hope of plunder and martyrdom. The common impulse drove them onwards to the wall; the most audacious to climb were instantly precipitated; and not a dart, not a bullet, of the Christians, was idly wasted on the accumulated throng. But their strength and ammunition were exhausted in this laborious defence: the ditch was filled with the bodies of the slain; they supported the footsteps of their companions; and of this devoted vanguard the death was more serviceable than the life. Under their respective bashaws and sanjaks, the troops of Anatolia and Romania were successively led to the charge: their progress was various and doubtful; but, after a conflict of two hours, the Greeks still maintained, and improved their advantage; and the voice of the emperor was heard, encouraging his soldiers to achieve, by a last effort, the deliverance of their country. In that fatal moment, the Janizaries arose, fresh, vigorous, and invincible. The sultan himself on horseback, with an iron mace in his hand, was the spectator and judge of their valor: he was surrounded by ten thousand of his domestic troops, whom he reserved for the decisive occasion; and the tide of battle was directed and impelled by his voice and eye. His numerous ministers of justice were posted behind the line, to urge, to restrain, and to punish; and if danger was in the front, shame and inevitable death were in the rear, of the fugitives. The cries of fear and of pain were drowned in the martial music of drums, trumpets, and attaballs; and experience has proved, that the mechanical operation of sounds, by quickening the circulation of the blood and spirits, will act on the human machine more forcibly than the eloquence of reason and honor. From the lines, the galleys, and the bridge, the Ottoman artillery thundered on all sides; and the camp and city, the Greeks and the Turks, were involved in a cloud of smoke which could only be dispelled by the final deliverance or destruction of the Roman empire. The single combats of the heroes of history or fable amuse our fancy and engage our affections: the skilful evolutions of war may inform the mind, and improve a necessary, though pernicious, science. But in the uniform and odious pictures of a general assault, all is blood, and horror, and confusion; nor shall I strive, at the distance of three centuries, and a thousand miles, to delineate a scene of which there could be no spectators, and of which the actors themselves were incapable of forming any just or adequate idea.

In the chaos of darkness, an attacker might sometimes succeed; but during this massive and general assault, Mahomet's military insight and astrological knowledge led him to anticipate the morning of the memorable twenty-ninth of May in 1453. The previous night had been intensely active: the troops, cannons, and obstacles were moved to the edge of the moat, which in many places offered a smooth and even way to the breach; and his eighty galleys were almost touching, with their prows and scaling-ladders, the less protected walls of the harbor. Silence was enforced under the threat of death; but the physical rules of motion and sound don’t obey discipline or fear; each person might hold back their voice and control their steps; but the march and effort of thousands inevitably resulted in a strange mix of discordant noises that reached the ears of the guards in the towers. At daybreak, without the usual signal of the morning gun, the Turks attacked the city both by sea and land; the comparison of a twisted thread has been used to describe the closeness and continuity of their assault. 57 The front lines were filled with the dregs of the army, a spontaneous crowd fighting without order or command; among them were the old, the young, peasants, and wanderers—everyone who had joined the camp in a blind hope for plunder and martyrdom. A common drive pushed them toward the wall; the boldest climbers were quickly thrown back; and no spear or bullet from the Christians went to waste on the packed mass. But their strength and ammunition were depleted in this exhausting defense: the moat was filled with dead bodies, which helped support the steps of their comrades; and for this committed vanguard, death was more useful than life. Under their respective leaders, the forces from Anatolia and Romania were led into the charge one after another: their advance was unpredictable and uncertain; yet after two hours of fighting, the Greeks still held their ground and even gained the upper hand; and the emperor's voice could be heard encouraging his soldiers to make one last effort to save their homeland. In that critical moment, the Janizaries rose, refreshed, strong, and unstoppable. The sultan himself, on horseback with an iron mace in hand, witnessed and judged their bravery; he was surrounded by ten thousand of his personal troops, reserved for the decisive moment; and the flow of battle was directed and driven by his voice and gaze. His many ministers of justice were positioned behind the line to motivate, restrain, and punish; and if there was danger at the front, shame and certain death awaited those who fled at the back. The cries of fear and pain were drowned out by the martial music of drums, trumpets, and cheers; and experience has shown that the mechanical effects of sounds, by speeding up the flow of blood and energy, can impact the human spirit more powerfully than the words of reason and honor. From the lines, the galleys, and the bridge, Ottoman artillery roared from all directions; and the camp and city, the Greeks and the Turks, were engulfed in a cloud of smoke that could only be cleared by the final rescue or downfall of the Roman Empire. The individual fights of historical or mythical heroes entertain our imagination and capture our emotions: the skilled maneuvers of war can educate the mind and refine a necessary, though destructive, skill. But in the grim and repulsive images of a general assault, everything is blood, horror, and chaos; and I won’t attempt, after three centuries and a thousand miles, to describe a scene that had no spectators, and where the participants themselves couldn’t form any clear or adequate understanding.

57 (return)
[ Besides the 10,000 guards, and the sailors and the marines, Ducas numbers in this general assault 250,000 Turks, both horse and foot.]

57 (return)
[ In addition to the 10,000 guards, sailors, and marines, Ducas counts 250,000 Turks in this overall attack, including both cavalry and infantry.]

The immediate loss of Constantinople may be ascribed to the bullet, or arrow, which pierced the gauntlet of John Justiniani. The sight of his blood, and the exquisite pain, appalled the courage of the chief, whose arms and counsels were the firmest rampart of the city. As he withdrew from his station in quest of a surgeon, his flight was perceived and stopped by the indefatigable emperor. “Your wound,” exclaimed Palæologus, “is slight; the danger is pressing: your presence is necessary; and whither will you retire?”—“I will retire,” said the trembling Genoese, “by the same road which God has opened to the Turks;” and at these words he hastily passed through one of the breaches of the inner wall. By this pusillanimous act he stained the honors of a military life; and the few days which he survived in Galata, or the Isle of Chios, were embittered by his own and the public reproach. 58 His example was imitated by the greatest part of the Latin auxiliaries, and the defence began to slacken when the attack was pressed with redoubled vigor. The number of the Ottomans was fifty, perhaps a hundred, times superior to that of the Christians; the double walls were reduced by the cannon to a heap of ruins: in a circuit of several miles, some places must be found more easy of access, or more feebly guarded; and if the besiegers could penetrate in a single point, the whole city was irrecoverably lost. The first who deserved the sultan’s reward was Hassan the Janizary, of gigantic stature and strength. With his cimeter in one hand and his buckler in the other, he ascended the outward fortification: of the thirty Janizaries, who were emulous of his valor, eighteen perished in the bold adventure. Hassan and his twelve companions had reached the summit: the giant was precipitated from the rampart: he rose on one knee, and was again oppressed by a shower of darts and stones. But his success had proved that the achievement was possible: the walls and towers were instantly covered with a swarm of Turks; and the Greeks, now driven from the vantage ground, were overwhelmed by increasing multitudes. Amidst these multitudes, the emperor, 59 who accomplished all the duties of a general and a soldier, was long seen and finally lost. The nobles, who fought round his person, sustained, till their last breath, the honorable names of Palæologus and Cantacuzene: his mournful exclamation was heard, “Cannot there be found a Christian to cut off my head?” 60 and his last fear was that of falling alive into the hands of the infidels. 61 The prudent despair of Constantine cast away the purple: amidst the tumult he fell by an unknown hand, and his body was buried under a mountain of the slain. After his death, resistance and order were no more: the Greeks fled towards the city; and many were pressed and stifled in the narrow pass of the gate of St. Romanus. The victorious Turks rushed through the breaches of the inner wall; and as they advanced into the streets, they were soon joined by their brethren, who had forced the gate Phenar on the side of the harbor. 62 In the first heat of the pursuit, about two thousand Christians were put to the sword; but avarice soon prevailed over cruelty; and the victors acknowledged, that they should immediately have given quarter if the valor of the emperor and his chosen bands had not prepared them for a similar opposition in every part of the capital. It was thus, after a siege of fifty-three days, that Constantinople, which had defied the power of Chosroes, the Chagan, and the caliphs, was irretrievably subdued by the arms of Mahomet the Second. Her empire only had been subverted by the Latins: her religion was trampled in the dust by the Moslem conquerors. 63

The immediate fall of Constantinople can be attributed to the bullet or arrow that hit the gauntlet of John Justiniani. The sight of his blood and the intense pain shocked the courage of the leader, whose strength and strategy were the city's main defense. As he left his post in search of a surgeon, the relentless emperor noticed his retreat and stopped him. “Your wound is minor,” Palæologus exclaimed, “the danger is urgent: we need you here; where do you think you’re going?”—“I’m leaving,” replied the frightened Genoese, “through the same path that God has opened for the Turks;” and with that, he quickly went through one of the breaches in the inner wall. With this cowardly act, he tarnished the reputation of a military life; and the few days he spent in Galata or the Isle of Chios were filled with his own shame and public scorn. 58 Many of the Latin auxiliaries followed his example, and the defense weakened as the attack intensified. The number of Ottomans was fifty, maybe a hundred times greater than that of the Christians; the double walls were turned to ruins by the cannons: in a stretch of several miles, there had to be spots that were easier to access or less guarded; and if the attackers could break through at just one point, the entire city would be irretrievably lost. The first to earn the sultan’s reward was Hassan the Janizary, a giant in both size and strength. With his sword in one hand and shield in the other, he climbed the outer fortification: of the thirty Janizaries who aspired to his bravery, eighteen died in the daring attempt. Hassan and his twelve companions had reached the top: the giant was thrown from the rampart: he got up on one knee, only to be struck again by a barrage of arrows and stones. But his success showed that it could be done: the walls and towers quickly filled with Turks; and the Greeks, now pushed back from their advantageous position, were overwhelmed by the growing numbers. Amongst the crowds, the emperor, 59 who fulfilled all the roles of a general and soldier, was seen for a long time and eventually lost. The nobles fighting by his side upheld, until their last breath, the honorable names of Palæologus and Cantacuzene: his mournful shout was heard, “Is there not a Christian who will cut off my head?” 60 and his final fear was of falling alive into the hands of the infidels. 61 Constantine's cautious despair caused him to discard the purple robe: amidst the chaos, he fell by an unknown hand, and his body was buried beneath a pile of the slain. After his death, there was no more resistance or order: the Greeks fled toward the city; and many were crushed and suffocated in the narrow passage of the gate of St. Romanus. The victorious Turks surged through the breaches in the inner wall; and as they moved into the streets, they were soon joined by their comrades who had breached the Phenar gate on the harbor side. 62 In the initial rush of the chase, about two thousand Christians were slaughtered; but greed quickly overtook brutality; and the victors recognized that they would have spared lives if the bravery of the emperor and his selected troops hadn’t prepared them for similar resistance in every part of the capital. Thus, after a siege of fifty-three days, Constantinople, which had resisted the might of Chosroes, the Chagan, and the caliphs, was irretrievably captured by the forces of Mahomet the Second. Its empire had only been defeated by the Latins: its religion was crushed underfoot by the Muslim conquerors. 63

58 (return)
[ In the severe censure of the flight of Justiniani, Phranza expresses his own feelings and those of the public. For some private reasons, he is treated with more lenity and respect by Ducas; but the words of Leonardus Chiensis express his strong and recent indignation, gloriæ salutis suique oblitus. In the whole series of their Eastern policy, his countrymen, the Genoese, were always suspected, and often guilty. * Note: M. Brosset has given some extracts from the Georgian account of the siege of Constantinople, in which Justiniani’s wound in the left foot is represented as more serious. With charitable ambiguity the chronicler adds that his soldiers carried him away with them in their vessel.—M.]

58 (return)
[ In strongly criticizing Justiniani's escape, Phranza reflects his own feelings and those of the public. For some personal reasons, Ducas treats him with more leniency and respect; however, Leonardus Chiensis clearly voices his intense and recent outrage, forgetting glory and his own safety. Throughout their entire Eastern strategy, his fellow countrymen, the Genoese, were always viewed with suspicion and often found guilty. * Note: M. Brosset has included some excerpts from the Georgian account of the siege of Constantinople, which indicates that Justiniani's injury to his left foot was more severe. With a touch of kindness, the chronicler notes that his soldiers took him away with them on their ship.—M.]

59 (return)
[ Ducas kills him with two blows of Turkish soldiers; Chalcondyles wounds him in the shoulder, and then tramples him in the gate. The grief of Phranza, carrying him among the enemy, escapes from the precise image of his death; but we may, without flattery, apply these noble lines of Dryden:—

59 (return)
[ Ducas takes him down with two strikes from Turkish soldiers; Chalcondyles injures him in the shoulder, then stomps on him at the gate. Phranza, filled with sorrow as he carries him through the enemy, avoids the exact details of his death; however, we can, without flattery, use these remarkable lines from Dryden:—

               As to Sebastian, let them search the field;
               And where they find a mountain of the slain,
               Send one to climb, and looking down beneath,
               There they will find him at his manly length,
               With his face up to heaven, in that red monument
               Which his good sword had digged.]
               As for Sebastian, let them search the field;  
               And where they find a pile of the dead,  
               Send someone to climb, and looking down below,  
               There they will find him lying proudly,  
               With his face up to the sky, in that red memorial  
               Which his trusty sword had dug.]

60 (return)
[ Spondanus, (A.D. 1453, No. 10,) who has hopes of his salvation, wishes to absolve this demand from the guilt of suicide.]

60 (return)
[ Spondanus, (A.D. 1453, No. 10,) who hopes for his salvation, wants to clear this demand of the blame of suicide.]

61 (return)
[ Leonardus Chiensis very properly observes, that the Turks, had they known the emperor, would have labored to save and secure a captive so acceptable to the sultan.]

61 (return)
[ Leonardus Chiensis correctly points out that if the Turks had known the emperor, they would have worked to rescue and protect a captive who was so valued by the sultan.]

62 (return)
[ Cantemir, p. 96. The Christian ships in the mouth of the harbor had flanked and retarded this naval attack.]

62 (return)
[ Cantemir, p. 96. The Christian ships at the entrance of the harbor had lined up and slowed down this naval attack.]

63 (return)
[ Chalcondyles most absurdly supposes, that Constantinople was sacked by the Asiatics in revenge for the ancient calamities of Troy; and the grammarians of the xvth century are happy to melt down the uncouth appellation of Turks into the more classical name of Teucri.]

63 (return)
[Chalcondyles ridiculously claims that the Asiatics attacked Constantinople to get back at the ancient tragedies of Troy; and the grammar scholars of the 15th century are pleased to transform the awkward term "Turks" into the more classical name of Teucri.]

The tidings of misfortune fly with a rapid wing; yet such was the extent of Constantinople, that the more distant quarters might prolong, some moments, the happy ignorance of their ruin. 64 But in the general consternation, in the feelings of selfish or social anxiety, in the tumult and thunder of the assault, a sleepless night and morning 641 must have elapsed; nor can I believe that many Grecian ladies were awakened by the Janizaries from a sound and tranquil slumber. On the assurance of the public calamity, the houses and convents were instantly deserted; and the trembling inhabitants flocked together in the streets, like a herd of timid animals, as if accumulated weakness could be productive of strength, or in the vain hope, that amid the crowd each individual might be safe and invisible. From every part of the capital, they flowed into the church of St. Sophia: in the space of an hour, the sanctuary, the choir, the nave, the upper and lower galleries, were filled with the multitudes of fathers and husbands, of women and children, of priests, monks, and religious virgins: the doors were barred on the inside, and they sought protection from the sacred dome, which they had so lately abhorred as a profane and polluted edifice. Their confidence was founded on the prophecy of an enthusiast or impostor; that one day the Turks would enter Constantinople, and pursue the Romans as far as the column of Constantine in the square before St. Sophia: but that this would be the term of their calamities: that an angel would descend from heaven, with a sword in his hand, and would deliver the empire, with that celestial weapon, to a poor man seated at the foot of the column. “Take this sword,” would he say, “and avenge the people of the Lord.” At these animating words, the Turks would instantly fly, and the victorious Romans would drive them from the West, and from all Anatolia as far as the frontiers of Persia. It is on this occasion that Ducas, with some fancy and much truth, upbraids the discord and obstinacy of the Greeks. “Had that angel appeared,” exclaims the historian, “had he offered to exterminate your foes if you would consent to the union of the church, even event then, in that fatal moment, you would have rejected your safety, or have deceived your God.” 65

The news of disaster spreads quickly; however, Constantinople was so large that the more distant areas could delay the realization of their downfall for a little while. 64 But amid the widespread panic, the mix of personal and communal anxiety, and the chaos of the attack, a sleepless night and morning 641 must have passed; I can't believe many Greek women were roused from a deep and peaceful sleep by the Janizaries. When news of the public disaster spread, the homes and convents were immediately abandoned, and the terrified residents gathered in the streets, like a herd of frightened animals, as if their shared vulnerability could somehow provide them strength, or in the futile hope that in the crowd, each person might be safe and unseen. From all over the city, they flocked to the church of St. Sophia: within an hour, the sanctuary, the choir, the main area, the upper and lower galleries were packed with fathers and husbands, women and children, priests, monks, and devout women: the doors were locked from the inside, and they sought refuge under the sacred dome, which they had recently despised as a sinful and defiled building. Their hope was based on the prophecy of either a visionary or a fraud; that one day the Turks would invade Constantinople and chase the Romans to the column of Constantine in the square before St. Sophia: but that this would mark the end of their suffering: that an angel would come down from heaven, with a sword in his hand, and would give the empire, with that divine weapon, to a poor man sitting at the base of the column. “Take this sword,” he would say, “and avenge the people of the Lord.” At these inspiring words, the Turks would flee instantly, and the victorious Romans would push them back from the West and all of Anatolia up to the borders of Persia. It is during this moment that Ducas, with a mix of imagination and truth, criticizes the quarrels and stubbornness of the Greeks. “Had that angel appeared,” the historian exclaims, “had he offered to wipe out your enemies if you would agree to unite the church, even then, in that critical moment, you would have rejected your salvation or betrayed your God.” 65

64 (return)
[ When Cyrus suppressed Babylon during the celebration of a festival, so vast was the city, and so careless were the inhabitants, that much time elapsed before the distant quarters knew that they were captives. Herodotus, (l. i. c. 191,) and Usher, (Annal. p. 78,) who has quoted from the prophet Jeremiah a passage of similar import.]

64 (return)
[ When Cyrus took control of Babylon during a festival, the city was so large and the people so unaware that it took a while for those in the far-off areas to realize they were captured. Herodotus, (l. i. c. 191,) and Usher, (Annal. p. 78,) who quoted a similar passage from the prophet Jeremiah.]

641 (return)
[ This refers to an expression in Ducas, who, to heighten the effect of his description, speaks of the “sweet morning sleep resting on the eyes of youths and maidens,” p. 288. Edit. Bekker.—M.]

641 (return)
[ This refers to an expression in Ducas, who, to enhance the impact of his description, talks about the “sweet morning sleep gently resting on the eyes of young men and women,” p. 288. Edit. Bekker.—M.]

65 (return)
[ This lively description is extracted from Ducas, (c. 39,) who two years afterwards was sent ambassador from the prince of Lesbos to the sultan, (c. 44.) Till Lesbos was subdued in 1463, (Phranza, l. iii. c. 27,) that island must have been full of the fugitives of Constantinople, who delighted to repeat, perhaps to adorn, the tale of their misery.]

65 (return)
[ This vivid description is taken from Ducas, (c. 39,) who two years later was sent as an ambassador from the prince of Lesbos to the sultan, (c. 44.) Until Lesbos was conquered in 1463, (Phranza, l. iii. c. 27,) that island must have been filled with the refugees from Constantinople, who enjoyed sharing, and maybe embellishing, the story of their suffering.]

Chapter LXVIII: Reign Of Mahomet The Second, Extinction Of Eastern Empire.—Part IV.

While they expected the descent of the tardy angel, the doors were broken with axes; and as the Turks encountered no resistance, their bloodless hands were employed in selecting and securing the multitude of their prisoners. Youth, beauty, and the appearance of wealth, attracted their choice; and the right of property was decided among themselves by a prior seizure, by personal strength, and by the authority of command. In the space of an hour, the male captives were bound with cords, the females with their veils and girdles. The senators were linked with their slaves; the prelates, with the porters of the church; and young men of the plebeian class, with noble maids, whose faces had been invisible to the sun and their nearest kindred. In this common captivity, the ranks of society were confounded; the ties of nature were cut asunder; and the inexorable soldier was careless of the father’s groans, the tears of the mother, and the lamentations of the children. The loudest in their wailings were the nuns, who were torn from the altar with naked bosoms, outstretched hands, and dishevelled hair; and we should piously believe that few could be tempted to prefer the vigils of the harem to those of the monastery. Of these unfortunate Greeks, of these domestic animals, whole strings were rudely driven through the streets; and as the conquerors were eager to return for more prey, their trembling pace was quickened with menaces and blows. At the same hour, a similar rapine was exercised in all the churches and monasteries, in all the palaces and habitations, of the capital; nor could any place, however sacred or sequestered, protect the persons or the property of the Greeks. Above sixty thousand of this devoted people were transported from the city to the camp and fleet; exchanged or sold according to the caprice or interest of their masters, and dispersed in remote servitude through the provinces of the Ottoman empire. Among these we may notice some remarkable characters. The historian Phranza, first chamberlain and principal secretary, was involved with his family in the common lot. After suffering four months the hardships of slavery, he recovered his freedom: in the ensuing winter he ventured to Adrianople, and ransomed his wife from the mir bashi, or master of the horse; but his two children, in the flower of youth and beauty, had been seized for the use of Mahomet himself. The daughter of Phranza died in the seraglio, perhaps a virgin: his son, in the fifteenth year of his age, preferred death to infamy, and was stabbed by the hand of the royal lover. 66 A deed thus inhuman cannot surely be expiated by the taste and liberality with which he released a Grecian matron and her two daughters, on receiving a Latin doe From ode from Philelphus, who had chosen a wife in that noble family. 67 The pride or cruelty of Mahomet would have been most sensibly gratified by the capture of a Roman legate; but the dexterity of Cardinal Isidore eluded the search, and he escaped from Galata in a plebeian habit. 68 The chain and entrance of the outward harbor was still occupied by the Italian ships of merchandise and war. They had signalized their valor in the siege: they embraced the moment of retreat, while the Turkish mariners were dissipated in the pillage of the city. When they hoisted sail, the beach was covered with a suppliant and lamentable crowd; but the means of transportation were scanty: the Venetians and Genoese selected their countrymen; and, notwithstanding the fairest promises of the sultan, the inhabitants of Galata evacuated their houses, and embarked with their most precious effects.

While waiting for the late angel's arrival, the doors were smashed open with axes; and since the Turks faced no opposition, they quickly set about choosing and capturing their numerous prisoners. Youth, beauty, and signs of wealth drew their attention, and they decided ownership among themselves through earlier seizures, personal strength, and their commanding authority. Within an hour, the male captives were tied up with ropes, and the women were bound with their veils and sashes. Senators were linked to their slaves; clergy were tied to the church porters; and young men from the common class were paired with noble maidens, whose faces had never seen the sun or even their closest relatives. In this shared captivity, society's structure was dismantled; natural bonds were severed; and the merciless soldier disregarded the father's groans, the mother’s tears, and the children’s cries. The loudest mourners were the nuns, who were torn from the altar with bare chests, outstretched hands, and unkempt hair; and we can believe that few would choose the harem's vigils over those of the monastery. Among these unfortunate Greeks, treated like livestock, whole groups were roughly driven through the streets; and as the conquerors eagerly sought more victims, their trembling pace quickened with threats and blows. At the same time, a similar looting occurred in all the churches and monasteries, in all the palaces and homes of the capital; no place, however sacred or secluded, could shield the Greeks from harm or theft. More than sixty thousand of these devoted people were taken from the city to the camp and fleet, traded or sold based on their captors’ whims or interests, and scattered into distant servitude throughout the provinces of the Ottoman Empire. Among them were some notable individuals. The historian Phranza, the chief chamberlain and primary secretary, along with his family, shared in this fate. After suffering the hardships of slavery for four months, he regained his freedom: that winter he went to Adrianople and paid a ransom for his wife from the mir bashi, or master of the horse; however, his two children, in their youth and beauty, had been claimed for the use of Mahomet himself. Phranza's daughter died in the seraglio, perhaps still a virgin: his son, just fifteen years old, chose death over dishonor and was stabbed by the royal lover. 66 Such an inhumane act cannot be absolved by the generosity with which he freed a Grecian matron and her two daughters, in exchange for a Latin poem from Philelphus, who had chosen a bride from that noble family. 67 Mahomet’s pride or cruelty would have been deeply gratified by capturing a Roman legate; but the skill of Cardinal Isidore allowed him to evade capture and escape from Galata in common clothing. 68 The chain and entrance to the outer harbor were still occupied by Italian trade and warships. They had proven their bravery during the siege: they seized the moment of retreat while the Turkish sailors were caught up in pillaging the city. As they raised their sails, the beach was filled with a desperate and mournful crowd; however, transportation was limited: the Venetians and Genoese chose their fellow countrymen; and despite the sultan's most promising assurances, the residents of Galata fled their homes and boarded ships with their most valuable belongings.

66 (return)
[ See Phranza, l. iii. c. 20, 21. His expressions are positive: Ameras suâ manû jugulavit.... volebat enim eo turpiter et nefarie abuti. Me miserum et infelicem! Yet he could only learn from report the bloody or impure scenes that were acted in the dark recesses of the seraglio.]

66 (return)
[ See Phranza, l. iii. c. 20, 21. His statements are clear: He killed with his own hand.... he wanted to use it shamefully and wickedly. Poor me, how unfortunate! Yet he could only hear from rumors about the bloody or immoral scenes that took place in the dark corners of the harem.]

67 (return)
[ See Tiraboschi (tom. vi. P. i. p. 290) and Lancelot, (Mém. de l’Académie des Inscriptions, tom. x. p. 718.) I should be curious to learn how he could praise the public enemy, whom he so often reviles as the most corrupt and inhuman of tyrants.]

67 (return)
[ See Tiraboschi (vol. vi, p. 290) and Lancelot, (Memoirs of the Academy of Inscriptions, vol. x, p. 718.) I’d be interested to know how he could praise the public enemy, whom he frequently condemns as the most corrupt and inhuman of tyrants.]

68 (return)
[ The commentaries of Pius II. suppose that he craftily placed his cardinal’s hat on the head of a corpse which was cut off and exposed in triumph, while the legate himself was bought and delivered as a captive of no value. The great Belgic Chronicle adorns his escape with new adventures, which he suppressed (says Spondanus, A.D. 1453, No. 15) in his own letters, lest he should lose the merit and reward of suffering for Christ. * Note: He was sold as a slave in Galata, according to Von Hammer, p. 175. See the somewhat vague and declamatory letter of Cardinal Isidore, in the appendix to Clarke’s Travels, vol. ii. p. 653.—M.]

68 (return)
[ The commentaries of Pius II suggest that he cleverly placed his cardinal’s hat on the head of a severed corpse displayed in triumph, while the legate himself was bought and delivered as a worthless captive. The great Belgic Chronicle adds new adventures to his escape, which he omitted (says Spondanus, A.D. 1453, No. 15) in his own letters, so he wouldn’t lose the merit and reward of suffering for Christ. * Note: He was sold as a slave in Galata, according to Von Hammer, p. 175. See the somewhat vague and rhetorical letter of Cardinal Isidore in the appendix to Clarke’s Travels, vol. ii. p. 653.—M.]

In the fall and the sack of great cities, an historian is condemned to repeat the tale of uniform calamity: the same effects must be produced by the same passions; and when those passions may be indulged without control, small, alas! is the difference between civilized and savage man. Amidst the vague exclamations of bigotry and hatred, the Turks are not accused of a wanton or immoderate effusion of Christian blood: but according to their maxims, (the maxims of antiquity,) the lives of the vanquished were forfeited; and the legitimate reward of the conqueror was derived from the service, the sale, or the ransom, of his captives of both sexes. 69 The wealth of Constantinople had been granted by the sultan to his victorious troops; and the rapine of an hour is more productive than the industry of years. But as no regular division was attempted of the spoil, the respective shares were not determined by merit; and the rewards of valor were stolen away by the followers of the camp, who had declined the toil and danger of the battle. The narrative of their depredations could not afford either amusement or instruction: the total amount, in the last poverty of the empire, has been valued at four millions of ducats; 70 and of this sum a small part was the property of the Venetians, the Genoese, the Florentines, and the merchants of Ancona. Of these foreigners, the stock was improved in quick and perpetual circulation: but the riches of the Greeks were displayed in the idle ostentation of palaces and wardrobes, or deeply buried in treasures of ingots and old coin, lest it should be demanded at their hands for the defence of their country. The profanation and plunder of the monasteries and churches excited the most tragic complaints. The dome of St. Sophia itself, the earthly heaven, the second firmament, the vehicle of the cherubim, the throne of the glory of God, 71 was despoiled of the oblation of ages; and the gold and silver, the pearls and jewels, the vases and sacerdotal ornaments, were most wickedly converted to the service of mankind. After the divine images had been stripped of all that could be valuable to a profane eye, the canvas, or the wood, was torn, or broken, or burnt, or trod under foot, or applied, in the stables or the kitchen, to the vilest uses. The example of sacrilege was imitated, however, from the Latin conquerors of Constantinople; and the treatment which Christ, the Virgin, and the saints, had sustained from the guilty Catholic, might be inflicted by the zealous Mussulman on the monuments of idolatry. Perhaps, instead of joining the public clamor, a philosopher will observe, that in the decline of the arts the workmanship could not be more valuable than the work, and that a fresh supply of visions and miracles would speedily be renewed by the craft of the priests and the credulity of the people. He will more seriously deplore the loss of the Byzantine libraries, which were destroyed or scattered in the general confusion: one hundred and twenty thousand manuscripts are said to have disappeared; 72 ten volumes might be purchased for a single ducat; and the same ignominious price, too high perhaps for a shelf of theology, included the whole works of Aristotle and Homer, the noblest productions of the science and literature of ancient Greece. We may reflect with pleasure that an inestimable portion of our classic treasures was safely deposited in Italy; and that the mechanics of a German town had invented an art which derides the havoc of time and barbarism.

In the fall and sack of great cities, a historian is forced to repeat a story of uniform disaster: the same passions produce the same effects; and when those passions are allowed to run wild, there’s little difference between civilized and savage people. Amidst the vague cries of bigotry and hatred, the Turks aren’t blamed for any wanton or excessive shedding of Christian blood: according to their ancient beliefs, the lives of the defeated were forfeited; and the rightful reward for the conqueror was derived from the service, sale, or ransom of his captives, both male and female. 69 The wealth of Constantinople had been granted by the sultan to his victorious troops; and the plunder of a single hour is far more fruitful than years of hard work. But since no organized distribution of the spoils was attempted, individual shares weren’t determined by merit; and the rewards for valor were snatched away by camp followers who had avoided the toil and danger of battle. The account of their depredations offered neither amusement nor instruction: the total amount, in the empire’s last impoverished days, was estimated at four million ducats; 70 and a small portion of this sum belonged to Venetians, Genoese, Florentines, and merchants from Ancona. Among these foreigners, the wealth was circulated quickly and perpetually: but the riches of the Greeks were shown off in the lazy display of palaces and wardrobes, or deeply buried in treasures of ingots and ancient coins, to avoid demands for them to defend their country. The desecration and plunder of monasteries and churches sparked the most tragic outcries. The dome of St. Sophia itself, the earthly heaven, the second firmament, the vehicle of the cherubim, the throne of the glory of God, 71 was stripped of offerings gathered over the ages; and the gold and silver, pearls and jewels, vases and sacred ornaments, were shamefully converted for the service of mankind. After the divine images had been deprived of all that could be valuable to a secular gaze, the canvas or wood was torn, broken, burned, trampled, or used for the lowest purposes in stables or kitchens. However, the example of sacrilege was taken from the Latin conquerors of Constantinople; and the treatment that Christ, the Virgin, and the saints had suffered at the hands of guilty Catholics could similarly be inflicted by zealous Muslims on the monuments of idolatry. Perhaps, instead of joining the public outcry, a philosopher might note that in the decay of the arts, the workmanship couldn't be more valuable than the work itself, and that new visions and miracles would soon be produced by the priests’ craft and the people’s credulity. He would more seriously lament the loss of the Byzantine libraries, which were destroyed or dispersed amid the chaos: it is said that one hundred and twenty thousand manuscripts vanished; 72 ten volumes could be bought for a single ducat; and the same disgraceful price, likely too high for a shelf of theology, included the complete works of Aristotle and Homer, the finest creations of ancient Greece's science and literature. We can take pleasure in reflecting that an invaluable portion of our classic treasures was securely housed in Italy; and that the mechanics of a German town had invented a process that mocks the destruction wrought by time and barbarism.

69 (return)
[ Busbequius expatiates with pleasure and applause on the rights of war, and the use of slavery, among the ancients and the Turks, (de Legat. Turcicâ, epist. iii. p. 161.)]

69 (return)
[ Busbequius discusses with enjoyment and admiration the rights of war and the practice of slavery among the ancients and the Turks, (de Legat. Turcicâ, epist. iii. p. 161.)]

70 (return)
[ This sum is specified in a marginal note of Leunclavius, (Chalcondyles, l. viii. p. 211,) but in the distribution to Venice, Genoa, Florence, and Ancona, of 50, 20, and 15,000 ducats, I suspect that a figure has been dropped. Even with the restitution, the foreign property would scarcely exceed one fourth.]

70 (return)
[ This amount is mentioned in a note by Leunclavius (Chalcondyles, l. viii. p. 211), but in the allocation to Venice, Genoa, Florence, and Ancona of 50, 20, and 15,000 ducats, I think a figure has been missed. Even with the restitution, the foreign assets would barely reach one fourth.]

71 (return)
[ See the enthusiastic praises and lamentations of Phranza, (l. iii. c. 17.)]

71 (return)
[ Check out the excited praises and complaints of Phranza, (l. iii. c. 17.)]

72 (return)
[ See Ducas, (c. 43,) and an epistle, July 15th, 1453, from Laurus Quirinus to Pope Nicholas V., (Hody de Græcis, p. 192, from a MS. in the Cotton library.)]

72 (return)
[ See Ducas, (c. 43,) and a letter, July 15th, 1453, from Laurus Quirinus to Pope Nicholas V., (Hody de Græcis, p. 192, from a manuscript in the Cotton library.)]

From the first hour 73 of the memorable twenty-ninth of May, disorder and rapine prevailed in Constantinople, till the eighth hour of the same day; when the sultan himself passed in triumph through the gate of St. Romanus. He was attended by his viziers, bashaws, and guards, each of whom (says a Byzantine historian) was robust as Hercules, dexterous as Apollo, and equal in battle to any ten of the race of ordinary mortals. The conqueror 74 gazed with satisfaction and wonder on the strange, though splendid, appearance of the domes and palaces, so dissimilar from the style of Oriental architecture. In the hippodrome, or atmeidan, his eye was attracted by the twisted column of the three serpents; and, as a trial of his strength, he shattered with his iron mace or battle-axe the under jaw of one of these monsters, 75 which in the eyes of the Turks were the idols or talismans of the city. 751 At the principal door of St. Sophia, he alighted from his horse, and entered the dome; and such was his jealous regard for that monument of his glory, that on observing a zealous Mussulman in the act of breaking the marble pavement, he admonished him with his cimeter, that, if the spoil and captives were granted to the soldiers, the public and private buildings had been reserved for the prince. By his command the metropolis of the Eastern church was transformed into a mosque: the rich and portable instruments of superstition had been removed; the crosses were thrown down; and the walls, which were covered with images and mosaics, were washed and purified, and restored to a state of naked simplicity. On the same day, or on the ensuing Friday, the muezin, or crier, ascended the most lofty turret, and proclaimed the ezan, or public invitation in the name of God and his prophet; the imam preached; and Mahomet and Second performed the namaz of prayer and thanksgiving on the great altar, where the Christian mysteries had so lately been celebrated before the last of the Cæsars. 76 From St. Sophia he proceeded to the august, but desolate mansion of a hundred successors of the great Constantine, but which in a few hours had been stripped of the pomp of royalty. A melancholy reflection on the vicissitudes of human greatness forced itself on his mind; and he repeated an elegant distich of Persian poetry: “The spider has wove his web in the Imperial palace; and the owl hath sung her watch-song on the towers of Afrasiab.” 77

From the first hour 73 of the memorable twenty-ninth of May, chaos and looting took over Constantinople until the eighth hour of the same day; when the sultan himself triumphantly passed through the gate of St. Romanus. He was accompanied by his viziers, bashaws, and guards, each of whom (according to a Byzantine historian) was as strong as Hercules, skilled as Apollo, and as formidable in battle as any ten ordinary men. The conqueror 74 looked on with satisfaction and amazement at the unusual yet magnificent sight of the domes and palaces, which were so different from traditional Eastern architecture. In the hippodrome, or atmeidan, he was drawn to the twisted column of the three serpents; and as a show of his strength, he smashed the lower jaw of one of these creatures with his iron mace or battle-axe, 75 which the Turks regarded as the idols or symbols of the city. 751 At the main entrance of St. Sophia, he dismounted from his horse and entered the dome; and so protective was he of that monument to his glory that when he saw a devoted Muslim breaking the marble floor, he cautioned him with his sword that, while the spoils and captives were given to the soldiers, the public and private buildings had been reserved for the prince. By his order, the center of the Eastern church was converted into a mosque: the valuable and portable religious items had been removed; the crosses were thrown down; and the walls, which had been adorned with images and mosaics, were cleaned and purified, returning to a state of stark simplicity. On the same day, or the following Friday, the muezin, or crier, climbed the tallest tower and proclaimed the ezan, or public call in the name of God and his prophet; the imam preached; and Mahomet and Second offered the namaz of prayer and thanksgiving at the great altar, where the Christian rites had recently been performed before the last of the Cæsars. 76 After leaving St. Sophia, he moved on to the grand yet now deserted residence of a hundred successors of the great Constantine, which had in a few hours lost all its royal splendor. A sorrowful realization about the fluctuating nature of human greatness came to him; and he recited an elegant couplet from Persian poetry: “The spider has spun its web in the Imperial palace; and the owl has sung her watch-song on the towers of Afrasiab.” 77

73 (return)
[ The Julian Calendar, which reckons the days and hours from midnight, was used at Constantinople. But Ducas seems to understand the natural hours from sunrise.]

73 (return)
[ The Julian Calendar, which tracks days and hours starting at midnight, was used in Constantinople. However, Ducas appears to understand natural hours based on sunrise.]

74 (return)
[ See the Turkish Annals, p. 329, and the Pandects of Leunclavius, p. 448.]

74 (return)
[ Check the Turkish Annals, p. 329, and the Pandects of Leunclavius, p. 448.]

75 (return)
[ I have had occasion (vol. ii. p. 100) to mention this curious relic of Grecian antiquity.]

75 (return)
[ I've had the chance (vol. ii. p. 100) to mention this interesting artifact from ancient Greece.]

751 (return)
[ Von Hammer passes over this circumstance, which is treated by Dr. Clarke (Travels, vol. ii. p. 58, 4to. edit,) as a fiction of Thevenot. Chishull states that the monument was broken by some attendants of the Polish ambassador.—M.]

751 (return)
[ Von Hammer overlooks this detail, which Dr. Clarke discusses (Travels, vol. ii. p. 58, 4to. edit.) as a fabrication by Thevenot. Chishull mentions that the monument was damaged by some attendants of the Polish ambassador.—M.]

76 (return)
[ We are obliged to Cantemir (p. 102) for the Turkish account of the conversion of St. Sophia, so bitterly deplored by Phranza and Ducas. It is amusing enough to observe, in what opposite lights the same object appears to a Mussulman and a Christian eye.]

76 (return)
[ We owe a thanks to Cantemir (p. 102) for the Turkish perspective on the conversion of St. Sophia, which Phranza and Ducas lament so deeply. It's quite interesting to see how the same event is viewed so differently by a Muslim and a Christian.]

77 (return)
[ This distich, which Cantemir gives in the original, derives new beauties from the application. It was thus that Scipio repeated, in the sack of Carthage, the famous prophecy of Homer. The same generous feeling carried the mind of the conqueror to the past or the future.]

77 (return)
[ This couplet, which Cantemir provides in the original, gains new beauty from its application. This was how Scipio recited, during the fall of Carthage, the famous prophecy of Homer. The same noble sentiment connected the conqueror’s mind to the past or the future.]

Yet his mind was not satisfied, nor did the victory seem complete, till he was informed of the fate of Constantine; whether he had escaped, or been made prisoner, or had fallen in the battle. Two Janizaries claimed the honor and reward of his death: the body, under a heap of slain, was discovered by the golden eagles embroidered on his shoes; the Greeks acknowledged, with tears, the head of their late emperor; and, after exposing the bloody trophy, 78 Mahomet bestowed on his rival the honors of a decent funeral. After his decease, Lucas Notaras, great duke, 79 and first minister of the empire, was the most important prisoner. When he offered his person and his treasures at the foot of the throne, “And why,” said the indignant sultan, “did you not employ these treasures in the defence of your prince and country?”—“They were yours,” answered the slave; “God had reserved them for your hands.”—“If he reserved them for me,” replied the despot, “how have you presumed to withhold them so long by a fruitless and fatal resistance?” The great duke alleged the obstinacy of the strangers, and some secret encouragement from the Turkish vizier; and from this perilous interview he was at length dismissed with the assurance of pardon and protection. Mahomet condescended to visit his wife, a venerable princess oppressed with sickness and grief; and his consolation for her misfortunes was in the most tender strain of humanity and filial reverence. A similar clemency was extended to the principal officers of state, of whom several were ransomed at his expense; and during some days he declared himself the friend and father of the vanquished people. But the scene was soon changed; and before his departure, the hippodrome streamed with the blood of his noblest captives. His perfidious cruelty is execrated by the Christians: they adorn with the colors of heroic martyrdom the execution of the great duke and his two sons; and his death is ascribed to the generous refusal of delivering his children to the tyrant’s lust. 791 Yet a Byzantine historian has dropped an unguarded word of conspiracy, deliverance, and Italian succor: such treason may be glorious; but the rebel who bravely ventures, has justly forfeited his life; nor should we blame a conqueror for destroying the enemies whom he can no longer trust. On the eighteenth of June the victorious sultan returned to Adrianople; and smiled at the base and hollow embassies of the Christian princes, who viewed their approaching ruin in the fall of the Eastern empire.

Yet his mind wasn't satisfied, and the victory didn’t feel complete until he found out what happened to Constantine—whether he had escaped, been captured, or fallen in battle. Two Janizaries took credit for his death: the body was found under a pile of the dead, identified by the golden eagles stitched onto his shoes; the Greeks wept as they recognized the head of their former emperor, and after displaying this bloody trophy, 78 Mahomet gave his rival a proper funeral. After his death, Lucas Notaras, the grand duke and the empire's first minister, became the most significant prisoner. When he offered himself and his treasures at the foot of the throne, the furious sultan replied, “And why didn’t you use these treasures to defend your prince and country?”—“They were yours,” the slave answered; “God had reserved them for you.” “If He reserved them for me,” said the despot, “how could you possibly think it was okay to withhold them for so long with a useless and deadly resistance?” The grand duke blamed the stubbornness of outsiders and some secret support from the Turkish vizier; ultimately, he was released with the promise of pardon and protection. Mahomet even visited his wife, a respected princess suffering from illness and sorrow, offering her the most compassionate words filled with humanity and respect. He extended similar kindness to the key state officials, several of whom were ransomed at his expense; for several days he proclaimed himself the friend and protector of the defeated people. But the situation quickly changed, and before he left, the hippodrome ran red with the blood of his most noble captives. His treacherous cruelty is condemned by Christians: they celebrate the execution of the grand duke and his two sons as acts of heroic martyrdom; and his death is attributed to his noble refusal to surrender his children to the tyrant's desires. 791 Yet a Byzantine historian has mentioned conspiracy, rescue, and Italian support: such treachery may seem glorious; but the rebel who boldly risks it all has rightly forfeited his life; nor should we blame a conqueror for eliminating enemies he can no longer trust. On June 18th, the victorious sultan returned to Adrianople, smiling at the deceitful and empty delegations from the Christian princes, who recognized their impending doom with the fall of the Eastern empire.

78 (return)
[ I cannot believe with Ducas (see Spondanus, A.D. 1453, No. 13) that Mahomet sent round Persia, Arabia, &c., the head of the Greek emperor: he would surely content himself with a trophy less inhuman.]

78 (return)
[ I can't agree with Ducas (see Spondanus, A.D. 1453, No. 13) that Mahomet circulated the head of the Greek emperor throughout Persia, Arabia, etc.; he would surely settle for a less brutal trophy.]

79 (return)
[ Phranza was the personal enemy of the great duke; nor could time, or death, or his own retreat to a monastery, extort a feeling of sympathy or forgiveness. Ducas is inclined to praise and pity the martyr; Chalcondyles is neuter, but we are indebted to him for the hint of the Greek conspiracy.]

79 (return)
[Phranza was the personal enemy of the great duke; neither time, nor death, nor his retreat to a monastery could evoke any sympathy or forgiveness. Ducas tends to praise and feel sorry for the martyr; Chalcondyles takes a neutral stance, but we owe him credit for pointing out the Greek conspiracy.]

791 (return)
[ Von Hammer relates this undoubtingly, apparently on good authority, p. 559.—M.]

791 (return)
[ Von Hammer confidently shares this, apparently based on reliable sources, p. 559.—M.]

Constantinople had been left naked and desolate, without a prince or a people. But she could not be despoiled of the incomparable situation which marks her for the metropolis of a great empire; and the genius of the place will ever triumph over the accidents of time and fortune. Boursa and Adrianople, the ancient seats of the Ottomans, sunk into provincial towns; and Mahomet the Second established his own residence, and that of his successors, on the same commanding spot which had been chosen by Constantine. 80 The fortifications of Galata, which might afford a shelter to the Latins, were prudently destroyed; but the damage of the Turkish cannon was soon repaired; and before the month of August, great quantities of lime had been burnt for the restoration of the walls of the capital. As the entire property of the soil and buildings, whether public or private, or profane or sacred, was now transferred to the conqueror, he first separated a space of eight furlongs from the point of the triangle for the establishment of his seraglio or palace. It is here, in the bosom of luxury, that the Grand Signor (as he has been emphatically named by the Italians) appears to reign over Europe and Asia; but his person on the shores of the Bosphorus may not always be secure from the insults of a hostile navy. In the new character of a mosque, the cathedral of St. Sophia was endowed with an ample revenue, crowned with lofty minarets, and surrounded with groves and fountains, for the devotion and refreshment of the Moslems. The same model was imitated in the jami, or royal mosques; and the first of these was built, by Mahomet himself, on the ruins of the church of the holy apostles, and the tombs of the Greek emperors. On the third day after the conquest, the grave of Abu Ayub, or Job, who had fallen in the first siege of the Arabs, was revealed in a vision; and it is before the sepulchre of the martyr that the new sultans are girded with the sword of empire. 81 Constantinople no longer appertains to the Roman historian; nor shall I enumerate the civil and religious edifices that were profaned or erected by its Turkish masters: the population was speedily renewed; and before the end of September, five thousand families of Anatolia and Romania had obeyed the royal mandate, which enjoined them, under pain of death, to occupy their new habitations in the capital. The throne of Mahomet was guarded by the numbers and fidelity of his Moslem subjects: but his rational policy aspired to collect the remnant of the Greeks; and they returned in crowds, as soon as they were assured of their lives, their liberties, and the free exercise of their religion. In the election and investiture of a patriarch, the ceremonial of the Byzantine court was revived and imitated. With a mixture of satisfaction and horror, they beheld the sultan on his throne; who delivered into the hands of Gennadius the crosier or pastoral staff, the symbol of his ecclesiastical office; who conducted the patriarch to the gate of the seraglio, presented him with a horse richly caparisoned, and directed the viziers and bashaws to lead him to the palace which had been allotted for his residence. 82 The churches of Constantinople were shared between the two religions: their limits were marked; and, till it was infringed by Selim, the grandson of Mahomet, the Greeks 83 enjoyed above sixty years the benefit of this equal partition. Encouraged by the ministers of the divan, who wished to elude the fanaticism of the sultan, the Christian advocates presumed to allege that this division had been an act, not of generosity, but of justice; not a concession, but a compact; and that if one half of the city had been taken by storm, the other moiety had surrendered on the faith of a sacred capitulation. The original grant had indeed been consumed by fire: but the loss was supplied by the testimony of three aged Janizaries who remembered the transaction; and their venal oaths are of more weight in the opinion of Cantemir, than the positive and unanimous consent of the history of the times. 84

Constantinople had been left exposed and empty, without a ruler or a people. But she couldn't lose the unique position that makes her suitable to be the capital of a great empire; the essence of the place will always prevail over the changes of time and fortune. Bursa and Adrianople, the historic strongholds of the Ottomans, faded into provincial towns; and Mahomet II set up his own residence, along with that of his successors, on the same strategic location chosen by Constantine. 80 The fortifications of Galata, which could provide shelter to the Latins, were wisely destroyed; but the damage from Turkish cannon was quickly repaired, and by August, large amounts of lime had been burned to restore the walls of the capital. Since all the land and buildings, whether public or private, sacred or secular, now belonged to the conqueror, he first allocated a space of eight furlongs from the point of the triangle for the establishment of his palace. It is here, in the midst of luxury, that the Grand Signor (as he has been notably called by the Italians) seems to rule over Europe and Asia; but his position on the shores of the Bosphorus may not always be safe from the attacks of an enemy navy. As a mosque, the cathedral of St. Sophia was given a substantial income, topped with tall minarets, and surrounded by groves and fountains for the worship and refreshment of Muslims. This model was also used for the jami, or royal mosques; the first of which was constructed by Mahomet himself on the ruins of the church of the holy apostles and the tombs of the Greek emperors. On the third day after the conquest, the grave of Abu Ayub, or Job, who died in the initial Arab siege, was revealed in a dream; and the new sultans are girded with the sword of empire before the martyr’s tomb. 81 Constantinople no longer belongs to the Roman historian; nor shall I list the civil and religious buildings that were desecrated or built by its Turkish rulers: the population was quickly replenished; and by the end of September, five thousand families from Anatolia and Romania had complied with the royal decree, which commanded them, under threat of death, to occupy their new homes in the capital. Mahomet's throne was protected by the numbers and loyalty of his Muslim subjects; but his smart strategy aimed to gather the remaining Greeks; and they returned in droves, as soon as they were guaranteed their lives, freedoms, and the ability to practice their religion. In electing and installing a patriarch, the ceremonial traditions of the Byzantine court were revived and replicated. With mixed feelings of satisfaction and fear, they watched the sultan on his throne, who handed Gennadius the crosier or pastoral staff, the symbol of his ecclesiastical authority; who then escorted the patriarch to the gate of the palace, presented him with a beautifully adorned horse, and instructed the viziers and bashaws to take him to the palace designated for his residence. 82 The churches of Constantinople were divided between the two religions: their boundaries were set; and, until it was broken by Selim, the grandson of Mahomet, the Greeks 83 enjoyed this equal division for over sixty years. Encouraged by the ministers of the divan, who sought to mitigate the sultan's fanaticism, the Christian advocates claimed that this division was an act of not generosity, but of justice; not a concession, but a pact; and that while one half of the city had been taken by force, the other half had surrendered based on a sacred agreement. The original document had indeed been lost to fire: but the loss was made up for by the testimony of three elderly Janizaries who remembered the event; and their willing testimonies are, in Cantemir's view, more significant than the positive and unanimous accounts of the historical records. 84

80 (return)
[ For the restitution of Constantinople and the Turkish foundations, see Cantemir, (p. 102—109,) Ducas, (c. 42,) with Thevenot, Tournefort, and the rest of our modern travellers. From a gigantic picture of the greatness, population, &c., of Constantinople and the Ottoman empire, (Abrégé de l’Histoire Ottomane, tom. i. p. 16—21,) we may learn, that in the year 1586 the Moslems were less numerous in the capital than the Christians, or even the Jews.]

80 (return)
[For the return of Constantinople and the Turkish foundations, see Cantemir, (pp. 102—109), Ducas, (ch. 42), along with Thevenot, Tournefort, and other modern travelers. From an extensive depiction of the size, population, etc., of Constantinople and the Ottoman Empire, (Abrégé de l’Histoire Ottomane, vol. i. pp. 16—21), we learn that in the year 1586, the number of Muslims in the capital was smaller than that of Christians or even Jews.]

81 (return)
[ The Turbé, or sepulchral monument of Abu Ayub, is described and engraved in the Tableau Générale de l’Empire Ottoman, (Paris 1787, in large folio,) a work of less use, perhaps, than magnificence, (tom. i. p. 305, 306.)]

81 (return)
[ The Turbé, or tomb of Abu Ayub, is described and illustrated in the Tableau Générale de l’Empire Ottoman, (Paris 1787, in large folio,) a work that may be more about grandeur than practicality, (vol. i. pp. 305, 306.)]

82 (return)
[ Phranza (l. iii. c. 19) relates the ceremony, which has possibly been adorned in the Greek reports to each other, and to the Latins. The fact is confirmed by Emanuel Malaxus, who wrote, in vulgar Greek, the History of the Patriarchs after the taking of Constantinople, inserted in the Turco-Græcia of Crusius, (l. v. p. 106—184.) But the most patient reader will not believe that Mahomet adopted the Catholic form, “Sancta Trinitas quæ mihi donavit imperium te in patriarcham novæ Romæ deligit.”]

82 (return)
[ Phranza (l. iii. c. 19) describes the ceremony, which has likely been embellished in the Greek accounts and shared with the Latins. This is confirmed by Emanuel Malaxus, who wrote in common Greek about the History of the Patriarchs after the fall of Constantinople, included in Crusius's Turco-Græcia (l. v. p. 106—184). However, even the most patient reader would struggle to believe that Mahomet adopted the Catholic phrase, “Sancta Trinitas quæ mihi donavit imperium te in patriarcham novæ Romæ deligit.”]

83 (return)
[ From the Turco-Græcia of Crusius, &c. Spondanus (A.D. 1453, No. 21, 1458, No. 16) describes the slavery and domestic quarrels of the Greek church. The patriarch who succeeded Gennadius threw himself in despair into a well.]

83 (return)
[ From the Turco-Græcia of Crusius, &c. Spondanus (A.D. 1453, No. 21, 1458, No. 16) talks about the oppression and internal conflicts within the Greek church. The patriarch who followed Gennadius fell into despair and jumped into a well.]

84 (return)
[ Cantemir (p. 101—105) insists on the unanimous consent of the Turkish historians, ancient as well as modern, and argues, that they would not have violated the truth to diminish their national glory, since it is esteemed more honorable to take a city by force than by composition. But, 1. I doubt this consent, since he quotes no particular historian, and the Turkish Annals of Leunclavius affirm, without exception, that Mahomet took Constantinople per vim, (p. 329.) 2 The same argument may be turned in favor of the Greeks of the times, who would not have forgotten this honorable and salutary treaty. Voltaire, as usual, prefers the Turks to the Christians.]

84 (return)
[ Cantemir (p. 101—105) emphasizes the unanimous agreement among Turkish historians, both ancient and modern, arguing that they wouldn't distort the truth to lessen their national pride, as they find it more honorable to conquer a city by force than through negotiation. However, 1. I question this agreement since he does not cite any specific historian, and the Turkish Annals of Leunclavius state, without exception, that Mahomet captured Constantinople per vim, (p. 329.) 2 The same argument can be applied to the Greeks of that time, who certainly would have remembered this honorable and beneficial treaty. Voltaire, as usual, favors the Turks over the Christians.]

The remaining fragments of the Greek kingdom in Europe and Asia I shall abandon to the Turkish arms; but the final extinction of the two last dynasties 85 which have reigned in Constantinople should terminate the decline and fall of the Roman empire in the East. The despots of the Morea, Demetrius and Thomas, 86 the two surviving brothers of the name of Palæologus, were astonished by the death of the emperor Constantine, and the ruin of the monarchy. Hopeless of defence, they prepared, with the noble Greeks who adhered to their fortune, to seek a refuge in Italy, beyond the reach of the Ottoman thunder. Their first apprehensions were dispelled by the victorious sultan, who contented himself with a tribute of twelve thousand ducats; and while his ambition explored the continent and the islands, in search of prey, he indulged the Morea in a respite of seven years. But this respite was a period of grief, discord, and misery. The hexamilion, the rampart of the Isthmus, so often raised and so often subverted, could not long be defended by three hundred Italian archers: the keys of Corinth were seized by the Turks: they returned from their summer excursions with a train of captives and spoil; and the complaints of the injured Greeks were heard with indifference and disdain. The Albanians, a vagrant tribe of shepherds and robbers, filled the peninsula with rapine and murder: the two despots implored the dangerous and humiliating aid of a neighboring bashaw; and when he had quelled the revolt, his lessons inculcated the rule of their future conduct. Neither the ties of blood, nor the oaths which they repeatedly pledged in the communion and before the altar, nor the stronger pressure of necessity, could reconcile or suspend their domestic quarrels. They ravaged each other’s patrimony with fire and sword: the alms and succors of the West were consumed in civil hostility; and their power was only exerted in savage and arbitrary executions. The distress and revenge of the weaker rival invoked their supreme lord; and, in the season of maturity and revenge, Mahomet declared himself the friend of Demetrius, and marched into the Morea with an irresistible force. When he had taken possession of Sparta, “You are too weak,” said the sultan, “to control this turbulent province: I will take your daughter to my bed; and you shall pass the remainder of your life in security and honor.” Demetrius sighed and obeyed; surrendered his daughter and his castles; followed to Adrianople his sovereign and his son; and received for his own maintenance, and that of his followers, a city in Thrace and the adjacent isles of Imbros, Lemnos, and Samothrace. He was joined the next year by a companion 861 of misfortune, the last of the Comnenian race, who, after the taking of Constantinople by the Latins, had founded a new empire on the coast of the Black Sea. 87 In the progress of his Anatolian conquest, Mahomet invested with a fleet and army the capital of David, who presumed to style himself emperor of Trebizond; 88 and the negotiation was comprised in a short and peremptory question, “Will you secure your life and treasures by resigning your kingdom? or had you rather forfeit your kingdom, your treasures, and your life?” The feeble Comnenus was subdued by his own fears, 881 and the example of a Mussulman neighbor, the prince of Sinope, 89 who, on a similar summons, had yielded a fortified city, with four hundred cannon and ten or twelve thousand soldiers. The capitulation of Trebizond was faithfully performed: 891 and the emperor, with his family, was transported to a castle in Romania; but on a slight suspicion of corresponding with the Persian king, David, and the whole Comnenian race, were sacrificed to the jealousy or avarice of the conqueror. 892 Nor could the name of father long protect the unfortunate Demetrius from exile and confiscation; his abject submission moved the pity and contempt of the sultan; his followers were transplanted to Constantinople; and his poverty was alleviated by a pension of fifty thousand aspers, till a monastic habit and a tardy death released Palæologus from an earthly master. It is not easy to pronounce whether the servitude of Demetrius, or the exile of his brother Thomas, 90 be the most inglorious. On the conquest of the Morea, the despot escaped to Corfu, and from thence to Italy, with some naked adherents: his name, his sufferings, and the head of the apostle St. Andrew, entitled him to the hospitality of the Vatican; and his misery was prolonged by a pension of six thousand ducats from the pope and cardinals. His two sons, Andrew and Manuel, were educated in Italy; but the eldest, contemptible to his enemies and burdensome to his friends, was degraded by the baseness of his life and marriage. A title was his sole inheritance; and that inheritance he successively sold to the kings of France and Arragon. 91 During his transient prosperity, Charles the Eighth was ambitious of joining the empire of the East with the kingdom of Naples: in a public festival, he assumed the appellation and the purple of Augustus: the Greeks rejoiced and the Ottoman already trembled, at the approach of the French chivalry. 92 Manuel Palæologus, the second son, was tempted to revisit his native country: his return might be grateful, and could not be dangerous, to the Porte: he was maintained at Constantinople in safety and ease; and an honorable train of Christians and Moslems attended him to the grave. If there be some animals of so generous a nature that they refuse to propagate in a domestic state, the last of the Imperial race must be ascribed to an inferior kind: he accepted from the sultan’s liberality two beautiful females; and his surviving son was lost in the habit and religion of a Turkish slave.

The remaining remnants of the Greek kingdom in Europe and Asia will be left to the Turkish forces; however, the complete end of the last two dynasties 85 that ruled in Constantinople should mark the conclusion of the decline and fall of the Roman Empire in the East. The rulers of the Morea, Demetrius and Thomas, 86 the last two brothers of the Palæologus name, were shocked by the death of Emperor Constantine and the collapse of the monarchy. Feeling hopeless in their defense, they prepared, along with the noble Greeks who chose to stay loyal to them, to seek refuge in Italy, out of reach of the Ottoman threat. Their initial fears were eased by the victorious sultan, who was satisfied with a tribute of twelve thousand ducats; while he turned his ambitions toward the continent and the islands in search of spoils, he granted the Morea a seven-year reprieve. However, this period was filled with sorrow, conflict, and suffering. The hexamilion, the defensive wall of the Isthmus, which had been built and destroyed many times, couldn't be held for long by three hundred Italian archers: the Turks seized the keys to Corinth, returning from their summer raids with a number of captives and loot; meanwhile, the grievances of the wronged Greeks were met with indifference and contempt. The Albanians, a wandering group of shepherds and bandits, inflicted pillage and murder across the peninsula: the two despots sought the dangerous and humiliating help of a local bashaw; and after he quashed the uprising, his teachings shaped their future actions. Neither the bonds of kinship, nor the oaths they repeatedly swore in communion and at the altar, nor the pressing need for unity could bring an end to their domestic strife. They devastated each other's lands with fire and sword: the aid and relief from the West was weakened by their internal conflicts; and their power was only directed toward cruel and arbitrary executions. The distress and desire for revenge from the weaker rival called out to their ultimate lord; and during a time of reckoning and vengeance, Mahomet proclaimed himself as Demetrius's ally and invaded the Morea with an unstoppable force. After capturing Sparta, the sultan said, “You are too weak to manage this chaotic province: I will take your daughter as my wife, and you will live the rest of your life in comfort and respect.” Demetrius sighed and complied; he gave up his daughter and his strongholds; he followed his ruler and his son to Adrianople and was granted a city in Thrace along with the nearby islands of Imbros, Lemnos, and Samothrace for his and his followers' support. The following year, he was joined by a companion 861 of misfortune, the last of the Comnenian line, who had established a new empire on the Black Sea coast following Constantinople's fall to the Latins. 87 As Mahomet continued his conquest in Anatolia, he besieged the capital of David, who styled himself the emperor of Trebizond; 88 the negotiation was condensed into a brief and urgent question, “Will you protect your life and riches by giving up your kingdom? Or would you prefer to lose your kingdom, your treasures, and your life?” The weak Comnenus was paralyzed by fear, 881 and the example set by his Muslim neighbor, the prince of Sinope, 89 who had surrendered a fortified city under similar circumstances, with four hundred cannons and ten or twelve thousand soldiers. The capitulation of Trebizond was faithfully executed: 891 and the emperor, along with his family, was relocated to a fortress in Romania; but on a mere suspicion of plotting with the Persian king, David and the entire Comnenian family were sacrificed to the envy or greed of the conqueror. 892 Nor could being a father afford Demetrius any protection from exile and the loss of his possessions; his submissive behavior sparked the sultan's pity and disdain; his followers were relocated to Constantinople; and he was supported by a pension of fifty thousand aspers until a monastic life and a slow death freed Palæologus from a worldly master. It’s difficult to decide whether Demetrius's servitude or Thomas's exile 90 was the most disgraceful. After the Morea was conquered, the despot escaped to Corfu, and then to Italy, accompanied by a handful of supporters: his name, his suffering, and the head of St. Andrew earned him the hospitality of the Vatican; and he was sustained by a pension of six thousand ducats from the pope and cardinals. His two sons, Andrew and Manuel, were educated in Italy; but the eldest, looked down upon by his enemies and a burden to his allies, was degraded by the low nature of his life and marriage. A title was his only inheritance; and he sold that inheritance in succession to the kings of France and Aragon. 91 During his brief period of prosperity, Charles the Eighth had ambitions to unite the Eastern Empire with the kingdom of Naples: at a public festival, he adopted the title and the purple of Augustus: the Greeks celebrated and the Ottomans already trembled at the arrival of the French knights. 92 Manuel Palæologus, the second son, was tempted to return to his homeland: his return could be welcomed and couldn't pose a threat to the Porte; he lived safely and comfortably in Constantinople, attended to by a distinguished group of Christians and Muslims until his death. If there are some animals so noble that they refuse to breed in captivity, the last of the Imperial line must be categorized as a lesser sort: he accepted two beautiful women from the sultan's generosity; and his surviving son was lost in the guise and faith of a Turkish slave.

85 (return)
[ For the genealogy and fall of the Comneni of Trebizond, see Ducange, (Fam. Byzant. p. 195;) for the last Palæologi, the same accurate antiquarian, (p. 244, 247, 248.) The Palæologi of Montferrat were not extinct till the next century; but they had forgotten their Greek origin and kindred.]

85 (return)
[For the family tree and decline of the Comneni of Trebizond, refer to Ducange, (Fam. Byzant. p. 195;) for the last Palæologi, the same precise historian, (p. 244, 247, 248.) The Palæologi of Montferrat did not disappear until the next century; however, they had lost touch with their Greek roots and family ties.]

86 (return)
[ In the worthless story of the disputes and misfortunes of the two brothers, Phranza (l. iii. c. 21—30) is too partial on the side of Thomas Ducas (c. 44, 45) is too brief, and Chalcondyles (l. viii. ix. x.) too diffuse and digressive.]

86 (return)
[ In the trivial tale of the conflicts and troubles between the two brothers, Phranza (l. iii. c. 21—30) shows too much bias towards Thomas Ducas (c. 44, 45), while Chalcondyles (l. viii. ix. x.) is too lengthy and wandering.]

861 (return)
[ Kalo-Johannes, the predecessor of David his brother, the last emperor of Trebizond, had attempted to organize a confederacy against Mahomet it comprehended Hassan Bei, sultan of Mesopotamia, the Christian princes of Georgia and Iberia, the emir of Sinope, and the sultan of Caramania. The negotiations were interrupted by his sudden death, A.D. 1458. Fallmerayer, p. 257—260.—M.]

861 (return)
[ Kalo-Johannes, who was the predecessor of his brother David, the last emperor of Trebizond, tried to set up a coalition against Mahomet. It included Hassan Bei, the sultan of Mesopotamia, the Christian princes of Georgia and Iberia, the emir of Sinope, and the sultan of Caramania. The discussions were cut short by his unexpected death in A.D. 1458. Fallmerayer, p. 257—260.—M.]

87 (return)
[ See the loss or conquest of Trebizond in Chalcondyles, (l. ix. p. 263—266,) Ducas, (c. 45,) Phranza, (l. iii. c. 27,) and Cantemir, (p. 107.)]

87 (return)
[ See the loss or takeover of Trebizond in Chalcondyles, (l. ix. p. 263—266,) Ducas, (c. 45,) Phranza, (l. iii. c. 27,) and Cantemir, (p. 107.)]

88 (return)
[ Though Tournefort (tom. iii. lettre xvii. p. 179) speaks of Trebizond as mal peuplée, Peysonnel, the latest and most accurate observer, can find 100,000 inhabitants, (Commerce de la Mer Noire, tom. ii. p. 72, and for the province, p. 53—90.) Its prosperity and trade are perpetually disturbed by the factious quarrels of two odas of Janizaries, in one which 30,000 Lazi are commonly enrolled, (Mémoires de Tott, tom. iii. p. 16, 17.)]

88 (return)
[ Although Tournefort (vol. iii, letter xvii, p. 179) refers to Trebizond as poorly populated, Peysonnel, the most recent and reliable observer, estimates there are 100,000 residents (Commerce de la Mer Noire, vol. ii, p. 72, and for the province, p. 53—90.) Its prosperity and trade are constantly disrupted by the factional disputes of two odas of Janizaries, in which 30,000 Lazi are usually enrolled (Mémoires de Tott, vol. iii, p. 16, 17.)]

881 (return)
[ According to the Georgian account of these transactions, (translated by M. Brosset, additions to Le Beau, vol. xxi. p. 325,) the emperor of Trebizond humbly entreated the sultan to have the goodness to marry one of his daughters.—M.]

881 (return)
[ According to the Georgian account of these events, (translated by M. Brosset, additions to Le Beau, vol. xxi. p. 325,) the emperor of Trebizond respectfully asked the sultan to kindly consider marrying one of his daughters.—M.]

89 (return)
[ Ismael Beg, prince of Sinope or Sinople, was possessed (chiefly from his copper mines) of a revenue of 200,000 ducats, (Chalcond. l. ix. p. 258, 259.) Peysonnel (Commerce de la Mer Noire, tom. ii. p. 100) ascribes to the modern city 60,000 inhabitants. This account seems enormous; yet it is by trading with people that we become acquainted with their wealth and numbers.]

89 (return)
[Ismael Beg, the prince of Sinope or Sinople, had a revenue of 200,000 ducats, mainly from his copper mines (Chalcond. l. ix. p. 258, 259). Peysonnel (Commerce de la Mer Noire, tom. ii. p. 100) claims that the modern city has 60,000 residents. This number seems excessive; however, it is through trade with people that we learn about their wealth and population.]

891 (return)
[ M. Boissonade has published, in the fifth volume of his Anecdota Græca (p. 387, 401.) a very interesting letter from George Amiroutzes, protovestiarius of Trebizond, to Bessarion, describing the surrender of Trebizond, and the fate of its chief inhabitants.—M.]

891 (return)
[ M. Boissonade has published, in the fifth volume of his Anecdota Græca (p. 387, 401), a very interesting letter from George Amiroutzes, protovestiarius of Trebizond, to Bessarion, describing the surrender of Trebizond and the fate of its main inhabitants.—M.]

892 (return)
[ See in Von Hammer, vol. ii. p. 60, the striking account of the mother, the empress Helena the Cantacuzene, who, in defiance of the edict, like that of Creon in the Greek tragedy, dug the grave for her murdered children with her own hand, and sank into it herself.—M.]

892 (return)
[ See in Von Hammer, vol. ii. p. 60, the powerful account of the mother, Empress Helena Cantacuzene, who, defying the edict, like Creon in Greek tragedy, dug the grave for her murdered children with her own hands and ultimately joined them in it.—M.]

90 (return)
[ Spondanus (from Gobelin Comment. Pii II. l. v.) relates the arrival and reception of the despot Thomas at Rome,. (A.D. 1461 No. NO. 3.)]

90 (return)
[ Spondanus (from Gobelin Comment. Pii II. l. v.) discusses the arrival and welcome of the ruler Thomas in Rome. (A.D. 1461 No. NO. 3.)]

91 (return)
[ By an act dated A.D. 1494, Sept. 6, and lately transmitted from the archives of the Capitol to the royal library of Paris, the despot Andrew Palæologus, reserving the Morea, and stipulating some private advantages, conveys to Charles VIII., king of France, the empires of Constantinople and Trebizond, (Spondanus, A.D. 1495, No. 2.) M. D. Foncemagne (Mém. de l’Académie des Inscriptions, tom. xvii. p. 539—578) has bestowed a dissertation on his national title, of which he had obtained a copy from Rome.]

91 (return)
[ By an act dated September 6, 1494, recently sent from the Capitol archives to the royal library in Paris, the despot Andrew Palæologus, keeping the Morea for himself and agreeing to some private benefits, transfers to Charles VIII, king of France, the empires of Constantinople and Trebizond, (Spondanus, 1495, No. 2.) M. D. Foncemagne (Mém. de l’Académie des Inscriptions, vol. xvii, pp. 539—578) wrote a dissertation on his national title, which he had received a copy of from Rome.]

92 (return)
[ See Philippe de Comines, (l. vii. c. 14,) who reckons with pleasure the number of Greeks who were prepared to rise, 60 miles of an easy navigation, eighteen days’ journey from Valona to Constantinople, &c. On this occasion the Turkish empire was saved by the policy of Venice.]

92 (return)
[See Philippe de Comines, (l. vii. c. 14), who happily counts the number of Greeks ready to rise, just 60 miles away with smooth navigation, an eighteen-day journey from Valona to Constantinople, etc. On this occasion, the Turkish empire was saved by Venice's strategy.]

The importance of Constantinople was felt and magnified in its loss: the pontificate of Nicholas the Fifth, however peaceful and prosperous, was dishonored by the fall of the Eastern empire; and the grief and terror of the Latins revived, or seemed to revive, the old enthusiasm of the crusades. In one of the most distant countries of the West, Philip duke of Burgundy entertained, at Lisle in Flanders, an assembly of his nobles; and the pompous pageants of the feast were skilfully adapted to their fancy and feelings. 93 In the midst of the banquet a gigantic Saracen entered the hall, leading a fictitious elephant with a castle on his back: a matron in a mourning robe, the symbol of religion, was seen to issue from the castle: she deplored her oppression, and accused the slowness of her champions: the principal herald of the golden fleece advanced, bearing on his fist a live pheasant, which, according to the rites of chivalry, he presented to the duke. At this extraordinary summons, Philip, a wise and aged prince, engaged his person and powers in the holy war against the Turks: his example was imitated by the barons and knights of the assembly: they swore to God, the Virgin, the ladies and the pheasant; and their particular vows were not less extravagant than the general sanction of their oath. But the performance was made to depend on some future and foreign contingency; and during twelve years, till the last hour of his life, the duke of Burgundy might be scrupulously, and perhaps sincerely, on the eve of his departure. Had every breast glowed with the same ardor; had the union of the Christians corresponded with their bravery; had every country, from Sweden 94 to Naples, supplied a just proportion of cavalry and infantry, of men and money, it is indeed probable that Constantinople would have been delivered, and that the Turks might have been chased beyond the Hellespont or the Euphrates. But the secretary of the emperor, who composed every epistle, and attended every meeting, Æneas Sylvius, 95 a statesman and orator, describes from his own experience the repugnant state and spirit of Christendom. “It is a body,” says he, “without a head; a republic without laws or magistrates. The pope and the emperor may shine as lofty titles, as splendid images; but they are unable to command, and none are willing to obey: every state has a separate prince, and every prince has a separate interest. What eloquence could unite so many discordant and hostile powers under the same standard? Could they be assembled in arms, who would dare to assume the office of general? What order could be maintained?—what military discipline? Who would undertake to feed such an enormous multitude? Who would understand their various languages, or direct their stranger and incompatible manners? What mortal could reconcile the Germans with the French, Genoa with Arragon, the Germans with the natives of Hungary and Bohemia? If a small number enlisted in the holy war, they must be overthrown by the infidels; if many, by their own weight and confusion.” Yet the same Æneas, when he was raised to the papal throne, under the name of Pius the Second, devoted his life to the prosecution of the Turkish war. In the council of Mantua he excited some sparks of a false or feeble enthusiasm; but when the pontiff appeared at Ancona, to embark in person with the troops, engagements vanished in excuses; a precise day was adjourned to an indefinite term; and his effective army consisted of some German pilgrims, whom he was obliged to disband with indulgences and arms. Regardless of futurity, his successors and the powers of Italy were involved in the schemes of present and domestic ambition; and the distance or proximity of each object determined in their eyes its apparent magnitude. A more enlarged view of their interest would have taught them to maintain a defensive and naval war against the common enemy; and the support of Scanderbeg and his brave Albanians might have prevented the subsequent invasion of the kingdom of Naples. The siege and sack of Otranto by the Turks diffused a general consternation; and Pope Sixtus was preparing to fly beyond the Alps, when the storm was instantly dispelled by the death of Mahomet the Second, in the fifty-first year of his age. 96 His lofty genius aspired to the conquest of Italy: he was possessed of a strong city and a capacious harbor; and the same reign might have been decorated with the trophies of the New and the Ancient Rome. 97

The significance of Constantinople was deeply felt and heightened by its loss: the papacy of Nicholas the Fifth, despite being peaceful and prosperous, was tarnished by the collapse of the Eastern empire; and the sorrow and fear of the Latins revived, or seemed to revive, the old passion for the crusades. In one of the most distant regions of the West, Philip, the Duke of Burgundy, hosted an assembly of his nobles in Lisle, Flanders; and the elaborate displays at the feast were carefully tailored to their tastes and emotions. 93 During the gathering, a gigantic Saracen entered the hall, leading a fake elephant with a castle on its back: a woman in a mourning robe, symbolizing religion, was seen coming out of the castle: she lamented her suffering and blamed her champions for being slow to act: the chief herald of the golden fleece stepped forward, holding a live pheasant on his fist, which, according to chivalric tradition, he presented to the duke. At this extraordinary summons, Philip, a wise and elderly prince, dedicated himself and his resources to the holy war against the Turks: his example inspired the barons and knights present; they swore to God, the Virgin, the ladies, and the pheasant; and their individual vows were at least as extravagant as the overall commitment of their oath. However, the execution of this promise relied on some future and external situation; and for twelve years, until the very end of his life, the Duke of Burgundy was consistently, and perhaps genuinely, on the verge of departing. Had everyone shared the same fervor; had the unity of the Christians matched their courage; had every nation, from Sweden 94 to Naples, contributed a fair share of cavalry and infantry, of men and funds, it is quite possible that Constantinople could have been saved, and the Turks might have been driven back beyond the Hellespont or the Euphrates. But the emperor's secretary, who wrote every letter and attended every meeting, Æneas Sylvius, 95 a statesman and orator, described from his own experience the disunited condition and spirit of Christendom. "It is a body," he said, "without a head; a republic without laws or officials. The pope and the emperor may appear as lofty titles, as impressive images; but they cannot command, and no one is willing to obey: every state has its own prince, and every prince has his own interests. What eloquence could unite so many conflicting and hostile powers under the same banner? If they were gathered for battle, who would dare to take on the role of commander? What order could be maintained?—what military discipline? Who would take on the task of feeding such a vast multitude? Who would understand their different languages, or manage their foreign and incompatible ways? What mortal could reconcile the Germans with the French, Genoa with Aragon, the Germans with the people of Hungary and Bohemia? If a small number joined the holy war, they'd be easily defeated by the infidels; if many, by their own mass and chaos." Yet the same Æneas, when he was elevated to the papacy as Pius the Second, dedicated his life to the fight against the Turks. In the council of Mantua, he sparked some signs of false or weak enthusiasm; but when the pope appeared at Ancona, ready to set sail with the troops, promises turned into excuses; a specific departure date was postponed indefinitely; and his active army was reduced to a few German pilgrims, whom he had to disband with indulgences and weapons. Ignoring the future, his successors and Italy's powers became entangled in immediate and domestic ambitions; and the distance or closeness of each target shaped its perceived importance in their eyes. A broader perspective on their interests would have led them to organize a defensive and naval war against the common enemy; and supporting Scanderbeg and his brave Albanians might have prevented the later invasion of the kingdom of Naples. The siege and capture of Otranto by the Turks spread widespread panic; and Pope Sixtus was getting ready to flee beyond the Alps, when the crisis was suddenly resolved by the death of Mahomet the Second, at the age of fifty-one. 96 His ambitious vision aimed for the conquest of Italy: he held a strong city and a large harbor; and his reign might have been celebrated with the victories of both New and Ancient Rome. 97

93 (return)
[ See the original feast in Olivier de la Marche, (Mémoires, P. i. c. 29, 30,) with the abstract and observations of M. de Ste. Palaye, (Mémoires sur la Chevalerie, tom. i. P. iii. p. 182—185.) The peacock and the pheasant were distinguished as royal birds.]

93 (return)
[ Check out the original feast in Olivier de la Marche, (Mémoires, P. i. c. 29, 30,) along with the summary and notes by M. de Ste. Palaye, (Mémoires sur la Chevalerie, tom. i. P. iii. p. 182—185.) The peacock and the pheasant were recognized as royal birds.]

94 (return)
[ It was found by an actual enumeration, that Sweden, Gothland, and Finland, contained 1,800,000 fighting men, and consequently were far more populous than at present.]

94 (return)
[ An actual count revealed that Sweden, Gothland, and Finland had 1,800,000 soldiers, indicating that their populations were much larger than they are today.]

95 (return)
[ In the year 1454, Spondanus has given, from Æneas Sylvius, a view of the state of Europe, enriched with his own observations. That valuable annalist, and the Italian Muratori, will continue the series of events from the year 1453 to 1481, the end of Mahomet’s life, and of this chapter.]

95 (return)
[ In 1454, Spondanus provided, based on Æneas Sylvius, an overview of the situation in Europe, enhanced with his own insights. That important historian, along with the Italian Muratori, will carry on the account of events from 1453 to 1481, which marks the end of Mahomet’s life and of this chapter.]

96 (return)
[ Besides the two annalists, the reader may consult Giannone (Istoria Civile, tom. iii. p. 449—455) for the Turkish invasion of the kingdom of Naples. For the reign and conquests of Mahomet II., I have occasionally used the Memorie Istoriche de Monarchi Ottomanni di Giovanni Sagredo, (Venezia, 1677, in 4to.) In peace and war, the Turks have ever engaged the attention of the republic of Venice. All her despatches and archives were open to a procurator of St. Mark, and Sagredo is not contemptible either in sense or style. Yet he too bitterly hates the infidels: he is ignorant of their language and manners; and his narrative, which allows only 70 pages to Mahomet II., (p. 69—140,) becomes more copious and authentic as he approaches the years 1640 and 1644, the term of the historic labors of John Sagredo.]

96 (return)
[ In addition to the two annalists, readers can check Giannone (Istoria Civile, vol. iii, pp. 449—455) for information on the Turkish invasion of the kingdom of Naples. For the reign and conquests of Mahomet II., I've occasionally referenced the Memorie Istoriche de Monarchi Ottomanni by Giovanni Sagredo (Venice, 1677, in 4to). Throughout both peace and war, the Turks have always captured the attention of the Republic of Venice. All her dispatches and archives were accessible to a procurator of St. Mark, and Sagredo's work is not lacking in intelligence or style. However, he harbors a strong dislike for the infidels: he does not understand their language or customs; and his account, which devotes only 70 pages to Mahomet II. (pp. 69—140), becomes more detailed and credible as it gets closer to the years 1640 and 1644, which mark the end of John Sagredo's historical efforts.]

97 (return)
[ As I am now taking an everlasting farewell of the Greek empire, I shall briefly mention the great collection of Byzantine writers whose names and testimonies have been successively repeated in this work. The Greeks presses of Aldus and the Italians were confined to the classics of a better age; and the first rude editions of Procopius, Agathias, Cedrenus, Zonaras, &c., were published by the learned diligence of the Germans. The whole Byzantine series (xxxvi. volumes in folio) has gradually issued (A.D. 1648, &c.) from the royal press of the Louvre, with some collateral aid from Rome and Leipsic; but the Venetian edition, (A.D. 1729,) though cheaper and more copious, is not less inferior in correctness than in magnificence to that of Paris. The merits of the French editors are various; but the value of Anna Comnena, Cinnamus, Villehardouin, &c., is enhanced by the historical notes of Charles de Fresne du Cange. His supplemental works, the Greek Glossary, the Constantinopolis Christiana, the Familiæ Byzantinæ, diffuse a steady light over the darkness of the Lower Empire. * Note: The new edition of the Byzantines, projected by Niebuhr, and continued under the patronage of the Prussian government, is the most convenient in size, and contains some authors (Leo Diaconus, Johannes Lydus, Corippus, the new fragment of Dexippus, Eunapius, &c., discovered by Mai) which could not be comprised in the former collections; but the names of such editors as Bekker, the Dindorfs, &c., raised hopes of something more than the mere republication of the text, and the notes of former editors. Little, I regret to say, has been added of annotation, and in some cases, the old incorrect versions have been retained.—M.]

97 (return)
[ As I say goodbye to the Greek Empire for good, I want to briefly acknowledge the significant collection of Byzantine writers whose names and contributions have been referenced in this work. The Greek presses of Aldus and the Italians focused on the classics of a better era, while the first basic editions of Procopius, Agathias, Cedrenus, Zonaras, etc., were produced by the diligent efforts of German scholars. The entire Byzantine series (thirty-six volumes in folio) has gradually been published (A.D. 1648, etc.) from the royal press at the Louvre, with some additional assistance from Rome and Leipzig; however, the Venetian edition (A.D. 1729), although cheaper and more extensive, is still not as accurate or impressive as the Paris edition. The French editors have various strengths, but the works of Anna Comnena, Cinnamus, Villehardouin, etc., gain added value from the historical notes of Charles de Fresne du Cange. His supplementary works, the Greek Glossary, the Constantinopolis Christiana, and the Familiæ Byzantinæ, shed a consistent light on the obscurity of the Lower Empire. * Note: The new edition of the Byzantines, planned by Niebuhr and continued under the support of the Prussian government, is the most convenient in size and includes some authors (Leo Diaconus, Johannes Lydus, Corippus, the new fragment of Dexippus, Eunapius, etc., discovered by Mai) that were not included in previous collections; however, the names of editors such as Bekker, the Dindorfs, etc., raised expectations for more than just a reprint of the text and notes from previous editors. Unfortunately, I must say that little new annotation has been added, and in some cases, the old incorrect versions have been kept. —M.]

Chapter LXIX: State Of Rome From The Twelfth Century.—Part I.

     State Of Rome From The Twelfth Century.—Temporal Dominion
     Of The Popes.—Seditions Of The City.—Political Heresy Of
     Arnold Of Brescia.—Restoration Of The Republic.—The
     Senators.—Pride Of The Romans.—Their Wars.—They Are
     Deprived Of The Election And Presence Of The Popes, Who
     Retire To Avignon.—The Jubilee.—Noble Families Of Rome.—
     Feud Of The Colonna And Ursini.
     State Of Rome From The Twelfth Century.—The Popes' Temporal Power.—City Unrest.—Political Heresy Of Arnold Of Brescia.—Restoration Of The Republic.—The Senators.—Roman Pride.—Their Wars.—They Lose The Right To Elect And Host The Popes, Who Move To Avignon.—The Jubilee.—Noble Families Of Rome.—The Feud Between The Colonna And Ursini.

In the first ages of the decline and fall of the Roman empire, our eye is invariably fixed on the royal city, which had given laws to the fairest portion of the globe. We contemplate her fortunes, at first with admiration, at length with pity, always with attention, and when that attention is diverted from the capital to the provinces, they are considered as so many branches which have been successively severed from the Imperial trunk. The foundation of a second Rome, on the shores of the Bosphorus, has compelled the historian to follow the successors of Constantine; and our curiosity has been tempted to visit the most remote countries of Europe and Asia, to explore the causes and the authors of the long decay of the Byzantine monarchy. By the conquest of Justinian, we have been recalled to the banks of the Tyber, to the deliverance of the ancient metropolis; but that deliverance was a change, or perhaps an aggravation, of servitude. Rome had been already stripped of her trophies, her gods, and her Cæsars; nor was the Gothic dominion more inglorious and oppressive than the tyranny of the Greeks. In the eighth century of the Christian æra, a religious quarrel, the worship of images, provoked the Romans to assert their independence: their bishop became the temporal, as well as the spiritual, father of a free people; and of the Western empire, which was restored by Charlemagne, the title and image still decorate the singular constitution of modern Germany. The name of Rome must yet command our involuntary respect: the climate (whatsoever may be its influence) was no longer the same: 1 the purity of blood had been contaminated through a thousand channels; but the venerable aspect of her ruins, and the memory of past greatness, rekindled a spark of the national character. The darkness of the middle ages exhibits some scenes not unworthy of our notice. Nor shall I dismiss the present work till I have reviewed the state and revolutions of the Roman City, which acquiesced under the absolute dominion of the popes, about the same time that Constantinople was enslaved by the Turkish arms.

In the early stages of the decline and fall of the Roman Empire, our focus is always on the royal city that once set laws for a large part of the world. We watch her fortunes, initially with admiration and eventually with pity, but always with interest. When our attention shifts from the capital to the provinces, we see them as branches that have been cut off from the Imperial trunk. The establishment of a second Rome on the shores of the Bosphorus has led historians to trace the successors of Constantine, and our curiosity has drawn us to the distant lands of Europe and Asia to uncover the reasons behind the long decline of the Byzantine monarchy. With Justinian's conquest, we are brought back to the banks of the Tiber and the rescue of the ancient city; however, that rescue was just a change, or maybe even a worsening, of servitude. Rome had already been stripped of her trophies, her gods, and her Caesars; and the Gothic rule was no less disgraceful and oppressive than the tyranny of the Greeks. In the eighth century of the Christian era, a religious dispute over the worship of images spurred the Romans to claim their independence: their bishop became both the political and spiritual leader of a free people; and of the Western Empire, which was restored by Charlemagne, the title and image still embellish the unique constitution of modern Germany. The name of Rome still commands our involuntary respect: the climate (whatever its effects) was no longer the same: 1 the purity of blood had been tainted through countless channels; yet the majestic sight of her ruins and the memory of her past greatness reignited a spark of the national character. The darkness of the Middle Ages reveals some events worth our attention. I won't conclude this work until I have examined the state and transitions of the Roman City, which submitted to the absolute rule of the popes around the same time that Constantinople fell under Turkish control.

1 (return)
[ The abbé Dubos, who, with less genius than his successor Montesquieu, has asserted and magnified the influence of climate, objects to himself the degeneracy of the Romans and Batavians. To the first of these examples he replies, 1. That the change is less real than apparent, and that the modern Romans prudently conceal in themselves the virtues of their ancestors. 2. That the air, the soil, and the climate of Rome have suffered a great and visible alteration, (Réflexions sur la Poësie et sur la Peinture, part ii. sect. 16.) * Note: This question is discussed at considerable length in Dr. Arnold’s History of Rome, ch. xxiii. See likewise Bunsen’s Dissertation on the Aria Cattiva Roms Beschreibung, pp. 82, 108.—M.]

1 (return)
[ The abbé Dubos, who, with less brilliance than his successor Montesquieu, has emphasized the impact of climate, points to the decline of the Romans and Batavians. In response to the first example, he argues: 1. That the change is more apparent than real, and that modern Romans wisely hide the virtues of their ancestors within themselves. 2. That the air, soil, and climate of Rome have undergone significant and noticeable changes, (Réflexions sur la Poësie et sur la Peinture, part ii. sect. 16.) * Note: This topic is explored in detail in Dr. Arnold’s History of Rome, ch. xxiii. See also Bunsen’s Dissertation on the Aria Cattiva Roms Beschreibung, pp. 82, 108.—M.]

In the beginning of the twelfth century, 2 the æra of the first crusade, Rome was revered by the Latins, as the metropolis of the world, as the throne of the pope and the emperor, who, from the eternal city, derived their title, their honors, and the right or exercise of temporal dominion. After so long an interruption, it may not be useless to repeat that the successors of Charlemagne and the Othos were chosen beyond the Rhine in a national diet; but that these princes were content with the humble names of kings of Germany and Italy, till they had passed the Alps and the Apennine, to seek their Imperial crown on the banks of the Tyber. 3 At some distance from the city, their approach was saluted by a long procession of the clergy and people with palms and crosses; and the terrific emblems of wolves and lions, of dragons and eagles, that floated in the military banners, represented the departed legions and cohorts of the republic. The royal path to maintain the liberties of Rome was thrice reiterated, at the bridge, the gate, and on the stairs of the Vatican; and the distribution of a customary donative feebly imitated the magnificence of the first Cæsars. In the church of St. Peter, the coronation was performed by his successor: the voice of God was confounded with that of the people; and the public consent was declared in the acclamations of “Long life and victory to our lord the pope! long life and victory to our lord the emperor! long life and victory to the Roman and Teutonic armies!” 4 The names of Cæsar and Augustus, the laws of Constantine and Justinian, the example of Charlemagne and Otho, established the supreme dominion of the emperors: their title and image was engraved on the papal coins; 5 and their jurisdiction was marked by the sword of justice, which they delivered to the præfect of the city. But every Roman prejudice was awakened by the name, the language, and the manners, of a Barbarian lord. The Cæsars of Saxony or Franconia were the chiefs of a feudal aristocracy; nor could they exercise the discipline of civil and military power, which alone secures the obedience of a distant people, impatient of servitude, though perhaps incapable of freedom. Once, and once only, in his life, each emperor, with an army of Teutonic vassals, descended from the Alps. I have described the peaceful order of his entry and coronation; but that order was commonly disturbed by the clamor and sedition of the Romans, who encountered their sovereign as a foreign invader: his departure was always speedy, and often shameful; and, in the absence of a long reign, his authority was insulted, and his name was forgotten. The progress of independence in Germany and Italy undermined the foundations of the Imperial sovereignty, and the triumph of the popes was the deliverance of Rome.

In the early twelfth century, during the time of the first crusade, Rome was seen by the Latins as the capital of the world, serving as the seat of both the pope and the emperor, who derived their title, honors, and authority from the eternal city. After a long interruption, it’s worth repeating that the successors of Charlemagne and the Othos were chosen across the Rhine in a national assembly; however, these princes were fine with the modest titles of kings of Germany and Italy until they crossed the Alps and the Apennines to seek their Imperial crown by the banks of the Tiber. Near the city, their arrival was celebrated by a long procession of clergy and citizens waving palms and crosses, while the fierce symbols of wolves, lions, dragons, and eagles on military banners represented the fallen legions and cohorts of the republic. The royal route to uphold the freedoms of Rome was reiterated three times at the bridge, the gate, and on the stairs of the Vatican; and the distribution of a customary gift only faintly mimicked the grandeur of the first Caesars. In the church of St. Peter, the coronation was conducted by his successor: the voice of God blended with that of the crowd, and the public support was declared in the cheers of “Long life and victory to our lord the pope! Long life and victory to our lord the emperor! Long life and victory to the Roman and Teutonic armies!” The names of Caesar and Augustus, the laws of Constantine and Justinian, and the examples of Charlemagne and Otho established the ultimate authority of the emperors: their title and image were stamped on the papal coins; and their jurisdiction was marked by the sword of justice, which they handed to the prefect of the city. However, every Roman prejudice was stirred by the name, language, and ways of a barbarian lord. The Caesars of Saxony or Franconia were leaders of a feudal aristocracy; and they couldn’t enforce the civil and military control crucial for securing the obedience of a distant people, eager for freedom yet perhaps unable to govern themselves. Each emperor, only once in his life, descended from the Alps with an army of Teutonic vassals. I’ve outlined the orderly nature of his entrance and coronation; yet that order was frequently disrupted by the uproar and unrest of the Romans, who viewed their sovereign as a foreign invader: his departure was always quick and often humiliating; and, without a long reign, his authority was disrespected, and his name was forgotten. The rise of independence in Germany and Italy weakened the foundations of Imperial sovereignty, while the triumph of the popes brought freedom to Rome.

2 (return)
[ The reader has been so long absent from Rome, that I would advise him to recollect or review the xlixth chapter of this History.]

2 (return)
[ The reader has been away from Rome for so long that I recommend they recall or look over the 49th chapter of this History.]

3 (return)
[ The coronation of the German emperors at Rome, more especially in the xith century, is best represented from the original monuments by Muratori (Antiquitat. Italiæ Medii Ævi, tom. i. dissertat. ii. p. 99, &c.) and Cenni, (Monument. Domin. Pontif. tom. ii. diss. vi. p. 261,) the latter of whom I only know from the copious extract of Schmidt, (Hist. des Allemands tom. iii. p. 255—266.)]

3 (return)
[ The coronation of the German emperors in Rome, especially in the 11th century, is best illustrated by the original records from Muratori (Antiquitat. Italiæ Medii Ævi, vol. i, dissertation ii, p. 99, etc.) and Cenni (Monument. Domin. Pontif. vol. ii, dissertation vi, p. 261), the latter of whom I only know from the extensive excerpt by Schmidt (Hist. des Allemands vol. iii, p. 255—266.)]

4 (return)
[ Exercitui Romano et Teutonico! The latter was both seen and felt; but the former was no more than magni nominis umbra.]

4 (return)
[ To the Roman and Teutonic army! The latter was both visible and tangible; but the former was nothing more than a shadow of a great name.]

5 (return)
[ Muratori has given the series of the papal coins, (Antiquitat. tom. ii. diss. xxvii. p. 548—554.) He finds only two more early than the year 800: fifty are still extant from Leo III. to Leo IX., with the addition of the reigning emperor none remain of Gregory VII. or Urban II.; but in those of Paschal II. he seems to have renounced this badge of dependence.]

5 (return)
[Muratori has provided the catalog of papal coins (Antiquitat. tom. ii. diss. xxvii. p. 548—554.) He discovers only two that are earlier than the year 800: fifty still exist from Leo III to Leo IX. However, apart from the reigning emperor, none remain from Gregory VII or Urban II; in the coins of Paschal II, he appears to have given up this symbol of dependence.]

Of her two sovereigns, the emperor had precariously reigned by the right of conquest; but the authority of the pope was founded on the soft, though more solid, basis of opinion and habit. The removal of a foreign influence restored and endeared the shepherd to his flock. Instead of the arbitrary or venal nomination of a German court, the vicar of Christ was freely chosen by the college of cardinals, most of whom were either natives or inhabitants of the city. The applause of the magistrates and people confirmed his election, and the ecclesiastical power that was obeyed in Sweden and Britain had been ultimately derived from the suffrage of the Romans. The same suffrage gave a prince, as well as a pontiff, to the capital. It was universally believed, that Constantine had invested the popes with the temporal dominion of Rome; and the boldest civilians, the most profane skeptics, were satisfied with disputing the right of the emperor and the validity of his gift. The truth of the fact, the authenticity of his donation, was deeply rooted in the ignorance and tradition of four centuries; and the fabulous origin was lost in the real and permanent effects. The name of Dominus or Lord was inscribed on the coin of the bishops: their title was acknowledged by acclamations and oaths of allegiance, and with the free, or reluctant, consent of the German Cæsars, they had long exercised a supreme or subordinate jurisdiction over the city and patrimony of St. Peter. The reign of the popes, which gratified the prejudices, was not incompatible with the liberties, of Rome; and a more critical inquiry would have revealed a still nobler source of their power; the gratitude of a nation, whom they had rescued from the heresy and oppression of the Greek tyrant. In an age of superstition, it should seem that the union of the royal and sacerdotal characters would mutually fortify each other; and that the keys of Paradise would be the surest pledge of earthly obedience. The sanctity of the office might indeed be degraded by the personal vices of the man. But the scandals of the tenth century were obliterated by the austere and more dangerous virtues of Gregory the Seventh and his successors; and in the ambitious contests which they maintained for the rights of the church, their sufferings or their success must equally tend to increase the popular veneration. They sometimes wandered in poverty and exile, the victims of persecution; and the apostolic zeal with which they offered themselves to martyrdom must engage the favor and sympathy of every Catholic breast. And sometimes, thundering from the Vatican, they created, judged, and deposed the kings of the world; nor could the proudest Roman be disgraced by submitting to a priest, whose feet were kissed, and whose stirrup was held, by the successors of Charlemagne. 6 Even the temporal interest of the city should have protected in peace and honor the residence of the popes; from whence a vain and lazy people derived the greatest part of their subsistence and riches. The fixed revenue of the popes was probably impaired; many of the old patrimonial estates, both in Italy and the provinces, had been invaded by sacrilegious hands; nor could the loss be compensated by the claim, rather than the possession, of the more ample gifts of Pepin and his descendants. But the Vatican and Capitol were nourished by the incessant and increasing swarms of pilgrims and suppliants: the pale of Christianity was enlarged, and the pope and cardinals were overwhelmed by the judgment of ecclesiastical and secular causes. A new jurisprudence had established in the Latin church the right and practice of appeals; 7 and from the North and West the bishops and abbots were invited or summoned to solicit, to complain, to accuse, or to justify, before the threshold of the apostles. A rare prodigy is once recorded, that two horses, belonging to the archbishops of Mentz and Cologne, repassed the Alps, yet laden with gold and silver: 8 but it was soon understood, that the success, both of the pilgrims and clients, depended much less on the justice of their cause than on the value of their offering. The wealth and piety of these strangers were ostentatiously displayed; and their expenses, sacred or profane, circulated in various channels for the emolument of the Romans.

Of her two rulers, the emperor had tenuously held power through conquest, while the pope's authority was built on the more stable foundation of public opinion and tradition. The end of foreign influence reconnected the shepherd with his flock. Instead of arbitrary or corrupt selections by a German court, the vicar of Christ was chosen freely by the college of cardinals, most of whom were either locals or residents of the city. The support of the officials and the people confirmed his election, and the ecclesiastical power recognized in Sweden and Britain had ultimately come from the endorsement of the Romans. The same endorsement provided a prince just like it did a pontiff for the capital. It was widely believed that Constantine granted the popes temporal power over Rome; and even the boldest legal thinkers, the most skeptical, were mostly willing to dispute the emperor's right and the legitimacy of his gift. The truth of the matter and the authenticity of his donation were deeply ingrained in the ignorance and traditions of four centuries; and the mythical origins faded beneath the real and lasting effects. The name of Dominus or Lord was stamped on the bishops' coins: their title was recognized by cheers and oaths of loyalty, and with the voluntary, or reluctant, consent of the German emperors, they had long exercised a supreme or subordinate authority over the city and the estate of St. Peter. The reign of the popes, while satisfying certain biases, did not conflict with the liberties of Rome; and a more thorough investigation would have revealed a nobler source of their power: the gratitude of a nation they had saved from the heresy and oppression of the Greek tyrant. In an era of superstition, it seemed that merging the royal and priestly roles would strengthen each other; and the keys to Paradise would be the best guarantee of earthly loyalty. The sanctity of the position could indeed be tarnished by the personal flaws of the individual. Yet the scandals of the tenth century were overshadowed by the severe and more dangerous virtues of Gregory the Seventh and his successors; and in the ambitious struggles they engaged in for the church’s rights, their suffering or success would only strengthen their popular reverence. They sometimes wandered in poverty and exile, victims of persecution; and the apostolic zeal with which they faced martyrdom must have garnered the favor and sympathy of every Catholic heart. And at times, issuing thunderous decrees from the Vatican, they created, judged, and deposed the kings of the world; nor could the proudest Roman feel diminished by yielding to a priest, whose feet were kissed, and whose stirrup was held by the successors of Charlemagne. 6 Even the city's material interests should have ensured the popes’ residence was peaceful and respected; from there, a vain and idle populace derived most of their subsistence and wealth. The papacy's fixed income was likely reduced; many of the old estates in Italy and the provinces had been invaded by sacrilegious hands; nor could the loss be offset by the claim, rather than the actual possession, of the more generous gifts from Pepin and his descendants. However, the Vatican and Capitol thrived on the endless influx of pilgrims and supplicants; the range of Christianity expanded, and the pope and cardinals were overwhelmed by the demands of both religious and civil cases. A new legal framework had established in the Latin church the right and process of appeals; 7 and bishops and abbots from the North and West were invited or summoned to present their petitions, grievances, accusations, or defenses before the apostles' threshold. A rare miracle is recorded once: two horses belonging to the archbishops of Mentz and Cologne crossed the Alps burdened with gold and silver; 8 but it soon became clear that the success of both the pilgrims and clients depended much more on the worth of their offerings than on the righteousness of their causes. The wealth and piety of these visitors were openly flaunted; and their sacred or secular expenditures flowed through various channels for the benefit of the Romans.

6 (return)
[ See Ducange, Gloss. mediæ et infimæ Latinitat. tom. vi. p. 364, 365, Staffa. This homage was paid by kings to archbishops, and by vassals to their lords, (Schmidt, tom. iii. p. 262;) and it was the nicest policy of Rome to confound the marks of filial and of feudal subjection.]

6 (return)
[ See Ducange, Gloss. médiæ et infimæ Latinitat. vol. vi. pp. 364, 365, Staffa. This respect was shown by kings to archbishops and by vassals to their lords, (Schmidt, vol. iii. p. 262;) and it was a clever strategy of Rome to blur the lines between the signs of familial loyalty and feudal obedience.]

7 (return)
[ The appeals from all the churches to the Roman pontiff are deplored by the zeal of St. Bernard (de Consideratione, l. iii. tom. ii. p. 431—442, edit. Mabillon, Venet. 1750) and the judgment of Fleury, (Discours sur l’Hist. Ecclésiastique, iv. et vii.) But the saint, who believed in the false decretals condemns only the abuse of these appeals; the more enlightened historian investigates the origin, and rejects the principles, of this new jurisprudence.]

7 (return)
[ St. Bernard passionately criticized the churches' appeals to the Pope (de Consideratione, l. iii. tom. ii. p. 431—442, edit. Mabillon, Venet. 1750), and Fleury weighed in with his judgment (Discours sur l’Hist. Ecclésiastique, iv. et vii.). However, while St. Bernard, who believed in the false decretals, condemned only the misuse of these appeals, the more informed historian examines their origins and dismisses the principles of this new legal system.]

8 (return)
[ Germanici.... summarii non levatis sarcinis onusti nihilominus repatriant inviti. Nova res! quando hactenus aurum Roma refudit? Et nunc Romanorum consilio id usurpatum non credimus, (Bernard, de Consideratione, l. iii. c. 3, p. 437.) The first words of the passage are obscure, and probably corrupt.]

8 (return)
[ Germanici.... summaries even while burdened with their packs, they reluctantly return home. What a change! when has gold flowed back to Rome until now? And we don't believe that this is being used at the direction of the Romans, (Bernard, de Consideratione, l. iii. c. 3, p. 437.) The first words of the passage are unclear, and likely corrupted.]

Such powerful motives should have firmly attached the voluntary and pious obedience of the Roman people to their spiritual and temporal father. But the operation of prejudice and interest is often disturbed by the sallies of ungovernable passion. The Indian who fells the tree, that he may gather the fruit, 9 and the Arab who plunders the caravans of commerce, are actuated by the same impulse of savage nature, which overlooks the future in the present, and relinquishes for momentary rapine the long and secure possession of the most important blessings. And it was thus, that the shrine of St. Peter was profaned by the thoughtless Romans; who pillaged the offerings, and wounded the pilgrims, without computing the number and value of similar visits, which they prevented by their inhospitable sacrilege. Even the influence of superstition is fluctuating and precarious; and the slave, whose reason is subdued, will often be delivered by his avarice or pride. A credulous devotion for the fables and oracles of the priesthood most powerfully acts on the mind of a Barbarian; yet such a mind is the least capable of preferring imagination to sense, of sacrificing to a distant motive, to an invisible, perhaps an ideal, object, the appetites and interests of the present world. In the vigor of health and youth, his practice will perpetually contradict his belief; till the pressure of age, or sickness, or calamity, awakens his terrors, and compels him to satisfy the double debt of piety and remorse. I have already observed, that the modern times of religious indifference are the most favorable to the peace and security of the clergy. Under the reign of superstition, they had much to hope from the ignorance, and much to fear from the violence, of mankind. The wealth, whose constant increase must have rendered them the sole proprietors of the earth, was alternately bestowed by the repentant father and plundered by the rapacious son: their persons were adored or violated; and the same idol, by the hands of the same votaries, was placed on the altar, or trampled in the dust. In the feudal system of Europe, arms were the title of distinction and the measure of allegiance; and amidst their tumult, the still voice of law and reason was seldom heard or obeyed. The turbulent Romans disdained the yoke, and insulted the impotence, of their bishop: 10 nor would his education or character allow him to exercise, with decency or effect, the power of the sword. The motives of his election and the frailties of his life were exposed to their familiar observation; and proximity must diminish the reverence which his name and his decrees impressed on a barbarous world. This difference has not escaped the notice of our philosophic historian: “Though the name and authority of the court of Rome were so terrible in the remote countries of Europe, which were sunk in profound ignorance, and were entirely unacquainted with its character and conduct, the pope was so little revered at home, that his inveterate enemies surrounded the gates of Rome itself, and even controlled his government in that city; and the ambassadors, who, from a distant extremity of Europe, carried to him the humble, or rather abject, submissions of the greatest potentate of the age, found the utmost difficulty to make their way to him, and to throw themselves at his feet.” 11

Such strong motivations should have firmly connected the voluntary and faithful obedience of the Roman people to their spiritual and earthly leader. However, the influence of bias and self-interest is often disrupted by bursts of uncontrolled emotion. The Indian who cuts down a tree to gather its fruit, and the Arab who robs merchant caravans, are driven by the same wild instincts, ignoring the future for the present, and sacrificing lasting benefits for fleeting gains. This is how the shrine of St. Peter was desecrated by thoughtless Romans; they looted the offerings and harmed the pilgrims, without considering the value and number of similar visits they prevented with their unwelcoming sacrilege. Even the impact of superstition is unstable; a subdued slave's greed or pride can often free him. A gullible devotion to the myths and prophecies of the clergy greatly influences the minds of barbarians; yet such minds are the least able to choose imagination over reality, or to sacrifice for a distant, perhaps ideal, purpose over immediate desires and interests. In youth and health, their actions frequently contradict their beliefs until the pressures of old age, illness, or misfortune stir their fears and force them to settle their debts of faith and guilt. I have already noted that modern times of religious indifference are most conducive to the peace and security of the clergy. Under superstition, they had much to gain from ignorance and much to fear from human violence. The wealth that continually increased should have made them the sole owners of the land, but it was alternately given by the repentant father and stolen by the greedy son: their persons were revered or violated; and the same idol was placed on the altar or trampled in the dirt by the same followers. In the feudal system of Europe, weapons were the mark of distinction and the measure of loyalty; in their chaos, the calm voice of law and reason was rarely heard or followed. The unruly Romans rejected the yoke and mocked the helplessness of their bishop: 10 nor would his upbringing or character allow him to wield the sword with dignity or effectiveness. The reasons for his election and the weaknesses of his life were visible to them, and their proximity reduced the respect his name and decrees inspired in a barbaric world. Our philosophical historian has noted this difference: “Though the name and authority of the court of Rome were so fearsome in the far-off lands of Europe, which were steeped in deep ignorance and completely unfamiliar with its nature and actions, the pope was so little respected at home that his most entrenched enemies surrounded the gates of Rome itself and even controlled his government in that city; and the ambassadors, who came from a distant part of Europe to present to him the humble, or rather subservient, submissions of the greatest ruler of the time, found it extremely difficult to reach him and to throw themselves at his feet.” 11

9 (return)
[ Quand les sauvages de la Louisiane veulent avoir du fruit, ils coupent l’arbre au pied et cueillent le fruit. Voila le gouvernement despotique, (Esprit des Loix, l. v. c. 13;) and passion and ignorance are always despotic.]

9 (return)
[ When the wild people of Louisiana want fruit, they cut down the tree at the base and pick the fruit. This is despotic governance, (Esprit des Loix, l. v. c. 13;) and both passion and ignorance are always despotic.]

10 (return)
[ In a free conversation with his countryman Adrian IV., John of Salisbury accuses the avarice of the pope and clergy: Provinciarum diripiunt spolia, ac si thesauros Crsi studeant reparare. Sed recte cum eis agit Altissimus, quoniam et ipsi aliis et sæpe vilissimis hominibus dati sunt in direptionem, (de Nugis Cœurialium, l. vi. c. 24, p. 387.) In the next page, he blames the rashness and infidelity of the Romans, whom their bishops vainly strove to conciliate by gifts, instead of virtues. It is pity that this miscellaneous writer has not given us less morality and erudition, and more pictures of himself and the times.]

10 (return)
[ In a candid conversation with his fellow countryman Adrian IV., John of Salisbury criticizes the greed of the pope and clergy: They strip the provinces of their riches as if they are trying to restore the treasures of Crsi. But the Almighty deals rightly with them, since they themselves have often been given over to plunder by others, even by the most worthless men, (de Nugis Cœurialium, l. vi. c. 24, p. 387.) On the next page, he criticizes the recklessness and disloyalty of the Romans, whom their bishops foolishly tried to appease with gifts instead of by cultivating virtues. It’s unfortunate that this varied writer has provided us with too much morality and scholarship, and not enough personal insight and context of the times.]

11 (return)
[ Hume’s History of England, vol. i. p. 419. The same writer has given us, from Fitz-Stephen, a singular act of cruelty perpetrated on the clergy by Geoffrey, the father of Henry II. “When he was master of Normandy, the chapter of Seez presumed, without his consent, to proceed to the election of a bishop: upon which he ordered all of them, with the bishop elect, to be castrated, and made all their testicles be brought him in a platter.” Of the pain and danger they might justly complain; yet since they had vowed chastity he deprived them of a superfluous treasure.]

11 (return)
[ Hume’s History of England, vol. i. p. 419. The same author shared a remarkable act of cruelty committed against the clergy by Geoffrey, the father of Henry II. “When he was in charge of Normandy, the chapter of Seez took it upon themselves to elect a bishop without his approval: he then ordered all of them, along with the elected bishop, to be castrated, and had all their testicles brought to him on a platter.” Although they could justly complain about the pain and risk involved, since they had vowed chastity, he stripped them of an unnecessary burden.]

Since the primitive times, the wealth of the popes was exposed to envy, their powers to opposition, and their persons to violence. But the long hostility of the mitre and the crown increased the numbers, and inflamed the passions, of their enemies. The deadly factions of the Guelphs and Ghibelines, so fatal to Italy, could never be embraced with truth or constancy by the Romans, the subjects and adversaries both of the bishop and emperor; but their support was solicited by both parties, and they alternately displayed in their banners the keys of St. Peter and the German eagle. Gregory the Seventh, who may be adored or detested as the founder of the papal monarchy, was driven from Rome, and died in exile at Salerno. Six-and-thirty of his successors, 12 till their retreat to Avignon, maintained an unequal contest with the Romans: their age and dignity were often violated; and the churches, in the solemn rites of religion, were polluted with sedition and murder. A repetition 13 of such capricious brutality, without connection or design, would be tedious and disgusting; and I shall content myself with some events of the twelfth century, which represent the state of the popes and the city. On Holy Thursday, while Paschal officiated before the altar, he was interrupted by the clamors of the multitude, who imperiously demanded the confirmation of a favorite magistrate. His silence exasperated their fury; his pious refusal to mingle the affairs of earth and heaven was encountered with menaces, and oaths, that he should be the cause and the witness of the public ruin. During the festival of Easter, while the bishop and the clergy, barefooted and in procession, visited the tombs of the martyrs, they were twice assaulted, at the bridge of St. Angelo, and before the Capitol, with volleys of stones and darts. The houses of his adherents were levelled with the ground: Paschal escaped with difficulty and danger; he levied an army in the patrimony of St. Peter; and his last days were embittered by suffering and inflicting the calamities of civil war. The scenes that followed the election of his successor Gelasius the Second were still more scandalous to the church and city. Cencio Frangipani, 14 a potent and factious baron, burst into the assembly furious and in arms: the cardinals were stripped, beaten, and trampled under foot; and he seized, without pity or respect, the vicar of Christ by the throat. Gelasius was dragged by the hair along the ground, buffeted with blows, wounded with spurs, and bound with an iron chain in the house of his brutal tyrant. An insurrection of the people delivered their bishop: the rival families opposed the violence of the Frangipani; and Cencio, who sued for pardon, repented of the failure, rather than of the guilt, of his enterprise. Not many days had elapsed, when the pope was again assaulted at the altar. While his friends and enemies were engaged in a bloody contest, he escaped in his sacerdotal garments. In this unworthy flight, which excited the compassion of the Roman matrons, his attendants were scattered or unhorsed; and, in the fields behind the church of St. Peter, his successor was found alone and half dead with fear and fatigue. Shaking the dust from his feet, the apostle withdrew from a city in which his dignity was insulted and his person was endangered; and the vanity of sacerdotal ambition is revealed in the involuntary confession, that one emperor was more tolerable than twenty. 15 These examples might suffice; but I cannot forget the sufferings of two pontiffs of the same age, the second and third of the name of Lucius. The former, as he ascended in battle array to assault the Capitol, was struck on the temple by a stone, and expired in a few days. The latter was severely wounded in the person of his servants. In a civil commotion, several of his priests had been made prisoners; and the inhuman Romans, reserving one as a guide for his brethren, put out their eyes, crowned them with ludicrous mitres, mounted them on asses with their faces towards the tail, and extorted an oath, that, in this wretched condition, they should offer themselves as a lesson to the head of the church. Hope or fear, lassitude or remorse, the characters of the men, and the circumstances of the times, might sometimes obtain an interval of peace and obedience; and the pope was restored with joyful acclamations to the Lateran or Vatican, from whence he had been driven with threats and violence. But the root of mischief was deep and perennial; and a momentary calm was preceded and followed by such tempests as had almost sunk the bark of St. Peter. Rome continually presented the aspect of war and discord: the churches and palaces were fortified and assaulted by the factions and families; and, after giving peace to Europe, Calistus the Second alone had resolution and power to prohibit the use of private arms in the metropolis. Among the nations who revered the apostolic throne, the tumults of Rome provoked a general indignation; and in a letter to his disciple Eugenius the Third, St. Bernard, with the sharpness of his wit and zeal, has stigmatized the vices of the rebellious people. 16 “Who is ignorant,” says the monk of Clairvaux, “of the vanity and arrogance of the Romans? a nation nursed in sedition, untractable, and scorning to obey, unless they are too feeble to resist. When they promise to serve, they aspire to reign; if they swear allegiance, they watch the opportunity of revolt; yet they vent their discontent in loud clamors, if your doors, or your counsels, are shut against them. Dexterous in mischief, they have never learned the science of doing good. Odious to earth and heaven, impious to God, seditious among themselves, jealous of their neighbors, inhuman to strangers, they love no one, by no one are they beloved; and while they wish to inspire fear, they live in base and continual apprehension. They will not submit; they know not how to govern faithless to their superiors, intolerable to their equals, ungrateful to their benefactors, and alike impudent in their demands and their refusals. Lofty in promise, poor in execution; adulation and calumny, perfidy and treason, are the familiar arts of their policy.” Surely this dark portrait is not colored by the pencil of Christian charity; 17 yet the features, however harsh or ugly, express a lively resemblance of the Roman of the twelfth century. 18

Since ancient times, the wealth of the popes has been subject to envy, their power to opposition, and their lives to violence. However, the long-standing conflict between the church and the monarchy increased the number of their enemies and fueled their passions. The fatal struggles of the Guelphs and Ghibelines, which devastated Italy, could never be genuinely supported by the Romans, who were both subjects and opponents of the bishop and emperor; yet both sides sought their backing, and they alternately displayed the keys of St. Peter and the German eagle on their banners. Gregory the Seventh, who can be either admired or hated as the creator of the papal monarchy, was expelled from Rome and died in exile at Salerno. Thirty-six of his successors, 12 until their retreat to Avignon, fought an uneven battle with the Romans: they were often disrespected because of their age and position; and the churches, during the solemn ceremonies of worship, were tainted with unrest and violence. Recounting such random brutality, without coherence or purpose, would be tiresome and unpleasant; so I’ll settle for mentioning a few key events from the twelfth century that reflect the state of the popes and the city. On Holy Thursday, while Paschal was officiating at the altar, he was interrupted by the loud demands of the crowd, who insisted on the approval of a favored magistrate. His silence only fueled their anger; his pious refusal to mix earthly affairs with heavenly ones was met with threats and curses, claiming he would be the reason for the public's downfall. During the Easter festival, as the bishop and clergy, barefoot and processing, visited the tombs of the martyrs, they were attacked twice, once at the bridge of St. Angelo and again before the Capitol, with showers of stones and darts. The homes of his supporters were destroyed: Paschal narrowly escaped with great difficulty and danger; he gathered an army in the patrimony of St. Peter, and his final days were filled with the suffering and violence of civil war. The chaos following the election of his successor Gelasius the Second was even more scandalous for the church and the city. Cencio Frangipani, 14 a powerful and unruly baron, stormed into the assembly armed and furious: the cardinals were stripped of their robes, beaten, and trampled; he seized the vicar of Christ by the throat, displaying no mercy. Gelasius was dragged by his hair across the ground, beaten, wounded by spurs, and chained in the house of his brutal captor. An uprising of the people freed their bishop: rival families confronted the violence of the Frangipani; and Cencio, who sought forgiveness, regretted the failure of his endeavor more than the wrongdoing itself. Not many days later, the pope was attacked again at the altar. While his allies and foes battled fiercely, he managed to escape in his priestly garments. In this shameful retreat, which moved the compassion of Roman women, his attendants were scattered or unseated; and in the fields behind St. Peter's Church, his successor was found alone and half-dead from fear and exhaustion. Shaking the dust off his feet, the apostle left a city where his dignity was insulted and his life was in danger; and the pride of clerical ambition is revealed in the involuntary admission that one emperor was easier to deal with than twenty. 15 These instances could suffice; but I cannot overlook the suffering of two popes of the same era, the second and third of the name Lucius. The former, while preparing to attack the Capitol, was struck on the head by a stone and died shortly after. The latter was gravely injured due to the treatment of his servants. In a civil uprising, several of his priests were taken prisoner; and the cruel Romans, keeping one as a guide for the others, blinded them, crowned them with mock miters, seated them backwards on donkeys, and forced them to swear that, in such a miserable condition, they would serve as a lesson to the head of the church. Hope or fear, weariness or guilt, the personalities of the men, and the circumstances of the times could sometimes create moments of peace and obedience; and the pope was joyfully welcomed back to the Lateran or Vatican, from where he had been driven by threats and violence. But the root of the problem was deep and enduring; and a brief calm was preceded and followed by storms that nearly sank the bark of St. Peter. Rome constantly resembled a battleground: the churches and palaces were fortified and attacked by the factions and families; and, after establishing peace in Europe, Calistus the Second was the only one with the resolve and authority to ban the use of private arms in the capital. Among the nations that respected the apostolic throne, the chaos of Rome stirred widespread outrage; and in a letter to his disciple Eugenius the Third, St. Bernard sharply criticized the vices of the rebellious populace. 16 “Who among us is unaware,” said the monk of Clairvaux, “of the vanity and arrogance of the Romans? A nation raised in sedition, stubborn, and refusing to obey unless they are too weak to resist. When they promise to serve, they aim to rule; if they swear loyalty, they look for opportunities to revolt; yet they express their discontent in loud protests if your doors or your decisions are closed to them. Skilled in mischief, they have never learned the art of doing good. Detestable to earth and heaven, dishonorable to God, rebellious among themselves, envious of their neighbors, cruel to strangers, they love no one, and no one loves them; while they wish to inspire fear, they live in constant and miserable dread. They will not submit; they know not how to govern, are faithless to their superiors, intolerable to their equals, ungrateful to their benefactors, and equally shameless in their demands and refusals. Grand in promises, poor in execution; flattery and slander, treachery and betrayal, are the standard tactics of their politics.” This bleak portrayal is certainly not colored by the brush of Christian charity; 17 yet the features, however harsh or ugly, closely resemble the Roman of the twelfth century. 18

12 (return)
[ From Leo IX. and Gregory VII. an authentic and contemporary series of the lives of the popes by the cardinal of Arragon, Pandulphus Pisanus, Bernard Guido, &c., is inserted in the Italian Historians of Muratori, (tom. iii. P. i. p. 277—685,) and has been always before my eyes.]

12 (return)
[ From Leo IX and Gregory VII, an authentic and contemporary series of the lives of the popes by the Cardinal of Aragon, Pandulphus Pisanus, Bernard Guido, etc., is included in the Italian Historians of Muratori, (vol. iii. pt. i. p. 277—685,) and has always been in my view.]

13 (return)
[ The dates of years in the contents may throughout his this chapter be understood as tacit references to the Annals of Muratori, my ordinary and excellent guide. He uses, and indeed quotes, with the freedom of a master, his great collection of the Italian Historians, in xxviii. volumes; and as that treasure is in my library, I have thought it an amusement, if not a duty, to consult the originals.]

13 (return)
[The dates mentioned throughout this chapter can be seen as indirect references to the Annals of Muratori, my usual and excellent guide. He uses, and indeed quotes, with the confidence of an expert, his extensive collection of Italian historians in 28 volumes; and since that treasure is in my library, I thought it would be a fun, if not a necessary, task to check the originals.]

14 (return)
[ I cannot refrain from transcribing the high-colored words of Pandulphus Pisanus, (p. 384.) Hoc audiens inimicus pacis atque turbator jam fatus Centius Frajapane, more draconis immanissimi sibilans, et ab imis pectoribus trahens longa suspiria, accinctus retro gladio sine more cucurrit, valvas ac fores confregit. Ecclesiam furibundus introiit, inde custode remoto papam per gulam accepit, distraxit pugnis calcibusque percussit, et tanquam brutum animal intra limen ecclesiæ acriter calcaribus cruentavit; et latro tantum dominum per capillos et brachia, Jesû bono interim dormiente, detraxit, ad domum usque deduxit, inibi catenavit et inclusit.]

14 (return)
[ I cannot help but quote the vivid words of Pandulphus Pisanus, (p. 384.) Hearing this, the enemy of peace and troublemaker, Centius Frajapane, hissing like a dreadful dragon, let out deep sighs from his chest, sprang forward with his sword drawn, broke down the gates and doors. He stormed into the church in a rage, removed the guard, seized the pope by the throat, struck him with fists and kicks, and like a wild animal, savagely spurred him at the threshold of the church; and the bandit dragged the lord by his hair and arms, while good Jesus was asleep in the meantime, took him all the way home, where he shackled and imprisoned him.]

15 (return)
[ Ego coram Deo et Ecclesiâ dico, si unquam possibile esset, mallem unum imperatorem quam tot dominos, (Vit. Gelas. II. p. 398.)]

15 (return)
[ Before God and the Church, I say that if it were ever possible, I would prefer one emperor rather than many lords, (Vit. Gelas. II. p. 398.)]

16 (return)
[ Quid tam notum seculis quam protervia et cervicositas Romanorum? Gens insueta paci, tumultui assueta, gens immitis et intractabilis usque adhuc, subdi nescia, nisi cum non valet resistere, (de Considerat. l. iv. c. 2, p. 441.) The saint takes breath, and then begins again: Hi, invisi terræ et clo, utrique injecere manus, &c., (p. 443.)]

16 (return)
[ What is more well-known through the ages than the arrogance and stubbornness of the Romans? A people unused to peace, accustomed to chaos, a fierce and unmanageable people still unable to submit, except when they can’t resist, (from Considerat. book iv, chapter 2, p. 441.) The saint pauses for breath and then continues: Hey, unseen ones of the earth and heaven, both have laid hands on each other, etc., (p. 443.)]

17 (return)
[ As a Roman citizen, Petrarch takes leave to observe, that Bernard, though a saint, was a man; that he might be provoked by resentment, and possibly repent of his hasty passion, &c. (Mémoires sur la Vie de Pétrarque, tom. i. p. 330.)]

17 (return)
[ As a Roman citizen, Petrarch feels it’s necessary to point out that Bernard, despite being a saint, was still human; that he could be overcome by anger, and might even regret his quick temper, etc. (Mémoires sur la Vie de Pétrarque, tom. i. p. 330.)]

18 (return)
[ Baronius, in his index to the xiith volume of his Annals, has found a fair and easy excuse. He makes two heads, of Romani Catholici and Schismatici: to the former he applies all the good, to the latter all the evil, that is told of the city.]

18 (return)
[ Baronius, in his index to the twelfth volume of his Annals, has found a good and simple excuse. He divides them into two groups: Roman Catholics and Schismatics. He attributes all the good to the former and all the bad to the latter, as it relates to the city.]

The Jews had rejected the Christ when he appeared among them in a plebeian character; and the Romans might plead their ignorance of his vicar when he assumed the pomp and pride of a temporal sovereign. In the busy age of the crusades, some sparks of curiosity and reason were rekindled in the Western world: the heresy of Bulgaria, the Paulician sect, was successfully transplanted into the soil of Italy and France; the Gnostic visions were mingled with the simplicity of the gospel; and the enemies of the clergy reconciled their passions with their conscience, the desire of freedom with the profession of piety. 19 The trumpet of Roman liberty was first sounded by Arnold of Brescia, 20 whose promotion in the church was confined to the lowest rank, and who wore the monastic habit rather as a garb of poverty than as a uniform of obedience. His adversaries could not deny the wit and eloquence which they severely felt; they confess with reluctance the specious purity of his morals; and his errors were recommended to the public by a mixture of important and beneficial truths. In his theological studies, he had been the disciple of the famous and unfortunate Abelard, 21 who was likewise involved in the suspicion of heresy: but the lover of Eloisa was of a soft and flexible nature; and his ecclesiastic judges were edified and disarmed by the humility of his repentance. From this master, Arnold most probably imbibed some metaphysical definitions of the Trinity, repugnant to the taste of the times: his ideas of baptism and the eucharist are loosely censured; but a political heresy was the source of his fame and misfortunes. He presumed to quote the declaration of Christ, that his kingdom is not of this world: he boldly maintained, that the sword and the sceptre were intrusted to the civil magistrate; that temporal honors and possessions were lawfully vested in secular persons; that the abbots, the bishops, and the pope himself, must renounce either their state or their salvation; and that after the loss of their revenues, the voluntary tithes and oblations of the faithful would suffice, not indeed for luxury and avarice, but for a frugal life in the exercise of spiritual labors. During a short time, the preacher was revered as a patriot; and the discontent, or revolt, of Brescia against her bishop, was the first fruits of his dangerous lessons. But the favor of the people is less permanent than the resentment of the priest; and after the heresy of Arnold had been condemned by Innocent the Second, 22 in the general council of the Lateran, the magistrates themselves were urged by prejudice and fear to execute the sentence of the church. Italy could no longer afford a refuge; and the disciple of Abelard escaped beyond the Alps, till he found a safe and hospitable shelter in Zurich, now the first of the Swiss cantons. From a Roman station, 23 a royal villa, a chapter of noble virgins, Zurich had gradually increased to a free and flourishing city; where the appeals of the Milanese were sometimes tried by the Imperial commissaries. 24 In an age less ripe for reformation, the precursor of Zuinglius was heard with applause: a brave and simple people imbibed, and long retained, the color of his opinions; and his art, or merit, seduced the bishop of Constance, and even the pope’s legate, who forgot, for his sake, the interest of their master and their order. Their tardy zeal was quickened by the fierce exhortations of St. Bernard; 25 and the enemy of the church was driven by persecution to the desperate measures of erecting his standard in Rome itself, in the face of the successor of St. Peter.

The Jews had turned away from Christ when he appeared among them in a humble form, and the Romans might claim ignorance of his role when he took on the grandeur and authority of a worldly ruler. During the active period of the Crusades, some sparks of curiosity and reason were reignited in the Western world: the heresy of Bulgaria, the Paulician sect, was successfully introduced into Italy and France; Gnostic visions were mixed with the simplicity of the gospel; and those opposed to the clergy reconciled their passions with their conscience, their desire for freedom with their professed piety. 19 The call for Roman liberty was first sounded by Arnold of Brescia, 20 whose status in the church was limited to the lowest rank, and who wore the monastic robe more as a sign of poverty than as a mark of obedience. His opponents couldn’t deny the wit and eloquence they felt was a threat; they reluctantly acknowledged the apparent purity of his morals; and his mistakes were accompanied by a blend of significant and beneficial truths. In his theological studies, he had been a disciple of the famous yet unfortunate Abelard, 21 who was also suspected of heresy: but the lover of Eloisa was of a soft and accommodating nature, and his church officials were impressed and disarmed by the humility of his repentance. From this teacher, Arnold likely absorbed certain metaphysical definitions of the Trinity that clashed with the norms of the time; his views on baptism and the Eucharist were loosely criticized, but a political heresy was the root of his notoriety and troubles. He dared to quote Christ’s declaration that his kingdom is not of this world: he boldly argued that the sword and the scepter were entrusted to civil authorities; that temporal honors and wealth could rightfully belong to secular individuals; that abbots, bishops, and the pope themselves must choose between their status or their salvation; and that after losing their revenues, the voluntary tithes and offerings of the faithful would be enough, not for luxury and greed, but for a simple life in the pursuit of spiritual work. For a brief time, the preacher was revered as a patriot; and the dissatisfaction, or uprising, of Brescia against her bishop was the first outcome of his dangerous teachings. However, the favor of the people is less lasting than the wrath of the clergy; and after Arnold’s heresy was condemned by Innocent the Second, 22 at the general council of the Lateran, the officials themselves were pushed by bias and fear to carry out the church's ruling. Italy could no longer offer refuge; and the disciple of Abelard fled beyond the Alps until he found safety and hospitality in Zurich, now the leading Swiss canton. From a Roman outpost, 23 a royal villa, a chapter of noble virgins, Zurich gradually developed into a free and prosperous city, where appeals from the Milanese were sometimes heard by the Imperial commissioners. 24 In a time less ready for reform, the forerunner of Zwingli was met with praise: a brave and straightforward people absorbed, and long maintained, his views; and his talent, or appeal, won over the bishop of Constance and even the pope’s legate, who overlooked, for his sake, the interests of their master and their order. Their delayed zeal was stimulated by the passionate appeals of St. Bernard; 25 and the church’s adversary was driven by persecution to the desperate act of raising his banner in Rome itself, right in front of the successor of St. Peter.

19 (return)
[ The heresies of the xiith century may be found in Mosheim, (Institut. Hist. Ecclés. p. 419—427,) who entertains a favorable opinion of Arnold of Brescia. In the vth volume I have described the sect of the Paulicians, and followed their migration from Armenia to Thrace and Bulgaria, Italy and France.]

19 (return)
[The heresies of the 12th century can be found in Mosheim, (Institut. Hist. Ecclés. p. 419—427,) who has a positive view of Arnold of Brescia. In the fifth volume, I described the Paulician sect and traced their movement from Armenia to Thrace and Bulgaria, Italy, and France.]

20 (return)
[ The original pictures of Arnold of Brescia are drawn by Otho, bishop of Frisingen, (Chron. l. vii. c. 31, de Gestis Frederici I. l. i. c. 27, l. ii. c. 21,) and in the iiid book of the Ligurinus, a poem of Gunthur, who flourished A.D. 1200, in the monastery of Paris near Basil, (Fabric. Bibliot. Latin. Med. et Infimæ Ætatis, tom. iii. p. 174, 175.) The long passage that relates to Arnold is produced by Guilliman, (de Rebus Helveticis, l. iii. c. 5, p. 108.) * Note: Compare Franke, Arnold von Brescia und seine Zeit. Zurich, 1828.—M.]

20 (return)
[ The original images of Arnold of Brescia are created by Otho, bishop of Frisingen, (Chron. l. vii. c. 31, de Gestis Frederici I. l. i. c. 27, l. ii. c. 21,) and in the third book of the Ligurinus, a poem by Gunthur, who was active around A.D. 1200, in the monastery of Paris near Basel, (Fabric. Bibliot. Latin. Med. et Infimæ Ætatis, tom. iii. p. 174, 175.) The lengthy excerpt about Arnold is referenced by Guilliman, (de Rebus Helveticis, l. iii. c. 5, p. 108.) * Note: Compare Franke, Arnold von Brescia und seine Zeit. Zurich, 1828.—M.]

21 (return)
[ The wicked wit of Bayle was amused in composing, with much levity and learning, the articles of Abelard, Foulkes, Heloise, in his Dictionnaire Critique. The dispute of Abelard and St. Bernard, of scholastic and positive divinity, is well understood by Mosheim, (Institut. Hist. Ecclés. p. 412—415.)]

21 (return)
[ Bayle's sharp wit was entertained as he casually and knowledgeably wrote about Abelard, Foulkes, and Heloise in his Dictionnaire Critique. The debate between Abelard and St. Bernard, concerning scholastic and positive theology, is clearly detailed by Mosheim, (Institut. Hist. Ecclés. p. 412—415.)]

22 (return)
[

22 (__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__)

               ——Damnatus ab illo
               Præsule, qui numeros vetitum contingere nostros
               Nomen ad innocuâ ducit laudabile vitâ.
        
               ——Cursed be that  
               Prelate, who dares to touch our forbidden numbers;  
               His name leads to innocence, a commendable life.

We may applaud the dexterity and correctness of Ligurinus, who turns the unpoetical name of Innocent II. into a compliment.]

We can appreciate Ligurinus's skill and accuracy in turning the unpoetic name of Innocent II into a compliment.

23 (return)
[ A Roman inscription of Statio Turicensis has been found at Zurich, (D’Anville, Notice de l’ancienne Gaul, p. 642—644;) but it is without sufficient warrant, that the city and canton have usurped, and even monopolized, the names of Tigurum and Pagus Tigurinus.]

23 (return)
[ A Roman inscription from Statio Turicensis has been discovered in Zurich, (D’Anville, Notice de l’ancienne Gaul, p. 642—644;) but there isn't enough evidence to support that the city and canton have claimed and even taken over the names of Tigurum and Pagus Tigurinus.]

24 (return)
[ Guilliman (de Rebus Helveticis, l. iii. c. 5, p. 106) recapitulates the donation (A.D. 833) of the emperor Lewis the Pious to his daughter the abbess Hildegardis. Cœurtim nostram Turegum in ducatû Alamanniæ in pago Durgaugensi, with villages, woods, meadows, waters, slaves, churches, &c.; a noble gift. Charles the Bald gave the jus monetæ, the city was walled under Otho I., and the line of the bishop of Frisingen, “Nobile Turegum multarum copia rerum,” is repeated with pleasure by the antiquaries of Zurich.]

24 (return)
[ Guilliman (de Rebus Helveticis, l. iii. c. 5, p. 106) summarizes the donation (A.D. 833) made by Emperor Lewis the Pious to his daughter, Abbess Hildegardis. Cœurtim nostram Turegum in ducatû Alamanniæ in pago Durgaugensi, along with villages, woods, meadows, waters, slaves, churches, etc.; a generous gift. Charles the Bald granted the right to mint coins, the city was fortified under Otho I., and the statement from the Bishop of Frisingen, “Nobile Turegum multarum copia rerum,” is happily echoed by the historians of Zurich.]

25 (return)
[ Bernard, Epistol. cxcv. tom. i. p. 187—190. Amidst his invectives he drops a precious acknowledgment, qui, utinam quam sanæ esset doctrinæ quam districtæ est vitæ. He owns that Arnold would be a valuable acquisition for the church.]

25 (return)
[ Bernard, Epistol. cxcv. tom. i. p. 187—190. In his criticisms, he includes a valuable recognition, wishing that Arnold had a doctrine that was as sound as his life is strict. He admits that Arnold would be a great asset for the church.]

Chapter LXIX: State Of Rome From The Twelfth Century.—Part II.

Yet the courage of Arnold was not devoid of discretion: he was protected, and had perhaps been invited, by the nobles and people; and in the service of freedom, his eloquence thundered over the seven hills. Blending in the same discourse the texts of Livy and St. Paul, uniting the motives of gospel, and of classic, enthusiasm, he admonished the Romans, how strangely their patience and the vices of the clergy had degenerated from the primitive times of the church and the city. He exhorted them to assert the inalienable rights of men and Christians; to restore the laws and magistrates of the republic; to respect the name of the emperor; but to confine their shepherd to the spiritual government of his flock. 26 Nor could his spiritual government escape the censure and control of the reformer; and the inferior clergy were taught by his lessons to resist the cardinals, who had usurped a despotic command over the twenty-eight regions or parishes of Rome. 27 The revolution was not accomplished without rapine and violence, the diffusion of blood and the demolition of houses: the victorious faction was enriched with the spoils of the clergy and the adverse nobles. Arnold of Brescia enjoyed, or deplored, the effects of his mission: his reign continued above ten years, while two popes, Innocent the Second and Anastasius the Fourth, either trembled in the Vatican, or wandered as exiles in the adjacent cities. They were succeeded by a more vigorous and fortunate pontiff. Adrian the Fourth, 28 the only Englishman who has ascended the throne of St. Peter; and whose merit emerged from the mean condition of a monk, and almost a beggar, in the monastery of St. Albans. On the first provocation, of a cardinal killed or wounded in the streets, he cast an interdict on the guilty people; and from Christmas to Easter, Rome was deprived of the real or imaginary comforts of religious worship. The Romans had despised their temporal prince: they submitted with grief and terror to the censures of their spiritual father: their guilt was expiated by penance, and the banishment of the seditious preacher was the price of their absolution. But the revenge of Adrian was yet unsatisfied, and the approaching coronation of Frederic Barbarossa was fatal to the bold reformer, who had offended, though not in an equal degree, the heads of the church and state. In their interview at Viterbo, the pope represented to the emperor the furious, ungovernable spirit of the Romans; the insults, the injuries, the fears, to which his person and his clergy were continually exposed; and the pernicious tendency of the heresy of Arnold, which must subvert the principles of civil, as well as ecclesiastical, subordination. Frederic was convinced by these arguments, or tempted by the desire of the Imperial crown: in the balance of ambition, the innocence or life of an individual is of small account; and their common enemy was sacrificed to a moment of political concord. After his retreat from Rome, Arnold had been protected by the viscounts of Campania, from whom he was extorted by the power of Cæsar: the præfect of the city pronounced his sentence: the martyr of freedom was burned alive in the presence of a careless and ungrateful people; and his ashes were cast into the Tyber, lest the heretics should collect and worship the relics of their master. 29 The clergy triumphed in his death: with his ashes, his sect was dispersed; his memory still lived in the minds of the Romans. From his school they had probably derived a new article of faith, that the metropolis of the Catholic church is exempt from the penalties of excommunication and interdict. Their bishops might argue, that the supreme jurisdiction, which they exercised over kings and nations, more especially embraced the city and diocese of the prince of the apostles. But they preached to the winds, and the same principle that weakened the effect, must temper the abuse, of the thunders of the Vatican.

Yet Arnold's bravery was not without wisdom: he had support, and perhaps had been invited, by the nobles and the people; and in the name of freedom, his powerful speeches echoed across the seven hills. He combined quotes from Livy and St. Paul, merging the motivations of the gospel and classic passion, to warn the Romans about how strangely their patience and the flaws of the clergy had declined from the early days of the church and the city. He urged them to declare the inalienable rights of men and Christians; to restore the laws and officials of the republic; to honor the name of the emperor; but to restrict their religious leader to the spiritual guidance of his congregation. 26 His spiritual leadership also faced criticism and oversight from the reformer, and the lower clergy were taught by his lessons to resist the cardinals, who had taken a despotic control over the twenty-eight regions or parishes of Rome. 27 The revolution didn't happen without looting and violence, bloodshed, and the destruction of homes: the winning faction gained wealth from the spoils of the clergy and opposing nobles. Arnold of Brescia experienced, for better or worse, the consequences of his mission: his influence lasted over ten years, while two popes, Innocent the Second and Anastasius the Fourth, either cowered in the Vatican or roamed as exiles in nearby cities. They were followed by a more vigorous and fortunate pope. Adrian the Fourth, 28 the only Englishman to sit on the throne of St. Peter, rose from a humble background as a monk, nearly a beggar, in the monastery of St. Albans. At the first sign of a cardinal being killed or injured in the streets, he placed an interdict on the responsible people; and from Christmas to Easter, Rome was denied the real or imagined comforts of religious worship. The Romans had disdained their earthly ruler: they submitted with sorrow and dread to the judgments of their spiritual leader: their guilt was atoned for through penance, and the exile of the rebellious preacher was the price for their forgiveness. However, Adrian's thirst for revenge was not yet quenched, and the upcoming coronation of Frederick Barbarossa was disastrous for the bold reformer, who had offended, though not to the same extent, the leaders of both the church and the state. During their meeting in Viterbo, the pope explained to the emperor the wild, uncontrollable nature of the Romans; the insults, injuries, and fears that his own person and his clergy continually faced; and the dangerous implications of Arnold's heresy, which could undermine both civil and ecclesiastical authority. Frederick was swayed by these arguments, or tempted by the desire for the Imperial crown: in the game of ambition, the life or innocence of a single person doesn't hold much weight; and their common enemy was sacrificed for a moment of political agreement. After he fled Rome, Arnold had received protection from the viscounts of Campania, from whom he was seized by the power of Caesar: the city’s prefect delivered his sentence: the martyr for freedom was burned alive in front of a careless and ungrateful crowd; his ashes were thrown into the Tiber, lest the heretics gather and revere the remains of their leader. 29 The clergy celebrated his death: with his ashes, his faction was dispersed; but his memory still lived on in the minds of the Romans. From his teachings, they likely adopted a new belief, that the capital of the Catholic Church is free from the penalties of excommunication and interdict. Their bishops could argue that the supreme authority they held over kings and nations particularly included the city and diocese of the leader of the apostles. But they preached to deaf ears, and the same principle that diminished the impact must also temper the misuse of the thunders of the Vatican.

26 (return)
[ He advised the Romans,

26 (return)
[ He advised the Romans,

               Consiliis armisque sua moderamina summa
               Arbitrio tractare suo: nil juris in hâc re
               Pontifici summo, modicum concedere regi
               Suadebat populo. Sic læsâ stultus utrâque
               Majestate, reum geminæ se fecerat aulæ.
							 
               With careful plans and weapons, he controls everything
               according to his own judgment: no authority in this matter
               advised the supreme pontiff, allowing a little to the king
               for the people. Thus, he foolishly offended both
               Majesties, making himself guilty in the court of two.

Nor is the poetry of Gunther different from the prose of Otho.]

Nor is Gunther's poetry any different from Otho's prose.

27 (return)
[ See Baronius (A.D. 1148, No. 38, 39) from the Vatican MSS. He loudly condemns Arnold (A.D. 1141, No. 3) as the father of the political heretics, whose influence then hurt him in France.]

27 (return)
[ See Baronius (A.D. 1148, No. 38, 39) from the Vatican manuscripts. He strongly criticizes Arnold (A.D. 1141, No. 3) as the originator of the political heretics, whose impact was detrimental to him in France.]

28 (return)
[ The English reader may consult the Biographia Britannica, Adrian IV.; but our own writers have added nothing to the fame or merits of their countrymen.]

28 (return)
[ English readers can check out the Biographia Britannica, Adrian IV.; however, our own writers haven't contributed anything to the reputation or achievements of their fellow countrymen.]

29 (return)
[ Besides the historian and poet already quoted, the last adventures of Arnold are related by the biographer of Adrian IV. (Muratori. Script. Rerum Ital. tom. iii. P. i. p. 441, 442.)]

29 (return)
[ In addition to the historian and poet already mentioned, Arnold's final adventures are described by the biographer of Adrian IV. (Muratori. Script. Rerum Ital. tom. iii. P. i. p. 441, 442.)]

The love of ancient freedom has encouraged a belief that as early as the tenth century, in their first struggles against the Saxon Othos, the commonwealth was vindicated and restored by the senate and people of Rome; that two consuls were annually elected among the nobles, and that ten or twelve plebeian magistrates revived the name and office of the tribunes of the commons. 30 But this venerable structure disappears before the light of criticism. In the darkness of the middle ages, the appellations of senators, of consuls, of the sons of consuls, may sometimes be discovered. 31 They were bestowed by the emperors, or assumed by the most powerful citizens, to denote their rank, their honors, 32 and perhaps the claim of a pure and patrician descent: but they float on the surface, without a series or a substance, the titles of men, not the orders of government; 33 and it is only from the year of Christ one thousand one hundred and forty-four that the establishment of the senate is dated, as a glorious æra, in the acts of the city. A new constitution was hastily framed by private ambition or popular enthusiasm; nor could Rome, in the twelfth century, produce an antiquary to explain, or a legislator to restore, the harmony and proportions of the ancient model. The assembly of a free, of an armed, people, will ever speak in loud and weighty acclamations. But the regular distribution of the thirty-five tribes, the nice balance of the wealth and numbers of the centuries, the debates of the adverse orators, and the slow operations of votes and ballots, could not easily be adapted by a blind multitude, ignorant of the arts, and insensible of the benefits, of legal government. It was proposed by Arnold to revive and discriminate the equestrian order; but what could be the motive or measure of such distinction? 34 The pecuniary qualification of the knights must have been reduced to the poverty of the times: those times no longer required their civil functions of judges and farmers of the revenue; and their primitive duty, their military service on horseback, was more nobly supplied by feudal tenures and the spirit of chivalry. The jurisprudence of the republic was useless and unknown: the nations and families of Italy who lived under the Roman and Barbaric laws were insensibly mingled in a common mass; and some faint tradition, some imperfect fragments, preserved the memory of the Code and Pandects of Justinian. With their liberty the Romans might doubtless have restored the appellation and office of consuls; had they not disdained a title so promiscuously adopted in the Italian cities, that it has finally settled on the humble station of the agents of commerce in a foreign land. But the rights of the tribunes, the formidable word that arrested the public counsels, suppose or must produce a legitimate democracy. The old patricians were the subjects, the modern barons the tyrants, of the state; nor would the enemies of peace and order, who insulted the vicar of Christ, have long respected the unarmed sanctity of a plebeian magistrate. 35

The love of ancient freedom has led to a belief that as early as the tenth century, during their initial struggles against the Saxon Othos, the commonwealth was defended and reinstated by the senate and people of Rome; that two consuls were elected annually from the nobles, and that ten or twelve plebeian magistrates revived the title and role of the tribunes of the commons. 30 However, this respected structure fades under critical scrutiny. In the dark ages, the titles of senators, consuls, and sons of consuls can sometimes be found. 31 These titles were granted by emperors or taken on by the most powerful citizens to indicate their status, their honors, 32 and perhaps their claims to a pure and noble lineage: but they merely skim the surface, being the titles of individuals rather than the frameworks of government; 33 and it is only from the year 1144 AD that the establishment of the senate is recorded as a glorious era in the records of the city. A new constitution was quickly put together by personal ambition or popular passion; and Rome in the twelfth century could not produce an antiquarian to explain, or a legislator to restore, the balance and structure of the ancient system. The assembly of a free, armed populace will always express itself with loud and significant cheers. But the systematic organization of the thirty-five tribes, the careful balance of wealth and numbers among the centuries, the debates of rival orators, and the deliberate processes of voting and ballots could not be easily managed by a blind crowd, unaware of the arts and insensibly ignorant of the benefits of legal governance. Arnold proposed reviving and distinguishing the equestrian order; but what could the reasoning or criteria for such distinction be? 34 The financial requirement for knights must have been lowered due to the poverty of the times: those times no longer needed their civic roles as judges and tax collectors; and their original role, military service on horseback, was more nobly fulfilled by feudal obligations and the spirit of chivalry. The legal knowledge of the republic was irrelevant and unknown: the nations and families of Italy living under Roman and Barbaric laws were gradually mixed into a single mass; and some vague traditions, some incomplete fragments, preserved the memory of the Code and Pandects of Justinian. With their freedom, the Romans might have restored the title and role of consuls; had they not dismissed a title so broadly used in Italian cities that it ultimately came to be associated with the humble position of trade agents in foreign lands. But the rights of the tribunes, the powerful term that halted public discussions, imply or must lead to a legitimate democracy. The old patricians were the subjects, the modern barons the tyrants of the state; and the enemies of peace and order, who disrespected the vicar of Christ, would not long honor the unarmed authority of a plebeian magistrate. 35

30 (return)
[ Ducange (Gloss. Latinitatis Mediæ et Infimæ Ætatis, Decarchones, tom. ii. p. 726) gives me a quotation from Blondus, (Decad. ii. l. ii.:) Duo consules ex nobilitate quotannis fiebant, qui ad vetustum consulum exemplar summærerum præessent. And in Sigonius (de Regno Italiæ, l. v. Opp. tom. ii. p. 400) I read of the consuls and tribunes of the xth century. Both Blondus, and even Sigonius, too freely copied the classic method of supplying from reason or fancy the deficiency of records.]

30 (return)
[ Ducange (Gloss. Latinitatis Mediæ et Infimæ Ætatis, Decarchones, vol. ii, p. 726) provides a quote from Blondus (Decad. ii. l. ii.): "Two consuls were elected from the nobility each year, who would lead according to the ancient model of the consuls." I also found information about the consuls and tribunes of the 10th century in Sigonius (de Regno Italiæ, l. v. Opp. vol. ii, p. 400). Both Blondus and Sigonius too often imitated the classic approach of filling in gaps in records with logic or imagination.]

31 (return)
[ In the panegyric of Berengarius (Muratori, Script. Rer. Ital. tom. ii. P. i. p. 408) a Roman is mentioned as consulis natus in the beginning of the xth century. Muratori (Dissert. v.) discovers, in the years 952 and 956, Gratianus in Dei nomine consul et dux, Georgius consul et dux; and in 1015, Romanus, brother of Gregory VIII., proudly, but vaguely, styles himself consul et dux et omnium Roma norum senator.]

31 (return)
[In the tribute to Berengarius (Muratori, Script. Rer. Ital. tom. ii. P. i. p. 408), a Roman is mentioned as being born a consul at the beginning of the 10th century. Muratori (Dissert. v.) identifies, in the years 952 and 956, Gratianus as consul and duke in the name of God, Georgius as consul and duke; and in 1015, Romanus, brother of Gregory VIII, proudly but vaguely refers to himself as consul, duke, and senator of all Romans.]

32 (return)
[ As late as the xth century, the Greek emperors conferred on the dukes of Venice, Naples, Amalphi, &c., the title of upatoV or consuls, (see Chron. Sagornini, passim;) and the successors of Charlemagne would not abdicate any of their prerogative. But in general the names of consul and senator, which may be found among the French and Germans, signify no more than count and lord, (Signeur, Ducange Glossar.) The monkish writers are often ambitious of fine classic words.]

32 (return)
[As late as the xth century, the Greek emperors granted the title of upatoV or consuls to the dukes of Venice, Naples, Amalphi, etc. (see Chron. Sagornini, passim); and the successors of Charlemagne wouldn’t give up any of their privileges. However, in general, the terms consul and senator, which can be found among the French and Germans, mean nothing more than count and lord, (Signeur, Ducange Glossar.) The monkish writers often aspire to use elegant classical words.]

33 (return)
[ The most constitutional form is a diploma of Otho III., (A. D 998,) consulibus senatûs populique Romani; but the act is probably spurious. At the coronation of Henry I., A.D. 1014, the historian Dithmar (apud Muratori, Dissert. xxiii.) describes him, a senatoribus duodecim vallatum, quorum sex rasi barbâ, alii prolixâ, mystice incedebant cum baculis. The senate is mentioned in the panegyric of Berengarius, (p. 406.)]

33 (return)
[ The most official document is a diploma from Otho III., (A.D. 998,) of the consuls of the Senate and the Roman people; however, this document is likely fake. At the coronation of Henry I., A.D. 1014, historian Dithmar (according to Muratori, Dissert. xxiii.) describes him as being surrounded by twelve senators, six of whom were clean-shaven, while the others had long beards and walked ceremonially with staffs. The Senate is referenced in the praise of Berengarius, (p. 406.)]

34 (return)
[ In ancient Rome the equestrian order was not ranked with the senate and people as a third branch of the republic till the consulship of Cicero, who assumes the merit of the establishment, (Plin. Hist. Natur. xxxiii. 3. Beaufort, République Romaine, tom. i. p. 144—155.)]

34 (return)
[ In ancient Rome, the equestrian class wasn't considered a separate branch of the republic alongside the senate and the people until Cicero's consulship, who claims credit for its establishment, (Plin. Hist. Natur. xxxiii. 3. Beaufort, République Romaine, tom. i. p. 144—155.)]

35 (return)
[ The republican plan of Arnold of Brescia is thus stated by Gunther:—

35 (return)
[ Gunther describes Arnold of Brescia's republican plan as follows:—

               Quin etiam titulos urbis renovare vetustos;
               Nomine plebeio secernere nomen equestre,
               Jura tribunorum, sanctum reparare senatum,
               Et senio fessas mutasque reponere leges.
               Lapsa ruinosis, et adhuc pendentia muris
               Reddere primævo Capitolia prisca nitori.
               They also restore the old titles of the city;  
               Separate the common name from the equestrian name,  
               Restore the rights of the tribunes, revive the sacred senate,  
               And put back the laws that were worn out and silent.  
               They bring back the crumbling walls, still hanging on,  
               Returning the ancient Capitol to its original glory.

But of these reformations, some were no more than ideas, others no more than words.]

But some of these reforms were just ideas, while others were just words.

In the revolution of the twelfth century, which gave a new existence and æra to Rome, we may observe the real and important events that marked or confirmed her political independence. I. The Capitoline hill, one of her seven eminences, 36 is about four hundred yards in length, and two hundred in breadth. A flight of a hundred steps led to the summit of the Tarpeian rock; and far steeper was the ascent before the declivities had been smoothed and the precipices filled by the ruins of fallen edifices. From the earliest ages, the Capitol had been used as a temple in peace, a fortress in war: after the loss of the city, it maintained a siege against the victorious Gauls, and the sanctuary of the empire was occupied, assaulted, and burnt, in the civil wars of Vitellius and Vespasian. 37 The temples of Jupiter and his kindred deities had crumbled into dust; their place was supplied by monasteries and houses; and the solid walls, the long and shelving porticos, were decayed or ruined by the lapse of time. It was the first act of the Romans, an act of freedom, to restore the strength, though not the beauty, of the Capitol; to fortify the seat of their arms and counsels; and as often as they ascended the hill, the coldest minds must have glowed with the remembrance of their ancestors. II. The first Cæsars had been invested with the exclusive coinage of the gold and silver; to the senate they abandoned the baser metal of bronze or copper: 38 the emblems and legends were inscribed on a more ample field by the genius of flattery; and the prince was relieved from the care of celebrating his own virtues. The successors of Diocletian despised even the flattery of the senate: their royal officers at Rome, and in the provinces, assumed the sole direction of the mint; and the same prerogative was inherited by the Gothic kings of Italy, and the long series of the Greek, the French, and the German dynasties. After an abdication of eight hundred years, the Roman senate asserted this honorable and lucrative privilege; which was tacitly renounced by the popes, from Paschal the Second to the establishment of their residence beyond the Alps. Some of these republican coins of the twelfth and thirteenth centuries are shown in the cabinets of the curious. On one of these, a gold medal, Christ is depictured holding in his left hand a book with this inscription: “The vow of the Roman senate and people: Rome the capital of the world;” on the reverse, St. Peter delivering a banner to a kneeling senator in his cap and gown, with the name and arms of his family impressed on a shield. 39 III. With the empire, the præfect of the city had declined to a municipal officer; yet he still exercised in the last appeal the civil and criminal jurisdiction; and a drawn sword, which he received from the successors of Otho, was the mode of his investiture and the emblem of his functions. 40 The dignity was confined to the noble families of Rome: the choice of the people was ratified by the pope; but a triple oath of fidelity must have often embarrassed the præfect in the conflict of adverse duties. 41 A servant, in whom they possessed but a third share, was dismissed by the independent Romans: in his place they elected a patrician; but this title, which Charlemagne had not disdained, was too lofty for a citizen or a subject; and, after the first fervor of rebellion, they consented without reluctance to the restoration of the præfect. About fifty years after this event, Innocent the Third, the most ambitious, or at least the most fortunate, of the Pontiffs, delivered the Romans and himself from this badge of foreign dominion: he invested the præfect with a banner instead of a sword, and absolved him from all dependence of oaths or service to the German emperors. 42 In his place an ecclesiastic, a present or future cardinal, was named by the pope to the civil government of Rome; but his jurisdiction has been reduced to a narrow compass; and in the days of freedom, the right or exercise was derived from the senate and people. IV. After the revival of the senate, 43 the conscript fathers (if I may use the expression) were invested with the legislative and executive power; but their views seldom reached beyond the present day; and that day was most frequently disturbed by violence and tumult. In its utmost plenitude, the order or assembly consisted of fifty-six senators, 44 the most eminent of whom were distinguished by the title of counsellors: they were nominated, perhaps annually, by the people; and a previous choice of their electors, ten persons in each region, or parish, might afford a basis for a free and permanent constitution. The popes, who in this tempest submitted rather to bend than to break, confirmed by treaty the establishment and privileges of the senate, and expected from time, peace, and religion, the restoration of their government. The motives of public and private interest might sometimes draw from the Romans an occasional and temporary sacrifice of their claims; and they renewed their oath of allegiance to the successor of St. Peter and Constantine, the lawful head of the church and the republic. 45

In the revolution of the twelfth century, which brought a new life and era to Rome, we can see the significant events that marked or confirmed its political independence. I. The Capitoline Hill, one of its seven hills, 36 is about four hundred yards long and two hundred yards wide. A flight of a hundred steps led up to the summit of the Tarpeian Rock; the ascent was much steeper before the slopes were leveled and the cliffs filled in with the ruins of fallen buildings. From the earliest times, the Capitol had served as a temple in peace and as a fortress in war: after the city was lost, it withstood a siege against the victorious Gauls, and its sanctuary was occupied, attacked, and burned during the civil wars of Vitellius and Vespasian. 37 The temples of Jupiter and his divine relatives had crumbled to dust; they were replaced by monasteries and homes; and the solid walls and long, sloping porticos had decayed or been ruined over time. It was the Romans' first act of freedom to restore the strength, though not the beauty, of the Capitol; to secure the base of their military and decisions; and as often as they climbed the hill, even the coldest minds must have been warmed by memories of their ancestors. II. The early Caesars were given exclusive control over the minting of gold and silver coins; they left the lower-quality bronze or copper coins to the Senate: 38 the symbols and inscriptions were designed on a larger scale by the art of flattery; and the emperor was relieved of the burden of celebrating his own virtues. Diocletian's successors disregarded even the Senate's flattery: their royal officials in Rome and the provinces took complete control of the mint; and this privilege was later inherited by the Gothic kings of Italy, along with a long line of Greek, French, and German dynasties. After an absence of eight hundred years, the Roman Senate claimed this honorable and profitable privilege; the popes, from Paschal II to the time they established their residence beyond the Alps, quietly renounced it. Some of these republican coins from the twelfth and thirteenth centuries can be seen in collectors' cabinets. One of these, a gold medal, shows Christ holding a book in his left hand with the inscription: “The vow of the Roman Senate and people: Rome the capital of the world;” on the reverse side, St. Peter is handing a banner to a kneeling senator in a cap and gown, with his family name and coat of arms engraved on a shield. 39 III. With the empire, the prefect of the city had become a municipal official; yet he still held civil and criminal jurisdiction in the final appeal; and a drawn sword, given to him by the successors of Otho, was both the symbol of his authority and the sign of his office. 40 The position was limited to noble families of Rome: the people's choice was approved by the pope; but a triple oath of loyalty often complicated the prefect's obligations to conflicting duties. 41 A servant, in whom they had only a third interest, was dismissed by the independent Romans: instead, they elected a patrician; but this title, which Charlemagne had accepted, was too grand for a citizen or subject; and, after the initial excitement of rebellion, they willingly agreed to restore the prefect. About fifty years after this event, Innocent III, the most ambitious, or at least the most fortunate, of the popes, freed the Romans and himself from this symbol of foreign rule: he appointed the prefect with a banner instead of a sword and released him from any obligations or oaths to the German emperors. 42 An ecclesiastic, either a current or future cardinal, was appointed by the pope to govern Rome; but his authority was limited; and during times of freedom, that power was derived from the Senate and the people. IV. After the revival of the Senate, 43 the conscript fathers (if I may use that term) were granted legislative and executive power; but their focus rarely extended beyond the present day, which was most often disrupted by violence and chaos. In its fullest form, the order or assembly consisted of fifty-six senators, 44 the most prominent of whom were called counsellors: they were perhaps nominated annually by the people; and a preliminary selection by their electors, ten individuals from each area or parish, could provide a basis for a free and lasting constitution. The popes, who during this turmoil chose to bend rather than break, confirmed the formation and rights of the Senate through treaties, hoping that time, peace, and religion would restore their government. Public and private interests sometimes led the Romans to make occasional and temporary sacrifices of their claims; and they renewed their oath of allegiance to the successor of St. Peter and Constantine, the legitimate leader of the church and the republic. 45

36 (return)
[ After many disputes among the antiquaries of Rome, it seems determined, that the summit of the Capitoline hill next the river is strictly the Mons Tarpeius, the Arx; and that on the other summit, the church and convent of Araceli, the barefoot friars of St. Francis occupy the temple of Jupiter, (Nardini, Roma Antica, l. v. c. 11—16. * Note: The authority of Nardini is now vigorously impugned, and the question of the Arx and the Temple of Jupiter revived, with new arguments by Niebuhr and his accomplished follower, M. Bunsen. Roms Beschreibung, vol. iii. p. 12, et seqq.—M.]

36 (return)
[ After many debates among the historians of Rome, it seems agreed that the highest point of the Capitoline hill next to the river is indeed the Mons Tarpeius, the Arx; and that on the other peak, the church and convent of Araceli, the barefoot friars of St. Francis occupy the site of the temple of Jupiter, (Nardini, Roma Antica, l. v. c. 11—16. * Note: Nardini's authority is now being challenged, and the discussion about the Arx and the Temple of Jupiter has been reignited, with new arguments from Niebuhr and his notable follower, M. Bunsen. Roms Beschreibung, vol. iii. p. 12, et seqq.—M.]

37 (return)
[ Tacit. Hist. iii. 69, 70.]

37 (return)
[ Tacit. Hist. iii. 69, 70.]

38 (return)
[ This partition of the noble and baser metals between the emperor and senate must, however, be adopted, not as a positive fact, but as the probable opinion of the best antiquaries, * (see the Science des Medailles of the Père Joubert, tom. ii. p. 208—211, in the improved and scarce edition of the Baron de la Bastie. * Note: Dr. Cardwell (Lecture on Ancient Coins, p. 70, et seq.) assigns convincing reasons in support of this opinion.—M.]

38 (return)
[ This division of the noble and lesser metals between the emperor and the senate should be seen not as a confirmed fact, but as the likely belief of the best experts in the field, * (see the Science des Medailles of Père Joubert, vol. ii, pp. 208—211, in the improved and rare edition by Baron de la Bastie. * Note: Dr. Cardwell (Lecture on Ancient Coins, p. 70, et seq.) provides compelling reasons to support this view.—M.]

39 (return)
[ In his xxviith dissertation on the Antiquities of Italy, (tom. ii. p. 559—569,) Muratori exhibits a series of the senatorian coins, which bore the obscure names of Affortiati, Infortiati, Provisini, Paparini. During this period, all the popes, without excepting Boniface VIII, abstained from the right of coining, which was resumed by his successor Benedict XI., and regularly exercised in the court of Avignon.]

39 (return)
[ In his 26th dissertation on the Antiquities of Italy, (vol. ii, pp. 559–569), Muratori presents a collection of senatorial coins that featured the obscure names of Affortiati, Infortiati, Provisini, and Paparini. During this time, all the popes, including Boniface VIII, refrained from the right to mint coins, which was taken up again by his successor, Benedict XI, and was consistently practiced in the court of Avignon.]

40 (return)
[ A German historian, Gerard of Reicherspeg (in Baluz. Miscell. tom. v. p. 64, apud Schmidt, Hist. des Allemands, tom. iii. p. 265) thus describes the constitution of Rome in the xith century: Grandiora urbis et orbis negotia spectant ad Romanum pontificem itemque ad Romanum Imperatorem, sive illius vicarium urbis præfectum, qui de suâ dignitate respicit utrumque, videlicet dominum papam cui facit hominum, et dominum imperatorem a quo accipit suæ potestatis insigne, scilicet gladium exertum.]

40 (return)
[ A German historian, Gerard of Reicherspeg (in Baluz. Miscell. tom. v. p. 64, apud Schmidt, Hist. des Allemands, tom. iii. p. 265) describes the government of Rome in the 11th century like this: The major affairs of the city and the world are overseen by the Pope and the Roman Emperor, or his representative, the city prefect, who considers his own status in relation to both, namely, the lord Pope whom he serves and the lord Emperor from whom he receives the symbol of his authority, namely, the drawn sword.]

41 (return)
[ The words of a contemporary writer (Pandulph. Pisan. in Vit. Paschal. II. p. 357, 358) describe the election and oath of the præfect in 1118, inconsultis patribus.... loca præfectoria.... Laudes præfectoriæ.... comitiorum applausum.... juraturum populo in ambonem sublevant.... confirmari eum in urbe præfectum petunt.]

41 (return)
[ The words of a modern writer (Pandulph. Pisan. in Vit. Paschal. II. p. 357, 358) reflect on the election and oath of the prefect in 1118, without consulting the nobles.... the prefectural offices.... praises of the prefect.... applause from the assemblies.... he will swear to the people as he is lifted onto the platform.... they request confirmation of his role as prefect in the city.]

42 (return)
[ Urbis præfectum ad ligiam fidelitatem recepit, et per mantum quod illi donavit de præfecturâ eum publice investivit, qui usque ad id tempus juramento fidelitatis imperatori fuit obligatus et ab eo præfecturæ tenuit honorem, (Gesta Innocent. III. in Muratori, tom. iii. P. i. p. 487.)]

42 (return)
[ The prefect of the city received the loyal alliance, and through the mantle he donated, he publicly invested him into the prefecture, who until that moment had been bound by an oath of loyalty to the emperor and held the honor of the prefecture from him, (Gesta Innocent. III. in Muratori, tom. iii. P. i. p. 487.)]

43 (return)
[ See Otho Frising. Chron. vii. 31, de Gest. Frederic. I., l. i. c. 27.]

43 (return)
[ See Otho Frising. Chron. vii. 31, de Gest. Frederic. I., l. i. c. 27.]

44 (return)
[ Cœur countryman, Roger Hoveden, speaks of the single senators, of the Capuzzi family, &c., quorum temporibus melius regebatur Roma quam nunc (A.D. 1194) est temporibus lvi. senatorum, (Ducange, Gloss. tom. vi. p. 191, Senatores.)]

44 (return)
[Our countryman, Roger Hoveden, talks about the individual senators, from the Capuzzi family, etc., during whose time Rome was governed better than it is now (A.D. 1194) during the time of sixty senators, (Ducange, Gloss. tom. vi. p. 191, Senatores.)]

45 (return)
[ Muratori (dissert. xlii. tom. iii. p. 785—788) has published an original treaty: Concordia inter D. nostrum papam Clementem III. et senatores populi Romani super regalibus et aliis dignitatibus urbis, &c., anno 44º senatûs. The senate speaks, and speaks with authority: Reddimus ad præsens.... habebimus.... dabitis presbetria.... jurabimus pacem et fidelitatem, &c. A chartula de Tenementis Tusculani, dated in the 47th year of the same æra, and confirmed decreto amplissimi ordinis senatûs, acclamatione P. R. publice Capitolio consistentis. It is there we find the difference of senatores consiliarii and simple senators, (Muratori, dissert. xlii. tom. iii. p. 787—789.)]

45 (return)
[Muratori (dissertation xlii. vol. iii. pp. 785—788) has published an original document: Agreement between our pope Clement III and the senators of the Roman people regarding royal positions and other dignities of the city, etc., in the 44th year of the senate. The senate speaks, and speaks with authority: We will give at present.... we will have.... you will provide the presbyterate.... we will swear peace and loyalty, etc. A document about the Properties of Tusculum, dated in the 47th year of the same era, and confirmed by the decree of the most distinguished order of the senate, with the acclamation of the Roman people publicly in the Capitol. It is there we find the distinction between advising senators and regular senators (Muratori, dissertation xlii. vol. iii. pp. 787—789.)]

The union and vigor of a public council was dissolved in a lawless city; and the Romans soon adopted a more strong and simple mode of administration. They condensed the name and authority of the senate in a single magistrate, or two colleagues; and as they were changed at the end of a year, or of six months, the greatness of the trust was compensated by the shortness of the term. But in this transient reign, the senators of Rome indulged their avarice and ambition: their justice was perverted by the interest of their family and faction; and as they punished only their enemies, they were obeyed only by their adherents. Anarchy, no longer tempered by the pastoral care of their bishop, admonished the Romans that they were incapable of governing themselves; and they sought abroad those blessings which they were hopeless of finding at home. In the same age, and from the same motives, most of the Italian republics were prompted to embrace a measure, which, however strange it may seem, was adapted to their situation, and productive of the most salutary effects. 46 They chose, in some foreign but friendly city, an impartial magistrate of noble birth and unblemished character, a soldier and a statesman, recommended by the voice of fame and his country, to whom they delegated for a time the supreme administration of peace and war. The compact between the governor and the governed was sealed with oaths and subscriptions; and the duration of his power, the measure of his stipend, the nature of their mutual obligations, were defined with scrupulous precision. They swore to obey him as their lawful superior: he pledged his faith to unite the indifference of a stranger with the zeal of a patriot. At his choice, four or six knights and civilians, his assessors in arms and justice, attended the Podesta, 47 who maintained at his own expense a decent retinue of servants and horses: his wife, his son, his brother, who might bias the affections of the judge, were left behind: during the exercise of his office he was not permitted to purchase land, to contract an alliance, or even to accept an invitation in the house of a citizen; nor could he honorably depart till he had satisfied the complaints that might be urged against his government.

The unity and strength of a public council fell apart in a chaotic city; and the Romans quickly opted for a stronger and simpler way of ruling. They merged the name and authority of the senate into a single magistrate or two colleagues; and because they changed every year or every six months, the weight of the responsibility was balanced by the brief duration of the term. But in this short-lived rule, the senators of Rome indulged in greed and ambition: their sense of justice was warped by the interests of their families and factions; they only punished their enemies and were obeyed only by their supporters. Anarchy, no longer tempered by the pastoral care of their bishop, reminded the Romans that they couldn't govern themselves; and they looked abroad for the blessings they were unlikely to find at home. In the same era, driven by similar motives, most of the Italian republics opted for a measure that, although it may seem strange, was suited to their situation and led to beneficial outcomes. 46 They chose an impartial magistrate of noble birth and impeccable character, a soldier and a statesman, selected by the acclaim of his reputation and his country, to whom they entrusted the supreme administration of peace and war for a time. The agreement between the ruler and the ruled was confirmed with oaths and signatures; and the length of his power, the amount of his salary, and the nature of their mutual obligations were outlined with careful detail. They swore to obey him as their legitimate superior: he pledged to combine the indifference of a stranger with the enthusiasm of a patriot. At his discretion, four or six knights and civilians, his advisors in arms and justice, accompanied the Podesta, 47, who maintained a respectable retinue of servants and horses at his own expense: his wife, son, and brother, who might sway the judge's feelings, were left behind: during his term, he was not allowed to buy land, form an alliance, or even accept an invitation into the home of a citizen; nor could he leave honorably until he had addressed the complaints against his governance.

46 (return)
[ Muratori (dissert. xlv. tom. iv. p. 64—92) has fully explained this mode of government; and the Occulus Pastoralis, which he has given at the end, is a treatise or sermon on the duties of these foreign magistrates.]

46 (return)
[Muratori (dissert. xlv. tom. iv. p. 64—92) has thoroughly explained this form of government; and the Occulus Pastoralis, which he includes at the end, is a detailed discussion or sermon on the responsibilities of these foreign officials.]

47 (return)
[ In the Latin writers, at least of the silver age, the title of Potestas was transferred from the office to the magistrate:—

47 (return)
[ In the Latin writers, at least from the silver age, the title of Potestas was shifted from the office to the magistrate:—

               Hujus qui trahitur prætextam sumere mavis;
               An Fidenarum Gabiorumque esse Potestas.
               Juvenal. Satir. x. 99.11]
Hujus qui trahitur prætextam sumere mavis;  
An Fidenarum Gabiorumque esse Potestas.  
Juvenal. Satir. x. 99.11]

Chapter LXIX: State Of Rome From The Twelfth Century.—Part III.

It was thus, about the middle of the thirteenth century, that the Romans called from Bologna the senator Brancaleone, 48 whose fame and merit have been rescued from oblivion by the pen of an English historian. A just anxiety for his reputation, a clear foresight of the difficulties of the task, had engaged him to refuse the honor of their choice: the statutes of Rome were suspended, and his office prolonged to the term of three years. By the guilty and licentious he was accused as cruel; by the clergy he was suspected as partial; but the friends of peace and order applauded the firm and upright magistrate by whom those blessings were restored. No criminals were so powerful as to brave, so obscure as to elude, the justice of the senator. By his sentence two nobles of the Annibaldi family were executed on a gibbet; and he inexorably demolished, in the city and neighborhood, one hundred and forty towers, the strong shelters of rapine and mischief. The bishop, as a simple bishop, was compelled to reside in his diocese; and the standard of Brancaleone was displayed in the field with terror and effect. His services were repaid by the ingratitude of a people unworthy of the happiness which they enjoyed. By the public robbers, whom he had provoked for their sake, the Romans were excited to depose and imprison their benefactor; nor would his life have been spared, if Bologna had not possessed a pledge for his safety. Before his departure, the prudent senator had required the exchange of thirty hostages of the noblest families of Rome: on the news of his danger, and at the prayer of his wife, they were more strictly guarded; and Bologna, in the cause of honor, sustained the thunders of a papal interdict. This generous resistance allowed the Romans to compare the present with the past; and Brancaleone was conducted from the prison to the Capitol amidst the acclamations of a repentant people. The remainder of his government was firm and fortunate; and as soon as envy was appeased by death, his head, enclosed in a precious vase, was deposited on a lofty column of marble. 49

It was around the middle of the 13th century that the Romans called upon Senator Brancaleone from Bologna, 48 whose reputation and accomplishments have been saved from being forgotten by an English historian. Concerned about his reputation and clearly aware of the challenges ahead, he declined the honor they offered him: the laws of Rome were put on hold, and his position was extended for three years. He was accused of being cruel by the guilty and the immoral; the clergy suspected him of being biased; but the supporters of peace and order praised the strong and honest magistrate who restored those values. No criminal was powerful enough to defy or so hidden that they could escape the senator's justice. By his order, two nobles from the Annibaldi family were executed publicly, and he relentlessly destroyed one hundred and forty towers in the city and surrounding areas, which were strongholds of theft and mischief. The bishop, merely a bishop, was forced to stay in his diocese; and Brancaleone's banner was raised in battle with fearsome effect. His efforts were met with the ingratitude of a people unworthy of the happiness they enjoyed. The public thieves, whom he had angered on behalf of the citizens, incited the Romans to depose and imprison their benefactor; and he likely would not have survived if Bologna had not secured a guarantee for his safety. Before leaving, the wise senator had demanded the exchange of thirty hostages from the noble families of Rome: upon learning of his danger, and at the request of his wife, they were kept under tighter guard; and Bologna, for the sake of honor, endured the force of a papal interdict. This brave resistance allowed the Romans to reflect on the past, and Brancaleone was brought from prison to the Capitol amidst the cheers of a remorseful populace. The rest of his rule was strong and successful; and once envy was silenced by death, his head, kept in a valuable vase, was placed on a tall marble column. 49

48 (return)
[ See the life and death of Brancaleone, in the Historia Major of Matthew Paris, p. 741, 757, 792, 797, 799, 810, 823, 833, 836, 840. The multitude of pilgrims and suitors connected Rome and St. Albans, and the resentment of the English clergy prompted them to rejoice when ever the popes were humbled and oppressed.]

48 (return)
[ Check out the life and death of Brancaleone in Matthew Paris's Historia Major, p. 741, 757, 792, 797, 799, 810, 823, 833, 836, 840. The large number of pilgrims and petitioners linked Rome and St. Albans, and the resentment among the English clergy made them happy whenever the popes were brought low and mistreated.]

49 (return)
[ Matthew Paris thus ends his account: Caput vero ipsius Brancaleonis in vase pretioso super marmoream columnam collocatum, in signum sui valoris et probitatis, quasi reliquias, superstitiose nimis et pompose sustulerunt. Fuerat enim superborum potentum et malefactorum urbis malleus et extirpator, et populi protector et defensor veritatis et justitiæ imitator et amator, (p. 840.) A biographer of Innocent IV. (Muratori, Script. tom. iii. P. i. p. 591, 592) draws a less favorable portrait of this Ghibeline senator.]

49 (return)
[Matthew Paris concludes his account: The head of Brancaleone was placed in a precious vase on a marble column, symbolizing his strength and integrity, almost like a relic, raised with excessive superstition and pomp. He was indeed the hammer and exterminator of the proud powerful and wrongdoers of the city, and the protector of the people, a defender of truth and justice, an imitator and lover of righteousness, (p. 840.) A biographer of Innocent IV. (Muratori, Script. tom. iii. P. i. p. 591, 592) offers a less flattering depiction of this Ghibeline senator.]

The impotence of reason and virtue recommended in Italy a more effectual choice: instead of a private citizen, to whom they yielded a voluntary and precarious obedience, the Romans elected for their senator some prince of independent power, who could defend them from their enemies and themselves. Charles of Anjou and Provence, the most ambitious and warlike monarch of the age, accepted at the same time the kingdom of Naples from the pope, and the office of senator from the Roman people. 50 As he passed through the city, in his road to victory, he received their oath of allegiance, lodged in the Lateran palace, and smoothed in a short visit the harsh features of his despotic character. Yet even Charles was exposed to the inconstancy of the people, who saluted with the same acclamations the passage of his rival, the unfortunate Conradin; and a powerful avenger, who reigned in the Capitol, alarmed the fears and jealousy of the popes. The absolute term of his life was superseded by a renewal every third year; and the enmity of Nicholas the Third obliged the Sicilian king to abdicate the government of Rome. In his bull, a perpetual law, the imperious pontiff asserts the truth, validity, and use of the donation of Constantine, not less essential to the peace of the city than to the independence of the church; establishes the annual election of the senator; and formally disqualifies all emperors, kings, princes, and persons of an eminent and conspicuous rank. 51 This prohibitory clause was repealed in his own behalf by Martin the Fourth, who humbly solicited the suffrage of the Romans. In the presence, and by the authority, of the people, two electors conferred, not on the pope, but on the noble and faithful Martin, the dignity of senator, and the supreme administration of the republic, 52 to hold during his natural life, and to exercise at pleasure by himself or his deputies. About fifty years afterwards, the same title was granted to the emperor Lewis of Bavaria; and the liberty of Rome was acknowledged by her two sovereigns, who accepted a municipal office in the government of their own metropolis.

The failure of reason and virtue in Italy led to a more effective choice: instead of a private citizen, whom they offered uncertain and voluntary loyalty, the Romans elected a powerful prince as their senator, someone who could protect them from their enemies and themselves. Charles of Anjou and Provence, the most ambitious and warlike monarch of that time, received the kingdom of Naples from the pope and the position of senator from the Roman people at the same time. 50 As he made his way through the city towards victory, he received their oath of loyalty, stayed at the Lateran palace, and briefly softened the harshness of his tyrannical nature. Yet even Charles faced the fickleness of the people, who greeted his rival, the unfortunate Conradin, with the same cheers; and a powerful adversary ruling from the Capitol sparked fears and jealousy among the popes. The absolute term of his reign was replaced by a renewal every three years, and the animosity of Nicholas the Third forced the Sicilian king to give up control of Rome. In his bull, a permanent law, the assertive pope confirmed the truth, validity, and importance of the donation of Constantine, which was crucial for both the peace of the city and the independence of the church; established the annual election of the senator; and formally disqualified all emperors, kings, princes, and high-ranking individuals. 51 This prohibitive clause was overturned on his behalf by Martin the Fourth, who humbly sought the support of the Romans. In front of, and with the authority of, the people, two electors granted the noble and loyal Martin the title of senator and the supreme governance of the republic, 52 to hold for his lifetime and exercise at his discretion through himself or his deputies. Around fifty years later, the same title was given to Emperor Lewis of Bavaria; and the freedom of Rome was recognized by her two rulers, who took on a municipal role in the government of their own city.

50 (return)
[ The election of Charles of Anjou to the office of perpetual senator of Rome is mentioned by the historians in the viiith volume of the Collection of Muratori, by Nicholas de Jamsilla, (p. 592,) the monk of Padua, (p. 724,) Sabas Malaspina, (l. ii. c. 9, p. 308,) and Ricordano Malespini, (c. 177, p. 999.)]

50 (return)
[ Historians mention the election of Charles of Anjou as the perpetual senator of Rome in the eighth volume of Muratori's Collection, by Nicholas de Jamsilla (p. 592), the monk of Padua (p. 724), Sabas Malaspina (l. ii. c. 9, p. 308), and Ricordano Malespini (c. 177, p. 999).]

51 (return)
[ The high-sounding bull of Nicholas III., which founds his temporal sovereignty on the donation of Constantine, is still extant; and as it has been inserted by Boniface VIII. in the Sexte of the Decretals, it must be received by the Catholics, or at least by the Papists, as a sacred and perpetual law.]

51 (return)
[ The grand declaration of Nicholas III., which bases his earthly authority on the donation of Constantine, still exists; and since Boniface VIII. included it in the Sexte of the Decretals, Catholics, or at least Papists, must accept it as a sacred and lasting law.]

52 (return)
[ I am indebted to Fleury (Hist. Ecclés. tom. xviii. p. 306) for an extract of this Roman act, which he has taken from the Ecclesiastical Annals of Odericus Raynaldus, A.D. 1281, No. 14, 15.]

52 (return)
[ I'm grateful to Fleury (Hist. Ecclés. vol. XVIII, p. 306) for sharing this Roman document, which he referenced from the Ecclesiastical Annals of Odericus Raynaldus, A.D. 1281, No. 14, 15.]

In the first moments of rebellion, when Arnold of Brescia had inflamed their minds against the church, the Romans artfully labored to conciliate the favor of the empire, and to recommend their merit and services in the cause of Cæsar. The style of their ambassadors to Conrad the Third and Frederic the First is a mixture of flattery and pride, the tradition and the ignorance of their own history. 53 After some complaint of his silence and neglect, they exhort the former of these princes to pass the Alps, and assume from their hands the Imperial crown. “We beseech your majesty not to disdain the humility of your sons and vassals, not to listen to the accusations of our common enemies; who calumniate the senate as hostile to your throne, who sow the seeds of discord, that they may reap the harvest of destruction. The pope and the Sicilian are united in an impious league to oppose our liberty and your coronation. With the blessing of God, our zeal and courage has hitherto defeated their attempts. Of their powerful and factious adherents, more especially the Frangipani, we have taken by assault the houses and turrets: some of these are occupied by our troops, and some are levelled with the ground. The Milvian bridge, which they had broken, is restored and fortified for your safe passage; and your army may enter the city without being annoyed from the castle of St. Angelo. All that we have done, and all that we design, is for your honor and service, in the loyal hope, that you will speedily appear in person, to vindicate those rights which have been invaded by the clergy, to revive the dignity of the empire, and to surpass the fame and glory of your predecessors. May you fix your residence in Rome, the capital of the world; give laws to Italy, and the Teutonic kingdom; and imitate the example of Constantine and Justinian, 54 who, by the vigor of the senate and people, obtained the sceptre of the earth.” 55 But these splendid and fallacious wishes were not cherished by Conrad the Franconian, whose eyes were fixed on the Holy Land, and who died without visiting Rome soon after his return from the Holy Land.

In the early days of rebellion, when Arnold of Brescia had stirred up their anger against the church, the Romans skillfully worked to win the favor of the empire, showcasing their worth and contributions in support of Cæsar. The tone of their ambassadors to Conrad the Third and Frederick the First was a mix of flattery and arrogance, reflecting both tradition and their lack of understanding of their own history. 53 After expressing frustration over his silence and neglect, they urged the former of these princes to cross the Alps and accept the Imperial crown from them. “We humbly ask your majesty not to disregard the pleas of your sons and vassals, nor to listen to the accusations of our shared enemies who slander the senate as hostile to your throne, sowing discord to reap destruction. The pope and the Sicilian have formed a wicked alliance to undermine our freedom and your coronation. By God’s blessing, our dedication and bravery have so far thwarted their plans. We have attacked and taken the homes and towers of their strong supporters, especially the Frangipani: some are now held by our troops, and others have been demolished. The Milvian bridge, which they had destroyed, is repaired and reinforced for your safe passage; your army can enter the city without being troubled by the castle of St. Angelo. Everything we have done, and everything we plan, is for your honor and service, with the loyal hope that you will soon come in person to reclaim the rights that the clergy have violated, restore the dignity of the empire, and surpass the renown of your predecessors. May you establish your residence in Rome, the capital of the world; set laws for Italy and the Teutonic kingdom; and follow the examples of Constantine and Justinian, 54 who, through the strength of the senate and the people, obtained the scepter of the earth.” 55 However, these grand and misleading desires were not welcomed by Conrad the Franconian, whose focus was on the Holy Land, and he died without ever visiting Rome shortly after his return from there.

53 (return)
[ These letters and speeches are preserved by Otho bishop of Frisingen, (Fabric. Bibliot. Lat. Med. et Infim. tom. v. p. 186, 187,) perhaps the noblest of historians: he was son of Leopold marquis of Austria; his mother, Agnes, was daughter of the emperor Henry IV., and he was half-brother and uncle to Conrad III. and Frederic I. He has left, in seven books, a Chronicle of the Times; in two, the Gesta Frederici I., the last of which is inserted in the vith volume of Muratori’s historians.]

53 (return)
[ These letters and speeches are preserved by Otho, bishop of Frisingen, (Fabric. Bibliot. Lat. Med. et Infim. tom. v. p. 186, 187,) perhaps the greatest of historians: he was the son of Leopold, marquis of Austria; his mother, Agnes, was the daughter of Emperor Henry IV., and he was the half-brother and uncle of Conrad III. and Frederic I. He has left behind a Chronicle of the Times in seven books and the Gesta Frederici I. in two volumes, the last of which is included in the sixth volume of Muratori’s historians.]

54 (return)
[ We desire (said the ignorant Romans) to restore the empire in um statum, quo fuit tempore Constantini et Justiniani, qui totum orbem vigore senatûs et populi Romani suis tenuere manibus.]

54 (return)
[ We want (said the uninformed Romans) to restore the empire to the state it was in during the time of Constantine and Justinian, who held the entire world firmly in the hands of the Senate and the Roman people.]

55 (return)
[ Otho Frising. de Gestis Frederici I. l. i. c. 28, p. 662—664.]

55 (return)
[ Otho Frising. de Gestis Frederici I. l. i. c. 28, p. 662—664.]

His nephew and successor, Frederic Barbarossa, was more ambitious of the Imperial crown; nor had any of the successors of Otho acquired such absolute sway over the kingdom of Italy. Surrounded by his ecclesiastical and secular princes, he gave audience in his camp at Sutri to the ambassadors of Rome, who thus addressed him in a free and florid oration: “Incline your ear to the queen of cities; approach with a peaceful and friendly mind the precincts of Rome, which has cast away the yoke of the clergy, and is impatient to crown her legitimate emperor. Under your auspicious influence, may the primitive times be restored. Assert the prerogatives of the eternal city, and reduce under her monarchy the insolence of the world. You are not ignorant, that, in former ages, by the wisdom of the senate, by the valor and discipline of the equestrian order, she extended her victorious arms to the East and West, beyond the Alps, and over the islands of the ocean. By our sins, in the absence of our princes, the noble institution of the senate has sunk in oblivion; and with our prudence, our strength has likewise decreased. We have revived the senate, and the equestrian order: the counsels of the one, the arms of the other, will be devoted to your person and the service of the empire. Do you not hear the language of the Roman matron? You were a guest, I have adopted you as a citizen; a Transalpine stranger, I have elected you for my sovereign; 56 and given you myself, and all that is mine. Your first and most sacred duty is to swear and subscribe, that you will shed your blood for the republic; that you will maintain in peace and justice the laws of the city and the charters of your predecessors; and that you will reward with five thousand pounds of silver the faithful senators who shall proclaim your titles in the Capitol. With the name, assume the character, of Augustus.” The flowers of Latin rhetoric were not yet exhausted; but Frederic, impatient of their vanity, interrupted the orators in the high tone of royalty and conquest. “Famous indeed have been the fortitude and wisdom of the ancient Romans; but your speech is not seasoned with wisdom, and I could wish that fortitude were conspicuous in your actions. Like all sublunary things, Rome has felt the vicissitudes of time and fortune. Your noblest families were translated to the East, to the royal city of Constantine; and the remains of your strength and freedom have long since been exhausted by the Greeks and Franks. Are you desirous of beholding the ancient glory of Rome, the gravity of the senate, the spirit of the knights, the discipline of the camp, the valor of the legions? you will find them in the German republic. It is not empire, naked and alone, the ornaments and virtues of empire have likewise migrated beyond the Alps to a more deserving people: 57 they will be employed in your defence, but they claim your obedience. You pretend that myself or my predecessors have been invited by the Romans: you mistake the word; they were not invited, they were implored. From its foreign and domestic tyrants, the city was rescued by Charlemagne and Otho, whose ashes repose in our country; and their dominion was the price of your deliverance. Under that dominion your ancestors lived and died. I claim by the right of inheritance and possession, and who shall dare to extort you from my hands? Is the hand of the Franks 58 and Germans enfeebled by age? Am I vanquished? Am I a captive? Am I not encompassed with the banners of a potent and invincible army? You impose conditions on your master; you require oaths: if the conditions are just, an oath is superfluous; if unjust, it is criminal. Can you doubt my equity? It is extended to the meanest of my subjects. Will not my sword be unsheathed in the defence of the Capitol? By that sword the northern kingdom of Denmark has been restored to the Roman empire. You prescribe the measure and the objects of my bounty, which flows in a copious but a voluntary stream. All will be given to patient merit; all will be denied to rude importunity.” 59 Neither the emperor nor the senate could maintain these lofty pretensions of dominion and liberty. United with the pope, and suspicious of the Romans, Frederic continued his march to the Vatican; his coronation was disturbed by a sally from the Capitol; and if the numbers and valor of the Germans prevailed in the bloody conflict, he could not safely encamp in the presence of a city of which he styled himself the sovereign. About twelve years afterwards, he besieged Rome, to seat an antipope in the chair of St. Peter; and twelve Pisan galleys were introduced into the Tyber: but the senate and people were saved by the arts of negotiation and the progress of disease; nor did Frederic or his successors reiterate the hostile attempt. Their laborious reigns were exercised by the popes, the crusades, and the independence of Lombardy and Germany: they courted the alliance of the Romans; and Frederic the Second offered in the Capitol the great standard, the Caroccio of Milan. 60 After the extinction of the house of Swabia, they were banished beyond the Alps: and their last coronations betrayed the impotence and poverty of the Teutonic Cæsars. 61

His nephew and successor, Frederic Barbarossa, was more eager for the Imperial crown; no other successors of Otho had gained such complete control over the kingdom of Italy. Surrounded by his religious and secular princes, he held court in his camp at Sutri for ambassadors from Rome, who addressed him with an elaborate and flowery speech: “Listen to the queen of cities; come peacefully and with a friendly spirit to Rome, which has shaken off the control of the clergy and is eager to crown her rightful emperor. Under your guiding influence, may the glory of the old days be restored. Uphold the rights of the eternal city, and curb the arrogance of the world under her rule. You know that, in times past, the strength of the senate, alongside the bravery and discipline of the knights, allowed her to extend her dominance to the East and West, over the Alps and across the islands of the ocean. Because of our sins, during the absence of our leaders, the esteemed institution of the senate has been forgotten; with our lack of wisdom, our strength has also diminished. We have revived the senate and the knightly order: the counsel of one and the might of the other will be dedicated to you and the service of the empire. Do you not hear the voice of Rome's noblewoman? You were once a guest; I have welcomed you as a citizen; a stranger from across the mountains, I have chosen you as my sovereign; 56 and given you myself and everything I have. Your foremost and most sacred responsibility is to vow and sign that you will shed your blood for the republic; that you will uphold in peace and justice the laws of the city and the charters of your predecessors; and that you will reward with five thousand pounds of silver the faithful senators who declare your titles in the Capitol. As you assume the name, also take on the role of Augustus.” The flair of Latin rhetoric was far from exhausted; yet Frederic, tired of their pomp, interrupted the speakers with a commanding tone of a ruler and conqueror. “Indeed, the courage and wisdom of the ancient Romans were remarkable; but your speech lacks wisdom, and I wish your bravery would show in your actions. Like everything in this world, Rome has experienced the ups and downs of time and fortune. Your finest families were taken to the East, to the royal city of Constantine; the remnants of your strength and freedom have long been worn down by the Greeks and Franks. If you long to see the ancient glory of Rome, the seriousness of the senate, the spirit of the knights, the order of the camps, the bravery of the legions? You will find them in the German republic. Empire, stripped and alone, has also seen its qualities and virtues move beyond the Alps to a more deserving people: 57 they will be used to defend you, but they demand your loyalty. You claim that I or my predecessors were invited by the Romans: you misunderstand the term; they did not invite us, they begged us. The city was rescued from its foreign and domestic oppressors by Charlemagne and Otho, whose remains rest in our land; their rule was the cost of your freedom. Under their rule, your ancestors lived and died. I claim this right as an inheritance and possession, and who would dare to take you from my grasp? Is the power of the Franks 58 and Germans weakened by age? Am I defeated? Am I a prisoner? Am I not surrounded by the banners of a strong and unbeatable army? You impose conditions on your ruler; you demand oaths: if the conditions are fair, an oath is unnecessary; if unfair, it is wrong. Can you doubt my fairness? It extends even to the lowest of my subjects. Will my sword not be drawn to defend the Capitol? With that sword, I have restored the northern kingdom of Denmark to the Roman empire. You dictate the terms and recipients of my generosity, which flows abundantly but freely. All will be given to those who patiently deserve it; all will be denied to those who demand rudely.” 59 Neither the emperor nor the senate could maintain such high claims of power and freedom. Allied with the pope and wary of the Romans, Frederic continued his march to the Vatican; his coronation was interrupted by an attack from the Capitol; and even if the numbers and courage of the Germans won in the bloody battle, he could not safely camp near a city he called his own. About twelve years later, he laid siege to Rome to place an antipope in the chair of St. Peter; twelve Pisan ships were sent into the Tiber: but negotiation and the spread of disease saved the senate and the people; nor did Frederic or his successors make further hostile attempts. Their difficult reigns were shaped by the popes, the crusades, and the independence of Lombardy and Germany: they sought the alliance of the Romans; and Frederic the Second offered in the Capitol the great standard, the Caroccio of Milan. 60 After the end of the house of Swabia, they were driven beyond the Alps: and their final coronations revealed the weakness and poverty of the Teutonic Cæsars. 61

56 (return)
[ Hospes eras, civem feci. Advena fuisti ex Transalpinis partibus principem constitui.]

56 (return)
[ You were a guest, I made you a citizen. You came from the lands beyond the Alps; I appointed you as a leader.]

57 (return)
[ Non cessit nobis nudum imperium, virtute sua amictum venit, ornamenta sua secum traxit. Penes nos sunt consules tui, &c. Cicero or Livy would not have rejected these images, the eloquence of a Barbarian born and educated in the Hercynian forest.]

57 (return)
[ We have not been left with a bare rule; it comes draped in its own virtue and carries its own adornments. Your consuls are in our hands, etc. Cicero or Livy wouldn’t have dismissed these images, reflecting the eloquence of a Barbarian raised and educated in the Hercynian forest.]

58 (return)
[ Otho of Frisingen, who surely understood the language of the court and diet of Germany, speaks of the Franks in the xiith century as the reigning nation, (Proceres Franci, equites Franci, manus Francorum:) he adds, however, the epithet of Teutonici.]

58 (return)
[Otho of Frisingen, who definitely understood the language of the German court and assemblies, describes the Franks in the 12th century as the dominant nation (Proceres Franci, equites Franci, manus Francorum:) but he also adds the term Teutonici.]

59 (return)
[ Otho Frising. de Gestis Frederici I., l. ii. c. 22, p. 720—733. These original and authentic acts I have translated and abridged with freedom, yet with fidelity.]

59 (return)
[ Otho Frising. de Gestis Frederici I., l. ii. c. 22, p. 720—733. I have freely translated and summarized these original and authentic acts while staying true to the original content.]

60 (return)
[ From the Chronicles of Ricobaldo and Francis Pipin, Muratori (dissert. xxvi. tom. ii. p. 492) has translated this curious fact with the doggerel verses that accompanied the gift:—

60 (return)
[ From the Chronicles of Ricobaldo and Francis Pipin, Muratori (dissert. xxvi. tom. ii. p. 492) has translated this interesting fact with the limerick that came with the gift:—

               Ave decus orbis, ave! victus tibi destinor, ave!
               Cœurrus ab Augusto Frederico Cæsare justo.
               Væ Mediolanum! jam sentis spernere vanum
               Imperii vires, proprias tibi tollere vires.
               Ergo triumphorum urbs potes memor esse priorum
               Quos tibi mittebant reges qui bella gerebant.
               Hail, glory of the world, hail! I'm destined to be defeated for you, hail!
               Chariot of Augustus Frederick, the just Caesar.
               Woe to Milan! Do you now feel the emptiness
               of the imperial powers, raising your own strength?
               Therefore, city of triumphs, you can remember the past
               those kings sent you who waged wars.

Ne si dee tacere (I now use the Italian Dissertations, tom. i. p. 444) che nell’ anno 1727, una copia desso Caroccio in marmo dianzi ignoto si scopri, nel campidoglio, presso alle carcere di quel luogo, dove Sisto V. l’avea falto rinchiudere. Stava esso posto sopra quatro colonne di marmo fino colla sequente inscrizione, &c.; to the same purpose as the old inscription.]

Ne si dee tacere (I now use the Italian Dissertations, tom. i. p. 444) che nell’anno 1727, una copia di questo Caroccio in marmo, fino a quel momento sconosciuta, fu scoperta nel Campidoglio, vicino alle prigioni di quel luogo, dove Sisto V. l’aveva fatto rinchiudere. Era collocata su quattro colonne di marmo fine con la seguente iscrizione, &c. to the same purpose as the old inscription.

61 (return)
[ The decline of the Imperial arms and authority in Italy is related with impartial learning in the Annals of Muratori, (tom. x. xi. xii.;) and the reader may compare his narrative with the Histoires des Allemands (tom. iii. iv.) by Schmidt, who has deserved the esteem of his countrymen.]

61 (return)
[ The decline of the Imperial power and control in Italy is discussed in the unbiased accounts of the Annals of Muratori, (vol. x. xi. xii.;) and readers can compare his narrative with the Histoires des Allemands (vol. iii. iv.) by Schmidt, who has earned the respect of his fellow countrymen.]

Under the reign of Adrian, when the empire extended from the Euphrates to the ocean, from Mount Atlas to the Grampian hills, a fanciful historian 62 amused the Romans with the picture of their ancient wars. “There was a time,” says Florus, “when Tibur and Præneste, our summer retreats, were the objects of hostile vows in the Capitol, when we dreaded the shades of the Arician groves, when we could triumph without a blush over the nameless villages of the Sabines and Latins, and even Corioli could afford a title not unworthy of a victorious general.” The pride of his contemporaries was gratified by the contrast of the past and the present: they would have been humbled by the prospect of futurity; by the prediction, that after a thousand years, Rome, despoiled of empire, and contracted to her primæval limits, would renew the same hostilities, on the same ground which was then decorated with her villas and gardens. The adjacent territory on either side of the Tyber was always claimed, and sometimes possessed, as the patrimony of St. Peter; but the barons assumed a lawless independence, and the cities too faithfully copied the revolt and discord of the metropolis. In the twelfth and thirteenth centuries the Romans incessantly labored to reduce or destroy the contumacious vassals of the church and senate; and if their headstrong and selfish ambition was moderated by the pope, he often encouraged their zeal by the alliance of his spiritual arms. Their warfare was that of the first consuls and dictators, who were taken from the plough. The assembled in arms at the foot of the Capitol; sallied from the gates, plundered or burnt the harvests of their neighbors, engaged in tumultuary conflict, and returned home after an expedition of fifteen or twenty days. Their sieges were tedious and unskilful: in the use of victory, they indulged the meaner passions of jealousy and revenge; and instead of adopting the valor, they trampled on the misfortunes, of their adversaries. The captives, in their shirts, with a rope round their necks, solicited their pardon: the fortifications, and even the buildings, of the rival cities, were demolished, and the inhabitants were scattered in the adjacent villages. It was thus that the seats of the cardinal bishops, Porto, Ostia, Albanum, Tusculum, Præneste, and Tibur or Tivoli, were successively overthrown by the ferocious hostility of the Romans. 63 Of these, 64 Porto and Ostia, the two keys of the Tyber, are still vacant and desolate: the marshy and unwholesome banks are peopled with herds of buffaloes, and the river is lost to every purpose of navigation and trade. The hills, which afford a shady retirement from the autumnal heats, have again smiled with the blessings of peace; Frescati has arisen near the ruins of Tusculum; Tibur or Tivoli has resumed the honors of a city, 65 and the meaner towns of Albano and Palestrina are decorated with the villas of the cardinals and princes of Rome. In the work of destruction, the ambition of the Romans was often checked and repulsed by the neighboring cities and their allies: in the first siege of Tibur, they were driven from their camp; and the battles of Tusculum 66 and Viterbo 67 might be compared in their relative state to the memorable fields of Thrasymene and Cannæ. In the first of these petty wars, thirty thousand Romans were overthrown by a thousand German horse, whom Frederic Barbarossa had detached to the relief of Tusculum: and if we number the slain at three, the prisoners at two, thousand, we shall embrace the most authentic and moderate account. Sixty-eight years afterwards they marched against Viterbo in the ecclesiastical state with the whole force of the city; by a rare coalition the Teutonic eagle was blended, in the adverse banners, with the keys of St. Peter; and the pope’s auxiliaries were commanded by a count of Thoulouse and a bishop of Winchester. The Romans were discomfited with shame and slaughter: but the English prelate must have indulged the vanity of a pilgrim, if he multiplied their numbers to one hundred, and their loss in the field to thirty, thousand men. Had the policy of the senate and the discipline of the legions been restored with the Capitol, the divided condition of Italy would have offered the fairest opportunity of a second conquest. But in arms, the modern Romans were not above, and in arts, they were far below, the common level of the neighboring republics. Nor was their warlike spirit of any long continuance; after some irregular sallies, they subsided in the national apathy, in the neglect of military institutions, and in the disgraceful and dangerous use of foreign mercenaries.

Under Adrians's reign, when the empire stretched from the Euphrates to the ocean and from Mount Atlas to the Grampian hills, a fanciful historian 62 entertained the Romans with stories of their ancient wars. “There was a time,” says Florus, “when Tibur and Præneste, our summer getaways, were the focus of hostile vows in the Capitol, when we feared the shadows of the Arician groves, when we could celebrate without shame over the unnamed villages of the Sabines and Latins, and even Corioli could boast a name not unworthy of a victorious general.” The pride of his contemporaries was satisfied by the contrast between the past and the present: they would have been humbled by the prospect of the future; by the prediction that, after a thousand years, Rome, stripped of her empire and reduced to her original borders, would reignite the same hostilities on the same ground that was then adorned with her villas and gardens. The areas on either side of the Tyber were always claimed, and sometimes occupied, as the estate of St. Peter; but the barons claimed a lawless independence, and the cities replicated the revolt and discord of the capital too faithfully. In the twelfth and thirteenth centuries, the Romans tirelessly worked to reduce or eliminate the rebellious vassals of the church and the senate; and if their obstinate and selfish ambition was tempered by the pope, he often fueled their zeal with alliances formed by his spiritual authority. Their warfare resembled that of the first consuls and dictators, who came from farming backgrounds. They assembled at the foot of the Capitol, charged out from the gates, plundered or burned their neighbors’ harvests, engaged in chaotic battles, and returned home after campaigns lasting fifteen or twenty days. Their sieges were lengthy and poorly conducted: in victory, they indulged in lower passions of jealousy and revenge; instead of celebrating the bravery, they stomped on the misfortunes of their enemies. The captives, dressed only in shirts with ropes around their necks, begged for mercy: the fortifications and even the structures of rival cities were demolished, and the inhabitants were scattered into nearby villages. This is how the seats of the cardinal bishops, Porto, Ostia, Albanum, Tusculum, Præneste, and Tibur or Tivoli, were repeatedly destroyed by the fierce hostility of the Romans. 63 Among these, 64 Porto and Ostia, the two gateways of the Tyber, remain deserted and desolate: the damp and unhealthy banks are now home to herds of buffaloes, and the river serves no purpose for navigation or trade. The hills, which provide a shady escape from the autumn heat, have once again blossomed with the blessings of peace; Frescati has risen near the ruins of Tusculum; Tibur or Tivoli has regained its status as a city, 65 and the lesser towns of Albano and Palestrina are adorned with the villas of the cardinals and princes of Rome. In their destruction, the ambitions of the Romans were often checked and resisted by neighboring cities and their allies: during the first siege of Tibur, they were driven from their camp; and the battles of Tusculum 66 and Viterbo 67 could be likened in their relative significance to the famous fields of Thrasymene and Cannæ. In the first of these minor wars, thirty thousand Romans were defeated by a thousand German cavalry, who had been sent by Frederic Barbarossa to aid Tusculum: and if we count the slain at three thousand and the prisoners at two thousand, we get the most accurate and moderate account. Sixty-eight years later, they marched against Viterbo in the ecclesiastical state with the entire military strength of the city; in a rare coalition, the Teutonic eagle was united in opposing banners with the keys of St. Peter; and the pope's allies were led by a count from Thoulouse and a bishop from Winchester. The Romans faced humiliation and slaughter: but the English bishop must have let his imagination run wild if he inflated their numbers to one hundred thousand and their losses in battle to thirty thousand. If the policy of the senate and discipline of the legions had been restored with the Capitol, the fragmented state of Italy would have provided an excellent opportunity for a second conquest. However, in arms, the modern Romans were neither better, and in the arts, they were far worse than the neighboring republics. Their military spirit also did not last long; after a few irregular skirmishes, they fell into national indifference, neglecting military institutions, and disgracefully relying on foreign mercenaries.

62 (return)
[ Tibur nunc suburbanum, et æstivæ Præneste deliciæ, nuncupatis in Capitolio votis petebantur. The whole passage of Florus (l. i. c. 11) may be read with pleasure, and has deserved the praise of a man of genius, (uvres de Montesquieu, tom. iii. p. 634, 635, quarto edition.)]

62 (return)
[ Tibur, now a suburb, and the summer pleasures of Præneste, were sought after with vows in the Capitol. The entire passage from Florus (l. i. c. 11) can be read with enjoyment and has earned the admiration of a brilliant mind (uvres de Montesquieu, tom. iii. p. 634, 635, quarto edition.)]

63 (return)
[ Ne a feritate Romanorum, sicut fuerant Hostienses, Portuenses, Tusculanenses, Albanenses, Labicenses, et nuper Tiburtini destruerentur, (Matthew Paris, p. 757.) These events are marked in the Annals and Index (the xviiith volume) of Muratori.]

63 (return)
[In times of strife, the Romans, like the people of Ostia, Porto, Tusculum, Alba, Labicum, and recently Tibur, were destroyed, (Matthew Paris, p. 757.) These events are recorded in the Annals and Index (the eighteenth volume) of Muratori.]

64 (return)
[ For the state or ruin of these suburban cities, the banks of the Tyber, &c., see the lively picture of the P. Labat, (Voyage en Espagne et en Italiæ,) who had long resided in the neighborhood of Rome, and the more accurate description of which P. Eschinard (Roma, 1750, in octavo) has added to the topographical map of Cingolani.]

64 (return)
[ For the condition or decline of these suburban cities, the banks of the Tiber, etc., check out the vivid portrayal by P. Labat, (Voyage en Espagne et en Italiæ), who lived near Rome for a long time, and the more precise description that P. Eschinard added to Cingolani's topographical map (Roma, 1750, in octavo).]

65 (return)
[ Labat (tom. iii. p. 233) mentions a recent decree of the Roman government, which has severely mortified the pride and poverty of Tivoli: in civitate Tiburtinâ non vivitur civiliter.]

65 (return)
[ Labat (vol. iii, p. 233) notes a recent decree from the Roman government that has deeply humiliated the pride and hardship of Tivoli: in the city of Tibur, civil life is not being lived.]

66 (return)
[ I depart from my usual method, of quoting only by the date the Annals of Muratori, in consideration of the critical balance in which he has weighed nine contemporary writers who mention the battle of Tusculum, (tom. x. p. 42—44.)]

66 (return)
[I'm stepping away from my usual approach of quoting only by the date in the Annals of Muratori, because of the critical analysis in which he has evaluated nine contemporary writers who mention the battle of Tusculum, (tom. x. p. 42—44.)]

67 (return)
[ Matthew Paris, p. 345. This bishop of Winchester was Peter de Rupibus, who occupied the see thirty-two years, (A.D. 1206—1238.) and is described, by the English historian, as a soldier and a statesman. (p. 178, 399.)]

67 (return)
[Matthew Paris, p. 345. This bishop of Winchester was Peter de Rupibus, who held the position for thirty-two years, (A.D. 1206—1238), and is described by the English historian as both a soldier and a statesman. (p. 178, 399.)]

Ambition is a weed of quick and early vegetation in the vineyard of Christ. Under the first Christian princes, the chair of St. Peter was disputed by the votes, the venality, the violence, of a popular election: the sanctuaries of Rome were polluted with blood; and, from the third to the twelfth century, the church was distracted by the mischief of frequent schisms. As long as the final appeal was determined by the civil magistrate, these mischiefs were transient and local: the merits were tried by equity or favor; nor could the unsuccessful competitor long disturb the triumph of his rival. But after the emperors had been divested of their prerogatives, after a maxim had been established that the vicar of Christ is amenable to no earthly tribunal, each vacancy of the holy see might involve Christendom in controversy and war. The claims of the cardinals and inferior clergy, of the nobles and people, were vague and litigious: the freedom of choice was overruled by the tumults of a city that no longer owned or obeyed a superior. On the decease of a pope, two factions proceeded in different churches to a double election: the number and weight of votes, the priority of time, the merit of the candidates, might balance each other: the most respectable of the clergy were divided; and the distant princes, who bowed before the spiritual throne, could not distinguish the spurious, from the legitimate, idol. The emperors were often the authors of the schism, from the political motive of opposing a friendly to a hostile pontiff; and each of the competitors was reduced to suffer the insults of his enemies, who were not awed by conscience, and to purchase the support of his adherents, who were instigated by avarice or ambition a peaceful and perpetual succession was ascertained by Alexander the Third, 68 who finally abolished the tumultuary votes of the clergy and people, and defined the right of election in the sole college of cardinals. 69 The three orders of bishops, priests, and deacons, were assimilated to each other by this important privilege; the parochial clergy of Rome obtained the first rank in the hierarchy: they were indifferently chosen among the nations of Christendom; and the possession of the richest benefices, of the most important bishoprics, was not incompatible with their title and office. The senators of the Catholic church, the coadjutors and legates of the supreme pontiff, were robed in purple, the symbol of martyrdom or royalty; they claimed a proud equality with kings; and their dignity was enhanced by the smallness of their number, which, till the reign of Leo the Tenth, seldom exceeded twenty or twenty-five persons. By this wise regulation, all doubt and scandal were removed, and the root of schism was so effectually destroyed, that in a period of six hundred years a double choice has only once divided the unity of the sacred college. But as the concurrence of two thirds of the votes had been made necessary, the election was often delayed by the private interest and passions of the cardinals; and while they prolonged their independent reign, the Christian world was left destitute of a head. A vacancy of almost three years had preceded the elevation of George the Tenth, who resolved to prevent the future abuse; and his bull, after some opposition, has been consecrated in the code of the canon law. 70 Nine days are allowed for the obsequies of the deceased pope, and the arrival of the absent cardinals; on the tenth, they are imprisoned, each with one domestic, in a common apartment or conclave, without any separation of walls or curtains: a small window is reserved for the introduction of necessaries; but the door is locked on both sides and guarded by the magistrates of the city, to seclude them from all correspondence with the world. If the election be not consummated in three days, the luxury of their table is contracted to a single dish at dinner and supper; and after the eighth day, they are reduced to a scanty allowance of bread, water, and wine. During the vacancy of the holy see, the cardinals are prohibited from touching the revenues, or assuming, unless in some rare emergency, the government of the church: all agreements and promises among the electors are formally annulled; and their integrity is fortified by their solemn oath and the prayers of the Catholics. Some articles of inconvenient or superfluous rigor have been gradually relaxed, but the principle of confinement is vigorous and entire: they are still urged, by the personal motives of health and freedom, to accelerate the moment of their deliverance; and the improvement of ballot or secret votes has wrapped the struggles of the conclave 71 in the silky veil of charity and politeness. 72 By these institutions the Romans were excluded from the election of their prince and bishop; and in the fever of wild and precarious liberty, they seemed insensible of the loss of this inestimable privilege. The emperor Lewis of Bavaria revived the example of the great Otho. After some negotiation with the magistrates, the Roman people were assembled 73 in the square before St. Peter’s: the pope of Avignon, John the Twenty-second, was deposed: the choice of his successor was ratified by their consent and applause. They freely voted for a new law, that their bishop should never be absent more than three months in the year, and two days’ journey from the city; and that if he neglected to return on the third summons, the public servant should be degraded and dismissed. 74 But Lewis forgot his own debility and the prejudices of the times: beyond the precincts of a German camp, his useless phantom was rejected; the Romans despised their own workmanship; the antipope implored the mercy of his lawful sovereign; 75 and the exclusive right of the cardinals was more firmly established by this unseasonable attack.

Ambition grows quickly and easily in the vineyard of Christ. Under the early Christian rulers, the position of St. Peter was contested through votes, bribery, and violence during a popular election: the sacred places of Rome were stained with blood, and from the third to the twelfth century, the church was troubled by frequent schisms. While the final decision was made by civil authorities, these issues were temporary and localized: the merits were judged by fairness or favoritism; the losing candidate could not long disturb the success of his rival. However, once the emperors lost their powers and it was established that the vicar of Christ is answerable to no earthly court, each time the holy see became vacant, it could drag Christendom into disputes and wars. The claims of the cardinals and lower clergy, as well as nobles and common people, were ambiguous and contentious: the freedom of choice was overshadowed by the chaos of a city that no longer recognized or obeyed a higher authority. When a pope died, two factions often held simultaneous elections in different churches: the quantity and influence of votes, the timing, and the qualifications of the candidates could counterbalance each other. The most respected clergy were divided; and distant princes, who showed respect to the spiritual throne, could not differentiate between the false and the legitimate leader. Emperors frequently caused the schism, motivated by the political goal of supporting either a friendly or hostile pope; each candidate was left to endure the insults of his opponents, who were unrestrained by conscience, while trying to win the support of followers motivated by greed or ambition. A peaceful and permanent method of succession was established by Alexander the Third, 68 who ultimately eliminated the chaotic votes from clergy and people, defining the election rights solely to the college of cardinals. 69 The three orders of bishops, priests, and deacons were regarded equally due to this crucial privilege; the local clergy of Rome gained the highest rank in the hierarchy: they were chosen indiscriminately from across Christendom; and holding the richest benefices and most significant bishoprics did not conflict with their titles and positions. The high-ranking members of the Catholic church, who assisted and represented the supreme pontiff, wore purple, symbolizing martyrdom or royalty; they claimed equal standing with kings; and their status was enhanced by their small number, which, until the reign of Leo the Tenth, rarely exceeded twenty or twenty-five individuals. Through this wise regulation, all doubt and scandal were removed, and the root of schism was effectively eradicated, leading to only one instance of a double election dividing the unity of the sacred college over a span of six hundred years. However, since it was required that two-thirds of the votes be gathered, elections were often delayed by the personal interests and emotions of the cardinals; while they prolonged their individual reign, the Christian world remained without a leader. An almost three-year vacancy preceded the rise of George the Tenth, who aimed to prevent this future problem; and his bull, despite initial opposition, became established in the canon law. 70 Nine days are allotted for the funeral of the deceased pope and for the arrival of absent cardinals; on the tenth day, they are confined, each with one assistant, in a shared room or conclave, without any separation by walls or curtains: a small window is reserved for necessities, but the door is locked on both sides and guarded by city officials, isolating them from all outside communication. If the election isn’t completed in three days, their lavish meals are reduced to a single dish for lunch and dinner; and after the eighth day, they are limited to a meager diet of bread, water, and wine. During the vacancy of the holy see, cardinals are forbidden from accessing revenues or taking charge of the church's governance, except in rare emergencies: all agreements and promises among the electors are formally annulled; their integrity is strengthened by their solemn oath and the prayers of the faithful. Some overly strict or unnecessary rules have been gradually eased, but the principle of confinement remains strong and intact: they are still motivated, by personal concerns for health and freedom, to hasten their release; and improvements in voting methods have shrouded the struggles of the conclave 71 in a gentle veil of charity and politeness. 72 Through these measures, the Romans were excluded from choosing their prince and bishop; and in the excitement of fleeting and uncertain liberty, they appeared oblivious to the loss of this invaluable right. Emperor Lewis of Bavaria brought back the example of the great Otho. After some discussions with the officials, the Roman people gathered 73 in the square before St. Peter’s: the pope of Avignon, John the Twenty-second, was deposed; the selection of his successor was approved by their agreement and cheers. They freely voted for a new law stating that their bishop should never be away for more than three months a year, and no more than a two-day journey from the city; and if he failed to return after the third summons, the public servant should be stripped of rank and let go. 74 But Lewis overlooked his own weakness and the prevailing views of the time: outside of a German camp, his ineffective presence was rejected; the Romans scorned their own creation; the antipope pleaded for the mercy of his rightful sovereign; 75 and the exclusive right of the cardinals was further solidified by this ill-timed challenge.

68 (return)
[ See Mosheim, Institut. Histor. Ecclesiast. p. 401, 403. Alexander himself had nearly been the victim of a contested election; and the doubtful merits of Innocent had only preponderated by the weight of genius and learning which St. Bernard cast into the scale, (see his life and writings.)]

68 (return)
[ See Mosheim, Institut. Histor. Ecclesiast. p. 401, 403. Alexander himself almost became a victim of a disputed election; and the uncertain qualities of Innocent were only tipped in his favor by the influence of genius and knowledge that St. Bernard contributed to the situation, (see his life and writings.)]

69 (return)
[ The origin, titles, importance, dress, precedency, &c., of the Roman cardinals, are very ably discussed by Thomassin, (Discipline de l’Eglise, tom. i. p. 1262—1287;) but their purple is now much faded. The sacred college was raised to the definite number of seventy-two, to represent, under his vicar, the disciples of Christ.]

69 (return)
[ The origin, titles, significance, attire, precedence, etc., of the Roman cardinals are thoroughly discussed by Thomassin, (Discipline de l’Eglise, vol. i, pp. 1262–1287); but their authority has now greatly diminished. The sacred college was established at a fixed number of seventy-two to represent, under his vicar, the disciples of Christ.]

70 (return)
[ See the bull of Gregory X. approbante sacro concilio, in the Sexts of the Canon Law, (l. i. tit. 6, c. 3,) a supplement to the Decretals, which Boniface VIII. promulgated at Rome in 1298, and addressed in all the universities of Europe.]

70 (return)
[ See the papal bull of Gregory X, approved by the sacred council, in the Sexts of Canon Law, (book 1, title 6, chapter 3,) a supplement to the Decretals that Boniface VIII published in Rome in 1298, and sent to all the universities in Europe.]

71 (return)
[ The genius of Cardinal de Retz had a right to paint a conclave, (of 1665,) in which he was a spectator and an actor, (Mémoires, tom. iv. p. 15—57;) but I am at a loss to appreciate the knowledge or authority of an anonymous Italian, whose history (Conclavi de’ Pontifici Romani, in 4to. 1667) has been continued since the reign of Alexander VII. The accidental form of the work furnishes a lesson, though not an antidote, to ambition. From a labyrinth of intrigues, we emerge to the adoration of the successful candidate; but the next page opens with his funeral.]

71 (return)
[ The brilliance of Cardinal de Retz deserved to depict a conclave (of 1665), where he was both a witness and a participant (Mémoires, tom. iv. p. 15—57); however, I'm struggling to understand the insight or credibility of an anonymous Italian historian, whose account (Conclavi de’ Pontifici Romani, in 4to. 1667) has been updated since the reign of Alexander VII. The random structure of this work offers a lesson, though not a remedy, for ambition. From a maze of schemes, we ultimately recognize the worship of the successful candidate; yet the following page reveals his funeral.]

72 (return)
[ The expressions of Cardinal de Retz are positive and picturesque: On y vecut toujours ensemble avec le même respect, et la même civilité que l’on observe dans le cabinet des rois, avec la même politesse qu’on avoit dans la cour de Henri III., avec la même familiarité que l’on voit dans les colleges; avec la même modestie, qui se remarque dans les noviciats; et avec la même charité, du moins en apparence, qui pourroit ètre entre des frères parfaitement unis.]

72 (return)
[ Cardinal de Retz expresses it vividly and clearly: They always lived together with the same respect and civility found in royal courts, the same politeness that was present in the court of Henry III, the same familiarity you see in colleges, the same modesty observed in novitiates, and the same charity, at least on the surface, that could exist between perfectly united brothers.]

73 (return)
[ Richiesti per bando (says John Villani) sanatori di Roma, e 52 del popolo, et capitani de’ 25, e consoli, (consoli?) et 13 buone huomini, uno per rione. Our knowledge is too imperfect to pronounce how much of this constitution was temporary, and how much ordinary and permanent. Yet it is faintly illustrated by the ancient statutes of Rome.]

73 (return)
[ Requested for the decree (says John Villani) were the sanatoria of Rome, and 52 from the people, plus captains of 25, and consuls, (consuls?) and 13 good men, one for each district. Our understanding is too limited to determine how much of this constitution was temporary, and how much was standard and permanent. Still, it is slightly highlighted by the ancient statutes of Rome.]

74 (return)
[ Villani (l. x. c. 68—71, in Muratori, Script. tom. xiii. p. 641—645) relates this law, and the whole transaction, with much less abhorrence than the prudent Muratori. Any one conversant with the darker ages must have observed how much the sense (I mean the nonsense) of superstition is fluctuating and inconsistent.]

74 (return)
[ Villani (l. x. c. 68—71, in Muratori, Script. tom. xiii. p. 641—645) describes this law and the entire event with much less disgust than the careful Muratori. Anyone familiar with the darker ages must have noticed how much the understanding (I mean the misunderstanding) of superstition can vary and be inconsistent.]

75 (return)
[ In the first volume of the Popes of Avignon, see the second original Life of John XXII. p. 142—145, the confession of the antipope p. 145—152, and the laborious notes of Baluze, p. 714, 715.]

75 (return)
[ In the first volume of the Popes of Avignon, see the second original Life of John XXII, pp. 142–145, the confession of the antipope, pp. 145–152, and the detailed notes of Baluze, pp. 714–715.]

Had the election been always held in the Vatican, the rights of the senate and people would not have been violated with impunity. But the Romans forgot, and were forgotten. in the absence of the successors of Gregory the Seventh, who did not keep as a divine precept their ordinary residence in the city and diocese. The care of that diocese was less important than the government of the universal church; nor could the popes delight in a city in which their authority was always opposed, and their person was often endangered. From the persecution of the emperors, and the wars of Italy, they escaped beyond the Alps into the hospitable bosom of France; from the tumults of Rome they prudently withdrew to live and die in the more tranquil stations of Anagni, Perugia, Viterbo, and the adjacent cities. When the flock was offended or impoverished by the absence of the shepherd, they were recalled by a stern admonition, that St. Peter had fixed his chair, not in an obscure village, but in the capital of the world; by a ferocious menace, that the Romans would march in arms to destroy the place and people that should dare to afford them a retreat. They returned with timorous obedience; and were saluted with the account of a heavy debt, of all the losses which their desertion had occasioned, the hire of lodgings, the sale of provisions, and the various expenses of servants and strangers who attended the court. 76 After a short interval of peace, and perhaps of authority, they were again banished by new tumults, and again summoned by the imperious or respectful invitation of the senate. In these occasional retreats, the exiles and fugitives of the Vatican were seldom long, or far, distant from the metropolis; but in the beginning of the fourteenth century, the apostolic throne was transported, as it might seem forever, from the Tyber to the Rhône; and the cause of the transmigration may be deduced from the furious contest between Boniface the Eighth and the king of France. 77 The spiritual arms of excommunication and interdict were repulsed by the union of the three estates, and the privileges of the Gallican church; but the pope was not prepared against the carnal weapons which Philip the Fair had courage to employ. As the pope resided at Anagni, without the suspicion of danger, his palace and person were assaulted by three hundred horse, who had been secretly levied by William of Nogaret, a French minister, and Sciarra Colonna, of a noble but hostile family of Rome. The cardinals fled; the inhabitants of Anagni were seduced from their allegiance and gratitude; but the dauntless Boniface, unarmed and alone, seated himself in his chair, and awaited, like the conscript fathers of old, the swords of the Gauls. Nogaret, a foreign adversary, was content to execute the orders of his master: by the domestic enmity of Colonna, he was insulted with words and blows; and during a confinement of three days his life was threatened by the hardships which they inflicted on the obstinacy which they provoked. Their strange delay gave time and courage to the adherents of the church, who rescued him from sacrilegious violence; but his imperious soul was wounded in the vital part; and Boniface expired at Rome in a frenzy of rage and revenge. His memory is stained with the glaring vices of avarice and pride; nor has the courage of a martyr promoted this ecclesiastical champion to the honors of a saint; a magnanimous sinner, (say the chronicles of the times,) who entered like a fox, reigned like a lion, and died like a dog. He was succeeded by Benedict the Eleventh, the mildest of mankind. Yet he excommunicated the impious emissaries of Philip, and devoted the city and people of Anagni by a tremendous curse, whose effects are still visible to the eyes of superstition. 78

Had the election always taken place in the Vatican, the rights of the Senate and the people wouldn't have been violated without consequence. But the Romans forgot, and were forgotten, in the absence of Gregory the Seventh's successors, who did not follow the divine instruction of keeping their regular residence in the city and diocese. The care for that diocese was less significant than governing the universal church; nor could the popes find joy in a city where their authority was consistently challenged and their lives were often at risk. To escape the persecution of the emperors and the wars in Italy, they fled beyond the Alps into the welcoming embrace of France; from the chaos of Rome, they wisely withdrew to live and die in the calmer surroundings of Anagni, Perugia, Viterbo, and nearby towns. When the flock felt neglected or impoverished due to their shepherd's absence, they were called back by a stern reminder that St. Peter had established his chair not in an obscure village, but in the capital of the world; with a fierce threat that the Romans would march to destroy anyone who dared to offer them refuge. They returned with anxious compliance; and were met with news of a heavy debt caused by their absence, including losses from lodging, food, and various expenses for servants and strangers attending the court. 76 After a brief period of peace, and possibly authority, they were once again expelled by new unrest, and again summoned by the commanding or respectful request of the Senate. In these occasional retreats, the exiled and fugitive popes from the Vatican were rarely gone for long or far from the capital; but at the beginning of the fourteenth century, the apostolic throne was moved, seemingly forever, from the Tiber to the Rhône; and the reason for this move can be traced to the fierce conflict between Boniface the Eighth and the king of France. 77 The spiritual weapons of excommunication and interdict were pushed back by the unity of the three estates and the privileges of the Gallican church; but the pope was not prepared for the physical weapons that Philip the Fair had the audacity to employ. While residing in Anagni, without any sense of danger, his palace and person were attacked by three hundred horsemen, secretly assembled by William of Nogaret, a French minister, and Sciarra Colonna, from a noble but enemy family in Rome. The cardinals fled; the people of Anagni were swayed from their loyalty and gratitude; but the fearless Boniface, unarmed and alone, sat in his chair, waiting, like the ancient conscript fathers, for the swords of the Gauls. Nogaret, a foreign foe, was willing to carry out his master's orders; but faced domestic hostility from Colonna, which led to insults both verbal and physical; during three days of confinement, his life was threatened by the hardships inflicted upon him for his stubbornness. Their strange delay gave time and resolve to his supporters, who rescued him from sacrilegious violence; but his indomitable spirit was deeply wounded; and Boniface died in Rome consumed by fury and revenge. His legacy is tainted by glaring vices of greed and pride; and the bravery of a martyr hasn't elevated this ecclesiastical champion to the status of a saint; a noble sinner, (according to the chronicles of the time,) who came in like a fox, ruled like a lion, and died like a dog. He was succeeded by Benedict the Eleventh, the gentlest of men. Yet he excommunicated the wicked agents of Philip and cursed the city and people of Anagni with a terrible curse, the effects of which are still evident to the eyes of superstition. 78

76 (return)
[ Romani autem non valentes nec volentes ultra suam celare cupiditatem gravissimam, contra papam movere cperunt questionem, exigentes ab eo urgentissime omnia quæ subierant per ejus absentiam damna et jacturas, videlicet in hispitiis locandis, in mercimoniis, in usuris, in redditibus, in provisionibus, et in aliis modis innumerabilibus. Quòd cum audisset papa, præcordialiter ingemuit, et se comperiens muscipulatum, &c., Matt. Paris, p. 757. For the ordinary history of the popes, their life and death, their residence and absence, it is enough to refer to the ecclesiastical annalists, Spondanus and Fleury.]

76 (return)
[The Romans, unable and unwilling to hide their intense desire any longer, decided to raise a serious issue against the pope, urgently demanding from him compensation for all the losses and damages they suffered during his absence, including in the rental of properties, trade, loans, rents, provisions, and countless other ways. When the pope heard this, he sighed deeply and realizing he was trapped, etc., Matt. Paris, p. 757. For the general history of the popes, their lives and deaths, their presence and absence, it suffices to refer to the ecclesiastical historians, Spondanus and Fleury.]

77 (return)
[ Besides the general historians of the church of Italy and of France, we possess a valuable treatise composed by a learned friend of Thuanus, which his last and best editors have published in the appendix (Histoire particulière du grand Différend entre Boniface VIII et Philippe le Bel, par Pierre du Puis, tom. vii. P. xi. p. 61—82.)]

77 (return)
[ In addition to the general historians of the Church in Italy and France, we have a valuable treatise written by a knowledgeable friend of Thuanus, which his latest and finest editors have included in the appendix (Histoire particulière du grand Différend entre Boniface VIII et Philippe le Bel, par Pierre du Puis, tom. vii. P. xi. p. 61—82.)]

78 (return)
[ It is difficult to know whether Labat (tom. iv. p. 53—57) be in jest or in earnest, when he supposes that Anagni still feels the weight of this curse, and that the cornfields, or vineyards, or olive-trees, are annually blasted by Nature, the obsequious handmaid of the popes.]

78 (return)
[It's hard to tell whether Labat (vol. iv, pp. 53–57) is joking or serious when he suggests that Anagni still bears the burden of this curse, and that the cornfields, vineyards, or olive trees are annually ruined by Nature, the obedient servant of the popes.]

Chapter LXIX: State Of Rome From The Twelfth Century.—Part IV.

After his decease, the tedious and equal suspense of the conclave was fixed by the dexterity of the French faction. A specious offer was made and accepted, that, in the term of forty days, they would elect one of the three candidates who should be named by their opponents. The archbishop of Bourdeaux, a furious enemy of his king and country, was the first on the list; but his ambition was known; and his conscience obeyed the calls of fortune and the commands of a benefactor, who had been informed by a swift messenger that the choice of a pope was now in his hands. The terms were regulated in a private interview; and with such speed and secrecy was the business transacted, that the unanimous conclave applauded the elevation of Clement the Fifth. 79 The cardinals of both parties were soon astonished by a summons to attend him beyond the Alps; from whence, as they soon discovered, they must never hope to return. He was engaged, by promise and affection, to prefer the residence of France; and, after dragging his court through Poitou and Gascony, and devouring, by his expense, the cities and convents on the road, he finally reposed at Avignon, 80 which flourished above seventy years 81 the seat of the Roman pontiff and the metropolis of Christendom. By land, by sea, by the Rhône, the position of Avignon was on all sides accessible; the southern provinces of France do not yield to Italy itself; new palaces arose for the accommodation of the pope and cardinals; and the arts of luxury were soon attracted by the treasures of the church. They were already possessed of the adjacent territory, the Venaissin county, 82 a populous and fertile spot; and the sovereignty of Avignon was afterwards purchased from the youth and distress of Jane, the first queen of Naples and countess of Provence, for the inadequate price of fourscore thousand florins. 83 Under the shadow of a French monarchy, amidst an obedient people, the popes enjoyed an honorable and tranquil state, to which they long had been strangers: but Italy deplored their absence; and Rome, in solitude and poverty, might repent of the ungovernable freedom which had driven from the Vatican the successor of St. Peter. Her repentance was tardy and fruitless: after the death of the old members, the sacred college was filled with French cardinals, 84 who beheld Rome and Italy with abhorrence and contempt, and perpetuated a series of national, and even provincial, popes, attached by the most indissoluble ties to their native country.

After his death, the long and steady uncertainty of the conclave was resolved by the cleverness of the French group. A seemingly attractive offer was made and accepted, promising that within forty days, they would elect one of the three candidates proposed by their opponents. The archbishop of Bordeaux, a fierce enemy of his king and country, was the first on the list; however, his ambition was known, and he followed the calls of fortune and the directives of a benefactor, who had learned from a quick messenger that the decision of choosing a pope was now in his hands. The terms were settled in a private meeting, and the deal was done with such speed and secrecy that the entire conclave applauded the elevation of Clement the Fifth. 79 The cardinals from both factions were soon shocked by a call to meet him beyond the Alps; from there, they quickly realized they would never expect to return. He was committed, by promise and affection, to choose France as his residence, and after leading his court through Poitou and Gascony, draining the cities and monasteries along the way with his expenses, he finally settled in Avignon, 80 which thrived for over seventy years 81 as the seat of the Roman pontiff and the center of Christendom. By land, by sea, and by the Rhône, Avignon was accessible from all sides; the southern regions of France rivaled Italy itself; new palaces were built for the pope and cardinals; and luxurious arts were soon drawn in by the church’s wealth. They already controlled the neighboring territory, the County of Venaissin, 82 a densely populated and fertile area; and the sovereignty of Avignon was later purchased from the youth and distress of Jane, the first queen of Naples and countess of Provence, for the insufficient price of eighty thousand florins. 83 Under the protection of a French monarchy, among a submissive population, the popes enjoyed a respectable and peaceful state, something they had long been foreign to: but Italy mourned their absence; and Rome, in isolation and poverty, might have regretted the unmanageable freedom that had driven the successor of St. Peter from the Vatican. Her regret was slow and pointless: after the death of the older members, the sacred college was filled with French cardinals, 84 who looked upon Rome and Italy with disgust and disdain, and continued a line of national, and even provincial, popes, bonded by the strongest ties to their homeland.

79 (return)
[ See, in the Chronicle of Giovanni Villani, (l. viii. c. 63, 64, 80, in Muratori, tom. xiii.,) the imprisonment of Boniface VIII., and the election of Clement V., the last of which, like most anecdotes, is embarrassed with some difficulties.]

79 (return)
[Check out the Chronicle of Giovanni Villani, (book viii, chapters 63, 64, 80, in Muratori, volume xiii,) for details on the imprisonment of Boniface VIII and the election of Clement V. The latter, like many stories, comes with its own set of complications.]

80 (return)
[ The original lives of the eight popes of Avignon, Clement V., John XXII., Benedict XI., Clement VI., Innocent VI., Urban V., Gregory XI., and Clement VII., are published by Stephen Baluze, (Vitæ Paparum Avenionensium; Paris, 1693, 2 vols. in 4to.,) with copious and elaborate notes, and a second volume of acts and documents. With the true zeal of an editor and a patriot, he devoutly justifies or excuses the characters of his countrymen.]

80 (return)
[ The original lives of the eight popes of Avignon, Clement V, John XXII, Benedict XI, Clement VI, Innocent VI, Urban V, Gregory XI, and Clement VII, are published by Stephen Baluze (Vitæ Paparum Avenionensium; Paris, 1693, 2 vols. in 4to) with extensive and detailed notes, along with a second volume of acts and documents. With genuine dedication as an editor and patriot, he earnestly defends or justifies the actions of his fellow countrymen.]

81 (return)
[ The exile of Avignon is compared by the Italians with Babylon, and the Babylonish captivity. Such furious metaphors, more suitable to the ardor of Petrarch than to the judgment of Muratori, are gravely refuted in Baluze’s preface. The abbé de Sade is distracted between the love of Petrarch and of his country. Yet he modestly pleads, that many of the local inconveniences of Avignon are now removed; and many of the vices against which the poet declaims, had been imported with the Roman court by the strangers of Italy, (tom. i. p. 23—28.)]

81 (return)
[ The exile in Avignon is compared by the Italians to Babylon and the Babylonian captivity. Such intense metaphors, better suited to the passion of Petrarch than to the reason of Muratori, are seriously countered in Baluze’s preface. The abbé de Sade is torn between his love for Petrarch and his country. Still, he humbly argues that many of the local issues in Avignon have been resolved; and many of the vices that the poet criticizes were brought in by the Roman court with the Italian outsiders, (tom. i. p. 23—28.)]

82 (return)
[ The comtat Venaissin was ceded to the popes in 1273 by Philip III. king of France, after he had inherited the dominions of the count of Thoulouse. Forty years before, the heresy of Count Raymond had given them a pretence of seizure, and they derived some obscure claim from the xith century to some lands citra Rhodanum, (Valesii Notitia Galliarum, p. 495, 610. Longuerue, Description de la France, tom. i. p. 376—381.)]

82 (return)
[The Comtat Venaissin was given to the popes in 1273 by Philip III, king of France, after he inherited the lands of the Count of Toulouse. Forty years earlier, the heresy of Count Raymond had given them a reason to take control, and they claimed some rights from the 11th century over certain lands on the French side of the Rhône River (Valesii Notitia Galliarum, p. 495, 610. Longuerue, Description de la France, tom. i. p. 376—381.)]

83 (return)
[ If a possession of four centuries were not itself a title, such objections might annul the bargain; but the purchase money must be refunded, for indeed it was paid. Civitatem Avenionem emit.... per ejusmodi venditionem pecuniâ redundates, &c., (iida Vita Clement. VI. in Baluz. tom. i. p. 272. Muratori, Script. tom. iii. P. ii. p. 565.) The only temptation for Jane and her second husband was ready money, and without it they could not have returned to the throne of Naples.]

83 (return)
[If having owned something for four centuries didn't count as a title, those objections could cancel the deal; but the purchase price has to be refunded because it was definitely paid. Civitatem Avenionem was bought.... through this kind of sale, with plenty of money, etc., (see Vita Clement. VI. in Baluz. vol. i. p. 272. Muratori, Script. vol. iii. P. ii. p. 565.) The only lure for Jane and her second husband was cash, and without it, they couldn't have returned to the throne of Naples.]

84 (return)
[ Clement V immediately promoted ten cardinals, nine French and one English, (Vita ivta, p. 63, et Baluz. p. 625, &c.) In 1331, the pope refused two candidates recommended by the king of France, quod xx. Cardinales, de quibus xvii. de regno Franciæ originem traxisse noscuntur in memorato collegio existant, (Thomassin, Discipline de l’Eglise, tom. i. p. 1281.)]

84 (return)
[ Clement V quickly promoted ten cardinals, nine from France and one from England, (Vita ivta, p. 63, et Baluz. p. 625, &c.) In 1331, the pope turned down two candidates suggested by the king of France, stating that among the twenty cardinals, seventeen are known to have originated from the kingdom of France in the mentioned college, (Thomassin, Discipline de l’Eglise, tom. i. p. 1281.)]

The progress of industry had produced and enriched the Italian republics: the æra of their liberty is the most flourishing period of population and agriculture, of manufactures and commerce; and their mechanic labors were gradually refined into the arts of elegance and genius. But the position of Rome was less favorable, the territory less fruitful: the character of the inhabitants was debased by indolence and elated by pride; and they fondly conceived that the tribute of subjects must forever nourish the metropolis of the church and empire. This prejudice was encouraged in some degree by the resort of pilgrims to the shrines of the apostles; and the last legacy of the popes, the institution of the holy year, 85 was not less beneficial to the people than to the clergy. Since the loss of Palestine, the gift of plenary indulgences, which had been applied to the crusades, remained without an object; and the most valuable treasure of the church was sequestered above eight years from public circulation. A new channel was opened by the diligence of Boniface the Eighth, who reconciled the vices of ambition and avarice; and the pope had sufficient learning to recollect and revive the secular games which were celebrated in Rome at the conclusion of every century. To sound without danger the depth of popular credulity, a sermon was seasonably pronounced, a report was artfully scattered, some aged witnesses were produced; and on the first of January of the year thirteen hundred, the church of St. Peter was crowded with the faithful, who demanded the customary indulgence of the holy time. The pontiff, who watched and irritated their devout impatience, was soon persuaded by ancient testimony of the justice of their claim; and he proclaimed a plenary absolution to all Catholics who, in the course of that year, and at every similar period, should respectfully visit the apostolic churches of St. Peter and St. Paul. The welcome sound was propagated through Christendom; and at first from the nearest provinces of Italy, and at length from the remote kingdoms of Hungary and Britain, the highways were thronged with a swarm of pilgrims who sought to expiate their sins in a journey, however costly or laborious, which was exempt from the perils of military service. All exceptions of rank or sex, of age or infirmity, were forgotten in the common transport; and in the streets and churches many persons were trampled to death by the eagerness of devotion. The calculation of their numbers could not be easy nor accurate; and they have probably been magnified by a dexterous clergy, well apprised of the contagion of example: yet we are assured by a judicious historian, who assisted at the ceremony, that Rome was never replenished with less than two hundred thousand strangers; and another spectator has fixed at two millions the total concourse of the year. A trifling oblation from each individual would accumulate a royal treasure; and two priests stood night and day, with rakes in their hands, to collect, without counting, the heaps of gold and silver that were poured on the altar of St. Paul. 86 It was fortunately a season of peace and plenty; and if forage was scarce, if inns and lodgings were extravagantly dear, an inexhaustible supply of bread and wine, of meat and fish, was provided by the policy of Boniface and the venal hospitality of the Romans. From a city without trade or industry, all casual riches will speedily evaporate: but the avarice and envy of the next generation solicited Clement the Sixth 87 to anticipate the distant period of the century. The gracious pontiff complied with their wishes; afforded Rome this poor consolation for his loss; and justified the change by the name and practice of the Mosaic Jubilee. 88 His summons was obeyed; and the number, zeal, and liberality of the pilgrims did not yield to the primitive festival. But they encountered the triple scourge of war, pestilence, and famine: many wives and virgins were violated in the castles of Italy; and many strangers were pillaged or murdered by the savage Romans, no longer moderated by the presence of their bishops. 89 To the impatience of the popes we may ascribe the successive reduction to fifty, thirty-three, and twenty-five years; although the second of these terms is commensurate with the life of Christ. The profusion of indulgences, the revolt of the Protestants, and the decline of superstition, have much diminished the value of the jubilee; yet even the nineteenth and last festival was a year of pleasure and profit to the Romans; and a philosophic smile will not disturb the triumph of the priest or the happiness of the people. 90

The growth of industry had enriched the Italian republics: the era of their freedom was the most prosperous time for population, agriculture, manufacturing, and trade; their labor was gradually refined into the arts of elegance and creativity. However, Rome's situation was less favorable, with less fertile land: the people were affected by laziness and inflated by pride; they foolishly believed that the tribute from their subjects would always sustain the capital of the church and empire. This belief was somewhat fueled by the influx of pilgrims visiting the apostles' shrines; and the final gift of the popes, the institution of the holy year, 85 was as beneficial to the people as it was to the clergy. Since the loss of Palestine, the granting of full indulgences, which had been used for the crusades, remained unfulfilled; and the church's most valuable treasure was kept out of public circulation for over eight years. A new avenue was created by the efforts of Boniface the Eighth, who reconciled ambition and greed; and the pope had enough knowledge to remember and revive the secular games that had been celebrated in Rome at the end of every century. To gauge the depth of public credulity without risk, a well-timed sermon was delivered, a rumor was cleverly spread, and some elderly witnesses were called in; and on January 1st, 1300, St. Peter’s Basilica was packed with the faithful seeking the usual indulgence of the holy time. The pope, who watched and stirred their eager devotion, was soon convinced by the ancient claims of their right; and he announced a full pardon to all Catholics who, throughout that year and during every similar occasion, respectfully visited the apostolic churches of St. Peter and St. Paul. This welcome news spread throughout Christendom; and initially from the nearby areas of Italy, and eventually from far-off kingdoms like Hungary and Britain, the highways were crowded with a throng of pilgrims eager to atone for their sins through a journey, no matter how costly or demanding, that spared them from the dangers of military service. All distinctions of rank, gender, age, or disability were overlooked in the shared excitement; and in the streets and churches, many people were trampled to death by the fervor of their devotion. Counting their numbers was neither easy nor accurate; they were likely exaggerated by a skilled clergy, well aware of the power of example: yet a thoughtful historian present at the event assures us that Rome never welcomed fewer than two hundred thousand visitors; and another eyewitness has estimated the total attendance for the year at two million. A small donation from each person could add up to a king's ransom; and two priests stood day and night, with rakes in their hands, to collect the piles of gold and silver being deposited on St. Paul’s altar without counting. 86 Fortunately, it was a time of peace and abundance; and although fodder was scarce, and inns and lodgings were excessively expensive, a plentiful supply of bread, wine, meat, and fish was made available by Boniface’s policies and the greedy hospitality of the Romans. In a city without trade or industry, all temporary riches quickly vanish: but the greed and jealousy of the next generation prompted Clement the Sixth 87 to push forward the distant festival of the century. The generous pope agreed to their requests, giving Rome this slight consolation for his loss; and justified the change by referring to the name and practice of the Mosaic Jubilee. 88 His summons was followed; and the number, enthusiasm, and generosity of the pilgrims rivaled that of the original festival. But they faced the triple threat of war, disease, and famine: many wives and virgins were assaulted in the castles of Italy; and numerous strangers were robbed or killed by the brutal Romans, who were no longer kept in check by the presence of their bishops. 89 To the impatience of the popes, we can credit the eventual reduction to fifty, thirty-three, and twenty-five years; though the second of these time frames coincided with the life of Christ. The abundance of indulgences, the uprising of the Protestants, and the decline of superstition have greatly reduced the significance of the jubilee; yet even the nineteenth and final festival was a year of joy and profit for the Romans; and a philosophical smile will not overshadow the priests' triumph or the people's happiness. 90

85 (return)
[ Our primitive account is from Cardinal James Caietan, (Maxima Bibliot. Patrum, tom. xxv.;) and I am at a loss to determine whether the nephew of Boniface VIII. be a fool or a knave: the uncle is a much clearer character.]

85 (return)
[ Our basic account comes from Cardinal James Caietan (Maxima Bibliot. Patrum, vol. xxv.), and I can't decide whether Boniface VIII's nephew is a fool or a deceitful person: the uncle is a much clearer character.]

86 (return)
[ See John Villani (l. viii. c. 36) in the xiith, and the Chronicon Astense, in the xith volume (p. 191, 192) of Muratori’s Collection Papa innumerabilem pecuniam ab eisdem accepit, nam duo clerici, cum rastris, &c.]

86 (return)
[ See John Villani (l. viii. c. 36) in the 12th, and the Chronicon Astense, in the 11th volume (p. 191, 192) of Muratori’s Collection received an enormous amount of money from them, for two clerics, with rakes, etc.]

87 (return)
[ The two bulls of Boniface VIII. and Clement VI. are inserted on the Corpus Juris Canonici, Extravagant. (Commun. l. v. tit. ix c 1, 2.)]

87 (return)
[ The two bulls of Boniface VIII and Clement VI are included in the Corpus Juris Canonici, Extravagant. (Commun. l. v. tit. ix c 1, 2.)]

88 (return)
[ The sabbatic years and jubilees of the Mosaic law, (Car. Sigon. de Republica Hebræorum, Opp. tom. iv. l. iii. c. 14, 14, p. 151, 152,) the suspension of all care and labor, the periodical release of lands, debts, servitude, &c., may seem a noble idea, but the execution would be impracticable in a profane republic; and I should be glad to learn that this ruinous festival was observed by the Jewish people.]

88 (return)
[ The sabbatical years and jubilees of the Mosaic law (Car. Sigon. de Republica Hebræorum, Opp. tom. iv. l. iii. c. 14, 14, p. 151, 152) involve a complete break from work and responsibilities, a periodic release of land, debts, servitude, etc. This may seem like a great concept, but implementing it would be impossible in a secular republic. I would love to hear whether this difficult festival was actually practiced by the Jewish people.]

89 (return)
[ See the Chronicle of Matteo Villani, (l. i. c. 56,) in the xivth vol. of Muratori, and the Mémoires sur la Vie de Pétrarque, tom. iii. p. 75—89.]

89 (return)
[ See the Chronicle of Matteo Villani, (l. i. c. 56,) in the 14th volume of Muratori, and the Memoirs on the Life of Petrarch, vol. iii, pp. 75—89.]

90 (return)
[ The subject is exhausted by M. Chais, a French minister at the Hague, in his Lettres Historiques et Dogmatiques, sur les Jubilés et es Indulgences; la Haye, 1751, 3 vols. in 12mo.; an elaborate and pleasing work, had not the author preferred the character of a polemic to that of a philosopher.]

90 (return)
[ The subject is exhausted by M. Chais, a French minister in The Hague, in his Historical and Dogmatic Letters on Jubilees and Indulgences; The Hague, 1751, 3 vols. in 12mo.; an elaborate and engaging work, if only the author had chosen the role of a philosopher over that of a debater.]

In the beginning of the eleventh century, Italy was exposed to the feudal tyranny, alike oppressive to the sovereign and the people. The rights of human nature were vindicated by her numerous republics, who soon extended their liberty and dominion from the city to the adjacent country. The sword of the nobles was broken; their slaves were enfranchised; their castles were demolished; they assumed the habits of society and obedience; their ambition was confined to municipal honors, and in the proudest aristocracy of Venice on Genoa, each patrician was subject to the laws. 91 But the feeble and disorderly government of Rome was unequal to the task of curbing her rebellious sons, who scorned the authority of the magistrate within and without the walls. It was no longer a civil contention between the nobles and plebeians for the government of the state: the barons asserted in arms their personal independence; their palaces and castles were fortified against a siege; and their private quarrels were maintained by the numbers of their vassals and retainers. In origin and affection, they were aliens to their country: 92 and a genuine Roman, could such have been produced, might have renounced these haughty strangers, who disdained the appellation of citizens, and proudly styled themselves the princes, of Rome. 93 After a dark series of revolutions, all records of pedigree were lost; the distinction of surnames was abolished; the blood of the nations was mingled in a thousand channels; and the Goths and Lombards, the Greeks and Franks, the Germans and Normans, had obtained the fairest possessions by royal bounty, or the prerogative of valor. These examples might be readily presumed; but the elevation of a Hebrew race to the rank of senators and consuls is an event without a parallel in the long captivity of these miserable exiles. 94 In the time of Leo the Ninth, a wealthy and learned Jew was converted to Christianity, and honored at his baptism with the name of his godfather, the reigning Pope. The zeal and courage of Peter the son of Leo were signalized in the cause of Gregory the Seventh, who intrusted his faithful adherent with the government of Adrian’s mole, the tower of Crescentius, or, as it is now called, the castle of St. Angelo. Both the father and the son were the parents of a numerous progeny: their riches, the fruits of usury, were shared with the noblest families of the city; and so extensive was their alliance, that the grandson of the proselyte was exalted by the weight of his kindred to the throne of St. Peter. A majority of the clergy and people supported his cause: he reigned several years in the Vatican; and it is only the eloquence of St. Bernard, and the final triumph of Innocence the Second, that has branded Anacletus with the epithet of antipope. After his defeat and death, the posterity of Leo is no longer conspicuous; and none will be found of the modern nobles ambitious of descending from a Jewish stock. It is not my design to enumerate the Roman families which have failed at different periods, or those which are continued in different degrees of splendor to the present time. 95 The old consular line of the Frangipani discover their name in the generous act of breaking or dividing bread in a time of famine; and such benevolence is more truly glorious than to have enclosed, with their allies the Corsi, a spacious quarter of the city in the chains of their fortifications; the Savelli, as it should seem a Sabine race, have maintained their original dignity; the obsolete surname of the Capizucchi is inscribed on the coins of the first senators; the Conti preserve the honor, without the estate, of the counts of Signia; and the Annibaldi must have been very ignorant, or very modest, if they had not descended from the Carthaginian hero. 96

At the start of the eleventh century, Italy faced feudal oppression, which was burdensome for both the rulers and the people. The numerous republics of Italy fought for the rights of human nature and quickly expanded their liberty and power from the cities into the surrounding countryside. The nobles' power was broken; their serfs were freed; their castles were torn down; they adopted social norms and obedience; their aspirations were limited to municipal positions, and even within the proud aristocracy of Venice and Genoa, every patrician had to abide by the laws. 91 However, the weak and disordered government of Rome was unable to control its rebellious citizens, who disregarded the magistrate's authority both inside and outside the walls. It was no longer a struggle between the nobles and the common people for control of the state: the barons used force to assert their personal independence; their palaces and castles were fortified against attacks; and their private feuds were supported by their armies of vassals and retainers. Originally and in spirit, they were outsiders to their own country: 92 and a true Roman, if one had existed, might have rejected these arrogant outsiders, who looked down on the title of citizens and arrogantly referred to themselves as the princes of Rome. 93 After a lengthy period of unrest, all records of lineage were lost; family names were abolished; the blood of different nations mixed in countless ways; and the Goths and Lombards, Greeks and Franks, Germans and Normans, acquired the best lands either by royal favor or through acts of valor. These instances could be easily assumed; however, the rise of a Hebrew lineage to the rank of senators and consuls is an event unmatched in the long suffering of these unfortunate exiles. 94 During the time of Leo IX, a wealthy and educated Jew converted to Christianity and was honored at his baptism with the name of his godfather, the reigning Pope. The zeal and bravery of Peter, Leo’s son, were highlighted in support of Gregory VII, who entrusted him with the governance of Adrian's Mole, the tower of Crescentius, now known as the castle of St. Angelo. Both father and son fathered a large number of descendants: their wealth, gained through usury, was shared with the noblest families in the city; and their connections were so extensive that the grandson of the convert rose to the throne of St. Peter due to his family's influence. Most of the clergy and the public backed his claim: he led for several years in the Vatican; it was only the eloquence of St. Bernard and the eventual victory of Innocent II that branded Anacletus with the title of antipope. After his defeat and death, the lineage of Leo faded from prominence, and no modern nobles can be found wishing to trace their ancestry back to a Jewish heritage. It is not my intent to list the Roman families that have diminished over time or those that continue to exist in various degrees of prominence today. 95 The ancient consular line of the Frangipani reveals their name through the generous act of breaking or sharing bread during a famine; and such kindness is far more honorable than having enclosed a vast part of the city, alongside their allies the Corsi, within the walls of their fortifications; the Savelli, apparently of Sabine origin, have upheld their prestigious status; the now outdated surname of the Capizucchi is found on the coins of the first senators; the Conti retain the title, though not the land, of the counts of Signia; and the Annibaldi must have been either very ignorant or very modest if they did not claim descent from the Carthaginian hero. 96

91 (return)
[ Muratori (Dissert. xlvii.) alleges the Annals of Florence, Padua, Genoa, &c., the analogy of the rest, the evidence of Otho of Frisingen, (de Gest. Fred. I. l. ii. c. 13,) and the submission of the marquis of Este.]

91 (return)
[Muratori (Dissert. xlvii.) claims the Annals of Florence, Padua, Genoa, etc., the similarities with the others, the testimony of Otho of Frisingen (de Gest. Fred. I. l. ii. c. 13), and the agreement of the Marquis of Este.]

92 (return)
[ As early as the year 824, the emperor Lothaire I. found it expedient to interrogate the Roman people, to learn from each individual by what national law he chose to be governed. (Muratori, Dissertat xxii.)]

92 (return)
[Back in 824, Emperor Lothaire I thought it was important to ask the Roman people about the national laws they wanted to be governed by. (Muratori, Dissertat xxii.)]

93 (return)
[ Petrarch attacks these foreigners, the tyrants of Rome, in a declamation or epistle, full of bold truths and absurd pedantry, in which he applies the maxims, and even prejudices, of the old republic to the state of the xivth century, (Mémoires, tom. iii. p. 157—169.)]

93 (return)
[Petrarch criticizes these foreigners, the tyrants of Rome, in a speech or letter packed with bold truths and ridiculous pedantry. He took the principles—and even the biases—of the old republic and applied them to the situation of the 14th century, (Mémoires, tom. iii. p. 157—169.)]

94 (return)
[ The origin and adventures of the Jewish family are noticed by Pagi, (Critica, tom. iv. p. 435, A.D. 1124, No. 3, 4,) who draws his information from the Chronographus Maurigniacensis, and Arnulphus Sagiensis de Schismate, (in Muratori, Script. Ital. tom. iii. P. i. p. 423—432.) The fact must in some degree be true; yet I could wish that it had been coolly related, before it was turned into a reproach against the antipope.]

94 (return)
[ The background and experiences of the Jewish family are mentioned by Pagi, (Critica, vol. iv, p. 435, A.D. 1124, No. 3, 4,) who gathers his information from the Chronographus Maurigniacensis and Arnulphus Sagiensis de Schismate, (in Muratori, Script. Ital. vol. iii, pt. i, p. 423—432.) The fact must be somewhat true; however, I wish it had been told more straightforwardly before it became a criticism against the antipope.]

95 (return)
[ Muratori has given two dissertations (xli. and xlii.) to the names, surnames, and families of Italy. Some nobles, who glory in their domestic fables, may be offended with his firm and temperate criticism; yet surely some ounces of pure gold are of more value than many pounds of base metal.]

95 (return)
[Muratori has written two essays (xli. and xlii.) about the names, surnames, and families of Italy. Some nobles, proud of their family stories, might be upset by his straightforward and calm critique; however, surely a few ounces of pure gold are worth more than many pounds of low-quality metal.]

96 (return)
[ The cardinal of St. George, in his poetical, or rather metrical history of the election and coronation of Boniface VIII., (Muratori Script. Ital. tom. iii. P. i. p. 641, &c.,) describes the state and families of Rome at the coronation of Boniface VIII., (A.D. 1295.)

96 (return)
[ The cardinal of St. George, in his poem, or more accurately his metrical account of the election and coronation of Boniface VIII. (Muratori Script. Ital. tom. iii. P. i. p. 641, &c.), outlines the situation and families of Rome during the coronation of Boniface VIII. (A.D. 1295.)

               Interea titulis redimiti sanguine et armis
               Illustresque viri Romanâ a stirpe trahentes
               Nomen in emeritos tantæ virtutis honores
               Insulerant sese medios festumque colebant
               Aurata fulgente togâ, sociante catervâ.
               Ex ipsis devota domus præstantis ab Ursâ
               Ecclesiæ, vultumque gerens demissius altum
               Festa Columna jocis, necnon Sabellia mitis;
               Stephanides senior, Comites, Annibalica proles,
               Præfectusque urbis magnum sine viribus nomen.
               (l. ii. c. 5, 100, p. 647, 648.)
               Meanwhile, adorned with titles, blood, and arms,
               Distinguished men of Rome, tracing their lineage
               In a display of honor for exceptional virtue,
               Gathered in celebration, wearing their shining golden togas,
               Joined by a crowd. 
               Among them, the devoted home of the prominent Ursâ
               From the Church, with a humble and dignified demeanor,
               Festivities hosted by Columna, along with the gentle Sabellia;
               Senior Stephanides, Comites, the line of Annibalica,
               And the Prefect of the city, with a great name but lacking strength.
               (l. ii. c. 5, 100, p. 647, 648.)

The ancient statutes of Rome (l. iii. c. 59, p. 174, 175) distinguish eleven families of barons, who are obliged to swear in concilio communi, before the senator, that they would not harbor or protect any malefactors, outlaws, &c.—a feeble security!]

The ancient laws of Rome (l. iii. c. 59, p. 174, 175) identify eleven families of barons, who must swear in the common council, before the senator, that they will not shelter or protect any criminals, outlaws, etc.—a weak guarantee!]

But among, perhaps above, the peers and princes of the city, I distinguish the rival houses of Colonna and Ursini, whose private story is an essential part of the annals of modern Rome. I. The name and arms of Colonna 97 have been the theme of much doubtful etymology; nor have the orators and antiquarians overlooked either Trajan’s pillar, or the columns of Hercules, or the pillar of Christ’s flagellation, or the luminous column that guided the Israelites in the desert. Their first historical appearance in the year eleven hundred and four attests the power and antiquity, while it explains the simple meaning, of the name. By the usurpation of Cavæ, the Colonna provoked the arms of Paschal the Second; but they lawfully held in the Campagna of Rome the hereditary fiefs of Zagarola and Colonna; and the latter of these towns was probably adorned with some lofty pillar, the relic of a villa or temple. 98 They likewise possessed one moiety of the neighboring city of Tusculum, a strong presumption of their descent from the counts of Tusculum, who in the tenth century were the tyrants of the apostolic see. According to their own and the public opinion, the primitive and remote source was derived from the banks of the Rhine; 99 and the sovereigns of Germany were not ashamed of a real or fabulous affinity with a noble race, which in the revolutions of seven hundred years has been often illustrated by merit and always by fortune. 100 About the end of the thirteenth century, the most powerful branch was composed of an uncle and six bothers, all conspicuous in arms, or in the honors of the church. Of these, Peter was elected senator of Rome, introduced to the Capitol in a triumphal car, and hailed in some vain acclamations with the title of Cæsar; while John and Stephen were declared marquis of Ancona and count of Romagna, by Nicholas the Fourth, a patron so partial to their family, that he has been delineated in satirical portraits, imprisoned as it were in a hollow pillar. 101 After his decease their haughty behavior provoked the displeasure of the most implacable of mankind. The two cardinals, the uncle and the nephew, denied the election of Boniface the Eighth; and the Colonna were oppressed for a moment by his temporal and spiritual arms. 102 He proclaimed a crusade against his personal enemies; their estates were confiscated; their fortresses on either side of the Tyber were besieged by the troops of St. Peter and those of the rival nobles; and after the ruin of Palestrina or Præneste, their principal seat, the ground was marked with a ploughshare, the emblem of perpetual desolation. Degraded, banished, proscribed, the six brothers, in disguise and danger, wandered over Europe without renouncing the hope of deliverance and revenge. In this double hope, the French court was their surest asylum; they prompted and directed the enterprise of Philip; and I should praise their magnanimity, had they respected the misfortune and courage of the captive tyrant. His civil acts were annulled by the Roman people, who restored the honors and possessions of the Colonna; and some estimate may be formed of their wealth by their losses, of their losses by the damages of one hundred thousand gold florins which were granted them against the accomplices and heirs of the deceased pope. All the spiritual censures and disqualifications were abolished 103 by his prudent successors; and the fortune of the house was more firmly established by this transient hurricane. The boldness of Sciarra Colonna was signalized in the captivity of Boniface, and long afterwards in the coronation of Lewis of Bavaria; and by the gratitude of the emperor, the pillar in their arms was encircled with a royal crown. But the first of the family in fame and merit was the elder Stephen, whom Petrarch loved and esteemed as a hero superior to his own times, and not unworthy of ancient Rome. Persecution and exile displayed to the nations his abilities in peace and war; in his distress he was an object, not of pity, but of reverence; the aspect of danger provoked him to avow his name and country; and when he was asked, “Where is now your fortress?” he laid his hand on his heart, and answered, “Here.” He supported with the same virtue the return of prosperity; and, till the ruin of his declining age, the ancestors, the character, and the children of Stephen Colonna, exalted his dignity in the Roman republic, and at the court of Avignon. II. The Ursini migrated from Spoleto; 104 the sons of Ursus, as they are styled in the twelfth century, from some eminent person, who is only known as the father of their race. But they were soon distinguished among the nobles of Rome, by the number and bravery of their kinsmen, the strength of their towers, the honors of the senate and sacred college, and the elevation of two popes, Celestin the Third and Nicholas the Third, of their name and lineage. 105 Their riches may be accused as an early abuse of nepotism: the estates of St. Peter were alienated in their favor by the liberal Celestin; 106 and Nicholas was ambitious for their sake to solicit the alliance of monarchs; to found new kingdoms in Lombardy and Tuscany; and to invest them with the perpetual office of senators of Rome. All that has been observed of the greatness of the Colonna will likewise redound to the glory of the Ursini, their constant and equal antagonists in the long hereditary feud, which distracted above two hundred and fifty years the ecclesiastical state. The jealously of preeminence and power was the true ground of their quarrel; but as a specious badge of distinction, the Colonna embraced the name of Ghibelines and the party of the empire; the Ursini espoused the title of Guelphs and the cause of the church. The eagle and the keys were displayed in their adverse banners; and the two factions of Italy most furiously raged when the origin and nature of the dispute were long since forgotten. 107 After the retreat of the popes to Avignon they disputed in arms the vacant republic; and the mischiefs of discord were perpetuated by the wretched compromise of electing each year two rival senators. By their private hostilities the city and country were desolated, and the fluctuating balance inclined with their alternate success. But none of either family had fallen by the sword, till the most renowned champion of the Ursini was surprised and slain by the younger Stephen Colonna. 108 His triumph is stained with the reproach of violating the truce; their defeat was basely avenged by the assassination, before the church door, of an innocent boy and his two servants. Yet the victorious Colonna, with an annual colleague, was declared senator of Rome during the term of five years. And the muse of Petrarch inspired a wish, a hope, a prediction, that the generous youth, the son of his venerable hero, would restore Rome and Italy to their pristine glory; that his justice would extirpate the wolves and lions, the serpents and bears, who labored to subvert the eternal basis of the marble column. 109

But among, perhaps above, the nobles and leaders of the city, I identify the rival families of Colonna and Ursini, whose personal history is a vital part of the records of modern Rome. I. The name and arms of Colonna 97 have been the subject of much uncertain word origin; nor have speakers and historians overlooked either Trajan’s pillar, or the columns of Hercules, or the pillar of Christ’s flagellation, or the shining column that guided the Israelites in the desert. Their first notable appearance in the year 1104 confirms both their power and their long history, while it clarifies the straightforward meaning of the name. By taking control of Cavæ, the Colonna sparked the wrath of Paschal the Second; but they rightfully held in the Roman Campagna the inherited fiefs of Zagarola and Colonna; and the latter was likely decorated with some tall pillar, a remnant of a villa or temple. 98 They also owned half of the neighboring city of Tusculum, which strongly suggests their descent from the counts of Tusculum, who were the tyrants of the papal seat in the tenth century. According to both their claims and popular belief, their ancient roots trace back to the banks of the Rhine; 99 and the rulers of Germany were not ashamed of a real or legendary connection with a noble lineage, which over seven hundred years has often been highlighted by talent and always by fortune. 100 At the end of the thirteenth century, the most powerful branch included an uncle and six brothers, all noted for their achievements in battle or church honors. Of these, Peter was elected senator of Rome, introduced to the Capitol in a triumphal car, and celebrated with some empty cheers as Cæsar; while John and Stephen were named marquis of Ancona and count of Romagna by Nicholas the Fourth, who was so supportive of their family that he has been depicted in satirical art, as if trapped in a hollow pillar. 101 After his death, their arrogant behavior drew the ire of the most unforgiving of people. The two cardinals, the uncle and the nephew, rejected the election of Boniface the Eighth; and the Colonna were briefly oppressed by his temporal and spiritual authority. 102 He announced a crusade against his personal adversaries; their properties were seized; their strongholds on either side of the Tiber were besieged by the troops of St. Peter and rival noble forces; and after the destruction of Palestrina or Præneste, their main residence, the land was marked with a plow, a symbol of lasting desolation. Degraded, banished, and outcast, the six brothers wandered across Europe in disguise and danger, without losing hope for deliverance and revenge. In this dual hope, the French court was their safest refuge; they instigated and guided Philip's campaign; and I would commend their nobility, had they shown respect for the misfortune and courage of the captive tyrant. His civic acts were nullified by the Roman populace, who restored the honors and properties of the Colonna; and their wealth can be assessed by their losses, which amounted to damages of one hundred thousand gold florins that were awarded to them against the accomplices and heirs of the deceased pope. All spiritual penalties and disqualifications were lifted 103 by his wise successors; and the fortunes of the family were more firmly established by this brief storm. The boldness of Sciarra Colonna was marked during the captivity of Boniface, and later during the coronation of Lewis of Bavaria; and by the emperor's gratitude, the pillar in their arms was adorned with a royal crown. But the leading figure of the family in name and merit was the elder Stephen, whom Petrarch admired and respected as a hero greater than his own era, and not unworthy of ancient Rome. Persecution and exile revealed his talents in both peace and war; in his hardships, he was seen not as someone to pity, but to respect; the sight of danger urged him to declare his identity and homeland; and when he was asked, “Where is your fortress now?” he placed his hand on his heart and replied, “Here.” He maintained that same strength through the return of better times; and, until the decline of his old age, the forebears, character, and children of Stephen Colonna elevated his status in the Roman republic, and at the court of Avignon. II. The Ursini migrated from Spoleto; 104 they were called the sons of Ursus in the twelfth century, from some distinguished ancestor, who is known only as the father of their line. However, they soon stood out among the Roman nobility, due to their numerous and brave relatives, the strength of their towers, the honors of the senate and holy college, and the elevation of two popes, Celestin the Third and Nicholas the Third, from their name and lineage. 105 Their wealth may be critiqued as an early instance of nepotism: the estates of St. Peter were transferred in their favor by the generous Celestin; 106 and Nicholas ambitiously sought alliances with monarchs for their benefit; aimed to establish new kingdoms in Lombardy and Tuscany; and to grant them the permanent role of senators of Rome. All that has been noted about the greatness of the Colonna will also reflect on the honor of the Ursini, their consistent and equal rivals in the long-standing family feud that disrupted the ecclesiastical state for over two hundred fifty years. The rivalry for dominance and power was the true motive behind their conflict; but as a deceptive mark of distinction, the Colonna adopted the title of Ghibelines and the imperial cause; the Ursini took on the title of Guelphs and the cause of the church. The eagle and the keys were displayed on their opposing banners; and the two factions of Italy raged most fiercely when the origins and nature of the dispute had long been forgotten. 107 After the popes retreated to Avignon, they fought over the vacant republic; and the damages from their disputes were perpetuated by the unfortunate agreement to elect two rival senators each year. Through their private conflicts, the city and countryside were devastated, and the changing balance of power tilted with their alternating victories. But none from either family had fallen by the sword, until the most famous champion of the Ursini was ambushed and killed by the younger Stephen Colonna. 108 His victory is tainted by the shame of breaking the truce; their defeat was cowardly avenged by the murder, in front of the church door, of an innocent boy and his two servants. Yet the triumphant Colonna, alongside an annual colleague, was declared senator of Rome for a period of five years. And the muse of Petrarch inspired a wish, a hope, a prediction, that the noble youth, the son of his esteemed hero, would restore Rome and Italy to their former glory; that his fairness would root out the wolves and lions, the serpents and bears, who sought to undermine the eternal foundation of the marble column. 109

97 (return)
[ It is pity that the Colonna themselves have not favored the world with a complete and critical history of their illustrious house. I adhere to Muratori, (Dissert. xlii. tom. iii. p. 647, 648.)]

97 (return)
[ It's a shame that the Colonna family hasn’t shared a comprehensive and critical history of their distinguished lineage with the world. I agree with Muratori, (Dissert. xlii. tom. iii. p. 647, 648.)]

98 (return)
[ Pandulph. Pisan. in Vit. Paschal. II. in Muratori, Script. Ital. tom. iii. P. i. p. 335. The family has still great possessions in the Campagna of Rome; but they have alienated to the Rospigliosi this original fief of Colonna, (Eschinard, p. 258, 259.)]

98 (return)
[ Pandulph. Pisan. in Vit. Paschal. II. in Muratori, Script. Ital. vol. iii. part i. p. 335. The family still owns a lot of land in the Campagna of Rome; however, they have given up this original fief of Colonna, (Eschinard, p. 258, 259.)]

99 (return)
[ “Te longinqua dedit tellus et pascua Rheni,” says Petrarch; and, in 1417, a duke of Guelders and Juliers acknowledges (Lenfant, Hist. du Concile de Constance, tom. ii. p. 539) his descent from the ancestors of Martin V., (Otho Colonna:) but the royal author of the Memoirs of Brandenburg observes, that the sceptre in his arms has been confounded with the column. To maintain the Roman origin of the Colonna, it was ingeniously supposed (Diario di Monaldeschi, in the Script. Ital. tom. xii. p. 533) that a cousin of the emperor Nero escaped from the city, and founded Mentz in Germany.]

99 (return)
[ “The distant land gave the pastures of the Rhine,” says Petrarch; and in 1417, a duke of Guelders and Juliers acknowledges (Lenfant, Hist. du Concile de Constance, tom. ii. p. 539) his descent from the ancestors of Martin V. (Otho Colonna); however, the royal author of the Memoirs of Brandenburg notes that the scepter in his coat of arms has been confused with the column. To support the Roman origin of the Colonna, it was cleverly suggested (Diario di Monaldeschi, in the Script. Ital. tom. xii. p. 533) that a cousin of Emperor Nero escaped from the city and founded Mainz in Germany.]

100 (return)
[ I cannot overlook the Roman triumph of ovation on Marce Antonio Colonna, who had commanded the pope’s galleys at the naval victory of Lepanto, (Thuan. Hist. l. 7, tom. iii. p. 55, 56. Muret. Oratio x. Opp. tom. i. p. 180—190.)]

100 (return)
[ I can't ignore the Roman triumph of ovation for Marc Antonio Colonna, who led the pope’s galleys to victory at the naval battle of Lepanto, (Thuan. Hist. l. 7, tom. iii. p. 55, 56. Muret. Oratio x. Opp. tom. i. p. 180—190.)]

101 (return)
[ Muratori, Annali d’Italia, tom. x. p. 216, 220.]

101 (return)
[ Muratori, Annali d’Italia, tom. x. p. 216, 220.]

102 (return)
[ Petrarch’s attachment to the Colonna has authorized the abbé de Sade to expatiate on the state of the family in the fourteenth century, the persecution of Boniface VIII., the character of Stephen and his sons, their quarrels with the Ursini, &c., (Mémoires sur Pétrarque, tom. i. p. 98—110, 146—148, 174—176, 222—230, 275—280.) His criticism often rectifies the hearsay stories of Villani, and the errors of the less diligent moderns. I understand the branch of Stephen to be now extinct.]

102 (return)
[ Petrarch's connection to the Colonna family has allowed Abbé de Sade to elaborate on their history in the fourteenth century, the persecution of Boniface VIII, the character of Stephen and his sons, their conflicts with the Ursini, etc. (Mémoires sur Pétrarque, tom. i. p. 98—110, 146—148, 174—176, 222—230, 275—280.) His critiques often correct the hearsay accounts of Villani and the mistakes of less thorough modern writers. I understand that Stephen's branch is now extinct.]

103 (return)
[ Alexander III. had declared the Colonna who adhered to the emperor Frederic I. incapable of holding any ecclesiastical benefice, (Villani, l. v. c. 1;) and the last stains of annual excommunication were purified by Sixtus V., (Vita di Sisto V. tom. iii. p. 416.) Treason, sacrilege, and proscription are often the best titles of ancient nobility.]

103 (return)
[ Alexander III declared that the Colonna family members who supported Emperor Frederick I were unfit to hold any church positions, (Villani, l. v. c. 1;) and the final remnants of annual excommunication were resolved by Sixtus V., (Vita di Sisto V. tom. iii. p. 416.) Treason, sacrilege, and exile are often the most prominent badges of ancient nobility.]

104 (return)
[

104 (__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__)

               ————Vallis te proxima misit,
               Appenninigenæ qua prata virentia sylvæ
               Spoletana metunt armenta gregesque protervi.
               ————The valley sent you here,  
               where the Apennines rise, where the green meadows  
               fear the flocks and herds of the wild Spoletani.

Monaldeschi (tom. xii. Script. Ital. p. 533) gives the Ursini a French origin, which may be remotely true.]

Monaldeschi (vol. xii. Italian Scripts p. 533) suggests that the Ursini have French origins, which might be somewhat accurate.

105 (return)
[ In the metrical life of Celestine V. by the cardinal of St. George (Muratori, tom. iii. P. i. p. 613, &c.,) we find a luminous, and not inelegant, passage, (l. i. c. 3, p. 203 &c.:)—

105 (return)
[ In the poetic life of Celestine V. by the cardinal of St. George (Muratori, vol. iii. Part i. p. 613, &c.,) we come across a bright and rather elegant passage, (l. i. c. 3, p. 203 &c.:)—

               ————genuit quem nobilis Ursæ (Ursi?)
               Progenies, Romana domus, veterataque magnis
               Fascibus in clero, pompasque experta senatûs,
               Bellorumque manû grandi stipata parentum
               Cardineos apices necnon fastigia dudum
               Papatûs iterata tenens.
               ————who was born of the noble Ursa (Ursi?)
               Descendant of a Roman household, established with great
               Honors in the clergy, experienced in the pomp of the Senate,
               Accumulating a significant line of warrior ancestors
               Holding the top positions and also having long held 
               The papal repeated authority.

Muratori (Dissert. xlii. tom. iii.) observes, that the first Ursini pontificate of Celestine III. was unknown: he is inclined to read Ursi progenies.]

Muratori (Dissert. xlii. tom. iii.) notes that the first Ursini pontificate of Celestine III. was not known; he is inclined to read Ursi progenies.

106 (return)
[ Filii Ursi, quondam Clestini papæ nepotes, de bonis ecclesiæ Romanæ ditati, (Vit. Innocent. III. in Muratori, Script. tom. iii. P. i.) The partial prodigality of Nicholas III. is more conspicuous in Villani and Muratori. Yet the Ursini would disdain the nephews of a modern pope.]

106 (return)
[ The Ursini family, once the nephews of Pope Celestine, became wealthy from the resources of the Roman church. (Life of Innocent III in Muratori, Scripts vol. iii, Part i.) The tendency towards extravagance in Nicholas III. is more apparent in Villani and Muratori. However, the Ursini would look down on the nephews of a modern pope.]

107 (return)
[ In his fifty-first Dissertation on the Italian Antiquities, Muratori explains the factions of the Guelphs and Ghibelines.]

107 (return)
[ In his fifty-first Dissertation on Italian Antiquities, Muratori discusses the rival factions of the Guelphs and Ghibelines.]

108 (return)
[ Petrarch (tom. i. p. 222—230) has celebrated this victory according to the Colonna; but two contemporaries, a Florentine (Giovanni Villani, l. x. c. 220) and a Roman, (Ludovico Monaldeschi, p. 532—534,) are less favorable to their arms.]

108 (return)
[Petrarch (vol. i, pp. 222—230) praised this victory according to the Colonna; however, two contemporaries, a Florentine (Giovanni Villani, book x, chapter 220) and a Roman (Ludovico Monaldeschi, pp. 532—534), are less supportive of their efforts.]

109 (return)
[ The abbé de Sade (tom. i. Notes, p. 61—66) has applied the vith Canzone of Petrarch, Spirto Gentil, &c., to Stephen Colonna the younger:

109 (return)
[ The abbé de Sade (vol. i. Notes, pp. 61—66) has related the 18th Canzone of Petrarch, Spirto Gentil, etc., to Stephen Colonna the younger:

               Orsi, lupi, leoni, aquile e serpi
               Al una gran marmorea colexna
               Fanno noja sovente e à se danno.]
               Bears, wolves, lions, eagles, and snakes  
               At a large marble colexna  
               Often make a fuss and cause trouble.  

Chapter LXX: Final Settlement Of The Ecclesiastical State.—Part I.

     Character And Coronation Of Petrarch.—Restoration Of The
     Freedom And Government Of Rome By The Tribune Rienzi.—His
     Virtues And Vices, His Expulsion And Death.—Return Of The
     Popes From Avignon.—Great Schism Of The West.—Reunion Of
     The Latin Church.—Last Struggles Of Roman Liberty.—
     Statutes Of Rome.—Final Settlement Of The Ecclesiastical
     State.
     Character And Coronation Of Petrarch.—Restoration Of The
     Freedom And Government Of Rome By The Tribune Rienzi.—His
     Virtues And Vices, His Expulsion And Death.—Return Of The
     Popes From Avignon.—Great Schism Of The West.—Reunion Of
     The Latin Church.—Last Struggles Of Roman Liberty.—
     Statutes Of Rome.—Final Settlement Of The Ecclesiastical
     State.

In the apprehension of modern times, Petrarch 1 is the Italian songster of Laura and love. In the harmony of his Tuscan rhymes, Italy applauds, or rather adores, the father of her lyric poetry; and his verse, or at least his name, is repeated by the enthusiasm, or affectation, of amorous sensibility. Whatever may be the private taste of a stranger, his slight and superficial knowledge should humbly acquiesce in the judgment of a learned nation; yet I may hope or presume, that the Italians do not compare the tedious uniformity of sonnets and elegies with the sublime compositions of their epic muse, the original wildness of Dante, the regular beauties of Tasso, and the boundless variety of the incomparable Ariosto. The merits of the lover I am still less qualified to appreciate: nor am I deeply interested in a metaphysical passion for a nymph so shadowy, that her existence has been questioned; 2 for a matron so prolific, 3 that she was delivered of eleven legitimate children, 4 while her amorous swain sighed and sung at the fountain of Vaucluse. 5 But in the eyes of Petrarch, and those of his graver contemporaries, his love was a sin, and Italian verse a frivolous amusement. His Latin works of philosophy, poetry, and eloquence, established his serious reputation, which was soon diffused from Avignon over France and Italy: his friends and disciples were multiplied in every city; and if the ponderous volume of his writings 6 be now abandoned to a long repose, our gratitude must applaud the man, who by precept and example revived the spirit and study of the Augustan age. From his earliest youth, Petrarch aspired to the poetic crown. The academical honors of the three faculties had introduced a royal degree of master or doctor in the art of poetry; 7 and the title of poet-laureate, which custom, rather than vanity, perpetuates in the English court, 8 was first invented by the Cæsars of Germany. In the musical games of antiquity, a prize was bestowed on the victor: 9 the belief that Virgil and Horace had been crowned in the Capitol inflamed the emulation of a Latin bard; 10 and the laurel 11 was endeared to the lover by a verbal resemblance with the name of his mistress. The value of either object was enhanced by the difficulties of the pursuit; and if the virtue or prudence of Laura was inexorable, 12 he enjoyed, and might boast of enjoying, the nymph of poetry. His vanity was not of the most delicate kind, since he applauds the success of his own labors; his name was popular; his friends were active; the open or secret opposition of envy and prejudice was surmounted by the dexterity of patient merit. In the thirty-sixth year of his age, he was solicited to accept the object of his wishes; and on the same day, in the solitude of Vaucluse, he received a similar and solemn invitation from the senate of Rome and the university of Paris. The learning of a theological school, and the ignorance of a lawless city, were alike unqualified to bestow the ideal though immortal wreath which genius may obtain from the free applause of the public and of posterity: but the candidate dismissed this troublesome reflection; and after some moments of complacency and suspense, preferred the summons of the metropolis of the world.

In today’s world, Petrarch is known as the Italian poet of Laura and love. In the beauty of his Tuscan verses, Italy celebrates—or rather worships—him as the father of her lyrical poetry; his poems, or at least his name, are repeated by the passion, or pretentiousness, of romantic sentiment. No matter what a foreigner might personally think, their limited understanding should respectfully accept the views of a knowledgeable nation; still, I hope that Italians don't compare the monotonous sameness of his sonnets and elegies to the grand works of their epic poets, the raw originality of Dante, the rhythmic beauty of Tasso, and the endless variety of the unmatched Ariosto. I’m even less equipped to judge the lover's qualities: nor am I particularly interested in a philosophical obsession for a nymph so elusive that her existence has been doubted; for a woman who was so prolific that she bore eleven legitimate children, while her lovestruck admirer sighed and sang at the spring of Vaucluse. But in the eyes of Petrarch and his more serious peers, his love was a transgression, and Italian poetry was seen as trivial fun. His Latin writings on philosophy, poetry, and eloquence earned him a serious reputation, which quickly spread from Avignon throughout France and Italy: his friends and followers multiplied in every city; and while his extensive works may now rest in obscurity, we must thank the man who revived the spirit and scholarship of the Augustan age through his teachings and example. From a young age, Petrarch aimed for the poetic crown. The academic accolades of the three faculties led to a prestigious title of master or doctor in the art of poetry; and the title of poet-laureate, maintained by tradition rather than arrogance in the English court, was first created by the German emperors. In the musical contests of ancient times, a prize was awarded to the winner: the belief that Virgil and Horace had been crowned at the Capitol fueled the ambition of a Latin poet; and the laurel was cherished by lovers for its similarity to the name of their beloved. The worth of both the prize and the pursuit was heightened by the challenges involved; and even if Laura’s virtue or caution was unyielding, he savored—and could boast of savoring—the muse of poetry. His pride wasn’t the most subtle, as he celebrated his own achievements; his name was well-known; his friends were supportive; and he overcame the open or hidden animosity from envy and bias through the skill of persevering merit. At thirty-six, he was urged to accept what he desired; and on that same day, in the solitude of Vaucluse, he received a solemn invitation from both the senate of Rome and the University of Paris. The knowledge of a theological school and the ignorance of a lawless city were equally unworthy to grant the ideal yet eternal wreath that genius might earn from the genuine adoration of the public and future generations: but the candidate dismissed this annoying thought; and after a few moments of self-satisfaction and anticipation, chose the invitation from the capital of the world.

1 (return)
[ The Mémoires sur la Vie de François Pétrarque, (Amsterdam, 1764, 1767, 3 vols. in 4to.,) form a copious, original, and entertaining work, a labor of love, composed from the accurate study of Petrarch and his contemporaries; but the hero is too often lost in the general history of the age, and the author too often languishes in the affectation of politeness and gallantry. In the preface to his first volume, he enumerates and weighs twenty Italian biographers, who have professedly treated of the same subject.]

1 (return)
[ The Mémoires sur la Vie de François Pétrarque, (Amsterdam, 1764, 1767, 3 vols. in 4to.,) is a detailed, original, and engaging work, crafted with care from a thorough study of Petrarch and his contemporaries; however, the main subject often gets overshadowed by the broader history of the time, and the author frequently gets lost in a show of politeness and charm. In the preface of the first volume, he lists and evaluates twenty Italian biographers who have specifically focused on the same topic.]

2 (return)
[ The allegorical interpretation prevailed in the xvth century; but the wise commentators were not agreed whether they should understand by Laura, religion, or virtue, or the blessed virgin, or————. See the prefaces to the first and second volume.]

2 (return)
[ The allegorical interpretation was dominant in the 15th century; however, the knowledgeable commentators disagreed on whether Laura represented religion, virtue, the blessed virgin, or something else altogether. See the prefaces to the first and second volume.]

3 (return)
[ Laure de Noves, born about the year 1307, was married in January 1325, to Hugues de Sade, a noble citizen of Avignon, whose jealousy was not the effect of love, since he married a second wife within seven months of her death, which happened the 6th of April, 1348, precisely one-and-twenty years after Petrarch had seen and loved her.]

3 (return)
[Laure de Noves, who was born around 1307, got married in January 1325 to Hugues de Sade, a wealthy citizen of Avignon. His jealousy didn’t stem from love, since he married another woman just seven months after her death on April 6, 1348, exactly twenty-one years after Petrarch had seen and fallen in love with her.]

4 (return)
[ Corpus crebris partubus exhaustum: from one of these is issued, in the tenth degree, the abbé de Sade, the fond and grateful biographer of Petrarch; and this domestic motive most probably suggested the idea of his work, and urged him to inquire into every circumstance that could affect the history and character of his grandmother, (see particularly tom. i. p. 122—133, notes, p. 7—58, tom. ii. p. 455—495 not. p. 76—82.)]

4 (return)
[ Exhausted from frequent childbirth: from one of these, in the tenth generation, comes the abbé de Sade, the devoted and appreciative biographer of Petrarch; and this personal connection likely inspired the idea for his work and motivated him to investigate every detail that could impact the history and character of his grandmother, (see especially vol. i, pp. 122–133, notes, pp. 7–58, vol. ii, pp. 455–495, notes, pp. 76–82.)]

5 (return)
[ Vaucluse, so familiar to our English travellers, is described from the writings of Petrarch, and the local knowledge of his biographer, (Mémoires, tom. i. p. 340—359.) It was, in truth, the retreat of a hermit; and the moderns are much mistaken, if they place Laura and a happy lover in the grotto.]

5 (return)
[ Vaucluse, well-known to our English travelers, is described from the writings of Petrarch and the local knowledge of his biographer, (Mémoires, tom. i. p. 340—359.) It was truly the hideaway of a hermit; and modern people are greatly mistaken if they imagine Laura and a happy lover in the grotto.]

6 (return)
[ Of 1250 pages, in a close print, at Basil in the xvith century, but without the date of the year. The abbé de Sade calls aloud for a new edition of Petrarch’s Latin works; but I much doubt whether it would redound to the profit of the bookseller, or the amusement of the public.]

6 (return)
[Of 1250 pages, densely printed, published in Basel in the 16th century, but without the year listed. The Abbé de Sade is calling for a new edition of Petrarch’s Latin works; however, I seriously doubt it would benefit the bookseller or entertain the public.]

7 (return)
[ Consult Selden’s Titles of Honor, in his works, (vol. iii. p. 457—466.) A hundred years before Petrarch, St. Francis received the visit of a poet, qui ab imperatore fuerat coronatus et exinde rex versuum dictus.]

7 (return)
[ Consult Selden’s Titles of Honor, in his works, (vol. iii. p. 457—466.) A hundred years before Petrarch, St. Francis had a visit from a poet, who had been crowned by the emperor and from that point was called the king of verses.]

8 (return)
[ From Augustus to Louis, the muse has too often been false and venal: but I much doubt whether any age or court can produce a similar establishment of a stipendiary poet, who in every reign, and at all events, is bound to furnish twice a year a measure of praise and verse, such as may be sung in the chapel, and, I believe, in the presence, of the sovereign. I speak the more freely, as the best time for abolishing this ridiculous custom is while the prince is a man of virtue and the poet a man of genius.]

8 (return)
[ From Augustus to Louis, the inspiration has often been insincere and corrupt: but I seriously doubt if any era or royal court can create a similar situation of a paid poet, who in every reign, and under all circumstances, is obligated to provide twice a year a dose of praise and poetry, suitable for singing in the chapel, and, I believe, in front of the king. I'm speaking more openly because the best time to get rid of this ridiculous tradition is while the ruler is a virtuous man and the poet is a talented one.]

9 (return)
[ Isocrates (in Panegyrico, tom. i. p. 116, 117, edit. Battie, Cantab. 1729) claims for his native Athens the glory of first instituting and recommending the alwnaV—kai ta aqla megista—mh monon tacouV kai rwmhV, alla kai logwn kai gnwmhV. The example of the Panathenæa was imitated at Delphi; but the Olympic games were ignorant of a musical crown, till it was extorted by the vain tyranny of Nero, (Sueton. in Nerone, c. 23; Philostrat. apud Casaubon ad locum; Dion Cassius, or Xiphilin, l. lxiii. p. 1032, 1041. Potter’s Greek Antiquities, vol. i. p. 445, 450.)]

9 (return)
[Isocrates (in Panegyrico, tom. i. p. 116, 117, edit. Battie, Cantab. 1729) asserts that his hometown of Athens deserves the honor of being the first to establish and promote the competitions—not only in physical strength and courage but also in words and wisdom. The example of the Panathenæa was copied at Delphi; however, the Olympic games were unaware of a musical crown until it was demanded by the vain tyranny of Nero, (Sueton. in Nerone, c. 23; Philostrat. apud Casaubon ad locum; Dion Cassius, or Xiphilin, l. lxiii. p. 1032, 1041. Potter’s Greek Antiquities, vol. i. p. 445, 450.)]

10 (return)
[ The Capitoline games (certamen quinquenale, musicum, equestre, gymnicum) were instituted by Domitian (Sueton. c. 4) in the year of Christ 86, (Censorin. de Die Natali, c. 18, p. 100, edit. Havercamp.) and were not abolished in the ivth century, (Ausonius de Professoribus Burdegal. V.) If the crown were given to superior merit, the exclusion of Statius (Capitolia nostræ inficiata lyræ, Sylv. l. iii. v. 31) may do honor to the games of the Capitol; but the Latin poets who lived before Domitian were crowned only in the public opinion.]

10 (return)
[ The Capitoline games (certamen quinquenale, musicum, equestre, gymnicum) were started by Domitian in the year 86 AD, and they weren't discontinued until the 4th century. If the crown were awarded for real merit, then Statius's exclusion might actually enhance the reputation of the Capitol games; however, Latin poets who lived before Domitian were recognized only by public opinion.]

11 (return)
[ Petrarch and the senators of Rome were ignorant that the laurel was not the Capitoline, but the Delphic crown, (Plin. Hist. Natur p. 39. Hist. Critique de la République des Lettres, tom. i. p. 150—220.) The victors in the Capitol were crowned with a garland of oak eaves, (Martial, l. iv. epigram 54.)]

11 (return)
[Petrarch and the senators of Rome didn’t realize that the laurel was not the Capitoline crown, but rather the Delphic crown, (Plin. Hist. Natur p. 39. Hist. Critique de la République des Lettres, tom. i. p. 150—220.) The winners in the Capitol were crowned with a wreath of oak leaves, (Martial, l. iv. epigram 54.)]

12 (return)
[ The pious grandson of Laura has labored, and not without success, to vindicate her immaculate chastity against the censures of the grave and the sneers of the profane, (tom. ii. notes, p. 76—82.)]

12 (return)
[ Laura's devoted grandson has worked hard, and not without success, to defend her pure reputation against the criticisms of the serious and the mockery of the irreverent, (tom. ii. notes, p. 76—82.)]

The ceremony of his coronation 13 was performed in the Capitol, by his friend and patron the supreme magistrate of the republic. Twelve patrician youths were arrayed in scarlet; six representatives of the most illustrious families, in green robes, with garlands of flowers, accompanied the procession; in the midst of the princes and nobles, the senator, count of Anguillara, a kinsman of the Colonna, assumed his throne; and at the voice of a herald Petrarch arose. After discoursing on a text of Virgil, and thrice repeating his vows for the prosperity of Rome, he knelt before the throne, and received from the senator a laurel crown, with a more precious declaration, “This is the reward of merit.” The people shouted, “Long life to the Capitol and the poet!” A sonnet in praise of Rome was accepted as the effusion of genius and gratitude; and after the whole procession had visited the Vatican, the profane wreath was suspended before the shrine of St. Peter. In the act or diploma 14 which was presented to Petrarch, the title and prerogatives of poet-laureate are revived in the Capitol, after the lapse of thirteen hundred years; and he receives the perpetual privilege of wearing, at his choice, a crown of laurel, ivy, or myrtle, of assuming the poetic habit, and of teaching, disputing, interpreting, and composing, in all places whatsoever, and on all subjects of literature. The grant was ratified by the authority of the senate and people; and the character of citizen was the recompense of his affection for the Roman name. They did him honor, but they did him justice. In the familiar society of Cicero and Livy, he had imbibed the ideas of an ancient patriot; and his ardent fancy kindled every idea to a sentiment, and every sentiment to a passion. The aspect of the seven hills and their majestic ruins confirmed these lively impressions; and he loved a country by whose liberal spirit he had been crowned and adopted. The poverty and debasement of Rome excited the indignation and pity of her grateful son; he dissembled the faults of his fellow-citizens; applauded with partial fondness the last of their heroes and matrons; and in the remembrance of the past, in the hopes of the future, was pleased to forget the miseries of the present time. Rome was still the lawful mistress of the world: the pope and the emperor, the bishop and general, had abdicated their station by an inglorious retreat to the Rhône and the Danube; but if she could resume her virtue, the republic might again vindicate her liberty and dominion. Amidst the indulgence of enthusiasm and eloquence, 15 Petrarch, Italy, and Europe, were astonished by a revolution which realized for a moment his most splendid visions. The rise and fall of the tribune Rienzi will occupy the following pages: 16 the subject is interesting, the materials are rich, and the glance of a patriot bard 17 will sometimes vivify the copious, but simple, narrative of the Florentine, 18 and more especially of the Roman, historian. 19

The ceremony of his coronation 13 took place in the Capitol, conducted by his friend and supporter, the leading official of the republic. Twelve young patricians were dressed in scarlet; six representatives from the most notable families wore green robes and floral garlands, accompanying the procession. Among the princes and nobles, the senator, count of Anguillara, a relative of the Colonna, took his throne; and at the sound of a herald, Petrarch stood up. After discussing a passage from Virgil and repeating his vows for Rome's prosperity three times, he knelt before the throne and received a laurel crown from the senator along with a more precious declaration, “This is the reward of merit.” The crowd cheered, “Long life to the Capitol and the poet!” A sonnet celebrating Rome was accepted as an expression of creativity and gratitude; and after the entire procession visited the Vatican, the laurel wreath was hung before the shrine of St. Peter. In the act or diploma 14 presented to Petrarch, the title and privileges of poet-laureate were revived in the Capitol after thirteen hundred years, granting him the lifelong right to wear, at his discretion, a crown of laurel, ivy, or myrtle, to adopt the poetic attire, and to teach, debate, interpret, and compose in any place and on any literary subject. The grant was confirmed by the authority of the senate and people, and the title of citizen was the reward for his love of the Roman name. They honored him, but they justly recognized his contributions. In the close company of Cicero and Livy, he absorbed the thoughts of an ancient patriot; and his passionate imagination transformed every idea into a feeling, and every feeling into a passion. The sight of the seven hills and their grand ruins strengthened these vivid impressions, and he cherished a country that had crowned and embraced him with its generous spirit. The poverty and degradation of Rome evoked both indignation and sympathy in her grateful son; he overlooked the faults of his fellow citizens; celebrated with biased affection the last of their heroes and heroines; and in reflecting on the past and hoping for the future, he was happy to forget the hardships of the present. Rome remained the rightful leader of the world: the pope and the emperor, the bishop and the general, had retreated disgracefully to the Rhône and the Danube; but if she could reclaim her integrity, the republic might once again assert her freedom and power. Amidst the outpouring of enthusiasm and oratory, 15 Petrarch, Italy, and Europe were amazed by a revolution that briefly brought his most glorious visions to life. The rise and fall of the tribune Rienzi will be detailed in the following pages: 16 the subject is compelling, the material is plentiful, and the perspective of a patriotic bard 17 will occasionally invigorate the rich, yet straightforward narrative of the Florentine, 18 and especially of the Roman historian. 19

13 (return)
[ The whole process of Petrarch’s coronation is accurately described by the abbé de Sade, (tom. i. p. 425—435, tom. ii. p. 1—6, notes, p. 1—13,) from his own writings, and the Roman diary of Ludovico, Monaldeschi, without mixing in this authentic narrative the more recent fables of Sannuccio Delbene.]

13 (return)
[ The entire process of Petrarch’s coronation is precisely detailed by Abbé de Sade, (vol. i, pp. 425—435, vol. ii, pp. 1—6, notes, pp. 1—13,) based on his own writings and the Roman diary of Ludovico Monaldeschi, without incorporating the more recent myths from Sannuccio Delbene into this authentic account.]

14 (return)
[ The original act is printed among the Pieces Justificatives in the Mémoires sur Pétrarque, tom. iii. p. 50—53.]

14 (return)
[ The original document is printed among the Supporting Documents in the Memoirs on Petrarch, vol. iii, pp. 50—53.]

15 (return)
[ To find the proofs of his enthusiasm for Rome, I need only request that the reader would open, by chance, either Petrarch, or his French biographer. The latter has described the poet’s first visit to Rome, (tom. i. p. 323—335.) But in the place of much idle rhetoric and morality, Petrarch might have amused the present and future age with an original account of the city and his coronation.]

15 (return)
[ To see how much he loved Rome, all I need to do is ask the reader to check out either Petrarch or his French biographer. The biographer describes the poet’s first trip to Rome, (tom. i. p. 323—335.) However, instead of just writing a lot of empty words and morals, Petrarch could have entertained both his contemporaries and future readers with a unique description of the city and his coronation.]

16 (return)
[ It has been treated by the pen of a Jesuit, the P. de Cerceau whose posthumous work (Conjuration de Nicolas Gabrini, dit de Rienzi, Tyran de Rome, en 1347) was published at Paris, 1748, in 12mo. I am indebted to him for some facts and documents in John Hocsemius, canon of Liege, a contemporary historian, (Fabricius Bibliot. Lat. Med. Ævi, tom. iii. p. 273, tom. iv. p. 85.)]

16 (return)
[ This was written by a Jesuit, P. de Cerceau, whose posthumous work (Conjuration de Nicolas Gabrini, dit de Rienzi, Tyran de Rome, en 1347) was published in Paris in 1748, in 12mo. I owe him some facts and documents in John Hocsemius, canon of Liege, a contemporary historian (Fabricius Bibliot. Lat. Med. Ævi, tom. iii. p. 273, tom. iv. p. 85.)]

17 (return)
[ The abbé de Sade, who so freely expatiates on the history of the xivth century, might treat, as his proper subject, a revolution in which the heart of Petrarch was so deeply engaged, (Mémoires, tom. ii. p. 50, 51, 320—417, notes, p. 70—76, tom. iii. p. 221—243, 366—375.) Not an idea or a fact in the writings of Petrarch has probably escaped him.]

17 (return)
[ The abbot de Sade, who talks so freely about the history of the 14th century, could focus on a revolution in which Petrarch was so deeply involved, (Mémoires, vol. ii, pp. 50, 51, 320–417, notes, pp. 70–76, vol. iii, pp. 221–243, 366–375.) It’s likely that not a single idea or fact in Petrarch's writings has slipped past him.]

18 (return)
[ Giovanni Villani, l. xii. c. 89, 104, in Muratori, Rerum Italicarum Scriptores, tom. xiii. p. 969, 970, 981—983.]

18 (return)
[ Giovanni Villani, l. xii. c. 89, 104, in Muratori, Rerum Italicarum Scriptores, tom. xiii. p. 969, 970, 981—983.]

19 (return)
[ In his third volume of Italian antiquities, (p. 249—548,) Muratori has inserted the Fragmenta Historiæ Romanæ ab Anno 1327 usque ad Annum 1354, in the original dialect of Rome or Naples in the xivth century, and a Latin version for the benefit of strangers. It contains the most particular and authentic life of Cola (Nicholas) di Rienzi; which had been printed at Bracciano, 1627, in 4to., under the name of Tomaso Fortifiocca, who is only mentioned in this work as having been punished by the tribune for forgery. Human nature is scarcely capable of such sublime or stupid impartiality: but whosoever in the author of these Fragments, he wrote on the spot and at the time, and paints, without design or art, the manners of Rome and the character of the tribune. * Note: Since the publication of my first edition of Gibbon, some new and very remarkable documents have been brought to light in a life of Nicolas Rienzi,—Cola di Rienzo und seine Zeit,—by Dr. Felix Papencordt. The most important of these documents are letters from Rienzi to Charles the Fourth, emperor and king of Bohemia, and to the archbishop of Praque; they enter into the whole history of his adventurous career during its first period, and throw a strong light upon his extraordinary character. These documents were first discovered and made use of, to a certain extent, by Pelzel, the historian of Bohemia. The originals have disappeared, but a copy made by Pelzel for his own use is now in the library of Count Thun at Teschen. There seems no doubt of their authenticity. Dr. Papencordt has printed the whole in his Urkunden, with the exception of one long theological paper.—M. 1845.]

19 (return)
[ In his third volume of Italian antiquities, (p. 249—548,) Muratori has included the Fragmenta Historiæ Romanæ ab Anno 1327 usque ad Annum 1354, in the original dialect of Rome or Naples from the 14th century, along with a Latin version for the benefit of non-Italian speakers. It offers the most detailed and authentic account of Cola (Nicholas) di Rienzi, which was published in Bracciano, 1627, in 4to., under the name of Tomaso Fortifiocca, who is only mentioned in this work as having been punished by the tribune for forgery. Human nature is hardly capable of such profound or foolish impartiality: but whoever wrote these Fragments did so on-site and in real-time, capturing without intent or art the customs of Rome and the character of the tribune. * Note: Since the publication of my first edition of Gibbon, some new and very important documents have come to light in a biography of Nicholas Rienzi,—Cola di Rienzo und seine Zeit,—by Dr. Felix Papencordt. The most significant of these documents are letters from Rienzi to Charles the Fourth, emperor and king of Bohemia, and to the archbishop of Prague; they detail the entire history of his adventurous career during its early phase and shed considerable light on his remarkable character. These documents were first discovered and partially utilized by Pelzel, the historian of Bohemia. The originals have vanished, but a copy made by Pelzel for his own reference is now in the library of Count Thun at Teschen. Their authenticity seems beyond doubt. Dr. Papencordt has published the entire collection in his Urkunden, except for one long theological paper.—M. 1845.]

In a quarter of the city which was inhabited only by mechanics and Jews, the marriage of an innkeeper and a washer woman produced the future deliverer of Rome. 20 201 From such parents Nicholas Rienzi Gabrini could inherit neither dignity nor fortune; and the gift of a liberal education, which they painfully bestowed, was the cause of his glory and untimely end. The study of history and eloquence, the writings of Cicero, Seneca, Livy, Cæsar, and Valerius Maximus, elevated above his equals and contemporaries the genius of the young plebeian: he perused with indefatigable diligence the manuscripts and marbles of antiquity; loved to dispense his knowledge in familiar language; and was often provoked to exclaim, “Where are now these Romans? their virtue, their justice, their power? why was I not born in those happy times?” 21 When the republic addressed to the throne of Avignon an embassy of the three orders, the spirit and eloquence of Rienzi recommended him to a place among the thirteen deputies of the commons. The orator had the honor of haranguing Pope Clement the Sixth, and the satisfaction of conversing with Petrarch, a congenial mind: but his aspiring hopes were chilled by disgrace and poverty and the patriot was reduced to a single garment and the charity of the hospital. 211 From this misery he was relieved by the sense of merit or the smile of favor; and the employment of apostolic notary afforded him a daily stipend of five gold florins, a more honorable and extensive connection, and the right of contrasting, both in words and actions, his own integrity with the vices of the state. The eloquence of Rienzi was prompt and persuasive: the multitude is always prone to envy and censure: he was stimulated by the loss of a brother and the impunity of the assassins; nor was it possible to excuse or exaggerate the public calamities. The blessings of peace and justice, for which civil society has been instituted, were banished from Rome: the jealous citizens, who might have endured every personal or pecuniary injury, were most deeply wounded in the dishonor of their wives and daughters: 22 they were equally oppressed by the arrogance of the nobles and the corruption of the magistrates; 221 and the abuse of arms or of laws was the only circumstance that distinguished the lions from the dogs and serpents of the Capitol. These allegorical emblems were variously repeated in the pictures which Rienzi exhibited in the streets and churches; and while the spectators gazed with curious wonder, the bold and ready orator unfolded the meaning, applied the satire, inflamed their passions, and announced a distant hope of comfort and deliverance. The privileges of Rome, her eternal sovereignty over her princes and provinces, was the theme of his public and private discourse; and a monument of servitude became in his hands a title and incentive of liberty. The decree of the senate, which granted the most ample prerogatives to the emperor Vespasian, had been inscribed on a copper plate still extant in the choir of the church of St. John Lateran. 23 A numerous assembly of nobles and plebeians was invited to this political lecture, and a convenient theatre was erected for their reception. The notary appeared in a magnificent and mysterious habit, explained the inscription by a version and commentary, 24 and descanted with eloquence and zeal on the ancient glories of the senate and people, from whom all legal authority was derived. The supine ignorance of the nobles was incapable of discerning the serious tendency of such representations: they might sometimes chastise with words and blows the plebeian reformer; but he was often suffered in the Colonna palace to amuse the company with his threats and predictions; and the modern Brutus 25 was concealed under the mask of folly and the character of a buffoon. While they indulged their contempt, the restoration of the good estate, his favorite expression, was entertained among the people as a desirable, a possible, and at length as an approaching, event; and while all had the disposition to applaud, some had the courage to assist, their promised deliverer.

In a part of the city where only mechanics and Jews lived, the marriage of an innkeeper and a washerwoman led to the birth of the future savior of Rome. 20 201 Nicholas Rienzi Gabrini couldn't expect to inherit any dignity or wealth from such parents; the struggle they went through to give him a good education brought him both glory and an early demise. His study of history and rhetoric, pouring over the works of Cicero, Seneca, Livy, Caesar, and Valerius Maximus, set him apart from his peers and contemporaries. He tirelessly examined the manuscripts and sculptures of the past, enjoyed sharing his knowledge in simple terms, and often exclaimed, “Where are the Romans now? Their virtue, their justice, their power? Why wasn’t I born in those fortunate times?” 21 When the republic sent a delegation made up of three orders to the papal court in Avignon, Rienzi’s spirit and eloquence earned him a spot among the thirteen representatives of the common people. The orator had the privilege of addressing Pope Clement the Sixth and had the pleasure of conversing with Petrarch, a kindred spirit; but his lofty aspirations were dampened by disgrace and poverty, leaving the patriot with only one garment and reliant on the charity of the hospital. 211 From this hardship, he found relief in either his sense of worth or the favor he received; and his role as an apostolic notary provided him with a daily wage of five gold florins, a more respectable and far-reaching connection, and the opportunity to contrast his own integrity with the vices of the government, both through words and actions. Rienzi's eloquence was quick and convincing: the masses are always inclined to envy and criticize; he was driven by the loss of a brother and the unpunished assassins; and it was impossible to excuse or downplay the public disasters. The blessings of peace and justice, which civil society was supposed to provide, were absent from Rome: the envious citizens, who might have tolerated personal or financial injuries, were the most hurt by the dishonor of their wives and daughters: 22 they were equally burdened by the arrogance of the nobles and the corruption of the magistrates; 221 and the misuse of arms or laws was the only thing that separated the lions from the dogs and snakes of the Capitol. These allegorical symbols were depicted in the artwork that Rienzi displayed in the streets and churches; and while onlookers watched with curious amazement, the bold and articulate orator explained the meaning, pointed out the satire, ignited their passions, and hinted at a distant hope for comfort and freedom. The privileges of Rome, her eternal dominance over her princes and provinces, were central to his public and private speeches; and a monument of servitude became, in his hands, a symbol and motivation for liberty. The senate's decree that granted extensive privileges to Emperor Vespasian was inscribed on a copper plate that still exists in the choir of St. John Lateran. 23 A large gathering of nobles and commoners was invited to this political lecture, and a suitable theater was built for them. The notary appeared in a grand and enigmatic outfit, explained the inscription through a translation and commentary, 24 and spoke with passion and enthusiasm about the ancient glory of the senate and people, from whom all legal authority derived. The nobles’ lazy ignorance prevented them from recognizing the serious implications of such messages: they might occasionally scold and physically punish the plebeian reformer, but he was often allowed in the Colonna palace to entertain the guests with his threats and predictions; and the modern Brutus 25 hid beneath a guise of foolishness and the role of a clown. While they indulged their contempt, the restoration of the good estate, his favorite phrase, was embraced by the people as a desirable, achievable, and eventually imminent event; and while everyone was eager to cheer, some had the bravery to help their promised deliverer.

20 (return)
[ The first and splendid period of Rienzi, his tribunitian government, is contained in the xviiith chapter of the Fragments, (p. 399—479,) which, in the new division, forms the iid book of the history in xxxviii. smaller chapters or sections.]

20 (return)
[ The remarkable early days of Rienzi and his time as a tribune are covered in the xviiith chapter of the Fragments, (p. 399—479,) which, in the new breakdown, makes up the iid book of the history in xxxviii smaller chapters or sections.]

201 (return)
[ But see in Dr. Papencordt’s work, and in Rienzi’s own words, his claim to be a bastard son of the emperor Henry the Seventh, whose intrigue with his mother Rienzi relates with a sort of proud shamelessness. Compare account by the editor of Dr. Papencordt’s work in Quarterly Review vol. lxix.—M. 1845.]

201 (return)
[ But check out Dr. Papencordt’s work, along with Rienzi’s own statements, regarding his claim of being an illegitimate son of Emperor Henry the Seventh, whose affair with his mother Rienzi discusses with a kind of proud boldness. See the account by the editor of Dr. Papencordt’s work in Quarterly Review vol. lxix.—M. 1845.]

21 (return)
[ The reader may be pleased with a specimen of the original idiom: Fò da soa juventutine nutricato di latte de eloquentia, bono gramatico, megliore rettuorico, autorista bravo. Deh como et quanto era veloce leitore! moito usava Tito Livio, Seneca, et Tullio, et Balerio Massimo, moito li dilettava le magnificentie di Julio Cesare raccontare. Tutta la die se speculava negl’ intagli di marmo lequali iaccio intorno Roma. Non era altri che esso, che sapesse lejere li antichi pataffii. Tutte scritture antiche vulgarizzava; quesse fiure di marmo justamente interpretava. On come spesso diceva, “Dove suono quelli buoni Romani? dove ene loro somma justitia? poleramme trovare in tempo che quessi fiuriano!”]

21 (return)
[ The reader may enjoy a sample of the original language: Fò da soa juventutine nutricato di latte de eloquentia, bono gramatico, megliore rettuorico, autorista bravo. Oh how fast a reader he was! He often read Tito Livio, Seneca, Tullio, and Balerio Massimo, and he greatly enjoyed the grand stories of Julio Cesare. All day he would look at the marble carvings around Rome. No one else could read the ancient texts like him. He made all ancient writings accessible; he accurately interpreted those marble figures. As he often said, “Where are those good Romans? Where is their supreme justice? We shall find it in time as they flourish!”]

211 (return)
[ Sir J. Hobhouse published (in his Illustrations of Childe Harold) Rienzi’s joyful letter to the people of Rome on the apparently favorable termination of this mission.—M. 1845.]

211 (return)
[ Sir J. Hobhouse published (in his Illustrations of Childe Harold) Rienzi’s happy letter to the people of Rome about the seemingly positive outcome of this mission.—M. 1845.]

22 (return)
[ Petrarch compares the jealousy of the Romans with the easy temper of the husbands of Avignon, (Mémoires, tom. i. p. 330.)]

22 (return)
[ Petrarch compares the jealousy of the Romans to the laid-back nature of the husbands in Avignon, (Mémoires, vol. i. p. 330.)]

221 (return)
[ All this Rienzi, writing at a later period to the archbishop of Prague, attributed to the criminal abandonment of his flock by the supreme pontiff. See Urkunde apud Papencordt, p. xliv. Quarterly Review, p. 255.—M. 1845.]

221 (return)
[All this Rienzi, writing later to the archbishop of Prague, blamed the criminal neglect of his people on the pope. See document in Papencordt, p. xliv. Quarterly Review, p. 255.—M. 1845.]

23 (return)
[ The fragments of the Lex regia may be found in the Inscriptions of Gruter, tom. i. p. 242, and at the end of the Tacitus of Ernesti, with some learned notes of the editor, tom. ii.]

23 (return)
[ You can find the fragments of the Lex regia in the Inscriptions of Gruter, vol. i, p. 242, and at the end of the Tacitus by Ernesti, along with some insightful notes from the editor, vol. ii.]

24 (return)
[ I cannot overlook a stupendous and laughable blunder of Rienzi. The Lex regia empowers Vespasian to enlarge the Pomrium, a word familiar to every antiquary. It was not so to the tribune; he confounds it with pomarium, an orchard, translates lo Jardino de Roma cioene Italia, and is copied by the less excusable ignorance of the Latin translator (p. 406) and the French historian, (p. 33.) Even the learning of Muratori has slumbered over the passage.]

24 (return)
[ I can't ignore a huge and ridiculous mistake made by Rienzi. The Lex regia gives Vespasian the authority to expand the Pomrium, a term well-known to any historian. However, that’s not the case for the tribune; he confuses it with pomarium, meaning an orchard, translates it as "the Garden of Rome in ancient Italy," and this error is repeated by the even less forgivable ignorance of the Latin translator (p. 406) and the French historian (p. 33). Even the knowledge of Muratori hasn't paid attention to this mistake.]

25 (return)
[ Priori (Bruto) tamen similior, juvenis uterque, longe ingenio quam cujus simulationem induerat, ut sub hoc obtentû liberator ille P R. aperiretur tempore suo.... Ille regibus, hic tyrannis contemptus, (Opp. p. 536.) * Note: Fatcor attamen quod-nunc fatuum. nunc hystrionem, nunc gravem nunc simplicem, nunc astutum, nunc fervidum, nunc timidum simulatorem, et dissimulatorem ad hunc caritativum finem, quem dixi, constitusepius memet ipsum. Writing to an archbishop, (of Prague,) Rienzi alleges scriptural examples. Saltator coram archa David et insanus apparuit coram Rege; blanda, astuta, et tecta Judith astitit Holoferni; et astute Jacob meruit benedici, Urkunde xlix.—M. 1845.]

25 (return)
[ Priori (Bruto) still similar, both young men have a talent that far exceeds the role they pretend to play, so that under this guise, that liberator of the Republic was revealed at the right moment.... He was scorned by kings, here by tyrants, (Opp. p. 536.) * Note: I admit, though, that now I sometimes act foolish, sometimes like a performer, sometimes serious, sometimes simple, sometimes clever, sometimes passionate, and sometimes timid—playing the deceiver for the charitable purpose I mentioned, I often reflect on myself. Writing to an archbishop (of Prague), Rienzi points out scriptural examples. The dancer appeared before the Ark of David and went mad in front of the King; the charming, cunning, and disguised Judith stood before Holofernes; and cunning Jacob earned blessings, Urkunde xlix.—M. 1845.]

A prophecy, or rather a summons, affixed on the church door of St. George, was the first public evidence of his designs; a nocturnal assembly of a hundred citizens on Mount Aventine, the first step to their execution. After an oath of secrecy and aid, he represented to the conspirators the importance and facility of their enterprise; that the nobles, without union or resources, were strong only in the fear nobles, of their imaginary strength; that all power, as well as right, was in the hands of the people; that the revenues of the apostolical chamber might relieve the public distress; and that the pope himself would approve their victory over the common enemies of government and freedom. After securing a faithful band to protect his first declaration, he proclaimed through the city, by sound of trumpet, that on the evening of the following day, all persons should assemble without arms before the church of St. Angelo, to provide for the reestablishment of the good estate. The whole night was employed in the celebration of thirty masses of the Holy Ghost; and in the morning, Rienzi, bareheaded, but in complete armor, issued from the church, encompassed by the hundred conspirators. The pope’s vicar, the simple bishop of Orvieto, who had been persuaded to sustain a part in this singular ceremony, marched on his right hand; and three great standards were borne aloft as the emblems of their design. In the first, the banner of liberty, Rome was seated on two lions, with a palm in one hand and a globe in the other; St. Paul, with a drawn sword, was delineated in the banner of justice; and in the third, St. Peter held the keys of concord and peace. Rienzi was encouraged by the presence and applause of an innumerable crowd, who understood little, and hoped much; and the procession slowly rolled forwards from the castle of St. Angelo to the Capitol. His triumph was disturbed by some secret emotions which he labored to suppress: he ascended without opposition, and with seeming confidence, the citadel of the republic; harangued the people from the balcony; and received the most flattering confirmation of his acts and laws. The nobles, as if destitute of arms and counsels, beheld in silent consternation this strange revolution; and the moment had been prudently chosen, when the most formidable, Stephen Colonna, was absent from the city. On the first rumor, he returned to his palace, affected to despise this plebeian tumult, and declared to the messenger of Rienzi, that at his leisure he would cast the madman from the windows of the Capitol. The great bell instantly rang an alarm, and so rapid was the tide, so urgent was the danger, that Colonna escaped with precipitation to the suburb of St. Laurence: from thence, after a moment’s refreshment, he continued the same speedy career till he reached in safety his castle of Palestrina; lamenting his own imprudence, which had not trampled the spark of this mighty conflagration. A general and peremptory order was issued from the Capitol to all the nobles, that they should peaceably retire to their estates: they obeyed; and their departure secured the tranquillity of the free and obedient citizens of Rome.

A prophecy, or more accurately a summons, posted on the door of St. George's church was the first public sign of his plans; a nighttime gathering of a hundred citizens on Mount Aventine was the initial step toward their execution. After taking an oath of secrecy and support, he explained to the conspirators the significance and feasibility of their mission; that the nobles, lacking unity and resources, were strong only in their fear of their imagined power; that all authority, as well as justice, lay with the people; that the funds from the apostolic chamber could alleviate public suffering; and that the pope himself would endorse their victory over the common enemies of government and freedom. Once he secured a loyal group to protect his initial declaration, he announced throughout the city, by the sound of a trumpet, that on the following evening, everyone should gather unarmed in front of St. Angelo's church to work towards restoring the common good. The entire night was spent celebrating thirty masses of the Holy Ghost; and in the morning, Rienzi, bareheaded but fully armored, emerged from the church, surrounded by the hundred conspirators. The pope’s vicar, the simple bishop of Orvieto, who had agreed to take part in this unusual ceremony, walked at his right; and three large banners were held high as symbols of their mission. The first banner, representing liberty, depicted Rome seated on two lions, holding a palm in one hand and a globe in the other; St. Paul, brandishing a sword, was illustrated on the banner of justice; and the third banner featured St. Peter holding the keys of concord and peace. Rienzi was bolstered by the presence and cheers of a massive crowd, who understood little but hoped for a lot; and the procession moved slowly from the castle of St. Angelo to the Capitol. His triumph was marred by some hidden emotions he struggled to suppress: he ascended without opposition, and with a show of confidence, took the citadel of the republic; addressed the crowd from the balcony; and received enthusiastic support for his actions and laws. The nobles, seemingly devoid of arms and strategy, watched in silent shock as this strange revolution unfolded; and the moment had been cleverly chosen since the most formidable of them, Stephen Colonna, was out of the city. At the first hint of trouble, he rushed back to his palace, pretending to dismiss this popular uproar, and told Rienzi's messenger that he would deal with the "madman" at his leisure. The great bell quickly rang an alarm, and the situation escalated so fast, and the danger was so pressing, that Colonna hastily fled to the suburb of St. Laurence; after a brief rest, he continued to flee quickly until he safely reached his castle in Palestrina, lamenting his own foolishness for not squashing this potential blaze of a rebellion sooner. A clear and firm order was issued from the Capitol to all nobles that they should peacefully retreat to their estates: they complied, and their exit ensured the peace of the free and loyal citizens of Rome.

But such voluntary obedience evaporates with the first transports of zeal; and Rienzi felt the importance of justifying his usurpation by a regular form and a legal title. At his own choice, the Roman people would have displayed their attachment and authority, by lavishing on his head the names of senator or consul, of king or emperor: he preferred the ancient and modest appellation of tribune; 251 the protection of the commons was the essence of that sacred office; and they were ignorant, that it had never been invested with any share in the legislative or executive powers of the republic. In this character, and with the consent of the Roman, the tribune enacted the most salutary laws for the restoration and maintenance of the good estate. By the first he fulfils the wish of honesty and inexperience, that no civil suit should be protracted beyond the term of fifteen days. The danger of frequent perjury might justify the pronouncing against a false accuser the same penalty which his evidence would have inflicted: the disorders of the times might compel the legislator to punish every homicide with death, and every injury with equal retaliation. But the execution of justice was hopeless till he had previously abolished the tyranny of the nobles. It was formally provided, that none, except the supreme magistrate, should possess or command the gates, bridges, or towers of the state; that no private garrisons should be introduced into the towns or castles of the Roman territory; that none should bear arms, or presume to fortify their houses in the city or country; that the barons should be responsible for the safety of the highways, and the free passage of provisions; and that the protection of malefactors and robbers should be expiated by a fine of a thousand marks of silver. But these regulations would have been impotent and nugatory, had not the licentious nobles been awed by the sword of the civil power. A sudden alarm from the bell of the Capitol could still summon to the standard above twenty thousand volunteers: the support of the tribune and the laws required a more regular and permanent force. In each harbor of the coast a vessel was stationed for the assurance of commerce; a standing militia of three hundred and sixty horse and thirteen hundred foot was levied, clothed, and paid in the thirteen quarters of the city: and the spirit of a commonwealth may be traced in the grateful allowance of one hundred florins, or pounds, to the heirs of every soldier who lost his life in the service of his country. For the maintenance of the public defence, for the establishment of granaries, for the relief of widows, orphans, and indigent convents, Rienzi applied, without fear of sacrilege, the revenues of the apostolic chamber: the three branches of hearth-money, the salt-duty, and the customs, were each of the annual produce of one hundred thousand florins; 26 and scandalous were the abuses, if in four or five months the amount of the salt-duty could be trebled by his judicious economy. After thus restoring the forces and finances of the republic, the tribune recalled the nobles from their solitary independence; required their personal appearance in the Capitol; and imposed an oath of allegiance to the new government, and of submission to the laws of the good estate. Apprehensive for their safety, but still more apprehensive of the danger of a refusal, the princes and barons returned to their houses at Rome in the garb of simple and peaceful citizens: the Colonna and Ursini, the Savelli and Frangipani, were confounded before the tribunal of a plebeian, of the vile buffoon whom they had so often derided, and their disgrace was aggravated by the indignation which they vainly struggled to disguise. The same oath was successively pronounced by the several orders of society, the clergy and gentlemen, the judges and notaries, the merchants and artisans, and the gradual descent was marked by the increase of sincerity and zeal. They swore to live and die with the republic and the church, whose interest was artfully united by the nominal association of the bishop of Orvieto, the pope’s vicar, to the office of tribune. It was the boast of Rienzi, that he had delivered the throne and patrimony of St. Peter from a rebellious aristocracy; and Clement the Sixth, who rejoiced in its fall, affected to believe the professions, to applaud the merits, and to confirm the title, of his trusty servant. The speech, perhaps the mind, of the tribune, was inspired with a lively regard for the purity of the faith: he insinuated his claim to a supernatural mission from the Holy Ghost; enforced by a heavy forfeiture the annual duty of confession and communion; and strictly guarded the spiritual as well as temporal welfare of his faithful people. 27

But such voluntary obedience disappears with the first bursts of enthusiasm; and Rienzi understood the need to legitimize his takeover with a formal structure and legal title. Ideally, the Roman people would have shown their loyalty and power by bestowing upon him the titles of senator or consul, king or emperor: he chose instead the ancient and humble title of tribune; 251 as protecting the common people was the essence of that sacred role; they were unaware that it had never been granted any legislative or executive powers within the republic. In this role, with the support of the Romans, the tribune enacted the most beneficial laws to restore and maintain the common good. The first law fulfilled the wish for fairness and simplicity, ensuring that no civil lawsuit would take longer than fifteen days. The threat of frequent perjury justified punishing a false accuser with the same penalty they would have faced for their false testimony: the chaos of the times might force the legislator to mandate death for every murder and equivalent retaliation for every injury. But achieving justice was impossible until he had first dismantled the nobles' tyranny. It was formally stated that only the highest magistrate could control the gates, bridges, or towers of the state; that no private armies could be stationed in the towns or castles of Roman territory; that no one could bear arms or try to fortify their homes either in the city or the countryside; that the barons would be responsible for the safety of the roads and the free movement of supplies; and that harboring criminals and robbers would be punishable by a fine of a thousand marks of silver. However, these rules would have been ineffective and meaningless without the civil government's authoritative presence to intimidate the unruly nobles. A sudden alarm from the Capitol's bell could still rally over twenty thousand volunteers: the support of the tribune and the laws needed a more organized and lasting military force. Each coastal harbor had a ship deployed to ensure trade; a standing militia of three hundred and sixty cavalry and thirteen hundred infantry was raised, outfitted, and paid in the thirteen districts of the city: and the spirit of the commonwealth is reflected in the generous allowance of one hundred florins, or pounds, to the families of every soldier who died serving their country. To maintain public defense, establish granaries, and support widows, orphans, and struggling convents, Rienzi unhesitatingly used the revenues from the apostolic chamber: the three sources of hearth-money, the salt tax, and customs yielded an annual income of one hundred thousand florins; 26 and it was scandalous that within four or five months the amount from the salt tax could be tripled through his savvy management. After reviving the republic's forces and finances, the tribune summoned the nobles from their isolated independence; required their personal attendance in the Capitol; and imposed an oath of loyalty to the new government and adherence to the laws of the common good. Fearing for their safety, but even more afraid of the consequences of refusal, the princes and barons returned to Rome dressed as humble and peaceful citizens: the Colonna and Ursini, the Savelli and Frangipani, were humiliated before the tribunal of a commoner, the lowly jester they had so often mocked, and their disgrace was deepened by the anger they vainly attempted to conceal. The same oath was subsequently taken by various social groups, including clergy and nobles, judges and notaries, merchants and artisans, with the increasing sincerity and commitment becoming evident. They swore to live and die for the republic and the church, whose interests were cleverly intertwined by the nominal association of the bishop of Orvieto, the pope’s vicar, with the office of tribune. Rienzi proudly declared that he had rescued the throne and inheritance of St. Peter from a rebellious aristocracy; and Clement the Sixth, who celebrated its demise, pretended to believe the declarations, praised the achievements, and affirmed the title of his loyal servant. The tribune's speeches, perhaps his mindset, were filled with a genuine concern for the purity of the faith: he subtly suggested his claim to a divine mission from the Holy Spirit; enforced a heavy penalty on the annual requirement for confession and communion; and meticulously protected both the spiritual and temporal well-being of his devoted followers. 27

251 (return)
[ Et ego, Deo semper auctore, ipsa die pristinâ (leg. primâ) Tribunatus, quæ quidem dignitas a tempore deflorati Imperii, et per annos Vo et ultra sub tyrannicà occupatione vacavit, ipsos omnes potentes indifferenter Deum at justitiam odientes, a meâ, ymo a Dei facie fugiendo vehementi Spiritu dissipavi, et nullo effuso cruore trementes expuli, sine ictu remanente Romane terre facie renovatâ. Libellus Tribuni ad Cæsarem, p. xxxiv.—M. 1845.]

251 (return)
[ And I, always guided by God, on the very first day of my Tribunate— a position that had been vacant since the fall of the Empire and had remained empty for over fifty years under tyrannical rule— drove out all those who hated God and justice with a strong spirit. I expelled them without shedding blood, leaving the face of Roman land renewed and intact. The Tribune's letter to Caesar, p. xxxiv.—M. 1845.]

26 (return)
[ In one MS. I read (l. ii. c. 4, p. 409) perfumante quatro solli, in another, quatro florini, an important variety, since the florin was worth ten Roman solidi, (Muratori, dissert. xxviii.) The former reading would give us a population of 25,000, the latter of 250,000 families; and I much fear, that the former is more consistent with the decay of Rome and her territory.]

26 (return)
[ In one manuscript I saw (l. ii. c. 4, p. 409) "four perfumed solidi," while in another, it said "four florini," which is an important difference because the florin was worth ten Roman solidi (Muratori, dissert. xxviii). The first reading suggests a population of 25,000, while the second implies 250,000 families; and I’m quite concerned that the first option aligns better with the decline of Rome and its territories.]

27 (return)
[ Hocsemius, p. 498, apud du Cerçeau, Hist. de Rienzi, p. 194. The fifteen tribunitian laws may be found in the Roman historian (whom for brevity I shall name) Fortifiocca, l. ii. c. 4.]

27 (return)
[ Hocsemius, p. 498, in du Cerçeau, Hist. de Rienzi, p. 194. The fifteen tribunitian laws can be found in the Roman historian (whom I'll refer to for short) Fortifiocca, l. ii. c. 4.]

Chapter LXX: Final Settlement Of The Ecclesiastical State.—Part II.

Never perhaps has the energy and effect of a single mind been more remarkably felt than in the sudden, though transient, reformation of Rome by the tribune Rienzi. A den of robbers was converted to the discipline of a camp or convent: patient to hear, swift to redress, inexorable to punish, his tribunal was always accessible to the poor and stranger; nor could birth, or dignity, or the immunities of the church, protect the offender or his accomplices. The privileged houses, the private sanctuaries in Rome, on which no officer of justice would presume to trespass, were abolished; and he applied the timber and iron of their barricades in the fortifications of the Capitol. The venerable father of the Colonna was exposed in his own palace to the double shame of being desirous, and of being unable, to protect a criminal. A mule, with a jar of oil, had been stolen near Capranica; and the lord of the Ursini family was condemned to restore the damage, and to discharge a fine of four hundred florins for his negligence in guarding the highways. Nor were the persons of the barons more inviolate than their lands or houses; and, either from accident or design, the same impartial rigor was exercised against the heads of the adverse factions. Peter Agapet Colonna, who had himself been senator of Rome, was arrested in the street for injury or debt; and justice was appeased by the tardy execution of Martin Ursini, who, among his various acts of violence and rapine, had pillaged a shipwrecked vessel at the mouth of the Tyber. 28 His name, the purple of two cardinals, his uncles, a recent marriage, and a mortal disease were disregarded by the inflexible tribune, who had chosen his victim. The public officers dragged him from his palace and nuptial bed: his trial was short and satisfactory: the bell of the Capitol convened the people: stripped of his mantle, on his knees, with his hands bound behind his back, he heard the sentence of death; and after a brief confession, Ursini was led away to the gallows. After such an example, none who were conscious of guilt could hope for impunity, and the flight of the wicked, the licentious, and the idle, soon purified the city and territory of Rome. In this time (says the historian,) the woods began to rejoice that they were no longer infested with robbers; the oxen began to plough; the pilgrims visited the sanctuaries; the roads and inns were replenished with travellers; trade, plenty, and good faith, were restored in the markets; and a purse of gold might be exposed without danger in the midst of the highway. As soon as the life and property of the subject are secure, the labors and rewards of industry spontaneously revive: Rome was still the metropolis of the Christian world; and the fame and fortunes of the tribune were diffused in every country by the strangers who had enjoyed the blessings of his government.

Never before has the impact of a single person been felt so profoundly as during the abrupt, albeit temporary, reform of Rome by the tribune Rienzi. A den of thieves became a place of discipline, like a military camp or a monastery: he was patient in listening, quick to act, and relentless in punishment; his court was always open to the poor and strangers. No status, wealth, or church immunity could protect offenders or their accomplices. The privileged homes and private sanctuaries in Rome, where no law enforcement would dare to enter, were dismantled; he repurposed the wood and iron from their barricades to fortify the Capitol. The esteemed father of the Colonna family was publicly shamed in his own palace, wanting to protect a criminal but unable to do so. A mule, with a jar of oil, had been stolen near Capranica, and the head of the Ursini family was ordered to cover the loss and pay a fine of four hundred florins for failing to secure the roads. The nobility were not spared; those with title or land faced the same strict justice. Peter Agapet Colonna, a former senator of Rome, was arrested in the street for his debts; justice was satisfied by the eventual execution of Martin Ursini, who had committed various acts of violence, including looting a shipwrecked vessel at the mouth of the Tiber. His name, the titles of his two cardinal uncles, a recent marriage, and a serious illness meant nothing to the unyielding tribune, who had picked his target. Public officials pulled him from his palace and wedding bed: his trial was short and straightforward; the bell of the Capitol called the people together. Stripped of his mantle, kneeling with his hands tied behind his back, he listened to his death sentence; after a brief confession, Ursini was taken away to the gallows. After such a display, none who felt guilty could expect to escape punishment, and the fleeing of the corrupt, the immoral, and the lazy soon cleansed the city and its surroundings. During this time, the historian notes, the forests rejoiced at no longer being plagued by thieves; the oxen returned to plowing; pilgrims visited the shrines; the roads and inns became busy with travelers; trade, abundance, and honesty returned to the markets; and it became safe to carry a purse of gold openly on the highway. Once the lives and belongings of citizens were secure, the efforts and rewards of hard work revitalized. Rome remained the center of the Christian world, and the reputation and success of the tribune spread throughout every nation through strangers who benefited from his leadership.

28 (return)
[ Fortifiocca, l. ii. c. 11. From the account of this shipwreck, we learn some circumstances of the trade and navigation of the age. 1. The ship was built and freighted at Naples for the ports of Marseilles and Avignon. 2. The sailors were of Naples and the Isle of naria less skilful than those of Sicily and Genoa. 3. The navigation from Marseilles was a coasting voyage to the mouth of the Tyber, where they took shelter in a storm; but, instead of finding the current, unfortunately ran on a shoal: the vessel was stranded, the mariners escaped. 4. The cargo, which was pillaged, consisted of the revenue of Provence for the royal treasury, many bags of pepper and cinnamon, and bales of French cloth, to the value of 20,000 florins; a rich prize.]

28 (return)
[ From the account of this shipwreck, we learn some details about the trade and navigation of the time. 1. The ship was built and loaded in Naples for the ports of Marseilles and Avignon. 2. The sailors were from Naples and the Isle of Naria, less skilled than those from Sicily and Genoa. 3. The journey from Marseilles was a coastal trip to the mouth of the Tiber, where they sought shelter during a storm; however, instead of finding safe passage, they unfortunately ran aground on a shoal: the ship was stranded, but the crew escaped. 4. The cargo, which was looted, included the revenue of Provence for the royal treasury, many bags of pepper and cinnamon, and bales of French cloth, valued at 20,000 florins; a significant prize.]

The deliverance of his country inspired Rienzi with a vast, and perhaps visionary, idea of uniting Italy in a great federative republic, of which Rome should be the ancient and lawful head, and the free cities and princes the members and associates. His pen was not less eloquent than his tongue; and his numerous epistles were delivered to swift and trusty messengers. On foot, with a white wand in their hand, they traversed the forests and mountains; enjoyed, in the most hostile states, the sacred security of ambassadors; and reported, in the style of flattery or truth, that the highways along their passage were lined with kneeling multitudes, who implored Heaven for the success of their undertaking. Could passion have listened to reason; could private interest have yielded to the public welfare; the supreme tribunal and confederate union of the Italian republic might have healed their intestine discord, and closed the Alps against the Barbarians of the North. But the propitious season had elapsed; and if Venice, Florence, Sienna, Perugia, and many inferior cities offered their lives and fortunes to the good estate, the tyrants of Lombardy and Tuscany must despise, or hate, the plebeian author of a free constitution. From them, however, and from every part of Italy, the tribune received the most friendly and respectful answers: they were followed by the ambassadors of the princes and republics; and in this foreign conflux, on all the occasions of pleasure or business, the low born notary could assume the familiar or majestic courtesy of a sovereign. 29 The most glorious circumstance of his reign was an appeal to his justice from Lewis, king of Hungary, who complained, that his brother and her husband had been perfidiously strangled by Jane, queen of Naples: 30 her guilt or innocence was pleaded in a solemn trial at Rome; but after hearing the advocates, 31 the tribune adjourned this weighty and invidious cause, which was soon determined by the sword of the Hungarian. Beyond the Alps, more especially at Avignon, the revolution was the theme of curiosity, wonder, and applause. 311 Petrarch had been the private friend, perhaps the secret counsellor, of Rienzi: his writings breathe the most ardent spirit of patriotism and joy; and all respect for the pope, all gratitude for the Colonna, was lost in the superior duties of a Roman citizen. The poet-laureate of the Capitol maintains the act, applauds the hero, and mingles with some apprehension and advice, the most lofty hopes of the permanent and rising greatness of the republic. 32

The liberation of his country sparked in Rienzi a grand, perhaps unrealistic, vision of uniting Italy into a powerful federal republic, with Rome as its ancient and rightful capital, and the free cities and princes as its members and partners. His writing was just as persuasive as his speech; and his many letters were entrusted to fast and reliable messengers. On foot, wielding a white staff, they traveled through forests and mountains; enjoyed, in the most hostile territories, the sacred protection of ambassadors; and reported, whether flattering or truthful, that the roads along their route were filled with kneeling crowds who prayed to Heaven for the success of their mission. If only passion could have heeded reason; if personal interests could have surrendered to the public good; the supreme court and united alliance of the Italian republic could have resolved their internal conflicts and shut the Alps against the northern barbarians. But the opportunity had passed; and even though Venice, Florence, Sienna, Perugia, and many lesser cities dedicated their lives and fortunes to the common cause, the tyrants of Lombardy and Tuscany were bound to look down upon or resent the common-born creator of a free constitution. Nevertheless, from them and from all parts of Italy, the tribune received the most cordial and respectful responses: these were followed by ambassadors from the princes and republics; and during this influx of foreigners, whether in moments of pleasure or business, the low-born notary could take on the casual or regal courtesy of a ruler. 29 The most glorious moment of his reign was an appeal to his justice from Lewis, king of Hungary, who complained that his brother and her husband had been treacherously murdered by Jane, queen of Naples: 30 her guilt or innocence was argued in a formal trial in Rome; but after hearing the lawyers, 31 the tribune put this heavy and controversial case on hold, which was soon resolved by the sword of the Hungarian. Across the Alps, particularly in Avignon, the revolution became a topic of curiosity, wonder, and admiration. 311 Petrarch had been a close friend, perhaps even a secret advisor, to Rienzi: his writings exude the most passionate spirit of patriotism and joy; and all respect for the pope, all gratitude for the Colonna, faded before the higher responsibilities of a Roman citizen. The poet-laureate of the Capitol endorses the act, praises the hero, and mixes some concerns and advice with the highest hopes for the lasting and emerging greatness of the republic. 32

29 (return)
[ It was thus that Oliver Cromwell’s old acquaintance, who remembered his vulgar and ungracious entrance into the House of Commons, were astonished at the ease and majesty of the protector on his throne, (See Harris’s Life of Cromwell, p. 27—34, from Clarendon Warwick, Whitelocke, Waller, &c.) The consciousness of merit and power will sometimes elevate the manners to the station.]

29 (return)
[ It was then that Oliver Cromwell’s old acquaintances, who remembered his rough and ungracious entrance into the House of Commons, were amazed by the ease and dignity of the protector on his throne, (See Harris’s Life of Cromwell, p. 27—34, from Clarendon Warwick, Whitelocke, Waller, &c.) The awareness of merit and power can sometimes elevate one’s demeanor to match their position.]

30 (return)
[ See the causes, circumstances, and effects of the death of Andrew in Giannone, (tom. iii. l. xxiii. p. 220—229,) and the Life of Petrarch (Mémoires, tom. ii. p. 143—148, 245—250, 375—379, notes, p. 21—37.) The abbé de Sade wishes to extenuate her guilt.]

30 (return)
[ Check out the reasons, conditions, and impact of Andrew's death in Giannone, (vol. iii. ch. xxiii. p. 220—229,) and the Life of Petrarch (Memoirs, vol. ii. p. 143—148, 245—250, 375—379, notes, p. 21—37.) The abbé de Sade wants to lessen her blame.]

31 (return)
[ The advocate who pleaded against Jane could add nothing to the logical force and brevity of his master’s epistle. Johanna! inordinata vita præcedens, retentio potestatis in regno, neglecta vindicta, vir alter susceptus, et excusatio subsequens, necis viri tui te probant fuisse participem et consortem. Jane of Naples, and Mary of Scotland, have a singular conformity.]

31 (return)
[ The lawyer arguing against Jane couldn’t improve on the clarity and conciseness of his mentor’s letter. Johanna! your reckless past, holding onto power in the kingdom, ignoring revenge, another man taking your place, and the excuses that followed, all demonstrate that you were involved and complicit in your husband’s death. Jane of Naples and Mary of Scotland share a unique similarity.]

311 (return)
[ In his letter to the archbishop of Prague, Rienzi thus describes the effect of his elevation on Italy and on the world: “Did I not restore real peace among the cities which were distracted by factions? did I not cause all the citizens, exiled by party violence, with their wretched wives and children, to be readmitted? had I not begun to extinguish the factious names (scismatica nomina) of Guelf and Ghibelline, for which countless thousands had perished body and soul, under the eyes of their pastors, by the reduction of the city of Rome and all Italy into one amicable, peaceful, holy, and united confederacy? the consecrated standards and banners having been by me collected and blended together, and, in witness to our holy association and perfect union, offered up in the presence of the ambassadors of all the cities of Italy, on the day of the assumption of our Blessed Lady.” p. xlvii. ——In the Libellus ad Cæsarem: “I received the homage and submission of all the sovereigns of Apulia, the barons and counts, and almost all the people of Italy. I was honored by solemn embassies and letters by the emperor of Constantinople and the king of England. The queen of Naples submitted herself and her kingdom to the protection of the tribune. The king of Hungary, by two solemn embassies, brought his cause against his queen and his nobles before my tribunal; and I venture to say further, that the fame of the tribune alarmed the soldan of Babylon. When the Christian pilgrims to the sepulchre of our Lord related to the Christian and Jewish inhabitants of Jerusalem all the yet unheard-of and wonderful circumstances of the reformation in Rome, both Jews and Christians celebrated the event with unusual festivities. When the soldan inquired the cause of these rejoicings, and received this intelligence about Rome, he ordered all the havens and cities on the coast to be fortified, and put in a state of defence,” p. xxxv.—M. 1845.]

311 (return)
[ In his letter to the archbishop of Prague, Rienzi describes the impact of his rise to power on Italy and the world: “Did I not restore genuine peace among the cities that were at odds with each other? Did I not bring back all the citizens who had been exiled due to party conflicts, along with their suffering wives and children? Had I not started to eliminate the divisive labels (scismatica nomina) of Guelf and Ghibelline, for which countless thousands had lost their lives and souls, right before the eyes of their leaders, by transforming the city of Rome and all of Italy into one friendly, peaceful, holy, and united community? I collected and merged the sacred standards and banners, and as a testament to our holy alliance and complete unity, presented them in front of the ambassadors from all the cities of Italy on the day of the Assumption of our Blessed Lady.” p. xlvii. ——In the Libellus ad Cæsarem: “I received the loyalty and submission of all the rulers of Apulia, the barons and counts, and nearly all the people of Italy. I was honored with formal embassies and letters from the emperor of Constantinople and the king of England. The queen of Naples placed herself and her kingdom under the protection of the tribune. The king of Hungary, through two formal embassies, brought his case against his queen and his nobles before my tribunal; and I dare say that the reputation of the tribune worried the soldan of Babylon. When the Christian pilgrims to the tomb of our Lord told the Christian and Jewish residents of Jerusalem about the remarkable and unprecedented events of the reformation in Rome, both Jews and Christians celebrated with extraordinary festivities. When the soldan learned the reason for these celebrations and got this information about Rome, he ordered all the ports and cities on the coast to be fortified and prepared for defense,” p. xxxv.—M. 1845.]

32 (return)
[ See the Epistola Hortatoria de Capessenda Republica, from Petrarch to Nicholas Rienzi, (Opp. p. 535—540,) and the vth eclogue or pastoral, a perpetual and obscure allegory.]

32 (return)
[ See the Encouraging Letter on Taking Up the Republic, from Petrarch to Nicholas Rienzi, (Opp. p. 535—540,) and the 5th eclogue or pastoral, a lasting and obscure allegory.]

While Petrarch indulged these prophetic visions, the Roman hero was fast declining from the meridian of fame and power; and the people, who had gazed with astonishment on the ascending meteor, began to mark the irregularity of its course, and the vicissitudes of light and obscurity. More eloquent than judicious, more enterprising than resolute, the faculties of Rienzi were not balanced by cool and commanding reason: he magnified in a tenfold proportion the objects of hope and fear; and prudence, which could not have erected, did not presume to fortify, his throne. In the blaze of prosperity, his virtues were insensibly tinctured with the adjacent vices; justice with cruelty, liberality with profusion, and the desire of fame with puerile and ostentatious vanity. 321 He might have learned, that the ancient tribunes, so strong and sacred in the public opinion, were not distinguished in style, habit, or appearance, from an ordinary plebeian; 33 and that as often as they visited the city on foot, a single viator, or beadle, attended the exercise of their office. The Gracchi would have frowned or smiled, could they have read the sonorous titles and epithets of their successor, “Nicholas, severe and merciful; deliverer of Rome; defender of Italy; 34 friend of mankind, and of liberty, peace, and justice; tribune august:” his theatrical pageants had prepared the revolution; but Rienzi abused, in luxury and pride, the political maxim of speaking to the eyes, as well as the understanding, of the multitude. From nature he had received the gift of a handsome person, 35 till it was swelled and disfigured by intemperance: and his propensity to laughter was corrected in the magistrate by the affectation of gravity and sternness. He was clothed, at least on public occasions, in a party-colored robe of velvet or satin, lined with fur, and embroidered with gold: the rod of justice, which he carried in his hand, was a sceptre of polished steel, crowned with a globe and cross of gold, and enclosing a small fragment of the true and holy wood. In his civil and religious processions through the city, he rode on a white steed, the symbol of royalty: the great banner of the republic, a sun with a circle of stars, a dove with an olive branch, was displayed over his head; a shower of gold and silver was scattered among the populace, fifty guards with halberds encompassed his person; a troop of horse preceded his march; and their tymbals and trumpets were of massy silver.

While Petrarch embraced these prophetic visions, the Roman hero was quickly falling from the peak of fame and power; and the people, who had watched in awe as he rose like a shooting star, started to notice the irregularity of his path, along with the ups and downs of his brightness and darkness. More articulate than wise, more ambitious than steadfast, Rienzi's talents were not balanced by calm and strong reasoning: he exaggerated both hopes and fears immensely, and his prudence, which might not have built his throne, certainly didn’t stabilize it. In the glow of success, his virtues subtly became tainted by nearby vices; justice turned into cruelty, generosity into wastefulness, and the quest for fame blended with childish and showy vanity. 321 He could have learned that the ancient tribunes, who were once so powerful and revered in public opinion, were not different in style, dress, or appearance from an average commoner; 33 and that whenever they walked through the city, a single attendant or beadle accompanied them in their duties. The Gracchi would have frowned or smiled if they could have seen the grand titles and descriptors of their successor, “Nicholas, stern yet merciful; savior of Rome; protector of Italy; 34 friend of humanity, and of liberty, peace, and justice; esteemed tribune:” his grand displays had set the stage for the revolution; but Rienzi squandered the political principle of appealing to both the eyes and the minds of the crowd, indulging in luxury and pride. Nature had given him a handsome appearance, 35 until it became bloated and deformed from excess. His inclination to laughter was suppressed in his role as magistrate by a false show of seriousness and sternness. He was dressed, at least during public events, in a multicolored robe of velvet or satin, lined with fur and embroidered with gold: the rod of justice he held was a polished steel scepter crowned with a globe and cross of gold, containing a small piece of the true and holy wood. In his civil and religious parades through the city, he rode a white horse, symbolizing royalty: the great banner of the republic, featuring a sun surrounded by stars and a dove with an olive branch, was held above him; a shower of gold and silver rained down on the crowd, while fifty guards with halberds surrounded him; a troop of horsemen led his procession; and their drums and trumpets were made of solid silver.

321 (return)
[ An illustrious female writer has drawn, with a single stroke, the character of Rienzi, Crescentius, and Arnold of Brescia, the fond restorers of Roman liberty: ‘Qui ont pris les souvenirs pour les espérances.’ Corinne, tom. i. p. 159. “Could Tacitus have excelled this?” Hallam, vol i p. 418.—M.]

321 (return)
[ A renowned female writer has captured, effortlessly, the essence of Rienzi, Crescentius, and Arnold of Brescia, the passionate champions of Roman freedom: ‘Who took memories for hopes.’ Corinne, vol. i, p. 159. “Could Tacitus have surpassed this?” Hallam, vol. i, p. 418.—M.]

33 (return)
[ In his Roman Questions, Plutarch (Opuscul. tom. i. p. 505, 506, edit. Græc. Hen. Steph.) states, on the most constitutional principles, the simple greatness of the tribunes, who were not properly magistrates, but a check on magistracy. It was their duty and interest omoiousqai schmati, kai stolh kai diaithtoiV epitugcanousi tvn politvn.... katapateisqai dei (a saying of C. Cœurio) kai mh semnon einai th oyei mhde dusprosodon... osw de mallon ektapeinoutai tv swmati, tosoutw mallon auxetai th dunamei, &c. Rienzi, and Petrarch himself, were incapable perhaps of reading a Greek philosopher; but they might have imbibed the same modest doctrines from their favorite Latins, Livy and Valerius Maximus.]

33 (return)
[ In his Roman Questions, Plutarch (Opuscul. tom. i. p. 505, 506, edit. Græc. Hen. Steph.) explains, based on the most fundamental constitutional principles, the significant role of the tribunes, who were not exactly magistrates but rather a check on those in power. It was their responsibility and interest to act as mediators among the citizens.... It is necessary to keep them in check (as C. Curio said) and not to be overly dignified in their judgment nor unreasonably harsh... just as the more one is humbled in body, the more one's power increases, etc. Rienzi and Petrarch himself might not have been able to read a Greek philosopher, but they could have absorbed similar humble teachings from their favorite Latin authors, Livy and Valerius Maximus.]

34 (return)
[ I could not express in English the forcible, though barbarous, title of Zelator Italiæ, which Rienzi assumed.]

34 (return)
[ I couldn't express in English the powerful, though crude, title of Zelator Italiæ, which Rienzi took on.]

35 (return)
[ Era bell’ homo, (l. ii. c. l. p. 399.) It is remarkable, that the riso sarcastico of the Bracciano edition is wanting in the Roman MS., from which Muratori has given the text. In his second reign, when he is painted almost as a monster, Rienzi travea una ventresca tonna trionfale, a modo de uno Abbate Asiano, or Asinino, (l. iii. c. 18, p. 523.)]

35 (return)
[ In the beautiful time of man, (l. ii. c. l. p. 399.) It is noteworthy that the sarcastic laugh of the Bracciano edition is missing in the Roman manuscript that Muratori used for the text. In his second reign, when he is depicted almost like a monster, Rienzi wore a triumphal toga, similar to that of an Asian Abbot, or Asinino, (l. iii. c. 18, p. 523.)]

The ambition of the honors of chivalry 36 betrayed the meanness of his birth, and degraded the importance of his office; and the equestrian tribune was not less odious to the nobles, whom he adopted, than to the plebeians, whom he deserted. All that yet remained of treasure, or luxury, or art, was exhausted on that solemn day. Rienzi led the procession from the Capitol to the Lateran; the tediousness of the way was relieved with decorations and games; the ecclesiastical, civil, and military orders marched under their various banners; the Roman ladies attended his wife; and the ambassadors of Italy might loudly applaud or secretly deride the novelty of the pomp. In the evening, which they had reached the church and palace of Constantine, he thanked and dismissed the numerous assembly, with an invitation to the festival of the ensuing day. From the hands of a venerable knight he received the order of the Holy Ghost; the purification of the bath was a previous ceremony; but in no step of his life did Rienzi excite such scandal and censure as by the profane use of the porphyry vase, in which Constantine (a foolish legend) had been healed of his leprosy by Pope Sylvester. 37 With equal presumption the tribune watched or reposed within the consecrated precincts of the baptistery; and the failure of his state-bed was interpreted as an omen of his approaching downfall. At the hour of worship, he showed himself to the returning crowds in a majestic attitude, with a robe of purple, his sword, and gilt spurs; but the holy rites were soon interrupted by his levity and insolence. Rising from his throne, and advancing towards the congregation, he proclaimed in a loud voice: “We summon to our tribunal Pope Clement: and command him to reside in his diocese of Rome: we also summon the sacred college of cardinals. 38 We again summon the two pretenders, Charles of Bohemia and Lewis of Bavaria, who style themselves emperors: we likewise summon all the electors of Germany, to inform us on what pretence they have usurped the inalienable right of the Roman people, the ancient and lawful sovereigns of the empire.” 39 Unsheathing his maiden sword, he thrice brandished it to the three parts of the world, and thrice repeated the extravagant declaration, “And this too is mine!” The pope’s vicar, the bishop of Orvieto, attempted to check this career of folly; but his feeble protest was silenced by martial music; and instead of withdrawing from the assembly, he consented to dine with his brother tribune, at a table which had hitherto been reserved for the supreme pontiff. A banquet, such as the Cæsars had given, was prepared for the Romans. The apartments, porticos, and courts of the Lateran were spread with innumerable tables for either sex, and every condition; a stream of wine flowed from the nostrils of Constantine’s brazen horse; no complaint, except of the scarcity of water, could be heard; and the licentiousness of the multitude was curbed by discipline and fear. A subsequent day was appointed for the coronation of Rienzi; 40 seven crowns of different leaves or metals were successively placed on his head by the most eminent of the Roman clergy; they represented the seven gifts of the Holy Ghost; and he still professed to imitate the example of the ancient tribunes. 401 These extraordinary spectacles might deceive or flatter the people; and their own vanity was gratified in the vanity of their leader. But in his private life he soon deviated from the strict rule of frugality and abstinence; and the plebeians, who were awed by the splendor of the nobles, were provoked by the luxury of their equal. His wife, his son, his uncle, (a barber in name and profession,) exposed the contrast of vulgar manners and princely expense; and without acquiring the majesty, Rienzi degenerated into the vices, of a king.

The ambition for the honors of chivalry 36 revealed the lowliness of his origins and diminished the significance of his role; the equestrian tribune was equally despised by the nobles he had taken in as by the plebeians he had turned away from. All that remained of wealth, luxury, or art was spent on that solemn day. Rienzi led the procession from the Capitol to the Lateran; the lengthy journey was brightened with decorations and games; the ecclesiastical, civil, and military orders marched with their various banners; the Roman ladies accompanied his wife; and the ambassadors from Italy either loudly applauded or secretly mocked the novelty of the splendor. By the time they reached the church and palace of Constantine in the evening, he thanked and dismissed the large crowd with an invitation to the next day's festival. From the hands of a venerable knight, he received the order of the Holy Ghost; the purification in the bath was a prior ritual; yet Rienzi stirred more scandal and criticism at any point in his life than when he improperly used the porphyry vase, which, according to a foolish legend, had healed Constantine's leprosy by Pope Sylvester. 37 With similar arrogance, the tribune either watched or rested within the hallowed area of the baptistery; the failure of his state bed was seen as a sign of his impending downfall. At worship time, he presented himself to the returning crowds in a grand pose, dressed in purple, with a sword and gilded spurs; however, the sacred rites were quickly disrupted by his frivolity and arrogance. Rising from his throne and walking towards the congregation, he proclaimed loudly: “We summon to our tribunal Pope Clement: and command him to stay in his diocese of Rome: we also summon the sacred college of cardinals. 38 We again summon the two claimants, Charles of Bohemia and Lewis of Bavaria, who call themselves emperors: we also summon all the electors of Germany, to explain on what grounds they have usurped the inalienable right of the Roman people, the ancient and rightful rulers of the empire.” 39 Drawing his untested sword, he waved it toward the three parts of the world three times and repeated his outrageous proclamation, “And this too is mine!” The pope’s representative, the bishop of Orvieto, tried to stop this folly; but his weak protest was drowned out by martial music; and instead of leaving the assembly, he agreed to dine with his fellow tribune at a table that had previously been reserved for the supreme pontiff. A banquet worthy of the Cæsars was prepared for the Romans. The rooms, porticos, and courtyards of the Lateran were filled with countless tables for all genders and statuses; a stream of wine poured from the nostrils of Constantine’s bronze horse; no complaints were heard except for the lack of water; and the wildness of the crowd was kept in check by discipline and fear. A later day was set for Rienzi's coronation; 40 seven crowns made of different leaves or metals were placed on his head one after another by the most prominent Roman clergy; they symbolized the seven gifts of the Holy Ghost; and he still claimed to follow the example of the ancient tribunes. 401 These extraordinary displays might have deceived or flattered the people; their own pride was satisfied in the pride of their leader. But in his private life, he soon strayed from the strict rules of frugality and self-restraint; and the plebeians, who were intimidated by the opulence of the nobles, were angered by the luxury of their equal. His wife, his son, and his uncle (a barber by title and profession) highlighted the contrast between common behavior and royal spending; and without gaining the dignity, Rienzi fell into the vices of a king.

36 (return)
[ Strange as it may seem, this festival was not without a precedent. In the year 1327, two barons, a Colonna and an Ursini, the usual balance, were created knights by the Roman people: their bath was of rose-water, their beds were decked with royal magnificence, and they were served at St. Maria of Araceli in the Capitol, by the twenty-eight buoni huomini. They afterwards received from Robert, king of Naples, the sword of chivalry, (Hist. Rom. l. i. c. 2, p. 259.)]

36 (return)
[ As strange as it may sound, this festival had some historical precedent. In 1327, two barons, a Colonna and an Ursini, the usual rivals, were made knights by the Roman citizens: their bath was filled with rose water, their beds were adorned with royal luxury, and they were served at St. Maria of Araceli in the Capitol, by the twenty-eight buoni huomini. They later received the sword of chivalry from Robert, the king of Naples, (Hist. Rom. l. i. c. 2, p. 259.)]

37 (return)
[ All parties believed in the leprosy and bath of Constantine (Petrarch. Epist. Famil. vi. 2,) and Rienzi justified his own conduct by observing to the court of Avignon, that a vase which had been used by a Pagan could not be profaned by a pious Christian. Yet this crime is specified in the bull of excommunication, (Hocsemius, apud du Cerçeau, p. 189, 190.)]

37 (return)
[ Everyone believed in the leprosy and bath of Constantine (Petrarch. Epist. Famil. vi. 2), and Rienzi defended his actions by stating to the court of Avignon that a vase used by a Pagan couldn't be desecrated by a devout Christian. Yet this wrongdoing is mentioned in the excommunication decree (Hocsemius, apud du Cerçeau, p. 189, 190.)]

38 (return)
[ This verbal summons of Pope Clement VI., which rests on the authority of the Roman historian and a Vatican MS., is disputed by the biographer of Petrarch, (tom. ii. not. p. 70—76), with arguments rather of decency than of weight. The court of Avignon might not choose to agitate this delicate question.]

38 (return)
[ This verbal summons of Pope Clement VI., based on the authority of a Roman historian and a Vatican manuscript, is challenged by Petrarch's biographer, (tom. ii. not. p. 70—76), with arguments that seem more about politeness than substance. The court of Avignon might prefer not to stir up this sensitive issue.]

39 (return)
[ The summons of the two rival emperors, a monument of freedom and folly, is extant in Hocsemius, (Cerçeau, p. 163—166.)]

39 (return)
[ The invitation from the two competing emperors, a symbol of both freedom and foolishness, is found in Hocsemius, (Cerçeau, p. 163—166.)]

40 (return)
[ It is singular, that the Roman historian should have overlooked this sevenfold coronation, which is sufficiently proved by internal evidence, and the testimony of Hocsemius, and even of Rienzi, (Cercean p. 167—170, 229.)]

40 (return)
[ It’s surprising that the Roman historian missed this sevenfold coronation, which is clearly supported by internal evidence, as well as the accounts of Hocsemius and even Rienzi, (Cercean p. 167—170, 229.)]

401 (return)
[ It was on this occasion that he made the profane comparison between himself and our Lord; and the striking circumstance took place which he relates in his letter to the archbishop of Prague. In the midst of all the wild and joyous exultation of the people, one of his most zealous supporters, a monk, who was in high repute for his sanctity, stood apart in a corner of the church and wept bitterly! A domestic chaplain of Rienzi’s inquired the cause of his grief. “Now,” replied the man of God, “is thy master cast down from heaven—never saw I man so proud. By the aid of the Holy Ghost he has driven the tyrants from the city without drawing a sword; the cities and the sovereigns of Italy have submitted to his power. Why is he so arrogant and ungrateful towards the Most High? Why does he seek earthly and transitory rewards for his labors, and in his wanton speech liken himself to the Creator? Tell thy master that he can only atone for this offence by tears of penitence.” In the evening the chaplain communicated this solemn rebuke to the tribune: it appalled him for the time, but was soon forgotten in the tumult and hurry of business.—M. 1845.]

401 (return)
[ It was during this time that he made the disrespectful comparison between himself and our Lord; and the remarkable event occurred that he describes in his letter to the archbishop of Prague. Amid the wild and joyful celebration of the people, one of his most devoted supporters, a monk renowned for his holiness, stood alone in a corner of the church and cried bitterly! A personal chaplain of Rienzi’s asked him what was causing his sorrow. “Now,” replied the holy man, “your master has been cast down from heaven—I've never seen someone so proud. With the help of the Holy Spirit, he has driven the tyrants from the city without even drawing a sword; the cities and rulers of Italy have submitted to his power. Why is he so arrogant and ungrateful towards the Most High? Why does he seek earthly and temporary rewards for his efforts, and in his reckless words compare himself to the Creator? Tell your master that he can only make up for this offense by shedding tears of repentance.” In the evening, the chaplain relayed this serious reprimand to the tribune: it shocked him for a moment, but was soon forgotten in the chaos and rush of business.—M. 1845.]

A simple citizen describes with pity, or perhaps with pleasure, the humiliation of the barons of Rome. “Bareheaded, their hands crossed on their breast, they stood with downcast looks in the presence of the tribune; and they trembled, good God, how they trembled!” 41 As long as the yoke of Rienzi was that of justice and their country, their conscience forced them to esteem the man, whom pride and interest provoked them to hate: his extravagant conduct soon fortified their hatred by contempt; and they conceived the hope of subverting a power which was no longer so deeply rooted in the public confidence. The old animosity of the Colonna and Ursini was suspended for a moment by their common disgrace: they associated their wishes, and perhaps their designs; an assassin was seized and tortured; he accused the nobles; and as soon as Rienzi deserved the fate, he adopted the suspicions and maxims, of a tyrant. On the same day, under various pretences, he invited to the Capitol his principal enemies, among whom were five members of the Ursini and three of the Colonna name. But instead of a council or a banquet, they found themselves prisoners under the sword of despotism or justice; and the consciousness of innocence or guilt might inspire them with equal apprehensions of danger. At the sound of the great bell the people assembled; they were arraigned for a conspiracy against the tribune’s life; and though some might sympathize in their distress, not a hand, nor a voice, was raised to rescue the first of the nobility from their impending doom. Their apparent boldness was prompted by despair; they passed in separate chambers a sleepless and painful night; and the venerable hero, Stephen Colonna, striking against the door of his prison, repeatedly urged his guards to deliver him by a speedy death from such ignominious servitude. In the morning they understood their sentence from the visit of a confessor and the tolling of the bell. The great hall of the Capitol had been decorated for the bloody scene with red and white hangings: the countenance of the tribune was dark and severe; the swords of the executioners were unsheathed; and the barons were interrupted in their dying speeches by the sound of trumpets. But in this decisive moment, Rienzi was not less anxious or apprehensive than his captives: he dreaded the splendor of their names, their surviving kinsmen, the inconstancy of the people, the reproaches of the world, and, after rashly offering a mortal injury, he vainly presumed that, if he could forgive, he might himself be forgiven. His elaborate oration was that of a Christian and a suppliant; and, as the humble minister of the commons, he entreated his masters to pardon these noble criminals, for whose repentance and future service he pledged his faith and authority. “If you are spared,” said the tribune, “by the mercy of the Romans, will you not promise to support the good estate with your lives and fortunes?” Astonished by this marvellous clemency, the barons bowed their heads; and while they devoutly repeated the oath of allegiance, might whisper a secret, and more sincere, assurance of revenge. A priest, in the name of the people, pronounced their absolution: they received the communion with the tribune, assisted at the banquet, followed the procession; and, after every spiritual and temporal sign of reconciliation, were dismissed in safety to their respective homes, with the new honors and titles of generals, consuls, and patricians. 42

A regular citizen watches with either pity or maybe even pleasure as the barons of Rome face humiliation. “Bareheaded, with their hands crossed over their chests, they stood with their heads down in front of the tribune; and they trembled, oh God, how they trembled!” 41 As long as Rienzi's rule was seen as just and for the good of their country, these nobles felt they had to respect him, even though pride and self-interest made them want to hate him. His reckless behavior soon turned their respect into contempt and fueled their hatred, leading them to believe they could overthrow a power that had weakened in public trust. The old rivalry between the Colonna and Ursini families was temporarily paused due to their shared disgrace: they pooled their hopes and possibly their plans together; an assassin was caught and tortured, and he accused the nobles. Just when Rienzi began to fit the role of a tyrant, he invited his main enemies to the Capitol under various pretenses, including five from the Ursini family and three from the Colonna. But rather than a council meeting or a feast, they found themselves prisoners at the mercy of tyranny or justice; whether innocent or guilty, they faced equal fear. When the big bell rang, the crowd gathered; they were accused of plotting against the tribune’s life, and while some may have felt sympathy, not a single hand or voice was raised to save the highest-ranking nobles from their impending fate. Their boldness was driven by despair; they spent a sleepless and agonizing night in separate cells, and the respected elder, Stephen Colonna, beat against the door of his cell, pleading with the guards for a swift death to escape such disgraceful imprisonment. In the morning, they learned their fate from a confessor's visit and the sound of the bell tolling. The grand hall of the Capitol had been decorated for the impending execution with red and white banners: the tribune’s expression was grim and stern, the executioners’ swords were drawn, and the barons were cut off from their final words by the blare of trumpets. Yet in this crucial moment, Rienzi felt just as anxious and fearful as his captives: he feared the power of their names, their remaining family, the fickleness of the people, the criticism he would face, and, having rashly committed a grave offense, he vainly hoped that if he could forgive, he might be forgiven too. His eloquent speech was that of a Christian and a beggar; as the humble representative of the people, he begged his masters to forgive these noble offenders, vowing his faith and authority for their repentance and future loyalty. “If you’re spared,” the tribune asked, “by the mercy of the Romans, will you not promise to support the community with your lives and wealth?” Shocked by this unexpected mercy, the barons bowed their heads, and while they dutifully swore their loyalty, they might have secretly whispered a sincere promise of vengeance. A priest, speaking for the people, granted them absolution: they took communion with the tribune, attended the feast, joined in the procession; and after all the spiritual and tangible signs of reconciliation, they were safely sent home with new honors and titles of generals, consuls, and patricians. 42

41 (return)
[ Puoi se faceva stare denante a se, mentre sedeva, li baroni tutti in piedi ritti co le vraccia piecate, e co li capucci tratti. Deh como stavano paurosi! (Hist. Rom. l. ii. c. 20, p. 439.) He saw them, and we see them.]

41 (return)
[ He could make them stand before him, while he was seated, all the barons standing upright with their arms bent and their hoods pulled back. Oh, how terrified they looked! (Hist. Rom. l. ii. c. 20, p. 439.) He saw them, and we see them.]

42 (return)
[ The original letter, in which Rienzi justifies his treatment of the Colonna, (Hocsemius, apud du Cerçeau, p. 222—229,) displays, in genuine colors, the mixture of the knave and the madman.]

42 (return)
[ The original letter, where Rienzi explains his handling of the Colonna, (Hocsemius, apud du Cerçeau, p. 222—229,) shows, in true form, the blend of the trickster and the lunatic.]

During some weeks they were checked by the memory of their danger, rather than of their deliverance, till the most powerful of the Ursini, escaping with the Colonna from the city, erected at Marino the standard of rebellion. The fortifications of the castle were instantly restored; the vassals attended their lord; the outlaws armed against the magistrate; the flocks and herds, the harvests and vineyards, from Marino to the gates of Rome, were swept away or destroyed; and the people arraigned Rienzi as the author of the calamities which his government had taught them to forget. In the camp, Rienzi appeared to less advantage than in the rostrum; and he neglected the progress of the rebel barons till their numbers were strong, and their castles impregnable. From the pages of Livy he had not imbibed the art, or even the courage, of a general: an army of twenty thousand Romans returned without honor or effect from the attack of Marino; and his vengeance was amused by painting his enemies, their heads downwards, and drowning two dogs (at least they should have been bears) as the representatives of the Ursini. The belief of his incapacity encouraged their operations: they were invited by their secret adherents; and the barons attempted, with four thousand foot, and sixteen hundred horse, to enter Rome by force or surprise. The city was prepared for their reception; the alarm-bell rung all night; the gates were strictly guarded, or insolently open; and after some hesitation they sounded a retreat. The two first divisions had passed along the walls, but the prospect of a free entrance tempted the headstrong valor of the nobles in the rear; and after a successful skirmish, they were overthrown and massacred without quarter by the crowds of the Roman people. Stephen Colonna the younger, the noble spirit to whom Petrarch ascribed the restoration of Italy, was preceded or accompanied in death by his son John, a gallant youth, by his brother Peter, who might regret the ease and honors of the church, by a nephew of legitimate birth, and by two bastards of the Colonna race; and the number of seven, the seven crowns, as Rienzi styled them, of the Holy Ghost, was completed by the agony of the deplorable parent, and the veteran chief, who had survived the hope and fortune of his house. The vision and prophecies of St. Martin and Pope Boniface had been used by the tribune to animate his troops: 43 he displayed, at least in the pursuit, the spirit of a hero; but he forgot the maxims of the ancient Romans, who abhorred the triumphs of civil war. The conqueror ascended the Capitol; deposited his crown and sceptre on the altar; and boasted, with some truth, that he had cut off an ear, which neither pope nor emperor had been able to amputate. 44 His base and implacable revenge denied the honors of burial; and the bodies of the Colonna, which he threatened to expose with those of the vilest malefactors, were secretly interred by the holy virgins of their name and family. 45 The people sympathized in their grief, repented of their own fury, and detested the indecent joy of Rienzi, who visited the spot where these illustrious victims had fallen. It was on that fatal spot that he conferred on his son the honor of knighthood: and the ceremony was accomplished by a slight blow from each of the horsemen of the guard, and by a ridiculous and inhuman ablution from a pool of water, which was yet polluted with patrician blood. 46

During some weeks, they were haunted more by the memory of their danger than by their escape, until the most powerful of the Ursini, fleeing the city with the Colonna, raised the banner of rebellion at Marino. The castle’s fortifications were quickly rebuilt; the vassals rallied to their lord; outlaws armed themselves against the magistrate; livestock, crops, and vineyards from Marino to the gates of Rome were destroyed or taken; and the people blamed Rienzi for the disasters that his leadership had helped them to forget. In the camp, Rienzi did not appear as capable as he did when speaking; he overlooked the advancing rebel barons until their numbers grew strong and their castles became unassailable. He had not learned the skills or even the courage of a general from reading Livy: an army of twenty thousand Romans returned without glory or success from their assault on Marino; and he amused himself by depicting his enemies headfirst and drowning two dogs (though they should have been bears) to symbolize the Ursini. The belief in his incompetence motivated their actions; they were encouraged by their secret supporters; and the barons attempted to forcibly or stealthily enter Rome with four thousand foot soldiers and sixteen hundred cavalry. The city was ready for their arrival; the alarm bell rang all night; the gates were either tightly secured or openly insolent; and after some hesitation, they retreated. The first two divisions had passed along the walls, but the promise of an easy entrance tempted the reckless bravery of the nobles at the back; after a successful skirmish, they were overwhelmed and slaughtered without mercy by the crowds of Roman citizens. Stephen Colonna the younger, the noble figure whom Petrarch credited with Italy’s restoration, was preceded or accompanied in death by his son John, a brave young man, by his brother Peter, who might long for the comfort and status of the church, by a legitimate nephew, and by two illegitimate members of the Colonna family; the number seven, the seven crowns, as Rienzi called them, was completed by the agony of the grieving father and the veteran leader, who had outlived his family's hopes and fortunes. The visions and prophecies of St. Martin and Pope Boniface had been used by the tribune to inspire his troops: 43 he showed, at least in the pursuit, the spirit of a hero; but he forgot the principles of the ancient Romans, who despised the triumphs of civil war. The victor climbed the Capitol; placed his crown and scepter on the altar; and claimed, with some truth, that he had severed an ear, which neither pope nor emperor had been able to remove. 44 His cruel and unyielding revenge denied them the honors of burial; and the bodies of the Colonna, which he threatened to display alongside those of the lowest criminals, were secretly buried by the holy maidens of their lineage. 45 The people shared in their sorrow, regretted their own rage, and loathed Rienzi's indecent glee as he visited the place where these noble victims had fallen. It was on that tragic site that he gave his son the honor of knighthood; the ceremony was marked by a slight blow from each of the guardsmen on horseback and by a ludicrous and inhumane washing in a pool of water, still tainted with patrician blood. 46

43 (return)
[ Rienzi, in the above-mentioned letter, ascribes to St. Martin the tribune, Boniface VIII. the enemy of Colonna, himself, and the Roman people, the glory of the day, which Villani likewise (l. 12, c. 104) describes as a regular battle. The disorderly skirmish, the flight of the Romans, and the cowardice of Rienzi, are painted in the simple and minute narrative of Fortifiocca, or the anonymous citizen, (l. i. c. 34—37.)]

43 (return)
[ Rienzi, in the letter mentioned earlier, attributes the triumph of the day to St. Martin, as well as to Boniface VIII, who was an enemy of the Colonna family, himself, and the people of Rome. Villani also describes this event (l. 12, c. 104) as a proper battle. The chaotic skirmish, the retreat of the Romans, and Rienzi's cowardice are depicted in the straightforward and detailed account by Fortifiocca or the anonymous citizen (l. i. c. 34—37.)]

44 (return)
[ In describing the fall of the Colonna, I speak only of the family of Stephen the elder, who is often confounded by the P. du Cerçeau with his son. That family was extinguished, but the house has been perpetuated in the collateral branches, of which I have not a very accurate knowledge. Circumspice (says Petrarch) familiæ tuæ statum, Columniensium domos: solito pauciores habeat columnas. Quid ad rem modo fundamentum stabile, solidumque permaneat.]

44 (return)
[ When discussing the downfall of the Colonna, I’m referring only to the family of Stephen the elder, who is often mistakenly identified by P. du Cerçeau as his son. That family has come to an end, but the lineage continues through its collateral branches, which I don’t have a very clear understanding of. Circumspice (says Petrarch) familiæ tuæ statum, Columniensium domos: there are usually fewer pillars. What matters is that the foundation remains stable and solid.]

45 (return)
[ The convent of St. Silvester was founded, endowed, and protected by the Colonna cardinals, for the daughters of the family who embraced a monastic life, and who, in the year 1318, were twelve in number. The others were allowed to marry with their kinsmen in the fourth degree, and the dispensation was justified by the small number and close alliances of the noble families of Rome, (Mémoires sur Pétrarque, tom. i. p. 110, tom. ii. p. 401.)]

45 (return)
[ The convent of St. Silvester was established, funded, and supported by the Colonna cardinals for the daughters of the family who chose to live a monastic life, and in the year 1318, there were twelve of them. The others were permitted to marry relatives up to the fourth degree, and this allowance was justified by the small number and close connections of the noble families in Rome, (Mémoires sur Pétrarque, tom. i. p. 110, tom. ii. p. 401.)]

46 (return)
[ Petrarch wrote a stiff and pedantic letter of consolation, (Fam. l. vii. epist. 13, p. 682, 683.) The friend was lost in the patriot. Nulla toto orbe principum familia carior; carior tamen respublica, carior Roma, carior Italia. ——Je rends graces aux Dieux de n’être pas Romain.]

46 (return)
[ Petrarch wrote a formal and overly serious letter of comfort, (Fam. l. vii. epist. 13, p. 682, 683.) The friend was lost in the patriot. No family of rulers in the whole world is more cherished; yet the republic is more cherished, Rome is more cherished, Italy is more cherished. ——I give thanks to the gods for not being Roman.]

A short delay would have saved the Colonna, the delay of a single month, which elapsed between the triumph and the exile of Rienzi. In the pride of victory, he forfeited what yet remained of his civil virtues, without acquiring the fame of military prowess. A free and vigorous opposition was formed in the city; and when the tribune proposed in the public council 47 to impose a new tax, and to regulate the government of Perugia, thirty-nine members voted against his measures; repelled the injurious charge of treachery and corruption; and urged him to prove, by their forcible exclusion, that if the populace adhered to his cause, it was already disclaimed by the most respectable citizens. The pope and the sacred college had never been dazzled by his specious professions; they were justly offended by the insolence of his conduct; a cardinal legate was sent to Italy, and after some fruitless treaty, and two personal interviews, he fulminated a bull of excommunication, in which the tribune is degraded from his office, and branded with the guilt of rebellion, sacrilege, and heresy. 48 The surviving barons of Rome were now humbled to a sense of allegiance; their interest and revenge engaged them in the service of the church; but as the fate of the Colonna was before their eyes, they abandoned to a private adventurer the peril and glory of the revolution. John Pepin, count of Minorbino, 49 in the kingdom of Naples, had been condemned for his crimes, or his riches, to perpetual imprisonment; and Petrarch, by soliciting his release, indirectly contributed to the ruin of his friend. At the head of one hundred and fifty soldiers, the count of Minorbino introduced himself into Rome; barricaded the quarter of the Colonna: and found the enterprise as easy as it had seemed impossible. From the first alarm, the bell of the Capitol incessantly tolled; but, instead of repairing to the well-known sound, the people were silent and inactive; and the pusillanimous Rienzi, deploring their ingratitude with sighs and tears, abdicated the government and palace of the republic.

A short delay would have saved the Colonna, just a single month that passed between Rienzi's triumph and his exile. In the pride of victory, he lost the few civil virtues he had left without gaining any military fame. A strong opposition formed in the city, and when the tribune proposed in the public council 47 to impose a new tax and reorganize the government of Perugia, thirty-nine members voted against his plans; they dismissed the damaging accusations of treachery and corruption and urged him to show, by their forceful exclusion, that while the masses might support him, he was already rejected by the most respected citizens. The pope and the sacred college were never fooled by his flashy claims; they were rightly offended by his arrogance. A cardinal legate was sent to Italy, and after some failed negotiations and two personal meetings, he issued a bull of excommunication, stripping the tribune of his office and marking him with the charges of rebellion, sacrilege, and heresy. 48 The remaining barons of Rome were now humbled and aware of their duties; their interests and desire for revenge pulled them into the service of the church. However, with the fate of the Colonna in mind, they left the danger and glory of the revolution to a private adventurer. John Pepin, count of Minorbino, 49 in the kingdom of Naples, had been sentenced to life imprisonment for either his crimes or his wealth; and Petrarch, by advocating for his release, indirectly contributed to the downfall of his friend. Leading one hundred and fifty soldiers, the count of Minorbino made his way into Rome; he blocked off the Colonna's area and found the mission as easy as it had seemed impossible. From the first alarm, the bell of the Capitol rang continuously; but instead of responding to the familiar sound, the people stayed silent and inactive, while the cowardly Rienzi, lamenting their ingratitude with sighs and tears, stepped down from the government and the palace of the republic.

47 (return)
[ This council and opposition is obscurely mentioned by Pollistore, a contemporary writer, who has preserved some curious and original facts, (Rer. Italicarum, tom. xxv. c. 31, p. 798—804.)]

47 (return)
[ This council and opposition is briefly mentioned by Pollistore, a writer from that time, who has kept some interesting and original details, (Rer. Italicarum, tom. xxv. c. 31, p. 798—804.)]

48 (return)
[ The briefs and bulls of Clement VI. against Rienzi are translated by the P. du Cerçeau, (p. 196, 232,) from the Ecclesiastical Annals of Odericus Raynaldus, (A.D. 1347, No. 15, 17, 21, &c.,) who found them in the archives of the Vatican.]

48 (return)
[ The briefs and bulls of Clement VI against Rienzi are translated by P. du Cerçeau, (p. 196, 232,) from the Ecclesiastical Annals of Odericus Raynaldus, (A.D. 1347, No. 15, 17, 21, etc.,) who found them in the Vatican archives.]

49 (return)
[ Matteo Villani describes the origin, character, and death of this count of Minorbino, a man da natura inconstante e senza fede, whose grandfather, a crafty notary, was enriched and ennobled by the spoils of the Saracens of Nocera, (l. vii. c. 102, 103.) See his imprisonment, and the efforts of Petrarch, (tom. ii. p. 149—151.)]

49 (return)
[ Matteo Villani describes the background, personality, and death of this count of Minorbino, a man of unpredictable nature and lacking faith, whose grandfather, a shrewd notary, became wealthy and noble from the spoils taken from the Saracens of Nocera, (l. vii. c. 102, 103.) See his imprisonment and the attempts made by Petrarch, (tom. ii. p. 149—151.)]

Chapter LXX: Final Settlement Of The Ecclesiastical State.—Part III.

Without drawing his sword, count Pepin restored the aristocracy and the church; three senators were chosen, and the legate, assuming the first rank, accepted his two colleagues from the rival families of Colonna and Ursini. The acts of the tribune were abolished, his head was proscribed; yet such was the terror of his name, that the barons hesitated three days before they would trust themselves in the city, and Rienzi was left above a month in the castle of St. Angelo, from whence he peaceably withdrew, after laboring, without effect, to revive the affection and courage of the Romans. The vision of freedom and empire had vanished: their fallen spirit would have acquiesced in servitude, had it been smoothed by tranquillity and order; and it was scarcely observed, that the new senators derived their authority from the Apostolic See; that four cardinals were appointed to reform, with dictatorial power, the state of the republic. Rome was again agitated by the bloody feuds of the barons, who detested each other, and despised the commons: their hostile fortresses, both in town and country, again rose, and were again demolished: and the peaceful citizens, a flock of sheep, were devoured, says the Florentine historian, by these rapacious wolves. But when their pride and avarice had exhausted the patience of the Romans, a confraternity of the Virgin Mary protected or avenged the republic: the bell of the Capitol was again tolled, the nobles in arms trembled in the presence of an unarmed multitude; and of the two senators, Colonna escaped from the window of the palace, and Ursini was stoned at the foot of the altar. The dangerous office of tribune was successively occupied by two plebeians, Cerroni and Baroncelli. The mildness of Cerroni was unequal to the times; and after a faint struggle, he retired with a fair reputation and a decent fortune to the comforts of rural life. Devoid of eloquence or genius, Baroncelli was distinguished by a resolute spirit: he spoke the language of a patriot, and trod in the footsteps of tyrants; his suspicion was a sentence of death, and his own death was the reward of his cruelties. Amidst the public misfortunes, the faults of Rienzi were forgotten; and the Romans sighed for the peace and prosperity of their good estate. 50

Without drawing his sword, Count Pepin restored the aristocracy and the church; three senators were chosen, and the legate, taking the lead role, accepted his two colleagues from the rival families of Colonna and Ursini. The actions of the tribune were canceled, and his life was in danger; yet the fear of his name was so strong that the barons hesitated for three days before they felt safe entering the city. Rienzi remained in the castle of St. Angelo for over a month, where he quietly left after struggling, without success, to rekindle the affection and courage of the Romans. The dream of freedom and power had faded: their defeated spirit would have submitted to servitude if it had come with peace and order; and it was barely noticed that the new senators got their authority from the Apostolic See, and that four cardinals were appointed to reform the state of the republic with dictatorial power. Rome was once again shaken by the bloody conflicts of the barons, who hated each other and looked down on the common people: their enemy fortresses, both in the city and the countryside, rose again, only to be torn down once more; and the peaceful citizens, like a flock of sheep, were devoured, as the Florentine historian put it, by these greedy wolves. But when their pride and greed wore down the patience of the Romans, a confraternity dedicated to the Virgin Mary either protected or avenged the republic: the bell of the Capitol was rung once more, the armed nobles trembled in front of an unarmed crowd; and of the two senators, Colonna escaped through a palace window, while Ursini was stoned at the foot of the altar. The dangerous role of tribune was held in turn by two commoners, Cerroni and Baroncelli. Cerroni’s gentleness wasn’t suited to the times; and after a brief struggle, he retired with a good reputation and a decent fortune to enjoy the comforts of rural life. Lacking charisma or brilliance, Baroncelli stood out for his determination: he spoke like a patriot and followed the lead of tyrants; his suspicions amounted to a death sentence, and his own death was the result of his cruelties. Amid the public misfortunes, the mistakes of Rienzi were forgotten; and the Romans longed for the peace and prosperity of their earlier state. 50

50 (return)
[ The troubles of Rome, from the departure to the return of Rienzi, are related by Matteo Villani (l. ii. c. 47, l. iii. c. 33, 57, 78) and Thomas Fortifiocca, (l. iii. c. 1—4.) I have slightly passed over these secondary characters, who imitated the original tribune.]

50 (return)
[ The issues in Rome, from Rienzi's departure to his return, are discussed by Matteo Villani (l. ii. c. 47, l. iii. c. 33, 57, 78) and Thomas Fortifiocca (l. iii. c. 1—4). I've briefly skipped over these lesser figures who copied the original tribune.]

After an exile of seven years, the first deliverer was again restored to his country. In the disguise of a monk or a pilgrim, he escaped from the castle of St. Angelo, implored the friendship of the king of Hungary at Naples, tempted the ambition of every bold adventurer, mingled at Rome with the pilgrims of the jubilee, lay concealed among the hermits of the Apennine, and wandered through the cities of Italy, Germany, and Bohemia. His person was invisible, his name was yet formidable; and the anxiety of the court of Avignon supposes, and even magnifies, his personal merit. The emperor Charles the Fourth gave audience to a stranger, who frankly revealed himself as the tribune of the republic; and astonished an assembly of ambassadors and princes, by the eloquence of a patriot and the visions of a prophet, the downfall of tyranny and the kingdom of the Holy Ghost. 51 Whatever had been his hopes, Rienzi found himself a captive; but he supported a character of independence and dignity, and obeyed, as his own choice, the irresistible summons of the supreme pontiff. The zeal of Petrarch, which had been cooled by the unworthy conduct, was rekindled by the sufferings and the presence, of his friend; and he boldly complains of the times, in which the savior of Rome was delivered by her emperor into the hands of her bishop. Rienzi was transported slowly, but in safe custody, from Prague to Avignon: his entrance into the city was that of a malefactor; in his prison he was chained by the leg; and four cardinals were named to inquire into the crimes of heresy and rebellion. But his trial and condemnation would have involved some questions, which it was more prudent to leave under the veil of mystery: the temporal supremacy of the popes; the duty of residence; the civil and ecclesiastical privileges of the clergy and people of Rome. The reigning pontiff well deserved the appellation of Clement: the strange vicissitudes and magnanimous spirit of the captive excited his pity and esteem; and Petrarch believes that he respected in the hero the name and sacred character of a poet. 52 Rienzi was indulged with an easy confinement and the use of books; and in the assiduous study of Livy and the Bible, he sought the cause and the consolation of his misfortunes.

After seven years of exile, the first deliverer was finally restored to his country. Disguised as a monk or a pilgrim, he escaped from the castle of St. Angelo, sought the friendship of the king of Hungary in Naples, stirred the ambitions of every daring adventurer, mingled with the jubilee pilgrims in Rome, hid among the hermits of the Apennines, and traveled through the cities of Italy, Germany, and Bohemia. Though his physical presence was hidden, his name still struck fear; and the worry of the Avignon court assumes, and even exaggerates, his personal merit. Emperor Charles the Fourth listened to a stranger who openly identified himself as the representative of the republic, astonishing an assembly of ambassadors and princes with a patriot’s eloquence and prophetic visions about the downfall of tyranny and the kingdom of the Holy Ghost. 51 Whatever his hopes had been, Rienzi found himself in captivity; however, he maintained an independent and dignified demeanor, obeying, by his own choice, the unavoidable call of the pope. Petrarch's enthusiasm, which had waned due to disappointing behavior, was reignited by his friend's suffering and presence; he boldly lamented the times when Rome's savior was handed over by her emperor to her bishop. Rienzi was slowly but safely transported from Prague to Avignon: his arrival in the city resembled that of a criminal; while in prison, he was shackled by the leg, and four cardinals were appointed to investigate charges of heresy and rebellion. However, his trial and condemnation would have raised questions it was wiser to keep shrouded in mystery: the temporal authority of the popes, the obligation of residence, and the civil and ecclesiastical rights of the clergy and people of Rome. The reigning pope truly earned the title of Clement: the unusual ups and downs and noble spirit of the captive stirred his compassion and respect; Petrarch believed he honored in the hero the name and sacred role of a poet. 52 Rienzi was granted a comfortable confinement and access to books; in the dedicated study of Livy and the Bible, he sought both the reasons for and solace from his misfortunes.

51 (return)
[ These visions, of which the friends and enemies of Rienzi seem alike ignorant, are surely magnified by the zeal of Pollistore, a Dominican inquisitor, (Rer. Ital. tom. xxv. c. 36, p. 819.) Had the tribune taught, that Christ was succeeded by the Holy Ghost, that the tyranny of the pope would be abolished, he might have been convicted of heresy and treason, without offending the Roman people. * Note: So far from having magnified these visions, Pollistore is more than confirmed by the documents published by Papencordt. The adoption of all the wild doctrines of the Fratricelli, the Spirituals, in which, for the time at least, Rienzi appears to have been in earnest; his magnificent offers to the emperor, and the whole history of his life, from his first escape from Rome to his imprisonment at Avignon, are among the most curious chapters of his eventful life.—M. 1845.]

51 (return)
[ These visions, which both Rienzi's friends and enemies seem unaware of, are certainly intensified by the enthusiasm of Pollistore, a Dominican inquisitor, (Rer. Ital. tom. xxv. c. 36, p. 819.) If the tribune had taught that Christ was succeeded by the Holy Spirit and that the pope's tyranny would end, he could have been accused of heresy and treason without upsetting the Roman people. * Note: Far from exaggerating these visions, Pollistore is strongly supported by the documents published by Papencordt. The embrace of all the extreme beliefs of the Fratricelli and the Spirituals, in which, at least for a time, Rienzi seems to have been serious; his grand proposals to the emperor, and the entire saga of his life, from his first escape from Rome to his imprisonment in Avignon, are among the most fascinating chapters of his remarkable life.—M. 1845.]

52 (return)
[ The astonishment, the envy almost, of Petrarch is a proof, if not of the truth of this incredible fact, at least of his own veracity. The abbé de Sade (Mémoires, tom. iii. p. 242) quotes the vith epistle of the xiiith book of Petrarch, but it is of the royal MS., which he consulted, and not of the ordinary Basil edition, (p. 920.)]

52 (return)
[ Petrarch's astonishment and almost envy serve as proof, if not of the truth of this unbelievable fact, at least of his own honesty. The abbé de Sade (Mémoires, tom. iii. p. 242) references the sixth letter from the thirteenth book of Petrarch, but it is from the royal manuscript he consulted, not the standard Basil edition, (p. 920.)]

The succeeding pontificate of Innocent the Sixth opened a new prospect of his deliverance and restoration; and the court of Avignon was persuaded, that the successful rebel could alone appease and reform the anarchy of the metropolis. After a solemn profession of fidelity, the Roman tribune was sent into Italy, with the title of senator; but the death of Baroncelli appeared to supersede the use of his mission; and the legate, Cardinal Albornoz, 53 a consummate statesman, allowed him with reluctance, and without aid, to undertake the perilous experiment. His first reception was equal to his wishes: the day of his entrance was a public festival; and his eloquence and authority revived the laws of the good estate. But this momentary sunshine was soon clouded by his own vices and those of the people: in the Capitol, he might often regret the prison of Avignon; and after a second administration of four months, Rienzi was massacred in a tumult which had been fomented by the Roman barons. In the society of the Germans and Bohemians, he is said to have contracted the habits of intemperance and cruelty: adversity had chilled his enthusiasm, without fortifying his reason or virtue; and that youthful hope, that lively assurance, which is the pledge of success, was now succeeded by the cold impotence of distrust and despair. The tribune had reigned with absolute dominion, by the choice, and in the hearts, of the Romans: the senator was the servile minister of a foreign court; and while he was suspected by the people, he was abandoned by the prince. The legate Albornoz, who seemed desirous of his ruin, inflexibly refused all supplies of men and money; a faithful subject could no longer presume to touch the revenues of the apostolical chamber; and the first idea of a tax was the signal of clamor and sedition. Even his justice was tainted with the guilt or reproach of selfish cruelty: the most virtuous citizen of Rome was sacrificed to his jealousy; and in the execution of a public robber, from whose purse he had been assisted, the magistrate too much forgot, or too much remembered, the obligations of the debtor. 54 A civil war exhausted his treasures, and the patience of the city: the Colonna maintained their hostile station at Palestrina; and his mercenaries soon despised a leader whose ignorance and fear were envious of all subordinate merit. In the death, as in the life, of Rienzi, the hero and the coward were strangely mingled. When the Capitol was invested by a furious multitude, when he was basely deserted by his civil and military servants, the intrepid senator, waving the banner of liberty, presented himself on the balcony, addressed his eloquence to the various passions of the Romans, and labored to persuade them, that in the same cause himself and the republic must either stand or fall. His oration was interrupted by a volley of imprecations and stones; and after an arrow had transpierced his hand, he sunk into abject despair, and fled weeping to the inner chambers, from whence he was let down by a sheet before the windows of the prison. Destitute of aid or hope, he was besieged till the evening: the doors of the Capitol were destroyed with axes and fire; and while the senator attempted to escape in a plebeian habit, he was discovered and dragged to the platform of the palace, the fatal scene of his judgments and executions. A whole hour, without voice or motion, he stood amidst the multitude half naked and half dead: their rage was hushed into curiosity and wonder: the last feelings of reverence and compassion yet struggled in his favor; and they might have prevailed, if a bold assassin had not plunged a dagger in his breast. He fell senseless with the first stroke: the impotent revenge of his enemies inflicted a thousand wounds: and the senator’s body was abandoned to the dogs, to the Jews, and to the flames. Posterity will compare the virtues and failings of this extraordinary man; but in a long period of anarchy and servitude, the name of Rienzi has often been celebrated as the deliverer of his country, and the last of the Roman patriots. 55

The following papacy of Innocent the Sixth offered a new opportunity for his rescue and restoration; the court of Avignon was convinced that the successful rebel alone could calm and reform the chaos in the city. After a formal vow of loyalty, the Roman tribune was sent to Italy with the title of senator; however, the death of Baroncelli seemed to undermine his mission. The legate, Cardinal Albornoz, a skilled statesman, reluctantly allowed him to take on the dangerous task without assistance. His initial reception matched his hopes: the day of his arrival was celebrated publicly, and his charisma and authority revived the laws of the good government. But this brief optimism was quickly overshadowed by his own flaws and those of the people: in the Capitol, he often longed for the prison in Avignon; and after a second term of four months, Rienzi was killed in an uprising fueled by the Roman barons. It’s said that in the company of the Germans and Bohemians, he developed habits of excess and cruelty: hard times dulled his enthusiasm without strengthening his reason or morals; and that youthful hope and energetic confidence, which signal success, were replaced by the bitter powerlessness of doubt and despair. The tribune ruled with complete authority, by the choice and in the hearts of the Romans: the senator was a subservient agent of a foreign court; and while the people were wary of him, he was shunned by the prince. Legate Albornoz, who appeared eager for his downfall, firmly denied any supplies of men and money; a loyal subject could no longer claim the revenues of the apostolic treasury; and the mere thought of a tax sparked uproar and unrest. Even his sense of justice was stained by the guilt or accusation of cruel selfishness: the most virtuous citizen of Rome was sacrificed to his jealousy; and in the execution of a public robber, who had helped him, the magistrate too often forgot, or too readily remembered, the obligations of the debtor. A civil war drained his resources, as well as the patience of the city: the Colonna family continued to hold their defiant position at Palestrina; and his mercenaries soon scorned a leader whose ignorance and fear resented all subordinate talent. In both life and death, Rienzi embodied a strange mix of a hero and a coward. When the Capitol was surrounded by an angry crowd, and he was shamefully abandoned by his civil and military aides, the fearless senator, waving the banner of liberty, appeared on the balcony, addressing the Romans with his eloquence, trying to convince them that in the same struggle, both he and the republic must either survive or perish together. His speech was interrupted by a barrage of curses and stones; and after an arrow pierced his hand, he sank into deep despair and fled, weeping, to the inner chambers, where he was lowered by a sheet from the prison window. Without support or hope, he was besieged until evening: the doors of the Capitol were smashed down with axes and fire; and while the senator tried to escape in commoner's clothing, he was discovered and dragged to the platform of the palace, the very site of his judgments and executions. For a full hour, speechless and motionless, he stood before the crowd, half-naked and near death: their anger faded into curiosity and wonder; the last remnants of reverence and compassion still worked in his favor; and they might have succeeded in saving him, if a daring assassin hadn’t stabbed a dagger into his chest. He collapsed, unconscious from the first blow: the feeble revenge of his enemies inflicted countless wounds; and the senator's body was left for the dogs, the Jews, and the flames. Future generations will weigh the virtues and flaws of this remarkable man; but throughout a long era of anarchy and oppression, the name of Rienzi has often been hailed as that of his country's liberator and the last of the Roman patriots.

53 (return)
[ Ægidius, or Giles Albornoz, a noble Spaniard, archbishop of Toledo, and cardinal legate in Italy, (A.D. 1353—1367,) restored, by his arms and counsels, the temporal dominion of the popes. His life has been separately written by Sepulveda; but Dryden could not reasonably suppose, that his name, or that of Wolsey, had reached the ears of the Mufti in Don Sebastian.]

53 (return)
[ Ægidius, or Giles Albornoz, a noble Spaniard, archbishop of Toledo, and cardinal legate in Italy (A.D. 1353—1367), restored the papal temporal authority through his military efforts and advice. Sepulveda wrote a separate account of his life; however, Dryden couldn't reasonably expect that either his name or Wolsey's had made it to the Mufti's ears in Don Sebastian.]

54 (return)
[ From Matteo Villani and Fortifiocca, the P. du Cerçeau (p. 344—394) has extracted the life and death of the chevalier Montreal, the life of a robber and the death of a hero. At the head of a free company, the first that desolated Italy, he became rich and formidable be had money in all the banks,—60,000 ducats in Padua alone.]

54 (return)
[ From Matteo Villani and Fortifiocca, the P. du Cerçeau (p. 344—394) has summarized the life and death of the knight Montreal, a story of a criminal and the passing of a hero. Leading a mercenary group, the first to wreak havoc in Italy, he grew wealthy and feared, having money in all the banks—60,000 ducats just in Padua alone.]

55 (return)
[ The exile, second government, and death of Rienzi, are minutely related by the anonymous Roman, who appears neither his friend nor his enemy, (l. iii. c. 12—25.) Petrarch, who loved the tribune, was indifferent to the fate of the senator.]

55 (return)
[ The exile, second government, and death of Rienzi are detailed by an anonymous Roman, who seems to be neither his friend nor his foe, (l. iii. c. 12—25.) Petrarch, who admired the tribune, was indifferent to the outcome of the senator.]

The first and most generous wish of Petrarch was the restoration of a free republic; but after the exile and death of his plebeian hero, he turned his eyes from the tribune, to the king, of the Romans. The Capitol was yet stained with the blood of Rienzi, when Charles the Fourth descended from the Alps to obtain the Italian and Imperial crowns. In his passage through Milan he received the visit, and repaid the flattery, of the poet-laureate; accepted a medal of Augustus; and promised, without a smile, to imitate the founder of the Roman monarchy. A false application of the name and maxims of antiquity was the source of the hopes and disappointments of Petrarch; yet he could not overlook the difference of times and characters; the immeasurable distance between the first Cæsars and a Bohemian prince, who by the favor of the clergy had been elected the titular head of the German aristocracy. Instead of restoring to Rome her glory and her provinces, he had bound himself by a secret treaty with the pope, to evacuate the city on the day of his coronation; and his shameful retreat was pursued by the reproaches of the patriot bard. 56

Petrarch's first and most generous wish was to see a free republic restored. However, after the exile and death of his common hero, he shifted his focus from the people to the king of the Romans. The Capitol was still marked by Rienzi's blood when Charles the Fourth came down from the Alps to claim the Italian and Imperial crowns. During his stop in Milan, he met with the poet-laureate, who showered him with flattery. Charles accepted a medal of Augustus and promised, without so much as a smile, to emulate the founder of the Roman monarchy. The misguided application of ancient names and principles fueled both Petrarch's hopes and his disappointments; yet he couldn’t ignore the vast differences in time and character—the immense gap between the first Caesars and a Bohemian prince who had been elected as the nominal head of the German aristocracy with the clergy’s support. Rather than restoring Rome’s glory and provinces, he had secretly agreed with the pope to vacate the city on the day of his coronation, and his disgraceful exit was met with the scorn of the patriotic poet. 56

56 (return)
[ The hopes and the disappointment of Petrarch are agreeably described in his own words by the French biographer, (Mémoires, tom. iii. p. 375—413;) but the deep, though secret, wound was the coronation of Zanubi, the poet-laureate, by Charles IV.]

56 (return)
[ The hopes and disappointments of Petrarch are nicely captured in his own words by the French biographer, (Mémoires, tom. iii. p. 375—413;) but the profound, albeit hidden, hurt was the crowning of Zanubi, the poet-laureate, by Charles IV.]

After the loss of liberty and empire, his third and more humble wish was to reconcile the shepherd with his flock; to recall the Roman bishop to his ancient and peculiar diocese. In the fervor of youth, with the authority of age, Petrarch addressed his exhortations to five successive popes, and his eloquence was always inspired by the enthusiasm of sentiment and the freedom of language. 57 The son of a citizen of Florence invariably preferred the country of his birth to that of his education; and Italy, in his eyes, was the queen and garden of the world. Amidst her domestic factions, she was doubtless superior to France both in art and science, in wealth and politeness; but the difference could scarcely support the epithet of barbarous, which he promiscuously bestows on the countries beyond the Alps. Avignon, the mystic Babylon, the sink of vice and corruption, was the object of his hatred and contempt; but he forgets that her scandalous vices were not the growth of the soil, and that in every residence they would adhere to the power and luxury of the papal court. He confesses that the successor of St. Peter is the bishop of the universal church; yet it was not on the banks of the Rhône, but of the Tyber, that the apostle had fixed his everlasting throne; and while every city in the Christian world was blessed with a bishop, the metropolis alone was desolate and forlorn. Since the removal of the Holy See, the sacred buildings of the Lateran and the Vatican, their altars and their saints, were left in a state of poverty and decay; and Rome was often painted under the image of a disconsolate matron, as if the wandering husband could be reclaimed by the homely portrait of the age and infirmities of his weeping spouse. 58 But the cloud which hung over the seven hills would be dispelled by the presence of their lawful sovereign: eternal fame, the prosperity of Rome, and the peace of Italy, would be the recompense of the pope who should dare to embrace this generous resolution. Of the five whom Petrarch exhorted, the three first, John the Twenty-second, Benedict the Twelfth, and Clement the Sixth, were importuned or amused by the boldness of the orator; but the memorable change which had been attempted by Urban the Fifth was finally accomplished by Gregory the Eleventh. The execution of their design was opposed by weighty and almost insuperable obstacles. A king of France, who has deserved the epithet of wise, was unwilling to release them from a local dependence: the cardinals, for the most part his subjects, were attached to the language, manners, and climate of Avignon; to their stately palaces; above all, to the wines of Burgundy. In their eyes, Italy was foreign or hostile; and they reluctantly embarked at Marseilles, as if they had been sold or banished into the land of the Saracens. Urban the Fifth resided three years in the Vatican with safety and honor: his sanctity was protected by a guard of two thousand horse; and the king of Cyprus, the queen of Naples, and the emperors of the East and West, devoutly saluted their common father in the chair of St. Peter. But the joy of Petrarch and the Italians was soon turned into grief and indignation. Some reasons of public or private moment, his own impatience or the prayers of the cardinals, recalled Urban to France; and the approaching election was saved from the tyrannic patriotism of the Romans. The powers of heaven were interested in their cause: Bridget of Sweden, a saint and pilgrim, disapproved the return, and foretold the death, of Urban the Fifth: the migration of Gregory the Eleventh was encouraged by St. Catharine of Sienna, the spouse of Christ and ambassadress of the Florentines; and the popes themselves, the great masters of human credulity, appear to have listened to these visionary females. 59 Yet those celestial admonitions were supported by some arguments of temporal policy. The residents of Avignon had been invaded by hostile violence: at the head of thirty thousand robbers, a hero had extorted ransom and absolution from the vicar of Christ and the sacred college; and the maxim of the French warriors, to spare the people and plunder the church, was a new heresy of the most dangerous import. 60 While the pope was driven from Avignon, he was strenuously invited to Rome. The senate and people acknowledged him as their lawful sovereign, and laid at his feet the keys of the gates, the bridges, and the fortresses; of the quarter at least beyond the Tyber. 61 But this loyal offer was accompanied by a declaration, that they could no longer suffer the scandal and calamity of his absence; and that his obstinacy would finally provoke them to revive and assert the primitive right of election. The abbot of Mount Cassin had been consulted, whether he would accept the triple crown 62 from the clergy and people: “I am a citizen of Rome,” 63 replied that venerable ecclesiastic, “and my first law is, the voice of my country.” 64

After losing freedom and empire, his third and more modest wish was to bring the shepherd back to his flock; to remind the Roman bishop of his historic and unique diocese. With the passion of youth and the authority of age, Petrarch directed his pleas to five consecutive popes, and his eloquence was consistently fueled by heartfelt sentiment and free expression. 57 As a son of a citizen of Florence, he always preferred his birthplace over where he received his education; to him, Italy was the queen and garden of the world. Despite its internal conflicts, Italy was undoubtedly superior to France in art, science, wealth, and civility; but the contrast barely justified the harsh label of barbaric, which he casually applied to the lands beyond the Alps. He despised Avignon, the mystical Babylon, a hub of vice and corruption; yet he overlooked that its appalling vices weren't rooted in the land, and would follow the power and luxury of the papal court wherever it went. He acknowledged that the successor of St. Peter is the bishop of the universal church; still, it wasn’t on the banks of the Rhône, but of the Tiber, that the apostle established his eternal throne; and while every city in the Christian world had a bishop, the capital was left desolate and forlorn. Since the Holy See moved, the sacred buildings of the Lateran and the Vatican, their altars and saints, fell into neglect and decline; and Rome was often depicted as a sorrowful matron, as if the wandering husband could be convinced to return by the unadorned image of his spouse’s age and tears. 58 However, the cloud hanging over the seven hills would be lifted by the presence of their rightful sovereign: eternal glory, the thriving of Rome, and peace in Italy would be the reward for the pope brave enough to embrace this noble decision. Of the five whom Petrarch urged, the first three—John the Twenty-second, Benedict the Twelfth, and Clement the Sixth—were either pressured or entertained by the boldness of the speaker; but the significant change that Urban the Fifth attempted was ultimately fulfilled by Gregory the Eleventh. The execution of their plan was met with serious and often overwhelming challenges. A wise king of France was hesitant to free them from local ties: most of the cardinals, being his subjects, were attached to the language, culture, and climate of Avignon; to their grand palaces; and especially to the wines of Burgundy. To them, Italy seemed distant or hostile; and they reluctantly set sail from Marseilles, as if they had been sold or exiled to the land of the Saracens. Urban the Fifth spent three years in the Vatican with safety and dignity: his holiness was protected by a guard of two thousand cavalry; and the king of Cyprus, the queen of Naples, and the emperors of the East and West, respectfully recognized their common father in the seat of St. Peter. But the joy of Petrarch and the Italians quickly turned to sorrow and outrage. Some public or private reasons, his own impatience, or the pleas of the cardinals called Urban back to France; and the upcoming election was saved from the oppressive nationalism of the Romans. Heavenly powers were invested in their cause: Bridget of Sweden, a saint and pilgrim, disapproved of Urban's return, and foretold his death; while the move of Gregory the Eleventh was supported by St. Catherine of Siena, the bride of Christ and ambassador of the Florentines; and even the popes, the great masters of human belief, seemed to heed these visionary women. 59 Yet these celestial warnings were bolstered by practical arguments for temporal policy. The residents of Avignon had been subject to violent invasion: leading a band of thirty thousand robbers, a hero had extorted ransom and absolution from the vicar of Christ and the sacred college; and the policy of the French warriors to spare people but plunder the church was a dangerous new heresy. 60 While the pope was forced from Avignon, he was strongly invited to Rome. The senate and people recognized him as their rightful sovereign, and laid the keys to the gates, bridges, and fortresses at his feet; at least for the area beyond the Tiber. 61 However, this loyal offer came with a warning that they could no longer endure the scandal and misfortune of his absence; and that his stubbornness would ultimately lead them to revive and assert their ancient right of election. The abbot of Mount Cassin had been asked if he would accept the triple crown 62 from the clergy and public: “I am a citizen of Rome,” 63 replied that revered ecclesiastic, “and my first law is, the voice of my country.” 64

57 (return)
[ See, in his accurate and amusing biographer, the application of Petrarch and Rome to Benedict XII. in the year 1334, (Mémoires, tom. i. p. 261—265,) to Clement VI. in 1342, (tom. ii. p. 45—47,) and to Urban V. in 1366, (tom. iii. p. 677—691:) his praise (p. 711—715) and excuse (p. 771) of the last of these pontiffs. His angry controversy on the respective merits of France and Italy may be found, Opp. p. 1068—1085.]

57 (return)
[ Check out the detailed and entertaining biography that discusses how Petrarch and Rome were applied to Benedict XII in 1334, (Mémoires, vol. i, pp. 261–265), to Clement VI in 1342, (vol. ii, pp. 45–47), and to Urban V in 1366, (vol. iii, pp. 677–691): his praise (pp. 711–715) and defense (pp. 771) of the last of these popes. His heated debate on the merits of France versus Italy can be found in his works, pp. 1068–1085.]

58 (return)
[

58 (__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__)

               Squalida sed quoniam facies, neglectaque cultû
               Cæsaries; multisque malis lassata senectus
               Eripuit solitam effigiem: vetus accipe nomen;
               Roma vocor. (Carm. l. 2, p. 77.)
               I’m worn out and my face is ragged, my style neglected,
               battling many troubles of old age
               that have taken away my usual look: listen to my old name;
               I’m called Rome. (Carm. l. 2, p. 77.)

He spins this allegory beyond all measure or patience. The Epistles to Urban V in prose are more simple and persuasive, (Senilium, l. vii. p. 811—827 l. ix. epist. i. p. 844—854.)]

He stretches this allegory to the limit of endurance. The letters to Urban V in prose are more straightforward and convincing, (Senilium, l. vii. p. 811—827 l. ix. epist. i. p. 844—854.)

59 (return)
[ I have not leisure to expatiate on the legends of St. Bridget or St. Catharine, the last of which might furnish some amusing stories. Their effect on the mind of Gregory XI. is attested by the last solemn words of the dying pope, who admonished the assistants, ut caverent ab hominibus, sive viris, sive mulieribus, sub specie religionis loquentibus visiones sui capitis, quia per tales ipse seductus, &c., (Baluz. Not ad Vit. Pap. Avenionensium, tom. i. p. 1224.)]

59 (return)
[ I don’t have the time to elaborate on the legends of St. Bridget or St. Catharine, the latter of which could provide some entertaining stories. Their impact on the mind of Gregory XI. is confirmed by the final solemn words of the dying pope, who warned those present to beware of people, whether men or women, speaking of visions of their own heads under the guise of religion, because he himself was led astray by such individuals, etc., (Baluz. Not ad Vit. Pap. Avenionensium, tom. i. p. 1224.)]

60 (return)
[ This predatory expedition is related by Froissard, (Chronique, tom. i. p. 230,) and in the life of Du Guesclin, (Collection Générale des Mémoires Historiques, tom. iv. c. 16, p. 107—113.) As early as the year 1361, the court of Avignon had been molested by similar freebooters, who afterwards passed the Alps, (Mémoires sur Pétrarque, tom. iii. p. 563—569.)]

60 (return)
[ This predatory expedition is recounted by Froissard, (Chronique, vol. i. p. 230,) and in the biography of Du Guesclin, (Collection Générale des Mémoires Historiques, vol. iv. c. 16, p. 107—113.) As early as 1361, the court of Avignon had been troubled by similar raiders, who later crossed the Alps, (Mémoires sur Pétrarque, vol. iii. p. 563—569.)]

61 (return)
[ Fleury alleges, from the annals of Odericus Raynaldus, the original treaty which was signed the 21st of December, 1376, between Gregory XI. and the Romans, (Hist. Ecclés. tom. xx. p. 275.)]

61 (return)
[ Fleury claims, from the records of Odericus Raynaldus, the original treaty that was signed on December 21, 1376, between Gregory XI and the Romans, (Hist. Ecclés. tom. xx. p. 275.)]

62 (return)
[ The first crown or regnum (Ducange, Gloss. Latin. tom. v. p. 702) on the episcopal mitre of the popes, is ascribed to the gift of Constantine, or Clovis. The second was added by Boniface VIII., as the emblem not only of a spiritual, but of a temporal, kingdom. The three states of the church are represented by the triple crown which was introduced by John XXII. or Benedict XII., (Mémoires sur Pétrarque, tom. i. p. 258, 259.)]

62 (return)
[ The first crown or regnum (Ducange, Gloss. Latin. tom. v. p. 702) on the episcopal mitre of the popes is said to have been given by Constantine or Clovis. The second was added by Boniface VIII. as a symbol of both spiritual and temporal authority. The triple crown, introduced by John XXII. or Benedict XII., represents the three states of the church (Mémoires sur Pétrarque, tom. i. p. 258, 259.)]

63 (return)
[ Baluze (Not. ad Pap. Avenion. tom. i. p. 1194, 1195) produces the original evidence which attests the threats of the Roman ambassadors, and the resignation of the abbot of Mount Cassin, qui, ultro se offerens, respondit se civem Romanum esse, et illud velle quod ipsi vellent.]

63 (return)
[ Baluze (Not. ad Pap. Avenion. tom. i. p. 1194, 1195) presents the original evidence that confirms the threats made by the Roman ambassadors, and the resignation of the abbot of Mount Cassin, who, voluntarily stepping forward, responded that he was a Roman citizen, and intended to do what they wanted.]

64 (return)
[ The return of the popes from Avignon to Rome, and their reception by the people, are related in the original lives of Urban V. and Gregory XI., in Baluze (Vit. Paparum Avenionensium, tom. i. p. 363—486) and Muratori, (Script. Rer. Italicarum, tom. iii. P. i. p. 613—712.) In the disputes of the schism, every circumstance was severely, though partially, scrutinized; more especially in the great inquest, which decided the obedience of Castile, and to which Baluze, in his notes, so often and so largely appeals from a MS. volume in the Harley library, (p. 1281, &c.)]

64 (return)
[ The return of the popes from Avignon to Rome and how the people received them are documented in the original biographies of Urban V and Gregory XI, found in Baluze (Vit. Paparum Avenionensium, vol. i, pp. 363–486) and Muratori (Script. Rerum Italicarum, vol. iii, pt. i, pp. 613–712). During the disputes of the schism, every detail was carefully, though partially, examined; notably in the major investigation that determined the allegiance of Castile, which Baluze frequently references in his notes from a manuscript in the Harley library (p. 1281, etc.)]

If superstition will interpret an untimely death, 65 if the merit of counsels be judged from the event, the heavens may seem to frown on a measure of such apparent season and propriety. Gregory the Eleventh did not survive above fourteen months his return to the Vatican; and his decease was followed by the great schism of the West, which distracted the Latin church above forty years. The sacred college was then composed of twenty-two cardinals: six of these had remained at Avignon; eleven Frenchmen, one Spaniard, and four Italians, entered the conclave in the usual form. Their choice was not yet limited to the purple; and their unanimous votes acquiesced in the archbishop of Bari, a subject of Naples, conspicuous for his zeal and learning, who ascended the throne of St. Peter under the name of Urban the Sixth. The epistle of the sacred college affirms his free, and regular, election; which had been inspired, as usual, by the Holy Ghost; he was adored, invested, and crowned, with the customary rites; his temporal authority was obeyed at Rome and Avignon, and his ecclesiastical supremacy was acknowledged in the Latin world. During several weeks, the cardinals attended their new master with the fairest professions of attachment and loyalty; till the summer heats permitted a decent escape from the city. But as soon as they were united at Anagni and Fundi, in a place of security, they cast aside the mask, accused their own falsehood and hypocrisy, excommunicated the apostate and antichrist of Rome, and proceeded to a new election of Robert of Geneva, Clement the Seventh, whom they announced to the nations as the true and rightful vicar of Christ. Their first choice, an involuntary and illegal act, was annulled by fear of death and the menaces of the Romans; and their complaint is justified by the strong evidence of probability and fact. The twelve French cardinals, above two thirds of the votes, were masters of the election; and whatever might be their provincial jealousies, it cannot fairly be presumed that they would have sacrificed their right and interest to a foreign candidate, who would never restore them to their native country. In the various, and often inconsistent, narratives, 66 the shades of popular violence are more darkly or faintly colored: but the licentiousness of the seditious Romans was inflamed by a sense of their privileges, and the danger of a second emigration. The conclave was intimidated by the shouts, and encompassed by the arms, of thirty thousand rebels; the bells of the Capitol and St. Peter’s rang an alarm: “Death, or an Italian pope!” was the universal cry; the same threat was repeated by the twelve bannerets or chiefs of the quarters, in the form of charitable advice; some preparations were made for burning the obstinate cardinals; and had they chosen a Transalpine subject, it is probable that they would never have departed alive from the Vatican. The same constraint imposed the necessity of dissembling in the eyes of Rome and of the world; the pride and cruelty of Urban presented a more inevitable danger; and they soon discovered the features of the tyrant, who could walk in his garden and recite his breviary, while he heard from an adjacent chamber six cardinals groaning on the rack. His inflexible zeal, which loudly censured their luxury and vice, would have attached them to the stations and duties of their parishes at Rome; and had he not fatally delayed a new promotion, the French cardinals would have been reduced to a helpless minority in the sacred college. For these reasons, and the hope of repassing the Alps, they rashly violated the peace and unity of the church; and the merits of their double choice are yet agitated in the Catholic schools. 67 The vanity, rather than the interest, of the nation determined the court and clergy of France. 68 The states of Savoy, Sicily, Cyprus, Arragon, Castille, Navarre, and Scotland were inclined by their example and authority to the obedience of Clement the Seventh, and after his decease, of Benedict the Thirteenth. Rome and the principal states of Italy, Germany, Portugal, England, 69 the Low Countries, and the kingdoms of the North, adhered to the prior election of Urban the Sixth, who was succeeded by Boniface the Ninth, Innocent the Seventh, and Gregory the Twelfth.

If superstition interprets an untimely death, 65 and if the value of advice is judged by outcomes, it may seem like the heavens are frowning on such a seemingly appropriate decision. Gregory the Eleventh did not survive more than fourteen months after returning to the Vatican; his death was followed by the great schism of the West, which divided the Latin church for over forty years. At that time, the sacred college had twenty-two cardinals: six remained in Avignon; eleven were French, one was Spanish, and four were Italian, gathering in the conclave as usual. Their choice wasn't limited to those already wearing the purple, and they unanimously elected the archbishop of Bari, a Neapolitan known for his zeal and learning, who took the throne of St. Peter as Urban the Sixth. The letter from the sacred college confirmed his free and proper election, inspired, as usual, by the Holy Spirit; he was adored, invested, and crowned with the traditional rites; his temporal authority was respected in Rome and Avignon, and his ecclesiastical leadership was recognized throughout the Latin world. For several weeks, the cardinals showed their new leader their loyalty and affection until the summer heat allowed them a polite exit from the city. But once they assembled at Anagni and Fundi, in a safe place, they dropped the pretense, admitted to their falsehoods and hypocrisy, excommunicated the apostate and antichrist of Rome, and proceeded to elect Robert of Geneva, Clement the Seventh, whom they announced to the nations as the true and rightful vicar of Christ. Their initial choice, an involuntary and illegal act, was reversed out of fear for their lives and the Roman threats; their complaints are supported by compelling evidence. The twelve French cardinals, making up over two-thirds of the votes, controlled the election; and despite their regional jealousies, it’s hard to believe they would have given up their rights to a foreign candidate who would never bring them back to their homeland. In the various, often contradictory accounts, 66 the shades of popular violence are depicted more vividly or faintly: but the lawlessness of the rebellious Romans was fueled by a sense of their privileges and the threat of a second exile. The conclave was intimidated by the shouting and surrounded by thirty thousand rebels; the bells of the Capitol and St. Peter’s sounded the alarm: “Death, or an Italian pope!” was the collective cry; the same threat was echoed by the twelve local leaders, disguised as helpful advice; there were preparations to burn the obstinate cardinals, and had they chosen someone from across the Alps, it’s likely they wouldn’t have left the Vatican alive. The same pressure forced them to act carefully in front of Rome and the world; Urban's pride and cruelty posed a serious danger; they quickly recognized the features of a tyrant, who could stroll in his garden and read his breviary while hearing six cardinals groaning in the next room. His unwavering zeal, which loudly criticized their luxury and vice, would have forced them into their roles and responsibilities in Rome; and had he not fatally delayed new promotions, the French cardinals would have become a powerless minority within the sacred college. For these reasons, and the hope of crossing the Alps again, they recklessly disrupted the peace and unity of the church; the merits of their double choice are still debated in Catholic circles. 67 The vanity, rather than the interest, of the nation influenced the court and clergy of France. 68 The states of Savoy, Sicily, Cyprus, Aragon, Castile, Navarre, and Scotland were led by their example and authority to support Clement the Seventh, and after his death, Benedict the Thirteenth. Rome and the major states of Italy, Germany, Portugal, England, 69 the Low Countries, and the kingdoms of the North, adhered to the prior election of Urban the Sixth, who was succeeded by Boniface the Ninth, Innocent the Seventh, and Gregory the Twelfth.

65 (return)
[ Can the death of a good man be esteemed a punishment by those who believe in the immortality of the soul? They betray the instability of their faith. Yet as a mere philosopher, I cannot agree with the Greeks, on oi Jeoi jilousin apoqnhskei neoV, (Brunck, Poetæ Gnomici, p. 231.) See in Herodotus (l. i. c. 31) the moral and pleasing tale of the Argive youths.]

65 (return)
[ Can the death of a good person be seen as a punishment by those who believe in the immortality of the soul? They reveal the weakness of their faith. However, as just a philosopher, I cannot agree with the Greeks on oi Jeoi jilousin apoqnhskei neoV, (Brunck, Poetæ Gnomici, p. 231.) Check out Herodotus (l. i. c. 31) for the moral and enjoyable story of the Argive youths.]

66 (return)
[ In the first book of the Histoire du Concile de Pise, M. Lenfant has abridged and compared the original narratives of the adherents of Urban and Clement, of the Italians and Germans, the French and Spaniards. The latter appear to be the most active and loquacious, and every fact and word in the original lives of Gregory XI. and Clement VII. are supported in the notes of their editor Baluze.]

66 (return)
[ In the first book of the Histoire du Concile de Pise, M. Lenfant has summarized and compared the original accounts from the supporters of Urban and Clement, including the Italians, Germans, French, and Spaniards. The Spaniards seem to be the most involved and talkative, and every detail and statement in the original lives of Gregory XI. and Clement VII. are backed up in the notes by their editor, Baluze.]

67 (return)
[ The ordinal numbers of the popes seems to decide the question against Clement VII. and Benedict XIII., who are boldly stigmatized as antipopes by the Italians, while the French are content with authorities and reasons to plead the cause of doubt and toleration, (Baluz. in Præfat.) It is singular, or rather it is not singular, that saints, visions and miracles should be common to both parties.]

67 (return)
[ The numbered list of popes seems to settle the matter against Clement VII and Benedict XIII, who are openly labeled as antipopes by the Italians, while the French are satisfied with arguments and reasoning to support uncertainty and tolerance, (Baluz. in Præfat.) It’s interesting, or rather it’s not surprising, that saints, visions, and miracles are shared by both sides.]

68 (return)
[ Baluze strenuously labors (Not. p. 1271—1280) to justify the pure and pious motives of Charles V. king of France: he refused to hear the arguments of Urban; but were not the Urbanists equally deaf to the reasons of Clement, &c.?]

68 (return)
[ Baluze works hard (Not. p. 1271—1280) to defend the noble and virtuous intentions of Charles V, king of France: he would not listen to Urban's arguments; but weren't the Urbanists also ignoring Clement's reasoning, etc.?]

69 (return)
[ An epistle, or declamation, in the name of Edward III., (Baluz. Vit. Pap. Avenion. tom. i. p. 553,) displays the zeal of the English nation against the Clementines. Nor was their zeal confined to words: the bishop of Norwich led a crusade of 60,000 bigots beyond sea, (Hume’s History, vol. iii. p. 57, 58.)]

69 (return)
[ A letter or speech written in the name of Edward III. (Baluz. Vit. Pap. Avenion. tom. i. p. 553) shows the passion of the English people against the Clementines. Their passion wasn't just talk: the bishop of Norwich led a crusade of 60,000 fanatics overseas, (Hume’s History, vol. iii. p. 57, 58.)]

From the banks of the Tyber and the Rhône, the hostile pontiffs encountered each other with the pen and the sword: the civil and ecclesiastical order of society was disturbed; and the Romans had their full share of the mischiefs of which they may be arraigned as the primary authors. 70 They had vainly flattered themselves with the hope of restoring the seat of the ecclesiastical monarchy, and of relieving their poverty with the tributes and offerings of the nations; but the separation of France and Spain diverted the stream of lucrative devotion; nor could the loss be compensated by the two jubilees which were crowded into the space of ten years. By the avocations of the schism, by foreign arms, and popular tumults, Urban the Sixth and his three successors were often compelled to interrupt their residence in the Vatican. The Colonna and Ursini still exercised their deadly feuds: the bannerets of Rome asserted and abused the privileges of a republic: the vicars of Christ, who had levied a military force, chastised their rebellion with the gibbet, the sword, and the dagger; and, in a friendly conference, eleven deputies of the people were perfidiously murdered and cast into the street. Since the invasion of Robert the Norman, the Romans had pursued their domestic quarrels without the dangerous interposition of a stranger. But in the disorders of the schism, an aspiring neighbor, Ladislaus king of Naples, alternately supported and betrayed the pope and the people; by the former he was declared gonfalonier, or general, of the church, while the latter submitted to his choice the nomination of their magistrates. Besieging Rome by land and water, he thrice entered the gates as a Barbarian conqueror; profaned the altars, violated the virgins, pillaged the merchants, performed his devotions at St. Peter’s, and left a garrison in the castle of St. Angelo. His arms were sometimes unfortunate, and to a delay of three days he was indebted for his life and crown: but Ladislaus triumphed in his turn; and it was only his premature death that could save the metropolis and the ecclesiastical state from the ambitious conqueror, who had assumed the title, or at least the powers, of king of Rome. 71

From the banks of the Tiber and the Rhône, the hostile popes faced off with both pen and sword: the civil and religious structure of society was thrown into chaos; and the Romans were largely responsible for the troubles they faced. 70 They had mistakenly hoped to restore the papal authority and escape their poverty with tributes and offerings from other nations; however, the split between France and Spain diverted the flow of profitable devotion; nor could the two jubilees held within ten years make up for the loss. Due to the schism, foreign armies, and civil unrest, Urban VI and his three successors often had to leave the Vatican. The Colonna and Ursini families continued their deadly rivalries: the Roman bannerets flaunted and misused the privileges of a republic: the vicars of Christ, who had raised a military force, dealt with their rebellion using the gallows, the sword, and the dagger; and during a supposed peace conference, eleven elected representatives were treacherously killed and dumped in the street. Since Robert the Norman's invasion, the Romans had battled their internal conflicts without the dangerous interference of outsiders. But in the turmoil of the schism, an ambitious neighbor, Ladislaus, king of Naples, alternately supported and betrayed both the pope and the people; he was named gonfalonier, or general, of the church, while the latter allowed him to choose their magistrates. By besieging Rome on land and sea, he entered the gates three times as a barbaric conqueror; he desecrated altars, assaulted women, robbed merchants, prayed at St. Peter’s, and left a garrison in the Castle of St. Angelo. His military ventures weren't always successful, and he owed his life and crown to a three-day delay: but Ladislaus eventually triumphed; it was only his unexpected death that could spare the city and the papal state from the ambitious conqueror, who had claimed the title, or at least the powers, of king of Rome. 71

70 (return)
[ Besides the general historians, the Diaries of Delphinus Gentilia Peter Antonius, and Stephen Infessura, in the great collection of Muratori, represented the state and misfortunes of Rome.]

70 (return)
[ In addition to the main historians, the Diaries of Delphinus Gentilia, Peter Antonius, and Stephen Infessura, found in the extensive collection of Muratori, depicted the condition and hardships of Rome.]

71 (return)
[ It is supposed by Giannone (tom. iii. p. 292) that he styled himself Rex Romæ, a title unknown to the world since the expulsion of Tarquin. But a nearer inspection has justified the reading of Rex Ramæ, of Rama, an obscure kingdom annexed to the crown of Hungary.]

71 (return)
[ Giannone suggests (vol. iii. p. 292) that he called himself Rex Romæ, a title that hadn't been used since Tarquin was expelled. However, a closer look supports the reading of Rex Ramæ, referring to Rama, a little-known kingdom that became part of the crown of Hungary.]

I have not undertaken the ecclesiastical history of the schism; but Rome, the object of these last chapters, is deeply interested in the disputed succession of her sovereigns. The first counsels for the peace and union of Christendom arose from the university of Paris, from the faculty of the Sorbonne, whose doctors were esteemed, at least in the Gallican church, as the most consummate masters of theological science. 72 Prudently waiving all invidious inquiry into the origin and merits of the dispute, they proposed, as a healing measure, that the two pretenders of Rome and Avignon should abdicate at the same time, after qualifying the cardinals of the adverse factions to join in a legitimate election; and that the nations should subtract 73 their obedience, if either of the competitor preferred his own interest to that of the public. At each vacancy, these physicians of the church deprecated the mischiefs of a hasty choice; but the policy of the conclave and the ambition of its members were deaf to reason and entreaties; and whatsoever promises were made, the pope could never be bound by the oaths of the cardinal. During fifteen years, the pacific designs of the university were eluded by the arts of the rival pontiffs, the scruples or passions of their adherents, and the vicissitudes of French factions, that ruled the insanity of Charles the Sixth. At length a vigorous resolution was embraced; and a solemn embassy, of the titular patriarch of Alexandria, two archbishops, five bishops, five abbots, three knights, and twenty doctors, was sent to the courts of Avignon and Rome, to require, in the name of the church and king, the abdication of the two pretenders, of Peter de Luna, who styled himself Benedict the Thirteenth, and of Angelo Corrario, who assumed the name of Gregory the Twelfth. For the ancient honor of Rome, and the success of their commission, the ambassadors solicited a conference with the magistrates of the city, whom they gratified by a positive declaration, that the most Christian king did not entertain a wish of transporting the holy see from the Vatican, which he considered as the genuine and proper seat of the successor of St. Peter. In the name of the senate and people, an eloquent Roman asserted their desire to cooperate in the union of the church, deplored the temporal and spiritual calamities of the long schism, and requested the protection of France against the arms of the king of Naples. The answers of Benedict and Gregory were alike edifying and alike deceitful; and, in evading the demand of their abdication, the two rivals were animated by a common spirit. They agreed on the necessity of a previous interview; but the time, the place, and the manner, could never be ascertained by mutual consent. “If the one advances,” says a servant of Gregory, “the other retreats; the one appears an animal fearful of the land, the other a creature apprehensive of the water. And thus, for a short remnant of life and power, will these aged priests endanger the peace and salvation of the Christian world.” 74

I haven't taken on the church's history of the schism; however, Rome, the focus of these last chapters, has a significant stake in the contested succession of its rulers. The initial efforts for peace and unity in Christendom came from the University of Paris, specifically from the faculty of the Sorbonne, whose scholars were regarded, at least in the Gallican church, as the most skilled experts in theological studies. 72 Wisely avoiding any biased investigation into the origins and merits of the conflict, they suggested, as a remedy, that the two claimants from Rome and Avignon should resign simultaneously, allowing the cardinals from both sides to participate in a legitimate election. Additionally, they proposed that the nations should withdraw 73 their loyalty if either of the competitors prioritized personal interests over the common good. Whenever there was a vacancy, these church leaders warned against the dangers of a rushed decision; however, the conclave’s strategies and the ambitions of its members were unresponsive to logic and pleas. Regardless of the promises made, the pope was never bound by the oaths of the cardinal. For fifteen years, the peaceful intentions of the university were thwarted by the schemes of the rival popes, the doubts or passions of their supporters, and the changing fortunes of French factions, which influenced the madness of Charles the Sixth. Finally, a strong resolution was adopted; a formal delegation consisting of the titular patriarch of Alexandria, two archbishops, five bishops, five abbots, three knights, and twenty scholars was sent to the courts of Avignon and Rome to demand, on behalf of the church and the king, the resignation of the two claimants, Peter de Luna, who called himself Benedict the Thirteenth, and Angelo Corrario, who took the name Gregory the Twelfth. In defense of Rome's long-standing honor and the success of their mission, the ambassadors sought a meeting with the city’s officials, reassuring them that the most Christian king did not wish to move the holy see from the Vatican, which he regarded as the true and rightful seat of St. Peter's successor. On behalf of the senate and the people, an articulate Roman expressed their willingness to help unite the church, lamented the temporal and spiritual troubles caused by the lengthy schism, and sought France’s protection against the King of Naples' forces. The responses from Benedict and Gregory were both instructive and deceitful; as they dodged the request for their resignation, the two rivals were driven by a shared spirit. They acknowledged the need for a prior meeting; however, the time, place, and manner could never be agreed upon. “If one moves forward,” said a servant of Gregory, “the other pulls back; one seems like a creature afraid of land, while the other fears water. And so, during the remaining moments of their lives and power, these old priests will jeopardize the peace and salvation of the Christian world.” 74

72 (return)
[ The leading and decisive part which France assumed in the schism is stated by Peter du Puis in a separate history, extracted from authentic records, and inserted in the seventh volume of the last and best edition of his friend Thuanus, (P. xi. p. 110—184.)]

72 (return)
[ The key role that France played in the split is detailed by Peter du Puis in a separate history, taken from authentic records, and included in the seventh volume of the latest and most comprehensive edition of his friend Thuanus, (P. xi. p. 110—184.)]

73 (return)
[ Of this measure, John Gerson, a stout doctor, was the author of the champion. The proceedings of the university of Paris and the Gallican church were often prompted by his advice, and are copiously displayed in his theological writings, of which Le Clerc (Bibliothèque Choisie, tom. x. p. 1—78) has given a valuable extract. John Gerson acted an important part in the councils of Pisa and Constance.]

73 (return)
[ John Gerson, a strong advocate, was the leading author of this measure. The decisions made by the University of Paris and the Gallican Church were frequently influenced by his guidance, which is extensively reflected in his theological works. Le Clerc (Bibliothèque Choisie, tom. x. p. 1—78) has provided a valuable excerpt of these writings. John Gerson played a significant role in the councils of Pisa and Constance.]

74 (return)
[ Leonardus Brunus Aretinus, one of the revivers of classic learning in Italy, who, after serving many years as secretary in the Roman court, retired to the honorable office of chancellor of the republic of Florence, (Fabric. Bibliot. Medii Ævi, tom. i. p. 290.) Lenfant has given the version of this curious epistle, (Concile de Pise, tom. i. p. 192—195.)]

74 (return)
[ Leonardus Brunus Aretinus, one of the people who helped bring classical learning back to Italy, who, after many years as a secretary in the Roman court, stepped down to take on the respected role of chancellor of the republic of Florence, (Fabric. Bibliot. Medii Ævi, tom. i. p. 290.) Lenfant has provided a translation of this interesting letter, (Concile de Pise, tom. i. p. 192—195.)]

The Christian world was at length provoked by their obstinacy and fraud: they were deserted by their cardinals, who embraced each other as friends and colleagues; and their revolt was supported by a numerous assembly of prelates and ambassadors. With equal justice, the council of Pisa deposed the popes of Rome and Avignon; the conclave was unanimous in the choice of Alexander the Fifth, and his vacant seat was soon filled by a similar election of John the Twenty-third, the most profligate of mankind. But instead of extinguishing the schism, the rashness of the French and Italians had given a third pretender to the chair of St. Peter. Such new claims of the synod and conclave were disputed; three kings, of Germany, Hungary, and Naples, adhered to the cause of Gregory the Twelfth; and Benedict the Thirteenth, himself a Spaniard, was acknowledged by the devotion and patriotism of that powerful nation. The rash proceedings of Pisa were corrected by the council of Constance; the emperor Sigismond acted a conspicuous part as the advocate or protector of the Catholic church; and the number and weight of civil and ecclesiastical members might seem to constitute the states-general of Europe. Of the three popes, John the Twenty-third was the first victim: he fled and was brought back a prisoner: the most scandalous charges were suppressed; the vicar of Christ was only accused of piracy, murder, rape, sodomy, and incest; and after subscribing his own condemnation, he expiated in prison the imprudence of trusting his person to a free city beyond the Alps. Gregory the Twelfth, whose obedience was reduced to the narrow precincts of Rimini, descended with more honor from the throne; and his ambassador convened the session, in which he renounced the title and authority of lawful pope. To vanquish the obstinacy of Benedict the Thirteenth or his adherents, the emperor in person undertook a journey from Constance to Perpignan. The kings of Castile, Arragon, Navarre, and Scotland, obtained an equal and honorable treaty; with the concurrence of the Spaniards, Benedict was deposed by the council; but the harmless old man was left in a solitary castle to excommunicate twice each day the rebel kingdoms which had deserted his cause. After thus eradicating the remains of the schism, the synod of Constance proceeded with slow and cautious steps to elect the sovereign of Rome and the head of the church. On this momentous occasion, the college of twenty-three cardinals was fortified with thirty deputies; six of whom were chosen in each of the five great nations of Christendom,—the Italian, the German, the French, the Spanish, and the English: 75 the interference of strangers was softened by their generous preference of an Italian and a Roman; and the hereditary, as well as personal, merit of Otho Colonna recommended him to the conclave. Rome accepted with joy and obedience the noblest of her sons; the ecclesiastical state was defended by his powerful family; and the elevation of Martin the Fifth is the æra of the restoration and establishment of the popes in the Vatican. 76

The Christian world was finally angered by their stubbornness and deceit: they were abandoned by their cardinals, who came together as friends and colleagues; and their rebellion was backed by a large gathering of bishops and ambassadors. With equal fairness, the Council of Pisa removed the popes of Rome and Avignon; the conclave unanimously chose Alexander the Fifth, and his empty seat was soon filled by a similar election of John the Twenty-third, the worst of the worst. But instead of ending the schism, the reckless actions of the French and Italians created a third claimant to the papal throne. These new claims from the synod and conclave were contested; three kings, from Germany, Hungary, and Naples, supported Gregory the Twelfth; and Benedict the Thirteenth, a Spaniard himself, was recognized by the loyalty and patriotism of that powerful nation. The reckless actions of Pisa were corrected by the Council of Constance; Emperor Sigismond played a prominent role as the advocate or protector of the Catholic Church; and the significant number and prominence of civil and ecclesiastical members seemed to form the states-general of Europe. Among the three popes, John the Twenty-third was the first to fall: he fled and was brought back as a prisoner; the most shocking allegations were suppressed; the vicar of Christ was only accused of piracy, murder, rape, sodomy, and incest; and after signing his own condemnation, he paid for the foolishness of trusting his safety to a free city beyond the Alps. Gregory the Twelfth, whose obedience was limited to the small area of Rimini, left the throne with more dignity; and his ambassador called together the session in which he renounced the title and authority of rightful pope. To overcome the stubbornness of Benedict the Thirteenth or his followers, the emperor personally made a journey from Constance to Perpignan. The kings of Castile, Aragon, Navarre, and Scotland secured an equal and honorable agreement; with the support of the Spaniards, Benedict was deposed by the council; but the harmless old man was left in a lonely castle to excommunicate the rebel kingdoms that had abandoned his cause twice each day. After eradicating the remains of the schism, the Synod of Constance moved slowly and carefully to elect the leader of Rome and the head of the church. On this crucial occasion, the college of twenty-three cardinals was reinforced with thirty deputies; six were chosen from each of the five major nations of Christendom—the Italian, the German, the French, the Spanish, and the English: 75 the interference of outsiders was softened by their generous preference for an Italian and a Roman; and the hereditary and personal merits of Otho Colonna made him appealing to the conclave. Rome gladly and obediently accepted the noblest of her sons; his powerful family defended the ecclesiastical state; and the elevation of Martin the Fifth marks the era of the restoration and establishment of the popes in the Vatican. 76

75 (return)
[ I cannot overlook this great national cause, which was vigorously maintained by the English ambassadors against those of France. The latter contended, that Christendom was essentially distributed into the four great nations and votes, of Italy, Germany, France, and Spain, and that the lesser kingdoms (such as England, Denmark, Portugal, &c.) were comprehended under one or other of these great divisions. The English asserted, that the British islands, of which they were the head, should be considered as a fifth and coördinate nation, with an equal vote; and every argument of truth or fable was introduced to exalt the dignity of their country. Including England, Scotland, Wales, the four kingdoms of Ireland, and the Orkneys, the British Islands are decorated with eight royal crowns, and discriminated by four or five languages, English, Welsh, Cornish, Scotch, Irish, &c. The greater island from north to south measures 800 miles, or 40 days’ journey; and England alone contains 32 counties and 52,000 parish churches, (a bold account!) besides cathedrals, colleges, priories, and hospitals. They celebrate the mission of St. Joseph of Arimathea, the birth of Constantine, and the legatine powers of the two primates, without forgetting the testimony of Bartholomey de Glanville, (A.D. 1360,) who reckons only four Christian kingdoms, 1. of Rome, 2. of Constantinople, 3. of Ireland, which had been transferred to the English monarchs, and 4, of Spain. Our countrymen prevailed in the council, but the victories of Henry V. added much weight to their arguments. The adverse pleadings were found at Constance by Sir Robert Wingfield, ambassador of Henry VIII. to the emperor Maximilian I., and by him printed in 1517 at Louvain. From a Leipsic MS. they are more correctly published in the collection of Von der Hardt, tom. v.; but I have only seen Lenfant’s abstract of these acts, (Concile de Constance, tom. ii. p. 447, 453, &c.)]

75 (return)
[ I can't ignore this significant national issue, which the English ambassadors strongly argued against their French counterparts. The French claimed that Christendom was primarily divided into the four major nations and votes of Italy, Germany, France, and Spain, with smaller kingdoms (like England, Denmark, Portugal, etc.) falling under one of these larger divisions. The English insisted that the British Isles, which they led, should be recognized as a fifth and equal nation, deserving an equal vote; every argument, whether true or exaggerated, was made to elevate their nation's significance. The British Isles, including England, Scotland, Wales, the four kingdoms of Ireland, and the Orkneys, boast eight royal crowns and are distinguished by four or five languages, including English, Welsh, Cornish, Scottish, Irish, etc. The larger island stretches 800 miles from north to south, or what would take 40 days to traverse; England alone has 32 counties and 52,000 parish churches (that’s quite a claim!), in addition to cathedrals, colleges, priories, and hospitals. They celebrate the mission of St. Joseph of Arimathea, the birth of Constantine, and the legatine powers of the two primates, while also acknowledging Bartholomey de Glanville's testimony (A.D. 1360), who recognizes only four Christian kingdoms: 1. of Rome, 2. of Constantinople, 3. of Ireland, which had been passed to the English monarchs, and 4. of Spain. Our countrymen won the debate in the council, but the successes of Henry V. significantly strengthened their position. The opposing arguments were discovered at Constance by Sir Robert Wingfield, Henry VIII’s ambassador to Emperor Maximilian I., and were printed by him in 1517 in Louvain. They are more accurately published from a Leipzig manuscript in the collection of Von der Hardt, vol. v.; however, I've only seen Lenfant’s summary of these proceedings (Concile de Constance, vol. ii, p. 447, 453, etc.)]

76 (return)
[ The histories of the three successive councils, Pisa, Constance, and Basil, have been written with a tolerable degree of candor, industry, and elegance, by a Protestant minister, M. Lenfant, who retired from France to Berlin. They form six volumes in quarto; and as Basil is the worst, so Constance is the best, part of the Collection.]

76 (return)
[ The histories of the three successive councils, Pisa, Constance, and Basil, have been written with a fair amount of honesty, effort, and style by a Protestant minister, M. Lenfant, who moved from France to Berlin. They make up six quarto volumes, and while Basil is the least impressive, Constance is the most impressive part of the collection.]

Chapter LXX: Final Settlement Of The Ecclesiastical State.—Part IV.

The royal prerogative of coining money, which had been exercised near three hundred years by the senate, was first resumed by Martin the Fifth, 77 and his image and superscription introduce the series of the papal medals. Of his two immediate successors, Eugenius the Fourth was the last pope expelled by the tumults of the Roman people, 78 and Nicholas the Fifth, the last who was importuned by the presence of a Roman emperor. 79 I. The conflict of Eugenius with the fathers of Basil, and the weight or apprehension of a new excise, emboldened and provoked the Romans to usurp the temporal government of the city. They rose in arms, elected seven governors of the republic, and a constable of the Capitol; imprisoned the pope’s nephew; besieged his person in the palace; and shot volleys of arrows into his bark as he escaped down the Tyber in the habit of a monk. But he still possessed in the castle of St. Angelo a faithful garrison and a train of artillery: their batteries incessantly thundered on the city, and a bullet more dexterously pointed broke down the barricade of the bridge, and scattered with a single shot the heroes of the republic. Their constancy was exhausted by a rebellion of five months. Under the tyranny of the Ghibeline nobles, the wisest patriots regretted the dominion of the church; and their repentance was unanimous and effectual. The troops of St. Peter again occupied the Capitol; the magistrates departed to their homes; the most guilty were executed or exiled; and the legate, at the head of two thousand foot and four thousand horse, was saluted as the father of the city. The synods of Ferrara and Florence, the fear or resentment of Eugenius, prolonged his absence: he was received by a submissive people; but the pontiff understood from the acclamations of his triumphal entry, that to secure their loyalty and his own repose, he must grant without delay the abolition of the odious excise. II. Rome was restored, adorned, and enlightened, by the peaceful reign of Nicholas the Fifth. In the midst of these laudable occupations, the pope was alarmed by the approach of Frederic the Third of Austria; though his fears could not be justified by the character or the power of the Imperial candidate. After drawing his military force to the metropolis, and imposing the best security of oaths 80 and treaties, Nicholas received with a smiling countenance the faithful advocate and vassal of the church. So tame were the times, so feeble was the Austrian, that the pomp of his coronation was accomplished with order and harmony: but the superfluous honor was so disgraceful to an independent nation, that his successors have excused themselves from the toilsome pilgrimage to the Vatican; and rest their Imperial title on the choice of the electors of Germany.

The royal privilege of minting money, which had been carried out by the senate for nearly three hundred years, was first taken back by Martin the Fifth, 77 and his image and inscription marked the beginning of the papal medals. Of his two immediate successors, Eugenius the Fourth was the last pope to be expelled by the unrest of the Roman people, 78 and Nicholas the Fifth was the last to be pressured by the presence of a Roman emperor. 79 I. The clash between Eugenius and the leaders at Basel, along with the fear of a new tax, encouraged the Romans to take control of the city's government. They took up arms, elected seven governors for the republic, appointed a constable for the Capitol, imprisoned the pope’s nephew, besieged him in the palace, and shot arrows at him as he fled down the Tiber disguised as a monk. However, he still had a loyal garrison and artillery in the castle of St. Angelo: their cannons continuously fired on the city, and a well-aimed shot broke down the barricade on the bridge, scattering the republic's heroes with a single strike. Their resolve was worn down after five months of rebellion. Under the oppressive rule of the Ghibeline nobles, the wisest patriots longed for the church's governance; their regret was universal and impactful. The troops of St. Peter reclaimed the Capitol; the magistrates returned home; the most culpable were executed or exiled; and the legate, leading two thousand infantry and four thousand cavalry, was hailed as the father of the city. The synods of Ferrara and Florence, along with Eugenius's fear or resentment, prolonged his absence: he was welcomed by a submissive people; but the pontiff recognized from the cheers during his triumphant return that to ensure their loyalty and his own peace, he needed to promptly abolish the hated tax. II. Rome was restored, enhanced, and enlightened during the peaceful reign of Nicholas the Fifth. While engaged in these admirable pursuits, the pope was worried about the arrival of Frederic the Third of Austria; though his fears weren’t warranted by the character or power of the Imperial candidate. After gathering his military force in the capital, and securing assurances through oaths 80 and treaties, Nicholas greeted the loyal supporter and vassal of the church with a smile. The times were so calm, and the Austrians so weak, that his coronation was carried out with order and harmony: but the excessive honor was so embarrassing for an independent nation that his successors have avoided the exhausting trip to the Vatican and rely on the choice of the German electors for their Imperial title.

77 (return)
[ See the xxviith Dissertation of the Antiquities of Muratori, and the 1st Instruction of the Science des Medailles of the Père Joubert and the Baron de la Bastie. The Metallic History of Martin V. and his successors has been composed by two monks, Moulinet, a Frenchman, and Bonanni, an Italian: but I understand, that the first part of the series is restored from more recent coins.]

77 (return)
[See the 27th Dissertation of the Antiquities of Muratori, and the 1st Instruction of the Science of Medals by Father Joubert and Baron de la Bastie. The Metallic History of Martin V. and his successors has been put together by two monks, Moulinet, a Frenchman, and Bonanni, an Italian: however, I’ve heard that the first part of the series is based on more recent coins.]

78 (return)
[ Besides the Lives of Eugenius IV., (Rerum Italic. tom. iii. P. i. p. 869, and tom. xxv. p. 256,) the Diaries of Paul Petroni and Stephen Infessura are the best original evidence for the revolt of the Romans against Eugenius IV. The former, who lived at the time and on the spot, speaks the language of a citizen, equally afraid of priestly and popular tyranny.]

78 (return)
[ In addition to the lives of Eugenius IV. (Rerum Italic. tom. iii. P. i. p. 869, and tom. xxv. p. 256), the diaries of Paul Petroni and Stephen Infessura provide the best original accounts of the Romans' revolt against Eugenius IV. The former, who lived during that time and in the same place, expresses the concerns of a citizen, equally wary of both priestly and popular oppression.]

79 (return)
[ The coronation of Frederic III. is described by Lenfant, (Concile de Basle, tom. ii. p. 276—288,) from Æneas Sylvius, a spectator and actor in that splendid scene.]

79 (return)
[ Lenfant describes the coronation of Frederic III. in Concile de Basle, vol. ii, pp. 276–288, drawing from Æneas Sylvius, who was both a witness and participant in that magnificent event.]

80 (return)
[ The oath of fidelity imposed on the emperor by the pope is recorded and sanctified in the Clementines, (l. ii. tit. ix.;) and Æneas Sylvius, who objects to this new demand, could not foresee, that in a few years he should ascend the throne, and imbibe the maxims, of Boniface VIII.]

80 (return)
[ The oath of loyalty required from the emperor by the pope is documented and confirmed in the Clementines, (l. ii. tit. ix.;) and Æneas Sylvius, who disagrees with this new demand, could not have anticipated that in just a few years he would rise to the throne and adopt the principles of Boniface VIII.]

A citizen has remarked, with pride and pleasure, that the king of the Romans, after passing with a slight salute the cardinals and prelates who met him at the gate, distinguished the dress and person of the senator of Rome; and in this last farewell, the pageants of the empire and the republic were clasped in a friendly embrace. 81 According to the laws of Rome, 82 her first magistrate was required to be a doctor of laws, an alien, of a place at least forty miles from the city; with whose inhabitants he must not be connected in the third canonical degree of blood or alliance. The election was annual: a severe scrutiny was instituted into the conduct of the departing senator; nor could he be recalled to the same office till after the expiration of two years. A liberal salary of three thousand florins was assigned for his expense and reward; and his public appearance represented the majesty of the republic. His robes were of gold brocade or crimson velvet, or in the summer season of a lighter silk: he bore in his hand an ivory sceptre; the sound of trumpets announced his approach; and his solemn steps were preceded at least by four lictors or attendants, whose red wands were enveloped with bands or streamers of the golden color or livery of the city. His oath in the Capitol proclaims his right and duty to observe and assert the laws, to control the proud, to protect the poor, and to exercise justice and mercy within the extent of his jurisdiction. In these useful functions he was assisted by three learned strangers; the two collaterals, and the judge of criminal appeals: their frequent trials of robberies, rapes, and murders, are attested by the laws; and the weakness of these laws connives at the licentiousness of private feuds and armed associations for mutual defence. But the senator was confined to the administration of justice: the Capitol, the treasury, and the government of the city and its territory, were intrusted to the three conservators, who were changed four times in each year: the militia of the thirteen regions assembled under the banners of their respective chiefs, or caporioni; and the first of these was distinguished by the name and dignity of the prior. The popular legislature consisted of the secret and the common councils of the Romans. The former was composed of the magistrates and their immediate predecessors, with some fiscal and legal officers, and three classes of thirteen, twenty-six, and forty, counsellors: amounting in the whole to about one hundred and twenty persons. In the common council all male citizens had a right to vote; and the value of their privilege was enhanced by the care with which any foreigners were prevented from usurping the title and character of Romans. The tumult of a democracy was checked by wise and jealous precautions: except the magistrates, none could propose a question; none were permitted to speak, except from an open pulpit or tribunal; all disorderly acclamations were suppressed; the sense of the majority was decided by a secret ballot; and their decrees were promulgated in the venerable name of the Roman senate and people. It would not be easy to assign a period in which this theory of government has been reduced to accurate and constant practice, since the establishment of order has been gradually connected with the decay of liberty. But in the year one thousand five hundred and eighty the ancient statutes were collected, methodized in three books, and adapted to present use, under the pontificate, and with the approbation, of Gregory the Thirteenth: 83 this civil and criminal code is the modern law of the city; and, if the popular assemblies have been abolished, a foreign senator, with the three conservators, still resides in the palace of the Capitol. 84 The policy of the Cæsars has been repeated by the popes; and the bishop of Rome affected to maintain the form of a republic, while he reigned with the absolute powers of a temporal, as well as a spiritual, monarch.

A citizen proudly noted that the king of the Romans, after giving a slight nod to the cardinals and prelates waiting at the gate, recognized the senator of Rome by his attire and appearance. In this final farewell, the grandeur of the empire and the republic came together in a friendly embrace. 81 According to Roman law, 82 the first magistrate had to be a doctor of laws from outside the city, at least forty miles away, and couldn't be related to its inhabitants within the third degree of blood or marriage. The election took place annually, and a thorough review of the departing senator's conduct was mandatory; he could not hold the same office again until two years had passed. A generous salary of three thousand florins was allocated for his expenses and rewards, and his public presence symbolized the republic's authority. His robes were made of gold brocade or crimson velvet, or, during the summer, a lighter silk; he carried an ivory scepter; trumpets announced his arrival, and at least four lictors or attendants, whose red staffs were decorated with bands or streamers in the city's colors, preceded his solemn steps. His oath in the Capitol declared his right and responsibility to uphold the laws, keep the proud in check, protect the poor, and exercise justice and mercy within his jurisdiction. He was supported in these important duties by three knowledgeable outsiders: the two collaterals and the judge of criminal appeals. The frequent trials of theft, assault, and murder were recorded in the laws, and the weaknesses in these laws turned a blind eye to the chaos created by personal vendettas and armed groups for mutual defense. However, the senator was limited to administering justice; the Capitol, treasury, and the governance of the city and its territory were managed by three conservators, who were changed four times a year. The militia of the thirteen regions gathered under their respective leaders, or caporioni, with the first among them called the prior. The popular legislative body included both secret and common councils of Romans. The secret council was made up of magistrates, their immediate predecessors, some fiscal and legal officers, and included three classes of counsel of thirteen, twenty-six, and forty people, totaling about one hundred and twenty individuals. In the common council, all male citizens had the right to vote; their privilege was protected by strict measures to prevent any foreigners from claiming the title and rights of Romans. The chaos of democracy was managed by careful and vigilant controls: apart from the magistrates, no one could propose a matter; no one could speak unless from an open pulpit or tribunal; all disruptive outbursts were suppressed; the majority's opinion was determined by secret ballot; and their decisions were proclaimed in the esteemed name of the Roman senate and people. It’s hard to pinpoint when this system of government was effectively practiced since the establishment of order has gradually coincided with the decline of freedom. But in 1580, the old statutes were compiled, organized into three volumes, and updated for contemporary use under the papacy and with the approval of Gregory XIII: 83 this civil and criminal code serves as the modern law of the city; and while the popular assemblies have been abolished, a foreign senator, alongside the three conservators, continues to reside in the Capitol palace. 84 The policies of the Cæsars have been mirrored by the popes, and the bishop of Rome appeared to uphold the structure of a republic while ruling with the complete authority of both a temporal and spiritual monarch.

81 (return)
[ Lo senatore di Roma, vestito di brocarto con quella beretta, e con quelle maniche, et ornamenti di pelle, co’ quali va alle feste di Testaccio e Nagone, might escape the eye of Æneas Sylvius, but he is viewed with admiration and complacency by the Roman citizen, (Diario di Stephano Infessura, p. 1133.)]

81 (return)
[ The senator of Rome, dressed in brocade with that hat, and with those sleeves, and adorned with leather, with which he goes to the celebrations of Testaccio and Nagone, might go unnoticed by Æneas Sylvius, but he is looked at with admiration and satisfaction by the Roman citizen, (Diario di Stephano Infessura, p. 1133.)]

82 (return)
[ See, in the statutes of Rome, the senator and three judges, (l. i. c. 3—14,) the conservators, (l. i. c. 15, 16, 17, l. iii. c. 4,) the caporioni (l. i. c. 18, l. iii. c. 8,) the secret council, (l. iii. c. 2,) the common council, (l. iii. c. 3.) The title of feuds, defiances, acts of violence, &c., is spread through many a chapter (c. 14—40) of the second book.]

82 (return)
[ See, in the laws of Rome, the senator and three judges, (l. i. c. 3—14,) the conservators, (l. i. c. 15, 16, 17, l. iii. c. 4,) the caporioni (l. i. c. 18, l. iii. c. 8,) the secret council, (l. iii. c. 2,) the common council, (l. iii. c. 3.) The topics of feuds, defiances, acts of violence, etc., are discussed across many chapters (c. 14—40) of the second book.]

83 (return)
[ Statuta alm Urbis Rom Auctoritate S. D. N. Gregorii XIII Pont. Max. a Senatu Populoque Rom. reformata et edita. Rom, 1580, in folio. The obsolete, repugnant statutes of antiquity were confounded in five books, and Lucas Pætus, a lawyer and antiquarian, was appointed to act as the modern Tribonian. Yet I regret the old code, with the rugged crust of freedom and barbarism.]

83 (return)
[ Statuta alm Urbis Rom Auctoritate S. D. N. Gregorii XIII Pont. Max. a Senatu Populoque Rom. reformata et edita. Rom, 1580, in folio. The outdated, conflicting laws from the past were compiled into five books, and Lucas Pætus, a lawyer and historian, was chosen to serve as the modern Tribonian. Still, I miss the old code, with its rough edges of freedom and wildness.]

84 (return)
[ In my time (1765) and in M. Grosley’s, (Observations sur l’Italie torn. ii. p. 361,) the senator of Rome was M. Bielke, a noble Swede and a proselyte to the Catholic faith. The pope’s right to appoint the senator and the conservator is implied, rather than affirmed, in the statutes.]

84 (return)
[Back in my day (1765) and during M. Grosley’s time (Observations sur l’Italie torn. ii. p. 361), the senator of Rome was M. Bielke, a noble Swede who converted to the Catholic faith. The pope's authority to appoint the senator and the conservator is suggested, rather than explicitly stated, in the statutes.]

It is an obvious truth, that the times must be suited to extraordinary characters, and that the genius of Cromwell or Retz might now expire in obscurity. The political enthusiasm of Rienzi had exalted him to a throne; the same enthusiasm, in the next century, conducted his imitator to the gallows. The birth of Stephen Porcaro was noble, his reputation spotless: his tongue was armed with eloquence, his mind was enlightened with learning; and he aspired, beyond the aim of vulgar ambition, to free his country and immortalize his name. The dominion of priests is most odious to a liberal spirit: every scruple was removed by the recent knowledge of the fable and forgery of Constantine’s donation; Petrarch was now the oracle of the Italians; and as often as Porcaro revolved the ode which describes the patriot and hero of Rome, he applied to himself the visions of the prophetic bard. His first trial of the popular feelings was at the funeral of Eugenius the Fourth: in an elaborate speech he called the Romans to liberty and arms; and they listened with apparent pleasure, till Porcaro was interrupted and answered by a grave advocate, who pleaded for the church and state. By every law the seditious orator was guilty of treason; but the benevolence of the new pontiff, who viewed his character with pity and esteem, attempted by an honorable office to convert the patriot into a friend. The inflexible Roman returned from Anagni with an increase of reputation and zeal; and, on the first opportunity, the games of the place Navona, he tried to inflame the casual dispute of some boys and mechanics into a general rising of the people. Yet the humane Nicholas was still averse to accept the forfeit of his life; and the traitor was removed from the scene of temptation to Bologna, with a liberal allowance for his support, and the easy obligation of presenting himself each day before the governor of the city. But Porcaro had learned from the younger Brutus, that with tyrants no faith or gratitude should be observed: the exile declaimed against the arbitrary sentence; a party and a conspiracy were gradually formed: his nephew, a daring youth, assembled a band of volunteers; and on the appointed evening a feast was prepared at his house for the friends of the republic. Their leader, who had escaped from Bologna, appeared among them in a robe of purple and gold: his voice, his countenance, his gestures, bespoke the man who had devoted his life or death to the glorious cause. In a studied oration, he expiated on the motives and the means of their enterprise; the name and liberties of Rome; the sloth and pride of their ecclesiastical tyrants; the active or passive consent of their fellow-citizens; three hundred soldiers, and four hundred exiles, long exercised in arms or in wrongs; the license of revenge to edge their swords, and a million of ducats to reward their victory. It would be easy, (he said,) on the next day, the festival of the Epiphany, to seize the pope and his cardinals, before the doors, or at the altar, of St. Peter’s; to lead them in chains under the walls of St. Angelo; to extort by the threat of their instant death a surrender of the castle; to ascend the vacant Capitol; to ring the alarm bell; and to restore in a popular assembly the ancient republic of Rome. While he triumphed, he was already betrayed. The senator, with a strong guard, invested the house: the nephew of Porcaro cut his way through the crowd; but the unfortunate Stephen was drawn from a chest, lamenting that his enemies had anticipated by three hours the execution of his design. After such manifest and repeated guilt, even the mercy of Nicholas was silent. Porcaro, and nine of his accomplices, were hanged without the benefit of the sacraments; and, amidst the fears and invectives of the papal court, the Romans pitied, and almost applauded, these martyrs of their country. 85 But their applause was mute, their pity ineffectual, their liberty forever extinct; and, if they have since risen in a vacancy of the throne or a scarcity of bread, such accidental tumults may be found in the bosom of the most abject servitude.

It’s clear that extraordinary times call for remarkable characters, and that the talents of Cromwell or Retz could easily fade into obscurity today. The political fervor of Rienzi once elevated him to a throne, while the same passion led his imitator to the gallows a century later. Stephen Porcaro was born noble, with a flawless reputation: he had an eloquent tongue and a mind rich in knowledge. He aimed, beyond ordinary ambition, to free his country and make his name unforgettable. The rule of priests was deeply disliked by free spirits: recent revelations about the myth and forgery of Constantine’s donation removed any remaining doubts; Petrarch had become the voice of the Italians; and whenever Porcaro reflected on the ode that celebrates Rome's patriot and hero, he saw himself in the prophetic words. His first test of public sentiment came at the funeral of Eugenius the Fourth: in a detailed speech, he called on the Romans to seek liberty and take up arms; they listened with visible interest until he was interrupted and countered by a serious advocate defending church and state. According to the law, the seditious speaker was guilty of treason; however, the new pontiff, seeing Porcaro's character with pity and respect, tried to turn him from a patriot into an ally through a prestigious position. The steadfast Roman returned from Anagni with heightened reputation and zeal; and, at the first opportunity, during the games at Navona, he tried to turn a minor dispute among some boys and craftsmen into a widespread uprising. Still, the compassionate Nicholas hesitated to accept the cost of his life; the traitor was sent away from temptation to Bologna, with a generous allowance for his living and the simple requirement of reporting daily to the city governor. But Porcaro had learned from younger Brutus that with tyrants, faith and gratitude can’t be trusted: the exile criticized the unjust ruling; a faction and a conspiracy started to form; his nephew, a brave young man, gathered a group of volunteers; and on the designated evening, a feast was arranged at his house for friends of the republic. Their leader, having escaped from Bologna, appeared among them in a purple and gold robe: his voice, face, and gestures revealed a man who committed his life or death to the noble cause. In a carefully crafted speech, he elaborated on their motivations and plans; the name and freedom of Rome; the laziness and arrogance of their ecclesiastical oppressors; the active or passive support of their fellow citizens; three hundred soldiers, and four hundred exiles trained in combat or grievance; the justification of revenge to sharpen their swords, and a million ducats to reward their triumph. It would be simple, he said, the next day, on the feast of the Epiphany, to capture the pope and his cardinals, whether outside, or at the altar of St. Peter’s; to take them in chains to the walls of St. Angelo; to threaten them with immediate death to force a surrender of the castle; to climb the vacant Capitol; to sound the alarm bell; and to revive the ancient republic of Rome in a popular assembly. While he celebrated, he was already betrayed. The senator, with a strong guard, surrounded the house: Porcaro's nephew fought his way through the crowd; but the unlucky Stephen was pulled from a chest, lamenting that his enemies had outpaced him by three hours in executing his plan. After such clear and continuous wrongdoing, even Nicholas's mercy fell silent. Porcaro and nine of his accomplices were hanged without the comfort of last rites; and, amid the fears and condemnations of the papal court, the Romans felt pity for—and almost applauded—these martyrs of their country. 85 But their applause was silent, their sympathy powerless, their liberty permanently lost; and even if they have since risen during a power vacuum or a shortage of food, such random uprisings can occur even in the depths of the worst servitude.

85 (return)
[ Besides the curious, though concise, narrative of Machiavel, (Istoria Florentina, l. vi. Opere, tom. i. p. 210, 211, edit. Londra, 1747, in 4to.) the Porcarian conspiracy is related in the Diary of Stephen Infessura, (Rer. Ital. tom. iii. P. ii. p. 1134, 1135,) and in a separate tract by Leo Baptista Alberti, (Rer. Ital. tom. xxv. p. 609—614.) It is amusing to compare the style and sentiments of the courtier and citizen. Facinus profecto quo.... neque periculo horribilius, neque audaciâ detestabilius, neque crudelitate tetrius, a quoquam perditissimo uspiam excogitatum sit.... Perdette la vita quell’ huomo da bene, e amatore dello bene e libertà di Roma.]

85 (return)
[ In addition to the interesting but brief account by Machiavelli, (Istoria Florentina, l. vi. Opere, tom. i. p. 210, 211, edit. London, 1747, in 4to.) the Porcarian conspiracy is also described in the Diary of Stephen Infessura, (Rer. Ital. tom. iii. P. ii. p. 1134, 1135,) and in a separate work by Leo Baptista Alberti, (Rer. Ital. tom. xxv. p. 609—614.) It's fascinating to compare the writing styles and opinions of the courtier and the citizen. Indeed, there's no crime more horrifying, no audacity more detestable, nor cruelty more grotesque than that invented by the most depraved individual.... That virtuous man, a lover of good and of the freedom of Rome, lost his life.]

But the independence of the nobles, which was fomented by discord, survived the freedom of the commons, which must be founded in union. A privilege of rapine and oppression was long maintained by the barons of Rome; their houses were a fortress and a sanctuary: and the ferocious train of banditti and criminals whom they protected from the law repaid the hospitality with the service of their swords and daggers. The private interest of the pontiffs, or their nephews, sometimes involved them in these domestic feuds. Under the reign of Sixtus the Fourth, Rome was distracted by the battles and sieges of the rival houses: after the conflagration of his palace, the prothonotary Colonna was tortured and beheaded; and Savelli, his captive friend, was murdered on the spot, for refusing to join in the acclamations of the victorious Ursini. 86 But the popes no longer trembled in the Vatican: they had strength to command, if they had resolution to claim, the obedience of their subjects; and the strangers, who observed these partial disorders, admired the easy taxes and wise administration of the ecclesiastical state. 87

But the independence of the nobles, fueled by conflict, outlasted the freedom of the common people, which relies on unity. The barons of Rome long upheld a privilege of plunder and oppression; their homes served as fortresses and sanctuaries. The fierce band of bandits and criminals they sheltered from the law repaid their hospitality with their loyalty and violence. The personal interests of the popes or their nephews sometimes drew them into these family disputes. During the reign of Sixtus IV, Rome was torn apart by battles and sieges among rival factions: after his palace burned down, prothonotary Colonna was tortured and executed; and his captured ally Savelli was killed on the spot for refusing to join in the cheers for the victorious Ursini. 86 But the popes no longer feared for their safety in the Vatican: they had the power to command obedience from their subjects if they were willing to assert it; and foreigners, who witnessed these partial chaos, admired the light taxes and wise governance of the ecclesiastical state. 87

86 (return)
[ The disorders of Rome, which were much inflamed by the partiality of Sixtus IV. are exposed in the Diaries of two spectators, Stephen Infessura, and an anonymous citizen. See the troubles of the year 1484, and the death of the prothonotary Colonna, in tom. iii. P. ii. p. 1083, 1158.]

86 (return)
[ The troubles in Rome, worsened by Sixtus IV's favoritism, are detailed in the Diaries of two observers, Stephen Infessura and an anonymous citizen. Check out the issues that arose in 1484 and the death of prothonotary Colonna in tom. iii. P. ii. p. 1083, 1158.]

87 (return)
[ Est toute la terre de l’église troublée pour cette partialité (des Colonnes et des Ursins) come nous dirions Luce et Grammont, ou en Hollande Houc et Caballan; et quand ce ne seroit ce différend la terre de l’église seroit la plus heureuse habitation pour les sujets qui soit dans toute le monde (car ils ne payent ni tailles ni guères autres choses,) et seroient toujours bien conduits, (car toujours les papes sont sages et bien consellies;) mais très souvent en advient de grands et cruels meurtres et pilleries.]

87 (return)
[Is the entire land of the church troubled by the bias of the Columns and the Ursins, as we might say Luce and Grammont, or in Holland Houc and Caballan? And if it weren't for this disagreement, the land of the church would be the happiest place for its subjects in the whole world (since they don't pay taxes or many other things), and they would always be well governed, (because the popes are always wise and well-advised); but very often, great and cruel murders and plundering occur.]

The spiritual thunders of the Vatican depend on the force of opinion; and if that opinion be supplanted by reason or passion, the sound may idly waste itself in the air; and the helpless priest is exposed to the brutal violence of a noble or a plebeian adversary. But after their return from Avignon, the keys of St. Peter were guarded by the sword of St. Paul. Rome was commanded by an impregnable citadel: the use of cannon is a powerful engine against popular seditions: a regular force of cavalry and infantry was enlisted under the banners of the pope: his ample revenues supplied the resources of war: and, from the extent of his domain, he could bring down on a rebellious city an army of hostile neighbors and loyal subjects. 88 Since the union of the duchies of Ferrara and Urbino, the ecclesiastical state extends from the Mediterranean to the Adriatic, and from the confines of Naples to the banks of the Po; and as early as the sixteenth century, the greater part of that spacious and fruitful country acknowledged the lawful claims and temporal sovereignty of the Roman pontiffs. Their claims were readily deduced from the genuine, or fabulous, donations of the darker ages: the successive steps of their final settlement would engage us too far in the transactions of Italy, and even of Europe; the crimes of Alexander the Sixth, the martial operations of Julius the Second, and the liberal policy of Leo the Tenth, a theme which has been adorned by the pens of the noblest historians of the times. 89 In the first period of their conquests, till the expedition of Charles the Eighth, the popes might successfully wrestle with the adjacent princes and states, whose military force was equal, or inferior, to their own. But as soon as the monarchs of France, Germany and Spain, contended with gigantic arms for the dominion of Italy, they supplied with art the deficiency of strength; and concealed, in a labyrinth of wars and treaties, their aspiring views, and the immortal hope of chasing the Barbarians beyond the Alps. The nice balance of the Vatican was often subverted by the soldiers of the North and West, who were united under the standard of Charles the Fifth: the feeble and fluctuating policy of Clement the Seventh exposed his person and dominions to the conqueror; and Rome was abandoned seven months to a lawless army, more cruel and rapacious than the Goths and Vandals. 90 After this severe lesson, the popes contracted their ambition, which was almost satisfied, resumed the character of a common parent, and abstained from all offensive hostilities, except in a hasty quarrel, when the vicar of Christ and the Turkish sultan were armed at the same time against the kingdom of Naples. 91 The French and Germans at length withdrew from the field of battle: Milan, Naples, Sicily, Sardinia, and the sea-coast of Tuscany, were firmly possessed by the Spaniards; and it became their interest to maintain the peace and dependence of Italy, which continued almost without disturbance from the middle of the sixteenth to the opening of the eighteenth century. The Vatican was swayed and protected by the religious policy of the Catholic king: his prejudice and interest disposed him in every dispute to support the prince against the people; and instead of the encouragement, the aid, and the asylum, which they obtained from the adjacent states, the friends of liberty, or the enemies of law, were enclosed on all sides within the iron circle of despotism. The long habits of obedience and education subdued the turbulent spirit of the nobles and commons of Rome. The barons forgot the arms and factions of their ancestors, and insensibly became the servants of luxury and government. Instead of maintaining a crowd of tenants and followers, the produce of their estates was consumed in the private expenses which multiply the pleasures, and diminish the power, of the lord. 92 The Colonna and Ursini vied with each other in the decoration of their palaces and chapels; and their antique splendor was rivalled or surpassed by the sudden opulence of the papal families. In Rome the voice of freedom and discord is no longer heard; and, instead of the foaming torrent, a smooth and stagnant lake reflects the image of idleness and servitude.

The spiritual power of the Vatican relies on public opinion; if that opinion is replaced by reason or passion, its influence may fade away, leaving the powerless priest vulnerable to the brutal aggression of either a noble or a commoner. However, after the return from Avignon, the keys of St. Peter were protected by the sword of St. Paul. Rome was defended by a formidable fortress: cannons proved to be a strong weapon against civil unrest; a professional army of cavalry and infantry was enlisted under the pope’s banners; his substantial wealth provided the means for warfare; and, because of the size of his territories, he could send an army of hostile neighbors and loyal subjects against a rebellious city. 88 Since the merger of the duchies of Ferrara and Urbino, the papal state stretches from the Mediterranean to the Adriatic and from the borders of Naples to the banks of the Po; as early as the sixteenth century, most of that expansive and fertile land recognized the rightful authority and temporal power of the Roman pontiffs. Their claims were easily derived from either genuine or mythical donations of the dark ages: the steps toward their final establishment would pull us too far into the events of Italy and Europe; the misdeeds of Alexander the Sixth, the military actions of Julius the Second, and the generous policies of Leo the Tenth have been the subject of many esteemed historians of the time. 89 In the early stages of their conquests, until the expedition of Charles the Eighth, the popes could effectively compete against neighboring princes and states whose military powers were equal to or less than their own. But as soon as the kings of France, Germany, and Spain vied with enormous forces for control of Italy, they compensated for a lack of strength with strategy; and hidden within a maze of wars and treaties were their ambitious goals and the eternal hope of driving the Barbarians beyond the Alps. The delicate balance of power in the Vatican was frequently disrupted by the soldiers from the North and West, united under Charles the Fifth’s banner: the weak and inconsistent policies of Clement the Seventh left him and his territories vulnerable to conquest; Rome was left for seven months to a lawless army that was more cruel and greedy than the Goths and Vandals. 90 After this harsh lesson, the popes scaled back their ambitions, which were nearly satisfied, took on a more parental role, and refrained from any aggressive actions, except during a brief conflict when the vicar of Christ and the Turkish sultan were both armed against the Kingdom of Naples. 91 Eventually, the French and Germans left the battlefield: Milan, Naples, Sicily, Sardinia, and the Tuscan coastline were firmly under Spanish control; it became their interest to maintain peace and dependence in Italy, which remained largely undisturbed from the mid-sixteenth century to the beginning of the eighteenth century. The Vatican was influenced and protected by the religious policies of the Catholic king: his biases and interests led him to support the prince against the people in every dispute; instead of the encouragement, help, and refuge that they received from neighboring states, supporters of freedom, or opponents of the law, found themselves trapped within the oppressive grip of despotism. The long habits of obedience and education subdued the rebellious spirits of both the nobles and commoners in Rome. The barons forgot the weapons and factions of their ancestors and gradually became servants of luxury and government. Rather than keeping a large group of tenants and followers, the income from their estates was spent on personal expenses that only increased their pleasures while diminishing their power. 92 The Colonna and Ursini families competed with each other to beautify their palaces and chapels, and their ancient grandeur was matched or outdone by the sudden wealth of the papal households. In Rome, the voices of freedom and conflict are no longer heard; instead of a raging river, a calm and stagnant lake reflects the image of idleness and servitude.

88 (return)
[ By the conomy of Sixtus V. the revenue of the ecclesiastical state was raised to two millions and a half of Roman crowns, (Vita, tom. ii. p. 291—296;) and so regular was the military establishment, that in one month Clement VIII. could invade the duchy of Ferrara with three thousand horse and twenty thousand foot, (tom. iii. p. 64) Since that time (A.D. 1597) the papal arms are happily rusted: but the revenue must have gained some nominal increase. * Note: On the financial measures of Sixtus V. see Ranke, Dio Römischen Päpste, i. p. 459.—M.]

88 (return)
[ Thanks to Sixtus V's policies, the revenue of the ecclesiastical state increased to two and a half million Roman crowns, (Vita, tom. ii. p. 291—296;) and the military organization was so efficient that in just one month, Clement VIII. could invade the duchy of Ferrara with three thousand cavalry and twenty thousand infantry, (tom. iii. p. 64) Since that time (A.D. 1597), the papal forces have thankfully remained inactive: however, the revenue must have seen some nominal increase. * Note: For details on Sixtus V's financial policies, see Ranke, Dio Römischen Päpste, i. p. 459.—M.]

89 (return)
[ More especially by Guicciardini and Machiavel; in the general history of the former, in the Florentine history, the Prince, and the political discourses of the latter. These, with their worthy successors, Fra Paolo and Davila, were justly esteemed the first historians of modern languages, till, in the present age, Scotland arose, to dispute the prize with Italy herself.]

89 (return)
[ Especially by Guicciardini and Machiavelli; in the general history of the former, in the Florentine history, the Prince, and the political writings of the latter. These, along with their respected successors, Fra Paolo and Davila, were rightly regarded as the first historians of modern languages, until, in the current age, Scotland emerged to contest the title with Italy itself.]

90 (return)
[ In the history of the Gothic siege, I have compared the Barbarians with the subjects of Charles V., (vol. iii. p. 289, 290;) an anticipation, which, like that of the Tartar conquests, I indulged with the less scruple, as I could scarcely hope to reach the conclusion of my work.]

90 (return)
[ In the history of the Gothic siege, I've compared the Barbarians with the subjects of Charles V. (vol. iii. p. 289, 290); it's a comparison I felt comfortable making, similar to the Tartar conquests, since I honestly doubted I would finish this work.]

91 (return)
[ The ambitious and feeble hostilities of the Caraffa pope, Paul IV. may be seen in Thuanus (l. xvi.—xviii.) and Giannone, (tom. iv p. 149—163.) Those Catholic bigots, Philip II. and the duke of Alva, presumed to separate the Roman prince from the vicar of Christ, yet the holy character, which would have sanctified his victory was decently applied to protect his defeat. * Note: But compare Ranke, Die Römischen Päpste, i. p. 289.—M.]

91 (return)
[ The ambitious yet weak hostilities of Pope Paul IV, a member of the Caraffa family, can be found in Thuanus (l. xvi.—xviii.) and Giannone (tom. iv p. 149—163). Those Catholic fanatics, Philip II and the Duke of Alva, attempted to separate the Roman prince from the vicar of Christ, but the sacred status that could have legitimized his victory was instead used to justify his defeat. * Note: But compare Ranke, Die Römischen Päpste, i. p. 289.—M.]

92 (return)
[ This gradual change of manners and expense is admirably explained by Dr. Adam Smith, (Wealth of Nations, vol. i. p. 495—504,) who proves, perhaps too severely, that the most salutary effects have flowed from the meanest and most selfish causes.]

92 (return)
[ This gradual shift in behavior and spending is well explained by Dr. Adam Smith, (Wealth of Nations, vol. i. p. 495—504,) who argues, perhaps a bit harshly, that the most beneficial outcomes have come from the most trivial and self-serving motivations.]

A Christian, a philosopher, 93 and a patriot, will be equally scandalized by the temporal kingdom of the clergy; and the local majesty of Rome, the remembrance of her consuls and triumphs, may seem to imbitter the sense, and aggravate the shame, of her slavery. If we calmly weigh the merits and defects of the ecclesiastical government, it may be praised in its present state, as a mild, decent, and tranquil system, exempt from the dangers of a minority, the sallies of youth, the expenses of luxury, and the calamities of war. But these advantages are overbalanced by a frequent, perhaps a septennial, election of a sovereign, who is seldom a native of the country; the reign of a young statesman of threescore, in the decline of his life and abilities, without hope to accomplish, and without children to inherit, the labors of his transitory reign. The successful candidate is drawn from the church, and even the convent; from the mode of education and life the most adverse to reason, humanity, and freedom. In the trammels of servile faith, he has learned to believe because it is absurd, to revere all that is contemptible, and to despise whatever might deserve the esteem of a rational being; to punish error as a crime, to reward mortification and celibacy as the first of virtues; to place the saints of the calendar 94 above the heroes of Rome and the sages of Athens; and to consider the missal, or the crucifix, as more useful instruments than the plough or the loom. In the office of nuncio, or the rank of cardinal, he may acquire some knowledge of the world, but the primitive stain will adhere to his mind and manners: from study and experience he may suspect the mystery of his profession; but the sacerdotal artist will imbibe some portion of the bigotry which he inculcates. The genius of Sixtus the Fifth 95 burst from the gloom of a Franciscan cloister. In a reign of five years, he exterminated the outlaws and banditti, abolished the profane sanctuaries of Rome, 96 formed a naval and military force, restored and emulated the monuments of antiquity, and after a liberal use and large increase of the revenue, left five millions of crowns in the castle of St. Angelo. But his justice was sullied with cruelty, his activity was prompted by the ambition of conquest: after his decease the abuses revived; the treasure was dissipated; he entailed on posterity thirty-five new taxes and the venality of offices; and, after his death, his statue was demolished by an ungrateful, or an injured, people. 97 The wild and original character of Sixtus the Fifth stands alone in the series of the pontiffs; the maxims and effects of their temporal government may be collected from the positive and comparative view of the arts and philosophy, the agriculture and trade, the wealth and population, of the ecclesiastical state. For myself, it is my wish to depart in charity with all mankind, nor am I willing, in these last moments, to offend even the pope and clergy of Rome. 98

A Christian, a philosopher, 93 and a patriot will be equally shocked by the temporary power of the clergy; and the local glory of Rome, remembering her consuls and victories, may only make her slavery feel more bitter and shameful. If we carefully consider the strengths and weaknesses of the church's government, it may be praised in its current state as a gentle, respectable, and peaceful system, free from the risks of a minority, the impulsiveness of youth, the costs of luxury, and the disasters of war. But these advantages are outweighed by a frequent, perhaps every seven years, election of a leader who is rarely a native; the rule of a young leader in his sixties, at the end of his life and capabilities, with no hope of achieving anything meaningful and no children to pass on the efforts of his brief reign. The successful candidate comes from the church, even from the convent; shaped by an education and lifestyle that are most hostile to reason, humanity, and freedom. In the chains of blind faith, he learns to believe what is ridiculous, to honor all that is unworthy, and to look down on what deserves the respect of a rational person; to punish mistakes as crimes, to celebrate self-denial and celibacy as the highest virtues; to rank the saints of the calendar 94 above the heroes of Rome and the thinkers of Athens; and to see the missal or the crucifix as more valuable tools than the plow or the loom. In the position of nuncio or the rank of cardinal, he may gain some insight into the world, but the original stain will cling to his mind and behavior: through study and experience, he may begin to question the mysteries of his profession; but the priestly figure will absorb some degree of the narrow-mindedness he preaches. The brilliance of Sixtus the Fifth 95 emerged from the dark of a Franciscan monastery. In a five-year reign, he wiped out outlaws and bandits, dismantled the profane sanctuaries of Rome, 96 created a naval and military force, restored and imitated the monuments of the past, and after using and significantly increasing the revenue, left five million crowns in the castle of St. Angelo. But his justice was tarnished by cruelty, and his zeal was driven by the ambition for conquest: after his death, the abuses returned; the treasure was squandered; he left behind thirty-five new taxes and the corruption of offices; and after he died, his statue was torn down by an ungrateful or wronged populace. 97 The wild and original nature of Sixtus the Fifth stands out among the series of popes; the principles and impact of their temporal power can be gathered from the clear and comparative assessment of the arts and philosophy, agriculture and trade, wealth and population of the ecclesiastical state. As for me, I wish to part in goodwill with all humanity, and I am not willing, in these final moments, to offend even the pope and clergy of Rome. 98

93 (return)
[ Mr. Hume (Hist. of England, vol. i. p. 389) too hastily conclude that if the civil and ecclesiastical powers be united in the same person, it is of little moment whether he be styled prince or prelate since the temporal character will always predominate.]

93 (return)
[Mr. Hume (Hist. of England, vol. i. p. 389) too quickly concludes that if civil and religious powers are held by the same person, it doesn’t really matter if they are called prince or bishop, since the secular role will always take priority.]

94 (return)
[ A Protestant may disdain the unworthy preference of St. Francis or St. Dominic, but he will not rashly condemn the zeal or judgment of Sixtus V., who placed the statues of the apostles St. Peter and St. Paul on the vacant columns of Trajan and Antonine.]

94 (return)
[ A Protestant might look down on the questionable favoritism of St. Francis or St. Dominic, but he won’t quickly judge the passion or decisions of Sixtus V., who positioned the statues of the apostles St. Peter and St. Paul on the empty columns of Trajan and Antonine.]

95 (return)
[ A wandering Italian, Gregorio Leti, has given the Vita di Sisto-Quinto, (Amstel. 1721, 3 vols. in 12mo.,) a copious and amusing work, but which does not command our absolute confidence. Yet the character of the man, and the principal facts, are supported by the annals of Spondanus and Muratori, (A.D. 1585—1590,) and the contemporary history of the great Thuanus, (l. lxxxii. c. 1, 2, l. lxxxiv. c. 10, l. c. c. 8.) * Note: The industry of M. Ranke has discovered the document, a kind of scandalous chronicle of the time, from which Leti wrought up his amusing romances. See also M. Ranke’s observations on the Life of Sixtus. by Tempesti, b. iii. p. 317, 324.— M.]

95 (return)
[ A wandering Italian, Gregorio Leti, has written the Vita di Sisto-Quinto (Amstel. 1721, 3 vols. in 12mo.), a detailed and entertaining work, though it doesn't fully inspire our trust. However, the character of the man and the key facts are backed by the records of Spondanus and Muratori (A.D. 1585—1590) and the contemporary history of the notable Thuanus (l. lxxxii. c. 1, 2, l. lxxxiv. c. 10, l. c. c. 8.) * Note: The diligence of M. Ranke has uncovered a document, a sort of scandalous chronicle from that time, which Leti drew upon to create his entertaining stories. See also M. Ranke’s comments on the Life of Sixtus by Tempesti, b. iii. p. 317, 324.— M.]

96 (return)
[ These privileged places, the quartieri or franchises, were adopted from the Roman nobles by the foreign ministers. Julius II. had once abolished the abominandum et detestandum franchitiarum hujusmodi nomen: and after Sixtus V. they again revived. I cannot discern either the justice or magnanimity of Louis XIV., who, in 1687, sent his ambassador, the marquis de Lavardin, to Rome, with an armed force of a thousand officers, guards, and domestics, to maintain this iniquitous claim, and insult Pope Innocent XI. in the heart of his capital, (Vita di Sisto V. tom. iii. p. 260—278. Muratori, Annali d’Italia, tom. xv. p. 494—496, and Voltaire, Siecle de Louis XIV. tom. i. c. 14, p. 58, 59.)]

96 (return)
[ These exclusive areas, the quartieri or franchises, were taken from the Roman elites by the foreign ministers. Julius II once eliminated the despised name of these franchises: but after Sixtus V, they were revived again. I can’t see the fairness or nobility in Louis XIV’s actions when, in 1687, he sent his ambassador, the Marquis de Lavardin, to Rome with a military force of a thousand officers, guards, and servants, to uphold this unjust claim and to insult Pope Innocent XI right in the heart of his capital, (Vita di Sisto V. tom. iii. p. 260—278. Muratori, Annali d’Italia, tom. xv. p. 494—496, and Voltaire, Siecle de Louis XIV. tom. i. c. 14, p. 58, 59.)]

97 (return)
[ This outrage produced a decree, which was inscribed on marble, and placed in the Capitol. It is expressed in a style of manly simplicity and freedom: Si quis, sive privatus, sive magistratum gerens de collocandâ vivo pontifici statuâ mentionem facere ausit, legitimo S. P. Q. R. decreto in perpetuum infamis et publicorum munerum expers esto. MDXC. mense Augusto, (Vita di Sisto V. tom. iii. p. 469.) I believe that this decree is still observed, and I know that every monarch who deserves a statue should himself impose the prohibition.]

97 (return)
[ This outrage led to a decree, which was carved into marble and displayed in the Capitol. It is written in a clear and straightforward style: If anyone, whether a private citizen or an official, dares to mention placing a statue of a living pontiff, they will be forever infamous and excluded from public office by the legitimate decree of the Senate and People of Rome. August 1590, (Life of Sixtus V, vol. iii, p. 469.) I believe this decree is still in effect, and I know that any monarch deserving a statue should impose this prohibition on themselves.]

98 (return)
[ The histories of the church, Italy, and Christendom, have contributed to the chapter which I now conclude. In the original Lives of the Popes, we often discover the city and republic of Rome: and the events of the xivth and xvth centuries are preserved in the rude and domestic chronicles which I have carefully inspected, and shall recapitulate in the order of time.

98 (return)
[ The histories of the church, Italy, and Christendom have contributed to the chapter I am now concluding. In the original Lives of the Popes, we often see references to the city and republic of Rome. The events of the 14th and 15th centuries are recorded in the simple domestic chronicles that I have carefully examined and will summarize in chronological order.

1. Monaldeschi (Ludovici Boncomitis) Fragmenta Annalium Roman. A.D. 1328, in the Scriptores Rerum Italicarum of Muratori, tom. xii. p. 525. N. B. The credit of this fragment is somewhat hurt by a singular interpolation, in which the author relates his own death at the age of 115 years.

1. Monaldeschi (Ludovici Boncomitis) Fragmenta Annalium Roman. A.D. 1328, in the Scriptores Rerum Italicarum of Muratori, vol. xii. p. 525. Note: The reliability of this fragment is somewhat undermined by a peculiar addition, where the author mentions his own death at the age of 115.

2. Fragmenta Historiæ Romanæ (vulgo Thomas Fortifioccæ) in Romana Dialecto vulgari, (A.D. 1327—1354, in Muratori, Antiquitat. Medii Ævi Italiæ, tom. iii. p. 247—548;) the authentic groundwork of the history of Rienzi.

2. Fragmenta Historiæ Romanæ (commonly known as Thomas Fortifioccæ) in the Roman vernacular dialect (A.D. 1327—1354, in Muratori, Antiquitat. Medii Ævi Italiæ, tom. iii. p. 247—548;) the genuine foundation of the history of Rienzi.

3. Delphini (Gentilis) Diarium Romanum, (A.D. 1370—1410,) in the Rerum Italicarum, tom. iii. P. ii. p. 846.

3. Delphini (Gentilis) Roman Diary, (A.D. 1370—1410,) in the Italian Affairs, vol. iii. pt. ii. p. 846.

4. Antonii (Petri) Diarium Rom., (A.D. 1404—1417,) tom. xxiv. p. 699.

4. Antonii (Petri) Diary of Rome, (A.D. 1404—1417,) vol. xxiv. p. 699.

5. Petroni (Pauli) Miscellanea Historica Romana, (A.D. 1433—1446,) tom. xxiv. p. 1101.

5. Petroni (Pauli) Miscellanea Historica Romana, (A.D. 1433—1446,) vol. xxiv. p. 1101.

6. Volaterrani (Jacob.) Diarium Rom., (A.D. 1472—1484,) tom. xxiii p. 81.

6. Volaterrani (Jacob.) Diary of Rome, (A.D. 1472—1484,) vol. xxiii p. 81.

7. Anonymi Diarium Urbis Romæ, (A.D. 1481—1492,) tom. iii. P. ii. p. 1069.

7. Anonymi Diarium Urbis Romæ, (A.D. 1481—1492,) vol. iii. Part ii. p. 1069.

8. Infessuræ (Stephani) Diarium Romanum, (A.D. 1294, or 1378—1494,) tom. iii. P. ii. p. 1109.

8. Infessuræ (Stephen) Roman Diary, (A.D. 1294, or 1378—1494,) vol. iii. P. ii. p. 1109.

9. Historia Arcana Alexandri VI. sive Excerpta ex Diario Joh. Burcardi, (A.D. 1492—1503,) edita a Godefr. Gulielm. Leibnizio, Hanover, 697, in 14to. The large and valuable Journal of Burcard might be completed from the MSS. in different libraries of Italy and France, (M. de Foncemagne, in the Mémoires de l’Acad. des Inscrip. tom. xvii. p. 597—606.)

9. The Secret History of Alexander VI, or Excerpts from the Diary of John Burcard, (A.D. 1492—1503), edited by Gottfried Wilhelm Leibniz, Hanover, 697, in 14to. The extensive and valuable journal of Burcard could be completed using the manuscripts in various libraries in Italy and France, (M. de Foncemagne, in the Memoirs of the Academy of Inscriptions, vol. xvii, pp. 597—606.)

Except the last, all these fragments and diaries are inserted in the Collections of Muratori, my guide and master in the history of Italy. His country, and the public, are indebted to him for the following works on that subject: 1. Rerum Italicarum Scriptores, (A.D. 500—1500,) quorum potissima pars nunc primum in lucem prodit, &c., xxviii. vols. in folio, Milan, 1723—1738, 1751. A volume of chronological and alphabetical tables is still wanting as a key to this great work, which is yet in a disorderly and defective state. 2. Antiquitates Italiæ Medii Ævi, vi. vols. in folio, Milan, 1738—1743, in lxxv. curious dissertations, on the manners, government, religion, &c., of the Italians of the darker ages, with a large supplement of charters, chronicles, &c. 3. Dissertazioni sopra le Antiquita Italiane, iii. vols. in 4to., Milano, 1751, a free version by the author, which may be quoted with the same confidence as the Latin text of the Antiquities. Annali d’ Italia, xviii. vols. in octavo, Milan, 1753—1756, a dry, though accurate and useful, abridgment of the history of Italy, from the birth of Christ to the middle of the xviiith century. 5. Dell’ Antichita Estense ed Italiane, ii. vols. in folio, Modena, 1717, 1740. In the history of this illustrious race, the parent of our Brunswick kings, the critic is not seduced by the loyalty or gratitude of the subject. In all his works, Muratori approves himself a diligent and laborious writer, who aspires above the prejudices of a Catholic priest. He was born in the year 1672, and died in the year 1750, after passing near 60 years in the libraries of Milan and Modena, (Vita del Proposto Ludovico Antonio Muratori, by his nephew and successor Gian. Francesco Soli Muratori Venezia, 1756 m 4to.)]

Except for the last one, all these fragments and diaries are included in the Collections of Muratori, who is my guide and expert in Italian history. His country and the public owe him for the following works on this subject: 1. Rerum Italicarum Scriptores, (A.D. 500—1500,) quorum potissima pars nunc primum in lucem prodit, &c., 28 vols. in folio, Milan, 1723—1738, 1751. A volume of chronological and alphabetical tables is still needed as a key to this extensive work, which remains somewhat disorganized and incomplete. 2. Antiquitates Italiæ Medii Ævi, 6 vols. in folio, Milan, 1738—1743, containing 75 intriguing essays on the customs, government, religion, &c., of the Italians during the early Middle Ages, along with a large supplement of charters, chronicles, &c. 3. Dissertazioni sopra le Antiquita Italiane, 3 vols. in 4to., Milan, 1751, a free version by the author, which can be cited with the same trust as the Latin text of the Antiquities. Annali d’ Italia, 18 vols. in octavo, Milan, 1753—1756, is a straightforward, though accurate and useful, summary of Italian history from the birth of Christ to the mid-18th century. 5. Dell’ Antichita Estense ed Italiane, 2 vols. in folio, Modena, 1717, 1740. In this history of this distinguished lineage, the ancestors of our Brunswick kings, the critic remains unbiased by loyalty or gratitude. Throughout all his works, Muratori proves himself a diligent and hardworking writer who rises above the prejudices of a Catholic priest. He was born in 1672 and died in 1750, having spent nearly 60 years in the libraries of Milan and Modena, (Vita del Proposto Ludovico Antonio Muratori, by his nephew and successor Gian. Francesco Soli Muratori Venezia, 1756 m 4to.)

Chapter LXXI: Prospect Of The Ruins Of Rome In The Fifteenth Century.—Part I.

     Prospect Of The Ruins Of Rome In The Fifteenth Century.—
     Four Causes Of Decay And Destruction.—Example Of The
     Coliseum.—Renovation Of The City.—Conclusion Of The Whole
     Work.
     Prospect Of The Ruins Of Rome In The Fifteenth Century.—
     Four Causes Of Decay And Destruction.—Example Of The
     Coliseum.—Renovation Of The City.—Conclusion Of The Whole
     Work.

In the last days of Pope Eugenius the Fourth, 101 two of his servants, the learned Poggius 1 and a friend, ascended the Capitoline hill; reposed themselves among the ruins of columns and temples; and viewed from that commanding spot the wide and various prospect of desolation. 2 The place and the object gave ample scope for moralizing on the vicissitudes of fortune, which spares neither man nor the proudest of his works, which buries empires and cities in a common grave; and it was agreed, that in proportion to her former greatness, the fall of Rome was the more awful and deplorable. “Her primeval state, such as she might appear in a remote age, when Evander entertained the stranger of Troy, 3 has been delineated by the fancy of Virgil. This Tarpeian rock was then a savage and solitary thicket: in the time of the poet, it was crowned with the golden roofs of a temple; the temple is overthrown, the gold has been pillaged, the wheel of fortune has accomplished her revolution, and the sacred ground is again disfigured with thorns and brambles. The hill of the Capitol, on which we sit, was formerly the head of the Roman empire, the citadel of the earth, the terror of kings; illustrated by the footsteps of so many triumphs, enriched with the spoils and tributes of so many nations. This spectacle of the world, how is it fallen! how changed! how defaced! The path of victory is obliterated by vines, and the benches of the senators are concealed by a dunghill. Cast your eyes on the Palatine hill, and seek among the shapeless and enormous fragments the marble theatre, the obelisks, the colossal statues, the porticos of Nero’s palace: survey the other hills of the city, the vacant space is interrupted only by ruins and gardens. The forum of the Roman people, where they assembled to enact their laws and elect their magistrates, is now enclosed for the cultivation of pot-herbs, or thrown open for the reception of swine and buffaloes. The public and private edifices, that were founded for eternity, lie prostrate, naked, and broken, like the limbs of a mighty giant; and the ruin is the more visible, from the stupendous relics that have survived the injuries of time and fortune.” 4

In the final days of Pope Eugenius the Fourth, 101 two of his servants, the educated Poggius 1 and a friend, climbed up the Capitoline hill; rested among the ruins of columns and temples; and looked out from that high vantage point at the vast and varied view of desolation. 2 The location and the scene provided plenty of material for reflecting on the ups and downs of fate, which spares neither individuals nor the grandest of their creations, burying empires and cities in a shared grave; and they agreed that in relation to its past greatness, the fall of Rome was all the more terrifying and tragic. “Its ancient state, as it might have appeared in a distant age when Evander welcomed the stranger from Troy, 3 has been depicted by Virgil’s imagination. This Tarpeian rock was once a wild and lonely thicket: during the poet's time, it was topped with the golden roofs of a temple; the temple has been destroyed, the gold has been looted, the wheel of fortune has completed its cycle, and the sacred ground is once again covered with thorns and brambles. The Capitol hill, where we sit, was once the center of the Roman empire, the stronghold of the earth, the fear of kings; marked by so many triumphs, enriched with the spoils and tributes of many nations. What a sight it was, how it has fallen! how changed! how defaced! The path of victory is overgrown with vines, and the senators' benches are hidden under a pile of filth. Look over at the Palatine hill, and search among the shapeless and massive fragments for the marble theater, the obelisks, the colossal statues, the porticos of Nero’s palace: examine the other hills of the city, where the empty spaces are only broken up by ruins and gardens. The forum of the Roman people, where they gathered to make their laws and elect their leaders, is now fenced off for growing vegetables, or opened up for pigs and buffaloes. The public and private buildings, which were meant to last forever, lie prostrate, bare, and broken, like the limbs of a mighty giant; and the destruction is even clearer, given the monumental relics that have endured the ravages of time and fate.” 4

101 (return)
[ It should be Pope Martin the Fifth. See Gibbon’s own note, ch. lxv, note 51 and Hobhouse, Illustrations of Childe Harold, p. 155.—M.]

101 (return)
[ It should be Pope Martin the Fifth. See Gibbon’s own note, ch. lxv, note 51 and Hobhouse, Illustrations of Childe Harold, p. 155.—M.]

1 (return)
[ I have already (notes 50, 51, on chap. lxv.) mentioned the age, character, and writings of Poggius; and particularly noticed the date of this elegant moral lecture on the varieties of fortune.]

1 (return)
[ I've already mentioned the age, character, and writings of Poggius (notes 50, 51, on chap. lxv.); and I've specifically pointed out the date of this insightful moral lecture on the different types of fortune.]

2 (return)
[ Consedimus in ipsis Tarpeiæ arcis ruinis, pone ingens portæ cujusdam, ut puto, templi, marmoreum limen, plurimasque passim confractas columnas, unde magnâ ex parte prospectus urbis patet, (p. 5.)]

2 (return)
[ We are sitting amidst the ruins of the Tarpeian Rock, behind the large doorway of what I believe is a temple, with a marble threshold and numerous broken columns scattered everywhere, from which there is a grand view of the city. (p. 5.)]

3 (return)
[ Æneid viii. 97—369. This ancient picture, so artfully introduced, and so exquisitely finished, must have been highly interesting to an inhabitant of Rome; and our early studies allow us to sympathize in the feelings of a Roman.]

3 (return)
[ Æneid viii. 97—369. This ancient scene, skillfully presented and beautifully detailed, would have been very engaging for someone living in Rome; and our early studies enable us to share in the emotions of a Roman.]

4 (return)
[ Capitolium adeo.... immutatum ut vineæ in senatorum subsellia successerint, stercorum ac purgamentorum receptaculum factum. Respice ad Palatinum montem..... vasta rudera.... cæteros colles perlustra omnia vacua ædificiis, ruinis vineisque oppleta conspicies, (Poggius, de Varietat. Fortunæ p. 21.)]

4 (return)
[ The Capitol has changed so much that vineyards have taken over the senatorial benches, turning into a dumping ground for waste and rubbish. Look at the Palatine Hill... vast ruins... as you survey the other hills, you'll see everything stripped of buildings, filled with ruins and vineyards. (Poggius, de Varietat. Fortunæ p. 21.)]

These relics are minutely described by Poggius, one of the first who raised his eyes from the monuments of legendary, to those of classic, superstition. 5 1.Besides a bridge, an arch, a sepulchre, and the pyramid of Cestius, he could discern, of the age of the republic, a double row of vaults, in the salt-office of the Capitol, which were inscribed with the name and munificence of Catulus. 2. Eleven temples were visible in some degree, from the perfect form of the Pantheon, to the three arches and a marble column of the temple of Peace, which Vespasian erected after the civil wars and the Jewish triumph. 3. Of the number, which he rashly defines, of seven thermæ, or public baths, none were sufficiently entire to represent the use and distribution of the several parts: but those of Diocletian and Antoninus Caracalla still retained the titles of the founders, and astonished the curious spectator, who, in observing their solidity and extent, the variety of marbles, the size and multitude of the columns, compared the labor and expense with the use and importance. Of the baths of Constantine, of Alexander, of Domitian, or rather of Titus, some vestige might yet be found. 4. The triumphal arches of Titus, Severus, and Constantine, were entire, both the structure and the inscriptions; a falling fragment was honored with the name of Trajan; and two arches, then extant, in the Flaminian way, have been ascribed to the baser memory of Faustina and Gallienus. 501 5. After the wonder of the Coliseum, Poggius might have overlooked small amphitheatre of brick, most probably for the use of the prætorian camp: the theatres of Marcellus and Pompey were occupied in a great measure by public and private buildings; and in the Circus, Agonalis and Maximus, little more than the situation and the form could be investigated. 6. The columns of Trajan and Antonine were still erect; but the Egyptian obelisks were broken or buried. A people of gods and heroes, the workmanship of art, was reduced to one equestrian figure of gilt brass, and to five marble statues, of which the most conspicuous were the two horses of Phidias and Praxiteles. 7. The two mausoleums or sepulchres of Augustus and Hadrian could not totally be lost: but the former was only visible as a mound of earth; and the latter, the castle of St. Angelo, had acquired the name and appearance of a modern fortress. With the addition of some separate and nameless columns, such were the remains of the ancient city; for the marks of a more recent structure might be detected in the walls, which formed a circumference of ten miles, included three hundred and seventy-nine turrets, and opened into the country by thirteen gates.

These relics are described in detail by Poggius, one of the first to look away from the stories of legends and focus on those of classic superstition. 5 1. Besides a bridge, an arch, a tomb, and the pyramid of Cestius, he could also see, from the Republic era, a double row of vaults in the salt-office of the Capitol, which were marked with the name and generosity of Catulus. 2. Eleven temples were somewhat visible, ranging from the perfect form of the Pantheon to the three arches and a marble column of the Temple of Peace, which Vespasian built after the civil wars and the Jewish triumph. 3. Among the seven public baths he carelessly identified, none were intact enough to show how the various parts were used and arranged. However, the baths of Diocletian and Antoninus Caracalla still kept their founders' names and amazed onlookers with their solid construction and vast size, the variety of marbles, and the number of columns, leading people to compare the labor and cost to their function and significance. Some traces of the baths of Constantine, Alexander, Domitian, or rather Titus, might still be found. 4. The triumphal arches of Titus, Severus, and Constantine remained intact, both in structure and inscriptions; a crumbled piece was honored with Trajan's name, and two arches still visible on the Flaminian way were attributed to the lesser memories of Faustina and Gallienus. 501 5. After the awe of the Coliseum, Poggius might have missed a small brick amphitheater, likely used by the praetorian camp: the theatres of Marcellus and Pompey had mostly been taken over by public and private buildings; and in the Circus, Agonalis and Maximus, only the layout and shape could really be explored. 6. The columns of Trajan and Antonine still stood tall, but the Egyptian obelisks were either broken or buried. A civilization of gods and heroes, crafted by artists, was reduced to one equestrian statue of gilded brass and five marble statues, two of which, the horses by Phidias and Praxiteles, were the most notable. 7. The two mausoleums or tombs of Augustus and Hadrian couldn’t be completely gone: the former was only visible as a mound of earth, while the latter, now known as the Castle of St. Angelo, had taken on the name and look of a modern fortress. Along with some separate and unnamed columns, these were the remnants of the ancient city; the signs of newer structures could be spotted in the walls, which created a ten-mile circumference, included three hundred seventy-nine turrets, and connected to the countryside through thirteen gates.

5 (return)
[ See Poggius, p. 8—22.]

5 (return)
[ See Poggius, p. 8—22.]

501 (return)
[ One was in the Via Nomentana; est alter præterea Gallieno principi dicatus, ut superscriptio indicat, Viâ Nomentana. Hobhouse, p. 154. Poggio likewise mentions the building which Gibbon ambiguously says be “might have overlooked.”—M.]

501 (return)
[ One was on the Via Nomentana; another, dedicated to the emperor Gallienus, as the inscription shows, is on the Via Nomentana. Hobhouse, p. 154. Poggio also refers to the structure which Gibbon vaguely suggests he "might have overlooked." —M.]

This melancholy picture was drawn above nine hundred years after the fall of the Western empire, and even of the Gothic kingdom of Italy. A long period of distress and anarchy, in which empire, and arts, and riches had migrated from the banks of the Tyber, was incapable of restoring or adorning the city; and, as all that is human must retrograde if it do not advance, every successive age must have hastened the ruin of the works of antiquity. To measure the progress of decay, and to ascertain, at each æra, the state of each edifice, would be an endless and a useless labor; and I shall content myself with two observations, which will introduce a short inquiry into the general causes and effects. 1. Two hundred years before the eloquent complaint of Poggius, an anonymous writer composed a description of Rome. 6 His ignorance may repeat the same objects under strange and fabulous names. Yet this barbarous topographer had eyes and ears; he could observe the visible remains; he could listen to the tradition of the people; and he distinctly enumerates seven theatres, eleven baths, twelve arches, and eighteen palaces, of which many had disappeared before the time of Poggius. It is apparent, that many stately monuments of antiquity survived till a late period, 7 and that the principles of destruction acted with vigorous and increasing energy in the thirteenth and fourteenth centuries. 2. The same reflection must be applied to the three last ages; and we should vainly seek the Septizonium of Severus; 8 which is celebrated by Petrarch and the antiquarians of the sixteenth century. While the Roman edifices were still entire, the first blows, however weighty and impetuous, were resisted by the solidity of the mass and the harmony of the parts; but the slightest touch would precipitate the fragments of arches and columns, that already nodded to their fall.

This sad picture was created over nine hundred years after the fall of the Western Empire and the Gothic kingdom of Italy. A long time of suffering and chaos, during which the empire, arts, and wealth had moved away from the banks of the Tiber, couldn't restore or enhance the city; and since everything human must decline if it doesn’t progress, every succeeding age must have sped up the downfall of ancient works. Measuring the pace of decay and determining the condition of each building at each era would be a never-ending and pointless task; so I will be satisfied with two observations that will introduce a brief examination of the general causes and effects. 1. Two hundred years before Poggius’s eloquent lament, an anonymous author wrote a description of Rome. 6 His ignorance may refer to the same sites by weird and fantastical names. Yet this rough-skinned topographer had eyes and ears; he could see the visible remnants; he could hear the people's stories; and he clearly lists seven theaters, eleven baths, twelve arches, and eighteen palaces, many of which had vanished by Poggius's time. It is clear that many impressive monuments of antiquity lasted until a much later time, 7 and that the forces of destruction were acting with strong and increasing intensity in the thirteenth and fourteenth centuries. 2. The same thought must apply to the last three centuries; and we would search in vain for the Septizonium of Severus; 8 which is noted by Petrarch and the antiquarians of the sixteenth century. While the Roman buildings were still intact, the first blows, no matter how heavy and forceful, were resisted by their strength and design; but the slightest touch could send the fragments of arches and columns tumbling down, as they were already leaning toward collapse.

6 (return)
[ Liber de Mirabilibus Romæ ex Registro Nicolai Cardinalis de Arragoniâ in Bibliothecâ St. Isidori Armario IV., No. 69. This treatise, with some short but pertinent notes, has been published by Montfaucon, (Diarium Italicum, p. 283—301,) who thus delivers his own critical opinion: Scriptor xiiimi. circiter sæculi, ut ibidem notatur; antiquariæ rei imperitus et, ut ab illo ævo, nugis et anilibus fabellis refertus: sed, quia monumenta, quæ iis temporibus Romæ supererant pro modulo recenset, non parum inde lucis mutuabitur qui Romanis antiquitatibus indagandis operam navabit, (p. 283.)]

6 (return)
[Book of the Wonders of Rome from the Register of Nicholas Cardinal of Aragon in the Library of St. Isidore, Compartment IV., No. 69. This treatise, along with some brief but relevant notes, has been published by Montfaucon (Diarium Italicum, pp. 283–301), who shares his own critical view: A writer from around the 13th century, as noted there; unfamiliar with antiquities and, as typical of that time, filled with trivialities and silly tales: however, because he recounts the monuments that survived in Rome at that time, anyone researching Roman antiquities will find some valuable insights in it (p. 283).]

7 (return)
[ The Père Mabillon (Analecta, tom. iv. p. 502) has published an anonymous pilgrim of the ixth century, who, in his visit round the churches and holy places at Rome, touches on several buildings, especially porticos, which had disappeared before the xiiith century.]

7 (return)
[ Père Mabillon (Analecta, vol. iv, p. 502) published an anonymous pilgrim from the 9th century who, during his visit to the churches and holy sites in Rome, mentions several buildings, particularly porticos, that had vanished before the 13th century.]

8 (return)
[ On the Septizonium, see the Mémoires sur Pétrarque, (tom. i. p. 325,) Donatus, (p. 338,) and Nardini, (p. 117, 414.)]

8 (return)
[ For information about the Septizonium, refer to the Mémoires sur Pétrarque, (vol. i, p. 325), Donatus, (p. 338), and Nardini, (p. 117, 414.)]

After a diligent inquiry, I can discern four principal causes of the ruin of Rome, which continued to operate in a period of more than a thousand years. I. The injuries of time and nature. II. The hostile attacks of the Barbarians and Christians. III. The use and abuse of the materials. And, IV. The domestic quarrels of the Romans.

After careful investigation, I can identify four main reasons for the downfall of Rome, which persisted for over a thousand years. I. The damage caused by time and nature. II. The aggressive assaults from Barbarians and Christians. III. The misuse of resources. And, IV. The internal conflicts among the Romans.

I. The art of man is able to construct monuments far more permanent than the narrow span of his own existence; yet these monuments, like himself, are perishable and frail; and in the boundless annals of time, his life and his labors must equally be measured as a fleeting moment. Of a simple and solid edifice, it is not easy, however, to circumscribe the duration. As the wonders of ancient days, the pyramids 9 attracted the curiosity of the ancients: a hundred generations, the leaves of autumn, have dropped 10 into the grave; and after the fall of the Pharaohs and Ptolemies, the Cæsars and caliphs, the same pyramids stand erect and unshaken above the floods of the Nile. A complex figure of various and minute parts to more accessible to injury and decay; and the silent lapse of time is often accelerated by hurricanes and earthquakes, by fires and inundations. The air and earth have doubtless been shaken; and the lofty turrets of Rome have tottered from their foundations; but the seven hills do not appear to be placed on the great cavities of the globe; nor has the city, in any age, been exposed to the convulsions of nature, which, in the climate of Antioch, Lisbon, or Lima, have crumbled in a few moments the works of ages into dust. Fire is the most powerful agent of life and death: the rapid mischief may be kindled and propagated by the industry or negligence of mankind; and every period of the Roman annals is marked by the repetition of similar calamities. A memorable conflagration, the guilt or misfortune of Nero’s reign, continued, though with unequal fury, either six or nine days. 11 Innumerable buildings, crowded in close and crooked streets, supplied perpetual fuel for the flames; and when they ceased, four only of the fourteen regions were left entire; three were totally destroyed, and seven were deformed by the relics of smoking and lacerated edifices. 12 In the full meridian of empire, the metropolis arose with fresh beauty from her ashes; yet the memory of the old deplored their irreparable losses, the arts of Greece, the trophies of victory, the monuments of primitive or fabulous antiquity. In the days of distress and anarchy, every wound is mortal, every fall irretrievable; nor can the damage be restored either by the public care of government, or the activity of private interest. Yet two causes may be alleged, which render the calamity of fire more destructive to a flourishing than a decayed city. 1. The more combustible materials of brick, timber, and metals, are first melted or consumed; but the flames may play without injury or effect on the naked walls, and massy arches, that have been despoiled of their ornaments. 2. It is among the common and plebeian habitations, that a mischievous spark is most easily blown to a conflagration; but as soon as they are devoured, the greater edifices, which have resisted or escaped, are left as so many islands in a state of solitude and safety. From her situation, Rome is exposed to the danger of frequent inundations. Without excepting the Tyber, the rivers that descend from either side of the Apennine have a short and irregular course; a shallow stream in the summer heats; an impetuous torrent, when it is swelled in the spring or winter, by the fall of rain, and the melting of the snows. When the current is repelled from the sea by adverse winds, when the ordinary bed is inadequate to the weight of waters, they rise above the banks, and overspread, without limits or control, the plains and cities of the adjacent country. Soon after the triumph of the first Punic war, the Tyber was increased by unusual rains; and the inundation, surpassing all former measure of time and place, destroyed all the buildings that were situated below the hills of Rome. According to the variety of ground, the same mischief was produced by different means; and the edifices were either swept away by the sudden impulse, or dissolved and undermined by the long continuance, of the flood. 13 Under the reign of Augustus, the same calamity was renewed: the lawless river overturned the palaces and temples on its banks; 14 and, after the labors of the emperor in cleansing and widening the bed that was encumbered with ruins, 15 the vigilance of his successors was exercised by similar dangers and designs. The project of diverting into new channels the Tyber itself, or some of the dependent streams, was long opposed by superstition and local interests; 16 nor did the use compensate the toil and cost of the tardy and imperfect execution. The servitude of rivers is the noblest and most important victory which man has obtained over the licentiousness of nature; 17 and if such were the ravages of the Tyber under a firm and active government, what could oppose, or who can enumerate, the injuries of the city, after the fall of the Western empire? A remedy was at length produced by the evil itself: the accumulation of rubbish and the earth, that has been washed down from the hills, is supposed to have elevated the plain of Rome, fourteen or fifteen feet, perhaps, above the ancient level; 18 and the modern city is less accessible to the attacks of the river. 19

I. The art of man can create monuments that last far longer than the brief span of his own life; yet these monuments, like him, are also temporary and fragile; and in the vast records of time, both his life and his efforts must be viewed as just a fleeting moment. However, it’s not easy to define how long a simple and sturdy structure will last. Just like the wonders of ancient times, the pyramids 9 piqued the curiosity of those in the past: a hundred generations, like autumn leaves, have fallen 10 into the grave; and even after the Pharaohs and Ptolemies fell, and the Cæsars and caliphs came and went, those same pyramids still stand tall and unshaken above the Nile’s waters. A complex structure with many intricate parts is more prone to damage and decay; and time often hastens its effects through hurricanes and earthquakes, fires, and floods. The air and earth have certainly been disturbed; and the tall towers of Rome have swayed from their bases; but the seven hills don’t seem to be precariously perched on the earth’s depths; nor has the city, in any era, faced the kind of natural disasters that have effortlessly reduced the works of ages in Antioch, Lisbon, or Lima to dust in mere moments. Fire is the most potent force of both life and death: the quick devastation can be sparked and spread by human actions, either deliberate or negligent; and every period in Roman history is marked by similar disasters. A notable fire, either the fault or misfortune of Nero’s reign, lasted, with varying intensity, for either six or nine days. 11 Countless buildings, crammed into narrow and twisted streets, provided constant fuel for the flames; and when they finally died down, only four out of the fourteen regions remained intact; three were completely destroyed, and seven were left scarred by the remnants of charred and damaged structures. 12 In the prime of its empire, the city rose with renewed beauty from its ashes; yet the memories of the old lamented their irreversible losses, the arts of Greece, the symbols of victory, the monuments of early or legendary history. In times of hardship and chaos, every wound feels fatal, every fall unchangeable; and neither the public efforts of the government nor the initiative of private interests can restore what’s been lost. Yet two reasons make the destruction from fire more damaging to a thriving city than to one that's already in decline. 1. The more flammable materials like brick, wood, and metals catch fire and burn first; but the flames may dance harmlessly on the bare walls and sturdy arches that have lost their decorations. 2. It’s in common and lower-class homes that a small spark can easily ignite a massive blaze; but once they’ve burned down, the larger buildings that have withstood or avoided the flames are left standing like islands in a sea of solitude and safety. Due to its location, Rome faces the risk of frequent floods. Excluding the Tiber, the rivers coming from either side of the Apennines have a short and irregular path; a shallow stream in the hot summer months; a furious torrent during the spring or winter, swollen by heavy rains and melting snow. When the flow is pushed back from the sea by strong winds, or when the regular riverbed can’t handle the floodwaters, they overflow their banks and spread uncontrollably across the plains and nearby cities. Shortly after the victory of the first Punic war, the Tiber rose due to unexpected heavy rains; and the flood, greater than anything recorded before, destroyed all the buildings located below the hills of Rome. Depending on the terrain, the same damage was caused by different factors; the structures were either swept away by the sudden rush of water or eroded and undermined over time by the persistent flood. 13 Under Augustus's rule, the same disaster struck again: the untamed river toppled the palaces and temples along its banks; 14 and after the emperor's efforts to clear and widen the riverbed choked with debris, 15 his successors remained vigilant against similar threats and designs. The idea of redirecting the Tiber or its tributaries was long resisted by superstition and local interests; 16 and the benefits never justified the effort and expense of the slow and incomplete work. The taming of rivers is the greatest and most vital victory mankind has achieved over nature’s chaos; 17 and if the Tiber could inflict such damage under a strong and proactive government, what could stand against, or who could count, the harms faced by the city after the fall of the Western empire? In the end, the problem brought about its own solution: the build-up of debris and earth washed down from the hills is believed to have raised the plain of Rome fourteen or fifteen feet, perhaps, above its old level; 18 and the modern city is now less vulnerable to the river’s attacks. 19

9 (return)
[ The age of the pyramids is remote and unknown, since Diodorus Siculus (tom. i l. i. c. 44, p. 72) is unable to decide whether they were constructed 1000, or 3400, years before the clxxxth Olympiad. Sir John Marsham’s contracted scale of the Egyptian dynasties would fix them about 2000 years before Christ, (Canon. Chronicus, p. 47.)]

9 (return)
[ The age of the pyramids is distant and uncertain, as Diodorus Siculus (tom. i l. i. c. 44, p. 72) cannot determine whether they were built 1000 or 3400 years before the 180th Olympiad. Sir John Marsham's abbreviated timeline of the Egyptian dynasties would date them to roughly 2000 years before Christ, (Canon. Chronicus, p. 47.)]

10 (return)
[ See the speech of Glaucus in the Iliad, (Z. 146.) This natural but melancholy image is peculiar to Homer.]

10 (return)
[ See Glaucus's speech in the Iliad, (Z. 146.) This natural but sad image is unique to Homer.]

11 (return)
[ The learning and criticism of M. des Vignoles (Histoire Critique de la République des Lettres, tom. viii. p. 47—118, ix. p. 172—187) dates the fire of Rome from A.D. 64, July 19, and the subsequent persecution of the Christians from November 15 of the same year.]

11 (return)
[ M. des Vignoles' analysis (Histoire Critique de la République des Lettres, tom. viii. p. 47—118, ix. p. 172—187) places the fire of Rome on July 19, A.D. 64, and the following persecution of Christians starting on November 15 of that same year.]

12 (return)
[ Quippe in regiones quatuordecim Roma dividitur, quarum quatuor integræ manebant, tres solo tenus dejectæ: septem reliquis pauca testorum vestigia supererant, lacera et semiusta. Among the old relics that were irreparably lost, Tacitus enumerates the temple of the moon of Servius Tullius; the fane and altar consecrated by Evander præsenti Herculi; the temple of Jupiter Stator, a vow of Romulus; the palace of Numa; the temple of Vesta cum Penatibus populi Romani. He then deplores the opes tot victoriis quæsitæ et Græcarum artium decora.... multa quæ seniores meminerant, quæ reparari nequibant, (Annal. xv. 40, 41.)]

12 (return)
[ Indeed, Rome was divided into fourteen regions, four of which were fully intact, three were reduced to rubble, and seven had only a few remnants left, tattered and half-burned. Among the old relics that were irreparably lost, Tacitus lists the temple of the moon of Servius Tullius; the shrine and altar dedicated by Evander to Hercules; the temple of Jupiter Stator, a vow made by Romulus; the palace of Numa; and the temple of Vesta along with the household gods of the Roman people. He then laments the wealth amassed through so many victories and the beauty of Greek arts... many things that the elders remembered, which could not be restored, (Annal. xv. 40, 41.)]

13 (return)
[ A. U. C. 507, repentina subversio ipsius Romæ prævenit triumphum Romanorum.... diversæ ignium aquarumque clades pene absumsere urbem Nam Tiberis insolitis auctus imbribus et ultra opinionem, vel diuturnitate vel maguitudine redundans, omnia Romæ ædificia in plano posita delevit. Diversæ qualitates locorum ad unam convenere perniciem: quoniam et quæ segnior inundatio tenuit madefacta dissolvit, et quæ cursus torrentis invenit impulsa dejecit, (Orosius, Hist. l. iv. c. 11, p. 244, edit. Havercamp.) Yet we may observe, that it is the plan and study of the Christian apologist to magnify the calamities of the Pagan world.]

13 (return)
[ A. U. C. 507, a sudden disaster struck Rome and interrupted the triumph of the Romans.... various fires and floods nearly destroyed the city. The Tiber overflowed with unusual rains, rising beyond expectations, either due to the duration or the magnitude of the floods, all the buildings in low-lying areas of Rome were wiped out. Different types of flooding converged into one calamity: both the slower floods that lingered disintegrated everything they touched, and the stronger torrents knocked down whatever they encountered. (Orosius, Hist. l. iv. c. 11, p. 244, edit. Havercamp.) Yet we can note that the Christian apologist tends to emphasize the misfortunes of the Pagan world.]

14 (return)
[

14 (__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__)

Vidimus flavum Tiberim, retortis Littore Etrusco violenter undis, Ire dejectum monumenta Regis Templaque Vestæ. (Horat. Carm. I. 2.)

Vidimus flavum Tiberim, twisted along the Etruscan shore by violent waves, going down with the monuments of the King and the temples of Vesta. (Horat. Carm. I. 2.)

If the palace of Numa and temple of Vesta were thrown down in Horace’s time, what was consumed of those buildings by Nero’s fire could hardly deserve the epithets of vetustissima or incorrupta.]

If the palace of Numa and the temple of Vesta were destroyed in Horace’s time, what was destroyed in Nero’s fire could hardly be called ancient or untouched.

15 (return)
[ Ad coercendas inundationes alveum Tiberis laxavit, ac repurgavit, completum olim ruderibus, et ædificiorum prolapsionibus coarctatum, (Suetonius in Augusto, c. 30.)]

15 (return)
[ To control the floods, he widened and cleared the Tiber River bed, which had once been filled with debris and constricted by collapsed buildings, (Suetonius in Augustus, c. 30.)]

16 (return)
[ Tacitus (Annal. i. 79) reports the petitions of the different towns of Italy to the senate against the measure; and we may applaud the progress of reason. On a similar occasion, local interests would undoubtedly be consulted: but an English House of Commons would reject with contempt the arguments of superstition, “that nature had assigned to the rivers their proper course,” &c.]

16 (return)
[ Tacitus (Annal. i. 79) reports the requests from various towns in Italy to the Senate opposing the measure; and we can commend the advancement of reason. In a similar situation, local interests would surely be considered: however, an English House of Commons would dismiss with disdain the arguments of superstition, “that nature had assigned to the rivers their proper course,” etc.]

17 (return)
[ See the Epoques de la Nature of the eloquent and philosophic Buffon. His picture of Guyana, in South America, is that of a new and savage land, in which the waters are abandoned to themselves without being regulated by human industry, (p. 212, 561, quarto edition.)]

17 (return)
[ See the Epoques de la Nature by the eloquent and philosophical Buffon. His depiction of Guyana, in South America, portrays it as a new and wild land, where the waters are left alone without any human intervention, (p. 212, 561, quarto edition.)]

18 (return)
[ In his travels in Italy, Mr. Addison (his works, vol. ii. p. 98, Baskerville’s edition) has observed this curious and unquestionable fact.]

18 (return)
[During his travels in Italy, Mr. Addison (his works, vol. ii. p. 98, Baskerville’s edition) noted this interesting and undeniable fact.]

19 (return)
[ Yet in modern times, the Tyber has sometimes damaged the city, and in the years 1530, 1557, 1598, the annals of Muratori record three mischievous and memorable inundations, (tom. xiv. p. 268, 429, tom. xv. p. 99, &c.) * Note: The level of the Tyber was at one time supposed to be considerably raised: recent investigations seem to be conclusive against this supposition. See a brief, but satisfactory statement of the question in Bunsen and Platner, Roms Beschreibung. vol. i. p. 29.—M.]

19 (return)
[ Yet in modern times, the Tiber has sometimes caused damage to the city, and in the years 1530, 1557, and 1598, the records of Muratori document three significant and notable floods, (tom. xiv. p. 268, 429, tom. xv. p. 99, &c.) * Note: It was once believed that the level of the Tiber was significantly higher; recent studies seem to provide strong evidence against this belief. See a brief, but satisfactory overview of the issue in Bunsen and Platner, Roms Beschreibung. vol. i. p. 29.—M.]

II. The crowd of writers of every nation, who impute the destruction of the Roman monuments to the Goths and the Christians, have neglected to inquire how far they were animated by a hostile principle, and how far they possessed the means and the leisure to satiate their enmity. In the preceding volumes of this History, I have described the triumph of barbarism and religion; and I can only resume, in a few words, their real or imaginary connection with the ruin of ancient Rome. Our fancy may create, or adopt, a pleasing romance, that the Goths and Vandals sallied from Scandinavia, ardent to avenge the flight of Odin; 20 to break the chains, and to chastise the oppressors, of mankind; that they wished to burn the records of classic literature, and to found their national architecture on the broken members of the Tuscan and Corinthian orders. But in simple truth, the northern conquerors were neither sufficiently savage, nor sufficiently refined, to entertain such aspiring ideas of destruction and revenge. The shepherds of Scythia and Germany had been educated in the armies of the empire, whose discipline they acquired, and whose weakness they invaded: with the familiar use of the Latin tongue, they had learned to reverence the name and titles of Rome; and, though incapable of emulating, they were more inclined to admire, than to abolish, the arts and studies of a brighter period. In the transient possession of a rich and unresisting capital, the soldiers of Alaric and Genseric were stimulated by the passions of a victorious army; amidst the wanton indulgence of lust or cruelty, portable wealth was the object of their search; nor could they derive either pride or pleasure from the unprofitable reflection, that they had battered to the ground the works of the consuls and Cæsars. Their moments were indeed precious; the Goths evacuated Rome on the sixth, 21 the Vandals on the fifteenth, day: 22 and, though it be far more difficult to build than to destroy, their hasty assault would have made a slight impression on the solid piles of antiquity. We may remember, that both Alaric and Genseric affected to spare the buildings of the city; that they subsisted in strength and beauty under the auspicious government of Theodoric; 23 and that the momentary resentment of Totila 24 was disarmed by his own temper and the advice of his friends and enemies. From these innocent Barbarians, the reproach may be transferred to the Catholics of Rome. The statues, altars, and houses, of the dæmons, were an abomination in their eyes; and in the absolute command of the city, they might labor with zeal and perseverance to erase the idolatry of their ancestors. The demolition of the temples in the East 25 affords to them an example of conduct, and to us an argument of belief; and it is probable that a portion of guilt or merit may be imputed with justice to the Roman proselytes. Yet their abhorrence was confined to the monuments of heathen superstition; and the civil structures that were dedicated to the business or pleasure of society might be preserved without injury or scandal. The change of religion was accomplished, not by a popular tumult, but by the decrees of the emperors, of the senate, and of time. Of the Christian hierarchy, the bishops of Rome were commonly the most prudent and least fanatic; nor can any positive charge be opposed to the meritorious act of saving or converting the majestic structure of the Pantheon. 26 261

II. The group of writers from every nation who blame the Goths and Christians for the destruction of Roman monuments have failed to consider how much of their actions were driven by hostility and how much they actually had the means and time to act on that hostility. In the earlier volumes of this History, I've explained the rise of barbarism and religion; and I can briefly revisit their real or imagined connection to the fall of ancient Rome. We might create an appealing story that the Goths and Vandals came from Scandinavia, eager to avenge the flight of Odin; 20 to break free and punish the oppressors of humanity; that they wanted to destroy the records of classic literature and build their own architecture from the remnants of Tuscan and Corinthian styles. But honestly, the northern conquerors were neither savage enough nor refined enough to have such grand ideas of destruction and revenge. The shepherds of Scythia and Germany had been trained in the armies of the empire, learning its discipline while invading its weaknesses: with familiarity of the Latin language, they had come to respect Rome’s name and titles; and rather than aiming to destroy, they were more likely to admire the arts and knowledge of a brighter time. In their brief possession of a wealthy and defenseless city, the soldiers of Alaric and Genseric were driven by the passions of a victorious army; amid indulgent lust or cruelty, their search was for portable wealth; they derived neither pride nor pleasure from the thought that they had brought down the achievements of the consuls and Caesars. Their time was indeed precious; the Goths left Rome on the sixth, 21 and the Vandals on the fifteenth day: 22 and, while it's much harder to build than to destroy, their quick attack would have made little impact on the enduring structures of antiquity. We can recall that both Alaric and Genseric claimed to spare the city’s buildings; that they remained strong and beautiful under the rule of Theodoric; 23 and that the brief anger of Totila 24 was quelled by his own nature and the counsel of friends and foes. The blame may then shift from these innocent Barbarians to the Catholics of Rome. The statues, altars, and homes of the demons were abominable to them; and with complete control of the city, they could actively work to erase the idolatry of their forebears. The destruction of temples in the East 25 serves as an example for them and a point of belief for us; and it's likely that some of the blame or credit can justly be placed on the Roman converts. Still, their disdain was limited to the monuments of pagan superstition; and the civic buildings dedicated to societal functions or enjoyment could be preserved without harm or shame. The shift in religion didn’t come from a popular uprising, but from decisions made by emperors, the senate, and over time. Among the Christian hierarchy, the bishops of Rome were often the most sensible and least fanatical; and no valid complaint can be made against their commendable act of preserving or converting the majestic structure of the Pantheon. 26 261

20 (return)
[ I take this opportunity of declaring, that in the course of twelve years, I have forgotten, or renounced, the flight of Odin from Azoph to Sweden, which I never very seriously believed, (vol. i. p. 283.) The Goths are apparently Germans: but all beyond Cæsar and Tacitus is darkness or fable, in the antiquities of Germany.]

20 (return)
[ I want to take this chance to say that over the last twelve years, I have either forgotten or dismissed the story of Odin's journey from Azoph to Sweden, which I never really believed in anyway (vol. i. p. 283.) The Goths seem to be Germans, but everything beyond what Cæsar and Tacitus wrote is just a blur or a myth in the history of Germany.]

21 (return)
[ History of the Decline, &c., vol. iii. p. 291.]

21 (return)
[ History of the Decline, &c., vol. iii. p. 291.]

22 (return)
[———————————vol. iii. p. 464.]

22 (__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__)
[———vol. iii. p. 464.]

23 (return)
[———————————vol. iv. p. 23—25.]

23 (__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__)
[———————————vol. iv. p. 23—25.]

24 (return)
[———————————vol. iv. p. 258.]

24 (__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__)
[———————————vol. iv. p. 258.]

25 (return)
[———————————vol. iii. c. xxviii. p. 139—148.]

25 (return)
[———————————vol. iii. c. xxviii. p. 139—148.]

26 (return)
[ Eodem tempore petiit a Phocate principe templum, quod appellatur Pantheon, in quo fecit ecclesiam Sanctæ Mariæ semper Virginis, et omnium martyrum; in quâ ecclesiæ princeps multa bona obtulit, (Anastasius vel potius Liber Pontificalis in Bonifacio IV., in Muratori, Script. Rerum Italicarum, tom. iii. P. i. p. 135.) According to the anonymous writer in Montfaucon, the Pantheon had been vowed by Agrippa to Cybele and Neptune, and was dedicated by Boniface IV., on the calends of November, to the Virgin, quæ est mater omnium sanctorum, (p. 297, 298.)]

26 (return)
[ At the same time, he requested from Prince Phocas the temple known as Pantheon, where he established the church of Saint Mary, Ever Virgin, and all the martyrs. In that church, the leader of the church offered many gifts, (Anastasius or rather the Liber Pontificalis on Boniface IV., in Muratori, Script. Rerum Italicarum, tom. iii. P. i. p. 135.) According to the anonymous writer in Montfaucon, the Pantheon had been dedicated by Agrippa to Cybele and Neptune, and was consecrated by Boniface IV. on the calends of November to the Virgin, who is the mother of all saints, (p. 297, 298.)]

261 (return)
[ The popes, under the dominion of the emperor and of the exarchs, according to Feas’s just observation, did not possess the power of disposing of the buildings and monuments of the city according to their own will. Bunsen and Platner, vol. i. p. 241.—M.]

261 (return)
[ According to Feas’s accurate observation, the popes, being under the control of the emperor and the exarchs, did not have the authority to manage the city's buildings and monuments as they pleased. Bunsen and Platner, vol. i. p. 241.—M.]

III. The value of any object that supplies the wants or pleasures of mankind is compounded of its substance and its form, of the materials and the manufacture. Its price must depend on the number of persons by whom it may be acquired and used; on the extent of the market; and consequently on the ease or difficulty of remote exportation, according to the nature of the commodity, its local situation, and the temporary circumstances of the world. The Barbarian conquerors of Rome usurped in a moment the toil and treasure of successive ages; but, except the luxuries of immediate consumption, they must view without desire all that could not be removed from the city in the Gothic wagons or the fleet of the Vandals. 27 Gold and silver were the first objects of their avarice; as in every country, and in the smallest compass, they represent the most ample command of the industry and possessions of mankind. A vase or a statue of those precious metals might tempt the vanity of some Barbarian chief; but the grosser multitude, regardless of the form, was tenacious only of the substance; and the melted ingots might be readily divided and stamped into the current coin of the empire. The less active or less fortunate robbers were reduced to the baser plunder of brass, lead, iron, and copper: whatever had escaped the Goths and Vandals was pillaged by the Greek tyrants; and the emperor Constans, in his rapacious visit, stripped the bronze tiles from the roof of the Pantheon. 28 The edifices of Rome might be considered as a vast and various mine; the first labor of extracting the materials was already performed; the metals were purified and cast; the marbles were hewn and polished; and after foreign and domestic rapine had been satiated, the remains of the city, could a purchaser have been found, were still venal. The monuments of antiquity had been left naked of their precious ornaments; but the Romans would demolish with their own hands the arches and walls, if the hope of profit could surpass the cost of the labor and exportation. If Charlemagne had fixed in Italy the seat of the Western empire, his genius would have aspired to restore, rather than to violate, the works of the Cæsars; but policy confined the French monarch to the forests of Germany; his taste could be gratified only by destruction; and the new palace of Aix la Chapelle was decorated with the marbles of Ravenna 29 and Rome. 30 Five hundred years after Charlemagne, a king of Sicily, Robert, the wisest and most liberal sovereign of the age, was supplied with the same materials by the easy navigation of the Tyber and the sea; and Petrarch sighs an indignant complaint, that the ancient capital of the world should adorn from her own bowels the slothful luxury of Naples. 31 But these examples of plunder or purchase were rare in the darker ages; and the Romans, alone and unenvied, might have applied to their private or public use the remaining structures of antiquity, if in their present form and situation they had not been useless in a great measure to the city and its inhabitants. The walls still described the old circumference, but the city had descended from the seven hills into the Campus Martius; and some of the noblest monuments which had braved the injuries of time were left in a desert, far remote from the habitations of mankind. The palaces of the senators were no longer adapted to the manners or fortunes of their indigent successors: the use of baths 32 and porticos was forgotten: in the sixth century, the games of the theatre, amphitheatre, and circus, had been interrupted: some temples were devoted to the prevailing worship; but the Christian churches preferred the holy figure of the cross; and fashion, or reason, had distributed after a peculiar model the cells and offices of the cloister. Under the ecclesiastical reign, the number of these pious foundations was enormously multiplied; and the city was crowded with forty monasteries of men, twenty of women, and sixty chapters and colleges of canons and priests, 33 who aggravated, instead of relieving, the depopulation of the tenth century. But if the forms of ancient architecture were disregarded by a people insensible of their use and beauty, the plentiful materials were applied to every call of necessity or superstition; till the fairest columns of the Ionic and Corinthian orders, the richest marbles of Paros and Numidia, were degraded, perhaps to the support of a convent or a stable. The daily havoc which is perpetrated by the Turks in the cities of Greece and Asia may afford a melancholy example; and in the gradual destruction of the monuments of Rome, Sixtus the Fifth may alone be excused for employing the stones of the Septizonium in the glorious edifice of St. Peter’s. 34 A fragment, a ruin, howsoever mangled or profaned, may be viewed with pleasure and regret; but the greater part of the marble was deprived of substance, as well as of place and proportion; it was burnt to lime for the purpose of cement. 341 Since the arrival of Poggius, the temple of Concord, 35 and many capital structures, had vanished from his eyes; and an epigram of the same age expresses a just and pious fear, that the continuance of this practice would finally annihilate all the monuments of antiquity. 36 The smallness of their numbers was the sole check on the demands and depredations of the Romans. The imagination of Petrarch might create the presence of a mighty people; 37 and I hesitate to believe, that, even in the fourteenth century, they could be reduced to a contemptible list of thirty-three thousand inhabitants. From that period to the reign of Leo the Tenth, if they multiplied to the amount of eighty-five thousand, 38 the increase of citizens was in some degree pernicious to the ancient city.

III. The value of any item that fulfills human wants or pleasures is made up of its material and its design, of the resources and the craftsmanship. Its price depends on how many people can buy and use it; on the size of the market; and ultimately on how easy or difficult it is to export elsewhere, depending on the type of item, its location, and the current global circumstances. The barbarian conquerors of Rome seized the hard work and wealth accumulated over generations in an instant; however, aside from the luxuries they could immediately consume, they had no interest in anything that couldn't be transported from the city in Gothic wagons or the fleets of the Vandals. 27 Gold and silver were their first targets; just like everywhere else, these metals offered the greatest access to human industry and possessions in the smallest space. A vase or statue made of these precious metals might attract the vanity of some barbarian leader; but the common crowd, indifferent to appearance, was only focused on the material; and the melted ingots could easily be divided and stamped into current coins of the empire. The less active or less fortunate looters were left with the lower-value spoils of brass, lead, iron, and copper: everything that escaped the Goths and Vandals was looted by the Greek tyrants; and Emperor Constans, during his greedy visit, stripped the bronze tiles from the roof of the Pantheon. 28 The buildings of Rome could be seen as a vast and varied mine; the initial work of extracting materials was already done; the metals were refined and shaped; the marbles were cut and polished; and after both foreign and domestic plunder had been satisfied, the remnants of the city, if a buyer could have been found, were still for sale. The monuments of ancient times had been left bare of their precious decorations; yet the Romans would tear down the arches and walls themselves if the hope of profit outweighed the cost of labor and transportation. If Charlemagne had established the Western empire in Italy, his vision would have aimed to restore, rather than ruin, the works of the Caesars; but politics kept the French king confined to the forests of Germany; his taste could only be satisfied by destruction; and the new palace in Aix la Chapelle was adorned with the marbles from Ravenna 29 and Rome. 30 Five hundred years after Charlemagne, a king of Sicily, Robert, the wisest and most generous ruler of his time, had access to the same materials through the navigable Tiber and sea; and Petrarch laments indignantly that the ancient capital of the world should offer her own treasures to the lazy luxury of Naples. 31 However, these instances of plunder or purchase were rare during the darker ages; and the Romans, alone and unenvied, could have used the remaining structures of antiquity for their private or public benefit, if in their present form and state they weren't largely useless to the city and its people. The walls still traced the old boundaries, but the city had sunk from the seven hills into the Campus Martius; and some of the grandest monuments that had stood against the ravages of time were abandoned in a desolate area, far from human habitation. The senators' palaces were no longer suitable for the customs or fortunes of their impoverished successors: the use of baths 32 and porticoes was forgotten: by the sixth century, the games at the theater, amphitheater, and circus had been discontinued: some temples were dedicated to the dominant faith; but Christian churches preferred to display the sacred symbol of the cross; and fashion, or reason, had organized the cells and offices of the cloister in a specific manner. During the ecclesiastical era, the number of these religious establishments grew tremendously; and the city became crowded with forty monasteries for men, twenty for women, and sixty chapters and colleges of canons and priests, 33 who only worsened the population decline of the tenth century. But while the forms of ancient architecture were ignored by a populace oblivious to their utility and beauty, the abundant materials were repurposed for every necessity or superstition; until the finest columns of the Ionic and Corinthian styles, the richest marbles from Paros and Numidia, were perhaps reduced to support a convent or a stable. The widespread destruction inflicted by the Turks in the cities of Greece and Asia serves as a somber example; and in the gradual decline of Rome's monuments, only Sixtus V can be partly excused for using stones from the Septizonium in the magnificent construction of St. Peter’s. 34 A fragment, a ruin, however damaged or defaced, may still be appreciated with a mix of pleasure and regret; but much of the marble was stripped of both substance and size; it was burned down to lime to be used as cement. 341 Since Poggius's arrival, the temple of Concord, 35 and many major structures, had vanished from view; and an epigram from the same era expresses a valid and respectful fear that this practice would ultimately erase all monuments of antiquity. 36 The smallness of their numbers was the only thing preventing the Roman’s demands and plundering. Petrarch's imagination might conjure a picture of a mighty people; 37 yet I hesitate to believe that, even in the fourteenth century, they could have dwindled down to a meager total of thirty-three thousand inhabitants. From that time until the reign of Leo X, if their numbers increased to eighty-five thousand, 38 that growth in citizens was somewhat detrimental to the ancient city.

27 (return)
[ Flaminius Vacca (apud Montfaucon, p. 155, 156. His memoir is likewise printed, p. 21, at the end of the Roman Antica of Nardini) and several Romans, doctrinâ graves, were persuaded that the Goths buried their treasures at Rome, and bequeathed the secret marks filiis nepotibusque. He relates some anecdotes to prove, that in his own time, these places were visited and rifled by the Transalpine pilgrims, the heirs of the Gothic conquerors.]

27 (return)
[ Flaminius Vacca (in Montfaucon, p. 155, 156. His memoir is also printed, p. 21, at the end of Nardini's Roman Antica) and several learned Romans believed that the Goths buried their treasures in Rome and passed down the secret locations to their children and grandchildren. He shares some stories to show that even in his time, these sites were visited and robbed by pilgrims from across the Alps, the descendants of the Gothic conquerors.]

28 (return)
[ Omnia quæ erant in ære ad ornatum civitatis deposuit, sed e ecclesiam B. Mariæ ad martyres quæ de tegulis æreis cooperta discooperuit, (Anast. in Vitalian. p. 141.) The base and sacrilegious Greek had not even the poor pretence of plundering a heathen temple, the Pantheon was already a Catholic church.]

28 (return)
[ He laid down all the bronze that was in the treasury for the embellishment of the city, but from the church of St. Mary to the martyrs, which was covered with bronze tiles, he uncovered, (Anast. in Vitalian. p. 141.) The base and sacrilegious Greek didn't even have the slightest justification of looting a pagan temple; the Pantheon was already a Catholic church.]

29 (return)
[ For the spoils of Ravenna (musiva atque marmora) see the original grant of Pope Adrian I. to Charlemagne, (Codex Carolin. epist. lxvii. in Muratori, Script. Ital. tom. iii. P. ii. p. 223.)]

29 (return)
[ For the treasures of Ravenna (mosaics and marble) see the original grant from Pope Adrian I. to Charlemagne, (Codex Carolin. epist. lxvii. in Muratori, Script. Ital. tom. iii. P. ii. p. 223.)]

30 (return)
[ I shall quote the authentic testimony of the Saxon poet, (A.D. 887—899,) de Rebus gestis Caroli magni, l. v. 437—440, in the Historians of France, (tom. v. p. 180:)

30 (return)
[ I will quote the genuine account of the Saxon poet, (A.D. 887—899,) de Rebus gestis Caroli magni, l. v. 437—440, in the Historians of France, (vol. v. p. 180:)

               Ad quæ marmoreas præstabat Roma columnas,
               Quasdam præcipuas pulchra Ravenna dedit.
               De tam longinquâ poterit regione vetustas
               Illius ornatum, Francia, ferre tibi.
               Ad quæ marmoreas præstabat Roma columnas,
               Quasdam præcipuas pulchra Ravenna dedit.
               De tam longinquâ poterit regione vetustas
               Illius ornatum, Francia, ferre tibi.

And I shall add from the Chronicle of Sigebert, (Historians of France, tom. v. p. 378,) extruxit etiam Aquisgrani basilicam plurimæ pulchritudinis, ad cujus structuram a Roma et Ravenna columnas et marmora devehi fecit.]

And I will also add from the Chronicle of Sigebert, (Historians of France, tom. v. p. 378,) he also built a beautifully magnificent basilica in Aachen, for which he had columns and marble brought from Rome and Ravenna.

31 (return)
[ I cannot refuse to transcribe a long passage of Petrarch (Opp. p. 536, 537) in Epistolâ hortatoriâ ad Nicolaum Laurentium; it is so strong and full to the point: Nec pudor aut pietas continuit quominus impii spoliata Dei templa, occupatas arces, opes publicas, regiones urbis, atque honores magistratûum inter se divisos; (habeant?) quam unâ in re, turbulenti ac seditiosi homines et totius reliquæ vitæ consiliis et rationibus discordes, inhumani fderis stupendà societate convenirent, in pontes et mnia atque immeritos lapides desævirent. Denique post vi vel senio collapsa palatia, quæ quondam ingentes tenuerunt viri, post diruptos arcus triumphales, (unde majores horum forsitan corruerunt,) de ipsius vetustatis ac propriæ impietatis fragminibus vilem quæstum turpi mercimonio captare non puduit. Itaque nunc, heu dolor! heu scelus indignum! de vestris marmoreis columnis, de liminibus templorum, (ad quæ nuper ex orbe toto concursus devotissimus fiebat,) de imaginibus sepulchrorum sub quibus patrum vestrorum venerabilis civis (cinis?) erat, ut reliquas sileam, desidiosa Neapolis adornatur. Sic paullatim ruinæ ipsæ deficiunt. Yet King Robert was the friend of Petrarch.]

31 (return)
[ I can't ignore the need to transcribe a lengthy passage from Petrarch (Opp. p. 536, 537) in his letter to Nicolaus Laurentium; it's so powerful and to the point: Neither shame nor piety prevented the wicked from dividing among themselves the stripped temples of God, occupied fortresses, public wealth, city regions, and the honors of magistrates; (do they have?) while in one matter, turbulent and rebellious people, who are discordant in all their other plans and reasoning, gathered together in an astonishingly inhumane alliance, to demolish bridges and any unworthy stones. Finally, after the palaces collapsed from violence or old age, which once were held by mighty men, after the triumphal arches were destroyed (from which perhaps their ancestors fell), they shamelessly sought to profit from the fragments of old age and their own wickedness through disgraceful trade. So now, alas! oh shameful crime! from your marble columns, from the thresholds of temples (to which just recently devotees gathered from all over the world), from the images on the tombs under which your revered ancestor (was dust?) lay, leaving the rest aside, indolent Naples is adorned. Thus slowly, the ruins themselves falter. Yet King Robert was the friend of Petrarch.]

32 (return)
[ Yet Charlemagne washed and swam at Aix la Chapelle with a hundred of his courtiers, (Eginhart, c. 22, p. 108, 109,) and Muratori describes, as late as the year 814, the public baths which were built at Spoleto in Italy, (Annali, tom. vi. p. 416.)]

32 (return)
[ Yet Charlemagne bathed and swam at Aachen with a hundred of his courtiers, (Eginhart, c. 22, p. 108, 109,) and Muratori describes, as late as the year 814, the public baths that were built in Spoleto, Italy, (Annali, tom. vi. p. 416.)]

33 (return)
[ See the Annals of Italy, A.D. 988. For this and the preceding fact, Muratori himself is indebted to the Benedictine history of Père Mabillon.]

33 (return)
[ See the Annals of Italy, A.D. 988. For this and the previous fact, Muratori himself relies on the Benedictine history of Père Mabillon.]

34 (return)
[ Vita di Sisto Quinto, da Gregorio Leti, tom. iii. p. 50.]

34 (return)
[ Life of Sixtus V, by Gregorio Leti, vol. iii. p. 50.]

341 (return)
[ From the quotations in Bunsen’s Dissertation, it may be suspected that this slow but continual process of destruction was the most fatal. Ancient Rome eas considered a quarry from which the church, the castle of the baron, or even the hovel of the peasant, might be repaired.—M.]

341 (return)
[ From the quotes in Bunsen’s Dissertation, it may be inferred that this slow yet ongoing process of destruction was the deadliest. Ancient Rome was seen as a source from which the church, the baron’s castle, or even a peasant’s hovel could be restored.—M.]

35 (return)
[ Porticus ædis Concordiæ, quam cum primum ad urbem accessi vidi fere integram opere marmoreo admodum specioso: Romani postmodum ad calcem ædem totam et porticûs partem disjectis columnis sunt demoliti, (p. 12.) The temple of Concord was therefore not destroyed by a sedition in the xiiith century, as I have read in a MS. treatise del’ Governo civile di Rome, lent me formerly at Rome, and ascribed (I believe falsely) to the celebrated Gravina. Poggius likewise affirms that the sepulchre of Cæcilia Metella was burnt for lime, (p. 19, 20.)]

35 (return)
[ The portico of the Temple of Concord, which I saw almost intact, built of beautiful marble, when I first approached the city: the Romans later completely demolished the temple and the portico by breaking down the columns. (p. 12.) Therefore, the Temple of Concord was not destroyed by a riot in the 13th century, as I read in a manuscript on the civil government of Rome that was lent to me in Rome, which I believe is falsely attributed to the famous Gravina. Poggius also states that the tomb of Cecilia Metella was burned for lime. (p. 19, 20.)]

36 (return)
[ Composed by Æneas Sylvius, afterwards Pope Pius II., and published by Mabillon, from a MS. of the queen of Sweden, (Musæum Italicum, tom. i. p. 97.)

36 (return)
[ Written by Æneas Sylvius, who later became Pope Pius II., and published by Mabillon from a manuscript owned by the queen of Sweden, (Musæum Italicum, vol. i. p. 97.)

               Oblectat me, Roma, tuas spectare ruinas:
               Ex cujus lapsû gloria prisca patet.
               Sed tuus hic populus muris defossa vetustis
               Calcis in obsequium marmora dura coquit.
               Impia tercentum si sic gens egerit annos
               Nullum hinc indicium nobilitatis erit.]
               It pleases me, Rome, to look at your ruins:  
               From whose downfall the old glory is evident.  
               But your people here, digging in the ancient walls,  
               Cook hard marble in submission to lime.  
               If this wicked people lives like this for three hundred years,  
               There will be no sign of nobility from here.  

37 (return)
[ Vagabamur pariter in illâ urbe tam magnâ; quæ, cum propter spatium vacua videretur, populum habet immensum, (Opp p. 605 Epist. Familiares, ii. 14.)]

37 (return)
[ We wander together in that huge city; which, although it seems empty due to its size, has a vast population. (Opp p. 605 Epist. Familiares, ii. 14.)]

38 (return)
[ These states of the population of Rome at different periods are derived from an ingenious treatise of the physician Lancisi, de Romani Cli Qualitatibus, (p. 122.)]

38 (return)
[ The population statistics of Rome at various times come from a clever essay by the physician Lancisi, de Romani Cli Qualitatibus, (p. 122.)]

IV. I have reserved for the last, the most potent and forcible cause of destruction, the domestic hostilities of the Romans themselves. Under the dominion of the Greek and French emperors, the peace of the city was disturbed by accidental, though frequent, seditions: it is from the decline of the latter, from the beginning of the tenth century, that we may date the licentiousness of private war, which violated with impunity the laws of the Code and the Gospel, without respecting the majesty of the absent sovereign, or the presence and person of the vicar of Christ. In a dark period of five hundred years, Rome was perpetually afflicted by the sanguinary quarrels of the nobles and the people, the Guelphs and Ghibelines, the Colonna and Ursini; and if much has escaped the knowledge, and much is unworthy of the notice, of history, I have exposed in the two preceding chapters the causes and effects of the public disorders. At such a time, when every quarrel was decided by the sword, and none could trust their lives or properties to the impotence of law, the powerful citizens were armed for safety, or offence, against the domestic enemies whom they feared or hated. Except Venice alone, the same dangers and designs were common to all the free republics of Italy; and the nobles usurped the prerogative of fortifying their houses, and erecting strong towers, 39 that were capable of resisting a sudden attack. The cities were filled with these hostile edifices; and the example of Lucca, which contained three hundred towers; her law, which confined their height to the measure of fourscore feet, may be extended with suitable latitude to the more opulent and populous states. The first step of the senator Brancaleone in the establishment of peace and justice, was to demolish (as we have already seen) one hundred and forty of the towers of Rome; and, in the last days of anarchy and discord, as late as the reign of Martin the Fifth, forty-four still stood in one of the thirteen or fourteen regions of the city. To this mischievous purpose the remains of antiquity were most readily adapted: the temples and arches afforded a broad and solid basis for the new structures of brick and stone; and we can name the modern turrets that were raised on the triumphal monuments of Julius Cæsar, Titus, and the Antonines. 40 With some slight alterations, a theatre, an amphitheatre, a mausoleum, was transformed into a strong and spacious citadel. I need not repeat, that the mole of Adrian has assumed the title and form of the castle of St. Angelo; 41 the Septizonium of Severus was capable of standing against a royal army; 42 the sepulchre of Metella has sunk under its outworks; 43 431 the theatres of Pompey and Marcellus were occupied by the Savelli and Ursini families; 44 and the rough fortress has been gradually softened to the splendor and elegance of an Italian palace. Even the churches were encompassed with arms and bulwarks, and the military engines on the roof of St. Peter’s were the terror of the Vatican and the scandal of the Christian world. Whatever is fortified will be attacked; and whatever is attacked may be destroyed. Could the Romans have wrested from the popes the castle of St. Angelo, they had resolved by a public decree to annihilate that monument of servitude. Every building of defence was exposed to a siege; and in every siege the arts and engines of destruction were laboriously employed. After the death of Nicholas the Fourth, Rome, without a sovereign or a senate, was abandoned six months to the fury of civil war. “The houses,” says a cardinal and poet of the times, 45 “were crushed by the weight and velocity of enormous stones; 46 the walls were perforated by the strokes of the battering-ram; the towers were involved in fire and smoke; and the assailants were stimulated by rapine and revenge.” The work was consummated by the tyranny of the laws; and the factions of Italy alternately exercised a blind and thoughtless vengeance on their adversaries, whose houses and castles they razed to the ground. 47 In comparing the days of foreign, with the ages of domestic, hostility, we must pronounce, that the latter have been far more ruinous to the city; and our opinion is confirmed by the evidence of Petrarch. “Behold,” says the laureate, “the relics of Rome, the image of her pristine greatness! neither time nor the Barbarian can boast the merit of this stupendous destruction: it was perpetrated by her own citizens, by the most illustrious of her sons; and your ancestors (he writes to a noble Annabaldi) have done with the battering-ram what the Punic hero could not accomplish with the sword.” 48 The influence of the two last principles of decay must in some degree be multiplied by each other; since the houses and towers, which were subverted by civil war, required by a new and perpetual supply from the monuments of antiquity. 481

IV. I have saved the most powerful reason for destruction for last: the internal conflicts among the Romans themselves. While under the rule of the Greek and French emperors, the city's peace was often disrupted by sporadic, though frequent, uprisings. It is from the decline of the latter, starting in the tenth century, that we can trace the rise of unrestrained private warfare, which blatantly ignored both the laws of the Code and the Gospel, disrespecting the authority of the absent sovereign and the presence of the representative of Christ. During a dark period of five hundred years, Rome was continually plagued by bloody conflicts among the nobles and the people, the Guelphs and Ghibelines, the Colonna and Ursini families; and while much of this may have escaped history and much may be unworthy of note, I laid out the causes and effects of these public disorders in the two previous chapters. In such a time, when every quarrel was settled by the sword and no one could rely on the weakness of the law for their lives or property, powerful citizens armed themselves for safety or offense against the domestic enemies they feared or hated. Except for Venice, every free republic in Italy faced the same dangers and schemes; nobles claimed the right to fortify their homes and build strong towers, 39 that could resist sudden attacks. The cities were filled with these hostile structures; for instance, Lucca had three hundred towers, and her law limited their height to eighty feet, a rule that can be similarly applied to wealthier and larger states. The first move by Senator Brancaleone in establishing peace and justice was to demolish (as we have already seen) one hundred and forty towers in Rome; and even in the last days of anarchy and conflict, as late as the reign of Martin the Fifth, forty-four still stood in one of the thirteen or fourteen districts of the city. For this destructive purpose, remnants of antiquity were easily adapted: temples and arches provided a broad and solid foundation for new structures of brick and stone; and we can name the modern towers that were built on the triumphal monuments of Julius Cæsar, Titus, and the Antonines. 40 With some minor alterations, a theater, an amphitheater, or a mausoleum was transformed into a strong and spacious fortress. I need not repeat that the mole of Adrian has taken on the title and form of the castle of St. Angelo; 41 the Septizonium of Severus was capable of withstanding a royal army; 42 the tomb of Metella has collapsed under its fortifications; 43 431 the theaters of Pompey and Marcellus were occupied by the Savelli and Ursini families; 44 and the rough fortress has gradually softened into the beauty and elegance of an Italian palace. Even the churches were surrounded by arms and walls, and the military equipment on the roof of St. Peter’s struck fear into the Vatican and scandalized the Christian world. Whatever is fortified will be attacked; and whatever is attacked can be destroyed. If the Romans had taken the castle of St. Angelo from the popes, they had decided by public decree to obliterate that symbol of servitude. Every defensive building was vulnerable to siege; and in every siege, the tools and methods of destruction were diligently employed. After the death of Nicholas the Fourth, Rome, without a sovereign or a senate, was left for six months to the violence of civil war. “The houses,” says a cardinal and poet of the time, 45 “were crushed by the weight and speed of enormous stones; 46 the walls were pierced by the battering-ram; the towers were engulfed in fire and smoke; and the attackers were driven by greed and vengeance.” This destruction was completed by the tyrannies of the laws; and the factions of Italy alternately dealt a blind and reckless vengeance on their opponents, demolishing their houses and castles to the ground. 47 In comparing the days of foreign conflict with the ages of internal strife, we must conclude that the latter has been far more destructive to the city; this view is supported by the words of Petrarch. “Behold,” says the laureate, “the remnants of Rome, the reflection of her original greatness! Neither time nor the Barbarian can claim the credit for this immense destruction: it was caused by her own citizens, by the most illustrious of her sons; and your ancestors (he writes to a noble Annabaldi) have done with the battering-ram what the Punic hero could not achieve with the sword.” 48 The influence of the last two factors of decay must somewhat compound each other; since the houses and towers that were destroyed by civil war required a constant new supply from the treasures of antiquity. 481

39 (return)
[ All the facts that relate to the towers at Rome, and in other free cities of Italy, may be found in the laborious and entertaining compilation of Muratori, Antiquitates Italiæ Medii Ævi, dissertat. xxvi., (tom. ii. p. 493—496, of the Latin, tom.. p. 446, of the Italian work.)]

39 (return)
[ You can find all the information about the towers in Rome and other free cities in Italy in the thorough and engaging collection by Muratori, Antiquitates Italiæ Medii Ævi, dissertat. xxvi., (vol. ii. pp. 493—496 of the Latin edition, pp. 446 of the Italian edition.)]

40 (return)
[ As for instance, templum Jani nunc dicitur, turris Centii Frangipanis; et sane Jano impositæ turris lateritiæ conspicua hodieque vestigia supersunt, (Montfaucon Diarium Italicum, p. 186.) The anonymous writer (p. 285) enumerates, arcus Titi, turris Cartularia; arcus Julii Cæsaris et Senatorum, turres de Bratis; arcus Antonini, turris de Cosectis, &c.]

40 (return)
[ For example, the Temple of Janus is now called the Tower of Centius Frangipani; and indeed, the remains of the impressive brick tower dedicated to Janus can still be seen today, (Montfaucon Diarium Italicum, p. 186.) The anonymous writer (p. 285) lists the Arch of Titus, the Tower of the Cartularia; the Arch of Julius Caesar and the Senate, the Towers of Bratis; the Arch of Antoninus, the Tower of the Cosectis, etc.]

41 (return)
[ Hadriani molem.... magna ex parte Romanorum injuria.... disturbavit; quod certe funditus evertissent, si eorum manibus pervia, absumptis grandibus saxis, reliqua moles exstisset, (Poggius de Varietate Fortunæ, p. 12.)]

41 (return)
[ Hadrian's mole... greatly disturbed the Romans; they would certainly have completely destroyed it if the remaining structure had been accessible to them, having removed the large stones, (Poggius de Varietate Fortunæ, p. 12.)]

42 (return)
[ Against the emperor Henry IV., (Muratori, Annali d’ Italia, tom. ix. p. 147.)]

42 (return)
[Against Emperor Henry IV. (Muratori, Annali d'Italia, vol. ix, p. 147.)]

43 (return)
[ I must copy an important passage of Montfaucon: Turris ingens rotunda.... Cæciliæ Metellæ.... sepulchrum erat, cujus muri tam solidi, ut spatium perquam minimum intus vacuum supersit; et Torre di Bove dicitur, a boum capitibus muro inscriptis. Huic sequiori ævo, tempore intestinorum bellorum, ceu urbecula adjuncta fuit, cujus mnia et turres etiamnum visuntur; ita ut sepulchrum Metellæ quasi arx oppiduli fuerit. Ferventibus in urbe partibus, cum Ursini atque Columnenses mutuis cladibus perniciem inferrent civitati, in utriusve partis ditionem cederet magni momenti erat, (p. 142.)]

43 (return)
[ I need to copy an important passage from Montfaucon: The huge round tower.... Cecilius Metellus.... was a tomb, whose walls are so solid that there is a very small empty space inside; and it’s called Torre di Bove, named after the heads of oxen engraved on the wall. In later times, during the civil wars, a small town was added to it, the remains of which can still be seen today; so the tomb of Metellus served as a fort for the town. During the heated conflicts in the city, when the Ursini and Columnense factions were mutually inflicting damage on the city, it was significant to see which side would gain control, (p. 142.)]

431 (return)
[ This is inaccurately expressed. The sepulchre is still standing See Hobhouse, p. 204.—M.]

431 (return)
[ This is not accurately stated. The tomb is still there. See Hobhouse, p. 204.—M.]

44 (return)
[ See the testimonies of Donatus, Nardini, and Montfaucon. In the Savelli palace, the remains of the theatre of Marcellus are still great and conspicuous.]

44 (return)
[ Check out the accounts of Donatus, Nardini, and Montfaucon. In the Savelli palace, the remnants of the theatre of Marcellus are still impressive and prominent.]

45 (return)
[ James, cardinal of St. George, ad velum aureum, in his metrical life of Pope Celestin V., (Muratori, Script. Ital. tom. i. P. iii. p. 621, l. i. c. l. ver. 132, &c.)

45 (return)
[ James, cardinal of St. George, at the golden veil, in his poetic biography of Pope Celestin V., (Muratori, Script. Ital. vol. i. p. iii. p. 621, l. i. c. l. ver. 132, &c.)

               Hoc dixisse sat est, Romam caruisee Senatû
               Mensibus exactis heu sex; belloque vocatum (vocatos)
               In scelus, in socios fraternaque vulnera patres;
               Tormentis jecisse viros immania saxa;
               Perfodisse domus trabibus, fecisse ruinas
               Ignibus; incensas turres, obscuraque fumo
               Lumina vicino, quo sit spoliata supellex.]
               Hoc dixisse sat est, Romam caruisee Senatû
               Mensibus exactis heu sex; belloque vocatum (vocatos)
               In scelus, in socios fraternaque vulnera patres;
               Tormentis jecisse viros immania saxa;
               Perfodisse domus trabibus, fecisse ruinas
               Ignibus; incensas turres, obscuraque fumo
               Lumina vicino, quo sit spoliata supellex.

46 (return)
[ Muratori (Dissertazione sopra le Antiquità Italiane, tom. i. p. 427—431) finds that stone bullets of two or three hundred pounds’ weight were not uncommon; and they are sometimes computed at xii. or xviii cantari of Genoa, each cantaro weighing 150 pounds.]

46 (return)
[ Muratori (Dissertation on Italian Antiquities, vol. i, pp. 427—431) finds that stone bullets weighing two or three hundred pounds were pretty common; and they are sometimes estimated at 12 or 18 cantari of Genoa, with each cantaro weighing 150 pounds.]

47 (return)
[ The vith law of the Visconti prohibits this common and mischievous practice; and strictly enjoins, that the houses of banished citizens should be preserved pro communi utilitate, (Gualvancus de la Flamma in Muratori, Script. Rerum Italicarum, tom. xii. p. 1041.)]

47 (return)
[ The fifth law of the Visconti forbids this common and harmful practice, and clearly states that the homes of banished citizens should be preserved for the common good, (Gualvancus de la Flamma in Muratori, Script. Rerum Italicarum, tom. xii. p. 1041.)]

48 (return)
[ Petrarch thus addresses his friend, who, with shame and tears had shown him the mnia, laceræ specimen miserable Romæ, and declared his own intention of restoring them, (Carmina Latina, l. ii. epist. Paulo Annibalensi, xii. p. 97, 98.)

48 (return)
[ Petrarch addresses his friend, who, feeling ashamed and tearful, had shown him the sorry state of the ruins in Rome and expressed his desire to restore them, (Carmina Latina, l. ii. epist. Paulo Annibalensi, xii. p. 97, 98.)

               Nec te parva manet servatis fama ruinis
               Quanta quod integræ fuit olim gloria Romæ
               Reliquiæ testantur adhuc; quas longior ætas
               Frangere non valuit; non vis aut ira cruenti Hostis,
               ab egregiis franguntur civibus, heu! heu’
               ————Quod ille nequivit (Hannibal.)
               Perficit hic aries.]
               You won't be remembered for your minor victories after such great ruins,  
               Just as the glory of Rome once was.  
               The remnants still testify to that; a longer time  
               hasn't been able to break them; no force or rage from the bloody enemy  
               can crush the outstanding citizens, alas! alas!  
               ————What he couldn’t do (Hannibal.)  
               This ram accomplishes.]

481 (return)
[ Bunsen has shown that the hostile attacks of the emperor Henry the Fourth, but more particularly that of Robert Guiscard, who burned down whole districts, inflicted the worst damage on the ancient city Vol. i. p. 247.—M.]

481 (return)
[ Bunsen has shown that the aggressive assaults by Emperor Henry the Fourth, especially those by Robert Guiscard, who set entire areas on fire, caused the most severe destruction to the ancient city. Vol. i. p. 247.—M.]

Chapter LXXI: Prospect Of The Ruins Of Rome In The Fifteenth Century.—Part II

These general observations may be separately applied to the amphitheatre of Titus, which has obtained the name of the Coliseum, 49 either from its magnitude, or from Nero’s colossal statue; an edifice, had it been left to time and nature, which might perhaps have claimed an eternal duration. The curious antiquaries, who have computed the numbers and seats, are disposed to believe, that above the upper row of stone steps the amphitheatre was encircled and elevated with several stages of wooden galleries, which were repeatedly consumed by fire, and restored by the emperors. Whatever was precious, or portable, or profane, the statues of gods and heroes, and the costly ornaments of sculpture which were cast in brass, or overspread with leaves of silver and gold, became the first prey of conquest or fanaticism, of the avarice of the Barbarians or the Christians. In the massy stones of the Coliseum, many holes are discerned; and the two most probable conjectures represent the various accidents of its decay. These stones were connected by solid links of brass or iron, nor had the eye of rapine overlooked the value of the baser metals; 50 the vacant space was converted into a fair or market; the artisans of the Coliseum are mentioned in an ancient survey; and the chasms were perforated or enlarged to receive the poles that supported the shops or tents of the mechanic trades. 51 Reduced to its naked majesty, the Flavian amphitheatre was contemplated with awe and admiration by the pilgrims of the North; and their rude enthusiasm broke forth in a sublime proverbial expression, which is recorded in the eighth century, in the fragments of the venerable Bede: “As long as the Coliseum stands, Rome shall stand; when the Coliseum falls, Rome will fall; when Rome falls, the world will fall.” 52 In the modern system of war, a situation commanded by three hills would not be chosen for a fortress; but the strength of the walls and arches could resist the engines of assault; a numerous garrison might be lodged in the enclosure; and while one faction occupied the Vatican and the Capitol, the other was intrenched in the Lateran and the Coliseum. 53

These general observations can also be applied to the amphitheater of Titus, which is known as the Coliseum, 49 either because of its size or because of Nero’s colossal statue. Had it been left to the passage of time and nature, this building might have lasted forever. Curious historians, who have calculated the numbers and seats, believe that above the upper row of stone steps, the amphitheater was surrounded and elevated with several levels of wooden galleries, which were repeatedly destroyed by fire and rebuilt by the emperors. Anything that was valuable, portable, or forbidden, including statues of gods and heroes and the expensive sculptures made of bronze or covered in silver and gold, became the first targets of conquest or fanaticism, driven by the greed of Barbarians or Christians. On the massive stones of the Coliseum, many holes can be seen; the two most likely explanations represent the different incidents of its decline. These stones were held together by sturdy bronze or iron links, and the eye of plunder didn’t miss the worth of the lesser metals; 50 the empty space turned into a fair or market; the craftsmen of the Coliseum are noted in an ancient survey, and the gaps were drilled or widened to hold the poles that supported the shops or tents of the trades. 51 Stripped down to its raw majesty, the Flavian amphitheater was viewed with awe and admiration by northern pilgrims; and their rough enthusiasm burst forth in a profound saying recorded in the eighth century in the fragments of the venerable Bede: “As long as the Coliseum stands, Rome shall stand; when the Coliseum falls, Rome will fall; when Rome falls, the world will fall.” 52 In modern warfare, a site surrounded by three hills wouldn’t be selected as a stronghold; however, the strength of the walls and arches could withstand the assault equipment; a large garrison could be housed within the enclosure; and while one faction took control of the Vatican and the Capitol, the other was fortified in the Lateran and the Coliseum. 53

49 (return)
[ The fourth part of the Verona Illustrata of the marquis Maffei professedly treats of amphitheatres, particularly those of Rome and Verona, of their dimensions, wooden galleries, &c. It is from magnitude that he derives the name of Colosseum, or Coliseum; since the same appellation was applied to the amphitheatre of Capua, without the aid of a colossal statue; since that of Nero was erected in the court (in atrio) of his palace, and not in the Coliseum, (P. iv. p. 15—19, l. i. c. 4.)]

49 (return)
[ The fourth part of Verona Illustrata by Marquis Maffei specifically discusses amphitheaters, especially those in Rome and Verona, detailing their sizes, wooden seating, etc. He derives the name Colosseum or Coliseum from its size, as the same name was used for the amphitheater in Capua, even without a colossal statue; since the statue of Nero was placed in the courtyard (in atrio) of his palace, not in the Coliseum, (P. iv. p. 15—19, l. i. c. 4.)]

50 (return)
[ Joseph Maria Suarés, a learned bishop, and the author of a history of Præneste, has composed a separate dissertation on the seven or eight probable causes of these holes, which has been since reprinted in the Roman Thesaurus of Sallengre. Montfaucon (Diarium, p. 233) pronounces the rapine of the Barbarians to be the unam germanamque causam foraminum. * Note: The improbability of this theory is shown by Bunsen, vol. i. p. 239.—M.]

50 (return)
[ Joseph Maria Suarés, an educated bishop and the author of a history of Præneste, has written a separate paper on the seven or eight likely causes of these holes, which has since been reprinted in the Roman Thesaurus of Sallengre. Montfaucon (Diarium, p. 233) declares the looting by the Barbarians to be the one and only cause of the holes. * Note: The unlikelihood of this theory is indicated by Bunsen, vol. i. p. 239.—M.]

51 (return)
[ Donatus, Roma Vetus et Nova, p. 285. Note: Gibbon has followed Donatus, who supposes that a silk manufactory was established in the xiith century in the Coliseum. The Bandonarii, or Bandererii, were the officers who carried the standards of their school before the pope. Hobhouse, p. 269.—M.]

51 (return)
[ Donatus, Roma Vetus et Nova, p. 285. Note: Gibbon followed Donatus, who believed that a silk factory was set up in the 12th century in the Coliseum. The Bandonarii, or Bandererii, were the officers responsible for carrying the standards of their school before the pope. Hobhouse, p. 269.—M.]

52 (return)
[ Quamdiu stabit Colyseus, stabit et Roma; quando cadet Coly seus, cadet Roma; quando cadet Roma, cadet et mundus, (Beda in Excerptis seu Collectaneis apud Ducange Glossar. Med. et Infimæ Latinitatis, tom. ii. p. 407, edit. Basil.) This saying must be ascribed to the Anglo-Saxon pilgrims who visited Rome before the year 735 the æra of Bede’s death; for I do not believe that our venerable monk ever passed the sea.]

52 (return)
[As long as the Colosseum stands, Rome will stand; when the Colosseum falls, Rome will fall; when Rome falls, the world will fall, (Bede in Excerpts or Collections in Ducange Glossary of Medieval and Early Latin, vol. ii, p. 407, Basel edition.) This saying is attributed to the Anglo-Saxon pilgrims who visited Rome before the year 735, the year of Bede’s death; for I don’t believe our esteemed monk ever crossed the sea.]

53 (return)
[ I cannot recover, in Muratori’s original Lives of the Popes, (Script Rerum Italicarum, tom. iii. P. i.,) the passage that attests this hostile partition, which must be applied to the end of the xiith or the beginning of the xiith century. * Note: “The division is mentioned in Vit. Innocent. Pap. II. ex Cardinale Aragonio, (Script. Rer. Ital. vol. iii. P. i. p. 435,) and Gibbon might have found frequent other records of it at other dates.” Hobhouse’s Illustrations of Childe Harold. p. 130.—M.]

53 (return)
[ I can’t find the specific part in Muratori’s original Lives of the Popes (Script Rerum Italicarum, tom. iii. P. i.) that confirms this hostile division, which should be dated to the end of the 11th or the beginning of the 12th century. * Note: “The division is mentioned in Vit. Innocent. Pap. II. ex Cardinale Aragonio, (Script. Rer. Ital. vol. iii. P. i. p. 435,) and Gibbon could have found many other records of it from various dates.” Hobhouse’s Illustrations of Childe Harold. p. 130.—M.]

The abolition at Rome of the ancient games must be understood with some latitude; and the carnival sports, of the Testacean mount and the Circus Agonalis, 54 were regulated by the law 55 or custom of the city. The senator presided with dignity and pomp to adjudge and distribute the prizes, the gold ring, or the pallium, 56 as it was styled, of cloth or silk. A tribute on the Jews supplied the annual expense; 57 and the races, on foot, on horseback, or in chariots, were ennobled by a tilt and tournament of seventy-two of the Roman youth. In the year one thousand three hundred and thirty-two, a bull-feast, after the fashion of the Moors and Spaniards, was celebrated in the Coliseum itself; and the living manners are painted in a diary of the times. 58 A convenient order of benches was restored; and a general proclamation, as far as Rimini and Ravenna, invited the nobles to exercise their skill and courage in this perilous adventure. The Roman ladies were marshalled in three squadrons, and seated in three balconies, which, on this day, the third of September, were lined with scarlet cloth. The fair Jacova di Rovere led the matrons from beyond the Tyber, a pure and native race, who still represent the features and character of antiquity. The remainder of the city was divided as usual between the Colonna and Ursini: the two factions were proud of the number and beauty of their female bands: the charms of Savella Ursini are mentioned with praise; and the Colonna regretted the absence of the youngest of their house, who had sprained her ankle in the garden of Nero’s tower. The lots of the champions were drawn by an old and respectable citizen; and they descended into the arena, or pit, to encounter the wild bulls, on foot as it should seem, with a single spear. Amidst the crowd, our annalist has selected the names, colors, and devices, of twenty of the most conspicuous knights. Several of the names are the most illustrious of Rome and the ecclesiastical state: Malatesta, Polenta, della Valle, Cafarello, Savelli, Capoccio, Conti, Annibaldi, Altieri, Corsi: the colors were adapted to their taste and situation; the devices are expressive of hope or despair, and breathe the spirit of gallantry and arms. “I am alone, like the youngest of the Horatii,” the confidence of an intrepid stranger: “I live disconsolate,” a weeping widower: “I burn under the ashes,” a discreet lover: “I adore Lavinia, or Lucretia,” the ambiguous declaration of a modern passion: “My faith is as pure,” the motto of a white livery: “Who is stronger than myself?” of a lion’s hide: “If am drowned in blood, what a pleasant death!” the wish of ferocious courage. The pride or prudence of the Ursini restrained them from the field, which was occupied by three of their hereditary rivals, whose inscriptions denoted the lofty greatness of the Colonna name: “Though sad, I am strong:” “Strong as I am great:” “If I fall,” addressing himself to the spectators, “you fall with me;”—intimating (says the contemporary writer) that while the other families were the subjects of the Vatican, they alone were the supporters of the Capitol. The combats of the amphitheatre were dangerous and bloody. Every champion successively encountered a wild bull; and the victory may be ascribed to the quadrupeds, since no more than eleven were left on the field, with the loss of nine wounded and eighteen killed on the side of their adversaries. Some of the noblest families might mourn, but the pomp of the funerals, in the churches of St. John Lateran and St. Maria Maggiore, afforded a second holiday to the people. Doubtless it was not in such conflicts that the blood of the Romans should have been shed; yet, in blaming their rashness, we are compelled to applaud their gallantry; and the noble volunteers, who display their magnificence, and risk their lives, under the balconies of the fair, excite a more generous sympathy than the thousands of captives and malefactors who were reluctantly dragged to the scene of slaughter. 59

The end of the ancient games in Rome should be viewed with some flexibility; the carnival activities at Testacean hill and the Circus Agonalis were organized by the city’s laws or traditions. A senator presided with dignity and ceremony to award the prizes, such as the gold ring or the pallium, which was a piece of cloth or silk. A tax on the Jews funded the annual expenses; the races—on foot, horseback, or in chariots—were enhanced by a tilt and tournament featuring seventy-two Roman youths. In 1332, a bull feast in the style of the Moors and Spaniards took place in the Coliseum; the lively customs are captured in a diary from that time. A new arrangement of benches was set up, and a public announcement, as far as Rimini and Ravenna, called on nobles to show off their skill and bravery in this daring event. Roman ladies were organized into three groups and seated in three balconies, lined with scarlet cloth for this day, September 3rd. The beautiful Jacova di Rovere led the matrons from across the Tiber, a pure and local group reflecting the features and character of ancient times. The rest of the city was divided as usual between the Colonna and Ursini factions, who took pride in the number and beauty of their female followers; Savella Ursini was noted for her beauty, while the Colonna clan missed the youngest member of their family, who had injured her ankle in Nero’s garden. An elderly and respected citizen drew the lots for the contenders, who entered the arena to confront the wild bulls, apparently on foot with just a spear. Among the crowd, our chronicler picked out the names, colors, and emblems of twenty of the most prominent knights. Many of these names were among the most distinguished in Rome and the Church: Malatesta, Polenta, della Valle, Cafarello, Savelli, Capoccio, Conti, Annibaldi, Altieri, Corsi. The colors reflected their preferences and situations; the motifs expressed hope or despair, embodying the spirit of courage and valor. “I am alone, like the youngest of the Horatii,” revealed the boldness of a brave stranger; “I live in sorrow,” lamented a grieving widower; “I smolder under the ashes,” expressed a discreet lover; “I adore Lavinia, or Lucretia,” suggested the ambiguous nature of modern romance; “My faith is as pure,” proclaimed a white banner; “Who is stronger than I?” boasted a lion's hide; “If I am drowned in blood, what a glorious death!” expressed a fierce desire for bravery. The pride or caution of the Ursini kept them from joining the fray, which was dominated by three of their long-standing rivals, with inscriptions that signified the elevated stature of the Colonna name: “Though sad, I am strong;” “Strong as I am great;” “If I fall,” addressing the audience, “you fall with me”—implying (according to a contemporary writer) that while other families served the Vatican, they were the true supporters of the Capitol. The fights in the amphitheater were perilous and bloody. Each champion faced a wild bull in turn, with victory mostly to the animals, as only eleven bulls remained, while nine were wounded and eighteen killed on the opponents’ side. While some of the noble families might mourn, the grandeur of the funerals in the churches of St. John Lateran and St. Maria Maggiore gave the people a second day of celebration. It was certainly not in such battles that Roman blood should have been spilled; however, while we can criticize their recklessness, we are also compelled to admire their bravery, as the noble volunteers who flaunt their opulence and risk their lives beneath the female balconies inspire a more generous sympathy than the thousands of captives and criminals who were reluctantly forced to the scene of execution. 59

54 (return)
[ Although the structure of the circus Agonalis be destroyed, it still retains its form and name, (Agona, Nagona, Navona;) and the interior space affords a sufficient level for the purpose of racing. But the Monte Testaceo, that strange pile of broken pottery, seems only adapted for the annual practice of hurling from top to bottom some wagon-loads of live hogs for the diversion of the populace, (Statuta Urbis Romæ, p. 186.)]

54 (return)
[Even though the structure of the Agonalis circus is in ruins, it still keeps its shape and name (Agona, Nagona, Navona); the interior space is adequate for racing purposes. However, the Monte Testaceo, that unusual mound of broken pottery, appears only suited for the annual event of launching wagonloads of live pigs from the top down for the entertainment of the crowd, (Statuta Urbis Romæ, p. 186.)]

55 (return)
[ See the Statuta Urbis Romæ, l. iii. c. 87, 88, 89, p. 185, 186. I have already given an idea of this municipal code. The races of Nagona and Monte Testaceo are likewise mentioned in the Diary of Peter Antonius from 1404 to 1417, (Muratori, Script. Rerum Italicarum, tom. xxiv. p. 1124.)]

55 (return)
[ See the Statuta Urbis Romæ, l. iii. c. 87, 88, 89, p. 185, 186. I have already provided an overview of this municipal code. The races of Nagona and Monte Testaceo are also referenced in the Diary of Peter Antonius from 1404 to 1417, (Muratori, Script. Rerum Italicarum, tom. xxiv. p. 1124.)]

56 (return)
[ The Pallium, which Menage so foolishly derives from Palmarius, is an easy extension of the idea and the words, from the robe or cloak, to the materials, and from thence to their application as a prize, (Muratori, dissert. xxxiii.)]

56 (return)
[ The Pallium, which Menage mistakenly connects to Palmarius, is a straightforward extension of the idea and the terminology, moving from the robe or cloak, to the materials, and then to their use as a reward, (Muratori, dissert. xxxiii.)]

57 (return)
[ For these expenses, the Jews of Rome paid each year 1130 florins, of which the odd thirty represented the pieces of silver for which Judas had betrayed his Master to their ancestors. There was a foot-race of Jewish as well as of Christian youths, (Statuta Urbis, ibidem.)]

57 (return)
[ For these expenses, the Jews of Rome paid each year 1130 florins, with the extra thirty symbolizing the pieces of silver that Judas received for betraying his Master to their ancestors. There was a foot race for both Jewish and Christian youths, (Statuta Urbis, ibidem.)]

58 (return)
[ This extraordinary bull-feast in the Coliseum is described, from tradition rather than memory, by Ludovico Buonconte Monaldesco, on the most ancient fragments of Roman annals, (Muratori, Script Rerum Italicarum, tom. xii. p. 535, 536;) and however fanciful they may seem, they are deeply marked with the colors of truth and nature.]

58 (return)
[ This remarkable bull feast in the Coliseum is recounted, based on tradition rather than personal memory, by Ludovico Buonconte Monaldesco, in the oldest fragments of Roman records, (Muratori, Script Rerum Italicarum, tom. xii. p. 535, 536;) and although they may appear fanciful, they are strongly infused with the essence of truth and nature.]

59 (return)
[ Muratori has given a separate dissertation (the xxixth) to the games of the Italians in the Middle Ages.]

59 (return)
[ Muratori has written a separate dissertation (the 29th) about the games played by Italians during the Middle Ages.]

This use of the amphitheatre was a rare, perhaps a singular, festival: the demand for the materials was a daily and continual want which the citizens could gratify without restraint or remorse. In the fourteenth century, a scandalous act of concord secured to both factions the privilege of extracting stones from the free and common quarry of the Coliseum; 60 and Poggius laments, that the greater part of these stones had been burnt to lime by the folly of the Romans. 61 To check this abuse, and to prevent the nocturnal crimes that might be perpetrated in the vast and gloomy recess, Eugenius the Fourth surrounded it with a wall; and, by a charter long extant, granted both the ground and edifice to the monks of an adjacent convent. 62 After his death, the wall was overthrown in a tumult of the people; and had they themselves respected the noblest monument of their fathers, they might have justified the resolve that it should never be degraded to private property. The inside was damaged: but in the middle of the sixteenth century, an æra of taste and learning, the exterior circumference of one thousand six hundred and twelve feet was still entire and inviolate; a triple elevation of fourscore arches, which rose to the height of one hundred and eight feet. Of the present ruin, the nephews of Paul the Third are the guilty agents; and every traveller who views the Farnese palace may curse the sacrilege and luxury of these upstart princes. 63 A similar reproach is applied to the Barberini; and the repetition of injury might be dreaded from every reign, till the Coliseum was placed under the safeguard of religion by the most liberal of the pontiffs, Benedict the Fourteenth, who consecrated a spot which persecution and fable had stained with the blood of so many Christian martyrs. 64

This use of the amphitheater was a rare, maybe even unique, festival: the demand for the materials was a daily and ongoing need that the citizens could fulfill without limit or guilt. In the fourteenth century, a scandalous agreement granted both factions the right to take stones from the free and common quarry of the Coliseum; 60 and Poggius laments that most of these stones had been turned into lime by the recklessness of the Romans. 61 To stop this abuse and prevent nighttime crimes that could happen in the vast and dark recess, Eugenius the Fourth surrounded it with a wall; and, through a charter that still exists, granted both the land and building to the monks of a nearby convent. 62 After his death, the wall was torn down in a riot by the people; and if they had respected the greatest monument of their ancestors, they could have justified the decision that it should never be turned into private property. The inside was damaged: but in the mid-sixteenth century, an era of taste and learning, the outer circumference of one thousand six hundred and twelve feet was still intact and untouched; a triple layer of eighty arches, which rose to a height of one hundred and eight feet. The current ruin is the result of the actions of the nephews of Paul the Third; and every traveler who sees the Farnese palace may curse the sacrilege and extravagance of these newly powerful princes. 63 A similar blame is placed on the Barberini; and the cycle of destruction could be expected from every reign, until the Coliseum was placed under the protection of religion by the most generous of the popes, Benedict the Fourteenth, who consecrated a spot that persecution and legend had stained with the blood of so many Christian martyrs. 64

60 (return)
[ In a concise but instructive memoir, the abbé Barthelemy (Mémoires de l’Académie des Inscriptions, tom. xxviii. p. 585) has mentioned this agreement of the factions of the xivth century de Tiburtino faciendo in the Coliseum, from an original act in the archives of Rome.]

60 (return)
[ In a brief yet informative memoir, Abbé Barthelemy (Mémoires de l’Académie des Inscriptions, tom. xxviii. p. 585) noted this pact among the factions of the 14th century de Tiburtino faciendo in the Coliseum, based on an original document in the archives of Rome.]

61 (return)
[ Coliseum.... ob stultitiam Romanorum majori ex parte ad calcem deletum, says the indignant Poggius, (p. 17:) but his expression too strong for the present age, must be very tenderly applied to the xvth century.]

61 (return)
[ Coliseum.... most of the stupidity of the Romans has been lost, says the upset Poggius, (p. 17:) but his words are too harsh for today and must be handled gently in relation to the 15th century.]

62 (return)
[ Of the Olivetan monks. Montfaucon (p. 142) affirms this fact from the memorials of Flaminius Vacca, (No. 72.) They still hoped on some future occasion, to revive and vindicate their grant.]

62 (return)
[ About the Olivetan monks. Montfaucon (p. 142) confirms this fact from the records of Flaminius Vacca, (No. 72.) They still hoped to revive and defend their grant on some future occasion.]

63 (return)
[ After measuring the priscus amphitheatri gyrus, Montfaucon (p. 142) only adds that it was entire under Paul III.; tacendo clamat. Muratori (Annali d’Italia, tom. xiv. p. 371) more freely reports the guilt of the Farnese pope, and the indignation of the Roman people. Against the nephews of Urban VIII. I have no other evidence than the vulgar saying, “Quod non fecerunt Barbari, fecere Barberini,” which was perhaps suggested by the resemblance of the words.]

63 (return)
[ After measuring the priscus amphitheatri gyrus, Montfaucon (p. 142) only notes that it remained intact under Paul III.; silence speaks volumes. Muratori (Annali d’Italia, tom. xiv. p. 371) more openly discusses the wrongdoing of the Farnese pope and the anger of the Roman people. As for the nephews of Urban VIII., I have no evidence other than the common saying, “What the Barbarians didn't do, the Barberini did,” which might have been inspired by the similarity of the words.]

64 (return)
[ As an antiquarian and a priest, Montfaucon thus deprecates the ruin of the Coliseum: Quòd si non suopte merito atque pulchritudine dignum fuisset quod improbas arceret manus, indigna res utique in locum tot martyrum cruore sacrum tantopere sævitum esse.]

64 (return)
[ As an antique dealer and a priest, Montfaucon criticizes the destruction of the Coliseum: If it hadn’t been deserving of its own merit and beauty to be preserved from your cruel hands, it is truly disgraceful that such a place, so sacred to the blood of so many martyrs, has been treated with such violence.]

When Petrarch first gratified his eyes with a view of those monuments, whose scattered fragments so far surpass the most eloquent descriptions, he was astonished at the supine indifference 65 of the Romans themselves; 66 he was humbled rather than elated by the discovery, that, except his friend Rienzi, and one of the Colonna, a stranger of the Rhône was more conversant with these antiquities than the nobles and natives of the metropolis. 67 The ignorance and credulity of the Romans are elaborately displayed in the old survey of the city which was composed about the beginning of the thirteenth century; and, without dwelling on the manifold errors of name and place, the legend of the Capitol 68 may provoke a smile of contempt and indignation. “The Capitol,” says the anonymous writer, “is so named as being the head of the world; where the consuls and senators formerly resided for the government of the city and the globe. The strong and lofty walls were covered with glass and gold, and crowned with a roof of the richest and most curious carving. Below the citadel stood a palace, of gold for the greatest part, decorated with precious stones, and whose value might be esteemed at one third of the world itself. The statues of all the provinces were arranged in order, each with a small bell suspended from its neck; and such was the contrivance of art magic, 69 that if the province rebelled against Rome, the statue turned round to that quarter of the heavens, the bell rang, the prophet of the Capitol repeated the prodigy, and the senate was admonished of the impending danger.” A second example, of less importance, though of equal absurdity, may be drawn from the two marble horses, led by two naked youths, who have since been transported from the baths of Constantine to the Quirinal hill. The groundless application of the names of Phidias and Praxiteles may perhaps be excused; but these Grecian sculptors should not have been removed above four hundred years from the age of Pericles to that of Tiberius; they should not have been transferred into two philosophers or magicians, whose nakedness was the symbol of truth or knowledge, who revealed to the emperor his most secret actions; and, after refusing all pecuniary recompense, solicited the honor of leaving this eternal monument of themselves. 70 Thus awake to the power of magic, the Romans were insensible to the beauties of art: no more than five statues were visible to the eyes of Poggius; and of the multitudes which chance or design had buried under the ruins, the resurrection was fortunately delayed till a safer and more enlightened age. 71 The Nile which now adorns the Vatican, had been explored by some laborers in digging a vineyard near the temple, or convent, of the Minerva; but the impatient proprietor, who was tormented by some visits of curiosity, restored the unprofitable marble to its former grave. 72 The discovery of a statue of Pompey, ten feet in length, was the occasion of a lawsuit. It had been found under a partition wall: the equitable judge had pronounced, that the head should be separated from the body to satisfy the claims of the contiguous owners; and the sentence would have been executed, if the intercession of a cardinal, and the liberality of a pope, had not rescued the Roman hero from the hands of his barbarous countrymen. 73

When Petrarch first laid his eyes on those monuments, whose scattered fragments far exceed the most eloquent descriptions, he was shocked by the casual indifference of the Romans themselves; he felt humbled rather than uplifted by the realization that, aside from his friend Rienzi and one of the Colonna family, a stranger from the Rhône knew more about these antiquities than the nobles and locals of the city. The ignorance and gullibility of the Romans are clearly shown in the old survey of the city that was written around the early thirteenth century; and without going into the various errors of names and places, the legend of the Capitol may bring about a smile of disdain and anger. “The Capitol,” says the unknown writer, “is called so because it is the head of the world, where the consuls and senators used to reside for the governance of the city and the globe. The strong and tall walls were covered with glass and gold, and topped with a roof of the most exquisite and intricate carvings. Below the citadel stood a palace, mostly made of gold, adorned with precious stones, and whose worth could be estimated at one third of the world itself. The statues of all the provinces were arranged in order, each with a small bell hanging from its neck; and such was the cleverness of magical art, that if a province rebelled against Rome, the statue would turn towards that part of the sky, the bell would ring, the prophet of the Capitol would announce the omen, and the senate would be warned of the looming danger.” A second example, though less significant but equally absurd, can be found in the two marble horses, led by two naked youths, which have since been moved from the baths of Constantine to the Quirinal hill. The unfounded attribution of the names of Phidias and Praxiteles might be excused; however, these Greek sculptors shouldn't have been moved more than four hundred years from the time of Pericles to that of Tiberius; they shouldn't have been transformed into two philosophers or wizards, whose nakedness represented truth or knowledge, who revealed the emperor's most secret activities; and, after refusing any financial reward, sought the honor of leaving this eternal monument of themselves. Thus, being captivated by the power of magic, the Romans were blind to the beauties of art: no more than five statues were visible to the eyes of Poggius; and of the many that chance or purpose had buried under the ruins, the resurrection was fortunately postponed until a safer and more enlightened era. The Nile, which now decorates the Vatican, had been uncovered by some laborers digging a vineyard near the temple or convent of Minerva; but the impatient owner, who was bothered by some curious visitors, returned the unprofitable marble to its previous resting place. The discovery of a statue of Pompey, ten feet tall, led to a lawsuit. It had been found under a partition wall: the fair judge had ruled that the head should be separated from the body to satisfy the claims of the neighboring owners; and the sentence would have been carried out, if not for the intervention of a cardinal and the generosity of a pope, who saved the Roman hero from the hands of his barbaric countrymen.

65 (return)
[ Yet the statutes of Rome (l. iii. c. 81, p. 182) impose a fine of 500 aurei on whosoever shall demolish any ancient edifice, ne ruinis civitas deformetur, et ut antiqua ædificia decorem urbis perpetuo representent.]

65 (return)
[ However, the laws of Rome (l. iii. c. 81, p. 182) impose a fine of 500 aurei on anyone who demolishes any ancient building, so that the city is not disfigured by ruins, and to ensure that the ancient buildings continue to represent the beauty of the city.]

66 (return)
[ In his first visit to Rome (A.D. 1337. See Mémoires sur Pétrarque, tom. i. p. 322, &c.) Petrarch is struck mute miraculo rerum tantarum, et stuporis mole obrutus.... Præsentia vero, mirum dictû nihil imminuit: vere major fuit Roma majoresque sunt reliquiæ quam rebar. Jam non orbem ab hâc urbe domitum, sed tam sero domitum, miror, (Opp. p. 605, Familiares, ii. 14, Joanni Columnæ.)]

66 (return)
[ During his first visit to Rome (A.D. 1337. See Mémoires sur Pétrarque, tom. i. p. 322, &c.) Petrarch is left speechless by such amazing things, overwhelmed by the enormity of it all.... The presence itself, strangely enough, didn’t diminish anything: Rome was truly greater, and its remnants are bigger than I had thought. I’m amazed not just that the world was conquered from this city, but that it was conquered so late (Opp. p. 605, Familiares, ii. 14, Joanni Columnæ.)]

67 (return)
[ He excepts and praises the rare knowledge of John Colonna. Qui enim hodie magis ignari rerum Romanarum, quam Romani cives! Invitus dico, nusquam minus Roma cognoscitur quam Romæ.]

67 (return)
[ He accepts and praises the rare knowledge of John Colonna. For who today is more ignorant of Roman matters than Roman citizens themselves! I say this reluctantly; nowhere is Rome less understood than in Rome.]

68 (return)
[ After the description of the Capitol, he adds, statuæ erant quot sunt mundi provinciæ; et habebat quælibet tintinnabulum ad collum. Et erant ita per magicam artem dispositæ, ut quando aliqua regio Romano Imperio rebellis erat, statim imago illius provinciæ vertebat se contra illam; unde tintinnabulum resonabat quod pendebat ad collum; tuncque vates Capitolii qui erant custodes senatui, &c. He mentions an example of the Saxons and Suevi, who, after they had been subdued by Agrippa, again rebelled: tintinnabulum sonuit; sacerdos qui erat in speculo in hebdomada senatoribus nuntiavit: Agrippa marched back and reduced the—Persians, (Anonym. in Montfaucon, p. 297, 298.)]

68 (return)
[ After describing the Capitol, he adds that there were as many statues as there are provinces in the world; each had a bell hanging from its neck. They were arranged through magic in such a way that whenever a region rebelled against the Roman Empire, the statue of that province would immediately turn to face it; hence, the bell that hung from its neck would ring. Then the seers of the Capitol, who were the guardians of the Senate, etc. He mentions an example of the Saxons and Suevi, who, after being conquered by Agrippa, rebelled again: the bell rang; the priest who was in the temple announced it to the senators that week: Agrippa marched back and subdued the—Persians, (Anonym. in Montfaucon, p. 297, 298.)]

69 (return)
[ The same writer affirms, that Virgil captus a Romanis invisibiliter exiit, ivitque Neapolim. A Roman magician, in the xith century, is introduced by William of Malmsbury, (de Gestis Regum Anglorum, l. ii. p. 86;) and in the time of Flaminius Vacca (No. 81, 103) it was the vulgar belief that the strangers (the Goths) invoked the dæmons for the discovery of hidden treasures.]

69 (return)
[ The same writer claims that Virgil secretly left Rome and went to Naples. A Roman magician is mentioned by William of Malmsbury in the 11th century (de Gestis Regum Anglorum, l. ii. p. 86); and during the time of Flaminius Vacca (No. 81, 103), it was a common belief that the outsiders (the Goths) called on demons to find hidden treasures.]

70 (return)
[ Anonym. p. 289. Montfaucon (p. 191) justly observes, that if Alexander be represented, these statues cannot be the work of Phidias (Olympiad lxxxiii.) or Praxiteles, (Olympiad civ.,) who lived before that conqueror (Plin. Hist. Natur. xxxiv. 19.)]

70 (return)
[ Anonym. p. 289. Montfaucon (p. 191) rightly points out that if Alexander is depicted, these statues cannot have been created by Phidias (Olympiad 83) or Praxiteles (Olympiad 104), who lived before that conqueror (Plin. Hist. Natur. 34. 19.)]

71 (return)
[ William of Malmsbury (l. ii. p. 86, 87) relates a marvellous discovery (A.D. 1046) of Pallas the son of Evander, who had been slain by Turnus; the perpetual light in his sepulchre, a Latin epitaph, the corpse, yet entire, of a young giant, the enormous wound in his breast, (pectus perforat ingens,) &c. If this fable rests on the slightest foundation, we may pity the bodies, as well as the statues, that were exposed to the air in a barbarous age.]

71 (return)
[ William of Malmsbury (l. ii. p. 86, 87) talks about an amazing discovery (A.D. 1046) of Pallas, Evander's son, who was killed by Turnus; the eternal light in his tomb, a Latin inscription, the body, still intact, of a young giant, the huge wound in his chest, (pectus perforat ingens), etc. If this tale has even a small basis in truth, we can feel sorry for the bodies, as well as the statues, that were left exposed to the elements in a savage age.]

72 (return)
[ Prope porticum Minervæ, statua est recubantis, cujus caput integrâ effigie tantæ magnitudinis, ut signa omnia excedat. Quidam ad plantandas arbores scrobes faciens detexit. Ad hoc visendum cum plures in dies magis concurrerent, strepitum adeuentium fastidiumque pertæsus, horti patronus congestâ humo texit, (Poggius de Varietate Fortunæ, p. 12.)]

72 (return)
[ Near the porch of Minerva, there's a statue of a reclining figure, whose head is so large that it overshadows all other sculptures. Some people discovered it while digging holes to plant trees. As more and more visitors started to flock to see it over several days, the gardener, tired of the noise and chaos, covered it up with dirt, (Poggius de Varietate Fortunæ, p. 12.)]

73 (return)
[ See the Memorials of Flaminius Vacca, No. 57, p. 11, 12, at the end of the Roma Antica of Nardini, (1704, in 4to.)]

73 (return)
[ See the Memorials of Flaminius Vacca, No. 57, p. 11, 12, at the end of the Roma Antica of Nardini, (1704, in 4to.)]

But the clouds of barbarism were gradually dispelled; and the peaceful authority of Martin the Fifth and his successors restored the ornaments of the city as well as the order of the ecclesiastical state. The improvements of Rome, since the fifteenth century, have not been the spontaneous produce of freedom and industry. The first and most natural root of a great city is the labor and populousness of the adjacent country, which supplies the materials of subsistence, of manufactures, and of foreign trade. But the greater part of the Campagna of Rome is reduced to a dreary and desolate wilderness: the overgrown estates of the princes and the clergy are cultivated by the lazy hands of indigent and hopeless vassals; and the scanty harvests are confined or exported for the benefit of a monopoly. A second and more artificial cause of the growth of a metropolis is the residence of a monarch, the expense of a luxurious court, and the tributes of dependent provinces. Those provinces and tributes had been lost in the fall of the empire; and if some streams of the silver of Peru and the gold of Brazil have been attracted by the Vatican, the revenues of the cardinals, the fees of office, the oblations of pilgrims and clients, and the remnant of ecclesiastical taxes, afford a poor and precarious supply, which maintains, however, the idleness of the court and city. The population of Rome, far below the measure of the great capitals of Europe, does not exceed one hundred and seventy thousand inhabitants; 74 and within the spacious enclosure of the walls, the largest portion of the seven hills is overspread with vineyards and ruins. The beauty and splendor of the modern city may be ascribed to the abuses of the government, to the influence of superstition. Each reign (the exceptions are rare) has been marked by the rapid elevation of a new family, enriched by the childish pontiff at the expense of the church and country. The palaces of these fortunate nephews are the most costly monuments of elegance and servitude: the perfect arts of architecture, sculpture, and painting, have been prostituted in their service; and their galleries and gardens are decorated with the most precious works of antiquity, which taste or vanity has prompted them to collect. The ecclesiastical revenues were more decently employed by the popes themselves in the pomp of the Catholic worship; but it is superfluous to enumerate their pious foundations of altars, chapels, and churches, since these lesser stars are eclipsed by the sun of the Vatican, by the dome of St. Peter, the most glorious structure that ever has been applied to the use of religion. The fame of Julius the Second, Leo the Tenth, and Sixtus the Fifth, is accompanied by the superior merit of Bramante and Fontana, of Raphael and Michael Angelo; and the same munificence which had been displayed in palaces and temples was directed with equal zeal to revive and emulate the labors of antiquity. Prostrate obelisks were raised from the ground, and erected in the most conspicuous places; of the eleven aqueducts of the Cæsars and consuls, three were restored; the artificial rivers were conducted over a long series of old, or of new arches, to discharge into marble basins a flood of salubrious and refreshing waters: and the spectator, impatient to ascend the steps of St. Peter’s, is detained by a column of Egyptian granite, which rises between two lofty and perpetual fountains, to the height of one hundred and twenty feet. The map, the description, the monuments of ancient Rome, have been elucidated by the diligence of the antiquarian and the student: 75 and the footsteps of heroes, the relics, not of superstition, but of empire, are devoutly visited by a new race of pilgrims from the remote, and once savage countries of the North.

But the clouds of barbarism gradually faded away, and the peaceful authority of Martin the Fifth and his successors restored not only the beauty of the city but also order within the ecclesiastical state. The improvements in Rome since the fifteenth century haven’t come naturally from freedom and industry. The foundation of a great city typically relies on the labor and population of the surrounding countryside, providing the necessities for food, manufacturing, and trade. However, much of the Campagna of Rome has become a bleak, desolate wilderness: the sprawling estates of the princes and clergy are farmed by the lazy hands of impoverished and despairing vassals, and the meager harvests are either confined or exported for the benefit of a monopoly. Another factor in the growth of a metropolis is the presence of a monarchy, the expenses of a lavish court, and the tributes from dependent provinces. Those provinces and tributes were lost with the fall of the empire; and while some of the silver from Peru and the gold from Brazil have flowed to the Vatican, the income from cardinals, office fees, donations from pilgrims and clients, and the remnants of ecclesiastical taxes provide only a modest and unstable supply that nevertheless supports the idleness of the court and city. The population of Rome, significantly smaller than that of other major European capitals, doesn’t exceed one hundred seventy thousand inhabitants; 74 and within the vast area enclosed by the walls, most of the seven hills are covered with vineyards and ruins. The beauty and grandeur of the modern city can be attributed to government abuses and the influence of superstition. Each reign (with rare exceptions) has been characterized by the swift rise of a new family, enriched by the naïve pope at the expense of the church and country. The palaces of these fortunate nephews are the most opulent monuments of elegance and servitude: the refined arts of architecture, sculpture, and painting have been exploited in their service; and their galleries and gardens are adorned with the most treasured works of antiquity, gathered by taste or vanity. The ecclesiastical revenues were used more decorously by the popes themselves in the grandeur of Catholic worship; however, it’s unnecessary to list their pious foundations for altars, chapels, and churches, since these smaller achievements are overshadowed by the sun of the Vatican, by the dome of St. Peter, the most magnificent structure ever dedicated to religion. The legacies of Julius the Second, Leo the Tenth, and Sixtus the Fifth are accompanied by the superior contributions of Bramante and Fontana, Raphael and Michelangelo; and the same generosity that was bestowed on palaces and temples was equally directed toward reviving and emulating the efforts of ancient times. Fallen obelisks were raised from the ground and erected in the most prominent locations; of the eleven aqueducts from the Caesars and consuls, three were restored; the man-made rivers were channeled over a series of old and new arches, delivering refreshing and healthful waters into marble basins: and the visitor, eager to climb the steps of St. Peter’s, is paused by a column of Egyptian granite, which rises between two tall and enduring fountains, to a height of one hundred twenty feet. The map, descriptions, and monuments of ancient Rome have been clarified by the efforts of antiquarians and scholars: 75 and the paths of heroes, the remnants not of superstition but of empire, are reverently visited by a new generation of pilgrims from far and once-wild northern lands.

74 (return)
[ In the year 1709, the inhabitants of Rome (without including eight or ten thousand Jews,) amounted to 138,568 souls, (Labat Voyages en Espagne et en Italie, tom. iii. p. 217, 218.) In 1740, they had increased to 146,080; and in 1765, I left them, without the Jews 161,899. I am ignorant whether they have since continued in a progressive state.]

74 (return)
[In 1709, the population of Rome (excluding about eight or ten thousand Jews) was 138,568 people, (Labat Voyages en Espagne et en Italie, tom. iii. p. 217, 218.) By 1740, it had grown to 146,080; and in 1765, when I departed, the total was 161,899, not including the Jews. I don’t know if the population has continued to grow since then.]

75 (return)
[ The Père Montfaucon distributes his own observations into twenty days; he should have styled them weeks, or months, of his visits to the different parts of the city, (Diarium Italicum, c. 8—20, p. 104—301.) That learned Benedictine reviews the topographers of ancient Rome; the first efforts of Blondus, Fulvius, Martianus, and Faunus, the superior labors of Pyrrhus Ligorius, had his learning been equal to his labors; the writings of Onuphrius Panvinius, qui omnes obscuravit, and the recent but imperfect books of Donatus and Nardini. Yet Montfaucon still sighs for a more complete plan and description of the old city, which must be attained by the three following methods: 1. The measurement of the space and intervals of the ruins. 2. The study of inscriptions, and the places where they were found. 3. The investigation of all the acts, charters, diaries of the middle ages, which name any spot or building of Rome. The laborious work, such as Montfaucon desired, must be promoted by princely or public munificence: but the great modern plan of Nolli (A.D. 1748) would furnish a solid and accurate basis for the ancient topography of Rome.]

75 (return)
[ Père Montfaucon divides his observations into twenty days; he should have called them weeks or months of his visits to different parts of the city, (Diarium Italicum, c. 8—20, p. 104—301.) That knowledgeable Benedictine reviews the topographers of ancient Rome; the initial efforts of Blondus, Fulvius, Martianus, and Faunus, as well as the more advanced work of Pyrrhus Ligorius, had his knowledge matched his efforts; the writings of Onuphrius Panvinius, who overshadowed them all, and the recent but incomplete works of Donatus and Nardini. Still, Montfaucon longs for a more complete plan and description of the old city, which can be achieved through three methods: 1. Measuring the spaces and intervals of the ruins. 2. Studying inscriptions and the locations where they were found. 3. Investigating all the acts, charters, and diaries from the Middle Ages that mention any location or building in Rome. The painstaking work that Montfaucon envisioned needs to be supported by royal or public generosity: however, the great modern plan of Nolli (A.D. 1748) would provide a solid and accurate foundation for ancient Roman topography.]

Of these pilgrims, and of every reader, the attention will be excited by a History of the Decline and Fall of the Roman Empire; the greatest, perhaps, and most awful scene in the history of mankind. The various causes and progressive effects are connected with many of the events most interesting in human annals: the artful policy of the Cæsars, who long maintained the name and image of a free republic; the disorders of military despotism; the rise, establishment, and sects of Christianity; the foundation of Constantinople; the division of the monarchy; the invasion and settlements of the Barbarians of Germany and Scythia; the institutions of the civil law; the character and religion of Mahomet; the temporal sovereignty of the popes; the restoration and decay of the Western empire of Charlemagne; the crusades of the Latins in the East: the conquests of the Saracens and Turks; the ruin of the Greek empire; the state and revolutions of Rome in the middle age. The historian may applaud the importance and variety of his subject; but while he is conscious of his own imperfections, he must often accuse the deficiency of his materials. It was among the ruins of the Capitol that I first conceived the idea of a work which has amused and exercised near twenty years of my life, and which, however inadequate to my own wishes, I finally delivere to the curiosity and candor of the public.

Of these travelers, and of every reader, the attention will be drawn to a History of the Decline and Fall of the Roman Empire; the greatest, perhaps, and most daunting scene in human history. The various causes and progressive effects are linked to many of the most interesting events in human history: the clever strategies of the Caesars, who kept the name and image of a free republic alive for so long; the chaos of military tyranny; the rise, establishment, and divisions of Christianity; the founding of Constantinople; the division of the empire; the invasions and settlements by the Barbarians from Germany and Scythia; the establishment of civil law; the character and beliefs of Muhammad; the temporal power of the popes; the rise and fall of Charlemagne's Western Empire; the Latin Crusades in the East; the conquests by the Saracens and Turks; the downfall of the Greek Empire; the condition and revolutions of Rome during the Middle Ages. The historian may praise the significance and diversity of the topic; but while he is aware of his own shortcomings, he must often criticize the lack of resources. It was among the ruins of the Capitol that I first came up with the idea for a work that has engaged and occupied nearly twenty years of my life, and which, despite not meeting my own expectations, I now present to the curiosity and understanding of the public.

Lausanne, June 27 1787

Lausanne, June 27, 1787


Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!